Actions

Work Header

Rating:
Archive Warning:
Categories:
Fandom:
Relationships:
Characters:
Additional Tags:
Language:
English
Collections:
All-Time Favorite Works, HP_ENG, The Harry Potters, Dark Liege Potter, Mr Potter and Mr Riddle, Harrymort/Tomarry Recs for the Soul, Saicere's Favourites, Reasons I don't have a Life :), Harry Potter fics I absolutely love, Coup de coeur mais vraiment, Magnolia's Re-Reading, Hp random love, Alternative Universes of Fandoms I enjoy., Kyla's Great Rereads, Tomarry, Harrymort fics that everyone should read at least once, Harry Potter favs, S-Rank Tomarry/Harrymort Fics, Harry Potter Goes Away (Time travel/accidents/escapes and others), Ongoing fic, Theos Harry Potter Must Reads, Tantum Amor, Harry Potter collection, isabella9792_readinglist, Worth multiple rereads, Like A Favorite Sweater, Harry Potter Fanfic Must Reads, Favourite Works, The đŸ’«FairestđŸ’« of Them All, Ris’ WIP favs, I wanna eat you up (like Betty Crocker), Harrymort/Tomarry1, HP FICS, HP_tbc, UnHinged Fics
Stats:
Published:
2014-06-07
Updated:
2024-09-15
Words:
567,747
Chapters:
60/?
Comments:
1,992
Kudos:
9,184
Bookmarks:
3,816
Hits:
633,906

Of Lies and Deceit and Hidden Personas

Summary:

Everything changes the summer of 5th year when a mere letter causes Harry's magic to react wildly and he finds out that Dumbledore has been controlling him and his friends a lot more than first thought. With the truth revealed to him, Harry shows everyone he isn't the Gryffindor Golden Boy everyone thinks he is and he isn't the only the one with masks.

Notes:

Chapter Text

Hi guys, so I had this idea and decided to type it up. It’s a Dark!Trio story which is something I've never tried before so I hope it’s ok!

This is originally posted on FF.Net - so if you prefer that sight check it out there under the same pen name!

Disclaimer: Everything belongs to the amazing J.K. Rowling.

Warning: Blood, Gore, Torture, abuse.

Of Lies and Deceit and Hidden Personas.

Chapter 1.

 

Harry Potter had finally had enough. He was sick and tired of everything, Sirius’ death had hammered another nail in the coffin but this letter from the esteemed headmaster had finally sealed it shut.

 

Dear Harry,

I am sorry to have to inform you that you will no longer be able to correspond or interact with the Weasley’s and Miss Granger because of the threat this friendship pose’ on their lives. Only you alone can defeat the Dark Lord and once this task is completed I may allow you pick up the friendship. I have placed an extra ward around your house for protection which will stop all mail from being sent or received as it will be possible for someone to track. Because of this you shall not be leaving your relatives home until the start of term where someone will appear to take you to the platform 9 Ÿ and when you arrive at school you will be given a private room so no one is placed in danger, I am sorry to place this burden on you my boy but you have a destiny that must be fulfilled.

Sincerest apologies, 

Albus Dumbledore.

 

Harry was beyond fuming, he hadn’t trusted Dumbledore in a while now but this was a new level. His magic was whipping angrily around him and it seemed to be snapping things inside of him, memories flooded his mind and he watched with growing fury and he Ron and Hermione were repeatedly obliviated. Knowledge and truths poured in to him and a murderous all-consuming rage welled up inside of him making his magic crush things around him.

“BOY!” CRACK, the sound of Harry Potter’s well-built control shattering in to a million pieces.

“GET DOWN HERE YOU WORTHLESS FREAK!” His uncle screamed at him SMASH, the sound of Harry’s carefully built masks crumbling. Harry smiled, but it wasn’t an ordinary smile, it was dark, cruel, sadistic and more than half insane. Calmly he gathered his belongings and willed them to shrink, it wouldn’t do to be caught using his wand.

“I TOLD YOU TO GET DOWN HERE FREAK!” Ignoring his other injuries that Harry had acquired, which was an alarming number, Harry gracefully walked down the stairs dropping his fake glasses on the way, with each step he took his appearence changed until he barely resembled Harry Potter as the world saw him. Dead hair morphed in to silky raven locks that fell in light waves, sickly skin became creamy and unblemished, skinny frame filled out and grew becoming toned and lithe, and finally dull green eyes brightened to an AK green and pulsed with a furious power; and if you looked closely you could see a trail of blood followed the teenage wizard.

“Yes uncle Vernon?” Harry asked sweetly and received a full blown kick to the stomach and he heard one or more ribs crack.

“What do you think you are doing making all that racket, it isn’t enough that you have to taint us with your freaking ways.” The whale like man hissed and Harry’s smile grew.

“I'm sorry uncle Vernon I didn’t mean to.”

“That’s not good enough boy.” Vernon grabbed his nephew by the hair and dragged him in to the kitchen to give him a good thrashing, he threw the boy to the floor and took of his belt but before he could strike the young wizard Harry turned.

“No uncle Vernon I don’t think we will be doing that today.”                         

“Why you-,”

“Quiet pig.” Harry slashed his hand through the air silencing him, the man’s eyes went wide and Harry began to laugh which drew Dudley and Petunia in to the room.

“Oh look the rest of the family’s here.”

“What are you doing boy?”

“I'm going to kill you now. Imperio,” Harry waved his hand and shot the spell at Vernon who got a glazed look, he picked up a knife and walked calmly over to his son, who screamed when he realised he couldn’t move, and stabbed him repeatedly spraying blood everywhere. Petunia was screaming for him to stop but he didn’t, he started to carve out he own son’s eyes much to Harry’s delight, the teen was covered in blood but he relished in it. When Dudley was dead Harry released the spell and watched as Vernon broke down in horror but Harry wasn’t done yet, he made Vernon pick up the knife again and carve filth on his wives back as she screamed out. He made him beat his own wife to death before he released him for the second time and Harry could help but giggle as Vernon cried.

“No one can hear you uncle.” Harry picked up the dropped knife slished it viciously across Vernon’s face making him cry out.

“It hurts doesn’t it?” Harry asked sweetly before he began slashing with a vengeance.

“That’s it scream for me uncle. No one will help you uncle. I will end you uncle.” Harry cackled gleefully as he coated himself in his uncles blood, and with a final slash to the throat Vernon lay still, Harry dropped the knife and apperated away not knowing he shouldn’t be able to do half the stuff he just did without a wand. He landed outside a set of grand double doors that belonged to Malfoy Manor and knocked, he hoped Draco had a shower he could borrow it wouldn’t do him any good to walk round in public covered in blood. The doors opened to reveal Draco Malfoy who when from emotionless to shock to horror in about 3 seconds, silently he pulled his secret friend in.

“What the hell happened?” Draco demanded in a hiss, the Dark Lord was in the manor right now and it really would not be good for him to see Harry, who was covered in blood, looking completely insane without his glamour, the blondes mind was working a mile a minute but coming up with nothing. Harry tilted his head and let out a childish giggle which made Draco pale; Harry had finally lost it. Hurried footsteps approached and Draco cursed as he father and the Dark Lord came in to the entrance hall and froze.

“Is that Harry Potter?”

“Um yes milord,”

“What is he covered in?”

“I think its blood,”

“What on in Merlin’s name is going on here Draco?”

“I haven’t got the faintest idea father.” The younger blonde wrung his hands looking at his friend who it seemed wasn’t even there anymore. The Dark Lord, who looked like a 25 year old Tom Riddle, felt his breath catch when Harry turned to look at him, The boy looked stunning with his longish raven hair contrasting with his pale skin, full red lips curved up in an alluring smile, piercing Avada eyes shone with an insane glint and the blood running down him just added to the effect. Harry giggled again, but this time he spoke in a haunting child-like manor that made everyone shiver.

“He lied to me he did, made me forget things he did, told me more lies he did.” Harry giggled again; it was clear he wasn’t in his right mind.

“You’re the boy-who-live Harry, Slytherin are evil Harry, you have to save the stone Harry, I’ll obliviate you Harry, can't have you knowing the truth Harry.” Harry titled his head to the side again.

“I’ll make sure your abused Harry, we can't have you strong Harry, and I’ll bind your magic Harry.” He giggled again, the haunting childish voice had everyone frozen in place.

“You have to risk your life Harry, but I won’t tell you why Harry. I’ll destroy your reasons to live and make you rely on me Harry, but don’t worry Harry you will never know.” Harry laughed and it was the same laugh that Bellatrix gave when she was completely insane.

“I’ll kill your godfather Harry, I’ll create a prophecy Harry, you have to fight Harry because you’re our saviour Harry. I’ll raise you like a pig for slaughter Harry.” He was back to the childish giggle.

“Back to the muggles Harry, they will beat you Harry and I’ll take away your friends Harry.” His smile grew and his eyes blazed.

“You’re a freak Harry, your worthless Harry, in the cupboard Harry, freaks don’t eat Harry.” Harry’s voice changed to a desperate pleading which was even more frightening with the smile on his face.

“Please uncle Vernon I’ll be good, stop uncle Vernon I didn’t mean it, not the belt uncle Vernon, please uncle Vernon I'm sorry.” Harry’s voice changed back to child-like which didn’t match the evil smile on his face.

“No uncle Vernon it won’t work this time, I'm sorry uncle Vernon did that hurt? Look uncle Vernon I carved out his eyes, can you see uncle Vernon? Are you sorry uncle Vernon? I’ll make you sorry uncle Vernon, that’s it scream for me uncle Vernon, no one will hear you just like no one heard me. No one will save you uncle Vernon because I'm the saviour and no one saved me.” With one last childish giggle Harry looked in to the crimson eyes of the Dark Lord.

“Can you save me Tom?” His eyes rolled back and he dropped like a rock, he was deftly caught by Draco who just snapped out of his shock in time. Draco laid the underweight teen on the floor with care and the silence was thick, no one could think of anything to say. It was then Draco spotted the running blood that was coming from Harry, he took out his wand and began running the usual diagnostics and swore up a storm, he snapped his fingers and a house elf popped in.

“Fetch my mother and tell he to bring her full healing kit now.” Draco ordered in a slight panic, Harry was injured much more than usual, the blonde unbuttoned Harry’s robes and began to stem the flow of blood this seemed to wake the two adults out of the shock. The Dark Lord waved his wand over the teen and a piece of parchment began writing all the numerous injuries some of which were life threatening if not treated immediately, Voldemort cursed just as Narcissa hurried round the corner.

“What is it Draco?” She asked as she caught sight of Harry she released a gasp and the Dark Lord handed her the diagnostic sheet.

“Everyone back,” She ordered as she fell to her knees pulling out her wand and multiple potions, she began healing him, she had to reset his arm and multiple ribs, but one of the ribs pierced his lung. Blood started to flow from Harry’s mouth making his breathing become laboured, the Dark Lord knelt down opposite Narcissa and began chanting in Latin, the spell emptied the blood from the lung to clear the airways but he had to repeat it over and over because they were filling at a rapid rate. Narcissa spells a potion straight in to his stomach and waved her wand, Harry’s breathing evened out but the blood would not stop flowing from the cuts and welts.

“Nippy I need more blood replenishers now.” She barked wiping her brow smearing blood down her face.

“Damn, he’s losing too much blood, why is it not stemming? If this keeps up it won't be his lungs that will kill him.” She cried as she tried to close the wounds, they kept reopening and the blood seemed to be falling faster; Draco slapped himself.

“He has basilisk venom and phoenix tears in his blood.” He exclaimed remembering when Harry had said ordinary blood replenishers didn’t work for him, they didn’t clot the blood just thickened it.

“WHAT!?”

“Long story,” Draco waved them off, Narcissa did some quick thinking.

“Nippy get me a neutralizer.” She told the elf who came back with the blood replenishers, she poured it down his throat and added the neutralizer and it was slow, but finally the blood started to clot, she rolled him over and pulled the robes off only to cursed viciously. There were whip marks layered upon each other with multiple bruises and the word ‘freak’ carved there, the Dark Lord’s eyes flashed and he started sealing the wounds as Narcissa prevented scars. The bruises faded to a yellowy colour and she ran a final diagnostic sighing in relief, with a last blood replenisher and some skele-gro she was done. She stood and conjured up a floating stretcher, levitating the teen on to it taking up to a bedroom leaving another thick silence in her wake.

“I believe, Lucius, your son has a lot of explaining to do.” The Dark Lord said looking at the Jr Malfoy, Draco nodded swallowing hard and praying Harry didn’t kill him when he woke up. They headed to his father’s study and sat down, Draco tried not to squirm under the gaze of the most powerful wizard in the world.

“Harry has a lot of masks, the so called Golden Trio have a lot of nasty secrets that do not fit their hero image. I became friends with Harry in forth year I can't even remember how, but he is so much different when he drops his mask, I found out how far the masks went when I caught him teaching Granger and Weasley the Sectumsempra curse. But there was something off with them, they would work out some of Dumbledore’s manipulations and next thing they would have no clue, Harry had a mean Slytherin streak and some of the things those three have done and never been caught are quite unbelievable.” Draco explained surprising the two dark wizards.

“That does not explain what just happened or how he got in here without alerting the wards.” The Dark Lord pointed out at this Draco’s face darkened.

“Harry’s relatives are the worst type of muggles, last year it wasn’t as bad as I was able to heal him on the train with the help of Granger and Weasley, but I'm guessing without the threat of Black the muggles went overboard.”

“You mean Potter’s family did that to him!” Lucius exclaimed and his son nodded.

“By the sounds of it he finally snapped and killed the filth, although something else must have happened because he completely lost it.” Draco said with a shrug.

“But I thought Potter was a spoilt little prince, I doubt Dumbledore would allow-,” Before Draco could speak the Dark Lord did.

“He would, this is exactly something the old fool would do to ensure he had control.” Voldemort hissed, his crimson eyes burning in anger.

“I wonder what could have caused this reaction.” Lucius wondered aloud.

“We will have to wait until he wakes, but this makes my job easier, I was about to start my plan to coerce the teen to our side anyway, he is ridiculously hard to kill.” The last part came out in a somewhat petulant mutter, there was a knock at the door and a clean Narcissa entered.

“He is resting, but I think he will be out until morning, I have never seen something so bad and I have healed death eaters after a raid.” She explained and looked towards her son for an explanation so Draco told the story again, the Dark Lord sent Lucius and the brothers to Potter’s address to see what damage was done there and he sat back with a sigh pouring himself a large glass of whisky. There was a lot about Harry Potter which was hidden and the Dark Lord wanted to know it all. Lucius and the brothers came back and each was in a different state of shock.

“Well?”

“It’s a mess My Lord, he didn’t just murder them it was torture some Bella would be proud of.” Rabastan said Voldemort’s eyebrows shot up.

“Oh,”

“That’s not all, the male adult was showing signs of a high powered imperious.” Rodolphus put in.

“Why isn’t the ministry and the fools order not swarming the place?”

“It seemed it was done by raw magic, there is absolutely no trace of a wand being used.” Lucius told his Lord, he wouldn’t have believed it if he hadn’t run the tests himself.

“That’s impossible.”

“I would have thought so too milord if I had not run the tests multiple times, it was pure raw magic with vicious intent.” Lucius shook his head in wonder, there was a lot more to Harry Potter than anyone could imagine and they were only scraping the top.


 

  

Tom Riddle AKA Lord Voldemort was waiting for his new mystery to wake up from his healing sleep, he sat in an arm chair across from the peacefully sleeping teen reading. Harry woke slowly and his first thought was that he wasn’t in any pain which was unusual as only the other day Vernon had given him his worst beating to date, then he remembered the letter and everything seemed to come flooding back to him and he sat bolt upright looking around. Harry’s eyes darted around the richly decorated room wondering where in Merlin’s name he was when his eyes fell on the most gorgeous man he had ever seen. He had dark hair that was straight and was cut in to style that was no longer than his neck, sharp aristocratic features, pink lips and bright eyes; bright crimson eyes. Harry was staring in to the face of Lord Voldemort only he looked like his old self; Tom Riddle.

“Brilliant Potter, absolutely fucking brilliant, you finally lost your mind.” He muttered to himself much to the amusement of the Dark Lord.

“Good morning Mr Potter.” He drawled,

“Good morning Mr Riddle.” Harry said in the same tone which made the Dark Lord blink.

“Would you care to explain?” Harry fell back on the bed with a groan pulling the covers over his head.

“Not particularly no, why do you ask?”

“It might have something with you somehow breaking through the Malfoy wards covered in blood completely out of your mind.” Voldemort stated.

“Huh, yeah finally lost it then, I did say I would kill them eventually.” Harry said seriously sitting up again, it was then he noticed he was shirtless, with a yelp he leapt out of bed and to the full length mirror. Harry nearly gaped, he was completely healed, not a bruise or cut or even a scar anywhere, it was then he noticed he looked different, one of the blocked memories signalled his glamour and his eyes widened and he released a string of curses.

“What the hell happened!?”

“I believe I did just ask.”

“I don’t remember what happened once I got here, I had a letter from that manipulative, sly old bastard.” Harry spat out his face twisting in to an evil snarl.

“I know I got angry and my magic must have ripped away his binds and memory modifications because I remember everything the bastard has ever done, then I had a lovely call from my delightful uncle and I snapped.” Harry’s smile was full of malice as he span to face the Dark Lord.

“I made those filthy muggles suffer,” He said in pleasure, “And then I have no clue it just goes blank.” Harry finished with a shrug. 

“It seemed as if you were having a mental collapse, you appeared less sane than Bella, which is saying something.”

“Well that can't be healthy.”

“No it usually isn’t.”

“Damn it, I have so much to plan. That bastard needs to have his neck rung.” Harry growled.

“Yes, what are your issues with Dumbledore? You said a lot of things yesterday that didn’t make sense.” Harry sighed and wrenched his hands through his hair.

“Can I shower first, it’s a long story.” That he didn’t quite know the answer to himself.

“If you must,” Harry willed his trunk to unshrunk and he pulled out some green robes which he had bought last year which were for his true self not his golden boy mask, granted he only remembered now, but now was a good a time as any. He dived in the shower and thanked Merlin for small miracles, he hadn’t been allowed to wash properly since school, when he was done he lengthened his hair just slightly so he could tie it at the nape of his neck. He came out of the bathroom fully dressed and sat down on the other chair in the room, the Dark Lord looked up and his eyes raked Harry, a hungry look flickered in the crimson eyes before it was gone and Harry didn’t know if he imagined it or not.

“Dumbledore,”

“I was supposed to be in Slytherin.” Harry stated much to the Dark Lord’s surprise. “Since first year the headmaster has been controlling me with spells and obliviating me and my friends from when we find out any of his manipulations. It wasn’t our idea to go after the stone, but yet we did, he knew you were in the school, but he did nothing but send three 11 year olds down to save a legendary magical artefact. He sends me to abusive muggles and pays them to make me weak and submissive.” Harry rolled his eyes. “Like that will ever happen,”

“The chamber of secrets happened and he obviously knew who the heir was I mean me Ron and Mione worked out who it was and what was in it then Mione got petrified, it wasn’t like two 12 year olds could possibly do anything about an ancient basilisk but yet I find myself down in the chamber slaying the poor thing and stabbing the diary with a basilisk fang, sorry about that by the way Tom it wasn’t my choice.” Voldemort nodded with a wince; his poor diary.

“Dumbles obliviated charming me and Ron to go down and the fact he knew Ginny had the diary from our minds. Third year was a joke, he is chief warlock and yet he could get no trial for Sirius, we sat for hours looking through ministry law books and found that the chief warlock can demand a trial for anyone, but we were again obliviated and forced to go back in time and save Siri so he was on the run.” Harry shook his head and thought for a second, all of the memories were swirling around in his head so he had to concentrate.

“Forth year I was obliviated multiple times and he spelled Ron to turn his back on me in the tournament as well as placing a bind on my magic just before the third task. I got dementors sent after me and he kept me in the dark at my hell hole for over a month, then the pathetic hearing before being sent the HQ. Sirius told me everything that was going on in the order on the sly which I of course told Ron and Hermione, but we were obliviated again this time with Sirius. In school Umbridge was teaching and Dumbles sat back and allowed me to have my hand carved in to and obliviated any teachers I went to about it, hell I even went to Snape, of course I had Draco, Ron and Mione for help so we managed to keep me from killing the toad. Apparently, I have a slight temper on me.” Harry smiled wryly,

“I started teaching over half the school defence under everyone’s noses until we were ratted out, it was called, at the time, Dumbledore's army which made Dumbledore take the blame for it and he left. This allowed me to teach some of the dark arts I had been learning since second year; Draco caught me teaching them the Sectumsempra hex which was when he saw me for the first time with none of my well-crafted masks on. It’s funny, no one has even had a thought that there was anything other than the golden boy so I used it, its surprisingly difficult acting like an idiot sometimes. Then you sent me the vision to get the prophecy which we knew was fake, the next thing I know I'm on a freakin thestral flying to the ministry with the intent to save Sirius. I remember now seeing Dumbledore cast something on Bellatrix before she sent a curse at Sirius, I chased her and cast the cruciatus, but my magic was pulling and I couldn’t do it even though I had perfected the spell in forth year. Then the great Albus Dumbledore and you had an epic duel ruined by the ministry, the prophecy had previously smashed, but he told me it when we got back to his office.” Harry clenched his fist at that, he took a deep breath and calmed his anger as he was unsure as to what would happen.

“Luna, one of my favourite people in the world, like my little sister, a relationship the old fool ruined because he spelled me to be away from anyone other than Gryffindors after Umbridge went. She, being the smart cookie that she is, kept the shards of glass and I took it to the centaurs who confirmed my suspicions; it was fake. We found out that quite a few people were in on his plan including Ron’s mum and sister, he went psycho it was quite amusing actually. When he discovered we had seen through his master plan we were once again obliviated and this summer he deemed it necessary to tell my dear relatives that Sirius, whose status as crazed mass murderer I used as protection, had died which sentenced me to hell. Of course until yesterday I didn’t know about all of this, but I had a letter from the beard stating he was terminating my friendship with Ron and Hermione and if I succeeded in my destiny he may allow he to pick that friendship up again; that was when I got angry. My magic snapped everything her had done to me and I was flooded with everything, all the memories the binds the info and I snapped, and allowed by true self come out to play. After the pleasure of watching my uncle kill his own family I killed him, quiet gleefully actually, then I don’t know what happened.” Harry frowned at the end, the Dark Lord was shocked, even with just one conversation it was obvious Harry Potter was completely different to which he allowed the world to see.

“Overall you have quite a few issues with Dumbledore.” Tom drawled and Harry scoffed.

“That appears to be a severe understatement,” Harry agreed, “There are so many things that I will have to go through, but Dumbledore will pay for this.”

“What do you plan on doing now?”

“I want neutrality from the war for me Ron and Hermione for the time being, I have to sort everything out, but it’s not to say I wouldn’t give you all the information I have on the order I just won't actively help either side.”

“I can do that.” He rose from his chair and Harry took the time to properly look at the man, he liked what he saw.

“What will it take to have you on my side?” Harry smirked and got to his feet, he walked slowly towards the Dark Lord and the hungry look was more prominent this time. He stopped in front of the man and looked in to the crimson eyes with a crocked grin.

“Oh I'm sure it wouldn’t take too much.”

“Is that so?”

“Mmm I'm sure you’ll think of something.” They were impossibly close now and then there was a knock at the door, Harry heard Voldemort curse under his breath and smirked as he turned away.

“Come in.” Harry called the door opened and in walked Narcissa Malfoy.

“Mr Potter, My Lord, I have come to run some final checks on you and I have an irate owl swooping around the manor which I believe belongs to you.” Harry grinned.

“Hedwig did find me,” He said happily, he released a sharp whistle and the snowy owl flew in and landed on her master’s shoulder.

“Hey girl, I knew you would find me.” He told her softly stroking her feathers, she let out a dignified hoot as if to say of course.

“Yes you are an abnormally intelligent owl.’ She looked him in the eye and gave a short nod, Harry smiled.

“Did your owl just nod?”

“Yeah, she does that, she has an unusual amount of intelligence even for an owl.” Harry said proudly, he looked at the desk and willed perch to appear, a beautiful ebony perch appeared and Harry grinned.

“There you go girl.” She hooted in thanks and swooped down to her new perch nodding in approval.

“You can run your tests now.” Harry said to Narcissa.

“How did that perch get there?”

“I wanted it to be there.” Harry told the Dark Lord.

“So you can do wandless magic?”

“I guess, I just willed it to be there.” Harry shrugged, “It’s not all that hard.”

“Harry, Harry, Harry, wandless magic is rare.” Voldemort sighed.

“Really, that explained why no one else could do it then when I tried teaching them.”

“How did you not know this?” Harry looked at the Dark Lord blankly.

“Tom,” Harry began, “Dumbledore.”

“Ah of course, well I have Dark Lord things to be doing so I will leave you to be checked over.”

“Alright, have fun.” Harry said with a grin which gained rolled eyes as the man left.

“Right then Mr Potter stand still.”

“Harry please, Mrs Malfoy.”

“Narcissa or Cissa dear,” Harry grinned and stood still as she ran her wand over him muttering in Latin.

“Well your all healed Harry, just don’t apply avert pressure to your ribs for a few days.”

“Thanks Cissa,”

“You are free to stay here for the remainder of the holidays, Draco would welcome the company I am sure.

“Thank you, I will take you up on that offer.”

“Just call for Nippy to show you around and you are able to use your wand as the wards hide it from the ministry.”

“Ok and again thanks for everything.” She smiled and left the room, Harry flopped down on the chair again with a sigh, and he had so much clean up to do now. Pulling his wand, parchment, ink and a quill out her went to the desk and began his letter, all he had to do now was hope it got there in time.

 

Swift & Paws,

 

Lemons been cleaning, mine broke, everything came to light. Snapped and disposed of with pleasure but went blank. Ended up with bleach and healed. The basilisk is human, situation understood, clean up needed, and you need enlightening.

 

He spelled the parchment with every transfer protection he knew keying them in to his best friend’s signature, it would ensure that no matter what Dumbles did it wouldn’t work, it would seem as if it had taken effect but they would be safe. Even in code he couldn’t afford for the letter to be intercepted so he called for his trust friend.

“Dobby,”

“Master Harry Potter called for Dobby sir?”

“I need you to deliver this letter to Ron and Hermione when they are alone, it is the up most importance that they get this Dobby as soon as possible.”

“Dobby will not let Master Harry Potter down.” The elf took the letter and popped away, Harry began his second letter.

 

Manic & Panic,

 

Safe, major clean up needed, details in person, secure meeting.

 

Harry gave this to Hedwig for the twins, she swooped out the window and Harry began pacing. If he was to be going back to Hogwarts everything needed to be done and soon, if he was discovered too soon then he was done. They already had begun a case to get rid of Dumbledore, but even that was taking time, Harry remembered their note books hidden in the one place the old fool couldn’t get to the CoS, they had the grimiest of dirt on Dumbles in there including his haunting past with one Gellert Grindlewald; it’s funny what you can do with fame. After this they were going to destroy Dumbledore, after his reputation was in ruins he was get desperate and then he would lose a duel and be gone, Harry knew eventually they would join the dark they had been saying they would if they were accepted.

Obviously there was the fact that Hermione was muggle born, but they had discovered that majority of muggleborns came from squibs and Hermione was one of them so that scrapped that argument, Harry doubted Tom wanted to kill all muggleborns anyway as he was a half blood and if he did well Harry had the urge to slap him for being an idiot; not that he ever would, he wasn’t quite suicidal. Apart from that they would fit in well, all three of them had taken to the dark arts at an alarming rate and it didn’t take much to sway Ron from his ‘all Slytherins and dark magics are evil’ to ‘look how much power I have and how many people I actually hate’ especially when he discovered his mum and Ginny were being paid to betray him and they kept the money for their own selfish reasons, Harry thought that was what finally pushed him over the edge and the youngest Weasley male took to the arts with new vigour swearing he would show them their mistakes. Hermione had been easier to sway, the knowledge she was missing out on made her pick up the first book and the rest was history.

Fred and George had always been the black sheep, but Harry didn’t find out until 5th year that it was literal, the rest of the DA, which he would rename at the quickest convenience, never knew they were learning borderline dark spells such as ‘confringo’ but next year they would. Harry didn’t even want to think what would happen if the old fool had already gotten to them, he would have to take drastic measures which would alert the old fool which was last of his list of things to do. Harry was gathering in to a building panic when Dobby popped back in with an envelope that Harry tore open and read like it was a lifeline.

 

Snake,

Just saved but still solid, lemon tried again, meeting needed, M&P quiet. Glad you’re safe, about time they went, how long did basilisk give and will we fall?

Swift & Paws

 

Harry nearly cried in relief; they were fine. The news about the twins was unnerving, but Harry would wait until he heard back from them, he would write back and tell them not to reply until he heard from the twins.

 

Swift & Paws,

Basilisk will try and we fall eventually but what's to stop us holding out? Protected the last sheet, do not reply, waiting on M&P.

Snake

 

Sending it with Dobby again Harry pulled out a book from his trunk as he didn’t want to do anything particularly strenuous before his ribs were completely healed, he tucked his feet under himself on the leather chair and began reading. It was something from the Black library on offensive hexes and curses, he had learned them all, but it was an interesting read. Harry was so immersed in the book he didn’t hear the Dark Lord knock or enter until the man cleared his throat, Harry reacted instantly and fired of several vicious curses which were luckily blocked and Harry looked on wide eyed.

“Those were particularly nasty.” The Dark Lord commented as he entered the room.

“Sorry about that, I'm a little on edge.” Harry said placing his wand back in its holster.

“Really, I didn’t notice.” He replied dryly. “Have you got word from your friends?” Harry sat back down.

“Yes thankfully, I got my letter there just in time as Dumbledore tried again. I’m still waiting from the twins.”

“Will they join you in the dark?” Voldemort asked and Harry smirked.

“So sure I’ll join?”

“Of course, I have every intention of winning you over.”

“Like I said, it shouldn’t be too hard and yes they will join me.” Harry told him with a grin, the Dark Lord smirked.

“The Malfoy’s hold a summer ball it is to be in a week, will you attend?” Harry’s eyes lit up.

“Who’s on the guest list?”

“The dark families, a few from the ministry which are sympathetic to our cause.”

“So no one who will go running to Dumbles as soon as they see me?” The Dark Lord merely raised an eyebrow, Harry rolled his eyes.

“Yes I’ll will go, the noble and most ancient house of Black is a dark family after all.”

“I am presuming you have correct attire.” This time it was Harry who raised an eyebrow.

“Of course,” He scoffed, “I know I may have acted like a stupid Gryffindor but I assure you I am not, far from it actually. You will have full witness to how I truly act in a few days if you still doubt me.”

“Indeed, I will be a wonder to see how much these mask run.” Voldemort drawled as he got up to leave and Harry smirked.

“It won’t disappoint, I guarantee.” With one last raised eyebrow he swept from the room, Harry stretched and decided he would go and find Draco, the blonde deserved an explanation. The manor was like a maze so he ended up calling for an elf to show him to where Draco was, the blonde was in the library reading something when Harry approached.

“Hey Draco,” Harry sat down across the table.

“Harry,” the relief was obvious, “I thought you were dead for sure, you idiot you scared the living shit in to me!”

“Yeah sorry about that.”

“SORRY! You ripped through our wards covered in blood, go psycho, collapse and nearly die on me and you say sorry?” the Malfoy scion exclaimed and Harry grimaced.

“Ok, so Dumbledore’s been manipulating me more than I first thought, turns out he’s been obliviating me, Ron and Mione and put a bind on my magic; I snapped.” Harry explained the shortened version, Draco was shocked and furious.

“That bastard, is he insane?”

“I'm pretty sure he is.” Harry said seriously, Draco snorted.

“Good point, are you coming to the ball?”

“Of course, it’s been a while since I truly came out and play, and I do like to shock people.” Harry grinned.

“Yes you have that characteristic, you have your dress robes correct?” Draco questioned and Harry rolled his eyes.

“I have many sets of dress robes and if any more people ask me that I swear I’ll turn up in red and gold.” Harry grumbled.

“Ok I was just checking, you might have wanted to go shopping, but be prepared, mother will also ask you.” Harry sighed.

“I sometimes hate my masks, they are rather bothersome in situations like these. However, I would more likely be in a worse situation if I didn’t have it.” Draco nodded and Harry summoned a book from one of the many shelves, he cracked it open as Draco went back to his own. A house elf popped in when Harry was half way through the book announcing dinner was ready and Harry was surprised; he had missed all his meals. 

“I really need to start eating again.” He muttered to himself as he followed Draco to the dining room, he ended up sitting next to the Dark Lord who was at the head.

“Harry, what have you eaten today?” Narcissa asked and he looked at her like a deer in headlights; he was not expecting to be asked.

“Nothing, I forget to eat, it’s been a while.” He finally answered deciding he couldn’t find anything to cover his freeze, Narcissa narrowed her eyes.

“I will be monitoring you for the rest of the holidays.” Harry just nodded, if she reminded him to eat that would help. They ate in a comfortable atmosphere, there was light conversation about the upcoming ball and just like Draco predicted Narcissa asked about his robes which Harry patiently and kindly explained he had plenty of suitable dress robes.

“Do you have a duelling or practice room?” Harry asked looking at Lucius.

“Yes, one of the elves will escort you if you want to use it.” Lucius answered and Harry nodded in thanks, he had something to do tomorrow and he needed sleep before he was fully recovered. He excused himself heading for his room and he didn’t see the crimson eyes following his every move, Harry changed and collapsed in bed, he knew it was early, but if he slept now he would be fine tomorrow.

 

A/N: Soooooooo, what do you think? I hope you like it, please let me know what you think!

Jess*

Chapter Text

 

Disclaimer: All belongs to the wonderful J.K. Rowling apart from the plot which I am glad to say is mine.

Warning: Minor swearing.

Chapter 2:

 

Harry was up and dressed by 7 the next day, he made his way down for breakfast and Narcissa glared at him until he finished a rather large plateful; she was terrifying. The Dark Lord found this quite amusing by the hidden smirk on the man’s face, Harry threw him a filthy look and turned back to his food. Owls swooped in carrying mail and the morning paper, Harry was relieved to see Hedwig and she landed smartly on his shoulder sticking her leg out, before he took the letter he ran some tests which came up positive. His eyes narrowed at the tracker and an obliviate on the parchment, he disabled both and carefully opened the letter running more test and disabling the spells.

“Did the old fool get you girl?” Harry asked in a controlled voice and the smart owl bobbed her head twice and gave a hoot.

“Damn, did he spell the letter?” She nodded again, Harry growled and began to read the letter.

 

Snake,

Got to Manic can't break it, don’t know how long I will hold out. Need M for clean-up and meeting, lemons will return he suspects, don’t know what to do.

 

Harry released a string of curses and glared at the letter until it burst in to flames, he banished the ash with a wave of his hand.

“Dobby, Kreature, Winky.” He snapped trying to calm his raging temper, the three elves popped in.

“Yes master Harry?”

“Winky, is the headmaster at the school?”

“No mister beard man is gone to a meeting.” Harry cursed again.

“Ok, Winky go back and watch him when he returns.” She popped away.

“Kreature, go wreak havoc on the order meeting, keep them busy but make sure they don’t know it’s me telling you.”

“With pleasure Master Harry.” The ancient elf popped away.

“Dobby I need you to stay hidden with Ron and Hermione, make sure the esteemed headmaster does not do anything to them, give them a letter from me.” Harry got from the table and apperated to his room, leaving a shocked table behind him.

 

Swift & Paws,

Manic’s been breached, I'm sorting it and I’ll break them, I have you covered. STAY AWAY FROM ALL CHICKENS.

 

He handed the elf the letter and he popped away, Harry threw open his trunk and pulled out a black hooded cloak. He knew he couldn’t apperate in to the store which left floo, he wrinkled his nose but was resigned he would have to use what he could, he ran back to the dining room where they were all sat discussing his previous behaviour.

“Which would be the best floo to use?” Harry asked his voice had a tight edge.

“Going somewhere?” The Dark Lord asked with a raised eyebrow.

“Yes and I need to go now before my complete cover is blown.” Harry put a lot of emphasis on the now.

“Would you care to explain before you go and do something Gryffindor-ish?” This was the wrong thing to say to Harry at that point, his magic flared violently causing quite a few priceless artefacts to explode.

“I may have acted like a Gryffindor but I am not, I do not have time to listen to this and you can crucio me for lack of respect or whatever you do to your minions when I get back but right now if I do not get to my destination there is a good chance I will end up obliviated or dead as soon as I return to school.” Harry snarled and he went to apperated but extra wards had been put up.

“Fuck this.” He collected his magic and ripped the wards down before apperating away, he landed behind Gringotts and pulled his hood up hurrying towards WWW. He climbed in the open window at the back and headed to the upstairs apartment, George was pacing muttering under his breath when Harry got there, and Harry snuck up behind him with his wand to his throat.

“Panic?”

“Snake,” He sounded so relieved.

“Is it safe?”

“Yes, locked down until I could find a solution.”

“Where’s Manic?”

“I had to stun him, we got in to an argument.” Harry cursed again and followed George in to the bedroom where Fred was led out cold.

“This is going to hurt him a lot.” Harry told George who nodded in a determined manor, Harry lifted Fred’s eyelids and fell in to the others mind, when he had found the Fred’s central point. Harry collected his magic and pushed it in to the point, he watched as the obliviates snapped and all the memories flooded in to the centre before branching out to their correct place, Harry pulled out of the mind and he was sweating. Fred was twitching but otherwise he looked ok, George enervated his twin who rolled over and groaned.

“My head, oh my head.” He moaned and Harry sighed in relief.

“Freddie, you’re back to normal?” George asked tentively handing over a headache reliever.

“I remember everything, oh merlin Snake is going to kill me.” He groaned and George grinned.

“No I won't, I need your help.” Harry said with his own grin, Fred shot up wide eyed.

“Snake, what are you doing here?”

“Well somebody had to come and fix what lemons did.” Harry rolled his eyes, “Now on to the important stuff, I need your help; badly.”

“What’s happened?”

“All of my obliviates broke, and there’s a lot that I have been missing.” Harry said and the twins frowned.

“How much is a lot?” Harry sat and explained everything and the twins were shocked silent before they exploded.

“THAT’S CRAZY OLD FOOL!”

“We knew he was up to something but I didn’t think it would go that far.” George fumed.

“That’s just it, he made sure we didn’t. Panic, I need to break yours now and then I will cover you both from future attacks.” George led down and Harry repeated the process, George woke up and vomited his guts and downed a head ache reliever.

“Oh Merlin, that’s awful.”

“I would apologise but it would be a lie.” Harry shrugged with a smirk.

“What’s do you need us to do?” Fred asked.

“I need you to go to my relatives house and make their untimely demise look like a muggle accident, I need it to be discovered much later in the holidays when I can say I ran away when I found it.” Harry told them and both wore identical smirks.

“We can do that for you,”

“It shouldn’t be too difficult,”

“We’ll get straight on it!”

“Brilliant, now I’m with Bleach and I have Dobby watching Swift and Paws but if you could get over there and check on them I would appreciate it, we are going to show some outstanding acting next school year.” Harry sighed.

“Snake, you’ve been acting for the last 4 years.” Manic said slowly (Fred is Manic and George is Panic) and Harry rolled his eyes.

“Yes but Dumbledore thinks he’s spelled them to alienate themselves from me, I'm getting my own private quarters.”

“You’ll work something out and we will manage to get in and out of the school to lend a hand.” George pointed out, Harry nodded.

“What did the basilisk say?” Harry paled and cursed.

“Ah fuck, I am so getting crucio’d when I get back.” He moaned wrenching a hand through his lengthened hair.

“You snapped didn’t you?” Fred sighed.

“No but I was close, if lemons got to Panic as well I would have been dead.”

“I wish thee luck Snake, you will need it.” George patted Harry on the back in sympathy, Harry grimaced and got to his feet.

“Ugh and I have to deal with older bleach as I ripped down his wards again.”

“You do have to stop that, it was bad enough you being able to tear a gap through the Hogwarts ones big enough to slip through let alone ripping them down.” Harry stuck out his tongue.

“Yeah yeah, now are you going to allow me to apperate out or no?” Fred grinned and waved his wand.

“See you Snake, we will send a report via Winky.” They told him, he grinned before disapperating with the tiniest of cracks. Harry landed in his bedroom deeming it a safe haven; he was wrong. Immediately there was a wand at his throat and he mentally curse the Dark Lord’s intelligence.

 “Hey, fancy meeting you here, it’s a pleasant day for an interaction like this don’t you agree.” Harry said brightly, the wand dug a little deeper before it disappeared, Harry slowly turned around to face Voldemort.

“I do believe you said I could Crucio you when you returned.” The older man drawled, Harry rubbed his head sheepishly.

“Yeah about that, I would appreciated it greatly if you refrained from doing so.”

“Is that so, and the reason I should allow such disrespect?” Harry smirked.

“The same reason you allow me to call you Tom.”

“I don’t have a choice, I cannot force you because your stubborn side will refuse to break no matter what and I cannot kill you because for some reason you are impossible to kill.”

“Exactly, and anyway, it was your fault I got angry, you made the Gryffindor-ish comment.” Harry pointed out and Voldemort rolled his eyes, Harry grinned and flung himself down in a chair.

“By your bright spirit you have everything sorted?”

“Yes, Lemons managed to get to Manic and is he would have got to Panic I would have been royally screwed; they’re doing clean up. I also broke both their charms and obliviates so they are up to date with everything.” Harry told the Dark Lord, Tom raised an eyebrow.

“Lemons?” Harry smirked.

“Code names, we have a few.”

“Really,”

“Yup, it was quite funny coming up with some of them, Draco’s is the best.”

“Oh?”

“Yeah, I decided on Bleach.”

The Dark Lord, who would later deny anything of the sort, snorted and Harry laughed out right.

“I can’t imagine why.”

“Me and Mione found it hilarious, the purebloods didn’t get it at first but then I bleached Ron’s hair.” Harry explained with a chuckle.

“When will you know about the muggles?” Harry grimaced about the reminder.

“Manic and Panic will send me note and let me know how much time they have bought me, I should get it tonight or tomorrow.” The Dark Lord nodded.

“Lucius would also appreciate if you kept yourself from ripping in and out of his wards.”

“Well if people would answer my requests I wouldn’t need to.” Harry said with a huff, the Dark Lord rolled his eyes.

“Lunch is in 30 minutes, unless you want Narcissa to physically drag you there I would advise attending.” Harry was told before the older man swept from the room, Harry thought it would be best to heed the warning and prepared for lunch, he decided to make his own way down to the dining room which, by the time he got there, gave him 5 minutes before the meal.

“Are you quite alright now Harry?” Cissa asked him as soon as he was seated.

“Yes, I had a small problem but it’s sorted now.”

“Good,”

“Mr Potter, I don’t know how you’re doing it but please keep from ripping down the wards, they are locked on to myself.” Lucius said in his usual arrogant tone, it was then Harry noticed Voldemort wasn’t present.

“I will try.” Harry replied in a bored tone, he made sure his face was blank.

“Indeed you will, it is highly disrespectful and I will not take it in my own home.” The blonde hissed, Harry merely looked at him blankly.

“Hrm, ok, if you see things that way.”

“I do,”

“Excuse me Cissa,” Harry rose gracefully and glided from the room, only when he was clear did he smirk; Lucius was such a foolish man. He walked to his room to change his clothes, he put on tight black skinny jeans and a white t-shirt then called a house elf to lead him to the duelling room. He set up a dummy on medium and began, it was easy and he didn’t even have to use any dark arts, Harry rolled his eyes and upped the level to max. Harry slashed through the dummy quickly and decided he actually wanted a challenge, he set up 4 dummies on hard and took his position. He span, twisted and dodged out of the way of the spells before throwing back an onslaught of light and dark spells, his casting was speeding up and Harry relished in the freedom and power. He slashed through the first two with practiced ease, he jumped over a spell before blasting the final two through the air; Harry let out a sigh of relief.

“Impressive,” Harry span around and threw a number of different spells at the voice.

“Seriously, why do you creep up on people?” Harry exclaimed to the smirking Dark Lord.

“I am the Dark Lord.” He said as if it explained everything, Harry rolled his eyes.

“You just like the vindictive pleasure of scaring the shit in to people.” Harry muttered waving his wand to fix the damages.

“Yes, there is that.”

“Prick,” Harry breathed.

“What was that?”

“Nothing nothing, now why did you come and try to kill me?” Harry asked, Tom raised an eyebrow at the dramatics.

“I decided to see how you duel.”

“It feels so good,” Harry said dreamily.

“I can imagine”

“It’s not the same as a real opponent but it’s the best I can get.” Harry shrugged.

“Indeed,” Tom murmured as he took out his wand and stepped up to the platform, Harry looked at him wide eyed.

“Um what are you doing?”

“Giving you an opponent.” He drawled.

“You want me to duel you?” Harry questioned as if he was insane, Tom smirked.

“I’ll hold back if you wish.” Harry scowled.

“Don’t bother, I want to be able to say I lost to the Dark Lord when he was duelling me properly.”  Voldemort rolled his eyes and Harry fell in to his stance. Tom struck first not that Harry expected anything else which is why he immediately hit the floor and rolled over, he jumped up and was straight on the defence. Harry spotted what the Dark Lord was doing, he was trying to wear him down so Harry dropped his shield and relied on his honed reflexes to avoid the spells and began throwing spells back. Because he wasn’t using shields he had a rise in power so he linked spells together whilst dodging, he put more power behind his spells and a well-placed bombarda forced Tom to raise a shield, the spell slammed in to the shield and Tom stepped back with the force. Harry used this to his advantage and threw two reducto’s a confringo and a diffindo in quick succession, Voldemort blocked and dodged the first three but the cutter struck true and a deep slash appeared on the Dark Lords face; Harry nearly dropped his wand in shock. He froze for a second too long as a bone breaker collided with his wand arm making him hiss, he switched hands and continued, he was at a worse disadvantage now as his aim and speed were near half. Tom picked up speed and Harry took a few more hits, he was getting desperate so he brought his patronus out and pumped as much power in to it as he could and it was blinding, he randomly flung cutters and blasters at where Tom was before he collapsed to his knees. Prongs flickered and died and Harry was impressed, he managed to hit the Dark Lord twice more, once in the arm and again in the face if the bloody nose was anything to go by.

“That was fun.” Harry panted and then groaned when he touched his arm.

“I has been a while since I actually had a decent duel, I was hit.” He sounded so shocked that Harry laughed.

“I can't believe I managed to hit you, let alone 3 time, personal victory.” Harry cheered before wincing, he had been hit in the ribs and the head judging by the blood. Tom waved his wand and heeled his nose and cheek before waving over Harry who felt his skin sew back together.

“Narcissa is going to kill me.” The teen bemoaned as he dragged himself up and held his ribs in place, Tom rolled his eyes.

“Stop whining,” Harry huffed and trudged down to the front lounge, it was just passed the dining room and luckily Narcissa was sat with Lucius because Harry was exhausted. Harry didn’t realise what a mess he looked after an hour of duelling because Narcissa gasped and leapt to her feet.

“Harry what in Merlin’s name happened?”

“Where is your skele-gro, I kinda need it?” Harry said sheepishly.

“Why?”

“I have at least two fractured ribs and a shattered right arm.”

“I told you nothing strenuous, what on earth were you doing?” Narcissa demanded and Harry looked at her wide eyed just as Tom walked in with his arm secure.

“It was him, blame him, this is all his fault.” Harry exclaimed wildly pointing at the Dark Lord, Narcissa turned to the Dark Lord who rolled his eyes. Narcissa decided it was best not to ask, she summoned an elf for the potion and passed it out, Harry scrunched his face in distaste but sighed in relief when his ribs and arm started to knit back together.

“Thanks,”

“I am surprised, your last trick was unexpected but effective.” Tom told him after he muttered a spell on his arm which locked it in place.

“I was desperate, you had shattered my wand arm so I was even more disadvantaged, and it was the only thing I could think off.” Harry told him, he felt his arm and was happy it was only the fore arm damaged, he conjured up a sling and tied his arm in place it would be fine in the morning.

“I didn’t believe you would continue after your wand arm was taken out.”

“I'm stubborn remember,” Harry grinned, “Besides, I managed to hit you once I wasn’t about to give up.”

“How long have you been able to produce a corporal patronus?” This made both Malfoy’s look up.

“Since I was thirteen, I had to drive 100 of them off from sucking out mine and my godfather’s soul.” Harry told him with a shrug, Tom blinked as Lucius eye’s widened and Narcissa gasped.

“What in merlin’s name happened?” Lucius asked shocked, Harry raised an eyebrow but answered.

“It was the first time I had met Sirius,” Harry began and he went on to explain what happened up to the point where he woke up in the hospital wing.

“That doesn’t explain why you had to drive of the dementors, you just said you collapsed.” Lucius drawled and Harry’s eyes narrowed slightly before he masked his face.

“Really, I'm sorry I must have missed that out.” Harry said sweetly, he rolled his eyes and carried on.

“We were told that Sirius had been captured and was going to receive the kiss within minutes so me and Mione went back in time to help him escape, I drove of the dementors which would have sucked out our souls earlier that night and we rescued Buckbeak and flew him to the tower Sirius was being kept in and he flew away on the hippogriff.” Harry finished.

“You saw yourself conjuring a patronus.” The Dark Lord noted impressed, Harry nodded.

“Confused the hell out of me.”

“I can imagine,” Narcissa said faintly.

“I think I'm going to shower, I have just realised I still have blood on me.” He threw a pointed look at Tom who smirked. Harry winced as he climbed the stairs and he welcomed the scalding shower, he threw on some black robes over black slacks and headed for the library, he had to finish his potions assignment as he had yet to receive his OWLs.

“Hey Harry,”

“Hey Draco, when are the OWL’s due?” Harry asked.

“Tomorrow, they’re late this year because of the disruptions in the exams.” Harry nodded.

“What's the date?” Draco blinked.

“The second of August.” Harry gaped.

“Are you serious? I forgot about my own birthday.” He exclaimed.

“When was it?”

“The day I got here!”

“Well that is a perfectly reasonable excuse for forgetting.” Draco pointed out.

“Merlin, I gave myself the best gift ever.” Harry sighed happily, Draco rolled his eyes.

“Prat,” Harry finished his essay and grabbed a book, they went to dinner and retired to the back lounge. They were talking about the ministry and the summer’s ball which was set for the next week when a house elf popped in with a letter for Harry.

 

Snake,

 

Squeaky clean, August 29th, Swift & Paws fine. Lemons tried again, get your act on, meet 18th.

 

M&P.

 

Harry couldn’t help the shit eating grin that came to his face, he wanted to jump up and down but refrained from doing so in such company.

“Good news?” Tom asked with a raise brow.

“The best, I'm free and clear until the 29th.”

“What will you do then?”

“I’ll run away to the leaky cauldron like a naïve Gryffindor where I will be discovered panicked and scared that my only family were brutally murdered and I didn’t know what to do.” Harry explained absently, he was thinking on how he would act in the upcoming school year, the old fool obviously had things planned for him but Harry had his own plans. He had some serious thinking to do and it all depended on how quickly he was swayed to the Dark, looking at the Dark Lord through the corner of his eye Harry thought going to the dark wouldn’t be all that hard.

“Will you join me?” Tom asked and Harry smirked.

“I might be swayed.” Was Harry's reply as he got up and left the room, Harry grinned to himself and wondered just what the Dark Lord would resort to to get what he wanted, Harry didn’t care as long as he got what he wanted as well. He thought it best if he wrote a quick note to Ron and Mione before he crashed for the night so he called Dobby and scribbled on some parchment.

 

Swift & Paws.

 

Everything is clean, meeting 18th. If you need to send a note call Dobby, stay safe.

 

 


 

Draco Malfoy was a pain. Harry did not appreciate being woken up at 8 in the morning and he wanted to wring the blonde’s neck.

“Why did you feel the need to wake me and such a stupid time?” Harry demanded for the third time as they entered the dining room, the smell of food brightened the grumpy teens mood slightly.

“OWL’s Harry,” Harry froze.

“Shit, I forgot about them.”

“Language at the table Mr Potter.” Harry looked at Lucius emotionlessly before digging in to his food, Tom smirked at the teen whose eye’s twitched.

“I apologise Mr Malfoy, how careless of me.” His tone was flat but if you listened closely, it was bitingly sarcastic.

“It is ok, I expect you are not used to civilised behaviour at a table.” Harry understood the hidden insult and smiled sweetly.

“Indeed, though I believe there are some who would say that some standards are above which they are entitled to receive, so I act as I see fit.” A sneer flashed across Malfoy Sr’s face before it was once again blank, the Dark Lord was watching the exchange impassively but his eyes were burning with amusement.

“Of course that may well be true,” Lucius placed his right and on the table where his lordship ring was in place reminding Harry of who he was, the Malfoy house was very high up the food chain 3rd if Harry was right.

“But in high society the standards are high, especially to those who are above the majority.” He finished speaking and ran his finger almost absently across the lord ring, there was something like triumph in the mercury eyes and Harry was tempted to smirk, the blonde thought he had Harry.

“You are correct Mr Malfoy, it would be highly disrespectful of me to act in a rude manor in front of those who are above the majority in high society.” Harry allowed the Potter lordship ring appear, he couldn’t believe Dumbledore obliviated the knowledge from him.

“Then again, it would be perfectly reasonable for me to act however I deem appropriate if I was one of the minority that was above the rest.” Harry allowed the Black ring to show itself and Lucius’ eyes widened slightly before the mask was secure.

“O-,“ Harry cut him off.

“But of course I could act however I please if I was again above the small minority that was above the rest.” The Peverell ring showed clear on his right hand and the mask cracked as the blonde’s eyes widened visibly.

“I-‘” Harry cut him off for the second time.

“The best thing is, if I was one of the rare four to be yet again above the small people that fill our world, I would say that gives me a certain rite of passage to do and say whatever the hell I want, whenever I want, wherever I want.” The Gryffindor ring popped in to existence as the final lordship ring on Harry’s pale fingers.

“Wouldn’t you agree Mr Malfoy?” Harry asked softly with a small tilt of his head, he gently stroked the rings with a small almost invisible smirk.

“Y-yes I would have to agree Mr Potter.” The tension around the table was palible as Harry and Lucius continued to stare at each other, the Malfoy lord was paler than usual and Harry and a glint in his eye that screamed pain for Lucius if he carried on. The Dark Lord hid his smirk, it was amusing and intriguing to see Harry like this, if this was how he was out of his masks then he wanted to see more; a lot more. Lucius always took pride in being one of the most influential wizards in the world and he had just been outranked 3 times by a teenager, he nearly insulted someone who could ruin him with a mere sentence, he would avoid all confrontations with Harry Potter again. Two official looking owls swooped down at that moment breaking the tension as birds landed in front of Draco and Harry, Lucius looked to his son and Harry took his own letter with s deep breath.

OWL results for Harry James Potter-Black,

Pass grades;

O – Outstanding

E – Exceeded Expectations

A – Acceptable

Fail grades;

P – Poor

D – Dreadful

T – Troll

Please note that all incidence which occurred during exams have been taken in to consideration and students have not been penalized.

Transfiguration – O

DADA – O* (Extra credit given for patronus charm and highest score ever seen)

Charms – O

Potions – O

Herbology – O

History – A

Astronomy - E

Divination – P

CoMC – O

Congratulations Mr Potter-Black you have gained 8 OWL with an extra credit and record, your achievement will be noted and you are eligible to take NEWT’s in all passed subjects.

Griselda Marchbanks,

Head of Magical Examinations.

Harry blinked before allowing a smile or come forth, he had done better than expected and Dumbledore was going to do his nut.

“So how did you do?” Tom asked him, Harry handed him the parchment and grinned when the man’s eyebrows rose.

“Impressive, especially the record in defence.” He noted and Harry nodded.

“Defence is my best subject, I taught it to nearly half the school last year.” Harry told him.

“Really, what did you cover?”

“We were up to the patronus when we got busted, nearly half the group managed it.” Harry shrugged, the Dark Lord blinked.

“You taught students younger than yourself?”

“Yeah 3rd through 7th,”

“You do know that most adults struggle to produce a corporal patronus?” Tom pointed out.

“I don’t see why, it’s not that difficult really if it’s taught right.” Harry said.

“The actual charm is only marginally problematic but casting it in a brightly lit room is completely different from casting it to repel a dementor.”

“Ah but I didn’t learn it or teach it in a brightly lit room, I learned with a boggart that morphed in to a dementor.” Harry explained and Tom’s eyebrows shot up.

“That is incredible, how did you get a boggart dementor and how was it learning with it?” Tom sat forward a little, he was highly interested in how a 13 year old learned the patronus on a dementor.

“Well my biggest fear used to be a dementor, I have a particularly violent reaction to them and they turned up to a Quidditch match and swarmed me; I fell over 50ft. Remus agreed to teach me and used a boggart, it was hard because the boggart imitated the effects of a dementor exactly and as I hadn’t done the spell before I could only produce the mist.” Harry told him, they were both ignoring the Malfoy’s who had started up their own conversation pretending they weren’t avidly listening to Harry.

“Your biggest fear was fear itself; rare.” Tom noted, “How long did it take for you to produce the mist?”

“3rd try, I kept passing out until I found the right memory.” Harry rolled his eyes, “I got so frustrated when it took me weeks to get further than that.”

“At 13 years of age you produced a patronus mist on the 3rd try and you were frustrated?” Tom deadpanned, the teen clearly didn’t understand how powerful he was.

“Yes, it was annoying, I hated not being able to do it.” Harry shrugged.

“You are a mystery.” Tom muttered.

“I do try,”

“What NEWT’s do you intend to take?”

“I will only drop history, astronomy and divination, I might drop care as well but I did get an O.” Harry tilted his head in thought.

“I can’t decide until I meet with my friends, we have lots to sort out and of course a lot depends on your coercion skills.” Harry flashed him a smirk, the teen tucked the letter away and dragged Draco off to the library.

“So what did you get on your OWL’s?” Harry asked the blonde.

“Passed everything except divination.”

“Same, I want to know if anyone did pass it cause if they did, they are impressive.” Draco grinned. The pair paid chess and exploding snap until lunch, Harry decided to redo his transfiguration essay which was lucky because he discovered the original had blood on it. He was thinking on what he and his friends needed to cover in the meeting, he would have to break Ron and Hermione’s charms and obliviates before they could do anything. Harry knew the subject of the dark, they would want to know when they were going to join and honestly at the present moment Harry couldn’t give them an honest answer. They would have to discuss it and of course the ball was coming up and he would be free to act his true self, it would change many’s view on him and Tom would only up his plans to convert Harry. Dumbledore was a major issue, they had everything they needed to ruin the man but it couldn’t be done until school and they would have obstacles to work around, with Dumbledore believing he has spelled his friends to avoid him it would be difficult but Harry wasn’t a secret Slytherin for nothing. If all three of them could get in and out of the school multiple times to arrange meetings and deals with people they could work around this, they had spent half the last year scouting the country for people who had information on Dumbledore, Bathilda Bagshot had been a gold mine, of course she didn’t remember telling them anything but that wasn’t the point. Harry ran his hand through his hair, he would worry about it in the meeting which was 15 days away.


 

 

The week leading up to the ball went in a flurry and Narcissa was going crazy, Harry tried to avoid her as much as possible, she was analysing everything and it saved him meaningless tasks that she was ordering Lucius and Draco to do. Pureblood balls were the social events of the season, it would be talked about and scrutinized by everyone who attended, if anything went wrong it would be a gossip scandal and you could bet everyone would hear about it. They could make or break a family name, if the ball was a success then the Malfoy name would be elevated and have a chance of going up to second but Harry wouldn’t allow that, he had already began investing and sharpening the Black name, as Sirius had spent most of his adult life in Azkaban the name had begun to crumble, it was on the up again but currently only in the shadows and in wealth; Malfoy wasn’t even close to the Black fortune, it was brilliant to have a healthy relationship with the goblins.

Harry lounged in the library reading a potions text thinking about the ball, as he would be taking the subject next year it would be good to prepare for the shit Snape was bound to give out. Harry was quite looking forward to the ball, he knew he would be judged and criticized but he was an expert at underhand insults and manipulations, he was pretty sure he could worm his way out of any trouble that came up and if that failed he would challenge the person to a duel and be done with it. No one truly knew what he was capable of and if he thought about it, neither was he. He hadn’t had access to his full magic in so long that he wasn’t quite sure how to use it, hopefully it wouldn’t come to a duel but it would liven up the event if it did, there was dancing involved and Harry hated dancing. He saw it as a pointless task, he was in no way interested in a marriage contract between him and an heiress, he wasn’t even interested in girls in general, he had found that out when he kissed Cho. Plus he had slept with a guy and found that much more enjoyable, he sighed and made his way to his bedroom, it was the only complete safe haven from Narcissa who was approaching quickly. Harry hadn’t seen the Dark Lord much in the week either and the teen had the suspicion that Tom was hiding from Narcissa also, he would claim it was work and business but Harry was sure the man was sat relaxed and laughing at the Malfoy men get bossed around by the crazy witch.

Thinking of the Dark Lord Harry suddenly got a searing pain in his scar that made him stumble, anger surged through him which didn’t belong to him, Tom was clearly pissed off about something, his scar burned again blinding him and Harry barely kept in a whimper. He felt something running down his face and was shocked to see it was blood, it must because he was close to the Dark Lord, he gripped his head as it felt as if it was about to split. Harry pushed himself of the wall and ran to the back lounge where Lucius would be, he tripped around the corner and all but fell in to the room.

“Where’s the Dark Lord?” Harry demanded his voice a hiss and the pain ripped through his head.

“In his study in the east wing but he demanded he wasn’t to be disturbed, he was rather angry.” Lucius told him.

“Oh I know he’s angry.” Harry ground out moving his hand, the blond caught side of the blood and blinked.

“What in Merlin’s name?”

“I don’t know, screw it, I’ll get cursed it’ll be less painful.” Harry turned and bolted to the east wing, he followed the pain in his scar to the Dark Lord and when it brought tears to his eyes he summed up that he had found him, he knocked sharply. The door was threw open violently.

“What, I said not to disturb me.” He snarled and Harry growled.

“So sorry but if you could learn to control your temper I wouldn’t be here.” The Dark Lord hissed.

“What is it?” Harry showed him the blood from the scar.

“I am fortunate enough to be gifted with pain when you’re angry, this however has not happened before and I would appreciate you fixing it.”

“You are in pain when I get angry? Hrmm, strange.” He waved his wand and muttered something in Latin and Parcel.

“It used to be just around you but I’m guessing as you no longer have murderous tendencies to me that’s stopped.” Harry explained and sighed when the last of the pain left him, Tom motioned for him to come in and Harry took a seat in front of the desk.

“What had you so pissed off, I haven’t felt you that angry since the prophecy?” Harry asked cleaning the blood from his face.

“Dumbledore,”

“Angers the many, what's he done now, minus the fact he’s still breathing?”

“He’s stopped two crucial decree’s being passed, he has found some mysterious seats that he’s now proxy for.”

“The one about werewolves and vampires.” Harry said.

“Yes how did you know?”

“I keep up, I can vote as I have four houses and I’ve claimed the titles for, of course I’m a little behind as Dumbledore obliviated the knowledge from me
” Harry trailed off with narrowed eyes.

“Oh he’s a bastard.” The teen hissed.

“We’ve established,”

“Did Dumbledore happen to gain another say 11 votes by proxy?” Harry asked.

“Yes, it was a surprise because it was out of nowhere.” Harry cursed.

“He’s using mine. They are my seats, I have exactly 10, 4 for Gryffindor, 3 for Peverell, 2 for Black and 1 for Potter, the other I have a suspicion is Prewett but I’ll have to check, I will be gaining another seat for the Potter house by the end of the summer, my investments have brought my wealth higher and bought back the seat my father lost because he used his money for the war effort.”

“Which is unfortunate in the current situation, you are unable to take up your seats without alerting the fool that his manipulations have been discovered.” Harry tugged at his hair.

“Damn him, and I can only pass on two of my houses legally without him knowing and being able to do anything.”

“Which ones?”

“Peverell and Black,”

“That is half of his votes, which on the dark would aid us, we nearly had the laws passed until these votes sprung up.” Tom mused.

“I can put Narcissa as Black proxy, Andromeda was disowned and Bellatrix is a criminal which leaves Cissa, I would hold the title but I should be able to get the goblins to file a twisted clause in the Black files stating that if the Lord is unable to perform his duties then the next blooded Black has to serve as proxy.”

“That could work but it depends on the goblins who are rather difficult to work with.” Tom pointed out and Harry smirked.

“Yes they are unless you’re me of course, we have a brilliant relationship.”

“Of course you do,” Tom muttered, “What about the Peverell house.”

“Now that one is going to be much harder.” Harry sighed.

“How so,”

“Well the only one the seat can be deferred to is you.” Harry stated.

“Yes, that does make it marginally difficult.”

“I could twist it to make it so you can place a proxy in as you can't go to the ministry for the casting of votes, if I get a clause placed like the Black one but add that if the Lord is unable to perform their duties and the next in line is unable to the next in line can also choose a proxy if the seat has been deferred, I will have the goblins word it as they can be sneaky little bastards.”

“Can you arrange that before the next vote?”

“When is it?”

“September 14th,” Harry smirked.

“Definitely, we usually begin business around the tenth, it will give Dumbles less time to try and counteract the family causes.” The Dark Lord smirked.

“Brilliant, I will place Lucius as proxy, he is unusually gifted with politics and as I cannot go myself he is the best option.”

“Agreed, of course as soon as I can go there myself things will be easier, I have things to sort before that’s possible.”

“Oh,”

“Yes, I am currently fixing all of my family names to be of the standing that they deserve, the reason Narcissa has gone slightly insane over this ball is because if this ball is a success then it will higher the Malfoy name. Lucius is hoping to overtake the Black soon but I have been working in the shadows with Sirius last year to fix the Black name and raise its status, we managed to tripled its net wealth and invested in multiple company’s which are already bringing in gold, add a few generous donations in the Black name Malfoy doesn’t stand a chance; but Lucius doesn’t need to know that. The Black’s and Malfoy’s haven’t a hope of passing Peverell in this century in wealth or power but I've also been investing with them too, the house has been dormant for years but it has its hand in nearly everything. I used the Potter house for my muggle enterprise, I may hate muggles but I see no reason to exploit them for their money, I created and bought out several businesses which are now raking in the gold.” Harry explained.

“And you did this whilst in school last year?”

“Yup, but it was broken and scratchy thanks to Dumbledore which is why I have things to sort out. I started the Potter on the year before that but that’s still going to need looking over.” Harry grimaced at the mess he could have.

“How were you not missed?”

“I have a great working relationship with wards.” Harry said with a smirk.

“The school wards are one of the best in the world, I would estimate that the only ones which are better is Gringotts.”

“I can get through then too, only just but it is possible, I don’t even know how, I just able to slip through the smallest of gaps. If I can pick a small hole I can get though.” Harry shrugged.

“Me, Ron and Mione spent most of our time outside the school, were scouted the country for information and we spent a lot of time in the ministry last year.”

“Why?”

“Dumbledore,”

“Ah,”

“I have an unnatural amount of work to sort out when I get back to school, the fact Dumbles is giving me my own quarters is only a benefit for me.”

“He really is pushing everything, to give you your own quarters.”

“I know, he’s ‘spelled’ my friends to alienate themselves from me too, foolish man.” Harry shook his head and rose to his feet.

“Sleep, heaven forbid I sleep in tomorrow.” Harry muttered as he stretched, Tom chuckled.

“She would murder you I believe.”

“No doubt, the Black madness truly didn’t miss any of them.” He grumbled as he left.

 

So that’s chapter 2, 

Jess*

Chapter Text

 

Disclaimer: All belongs to the wonderful J. K.

Warning: Maybe a bit of mild swearing and the beginnings of slash.

parseltongue

Chapter 3:

On the day of the summer’s ball Harry and Draco practiced Quidditch moves, where Draco nearly had a heart attack when he witnessed some of the moves Harry performed, until lunch, Narcissa ordered them to be ready by half past five and they were to stay away from the entire downstairs until them. Harry spent the rest of the day in the library where he discovered the Malfoy’s had some pretty impressive books that Harry copied for himself on the sly, he had found this handy copying spell in the chamber that overrode the anti-copy charms. He had stored all the books in his trunk in the extra compartments he had hidden, he had finished all of his assignments so he was could free read.

“Harry its half four.” Draco called from the door way, Harry blinked the time had slipped by.

“Thanks, Draco, I was miles away.” The blonde raised an eyebrow.

“Muggle saying,” Harry muttered and made his way to his bedroom, he pulled out his chosen dress robes and hung them off the wardrobe before jumping in the shower. Harry dried of and threw on black dress trousers and shirt and left his hair as it fell, with its new length it fell neatly above his shoulders with his fringe covering his forehead and scar. He added a light line of kohl to make his eyes pop and he let his magic flow causing his eyes to pulse before settling on a glowing AK, Harry then pulled on his robes. They were a fitted dark green almost black which highlighted his eyes even more, all of his family crested were stitched on but he hid the Peverell and Gryffindor ones only letting Potter and Black to be on show. There was a sharp knock on the door and Harry checked the full mirror, he looked great with his sharp features, red/pink lips and glowing eyes, he smirked before blanking his face. Making sure his wand was secure he pulled the door open and came face to face with Draco. The Malfoy scion was dressed in blue dress robes with not one hair out of place, he looked good but then again Harry thought, when doesn’t Malfoy look good?

“Whoa,” he gasped.

“What?” Harry asked alarmed.

“No, nothing, just, you clean up very well.” Draco told him impressed, Harry smirked and smoothed down the robes.

“I have multiple images to keep Draco, this is going to be the first time I've been myself in public in years.” Harry told the blonde.

“Come, let’s get down there before mother comes and gets us, I can assure you it will not be pleasant.” Draco turned and led the way down to the ballroom where Lucius was stood regally dressed in dark silver and his hair tied back at the nape of his neck.

“Good evening Father, where is mother?” Draco asked drawing attention to them, Lucius looked at his son in approval and his eyes widened slightly as he saw Harry.

“She is just finishing getting ready, she will be down soon, and you are needed for when the guests arrive.” Lucius told his son, Draco nodded and went to find his seat in the room. Harry was impressed at Narcissa’s skill; the room was gorgeous. The dĂ©cor was simple in the Malfoy's colours of blue, silver and gold, there was an area where the music was set, a long table at the back with platters of champagne and white and red wine and the tables were in circles of 10 besides the centre one which was obviously the head table, Harry was sat on the head table next to Draco and his eyes widened slightly.

“Who did the table plans?” Harry questioned.

“Mother, father and the Dark Lord, why?” Harry shook his head resigned to the fact he would have to sit next to Tom all evening, it wouldn’t be so bad if the man wasn’t strikingly gorgeous and inspired very inappropriate thoughts in to Harry's mind.

“No reason,” At that point Narcissa swept in to the room and Harry’s eyes widened; she looked stunning. A beautiful silver floor length ball gown with sweet heart neck line, it was fitted to the hips where is then flowed loosely to the floor. She had a diamond necklace with matching ear studs and ring and her hair was pulled and twisted up in to an elegant knot with some curled strands falling over her shoulder, Harry understood then why guys in school always spoke about Draco’s mother.

“Mother you look beautiful as always.” Draco said with a smile.

“Thank you Dragon, you look handsome yourself.” His pale cheeks tinged pink and Harry withheld a chuckle.

“You look stunning Cissa,” Harry came forth and lightly kissed her hand with a small smile, “I would like to thank you for your gracious invite to the Malfoy summer’s ball.” Narcissa looked impressed at his correct use of pureblood customs and gave him a warm smile.

“Why thank you Harry and let me tell you now that you look gorgeous this evening, why when you said you were prepared I didn’t think you would look this good.” Harry smirked.

“I like to make an impression, tonight you will see that I truly am not the ‘Gryffindor golden boy’.” Harry said and she nodded.

“My Lord will be here now, Draco you have 5 minutes until the guests begin to arrive.” She all but glided from the room, Harry and Draco lingered by the door until it was time for Draco to welcome guest. The Dark Lord entered just as Draco was leaving; Harry felt his breath catch. Tom Riddle was gorgeous Harry had already established but tonight Harry was struck speechless. He was dressed in fitted elegant shadow black dress robes which contrasted beautifully with his pale skin, raven hair fell almost straight and the crimson detailing on the rooms brightened the already glaring red eyes, all in all he was a very nice sight for Harry to look at. When Harry was sure he could speak without making himself look like a complete idiot he stepped out of the shadows and was proud when Tom was startled by his voice.

“Evening,” Harry said, the Dark Lord looked him up and down and a hungry look entered the man’s eyes, it was mixed with something else that Harry wasn’t quite sure off but it made him shiver.

“Good evening,” was the murmured reply, Harry took a glass of champagne ignoring the other choices. In pureblood customs champagne was drunk until everyone had arrived and the meal began, then the white wine was drank with the starter followed by the red for main depending on the food where white would be drank with chicken or fish and red for desert, then when the dancing began you chose an ‘evening’ drink such ad fire whiskey, it was all overdone and impervious but it screamed status and class. Harry held the glass loosely between his middle and forefinger and observed as the guests filled in to the room, he recognised the Parkinson’s, Greengrass’s, Nott’s, Zabini’s, Davis’s, Boot’s, Flint’s and a few others, the one that surprised him was the Lovegood’s.

“Now that’s a surprise.” He muttered as he watched Luna interact with everyone without her usual dreamy guise, Harry knew it was fake now he had his memories back but it was still a shock to see her there.

“The Lovegood’s have always been dark sympathisers, they only stopped because the daughter made friends with you I believe.” Tom told him quietly and Harry nodded.

“Luna is an amazing girl, but people don’t see it because she has nearly as many masks as me. Excuse me, I have people to toy with.” Tom smirked as Harry picked up another glass and strode of towards the Lovegood girl.

“Good evening Miss Lovegood, would you care for a drink?” Harry asked her smoothly from behind, he was impressed, she didn’t jump all that noticeably.

“Yes thank you Mr
” She trailed of in the question and looked to meet the green eyes of Harry Potter, blue eyes widened comically and she muffled her squeak of surprise.

“Harry!”

“Hello Luna,”

“What-what are you doing here?”

“I do believe the same thing you are doing here, I was, after all, invited to the Malfoy ball.” He told her with a smirk, she blinked and looked him over, and she muttered something that sounded extremely like ‘no masks’. He handed her the glass of champagne with a small bow of the head.

“May I take this opportunity to say you look beautiful this evening Miss Lovegood.” And indeed she did, she wore a long sleeve floor length ice blue gown, she had an amethyst choker and matching earrings and her hair was wrapped up in an elegant bun on the crown of her head.

“Why thank you Mr Potter-Black, I must say you are looking rather handsome yourself.” He allowed a grin before the emotionless mask was back.

“Would you care to join me in mingling?” He held out his arm which she linked and the walk off, they stopped to speak with Terry Boot and his family, then they saw the Goldstein’s and they were speaking with the Davis’s when they were approached by the Parkinson’s. It was clear that Pansy was unfortunate and didn’t get her mother’s looks, he father was on the short side and has the same pug like face. She was dressed in purple and her short dark hair was clipped up away from her face.

“Lovegood, who is your friend.” She asked imperiously.

“I am surprised you don’t recognise me Miss Parkinson.” Harry said blandly, he kissed the Lady Parkinson’s hand and shook the Lords.

“Harry Potter-Black, it’s a pleasure.” Parkinson father and daughter sneered at him in distaste.

“What are you doing here Potter?” She demanded.

“I was invited and I believed it to be impolite to decline such an offer.”

“I wasn’t informed would someone of your ah status would be invited to something of such class.” Parkinson Sr drawled and Harry smirked internally.

“You must not have been applicable for such information Mr Parkinson.” Harry replied with a small shrug and was pleased when the man flushed slightly before glaring sharply at Harry.

“You’re just not important enough Potter to cross our path.” Pansy sneered and Harry raised an eyebrow at her.

“Indeed, although it does raise the question as to what you have done to gain a place, however small it is, here Potter.”

“You and your daughter must be short on hearing Mr Parkinson,” Harry told him and the man flushed again.

“What are you talking about?” Harry’s eyes narrowed slightly.

“I believe I introduced myself as Harry Potter-Black. You clearly are not aware that you are speaking to the head of houses Potter and Black, Mr Parkinson.” The warning was clear, the Blacks had a massive reputation which made them terrifying but Harry had a sweet look on his face as if this was the most pleasant conversation in the world.

“It doesn’t matter Potter, your still the same golden boy saviour.” Pansy spat in disgust, that was the wrong thing to say and Harry’s eyes flashed Luna tightened her hold on his arm in warning.

“Parkinson, be quiet, it is now understood why the Parkinson family is finding it so difficult to find a betrothal.” Harry kept his voice even and his expression pleasant but his eyes were glinting in malice, Pansy went red in anger and her father was a mix of anger and embarrassment.

“How dare you-,”

“Oh I'm sorry, am I'm incorrect in my statement?” Harry asked in mock confusion, he knew for a fact he wasn’t and by the darkening of colour on Parkinson Sr’s face he knew as well.

“I thought so, but then again it mightn’t just be the daughter who stove of potential contracts, I know myself if someone kept showing disrespect to me especially if they were of lower calibre I would make sure my families avoided everything to do with the disrespectful party. I do believe Narcissa was born a Black.” Harry still had the pleasant friendly expression but his eyes were glowing with malevolent glee at the beet red Parkinson’s and the anger on their faces.

“You insolent-,

“It would be most unfortunate for the Parkinson family to lose their status simply because the Lord didn’t understand where others stood in the wizarding world, don’t you agree Luna?”

“Yes, it would such a shame. Lack of respect could ruin a family name.” She said coolly and Harry mentally patted her on the back.

“You don’t know what you’re talking about Potter.” Pansy burst out drawing a few looks, Harry made sure to keep his face light and pleasant which was a contrast to the Parkinson’s who were flushed and angry.

“Hrm, having two houses to run usually makes one inept I am sure.” Luna’s lip twitched.

“What could you possibly do, you are a mere teenager?”

“I am sure you will learn in time Parkinson.”

“Why you-,”

“Come Luna, there are others that deserve our time.” Harry cut him off and for a final insult he turned his back and walked away with Luna, when they were a good distance away Luna released a giggle.

“That was so funny, I'm surprised he didn’t explode.”

“He was pushing my buttons, besides, Parkinson needs to learn that compared to my titles he is a mere inconvenience. I could destroy them with a mere signature, the Blacks are a major backer in their main business, not that they would know because it was a deal made with Sirius’ great-great-great-granddad.” Harry shrugged and they engaged in conversation with the Greengrass’s, Daphne was quite nice, a bit cold on the front but otherwise perfectly pleasant and obviously the perfect Heiress. The male Greengrass was a great conversationalist and Harry was drawn in to a talk on the ministry and Luna excused herself to find her father before the meal. Lucius called a hold to the talk and announced the meal was about to start, Harry walked with Hadrian Greengrass to his table, the Greengrass’s were sat directly to the head tables left.

“Fudge is a fool, he was in Dumbledore’s pocket first then he jumps out and the power goes beyond his head and he felt the need to tear apart anyone who could ruin his perfect world.” Harry said and Hadrian nodded.

“Fudge was and always will be a weak minded man, he is spineless and hides behind his title of Minister. I know when Bagnold finally retired we were nearly given Crouch but obviously the scandal with his son happened.”

“Yes, but Crouch would have been the worse option. He may not have been weak but the power went to him more so than Fudge.”

“Oh, do you believe so?” Greengrass questioned with raised eyebrows.

“Yes, he took to the extremes when he was granted the use of unforgivables and he put an innocent man in Azkaban without a trial simply because he believed the man was guilty. The man in question was a head of an ancient and noble house and if Crouch would do that to someone of that calibre who knows what he would have done.” Harry explained.

“Really, I didn’t know. How are you privy to such knowledge, you are after all quite young.”

“I done a little digging, of course a bit of gold and the use of my name had a helping hand. Oh and I spoke to the prisoner in question.” Harry raised his left shoulder in an unconcerned matter.

“Such knowledge is invaluable,”

“I agree, knowledge is, after all, power and it wouldn’t do to be miss or uninformed.”

“You are correct, I have enjoyed speaking with you Harry we must correspond, and I would like to hear some more of your opinions.” He shook Harry’s hand.

“The same Hadrian, it was a pleasure to me yourself and your beautiful wife.” Harry kissed Naomi Greengrass’s hand and flashed her smile which made her blush lightly, Harry made his way to the head table and he saw who was sat there. The Malfoy’s obviously, Bellatrix, Rodolphus and Rabastan Lestrange, Theodore Nott and his father and the Dark Lord, Harry withheld a sigh; it would be a long meal.

“Good evening,” Harry said lowly, he sat elegantly with his right hand lightly on the table and his left in his lap.

“Good evening Harry, are you enjoying yourself?” Narcissa asked and Harry flashed a smirk before he was blank.

“It is most enjoyable, I find words can do wonderful things.” She raised an eyebrow but didn’t comment as ivory menu’s appeared on the china. Harry glanced over at the food and refrained from rolling his eyes, purebloods did love to overdo things. He had a simple salad for a starter as he wasn’t keen on soup and light conversation soon picked up, Harry ignored the looks he was receiving from the Lestrange’s and the Nott’s.

“Harry, what did you say to the Parkinson’s?” Draco asked him, Harry tilted his head.

“We heard a disturbance earlier where they were angry, they all keep glaring viciously at you and Pansy expressed her distaste with you.”

“Hrm such lack of decorum is most unbecoming, especially to an un-betrothed daughter.” Harry said lightly sipping his wine, he wasn’t a fan of the stuff himself but appearance were all.

“You didn’t?” Draco looked at him and Harry had the impression that if they were in private the teen would be gaping.

“Of course not, I merely suggested that if someone of lower calibre would use such disrespect to those above them when their only daughter is un-betrothed then it would be a grievous error in judgement from the father. It was pleasant conversation and some light advice.” Harry explained with a light shrug, next to him Tom smirked.

“Indeed, and this advice was requested?” The Dark Lord asked.

“Most definitely, one does not allow someone to keep repeating the same mistakes, it would be quite disrespectful.”

“Quite,” Harry’s lip twitched.

“Yes, of course Parkinson believed he was above such advice, such a shame that they could lose their status for their blatant lack of respect.” Harry locked eyes with the Parkinson lord and raised his glass in mockery, the man flushed again and Harry smirked.

“A notable lack of respect then?”

“Indeed, he believed because of my age I am inept. Soon he will realise his mistake, I pity him.” Harry chucked lightly but his eyes were on fire, the Parkinson family would soon lose their wealth which would end up sitting nicely in the Black fortune, Harry might even claim a blood feud and completely ruin the man; because he could.

“Are you calling blood?” And Harry’s smirk stretched, he must think a lot like the Dark Lord.

“The decision has not been made, of course a main funding will be pulled at the quickest convenience that may suffice.” Out of the corner of his eye Harry saw Lucius wince slightly, it went unnoticed to everyone bar himself and the Dark Lord.

“I see,” 

“I’m sorry, I can’t just ignore it.” Bella burst out, luckily her voice was low so only the head table heard. “What is he doing here?”

“Mr Potter-Black was invited, Bella.” Lucius murmured.

“Black,” She breathed and Harry was glad she was horrified.

“Yes, I have been granted the Black headship.” Harry brushed his robes showing the ring and Bellatrix’s eyes widened slightly.

“How?”

“Well there were some queries because obviously I wasn’t born a Black and you need Black blood to wear the ring but Sirius named me heir, it turns out my grandmother was a Black.” Harry had a small smirk at Bella’s queasy look, whatever else Bella had to say was swallowed as she wasn’t stupid enough to anger her own head of house.

“You seemed to be getting on well with Hadrian Greengrass.” Tom noted and Harry tilted his head.

“Yes, a rather informative man with a lovely wife. We were discussing the ministry actually, fortunately the old fool was kept out of the conversation as much as possible.”

“I can see why, the ministry today is only to be ridiculed. Fudge is a fool and half of the departments are useless.”

“There are certain members of the ministry need to be removed.” Harry clenched his right hand and the words ‘I must not tell lies’ shone in the light.

“Of course then the corruption of the wizengamot needs to be sorted and Fudge has to go.”

“Yes, the wizengamot or the chief of the wizengamot has to change. Fudge is on his last limbs now, if everything plans out he will be gone via the next election and that gives an opening to discard those who have outlived their time.” Tom told him, the table had gone quiet during their talk, it was like they couldn’t believe the Dark Lord was discussing plans with Harry Potter.

“There will be those who oppose a correct minister, I believe Scrimgeor is a favourite and there are those who believe they will be using themselves as proxy to guarantee a win; much has changed. Obviously there are things that can be done about the chief but only time will tell, and that will be the real time consumer.” Harry said and Tom’s eyes burned as he deciphered the meanings, he nodded once.

“Some will be in for an unfortunate surprise, I believe plans for the chief can be made I am assured in my abilities.” Tom told him and Harry raised one eyebrow.

“Indeed, like I said only time will tell.” Harry smirked, the remnants of the first course disappeared and the drinks were changed to red wine. There were 4 options on the menu hidden in fancy words, chicken, beef, fish or vegetarian; Harry chose chicken. There was more talk on the ministry and Hogwarts, Harry listened to Lucius, Nott Sr and the Dark Lord speak of the school with interest.

“With the intel that Umbridge gathered from her time there, I am led to believe that the school is in worse disarray than first believed. It may be prudent to situate her back there.” Harry made a small scoff at the back of his throat, Umbridge would be back at that school when hell froze over, and this drew attention to him.

“Umbridge was a bias fool.” Harry stated, he placed his cutlery down crossed over to show he wasn’t finished.

“Madam Umbridge is a high ranking ministry official, I cannot see why her information wouldn’t be correct.” Harry raised both his eyebrows, he could not believe that that just came from Lucius’ mouth and by the expression on Tom’s face he agreed.

“Mr Malfoy you off all people should know that just because someone is a high ranking ministry official doesn’t make them impervious to error. Of course Umbridge had more fault than anything else and placing her back in Hogwarts would be a highly idiotic move that would cause revolt.” Luckily for him Lucius didn’t flush but he looked a bit uncomfortable before he was emotionless again.

“What is it that would cause such a reaction? I was told Umbridge was a brilliant teacher and the results of defence against the dark arts were the highest ever seen.” Nott Sr said, Harry surmised that Theodore had reported that Umbridge was great.

“Last year we were not taught anything remotely informative by Umbridge. She was bias to the point that over half the school were looking for ways to drive her out, I know this because they looked to me. Her methods were borderline sickening and I myself was subject to the majority of it.” Harry told him, the permanent scar on his hand was a constant reminder, Umbridge would die; soon.

“Then how do you explain the improved results, you yourself set a record?” Harry allowed a smirk.

“It is quite simple, I myself taught nearly half the school defence against the dark arts until we were betrayed.”

“You! That’s preposterous boy, do not tell such lies.” Harry’s eyes flashed and a small breeze ruffled his hair where his magic had leaked and wrapped up around him in warning, the table was silent now and Harry smiled at Nott Sr but there was nothing pleasant about the smile, it promised pain and suffering to the one it was directed at.

“I do not need to lie Mr Nott, it’s unbecoming to do so and I do not appreciate being called boy, the last person to use such a term found themselves in a very grave situation.” His voice was soft.

“Are you threatening me Potter?” Nott demanded and Harry's smile widened.

“It’s Potter-Black and of course not Mr Nott, I don’t remember saying anything remotely threatening in my last sentence, excuse me if it came across that way, I assure you it wasn’t intended.” The light sarcasm made the Dark Lord and surprisingly the Lestrange’s smirk.

“Although, I do not relish in your vocal opinion that I am a liar Mr Nott. Such insinuations can lead to most unfortunate occurrences but of course you were merely startled by me proclaiming such a feat, I must admit it is quite unbelievable I was at the time 15.” Harry sipped his glass before continuing.

“It wouldn’t do to insist that I am untruthful without validating my claim, I would advise you refrain from doing so again.” Nott was red by this point and it looked as if he was bursting to rage at Harry, the teen in question had his emotionless mask back in place but his eyes were elite with malicious fire, he loved playing with words.

“As I was saying before such an unjust accusation, Umbridge will not survive another year in Hogwarts. Not only with the students revolt, many members of staff have expressed their dislike of Umbridge and there is a very unhappy heard if centaurs which will love to deal with the woman their way, I think there is a heard of acromantula which will be well fed if she ever stepped foot in that school as a teacher again.” The dismissal of Nott Sr wasn’t sitting well with him and Harry spied him itching for his wand, the teen smirked and glanced at him in challenge. His words about Umbridge seemed to leave an impression and they were thinking things over.

“You believe that Umbridge will be a mistake.” Lucius asked.

“A grievous one, if you want inside information from Hogwarts, place someone from the ranks as the defence professor. The position has yet to be filled and Dumbledore is always desperate, the position is said to be cursed.” Here Harry looked at Tom who merely smirked.

“That idea has merit, I will look in to it.” Tom told him and Harry nodded, after he finished his meal he ordered the mango sorbet for desert and listened to the conversations around him. The Malfoy's were speaking about Draco’s results with Bellatrix and Rodolphus, Draco was speaking with Theodore Nott about school, and Nott Sr was speaking with Rabastan and the Dark Lord. Harry observed the entire room, it was all very neat and crisp with only the low murmurs of conversation never escaping the tables in which they were spoke at, the pureblood customs were above stuffy but Harry relished in the twisting of words and the underhand comments. The meal was finished and the music began, Lucius and Narcissa were the first to take to the floor, they were followed by Draco who took a pretty blonde girl that Harry didn’t know. Other couples soon followed suit and Harry withheld a grimace knowing he had to dance, it was one thing he couldn’t stand about pureblood customs, and Tom seemed to sense his distaste and smirked.

“Do you not wish to dance?” Harry scowled at the man’s tone, it was clear amusement.

“It is perfectly acceptable for you not to dance as majority know you are the Dark Lord, I on the other hand have two damn houses on show and it would be questioned if I didn’t. Unfortunately you asked a girl for a dance out of polite courtesy and it’s like an invitation for marriage proposals, something which I am not interested in. I don’t even like girls.” Harry muttered the last part to himself as he swept away, he spotted Luna and grinned to himself. He held out his right hand with a bow of his head once he had approached her.

“Would you care to dance Miss Lovegood?”

“It would be an honour Mr Potter-Black.” Harry led her on to the dance floor and began the dance, he actually enjoyed dancing with Luna they spoke of nondescript things and at the end of the song he kissed her hand and led her off. He danced with Daphne, which was a safe option as she was already betrothed to Theodore Nott, Tracey Davis, who was betrothed to Terry Boot, and numerous other girls who were safely contracted away. He escaped when he spotted Draco at the refreshment table and walked swiftly over, he asked for a fire whiskey and sighed as the liquid burned his throat.

“You seem popular tonight.” Draco told him and Harry sighed.

“I dislike this part of the ball.”

“Oh I know, it is rather amusing to watch you surrounded by girls who would love to be the future Mrs Potter-Black, especially when there never will be one.” Draco smirked, the blonde knew of his preference and Harry was tempted to punch him out of his amusement.

“Haha I'm glad you enjoy my suffering, I’ll remind the future Mrs Malfoy to not be disappointed when her husband is more interested in fucking her brother than herself.” Was Harry biting reply, Draco choked on his drink and it was Harry's turn to smirk.

“Thanks Harry,”

“Any time Draco,” The blonde shook his head with a small smile as Harry downed his drink and re-joined the frivolous dancing. He offered Narcissa a dance which she accepted graciously, they were spinning elegantly around the room perfectly.

“You are a marvellous dancer Harry.” She pointed out as he span her around.

“Thank you Narcissa, I forced myself to learn after the horror of the yule ball.” Harry told her.

“Yes Draco told me it was rather painful to watch.” Harry grimaced lightly before smiling.

“I don’t like to remember, I blame Dumbledore.” She laughed lightly and the dance finished so Harry led her off with a small bow, Harry couldn’t hack any more pointless twirling and was tempted to hide when he spotted Tom making his way to the refreshments after ending a conversation. Harry slipped in to step with the older man who smirked as soon as he saw who was next to him, Harry withheld his huff of injustice.

“Have you finally tired of dancing, I think you may crush some poor girls heart if that is the case.” Tom said.

“Screw them, they interest me not. I am leaving soon, I like the political games and the toying with words but this drives me insane.” Harry muttered looking around at the dancing with a sneer, the Dark Lord made a noise of agreement.

“Pureblood customs are always pretentious and extravagant, it is mostly pointless time wasting but it can make or break the family name.”

“I refuse to join that idea, I have four titles and I am not hosting a ball for each of them, I would have to move location 4 times and each family name has a different affiliation.” Harry said with a shake of his head.

“I do not blame you, I must agree I do not embrace the hosting of such gatherings.” Harry cast a quick tempus charm and was shocked to see it was 11:15, he thanked his lucky stars that people would start to leave around this time.

“Thank Merlin,” He breathed as he started to see people approach Lucius and Narcissa to say their goodbyes.

“Excuse me I have orders to pass out.” Tom told him, Harry rolled his eyes and went to find Luna before she left.

“It was wonderful to see you Luna, I’ll see you in school.” Harry kissed her hand delicately, she rolled her eyes and hugged him.

“See you Harry, I'm sure there will be a lot to talk about in school.”

“You are, of course, correct.”  Harry flashed her a smile and walked over to Draco who was saying goodbye to his friends, Blaise Zabini and Theodore Nott.

“There you are, I couldn’t find you.” Draco exclaimed and Harry raised an eyebrow.

“I was saying goodbye to Luna.” Harry said.

“Mother says you can leave if you want, you don’t have to see everyone out.” Harry grinned.

“You mother is a diamond.” Harry told him and Draco smiled.

“I know, but she expects you for breakfast by 9.”

“That’s fine.”

“Wait, you’re staying here.” Nott questioned and Harry nodded.

“Yes, Narcissa extended the invitation, something about Draco here pining for my company.” Harry said with a smirk, he threw his arm over Draco’s shoulder and the blonde jabbed him in the side to get him off.

“Prat,”

“You’re a lot different from school Potter.” Blaise said it wasn’t mean it was just a statement.

“Zabini right?” Blaise nodded, “There are quite a few people, including myself, that have masks that people are not meant to see through in school, this is a different environment.” Harry explained with a small shrug, Blaise raised an eyebrow but said no more.

“Good night,” Harry said to them all and strode over to Narcissa.

“Thank you for a wonderful night Narcissa.”

“It is quite alright Harry.” Harry kissed her hand and left the room, he climbed the first set of stairs and released a sigh of relief. He slowly walked to his room when he heard soft footsteps coming up behind him, he knew who it was instantly.

“What happened to the silent approach?” Harry asked lightly, on the inside he was sweating, he had been fighting ridiculously hard urges all night in the man’s presence and now they were alone and nothing to stop Harry being a complete twat.

“I remember having multiple vicious curses sent at me the previous times.”

“Protecting one’s health; smart.” Harry commented amused.

“Of course,” He was right next to Harry now. “You are astoundingly different without your masks; I have to say I did enjoy the show.”

“It’s fun toying with people, at one point I thought Nott Sr would hex me, he was twitching for his wand.”

“I thought you would have noticed that, I haven’t seen Izar lose his cool in many years.” Tom said to him and the smirk was in his voice, Harry flashed a grin.

“It was amusing,” they were nearing Harry’s room now and Harry turned to face the Dark Lord.

“Do you believe that I am the same ‘golden saviour’?” Tom stepped closer to the teen who backed up in the wall.

“Oh no, tonight you have definitely convinced me otherwise.” His voice was low and eyes were glowing, Harry's thoughts were slowing as he took in the complete appearance up close, his breathing took on an edge.

“I uh thought,” Harry swallowed, “I thought I might.” The Dark Lord ran his index finger from Harry’s temple to his jaw and lifted the teens chin to look him in the eyes, Harry’s last coherent thoughts went out the window as he locked on to burning crimson eyes.

“You interest me, hidden snake” The last part was said in parseltongue, Harry’s lust skyrocketed and then Tom kissed him. Harry went blank for a second before responding, good Merlin the man was kissing god Harry thought, Tom pinned him to the wall and dominated the kiss not that Harry was in any position to protest. Tom broke the kiss to trail kisses and bites down his neck making Harry hiss in pleasure.

“You wouldn’t be trying to seduce me to your side would you?” Harry asked but his voice was husky.

“I am confident in my abilities.” He murmured against Harry's neck, he kissed the teen again and Harry couldn’t help the small moan that escaped. Harry chanced a bite to Tom’s neck which made the man growl and the teen smirked.

“You have to want it.” Harry told him,

“I assure you I do.”

“Then show me my lord.” Harry slipped out of his grasp and straight in to his room at a surprising speed, just before the door closed he heard Tom speak.

“You’re playing a dangerous game little snake, I always get what I want.” The door shut and Harry collapsed on his bed and couldn’t help but think it the ball had a brilliant ending.

 

So what did you think?

Jess*

Chapter Text

 

Disclaimer: Belongs to J. K.

Warning: Swearing and light slash.

Parseltongue

Chapter 4.

Harry avoided all contact with the Dark Lord for an entire week which was an impressive seeing as the man ate with the Malfoy's daily and could be found anywhere, Harry had resorted to hiding in the weirdest of places such as inside an ornate desk in the east wing because he had spotted Tom walking down the corridor and there was nowhere else to go, still Harry didn’t know how he fit. He wasn’t afraid per se, he just knew if he saw Tom he would want to jump the man which wasn’t recommended and he needed a clear head. Harry had written to his friends and sent them portkey’s with Lucius’ permission, they would arrive in the entrance hall after lunch and an elf would bring them to Harry’s room. He knew what they would talk about and he had a feeling they would be going to the dark a lot sooner than anticipated, Harry mentally cursed the Dark Lord for his good looks and amazing kissing skills.

Harry went down to lunch and wolf down his food before Tom had arrived, he all but ran from the room and skirted in the shadows until he reached the duelling room, he practiced his duelling and he made sure to feel all of his power, he felt the magic around him and grinned at the feeling. He froze when he heard something in the corridor outside, waving his wand to clear the room and threw his invisibility cloak over him just as Tom entered. The red eyes flicked around the room and a small smirk came to his face before he span and left the room, Harry sighed in relief but he knew he couldn’t avoid the man forever, he would have to see him soon enough Harry would just drag out that occurrence for as long as possible. He jogged to his room under the cloak and only removed it when he was safely in his room, he threw it on to the bed, grabbed his clothes and went for a shower. He was came out dressed in dark green skinny jeans, white top and black dragon hide boots which were shin high, Harry left his hair down and threw some parchment on his desk.

“You are awfully good at avoidance.” A smooth voice said to him, Harry span around to see the Dark Lord leaning casually against the wall, Harry mentally cursed as he tried to look anywhere but the man.

“I have no idea what you’re talking about.” Harry said firmly and Tom smirked.

“An invisibility cloak often helps.”

“I only used the cloak today.” Then he cursed because he had all but admitted he had been avoiding the man.

“I thought you weren’t avoiding me?”

“Damn it Tom, this is why I was avoiding you, I can't think and I need a clear head.” Harry exclaimed wrenching at his hair, the man made his head spin and always had ever since second year, he wouldn’t deny that he wanted the Dark Lord, badly, but he also needed a clear head. The Dark Lord glided over to him and Harry backed in to the desk, he cursed the fact he always seemed to end up in a place with no escape, Tom lightly bit his neck and Harry hummed in approval.

“And that’s such a bad thing?”

“With you, yes.” Harry felt the smirk.

“I want you at my side,” He murmured as his kissed along the teen’s jaw, Harry’s thought patterns were blank as he was kissed, he found himself lifted on the desk with legs wrapped around Tom. They were so oblivious that neither heard the knock at the door or the people entering until someone gasped, they sprang apart and whipped towards the door to see Ron, Hermione and the twins, Harry groaned and buried his face in Tom’s neck.

“I hate you so much right now, just so you know.” Harry muttered and Tom chuckled.

“Oh I know,”

“This is going to take a lot of explaining.” The Dark Lord smirked, kissed him heatedly again and swept from the room, Harry got up and fell face first on the bed with another groan.

“Definitely wasn’t expecting that.” Fred said with a grin,

“Looks like someone has been busy.” George put in.

“Tell us all about it dear snake.” They finished together, Harry sat up with a sheepish smile.

“Hey guys, fancy seeing you here, come in make yourselves at home.” Harry said brightly, he shut the door and warded it with everything he knew, Hermione all but threw herself at him in a bone crushing hug.

“Oh Harry, I was so worried and I'm so confused, what on earth is that man thinking. I cannot believe him, and he’s done this before, how much am I missing, what if-,”

“Let him breath, I'm sure Harry has something in mind, he always does.” Ron gently peeled her of Harry who was going blue, he gulped a lungful of air.

“I need you two to lie down before I can explain anything and I warn you now; its bad.” They nodded and led down, he started with Hermione and broke her blocks, there was more than the twins and it took a bit more out of him, she was out cold which was good for the time being as Harry didn’t think she would take it too well. He broke Ron’s next and watched pleased as the memories and charms broke, he came out of Ron's scape and woke them with a wave of his wand, the woke up and were sick which he banished quickly, he called an elf for 2 headache relievers and passed them out, once they were coherent they exploded. It took a solid 5 minutes to calm them down and they were both looking mutinous when they were sat, Ron had his wand out and his eyes were flicking to the door as if he was questioning going to murder someone at that point and Hermione was gripping the arms so hard Harry was generally surprised they hadn’t broke.

“I don’t have to explain much now do I?” Harry began and they shook their heads.

“We need to tell you things though, we were obliviated again this summer before you got to us.” Ron got out and Harry hissed.

“Before you explain,” George began.

“How about you remove those awful glamours?” Fred finished, Hermione’s eyes widened and she let out a horrified squeak before bolting to the bathroom.

“Oh Merlin, I forgot I used to look like this.” She came out of the bathroom looking completely different, the bushy brown hair, bucktoothed, plain girl was gone, she was replaced by an elegant, stunning girl. Hermione had smooth curly long chocolate hair that fell just past her waist, finished features and sparkling dark eyes. Her figure had changed too, she had beautiful curves and mile long legs, an arrogant smirk graced her features.

“Damn Mione, I forgot you looked that good.” Harry told her with a smirk of his own.

“Likewise Potter, your turn Swift.” Ron disappeared and a yelp sounded from the bathroom before he came back out, Harry blinked a few times.

“Whoa, now that’s a change.” Ron had more auburn hair than the vivid Weasley red, he had a nice toned body, less freckles, sharper features and crystal blue eyes, the red head grinned.

“This feels good,”

“Now were back to our beautiful selves,” Harry said and they laughed.

“I miss us,” Hermione smiled and the other members of the trio grinned.

“Back to business, we have a few matters that we need to sort.” The rest of the room scoffed.

“A few, Snake, that’s like saying the Malfoy's have blonde hair.”

“First thing is Dumbledore.” All faces darkened.

“He has to go, at the soonest convenience, light or dark; he’s gone.” Harry stated.

“We have all the information we need to ruin him, it just needs to be done correctly but then we have you for that.” Hermione said.

“True, Swift I need you to begin planning how we are going to work around my isolation, you are best at strategy.” Ron nodded.

“I can't begin a plan until we know where your new quarters are situated. The map will be a key aspect, golems will be needed and I think I may have something that will help us more than we know.” Harry raised an eyebrow and Ron smirked.

“Well last year we were in the department of mysteries and there were a lot of timeturners just hanging around so a grabbed one or 12.”

“Swift, I could kiss you right now.” Harry breathed.

“I wouldn’t be too opposed but I don’t believe the person you were locked in heated tongue battle would agree.” Harry blushed lightly.

“Who was that?” the twins asked and Harry wrinkled his nose, Hermione tilted her head before it snapped up to look at him through narrowed eyes, Harry swallowed.

“Snake,” She began slowly, “Please tell me that wasn’t who I think it was.” Harry winced at the tone, she wasn't happy.

“Um,”

“I cannot believe you, I knew you said you wanted him even though it was impossible, now he's here I didn’t think you would actually go for it.” She burst out.

“Wait, the only person Harry said he wanted that he could have would be the Dark Lord well Tom Riddle at least.” Ron said slowly before he whipped round.

“The basilisk is human.” He breathed. “Snake, how in Merlin's name?”

“It wasn’t even my fault.” Harry told them but they both just raised their eyebrows at him.

“He made the first move.”

“What happened before?”

“Well it was the ball so-,” he was cut off by 4 groans.

“Snake, you haven’t been yourself for years in public, no one knows what you can be like out of the ‘golden boy’ image, not only do you not look extremely different but there's something about how you act.”

“I know, but it was so fun, which reminds me I have to ruin Parkinson next time I go to Gringotts.”

“You caught his interest and now he won't stop until his has what he wants, you know this, you’re exactly the same.” Harry smirked at that.

“Which is why I will keep twisting until I have what I want. Come on, you said yourself I've always wanted him, why can't I make sure I get what I want, you know I will make sure I have the perfect situation before I settle.”

“He has a point.” Ron conceded and Hermione nodded.

“So we’re dark then.” Harry grinned,

“Oh no, we are definitely neutral, he has his work cut out if he thinks I’ll be easily swayed.” They grinned,

“Just checking you haven’t lost your touch.”

"Please,"

“What else have you got planned?”

“Well Manic and Panic did a marvellous job at clean up so until the 29th I am free to put everything in order, I found out that the old fool is using my house seats, which means someone else is probably using yours with a proxy Swift and Paws yours is probably empty.” Both thought for a second and a lord and lady ring appeared on their fingers, Ron held the Prewett family ring and Hermione held the McKinnon ring. Harry had found a handy loop hole for Ron to claim the ring and of course the goblins were only too happy to screw others over to aid their top client, as there were no male Prewett’s left it went to Molly but she was married to Arthur, as they had kids Bill was the Weasley heir and he could claim the Prewett ring but they had multiple children so it would go to Charlie, the Goblins had found a brilliant line in the rules that stated if the Lord ring wasn’t claimed by its next in line within 1 year the heir forfeits the direct choice and the ring can be claimed by any with Prewett blood.

Usually a father would present their son with the heir ring at 11 and they heir could claim the Lordship at 15 if there was no one left in the family or they would wait until their father stepped down or died. Charlie had never came forth to claim his right so Ron stepped up and claimed the ring, the goblins were only too happy to be dealing with the Prewett fortune again to them gold was gold. Hermione was a true shock, they did a blood chance on an off chance but when it popped up she was a direct descendent from the supposed dead McKinnon line they were shocked speechless, it turned out that the McKinnon’s has a squib and didn’t disown the child before they give it for adoption after birth and they died before they could officially disown the child, Daniel Granger was in fact Daniel McKinnon; Squib. Hermione snapped up the opportunity to claim the heiress ring as squibs couldn’t claim in the wizarding world, she was officially Lady Hermione Granger-McKinnon as there were no other blood relatives alive and the goblins were only delighted to keep that information quiet, both Ron and Hermione had begun investing and building their names up in the shadows like Harry and the gold was flowing more than ever.

“If he’s using your seats for proxy it means he’s been blocking laws, ones which could possibly be for our favour.”

“He has, the werewolf and vampire laws were blocked with my seats, I’m going to the goblins to see if they can twist a few lines in the Peverell and Black Lordship lines, if they can Narcissa will proxy the Black and Tom will place Lucius and proxy for Peverell, unfortunately I can't do anything about Potter and Gryffindor and the Potter house is set to gain another seat by the end of the summer, the muggle business’ have bloomed better than we thought.” Harry told them.

“There’s nothing we can do about that and we cannot start working on Dumbledore until we have all of our information from the chamber.” Hermione sighed.

“What was it you had to tell me, you said you were obliviated again?” Harry asked.

“Yes, were overheard some of the orders plans and Molly and Ginny’s plans for you.” Ron began with a scowl, he didn’t count them as family at all.

“You will have to be on your guard this year more than ever, love potions and liquid imperious.” Harry snarled.

“What else?”

“They are definitely going for Scrimgeor as minister, and something is happening with Remus, but we were caught before we could find out, their planning something with him.” Ron said and Harry frowned.

“We will have to get eyes and ears on them, we have so much hidden in the chamber.” Hermione’s eyes widened.

“The edited map, eyes and ears.” Harry blinked before grinning.

“I knew we were geniuses.”

“Guys, you are still gathering information about the order yes?”

“We’ve been leaving listening devices around HQ and we have them scattered around the Burrow, we will collect them on the school run.”

“Right, that will keep us up to date on what their planning next. Ron will plan as soon as we find out where I’m locked up too, Mione will be sorting through our accounts to forward our businesses and our dirt and I will be building ways to get rid of Dumbledore.” They nodded.

“I want Swift to plan a way to get rid of Umbridge just in case Scrimgeor does get the minister position, she needs to go, and everything else depends on when we fall.”

“Are you going to continue the DA?”

“I might, or I may bring it to a select few and teach them everything we’ve been learning, of course now we’ve got our full power back you will have to redo everything before I can start teaching again, I've already caught up and I can still duel.” They nodded.

“Gentlemen, you need to get on the creative front, any ideas that come to you which could help us. I'm not too worried about getting caught now Swift has managed to get his hands on timeturners.” The twins nodded.

“We’ve been thinking, we could create a eyes and ears map of HQ and the Burrow multiple copies so we can watch them at all time, if we can somehow get in to Dumbles office we can hook the eyes and ears in there too.” Harry’s eyes lit up.

“Use Winky, Dumbledore always said Tom underestimated other being’s magic but so does he, he believes everything in the castle is loyal to him but the castle itself hates the man, do what you can.”

“What have you said to the Dark Lord so far?” Hermione asked as the guys started to plan.

“We’ve discussed the school, I suggested putting someone from the ranks as the DADA professor, I also pointed out Umbridge would be a very bad idea.”

“Someone suggested that!”

“Nott and Malfoy Sr’s, I had fun with Nott.” Harry smirked.

“I can imagine, what was his response?”

“He would look in to it, we also discussed the ministry and he said we should go ahead with Dumbledore, he is confident in his abilities to sway me.”

“We will be swayed, we knew that from the beginning, it’s just when it will happen.” Hermione pointed out and Harry nodded.

“I don’t know what to do Paws, I refuse to get drunk on his power which I am sure he has used to his advantage to get what he wants, I know I've done it myself but I can't deny I want him badly. It’s not like it will start a relationship and I don’t care if it’s only casual but I cannot think around him, and its driving me crazy.” Harry was pacing and threw his hands up.

“Snake, breath,” She ordered and Harry took a deep breath.

“Now, what do you do when you are fishing for something you want?”

“Create interest, entice, stay out of reach then strike.” Harry recited immediately, it was a game play he always used and it had yet to fail.

“You have created interest that much is clear. I think you have enticed but you can always extend on that,” She smirked at him and Harry grinned, enticement was so much fun when you were beautiful.

“I need to keep focus, soon I will have to answer him. Only today he said he wanted me at his side.” Harry muttered.

“Wait what?”

“Before you came in, Tom said he wanted me at his side.”

“What in Merlin’s name have you been doing?” She demanded and Harry was confused.

"Being myself, why?"

“He said at, Harry, not on but at, there is a difference. You’ve caught his attention, not only interest.”

“How long shall I hold out, I want to have some fun?”

“I say first week of school, that way if gives us time to sort everything and you said you we’re going to Gringotts.” He nodded with a smirk.

“I’m thinking I can up the enticement though, it’ll be fun to make him sweat. Being the Dark Lord he usually gets what he wants.” Hermione grinned at him.

“Snake, we have a plan, the maps should be up and running by the first week of school.” Fred said with a strange glint in his eye which was mirrored by his twin.

“Ron will work on the Burrow, Kreacher already knows HQ and the headmaster’s office is ours.” George stated and Harry nodded.

“Good, keep me informed.”

“Will do,”

“Right, I will be leaving here in 11 days. We know me and Paws cannot act until we are back at school, getting to the chamber will be the first task but we our memories back it is much simpler, we just have to find the dungeon passage. In the first week or so we will fall, we have lots to sort out thanks to that fool so the time turners will be used, we will complete the day then go back to leave the school. Gringotts is going to take a while and I have a feeling Ragnok will not be pleased.”

“Agreed, I can start plans for Umbridge as soon as I get back. I will begin the basis for working around your isolation but I can't fully begin without knowing where you are and I will also work with the twins.” Ron said.

“We will collect listening devices during the school run, create the maps and we were thinking a communications device, like a mirror but something more inconspicuous, we will look in to it.” George suggested and Harry tilted his head.

“The idea has merit but concentrate on the eyes and ears.” Harry told them and they nodded.

“I can help and I will jot down things we need to go over but I’m helpless until we get in to the chamber, I can't even remember everything we have down there its so frustrating, damn that man.”

“Just remember, when we get back to school, you will have nothing to do with me.” Harry reminded them and they nodded.

"Last thing, OWL's?" Harry said, "Now I know Paws passed everything what about you Swift you weren't too sure on a few exams."

"Aced them except history and divination, E's in everything 'cept Defence, Charms and Potions where I got O's." Ron told him proudly and Harry grinned.

"I knew you would pass, the amount of work you put in it was impossible for you not too."

"What subjects are we going to continue?" Hermione asked and Harry frowned.

"I'm not sure, obviously history and divination are gone but I was confused on care."

"I think it would be best if we all dropped care, we just wont have the time otherwise, even with the timeturners we need rest." Hermione pointed out and the others nodded.

"Right, dropping care, history and divination, are you keeping Arithmancy and Runes?" Hermione tilted her head in thought.

"I think I'll have to, it will be suspicious if the studious Hermione Granger suddenly drops a subject she aced, history is understandable, I can say I can't bare Binns and I'm self studying for the NEWT's McGonagall will buy it." She pointed out and Harry nodded.

"Ok well I think that’s everything we can sort for now. Oh, and we will meet on the second evening of term to begin planning, we need to get our hands on the school eyes and ears." Harry said to them as they rose to leave.

“We had better go; the meeting will have finished now.” Mione said casting a tempus.

“I have you covered and in dire situations Dobby will come, he’s taking you back now actually.” The elf popped in.

“Dobby has Master Harry’s friend safe.” He said before popping them away, the twins activated their own portkeys and disappeared in a flash, Harry sighed and flopped down. He was a sitting duck until they got back to school and he hated it, if he was spotted outside before the 29th he would be screwed so he couldn’t go to Gringotts yet just to be safe, at least he would have fun with the Dark Lord, Hermione was right, once Harry set his sights on something he went after it until he got it. With a smirk Harry rose and left the room, it was approaching dinner so he went straight to the dining room to eat, he was thankful to Hermione for giving him a verbal slap, he wasn’t thinking clearly but he was sorted now. It was time to play his game. He straightened himself up as he walked and made his magic swarm him, wrapping around him like a glove and making his eyes glow, his expression blank. Harry took his place next to the Dark Lord with a nod to the occupants.

“Did your meeting go accordingly?” Tom asked him.

“Yes, plans have been set in to motion, it seems Dumbledore has become rather callous with the use of his wand. He will have to be removed regardless of my decision.” Harry told him.

“Is that so?”

“Hmm, unfortunately I cannot begin those plans until I have returned to the castle. However, I do have Swift, Manic and Panic working on aids for the upcoming year. As I am being isolated we will have to move in the shadows but it will be done.” Tom nodded once.

"You are confident?"

"Of course, Dumbledore will be in for a surprise at the beginning of this year, I will begin ruining him as soon as I have set the clauses at Gringotts. With the aids being created we will skate around unnoticed." Harry confirmed.

"Lucius, Narcissa, once Harry has had his clauses written you will be taking up in the wizengamot. Narcissa you will be the Black proxy and Lucius you will be sitting for the house of Peverell." Tom told them and they looked shocked but nodded.

"When will this be My Lord?" Lucius asked Tom who looked towards Harry.

"I should be at Gringotts by the 10th, it depends on timetables and staff appointment, I usually have a DADA teacher with an unusual interest in me." Harry rolled his eyes and Tom smirked.

"This year I think you will be fine, the DADA teacher won’t stop you from leaving the school."

"You have filled the position?" Harry questioned shocked and Tom nodded.

"Who?" Harry just received a smirk, the Dark Lord rose from the table and swept from the room, Harry watched him leave with a smirk curling to his lips and his eyes glowing.

"Harry," His attention snapped to Draco who was looking at him in a very Hermione-like way.

"Draco?"

"Come to the library?" The dark haired teen nodded and followed him out, he threw himself in to a chair and looked at the blonde.

“You called?”

“I know that look,” The blonde stated, “Are you clinically insane?” Harry merely smirked.

“You sound like Mione.”

“Well she’s smart.”

“Just let me have my fun, I have 11 days left before I leave.” Harry said with a crooked grin.

“On your head, but try not to get your self in too much shit.” Draco sighed and Harry rolled his eyes as he got up.

“You know me,”

“That’s not reassuring.” Draco called after him. Harry smirked as he ran his hand through his hair as he went down a corridor, he casually leaned against the door frame of the duelling room as the Dark Lord practiced, and it was amazing to watch. Harry took in detail every movement, the code name basilisk really was fitting because Harry could see Tom was wound waiting for the perfect moment to strike, with a final slash of his wand the Dark Lord finished the duel.

“Is there any particular reason you are stood there?” Tom’s voice interrupted Harry’s musings.

“No specific reason.” Harry replied pushing himself of the frame, he slowly stepped in to the Dark Lord’s sight and took pleasure when the man’s eyes raked him hungrily, Harry tilted his head to the side.

“Of course there could be multiple reasons for me watching you.” Harry casually glanced over Tom and licked his lips, he noticed that the Dark Lord followed the movement and he stepped closer.

“Oh, and what could they be?” Tom’s voice was lower as he moved closer.

“I can think of a few,”

“Hrm,” Harry stepped around the Dark Lord,

“But they would be my reasons.” Harry let his breath run against Tom’s neck, he kissed the pale skin and then lightly bit down drawing a hiss.

“Are you sure want to play this game?” Tom murmured and Harry smirked against his neck.

“How else am I going to get what I want?” The Dark Lord chucked.

You should be careful snake he hissed and it sent shivers down Harry’s spine, he didn’t know parseltongue could sound so damn hot.

There is no fun in sticking to the rules Harry replied he silently stepped away as Tom span around, Harry slowly backed toward the door with his eyes constantly watching the Dark Lord’s movement.

I love the thrill Harry hissed before he left and disappeared down the corridor, he smirked to himself; let the fun begin.

 


 

Harry had been dancing around the Dark Lord for a week, he was having fun teasing and making the man want him, it was probably a new experience for Tom not to have whatever he wanted straight away. Harry took vindictive pleasure in making the crimson eyes darken and the hungry look was a prominent whenever they were in the same room, he knew it was only a matter of time before Tom made his move as Harry was leaving in 3 days and the Dark Lord would only let the games continue for so long. All through the week he had found himself pushed against many walls and snogged senseless; not that he was complaining. He was generally surprised none of the Malfoy’s had caught them at it, the Dark Lord had the tendency to appear out of thin air and kiss him in the most open places. Harry pulled on his tight black skinny jeans and a tight black top, he was going to practice today as it would probably be the last time until he managed to get to the chamber, he went to breakfast forgoing robes because he would only be taking them off and Lucius could screw himself and ‘proper decorum’. Everyone turned to look at him when he entered the dining room and Harry spotted the slight whitening of Tom’s knuckles as he gripped his fork that little bit harder, he withheld a smirk and sat down.

“Where are your robes?” Lucius asked in a stiff tone, Harry knew the man was keeping himself from sneering, he didn’t want to anger someone with so many titles.

“I am going to be duelling, I refuse to where robes to eat when I will be taking them off in minutes and before you ask my duelling robes are custom made and they cost around your entire wardrobe; I'm not wearing them for practice.” Harry told him bluntly, nothing else was said but Tom raised an eyebrow with a smirk, Harry raise a shoulder and shot a pointed look that said ‘and you’re going to complain when?’. He ate quickly and left for the duelling room, Harry set up the dummies and began, he relished in the feel of his magic thrumming around him as he cut down the opponents. Harry span and twisted his movements swift and graceful, it was like a deadly dance. He went through everything he knew even attempting some of the spells he had read about, they came naturally and he mixed them in to his duelling, he finished with his patronus and pumped it with power making it fill the room with a blinding white light. When it dulled he found himself face to face with the Dark Lord, Harry had his lips claimed roughly and his hands somehow ended twisted themselves in to Tom’s hair as strong hands gripped his hips, tongues battled for dominance even though Harry knew he had no chance in winning. His body arched as Tom bit down on a particularly sensitive spot on his neck Harry released a breathless moan, he pulled the Dark Lord back to his lips, when they broke apart they were both panting slightly and Harry was flushed.

“Really have to stop doing that in open places.” Harry muttered with a grin, Tom smirked.

“Where’s the thrill in that?” Harry nipped Tom’s bottom lip gaining hiss, Tom kissed him again.

“I have very short patients,” The Dark Lord murmured lowly and Harry smirked.

“But you will wait,”

“What makes you so sure?” Harry slowly kissed his neck until he was right next to his ear.

“Because you always get what you want.” He twisted out of the mans hold and slipped away, he couldn’t help but grin, the man was on his last patients and honestly he was surprised he hadn’t found himself taken against a wall in a corridor, that image was an alarmingly pleasant one. Harry shook his head and went to his room, he pulled out 2 set of clothes and packed the rest of his trunk so he was ready to leave, timing would be key. Winky popped in looking happy about something, she handed him a letter and to sheets of parchment.

“From Mr’s Manic and Panic, Master Harry sir,” She squeaked cheerfully, Harry took them with a word of thanks and she popped away, he ripped open the letter.

 

Snake,

Eyes and Ears ready for both extra record, clues for isolation not defined. Swift working double; genius. Listeners ready, chickens ignorant, ASAP. Your copies, blood locked, no activation without, Bp: In The Shadows, e&e: Watcher, Bd: Information Received, Cp: Secret Spy, e&eViewer, Cd: Secrets Heard.

M&P

Harry could have done a fucking happy dance, he was ecstatic, the twins had truly outdone themselves with the recording detail, that would help them to review a meeting or a conversation. He rooted a blade out of his trunk and sliced his palm, he let the blood drip on one of the blank sheets of parchment Winky had brought with her, they flashed gold before elegant script made its way on to the page; Welcome Snake, to the Burrow. He tapped it with his wand and muttered In the Shadows and watched as the layout of the burrow appeared in the same fashion as the marauders map, he saw that only Molly and Ginny were in the house at the current time, he tapped the sheet again and muttered Watcher and watched with a smirk as the view shifted so he could see what was happening in each room like a birds eye view, he spoke each room and grinned when the map shifted and zoomed in so he could be sat in each of the rooms, he left it on the kitchen where Molly and Ginny were speaking ironically about him.

Now Ginny you have to make sure everything goes to plan, he will be vulnerable now Ron and Hermione think they don’t speak to him so he will be alone and crave any company. Molly told her as she flipped some sausages in the pan.

I know mum, I will make sure I’m available for him and when he’s at his weakest I’ll make my move, if he rejects it I’ll slip him the potion but I doubt he will with a few compulsions. Ginny flicked her hair over her shoulder and Harry retched, there was no way on earth that he would be touching that, he was quite happy playing his games with Tom.

Good girl, you are much more reliable than your stupid brothers, Ron and the twins are such let down, I don’t understand how I could produce children like that. Molly shook her head and Harry scoffed, he was pretty sure the twins and Ron thought the same about being related to them.

Your father will be home soon, he doesn’t know about the potions so lets not tell him, Professor Dumbledore said it would be best if he didn’t know. Ginny nodded and Arthur apperated in, Harry shook his head, the fact that the man went along with some of the schemes was enough to put him against Harry. He wiped the burrow parchment and repeated the same process with the HQ sheet, there were more people in HQ such and Remus Lupin and Mad eye, he zoomed in on the room that Remus was sat in and was slightly alarmed, the werewolf was sat in the drawing room just staring at the wall, he looked ill and Harry guessed it was Sirius’ death, Harry was looking forward to telling the marauder just who was responsible for his best friend’s death. Harry checked all the other rooms and found the room where Swift and Paws were sat working over something, the room was warded so tight Harry would have a job breaking it, they were speaking in low tones and in code just to be safe, Harry called Dobby and the elf appeared.

“What can Dobby be doing for Master Harry Potter?”

“I need you to take this to Swift and Paws.” Harry told him, he quickly scrawled a note.

 

Swift & Paws,

The eye is in the building, be careful, oh and M&P were successful.

  

He rolled it up and gave it to the elf, Harry watched as the elf popped over to Swift and Paws and they read the note, Hermione’s eyes widened and they hurriedly charmed everything and placed it away. Ron looked directly at where the viewing spell was placed and sent Harry a link of signals, it told him the plans for his isolation was looking good and Umbridge was as good as dead, Harry grinned as they relaxed back and were reading books when Mad eye came to ‘check’ on them. He continued to watch the HQ but he didn’t catch any interesting conversations, he did hear that they were still watching the Dursley’s and apparently he Harry wasn’t showing any strange behaviour only acting a bit down, Harry absolutely no fucking idea what the twins had done but he would have to pat them on the back when he next saw them. He didn’t realise but he had missed lunch until he cast a tempus and read that it was 3:30, he cursed because Narcissa would have his head at dinner, he would have to charm her. Harry pulled out some more parchment to write back to the twins,

 

M&P,

Perfect on both, locked in, Swift on isolation. Listeners after bank, begin communication, experiment and find block for LP.

 

He summoned Winky and sent it with her, Hedwig was giving him a scathing look and Harry frowned, she obviously wanted work and was getting jealous. Harry slapped himself on the head, Ragnok would kill him if he just turned up so he thought it best to write to the goblin to inform him of his arrival.

 

Director Ragnok,  

There have been some interesting developments during these summer months that may answer some of your quires about my and my associates behaviour over the last year and a half. I would appreciate it greatly if you could see us on the 10th of September so we can sort through everything and hopefully clear everything up.

Sincerely,

Lord Harry James Potter-Black-Peverell-Gryffindor.

 

Harry stamped each of his rings under his name to assert it was indeed him, the head Goblin was bound to have questions and would demand answers which they could now give. He called Hedwig over and she looked down her beak at him before turning away, Harry sighed and walked over to her, he had obviously pissed his owl off.

“Hey girl,” He cooed stroking her gently.

“I haven’t forgotten you but I don’t want the fool getting close to you, I'm worried.” He told her softly but she didn’t look at him.

“If you don’t want to take my letter to Gringotts I'm sure Draco has another owl-,” She snatched the letter from his hand with her beak then she hit him with it with a glare.

“You were the one being awkward,” She glared some more then shook her head in a resigned sort of way.

“Get that to Gringotts for be beautiful, it’s important that you’re not seen.” He said and she bobbed her head before taking flight, Harry decided to go to the library to finish copying the Malfoy books, he was still smirking at the maps and his smirk only grew when he saw the library was empty apart from the Dark Lord who was reading and jotting things down. Harry stalked forward and when the man put the book down Harry straddled him and claimed his lips, he leaned down to roughly bite Tom’s neck and he swore Tom growled but the sound sent a shudder through Harry, he leapt up and disappeared in to the rows of shelves just as Lucius walked in to grab something, Tom spewed out some curses in parcel and threw Harry a look that promised repercussions, Harry flashed a challenging smirk and Tom’s eyes flashed in acceptance and he left. Harry chuckled to himself as he took the final books down which he had yet to copy, he knew he had just set himself for something unknown but he couldn’t resist and that was a perfect opportunity. Harry shrank his copied books and replaced the originals, he took them to his room and locked them away, he made his way down for dinner and as expected Narcissa glared at him.

“Cissa, you will have to excuse my awful absence at lunch this afternoon, I had something unavoidable delivered.” He told her and her glare lessened.

“I thought I told you not to miss a meal?” She said.

“It was a complete mistake, I was in no way discounting your instructions, in fact I have to thank you, your warm hospitality and kindness has helped me more than you know.” He kissed her hand and flashed his faultless charming smile, he did an internal happy dance when the cool crisp Narcissa Malfoy blushed lightly, out of the corner of his eye he saw both Malfoy men’s jaws drop in shock and the Dark Lord covered his smirk of amusement with his hand.

“Oh it is no trouble Harry, you are more than welcome.”

“However I do appreciate it and I apologise for missing lunch, thank you for your concern.” He flashed another smile and watched as her blush darkened, Draco was looking at him in awe and Lucius was a picture of shock, Harry sat down and kept the smirk of off his face as Narcissa cooled her face down and the Malfoy men wiped their faces of all shock. They ate dinner with light conversation and a relaxed atmosphere, Narcissa turned to him with a confused look.

“What was delivered for you to miss lunch?” This time Harry had no qualms about smirking in triumph.

“Remember I mentioned the aids Manic and Panic were working on?” She nodded.

“Well they were delivered today and they were better than I expected, possibly one of the best things that could have happened at this precise moment in time.” Harry told her which caught the interest of the rest of the table.

“What is it?”

“Something that myself and the others created, it will let me watch the order at all times no matter where I am.” Harry told them and grinned when her eyes widened, he gave Tom a short nod to say he would let the man see it.

“That’s impressive,”

“It will probably help me dodge their wonderful plans for me; I've got Manic and Panic working on an all-round love potion counter because I know that I’ll get dosed with it this year.” Harry’s eyes narrowed at the thought, he would make them burn in hell.

“What!” She exclaimed horrified.

“Oh yes, I will fall hopelessly in love with Ginny Weasley and when I tragically die in battle all of my gold will go to her and Molly.” Harry saw the Dark Lord’s eye twitch at the mention of him falling in love with Ginny, “They are off their fucking heads, I wouldn’t touch that even on love potion.” Harry’s lip curled in revulsion, and it was a mark of how outraged Narcissa was that she didn’t comment on the language.

“They would stoop that low for money?”

“Molly Weasley had her own sons’ obliviated and charmed for my money and titles.” Harry said bluntly and her eyes widened again.

“That’s disgusting,”

“That is Molly Weasley with a side of the head chicken.” Draco snorted then blushed and covered it with a cough.

“Dumbledore?” Tom asked amused and Harry grinned.

“Of course, the order of the fried chicken, fitting don’t you think?”

“Indeed,” Harry finished his meal and went back to his room, he wanted to watch out for a meeting with the order just in case, he would be around them in two days and he wasn’t looking forward to it really. He activated both maps and suspended them in mid air as he lead back and read, he noted Remus hadn’t moved and it seemed Ron and Hermione were surrounded by everyone else, he would love to be in there thoughts right at that moment. He watched as Molly cooked for the order and he saw her place something in Hermione’s food, he sat up furious because his spells didn’t work for potions and there was nothing he could do, Molly handed her there the bowl when suddenly it shattered spraying it everywhere and in the very corner he saw Dobby disappear back in to the shadows and Kreacher snatch the bottle from Molly’s pocket, he smirked; house elves were great. It still didn’t make him less pissed and Paws would only be more enraged when he told her, he would have to reward both the elves, he didn’t know what potion it but he would find out. Harry read his way though an interesting book he found from the chamber of secrets, it was a memory modification spell but it was in parcel and could only be undone by parcel magic with was very handy, it worked different from an obliviate because it didn’t hide memories it changed them in to the casters wishes so they truly believed the memories to be correct instead of blank patches. He also found a handy masking spell which would mask the casters magic, scent and presence so under the invisibility cloak they would be undetectable, he noted it down and then cast a tempus. Harry was shocked to see the clock said 11, he put the book down and deactivated the parchments, he hopped in the shower to change for bed, Harry pulled on black silk bottoms and fell in to bed he was exhausted.

 

 


 

Harry awoke with a scream of pain and he nearly cursed Draco who was hovering over him shaking, instead he rolled over and spewed his guts up, he wiped his face and saw there was blood running.

“Harry, what in Merlin’s name was that?”

“I am going to fucking murder him.” Harry snarled vanishing the sick and getting out of bed, he couldn’t remember what he saw but his scar was on fire and he was pissed.

“The Dark Lord?”

“You would be correct, bastard needs to sort this out.”

“I am going to leave that to you, night.” The blonde vanished back to his room and Harry knew he would speak to him in the morning, right now he had someone to scream at. He stormed from his room, ignoring the fact he was half naked, and followed his scar to the Dark Lord, he hammered on the door furiously only stopping when it was thrown open.

“What are you doing?” the man hissed and Harry laughed.

“Well I was fucking sleeping until I woke because of this goddam scar.” Harry spat glaring at the person who put it there.

“You’re hammering on the door because?”

“You put the damn thing there fix it, I am so sick of the fucking thing, its like you failed to kill me you left something there
” Harry trailed off and his eyes took on a glazed look as he gazed at nothing and the Dark Lord paled significantly, suddenly Harry’s eyes snapped up to Tom.

“You didn’t?” He breathed harshly, “Tell me you didn’t?”

“I-what?”

“You didn’t leave anything behind up there did you?”

“Purposely with you no, I didn’t think it’s even possible.”

“Of all the-“ Harry couldn’t even finish his sentence, he threw Tom a filthy look.

“I need to check,” he muttered turning and all but ran back to his room, he slammed his door open and wrenched his trunk open, he tried to summon the book he needed but it didn’t work.

“Mother fucking twat, I swear, of all the stupid things to put on the interior at times like this, anti fucking summoning charms.” He literally threw books out of the trunk letting his magic cushion them before they hit the flood and became damaged, he was snarling furiously to himself until he grabbed the book he needed and slammed it on the desk, he flicked through it quickly until he found what he was looking for. Harry’s eyes whizzed across the page and he took out his wand, he waved it over himself muttering a spell and he glowed red.

“What colour am I glowing?” He asked calmly to the Dark Lord, Tom took a deep breath.

“Red,”

“Well this is fucking brilliant.”

“Calm down,”

“Ha, calm down, yeah right. Hi I'm Harry, the human horcrux.” They both looked at each other before laughing.

“Ok, serious note; what the fuck?”

“Unexpected but it should answer a lot of questions involving Dumbledore.” Tom pointed out and Harry tugged at his hair.

“I cannot believe this, that bastard must have known about this.”

“Most likely,”

“That’s not very good for you.” Harry stated now he was calm, it wasn’t all that bad now he thought about it rationally, Tom looked at him blankly and Harry blamed it on the fact it was the middle of the night.

“If Dumbles new about me then don’t you think he would have known about any others you may or may not have made, I dunno like the diary I put a fang through?” Harry said with a raised eyebrow, the Dark Lord winced.

“Point taken,”

“Damn it,” Harry cursed again.

“Your language is shocking.” Tom told him amused.

“I'm tired, sue me.”

“I am checking on my others soon, this news is rather troublesome.” Harry scoffed.

“He says to his unplanned soul carrier.” Tom rolled his eyes with a chuckle.

“You’re not letting this go are you?”

“Not a chance in hell.” Harry grinned and it was then he realised the Dark Lord was shirtless, he couldn’t stop his eyes admiring the view and he unconsciously licked his lips, the man was fine. He found himself pushed up against his desk and kissed heatedly, his whole body was on fire as Tom’s hands ran over his skin, and he wanted more. Tom bit his neck and Harry moaned his nails digging in to Tom slightly, the friction was driving him insane and with one last searing kiss the Dark Lord flashed him a smirk and vanished.

“MOTHER FUCKING BASTARD.” Harry all but screamed after him, he heard the man laugh loudly at him and Harry swore up a storm, he slammed his bedroom door shut and threw himself down on his bed. He led there for around 10 minutes before he realised he was still burning with lust, Harry pulled himself up and in to a very cold shower, the bastard was returning the favour from earlier. By the time he calmed himself down and redressed it was half 4, Harry groaned and collapsed on the bed, his last thought was that he couldn’t wait until the first week of school.

 

Sooo, did you like it? 

Jess*

Chapter Text

 Hope you enjoy!

Disclaimer: All belongs to J. K

Warning: Swearing and light slash

Parseltongue

Chapter 5

Harry was in an awful mood in the morning, he was up at 6:30 and he was like a bear with a sore head. He was absolutely exhausted and it was showing, he threw on his clothed and stomped down the breakfast blindly grabbing food than smelt appealing.

“Good morning Harry, you look tired.” Narcissa greeted cheerfully and Harry wished she wasn’t.

“Hmm,”

“Ignore him mother; when Harry doesn’t sleep he turns in to a joyous person to be around.” Draco told his mother with a smirk, Harry snarled at him under his breath and jabbed him with his wand, Draco dodged the hex and laughed.

“Did you not sleep last night?” The Dark Lord asked sweeping in, Harry glared at the man who smirked as he sat down, Harry glowered before gaining a glint in his eye, he was leaving tomorrow might as well make the man want him even more for the next time he saw him. He wolfed down his food and disappeared from the table, Harry went to his bedroom and changed his clothes, he pulled on the tightest black skinny jeans he owned, a skin tight white top and some coal black shin high boots tied loosely, he ran his hand through his hair messing it slightly and he bit his lip giving them a bruised look, Harry smirked in to the mirror; he looked good. Harry picked up his black leather jacket and the eyes and ears parchment and left the room, he followed his scar to where the Dark Lord was, the man was in his study which Harry knocked on. He was told to enter and smirked before blanking his face and walking in to the study, the Dark Lord was working over something and he glanced up to see Harry, the man looked back down before his head snapped up to Harry and the teen withheld his smirk and the crimson eyes darkened.

“I decided as I was leaving tomorrow I would show you my aids today.” He told him lightly inviting himself to sit down; Harry kicked his legs over the arm of the chair tilting his head slightly.

“Oh?”

"Yes, they are rather impressive, the twins are amazing when there given a task they deem worthy of there attention." Harry said with a shrug, the Dark Lord raised an eyebrow and Harry pulled out the parchments and placed them on the desk, he touched them each with his wand and the welcome massage appeared Welcome Snake to the Burrow/HQ. Harry activated them with the passwords and watched as they opened in map form of the burrow and HQ, the Burrow was empty as they were all at HQ and it looked as if a meeting was taking place.

"These are good," The Dark Lord murmured looking at the maps with interest, Harry grinned.

"Wanna see what makes them really interesting?" Harry asked rhetorically, he tapped the HQ map and muttered the eyes and ears password, it altered to a birds eye view and he zoomed in to the kitchen where the Order were sat around the table waiting for Dumbledore, Harry chanced a glance at Tom who was gazing at the map with glowing eyes.

"Now this is impressive."

"I do try." Harry placed his wand on the side of the map and dragged it upward, they could now hear exactly what was being said, the Dark Lord blinked.

"You say you created these?" He asked watching the order discussing what Dumbledore may want to speak about.

"Yes, I have the marauders map which my father and his friends created to help them get about the castle without being seen. We based the idea off of that but I've explored the castle more than they did and we found more passageways and hidden rooms, so we created a new map. I had the idea that it would be good if we could actually see and hear what was going on in a corridor and Swift had the idea of using listening charms placed secretly on the portraits whilst myself and the twins created a viewing charm, rather than a device which had already been made, to be merged with the listening charms. Paws, who takes arithmancy and runes, linked the spells throughout the entire castle to our new map and placed the correct spells to the correctly drawn corridor. Then on places where there were no portraits like the chamber and the newly discovered hidden places we carved stabalising runes to lock them in place before linking them to everything else.” Harry explained and the Dark Lord looked impressed.

“That must have taken the best part of the year.” Harry nodded.

“Especially with the obliviates, looking back now we probably could have done it in half the time we did. The twins obviously made good time without the hindrance of Dumbledore.” Just then headmaster floo’d in to HQ and the room when silent, Harry activated the recording charm as the meeting began.

Thank you all for coming so swiftly, Dumbledore began in his usual grandfatherly fashion, as one Tom and Harry sneered.

I have had some disturbing news from Aribella about Harry. The order broke out in muttered and whispers, Harry rolled his eyes.

“Oh look, I'm famous.” Tom smirked at the scathing tone.

I do not believe it is anything to worry about at the current time, however tomorrow I wish for Alastair and Remus to go and check on him. Harry's eyes widened and he cursed.

“What?”

“Remus is a werewolf, he will smell I haven’t been there for a month and because he is currently locked under layers of obliviates himself he will tell them.” Harry told him thinking of a way to relieve the situation, he summoned a sheet of parchment ignoring the raised eyebrow and quickly scrawled a note.

 

Moony,

Do not mention what you do not smell tomorrow, it is in your best interest and mine.

 

Harry hoped that for once the man listened to his werewolf which is why he signed it ‘cub’ instead of his name, Harry then proceeded to rub the parchment down his face and licked it to seal it so it was drenched in his scent, Tom was looking at him as if he had grown a second head.

“What! I said he was werewolf, how else am I going to get him to understand unless the letter reeks of his cubs scent?” Harry pointed out.

“That was odd.” Tom informed him and Harry rolled his eyes, he called Dobby and told the elf only to give the letter to Remus when the man was completely alone. They went back to watching the meeting where they were speaking of the Dark Lord’s movements and how he had been quiet, Harry smirked at that, the man had distractions. When Dumbledore left the rest of the order diminished each speaking about a number of things but nothing of interest, Harry turned the volume down and cleared the map, he sat back with a small smirk.

"Quite handy I would say." Harry commented lightly and the Dark Lord hummed in agreement.

"It is a very impressive piece of magic especially the viewing charms you created."

“I know,” Harry cast a tempus and blinked, it was almost lunch.

“Wow, time moves fast.” He muttered getting up and stretching, he felt his t-shirt ride up revealing flawless pale flesh, and he could practically feel the eyes raking him.

“I’m going to eat, I don’t fancy having to charm Narcissa again, I don’t think it will work all that well.” Harry said and Tom chuckled.

“As impressive and original as that was, I do not believe it will work again.”

“Ah well, at least I'm probably one of the only ones who can say they’ve made Narcissa Malfoy blush.” Harry shrugged and left the room, he ate a quick lunch before tracking Draco down in his room.

“Sorry about last night, Draco,” Harry said walking in to the room, he wasn’t surprised to see the blonde preening his looks, he sat down in the sofa.

“S’alright,” He muttered distractedly and Harry’s eyebrows rose, the ever perfect Malfoy just slurred a word, Harry jabbed him with a stinging hex making him yelp.

“Oh, Harry, sorry, didn’t see you there.” Harry rolled his eyes.

“I was trying to apologise for last night but you missed it.” this time Draco rolled his eyes.

“I was more interested in the scream of insults just when I was nearly asleep.” Draco said dryly and Harry smirked.

“Do you really want to know?” Harry challenged and Draco looked at him before shaking his head.

“No, I really, really, really don’t.”

“Come on, I wanna go flying before I'm forced back in to my masks.” Harry sighed but then grinned, “Wronski Feint here I come.” Draco matched his grin and they both ran to the Quidditch pitch, as soon as he was in the air everything left Harry, everything was forgotten it was just him and the freedom of the air.

“Race you,” Draco yelled and Harry smirked, he pointed his broom in to a nose dive and plummeted to the earth, the ground was coming up alarmingly fast and at the very last possible second he yanked up the handle and his knees scrapped the grass before he spiralled off, he jumped of the broom with bright eyes.

“Its official, you’re trying to kill both me and yourself.” Draco landed next to him and punched him in the arm.

“Obviously not enough,” Harry replied dryly and received another punch, they traipsed in and played chess until Harry got bored with losing after the 6th time.

“I have never seen someone so bad at chess.” Draco said with a laugh, Harry scowled.

“I suck at strategy, play Swift and have your ass handed to you, he’s my chess player.”

“I'm not stupid enough to play him, I would lose worse than you just did.”

“Screw you Malfoy.” Harry growled and left to the sound of Draco’s laughs, he went to the library to do one last check to make sure he had copied all the books, the Malfoy library was impressive but his own was better with all the books he had acquired. Harry scoured the room but found nothing until he did a ward and spell check, he found a repellent and some serious wards in the back corner of the library and went to investigate, they were layered over something he couldn’t see. Harry smirked and began to unpick the wards just enough so he could slip though without Lucius knowing, it took a while as the Malfoy lord obviously didn’t want anyone getting passed them and had laid many faux pars.

After half an hour of intricate picking Harry had a gap be could slip around and went through; he hit a gold mine. There was a door that led to a dark room with around a hundred rare priceless books and scrolls, Paws would be salivating if she saw this and Harry was close, he began coping them carefully making sure not to damage the old texts, some were for Malfoy eyes only but with the coping charm he overrode the blood magic turning it in to a ordinary book; he loved magic. Harry hadn’t been able to do the same with the Black library yet and the Peverell library was in the vault, the Gryffindor books were somewhere in the castle like Slytherin’s and the Potter library was done, he didn’t know how long he was sat their but when he had copied everything there was 3 minutes until he was expected at dinner. With a few choice curses he shrunk his copies and slipped back out through the wards careful to replace them as before, he sprinted to the dining room and fell around the corner just in time slipping a little with the momentum, the Dark Lord raised an eyebrow and Harry smirked.

“Good evening Harry, you look dusty.” Narcissa greeted with a pointed look, Harry waved a hand to remove the dust and sat down.

“Is there any reason you were dusty?”

“Library,” He explained with a shrug, he had to keep the smirk from his face as Lucius stiffened slightly before dismissing the thought, the man underestimated him or put to much confidence in his wards; both Harry assumed. His final dinner at the Malfoy's was a pleasant affair, the house elves had outdone themselves with the food and it was relaxing, a stark contrast to what was approaching. After dinner Harry followed Tom out as the man had caught his eye to come, they went to the study and Harry kicked his legs over the arm with a sigh.

“The real reason you arrived dusty?” Harry grinned.

“Why, its almost like you don’t believe me Tom?”

“I wonder why?” was the bone dry reply he received.

“I wasn’t lying, I just wasn’t in the part of the library meant for others outside the Malfoy family.” an elegant brow rose in silent question.

“Have you been to the back corner of the library, where the windows stop?”
“No, I haven’t needed to, most of the books there I have in my own collection.” He motioned to the shelves in the study where there was obviously a spell around them so they could hold more.

“Well in that deep corner I found an unusual amount of wards and I was wondering what could dear Lucius want to hide in a library? So obviously I had to see what was there.” Harry began,

“Indeed,”

“Imagine my surprise when I discovered hundreds of priceless scrolls and books, some for Malfoy eye’s only.”

“Oh,”

“Yes, now I thought it was rather selfish for Lucius to hide these books, I mean, yes most of them are Malfoy legacy but there really isn’t any harm in sharing.” Tom was starting to look amused and Harry smirked, he pulled out the stacks of books and scrolls and placed them on the desk.

“So I decided to make them available to other curious eyes.”

“Even the Malfoy books?”

“I didn’t think it was fare to keep knowledge locked in to ones blood.” Harry stated seriously.

“Copying spell?”

“The chamber was very helpful,”

“It has that quality, you are using a parcel copying charm to override the blood scribe also.”

“Yes, I found a book which was possibly the best thing I have ever found, the spells it contained were immense. I have yet to finish it but even so far it has helped a great deal.” The Dark Lord waved his hand and a book landed on the desk, Harry looked at it and nodded.

“That would be the book,”

“I did find it a brilliant book, I believe it was written by Salazar himself.”

“Wouldn’t be too much of a surprise, the man was said to be a genius. I have yet to find the Gryffindor chambers, if Slytherin’s are anything to go by then the Gryffindor ones will be interesting in the least.”

“True, you can look in the school year, I'm sure you will find time.” Tom said and Harry nodded.

“We were searching before but due to some unexpected circumstances we were withheld from completing the task.” Harry’s eyes narrowed at the reminder of what Dumbledore had done, the man was going to suffer when the time came.

“Ah the head chicken, as you so quaintly put it.” Harry had to grin at that.

“It was nicely put if I do say so myself.” Tom rolled his eyes, Harry got to his feet and sighed again.

“I have to now charm everything I own before I return to the delightful company of the order and school.” Harry grumbled.

“It is to be advised, you do have a lot of secrets.”

“Ugh, I know,” He moaned and left, in his room it still looked a mess from where he had thrown his books everywhere the night before, he couldn’t be bothered to clear it up so he just put the newly copied in the compartment and began charming everything that would be on show to look as it did before and when he was done he showered and led on his bed watching the maps until he fell asleep.

 


 

 

Harry wasn't happy on the morning when he was set to leave, he stalked in to the dining room grumbling to himself and threw himself in to his chair; he really wasn't looking forward to having to keep up a constant act.

"You must eat full meal; I don't trust that order not to spike all your food Harry." Narcissa said and Harry smiled a bit, she was ever the mother.

"I will," the meal was silent which was unusual and Harry could feel the tension, finally Tom asked the question.

"When are you leaving?" Harry was pleased to note that no matter how much he tried the Dark Lord could not hide the fact he wasn't happy about Harry leaving, although Harry would probably see him every week when term started.

"Around lunch, I have yet to clean up after that incident." Here Harry threw the man a look to which Tom looked a little sheepish.

"Ah yes," he cleared his throat, "You haven't forgotten I see." Harry scoffed.

"Not likely, anyway I have yet to clear up and my room looks like something exploded in there. I'll eat here and-," Harry abruptly stopped talking staring in to space.

"Clear," he murmured much to the confusions of the rest of the table. Before anyone could question his stability, purple flaming letters appeared writing them selves where Harry was staring.

Cornered, LR, their coming

Harry blinked,

"Received," he muttered and the words disappeared.

"What in Merlin's name was that?" Draco burst out and Harry blinked again.

"I believe Swift and Paws couldn't send me a message the normal way so they used that as a last resort, the order are on their way to get me apparently." Harry told him with a shrug then it seemed to click in his own mind.

"Oh shit," he cursed and bolted from the room, Harry threw open his door and began throwing books in to his open trunk, he would sort them out another time they just had to be sealed away. He also sealed away his nice clothes and pulled out his hand-me-downs and Gryffindor cloak, once he was changed and everything packed in record time he ran back downstairs pulling on some trainers as he went trying his best not to cringe. The Malfoys and the Dark Lord were in the lounge when he had finally got his trainers on, Harry began waving his wand his intricate patterns weaving his glamours around him, his features softened and his eyes dulled, the silky raven locks changed in to dead looking flyaway hair and his stature shrunk falling in to the famous Harry Potter he was to the rest of the world; he grimaced and paled his skin to a sickly colour, for a final touch he make himself unhealthily thin like he usually was when returning from the Dursley's. The Malfoys were looking at him in shock and Tom in slight distaste, not that he blamed him Harry looked awful.

"Glasses," Draco told him and Harry nodded conjuring the usual ugly glasses placing them in his face.

"Run through?" The blonde scion asked with a grin and Harry smirked even if it looked misplaced.

"Of course,"

"Harry, my dear boy, what happened." Draco asked in a scarily good impression of Dumbledore's kind grandfatherly voice. Before their eyes Harry's whole demeanour changed, he held himself slumped and submissive shaking slightly, his eyes wide and pleading filled with tears but with an odd glazed look, when he spoke Narcissa gasped in shock.

"I-I-I don't know headmaster," he shook his head furiously, his voice no longer the smooth cool tones, it was weak, small and shaky. Harry curled in to himself and carried on speaking.

"A-aunt Petunia sent me out for sh-shopping and when I got back the door was open. I went inside and i-i-it was a mess, blood everywhere and they were just led there." Harry was crying now looking at 'Dumbledore' begging for him to understand.

"Th-they were dead but I tried, I did, I-I had to try, there’re my family a-and now their gone. I- wha- its-" Harry swayed before collapsing in balls of tears.

"It's ok my boy," Draco chimed and Harry got himself under control slightly, his shoulders were still shaking but the sobs had stopped.

"It's my fault," he said in a dead sort of voice, "There dead because of me, I killed my only family."

"This is not your fault Harry, you did your best. You can understand why it is unsafe for you to continue your friendships with the Weasley's and Miss Granger."

"Of course headmaster," Harry answered hollowly, "Keep them away from me, it's too dangerous."

"I'll let you rest," Harry looked up at Draco with a smirk, he had stopped shaking and crying, the blonde laughed and motioned around the lounge, both Malfoy elders were gaping at him and Tom was blinking in a state of shock.

"And that is the golden boy mask." Harry told them with a grin, he pulled himself up.

"How-, what-," Harry patted himself on the back; he had made Lucius Malfoy speechless.

"That was something else." Narcissa made up for it.

"I know I'm good." Harry shrugged and snapped his fingers.

"Do you have the blood?" Kreacher handed him a phial of muggle blood and disappeared with a crack, Harry ran it over his hands smearing it on his face and hair, he rubbed some down his shirt and vanished the phial.

"Finished, now I have to leave, I'll contact you about the goblins." Tom smirked in a way that raised questions in Harry's mind but he didn't have time to ask them which the man knew.

"I hate you." Harry muttered to him and apperated away forgetting he wasn't supposed to do that, landing in an ally he muttered an apology to Lucius and began stumbling his way to the Leaky Cauldron. Harry fell in and rushed up to the bar tugging his trunk making it look heavy even though it had a feather light charm on it, he immediately caught a few peoples attention being covered in blood and Tom the barman looked up.

"What in Merlin's name happened?" He gasped.

"I need a room, please," Harry begged desperately and the bar man nodded hurriedly.

"Room 10," he ushered the 'panicking' teen up the stairs and in to the room, Harry began pacing furiously muttering to himself and wringing his bloody hand.

"Shall I call the headmaster?" Tom asked him unsure and Harry nodded quickly.

"Please, I need him." Harry hopped the bar man repeated those words to Dumbledore; it would make the man watch him less. Not ten minutes passed before there was a knock at the door and Albus Dumbledore swept in, in ghastly orange robes, Harry questioned the mans sanity.

"Harry, my boy, what happened." Harry had to forcefully bite back the laugh because of those words, Draco's interpretation of Dumbledore was spot on. Harry's acting was perfect, he did the exactly the same as in Malfoy Manor and Dumbledore lapped it up comforting him when he broke in to sobs.

"You have been through a great ordeal but you are safe now Harry, just rest. Tom has said it's ok for you to stay here until school begins in two days. I only ask you don't leave the pub." Harry nodded gratefully, he hadn't expected anything else.

"Thank you sir," Harry told him in a grateful voice with his head bowed, "I was just so scared." Dumbledore nodded in understanding.

"I will see you on September 1st, after the feast if you could wait behind you will be escorted to your rooms." Dumbledore told him before leaving, Harry stayed rooted to the spot until he could no longer feel the headmaster or his magic, he then swept the room for spells and surprisingly found none, not even hidden ones, only then did he relax and let out a groan he had been holding in. In all honestly he didn't mind staying in the room until school, he didn't want to deal with the attention he was going to receive from the public after the scandal at the ministry, they were calling him the chosen one now something that had actually made the Dark Lord laugh, it had scared all the Malfoy's out of their wits much to Harry's amusement. He decided against dropping his glamours no matter how much he wanted too, he did jot down a note to Swift and Paws to say he arrived safely and he wrote to Manic and Panic congratulating them on whatever they did.

Harry led back on the bed and read, he ordered lunch making sure to check it before eating and went back to his book, he had found a perfect shield to place on himself that would protect him and his friends, it was a parcel spell and would save them from all obliviate attacks, compulsions and even the imperious, it didn’t counter potions but they were working on that. It was a shame he couldn’t practice it before the train tomorrow, he made a note of it though and continued reading, Tom knocked and reminded him of dinner and Harry was shocked the day went that quickly.

 


 

 

Remus Lupin was a strong man. He had been bitten by a werewolf at a young age and survive, he endured the monthly transformations with and without the wolfsbane potion, he fought hard in the first war for the light despite he himself being a dark creature, he got through the pain of losing two of his best friends, his cub and the thought of the man he loved betraying him in the worse possible way.

He had also got through the shock of discovering that Sirius had been framed and he had the joy of being reunited with his love and seeing and teaching his cub, he managed through the shock and horror of discovering the person responsible for his best friend’s death had returned from the supposed death and had nearly killed his cub but this time he didn’t know if he was strong enough to get through the latest blow.

Sirius, his friend, his love, was dead.

In the battle of the ministry, where Harry had been tricked by Voldemort in to retrieving the prophecy, Sirius had fallen through the veil thanks to Bellatrix Lestrange. Remus Lupin was a strong man but there were only so many things one can take. He had spent the time since the incident in a zombie like state, he was so oblivious he didn’t even feel the pain of the transformation that month but he remembered howling for someone who would never return to him. Remus truly believed the only thing stopping himself from jumping through the veil to be with his family and love was his cub. Harry, sweet, strong, powerful and smart, Harry. The boy was alone and Remus couldn’t leave him out of his own selfishness; not for his own needs.

Although Remus was in a zombie like state Moony wasn’t and he could feel something in the air so he kept his sense alert at all times, he noted that there was a lot of talk about his cub and how he had been separated from his pack, Moony didn’t like that. Remus dragged himself to the emergency order meeting and sat in the back corner waiting for Dumbledore, he owed a lot to the headmaster but there was something missing and Remus couldn’t put his finger on it. He didn’t care much to what Dumbledore was saying until Harry’s name was mentioned, Remus’ attention was full on for the first time in a month as Dumbledore explained that their may be something wrong with his cub, the urge to growl had to be fought down hard.

“I want Alistair and Remus to go and check on him tomorrow.” Remus nodded immediately, he had to make sure his cub was as safe as possible with those awful people. He went straight back to where he was sat starring at the wall after the meeting, Remus jumped a mile when a house elf, that wasn’t Kreacher, popped in dressed in a neat suit.

“Dobby has letter for Mr Moony,” he squeaked handing over some rolled up parchment and popping away, the first thing both Remus and Moony noticed was the letter reeked of his cub, he all but ripped it open.

 

Moony,

Do not mention what you do not smell tomorrow, it’s in your best interest and mine.

 

It was from Harry, but how did Harry know what was happening tomorrow? What wouldn’t he smell tomorrow and why would he mention scent? Remus was confused but as it was from his cub, who he would protect with his own life, he would listen and hopefully tomorrow he would understand more but for now he had wall to stare at. In the morning he went with Mad eye to number 4 Privet Drive and immediately knew something was wrong, the door was open and everything was too silent, they moved swiftly and froze at the sight. Blood was the current dĂ©cor in the house and the three Dursley’s were clearly dead after some torture Remus noted with disinterest, they swept the house for signs of magic but came up clear meaning it was a muggle attack, a vicious one, but a muggle one.

Remus took a deep breath, he didn’t want to panic because Harry wasn’t here but it was hard not too, it was then he realised he couldn’t smell any traced of Harry at all, the teen would have had to been constantly away from the house for about a month for that to happen, he was about to mention that fact to Moody when he froze remembering the letter from Harry yesterday. ‘Do not mention what you do not smell tomorrow’ it had stated, Harry knew he wouldn’t be able to smell him when they came here, how the teen knew they were coming Remus had no clue but Harry had a lot of secrets.

Going solely on what his instincts were telling him, Remus stayed quiet and continued to scan the house with Moody until the ex auror had deemed it ok to leave, they rushed back to HQ to alert the order that Harry was missing. The news had caused uproar and in the panic Remus was sure he was the only one who noticed the smirks exchanged between Ron and Hermione and he was sure that he was the only one who noticed the look of complete concentration on the witch’s face as she chanted quickly under her breath; he wouldn’t mention it. Moony wasn’t the only one who could feel it now, Remus could feel the change in the air and he couldn’t help but believe it would change everything. Remus Lupin was a strong man and he would get through whatever was coming as long as his cub was safe.

 


 

 

On September 1st Harry was practically buzzing to get out of the grubby pub, turned out there was only so much he could read before needing to see the light of day and 3 full days was enough for him. He donned his Gryffindor cloak and left the room, unfortunately he wasn’t prepared for the mob of reporters that had found out where he was staying, he ducked and ran for his life back up the stairs, there was no way in hell he was getting through them and to the train on time. Tom kindly allowed him to floo to the platform where, thankfully, there were no reporters just curious kids and their parents.

Harry hurried on to the train discreetly nodding to the Malfoys as he passed, he found a compartment near the back and settled for a silent journey, it was too risky for Ron or Hermione to chance a pop in just in case anyone saw. Harry saw them out of the window with their own glamours in place and looking flushed, he chuckled quietly, he could tell they hated it as much as he did and for that he was thankful for, his friends were the best anyone could have, the things they had been through and still they were stuck together like glue; nothing would change that; ever. The whistle blew and there was a rush for everyone to get on the train before it pulled away, Harry sat back with a sigh, this was it, he just knew this year would change the entire wizarding world and he would be in the centre of it, surprisingly Harry couldn’t wait. As he was read out Harry led back with his eyes closed letting the clicks of the train soothe him in to a light doze.

Around an hour in to the journey Harry awoke to hear someone entering his compartment, he was up with a wand to their throat within a second, Harry released a sigh when he registered it was only Luna.

“I'm sorry, I should know better.” She told him seriously gracefully sitting down on the bench across from him, Harry gave a sharp nod.

“You should.” He felt no need to hide around Luna as she wasn’t hiding around him.

“I believe I could be of some help to you.” Luna stated and Harry smirked, he loved this Luna, crazy Luna was great for laughs but the true Luna Lovegood was something to be admired, she reminded him slightly of Narcissa.

“I know you can which is why you are still here with your memories in tact, I have no doubt that you are powerful, you would never betray me and being yourself you probably know what's going on anyway.” Harry added the last part with a grin, Luna returned the grin.

“Of course, did have fun playing games Harry?” She asked lightly and Harry chuckled.

“Most definitely Luna,” She shook her head and sat back, they fell in to a comfortable silence which Harry enjoyed, human company wasn’t something he craved in general but he did like to be around certain people.

“Do you have any other solely trusted?” She questioned out of the blue, the trolley had came and gone and Harry was sucking on a blood pop as was she.

“Swift, Paws and Bleach currently in the school, I cannot give a veritable opinion on others as I have to get reacquainted with everything.”

“Out of school?” Harry smirked.

“Many but at the same time few.” He replied evasively, his flaky answer was lucky because the compartment door slid open to reveal Ginny Weasley, it took all of his control not to retch or curse her and Luna seemed to know by her covered smile.

“Oh Harry, here you are, I've been looking for you everywhere, I was so worried.” She simpered and Harry bit his tongue in effort to stop the scathing reply, he shifted uncomfortably sagging a little.

“Sorry Ginny, just-just preoccupied you know?” He said with a small weak smile, she positively beamed at him.

“Of course I understand, I just thought I would say hello and to say I'm here if you need anything.” She was obviously trying to sound sympathetic but it was bad, she left with what Harry supposed was a sultry smile towards him and that was it, Luna shut the door and warded it before bursting out laughing, Harry allowed the disgusted look to come to his face as she rolled with laughter.

“Oh Merlin,” She gasped clutching her sides, Harry glowered at her but she didn’t stop.

“That was the funniest thing I think I have ever seen.”

“I have to deal with that this year.” Harry groaned in self pity, Luna patted his head in mock sympathy.

“Poor baby, you will have to see a friend to cheer you up.” She gave him a knowing look and he smirked.

“I do not know what you speak of Miss Lovegood.” The announcement sounded telling them they were nearly there, Luna came in her robes and Harry just flicked his wand to change his clothes. They got out of the train and managed to get a carriage together without being noticed, somehow Draco slipped away from his friends to get in to their carriage so he could speak to them.

“Potter,”

“She’s fine,” Harry waved him off and Draco allowed a smile.

“I thought so but you cannot be too sure with who is pulling the strings,” He said and Harry nodded, “Two things, I want to see the actual memory and I have a message.”

“You can see the memory when we have everything in my rooms sorted, what's the message and who’s it from?” Harry was curious to who needed to send him a message through the Malfoy scion.

“How many people would send a message through me prat,” the blonde rolled his eyes and Harry admitted he did have a point.

“So what does he want?”

“I've been told to tell you; do not choke.” Harry’s eyebrows shot up.

“Excuse me?”

“That’s it; Do not choke. I'm confused too but that was it, he seemed rather amused about something. You’re a bad influence, he laughed, the Dark Lord actually laughed because of you and Harry I am not ashamed to admit I was terrified.” Draco said it so seriously that Harry cracked up, the blonde was ever the dramatic.

“It wasn’t that bad.” Harry got out between laughs.

“Harry, how many times have you heard of a Dark Lord laugh?” it was meant to be a rhetorical question but the raven head answered anyway.

“Quite a few actually, he has a rather wicked sense of humour.” Draco and this time Luna looked at him as if he had completely lost it.

“What?”

“Yo-, never mind, just do not choke, whatever that means.” Draco left with one last roll of his eyes, they were at school now and Harry mentally prepared himself, he slipped in to the golden boy mask easily as he exited noting Luna slipping away without notice. The great hall was as grand as ever but he kept his head down as he walked quickly to the end of the Gryffindor table, when he was seated his eyes did the usual sweep of the staff table, he was looking for the new defence teacher when he suddenly understood the message Draco had given him. Harry began violently choking on air in utter disbelief; it was simply not possible he thought sucking in a sharp breath through his nose. Harry would recognise that arrogant smirk anywhere, on any face, the Dark Lord was sitting, rather grandly if Harry were to point out, in the defence Professors seat, the man had gotten himself appointed as the DADA teacher by Dumbledore.

Harry’s mind was completely blank with shock, how in Merlin’s name Tom pulled this off he had absolutely no idea, Harry wanted to break down in hysterics about the irony and then scream about the completely insane idea. He chanced a look at the table again to find Tom, in his disguise of light sandy hair, silver blue eyes, less sharp features and yet still managed to look devilishly handsome at the same time, looking at him with a raised eyebrow and a smirk, there was a promise in that smirk that sent a shiver down Harry’s spine for very good reasons. One thing Harry was sure about; the man was a complete bastard. He glanced up the table and spotted Ron and Hermione sat a distance up from him, he caught Ron's eye to make sure he had his attention before turning away. Harry rubbed his arm where the basilisk had bit him in second year casually looking around the hall, he then tapped his head making it look like an itch, finally he drummed his hand on the table and withheld a smirk when Ron immediately turned to Hermione muttering in her ear, they both turned to look casually at the head table and Harry knew they had seen what he wanted by the stiffening of their shoulders. In the same casual manor they turned away, he could clearly see the same thing in their eyes as he was thinking; what the fuck.

The great hall doors swung open and the first years walked in led my McGonagall, Harry tuned out the sorting because he honestly didn’t care and instead turned to scour the hall, he felt two sets of eyes on him and he knew exactly who they were so he ignored them. The sorting finished and the headmaster rose to his feet, Harry kept his face relatively blank but admiring when he looked up at the man.

“Welcome, welcome to another year at Hogwarts.” The mans arms were open as if he wanted nothing better than to hug all of the students, Harry cringed at the thought.

“A few start of term notices before we get befuddled by out excellent feast.” He announced cheerfully, “You will have noticed, of course, that Professor Umbridge is no longer with us.” A huge cheer erupted from the entire hall even they Slytherins were on their feet with many of the staff, Harry grinned as Tom blinked, he did say Umbridge was hated.

“Yes, I am sure she will be missed,” Harry covered his snort, “Which is why is am please to announce the new defence teacher Professor Drield.” Tom rose elegantly with a nod and there was rather enthusiastic applause, mainly from then female population, and he sat back down, Harry mentally scoffed at any of them catching his attention while he was around then he blinked at that; where had that come from? Then he realised the name Dumbledore had used and rolled his eyes, the man was really fond of his anagrams.

“And on a more subdued note I would like to remind everyone that while inside these halls you are safe, there is a war raging outside so I implore you to take your studies seriously in these dark times.” It took everything that Harry was to brutally crush the hysterical laughter that wanted to spill out, he locked his jaw firmly and ducked his head so no one saw the glowing hilarity in his eyes, they had the Dark Lord sat at the table and they were worried about the outside world.

“Now, I do not want to keep you from your food any longer; let the feast begin.” The tabled erupted in food but Harry wasn’t interested, he was still in slight shock in finding out the Dark Lord sat at the head table, he picked at his food like he usually did after coming back from the Dursley's and stayed silent. The feast seemed to last forever and Harry was starting to get impatient when the last of the pudding disappeared, Dumbledore rose again to give the usual notices and dismissed them, there was a mass of scraping of benches and people flooded for the doors. Harry stepped back and walked toward the head table where Dumbledore was stood waiting for him and when the last of the students had disappeared the head master turned to Harry.

“I've placed you on the same floor as the Defence classroom because I've asked Professor Drield to tutor your privately.” Harry internally scoffed at the irony and blinked a few times before nodded tentatively.

“Ok sir,” He answered quietly, he could practically few the Dark Lord’s amusement.

“Now, the rooms are yours so you can do what you wish within reason and if you have any more dreams I want you to come straight to me. I don’t think Occlumency would be the best idea.” Harry bit his tongue to stop the snort wanting to escape.

“Yes sir,”

“If you will follow Professor Snape, he will take you to your new accommodation.”

“What?” Harry asked before he could stop himself, Snape sneered at him.

“Sorry,” Harry ducked his head and then cursed in his mind when he actually felt the Dark Lord’s amusement, Snape swept out of the room in his usual billowing style and Harry trailed behind him. As soon as he was free of the hall he straightened himself up and picked up speed, he was muttering himself as he went and he watched with amusement as Snape’s eye began to twitch.

“I cannot believe that bastard,” Harry hissed to himself and Snape span to face him.

“Who in Merlin’s name are you muttering about Potter?” Harry merely raised eyebrow, he went to speak but was beaten to it.

“That would be me Severus,” Tom came in to view with his ever present smirk in place, Snape bowed.

“My Lord,”

“You-, wha-, wh-, ju-, argh!” Harry threw up his hands and glared at the Dark Lord.

“Speechless, it’s a first.”

“You’re such a bastard,” Harry told him, “How are you even here?”

“Through Dumbledore’s lack of judgement,”

Harry shook his head.

“And you thought no warning was necessary?”

“I passed a message through the Malfoy boy.” Tom was looking entirely too cheerful.

“Yes, do not choke. Thanks for that by the way. I still cannot believe you placed yourself here, when I said someone in the ranks I didn’t mean the leader.” Harry pointed out and Tom shrugged, he actually shrugged, it was strange.

“Who else to gather information than myself, besides, Harry Potter needs specialist training to defeat the Dark Lord.”

Harry rolled his eyes.

“The thought is looking more appealing.” Harry muttered.

“Ah Snake, then how could we continue this lovely game.” Harry smirked.

“You have a point,”

“You look strange.” Tom stated and Harry scoffed.

“Coming from the person who emerged from a cauldron looking like half a snake?”

“TouchĂ©,”

“At least I don’t have to pick the wards to get to you now I suppose,” Harry gave a long suffering sigh.

“You are entirely too dramatic.”

“HA, hypocrite. Now are you going to allow me to go to bed now?” Harry saw Tom open his mouth for a smart innuendo and cut him off. “Don’t even think about it, we do have company.” Harry had just remembered Snape was still there, Tom blinked and turned to Snape.

“Ah yes,” Harry snickered at him getting distracted knowing it would have been worse without the glamours, Tom glared at him. “I will escort him from here.” Tom dismissed him with a wave of his hand.

“Of course My Lord,” Snape’s black eyes were glittering in confusion as he turned and left, Harry rolled his eyes and carried on down the corridor.

“Do you know where you’re going?”

“Yep, there’s only one place on the defence corridor for private rooms.” Harry stopped looking at a portrait with a grim, a wolf, a stag and a lily, Harry hissed venomously.

“I’m gunna kill him,” Harry snarled placing his hand on the portrait and sent a pulse of magic through it and it swung open. Harry stalked in and immediately swept the room for spelled, there were quite a few and Harry snarled to himself.

“Great lady if you could?” He asked quietly and was surrounded by a warm comforting feeling before it vanished and Harry smirked, he ran the test again and the room was clear and protected.

“The castle likes you,”

“Yes, she called to me and has helped me out of a few situations.” Harry waved his wand and let his glamours melt away, he waved his wand to switch his clothes and then he finally looked around. He was stood in a reasonably sized living room but the dĂ©cor was not for him, it was awful shaded of red and gold, he sighed.

“Greens, blues and black if you would?” He asked again and the room changed before their eyes, the walls were different shaded of green and black with a deep blue carpet that was very soft, the furniture was black leather and the fireplace changed in to dark wood. 

“Much better,” Harry sighed and flopped down on the sofa face down much to the Dark Lord’s amusement.

“I still hate you by the way.”

“Yes,” Harry pulled himself up with effort.

“This makes things easier with you on the staff,” it sounded weird for him to even say, “Dumbledore doesn’t suspect anything and Moony kept his word and didn’t mention my scent not being present, he will obviously ask you a lot of questions because of you privately tutoring me, I still cannot believe I got handed over to the Dark Lord.” Tom chuckled.

“I does make watching Dumbledore easier and it does make for a rather amusing turn of events when he his giving me hours with you alone to do anything as I please.” His voice turned seductive and Harry shivered.

“Hmm, I wonder what could happen in those hours?” Harry questioned innocently tilting his head to the side, he rose slowly walking over to where the Dark Lord was sat gracefully and began to circle the chair lightly running a finger across the pale skin of his neck.

“You wouldn’t be thinking about doing anything inappropriate to your new student, would you Professor?” Harry smirked when the silver blue eyes bled crimson and the rest of the glamour fell away, he definitely preferred the man like this.

“Because I can be a good student,” Harry continued, “Such a good student.” He wasn’t all that surprised to be pulled in to a searing kiss, he was straddling the man and again his hand had found their way in to the dark hair.

“I could issue detention,” Tom murmured lowly as his bit Harry’s neck, the teen hummed, “To punish you,” Harry’s grip tightened considerably and he sucked in a sharp breath, in retaliation he rolled his hips and Tom hissed before claiming his lips again much more rough this time, Harry knew the man wouldn’t wait much longer. The teen pulled himself up with a smirk at the dark crimson eyes watching him, he stepped back as the Dark Lord rose gracefully.

“I will have you at my side,” was his last words before leaving and as Harry trudged up to his room he couldn’t help but agree.

 XD

 

Chapter Text

 

Of Lies and Deceit and Hidden Personas,

Parseltongue

Chapter 6

 

Of course he would have potions first day back Harry thought grumpily; they always seemed to have potions on a damn Monday. He ate his breakfast silently contemplating his behaviour in the next lesson; everyone would obviously know he could brew or he wouldn't be in the class but if he should show the ease to which he could brew. They had not discussed their actual class work in the meeting, Harry decided to perform so he was one place under Hermione minus defence, where the top spot was his by a long shot, he was expected to excel at defence and as he was being tutored Dumbledore would expect him to be good.

Snape wasn’t likely to speak to Dumbledore with the Dark Lord watching him so closely, another bonus of having Tom in the school he supposed. He was disappointed, he didn’t have a lesson with Tom until tomorrow and he was actually looking forward to see the man teaching. With a sigh, he pulled himself up to go to potions, Harry was hoping Snape paired him with Draco out of spite like he usually did, that way he could have a decent conversation. The route to the Dungeons was the same as usual, dark and damp, he arrived first out of the potions classroom but that didn’t last long when the Slytherins arrived, only Malfoy, Nott and Zabini made the class, he nodded to Malfoy with a smirk and the blonde returned it.

Harry wasn’t surprised to see only Ron, Hermione and Dean coming down from the Gryffindors, only no one from Hufflepuff, and Padma from Ravenclaw. Snape threw open the door in his usual fashion and ordered them in, Harry immediately went to the back of the classroom and sat down, the register was called and Snape stood at the front.

“This year you will be working with a partner, this person will be for the entire year and any complaints you can leave.” Here Snape looked at him and Harry was tempted to roll his eyes, it was obvious who he was going to be with.

“Weasley and Nott, Granger and Zabini, Thomas and Patil, Malfoy and Potter, pair up now.” Harry threw a pointed look at Malfoy stating he was not moving and the Malfoy scion rolled his eyes and moved to the back.

“You’re impossible,” He muttered and Harry hid a grin.

“You didn’t expect me to willingly go closer to Snape did you?”

“He is my godfather you know.”

“Yeah, and he hates me. I would offer my godfather up for insult but Dumbledore saw to it that I no longer have one.” Harry pointed out.

“Such a pleasant man,”

“That he is,”

“You will begin with antidotes, come and collect a phial and begin,” Snape barked and there was a scraping of stools.

“I'm guessing we can't just hand him a bezoar?” Harry asked.

“You could but I'm stepping back and watching as he takes that one in.” Draco muttered.

“Ah well,” Harry walked up to the front of the classroom and picked up a potion with a sickly looking yellow potion in, something he noted never to drink no matter what it was.

“Whatcha think, funny looking enough?” Harry questioned handing it over.

“We have to work out what it is, then neutralise it.”

“I know,” Harry waved his hand over the phial, ghostly lettering appeared above; Decaying Draught.

“There,”

“Where did you learn that spell?”

“Ah, now that is an interesting question, I have one for you, how do you begin neutralising a Decaying Draught?”

“Nicely defected,” Harry grinned, “Well the key elements are Moonstone and Ashwinder eggs.”

“So, crushed unicorn horn, chopped Aconite, Lunar leaves and sliced Asphodol Root?” Harry suggested and Draco nodded, they began preparing the ingredients, the blonde poured the potion in to their cauldron and added the Aconite first, Harry then sprinkled in the unicorn horn while stirring and watched as the potion dulled to a faded orange, next came the Asphodol root in pieces allowing the potion to go purple and finally the 6 Lunar leaves. They kept stirring every 30 seconds letting the potion come to a boil before taking it off the heat, with the final stir it settled on a pleasant rose colour.

“Not bad Malfoy,”

“Same to you Potter,” They bottled up the potion and took up to Snape, the potions master looked at them in surprise.

“Can I help you Mr Malfoy, Potter,”

“Finished,” Harry handed over the potion.

“Well done Mr Malfoy, your influence is clearly productive.” Harry’s eyes flashed.

“I'm pretty sure it was a joint effort.” Harry stated his voice hard.

“Potter your previous performance begs to differ,” Snape sneered and Draco stiffened next to him as Harry’s magic gently leaked out.

“And yet I got an O in my exam, I wonder what was different in the exam compared to the classroom?”

“You insul-,”

“I would advise you not finished that sentence Snape, it’s really not in your best interests.” Harry’s magic was wound tight and his eyes were glowing bright AK through his glamour in the limited light of the dungeons, the raven head threw Snape a warning look and went back to his seat.

“You’re lucky everyone else was too busy on their own work to see or hear that.” Draco muttered.

“He shouldn’t antagonise me, if he had any sense he would leave me alone, especially after last night.”

“What happened last night?”

“He saw me speaking with Tom, and he knows who Tom is so one would think he would have used logic but apparently not, it is, after all, to much to ask by the looks of things.” Harry was the first one out of the door at the end of the lesson, he headed to transfiguration with the other Gryffindors and McGonagall was already there. Harry was actually interested in the lesson, they were learning about animagus’, of course he Swift and Paws already had their forms but it was a good topic to start on, they were working on a project again but this time alone.

“When I call your name I want you to come to the front and I will cast the spell to reveal if you have the ability to become an animagus. If you glow blue you have the ability, if you glow yellow you do not and if you glow red it means you are already an animagus which of course none of you will be.” Harry’s eyes widened slightly and so did Ron and Hermione, they had 2 forms the same as Harry but he had a parcel animagus form too which he found first which gave him the name Snake. Harry was tense when Hermione’s was called, the witch stepped up and as the spell hit Harry nearly dropped his wand when the spell glowed blue, Hermione’s eyes flashed in triumph and sat back down. A sheet of parchment appeared on the desk in front of him,

Wrap your magic around you.

Harry blinked before hiding a smirk; that was easy, he vanished the sheet and have a short nod as he walked passed on his name; he closed his eyes and wrapped his magic around him in layers.

“Congratulations, Mr Potter,” McGonagall said and Harry allowed a small smile to come forth as he went and sat back down, the rest of the lesson were instructions on what they had to do next so Harry didn’t really pay much attention until they were dismissed. Harry skipped lunch in the great hall and headed down to the kitchens to grab some food, he saw the elves make it so he knew it wasn’t dosed which he was thankful for, he relaxed in the kitchen with a sigh watching the elves work.

“Which elves clean my room on the defence corridor?” He asked suddenly.

“Tis be Flip sir, Flip and Winky.” Harry smirked at that, his elf was smart.

“Winky,” the elf popped to his side with a bow.

“What can Winky be getting Master Harry?”

“I want breakfast every morning at 7:30 made by yourself in your will using only things you have tested to make sure they are not dosed or tampered with although you are not to test them on yourself, test them with magic only. I also want all of my drinks tested to make sure they are clear and if you could ward my room against unwanted nosy people that would be great, nothing unless its mine, Draco, Hermione, Ron, Luna Lovegoods, the twins or Professor Drield’s magical signature is to be allowed in there or allowed access without my knowledge.” He asked her in low tones making sure she was the only one to hear; she nodded and popped away with a bow.

“Thanks for lunch,” He called as he left and made a few elves cry, Harry had a free period next so he went to the library, he has started to copy the books from they library last year and he already had most of them so he only bothered when he saw a book he knew he didn’t already own. He sat down and began Snape’s essay, it wasn’t that hard surprisingly but then he did have all of his memories in tact now. At dinner he sent a message to Ron to meet at the RoR at midnight, he was picking at his food when Ginny sat down next to him.

“Hi Harry,”

“Hullo Ginny,” Harry replied in a small voice, he really didn’t want to deal with this right now, Ginny placed her hand on his leg and he felt his scar begin to prickle; Tom wasn’t happy.

“Are you ok, you seem down.”

“M’fine, just a lot going on,” He shrugged and itched his scar which was beginning to burn, he chanced a look at the staff table to see Tom glaring murderously at Ginny. Harry wanted to smirk at that but refrained from doing so, he got up pushing her hand off.

“I don’t feel so good,” He muttered and left the hall, Harry felt his scar cool slightly as he walked up to his rooms, he nearly yelped when he was pulled in to the defence classroom and his lips were claimed almost immediately as his glamour dropped.

“You don’t like Ginny then,” Harry commented in a slightly breathless voice when he was able to speak again.

“What gave it away?” Was the sarcastic reply he received, Harry smirked slightly.

“Now, now, let’s not get possessive of someone who is not yet theirs.”

The kiss he was given left him questioning why he was waiting until the end of the week, was there any point in waiting really?

“Yet being the indicated word,”

“Is that so?”

“I always get what I want,”

a shudder ripped down Harry’s spine and the teen’s breath caught.

“Then you will have to wait,” Harry murmured in his ear and twisted out of his grip, he waved his wand reapplying his glamour and slipped out of the door, he released a groan as he went to his rooms; the man was impossible.


 

Harry threw on the cloak and pulled out the ordinary Marauders map, the corridors were clear so he snuck out and darted of to the 7th floor, he spotted Ron and Hermione running on to the same floor as him and he stopped opposite the portrait of the dancing trolls.

“Swift, Paws,” He whispered.

“Here Snake,” Hermione’s voice came from his left and he grinned under the cloak, he walked three times past the blank wall thinking of a room where they wouldn’t be found by anyone and the door appeared, they slipped in and vanished of the man, Harry locked the door just to be safe and took of the cloak just as his friends dropped their disillusions.

“Everything ok?” Harry asked sitting down in one of the arm chairs removing his glamour, they both imitated the notion each with a sigh.

“Yes, but I am already tired of it.” Hermione said and Harry nodded.

“I have to tell you something first,” Hermione looked at him and he frowned, “On the night the eyes and ears arrived Molly dosed your food Paws, you should remember it exploding.” Hermione’s eyes flashed.

“Do you know what she was putting in there?” Harry shook his head but snapped his fingers and Kreacher popped in.

“Do you have the potion you took from Molly Weasley?”

“Kreacher took this from the female blood traitor.” The old house elf croaked handing Harry the phial, he bowed and left with a crack. Harry read the scan from the bottle and his magic whipped out angrily, his hissed and the phial exploded spraying the remainder of the potion everywhere.

“Liquid Imperious,” He hissed and Hermione froze before exploding.

“She did what!”

“That would have had irreversible consequences. One dose too many or too much in one dose would have permanently altered your mind, you would have become a drone.” Harry explained harshly, Molly would be meeting an even more painful end.

“You don’t think they will try again do you?” Hermione asked worried, Ron was clenching and unclenching his fist apparently too angry to speak.

“Winky is watching my food, I can ask Dobby to watch yours.” Just then the little elf popped in.

“Master Harry is wanting Dobby for a job, Dobby is being only too happy to serve.”

“Thank you Dobby, I need you to watch Hermione and Ron’s food for tampering, after what they did at HQ it’s not safe.” Dobby nodded.

“Nasty woman putting bad things in Miss Mione’s food, Dobby will keep them safe sir.” He told them and popped away.

“That’s a relief.”

“They disgust me, my own blood are nasty scheming filth, and I could have been just like them.” Ron snarled.

“But you are not. You have stayed loyal to me and I will always be thankful.” Harry reminded and Ron nodded.

“It just makes me so angry that because of them we have to measure everything we do with precision just to make sure we don’t get cursed, hexed, spelled or dosed by the supposed light side. This is insane, it is only the first day back and it is already becoming a challenge, we have so much work to do and very little time and if we don’t we might as well dig our own graves.”

“I know, which means we have everything to work for.” Harry pointed out and they both nodded.

“Right, my rooms are on the defence corridor-,”

“Straight down from the Dark Lord, seriously Snake what the fuck?” Hermione burst out and Harry shook his head.

“I have no fucking idea Paws. I got a message from Bleach from him stating: do not choke and that was it. How he got himself appointed is beyond me.”

“I thought you discussed school and putting someone from the ranks as DADA.”

“We did and he said he was looking in to it, I knew he had the position filled but I never thought he would be here.”

“The irony is not lost.”

“I know but it gets better, Dumbledore has set up for me to have private tutoring with Professor Drield.” Both their jaws dropped before breaking out in hysterical laughter which Harry joined in.

“You were handed over to the Dark Lord.” Ron gasped.

“Oh Merlin,”

“My reaction, I had to lock my jaw to stop myself from laughing.”

“It makes it easier for us to sneak around, it’s not like our new Professor will tell Dumbledore.” Ron stated after he had calmed down.

“Exactly, I have the castle and Winky protecting my rooms and Tom is down the corridor. We need to get to the chamber before Gringotts so we can contact the bug for the first article and I know just which one I'm sending.” Harry told them with a smirk.

“Your-,”

“Yes. Straight for the heart; literally.” They mirrored his smirks.

“In other news, Ginny is set to make a strange disappearance if she keeps on coming on to me.” Harry said brightly and Hermione quirked her eyebrow.

“We have yet to fall or is there something you’re not telling us?”

“Oh no, we won't fall until Friday at the earliest but I think I might have over done the enticement, I mean if looks could kill Ginny would be dead 3 times over.”

“Snake,” Hermione sighed exasperated but Harry merely grinned.

“I had so much fun.”

“What is to be done about Snape?” Ron questioned and Harry scowled.

“He’s still a prick, he started on me today in potions with the usual scathing comments but I won't take it, I warned him but I doubt he will listen.”

“Most likely not, but with the Dark Lord here I do not think he will be reporting to Dumbledore.”

“He would be foolish to. Snape however, has never been one to use logic to help him.”

“True,” they agreed. Harry cast a tempus and sighed; it was 1:30am.

“Come on, we need sleep and I have it on good authority that our new Professor does not take well to tardiness.”

“I still cannot believe we are going to be taught by the Dark Lord.” Ron muttered as they got up and reapplied their glamours.

“It’s going to be strange.” Hermione agreed.

“And we have a double.”

“Tomorrow will be an interesting day.”

 


 

  

Harry was slightly groggy when he woke in the morning and he resorted in a shower to wake himself up fully, Winky had his breakfast waiting which he wolfed down before going to the great hall. He picked at his food keeping his head bowed but he stiffened when Ginny sat by him, the girl was already getting to him.

“Are you feeling better today, Harry?” she asked with her hand on his leg again, he shifted so it was removed and nodded.

“A bit, looking forward to defence to see what the new Professor’s like,”

“Hopefully, he won't be like Umbridge.” Harry nearly snorted.

“Hopefully,” he sat the rest of the time in silence and when it was time to leave he went quickly, Harry was the first person outside the defence classroom but was soon followed by Ron and Hermione.

“So weird,” He heard Ron breath and had to contain his laugh.

“The lesson hasn’t even begun yet, you don’t know, he could be a great teacher.” Hermione reasoned equally as quiet.

“Of course I am a great teacher Miss Granger, it is why I got the position over aurors that applied.” Tom’s voice was directly behind her and she squeaked in shock spinning to face him, Harry snickered because he was used to the man’s silent approach.

“I- uh,”

“Back to using the silent approach I see?” Harry asked with a raised eyebrow, he moved Tom’s attention to him to save his friend who looked as if she was on the verge of collapse.

“It brings me some amusement.”

“Sadist,”

“Did you expect anything other?” Harry rolled his eyes, the rest of the class arrived and Tom motioned them in, Harry, Ron and Hermione took their usual spots at the front of the class and Tom swept in shutting the door with a wave of his hand. He stood at the front leaning casually against his desk in such an easy manner, he had a small smile on his face as he looked around.

“Your previous teachings have been dysfunctional but anyone here who is here gained an E in their OWL.” Tom began and he held the class’ attention with no effort.

“I will not accept anything but the best effort in my class and if you believe you can get away with slacking then you are sorely mistaken, know now that if I do not find your work satisfactory then you will leave and won't come back.” Everyone knew that it wasn’t just words being spoken, it was a clear warning by the tone.

“Now, I will be leading this class on a practical basis and the theory will be done in your own time. You will receive an essay once a month, I do not see the point in numerous essays for the simple fact, if you chose not to learn the required material then you fail. I will be leading mock duels in this class as well as mock battles for real life situations because in the real world someone will not wait for you to be in the correct duelling stance.” Tom told them, he waved his hand again and pieces of parchment appeared on each desk.

“We will start with mock duels today and the name of the person you shall be facing, wands out and stand against the wall.” Harry looked at his sheet and contained a groan; of course the man would have him give a demonstration. The desks and chairs were vanished with a flick of a wand and a duelling platform appeared in the centre of the room, Tom stepped up and faced them again.

“I am sure by now you all understand the basics of duelling, but to refresh your memory I will give a demonstration, Ah, Mr Potter, why don’t you come and show your classmates how to duel with me.” Harry rolled his eyes but stepped up amongst the mutterings, he faced Tom who had a small smirk on his face.

“Rules, no dark magic and nothing that could cause seriously harm, first to lose their wand.” Harry nodded.

“Miss Granger, if you would.” Hermione stepped up and raised on arm, they bowed and turned walking backwards 7 steps before turning to face each other in stances.

“Go,” as soon as the word was said Hermione jumped down and spells flew, the class gasped at the spectacle before them as they watched Harry Potter duel their professor effortlessly, Harry on the other hand was having a great time, he didn’t raise a shield knowing that Tom would try and have him on the defence and he was using spells that were not usually associated with a duel, Tom was internally chuckling, duelling Harry in a light based duel was amusing, the teen was good at distractions sending inconsequential spells at him followed by actual spells. The duel lasted 20 minutes before Harry slipped and lost his wand, Hermione called it and they bowed before Harry’s wand was returned, the class broke in to applause and Harry flashed a tired grin, using only light magic was surprisingly tiring.

“That is a perfect example of a duel.” Tom waved his wand and the classroom expanded and more duelling platforms appeared.

“I want the winners to the right, the others go to the left, go.” The pairs jumped up to a platform and began duelling, Harry conjured up a comfy char and sat down much to Tom’s amusement.

“You realise you sent a levitation charm at me correct?” Harry grinned while watching the duels.

“Yeah, brilliant distraction and against anyone else it would have worked.”

“I have no doubt,” Tom walked of to actually teach and Harry watched his friends destroy their opponents, Hermione didn’t even give Justin a chance and Ron wiped the floor with Ernie. The victors were set against each other and when the final duel finished, Ron V Hermione, a champion emerged, Hermione, and she was set against Harry, they bowed and fell in to stances. Harry was first of the mark pushing her back immediately, they were duelling for just under 5 minutes when Harry threw in some distracting spells that tripped her up and he summoned her wand.

“We have a winner,” Harry nodded to her as they jumped down, the desks reappeared and they all sat down.

“For the last 10 minutes I want you to write down what you can do to improve your duelling style and why you think you lost a duel, if you finish it now you don’t have it as homework.” There was hurried scraping to get parchment and Harry raised an eyebrow but pulled out a sheet, on it he wrote.

How I can improve my duelling style;

Do not duel the Dark Lord, instead tell him you want him to fuck you over his desk making you beg for more.

Why I lost my duel;

I wasn’t on my knees


Harry smirked and folded the parchment, let the man react to that, he knew he was pushing the limits but he only had 3 days left. The bell sounded and the class rose placing their work on the desk before leaving,

“Mr Potter, Miss Granger and Mr Weasley, if I could have a word.” The Professor called, the trio sat back down until the class was gone and the door was shut then they scanned the room for spells and found none; they dropped their glamours.

“Do I classify as a decent teacher Miss Granger?” Tom asked with a smirk and she blushed.

“Don’t be mean.” Harry chided with a smirk of his own, “You’re hardly the first person on people’s minds for teaching material.”

“I don’t see why not.” Tom said and he received three blank looks.

“Really, it’s a mystery.” Harry commented dryly.

“Is everything for Gringotts set?” Tom questioned changing the subject.

“Yes, the 10th is the date Ragnok expects us.” Harry told him and then looked to Swift who swallowed but spoke clearly and calmly.

“We will need to get in to the chamber or it will be impossible, everything of importance is down there and we need to gather the timeturners and our information on Dumbledore. I've mapped out how it can be done and as long as we have the original map then it is possible.”

“I managed to take back the original from Molly, who had removed it from Harry’s things on the platform, now Harry has it again and have edited the prefect scheduling and patrol duties for that night so it works in our favour.” Hermione explained pulling out a sheet of parchment and handing it to Harry.

“You and Swift are patrolling second floor with,” Harry looked over the sheet and then smirked, “Professor Drield, who switched places with Snape, nice going Paws.”

“You did this on the first night?” Tom asked impressed and Hermione nodded,

“We had the meeting and I switched sheets and the switched them back before notice.”

“Snape is going to be a problem,” Harry pointed out.

“I have tried to keep him away from the second floor but he makes the dungeons his habitat so I can't do a lot about that.” Hermione frowned and Ron tilted his head.

“Bring Bleach and the twins in and if we need to use the dungeons make sure Snape is dealing with his snakes so we can slip buy, I’ll get on to them tonight. They are working on communication devises so it will give them a break.” Ron said and Harry nodded,

“Do it,”

“Oh and the plans to remove Umbridge are ready when you want them.” Harry’s expression turned sinister.

“Brilliant,” He turned to Tom with a sweet look.

“Fancy coming to torture an amphibian any time soon?”

“You really hate Umbridge,”

“Almost as much as I hate Dumbledore,” Harry agreed.

“Why will Snape be a problem, he will not report your activities to Dumbledore.”

“He hates the very fact that I breath, I warned him yesterday not to treat me like he does but I have the feeling he will not listen which will be a shame because I cannot afford to lose my temper.” Tom quirked an eyebrow,

“I see,”

“We will go Thursday,” Harry said and the others nodded. “Then will be able to ready the final plans before our trip.”

“Before you leave Harry, this is your new schedule for your private lessons.” Tom passed him a sheet and Harry’s eyes lit up, the first one happened to be set for Friday.

“I will be here.” Tom nodded and they got up to leave, Harry stopped and handed Tom his folded sheet, the man raised an eyebrow.

“My work for the lesson, just something to think about,” Harry flashed a smirk before slipping out the door waving his wand, just as he was leaving he heard a sharp intake of breath; Friday would prove to be interesting.

 


 

  

Everything was clear. Harry was stood under his invisibility cloak on the second floor just as Tom made his patrol, he fell in to step with him and continued down the corridor waiting for Ron and Hermione to approach. They can around the corner and Tom nodded to them,

“Everything’s clear Professor,” Hermione said in her best kissing up voice, Ron fought hard not to laugh and Harry covered his snickers, it had been a long time since he had heard that, the portraits were watching them which was why she was doing it.

“Good, check the second half of the left corridor and I will double back.” Tom told them, they nodded and walked off this time with Harry, the left corridor contained the girls bathroom and no portraits which is why as soon as the final portrait was out of sight they broke in to a run and dashed in to the bathroom. Harry pulled of the cloak and hissed open, and the sink sunk in to the ground, he called for stairs and the jogged down with Harry closing the entrance. Because of Dumbledore, the chamber was starting to get dirty again so he called Dobby and Kreacher down to begin cleaning again, he led the way in and in to the main chamber and down to the mouth of Salazar Slytherin.

Speak to me Slytherin, the greatest of the Hogwarts four. Harry shook his head, what was it with Slytherins and their huge egos, just look at Tom. The mouth opened slowly and they climbed in, the tunnel was filthy again so he told the elves to clean if quickly, house elf magic worked fast and it was clean by the time they reached the silver door of the rooms. Everything was exactly how they left it, there was no dust, nothing out of place and Harry grinned.

“Brilliant,” Hermione said looking around.

“We need to grab a few major things and go, tonight is not the night to scout everything we have down here.” Harry pointed out and they nodded splitting up, Harry went to his shelves, they each had a corner of the room where they kept their things. Harry had multiple shelves and the centre one was filled with thin black books with apparent swirls on them, it was really parseltongue, they had agreed that all the important information was written by Harry so no one could find out what is was; ever.

Harry kept all of the personal dirt they had on all of the people they had decided to look in to, they had files on Dumbledore, Grindlewald, nearly all the order members and the inner circle, they had Fudge, Umbridge and majority of the high ranking ministry officials. The books looked small but they had an unlimited amount of paper in them, Harry pulled Dumbledore’s down and copied the pages he wanted, he placed them in his pocket and turned back to the others. Hermione kept all their research in to spells and the information on the items they created, she was the perfect researcher and looked up all the spell and runes needed for anything, she kept on track of all off that and had a sheet of parchment she was beaming at.

“Good news Paws?” He asked with a smirk, she nodded.

“All of our research in to the wards surrounding the school and the chamber, also our ideas to what wards could be over the Gryffindor chambers.” She told him excitedly and his eyes lit up.

“I forgot about those,” Swift made a noise of delight. In his corner were their plans, the ways in which they could accomplish something and how it could be initiated. He also kept their creations and the potions they had stocked up on,

“Fred and George are brilliant.” He stated pulling out the eyes and ears of Hogwarts, he led it out on the centre table and they saw that the Headmaster’s office was now clearly linked up.

“They must have connected them to Paws’ runes.”

“I did leave them when they asked but I didn’t realise they would save us a job.”

“I've got the timeturners too,” He handed them one each and they slipped it around their necks.

“Now, Paws has the notes on how we created this, we need only copy it and blood lock them, these are something that can't get out.” Harry told them.

“Have you got our Gringotts files?” Paws asked and Harry shook his head, he went back over and pulled down 3 black books from the shelf above, they had put all their account information in to single books because it was easier.

“Gringotts is covered, information with the bug is covered and I’ll issue a meeting with her for the same day as Gringotts, it’ll be her best story yet.” There was absolutely nothing nice about Harry’s smile and the others smirked.

“Why do I have the feeling this story will rock the wizarding world?” Swift muttered and Harry smirked.

“It will definitely cause a stir.” They activated the eyes and ears and scoured the dungeons, Snape was patrolling as usual and the second floor was empty apart from Tom and, to their dismay, Dumbledore.

“What are they talking about?” Paws hissed and Harry turned up the volume.

Are Mr Weasley and Miss Granger supposed to be patrolling with you Martom? Harry scoffed at that.

“How does he not realise? Martom Drield, honestly,” Paws sighed and Swift snickered.

“I think he just likes to mock the Headmaster.” Harry agreed.

They are headmaster, I sent them to watch the left end of the corridor, why do you ask.

I have yet to pass them, I was merely curious. That was their cue to leave, they grabbed what they needed and ran back out of the chamber, Harry tossed on the cloak and slipped out first to check everything was clear, according to the map Dumbledore was on his way around.

“Paws, you take the eyes and ears and began to copy it, if you don’t have time send it to the twins. Swift, make sure everything is planned for the 10th, you both might want to review your accounts before we go, you know Ragnok is not going to be pleased.” Harry told them in a near silent whisper.

“Got it,” they answered.

“I’ll take the marauders map and keep general watch until the others are copied. Saturday we will have to meet again, we need to get reacquainted with our forms, its been way to long.” They nodded and walked down the corridor as Dumbledore turned the corner, Harry fell in to step to cover his own just in case they echoed on the stone floor.

“Ah Mr Weasley, Miss Granger, I was wondering where you were.” They both blushed and Harry knew an oscar award was coming up.

“Sorry headmaster,” Hermione muttered looking down, he saw Ron take her hand and she leaned in to him.

“The corridor was empty so, I mean we, I-,” Nice Swift, Harry grinned and Dumbledore smiled and his eyes began to twinkle double time.

“Ah yes, young love, such a precious thing.” He told them joyfully, they looked up at him sheepishly but with thankful smiles.

“We didn’t mean to lax on our duties sir, it won't happen again.” Hermione said rushed looking embarrassed to have to explain herself; brilliant.

“Not to worry my dear, I understand and I'm sure I can let this go.” He shot them a suggestive wink and walked off humming merrily, Swift gagged as soon as his back was turned and Paws looked disgusted.

“With that delightful image in my head, I am leaving you.” Harry told them, they shuddered and walked off, Harry skirted down the corridor and fell back in to step with Tom.

“I assume everything went well.”

From under his cloak Harry shuddered.

“Perfectly even though we met Dumbledore when he left you,”

“What happened?”

“I would rather not remember thank you very much.” Harry replied in disgust, Dumbledore winking at Ron and Hermione, it was enough to turn in anyone’s stomach, Tom shot him an amused look and Harry didn’t question how he knew where he was.

“Oh,”

“The headmaster winked at them after they pretended they were a couple.” Harry told him eventually, his tone clearly said he never wanted to see such a thing again, Tom’s lip curled in distaste and shuddered lightly.

“That was something I wish not to witness.”

“It is advisable you don’t.”

they had reached the defence corridor now and stopped outside his rooms,

“You have your first private lesson tomorrow." Tom pointed out and Harry pulled of his cloak to face him properly, apart from his own, there were no portraits in close vacinity to see him without his glamour.

"I know," he replied and Tom smirked, Harry was immediatly on his guard, there were much more than promises in that smirk.

"It seems we will have to go over the correct way to win a duel," Tom commented lightly as Harry's eyes dilated, his mouth had gone incredibly dry at the image his mind had created for him, Tom's smirk stretched. "Ah Snake, you didn't think I would let your little note go did you?" Tom asked rhetorically, he ran a pale finger along Harry’s jaw, the teen gained a glazed look before he snapped out of it.

“Oh no, you left me in a very awkward position Tuesday and again yesterday, I intend to repay that.” Tom told him, his voice dropping and Harry shivered, with one last burning look Tom vanished down the corridor,

“And Harry,” Harry’s eyes followed him as he spoke again, “Robes are not necessary.” and he was gone, Harry took a deep breath before slipping in to his rooms.

 


 

  

Harry was on edge all day Friday, Tom’s promise was clear on his mind and he was burning; it was the only thing he could think about, his mind kept bringing up hot images which was exceptionally bad seeing as he had potions and Snape was always such a pleasant person.

“You need to focus,” Draco hissed and Harry’s attention snapped around to the blonde.

“What?”

“You are completely out of it today and I've only just stopped you from killing us all 3 times, what is with you?” Harry blinked.

“Sorry, distracted.”

“Really, I hadn’t noticed?” Was the dry reply, Harry rolled his eyes, he focused on what he was supposed to be doing. Snape was swooping around in his usual bat like way and he sneered at Harry, the teen repaid the favour until Draco kicked him.

“You really don’t want to do that in the open.” He pointed out and Harry scowled.

“Oh I hate these damn masks, I really do.”

“Potter, instead of complaining about inconsequential things for attention, concentrate on your potion and try and not reply on Mr Malfoy to get you through this class.” Harry heard Draco groan silently next to him but that didn’t register in his mind. He turned to face Snape with an emotionless expression,

“Professor Snape, I would truly appreciate you keeping your needless opinions to yourself. Continuation to speak of things you could not possibly understand will only result in angering me further and making yourself look like a bigger fool.” Harry told him politely, insulting someone while being polite was always much more affective and by the narrowing of Snape’s eyes and the flush that was creeping up on the sallow skin it was working, Harry didn’t give him chance to comment because he continued.

“Your insistence on treating me with such unwarranted disrespect is really not the best course of action for you. I will not accept continual attacks on my person from someone such as yourself and it would be beneficial if you refrained from doing so.” It was lucky the bell went because Snape looked as if he was about to explode and that wouldn’t have ended well, Draco steered Harry about and in to a secluded corridor in the dungeons, the teen had just had a personality transplant in the potions classroom and only by the fact that Harry had kept his voice low and they were at the back did it go unnoticed by the rest of the class except Ron and Hermione; it was pure luck.

“You need to keep it together, that cannot happen again in the open because even your unnatural amount of luck will give out.” Draco warned and Harry growled.

“I will not stand for his continual attacks Draco and you cannot expect me too. You know what I'm like and you saw what I did to Nott and Parkinson, and I haven’t even finished with the last one. When I get to Gringotts, the Parkinsons will find themselves in a very unfortunate position.” Harry hissed and Draco nodded.

“I do not expect you to take them lying down, even as the golden boy you wouldn’t take that but you cannot go Snake on Snape in potions, if that gets back to Dumbledore your as good as dead.” Harry sighed and tugged at his hair.

“I’ll see what I can do. Why does he insist on being such a fucking prick?” Harry burst out furiously and Draco shook his head, his godfather was an unnaturally stubborn man, it would take a miracle for him to see Harry as Harry, if only he had come to the ball.

“Come on, I have Charms and McGonagall won't take well to a snake being late to her lesson.” Draco smirked and they spit up, Harry took a shortcut to the charms corridor and slipped in with the rest of the class. Now his concentration was definitely off now, with his anger at Snape and the thought of that night in his mind, Harry didn’t have a clue to what they were studying in that lesson, he trudged down to dinner and withheld a groan when Ginny fell in to step with him.

“Hello Harry,” She said brightly and Harry hitched on a small smile.

“Hi Ginny,” he really didn’t know how he was supposed to put up with her everyday.

“How are you feeling today, I know you must be taking the death of Sirius hard but I'm here for you.” She clutched on to his arm and laid it on thick, unfortunately for her, she had just signed her death twice over because she was hanging off his arm when they entered the great hall and Harry’s scar seared, also she had mentioned Sirius when she had helped plan his godfathers death.

“Thanks Gin, means a lot.” He got out through his teeth, only 5 people in the hall saw the dull green eyes pulse AK green and promise death as he sat down before the colour vanished. Dinner was a very long affair. Ginny prattled on about anything and everything and Harry did catch the pleased look in the headmasters blue eyes before he was masked, she was practically draped over him much to his disgust and the longer the meal went on the more intense the pain in his scar became. He would rather be anywhere else at that moment in time, the more she spoke the more his anger grew, she was supposedly being so sympathetic about everything that had happened but Harry could here the contempt and the sneer, plus the whole thing sounded rehearsed. Harry knew she wanted to come back to his room but that wasn’t happening, he didn’t want to bring homicidal tendencies to the Dark Lord quite yet.

“I have private tutoring this evening Ginny, I have to go.” He told her softly and she looked at him shocked for a second before smiling.

“Oh of course Harry, although I don’t see why, you are so powerful already.” She told him sweetly and he nearly gagged, instead he shot her a bright smile.

“Thanks,” she finally let got off him and sauntered off in what she clearly thought was a sexy way; it wasn’t. Harry shuddered and dashed off, he actually felt dirty and knew he would be taking a shower before going anywhere near Tom. When he stepped in to his rooms, for some reason, he wasn’t surprised to see Luna sat down reading with his clothes, she had decided he was wearing, hung from a door frame; he paid her no mind as he dumped his stuff, dropped his glamour and all but dived for the shower. When he deemed himself clean enough, Harry threw on some boxers and walked out in to the living room where Luna looked up with a sigh.

“If you weren’t gay and infatuated with a certain Dark Lord I would coerce you for myself Harry.” She told him unabashedly, Harry flashed her a smirk and pulled on the clothes she had picked for him. She had chosen dark crimson tight skinny jeans, a white muscle short sleeve t shirt and his charcoal boots which he tied loosely, she had given him a black oversized belt that she threaded through one loop on the right side before letting the rest hang loose, 3 black leather wrist ties for his left wrist and 2 silver long chains, one with a Celtic star on and the other was his parcel form in silver; a black mamba. Luna pushed him down on to the chair and ran her hands through his hair giving the silky strands a ‘just shagged’ and she bit his lip causing it to look bruised.

“I now deem you acceptable.” She told him holding up a mirror and Harry agreed with her statement; damn he looked fine.

“I love you Ray,” He told her and she raised an eyebrow at the new nickname.

“If I was to hasten to guess I would say your animagus form would be a white raven.” He explained with a shrug and she smirked.

“Unusually observant as always Snake,” He smirked in return, just then his portrait opened and the twins strolled in, he didn’t even bother to raise his wand because thanks to the castle and his trusty elf, only those he trusted or allowed could enter. The twins froze when they looked at him and he smirked when both sets of blue eyes darkened considerably and Fred licked his lips.

“Are you sure you don’t want to come to bed with us again Snake?” His voice was a little rough.

“Looking like that especially.” George finished agreeing.

“Sorry gentlemen, I already have something-,”

“Someone,” Luna corrected and Harry grinned, “Someone on the agenda tonight and after that I cannot see me sleeping with anyone else.” He was pleased when they blinked a few times and understood what he was about to do.

“Paws is going to murder you,” Manic warned but Harry shook his head.

“She said first school week was acceptable.” Harry said.

“Besides,” Luna picked up, “I doubt she will say anything when she sees the photos I've got off Harry tonight, damn you for being gay.”

“We will take a copy,” Harry just laughed at them, he cast a tempus and his expression morphed in to a predatory smirk, he summoned a blood pop and left the room; he doubted he would be back.

 

Chapter 7

Notes:

I'm not J.K
Warnings are in the tags so don't be surprised ^^
The first Tom/Harry scene <3

Chapter Text

Harry had chosen to wear his cloak for the short distance, the portraits would report how he was dressed to the headmaster for certain which would raise questions to where he had gotten the clothes. He felt Tom inside the classroom and his whole body lit on fire, Harry cursed the man and lightly knocked before slipping in, he snickered when Tom blinked looking at the door with a raised eyebrow, it did look strange to see a door open and close on its own accord. Harry walked to stand in front of the desk before removing the cloak and didn't hide the smug smirk that came to his face when crimson eyes darkened to a near black and he released a low hiss, Harry adopted an innocent look and shifted slightly.

"Good evening Professor," He greeted sweetly, Tom rose and slowly made his way over, each step perfectly measured out like a true predator.

"I've come about my work." Tom growled lowly and Harry couldn't repress the shudder that came forth, he bit his bottom lip sucking slightly, with wide innocent eyes, he looked like pure sin to the Dark Lord who only had one thing on his mind and that would be fulfilling his carnal desires. Harry didn't back away this time, he allowed himself to be pulled in to an almost frenzied, dominating kiss. Tom's hand ran greedily over him and when he squeezed his ass, Harry moaned in to the kiss, he trailed bits and kisses along Harry's neck and jaw before stopping by the heavily breathing teen's ear.

My patients has ran out Snake, Tom told him and Harry's pupils dilated with the use of parsel, he pulled the Dark Lord back in to a kiss.

I'm yours and it was in both senses Harry meant it, the week was enough to confirm that they should be with the dark. Tom's eyes flashed in triumph and Harry rolled his own, the man would never let this one go so before he could brag Harry kissed him and push so he was sat back on his chair with Harry straddling his hips. Harry tugged at the mans robes in a clear signal to remove them, he felt Tom smirk in to the kiss and hissed before vanishing them himself leaving the man in slacks much to his pleasure. In retaliation Harry found himself topless and pressed over the desk,

"Was it this desk or did you have another in mind?"

Harry didn't have it in him to form coherent words so he pushed everything from the desk in answer, he felt the room be warded and silenced tightly and the rest of his clothes were gone, he hissed as the sudden chill. Another wave of magic and Harry arched when he was thrust in to, the pain and pleasure ran through him in waves; he cried out and his head dropped back. The raw needy sounds ripping from Harry's throat drove Tom mad with want, he picked up pace and Harry dug his nails in to his shoulders.

"Ahh Tom," Harry gasped up and his prostate was hit, "Fuck, harder," Tom flipped him over so he was literally being fucked over the desk, Harry gripped the edge of the desk and arched up when his sweet spot was hit twice in a row, he was close to the edge by the heat coiling in his stomach.

"M-more," He begged, "gunna-," he was slammed in to before he came hard, the tight heat clamping down almost painfully on Tom was enough to send him over the edge, Harry slumped over catching his breath for 30 seconds before he felt Tom begin to kiss his neck and smirked.

Not finished Snake instantly hard again, Harry hummed in approval and Tom apperated them to what Harry presumed were the mans chambers, he would question the apperating ability in the morning because when he was pushed on to the bed he knew he was in for a long night.


Harry awoke draped over someone. It took him all of 3 seconds to remember the previous night and then he smirked, damn it if Tom didn't have an unusual amount of stamina, Harry stopped counting after round 4. By the slow, even breathing, Tom was still asleep, Harry grinned; he soon wouldn't be. He began pressing open mouthed kisses to the pale sculptured chest, he licked a nipple and Tom's breathing picked up signally he was at least semi awake, Harry continued the kisses and when he reached Tom's navel he dipped his tongue in; the crimson eyes snapped open. Tom pushed himself up on to his forearms to watch Harry's pleasurable assault, by now he was rock hard and watching Harry get lower wasn't helping. Harry locked on with the dark crimson eyes as he kissed down the perfect v; Tom had a body of a Greek god. When he reached the throbbing member his red lips curled in to a sexy smirk and he ran his tongue up the length drawing a low hiss from Tom, Harry's eyes sparkled in mischief before he took the entire length in his mouth. Any clear thought that Tom Riddle was having that morning went out the window and to a far away place, his head dropped back when Harry hollowed out his cheeks. Harry lightly dragged his teeth from base to tip gaining a sharp intake of breath, he worked Tom in all the right places causing him to tremble and before long he came with a shout collapsing back on to his pillow breathing hard, Harry drank everything down and sat up with a smirk.

"Morning,"

"Apparently," He was pulled in to a heated kiss and Harry made a note of that particular wake up call.

"So I know," Harry began, "Just how much are you going to brag?" Tom raised an eyebrow which Harry returned, the Dark Lord allowed a smirk.

"A lot,"

"Thought so," Harry rolled his eyes, he froze suddenly and his eyes narrowed.

"Fucking Bastard," He cursed.

"Dumbledore?"

"How did you know?" Harry questioned in disbelief.

"You use that particular insult for 2 people, myself and the old fool, as I am here it limits the options." Tom drawled and Harry shook his head, he hopped up and winced as pain shot up from his lower back.

"Merlin, did you plan on letting me walk normally at all today."

"No," Tom answered with a smirk, Harry began throwing on his clothes.

"He's currently outside my rooms and obviously I'm not there." Harry cursed the old man under his breath repeatedly much to Tom's amusement.

"Probably wanted to know how your first private lesson went." Tom pointed out making no effort to move from his current position of watching Harry.

"Well, I think," Harry said seriously, "What shall I say we covered." Tom smirked.

"I think we covered quite a bit last night." Harry shuddered in reminder, it was officially the best sex he ever had or ever would have.

"Not helping right now," He muttered pulling on his top.

"Think of Dumbledore winking," Harry immediately cringed.

"Oh Merlin, I'll have to have that image obliviated." Tom chuckled.

"Tell the interfering headmaster we went over duelling technique." Harry nodded he went to leave but found himself yanked back and pulled in to a searing kiss.

"Now you can leave." Harry rolled his eyes and slipped out, he snuck back in to the classroom to get his cloak and called for Winky to transport him to his room, he threw off his clothes and pulled on his old black pyjama bottoms with a baggy top, he glamoured himself and the room before trudging out and opening the portrait hole contratulating himself on not limping or wincing.

"Ah, good morning Harry, may I come in?"

"Morning headmaster, of course," Harry did his best to act surprised and stepped back to allow the old man through.

"Did I wake you dear boy?" Dumbledore asked cheerfully once he had made himself comfortable, Harry forcefully ignored the endearment and shifted sheepishly instead.

"Sorry, just, Professor Drield tired me out." By fucking me repeatedly Harry added in his head, Dumbledore nodded in understanding.

"So your first lesson went well." Harry nodded vigorously.

"Yes sir, the new Professor is brilliant."

"It was lucky, I was thinking about hiring young Nymphadora but I was uncertain because she would forfeit her position at the ministry. Then Martom arrived back from travelling and said he had heard on the position mentioning his desire to teach, it was a last minute interview and he seemed capable with no affiliation to the dark sector." Harry covered his snort of desertion by coughing, he quickly got a drink to sooth his cough and apologised.

"That's good, last thing we need is someone in Voldemort's camp working here." It took everything he had not to burst out laughing, for everything Dumbledore knew the man was dense, the headmaster chuckled.

"No, no we definitely do not need that. When he stated he had worked as a private tutor before I thought him the perfect candidate to teach you, with extra training you could become great Harry I have no doubt." Harry looked down with a blush.

"Thanks," He muttered 'embarrassedly',

"I just wanted to make sure you are doing ok Harry."

"I'm fine, concentrating on my studies you know."

"Good, good, and you are coming along in defence."

"Yes headmaster, I just hope this one doesn't try to kill me intentionally or unintentionally." Harry said with a grin and Dumbledore chuckled.

"You don't have the best luck with defence professors do you?" Harry shook his head and Dumbledore rose.

"It was nice speaking with you my boy," he said walking to the door, "If you need anything, do not hesitate to come to my office."

"Thank you headmaster," Harry answered gratefully, he didn't miss the old mans hand flick or the wave of magic as the charms settled, he waved the man off before scanning the room finding that the charms were already voided by the castle and cancelled both glamours. Harry walked calmly to his chair and sat down, it was then he fell in to hysterical laughter, he laughed until tears streamed down his face and that was how Swift and Paws found him.

"You ok there Snake?" Paws asked slightly alarmed, Harry took a few minutes to calm down and nodded with a grin.

"What did Dumbledore want?" Swift asked and Harry laughed again.

"He wanted to know how my first private lesson went." Harry said to them.

"Why the crazy laughing?"

"Dumbledore was telling me how Professor Drield had no affiliation to the Dark sec and I just pointed out that it wouldn't be good to have someone in Voldemort's came in the school." Harry explained with a straight face, Swift burst out laughing while Paws gaped in disbelief.

"He really has no idea,"

Harry shook his head and they all laughed, the twins and Luna strolled out from his bedroom and Harry blinked, he didn't even notice them.

"Why were you all in Harry's bedroom?" Paws questioned slowly.

"Harry didn't stay here last night so we made use." Luna told her simply, both of them turned to look at him.

"Where did you stay last night Snake?"

"Yes Snake-,"

"Where did you stay?" the twins put in with grins, Paws was giving him the look and Harry swallowed.

"Um not here?" He ventured, "I'm going to quickly have a shower." And he darted to his room before they could say anything, Harry groaned because he knew he couldn't hide in the shower, he wouldn't put it past Paws to drag him out; she had done it before. He threw on grey baggy joggers and a tight white top, he pulled on trainer socks and slunk out of the room. He fell in to his chair where they were all staring at him, he refused to shift under the 5 gazes and stared right back.

"So Snake," Paws began, "Where did you stay last night." By her tone she knew exactly where he had been.

"You should blame Ray, ask the twins if you don't believe me, she dressed me." Harry stated with a grin, the twins sighed wistfully.

"I drooled," Fred said,

"I would have gladly took anything he gave me," George agreed.

"It snapped his patients." Harry put in casually and she glared at him.

"Unless you were fucking glowing I don't care, where is your self control?" She snapped and before he could defend himself Luna shoved a photo under her nose, Hermione's lips parted in shock and she let out a 'oh' of surprise.

"If you weren't gay Snake, I would."

Swift snatched the photo.

"Damn,"

"I know I'm gorgeous right?"

"You have to have to be one of the vainest people I know." Paws shook her head with a grin and Harry was affronted.

"I am not,"

"I don't know Snake, you can be pretty vain." Swift agreed.

"Have any of you met Bleach?" He demanded.

"Oh we know Bleach is the vainest person we know."

"I am not vain, I don't need to be, I already know I'm hot, I don't need to check." Harry pointed out and Paws rolled her eyes.

"Ok so you're vain and your ego is off the scale."

Harry smirked at that.

"Can you blame me?"

No one gifted that with an answer.

"So we've fallen then?" Swift clarified gaining Harry another glare from Paws.

"Yeah I'm pretty sure last night decided that." Harry said sheepishly, "Tom's probably already bragging and before you take my head off Paws, you did say the end of the week." She sighed.

"I know, I still cannot believe how much of his attention you caught. What happened at the ball?" Harry looked at Luna and they both smirked.

"Snake was at his best." Luna told them and the others groaned.

"Of course he was,"

"Moving on to the reason why you are here." Harry interrupted before they could get on a discussion of his behaviour, they nodded and he sat forward.

"The plans for the 10th are lined up yes?" He looked towards Swift who nodded.

"Yes, we will live the day and then go back to the morning and slip out. We will each take a different way out of the castle to alienate suspicion, I'll take Honeydukes, I have Paws for RoR and Snake through the chamber." Swift explained and Harry tilted his head before his eyes widened.

"Fuck sake!" He burst out, "I cannot believe him, damn it all to hell."

"What is it?"

"Don't you think it's strange that I can get through any wards?"

"Yes but we just pushed it to the back of our thought, it only aided us." Paws stated.

"Yes but it should be impossible, we got out names due to our animagus forms but what if we had more than one?"

"More than one form? Don't be crazy Snake,"

"No, I got my form through a parcel transformation so I definitely have more than one but we can all fly, we all have one avian form and mine is a damn phoenix which is why I can get through wards." He was pacing trying to remember, Harry had his eyes tightly closed delving in to his memories to when they learned about their forms.

"Swift is a black Falcon which is how he got his name and that's his magical form because it has poisonous talons and can mould and move in with the shadows but his second form has 4 legs, its black like a dog but not, bushy tail with a grey tip-,"

"A fox?" Paws suggested.

"Yes, it's a shade fox. Now Paws got hers for obvious reasons and is a black leopard but her second form has wings, intelligent and rare, dark eyes and black, so black it can't be ordinary. Damn it, think Potter." He stopped still with his hands pressed to his temple and the room was silent as they let him think.

"Knight Eagle." He burst out making them jump, "Her second form is a Knight Eagle, it can travel with the wind, like a phoenix but different."

"That's all well and good but what about you?" Manic asked and Harry growled to himself.

"Black Mamba and a Black phoenix for sure but I cannot think of the final one, it has 4 legs and it so black the shadows are morphing around it like they are one." Paws gasped suddenly.

"Shadow wolf, I remember running in the forest with you because you kept bouncing through the shadows for fun." Harry grinned.

"Ha, fuck you Dumbledore."

"We need to meditate." Swift said and they nodded.

"I have to write to the bug and book a private room at the cauldron under a false name for the 10th, I'll have to see her before we go to Ragnok because we don't know how long we will be at the bank." Harry said.

"The first eyes and ears has been copied, it was easy to replicate with the full set of notes and a timeturner." Paws told him and he grinned.

"Brilliant,"

"We have worked out a commutation method that is undetectable but irreversible." The twins stated and Harry was interested.

"Go on,"

"Originally we thought of basing it on a mirror or parchment-,"

"But what if you can't reach it-,"

"So we decided that it needs to be something on the body-,"

"That didn't need to be activated by touch but by thought-,"

"So that left us with Runes." They finished.

"But how does that add up, everything would need to be connected and you would still need a base for the Runes." Paws pointed out and the twins smirked, Fred lifted up his t-shirt arm to reveal an intricate tattoo of his animagus form, wild cat, wrapping around his arm with its head on his collar bone."

"Its beautiful." Paws murmured in awe, she looked at it closely and gasped.

"Its Runes, all of it is tiny runes." They smirked.

"Your body is the base." They stated and Harry was impressed.

"This would explain the irreversible aspect, with the ink and magic it would never be removed." They nodded.

"Its built up with all the linking Runes, it couldn't be an open connection because that could be awkward and it couldn't be a mere thought to open it because that could also be awkward if you were to think the name and the connection opened." Fred explained.

"So we looked in to the Runes of the mirrors and twisted them as we do and figured out a stream of Runes that works perfectly. It acts like your flame messaged, the messages can be sent but until you accept it you won't get it which makes it less distracting. For example if I were to sent to Fred that I needed a potion and he was concentrating on something, he would get a alert in the back of his mind saying that there is a message waiting from Panic and when he was ready he would accept it and I would know its been received." George finished.

"That is impressive guys."

"Thanks, we decided to make tattoos instead of just the Runes because anyone with Rune knowledge would work out what the set of Runes do." They said and Harry nodded.

"I already have my design in mind, let me sketch it down and I'll have mine done last because its going to be the biggest and longest one." Harry stated.

"We will warn you now, it hurts like a bastard, it has to be numbed while its done but afterwards its painful and god help you if someone touches it within the first week or so."

"Just how bad it if someone touches it." they looked at each other before looking back at Harry.

"Nearly as bad as your crucio, mixed with the feeling of acid being poured on your skin and then add in open flames."

"It's the magic then, someone else's magic mixing with your own plus the person touching you." They nodded.

"I'll go first." Swift volunteered.

"Do you know what you want?"

"Yeah, an open winged Falcon on my shoulder and collar." They nodded.

"Ray can you draw them up?" Harry asked her and she nodded, Luna was an amazing artist.

"Good, what about you Paws?" She thought for a few moments before smiling.

"I want 4 paw prints going up my left writs." Luna had darted up in to Harry's room and brought down his drawing material to begin sketching out the designs.

"Tomorrow we will have to do them, they will need the night to settle before you can walk properly without wincing." Fred said and they nodded.

"Have you got timeturners?"

"Yup Swift gave them to us."

"Good, that way you can do them at the same time in different places."

"Yeah, that works better,"

"We will go get our equipment now and bring it over ready while you meditate and Ray sketches." Harry nodded and sat down cross legged in front of the fire as the others settled in to their own positions, he closed his eyes and soothed himself by the sounds on the scratching pencil, he slowly sunk in to his mindscape and was alarmed by the mess. Harry began the slow process of reorganising his mind and going over the memories he had lost, the information he gained was priceless and it made he want to murder Dumbledore even more, he found all of his animagus forms and brought them back to his core one at a time, he morphed in to a snake first then to the wolf then finally a phoenix before going back human. He felt his animals settle back within his magic as well as the abilities he gained from them, his magic swirled slightly to adjust before accepting them back and Harry smiled to himself, he delved in to his actual core and found it pulsing free and unobstructed, it had healed from its restraints and he was happy. Pulling back in to the real world he was Swift and Paws looking more relaxed and settled than before he grinned and they returned it.

"It's good to be back."

"Too right it is." Swift agreed.

"Only problem, it took over 5 hours to do so." Paws told them and Harry blinked.

"Ah fuck,"

"Pretty much,"

"I have found this spell that will protect us from pretty much everything that Dumbledore could cast on us so hold still." Harry waved his wand and hissed a few words in parcel, both of his friend shone bright green like his magical core before it settled in to their skin, he imitated the same thing to himself and smirked.

"Let the bastard try and charm us now."

"I've finished and the twins said be up and ready by 9 tomorrow." Luna handed them each a sheet of parchment and Harry was blown away. His was a stunning reincarnation of his animagus form, the scales were iridescent of the darkest black and when it moved they were of the deepest green, they eyes were his own killing curse colour shining with intelligence and cunning, the snake was reared up preparing for a strike, the fangs were slicked with venom, sharp and deadly.

"Ray its amazing," he breathed and she smiled, the others parroted his opinion.

"Its dinner, you need to go and I'll be down in ten." He told them and they nodded, Hermione left his new eyes and ears on the centre table and slipped out following Swift.

"So how was it?" Harry looked at her confused.

"I didn't choose a hot outfit for nothing Snake, I want details." She ordered with a pointed look, he grinned and threw himself in his chair kicking his legs over the arm.

"What details are you after Miss Lovegood?"

"How well did my outfit work?"

"You are now my personal shopper, dresser and stylist." He told her and she smirked.

"Well then,"

"Yes very,"

"What did you do to start everything?" Harry conjured up the note he gave to Tom in his defence lesson and her eyebrows shot up.

"And he let you leave?"

"I slipped out and then when I went back I played the innocent student, safe to say I could practically see his restraint snapping." She giggled and shook her head.

"You are terrible."

"How else would I solely capture his attention? It may be casual but there is no way that I'm letting this be the only time." She grinned at that.

"I didn't think you would, I wonder how long Ginny will stay alive?" Harry's expression turned sadistic.

"Hopefully not very long," He murmured, "Who have you got eyes for the twins, Mia or both?"

"The twins are hot and threesomes are great but you know they only have eyes for Bleach, Mia and me are just casual, I think she has an eye for Rabastan." Luna reasoned and Harry agreed.

"I can see you in a threesome with Rabastan and Mia." He eyes misted over before she grinned.

"Happy Birthday me." And with that she sidled on out.

"Oh and I've now moved in." She called before she was gone. Harry changed out of his lazy clothes and put on his uniform to go down to dinner, he wasn't surprise when Ginny latched on to him as soon as he sat down but it didn't make him happy about it.

"Where have you been all day Harry, I haven't seen you?" He smiled tiredly at her hiding his disgust.

"Sleeping, Professor Drield kept me at if half the night."

"Oh you poor thing," She simpered and he nearly retched, maybe if he kept her on his arm for the week Tom would kill her?

"Professor Dumbledore thinks that if I keep this up I could be great but I don't think so." He told her looking down.

"Of course you will be great, you already are and everyone will know when you defeat You-Know-Who." Harry grinned at the irony, the only way her would be defeating Tom would be in the bedroom on his knees, and Harry forcefully removed that image from his head before he got too distracted.

"I hope so," As predicted, as soon as Tom walked in to the hall his scar seared, Harry had to stop himself from wincing at the intenseness. His eyes flicked up to Tom who, just by his position, Harry could tell he was pissed, damn man was unhealthily possessive. Harry excused himself due to exhaustion and went to the owlery, he pulled out some parchment and a quill and wrote the letter there.

Rita,

I have the story of your career, meet in the LC at 9am, private room ask for James Black,

He didn't bother to sign it, if she didn't recognise the name by now then the whole task was pointless, even if she didn't know who it was she should know the name, Harry used the back corridors to get back to his rooms where Luna was sat curled up in her pj's reading on the sofa, he raised an eyebrow.

"You've actually moved in then?" He said falling in to his own seat.

"Yes, the people in the tower have got to me already and it isn't safe to have disappearances as of yet." She told him and he smirked.

"Why Miss Lovegood, you wouldn't want to attack your fellow students now would you?" He asked in mock horror, Luna looked aghast.

"Mr Potter-Black, I would never wish to harm another human being, surely you know this?"

"My apologies, I myself share the same view of harming others." The both went in to a fit of giggles and Harry shook his head.

"How do you intend to get away with this?"

"I'm Loony Lovegood, no one notices me if I don't want to be seen." She reminded him and Harry smirked.

"Well at least I've got company, although I don't know how we're going to be organising these sleeping arrangements." He said with a frown.

"I'll sleep with you like always." Luna stated.

"I don't mind," Harry agreed, "Homicidal, crazy, egotistical, possessive Dark Lord on the other hand probably would."

"I would have a problem with what exactly?" Luna jumped about a foot in the air and fell off the sofa, Harry burst out laughing and even Tom chuckled.

"Good Evening Miss Lovegood," she blushed and threw her book at Harry who deftly caught it with a grin.

"My Lord," She nodded and snatched her book back from Harry 'accidently' hitting him in the process.

"Discussing sleeping arrangements now Luna's moved in," Harry told him, Tom raised an eyebrow in question as he sat opposite Harry.

"Well usually Luna sleeps with me," Tom's eyes narrowed immediately.

"She does, does she?"

"Yep," Harry said, "We spend half our time trying to guess who's going to become the next unexpected couple. The latest is Paws, Rabastan and Luna as a threesome, what do you think, probable?" Tom blinked and shook his head.

"You like to gossip?" Tom said amused and Harry scowled.

"Hey, everyone has their quirks, I like to gossip with my sister and you like to torture people." Harry defended.

"But Snake, you also like to torture people, especially if they've pissed you off." Luna pointed out and Harry glared at her.

"Shut up you, you're not exactly innocent over there, did you not move in here to save the Ravenclaws lives?" He snapped crossing his arms.

"I don't know what you're talking about."

"I don't think there is a problem with Miss Lovegood staying here and yes I did see how you did that." Harry smirked.

"Like I said before, any other person," Tom rolled his eyes.

"Did Dumbledore buy your story?"

"Yes, and then tried to spell the room again, foolish man." Harry said with a shake of his head.

"It does not surprise me."

"I didn't surprise me but it doesn't mean I'm all fucking happy about it, its been a week and I'm ready to murder multiple people, having my memories returned is a blessing and a damn curse." Harry sighed.

"You have four days until you begin to ruin the headmaster, do not complain, I've been trying to get rid of him longer." Tom did have a point,

"Ok point taken,"

"The headmaster saw fit to inform me that he is quite impressed with my first private tutoring and if he continues to get brilliant feedback from yourself then he may consider asking for extra sessions." Tom told him and Harry laughed a little.

"The day Dumbledore finds out who he employed is going to be a very good day for me." Harry said and Tom smirked.

"I cannot say I am not looking forward to it." The man rose gracefully and Harry couldn't tear his eyes away,

"Try and keep that filthy blood traitor off your arm." Tom said to him as a goodbye, Harry rolled his eyes.

"I don't choose to have her hanging there, she was hinting to come back here."

"Which will not happen," Tom stated firmly.

"We are agreed on that one." Harry said, "Can you please stop making my scar burn everything you see her by me, it really hurts?"

"I don't choose to have her hanging off your arm." Harry glared at him.

"Damn possessive bastard," He muttered.

"Yes, did you expect anything else?"

"No," He sighed and the Dark Lord left, Harry groaned.

"Wow," He blinked having completely forgetting Luna was in the room.

"You can really fade away can't you?" She nodded with a smirk.

"That was something different to witness." Harry raised an eyebrow.

"You and the Dark Lord are astoundingly alike but completely different, I would love to be a constant fly on your shoulder around him." Luna shook her head.

"It would probably be bazaar," She said and Harry couldn't help but agree.


"Now, if you remover your shirt and point out where you want your design." Fred told him and Harry tossed his shirt away, they both gave wistful sighs.

"I'm starting to think you created the ideas of tattoos just to see me strip." Harry said with a grin, they didn't deny it.

"Where is your design?" Harry handed it over to George who stopped to admire the work.

"This is going to take most of the day." He warned and Harry nodded, he led out and pointed out how he wanted it. He had decided to have the coils sitting on his left hip and stretching around to his front where the tail would sit just bellow his navel, Harry wanted it winding up his left rib and twisting around to his back and the head sat bellow his shoulder like it was striking his neck. One of the twins poured a cool potion on the half of his body where he wanted it and Harry immediately felt it go completely numb; he couldn't feel a think.

"This only last's a few hours so half way through we will have to reapply it." Fred said.

"Alright,"

"Ok, so don't move," Harry had no idea how the twins had got hold of and charmed a muggle tattoo gun but he didn't question it, he let the buzzing sooth him in to a trance, he sat in his mindscape building it up to a haven as it used to be, Harry felt when the numbing potion began to wear off and his eyes snapped open.

"Potion, now," He ordered not liking the fiery burning that had erupted on his side, the pain wasn't going to be pleasant he assumed.

"That ran out quicker than we thought." George mused.

"It's because he's much more powerful than anyone you know and could have tested on." Luna pointed out as she came out of the bathroom in just a towel, the twins we momentarily distracted until Harry kicked them.

"I don't want to be led here longer than necessary."

"Sorry,"

"Clothes, Ray,"

she nodded and changed in her pjs.

"It's the middle of the day Ray?" George said motioning to the attire as Fred spread the potion.

"Me and Snake usually have PJ days on Sunday's until he had his memories wiped, we used to meet in the RoR, remember Snake?"

Harry blinked.

"I do, they were fun. We used to get the elves to bring us a feast and talk about shit all day."

Luna beamed.

"Good, you do remember."

"We will start our tradition again." She nodded happily and skipped out, the twins got back to work and Harry took the time to watch them finish the tail, it was fascinating to watch them work. Harry had to turn over so they could focus on his back but he couldn't lay on his front so he ended up levitating himself on his front over the bed much to the twins shock.

"Should you be able to do that?" they exclaimed and Harry smirked.

"I can do a lot I shouldn't be able to do."

"True," no matter how much they tried, Harry could still feel it as they finished the fangs, it hurt like a bitch but after a while it was kind of a soothing pain, when he had said that to them they looked at him as if he needed help but carried on. After over 6 hours of solid work, George added the finishing touched to the eyes and sat back with a groan.

"Merlin," they said together,

"That was-,"

"A lot-,"

"Of work," Harry carefully set himself back on his face and hissed, pain flared over half of his body and he stiffened.

"This will settle right?"

"Yeah by tomorrow, but don't let anyone touch it." Harry nodded and let them strap it up, he threw on his sleep joggers and one of the only loose top he owned, he couldn't wear his usual because of the new additions, he walked out to the living room with difficulty and saw Swift sitting stiffly and Paws' arm could have been made from stone.

"What took you so long?" Paws asked as Harry sat on the edge of his chair with a wince.

"My design was a bit bigger than yours." He pulled up his top to show the bandages around his body and her eyes widened.

"Merlin," the twins and Harry nodded as one, it was bad.

"Winky, food please," his elf popped in with trays of food for them all and Harry sighed in relief, he killed his food within minutes.

"You should try not to lie on them tonight and this," Fred pulled out a potion and handed one to each of them, George picked up.

"Is a potion that will sooth it if it begins to hurt to much, don't use it all the time because they need to settle naturally."

"In case of emergencies then," Harry surmised.

"Yeah, now they should be working now so why don't you test them?" Harry grinned, he thought to Swift about Wednesday, Ron blinked before grinning.

"Everything is set," Harry smirked, he felt something in the back of his mind that felt like Paws so he allowed it, he voice filled his head What will the Basilisk think? He blinked twice, once because of the genius of the twins and the second because he had never thought about Tom's reaction.

"I have absolutely no idea, I'll probably find out Tuesday." Harry shrugged and then hissed.

"Note to self, do not shrug." He grumbled.


Waking up was not a pleasant experience for Harry Monday morning. His body was aching, and he was stiff. Harry crawled over Luna to get to the shower and he was never more thankful for hot water than he was when the shower started. Luna had to bang on the door to get him out because breakfast was ready, Harry glamoured himself but noticed the tattoo wouldn't cover, he shrugged and threw on his robes. He ate a quick breakfast and grabbed his bag, he made sure he had the potion but he doubted he would need it, he had a high pain threshold. Luckily he didn't have Ginny on his arm which cheered him up, he caught sight of Swift who kept rolling his shoulder where his tattoo was situated and Paws kept rubbing her forearm, he smiled to himself; at least he wasn't alone in this.

Harry left for transfiguration early so he avoided the crowds, he expected the twins were exaggerating slightly but he wasn't all that keen to find out. As they were working on animagi and animal transfiguration they had a lot of theory which needed to be covered before they would begin the actual magic, it made the lesson tedious and boring, plus McGonagall liked to keep them until the very end meaning Harry hit the crowds. It was utter hell trying to weave in and out of the students but with his knowledge of the passageways he managed to get out to herbology without so much as a graze. The plants in the greenhouse seemed to be very attracted to his new addition and kept poking at it much to Harry's ire, Swift and Paws seemed to be having the same trouble and the venomous tantactula ended up grabbing Paws around the wrist, Sprout had to whack it off of her.

"I don't know what is wrong with these plants today, I'm sorry Miss Granger," Hermione nodded with a smile massaging her wrist gently. Harry thought it was his lucky day when Ginny was missing from lunch, he looked around carefully to make sure she was completely absent and sighed in relief, he looked at Tom who didn't look particularly smug about anything so he surmised the man hadn't murdered her. He left early again and took a slow walk to defence, he, Ron and Hermione were the first ones there again but they didn't speak because other people soon followed. They were learning an advanced shield which Harry got with a flick of his wand, he had already mastered it and Tom raised an eyebrow, Harry raised a shoulder in an unconcerned way and the Dark Lord rolled his eyes. Harry pretended to be trying to learn the spell so it didn't look so suspicious, he quickly go bored so he began tossing discreet spells at Swift's shield which made it collapse multiple times, the red head looked around confused until he caught Harry's amused eyes and threw a glare his way.

"You could actually look like your doing something you know." Tom drawled walking around and Harry looked up.

"I have been for the past 10 minutes, now I'm bored so I'm annoying people without their notice." Harry told him and Tom's lip twitched.

"Ah, carry on then," Harry grinned and continued sending random spells at peoples shields, their startled faces when it failed was enough to make him cover his snickers and the Dark Lord had to turn away at points because of the expressions they pulled.

"That has to be the most distracting thing possible." Harry muffled his laughter.

"I know, their faces are priceless!"

Snake, if you do not stop hexing my shield I will kill you Harry swivelled to see Hermione with a mean glare directed at him, he gave her an innocent smile and her glare deepened.

"Ok, no more spells for me." Tom smirked and went to point out what Dean was doing wrong, Harry took out a book and read until they were dismissed, he slipped away instantly because the Charms corridor was one of the busiest. Harry had to use his magic to move people so he didn't get hit, he dodged and ducked out of the way and he actually span in to the classroom and dashed to his seat. He received a few strange looks but he ignored them, none of them had Runes carved in to their skin. Flitwick was a cheerful as ever and informed them they would be reviewing all previous spells and learning them in silent casting, it was quite a good lesson because Harry hadn't bothered to learn all of the simple charms wordlessly. He found is quite refreshing even though he managed it simply, the tiny Professor even let them out early much to Harry's pleasure, he skated down to dinner where the hall was barely filling up. He was planning on gabbing a quick dinner and leaving but it wasn't to be, when the bell actually sounded and everyone piled in he spotted Ginny making her way over. Harry sighed to himself and pretended not to notice her until she sat down next to him,

"Hi Harry,"

"Hey Ginny," as usual, she draped herself all over him and she pressed right up to his side; his left side. Harry stiffened up as unimaginable pain erupted from within his very blood. The twins were not exaggerating when they described the pain and Harry forcefully bit his tongue to stop himself screaming, both Swift and Paws' heads snapped around to him and their eyes widened. The pain seemed to get worse as she stayed there and his vision blacked for a few seconds, he clenched his eyes shut and tired to get rid of the pain; bad idea.

When his eyes snapped open, all the glass in the hall exploded suddenly and Harry bit through his tongue, blood pooled in his mouth as he focussed everything on not screaming, no one knew what had caused the explosion so the headmaster was trying to calm everyone down. When they spotted blood at the corner of Harry's mouth, Swift and Paws began to panic, they could feel his magic curling and twisting furiously trying to relieve the pain, the Dark Lord could also feel the furious magic and his eyes snapped around to Harry. Out of nowhere, Tom felt white hot agony shoot through him, only clamping his jaw shut stopped him from making a sound and it was obvious where the pain was coming from. As the hall was in a panic, Tom slipped from his chair and straight over to Harry before he completely blew up.

"Come," Harry stood stiffly, his eyes had gone very dark and glazed, he followed Tom from the room and as soon as he was away from the great hall he dashed to the nearest passage way, he sprinted through the tunnels to the defence corridor where Tom was already there with the door to his office. Harry fell in followed by Ron and Hermione, the pain was still coursing through him and he ripped his glamour away followed by his robes in a frenzied rush, he choked on the blood and collapsed to his hands and knees. He poured the contense of his bad out and tried to grab the potion but he was shaking too badly. Somewhere behind him he heard people speaking and movement but it didn't register, his blood was burning and nothing was stopping it, he felt someone pour something on his and the pain lessened but didn't go away, Harry felt a hand brush against the tattoo and tensed for the pain again but was surprised when the agony soothed. Harry reached and blindly grabbed the hand and forcefully placed it on his hip, the pain diminished almost at once and he sighed in relief.

"I'm going to kill her myself," Harry murmured and blinked a few times, he looked up to see a worried Ron, a panicked Hermione and an amused and incredulous Dark Lord. "Oh hey Tom," Harry looked down at the hand on his hip and who it was connected to, Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Snake, what in Merlin's name was that?" Hermione finally snapped back now he wasn't having whatever he was having.

"I don't know, the twins were not lying when they described the pain, do not allow anyone else to touch it; ever." Harry warned.

"You made all the glass explode." She burst out and Harry blinked.

"I did? I honestly don't know, all I felt was pain."

"Yes, what was that, I felt it?" Tom said to him and Harry winced.

"Sorry about that, it's the new addition." Harry motioned to his design and now he wasn't in a state of collapse, the occupants took the time to actually look at his tattoo, Paws gasped slightly.

"It's stunning," She murmured in awe, Tom was looking at it in amazement, it was truly a beautiful piece, he ran a finger along the coils and up the spine of the Snake, Harry's body suddenly burned with pleasure.

Tom he hissed/moaned, the Dark Lord's eyebrows shot up before he smirked.

"I can see the Runes, and they add up to a way of communication, I presume this is your new communication devise your other people were working on."

Harry nodded and tried to keep his breathing even as Tom was gently running a hand over the tattoo.

"Yes but it was only done yesterday, they warned us not to allow anyone to touch them for at least a week because it would be beyond rational pain." Harry explained.

"They didn't lie."

Harry shook his head.

"No, they definitely didn't."

"We will go and see if anyone is suspicious of you." Swift said to Harry and he nodded,

"Thanks, I cannot believe that just happened. Does she have to drape herself over me all the damn time, trashy, vile, mother fucking whore?" He snarled.

"Sorry mate,"

"You know it's not your fault." Harry told him, "Just don't blame me if she fucking disappears." Swift grinned.

"I won't," they slipped out and Harry groaned.

"Fuck sake, why do I have bipolar luck?"

Tom unsuccessfully covered his laugh, Harry threw him a withering look.

"I'm glad you find my suffering funny."

Tom rolled his eyes, he got to his feet pulling Harry with him, the teen grabbed his hand again and kept it on his hip, Tom raised an eyebrow.

"What, it's soothing." Harry said defensively.

"Soothing as my hand is, I cannot walk around with it on you hip." Tom pointed out, Harry groaned at the injustice.

"Why not," He whined and Tom shook his head.

"I wonder, truly I do." Tom said sarcastically, Harry pouted before grinning.

"So what do you think?" He motioned to the snake, Tom ran a finger over it again and Harry shuddered.

"Hmmm, Tom," Harry moaned.

"I like it," he repeated the motion and Harry's breathing hitched, "I really like it." Harry couldn't even manage to glare at him, instead he leant flush against him and lightly bit Tom's earlobe which made the man hiss. Tom kissed him hotly and Harry was in bliss, he ended up on the desk in a heated make out session and Tom trailed bites down his neck. Before anything could escalate, someone knocked on the door, Harry cursed and dived for his clothes. He was fully dressed and glamoured within seconds and Tom pulled open the door, it was some students needing help and Harry slipped out with a nod and a smirk; Tom would catch up with him.

Chapter 8

Notes:

I'm not J.K

Plot is mine ;)

The article is mine too, not the content but how it's written

Read the tags guys

Chapter Text

Parsel

Chapter 8:

Luna handed him his finest robes and he pulled them on with care, he stood still as Luna styled his hair and smoothed down his clothes, he rolled his eyes.

"I am capable of getting ready myself." He said with a smile and she huffed.

"I am allowed to dress my gorgeous brother up to make heads turn more than usual so be quiet and suck it up." She told his and Harry grinned.

"Of course Ray," he let her continue her fussing and accepted the cloak he was given, she also passed him his invisibility cloak which he tossed over his shoulders.

"Your other self will be coming in now so you can slip out with him." Harry nodded and pulled up the hood so he vanished from sight, grabbing his files and the map, he followed himself out of his room and walked to the chamber. He used the map to avoid everyone and found it quite amusing to see two of him, two Rons and two Hermiones on there, he made sure the second corridor was empty before slipping in to the bathroom and hissing for it to open. When he was safely in the chamber he removed his cloak and tucked it away, he apperated to the Leaky cauldron making sure his normal cloak hood was up. Harry approached Tom the barman who was busy serving customers, he caught the man's attention and he came over.

"What can I do ya for?"

"I should have someone waiting, I booked a private room, James Black?" Tom's eyes widened slightly but nodded and motioned him back.

"Yes sir, room 2, would you like anything brought to ya?"

"No, that will be all." Harry swept away, he stepped in to the room and warded it tightly, Rita Skeeter was sat looking at him wearily.

"Good morning Ms Skeeter," He greeted with a nod.

"Good morning," Harry grinned under his hood.

"I have something for you Rita dear, something that will shock the wizarding and I want you to write it." Rita looked eager and Harry sat down opposite.

"What is it?" Harry handed her over the files that he wanted published, she read through them and her eyes got bigger and bigger as she went and when she got to the end she gasped and leapt up.

"I can't publish these, they're about Dumbledore."

"The juicy truth the esteemed headmaster has kept hidden, it's about time the public learned the truth."

"But I will be hung; Dumbledore is one of the most powerful people in our world." She exclaimed.

"One of them yes, but there are people who can challenge Dumbledore politically which would be the only way he could attack you." She laughed in disbelief.

"Who could possibly challenge Dumbledore politically, he's Chief Warlock."

"I can," she stopped to look at him in shock before laughing.

"You, please. You would have to be Harry Potter to have any chance of challenging Dumbledore." She snorted but Harry grinned, it was time to drop a bombshell to keep her sitting pretty.

"Exactly," she whipped around so fast she stumbled, Harry pulled back his hood and looked at her with an ever-present smirk; her jaw dropped.

"Harry Potter?" she breathed in shock.

"Of course I can challenge Dumbledore politically Rita dear, I have more seating in the wizengamot and I am more famous than he." Harry agreed and she didn't respond she seemed to be in shock.

"Obviously if you don't want to tear in to Dumbledore, I'm sure I could find someone else-,"

"NO!" she cut him off, Harry hid his triumph well.

"So you will publish these, after all you do have a rather unique flare." She nodded hurriedly.

"Why would you of all people want these published and what in Merlin's name happened to you?" She asked him looking up and down with interest, Harry raised an eyebrow.

"I have a lot of secrets Rita just like yourself, it wouldn't do for any of them to be coming out now would it?" the subtle warning didn't go unmissed and she backed up.

"Of course not, I'll begin immediately." Harry smirked.

"Brilliant, I want to see the draft before it's published of course." He told her and drew his hood back up, "And Rita," she looked at him and his killing curse eyes flashed, "This meeting never happened did it?"

"What meeting?" she said weakly, Harry swept from the room with a smirk, Rita sat back down shakily, there was something about this new Harry Potter that scared her. She picked up the parchment and grinned suddenly, it was time to begin ruining the headmaster and she left with a skip in her step. Harry walked in to Diagon Ally and was immediately joined by to other cloaked figures, they made their way to the white marble building at the end of the Ally. Harry strode confidently in to the bank with Swift and Paws flanking his right and left, he walked to the nearest teller and waited patiently for him to finish his current workings.

"I am here for a prearranged meeting with Director Ragnok." Harry said to him in gobbledegook, the goblin looked shocked by his native language and then nodded.

"Follow me sir," he obviously knew that Harry was a high profile client so he was polite, or as polite as possible for a goblin, the three of them followed the goblin down to through the strangely familiar route to Ragnok's office. The goblin knocked three times and entered when called, the head goblin was sat behind his desk pouring over a file, he looked around and nodded to the goblin.

"That will be all Tornuck," the goblin left with a short bow, Harry, Ron, and Hermione came in and removed their hoods, each of them bowed to the director.

"Mr Potter-Black-Peverell-Gryffindor," Harry almost winced at the full name, "You have a lot of explaining to do."

"My apologies Director for this sudden meeting, I have discovered a treachery greater than anything before." Ragnok motioned for them to sit.

"As you have brought along Miss Granger-McKinnon and Mr Weasley-Prewett, I am set to believe it involves them also, no doubt I am in for a long explanation in which I will be angered." Harry grinned some what sheepishly.

"Pretty much,"

"I will need tea," the Director sighed, he summoned his tea and a plate of biscuits which he handed out and then motioned for Harry to begin. Harry launched in to the tale of what had happened over the summer, everything he had discovered from his memories and everything Dumbledore had done and was planning on doing, the use of his seats illegally and the planned control of him. As predicted, Ragnok was spitting mad by the end and had to take several deep breaths to calm himself, he pulled out Harry's files and began flicking through them furiously.

"That manipulative old fool, if he were a goblin he would be hung, if I had my way he would be hung." Ragnok snarled and Harry wasn't surprised, Dumbledore had messed with the running of the highest client's accounts and it could look bad on the bank if they weren't saw to be fixing the problem.

"I hope this explains my awful actions in the previous year." Harry said to him and Ragnok nodded.

"It certainly does Mr Potter,"

"Harry please," Ragnok grinned.

"Of course, how forgetful of me," He said, "From what I can see, your accounts have self repaired from the sketchy workings. Of course you will need to work through them to continue your earnings." Ragnok explained and Harry sighed in relief.

"Thank Merlin, what of the Potter accounts, they were set to gain a seat?"

"Ah yes, they gained back the seat your father lost 2 weeks prior." Harry groaned.

"Damn it, now that gives him another seat."

"Yes, unfortunately it does. As for the Prewett house, they do not seem to be affected at all Mr Weasley-Prewett, your investments are coming in well and your vault is gaining interest. Now, Miss Granger-McKinnon you have an opportunity to gain perhaps another seat, it will alert the wizengamot to the fact that the McKinnon house is not dead, you need only gain a final thousand galleons to finalise the notion, the McKinnon house is already old enough." Ragnok explained and they exchanged looks.

What do you think Paws?

I think we should do it, no one knows who the McKinnon heir was so they cannot link it back to me. She reasoned and Harry nodded.

"I would like to set the seat in notion please Director, of course if it was kept silent to who the heir it would be for the best and there would be no reason for anyone to look at the 5000 galleons that ended up in your possession." She said to him with a smirk and he nodded with a toothy grin.

"It shall be done and of course no one need know."

"Now Director, there are things that happened over the summer that make me want to edit a few things in my family scripts." Harry began with a smirk.

"Indeed,"

"Yes, as I am the head of all my houses I would like to edit the wording on them, focussing on my seats. I would like to change the Black wording so it states if the head of house is unable to sit in the wizengamot the next blooded family member has to sit in there place." Ragnok nodded and pulled out the Black files.

"An owl will go out to Narcissa Malfoy as soon as its sealed." Harry grinned.

"The second house is more difficult and I would be honoured if you would use your keen and precise skill to aid me in the correct wording." Ragnok raised an eyebrow.

"I need to be able to pass to Tom, but he can't sit in the seat for obvious reasons, and as I am currently being watched I cannot choose someone to sit there I want Tom to be able to choose the person who sits in the seat." Harry explained and Ragnok shook his head.

"You seem to have the most awkward situations placed around you." Ragnok sighed and Harry smile sheepishly.

"Yeah, I know,"

"The wording would have to be misleading and intricate, but it can be done, it would have to state that in case of the head not being able to perform their duties all roles and responsibilities fall to the next in line, as it is a head duty to select someone to sit in their place if their unavailable it will fall to the next in line."

"I knew there was a reason I liked you." Harry said and Ragnok grinned.

"They will be drawn up and sent out as soon as they are sealed."

"Brilliant, a final thing and I think this one will bring you some amusement." Harry said to the goblin who sat forward, Ragnok did not like the Parkinsons and this would bring him some amusement.

"The Blacks have been funding the Parkinson business outlet for over a century, it has also come to my attention that the Parkinson Estate is in a severe amount of dept to the Blacks. I believe it is time to pull the funding and claim the amount they are in dept too." Ragnok gave a vicious grin.

"I have to agree that it is the correct time to do reclaim what is rightfully yours."

"Snake, what is the total amount Parkinson owes you?" Swift asked curiously and Harry's look turned predatory.

"Over 76 million," both their jaws dropped.

"That would ruin them, beyond that, their estate doesn't total that much," Paws said and then laughed. "Oh I cannot wait to see her face when she receives that letter."

"The Parkinson Estate totals 60 million I believe, that leaves an unclaimed 16 million," Harry mused.

"With that amount, it is enough to lay claim on the daughter, she would potentially be a slave, she would have to answer to your every whim until the dept is fully paid." Ragnok pointed out and Harry smirked.

"Oh that is something I am going to hold over them," Harry breathed, "Pull it all, I want them run to the ground I'll issue a warning saying if they say who ruined them I'll bind dear Pansy to me for life, not that I would use her myself but I suspect she would make a great whore." Paws slapped him.

"You are terrible," she had a smirk on her face and Harry knew she would love to see Pansy enslaved.

"It will be done and processed with the seal," Ragnok said, "Is there anything else you would like done?" Harry looked to Ron and Hermione who shook their heads.

"I believe we are done Director, we have already been issued our cards to make purchases so we needn't visit any vaults today." Ragnok and Harry went over the final wording for the scripts, when Harry was happy, he signed in blood and stamped the rings down in place giving Ragnok a nice tip for his services, they flashed white and Harry felt it settle.

"The owls have been sent and everything sealed." Harry nodded, Hermione sealed up the new McKinnon seat and Ron pushed some more money in to his larger investments, everything was done and with a courteous bow to the goblin the three left. They made it back to school easily and they snuck in to his living room with smiles,

"Things have just got interesting." Paws said and Harry laughed.

"Oh they were interesting before, but now they're exciting, Dumbledore will loose 5 seats, the Parkinson's are broke, you have gained a seat and we're all fucking rich." Harry said.

"How did the meeting with Rita go?" Harry grinned.

"She was worried at first but I reassured her that Dumbledore could not attack her and she was most excited to write the article, she is going to be sending me the draft first, I have no doubt it will be glorious."

"Good, now we have to go, don't get in to more trouble than you normally do." Paws warned and Harry gave her the best innocent look he could.

"I honestly do not know what you speak of." She rolled her eyes and left with Swift who was laughing to himself.


If it wouldn't have been highly suspicious, Harry would have been sat at breakfast with a shark like grin on his face. He was waiting for the mail, the Gringotts owls would be coming today and he could not wait for Parkinson to receive hers, he wanted to rub his hands together and laugh evilly. Hermione's eyes were practically glowing as they continued to dart to the top of the hall where the owls came in, he shook his head. They swooped in and he spotted the Gringotts owls immediately, one went towards Tom, one to Dumbledore and the other went to Pansy. The Dark Lord read his letter and smirked, Harry tried not to look happy or smug, but it was hard when he saw the anger in Dumbledore's eyes. He, instead, focused his attention on Parkinson who had just opened her letter, the further she read the paler she went and when she got to the end she screamed in utter horror and burst in to tears. People span to see the disturbance and her friends tried to ask her the problem, she was completely devastated.

"What is the problem Miss Parkinson," Snape demanded, not looking happy that one of snakes had caused such a disturbance.

"I'm poor," she wailed, "We've lost everything, the whole Parkinson estate has been seized." People gasped and Harry fought not to laugh gleefully, Draco, Tom and Luna all looked straight at him and he tried to look innocent, really he did, but the twitching lips and they glowing eyes gave him away. Hermione was grinning like a fool, pretences or not, she was very happy. The majority of the Slytherins were looking at Parkinson in distaste, it was one thing to not have money, but to have your entire estate seized was one of the biggest disgraces for a pureblood; Harry loved being a heartless person. His entire day was a cheerful one, Parkinson was inconsolable and rumours began, the best one was that she might be pulled out of Hogwarts because her parents could no longer afford it; Harry had actually laughed. What made it all the more amusing was the fact that that particular rumour wasn't a rumour, the Parkinsons were homeless as well as penniless, ah the joys of being rich Harry thought smugly. He all but skipped to potions after lunch, Draco was looking at him in a way that screamed 'we are talking now', and Harry flashed a smirk and dragged the blonde to the back of the room.

"What in Merlin's name did you do?" Was the first thing out of his mouth and Harry grinned.

"I did say I was pulling the funding," Harry pointed out.

"Yes but she's broke, like, completely broke."

"I know, it turns out the Parkinson family was in a lot of dept to the Blacks, I may have claimed that back." Draco looked shocked.

"How much dept were they in?" He exclaimed, "Their estate was, what, 60 million, and they've lost their manors as well as their country houses and all their money." There was nothing nice about Harry's smile.

"They still owe me 16 million," Draco began choking much to Harry's amusement, Snape sent him a glare like it was his fault and he supposed it was but he merely raised an eyebrow.

"But that means-,"

"I can claim the daughter as my slave if I wish? Yes, I know. Why do you think Parkinson hasn't screamed at me that it is my entire fault, if she speaks of who claimed back the dept she becomes bound to me for life."

"Merlin,"

"I love being heartless, it brings me much amusement."

"Again, remind me never to piss you off." Draco shuddered and began their work, Harry smiled sweetly.

"Don't worry Draco, I'm sure you have some common sense in that pretty head of yours." The glare he got was diminished by the pinking of his cheeks.

"I'm not pretty, Malfoy men are strong and handsome." Harry laughed at him.

"I'll remember that when your preening in the mirror." Draco punched him.

"Shut up Harry," he grumbled.

"If it makes you feel better, I got called vain." Draco smirked.

"Actually, it does."

"Changing the subject, you've got access to my rooms for future in formation, Luna'll be there if I'm not." Harry told him and Draco nodded before gaining a frown.

"Why would Luna be there when you're not?"

"Oh, she's moved in." Harry said casually, he stirred the cauldron and sliced up frogs liver.

"She moved in?" Draco repeatedly incredulously.

"Yep," Harry popped the 'p', "She didn't believe it would be acceptable for disappearances to happen this early on in the year."

"I give up," Draco sighed, "Where are your rooms?"

"On the defence corridor, I receive private tutoring you see." Draco snorted.

"Oh the irony,"

"I know, it wasn't lost on me either. I've changed my seats in the wizengamot, your mother and father will be sitting in them now so that's a bonus."

"Your trip went ok then?"

"Yes, issues at the bank have been resolved and I believe tomorrow will be a good day for anyone who dislikes Dumbledore."

"I won't ask," Harry grinned.

Harry was sat with Luna in his, now their, rooms after dinner, they were having a proper catch up and it felt refreshing; he didn't realise how much he had missed Luna.

"I've missed this," she commented and Harry nodded.

"I agree," Harry said, "It's been too long."

"Too much has happened, I cannot believe your memories got taken, I though you had just stopped speaking to me." It made Harry even more furious with Dumbledore because Luna sounded so upset.

"I would never do that to you,"

"I didn't think you would but it was so strange." She shook her head and Harry frowned.

"He will pay for all of this, I will take pleasure in ruining Dumbledore and when he is nothing, when he is nothing but a hated name, he will die." Harry stated furiously, he took her hands in his and gave them a small squeeze.

"I know you will make him pay." She assured and Harry smiled slightly.

"I cannot wait for this article tomorrow, if I know Rita then it will be explosive."

"She does have that flare about her, doesn't she?" Luna agreed with a smirk, "Isn't she supposed to be sending you a draft before it goes out." Harry nodded and flicked his wrist to open the window, he had been waiting for an owl all day and he was buzzing with excitement.

"I know something that will take your mind off of it for a few hours," Luna said with a mischievous look in her eyes.

"And what would that be Miss Lovegood?"

"Do you remember what we used to do to keep fit, instead of running that is?" Harry tilted his head in thought, he was flicking through his memories for about 30 seconds before his eyes lit up and he grinned.

"Dancing," he said, "Specifically around poles,"

"Yes, we got the idea from going to the 'gentlemen's club' in Knockturn Ally,"

"Some gentlemen's club that was, they guys up there dancing were hotter than the girls." Harry said and Luna grinned.

"You got that one right," Harry got up and offered a hand, she took it and he pulled her up, he waved his wand and cleared an area.

"2 sturdy poles if you will great lady," in the clear space 2 silver poles appeared and Harry grinned, he pulled himself up and span around it, he was a bit rusty but it shouldn't be to hard to get used to it again, Luna shook her head. Even after months, Harry still looked so smooth and graceful; it was unbelievable. Harry waved his wand and placed it on the table, music began to play and it had a nice beat to it, Harry fell in to familiar moves with ease, he span and twisted around the pole dropping low and grinding, it was very nice for Luna to watch.

"You know, you're supposed to be dancing also." Harry pointed out and Luna grinned.

"No, I think I prefer sitting here thanks." He shook his head but didn't stop, it was like a release and he remembered why he kept it up, not only did it keep him fit but it felt so good. After an hour he was worn out and fell on to the sofa, he had his eyes closed just listening to the music when he heard the sound of an owl, he was up so fast Luna swore she didn't see him move. The owl soared in and landed neatly on his shoulder, Harry undid the letter and led the bird to Hedwig's perch as she was hunting at the current time. He opened the letter and with every line his vicious smile grew, by the end of it Harry was fucking ecstatic.

"FUCK YES!" He yelled and proceeded to jump up and down like a crazy person.

"Rita Skeeter is a fucking genius, she is getting a severe tip for this."

"Let me see," Luna tried to take the parchment but he wouldn't let her.

"Oh no, you'll have to wait until tomorrow." Harry told her and she pouted.

"Please," she gave him puppy dog eyes but still he refused.

"Nu uh," and he set it alight, she whacked him around the head and sat down.

"Tomorrow is going to be a fucking good day." Harry was still jumping around the room much to Luna's amusement.

"I need to celebrate," he stated and Luna smirked.

"I'm sure there is a Dark Lord who would be quite willing." Harry mirrored her expression.

"I believe you are right." Harry said, "I need to shower," he darted off and Luna shook her head, she went to pick his clothes again, she loved dressing Harry up because he looked good in anything. Harry came out and was immediately handed black skinny jeans, he didn't argue with her just put them on, she added a tight white top that his tattoo could be seen through, Luna tossed him his charcoal boots and a blood pop.

"Go have fun," she ordered, "I'll send an acceptance to Rita," he winked.

"You know me," he tossed the invisibility cloak on and grabbed the map, he made his way to Tom's office as the man was on patrol by now. As suspected, it was covered in wards but they were Harry's speciality, he carefully twisted them so he could slip in. Harry placed his cloak on the chair and hopped up on to the desk, he watched as Tom finished his patrol and made his way back to his office, and Harry sucked on his blood pop in wait. When Tom entered his office he knew immediately he wasn't alone, there was only one person who would be able to get past the wards without his knowledge and smirked.

"A student out of bed?" Tom asked closing the door slowly and warding it tightly.

"At the moment," Harry replied in a light tone, when Tom faced Harry it sent lust through him, he was sat on the edge of the desk and Tom followed the slow, deliberate movements he was making with his tongue.

"You should be disciplined," Tom hissed and Harry's eyes dilated.

"You are right Professor," Harry said his voice taking on a husky note, "I should be punished." He bit his lip as if he was nervous, Tom came forward with deadly grace, and he ran a finger along the snake spine gaining a pleased hiss to come through Harry's teeth.

"You will be Snake," Tom continued to lightly stroke the tattoo driving Harry insane, he was practically burning.

"Are you going to make me beg?"

"I would love to hear you beg," Tom told him biting his neck, "Do it, beg," he commanded and Harry smirked, Tom really should be careful to what he ordered. He wrapped his arms around Tom's neck and leaned flush against him, he lightly bit his neck,

"Mmm Tom," He moaned, "Please, I want you to fuck me, please Tom, I need it," the grip on his hips tightened considerably and he received a particularly sharp bite, he changed his voice to sound needier.

"I need you in me please, I want you to fill me and fuck me until I can't walk. Make me scream your name, I need it please Tom, treat me like your little slut," he had no idea where his clothes went but he arched as he was slammed in to, he actually saw stars as he screamed,

"Ah shit Tom," he gasped, Harry knew he wouldn't be walking well after this, he was fucked brutally and he loved it. His nails drew blood as hid dug them in, Tom hit his prostate repeatedly and Harry cried out.

"M-more please, fuck," he was thrust in to a few more times before he came so hard his vision went white for a few seconds as his release ripped through him, his muscles clamped down on Tom sending him over the edge, he bit Harry's neck hard enough to draw blood and the teen moaned again.

"You should be careful what you beg for Snake," Tom murmured lowly after he had muttered cleaning spells, "One would think you wanted to be treated like my little slut," Harry sucked in a sharp breath, the thoughts that brought to his mind were entirely too pleasurable and he felt Tom smirk, he cursed in his head because of his weird quirks that Tom could use.

"You're such a bastard," he muttered tugging at Tom's hair as his neck was bitten.

"Yes and your my slut," Harry felt lust shoot through him and mentally cursed again, there was no way he was going to let Tom have a freebee.

"Mmm, but you like that don't you," Harry said in a sultry tone, he bit Tom's neck and trailed light kisses, "To have someone who belongs solely to you," he smirked when Tom hissed and gripped his hips again, if Tom was going to use his quirks then he would use the mans possessiveness against him.

"To use and abuse, your own personal whore," Harry congratulated himself on making Tom lose control and being apperated away for round 2.


"I need a pain potion," Harry groaned in to the pillow, it was hurting to breath at the current time and he needed to get to the great hall, he heard Tom laugh lightly and would have glared at him if he could sit up.

"I hate you,"

"Your own fault," Tom pointed out and Harry grumbled about the man's stamina much to Tom's amusement.

"I really need to get to the great hall as soon as possible, and so do you."

"And why's that?" with great difficulty and effort, he managed to push himself up so he was facing Tom, he couldn't help but smirk when he took in the man's appearance. Vicious scratch and bite marks littered the pale skin, seemed the man liked pain.

"Because you don't want to miss Dumbledore's face when he reads the paper with my article beautifully done by Rita." Tom raised an eyebrow and Harry's smirk stretched.

"She sent me a draft yesterday, let's just say it is very informative."

"Indeed," Tom drawled and Harry knew he was interested.

"Yes, I believe it will shock the entire wizarding world." Harry stated, he stretched and winced.

"I repeat, I hate you," Harry muttered, "I need to shower," Tom pointed to a door to the left, Harry very carefully removed himself and fell in to the bathroom, the hot water was glorious to Harry and relieved some of the ache. He called Winky for his clothes and a pain potion, he got dressed and necked the potion, it would do for now, he stepped out and Tom was already ready drying his hair with a wave of his wand, Harry raised an eyebrow.

"You're not the only one the castle likes," he said with a smirk, Harry rolled his eyes and waved his wand to create his glamour.

"I freakin' hate this thing." He grumbled as he followed Tom out, Harry tossed on his cloak and skirted the halls to his room, he grabbed his bag left neatly ready by Luna and left. He jogged down to the hall entering just as Tom did, the man smirked and Harry hid his own, he sat down at the end of the Gryffindor table and he had to forcefully stop himself bouncing up and down, he saw Luna doing the same and grinned. After 10 agonisingly long minutes the post swooped in, Harry spotted a paper going towards Dumbledore and mentally smirked, an owl landed in front of him and he made sure he didn't look to eager to see the paper. He laid it flat and it was times like then he wanted to drop all pretences and cackle like a crazy person, there, on the front page, for everyone to see, was strike one against Dumbledore with a picture of Grindlewald and Dumbledore in their youth to go with it.

Albus Dumbledore and Gellert Grindlewald;

Great battle or lovers quarrel?

Everyone in the wizarding world has heard of Grindlewald's great defeat at the hands of Albus Dumbledore, it is one of the most famous things to happen in our world and still today Albus Dumbledore is seen as a hero to the people. But, is what we have been told correct or are there gaps in history that have been hidden from us? As it reads, Grindlewald was gathering his army and taking over everywhere and people were calling for help, it was then Dumbledore stepped up, but why did it take him so long. It is reported that it took no less than 2 years before Grindlewald was challenged and today you find out why.

With some brilliant charm and wonderful reliable sources, this reporter delved in to the murky history of Albus Dumbledore and Gellert Grindlewald. It is not commonly known but the Dumbledore family grew up in Godrics Hollow, the same place where out saviour Harry Potter defeated You-Know-Who and where renowned historian Bathilda Bagshot still resides. Ms Bagshot, famous author of A History of Magic, lived in the quaint little village at the same time as the Dumbledore's, at the time Albus was 16, she introduced him to her nephew who was the same age and they became the best of friends. This isn't unusual, the village is small and her nephew was from out of the country, but with a little digging and a bit of gold I discovered the name of the allusive nephew; Gellert Grindlewald. Yes that's right ladies and gentlemen, Albus Dumbledore and Gellert Grindlewald were the best of friends. They became united by their ambitions for glory and their plans to bring about a 'new world order' in which wizards would rule over muggles, they were often heard using the phrase 'For the Greater Good', which even today, Dumbledore is still known to use. After discovering how alike they were and how they both shared the same goals, the two became romantically involve not long after and they had no qualms in aiding each other in plans and experiments. Both brilliant and talented they intended to expand their ideas and spread them to others but not everyone close to home was as receptive as the two would like. Dumbledore's brother, Aberforth, stood in their way. You see Dumbledore also had a sister, Arianna, which he was left to care for when his mother passed away in a tragic accident, unfortunately Albus' sister was incredibly sick, the illness is unknown, and Aberforth demanded Albus stop with his plans. But that didn't sit well for the two young genius', they had great plans for the world that he worked tirelessly on and now someone was thwarting them at the very beginning. It caused numerous of arguments, but they were determined that nothing would every get in their way like his brother was. But something happened. The reason is unknown as of yet, but Grindlewald fled without his dedicated lover and went ahead with his plans outside of the United Kingdom alone. Grindlewald's rise to power was quick and he needed to be stopped, the death count was rising rapidly and nothing could stop him or so it seemed. It was only after years of cries that Dumbledore faced his ex-lover again resulting to what we know as a 'legendary duel', it was something that wasn't witnessed by anyone and the only thing saw by eyewitnesses was Dumbledore emerging with his opposition's wand. But with all of this information coming to light, can we be sure that Dumbledore was at all innocent in his actions to confront. Was it really the cry of the public that sent him to fight the person he loved once or was it out of heartache and pain that he face him? Can we be certain that he wasn't secretly working with his lover all those years, and their reunion didn't go to plan? After all, Grindlewald is still alive in the top most cell in his own prison Nurmengard, why is he still alive now after all the crimes he committed? Was it because Dumbledore was unable to truly turn his wand on his only love or are they still in contact after all these years? With this shocking discovery I don't know what to think and honestly, people of the wizarding world, I believe we deserve answers.

Rita Skeeter, special correspondent to the Daily Profit.

Silence, complete and utter silence settled in the great hall as everyone read the brutal article, he glanced up at Dumbledore and had to look away, the old man's complexion resembled sour milk, his eyes were a flat, dull blue and he looked completely and utterly devastated. He chanced a look at Tom and nearly grinned, Tom was gripping the paper so hard it was surprising it hadn't ripped, the silver blue eyes were glowing and they looked up to catch his, Harry was flooded with delirious, malevolent glee and his eyes flashed with his own pleasure. Harry's eyes darted to the headmaster and Tom's attention snapped to the old man, if possible, the man grew happier and Harry was betting he had a skip in his step all through the day. Ron and Hermione were containing their glee well, they were glued to the article and Harry could just make out their smirks from where they were bent so low over it. The whispering started then. It grew louder and louder until people were all but shouting, everyone was looking towards Dumbledore for answers but the headmaster couldn't take his eyes from the paper, specifically the picture, and he looked stricken. If students didn't believe it at first they did after looking at the headmaster, it was obvious the article was affecting him more than it should if it was false. As Dumbledore was unresponsive, McGonagall got to her feet, albeit a bit shakily, and silenced the room.

"Go to your lessons now," she barked and people clearly didn't want to listen, protests began and the students were waving the paper furiously, then Snape stepped up.

"You heard McGonagall, go," only then did they file out and begin talking amongst themselves, Harry left slowly and because of that, he had the pleasure of seeing Dumbledore fleeing through the back chamber. He hummed a cheerful tune as he went to herbology, he doubted anything would dampen his mood that day and he avidly listened to the speculations from the other students. Just on his way to the greenhouses he heard 5 completely different versions of the duel, some were hilarious, but others were could actually have happened, he felt Paws in the back of his mind and grinned.

Snake, there are no words. She gushed and he couldn't agree more,

I know Paws, Rita can be such a glorious woman. He felt Swift's presence join them.

That was amazing, he stated excitedly.

I was just saying the same thing Paws agreed and then she was shocked.

I didn't know we could have joint conversations.

It's the twins, Harry pointed out, They do nothing by halves,

Well that is irrelevant at the moment, the article, we have to meet up. She told them and Harry nearly laughed.

I'll let you know, he walked in to the greenhouse and the only conversation was the article, even Sprout was discussing it with Justin Finch-Fletchly.

I've created mayhem he muttered to himself in parsel and couldn't help but feel fucking brilliant about it. All through the day the article was the main topic of conversation, the amount of times Harry had to fight down a triumphant smirk was unhealthy, the amount of disgust in the majorities tone was music to Harry's ears. At lunch, Dumbledore was a no show, Harry nearly grinned up at the house table because he could actually feel Tom's utter glee at the situation. Even the appearance of Ginny didn't deter his mood, she on the other hand was fuming.

"How can they print this rubbish about a great man like Dumbledore?" She snarled and Harry blinked.

"Calm down Gin,"

"But they shouldn't be able to print this stuff."

"Dumbledore will sort it out, he's not here now, I expect that's what he's doing." He reassured her, she nodded with a huff, he went to lean on his left side again but he stopped her.

"Not on my side, I'm healing," he told her, she frowned for a second before shrugging and picking at her lunch. Harry made his way to defence with a skip in his step and he wasn't the only one, Harry swore he saw Tom skip lightly as he walked in to the classroom. They went over the shield from the previous lesson and then they moved on to the advanced version of it, Harry blinked and raised an eyebrow, he hadn't actually used the shield before. He tried it with the incantation first and it flickered up, his eyes narrowed and he tried it again. It solidified and Harry nodded to himself, he repeated it a few times before going over it again silently and then wandlessly until he had perfected it, he sat back up and looked up to meet incredulous silver-blue eyes.

"That is how you perfect a spell?"

"Yes why?"

"Most would take a few days," Tom pointed out and Harry shrugged,

"How long does it take you?"

"Depending on the spell, an hour maximum."

"Ta dah," He received rolled eyes and grinned,

"Miss Granger, stay after class." The professor told her quietly and she nodded, "You two Weasley," The professor went around helping those who couldn't seem to get it and they were working until the bell rang, many left the room disgruntled and began talking about the article so they didn't pay attention to the three dawdling students. The door was sealed and glamours were dropped, Hermione withdrew the paper and laid it down almost reverently.

"This is a piece of art." She stated.

"It is truly magnificent," Tom agreed, "I have never seen the headmaster react like he did, it really hit home."

"This is why I like Rita, she can twist anything beautifully." Harry said with a smirk.

"What makes it better is the actual information about Dumbledore is the truth." Swift pointed out and Harry nodded.

"Dumbledore and Grindlewald," Tom muttered in slight disbelief.

"Yes, we had a substantially larger reaction than the hall when we found out." Harry said,

"I can imagine, I still cannot comprehend the situation." Tom shook his head.

"Dumbledore's reaction was priceless," Paws said with a light laugh, "I do not believe he thought this particular information would ever come to light."

"Well he's going to be ecstatic when the rest comes out isn't he." Harry put in and they shared a smirk.

"I am going to enjoy watching the headmaster fall to pieces."

It is going to be beautiful." Paws cast a tempus and cursed.

"Snape is going to be happy,"

"He can fuck himself, slimy bastard." Harry grumbled much to Tom's amusement.

"Refrain from killing my potions master, he is the best in the world."

"Keep him from aggravating me then, honestly, letting your minions run wild." Harry mock chided and Tom rolled his eyes,

"You're getting later," the three trooped out after re-applying their glamours and split up, Harry took a short cut to the dungeons and got to the classroom before the others, Snape glared at him.

"Late Potter, 20 points for Gryffindor-,"

"I was about to apologise and inform you I was with Professor Drield, you can take up my lateness with him if you wish, Granger and Weasley's also." Harry cut him off and sat down next to Draco, he raised a challenging eyebrow at Snape whose eye twitched in annoyance. Hermione and Ron walked in at that moment turning Snape's attention to them.

"In now," he barked, Harry rolled his eyes and the man.

"Speak," Draco ordered lowly and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"I take you like my article?" Harry asked in an equally low voice.

"That was amazing, when you said you had information on Dumbledore, I never would have suspected this."

"It is a rather big shock," Harry mused and Draco scoffed,

"Please, that's like saying I wasn't surprised to find the Dark Lord sat as my defence professor." Harry laughed lowly.

"Agreed, both of them left me speechless."

"I wonder if Dumbledore will be at dinner."

"I don't know, I hope he isn't, then I know my efforts were not wasted and the article is getting to him." Harry said with a smirk.

"Oh I definitely think the article hit its mark." Draco stated and Harry grinned; he hoped so. Harry couldn't wait for Potions to finish, but Snape wanted to keep them to the very end, the man was dick in Harry's opinion which he hastily kept to himself. Draco bottled up the potion and took it up to the desk, Snape made the write out the recipe for a boil cure off the top of their heads and those who failed ended up with detention. Harry could tell that Snape was severely disappointed when he handed in his own perfectly replicated recipe, Harry rolled his eyes at the man at packed up his stuff. With a nod to Draco, Harry darted off and took his bag to his rooms, Luna wasn't there so he would speak to her later and went down to dinner. Much to his glee, Dumbledore didn't turn up at dinner and his absence was severely noticed. Conversation to where he was scattered throughout the hall and the article was still the main topic of whispers, the speculations were great and Harry internally cackled. He had thrown the human amongst the vampires here and he had no intention of stopping any time soon, they would have to wait for a few weeks before the second article was written and published but Harry doubted that anyone would forget.

"Do you think Dumbledore's hiding because everyone knows about him and his secret love?" Jack Sloper a 4th year Gryffindor asked his friend,

"Probably, he was dating the guy he so say defeated, personally, I think Dumbledore just didn't want to share." Harry had took look down to hide his grin. No, they definitely wouldn't forget. Harry walked quickly back up to his rooms after he had eaten, he didn't want his good mood to be ruined by the appearance of Ginny so he left. He threw himself down in his chair with a smile, Harry was beyond pleased with Rita's work and he was going to write with a tip for her. Luna glided in and smirked when she saw him.

"Wow, just wow." She said curling up on the sofa after throwing off her shoes,

"I know, she did an amazing way with words doesn't she?"

"I will never again complain about Rita's writing," Luna agreed, "I cannot begin to comprehend Dumbledore and Grindlewald." She shook her head.

"I know, the whole concept of it is completely inconceivable,"

"It will be topic of conversation for months, especially if you have a follow up." Harry's smirk said it all.

"What have you got up your sleeve Mr Potter-Black?"

"Ah, now that would be a cherished secret Miss Lovegood, you will have to patiently wait for the news to break." Luna mock glared at him.

"Evil," Harry pretended to blush,

"Awh thanks," She rolled her eyes with a laugh.

"What did the Dark Lord think?"

"He was please, practically skipping," Harry told her, "We briefly discussed the article after class,"

"So you don't know what he truly thinks?" She asked with a smirk and a raised eyebrow, Harry returned the look.

"I guess he doesn't, would you care to help me rectify that fact dear sister?"

"Of course brother of mine, if you would kindly take to the shower and then you can be on your way." Harry laughed and did as he was told, he relaxed under the hot water and found his clothes neatly pressed for him on his bed. He put on the dark green skinny jeans and the black tight top, she had laid out flat black daps and his black leather jacket.

"Ray, did you know I love you," Harry told her brightly, "When this is all over, you are living in one of my manors."

"I'll remember that," she replied with a smile,

"I want to meet with everyone tomorrow at around 12, see if you can get to them, Draco and the twins too," She nodded,

"I can do that," Harry leaned down and lightly kissed her cheek.

"I have truly missed my little sister." He murmured before disappearing out of the room, he went straight to Tom's quarters, he placed his hand on the portrait and sent a light pulse of magic through gaining instant access, the perks of being an heir. The Dark Lord was reading sat casually in a black leather chair when he entered, the man didn't even look up and Harry smirked.

"Personally, I believe the article couldn't have possible been better," He commented walking over, "It seems a celebration is in order," Tom marked his page and slowly put his book down, he gracefully stood up and looked at Harry through dark crimson eyes.

"I would have to agree," Harry tilted his head and bit his lip.

"What do you have in mind?" Tom seized him in a heated kiss.

"I can think of many things," Tom stated in a low voice, Harry pulled him back in to the bedroom; it was going to be a very good night.

Chapter 9

Notes:

Read the tags!

Not mine but I do claim the plot ;)

Parsel is bold italics

Chapter Text

 

Albus Dumbledore was in a huge state of panic. When he read that article he had felt his heart stop in utter horror. He didn't know how that blasted reporter had got that information from, but he wanted to slaughter her, especially because it was accurate to a point. He had to clean up the situation before it got out of hand, he hadn't spent over half a century creating his power base for it to be destroyed by one paper. No. He would have to save face and show the world that they still needed him, Albus Dumbledore, and he was the greatest wizard since Merlin. It was for the Greater Good and that's all that mattered. He knew he should have killed Gellert, but he couldn't bring himself to do so, he was doing everything for him after all.

Dumbledore paced his office, it was the second problem this week. After that damn letter from Gringotts informing him that there were clauses in the Black and Peverell family scripts declaring he could not use them as proxy he had been left up in arms. That was 5 seats lost and he had no idea who they were set to go too. At first he thought maybe the boy had rediscovered his family Lordship, but he immediately discounted that because he hadn't come to him and he no longer had the Granger girl to research things for them. Ah the wonders of the obliviate spell and a few compulsions, no one was any the wiser and all under his control; just how he liked it. Couldn't let the boy have too much of his own control or his plan would fail, which was why Black had to go and the wolf was wrapped up in so many webs that he was barely himself. The boy was needed to kill Riddle before he was disposed off and he, Albus Dumbledore, would be seen as the great hero of the world. They would lay everything at his feet and he would be more powerful than anyone in existence, he would be worshiped and he would control the world; just like he was supposed to.

There was something hindering him though, he couldn't find the last one, and he needed them gone with the rest of them. Once he had found and disposed of them, the other two would do that for him and he had already ridden himself of the first. Yes, everything was coming along nicely and soon he would solve his problem. Only then could he rule unopposed and he would. Dumbledore's attention was snapped from his thoughts as angry red howlers swooped in to the room making him growl in fury. Who did they think they were, daring to question him, Albus Percival Wulfric Brian Dumbledore, over a paper? Foolish little people. With a snarl he silenced all the screaming letters and began thinking of ways to make this blow over, oh yes, Albus Dumbledore would regain control and have them flocking him once more.


When Harry awoke he was alone. That wouldn't be too odd only since the second week of school he had always had someone else in the bed he woke up in, be it Luna or Tom. He rolled over and sat up, he could hear soft voices in the living room and guessed Tom had a meeting or something, Harry wasn't complaining, he needed the sleep. He scouted the room for his clothes and couldn't see any of them so he grabbed Tom's shirt and threw it on rolling up the sleeves to above his elbows, Tom was built bigger than him and was taller so the shirt hung nicely off of him just covering everything. Harry walked to the door and pulled it open slightly to see who was in the living room, he caught sight of pale blonde hair so he assumed it was Lucius, his guess was confirmed when the blonde spoke.

"My Lord, your bedroom door just opened on its own accord." Lucius said and Harry rolled his eyes,

"You can come out," Tom called and Harry looked down at himself and then shook his head,

"Yeah, I don't think that would be the best idea." Harry replied and he almost felt Tom roll his eyes.

"It is only Lucius,"

"I know, but I can hardly come out dressed as I am."

"Just come out," Tom sighed and Harry raised an eyebrow, he smirked to himself.

"Fine, but this is on you," Harry walked out of the room and casually leaned on the wall by where Tom was sat, Lucius began choking causing Tom to look around, his eyes immediately darkened as he took in the sight.

"Good morning," He greeted with a nod to the blonde who was eyeing him up unashamedly, Tom's eyes darted to said blonde and his eyes narrowed slightly.

"Excuse me Lucius," Tom's voice had a husky edge to it as he rose, he dragged Harry back to the bedroom and the door slammed shut behind them leaving a shocked and speechless Malfoy Lord. Tom pressed Harry against the wall and kissed him hotly; his hands roaming over the almost exposed body.

"You really shouldn't do things like that Snake," Tom murmured and Harry smirked.

"I gave fair warning," Harry pointed out, "You vanished my clothes," Tom flicked his wand to summon back Harry's clothes,

"Do you not like me dressed only in your shirt?" He asked innocently, and received a rough bite in answer.

"For me, it is fine, in front of Lucius, it is not." Tom stated and Harry rolled his eyes.

"Possessive bastard,"

"Of course," Harry vanished in to the shower and came out dressed and refreshed, he returned to the living room where Tom was sat with a shocked Lucius.

"What were you discussing before I woke up?" Harry questioned taking a seat.

"Your article," that woke the blonde up,

"Your article?" he repeated in disbelief.

"Yes, did you like it? Rita did such a good job,"

"How?"

"That is a trade secret Malfoy," Harry said with a smirk, "What is the ministry response to the article?"

"Fudge is up in arms; on the one hand he does not want to believe it. The ministry need Dumbledore because they fear an attack from the dark, they cannot stand without Dumbledore and the support the man brings. On the other hand, there is evidence to suggest truth in the article and Dumbledore has not replied to any mail or made any hit back to deny the claims. This has left the ministry in shock, to believe a national hero could have been lying about everything is almost crippling." Lucius explained and Harry grinned.

"Perfect," he practically purred, "They will take the next blow even worse, I want Dumbledore out of this castle by Yule, I want him out of the IWC by January and I will announce my titles with my friends and have him ousted by the wizengamot by the end of the same month. He will be nothing and that's when he will be at his weakest, he will have lost everything so he will be desperate and that is when he can be disposed of."

"Do you have the means to do so?" Tom asked and Harry nodded.

"I believe so, it has to be done carefully, but it can be done and it will be."

"You are going to do everything through the media." Lucius confirmed.

"Yes, the public are the masses, if they turn on him, he had no standing. Even when the ministry turned on him last year, majority of the public stood behind him and he still had supporters. This is why it has to be done carefully, everything that is printed will be fact, it is merely how it is worded that will gain public attention." Harry told him.

"This has fallen at the most convenient of times, the next wizengamot session is tomorrow and this will be raised. Dumbledore will have to come up with a convincing lie to get around this, and Fudge was already on his last days, if it turns out he allowed someone who was close with Grindlewald such a free reign then his position is forfeit." Tom pointed out and Harry smirked,

"Things could be escalated, it depends on what happens in the session tomorrow and if the minister seat gets placed up for vote." Harry mused,

"The way things are looking, the minister will be cautioned and be on constant watch."

"So something will be needed to push the minister as well as Dumbledore out of office?"

"It would seem," Harry's eyes lit up.

"Do you have something?" Tom asked and Harry nodded.

"How's 'Minister allows torture of students'?" Both men's eyebrows shot up.

"Torture?" Lucius repeated.

"Yes, I would say being repeatedly exposed to a blood quill counts as torture." Harry stated.

"A blood quill," He exclaimed in horror while Tom's eyes narrowed.

"It is why you are going after Umbridge,"

"Yes," he said in answer to both, "And I have evidence, which of course will look brilliant in the paper. 'The-Boy-Who-Lived repeatedly exposed; where were Dumbledore and Fudge?' the public will lap that up faster than anything." Harry help up his hand where the words 'I must not tell lies' were etched, they were working on something that would clear it, but it was at the back of their plans at the current time.

"That would be a substantial blow, it would see the end of Fudge and the last limbs for the old fool."

"Yes, but I cannot plan anything until after the session tomorrow. I will need to know what happens to Fudge and how long he gets if he is to be monitored." Harry said.

"Information can be passed over to you." Harry nodded.

"Lucius, have you spoken to ex-Lord Parkinson?" Lucius couldn't stop his shudder of horror.

"He has lost everything, well and truly," Harry's smirk was sinister.

"Oh course he has, the foolish man challenged me, I was not going to allow him to survive after such a move."

"Why has he not exposed you, he could simply tell the media who pulled the funding." Harry's look turned positively evil.

"I can safely say that Parkinson will never expose who ruined him." Harry stated, "If he were to do something like that, his daughter becomes bound to me as a slave for the rest of her life." Lucius looked horrified before it was masked, Tom smirked.

"Parkinson really pissed you off," Harry flashed him a grin.

"Does it show?"

"He must still owe you money." Lucius breathed.

"He does, and a lot of it." Harry confirmed.

"You're making him stay quiet," Lucius said.

"He really does not have the choice," Harry said.

"The Parkinsons are going to be considered as low as the Weasleys, when the Weasley's lost their fortune they lost their seat in the wizengamot and their title as a sign of disgrace, they have never gained it back to date."

"Wonderful, maybe I should write and suggest they whore out Pansy, I'm sure she would make a brilliant living." Harry mused and Tom rolled his eyes.

"Who is holding the Yule ball this year?" Harry asked suddenly, his eyes lit up with something.

"There are to be multiple, Parkinson was set to hold one, but they are now unavailable. Greengrass, Zabini, Nott and myself are also set to hold balls this coming Yule." Harry wrinkled his nose.

"Damn, 4 of them, didn't think it would be that many."

"Why?" Tom asked.

"Because I have a feeling there will be a few people interested in reborn families this coming Yule, I just want to make sure I am in viewing vicinity when they are revealed." Tom thought for a second before he smirked.

"Yes, I believe that will be something to witness."

"I suppose I will have to attend if I get an invite, maybe Nott will 'forget' to invite me."

"You know this is highly doubtful, to not invite an ancient and noble house to a ball would be a black mark on the family." Tom pointed out and Harry groaned.

"I know, but I hate dancing." Harry sighed, he cast a tempus and cursed when he saw it was 12:15.

"Damn it, I'm late to my own meeting." Tom rolled his eyes.

"What are you meeting for?"

"Planning, I want to find Gryffindor's room, plan the next article, go through plans for the ministry, search through our leads to the Ravenclaw and Huffelpuff heirs and I have to make plans for a certain werewolf." Harry explained getting up and rolling his shoulders, he stretched revealing pale skin and he could feel the eyes on him.

"I am off," he stated summoning his jacket, he left with a wave of his hand, Lucius looked to his lord and he was burning to ask questions, the main one being, what in Merlin's name was Harry doing coming out of his bedroom, but he refrained. Harry placed a disillusion around himself and ran all the way back to his rooms, he leapt through the portrait hole and dropped the spell as he went, they were all there and Harry groaned.

"Sorry," he told them all, he walked over and collapsed in to his chair.

"This is a funny 12 o'clock mister," Luna chided with a grin that Harry returned.

"I apologise, I was discussing the article and upcoming plans with Tom and Lucius."

"My father?" Draco asked shocked and Harry rolled his eyes.

"No Draco, the other Lucius." The blonde gave him a withering look.

"I was merely surprised that he was in the school." He sniffed.

"So Snake, what have you got on that devious mind of yours?" Paws asked and Harry smirked.

"There is a wizengamot session tomorrow, according to Lucius, Fudge is likely to be cautioned not removed meaning there is going to need to be a push to get him out of office, problem is, we do not want someone like Scrimgeour voted in." Harry began.

"Blood quill exposure?" Swift asked and Harry nodded once.

"Yes, it will be the farewell for Fudge and maybe for Dumbledore." Harry said, "I want the old fool out of the castle by Yule, and we will vote him out of the wizengamot ourselves in January."

"We need to know what happens in tomorrow's session before we can put that in to action." Paws pointed out.

"I know, Lucius will pass on to Tom so that's sorted."

"On to another topic, we've been looking at wards and trying to narrow down which ones could be covering the Gryffindor rooms," Swift told Harry,

"Brilliant, finding that would be a bonus, hopefully it is more discrete than the Chamber, that way we can hide there."

"Plus, think of the hidden knowledge." Paws put in.

"Guys, what have you been up too?" Harry questioned the twins.

"We've collected the listeners from HQ and they're ready to listen too." Fred said,

"We've also been watching both the Burrow and HQ around the clock." George picked up.

"Have you got the listeners on you?" Harry inquired and they nodded, they pulled out 12 little blue spheres and placed them on the table.

"We've manages to convert them on to parchment so they can be read rather than listening to all of the pointless chatter and long silences." George explained.

"Have you already converted them?" Paws asked interested and they shook their heads.

"No, we thought we would do them here to show you." Fred produced a sheet of parchment and placed one of the spheres on the top, he taped the sphere,

"ludere procer," the ball shone a bright blue before it seemed to melt in to the sheet, writing started to weave it's way on to the page,

"Vox agnitio," George tapped the sheet and the writing flashed and became different colours.

"Now, the only problem with this is there are no names, so we don't know who's saying what." Fred pointed out.

"However, we've managed to work out that the spheres pick up magical signatures meaning its colour matches that. The easiest one to pick up was Remus, his is a glowing Amber because of the wolf and Dumbledore's is a dark brownie colour." George explained.

"We ran a spell that picked up the colours of the people, we made it seem like a prank, we got it to change their hair, and we noted it down."

"Let's guess and see which ones we have right." Luna suggested.

"We will activate the rest of them, they stay on the parchment and can be stored and copied."

"Well the other obvious ones are the two dark blue speeches, they belong to you two." Paws said pointing to the identical blue writing.

"Yes, and this is mine." Ron pointed to a lighter blue line, "And this is Paws," he indicated a rich purple.

"Tonks is the multi-coloured one, Kingsley is the earthy colour." Harry guessed, "Snape would be the black and Mad eye would be the translucent."

"Weasley Sr is the bland yellow and the matriarch is the mud colour," Draco said,

"Ginny has to be the sickly coloured one." Luna thought much to their amusement.

"Turquoise is Jones and khaki is Vance." Harry said,

"Charlie is the fire orange and Bill is the burnished bronze," Ron stated,

"And the only other person I know is Fleur and she would be the baby pink." Harry mused.

"They are practically the only people in HQ, Kreacher has been picked up and so has Dobby, but their speech is obvious."

"Surprisingly, you got all but 2 right. Fleur and Jones are the other way around," Fred told them.

"We are either really smart or brilliant at observation." Paws said with a laugh.

"Both," Harry said seriously and they laughed.

"Oh, we have bad news." George said flicking through the sheets.

"What?"

"Remus needs to be sorted out, quickly,"

"Why?" Harry darted over to look over his shoulder.

"They were discussing Sirius' death, the spell he cast on Bellatrix wasn't the Imperious like first thought, it's an unknown."

"Wait, let me note it down," Paws called fishing for parchment and a quill, "Ok, what's the spell?"

"Inlusio," Fred read of the page,

"Right, I'll get right on it."

"Remus overheard the conversation, it's explosive and Dumbledore spelled him."

"Compulsion web, weaved with loyalty spells, creature suppression, magic dampeners and an emotion control set at severe depression and desperation, all this mixed with a nice little obliviate." Harry read off and it was immediately obvious he was pissed, his magic swirled around them.

"Breath Snake," Paws soothed.

"Swift, begin planning a pseudo rescue, we need to get in, get Moony, get out with him and hide him somewhere." Harry ordered and Swift nodded, he was already making notes.

"What else is on there?"

"Only the love potions and liquid imperious for you, the spells to keep Swift and Paws away and then we hit a bit of a jackpot." Fred showed him the sheet.

"They were talking about the spies they have within the Dark and plans for the ministry." George said.

"Perfect,"

"Let me see the spies," Draco asked and he was handed the sheet, as he read, his eyebrows climbed slowly up his head.

"No elite which isn't a surprise, 2 inner circle members and the rest of them are outer circle." Draco muttered, "They need to be terminated at the quickest time, the others have only raids to go on, luckily, none of them were at the ball."

"I'll write down the names and take them to Tom." Harry said.

"Their plans for the ministry are quite alarming, it's pretty much being ran by Dumbledore and he wants to merge us with muggles." Draco said in disgust and Harry's lip curled.

"That is never going to happen."

"When are you going to release the next article?" Luna asked,

"I think I shall wait 2 weeks maybe, I'm not exactly sure, I want to expose everything so I might go to the archives." Harry replied.

"After the wizengamot and go from there," Paws suggested.

"Yes, it is for the best."

"Now, I will file these, if you place more down I will create a book of them, it's proof in the littlest of meaning." Harry said and the twins nodded.

"On to more cheerful topics," Draco began, "When do you think Dumbledore is going to show his face again?"

"He will have to show his face on Monday, he had to go to the wizengamot so he has to come out on Monday." Harry stated,

"True, but will he manage to save face?"

"Doubtful," Paws said, "If Snake's next article is anywhere near as good as the first, Dumbledore will be crumbling by the day."

"At least with these articles Dumbledore is focussing his attention elsewhere, it gives us a little breathing room." Swift pointed out,

"True,"

"I've found out that there might be 4 Yule balls this year," Harry told them in disgust and they chuckled at the tone.

"You love the beginnings Snake," Luna said and Harry smirked,

"Of course, it's so much fun," He confirmed, "Dancing on the other hand, makes me want to AK myself."

"You do exaggerate Snake," Paws sighed, "Do you think we will be invited?"

"Of course, if your mail gets through that is."

"We have been working on that," Fred piped up,

"Yes, Swift has yet to receive any mail and we think Dumbledore has spelled it away from him." George continued,

"We are trying to bend it so his letters can slip though to him,"

"Without Dumbledore's knowledge this is."

"Good, work on that, I have no doubt you will succeed." Harry said to them and they nodded.

"We also need to look in to the other heirs." Harry stated,

"We have leads, we're nearing great-great-great-great grandfather on the Ravenclaw, the problem we are having is he had only daughters and 2 of them had no children, one we've tracked to the deceased Proctor line and the other we cannot find who she married." Paws said and Harry nodded.

"Yes, we have much more leeway with Ravenclaw compared to Hufflepuff, we've lost track of them and have had no new discoveries."

"We will continue to search,"

"Are you going to start up your group again?" Draco asked him and Harry blinked.

"I had not even thought about that." He replied shocked, "It would have to be secret and it would have to be for those open to everything, I do not know if there would be a point."

"You need to speak to Neville though," Luna told him and Harry frowned.

"Why?"

"The Prophecy Snake, the reason you both have no parents."

"Oh, I had forgotten," He said sheepishly and then frowned.

"I know Nev lives with his grandmother, the bitch she is, but you don't think he's in the same situation as me?"

"He could be, he goes through times of confidence, like the ministry, but then he snaps back to frightened little boy." Swift mused.

"I would need to have access to his mind before I could tell."

"I'm sure that can be arranged if we know you," Paws said with a small smirk,

"So we all have things to work on yes?" Harry confirmed.

"Plans for Moony," Swift held up his parchment.

"Research the spell Dumbledore and look in to the Ravenclaw heirs."

"I can help with that, I have books on Pureblood marriage names." Draco put in and Paws nodded.

"Bend the mail wards around Swift and keep ears open." The twins said.

"Brilliant, I will look in to Neville and I'll make my plans after hearing back from Lucius." Harry told them.

"Well I can look in to the Gryffindor wards as well as help Paws and Draco." Luna mused.

"So we are set?" they nodded and Harry grinned,

"Brilliant, we can relax for a bit, I don't think I can stomach Ginny."

"You will have to go out today, tomorrow you can hibernate." Paws told him and Harry sighed.

"Fine, fine, tomorrow is mine and Luna's day." Luna beamed and Harry pulled himself up.

"I'll change, I'll see you guys later." They got up and left, the twins changed in to their animagus forms before slipping out of the room, Luna was led out on the sofa as Harry came back glamoured and dressed.

"One day all this will pay off." He grumbled and she laughed lightly.

"Of course it will Snake," Harry pulled her up and they left, Harry split from Luna and hitched on the oh so fake smile he wore for the rest of the world.


The next day Harry asked the castle to lock his portrait to everyone with a message that if he was needed to contact him by other means, he was sticking to his word and spending the day with Luna for a proper catch up. He called Winky for a mountain of junk food and they sat on his massive bed opposite each other wrapped in blankets.

"I've missed this so much." Harry sighed. It was surprising what living a double life took out of him, he knew he would be even more stressed if it wasn't for Tom, he had become strangely accustom to the mans company.

"Same, I will always hate Dumbledore for taking away my first friend." Luna's voice was sad and angry at the same time, Harry squeezed her hand with a smile.

"Well we have the entire day to ourselves. What have we got on the agenda?" She pretended to think about it for a couple of seconds.

"I think we have gossip to exchange, bets to be made and styles to confirm." Harry nodded seriously.

"Yes, I believe you are correct Miss Lovegood." They laughed.

"So when do you think the twins will make their first move on Bleach?" Harry asked with a grin.

"Oh you mean other than yesterday when they sat him between them?" She returned with a chuckled, Harry smirked at that. He chose not to point out the seating arrangements yesterday, but he was pretty sure the twins kept deliberately touching the blonde who didn't seem to mind in the slightest.

"Other than that," Harry nodded, "I am surprised, the twins are usually more forward."

"Yes, but this is a Malfoy. They have to make it so Draco wants them as much as they want him."

"You make a valid point." Harry conceded.

"It also means the removal of clothing within his eyesight soon."

"Sweet Merlin you're right." Harry laughed.

"Of course I am."

"And I bet you are going to be choosing their clothes too." Luna grinned.

"Maybe, but they don't know this yet."

"Obviously,"

"How is it going with you and a certain Dark Lord?" Harry grinned.

"Walked out in just his shirt yesterday in front of Lucius,"

"And he allowed that?" She questioned incredulously.

"Good Circe no, dragged me back to the bedroom and bit the shit in to me." Harry shuddered in reminder, he threw the thoughts from his mind before he went and sought out the man.

"Possessive then?"

"No, not at all," Harry said with a laugh.

"What did Malfoy Sr have to say about this, better yet what was his reaction?" Luna leant forward absently eating from the crisps bowl.

"Happily married or not, the man was eyeing me up." Harry said, "It was obvious he had questions, but he wasn't stupid enough to ask and we derailed him with talk on my article."

"So you walked out of the Dark Lord's bedroom and Lucius eyed you up?" Luna confirmed and Harry nodded, she threw up her hands.

"He's insane,"

"I know." Harry agreed, "Will you be invited to all of the balls this year?"

"I don't know," Luna said slowly, tilting her head in thought, a habit Harry had picked up. "Daddy only attends ones which he feels are impossible to meet and as an un-betrothed Heiress it would be a scandal should I attend alone."

"Damn, that's a shame. I have a feeling that Nott's will be interesting, I cannot see him taking lightly to the verbal beating I gave him last time."

"No doubt he will do something to try and make you look bad or decrease your status, unfortunately it will backfire nastily and make him look like a total fool." Luna stated and Harry grinned,

"I do not doubt you." And he didn't, if Luna said it would happen then you could put money on it happening for sure.

"Paws will be noticed at the first ball?" Harry asked and Luna nodded.

"Oh yes, and by the last one moves shall be made." Harry smirked,

"Perfect, now we just have to set up Swift."

"Now that will be a task, but I'm thinking Zabini. He has eyes for Swift now, imagine at the ball."

"We make a deal now, I'll dress Paws and you deal with Swift. We will set them up nicely and then you can slot yourself nicely in with Paws." Harry shook hands with Luna and they shared an evil grin, the poor people wouldn't know what hit them come Yule. Harry was taking Hermione shopping in Paris and then Rome, she would have a different gown for each occasion as well as different jewels, they would have to visit their family vaults.

"Do you have a back up plan, in case Nott does try something?"

"Are you changing your outcome?" Harry asked with a raised eyebrow.

"No, not at all, Nott will wish he had never crossed you almost as much as Parkinson. However, if you already have a plan I want to hear it."

"It does all depend on the situation that comes to hand. I am looking forward to the Greengrass ball, it is supposed to be the first one, and It will depend on his behaviour towards me. I hope you can make the Greengrass ball, the reactions are set to be amusing in the least."

"Greengrass is one I know we attend." Luna said to him, "Hadrian Greengrass and my father are acquainted."

"Brilliant,"

"Where are you staying for Yule?"

"I am not certain at the current moment in time. I may use Black Manor, but I will need to discuss it with Swift and Paws. It will depend on if Dumbledore is removed before or during the Yule holidays." Harry mused, "But this is neither here nor there, Yule is ages away and we have much more important things in progress."

"True,"

"Now, and important task; dirt." Their smirked were not pleasant.

"I have a nice little fact for Theodore Nott that you could use." Luna told him and Harry was all ears.

"Go on,"

"I do believe that there are certain clauses in his betrothal contract such as him still being a virgin until the wedding?"

"I don't even know how you got hold of such knowledge, but I do not doubt that there is." Harry shook his head, Luna was amazing in her own right, the things that she got hold off were astounding.

"Ah now that is a trade secret, but I can assure you that that is a definite clause, an important one nailed in by the Lord Greengrass."

"And," he prompted.

"Well I can guarantee that Theo has breached that little clause; multiple times."

"Oh," Harry's eyes were alight.

"Yes, he was under the assumption that because he hasn't slept with a girl then it is still in tact. He and Blaise are often at it."

"You have seen it?"

"Yes, hot as it is, and a nice breech in the contract."

"Mark one on blackmail for Nott Sr." Harry made an invisible tick on an imaginary checklist.

"I am sure Izar would love to hear about it." Luna agreed.

"What else has that devious mind of yours got stored for me Miss Lovegood?"

"I know that the Prince seat is set to activate soon and their will be three new faces at the pureblood balls." Harry actually choked on his drink.

"Snape is going to take up the mantel of the Lord Prince?" Harry gasped.

"I believe so,"

"Meaning the Dark will gain another seat from the Noble House of Prince and Snape will be in attendance to at least the Malfoy ball." Harry murmured before his whole face lit up.

"Oh Swift is going to be fucking ecstatic, as is Paws. And I already have enough on Snape to keep him in line, add my mere presence; it is set to be a fucking amazing night."

"I will make sure I do not miss it." Luna said with a smirk of her own.

"Is there anything else in the winds?" Harry asked laying back.

"It is to my knowledge that your suspicions about Neville are correct. I do not know her role within it, but I have suspicion of my own that tells me that she casts spells blaming Neville for her son's death."

"That bitch," Harry hissed, "The plans for Neville need to be upped to the earliest convenience."

"Agreed,"

"How bad is the damage?"

"I could be near the scale of yours and a potions flush may be required."

"Shit," He cursed, "Right, so I will tackle Neville tomorrow, but it will have to be after class."

"Neville goes to the greenhouses after class on Mondays, Tuesdays and Thursdays on his own and Saturdays with Professor Sprout. I usually go with him on Mondays and Tuesdays,"

"Ok, so that makes it easier. I can head down there and you will be there for backup."

"I can do that,"

"I'll have to get him back here without notice, that will be the challenge, but with the eyes and ears it shouldn't be to much trouble."

"And you have to convince Neville, he had become much sketchier. He is like he was in first year." Harry groaned in to his hands.

"Oh good Merlin this is going to be difficult."

"Yep,"

"Wonderful," Harry and Luna spent the day talking, laughing, eating and relaxing without so much as leaving their room. They ended up placing many bets on the upcoming couples and the next arguments, Harry ended up writing a list of them and pinning it to the walk next to the bed as a reminder. The gamble was made exciting because they used couples they knew would be getting together, it was just when they would and who would be first and they had equal chance of winning because Luna's scary knowing only told her so much.

"I had a really good day." Luna sighed as she curled in to his side, Harry kissed the top of her head.

"Me too Ray, me too,"


Dumbledore made an appearance Monday mornings and whispers broke out, the headmaster dutifully ignored them as he ate his breakfast, students were looking at him in suspicion and Harry fought to contain his glee. The man was still the main topic of conversation and it didn't look like that was changing any time soon. The mail swooped in and Harry saw the old man looking apprehensively at the paper, Harry was slightly surprised when he saw the morning paper, the content wasn't that shocking, it was the fact it had made the news.

McKinnon Heir found; dead house gains a new seat!

He casts a look around the hall and it seemed that it was big news, especially to the purebloods, he knew why they were up in arms about it, a grey pureblood name coming back after years of nothing was something that interested them. Why it made the national news is what he didn't know, his eyes flicked to Paws who was reading with raised eyebrow.

'At least your seat went through' He commented and he heard her sigh in his mind.

'I often wonder about our nation,' she muttered and he withheld a snicker, instead he read the article.

After 16 years of lying dormant, the McKinnon house is once again active as an unknown heir has been discovered. It is not yet known if it is a Lord or Lady that has taken over the thought to be dead house, but what is known is the person is gaining momentum. They have gained a second to the already stable McKinnon name, it was said that the proof appeared yesterday in the wizengamot, the McKinnon placement shone and the crest lit up on the new seat. It brought mystery to the session as the seats remained empty even though they were active. What we are waiting for now is for the new Lord or Lady to be sworn in to their duties, only then can we discover who holds the title.

The rest of the article was detailing past dealings the McKinnon's have dealt in, and what they were famous for. The Article also scanned over the Potter name gaining another seat, it briefed the fact that he had yet to claim his Lordship or be sworn in, but had a proxy; he scoffed. Wait until that came out, he fully intended to reveal that his inheritance had been withheld by his magical guardian which just so happened to be Dumbledore before he was emancipated, that would be almost as big as the Grindlewald article, but for now he would pretend that he had not read it so it saved him a visit to the old fool. There was mentions of Narcissa sitting in the Black seat to which Dumbledore was using as Proxy and there was a massive chunk detailing the fact that Lucius Malfoy now help proxy for the Peverell seat, another that Dumbledore was using, and it had caused a bit of a commotion in the wizengamot halls much to Harry's joy. Underneath the headline article was a side story about Fudge which Harry read,

Fudge monitored!

In yesterdays Wizengamot session, the Lords and Ladies voted for a shock decision. After controversy over last year's statements form Harry Potter and Albus Dumbledore, Minister Fudge has been in a precarious position and it has been unknown where his future lies within the ministry. His Minister position was called in to question in the July session and was again questioned yesterday. A full probation and inquest motion was raised and in a 3-1 vote, the motion carried. Fudge, who has been acting minister since '81, expressed his outrage and disbelief that his performance was called in to question. Unfortunately he was not available for comment, but it does suggest that not everyone has confidence in his ability to fully run the head office with the strength needed.

Lucius prediction was right, the only thing it didn't say in the article was how long he was on 'probation' for, he would have to find out so he could time his article perfectly. The good thing was, people were losing confidence in both the head power figures, if they continued to lose faith then it would only be a matter of time before everything crumbled. Harry smirked to himself and left to gather his stuff, it set to be an interesting couple of months. He headed down to potions with a muted sigh, he was running through his plans for Neville. During breakfast he had been watching the quiet Gryffindor and he was alarmed by what he saw, Neville was jumpy, twitchy and shaking, and that was just at the table. Whatever had happened over the summer; it wasn't good and it needed to be fixed. Plus, Neville would be a great asset and the guy was a powerhouse, he would need a decent wand thought, the fact that his wonderful grandmother made him use his fathers wand didn't go unnoticed by Harry and he would be fixing that if everything went to plan. Of course just thinking that would probably jinx it, Harry grumbled to himself and went further in to the dungeons wishing he could just stab Dumbledore and be done with it.

"You look delightedly cheerful today." Draco said as a greeting when Harry took his seat.

"Yes, had information on Neville and it doesn't look good. I have to deal with it today and a number of things could go wrong." Harry told him in a low voice.

"Raven?"

"Of course,"

"What else has she scouted?" Draco asked and before Harry could reply Snape stormed in and he was very clearly pissed.

"I want your best attempt at the Draught of Living Dead by the end of this hour, and I want it done in silence." Snape snarled at them.

"Now," he barked when no one moved, Harry was the first one at the cupboard as he sat at the back and Draco prepped the cauldron. The pair were the first of the mark and Hermione was second, Harry crushed the bean instead of slicing it because it released more juice for Draco to throw in. Snape was swooping around and his anger was palible, Harry had absolutely no idea what had pissed the potions master off, but the man was acting as if he had been ordered to give Harry Occlumency lessons again. Harry slipped with the knife and he cursed in parcel, his eyes followed Snape and noticed the foul glares he was receiving which confirmed it in his mind.

Mother fucking bastard he hissed to himself, Draco shot him a strange look and Harry shook his head.

"You have half an hour left." A few people jumped and hurried on, Harry and Draco switched positions and Harry took over stirring the cauldron while Draco cut the ingredients. The classroom was silent accept for the chopping of knives and bubbling of liquid, it was the most peaceful potions lesson in Harry's memory and when Snape called time, he and Draco were in the clear lead as their potion was a nice pink.

"This will be continued next lesson, out." People scrambled for the door and Harry tried to escape, but Snape called him back.

"Potter, stay behind." Harry hung his head cursing everything about the headmaster. When the last student, Draco, was out of the door, it was magically shut and Harry walked towards the desk.

"Yes Professor," Harry had everything he had praying Dumbledore didn't go back on his word, but he knew it was no use and Snape's next words confirmed that.

"The headmaster believes that, contrary to his first initiative, it is a good idea for me to continue our Occlumency sessions." Harry did relish in the fact he wasn't the only one up for killing the old man at that point.

"Why in Merlin's name would he have a stupid idea like that?" Harry couldn't help say, it wasn't his fault.

"Do not be rude," He snapped and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"And if I refuse?"

"You do not have a choice, the headmaster had ordered me to teach you therefore you will be at my office at 6pm tonight." Snape growled and Harry's eyes narrowed, there was no way he could allow Snape to test his shields knowing they were near perfect and there was no way he was going to bare the mans presence for the damn lessons to fake it.

"Is that so," Harry got out,

"Yes, now get out of my sight." Harry stormed from the classroom cursing, he was late for transfiguration just to top things off. Harry bolted through the castle using all the passageways and made it there only 5 minutes late, he fell in to the classroom apologising profusely.

"Sit down Potter, I will let it slide this time." Harry nodded and took his seat, he felt Paws in the back of his mind.

What did he want? She asked him.

Damn old man ordered him Occlumency lessons again, even though he said it was a bad idea at the beginning of the year Harry all but snarled the reply, he was less than pissed and he already had things planned.

WHAT! Harry winced, Is he out of his mind? Does he want you to commit murder or something?

Apparently, but I can't go anyway. Snape wants me there tonight, but I'm dealing with Neville tonight; it's worse than first thought.

Ask Swift, Paws presence was gone and Harry mentally prodded Swift.

I have Occlumency tonight at 6, but I need to deal with Neville tonight at the same time. I also don't even want to be at Occlumency at all; any thoughts? Swift was silent for a few moments before answering.

Did you think of the Dark Lord? Harry stopped in shock because he had completely forgotten about Tom, he would have to speak with the man to see if he could interrupt the lesson at 6:05.

Thank you for refreshing my common sense. Harry told him and grinned when he saw him shake his head bemused, they were still on the theory for animagus so he didn't miss much during his mental talks. McGonagall handed them an essay on the basic needs for Animagi and sent them off. Harry ate a quick lunch before rushing to the library to get the essay done, he had things to plan and he wouldn't fall behind because of it. It wasn't hard and he was already an animagus, multiple times, so he had an upper hand on most of the class. When the bell went signalling the end of lunch, Harry darted up to the defence classroom knowing Tom had a free followed by the Sixth year Slytherin and Ravenclaw class, he slipped in to the classroom and sealed the door.

"You are pissed off." Tom stated as he walked over, Harry nodded sitting on the desk of the chair he usually occupied in class.

"Royally,"

"I am presuming Snape as you have no problems with McGonagall."

"Him with a side of the goat," Harry said with a sigh, he ran his hand through his hair removing the glamour and groaning.

"I need a favour," Tom looked up.

"Oh?"

"I need you to come to Snape's office at five past six this evening." Harry told him and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"And why is that?"

"Because the headmaster is under the impression that Occlumency is a good idea again." Harry sneered and then tugged at his hair.

"The man is insane,"

"I know," Harry agreed,

"Why do you wish me to interrupt?"

"Because you are the only one Snape will listen too, I cannot curse him and I cannot show him my real shields. Add to the fact that I do not like being in his presence and I have plans tonight." Harry said.

"Plans?"

"Yes, Neville Longbottom, the other child of the fake prophecy. He raised suspicion because he's gone back to the scared, quiet boy he was, but according to Raven, it's a lot worse than first thought and I never ignore a warning from Raven so I decided to see Neville myself tonight. He will be alone in the greenhouses with Raven so it is the perfect opportunity, and if he fights or is scared off, no one is around to see any forceful intervention that may or may not occur." He explained.

"Is he powerful?" Tom asked after a moment.

"Yes, I taught him myself. But he was stunted, we think that his bitch of a grandmother is helping Dumbledore or is somehow involved, Ray thinks it is because she blames Neville for her son's attack."

"Very well, I will order Severus to give the old fool fake reports on your progress." Harry breathed in relief, "But you owe me." Harry looked at him.

"What do you want?" Harry asked immediately, Tom smirked.

"You are mine tomorrow evening, straight from dinner, come to my office." Harry raised an eyebrow to that.

"Is that so?"

"Yes, and I can do anything I want to you." The crimson eyes were dark as they looked at him, Harry bit his lip, but nodded.

"Fine, we have a deal." Tom's smirk stretched,

"I look forward to it." Harry shuddered and closed his eyes, he took a deep breath as he stood up.

"6 o'clock," Harry reminded as he left the room.

Wouldn't miss it Snake, Harry cursed the man, he had a growing hard on and he forcefully thought of Dumbledore winking to remove the feelings.

 

Chapter 10

Notes:

So we have Slash, pain, and swearing in this one.

Read the tags XD

Parseltongue is in bold italics

Chapter Text

 

Chapter 10,

Harry walked down to Snape's office as slowly as possible, he really didn't want to even go and he cursed Dumbledore and Snape yet again. At exactly 6, he painfully made himself knock on the door and waited for the sneered 'enter', he was taking pleasure in the fact that Snape hated the old man nearly as much as he did for this situation, he pushed open the door and walked in. The office was just as cheerful and bright as he remembered it and Snape was sat behind the desk, Harry caught sight of the pencieve behind him and withheld a smirk; that had been an interesting lesson.

"Sit down Potter," Snape snapped and Harry took a deep breath, he forcefully reminded himself that he couldn't maim Snape while in school.

"I don't see the point, I won't be here long." Harry said instead, he cast a tempus and saw he had 3 minutes to wait.

"I won't ask you again,"

"It would help if you asked me in the first place Professor, but then again that would be courteous of you and we both know that is not something within your personality." Harry said smoothly, Snape went to speak, but Harry cut him off.

"Before you come out with a potentially degrading or insulting remark, I tell you now that should we meet outside of school I will curse you in to oblivion." Harry told him, "These lessons are pointless, I shall not be partaking in them and you will be giving the headmaster fake reports on my progress while I can get on with things that actually need to be accomplished."

"You actually think I will listen to you?"

"You will," but it wasn't Harry who answered, it was a smooth, dark voice from the doorway and Harry smirked.

"My Lord?"

"Severus, Harry had more important things to do that be here pretending to learn Occlumency. You will give the old fool fabricated reports of your weekly lessons and Harry shall not be attending." Tom ordered and Harry's smirk turned mocking,

"Well I think I shall take my leave," Harry said brightly,

"Tomorrow, after dinner, my office,"

"Wouldn't miss it," Harry returned and slipped out of the room with a well placed disillusion, the Dark Lord shot Snape a warning look and swept from the room. Snape left for his quarters and poured himself a large drink, there was something going on with the Dark Lord and Harry Potter and it would change everything. Harry ran up to the entrance hall and down to the greenhouses, he walked around until he found Neville talking to Luna in greenhouse 4 and stepped in. He dropped the charm and walked over drawing attention to his presence, Neville looked terrified, but Luna gave him a bright smile.

"Hello Luna, Neville," He greeted with a smile,

"H-Harry," Neville exclaimed in a shaky voice, "What a-a-are you doing h-here?" Good Circe it was bad, what in Merlin's name did they do to his friend.

"I was told Luna was down here," Harry said with an easy shrug, "What are you working on, I haven't been able to speak with you this year."

"M-me? Why w-would you want to speak w-with me?" Harry blinked and had to forcefully compress his anger.

"You're my friend Neville, why wouldn't I want to talk to you. It's my fault really, after the ministry, I've had so much happening and it was wrong of me to forget to catch up, I have yet to thank you." Harry shook his head.

"What for?" Neville looked shocked, he was still shaking, but it was lessening.

"For sticking by me, and fighting,"

"I was more of a hindrance, and I broke my dad's wand; Gran was furious. She said I was the ultimate disgrace." The last part was muttered, but Harry caught it and that was it, he did not have the best of patience and his temper was at a very short fuse lately.

"Neville Longbottom look at me," He snapped, Neville jumped a mile and gazed up at him in terror, Harry's eyes flashed AK for a second before he took a deep breath.

"Neville, listen to me please or I will not be responsible for my actions." Harry began slowly taking more breaths, "You are going to follow me and Luna up to my rooms and me and you are going to have a nice long talk about how much your grandmother needs to be cursed in to oblivion." Harry said this all in a calm voice with a small smile on his face, Neville lost more colour and his shaking increased.

"I-I,"

"Come willingly or I will stun you and carry you." Harry told him, the Gryffindor looked too terrified to answer or move and Harry sighed, he waved his hand and knocked him out. He flicked a disillusion spell over himself and Neville as Luna lead them out, Harry took the shortcuts to his rooms and the portrait opened as soon as he reached it. He levitated Neville on to the sofa and dropped the charms as Luna walked in, she sat in the chair as Harry paced in front of the fire.

"What in Merlin's name have they done to him?" He burst out furiously.

"I don't know, but it needs to be rectified." Luna said softly, Harry took a deep breath.

"Do you have the potions?" He asked her and she nodded, she flitted up to their room and brought down 4 phials. One was a deep blue potion that Harry recognised and a system flush, it would clear any potions from Neville's system and the second one was a headache reliever, the third was a calming draught and the final was a numbing potion.

"What's the numbing one for?"

"If he had a magical bind and you need to break it, I don't want him in pain for something that he didn't do."

"When my bind broke it didn't hurt." Harry stated.

"What state were you in when it broke?" She asked with a raised eyebrow, Harry thought back and then understood.

"Right, go it." He said with a nod, "Shall I wake him up and tell him or just do it now?"

"Wake him and tell him because if he does have shields you could damage them." Harry nodded and cast a silent Enervate to Neville, the teen shot up looking around wildly and Harry held up his hands in a soothing motion.

"Calm down Neville," Harry said in a soft voice.

"W-what did y-y-y-you do to me?"

"You weren't responding so I stunned you." Harry told him honestly.

"Where a-a-are we?"

"My rooms, look, Luna's here too."

"W-what do you want from me?" Neville asked.

"I want to help you." Harry said and Neville looked at him in confusion, Harry sighed.

"Do you trust me?"

"With my life," Neville answered firmly and Harry was touched, even after everything the other teen had been through he trusted Harry.

"I need to enter your mind, I believe you have been placed under many compulsions and obliviates and I wish to break them." Neville looked alarmed before he gained a determined expression, one Harry was familiar with, one he was glad to see.

"Ok," Harry nodded and locked eyes with the other Gryffindor, he sunk in to Neville's mindscape and knew immediately that Neville had been repeatedly spelled. Neville's mindscape was earthy colours just like the teen who was fascinated with plants and Harry could see the foreign magic weaved upon it, he gathered his own magic and pushed it straight to foreign magic. He watched as the magic was ripped away and destroyed and Neville's memories returned to him, he saw the compulsions drop and the true Neville Longbottom return as the mindscape flared and brightened Harry pulled out. Luna was shoving a headache reliever and a calming draught down his throat, Harry stumbled back shaking his head, it had taken more magic that he thought to remove them.

"How you feeling Neville?"

"If I didn't have a calming draught running through my system I would be removing Dumbledore's limbs with a carving knife and then taking the same blade to my grandmothers throat." He said in a calm steady voice, Harry smirked.

"Welcome back Nev,"

"I have so many memories to sort through, there are things dating back to when I was five."

"That explained why it feels like I've been winded." Harry muttered, he called for a pepper up and knocked it back.

"You can meditate here, you will need it and I can't explain other things until you have everything in order. Believe me when I say there is a lot you need to know, things that will change your entire outlook on life." Harry warned and Neville nodded, the raven head teen could see the simmering anger in the brown eyes.

"Before you do meditate Harry needs to remove your magical bind." Luna pointed out and Harry cringed as he all but felt Neville grow angrier.

"Excuse me?" He got out.

"You have a bind on your magic, I can take it off if you wish." Harry told him carefully.

"Get. It. Off. Me. Now." Luna handed him the numbing potion and Harry began chanting, Neville was consumed by a bright light before that was a snapping sound and magic flew out, Luna shielded them both as Neville slumped to the side.

"Ow," Neville moaned, Luna called for a pain reliever and handed it to him.

"Is there anything else that will potentially make me explode without the help of a calming draught?" Neville asked sardonically, but froze when Harry and Luna exchanged looks.

"What is it?"

"It's about your parents," Harry began gaining Neville's full attention.

"Go on," he said slowly.

"Well I've found out why they were attacked."

"What do you mean why? Lestrange and Crouch were just out for some fun like the rest of the twisted bastards from the Dark." Harry winced at that.

"No, it's not like that at all. Your parents were targeted like my parents for a reason, and it was because of the prophecy we tried to get last year." Harry said to him and Neville frowned.

"They were targets?" He repeated.

"Yes, it wasn't just an easy laugh and they would probably still be with you if it wasn't for the prophecy."

"So this prophecy is what made You-Know-Who go after your family and them after mine."

"Yes,"

"Do you know what it is?"

"Yes, it basically said that either me or you would be the one to vanquish the Dark Lord with the power he knows not and one of us would be the only one to finally kill him." Harry explained and Neville went silent, he was obviously thinking things though so Harry sat back waiting for him, he called for some refreshments from Winky as he sat.

"My parents weren't attacked in vein then, it was something that would have helped the Dark with their goals." Neville surmised.

"Yes, it was a war crime, but it wasn't needless."

"This makes it harder for me to hate them knowing they were actually there for a reason."

"I had the same feeling, if it was me I would do everything in my power to eliminate the potential threat as soon as I heard about it." Harry agreed.

"Same, and I can understand what you mean life changing. All my life I've grown up believing that my parents were attacked for fun, you know in the death eater raids, and I've wanted to avenge them, but now its different." Neville sighed and Harry internally winced, he was about to though another cat amongst the pigeons.

"There's more," Harry said,

"What else,"

"The prophecy was said to Dumbledore which is how I found out about it," Harry said to him and Neville nodded.

"That makes sense, it was destroyed at the ministry."

"It was faked," Harry stated and Neville blinked, it took a couple of seconds to register what Harry had said.

"What?"

"Dumbledore faked the prophecy and made sure it was overheard by a death eater in the Hogshead bar, he wanted it to get back to the Dark Lord to destroy the man."

"You mean to tell me that the reason my parents are currently unresponsive in St Mungos is because Dumbledore tried, and failed, to get rid of the Dark Lord?" Neville said in a very controlled voice.

"Yes," it took around 3 seconds before-,

"ARE YOU FUCKING KIDDING ME?" boom, there were Neville's self control. His magic flared wildly around him as he paced the living room, Harry didn't move as he knew he had to sort through it, he had a worse reaction if he remembered correctly so he was expecting this.

"He deliberately sent him after our families? All because he wanted him gone? Why didn't he face him like the supposed great wizard he is, but wait, that isn't exactly true is it because it turns out he was fucking Grindlewald in the beginning." Harry contained his laugh and decided an angry Neville was a funny Neville.

"Calming draught?" Luna offered.

"Yes please," He snapped and Harry snickered, Neville span to face him with raised eyebrows.

"You think this in funny?"

"No, not the situation, but you are. You forget Nev, I was the one who discovered this, and it involves me." Luna handed him another phial which he knocked back, and Harry saw the tension leave his shoulders.

"Right, your right,"

"Hey Harry, how did you get out of Occlumency?" Luna asked suddenly.

"I made a deal with the Devil." He replied, "I asked for an interruption and a few orders in exchange for tomorrow evening in his control."

"Ah,"

"Yeah," Neville was looking between then confused.

"Do I want to know?"

"Not yet you don't, I actually like you and your heart can only take so much." Harry said seriously.

"Ok, what shall I do?"

"What do you want to do?" Harry returned straight away.

"I don't know," Neville answered unsure, "All my life everything has been decided for me, even if it was against my will, and now in the space of an hour my entire life has changed."

"Tell you what," Harry started, "Stay here tonight and go through all your memories, you can crash here tomorrow too and I'll have an elf get your things for tomorrow. Once you go through the memories and truly see everything it might help your decision."

"Ok," Harry closed his eyes.

"An extra room if you would great lady," he murmured and smiled when he felt the warm, comforting heat of the castle, when he opened his eyes another door led off from the living room.

"How in Merlin's name did you do that?" Neville exclaimed.

"The castle likes Harry," Luna told him.

"Right then," Harry grinned at that.

"Winky," he called and the elf popped in with a bow.

"What can Winky be doing for Master Harry?"

"I need you to go to Gryffindor tower and pick up Neville's things he will need for tomorrow as well as some sleeping things."

"Of course Master Harry," she popped away.

"The room is all yours Nev,"

"Thanks Harry," He replied in a weary tired voice, he got up and trooped in to the room shutting the door softly.

"That went rather well." Luna spoke after a minute or so.

"Yes, surprisingly it did." Harry agreed.

"Tomorrow is going to be an interesting day."

"Yeah speak for yourself, I sold my soul." Harry pointed out and Luna smirked.

"Oh brother dearest, you didn't think I would let you go unprepared?"

"I would hope not," Harry said with a grin, "Although I do have something rather daring planned and you will have to see it first,"

"I'm intrigued Snake,"

"Good,"


 

 

Harry woke Luna up early the next morning, they each showered and got ready before going down for breakfast. Harry knocked on Neville's door and poked his head in, the other teen was sat in a meditative trance, it was clear to Harry that he had nearly been through everything because his magic was twisting in a furious manner. Neville blinked a few times before coming out of it completely and spewing out a few choice curse words.

"Did you know my grandmother believes it is my fault, what happened to her son?" Neville asked rhetorically. "And did you know she let Dumbledore put the bind on my magic and then tried to force accidental magic out of me hoping I would die?"

"I had a feeling she was partly responsible," Harry admitted.

"Oh yes, she also thought it would be brilliant to dose me with potions and gave Dumbledore a free reign." Neville laughed without humour, "She's also illegally withholding my Lordship from me, she won't even give me my heir ring." Neville showed Harry his empty hand.

"That we can sort, we will simply get you to Gringotts and have you call it there." Harry told him.

"I'm trying to work out why they saw the need to spell me so much over the years."

"Your grandmother has her own reasons, and I'm guessing Dumbledore wanted you away from me because we were supposed to grow up together and you learned all the pureblood stuff I was supposed to know. If we were close and had confidence you would have told me everything." Harry said to the other teen, it was the only reason he could think about why he wanted Neville so weak, his grandmother just had some issues.

"You're probably right, you are most of the time." Neville gave a wry grin and Harry laughed.

"You wanna eat here before you leave, because as soon as you leave here you have to act like you were yesterday."

"Yeah, thanks for this Harry."

"No problem Nev, I couldn't leave you like that."

"Thank Merlin, that was horrific," they went out and Luna passed Harry a nicely made cup of tea, Neville ate his food slowly as if tasting it properly again for a long time; he probably was Harry thought.

"I want my revenge," Neville said suddenly, his voice and his eyes were icy and Harry smirked.

"Oh Neville I thought you would never say that." He dropped his glamour and took a seat.

"We have already begun," He stated and waited for Neville to get over the change of appearance.

"Dumbledore has been a busy man I guess."

"That's an understatement," Luna scoffed sitting down, "We have a lot of work on our hands, but we are confident we should be able to manage."

"For example, the article the other day," Harry said and Neville blinked.

"That was you?" He exclaimed and Harry smirked.

"Hell yes,"

"Wow,"

"I will speak to Bleach today, and I can contact Swift and Paws too." Harry mused, "We need to find Neville's animagus and introduce him to our meetings."

"I already am an animagus," Neville remembered with a triumphant smile and Harry blinked.

"Of course, I taught you," Harry slapped himself, "Badger,"

"Shall I sort a meeting out for tonight?" Luna asked and Harry shook his head,

"Can't, I have a prearranged appointment remember?"

"Oh yes, you sold your soul to get out of Occlumency."

"I'm missing something," Neville said and Luna grinned at him.

"You are, but now is not the time." Harry said, "I won't be here tonight, but you are welcome to stay here if you want the peace. Luna lives here too, and we will have a small meeting tomorrow to fill you in properly."

"Right," Neville left with Luna and Harry sighed, he recast his glamour and went to face the day. He had double defence and he would be lucky if he got through the lesson without a raging hard on, he caught the end of breakfast meaning his missed Ginny, thank Merlin, and headed to his lesson. Ron and Hermione were already there and Harry caught there eye.

"Badger is sorted," He muttered hoping Hermione would remember, she frowned at first before her eyes widened and she breathed in relief. She quickly refreshed Ron's memory as the rest of the class arrived and they headed in, they were doing mock duels again and Tom made them use only the spells they had learned since September, it was a subtle test to see if they had been reading up in their own time. Of course, only Harry, Ron, Hermione and Neville had actually done much reading, and no one was surprised when Harry came out the victor. Harry was surprised that he didn't jump Tom in the lesson, the man kept focussing his magic on his tattoo and flooding Harry with lust much to the teens discomfort. He also hissed things in to Harry's ear whenever he passed and Harry was tempted to hex him, he was so hard it hurt and he would have to wait until after dinner before he could get rid of it. Harry ended up resorting to picturing Dumbledore winking to keep himself calm, it worked surprisingly well and he was thankful to be out of classroom. He grabbed a quick lunch and headed to the library for his free period followed by charms, at dinner he was flooded with lust again and he forwent eating so he could change. Luna was already waiting for him and Harry flashed her a smirk,

"Wait there," he had a quick shower and put on the clothes he had chosen specifically, if Tom was going to be in control the least Harry could do was make it hard for him to keep that control. He stepped out of his room and did a twirl, Luna's eyes snapped to him,

"Oh Merlin," Luna breathed eyes wide,

"What do you think?" Harry asked as she circled him, she was looking at him like a piece of meat.

"Wow,"

"So I'm guessing I'm acceptable."

"Yes," She stated seriously, Harry smirked.

"Wonderful, I think it's time I made my leave."

"I don't know, I think I should be allowed to look at you for a little bit longer." Harry laughed,

"Sorry, but I have somewhere to be, but I may kiss and tell when I get back," he kissed her on the cheek and vanished from the room, he cast a quick disillusion charm and darted to Tom's office slipping past the wards easily. The man was leaning casually against his desk with his arms crossed in wait, Harry dropped the disillusion charm when he was stood in front of him and smirked when he heard his breath catch slightly. He was dressed in black leather-like trousers which were like a second skin and had a sheen on them which made them look like liquid, they were low cut and rested on his hips, he paired it with a loose white v neck and his timeturner as a necklace. Tom's dark ruby eyes roamed is body hungrily taking in every detail, he hadn't moved from his casual position, but his knuckles were white. Harry allowed his own assessment as he was being eyefucked by the other, Tom was dressed impeccably as usual, but today he was in open front robes much to Harry's immense pleasure. The teen was suddenly full of desire that didn't belong to him and he bit his lip to stop himself moaning, his mind flashed with images from Tom and one caught his interest, filled with his own desire Harry dropped gracefully to his knees. He crawled over to Tom making sure to dip his back and when he was right in front of him he sat back on his knees and looked up to Tom through hooded, lust filled eyes, biting his lip he said 4 words.

What does Master require? Tom Riddle always had control of his actions and his behaviour, but when it came to Harry Potter, his well perfected control went shot out the window. And now said teen was on his knees in front of him solely at his mercy, calling him master and there went his control. He pulled him up by his hair and crushed their lips together, the low moan that come from the teen did nothing for his control either.

Are you sure you want to play this game Snake? Tom hissed in to his ear drawing a shudder from the teen.

Of course Master

Obey my every command?

Yes Master

Good little slut Harry hissed and tugged at Tom's hair a bit, Tom kissed him again before stepping back with a smirk, he conjured up a leather chair to sit down.

"I want a show Snake," Tom ordered and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"A show Master?" he repeated,

"Yes, give me something creative." Harry thought for a second before a devilish smirk came to his face.

"Of course Master," Harry stalked forward to place his wand on the desk, he brushed up against Tom and leaned in to lightly bite the shell of his ear.

"I hope you enjoy this," he breathed and stepped back, he mentally asked the castle for a pole and one materialised behind him. He flicked his wrist and a rhythmic song began to play, he locked eyes with Tom; and then he began to dance. Tom shifted in his seat as his erection became painfully hard, the way Harry twisted around the pole and the moves he was making was possibly the hottest thing he had ever seen. Harry looked at Tom as he dropped low and rose up dragging his hands all over his body hitching up his shirt as he went, Tom released a low groan.

"Snake," the tone of Tom's voice shot shivers down Harry's spine,

"Yes Master,"

"I have a problem and you will fix it,"

"Of course Master,"

"Crawl," Tom ordered and Harry obediently crawled over, he undone Tom's trousers freeing the member.

"Take it all," Harry took the entire length relaxing his throat, Tom hissed. Harry slowly dragged his teeth lightly back, he concentrated on the head and dipped his tongue in to the slit. Tom's hand found it's way to gripping Harry's head as it bobbed up and down, his hips thrust forward and he moaned as Harry swirled his tongue, he hollowed his cheeks and hummed lowly sending vibrations through Tom. Harry continued his assault until Tom was nearly dying, he licked up the length before taking it all again and Tom came with a shout. Harry drank his seed down and licked his lips looking back at Tom with a smirk, he muttered cleaning spells before kneeling back, Tom looked at him with dark eyes and pulled him in to a kiss.

You're wearing too much Snake,he hissed and Harry grinned, he removed his top throwing it to the side and he carefully placed the timeturner on the desk, Tom came up behind him and grabbed his hips. His hand went straight to the tattoo and Harry moaned, he pushed himself back on Tom who groaned and bit down on his neck. Harry ground down on Tom and the man growled, Harry twisted out of his grip and removed his robes, he was pulled back and given a mind blowing kiss.

I'm going to make you beg Tom murmured in his ear and Harry's breath caught, he was taken to the bedroom and pushed back on to the bed. Tom flicked his wrist and tied Harry's arms to the top of the bed, he smirked when Harry's eye grew darker, he removed his own shirt and got rid of Harry's trousers, however good he looked in them. Tom kissed him heatedly and then trailed deliberate touches across the delectable body, Harry was pulled against the restraints,

Master,he moaned and Tom's smirk stretched, his slow touches got lower and when he grazed over Harry's cock the teen cried out and arched slightly.

Shit, master please, Harry begged writhing under the skilled touches, Tom wrapped his hand around it and pulled at the entire length, Harry threw back his head moaning loudly. Tom pushed two fingers in to Harry making him shout out, his pupils were blow wide and he was writhing more than ever,

Please Master, please,

What do you want Snake?Tom hissed pumping the two fingers, Harry was making it very difficult for him to keep in control.

Please Master, fuck me, please, Harry was going mad, he needed Tom in him now.

Didn't catch that Snake, Tom's voice had a much more pronounced edge and Harry cried out when his sweet spot was brushed against.

Fuck me, I need you to fill me with your cock, Harry begged him, Please Master, fuck me, who was Tom do deny such a nicely asked request, he vanished his own clothes and pushed in to the teen slamming in to his spot. Harry arched off the bed with a scream, he was still locked in the restraints as Tom continued to pound in to him at a furious pace,

Ah, shit, Harry got out with difficulty, his prostate was being abused and Harry was coming to the edge, he was begging harder and faster and trying to pull his hands free. A few more thrusts Harry saw stars, his muscles clamped down hard around Tom bringing him over the edge with a shout of his own, with some effort Tom released Harry and cleaned up. Harry regained his bearings and drew Tom in for a heated kiss,

Does Master require anything else? Harry asked coyly and took pleasure when he watched the crimson eyes darken again, he let Tom have his fun by toying with him and now it was his turn.

I can think of many things Tom answered biting him and Harry rolled his hips relishing at the friction it created and Tom groaned, Harry kissed along his jaw and nibbled on his ear.

Does Master have anything specific? Harry hissed continuing to roll his hips, Or does Master wish to fuck his slut again? Harry cried out as pain turned to pleasure, sounds ripped from his throat beyond his control, Tom was gripping his hips hard as he fucked him and Harry scratched down the pale skin.

Fuck, harder he begged and cried out when he was answered, the pace picked up and Harry screamed out Tom's name when he came for a second time. After he had caught his breath, he muttered the cleaning spells and collapsed back on to the bed next to Tom, an arm snaked around his waist and Harry fell asleep.


 

 

Harry was repeatedly cursing Tom and the man's unnatural stamina and insatiable sex drive. He was 15 minutes late for charms because the man wanted him again this morning, but Harry couldn't help the smirk that came to his face as the pleasure ran through him. Not surprisingly, he was docked points for being late, but at least it wasn't detention and he hastily took his seat.

What happened to you? Paws asked him as he quickly caught up with the theory he had missed, he already knew it anyway so it wasn't too bad.

With Tom he answered, We're having a meeting today and then I'm going to sneak out to the archives.

Ok, Harry was found by Ginny much to his displeasure at lunch and she clung to him for the rest of the day, Tom clearly wasn't happy about that fact and made that known by the throbbing headache Harry had when he came to dinner.

"There's a Hogsmead weekend coming up, wouldn't it be wonderful to go?" Ginny sighed wistfully and Harry bit back his laugh.

"I'm not going," He told her and she looked aghast.

"But why?"

"Because I'm going to be training with Professor Drield," Harry explained and she nodded in understanding, Harry stood up to leave and then Ginny did something highly unexpected; she kissed his cheek. Harry froze looking at her in shock and then his scar seared, he wasn't able to stop his hiss of pain or his hand flying to his head.

"What is it?" She gasped and Harry shoved the pain back as much as he could.

"He's pissed off about something," Harry got out in a quiet voice, "I'm going to lie down,"

"I hope you're ok in the morning Harry," She simpered and Harry nodded, he all but ran from the hall and stopped outside Tom's office glaring at the man who was stood in the doorway.

"Are you out of your fucking mind?" Harry snarled and received a glare in return, Harry went in to the office and slammed the door shut.

"I'm going to have to face that old fool now, he already thought it would be a fucking great idea for Occlumency again."

"Have you quite finished?" Tom drawled, Harry huffed and threw himself in to Tom's chair kicking his legs over the arm.

"I have a headache now, I hope you are happy," Harry snapped massaging his temples trying to stave away the pain.

"Not particularly no, I don't particularly like witnessing you being kissed by that girl," Harry rolled his eyes.

"Such a possessive bastard,"

"Yes," Tom said unashamed,

"I swear to Merlin if you do not stop with my scar I will not be responsible for my actions," Harry muttered getting up, Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Is that so?"

"Yep,"

"And just what will you do?" Harry smirked and trailed a finger lightly along Tom's jaw.

"I'll fuck her just because it will piss you off." He flashed an all too sweet look and vanished from the office. Harry grinned at the blast of pain he received and pushed it back, he slipped in to his rooms and sat down with a sigh.

"Hey Harry," Neville greeted and Harry blinked in shock for a second.

"Oh hey Nev, completely forgot I share this room for a second."

"Luna said she would be back in a few minutes, she's finding something out," Harry grinned at that, anything Luna found out never failed to be interesting.

"Brilliant, I wonder what she's scouted this time?"

"With Luna, it could be anything,"

"True, I'm going to the archives paper hunting tomorrow hopefully."

"I thought you had information on Dumbledore?" Neville asked sitting down.

"We do, and it's all good, but if I can find old papers with things in them, then it can only add and it'll be Rita writing." Harry pointed out.

"Fair enough," Luna danced her way in with a coveted smirk on her pretty face and Harry was instantly intrigued.

"What have you found Miss Lovegood?"

"I have been looking and I may have a lead on the Gryffindor rooms." She told him, "I have also got more dirt on Nott for you."

"Go on,"

"Do you know the heritage potion?"

"Yes, but it isn't used much today because people prefer to go to the goblins so their secrets don't get out." Harry said, "Why?"

"Well I've got some, never mind why, and I tested Theo's blood, he was duelling and got a bloody nose, you only need 7 drops. Guess what come up?"

"Do tell," Harry sat forward.

"Poor Theodore has 2 fathers, it seems he was blood adopted by his current father."

"Really," Harry drawled eyes alight, "And just who was the first father?" the smirk on Luna's face was anything but pleasant.

"A muggleborn,"

"What have we here, a half blood Nott,"

"Yes, it would be a secret taken to the grave no doubt,"

"And a secret that I now have as backup," Swift and Paws entered followed by Bleach who had a smirk on his face.

"I'm guessing Luna told you about our discovery?" He asked sitting down, and Harry nodded.

"About the Gryffindor rooms?"

"Yes, we believe the main entrance is in the dungeons." Draco said.

"Keep looking, Paws can identify the wards as I'm not there, Swift is the one to cast them if you need." Draco nodded.

"Right,"

"Now, we have nothing on the heirs as of yet, but I'm closing the gap on the Ravenclaw, I'm like 200 years away." Paws told him,

"And I think I might have a way to get Moony out," Swift put in,

"I'm all ears,"

"I need the twins-," he was cut off as two wild cats bounced their way in, they changed back to their human counterparts and sat down on either side of Draco removing their jackets much to Harry's amusement.

"We were called?"

"Yeah, you're watching HQ, run this over and set a time." Swift handed them the sheet of parchment,

"We come bringing news,"

"Scrimgeor has been speaking to Tonks, and they are feeding him Dumbledore's ideas." George said and Harry grimaced.

"I have to give Tom the list of spies, I forgot yesterday." Harry shook his head, "Lucius has yet to hand in his report of the wizengamot so I'm still waiting on that."

"I haven't got anything on the spell yet, but then I haven't really had time to look." Paws told him.

"I have a surprise for you," Harry said suddenly, "I have a shit tonne of books and priceless scrolls you will love to get your hands on, you can have copies if you wish?"

"Of course,"

"I'll send them with Winky," Just then Dobby popped in.

"Dobby is taking this from the bad elf," Dobby told Harry handing him 2 potions one he recognised as love potion and the other was an unknown.

"Thanks Dobby, who was this for."

"The bad elf was putting one in Miss Mione's drink," Dobby pointed to the love potion, "And he was putting this in Miss Moons food," Harry blood went cold, his eyes darted to Luna and then back to his elf.

"What is it Dobby?" Harry asked slowly, in a voice that would indicate he was calm, but he was anything but.

"Dobby is not knowing Master Harry sir, but Dobby is knowing it is bad." The elf said pulling at his ears.

"Stop that Dobby, you did well." Harry said, "Watch Luna's food as well, I'm counting on you."

"Yes Master Harry," and he popped away, Harry waved his hand over the potion and smoky words appeared above the phial; Blood Poisoning Draught. His eyes flashed and his magic flared violently,Harry got up and began running diagnostics on Luna, he even cast parcel ones just to make sure.

"Are you ok? Do you feel any different? What have you eaten today?" He fired off rapidly, Luna nodded calmly.

"Harry, calm down, I'm fine."

"Are you sure? Any weird feelings at all?"

"I am fine," She assured him.

"When I get hold of the bastard who tried to kill my sister, I'm going to rip their fucking throat out." He growled and then he turned to Luna, "You are not eating or drinking anything unless it comes from Winky or my elves got it?"

"Yes Harry," He nodded.

"Good," he sat back down and tossed the potion over to Draco,

"I'll see if it has a counter and if I can find out who made it."

"Right, now I think the important thing here is our new member." Harry pointed to Neville who had been silent since it began.

"Neville, your finally back to normal," Paws breathed in relief and Neville nodded with a grin.

"Yeah thanks to Snake there,"

"When isn't it thanks to Snake," Swift muttered with a sly smirk directed at Harry.

"Shut it Swift," Harry told him, "Neville or Badger here has decided to join us on our quest to destroy Dumbledore and fix the wizarding world."

"Brilliant,"

"Yes, just a few things I haven't filled him in on yet," Harry said and Paws raised an eyebrow.

"You've told him we have the Dark Lord as out defence Professor right?" Neville began choking and Harry smirked.

"You just did,"

"Snake, you're impossible," She groaned and he laughed.

"Excuse me?" Neville gasped gulping down the drink he was offered.

"Yeah, Tom's teaching,"

"Tom?" he squeaked.

"Oh did Snake forget that?" Swift asked rhetorically, "Yeah he's fucking him too," Neville had another round of coughing much to their amusement.

"Oh Merlin," He choked, "Anything else?"

"Um, no I don't think so, oh yes, it was me that destroyed the Parkinson family and I'm working with Tom now." Harry said to him.

"Right, I think I got it all."

"Wonderful," Harry said cheerfully,

"We will get back to you ASAP on these plans," Panic said to Swift who nodded.

"Luna, if you want to meet me sometime this week we can see if we can pick out those wards and Bleach if you could go over my notes on the Ravenclaw heir, your input would be appreciated." Paws said.

"Ok,"

"I really hate my name," Draco grumbled but nodded.

"I'm going to leave the archived until tomorrow now, I'll use the timeturner and I'll also go and collect one for Badger and Bleach."

"Alright,"

"See you,"

"Bye guys," they trooped out leaving Harry with Luna and Neville.

"Things are picking up," She commented and Harry grinned.

"Oh yes, and I can hardly wait for the outcome."


 

After using the timeturner, Harry had snuck out of the school and in to the ministry, which was a surprisingly easy feat. He went down in to the archives where all the old records were kept, they also had a history over every paper published since the Daily Profit was first created and that was what Harry was looking for. He slipped passed the wards and grinned, there were rows upon rows of papers and he couldn't wait to get his hands on them. They were labelled by year by month and Harry walked to the year 1880 where he thought it would be good place to begin and work his way up. The first thing he found was Dumbledore's parents' marriage announcement followed by the birth of the three children, he wasn't really interested in that and he pushed them aside. Harry was reading about a series of muggle attacks by a wizard village when he picked up a paper with a headline that made him smirk, they knew this information, but with the other papers to go with it, the whole thing seemed 10x worse. Harry quickly made copies and put the originals away gently, he moved his was up discovering new things and little titbits that added to the facts they had already collected.

The placed turned out to be a gold mine and Harry found himself copying a lot, he was searching for something specific however, they hadn't got a lot of information on Dumbledore's brother and that was what Harry was searching for. He had already collected the articles on Dumbledore's father's arrest for attacking muggles and his mums suspected pureblood propaganda spreading for backup to their already collected information. There was a few things he picked up that could be used if Rita wrote it the correct way and Harry noted them all down, he passed the man's parents deaths and he was just finishing up to go to the next year when he caught sight of the Dumbledore name and pulled the paper out for closer inspection.

It was an article on Aberforth's arrest for consummating with goats. The more Harry read, the more disgusted he became, but it was also kind of funny in a sick and twisted way. Unfortunately, there was also a picture that came with the article and the poor reporter had caught Aberforth balls deep in a goat, Harry wrinkled his nose and was about to add the paper to the pile he had collected when something in the awful picture caught his eye and made his blood go cold. He wasn't sure and he hoped to Merlin he had been mistaken, but he had to check. Looking closely at the goat in the picture, Harry's eyes widened and he cast a magnifying charm on the paper before rearing back and retching, he had goosebumps running all over him and the image was burned in to his mind.

"Oh Merlin," He breathed in a rough voice, his eyes were wide and he was sheet white. Blindly he grabbed the other papers and stuffed them away before bolting out of the room, he didn't realise the paper that caused his current state was clutched in his hand. He apperated back to the chamber and went straight to Tom's rooms, Harry completely ignored Lucius who was in the room also he just went up to Tom.

"Obliviate me," He ordered with a slight hysterical edge to his voice, the picture, oh the picture was there burned in to his brain and he needed it gone.

"Excuse me?" Tom asked with a raised eyebrow, the teen didn't look well, he looked like he was about to empty his stomach.

"I'm begging you, please obliviate me. There are things in this world that I do not need to remember." Harry stated and he was aware he was actually shaking, it was then he noticed the paper still clutched in his hand with white knuckles.

"AH," he threw the paper away like it had bit him, he also took several steps away from it like it was poisonous and was looking at it wide eyed with no small amount of utter disgust.

"I am going to assume it is the paper." Tom said amused.

"Something like that." Harry agreed weakly not taking his eyes from the paper which had landed on Tom's desk, he would have to get the man a new desk. Tom went to pick up the paper, but Harry yelled out.

"NO don't touch it, you don't know what it contains." He nearly screamed gripping his hair, Tom looked at him with an amused smile and Harry shook his head.

"Don't do this to yourself, it will change you." He warned but only received a raised eyebrow, Harry watched in horror as Tom read the article and the man's eyebrows rose the further he got through it. Harry knew the man had seen what he had seen when he went sickly pale with a green tinge and threw the paper away,

"Oh good Merlin," He actually yelped and Harry didn't blame him, he was looking at the paper with the exact expression Harry had.

"Get that thing away from me, somebody burn it and obliviate me," Tom snapped and Lucius grabbed the paper to see, he dropped the paper and leapt back like he had been burned looking ill. The paper floated down to the floor picture up and with the magnifying charm it was quite obvious what they had all seen, if one were to look closely at the goats face they would spot the famous twinkling blue eyes, half moon spectacle markings and a lemon drop hanging out of its mouth. There was silence in the room as each of them couldn't seem to take their eyes off of the paper, the picture was made more grotesque by the fact that wizarding papers moved and somehow the camera man had caught the image dead on thrust. It was Tom, who finally spoke,

"Where did you get that thing?" He demanded still looking slightly green.

"In the archives, I was looking for embarrassment and little things." Harry said in a small voice, he was wishing he had never gone and never looked at any papers.

"I think you found it,"

"Yeah, and at what cost?" Harry hissed and tugged roughly at his hair, he span to face Tom.

"I told you, I told you not to look at it. All I wanted was a little obliviate, but no, now we're all scarred for life." Harry snapped.

"How in Merlin's name was I supposed to know that it would contain that?" Tom returned in the same tone.

"By me begging for an obliviate when I entered." Harry pointed out.

"I think we can agree to never mention this paper again." Tom sighed wearily, he was still eyeing the thing in contempt.

"Screw that, I'm having this shit published." Harry said turning his back on the paper and regained a healthy colour, he smirked at Tom's disgusted look.

"Why?"

"Because if this isn't the ultimate embarrassment then I really don't know what is."

"Please give warning so I know not to eat on the day it comes out." Tom said.

"Noted,"

"May I be excused My Lord?" Lucius' voice had a slight edge to it and the blonde had yet to take his eyes away from the image, Malfoy was usually pale, but the mans complexion was that of a corpse.

"Yes Lucius, go fetch yourself a very large drink." Tom allowed and the death eater nodded jerkily, he floo'd away and Harry summoned the paper folding it away in his bag.

"I need a drink," He muttered and Harry hummed in agreement.

"I don't think I can look the old man in the face again." Harry stated cringing.

"I agree with you on that."

"Well, I am off to drink myself in to oblivion and then sleep. Hopefully the image with leave me or sink to my subconscious." Harry told him brightly and Tom chuckled at that.

"I recommend a hangover cure for the following morning." Harry nodded and left the room, he cast a disillusion and went back to his own room. Harry was so thankful Luna was already there and he ran over to her, he grabbed her in a tight hug and buried his head in her hair.

"There there Snake," She soothed, "I won't say it will be ok, but it will get better." Harry nodded.

"Thank you,"

"Now, do you wanna talk about it?" She asked sitting him down.

"I think this needs a meeting, I cannot, on my clean conscious, allow my friends to have this grievous crime thrust upon them in surprise. It is just too much,"

"The twins are already in the building, I can fetch them with Bleach if you like?"

"Please," Harry nodded, "I'll call Swift, Paws and tell them to bring Badger,"

"Ok," she darted off and Harry sent a mental prod to Paws and Swift collectively.

Urgent meeting, bring Badger immediately, Harry said to them.

Be there in 5, was the swift reply, Harry sat back and pulled out the dreaded piece placing it gingerly on the table, he stood in front of it so it was blocked from view. Draco was the first to enter followed by the twins and then Luna, not 2 minutes after did Neville, Ron and Hermione appear all looking apprehensive borderline worried.

"What is it Snake?" Paws asked and Harry took a deep breath.

"Today something bad happened." He began looking at them, "Today marked the day where everything changed for me."

"What the hell happened?" Swift exclaimed incredulously.

"I thought you were only going to the archives?" Draco added.

"I did, and I won't be the same again." Harry swallowed.

"What is it?" the twins demanded.

"Let me give you fair warning, it's a paper, but if you have eaten or have a weak stomach I advise you not see it." Harry told them and the nodded confused.

"I am showing you this now because I want to eventually publish it and you cannot see this unprepared."

"Just show us," Paws sighed. Harry picked up the paper and handed it to her, they all gathered around and Harry watched as they all read and then saw what he had magnified.

"What the bloody hell," Swift yelled jumping back, Draco retched the twins yelped and jumped away, Luna fell backwards on to the chair, Neville also retched and Paws launched the paper as far away from her as she could with a disgusted squeak.

"WHAT WAS THAT?" she shouted at him.

"I had to warn you." Harry said.

"That is nasty." The twins groaned, all of them were pale and disgusted and Harry didn't blame them at all.

"I won't be able to look at the man." Luna muttered, she looked more like crazy Luna with wide unseeing eyes staring at the ceiling.

"Agreed,"

"You're going to have that re-published?" Neville confirmed and Harry nodded with a smirk.

"Yes, with instructions to place a magnifying charm on the goat."

"You are one sick individual Snake," Draco muttered, "I am leaving now." The blond disappeared with one last disgusted look towards the paper.

"We're going with him." The twins stated and rushed to follow Draco.

"Wanna stay and drink until we forget?" Harry offered, Swift, Paws and Badger shared a look before nodded with a shrug.

"Sure, why not." Harry summoned the fire whiskey and glasses.

"Bottoms up,"

 

 

Chapter 11

Notes:

Read the tags!

Unbeta'd

Parsel is in bold italics

Chapter Text

 

 

Chapter 11:

Harry used the eyes and ears to sneak in to the chamber, he closed the sinks as he went down and made his way to the study. He pulled down the books on Dumbledore and shrank them down, he also pulled down Nott, Fudge and Parkinson so he could review and update. Harry grabbed a couple more timeturners as they may come in handy, he picked up some of Paws research books and the maps of different parts of the country for Swift before heading out. He had started his own search for the Hufflepuff heir, but everything was well and truly dry so he had turned his attention to the next article. Harry had a plan, he just had to go and see Rita and get her to see it his way; no doubt she would. He cast a quick tempus and headed to Tom's office, they had things to discuss about the wizengamot and the spies they had found within his ranks. Harry knocked and poked his head in, the man was reading something and looked up with a raised eyebrow.

"You busy?"

"Extremely," was the dry reply, Harry rolled his eyes and walked in, the wards flared up before he had sat down and Tom put his book to the side.

"I thought it would be prudent to inform you of what we've been up to." Harry told him, "We've found 4 spies within your ranks which was the first thing." He handed over the names and Tom nodded.

"They will be dealt with discretely." He said and Harry nodded.

"Paws is researching what Dumbledore cast on Bellatrix, but has yet to find anything of importance. Luna and Bleach have made a breakthrough with the Gryffindor rooms and the twins are watching everything to do with the order."

"And yourself?"

"Looking for the Hufflepuff heir but coming up completely blank on all leads at the moment. I'm working on the next article for the old fool now, I shall meet with Rita in the week and if everything goes to plan it will be a 4-part special." There was nothing nice about Harry's smile.

"I almost feel for the old fool." Harry smirked.

"It brings another meaning to skeletons in the closet let me tell you. And I'm also going over everything we have on Fudge for when the time comes."

"As yes, the wizengamot," Tom remembered, "Lucius gave in his report. Fudge did not take well to his probation, it will be reviewed in the January session and to save face Dumbledore neither confirmed nor denied the article, he twisted words and got most so confused they didn't bother to read between the lines by the sounds of things." Tom told him and Harry's eyes narrowed.

"He won't get out of the next one that easily. These are provable fact, I've got the past papers to prove it and with Rita's flare it will be undisputable." Harry said.

"Let him settle first, but not long enough for people to forget."

"I won't, it should be published next week or the week after." Harry agreed, "What do you have planned for Halloween this year?"

"Halloween?"

"Yes, something bad always happens on Halloween, I thought it best if we keep up with tradition."

"I believe there is a Hogsmead weekend on Halloween, I'm sure something can be arranged." Tom said with a smirk.

"Wonderful,"

"Why so much interest in the other heirs?" Tom asked.

"We need 3 heirs to overwrite the headmaster/headmistress control of the castle. Even when Dumbledore is out, the position goes to McGonagall and we all know how much she's in his pocket so a 3rd heir is needed to for us to gain control. That way, no matter what they try, we and the third heir rule the castle." Harry explained,

"That would be a bonus,"

"Yes, that way you get head position and can reform the curriculum. By that time hopefully we will had Fudge out and then the wizarding world will truly be under control, the only thing left with be Dumbledore and his order which will be where the battle will happen."

"You've thought this out haven't you?" Tom questioned amused and Harry grinned.

"Yes, there is a surprising amount of time I have on my hands because Dumbledore is watching me."

"He will call you to his office soon,"

"Yes, I'm waiting for it. I've got an extra set of eyes now though."

"The Longbottom heir?"

"Yes, it turns out Augusta Longbottom is a vicious woman who practically sold her grandson to the old fool because she blames him for her son's condition."

"I remember her," Tom mused, "Awful woman and I don't know why Herbert Longbottom married her, it must have been a betrothal because there couldn't be a lesser match."

"Well Nev's pissed and he's in. I'm waiting on the twins to get back to me on their plans for Moony, Swift laid out the plan they just have to confirm and then we're going on an outing."

"Where will you hide him?"

"If it comes to it the Chamber, I want him close and he needs to have his spells removed. Dumbledore has him dickered in them, and Moony is one of the best for research and knowledge." Harry shrugged, "What's going on with the death eaters? The papers are oddly silent." Tom smirked.

"I'm still keeping a low profile, mainly infiltrating the ministry with spies and gathering information."

"So you already know about Scrimgeor sprouting ideas that sound unusually like something out of-,"

"Dumbledore's mouth?"

"Yes, he's being fed them by Tonks. The order isn't up to a lot, but they are determined to get Scrimgeor in to head office."

"Unless you are in the wizengamot then it will be a close vote." Tom pointed out and Harry tilted his head.

"I've mentally mapped everything out and if it goes to plan then Fudge will be out on the same session we are sworn in. By then Dumbledore should be out of the school, scratch that, if Dumbledore is not out the school by then he's being poisoned."

"I doubt it will come to that, however much that outcome would be appreciated." Tom sighed in mock disappointment and Harry laughed.

"Personally I think we should just dump him with the other g-," Harry cut himself off and tinged green.

"What were you going to say," Harry grimaced and shook his head.

"I was going to say other goats," Harry got out and Tom paled,

"Ah," Harry took a few deep breaths to calm his stomach and the green faded.

"I still can't believe that," Harry muttered with a shudder.

"Let's move on," Tom suggested.

"Agreed, Dumbledore will be gone by the January session and then he will be voted out of the wizengamot because I'm going to slam down Sirius' wrongful conviction and tell him to get out of that."

"I require the memory of his face when you are sworn in to the ministry." Tom said and Harry grinned.

"I almost wish I could take a camera so I could frame it." Harry sighed wistfully, he cast a tempus and got up.

"Oh one last thing," Harry said suddenly, he pulled out a timeturner out and placed it on the desk. "Thought this might be of benefit,"

"It is appreciated," Tom said picking it up, Harry nodded and slipped out of the room. He slowly made his way down to dinner contemplating the upcoming events, he would see Rita soon and then he and Neville had a trip to Gringotts to arrange. He caught sight of Ginny and groaned, he was also planning a death by the looks of things, Harry hitched on a smile as she greeted him.

"Professor Dumbledore would like to see you after dinner Harry, he likes sugar quills." She informed him and Harry bit back a grimace, he had been avoiding looking at the headmaster at all cost since then.

"Ok, thanks Ginny," Harry ate his dinner listening to Ginny go on about something he was not paying attention to as she leant all over him, it was sickening and he was hoping she died soon because otherwise his short patience would snap.

"Don't forget Professor Dumbledore,"

"Oh yeah, I'd better go," Harry left the hall and steeled himself,

Meeting with Dumbledore he sent to Swift and Paws.

Be careful Harry rolled his eyes at that, he walked quickly to Dumbledore's office and muttered the password, he hopped on to the staircase and politely knocked on the door.

"Good Evening Harry, it's good to see you." Dumbledore greeted joyfully, Harry have him a small smile.

"The same to you headmaster,"

"Have a seat," Dumbledore said, "Lemon drop?"

"No thank you, I just ate my dinner,"

"Of course of course, I am sure you are wondering why I brought you here?" Harry nodded slightly.

"Well I wanted to see how you were coping with everything. I know it must be difficult without Miss Granger and Mr Weasley." Harry bit back the biting remark that he wanted to spew out, instead he looked down.

"I-It is hard, but I know why it has to be done." Harry said in a small voice.

"Yes, I am so sorry that you have such a destiny."

"I'm working hard though," He told him earnestly, "Professor Drield is a brilliant teacher and I'm learning so much." Harry wanted to be sick, the fact that he used to sound like that was disturbing.

"Indeed you are, Professor Drield has been giving good reports and I am pleased you get on so well." Harry coughed a bit on that,

"Now, Professor Snape also told me you have progressed in Occlumency since the last time he taught you." Harry didn't bother to hide his scowl.

"Why did you make him teach me Occlumency sir, he hates me and he shows it all the time. Just because I look like my dad, doesn't mean we're the same person." He might as well try and get out of it, even if the attempt was futile.

"Now Harry, I am sure you can put aside your differences with Professor Snape to practice Occlumency. After all, we cannot allow what happened last time to happen again, can we?" Dumbledore said sternly and Harry looked down again, but this time it was so the old fool didn't see the anger he couldn't conceal, how dare bring up Sirius when he planned it.

"No,"

"That's right, and I noticed in the great hall that you had a pain in your scar again. We need to stop that."

"Y-You're right Professor, I'm sorry. It's just Snape doesn't bother to try and stop hating me."

"I will speak with Professor Snape, and if I do will you put your full effort in?" Harry nodded with a 'relieved' smile, he felt a compulsion of trust and gratefulness wash over him and bit his tongue.

"Well I think that covers everything, I'm sure you have homework to be doing."

"Of course Headmaster, good night,"

"Good night Harry," Harry waited until his was two corridors away before he snarled to himself and made his way back to his rooms. He threw himself down in his chair and glared at the wall until Luna returned.

"What did he do this time?" She asked.

"Had the nerve to bring up Sirius and finish with a sweet compulsion to trust him; bastard." Harry spat and Luna sighed.

"He will get what's coming to him, you know this."

"I know, but it gets to me every time." Harry groaned throwing up his hands, he began pacing trying to calm down.

"I'll have to arrange a meeting with Rita before next week, and I'll take Nev to Gringotts at the same time. He can claim his heirship, maybe even his Lordship then and hopefully Ragnok can keep it silent, he is rather skilled at that." Harry stated.

"See, keep the plans in motion and then for everything Dumbledore has done you we will get to watch him crumble."

"You are right of course." Harry said with a small smile, she gave him a brief hug and grinned.

"Of course I am." Harry laughed at that, he called Winky and his elf brought in a meal for both of them; Harry was starving.

"Winky's been brilliant today, she seems to sense when I'm hungry because all through the day little snacks have ended up in my bag." Luna smiled at the little elf who blushed.

"Winky is knowing that Masters Miss Moon is liking to pick through the day." She said shyly before popping away.

"Now that is dedication." Luna commented.

"My elves are the best." Harry agreed, "Speaking of elves, I will have to call in Kreacher-," he was cut off when said elf popped in,

"Oh hello Kreacher,"

"Kreacher is hearing Master Harry calling his name, Kreacher comes to give his report." Harry blinked but shrugged, now was a good of a time as any.

"Go ahead,"

"Kreacher is watching the blood traitors and filth in Master's house and is stopping them from poisoning Master's wolf-man because Kreacher is knowing that Master is liking the half-bread." Kreacher placed 5 phials of potion on the table.

"Kreacher is also helping Master's two place things in Masters house, they is saying they is there to get Master's wolf-man out when Master is ready."

"That's brilliant work Kreacher, anything else?"

"Kreacher is seeing the disgrace to the Black blood meeting with the head auror and speaking about old goat mans plans, she is telling him that they are the good ideas, but Kreacher is knowing she is lying."

"Thank you Kreacher, you've been a massive help. Go back and continue what you were doing, alert me if anything major happens." The elf bowed and popped away, Harry turned to the potions with narrowed eyes. One he recognised was a temporary magic dampener, one was a submission solution, one he discovered was a calming draught infused with silver, one was a nightmare potion and the final was an obedience potion, not as strong as liquid imperius, but bad enough; Harry was pissed.

"The twins had better hurry with that damn plan, if I don't get Moony out of there soon I'm going to lose him." Harry growled.

"You know they will be here as soon as possible." Luna pointed out,

"Yes, I do." Harry took a deep breath, "I will speak to Neville and we will arrange to go to Gringotts, where is he?"

"Greenhouses," Harry nodded, he decided to get his homework out of the way, he had a massive back log which needed to be out of the way.

"Oh before I forget," He said suddenly, he handed Luna the timeturner with a smile.

"Thought you could make use of this,"

"Brilliant, I can double up on my searching," She said happily slipping it around her neck, Harry spent the next part of 2 hours going through the copious amounts of homework he had let build up and Luna was reading through notes on something. When he had finally finished Harry was exhausted, but he pulled out his eyes and ears and scouted out Neville, he saw the teen walking back up to the castle and he headed out. He cut Neville off on the staircase and grinned at him,

"Hey Neville, I was wondering if you could help me with my Herbology essay, I've been stuck on it for days and I know you're really good at it?" Harry asked him earnestly with a sheepish shrug, Neville looked down with a blush.

"I-I don't know, I'm n-not that good." He denied hurriedly as they walked up the corridor.

"Please Nev, I really need your help," Harry begged him, they were on the defence corridor now.

"W-w-well I-I might be a-able to h-help you." Neville stuttered slowly, Harry placed a hand on his own portrait and they slipped in. They walked in to the living room and exchanged looks before bursting out laughing,

"Oh Merlin," Harry gasped,

"That was something else," Neville put it, Luna rolled her eyes at the pair of them.

"So what's going on Snake?" Neville asked sitting down and taking the drink Winky popped in with a muttered thanks.

"We need to make a time for the bank, I want to correspond it with a visit to Rita." Harry told him.

"You've got the next article ready?"

"Oh yes," Harry said with a smirk.

"I'm up for Gringotts whenever, how I'm going to get there without notice is another thing." Neville said and Harry grinned.

"Worry not, for I have a solution," Harry proclaimed grandly much to the amusement of the other two, Harry handed over a timeturner and Neville blinked.

"Do I want to know how you got hold of this?"

"Swift swiped 12 from the DoM last year," Harry shrugged.

"That was very fortunate," Neville pointed out slipping it on.

"Yes, I can only guess he had a slight break in his spells and a well placed bit of intuition."

"They could have been disrupted because of the brain," Nev suggested,

"That's possible." Harry agreed, "Anyway, I'll write to Rita and Ragnok soon and get back to you on the date. We will live the day before heading out, you can slip out as a badger and I'll flame."

"Got it," Harry grinned and then he yawned,

"Right kiddies, I'm tired and going to bed," He told them, "Feel free to do what you want," Harry gave a short wave and vanished to his bedroom, Neville looked to Luna with a raised eyebrow.

"Yes he does that,"

"It's taking its toll on him already isn't it?" Neville asked and she nodded.

"Yes, he thinks I haven't noticed, but I know he slips of bed at night to read things and sketch out plans. If it wasn't for his release he would probably be homicidal." Luna sighed, "But he won't say anything, only push himself further."

"Yeah, that's Harry alright."

"And until Moony is safe you can bet he will double his efforts."

"We will just have to make sure Moony get's here soon." Neville stated.


Harry didn't even step in to his room before Luna yanked him out and disillusioned them both, he was dragged down to the dungeons and Harry was looking around with a raised eyebrow as he felt two other presences become apparent.

"Snake, down here," Luna hissed catching Harry's attention, she was staring intently at a blank stretch of wall, Harry walked towards her and he felt it, strong, but very well hidden, ward covering the supposedly blank wall.

"No wonder we took so long, why would we look for the Gryffindor rooms at the entrance of the dungeons." The voice of Swift sounded and Harry could almost see him shake his head, Harry placed his hand on the wall and called forth the Gryffindor ring. Nothing happened and he was about to pull away when the wall pulsed and shook, dust billowed from the cracks of the wall as it slid in to itself and revealed a stone staircase leading down. Lighting their wands and having their magic at the ready, they carefully descended in to the darkness, the stairs levelled out and then spun off going up in the opposite direction, they climbed until they came to a landing with a stone door with a Griffin engraved on it.

"I seek entrance as the heir of Gryffindor," the rubies in the Griffin's eyes seemed to be evaluating him and Harry couldn't move, he didn't want to panic and then the door swung open with a bang scaring them.

"Merlin," Swift breathed and the girls made a noise of agreement. Harry led them in, wand at the ready, and as soon as he stepped across the threshold lights flared up illuminating a massive living quarters. It was decked in red and gold, but it was done in a fashion that didn't make it look tacky or gaudy, there were many doors leading off of the sitting room and they shared a look.

"Explore?" they said together and each dived for a door, Harry opened his to reveal an immense duelling room with target dummies, an assortment of weapons on the wall, target boards and power level monitors.

"Holy shit," he breathed, he span around when he heard Hermione squeal and Luna's cry of delight, he darted out to see them frozen in the doorway with an expression of utter bliss on their faces, he stepped around Hermione to reveal a library bigger than the Hogwarts one.

"Oh Merlin," he muttered and she nodded.

"BLOODY HELL!" Swifts yell startled them both and they dashed over, he was stood in a room which was like a surveillance of the entire castle, it was like a giant marauders map, but it showed everything. The Slytherin Chamber, the Gryffindor Chamber, the Ravenclaw Chamber and the Hufflepuff Chamber, the entire layout of the dungeons, and every secret of the castle, Harry could have sung.

"Thank you Merlin," he stated, they ran to the other rooms and found 5 nice sleeping quarters, a study, and multiple exits. They checked the giant map and it showed one exit led them to opposite the headmasters office, on led to the bottom of Gryffindor tower, one by the library and one was the main entrance which they came through. It seemed the Gryffindor chamber was situated underneath Ravenclaw tower, it was a weird place, but then the founders didn't seem to be normal.

"You explore and look around, I have someone to fetch." He flashed a smirk as Paws rolled her eyes. Harry bolted down the stares and up the other side, the wall opened automatically for him and he said phoenixfor a password as it slid closed, he tightened his glamour and placed a disillusion around himself and ran at a sprint up to the defence corridor, he continued down to Tom's quarters and muttered the password, problem was in his glamour he was severely uncoordinated and fell over the threshold and right on to his face. Tom burst out laughing and whatever snarky comment which was going to come out of Snape's mouth was halted by his shock at the Dark Lord.

"Mother fucking glamour," he cursed hitting the floor with his fist, "Ugh, I hate this thing," Harry moaned from the floor, he rolled over and pulled himself up glaring at the snickering Dark Lord.

"You can shut it," he grumbled, "You know how uncoordinated I am in this."

"Uncoordinated or not, that was hilarious." Harry being mature stuck out his tongue.

"Now, before you entered in such an elegant manner, what did you want?" Tom asked.

"I need you to come with me." Harry said and gained a raised eyebrow so he elaborated. "I have to show you something."

"I am in a meeting with Severus." Tom motioned to the speechless potions master.

"So..." Harry didn't see the point and Tom rolled his eyes.

"I cannot drop everything merely because you wish to show me something."

"Yes you can," Harry said as if it was obvious. "Besides, you should be keeping me happy." Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Oh, and why is that." Harry pointed at himself with a grin.

"Current bed warmer," Snape choked on air at that statement and Harry laughed.

"Bed warmer," he repeated with difficulty.

"Indeed," Tom drawled with a smirk, "It seems as if I shall have to reschedule this meeting." Snape blinked and looked between his Lord and Harry, he shook his head and left the room.

"He's going to explode soon; it's going to be so much fun." Harry commented and Tom rolled his eyes.

"What did you make me cancel a meeting with Severus oh bed warmer." Harry smirked.

"We found them," he said and it took a moment before the crimson eyes lit up.

"The Gryffindor rooms, where are they?"

"Never believe where, the entrance of the dungeons!" Harry exclaimed. "Wait until you see the library." Tom got up and reapplied his own glamour to follow a disillusioned Harry back down to the dungeons, he easily found the wall and muttered his makeshift password. Harry dropped the spell and glamour to lead Tom up to the rooms and showed him in with a grand sweep of his arms.

"Impressive," Tom murmured and Harry smirked.

"Swift, Paws and Raven are exploring, I personally think the training room is the best." Harry said walking to the door he first went through to show Tom, the Dark Lord looked around impressed.

"This is a Masters training room." He told the teen who nodded.

"I thought so, the power indicators are what caught me. I want to see what average my spells come out as without summoning my magic." Harry said and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"It would be interesting to see." He agreed. Harry motioned for him to follow and he led him to the surveillance room knowing if he showed the man the library first he would not likely see him again.

"This is, well I can't really describe how good this is." Harry stated and watched as Tom's eyebrows shot up and he blinked a few times.

"This is the true layout of the castle." He murmured amazed and Harry nodded.

"I'm planning of mapping it out on the eyes and ears, with the new communication method it will be easy to stay here and lead Paws and the twins through to mark everything out."

"There are more passageways than imaginable." Tom pointed out.

"Which means more places to hide,"

"The lost Ravenclaw and Hufflepuff chambers also,"

"And we have leads to who the heirs are, it's a lot of work, but its worth it, Ravenclaw especially."

"The knowledge within them would be unimaginable."

"Agreed, come see the library here, it's enough to fill any Raven's need." Harry walked to the open door and did another grand gesture, Tom actually froze in shock and Harry would bet he was mentally salivating over the knowledge hidden within.

"Pretty good don't you think?"

"This is..." He trailed off and it was times like these Harry questioned if the man was a secret Raven.

"Snake," the muffled yell of Paws could be heard from the many shelves, instead of yelling he sent her a mental prod.

'Yes'

'All the books are perfectly preserved' she mind squealed and Harry could see her surrounded by books.

'Some are written by the founders' she continued.

"The books are preserved and some are written by the founders." Harry repeated to Tom and that was the green light, the Dark Lord walked forward and vanished in to the shelves, Harry laughed to himself and went to look around. The library was organised in to subjects and there was no concept of 'Dark' and 'Light' magics, they were all together ordered by level and topic. There was a comfortable sitting area to the left with an array of seating and tables, there was also a podium with a beautiful leather bound book embedded with gold down the spine with a stunning golden phoenix quill next to it. Harry ran his finger over the open pages and the book pulsed, he yanked his hand back in shock and was amazed when perfect calligraphy appeared on the page.

Welcome heir, Harry blinked and watched as the writing disappeared and more began weaving its way on to the page.

This book controls everything within Godric Gryffindor's chamber, only an heir can access it. Harry's eyebrows shot up.

Everything you need to know is within these pages; you need only write your request to gain the knowledge of the rooms. Harry picked up the quill and carefully wrote wards, the words faded and the pages flicked over before they settled on pages with a detailed listing of the wards surrounding and within the chambers which he quickly keyed in to himself. With the power of the rightful heir the wards lit up like Christmas, after laying dormant for an unknown amount of years the wards were singing with the flux of magic, they could be felt by the other occupants within to room.

"Whoa," Harry murmured to himself, he locked in 'Slytherin' because of the irony and the fact that no one would think of it for access to the Gryffindor rooms, he locked the wards to only grant access to his chosen despite the password. He called Winky and explained the rooms, she came back with food and then popped away. Harry knew he would have no luck with Tom or Paws and Luna would only be found when she wanted to be so he went back to the surveillance room where Swift would be, the teen was analysing everything and had found a few more interesting extras.

"This is amazing Snake," he said excitedly.

"What have you found?"

"This map, it shows the wards surrounding the entire castle, over every room, every corridor including needed passwords and who's keyed in to what." He explained and Harry's eyebrows shot up.

"Really?"

"Yeah, it shows you them and how strong they are." Swift tapped his wand on the map and the view changed, it was coloured lines surrounded the castle and Harry guessed they were the wards. He was severely alarmed at the state of them, they were all but crumbling, if someone with enough power were to attack, they would fall easily.

"What in Merlin's name has happened?" He demanded.

"That I can't explain, the wards are fuelled by the headmaster, but even dormant they would have been in better condition." Swift said but Harry could see he had a theory.

"What have you got?" Swift grinned,

"I think Dumbledore has altered, weakened and switched the wards to suit his purposes," he began, "the wards here are the best, they should, if powered fully, keep every student within their walls safe from the outside. But they have been changed, if they hadn't, the mirror of Erised would have never gotten in here, the basilisk would never been able to roam the main castle and attack students and dementors would have never got on the grounds."

"Dumbledore has been at his manipulations for a long time." Harry murmured angrily, he tilted his head.

"But what about when Tom was first at school and he released the basilisk?"

"Ah, well you see this ward which had faded to a dull grey?" Swift pointed it out and Harry nodded.

"Yes, it's one of the weakest there."

"Well it's indicating that is wasn't changed with its will, so I'm guessing Dumbledore imperiused Dippet and overpowered the ward forcing it to comply to his will."

"That would explain why it's so weak." Harry said looking closely at the wards, he could feel out and manipulate any wards he came across but casting them wasn't his specialty, that was all Swift.

"We're still missing points, Dumbledore has been working too long for it only be getting rid of Tom by using me." Harry mused out loud, "I know why he forced my life in to a living hell, and with this whole Horcrux thing it explains why he wanted me weak."

"But this throws a metaphorical spanner in the works, there's something deeper going on." Swift muttered.

"We need to work out what his motives are, we're obviously missing something and we need to know what."

"We will have to have a meeting, lay out everything we have on Dumbledore and then go out on a trip if needed." Swift said and Harry nodded.

"Yes, I'll organise a meeting for the quickest convenience." Harry left Swift and delved in to the library,

'Where are you too?' he mentally asked Paws.

'Runes' she replies and he rolled his eyes, of course she was, he weaved is way through the shelves and found Paws surrounded by books; she was positively glowing.

"Snake, this is just wonderful." She gushed and he grinned at her enthusiasm.

"Sorry to burst your happy bubble Paws, but it seems we're missing something with Dumbledore." He told her and she frowned.

"What do you mean?"

"Swift found that the giant map shows the wards, it seems as if Dumbledore imperiused Dippet to override the wards allowing the Basilisk to roam the castle, the castle wards are in horrifying condition and it seems as if Dumbledore has ruined them." He explained and she gained a thoughtful look,

"We need to find out what the link is and we need a meeting and an exploration date."

"Of course, I will let you know." He told her, "Remember to keep time and that you can come in here whenever, the password is Slytherin."

"Really?"

"Yes, I keyed you in to the wards."

"Thank you," he left her to her books and went to find the other bookworm, he followed his scar and found Tom with equally as many books surrounding him, Harry shook his head.

"I thought you were lost to the living world for a minute." He commented with a grin, Tom threw him a withering look.

"I was merely interested in the variety here." Harry shot an incredulous look at the surrounding books.

"Suuuuurre," He dragged the word out in scepticism, "This is why I think you're part Ravenclaw."

"Can I help you?" Tom drawled.

"Well, not really, this is kind of my library." Harry pointed out with a serious expression, Tom rubbed his temples.

"Speak," Harry opened his mouth for another smart comment, but Tom cut him off.

"The reason you came over."

"Fine, fine," he mock grumbled, "I was going to tell you that you can gain access whenever, you're keyed in and the password is Slytherin." Tom raised an eyebrow at that.

"Irony perhaps?"

"I thought it oddly fitting," Harry agreed,

"Of course,"

"Another thing, we will be going out scouting more information on Dumbledore again and soon. Seems the headmaster has other motives for screwing with my life than because he wants to get rid of you," Harry told him and Tom nodded.

"You are missing something,"

"It appears so, we need more information." Harry confirmed. "But there will be a little blip and we will find what he's been planning."

"The old man is tricky, he will have covered everything with a back up and then some." Tom pointed out and Harry nodded.

"Yes which is why we need to find out what is going on," Harry cast a tempus and blinked, it was nearly dinner.

"Time to face the rest of the world." He sighed.

'It's time to go to dinner' He informed Swift and Paws, Tom got up and looked at the book he was reading in frustration, Harry rolled his eyes.

"Take the book, but remember that books cannot be substituted for humans." He dodged the stinging hex sent his way and laughed.

"Come on secret Ravenclaw, you actually need food." He ran from the blasting hex and thanked Merlin that the wards protected his books, he waved to Swift and Paws as they glamoured themselves and slipped out from different exits, Luna danced out and left with a wave of her hand and he took the one opposite the headmasters office as Tom took the main one. Harry placed his glamour on and stepped out in to the corridor and slowly made his way down to dinner, his mind running on the possibilities of what Dumbledore was up too, he had a feeling it would be obvious as soon as the other clues were exposed. Shaking himself out of his thoughts, he hitched on a smile for Ginny and sat down, Harry was looking forward to ending her; painfully.


Harry kissed Luna on the cheek before turning in to a phoenix and flamed to an alley in muggle London, he had to wait a minute or so before a badge ran in the alley and changed back in to Neville.

"I can't believe how easy it is to get out of school." Neville shook his head and Harry smirked.

"I could apperate if I wanted to, but I don't know if Dumbledore would be alerted. I know Tom does it all the time, but then the old fool isn't watching the castle for the Slytherin heir." Harry said to him with a shrug.

"And I'm guessing you don't want to test it?" Neville asked and Harry shook his head.

"Not worth the risk, especially when I have many other ways in and out."

"Fair enough,"

"Right, now Rite should be arriving in about 10 minutes." Harry said casting a tempus, he pulled up his hood and Neville followed him out, they entered the grimy pub and Neville went to a dark corner while Harry went to the bar.

"Room under Black," He muttered throwing down 2 gold coins, he was shown to the second private room and sat down in wait.

"Ah Rita, glad you could make it." Harry greeted as the sly reporter entered the room, wards flared up as she shut the door and hastily took the seat he indicated.

"Of course, I wouldn't miss this," she said, Harry smirked and tossed a bag of galleons on the table.

"Commission for your last article, Rita dear, I must say that that was a piece of art." She opened the bag and looked at the contents in shock, there was at least 500 galleons in there, but Harry thought she deserved it.

"Thank you," she was still astounded and Harry internally grinned, she was hooked now.

"I have another piece for you Rita." Harry told her and she snapped out of it, she looked at him with a gleam in her eye that almost had Harry feeling sorry for Dumbledore; almost.

"Is it on Dumbledore again?" She asked.

"Yes, and I believe it would make a wonderful 4-part special." He tossed the thick folder on the table, she grabbed it and Harry watched as her eyes got bigger and bigger.

"This-this
" apparently he had made the unsilencible Rita Skeeter lost for words, he took it as a personal achievement.

"Dumbledore has a lot of nasty little secrets don't you think?" Harry questioned lightly, Rita was gazing at the folder as if it was a priceless artefact.

"I could run one on each, and finish with the massive blow! Link them all together and raise questions." She murmured and Harry grinned.

"Send me the drafts, you have a week before the first one needs to be published." Harry told her and she nodded, "If this is anywhere near as good as the last one Rita, I'll double the commission." With that he swept from the room pulling up his hood, Harry spotted another cloaked figure in the corner of the grubby pub and motioned for them to follow.

"How did it go?" Neville asked him and Harry smirked under his hood.

"I'm surprised she wasn't physically salivating," Harry said and Neville chuckled.

"I can't wait for the next one, the information you must have pulled."

"You are in for a surprise I'll give you that much, of course you will have to wait to discover the true depth of Dumbledore's secrets."

"There should be a law about suspense," Neville grumbled making Harry laugh, they approached the bank and Harry led them up to the nearest teller.

"I have a meeting with Director Ragnok," Harry said and the goblin nodded snapping his fingers for another, they followed him through the many corridors to the now very familiar office.

"Ah back again," Ragnok greeted once the door was shut, Harry pulled down his hood grinning.

"Yes, I am afraid you will soon get accustom to seeing me." Ragnok gave a goblin chuckle which seemed to unnerve Neville by his alarmed face.

"Have a seat and let us get down to business."

"Thank you Ragnok, you will be please to know that it is not on my behalf that I am here, but my friend." Harry told him.

"You are the Longbottom heir?" Ragnok directed the question to Neville who nodded.

"Where is your ring?"

"It is why we are here Director, my grandmother refuses to grant me my heir ring on the basis I am unworthy." Neville explained and Ragnok wasn't pleased.

"That is a crime against her own house, only the father had the right to withhold heirship, she forfeits her rights as dowager Lady and proxy head." Harry did a mental mini cheer before speaking.

"So the Lordship automatically falls to Neville as the last blood of the Longbottom line?" Harry confirmed.

"Yes, the future Lordship can be claimed now if you so wish."

"Will the ex-Dowager Lady be alerted to such a change?" Neville questioned.

"There could be a heinous delay on the owls sent out," Ragnok suggested slowly.

"So heinous that no one would be alerted until say Yule?" Harry smirked when the goblin gave a somewhat evil grin.

"Yule sounds about the time where the error in communication could be rectified."

"And in that time if a sum of say 2000 galleons were to leave one of my accounts and end up with you then it would be a complete coincidence." Harry added seriously.

"Obviously there would be no link." Ragnok agreed, Neville looked between the two in slight disbelief and Ragnok smirked.

"We just have to confirm your identity Mr. Longbottom." Ragnok told him, he pulled out a sheet of parchment and a gold dagger.

"Allow 7 drops of blood," Neville jabbed his thumb and the blood sank in to the sheet and sharp calligraphy began writing on the parchment.

Neville Frank Longbottom,

Heir to,

Longbottom,

"You are who you say you are, and the lack of mothers name means there is someone out there within your mothers family still alive and already has the title. They may not be in this country." Ragnok said to him and Neville nodded.

"The Longbottom name is enough for me." Neville said, "What do I do now."

"As your father is unable to claim the ring and you have not been formally disowned you have the ability to call the ring to you." Ragnok explained, "Merely state your claim and the ring shall come."

"I Neville Frank Longbottom do hereby claim the Lordship to the house of Longbottom." Neville said clearly and there was a flash of light, when it had dimmed the Longbottom ring was sat on Neville's finger proudly.

"Congratulations Mr Longbottom, you are now Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Longbottom, all vaults, property and assets now fall in to your control."

"Thank you Director, would it be possible for me to have an overview of everything?"

"Of course," Ragnok pulled a folder out from one of his many filing cabinets and handed it to Neville.

"Do you have any business today Harry?"

"Surprisingly enough, I am fine." Harry told him, "I cannot do anything too obvious with any of my houses as Dumbledore will know, but I have my investments that he does not know about which are bringing in money."

"Well if that is all gentlemen," Harry and Neville rose and bowed.

"May you gold flow," Harry said to him,

"And your profits prosper," Ragnok returned, and they left, they both drew up their hoods and swept in to the alley.

"When will I actively take up my Lordship duties?" Neville asked lowly as they went, Harry led him in to Knockturn and down deeper in to the alley than Neville knew existed.

"January, with us," Harry answered, "Every vote counts and you have two seats I believe,"

"Yes, unless she has managed to lose one, something I will be less than pleased about."

"No, she is too power hungry to do something stupid meaning you won't have a gutted house to recover." Harry pointed out.

"Thankfully," Neville muttered, "Where are we going?"

"With all the restrictions now placed on werewolves, getting potions to heal them is near impossible, especially without them being poisoned to kill them." Harry told him, "Down here there is a shop run by a werewolf so you know that you're getting legit potions, they've been able to make more potions lately and I need to get some for Remus."

"Your funding the shop, are you not?" Harry smiled slightly under his hood.

"I fund a lot of things," Harry answered and Neville shook his head, they came to a little shop and Harry entered pulling down his hood. A youngish looking woman was sat at the counter, she had long dark hair and bright amber eyes, and she looked up and smiled when she saw him.

"Harry, I haven't seen you in ages," She greeted rushing out to hug him, Harry smiled and returned the gesture.

"I am so sorry Ellen," He said, "I ran in to a bit of trouble,"

"Oh you," She sighed, "Why am I not surprised,"

"How's business?" Harry asked and she beamed.

"Brilliant, thanks to you of course." Harry waved her off.

"It is for a good cause, besides, I have a personal interest in the health of werewolves."

"Ah the uncle you always speak so highly of, he is a wolf?"

"Yes, and I despise the current laws on wolfs." Harry scowled at the wall before smirking, "Of course I will soon be doing something about them."

"I believe you," Ellen said firmly, "I've had even more business since you funded my research. I found a counter for silver and not a temporary one. It cleans the system of all silver meaning wolves on the wolfsbane no longer suffer from its effects with monthly usage, it only needs to be taken a day after the transformation." She told him proudly and Harry grinned.

"You are amazing Ellen," She blushed.

"Thanks," She muttered with a smile, and then she frowned.

"But wolves are still being hunted, I keep getting more and more cases brought to me, attacks and deaths, some of them so brutal it turns my stomach." She went behind the counter and pulled out a file, she took a deep breath and handed it over.

"And just last week this one came in, it was from a smaller pack." Harry flicked it open and scanned it, he stiffened up, his magic flared alarmingly and his eyes flashed. It was an attack of two wolf cubs aged 3 and 5, they had been playing in their forest as they thought it safe, it was their home, and they were attacked by 6 fully grown wizards. What they had done to the cubs turned even Harry's stomach, something that he didn't even know was possible, the brutality was something he hadn't even seen any of the sickest death eaters perform; not on a child; neither survived.

"This will be dealt with," He stated and is voice was filled with icy venom, only his vice like control was stopping him hunting these sick bastards down at that very moment. Harry was shaking and he tucked the file away, he had some planning to do and it had become top priority.

"But what about the others," She asked desperately, "This is happening daily, and it's getting worse. People are losing hope, and there is only so much I can heal. They brought those cubs to me and I couldn't save them, the attack was too much and they died in my arms." Harry hugged her tightly as she cried.

"I will sort something, something that will help as many wolves as possible." He vowed.

"I knew I could count on you," She sobbed, "Drew was close to giving up, but I told him you would be back." Harry nodded, he looked her dead in the eye.

"I swear to you, on my magic, I will do something about this." His magic flashed locking it in and she gasped.

"Thank you,"

"I need some potions for now though," He said and she cleared herself up.

"What can I get you?"

"I need 3 months worth of wolfsbane, and I'll take 4 months worth of your new silver potion. I'll need some healing potions too, I'll take some of each." Ellen gathered up all of the things he had asked for and boxed them up, Harry threw down a large pouch of galleons.

"But-,"

"No buts," Harry cut her off, "Consider this a slight apology." He shrunk down the box and gave her a small smile.

"I will be back as soon as I have a solution, I have to get my uncle to safety too."

"Thank you Harry, for everything." He nodded and led Neville out, only then did it become apparent that his control was slipping. Harry slammed his fist in to the wall repeatedly, ignoring the sickening crunch that sounded and release a snarl.

"If there is one thing I hate more than Dumbledore, it's sick people who torture children; any children." Harry bit out, he was breathing heavily through his nose, his hand was bleeding freely and he was shaking badly.

"Do I want to see it?" Neville questioned.

"No," the short answer was enough to tell Neville that it was bad; very bad.

"We need to return, you need to read through that file properly and start planning. You apperate to the chamber, I'll make my way back and use the Honeydukes cellar." Neville took charge as Harry was in no state for logical thought.

"You are right," Harry muttered, "I have to speak to Tom about this, I won't let this go, not this." Harry nodded to Neville and apperated away, with a quick disillusion he went to his room. He placed the file on the coffee table and took the potions to his room where he unshrunk them and put a note on them for Luna, when he went back in to the living room Luna was just about to open the file and he summoned it away from her.

"I was about to read that," She exclaimed turning to look at him, Harry shook his head.

"I don't care," He stated, "You are not reading this."

"What is it?" She asked him.

"It's something that I have to sort out,"

"Why can't I read it?" Luna demanded and Harry shook his head.

"This is something I don't want you to see,"

"So you're keeping me out?" She stated and Harry could hear that she was hurt.

"It's for your own good."

"I want to know,"

"Well you can't, I won't have you reading this. You know I don't keep anything from you, but this will only hurt you."

"I can handle it," She snapped, "Don't treat me like a child."

"No, you can't." Harry stated coldly, and Luna recoiled, she looked him over and realised he was shaking violently and his hand was bleeding heavily.

"What happened?" She whispered,

"This." He motioned to the file, she blinked.

"Will you at least tell me what it is?" She questioned, Luna knew Harry wouldn't purposely keep her in the dark and for him to be this worked up it must be bad.

"Its an attack," he told her slowly, and she was confused, an attack was nothing, she was about to voice that when he seemed to read her mind.

"On werewolves," Luna could sort of see why he was pissed about it, but that couldn't be it because he looked seconds away from killing something.

"Werewolf cubs," he said with no emotion, "Three and five," all the air rushed from her lungs in shock, she looked at him with wide sparkling eyes.

"Are they ok?" His silence was enough of an answer, she gasped in horror.

"I'm going to sort this," He told her, "Neville will be up soon no doubt," with that he left. Harry went straight to Tom's rooms, the man would be there as soon as he felt the wards shift unless he was already there. The rooms were empty when he arrived and Harry paced furiously in front of the fire, he read while he paced and his pacing picked up the more he read, he was disgusted, horrified and down right pissed. He nearly lost his stomach when he got to the photos taken, their mangled and abused bodies were so small and Harry snarled, the ones responsible would pay for this. His rage was palible when Tom apperated in to the room and Harry did not stop pacing when the man slowly approached.

"You know my views on child attacks and abuse as I am sure you share the very same views." Even he could hear the stiffness of his voice, but his anger was too great for him to care.

"Children should not be harmed unless in defence, if they are to be killed then it is with the killing curse only." Tom said in agreement.

"Does this extend to all?"

"The children are not to be harmed, be it muggle, magical or creature." Tom stated and his voice had dropped a few degrees, Harry handed him the file as he passed.

"Your hand it bleeding," Tom pointed out and Harry shrugged,

"It's broken, but that's irrelevant at the current time." Harry waved him of with said bloody hand, Tom flicked through the file and the temperature in the room dropped with each page.

"Where did you get this?" He hissed,

"I went to see a friend about an investment I made previously, and she gave it to me as a last resort."

"You fund the wolf shop in knockturn?" Harry didn't bother asking how he knew he just nodded.

"When was this?"

"It came in last week, 6 of them." Harry clenched his fist, something that wasn't advisable for his hand, but he didn't even feel anything.

"They will be tracked," Tom stated and Harry nodded.

"They will not live long," Harry agreed, "But I cannot leave this, something needs to be done."

"What do you suggest?"

"I don't know," Harry said frustrated, "I'm funding the wolf potion store as well as Ellen's research, but this has to be something on a large scale."

"And it needs to be accessible by any wolf," Tom added as he slowly took a seat, he summoned 2 drinks and placed one on the opposite side for Harry when he sat down. The teen did another round of pacing before throwing himself down and knocking back the drink in one gulp.

"When I get hold of the bastards who did this, I'll rip out their intestines and feed it to them, see how they like it." Harry growled clenching and unclenching his fists.

"That is light compared to what they deserve," Tom spat before taking a calming breath, "What we need is a safe haven, somewhere only wolves can enter and it needs to be big enough to house them, possibly hundreds." Harry sighed,

"That is a big ask, but something needs to be done. According to Ellen, attacks like these are happening daily and they're getting worse." Harry shook his head, "That is the first thing I'm abolishing; werewolf laws. I'll build them back up again if I have to, but they will go."

"I think I will call Lucius now, he will have contacts and ears out," Tom pulled out a pendent of the dark mark and tapped it.

Lucius Malfoy he hissed and it pulsed, Harry took another drink all the while glaring at the pictures from the file.

"The sickest thing is, that little girl was 3 years old." He gave a dry laugh that held no humour what so ever, "The things they did to her," Harry closed his eyes, the floo flared up and Harry's attention snapped to the exiting blond.

"My Lord?"

"Read this," Tom ordered thrusting the file in to the blonde's hands, Lucius quickly read through and looked disgusted.

"When was this?" He asked.

"Last week," Harry answered and the icy edge to his voice was overlooked.

"Find the ones responsible Lucius, and quickly. When you have a location, inform me at once, they will be meeting a painful end soon." Tom stated and Lucius bowed and left, Harry released a tired sigh.

"I have a feeling this is connected to the old fool somehow," He murmured and Tom made a sound of agreement.

"It truly wouldn't surprise me anymore."

"And to top it all off, I have yet to collect Moony from that house." Harry went to pick up his glass, but he did it with his damaged hand and he dropped it with a yelp of pain.

"Where the fucking hell did this come from?" He burst out gripping the arm of the chair, his whole hand was on fire.

"You said your hand was broken," Tom pointed out with a roll of his eyes.

"Yes but it wasn't hurting just a minute ago," Harry hissed, Tom tapped the injured hand with his wand and the bones snapped back together, Harry sucked in a sharp breath through his teeth at that.

"Ow,"

"You broke your hand," Tom said with no sympathy,

"Because I was angry," Harry defended flexing his fingers carefully, Tom repaired the broken skin easily and Harry nodded in thanks.

"I'm exhausted," He sighed leaning back in the chair,

"It is approaching midnight." Tom told him, Harry looked at him in shock.

"Didn't realise it was that late," He said, "This chair is really comfortable."

"Do you intend to move?" Tom asked him amused.

"No, but feel free to go to bed. I like this chair just fine." Harry muttered, Tom rolled his eyes again and dragged the teen up.

"At least make it to bed if you're going to sleep here," He told him, Harry mock saluted as he was pulled to the bedroom, he changed his clothes with a flick of his wand and fell in to the bed.

"I take it back, this is really comfortable." Harry groaned in to the pillow, he felt an arm drape over his waist before he was out like a light.

 

 

Chapter 12

Notes:

Read the tags

Unbeta'd

Parsel in bold italics

I'm not J.K

Chapter Text

 

Chapter 12,

For an entire week, Harry was a ball of barely contained fury and he spent most of his nights with Tom trying to work out what he or rather they, as Tom was just as pissed about the attack on the cubs as he was, were going to do to help the wolves. Harry had pushed more money in to Ellen's shop and sent her a note telling her to do what she could and that he was working on it, the only problem was they were coming up blank on wide scale aid. Harry was going mad, he stalked in to his rooms and slammed his bag down, everything was pissing him off and if he didn't find a solution to something soon he was going to blow. It didn't help that Moony was still locked up that damn place with those damn people, he slashed out violently with his hand destroying half the room. Lucius was still out hunting down the sick bastards responsible for the attack on the cubs and it was lucky they were having a meeting tonight or he would blow up. He hadn't managed to get back to the Gryffindor rooms as he wanted because the other research had taken a back seat and now the rooms had been found Luna had picked up his searches to give him more time, he knew Paws had been there as well as Bleach, but he hadn't properly spoke to them as he had been mapping out ideas. Luna came in and raised her eyebrow at the stated of the room, Harry waved his wand to fix the damage and shrugged at her questioning look.

"I'm pissed off," He said and she nodded.

"I know, but destroying this room will not help."

"Yeah well it felt good,"

"That's what the bite marks are for." She pointed out and Harry smirked, last night had gotten particularly vicious and Tom was sporting just as many, if not more inflamed marks than Harry.

"That felt amazing too," He agreed and Luna rolled her eyes, she sat down and pulled out a few things.

"The others are on their way, it's lucky it's Saturday tomorrow or I think there would be a few explosions." She said to him just as the portrait opened and Neville stalked in clutching a letter.

"Your grandmother?" Harry asked nodding towards the letter and Neville smiled without warmth.

"Yes, just informing me how much of a disgrace I am and that she's just cut my trust fund in half because the family money shouldn't be wasted on a useless lump like me." He threw the letter down with a humourless laugh.

"Pathetic bitch, I'm going to enjoy putting her in a ward with her oh so precious son, then she can see how useless I am." He growled.

"We are moving slowly I know, but we will get there." Harry reassured him, and partly himself, and Neville nodded.

"I know, but the nerve she has is unbelievable." Bleach entered followed by the twins and he was carrying a book on charms to Harry's confusion,

"I'll explain when the rest get here," He said and automatically sat between the twins, Harry and Luna exchanged smirks. Paws came in with her arms full of sheets and Swift was carrying books that seemed to belong to Paws also.

"What's been wrong with you all week?" Swift asked first and Harry sighed tugging at his hair.

"We'll get to that after your things," He said, "What's with the charms book?" he directed the question at Draco who smirked.

"I was searching for the Ravenclaw heir and I realised that the pureblood marriage names only go back to far, so I decided to start somewhere else and it was only by coincidence that I came across a name." He began, Draco opened the book and flicked it to its marked page before reading.

"Many believe that the levitation charm 'Wingardium Leviosa' dates back to the time of the founders. They would be wrong in their assumption as the original levitation charm was in fact 'Obiectum Resugat', it was only after many years did the levitation charm as we know it came in to power. It was a young witch who discovered a flaw in the original charm and found a way to better it, Penelope Denver nee Harris was a direct descendent of Ravenclaw." Draco finished and Harry was impressed, that was literally pure luck that the blond had come across it, but it was some damn good luck.

"So I looked in to the Harris line and it seems this girl was the only born child meaning the name also died out, the Denver line however is rather large and I found she married Maverick Denver and had 4 children, three boys and a girl. Now I know 1 of the boys died without an heir, but the others I'm at a miss."

"You have been busy haven't you?" Harry muttered impressed, "So we are now looking for Maverick Denver's heirs, who they married and if they had kids." Harry took a note of the name as did Luna and Paws.

"Paws, you look rather stretched."

"I've been searching for the heirs, but haven't had nearly as much luck as Draco, I know Parson Hufflepuff had 2 children, a boy and a girl. The girl died young of dragon pox and the boy had another two, both boys, and one died with no heirs, and the other just seems to vanish after he had a girl. I've got all of their deaths except his and his child, it's like they were never there or never died." She shook her head frustrated.

"I thought you were concentrating on the spell Dumbledore used?" Harry questioned and she nodded motioning to the notes and books.

"I was, and I swear I've looked for everything possible. I've got clues and reverences, but not the actual spell." Paws showed him the books and her notes and it all seemed to point to an illusion type of spell.

"Have you tried a dark book, one on mind magics maybe?" Harry suggested and she looked shocked before gaining a glint in her eye.

"Of course, why didn't I think of that?" She muttered, "I'll go through the scrolls and tomes you sent me, amazing by the way."

"Good and I know, I hit a bit of a jackpot there and you can consider them a happy birthday." Harry said and she grinned.

"That potion you gave me," Draco put it before they moved on, "I've been looking at it and I it isn't pleasant. I broke it down and it looks as if that one dose would have killed her within the day, I've never seen something this potent, it might as well have been basilisk venom. The only neutraliser I can imagine at the current time would be phoenix tears, but they would have to be added directly to the blood stream." He explained and Harry's eyes flashed.

"So we now have to work out why Dumbledore or someone else wants to kill Luna," Harry said,

"I have only been eating food personally brought to me by Winky, so I am covered for the moment, you have added your parsel spell along with every other known protection spell so I think I'm ok." Luna said with a light glare and Harry didn't even look sheepish.

"You are my sister therefore you shall be protected to the best of my limited ability for now." He stated and she smiled.

"I can accept that." She agreed, "I've been updating and digging, now you gave me a timeturner I've been able to uncover lots of dirt on Fudge which, if he somehow manages to cling to his position, will knock him flying."

"And what has that brilliant mind dug up for me Ray?" Harry asked intrigued, there was nothing nice about her smirk.

"I built from what you had, the embezzling and the bribes, and found out that Fudge has quite a few villas in other countries including a 2.5 million galleon mansion of the east coast in America. Now how could a man, who is only from a noble house afford that when the ministers wage is only 100,000 a year?" Harry smirked.

"Strike 2 for Fudge," Harry said,

"There's more, something that will literally blow him so far away from the ministry there will be no recovering, he will possibly end up in Azkaban for this."

"Go on,"

"Many of the illicit dealings that go on, ones that Aurors have been working endlessly to shut down have been allowed by Fudge, he's been giving traders and dealers passes through if he gets a 30% cut. That's how the blood quills got here in the first place and that is how many of the Class C non-tradable items have found there way here from Germany."

"Ding ding ding, we have a winner," Paws said and they all laughed.

"Well I think it's safe to say that Fudge will be out of office." Harry said cheerfully,

"I've collected all the evidence and put it in Fudge's file, I've updated your Nott and Parkinson ones too."

"You are a Diamond." He told her sincerely,

"And I expect one too," She told him and he nodded.

"Of course,"

"Twins, please have some news for me?" Harry turned to them and they grinned.

"We've been creating," Fred began,

"Got a knock out gas that will go through the bubble head charm,"

"Knocks the inhaler out for at least 20 minutes,"

"And they won't remember anything,"

"We base it on the muggle date rape,"

"We've been, or rather Kreacher's been, planting capsules,"

"All over the house,"

"We've just got to get some on the kitchen,"

"And then we're good to go." The bouncing back and forth was normal for them now and everyone followed the speech, George held up a blue chew-like sweet.

"This is the nullifier," he told them,

"Eat this and the gas is useless on you," his twin picked up.

"Guys, you are geniuses,"

"We know," they said together.

"Swift, outline your plans with them. Make sure they correspond because I want to get Moony at the soonest possible time, he can live in the Gryffindor rooms now and imagine the research he could help with." Harry said. "What about the mail ward surrounding Swift?"

"We've made good leeway on that," George said,

"We think we can have it twisted without Dumbledore knowing,"

"We just need to test it on someone else before Swift,"

"Good, that way anything that's going to the Prewett line will go to its correct owner."

"Ok, so what's gotten in to you this week then Snake? You've been off since your trip to the bank." Paws stated and Harry silently snarled at the wall.

"Something else has come up, something that is top priority and Tom and I have been trying to work out how to fix it." Harry said with a stiff voice.

"What is it?"

"It's the werewolves. Swift, Bleach, Badger and twins, you need to see this." Paws looked affronted and Harry held up his hand to stop her tirade.

"This is nothing against you, but you won't be able to stomach it and I didn't let Luna read it, it's cubs." He told her and she nodded even if she didn't look happy about it, Harry handed over the file which he had copied for them, Tom had a few copies too as he wanted them for his elite.

"This came in 2 weeks ago," Harry added and it was Draco first, the blond must have reached the pictures because he darted to the bathroom to be sick quickly followed by Neville. Swift and the twins weren't looking much better, the disgust and anger was obvious and when the others returned Harry didn't even need to ask if they were with him.

"She was three years old," Draco breathed in horror, Fred wrapped an arm around him and he leaned in to the red heads shoulder.

"The sick bastards," Swift hissed, "Who gets off on a 3 year old." Luna and Hermione's eyes widened and Luna looked to him begging him to tell her it wasn't true, Harry closed his eyes and looked away or he would get angry because she was upset.

"What are you doing about this?" Neville asked.

"I've flooded the wolf potions shop in galleons, but other than that I'm at a blank, Tom's got Lucius with his ears out to find the people responsible I will know." Harry told them, he tugged at his hair.

"We will add this to the things to think about list." Swift stated, "I'll work with the twins for Moony and we will sketch out ideas,"

"I'll concentrate on the spell Dumbledore used," Paws put in,

"I'm working on antidotes," Draco said and Harry handed him some more phials.

"These came in too," the blond nodded.

"When shall we expect the next article?" Paws asked suddenly.

"I'm waiting on her reply, I should get it Monday, I've given her more to work with this time."

"We'll work on heirs then," Badger said indicating he and Luna,

"I'm working on the wolves, I'm also going to start drafting new legislations to pass through on wolf laws." Harry said to them all,

"We need a massive safe house or something," Draco sighed getting up and stretching, "Stupid filthy wizards." Harry stilled at that and his mind was working quickly, his head tilted to the side and his eyes narrowed.

"Massive safe house," he repeated before his eyes lit up.

"Draco Malfoy, I knew there was a reason I liked you." Harry breathed, "Badger, stay and look after Luna, I don't want her alone tonight and there's a possibility I won't return." Harry said quickly, he darted off to his room much to the others confusion and sprinted back down. Harry soundly kissed Draco full on with a grin,

"If this works out you will forever be remembered as a fucking mastermind." Harry stated before he was gone,

"What in Merlin's name was that?" Draco demanded and the others shook their heads. Paws, Luna and Swift exchanged looks,

"He does that,"


Lucius Malfoy looked up as his floo flared to life and out stepped one of his, closet friends; Severus Snape. The potions master was obviously worked up about something and Lucius raised an eyebrow,

"I need a drink Luc, a very large drink," Snape told him sitting down, Lucius summoned the firewhiskey and poured the man a glass only for it to be drank down in one.

"What troubles you?" Lucius asked his friend, he hadn't seen the man this worked up for a long time.

"The Dark Lord," Severus stated and a pale eyebrow rose, "And Harry Potter,"

"Ah," Lucius nodded, it made sense, he himself had no idea what was going on between the two and he had enough questions of his own.

"Yes ah," the dark haired man snapped,

"You have seen them together then?"

"Yes, what in Merlin's name is going on?"

"I do not know," Lucius told him honestly, "I know they came to an agreement, but it's developed since then."

"Developed," He scoffed, "They're sleeping together,"

"Are you sure?" Lucius questioned sitting forward.

"Potter called himself a bed warmer, I think that's confirmation."

"I had my suspicions, I saw him leave the Dark Lord's bedroom with only our Lords shirt on." Lucius said and Snape's eyebrows shot up.

"When have you ever known the Dark Lord to allow someone to stay in his bed?" Severus asked slowly and Lucius shook his head.

"Never,"

"Have you ever heard the Dark Lord laugh?"

"Excuse me?" Lucius exclaimed and Severus nodded.

"Yes, Lucius, I heard the man laugh." Severus confirmed, "Not an evil laugh, or the terrifying one when you know your about to be in pain, this was a genuine laugh."

"Oh Merlin,"

"That's not all," Severus shook his head, "I heard Potter tell him to 'shut it',"

"And he didn't get cursed?"

"No, if anything our Lord found it more amusing!" Severus stated, "Then Potter demanded his time,"

"You can't demand the Dark Lord's time Severus, surely you exaggerate." The look Snape gave him made Lucius question his last words.

"I was in the middle of a report on the Order when Potter arrived, the Dark Lord rescheduled the meeting because Potter told him he should be keeping him happy." Lucius choked on his drink in disbelief,

"You jest,"

"No, I don't,"

"What is going on between them? Every time I am there, Potter seems to be there or he turns up. The latest something I'm watching, it seems Potter brought it to the attention of our Lord."

"Potter has had a personality transplant since he has returned, I want to know how and why." Lucius suddenly got a wary look.

"Do not anger him Severus," the Blond warned and Snape looked at him.

"What do you mean? I know he is clearly not under Dumbledore's thumb, but he is acting like it, what else?"

"I tell you this in confidence, my friend," Lucius set his glass down, "And if this gets out your life is in forfeit as well as mine."

"I swear on my magic that I will not voluntarily repeat anything said in this room without your express permission." There was a flash of light and Lucius nodded.

"Potter stayed here in the summer, since the end of July," Lucius began and Severus' brows rose.

"The order was watching the house day and night, how is that possible?"

"I do not know, but I know the people they were watching were not Potter and the muggles."

"The muggles are dead now, they were found in August."

"But they died in July," Lucius stated and the message sank in quickly.

"You're not saying-,"

"He did, and it was brutal. When he arrived at the manor he was dripping in blood, and the brothers and I went to investigate after he had passed out, it was torture Severus and it was all wandless." Lucius told him and it took a few minutes for it to sink in to Snape's mind, he couldn't wrap his mind around that the Potter he had seen from day to day was a killer.

"He stayed at the manor?" Severus confirmed.

"Yes, he and Draco have been friends, something we all were unaware of. Narcissa offered him rooms, his injuries were extensive and she did not want him far."

"Injuries?"

"Potter's muggle relatives were the worse sort of muggles."

"I was informed Potter was treated like a Prince,"

"As was I, but it is untrue. I know he spoke to the Dark Lord, and I know they had an agreement, but after the ball something changed."

"He attended your ball?" Severus repeated in disbelief.

"Yes, who do you think ruined Parkinson?"

"Just how much is he hiding?"

"I do not know Severus, every time I think I've got around his personality he does something completely different." Lucius shook his head. "He's going to change everything,"

"How much?" Severus didn't need to specify, Lucius knew what he was asking. The blond looked him dead in the eye,

"He could crush me like an insect, and would have no qualms of doing it."


Tom looked up when the portrait sounded, the only person who every came to his quarters without him calling them was Harry, but the teen usually just walked on in; no manners Tom thought fondly before pushing the thought away. He pulled it open and was slightly surprised to see the Weasley teen, Swift Harry called him, outside, he raised an eyebrow in silent question, Swift handed over a rolled up scroll.

"Can you pass these on to Harry please, he's decided to hole himself up in the chamber and has cut off all communication since Friday. He is more likely to come to you before I see him and it's the final plans for Moony." Swift explained,

"Why is he in the chamber?"

"No idea," Swift rolled his eyes, "Ran out after the meeting and no one's seen him since, hasn't even been eating according to his elf."

"I'll pass them on," Swift nodded in thanks and walked away, Tom couldn't help but smirk, the teen was nervous, but handled it well. He wanted to know what Harry was doing in the chamber, he felt through their link and his eyebrows shot up at the solid shields wrapped around everything like a concrete wall. Tom decided to see what he was doing and made his way to the chamber, he took the dungeons route that led straight in to Salazar's office rather than the chamber hall. When he entered the room he stopped in shock, the room was a complete mess and in the centre of the mess was a very ragged Harry Potter. There was parchment and books strewn everywhere, they were stuck to the walls, the floors, even the ceiling, Harry had books floating in front of him as well as quills writing midair.

"What in Merlin's name are you doing?" Tom demanded once he had recovered, Harry leapt up and span around only he tripped and would have fell on his face if not for a well placed book case.

"Merlin's shit, Tom," Harry breathed, "You scared the living crap in to me."

"What are you doing?" Tom repeated.

"Draco gave me an idea, and I've got it." Harry told him excitedly, he jumped over what used to be a table and grabbed something. "He said they needed a massive safe house or something, and I thought why not!?

"I presume you are speaking of the wolf problem." Tom drawled and Harry nodded absently,

"Why then, is the room currently looking like it's been hit with a blasting hex?"

"I was fixing a ward to surround the manor," Harry told him, he climbed back over the table and on to the desk, he pulled down a sheet which was pinned high up before leaping neatly down.

"I have the plans for your wolf," Tom told him ignoring the fact that the teen had been working on a ward.

"Why do you have them, I only gave them to Swift a few hours ago." Harry checked something and noted it down before pinning it back up.

"Harry, what day is it?" Tom asked him slowly, Harry frowned.

"Friday, why?"

"Oh dear Merlin," Tom muttered to himself, "You've been down here since Friday, it's Sunday." Harry froze and looked at him in shock.

"What?"

"It's Sunday evening,"

"Holy shit,"

"Now sit down, eat something, and tell me what you have been doing." Tom ordered and Harry looked around.

"I may need to clear up," He said with a slight frown, he waved his hand and the sheets stacked themselves neatly on the coffee table.

"Here," Tom handed him the scroll with his placed on top of the stacks.

"Well, after Draco said that about the safe house it got me thinking, why not? So I looked in to my property portfolio and found the biggest property I own is Peverell manor, and I was looking it over and it's practically perfect. Half of the land is forest, it had outhouses scattered across it and the manor itself is something to be admired. It's not a manor, it has to be a castle because even Black Manor doesn't even touch this, and it makes Malfoy Manor look like a shack. Why someone would need something this large is beyond me, I mean why would you want to go on a bloody trek just to get your dinner, but there we go." Harry rolled his eyes and shook his head and Tom looked at him in amusement, "Anyway, back to the topic on hand, I'll need to check the wards to see how secure the place is, and I know it's still in good condition because there are still elves in employment. Now in answer to your question, I've been looking in to wards that could be kept around the building that would keep the wolves safe from wizards and I found one, well twisted one would be a better analogy." Harry rifled through the many sheets and pulled out 4 sheets and a book, he handed the book to Tom and pointed out the ward.

"This is the ward that wards of werewolves,"

"Exactly, now read these," he handed the sheets, Tom read through then and his eyebrows slowly climbed.

"This is very impressive work," He told the teen who smirked,

"I know," Tom rolled his eyes, "Now the only problem I have is if we place this ward around the manor, the only people who would be able to access the manor would be us which would be slightly problematic. What I was trying to do was see which elements would work to allow others with our permission in, ones we deem acceptable."

"Yes, I see the problem," Tom murmured looking at the sheets, he got up and pulled down a few books and began reading, Harry went back to what he was looking for. He was looking in to the blood wards to see if there was anything, and the notes he was scribbling down were becoming less and less legible as the time went on, he got up and pulled another book down from the shelf behind Tom when he caught sight of the mans notes.

"Wait," he said suddenly, Tom's hand froze and Harry read down the page,

"I have it," he stated, he jumped over the sofa and grabbed his blood notes, and another sheet on connecting wards, he placed them down next to Tom's.

"If these go together, and link them all to a ward stone, the blood could be added and connected." Tom mused and Harry nodded.

"Yes, and we may be able to add it to the current stone so it's completely tied to the building meaning the wards will never fall, especially if we add our blood."

"This is going to take a lot of power, if the figures of the land are correct." Tom said looking at the building, Harry scoffed.

"It'll be lucky if we have enough energy to apperate back after casting it. The entire square foot it nearly Ÿ the size of Hogwarts and these wards had 4 casting them, add to the fact the other wards need to be repowered."

"Once the wards are done, you have plans." Tom said and Harry nodded,

"Yes, I'll have to speak to Ellen, but I think I have it planned out well." Harry stated with a pensive look, "The elves are there to feed them so no wolf goes hungry and of course they are free to gather their own food if they so wish. It'll be a haven for them as such, they can make their own communities as long as they don't destroy the buildings or the contents. The outhouses can be used for the smaller packs and the main building for singles or 'domestics', I'll flood it with enough money for Ellen's potions and hopefully she'll run it, that way the wolves will feel safe and I'm sure Remus will help out, he might even teach the little cubs, I know Luna would love to do that." Harry trailed off thoughtfully, before springing up and scribbling down his ideas and rolling it up.

"I'll have to go to the manor, see what needs to done, and then set things in to motion. I have to wait for Rita's reply and the plans for Moony are ready,"

"Ah yes, the article," Tom remembered, "What shall I expect?"

"Now that would be telling," Harry told him with a grin, "But I have high hopes."

"When do you plan on going to the manor?"

"I don't know, I want to confirm Rita has the article ready before I go out and we need to plan our outing for information." Harry mused,

"Inform me when you go, I want to accompany you. And Lucius has a few leads, he is following them up."

"Will do," Harry agreed, "I need to eat something, and go back to my rooms."

"It is to be advised," Tom rose and left, Harry cleared the room and brought all of his research with him as he went back to his own rooms. He went in and dumped everything down in his room and pulled out the scroll for Moony, Winky brought him some food which he wolfed down before reading the plans. They were simple enough and they could go Friday if everything else went to plan, it would be he and Swift getting Moony out with Paws as there eyes. Harry had a quick shower before diving for his bed; he was exhausted.


Harry was relieved when a brown barn owl swooped in as he was eating his breakfast in his rooms, Luna was in the shower which gave him time to read over the upcoming article. He had to admit he was looking forward to it and Rita had done herself proud again, Harry wrote a note confirming that the article was in order and told her to publish it next Monday, that way they could have one every week at the beginning and if everything went to plan Remus would be safe. As the bird flew away, Harry gave a piercing whistle and his trusty owl soared over,

"Hey girl," He greeted softly, "I have a job for you," he tied the scroll to her leg,

"I need the best jewellers you can find," He told her and she hooted in confirmation.

"Thank you," he watched as she took flight and turned away when Luna came down.

"Morning," She said brightly, Harry shot her a warm smile which she returned.

"I'm glad to see you've returned, have you finished your plans?"

"Hopefully everything will be in order." Harry said to her with a relieved expression, "Tom and I are going out to check and as soon as it is done there will, hopefully, be a change for the wolves."

"Wonderful,"

"I've also seen the plans for Remus, I think they are in order."

"The twins will be back with Swift for an overview tonight, that way you can iron out everything and put it in motion,"

"That is fine, Moony will be away from that place well before Halloween which is what I wanted." Harry said,

"Halloween is less than a month away, it is set to me a good day for once." Luna pointed out and Harry smirked.

"Oh I know, I will be speaking with Tom to iron everything out. Of course, Paws, Swift and I still need to plan our information hunt, there has to be more and I know where I want to look."

"Lets go and face the world," Luna said casting a tempus, Harry nodded and they left the for the great hall. Harry smiled brightly at Ginny and sat down to eat again, he didn't actually consume anything and he saw her slip something in his drink; love potion. Harry took a deep breath so he didn't curse her, apparently he was going to be acting like a love sick fool, he really hated Dumbledore at that point.

"How did your training go with Professor Drield?" Ginny asked as they left the hall, Harry grinned.

"Good, I think. Professor Drield taught me this advanced shield and I managed to perfect it over the weekend."

"That's really impressive Harry," Harry nodded.

"We'll be working on more offensive magic soon, but I'm better at defence I think." He shrugged earnestly, "What lesson have you got?"

"Transfiguration,"

"I'll walk you there," She gave him a beaming smile, Harry walked her all the way to the transfiguration door and gave her a brief hug before leaving. When he was a few corridors down he gave a shudder and cleaned his robes,

"Ew," he muttered, he cast a tempus and cursed, he was late for potions. Harry flew through the corridors and arrived outside 10 minutes late, there was no way he was going to escape a detention for this, but he would not be attending.

"Potter, detention," Snape barked as soon as he walked in, he forcefully stopped himself rolling his eyes and sat next to Draco.

"I saw you leave with Weaslette," Draco said and he pointed out the things Harry had to begin chopping,

"Do not remind me Draco, I am not going to enjoy the next couple of days." Harry groaned.

"Love potion,"

"Yes, and I'm going to have to spend lots of time around her,"

"I feel for you," Draco said sincerely,

"I feel for me too," Harry grumbled.

"Oh, I have something for you." Draco said suddenly, Harry looked at him with a raised eyebrow and Draco punched him in the arm; hard.

"What in Merlin's name was that for?" Harry hissed,

"For kissing me you dick,"

"I was happy ok, you should be flattered." Draco scoffed at that.

"In future, please refrain from doing so."

"Fine, I wouldn't want to ruin your chances with the twins." Harry smirked when Draco flushed.

"I don't know what you're talking about,"

"My mistake, the glowing blush you're currently wearing must be a coincidence." Harry said seriously and Draco's blush darkened.

"Shut up Harry," He hissed making Harry snicker,

"On another note, your idea may actually work." Harry told him.

"A massive safe house?"

"Yes, I just have to go through a few details and collect Moony,"

"That explains where you went for the weekend,"

"I didn't even realise I was there the weekend," Harry said with a shake of his head.

"Oh wow,"

"Yeah I know," they finished their potion and the class filed out.

"Potter, stay behind,"

"And he can go fuck himself," Harry muttered much to Draco's amusement.

"Yes Professor," Harry sighed,

"Your detention,"

"Yes I know, pass it on to Professor Drield and it will be done." Harry waved him off, Snape blinked before sneered.

"Who do you think you are?"

"Someone who has plans and better things to do that clean cauldrons or work with ingredients for a number of hours tonight," Harry drawled, "However, if you have a problem then I am sure I can find it within myself to remover it for you; permanently." Harry smiled sweetly at the potions master.

"Was that a threat?" Snape demanded and Harry blinked.

"Oh, was I not clear?" Harry exclaimed in mock shock, "Well, let me try again. Piss me off and I will take pleasure in killing you, believe me when I say the only reason you are still alive is because Tom values your ability, otherwise you would be in the ground. Now, as I was saying before, mark that detention with Professor Drield and it shall be done." Harry summoned his bag with a flick of his wrist,

"Good morning Professor," Harry smirked to himself and made his way to transfiguration, where McGonagall docked points, but that was better than detention. At lunch he was with Ginny and he felt physically sick with himself by the way he was acting, and he had a killer headache thanks to Tom. With his acting and migraine, Harry was thankful to fall in to his rooms and in to his chair.

"What's with you and the gold digger?" Luna asked with a raised eyebrow,

"Love potion," Harry answered but it came out as a childish complaint.

"That would explain it,"

"Winky," he called and the elf popped in,

"Yes master Harry."

"Headache potion please," she nodded and returned with a phial, he sighed in relief when the pain dulled to down to a small ache.

"He's not very happy then?" Luna said lightly,

"That's putting it mildly," Harry grumbled, "Damn possessive bastard."

"Did you really expect anything else?"

"No, but then again, I didn't expect to be spending most of my time with him." Harry shrugged.

"I suppose you have a point, I doubt he would make a habit of having the same bed partner repeatedly."

"Don't blame him, makes people think you give a shit," Harry said with a smirk.

"You would know all about that," Luna pointed with roll of her eyes.

"Of course, James Black is gorgeous, rich and powerful, why would I keep the same bed partner?"

"Oh, like you're doing now?"

"Yeah, but this is different, this is the Dark Lord. I take an unprecedented amount of pleasure in knowing how much he wants me and doing little things that breaks his perfect control." Harry told her with a grin, Luna smirked.

"How did those trousers work?"

"Oh so well, and so does calling him master,"

"You didn't," She gasped looking at him in shock, Harry gave a devilish smirk.

"Pole dancing works too," She was looking at him in astonishment,

"Oh sweet Merlin," Luna climbed over the table and on to the sofa.

"Tell me everything," She demanded and Harry grinned, he kicked his legs over the arm of the chair and lounged back.

"I caught flashes from his mind, and when I saw one I went with it. He ordered a show, and I gave him one." Harry shrugged, "I simply did what he wanted."

"You are awful." She said with a grin, "I'm guessing he enjoyed the show."

"Me thinks so," The portrait opened and Swift walked in followed by Paws.

"Hey, the twins can't get here, they're focussing on the ward." Swift said as an explanation to Harry's raised eyebrow.

"Fair enough," Harry nodded, "Now straight to Moony,"

"Have you looked over the plans?" Swift asked,

"Yes, and everything seems to be in order."

"I am going to be your eyes because you won't be able to see clearly through the gas, it'll just be you and Swift going." Paws explained,

"That's fine, you can work from the Gryffindor rooms and we can bring Moony straight back there."

"Yes, and that way he can rest after you've broken the charms."

"It should be fin-," Swift was cut off as the alarm sounded alerting Harry that someone he didn't want was at his portrait.

"Shit, its Dumbledore," He curse recognising the magical signature, "Go, out the window," the parchment and books were stuffed away and the three of them bolted to the bedroom and the door shut, Harry waved his wand and sealed his glamour in place before going to the door.

"Oh hello Professor, sorry, I was in the bathroom, come in," Harry greeted cheerfully, stepping back and allowing the headmaster entrance.

"Good evening Harry." Dumbledore returned, "It's quite alright my boy, I thought I might pop down to see how you are fairing,"

"I'm fine, I was just about to go over a few of the things Professor Drield has been teaching me," Harry told him inviting him to a seat,

"Ah yes, your lessons with the Professor,"

"They are brilliant sir," Harry said enthusiastically.

"I am glad you are progressing well," Dumbledore said and Harry nodded.

"Would you like a drink sir?"

"Here, let me," Dumbledore snapped his fingers and an elf popped in; his elf Winky.

"Tea for two if you will," Winky popped back in with a tea tray and Harry caught her nod saying the tea was ok, Harry quickly made his tea and took a sip.

"Yes, I am happy that we finally have a defence teacher that is both apt and not dangerous." Dumbledore mused, "It does make a rather delightful change."

"I think people are just happy Umbridge isn't back sir,"

"Ah yes, Madam Umbridge expressed her interest to return to the ministry." Harry bit back a smirk, she could have come back to give the centaurs something to play with.

"Sir," Harry began tentatively, "Sir I wanted to ask you something,"

"Go ahead m'boy." Harry mentally cursed the endearment,

"After what happened at the ministry," Harry swallowed, "Well what actually happened, because Fudge seen Voldemort, but yet people like Malfoy aren't in Azkaban." Dumbledore stroked his beard and Harry made a note to get rid of the thing when he finally died.

"I can only guess that a large amount of gold was used to keep Lucius out of prison and out of suspicion." Dumbledore said and Harry thought that was about right, "However, many are becoming tired with Cornelius' reign and I am sure you saw in the papers that he had been put on probation." Harry did his best to look sheepish.

"I tend not to read the paper if I'm honest sir, after everything that was printed last year and even this year, I prefer to ignore it." Harry shrugged as caught sight of the flash of relief in Dumbledore's twinkling, blue eyes.

"That is perfectly understandable, Rita Skeeter can be particularly vicious and less that factual."

"The only thing that Rita writes is complete lies, I mean the article she wrote about you was obviously not true." Harry gestured with his hands and shook his head as if he simply couldn't believe what she had written, something that seemed to please Dumbledore to no end.

"I am glad you have faith my boy."

"Of course sir, you defeated Grindlewald so why would you be in a relationship with him." Harry scoffed, "That's like saying I would be in a relationship with Voldemort," he shuddered at that and Dumbledore chuckled.

"Yes, I see what you mean," You have no idea how much Harry thought with glee,

"I think that it was the dark trying to make you look bad because you're the only one the Voldemort fears sir, and they know that with you here that Hogwarts will always be safe." Harry said surely,

"I thank you for your confidence Harry, but I don't think Tom fears me," Dumbledore said modestly, damn straight he doesn't fear you Harry added in his mind,

"But he's never attacked the castle while you were here sir, and he fled at the ministry after you had duelled him." Harry looked at him in admiration,

"You are correct of course, but I am not the one to defeat him." Dumbledore said and Harry looked down.

"No, that's me." Harry agreed, "But what if I can't do it?"

"I have every confidence in your ability Harry." Dumbledore told him, "And that brings me to another matter," Harry looked up.

"Sir?"

"I believe that it would be ideal if you were to begin private lessons with me." Harry nearly dropped his cup, he leaned forward eagerly.

"On what sir?"

"Oh this and that, but I wanted to make sure that you would be able to cope with the added pressure."

"Well I have Occlumency on Mondays, Defence training on Wednesdays and Fridays so as long as its not on those days then I'm free because I do my homework on the weekend and I've been avoiding Hogsmead because of the 'chosen one' crap."

"Language," Dumbledore reminded him, "And we should be able to slip my lessons around your very busy schedule."

"I can't wait sir," He said excitedly, Dumbledore nodded with his benign smile.

"Well I shall leave you Harry, you undoubtedly have revision to be getting on with." He rose to his feet and walked to the door, Harry followed to see him out. "I shall send word when the first lesson is,"

"Thank you sir," Harry said and shut the door when the old man had left down the corridor. Harry shuddered in complete revulsion and dropping his glamour he drew out the eyes and ears to watch the old fool return to his office, Harry had to have a shower because he felt disgusting after dealing with Ginny and then the old fool. He scrubbed himself multiple times before getting out and throwing on his black jeans,

He's gone,

We'll be back now. Paws said back and the connection closed, Harry had just put on his shoes when a white raven swooped in to the room and changed back in to his sister followed by a falcon and an eagle.

"What did he want?" Luna asked as they went back to the living room.

"Wanted to check up on me and tell me about the private lessons he's now giving me."

"Private lessons," Paws repeated and Harry nodded with a grimace.

"Yes, and I am not at all happy about it."

"I wonder why, we've got enough on." Swift grumbled.

"Yes, that and extra time with him." Paws said and Harry sighed.

"Wonderful, so I have to deal with Ginny and Dumbledore more now."

"Why Ginny?"

"Love potion has finally been issued." Harry groaned and they hissed.

"Damn it,"

"I know, so I'll have to work around both of these things." Harry said, "We also need to plan when we're going information hunting,"

"We should get Moony out of the way first," Paws said and Harry agreed.

"You're right of course, but we need to plan it out. I've also got to deal with the wolves, but I may have a solution for that and I am going out with Tom to see if everything can be put in to place."

"What is your idea?" Swift asked,

"Remember Bleach mentioned a massive safe house?" Harry reminded them and they grinned.

"I think we're all going to remember that Snake," Harry rolled his eyes.

"Anyway, I had the idea to take that literally so I looked over all my property and found the biggest one and it looks perfect with huge amounts of land, outhouses as well as the main building with elves. But I want it so it is only accessible by wolves and those we choose so I've twisted a ward that keeps werewolves out so it keeps non-werewolves out instead, the only problem I had was it would keep everyone out completely and that wouldn't have worked. So Tom and I worked on certain elements and we created a ward, hopefully, that will do what we want it too. We're going to inspect the building soon and if it is up to the standards I will talk to Ellen and see what she thinks and if she gives the green light then we'll cast the ward and she'll send the word out. If everything goes to plan then she'll be running it with a select few trusted and the wolves will have a safe place big enough for hundred to live, and if this ward works we can all go and see them, I know Paws is good with wolf healing and Ray would love to teach the little cubs." Harry explained to them and they looked at him in astonishment.

"You disappear for a weekend and this is what you do?" Swift said amazed,

"I didn't even realise I was there for that long." Harry shrugged,

"You created a ward and potentially saved the wolves from persecution." Paws shook her head, "I knew you were good, but this is amazing."

"It had to be done, and it also buys me many alliances because wolves native to England do not want to flee to another country, especially without their packs, so I am giving them a place to stay and they stay away from the light." Harry told them, "It's a win/win situation."

"And if we get Remus out and healed, he might help." Paws mused.

"Yes, if he doesn't kill me first," Harry grimaced.

"Yeah, there is that." Swift laughed and Harry gave him a deadpan look.

"As everything is in order for Remus, we'll go Friday. We'll go after dinner, and that way if we run over is doesn't matter too much."

"Yes, and if it's too much we all have time turners." Paws said.

"Ray will be watching the castle eyes and ears, Paws on HQ, Swift with me and back to the Gryffindor rooms." Harry overviewed, "If you could get word to the twins that it's going to be Friday then we are set."

"Done," Swift said,

"We'll meet you in the Gryffindor rooms Friday," Paws said standing up,

"Wish me luck for the rest of the week,"

"Have fun with that Snake," Swift patted him on the back with absolutely no sympathy.

"I hate you," Harry stated and they laughed as they left, he slumped back in to his chair with a groan.

"The potion is going to last the week isn't it?" Luna sighed.

"Yes, and I feel contaminated."

"Go," Harry nodded and darted from the room, Dumbledore was pacing his office so Harry cast a disillusion and ran down to Tom's office.

"How's your blood traitor?" Was the nice greeting Harry received when he had slipped passed the wards.

"Please don't," Harry groaned, "I've had a really shit day and I've just had a visit with the old fool and I feel like shit."

"What do you expect me to do about it?" Tom drawled and Harry's eyes narrowed, he walked forward and sat on the edge of the desk so his back was to Tom.

"It seems today was the day where I got dosed in love potion," Harry carried on like Tom had not spoken, "I have the delightful opportunity to hang on to Ginny Weasley every single day." He caught Tom's low hiss and smirked,

"And then there's the fact that Dumbledore saw fit to arrive in the middle of a meeting and I've just had to sit and feed the mans ego like a fucking worshiper, Rita Skeeter is obviously lying sir because you couldn't possibly be anything but perfect." Harry sneered, "Then once he's lapped up as much bullshit I can possibly feed him, he decides it's time I began private lessons with him teaching me 'this and that'."

"You sound so enthusiastic." Tom commented amused and Harry threw him a withering look over his shoulder.

"I feel contaminated," Harry snapped,

"Is that so?" Harry was going to kill him, but if Tom was holding his control then Harry would just have to break it. He got up and slowly moved so he was stood behind him, he ran his hands over Tom's shoulders and down his chest leaning down to press light kisses along his neck and up to his ear.

You surprised me My Lord Harry murmured nibbling on the shell of his ear, he felt Tom stiffen slightly and continued.

Here I am offering myself to you and yet you show no interest, Harry bit down on his neck and smirked when Tom hissed.

You know what I want and you know I will beg, He hissed, But if you do not want me screaming your name, begging for more, then I can go else where. If Harry had been looking at Tom he would have seen his eyes get darken significantly, Harry stood back up and went to walk away. He had moved 3 steps when he felt Tom's magic creep up and focus solely on his tattoo, Harry's breath caught and his eyes flashed in triumph as he felt a hand wrap around his wrist tightly. He was pulled back to a firm chest and teasing hands ran all over him, he turned and was given a heated kiss, Tom easily lifted him to sit on the desk and bit down his neck.

"Fuck me," Harry gasped out in need,

"So eager," Tom hissed and grinded their erections together, Harry moaned.

"Please," Harry begged as Tom's hands ran all over him, he way toying with the teen.

"So needy," Harry knew the man was taking pleasure in seeing him like this but he was beyond caring.

"I don't care if you fuck me like a slut, just do it." Harry arched and let out a silent scream as he was thrust in to, he dug his nails in enough to draw blood and he was pounded in to. Moans ripped from his throat which only seemed to egged the Dark Lord on, his breathing was becoming harsher as his prostate was hit repeatedly sending rippled of pleasure shooting through him.

"Fuck, h-harder," his pleas were answered and the thrusts picked up strength, Harry was close to the edge now.

"Shit, Tom, sso clossse," he hissed.

"Cum," Tom ordered in a tight voice showing his own closeness, Harry felt himself pounded in to twice more before he came with a scream of Tom's name, Harry's vision went white for a couple of seconds as the force of his release racked through him, he heard a cleaning spell muttered but he wasn't paying that much attention. The Dark Lord began to kiss hiss neck again and bit down hard but the pain shot in to pleasure and Harry hissed.

"Ah Tom,"

"I'm going to fuck you like a whore until you can barely walk." Tom growled in his ear and Harry thought that was possibly the hottest thing he had ever heard.

Yess He didn't even realise he had slipped in to Parsel but he found himself thrown over the desk and slammed into for the second time, he cried out as his prostate was hit; he saw stars.

Ssso tightHarry found himself fucked over the desk like a common whore and he was fucking loving it.

More He demanded and moaned loudly when he was thrust in to harder.

You're jussst a filthy little ssslutt Tom hissed to him, his husky voice sending shivers down Harry's spine.

Yess he moaned, I'm a whore, treat me like it Harry felt his hair yanked back and he arched off the desk a wonton moan ripped from his throat his nails leaving scratch marks, he was nearing the edge as he was brutally pounded in to.

Fuck, I'm gunna- ah

Cum for me Tom ordered and as his prostate was hit Harry came hard, his whole body shook with his second release, with the tight heat clamping down Tom came with a shout. Harry muttered the cleaning spells when he regained his breath, he turned around to face Tom and found himself in a heated kiss and hummed.

"You are entirely too manipulative," Tom murmured and Harry smirked.

"But you wouldn't allow yourself to be manipulated if you didn't want it," Harry returned and he gasped at a particularly vicious bite.

"You do not leave me with much choice," Harry laughed lightly at that, he leaned up to kiss Tom deeply, he found himself pushed back with Tom over him and wrapped his legs around him.

"We both know that's not true." Harry countered lowly, Tom apperated them to his rooms where Harry found himself pressed down on the bed and hissed when Tom bit down on his neck. Tom ran his hand down the tattoo making Harry moan and pull at his hair,

"Likely hood of me getting back to my room tonight?" Harry asked sucking in a sharp breath as Tom attacked his neck.

"Not a chance," Harry was perfectly fine with that.

 

Chapter 13

Notes:

Read the tags please

Un'beta'd

I'm not J.K but find me a plot like this :P

Chapter Text

 

Parseltongue

Chapter 13,

If anyone would have looked closely, they would have seen a black snake sliding through the dungeons and would have been surprised when I changed in to an unglamoured Harry Potter. As it was, no one was looking closely, in fact, no one was around and that was thanks to a very well placed warded by Swift. Harry muttered the password and the wall opened up allowing him to climb the many stairs that led up to Gryffindor's private rooms, as he walked in he could see that Swift, Manic and Panic were already there.

"Hey Snake, were just waiting on Raven and Paws."

"Where are they, I would have thought they would have beaten me here?" Harry asked taking a seat.

"Paws is playing know-it-all Granger with McGonagall, and Luna was cursing some Ravenclaw." Swift told him.

"Who managed to piss her off so much?" Harry exclaimed.

"Mandy Brockhurst," Luna answered walking in with a scowl, "Stupid bitch ripped up my information book, luckily it was repairable or she wouldn't have been breathing right now."

"I'm sure you informed her of what an unintelligent decision that was." Harry said with a smirk.

"Of course, but I don't think she will remember." Luna sighed.

"Such a shame,"

"It is,"

"Honestly, to think I used to sound like that." Paws fumed storming in and throwing down her things, "I make myself sick."

"I know how you feel," Harry agreed, "It's vomit worthy isn't it?"

"I almost hate myself," She moaned collapsing in to the nearest chair.

"Let's get down to business." Harry said,

"Me and George can activate the gas from here," Fred began,

"Here are your pills," George handed them over.

"Now, you cannot go in to that house without that pill or you will find yourself unconscious." They warned.

"Got it,"

"You have 15 minutes maximum so you need to be fast."

"Right, so everyone is perfectly clear?" Harry confirmed for the final time, nothing could go wrong.

"Yes, I'm watching the maps with Luna," Paws said,

"I'm monitoring the kitchen after the gas is released." Swift put in,

"And that leaves me to collect Remus,"

"We'll activate them and you can go in," Fred told them,

"We're relying on you to be our eyes and ears, Paws." Harry said to her and she nodded.

"I know, and I have you covered," the map was led out on the table ready and active,

"We're flying over the boundaries and then apperating because we'll need to flame back." They both swallowed the blue chew,

"Let's go," Harry and Ron ran to the nearest window and exchanged grins, they launched themselves from the window and changed mid-fall. Harry gave a trill of excitement which was answered by Swifts caw of delight, both birds, one black phoenix and the other a black falcon, swooped towards the gates. They continued flying to the outskirts of Hogsmead before landing on a roof and changing back in to humans,

"That was so cool," Swift breathed and Harry nodded with a grin,

"Definitely doing that again," Harry agreed,

"To the square?"

"Yes, under disillusions." They waved their wands and vanished under the charms, they landed in the grimy square of Grimauld Place, number 12 popped in to view.

We're ready, Harry sent to Paws.

Four in the kitchen, one in the basic library, one in 2nd floor bedroom and Moony is in his room. She sent back, Devices have been activated, you're good to go, they slipped in to the house and there was thick white smoke everywhere.

We need a guide Paws, Harry said,

Straight forward and then 16 stairs for you Snake, down on your left 14 stairs Swift

Got it, they answered together, Harry darted up the stairs carefully counting them as he went,

Now you need to turn right and go in to the first door, Harry slipped in and spotted Podmore unconscious on the floor.

He's out

Ok, back out and up 10 more stairs, Harry hopped the stairs two at a time, he knew where the bedrooms were so he checked them all and found Tonks out cold in the 3rd one.

Remus' rooms look like they have wards on, Paws told him, Your going to have to twist them, I can't identify them, Harry cursed to himself, Paws guided him to Moony's room where he immediately felt the wards surrounding the door,

You've got 10 minutes left, Harry cursed again and carefully began picking a gap in the wards, it seemed they were designed for a wolf so once he was in, they couldn't get back out; through the door at least.

All unconscious down here, but they were making plans for the ministry Swift told him.

Copy anything there and be ready to get out, I'm going to have to flame out of this room, Harry returned, he had a small gap, but the time was ticking.

5 minutes Snake, The gap was nearly big enough, he unpicked the monitoring ward to free the twisted locking ward.

3 minutes,

"Yes," He cheered under his breath, Harry slipped past the wards and when the door shut behind him he felt them flare up. This was the only room completely clear of gas, Moony was sat on a brown chair staring at the wall unmoving and only the fact that he was breathing did Harry know he was alive. Moony didn't even move when Harry entered and the teen ignored Paws worried 2 minute notification, he walked slowly towards the werewolf and he saw him stiffen on his next intake of breath. Moony's head, it was definitely Moony by the amber eyes, snapped around and looked at him, Harry didn't move and allowed the evaluation.

"Cub?" Harry smiled relieved.

"Yes Moony," The werewolf gained a confused look.

"Cub looks different," He said and Harry nodded.

"Yes, but I can't explain now. We have to get you out of here."

"Can't get out, I don't know why." He shrugged and Harry scowled.

"I know exactly why, but never mind that, is there anything that you want to take with you?" Harry asked and Moony frowned,

"Why?"

"Because your coming with me, I'm not letting you stay in this hell hole any longer." Harry stated with no room for argument and after a few moments Moony grabbed a few things that he wanted. Paws and Swift were yelling in his head,

Tonks is waking up, GET OUT OF THERE, she yelled at him, Harry winced and shrunk Moony's stuff with a wave of his hand.

"Do you trust me?" Harry asked Moony, Podmore and Kingsley were awake now.

"Yes," Harry changed in to a phoenix, Moony took hold of the tail feathers and Harry flamed them away. They landed in the centre of the square where Harry felt Swift take hold of his tail feathers and they flamed back to the Gryffindor rooms, Harry changed back and stumbled in to the chair before he balanced himself, Luna handed him a pepper up.

"That was a close call Snake," Paws said to him and he nodded.

"Where are we cub and why does your pack look different?" Moony asked him confused and Harry sat him down.

"A lot of things have been happening Moony," Harry said to him, "This summer changed everything, and until all of the spells and compulsions are off then you won't understand."

"What spells and compulsions, Dumbledore said-,"

"That right there," Harry cut him off, "Dumbledore said is where the compulsion starts, and you won't remember the web because you've been obliviated." Harry explained and Moony was looking more and more alarmed.

"What are you talking about, Dumbledore's been helping me, since Sirius,"

"Don't," Harry cut him off again, he knew there was only one thing for it because Dumbledore had done an extreme job on Remus by the sounds of it, "I'm sorry about this Moony," Harry locked eyes with him and pushed as much collected magic in to his mind as he could, he had to be supported as he swayed on the spot, but the web was ripped away. Moony snarled viciously as he became free of his constraints and Harry continued pushing in magic to break the obliviates, he fell in to the wolfs mind to check for any foreign magic left behind, but there was none so he pulled out and fell back in the chair. Moony was being help down by chains and Harry swallowed another pepper up,

"You need to get out of here," Harry told them, "Go to my room, quickly," his voice booked no room for argument, they left in a rush and when the doors were sealed, Harry vanished the restraints. Moony pounced on him snarling, Harry brought forth his own wolf and returned the favour, his lips drew back from his teeth and they were both growling at each other like animals. Harry snapped at him and pushed him back, Moony lashed out and Harry rolled over, what he wasn't expecting what for Moony to turn in to a werewolf. Harry cursed and changed in to his wolf form just as Moony lunged at him, Harry dodged out of the way and leapt back at him knocking him to the ground, he had put too much in to it and rolled straight off of him. Snapping and snarling was the only thing to be heard while they fought and Harry got a nice hit across Moony's face before backing off. They were circling each other when and Harry could see Moony calming down, Harry whined and the werewolf tilted his head to the side, Harry wagged his tail and barked, Moony came over and sniffed him, he gave a yip and Harry barked again. Moony, or rather Remus, changed back and Harry followed his lead, Remus looked a bit of a mess and Harry presumed he didn't look much better.

"What did you do?" Remus asked in shock, Harry rolled his shoulders.

"Gave you back your correct memories and free will," Harry answered.

"I'm so confused," He muttered gripping his hair, "Dumbledore, he-he had Sirius killed." The brown eyes flashed amber.

"I know, but that isn't everything Dumbledore is responsible for." Harry shook his head. "This is irrelevant for now, I want to get you healed, fed, watered and rested. Tomorrow we can tell you everything," Harry fetched his box of potions, he first handed Remus a system flusher so he was clear and nothing would react with the other potions.

"This one is for silver poisoning," Harry told him handing him the next potion.

"Those aren't not very good, most are only temporary."

"This is new, it's a perfected solution and removes all traces of silver from the system, its for after the wolfsbane potion so werewolves don't suffer because of the silver in the potion." Harry explained to him.

"How can you be sure?"

"Because it's from a wolf shop, made by a wolf funded by me," Remus' eyebrows shot up, he took the potion and swallowed it.

"That actually isn't that bad,"

"I should come in to effect soon and by tomorrow your system should be clear. Now you need a nutrients and a rehydration made by a wolf again, I also picked up a bone strengthening solution because you haven't been out in a while and haven't been able to be on your bones." Harry handed him the potions as he spoke, Remus dutifully swallowed them down and Harry snapped his fingers.

"I need a wolf friendly, healthy, nutrient meal please Winky," He told the elf who popped away and back with a plate of steaming food, Remus ate the food at an alarming speed and sat back with a sigh.

"That felt good,"

"Right, here's a headache reliever because in about 20 seconds your head will be pounding, an infection killer to be on the safe side and a dreamless sleep because you are going to need it tonight." Harry put the phials on the desk,

"Thank you," Remus said sincerely,

"Don't thank me yet, trust me when I say you may want to kill me tomorrow." Harry told him,

"Why?"

"Because a lot has changed and you may not agree with my decisions," Harry answered, "Anyway, we're currently in Gryffindor's private chambers, you have access to the library, duelling room, surveillance room and whatever else you find. You can have any room except the heir room because only I can enter that."

"I'm exhausted," Remus said and Harry nodded.

"It's to be expected, come on, I'll show you to a room and we will talk tomorrow."

"M'kay," Harry led him to the second room and Remus fell on the bed, Harry gave him his potions to take and the man was asleep in an instant. Harry transfigured his clothes in to comfortable bottoms and left, he told Winky to watch him and inform him when he woke. He quickly made his way back to his rooms where the others were waiting, he gained many raised eyebrows when he walked in and Luna jumped up and rushed over.

"What in Merlin's name happened?" She demanded gently touching his face, Harry hissed as the touch stung.

"What was that?"

"Snake you're covered in cuts." Paws told him and Harry winced.

"That's what happens when you fight a werewolf."

"He attacked you,"

"No, we fought as wolves." He corrected and if anything they looked at him in more incredulity, Harry rolled his eyes and brought forth his phoenix allowing the cuts to heal without scars.

"Better?"

"Yes," Luna confirmed, she gently led him to his chair where he collapsed in to it.

"So what happened?" Swift questioned,

"Somehow he changed in to a wolf and we fought. I got him to calm down and I fed him the potions, once he ate he was barely awake so I said I would talk to him tomorrow when he's feeling better." Harry explained to them,

"We'll all go up tomorrow," Paws said and Harry nodded.

"Yes, that's fine," he gave a huge yawn.

"We'll come back here in the morning?" Swift suggested.

"Yeah, then we'll go up when Remus is awake." Harry's speech was becoming slurred as lethargy hit,

"Come on you lot, can't you see he's on the verge of collapse." Luna chided, "Out, all of you," they trooped out grumbling good naturedly and Luna pulled Harry up, Harry barely carried himself to his bedroom and once he was changed he curled up in his bed.

"Do you feel better now?" Luna asked climbing in,

"Yes, Moony's safe now, even if he hates me tomorrow." Harry said,

"He won't hate you, he knows the truth and you have evidence to back it up." Luna reassured him.

"I sure hope your right,"

"Go to sleep Harry," and he did just that.


 

Winky popped in when he was eating breakfast with Luna to inform him of Remus was awake, he sent a message to Swift and Paws to inform them and hurriedly finished his food. He threw on some clothes and he left the rooms under disillusions, he ran in to Swift and Paws on the way and the 3 of them entered the Gryffindor rooms together, Harry took a deep breath and entered finding Remus sat in the living section looking around in shock with a plate in front of him showing he had eaten.

"Good morning Remus," Harry greeting walking over, Remus attention snapped to them and he looked at them confused.

"Harry?"

"Yes, how are you feeling?"

"Better than ever and extremely confused." Remus told him, he looked to Ron and Hermione with a frown.

"You all look different." He stated.

"We know, we have a lot to talk to you about." Harry said to him, he sat down facing the werewolf.

"Can you explain what in Merlin's name is going on? I remember all these things, Dumbledore," The brown eyes flashed amber, "He set Sirius up? And then obliviated me apparently."

"A lot has happened, and I need you to listen to everything because everything I'm going to tell you is the truth. We have proof of everything Dumbledore has done, and it isn't good." Swift told him and Remus nodded.

"You already know Dumbledore set Sirius up to be killed, you heard him yourself, but what you don't know is he also killed mine and Neville's parents."

"Voldemort killed Lily and James, and the Lestranges were responsible for Frank and Alice." Remus said shaking his head.

"Tom may have fired the curse and ordered the attack, but he is not responsible." Harry said.

"Tom?"

"We'll get to that," Harry waved him off, "You know of the Prophecy?"

"I know of it yes, but I don't know it's contents." Remus confirmed.

"It was smashed at the ministry, but it was heard by Dumbledore meaning he could tell me what it said." Harry said, "The prophecy read The one with the Power to Vanquish the Dark Lord approaches, born to those who thrice defire him born as the seventh month dies, and the Dark Lord will mark him as his equal, but he shall have power the Dark Lord knows not and either must die at the hand of the other for neither can live while the other survives. The one with the power to vanquish the Dark Lord approaches will be born as the seventh month dies."

"That could be you or Neville," Remus mused and Harry nodded.

"Yes, but obviously Voldemort came for me and he sent his best death eaters after the other target."

"So that's the reason the dark went after you," Remus said in understanding.

"Yes,"

"And as Voldemort went after you, it means the prophecy is directed at you."

"Pretty much, only there's a problem."

"What?"

"The prophecy is fake." Harry stated and he watched at the meaning fell in to Remus mind.

"Excuse me?" His voice was barely audible, but Harry could hear it was filled with begging.

"It is fake, and I have proof."

"But that means-."

"That Dumbledore is responsible for my parents deaths." Harry finished with a nod and many emotions played out on the werewolf's face and it settled on rage.

"That bastard," He snarled eyes burning amber.

"It gets worse." Hermione warned.

"He paid the Dursley's to abuse me, he wanted me weak and submissive, he was planning on having me sacrifice myself to face Voldemort and then he come in and take out Tom when I fell." Harry told him.

"He's been controlling us since the beginning with the help of certain people, he plans on having Snake marry Ginny and when he dies all his money, titles and such falls between Molly, Ginny and the headmaster." Swift carried on, "He's been obliviating, dosing, and wrapping compulsions around us to keep us in line."

"He knew Sirius was innocent because he was the witness to my parents will where it said Pettigrew was secret keeper, he wanted complete control only we managed to fight it sometimes." Harry picked up again,

"We started to work against Dumbledore, collecting information on him to remove him and the rest of the corruption in this world. We also began training in everything and anything, Snake discovered the titles he was eligible to claim and Swift claimed his, we discovered that I'm the heir to the McKinnon line and we built our names up in the shadows." Hermione explained.

"Sirius was helping us, he was giving us information on the order, but we kept getting obliviated again and again and it was only this summer when all this came to light."

"I had a letter from the old fool terminating my friendship with Swift and Paws and I snapped, after everything that had happened with Sirius and the beating I just couldn't take it and it broke all the obliviated and compulsions, it also removed the bind he had placed on my magic." Harry finished.

"You killed those pieces of filth didn't you?" Remus asked and Harry nodded with no remorse, he was fucking ecstatic that he ended them.

"Dumbledore needs to die a very painful death," Remus, well Moony, said quietly,

"He does,"

"And there are many things wrong with the wizarding world."

"There is,"

"You are not simply sitting idle are you?" Moony asked and they shook their heads.

"No we're not, we are moving against him, but it is slow. He cannot know about our knowing and it's hard because there are other things that we are yet unaware of that we have to work with." Harry sighed.

"You've joined the Dark, haven't you?" Moony questioned after a minute and Harry blinked.

"Where in Merlin's name did that come from?"

"Yesterday you said I might want to kill you because of some decisions, and I'll admit, if you would have told me that first I would have hated it. But now I understand and I can see the reason behind it, I just hope you are not needlessly killing people or been branded like cattle." Harry let out a breath of relief he didn't know he was holding.

"Thank Merlin," He breathed, "And no, no mark and no needless killing. Actually, Tom and I have an understanding and we're currently working on something with the werewolves, we thought you might like to help."

"Tom?"

"The Dark Lord," Harry clarified.

"I gathered that, I was referring to the fact that you are calling him Tom." Remus rolled his eyes.

"It's his name."

"Again, I gathered that, why are you calling him it?"

"He can't exactly call him Voldemort when they're sleeping together," Swift muttered and Remus choked violently, Harry threw Swift a withering look.

"WHAT?"

"Okay, so I may have a bit more than an understanding with him, but that's irrelevant for now." Harry said hurriedly.

"You're sleeping with him?" Remus demanded.

"Kinda,"

"How in Merlin's name did that happen?"

"Snake has very limited self control, that's how." Paws sighed,

"Moving on shall we?" Harry interrupted, "We have other things to explain," they sat back and finished over the minor details such as the article, the information they had and the problem with the werewolves.

"You've made good progress, what have you been waiting for?"

"I had to make sure you were out of there." Harry said with a shrug and Remus smiled slightly,

"Thanks cub,"

"Now the real question is, are you with us?" Harry didn't know what Moony would do, but he knew if the man wished to remain away from the war he would protect him to his fullest ability, if he went back to the light however, Harry didn't know what he would do.

"That is an easy question to answer," Remus said, "You are all I have left now cub, I'm with you until the end." Harry smiled fully at that.

"Thank you," He said sincerely,

"No thanks necessary, just tell me what I can do." Remus said and Harry shared a smirk with the others.

"We're looking in to the founders heirs, we need to find one or both of them to have the castle, the ministry is in progress and I'm set to go to a place for the werewolves soon. Now you are safe, healed and on side, I can step that up leaving us free to get on with other plans, we're trying to work out what Dumbledore is up to, other than using me to get rid of Tom."

"I find it strange that you call him that." Remus shook his head.

"Wait until you meet him," Harry returned with a grin, it stretched when Remus looked at him with wide eyes.

"Excuse me?"

"Oh yeah, I forgot to tell you. Yeah, Tom is currently the defence Professor." Harry told him scratching his head, Remus jaw dropped.

"The Dark Lord is teaching defence?" He repeated finally in utter disbelief.

"Yeah, he's my private tutor." Harry said sheepishly.

"Dumbledore handed you over to the Dark Lord." Remus muttered shaking his head, and then he burst out laughing, it was slightly hysterical; not that any of them blamed him.

"I don't even know how to respond to that." Remus said when he had calmed down.

"We had the same reaction, we still don't know how he got himself appointed." Paws shook her head.

"So he's in the castle; now?"

"Yes,"

"Oh Merlin,"

"Well today you should rest, the potions seem to have done their wonders, but to it's never bad to be certain." Harry said to him, "You are perfectly safe up here, only a select few can get in so do as you wish,"

"You said there was a library?" Remus questioned,

"Yes, just through the double doors. When you're hungry or want anything, just call Winky and she'll pop in."

"Will do cub,"

"I'll be back tomorrow hopefully, if not then someone will be in no doubt."

"Ok cub, I'll see you then." Harry gave him a brief hug and they left, Swift and Paws watched amused and Harry all but skipped down the stairs.

"This is perfect, with Remus here we can focus on everything else. I know he is safe and the only thing on the back of my mind is keeping that fool in the Dark." Harry said as they walked down.

"We will have another meeting after the article is published." Paws suggested, "That way we can speak on that and plan our information hunt,"

"Yes, that will work out fine. As of now, I have to escort that thing to Hogsmead." Harry grumbled.

"I feel for you." Swift clapped him on the back, Harry jabbed him with a stinging hex.

"I hate you." He muttered and stalked off, he placed his glamour on securely and made his was down to the great hall to find Ginny. She was waiting for him in the entrance hall and he hitched on a bright smile; it was set to be a long day.

"Hi Harry,"

"Morning Gin, ready to go?" He asked and she nodded, he allowed her to take his arm and they made their way to the village. Harry let her talk on about anything, dutifully answering in the right places and nodding along, and he took her to the three broomsticks. It was about the time the potion would start to wear off and Harry saw her slip more in his drink, there was no way he was going through another week so he 'accidently' knocked it over and hastily got a new one which was safe to drink. He caught the anger in her eyes as they left and bit back a smirk, that should keep him sane for the next week and now he could 'withdraw' back in to himself. He bought her some chocolates before they made their way back, Harry had never been so happy to see the castle than he was at that moment, he gave Ginny a hug and all but ran up to his room.

"Thank you Merlin," He sighed collapsing in to his chair, Luna came out from the bedroom and flashed him a smile.

"How did everything thing go?"

"Remus is on board and feeling better, and I want to kill Ginny still."

"I told you he wouldn't hate you, have you no faith?" Luna shook her head, "As for Ginny, well yes, I think we all desire her ultimate demised."

"She didn't manage to dose me again meaning I'm free to stay back again." Harry told her with a grin,

"Luckily,"

"It brings me endless joy I assure you."

"Have you informed him that you were successful, I don't think it would be best if he were to go to the room and run in to Remus?" Luna pointed out and Harry snickered.

"I can see that being a very amusing thing to watch." She whacked him around the head.

"Don't be mean to Moony,"

"I'm more worried for Tom, Swift informed Moony of our thing and Moony's a werewolf."

"A werewolf protective over his cub, yes I see your point," She mused and Harry grinned.

"Although I shall inform him, he seems rather bored and I think I'm the perfect one to relieve some of that stress!"

"Most definitely," She agreed, Harry went up and had a quick shower, he threw on some clothes and left with a quick kiss to Luna's cheek. Harry slipped in to Tom's office while the man was grading papers, he casually leant on the desk as the man finished and placed his quill down.

"What can I do for you?" Harry lifted a shoulder lightly,

"I thought I'd come and see what you were doing, you felt bored."

"Grading papers is tedious," Tom sighed rolling his neck. Harry walked over and lightly pushed him back in his chair so he could straddle him, Tom's hands immediately settled on his hips, and Harry draped his arms around his neck.

"Maybe I could relieve you of some of that boredom," Harry suggested coyly,

"You could," Tom agreed, Harry pressed light kisses along his jaw and stopped and the corner of his lips.

"Do you have anything in mind?" Harry asked lowly, Tom's hands went lower and he bit Harry's lip.

"Hm, maybe," he murmured and kissed him, he licked his lip for access which Harry easily granted, things were getting heated and Harry was about to vanish Tom's robes when the wards pulsed alerting them of someone's presence.

"Dumbledore," Tom said his name like a curse word, Harry cursed and dived for the desk as that was the only place to hide.

"Martom," Dumbledore's cheerful voice called from the door, Harry crouched under the desk mentally cursing Dumbledore with every name he knew.

"Headmaster, how can I help you this evening?" Tom shifted in his chair, he was hard and the headmaster could not have come at a worse time.

"Nothing, nothing, I just like to check in with all my staff regularly." Dumbledore told him and Harry mentally scoffed, the headmaster took the seat opposite the desk and Harry thanked his stars the back of the desk was covered.

"I see," Tom shifted again and Harry suddenly smirked, if Tom had a problem, he could help.

"I was just grading papers,"

"Ah, and how are you finding teaching?" Dumbledore asked and Harry thought it was time he began to help Tom.

Mm Tom, he moaned lowly in parcel, he saw Tom stiffen slightly and smirked.

Tom please, I need you in me, When Tom shifted again indicating his arousal Harry grinned. The conversation above him was on trivial matters and Harry could hear the slight edge to Tom's voice, he pressed open mouth kisses along his inner thigh and he heard Tom stumble over his sentence. He used magic to undo Tom's trousers freeing the straining member, Harry sucked lightly on the tip before taking the whole length in his mouth. Tom had to forcefully bit his lip to stop the pleased moan escaping, Harry was entirely too talented and this was not the right time.

"Are you quite alright my boy?" Dumbledore asked in concern, Tom cleared his throat and spoke with difficulty.

"Yes, I am fine headmaster, just a little hot," Harry snickered but because of where his mouth was the vibrations sent shooting pleasure through Tom, his hand clenched on the edge of the desk. Harry lightly ran his teeth along the length and swirled his tongue, Tom couldn't stop his moan that time and his hand slipped down fisting in Harry's hair.

"I think I need an early night, headmaster," Tom's voice was slightly breathless.

"You look flushed," Dumbledore pointed out and Tom nodded jerkily.

"I don't feel that good," He got out just as Harry hummed,

"Oh I'm sorry dear boy, I shall leave you to bed."

"Apologies headmaster," Dumbledore waved him off, Harry hollowed out his cheeks and focussed his tongue on the tip, Tom was very close and his breathing picked up.

"No worries, have a good evening," as soon as the door shut the wards were up double and Tom's head fell back with a groan, Harry's head bobbed twice more before Tom came with a shout, Harry drank it down and pulled back with a devilish smirk as he cleaned up and perched on the desk.

"So how's the headmaster?" He asked innocently, Tom calmed his breathing and glared at him.

"I cannot believe you just did that."

"I don't know what you mean Professor, I saw a problem and merely fixed it." Harry replied sweetly and Tom growled, he pulled him in to a rough kiss.

"I will return the favour," he warned and Harry smirked.

"Do it," he murmured, "I love the risk." Tom kissed him again and tugged him back on to his lap so Harry was straddling him again.

"Before I get too distracted, I should tell you that Moony is now in the Gryffindor rooms." Harry told him, a pleased sound escaping him as Tom bit his neck.

"You were successful,"

"Yes, even if it was a close call."

"Why are you telling me?" Tom asked quirking an eyebrow, Harry rolled his eyes.

"I don't know if you've ever met an over protective werewolf before," Harry said, "But even if Swift hadn't told Moony about this, he would have smelt me on you and I can't be bothered to sort out casualties,"

"Valid point,"

"Of course," Harry said before he drew Tom in for a deep kiss, "Now where were we?"


 

Harry truly did love his days where he spent his time solely with Luna, it was peaceful and relaxing and he could almost forget he had to act like a complete twat the next day. He shot the girl in question a smile as she skipped in to the bedroom and sat the opposite end from him,

"I know what I was going to ask you," Luna said grabbing a chocolate frog from the small mountain of sweets they had obtained for the day.

"Oh?"

"Yes, are you're planning on designing Paws dressed for the balls, or are you merely shopping?" She asked and Harry tilted his head,

"Designing obviously, I want us to make a huge impact so I cannot have us dressed in things that could have been bought by another."

"I thought you would say that," Luna said and Harry grinned,

"Why, what did you have in mind?"

"Well, I've come up with these," She summoned her design book and flicked through to show him a casual winter dress and a pair of shoes to go with them.

"Very nice Ray," He complimented, "I've been mentally planning a few ideas, but I've been so busy that I haven't managed to get them down."

"That is what today can be used for, we can have a design day." She told him with enthusiasm, Harry rolled his eyes but grinned anyway.

"Whatever you want,"

"Good, I want you to make my dress," Luna stated and vanished from the room, Harry gaped at the empty space in disbelief.

"Raven, get back here now." He yelled jumping out of his bed and crossing his arms, she came in with an innocent smile and Harry's eyebrow rose.

"Yes Harry,"

"What were just saying?"

"I want you to make my dress," She repeated and Harry looked at her blankly,

"I'm sorry, what now?"

"You have to really think, you made me a dress before and you really enjoyed it." Luna said and Harry blinked a few times, he tilted his head and scoured through his memories looking at the times he had spent with Luna and he found the ones he was looking for.

"So I did," He murmured amazed, "Who knew getting cast offs would give me a skill I loved."

"Wonderful and I found something that used to belong to you." Luna clapped happily and handed him a very familiar book, it was a black hard back with green vines twisting along the cover. It had many pieces of material hanging out the pages and when he opened it he gasped,

"Where did you find this?" He said in awe, he hadn't seen this book for at least a year, it was his personal design book for all of his ideas that he had planned to make. Harry had wanted to do something completely out of the box with his time, he hadn't wanted to be an auror or even play Quidditch, but Dumbledore didn't like that.

"I have my ways," Luna said and Harry kissed her cheek,

"Yes you do, thank you,"

"Any time,"

"I suppose I owe you a dress," Harry said amused and Luna nodded with a smile,

"Yes,"

"I have something else for you," Harry told her pulling out a blue velvet box from his dresser, he handed it over and Luna blinked,

"What's this?"

"For being a diamond," Harry answered, she opened it to reveal a signet sister ring made from platinum, it held a radiant cut blue sapphire surrounded by mini diamonds and on the centre stone there was his combination crest inscribed on it.

"Its beautiful," She murmured stunned, she slipped it on her right middle finger and Harry smiled as she flung her arms around him. "Thank you,"

"Anything for my sister,"

"I love it,"

"Like I would get you something you didn't like." Harry mock gasped and was rewarded by being hit, he grinned at her, "I know what we can do, we can make some collaborations too, see what we come up with."

"Brilliant, I'll grab my material books." She darted off again and Harry expanded his bed even more, the thing was beyond massive now, but they needed the room.

"We also have to prepare for your lessons with the old fool, you know he won't wait too long and it could literally be anything." Luna reminded him coming back in to the room with a thick book.

"Yes I know, I don't know what he was thinking, but I am hoping that with the article tomorrow that it will keep him at bay long enough for us to plan our information hunt because I know where I want to go. Plus Halloween is next week and I want to know what Tom is planning,"

"Ah yes, the yearly disaster,"

"Exactly, it has to be good."

"Do you doubt his flair for the dramatics?" Luna questioned him with an amused raised eyebrow, Harry scoffed.

"Definitely not, the man's got a gift for it."

"And you have your wolf problem,"

"Which is much easier to fix now we have Remus," Harry pointed out, "Tom and I can check it out, see if anything needs doing and then Remus can look it over and tell me what needs doing."

"Sounds like a plan," Luna said and Harry nodded,

"I made it top priority," Harry agreed, "Its practically November now, meaning I have just under 2 months to get Dumbledore out of this castle."

"If you stick to all of your plans, I cannot see you failing." Luna stated and Harry nearly cheered, it was a guarantee, as long as everything went to plan.

"Well back to our day," Harry said, "I believe I have stitching to be practicing and I need yours sizes."


 

Remus Lupin was a strong man. That he had worked out for himself and it gave him a silent strength to face the next thing thrown at him, and it was a really lucky occurrence that he had an inner strength because Harry, his precious cub had rocked the very foundations of his life. Everything he had ever believed in couldn't be farther from the truth, all of the suffering he had his pack had gone through was down to one man, everything that had happened was through one man's selfish manipulations; Dumbledore. Headmaster Albus Percival Wulfric Brian Dumbledore, Grand Sorcerer, Order of Merlin 1st class, Chief Warlock of the Wizengamot, Supreme Mugwump of the International Confederation of Wizards , the man with too many titles and an obvious thirst for power; now at least. A man that, to the world, was gentle and caring that had rid them of a terrible Dark Lord and protected the people; no matter who they were. A man that fought against the next Dark Lord and did his best to fight for what was right. A man that was the leader of the light and a shining ray of hope for them against the thickening darkness. And it was all lies. It was a façade, a mask, to hide the true evil he was.

And how it hide everything well. No one would know, no one would ever know because Dumbledore didn't want them too. Remus laughed at how easy it was for him, for Dumbledore to do what ever he wanted because he was trusted impeccably by most; they practically handed everything to the man on a platter and with a few compulsions and a handy little obliviate here and there no one was the wiser; and everything was perfect. Until now, everything was perfect until Harry came along and broke free, was powerful enough to forcefully rip through the layers of spells and binds he was under to see the truth for what it was; a nightmare, a horror story, and yet he made the best of it. He was stunned. He was hurt. He was devastated. But mainly, he was furious. His inner wolf was raging inside of him, fighting his iron control to come out and tear apart the person responsible for his pain. To maim or kill the person that removed his pack and harmed his cub.

Harry.

His cub was so strong. Everything that had happened to him, from his parents deaths and his despicable childhood to having his memories changes and his being controlled, everything he had been forced to go through was all a plot from Dumbledore; and that wasn't even the main problem. No. The problem was that his cub and his friends could not figure out the reason behind it and Remus had no idea. After he had been told he had thought it was a plot to get rid of the Dark Lord, but Ron had explained about the wards leading them to think that there was something much sinister going on that they didn't know. That in itself was worrying. Dumbledore was holding more cards than them at the moment because they were blind to his intentions, and they had to move in the dark because if Dumbledore so much as caught a hint of what they were up too, what they knew, they were dead. It was as simple as that. Dumbledore wouldn't leave loose ends, not ones he knew could break through his enchantments.

Remus was amazed they had got so far already, to see how effortlessly Harry and his closest worked together so well and he couldn't wait to see the next article Harry had planned. He would do everything in his power to help out and his strong point led with werewolves and research, he couldn't do anything about the wolves at the moment, and it seemed as if Harry was aware of the suffering they were going through, which left him with his research. He was searching for leads on the founders, anything and everything about them that could possible lead to their heirs. He had never felt better in his life which made his quick mind sharper than ever before and he was absorbing knowledge he was reading from the vast library. When Remus had first seen the library after Harry had left him he was been amazed, he was in the legendary Gryffindor rooms in the biggest library he had ever seen and if it wasn't for the hell currently going on outside he would believe he had entered some sort of heaven and he hadn't left it accept when necessary.

Remus' head snapped around when he heard the sound of someone approaching, he only caught it because of his greatly advanced hearing and then a semi-familiar scent washed over him. It was
 dark. There were no other words to describe it and he knew immediately who it belonged too. He had smelt traces of the same scent on Harry, but he hadn't paid it mind because it was weak, but now it was swarming him and Remus mentally hit himself. How could he have forgotten that the Dark Lord was currently in the school? It was insane, it was unbelievable and said man was now in the same room as him. Remus didn't know what he was expecting, but it wasn't what he saw. Pale skin, but not unhealthily so, dark hair styled perfectly away from his face, sharp, chiselled features that gave an aristocratic edge, tall, commanding form shrouded a black open robe which revealed a toned figure and finally, the thing that caught Remus' attention were the eyes; bright crimson eyes.

This was the Dark Lord and Merlin the man was stunning, Remus could feel the magic flooding around the room simply because of the man's presence and he was speechless. This man was dark. This man was dangerous. This man was powerful. And he was completely perfect for Harry. It was alarming – the similarities they shared, but at the same time they were opposite; especially with the magic. Where this magic was icy, biting, Harry's was burning and fiery, and it was strange. Remus had wondered, briefly, what the man was actually like before he had immersed himself in the library. If Dumbledore had lied and controlled everything else it was only natural to assume all the notions about the supposed enemy were also false, and he couldn't be crazy if he was working, quite well by the sounds of it, in a school full of children undetected by Dumbledore. And Remus didn't doubt that Harry would not work with someone as out of control as he was made out to be. Of course Remus also didn't think he would be coming in to contact with the man so soon, especially as he was completely alone, but he would believe in Harry's influence with the man to keep him alive. Everything was up in the air currently and he didn't fancy dying yet, he had to look after his cub.

"Ah, Harry's wolf," The Dark Lord drawled in a cool voice, "You must be Remus Lupin," Remus' eyebrows rose slightly at that, but he nodded.

"Yes,"

"Hm," Remus fought not to squirm as the crimson eyes trailed over him slowly, "You look better than I expected given the circumstances,"

"Thanks, I think," Remus said slowly, the Dark Lord nodded and swept in to the library and Remus shook his head; that was bizarre. Remus went back to his book and he was surprised when the man sat down in the chair opposite, Remus blinked but carried on. He breathed in through his nose and froze, he tilted his head and took another breath, he didn't know how he didn't smell it before, the man reeked of his cub, it was all over him.

"Something wrong with my company?" Came an almost bored inquiry.

"What? Oh no, not at all," Remus said looking up to see piercing red eyes looking at him, there was absolutely no emotion on the man's face for Remus to read so he didn't know what to think.

"Then why the sudden change of action?"

"Ah," Remus shifted slightly, "I was questioning my senses." All he got to that was a raised eyebrow so he elaborated, "I didn't know how I missed it before, but you smell like Harry." The feared man before him blinked once and then, much to Remus' shock, smirked in open amusement.

"Is that so?"

"Yes, very much so,"

"Does that bother you?"

"Surprisingly no," Remus answered, "It should, for all senses and purposes I should be furious, but I'm not."

"Hm," Was all he replied back, they fell in to a companiative silence both absorbed in their books. It was an hour before anything happened and they both looked up to see Harry dart in and vanish in to the shelves, Remus raised an eyebrow at that and the Dark Lord rolled his eyes, Harry sprinted back out again carrying 2 books and froze in the doorway seeming coming to realise he wasn't alone. He turned to see them and his eyebrows shot up,

"Huh, well this is certainly different," He commented amused, he walked over and both men realised he was shoeless.

"Shoes cub?" Remus asked with a grin, Harry looked down and blinked a few times.

"Will you look at that, I forgot them." He said genuinely shocked, Tom rolled his eyes.

"How did you forget shoes?" Tom sighed and Harry grinned,

"Luna,"

"Of course," Tom muttered, "What are you doing here anyway? This is your 'Luna day' as you named it." Tom asked him,

"Ah well, Luna, being the ever lovely sister she is, dug up some old memories for me and now I am reworking my hidden talents." Harry shrugged and then looked between the two of them, "What's going on here? You haven't been mean have you Tom because it wouldn't surprise me?"

"I have been perfectly polite." Tom stated and Harry narrowed his eyes.

"Has he been his usual intimidating self, Moony? Any glares, cold remarks, over inflated arrogance that is paired with an astonishing large ego?" Remus choked a bit at that and looked at Harry as if he had lost his mind.

"Everything is fine cub," He assured looking at the Dark Lord out of the corner of his eye, the man was looking at Harry with a raised eyebrow and Remus couldn't interpret that as a good or a bad thing.

"Some would say your open disrespect against me is borderline suicidal." Tom drawled and Harry flashed him a smirk,

"I have more leeway than most," Harry said,

"Indeed,"

"Of course I do," Harry leaned down so his lips were brushing against Tom's ear, "And you wouldn't have it any other way." He breathed, Tom crushed their lips together and after a small battle for dominance, which Tom won, Harry pulled back with a smirk.

"See,"

"Snake," Tom hissed and Harry's smirk stretched.

"Of course," Harry agreed, "Now please be nice, I know its not in your resume, but do try, and I might see you tomorrow after the article."

"Manipulative creature," Tom muttered and Harry smiled,

"Oh yes, but it works." With that he span on his heel and left, both men caught sight of him changing in to a snake and slipping out of a hole in the wall. Remus couldn't quite believe what he saw, whatever was going on wasn't as casual as people thought it to be, Harry had, whether the man liked it or not, wrapped the Dark Lord around his finger. The sheer irony of that was hilarious for Remus and he fought to contain his mirth, apparently he didn't succeed very well because he was pinned with a rather scary glare. He held up his hands in surrender,

"I'm not saying anything," He said, the glare intensified before the man looked away muttering in Parsel. Remus hid his grin behind his book; maybe things wouldn't be too back after all.

 

Chapter 14

Notes:

Snake – Harry

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Raven/Ray – Luna

Badger – Neville

Bleach – Draco

Manic – Fred

Panic – George
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Read the tags please.

Un'beta'd

I'm not J.K folks,

Parsel in bold italics

Chapter Text

Chapter 14,

Harry looked up surprised as an unfamiliar owl swooped down towards him, it was a dark coloured eagle owl and it landed proudly on his outstretched arm and Harry blinked. He carefully too the letter and fed the bird some bacon, it took off in the same proud fashion and Harry shook his head, he never understood owls. Flipping the letter over, he was surprised to see the Greengrass crest stamped in the wax, he decided to read it letter away from the cramped hall so he tucked it away, he felt rather than saw Dumbledore's eyes on him and he began to plan a cover story to fee the old fool. Harry was only picking at his breakfast because he was too on edge for the next article, it was going to be a thing of beauty and the follow up more so, it would build the foundations to making Dumbledore crumble and Harry was going to enjoy his front seat tickets.

Just how good is the article set to be Snake? Paws asked him in his mind and Harry bit back his smirk.

Let's just say the world is about to find out the Truth about Dumbledore
 and his family
 Harry trailed off and he saw her blink,

But I thought we only had information on one? She questioned astonished,

You didn't think I was just acting and having fun with Tom, did you? He asked rhetorically,

What in Merlin's name else has he got hidden? She exclaimed and Harry mentally smirked.

Oh Paws, you have no idea! He cut the connection as the news owls swooped in and Harry took his with disinterested air as if he didn't care about it, but he laid it out flat and it took all of his control not to grin. On the front page was another beautiful picture, and he truly had no idea where Rita got them, but this time it was of a man that looked like Dumbledore and he was being arrested by aurors and a screaming headline to finish the front page.

The Truth About Dumbledore;

The Father,

Where The Ideas Began,

We know now that Albus Dumbledore has a few secrets in his closest. After the truth about his relationship with Grindlewald was revealed by yours truly, this reporter was determined to find if there were any other hidden secrets that Dumbledore has fought endlessly to hide. I can tell you now readers, there are hoards of dirty little secrets that the supposed hero has kept under wraps; and for good reason.

Delving in to the murky past of Albus Dumbledore was not an easy feat, but it was worth the work it involved. We have heard the startling revelations of Dumbledore in his youth, I wanted to find out what upbringing young Albus had for him to crave such power and control. I looked first in to Percival Dumbledore and I gained a quick idea to where Albus found the idea to rule over muggle originally from. Percival Dumbledore was, to the public, an honorary man, he had married a beautiful muggleborn by the name of Kendra Thomas, and had a wonderful family. But it was merely a front to fool everyone from his true dark nature. You see, in the small village, Mould-On-The-Wold, where the Dumbledore family resided before Godrics Hollow, there were a series of brutal attacks on Muggles and it was leaving the ministry of the time in a mess. The attacks continued for a couple of months and no one was gaining any new information, Percival Dumbledore was working the case and seemingly trying to capture the culprits. Many say he worked harder than most, but their opinions changed when the truth was discovered. There was another attack, this one more vicious and bloodthirsty, I won't write the details, but it was a crime we today would accuse death eaters of committing, and the assailant got himself caught by a team of wizards who were watching the nearby muggle village. The wizard, caught in a hooded cloak and a covered face was revealed at the scene and it was none other than Percival Dumbledore (See picture). He was taken back to the ministry where he admitted that he had attacked 3 muggle children and killed 2, yes children, but it gets worse readers. Percival was please with himself, he admitted he was proud of what he had done and the only thing he was disappointed in was that he had been caught before he could kill them all. Yes, and that is a direct quote from the ministry transcripts of the crime. He was immediately sentenced to Azkaban where he later died still serving for his crimes, and it raises the question of how much of his beastly behaviour he taught to his children? Is this where Albus Dumbledore first got the idea that they could rule over muggles? Did he learn to hide his true-self as much as his father? And did he think his fathers imprisonment was unjust? Nothing is clear and I believe we, as a nation, deserve to know if one of our heroes is not as they seem. We do not know, but I will do everything I can to see the truth brought to light because without it, we could all be in danger of a power hungry psychopath; just like his father.

Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondent to the Daily Profit,

Rita Skeeter, no matter what anyone said, was a literary genius and he'd correct anyone who said otherwise. It was like the first article, the entire hall was in silence as they digested what the paper was telling them, the sound picked up slowly, but there was a difference. This time there was whispers and Harry's eyes darted around the hall to observe everyone, the main expression, where last time it was anger, was fear. Many muggleborns were gazing from the paper and up to Dumbledore in terror and the whispers grew louder until people were screaming and some were even rushing from the hall. Harry looked towards Swift and Paws and even they looked unnerved by the article, Harry didn't blame them, to hurt a child was something he would never think of doing and the only reason he had forgiven Tom was because the man was slightly addled when he threw the Cruciatus at him in 4th year. Thinking about the Dark Lord, Harry's attention snapped up to the head table and to Tom who was looking a mix between exceptionally pleased and livid, Harry's eyes drifted along to the headmaster and he wanted to cackle, Dumbledore looked as if someone had kicked him in the stomach, but Harry could see in the fury in his baby blue eyes. The noise was getting too much for him so he slipped out of the hall and finally allowed his smirk to come forward, the article was an obvious success by the people still fleeing Dumbledore's presence and he happily skipped up to his rooms. Luna was sat in the chair and a pretty smirk on her face,

"Well done, Snake," She said and Harry mock bowed,

"What can I say, Dumbledore left it all there." He replied and she laughed,

"Is there going to be a follow up?" Luna asked and the expression on Harry's face was anything but reassuring for Dumbledore.

"A four-part special,"

"Perfect," She purred, "This will keep him on his toes."

"Definitely, and I plan on using that as much as possible." Harry stated, he threw himself down and pulled out the letter from Greengrass.

"What's that?"

"A letter from a Greengrass, I had forgotten that I said I would correspond with Hadrian." Harry told her as he slit it open, the parchment was rich and expensive and he unfolded the well written letter.

Dear Mr Harry Potter-Black, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient Houses of Potter and Black,

I am writing to you in the hope you are in good health and to fulfil my suggestion of correspondence.

I wish to continue our discussion on the ministry as I found your arguments and points of view refreshing and highly enlightening, it has been a long time since I have spoken to someone with ideas that do not solely benefit themselves. Admittedly, our world will have to have some dramatic governing changes for any such ideas to be placed and, unfortunately, our world is stuck in a time of gold and corruption.

I was surprised to see your absence at the past two wizengamot meetings, and even more so to see your seats being held by none other than Albus Dumbledore, especially as our topic of conversation did not hold the Chief Warlock in high esteem. Of course, no one mentioned your absence even if they were questioning it, but I think they know something is amiss due to the fact that Lady Malfoy was sat proudly in the Black seats during both occasions.

Furthermore, I am enraged that Dumbledore covered himself so well after such an atrocious article came to light, I am sure you know the one of which I speak, and I cannot believe he was allowed to brush something of such severity metaphorically under the rug. Rita Skeeter is right, it does make you wonder what else he has hidden and I am more than willing to discover the true nature of that man. With the minister now on probation, and about time too, I am interested on what will transpire now the second, some may claim the first, main authority figure's confidence is called in to question. I foresee many changes to commence if this continues in such a way.

Your input would be marvellous, and I would be interested to know if you have heard anything about the current happenings as you have proven to be accessible to carefully concealed information.

Yours Sincerely,

Hadrian Greengrass, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Greengrass,

The seal was stamped below the signature and Harry closed the letter thinking, he did enjoy speaking with Hadrian Greengrass, the man actually held intelligence beyond buying what he wanted and they shared many views on the ministry. The letter was slightly unexpected simply because Harry had forgotten that he said he would correspond, but that was through fault of his own and not the others. The veiled question about his absence was a valid one, and he would have to be careful of what he said, it wasn't as if he thought Hadrian would betray him, but the information was very sensitive and would cost him his life if got out. He would have to think on his reply, it would be good to get an outside input on changes needed within the ministry and the view of the wizengamot, especially now his articles had picked up; he was extremely jealous that he wasn't going to be there.

"Anything interesting?" Luna asked and Harry nodded,

"Yes, I had forgotten that I agreed to correspond with Hadrian, it will be interesting to have his input."

"Yes, he is full of knowledge and a decent view of the world."

"I agree, he is a pureblood that actually thinks beyond buying anything they wish."

"I'll see you later, I am expected in Charms soon." Luna said and Harry nodded, he pressed a kiss to her cheek as she left. He went up to his room and sealed the letter in his trunk and set a mental reminder to reply at the quickest possible time.

Where in the name of Circe did you find this? Paws demanded and Harry laughed,

Its another rather impressive one, isn't it?

Its brilliant, Snake, please tell me you have a follow up? Swift entered the conversation and Harry smirked.

Roll on next week and you'll have your answer, Rita is set to send me another draft soon and it'll be printed, Harry told them and he could feel the glee from them.

Oh how the mighty will fall, Swift sighed happily,

And we have front row, Harry agreed,

We will have to schedule a meeting, Gryffindor rooms tomorrow to discuss the wolves and our hunt. Paws said and they agreed, Harry closed the connection and opened the one he had with Tom, the man wasn't teaching, but he was thinking about something and Harry would bet he knew what it was about. He walked to the man's classroom and entered to see Tom sat behind his desk looking at the wall deep in thought, Harry sealed the door allowing his glamour to fall and happily sat down the desk bringing Tom out of his thoughts.

"You have a follow up." Tom stated and Harry smirked,

"Of course,"

"It will be just as informative."

"Most definitely,"

"Next week,"

"Obviously,"

"The old fool really does have skeletons in his closet," Tom mused and Harry scoffed,

"Oh you have no idea,"

"I do wonder how Dumbledore is going to recover from this, it is one thing to have loved the previous Dark Lord, but to have a muggle hating father when Dumbledore himself cries the good of muggles is going to raise questions." Tom said and Harry smirked,

"I think the best part about this was the fear he gained because of it, and he's pissed too, I saw it in his eyes."

"Oh I do not doubt that he is, but it is only going to get better for us." Tom pointed out with a smirk and Harry laughed lightly,

"So much better, Dumbledore isn't going to know what hit him." Tom pulled Harry down on to his lap and trailed light kisses along his neck, Harry hummed in pleasure,

"Watching you destroy the person I hate the most makes you even more desirable, did you know?" Tom asked him lowly and Harry gasped when he bit down on his neck.

"I'll keep that in mind," Harry returned before his lips were claimed and his hands found their way in to Tom's hair, he couldn't help but moan in to the kiss, there was something about kissing Tom that just did it for him. Tom's hands had drifted lower until they rested extremely low on Harry's hips and Harry pulled back reluctantly,

"Why start something you know we can't finish?" He asked in a groan and Tom smirked, his eyes were dark with desire and his hands had not moved.

"I blame you."

"Of course you do," Harry sighed, "You have to teach and I have a lesson to go to, so this will have to wait until after I've had my meeting and seen Moony."

"Your wolf is intelligent," Tom noted and Harry's eyes widened,

"Holy shit the world is ending, Tom gave a compliment." He gasped and there was a part of him that wasn't joking, Tom sent him a withering look to which Harry answered with his own innocent expression.

"Amusing as you are," He drawled, "I was quite surprised,"

"I know, humour is on my résumé. Speaking of which, you weren't all Dark Lord on Remus were you?"

"I only glared at him once, and he deserved it." Tom reassured and Harry rolled his eyes.

"Fine, but be nice, he's all I have left because of Dumbledore, I don't need you scaring him away."

"I don't think he scares that easily Harry, the man is a werewolf." Tom said and Harry grinned,

"Good because we're going to be pushing things to the limit." Tom finally removed his hands and brushed one through his dishevelled hair making Harry sigh, he had a think for messing up the immaculate hair because the man looked hot no matter how it was.

"Have fun teaching, I am off to potions." Harry pulled himself up gracefully and pulled down the wards when his glamour was fully up, "Oh and Halloween is on Friday." With that he vanished from to room. Harry fell in to step with Draco once he had entered the dungeons and the blond flashed him a smirk while shaking his head.

"I don't know how and I don't know when, but well done." Draco said and Harry laughed.

"They only get better, and trust me; the last one is the icing on the cake." Harry told him,

"How good are we looking at?"

"I was completely stunned, to the point where I couldn't process anything. My mind literally shut down in shock." Harry replied seriously and Draco blinked,

"Oh Merlin, I thought this one was shocking."

"No, it gets better/worse depending on how you look at it."

"Wonderful,"

"It is isn't it? Now, we're having a meeting tonight, in those rooms after dinner."

"Got it," they both fell silent as they stopped outside the classroom, no one looked surprised to see them walking together because many of them were seen with their potions partners outside of class anyway. The lesson took longer than Harry would have liked, but he happily made his way to transfiguration afterwards. The halls were filled with the article and Harry was pleased, they seemed to be more shaken up about this one than the one before and he couldn't wait to see the next draft, if the follow up was anything as good as this one then Harry knew he would keep Dumbledore off his back. Unfortunately, he wasn't watching where he was going after transfiguration because he ran in to a furious Ginny.

"Hey Gin-,"

"They have no right to print this about Dumbledore, they're making him out to be a monster when he can't control his parents." She snarled and Harry blinked, he put on a righteously angry expression and nodded emphatically.

"I know, who does this Skeeter think she is. You can't choose your family, just look at the Dursleys!" Harry agreed vehemently, Ginny looked slightly placated that he agreed and she wrapped herself on his arm.

"I want to know why she's out to get Dumbledore again, I mean, hasn't she done enough?"

"She has the need to target someone, Gin, I think she just got sick of writing about me." Harry shrugged, he ignored the fact that she was clinging to him again and threw up his Occlumency shields to prepare for the pain he knew was coming. Just as predicted, as soon as he stepped in to the hall he felt a shadow of the pain Tom directed at him, he bit back his sigh and plastered on a smile for Ginny as she went on about something she did.

Ginny herself was feeling the same amounts of disgust, but for different reasons. She was sick of acting like she was in love with the Boy-Who-lived, she knew why she was doing it and the reward was going to be perfect, but it was tiring and sickening for her. When Dumbledore first came to her, she had been excited and thrilled to be chosen for the Boy-Who-Lived, she couldn't believe that she was the one who was going to be the future Lady Potter, but then reality hit her. Harry Potter was nothing like he should have been, he was quiet and shy, but he lived up to his name when he saved her from the basilisk.

Dumbledore was paying her well to get close to him and she was succeeding, but this year was so much more difficult because of the death of that mutt Black, the damn brat had turned in to a pathetic child and it was driving her crazy. She was practically throwing herself at him and he was barely interested, she would suspect he was gay, but that wasn't possible because the he was the Boy-Who-Lived. Even if it didn't matter in their world if someone was gay or straight due to male pregnancies and blood adoptions, Potter couldn't be gay because she had to be the new Lady Potter. She deserved the title and the money and the privileges that came with it and she would get them whatever it took. After everything she had to deal with because she was poor, everything should be rightfully hers, it wasn't her fault that they didn't have any money so it shouldn't stand in her way like it did and being Lady Potter would stop that, especially after her husband dies fighting Voldemort. And he would die, Ginny was sure of it because only Dumbledore had enough power to destroy him. She would have to speak with Dumbledore about doing something because even when he was on love potion they were moving slowly, Ginny shook her head, it would all come together eventually, after all, what could go wrong? She clutched at his arm and continued to talk, it would all be worth it in the end.

"Isn't Halloween on Friday?" Harry noted picking up on something she had said.

"Yes, this is why Professor Dumbledore is letting us have a half day so we can go to Hogsmead." Ginny told him and Harry perked up at that, a day in Hogsmead on the cursed Halloween, Dumbledore was pushing the boundaries.

"Oh, that'll be fun, I missed all the Halloween trips before." Harry said tilting his head, he knew exactly what he was going to do for Halloween and if everything went to plan Friday was going to be interesting.

"Hey Gin, I'll see you later yeah? I have to get this essay done for Snape or he'll have my head, I've got training and Occlumency so I have to do it today."

"Of course, Harry, but don't work to hard." She gave him a sickeningly sweet smile as he left, he had a blonde to see about a plan.


"Ladies and gentlemen, the genius extraordinaire has arrived." Harry announced grandly as he swept in to the Gryffindor rooms, the others looked at him in amusement and Remus shook his head.

"Right then," He muttered and Harry grinned,

"I was channelling Tom, what do you think?" He said seriously and they all laughed at that.

"I think the last time you said something like that, Cub, you gave me a mini heart attack." Remus commented amused, Harry smirked.

"Why is that, Moony?"

"Because you said, and I quote, over inflated arrogance that is paired with an astonishing large ego," Remus drawled and the others raised their eyebrows in confusion.

"He's said worse," Paws said with a shrug and Remus nodded.

"While I don't doubt that, was the Dark Lord sat opposite him?" Paws, Badger and Bleach choked on air while the twins, Raven and Swift snickered.

"Why would you do that?" Draco exclaimed and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I was making sure he wasn't being horrible to Moony, you know what he can be like."

"Snake, you do not tell the most feared man in the wizarding world that he is arrogant with an ego." Paws said slowly and Harry waved her off.

"He didn't mind,"

"I wonder why?" Remus muttered with a grin and Harry laughed,

"That was why he glared at you, wasn't it?"

"Yes and it was down right terrifying." Remus shuddered and Harry laughed before becoming serious.

"Down to business," Harry turned their attention back to the meeting, "The current article is going to cause a stir, I am hoping that with this and Halloween coming up it will keep Dumbledore off my back because he is busy doing damage control. These supposed lessons we're meant to be having are an inconvenience, I have too much to do, too much to plan for and I can't spend needless time acting like I worship the ground he walks on. Tom has my Occlumency covered, my other 'lessons' are with him so they are fine and if this keeps Dumbledore away I am free to complete my plan for the wolves and we can go on our hunt." Harry took a breath and looked around to see them nodding.

"What about Ginny?" Swift asked, "She is the only thing, if the articles work their magic, setting you on edge." Harry and Luna exchanged looks that were anything but pleasant, if anything they were evil.

"I think I have that covered." Harry purred and no one asked any more.

"Bleach, do you have anything?" Harry asked the blond who threw him a dirty look,

"Still not going to change my name?" He sighed and Harry smirked before adopting an all too innocent look.

"We could change it, actually I've been thinking of some." Harry said, "I mean, we could have Albino, Snowy, Pearly or my personal favourite; Snowflake." Draco grew more horrified as Harry went on and by the end he was holding his hands up in defence.

"Bleach is fine, perfectly acceptable actually." He said hurriedly and Harry grinned.

"I thought so, do go on."

"I've been working on all the potions you gave me and I've come up with an antidote to one of them and that was the blood poisoning one. I thought, as it was the most vicious, I would concentrate on that and it was nasty to counteract, only the fact that I've access to illicit ingredients was I able to do it." Draco explained and Harry's expression darkened, he eyed Luna carefully and she rolled her eyes with a small smile. "I've made a batch so we do have counters, but it has to be administered within the first 5 minutes of consumption or it isn't a guarantee that it will work."

"That's good, its better than most could hope for. Well done, Bleach, impressive work." Harry said impressed and Draco smirked.

"Thanks, I've been working on identifying and countering the others, but it is slow progress because I have to be careful with my work. It doesn't help that I don't know who's making the potions so I can't work in front of Severus, plus the fact you don't trust him even in the slightest."

"No, I don't, and the only reason he is still alive is because of Tom. Unless he changes his attitude then its going to stay that way."

"Well, the potions are coming along, but it is slow." Draco said, "Now, a bit of a problem has come up and its one we should have foresaw."

"Oh?"

"The Slytherin's are beginning to talk, your presence at my ball was very clearly noted and now, with your masks fully up, they are questioning what's going on." Draco told him and Harry cursed.

"Damn it,"

"That's not all, others are whispering, there were a few other families at the ball and they are all wondering the same thing."

"This could ruin everything," Swift groaned.

"If this gets out, you're worse than dead Snake." Paws said worriedly and Harry gripped his head.

"Not now, things are just picking up." He murmured,

"We can contain this," Luna said and Harry knew she was thinking,

"Go on,"

"There are rules when one agrees to go to a ball, especially a grey and dark one. If Bleach begins to spread the word that his family is calling a complete Act of Silence then no one would speak, anyone stupid enough knows that they are signing their death 10x over." Luna stated and Harry's eyes lit up, he turned to Draco who was smirking.

"I'll write to my father, tell him to send word and I'll begin tonight when I enter the common room."

"I had forgotten about the Act of Silence." Paws mused with a small smirk, "The joys of involving ones self within the Dark."

"I didn't even think they still used them." Remus said in disbelief and Harry smirked.

"Most of the things Sirius told you about the grey and dark houses are still in action, they love traditions and some of the old traditions keep a lot of grey and dark people safe." Harry told him seriously.

"I can understand that,"

"If Bleach can get the word out fast enough then I shall be covered, all it takes is one loose tongue and I'm done. I know questions are being whispered within the Lords, but they are staying quite for the time being."

"Yes, but we know that will not last." Swift stated,

"Especially with how the Order are digging." Fred added talking for the first time, he and his twin had been oddly quiet since the beginning of the meeting and Harry turned his attention to the pair.

"Do tell us what your devious minds have found." Harry said to them and they grinned,

"We, that is to say my twin and I," George began,

"Have been investigating what the Order have been up to," Fred continued,

"It's quite easy to get information out of a certain metamorph,"

"And the help of a few listeners and the eyes and ears,"

"We've been gathering quite a bit."

"Tonks will speak to you?" Paws asked and the twins nodded,

"Yes, I don't think she knows that Dumbledore's wand has been loose around us." They answered together.

"So what's going on?" Badger asked and the twins threw him an apologetic look.

"Augusta Longbottom seems to be working more solidly with Dumbledore, from what we have deduced, it was he who suggested cutting your trust vault in the hope that it would repress you even more so I would keep your watch out for more spells." George told them and Badger's expression turned evil, Harry shot him a look.

"Reign it in for now Badger,"

"I got it Snake, just pissed."

"Carry on gents,"

"She's become his other set of ears within the wizengamot because of the Longbottom seat, Weasley is to low down to be any of use, but Augusta hears things about the influential." Fred picked up and Harry hissed.

"That Act needs to get spread quickly, Bleach, do you think Zabini will help you, he seemed more open to my presence opposed to Nott?"

"Blaise will be game, he loves a scandal, but he'll ask for something in return so be careful, he isn't as superficial as he appears to be."

"I think I can appease his needs, I have a feeling I know what he wants anyway." Harry said sharing an amused glance with Luna.

"What else has been going on?" Paws asked the twins.

"The Order are trying to gather supporters for Scrimgeor." Fred told them, "With Kingsley on the same level as him they are slowly making their way around the light Noble Houses."

"The real problem is when they being on the Noble and Most Ancient, they are the ones who have the majority vote and with Dumbledore controlling my seats at the moment he can practically own the wizengamot." Harry sighed and tugged at his hair, Luna slapped his hand away and Harry smiled, "Sorry."

"Dumbledore was speaking about the latest legislation they have just blocked as well as the ones they are trying to get pushed through." George remembered, "They've, yet again, added another restriction to the werewolf rights and that was drawn and proposed by Umbridge-." He was cut of by a low, vicious hiss issuing from Harry, his eyes had narrowed in to slits and his fists clenched.

"Do you know the exact legislation is?" Harry demanded and Fred drawled out a scroll.

"We took the liberty on making a trip to the ministry." He said as he passed it over.

"Do I want to know how you managed to get in to an apparent secure room?" Remus questioned amused and slightly alarmed, the twins shared a smirk.

"You're a marauder," Fred said,

"You work it out," George finished and Remus shuddered.

"That what I'm worried about."

"THEY'RE BEING HUNTED!" Harry's enraged voice cut through the comedy, he was gripping the parchment in a vice like grip and it was beginning to smoke with his anger.

"What?"

"This law says anyone who has been enacted in to the 'Werewolf Protection Program' is able to capture and contain a werewolf in 'suspicion' of endangering the public by any means necessary. It practically allows people to hunt wolves." He snarled and his magic was beginning to curl around him, "She's opened a new section of the DMLE for this and it was passed by a majority vote, it becomes valid from yesterday."

"They can't do this!" Paws exclaimed furiously, "Don't they know its wrong?"

"Amelia Bones won't sit well with this, she's all for rights and equality." Swift stated shaking his head,

"Yes, but if she doesn't put up with it then she loses her job, and having someone else in the Head spot is something we cannot have. Who knows who they'll put there and if Amelia is removed." Badger pointed out,

"They'll never stop until all the wolves are gone, its as simple as that." Remus growled and Harry shook his head,

"It will not come to that, I swore I would do something about the wolves and I intend to stick to it." Harry stated strongly and Remus sighed.

"That's all well and good Cub, but you have to keep yourself alive."

"I swore on my magic Moony, I will not stand for it." Remus eyes widened at that and a small smile came to his face.

"Thank you," Harry gave a sharp nod and began to pace,

"Damn it, I could really do with having Tom here now." Harry burst out and Remus gasped.

"That's it, its been bugging me since you got in here!"

"What?"

"His scent on you is lacking, its like its been covered with something and it isn't that nice if I'm honest." Remus explained and Harry cursed.

"Ginny," he spat and went over and hugged Luna making sure he covered her entire frame with his body, "How's that?"

"Better,"

"Good," Harry sighed, "But don't mention it to Tom,"

"Don't mention what to Tom?" Said man drawled from the doorway and Harry blinked.

"Um hi?"

"You called?" Tom said with a raised eyebrow and Harry's shot up.

"I did?"

"Yes,"

"Huh, well who knew?" Harry shrugged, "Have you had the latest report from the wizengamot?"

"I know there has been a new law past, Lucius was trying to obtain a copy, but on the day in question the scroll was suspiciously absent." Here he turned to look at the twins who smiled sweetly, Tom rolled his eyes and turned back to Harry. "Am I to assume that I will not like it?"

"Oh I don't know, if your feeling up for a little wolf hunting then its right up your street." Harry said brightly handing it over, Tom's eyes darted over the sheet and his eyes flashed.

"It seems that amphibian hunt you offered me has been brought forward." Tom hissed and Harry smirked.

"Hm, I believe you are correct about that Mr Riddle, do you propose a date?"

"Of course Mr Potter, Halloween is fast approaching and the evening is completely free."

"And we both know that odd things often occur on All Hallows Eve."

"It is a most unfortunate date, but it will make such a lovely finish to an otherwise dreary day."

"Indeed," Harry agreed,

"Until later?"

"Of course," Tom flashed a smirk and swept from the room, Harry watched him leave and turned back to the others, all of which were staring at him with different varies of disbelief and shock.

"Can I help you?" He asked them and they all shook their heads.

"You don't see it, do you?" Bleach asked and Harry looked at him blankly.

"See what?"

"You know what Snake, never mind." Luna said, "Back to the laws,"

"Umbridge is dead, I'll go over Swifts plans for than and adapt them. The wolf situation will be moved forward, Tom and I will scout the place with Remus, that way Tom can analyse the building while Remus and I check out the lands and then Remus can evaluate our findings to see if its wolf friendly." Harry decided, he was pacing furiously muttering to himself, "Until the area has been okayed then its pointless placing the ward up, its going to take enough power as it is."

"Ward?" Remus asked and Paws pulled out a copy of Harry's workings.

"It was a piece of genius on Snake's part." She said as Remus looked it over,

"This is amazing Cub," He breathed and Harry grinned,

"I do have some brain cells up there."

"I bet this took ages," Remus said and the group scoffed,

"Yeah, try 3 days." Bleach told him with a smirk and Remus' eyes bugged.

"You did this in 3 days?"

"Yeah, it was important," Harry shrugged, "But it doesn't matter if we don't have a safe house so I'll talk to Tom and get back to you."

"So the wolves are, hopefully, covered," Swift said making a note of it, "What other laws do they want put through, you said Dumbledore was speaking about them?"

"He's trying to legalise the Order, make it so they can work in the open and with the ministry against the dark." Fred rolled his eyes, "But if anything he's only aiding the Dark Lord, the wording is weak at best and if it goes through as it is now, the Death Eaters will become a legal organisation."

"Who in Merlin's name is wording it, Mad Eye?" Harry asked rhetorically, he nearly choked when they nodded.

"You have got to be kidding me?" Paws gasped,

"Nope, apparently because he worked in the ministry and he's second under the old fool himself, he was the best person for the job because Dumbledore is too busy."

"What about Shack?" Swift asked,

"Don't ask me how the crazy man's mind works." George said in exasperation, "But it has yet to be proposed, if they have any sense they'll give it to Tonks to take to her parents, both of which work in the legal business."

"Yes, well let's hope they don't retain any intelligence, shall we?" Harry drawled and everyone agreed.

"Do you know when they plan to propose it?" Paws asked and the twin shook their heads.

"No, not yet, they're waiting for the right time."

"Meaning, if something does happen after Halloween then it'll be proposed in the next session." Swift thought out and Harry nodded,

"Yes, it is the logical option, but that is good for us because the final proposal will be rushed." Harry pointed out,

"Brilliant,"

"Now, they haven't actually noticed Remus' absence yet and that's mainly due to Kreacher, they use the elf to 'feed' him having Tonks order him because of her Black blood." Fred told them and they snickered,

"That would be useful if; A, Tonks was actually on the Black family tree and B, if Kreacher wasn't fanatically loyal to Harry." Paws laughed and Remus blinked.

"Kreacher?" He questioned and Harry nodded with a smirk.

"Yep, the elf loves me now and he's actually saved your life a few times."

"Why the change?"

"Not a change, more of a breakthrough." Harry corrected and Remus' eyes flashed.

"Dumbledore!"

"Who else?"

"Anyway, I think we should be prepared for Dumbledore's reaction to when he finds out that Remus has disappeared from the wards he put around the door. He is going to be thinking the worst which means he's going to be fanatical because of the things Remus knows behind the obliviates." Swift stated bringing them back,

"Yes, and he's going to become more observant to Snake's movements because if Remus' escaped by himself then Dumbledore will believe he would contact and/or come for Snake." Luna added and Harry cursed.

"Problematic, but not to difficult to work with I guess,"

"Anything else from the Order?" Badger asked the twins who shook their heads.

"No, nothing of importance." They said together sitting back and throwing their arms around Bleach, the blond rolled his eyes but didn't throw them off and Harry spotted a slight pinking of the usually pale cheeks, he hid his smirk.

"So with Remus safe and on the research tail, the wolves are in progress, the Order has been discussed and the article is on its way we have one last thing on the agenda." Harry said, "Our hunt!"

"We've scouted out most areas connected with Dumbledore, I know the man has a lot of secrets, but there is only so much he can hide from the past." Paws sighed in frustration.

"I am guessing you have been finding dirt on Dumbledore?" Remus said,

"Yes, no matter how much he has tried, he's left tiny details for us to find." Swift answered and Remus thought for a few seconds.

"Might I make a suggestion?" Remus asked,

"Please do, I cannot think of anything." Harry said eagerly,

"Try looking in to the Flammels, Dumbledore studied under Nicolas Flammel for 20 odd years and, even though I've only met him once, I know that Flammel would have kept records, even in death they'll be something."

"Why in Merlin's name did we not think of Flammel!" Paws exclaimed,

"Its like first year all over again!" Swift groaned and Harry just shook his head.

"I need to eat more chocolate."

"Chocolate?" Remus' eyes actually perked up at that and Harry snickered.

"Still not over your chocolate addiction then, Moony?" Harry questioned lightly and Remus scowled.

"I do not have a chocolate addiction." He grumbled,

"Suuure," Harry said sceptically, "Winky," his elf popped in smiling.

"What cans Winky bes doing for Master Harry?"

"I'm fancying some chocolate and I think Remus is having withdraw symptoms,"

"Oh no," She shook her head flapping her ears, "Winky is getting lots of chocolate right away." she popped away and came back with what only could be described as a mountain of chocolate, Remus' eyes glazed slightly and Harry smirked.

"Thank you Winky," She disappeared beaming and Harry turned to Remus,

"Chocolate, Moony?" Remus threw him a filthy look, but grabbed as much as possible.

"I'm going to the library," He muttered sullenly as they laughed,

"So Paws, if you could research everything you can about the Flammel residence, Swift, you plan our outing, Luna, carry on with well your stuff and Badger can help, Bleach on potions and heirs, Remus is also looking in to the heirs if you want to run your things passed him and I'll set the articles up and get on to the wolves." Harry told them all, "Twins, carry on with what you've been doing, and that mail ward."

"We've made progress with that, we're running preliminary tests currently."

"Well, let me know how you get on."

"Course we will,"

"Anything else?" Harry asked,

"Do you know what is going to happen Halloween, minus the disposal of Umbridge that is?" Badger asked and Harry's smirk was nothing short of demonic.

"Be on your guard from Thursday onwards." Harry said and all eyebrows rose except Luna who was also smirking.

"Thursday? But what in Merlin's name has been planned?"

"Currently nothing that I know of, but if my plan goes perfectly, and I can't see it not, then we, well you're, going to have a very irate Dark Lord on your hands."

"Snake," Paws sighed and Harry shrugged,

"If it works then it will cover two things,"

"Just don't get yourself killed,"

"I'm not worried about me, now you guys on the other hand have to be careful especially when he comes demanding answers."

"Wonderful, he's trying to kill us." Bleach complained, "I'll go speak to Blaise now, see what he wants." The blond vanished from the room via the dungeons root and the twins transformed and followed him out much to Harry's amusement, Swift and Paws got to their feet also.

"See you Snake, be careful,"

"I always am, in a round about way." Paws rolled her eyes and left through the library passage while Swift went to the 7th floor, Harry looked to Luna.

"It's really getting interesting now, isn't it?"

"Of course Harry, this is where the fun starts." He laughed at that and they left, Harry changes in to a snake and wound around Luna so she could carry him out secretly. She let him slide down on the defence corridor and Harry slithered his way to Tom's office, he, with difficulty, managed to get in to his office and he couldn't help but release a snakey laugh when Tom stared blankly at the door. The man's attention snapped downwards and he blinked before massaging his temples with a sigh, Harry flicked his tail to shut the door and slid over to Tom and up the chair to drape himself over the man's shoulders.

Hi,

Multiple animagus forms?

Yess, three to be exact,

Is there anything completely ordinary about you, at all? Tom asked in exasperation and Harry snickered which sounded odd as he was currently a snake.

My blood is actually red in colour, apart from that I don't think so.

I didn't think so, Tom sighed, Harry slithered over to the desk and changed back with a smirk.

"Where do you think I got the name Snake from?"

"Your ability to work around and get out of impossible situations,"

"Ok, that's a very valid point, but no, I managed my Parsel transformation before my animagus which is why I have three opposed to two like the others."

"Ah," Tom nodded in understanding, "Now, with this law just passing, there is going to be an increase in wolf attacks. I will need to speak to Lucius to see if he has any leads."

"No time like the present, and we have time turners." Harry said and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"You are coming?" Harry smirked.

"You can complain when you actually don't want or mind me being there." Harry returned and Tom rolled his eyes.

"Very well, are you changing?" Tom ignored Harry's smirk of victory deciding to think on his behaviour at a later date, Harry looked down and nodded.

"Yes, I can't say I look all that intimidating in jeans, extremely good looking sure, but not intimidating."

"You have 5 minutes." Tom drawled and Harry rolled his eyes, he tilted his head and smirked.

"Are you going all Dark Lord on your minions?" He asked and Tom merely looked at him, "Right, of course you are." Harry took out his wand and span it making the shadows around him thicken, he kept rotating it until he was draped in them and then he sharply flicked his wand upwards. Tom watched as the shadows surrounded Harry and then slowly slid away from him except now he looked different, he was dressed in elegantly styled black robes which the shadows seemed to cling too, there was no part of his skin visible except the bottom half of his face which looked stark pale contrasting with the shadowy half mask that seemed as one with his face, his eyes snapped open and they were pulsing a deadly killing curse as his magic and the shadows swirled around him before settling slightly.

"Shadow magic?" Tom said impressed, not that he let it show, Harry smirked,

"I have a shadow wolf animagus," When Harry spoke it seemed to make the shadows whisper, Tom smirked.

"I think I may enjoy having you at this elite meeting."

"Of course you will, Tom." Harry said brightly, "I can't believe you doubted that fact." Tom shook his head and flicked his wand, his 'Lord Voldemort' robes and cloak wrapped around him and he drew up the hood, Harry smirked shaking his head.

"And you wonder why people stutter in your presence."

"You do not." Tom pointed out, his voice slightly distorted due to the hood and shadow spell.

"Yes, well I have been told that I am not ordinary."

"That is correct,"

"Yeah yeah," Harry curled himself in to Tom's side and buried his face in Tom's neck as he was side-apperated to Malfoy manor, Harry didn't move for a few seconds as his stomach settled and the he extracted himself and shuddered.

"If there is one method of transport, besides portkeys, that I cannot hack, its side-along apperation." Harry muttered his face tinged a slight green, Tom tried to hide his amusement, but failed and laughed at Harry.

"Yeah yeah, laugh it up." Harry grumbled,

"You can travel through the shadows and through flames, kill without a second thought and throw yourself through the air with careless disregard, but you cannot side apperate without becoming nauseous." Tom said before laughing again, Harry threw him an unimpressed look.

"I hate you."

"I know," Tom had stopped laughing, but Harry could still feel his amusement and was less than pleased,

"I've side apperated you before, many times," Tom pointed out with a smirk and Harry nodded,

"I know, but that was completely different circumstances and I'm usually high with delirium." Harry shrugged, "I'm weird, get used to it."

"I think I am, slowly." Tom said shaking his head, Harry followed the Dark Lord through the halls and they stopped at a large empty room which was obviously used as a meeting room. Tom conjured up a seat for himself, which Harry thought oddly resembled a throne though he chose not to comment, and flicked out his wand, he drew a replica of his dark mark and jabbed the skull.

Elite, he hissed and the mark flashed before vanished in a swirl of smoke, Harry backed up behind the throne and had the shadows cling harder to him as 7 people apperated in to the room and dropped to their knees.

"My Lord," They murmured and Harry could detect a slight smirk curling on Tom's face, not that anyone else could.

"Rise," He commanded in an icy tone and they moved to their feet silently.

"You have all heard of the new laws on werewolves that has been passed." He began, "Lucius was unable to obtain the exact wording of the proposal due to it being missing at the time, I have, however, read a copy."

"My Lord, may I ask how?" Lucius questioned and it was obvious it was pissed that he hadn't managed to get it, this time Tom's smirk was more prominent.

"A Snake and his connections."

"How in Merlin's name did he manage to get in to that room, I only have access due to the minister?" Lucius exclaimed easily putting together the details and so had Snape by his expression, "Um apologise, My Lord." Tom waved him off.

"I believe he has a pair of menaces, Severus, I am sure you are familiar." No one missed Snape's light shudder.

"Unfortunately My Lord, I am,"

"Now, as to how I was given this information is not important." Tom said bringing the point to the forefront, "The latest law is making Umbridge's selected legally allowed to hunt wolves."

"What!? They can't do that!"

"That is ridiculous."

"Fools,"

"Yes, which means something needs to be done. Lucius, have you any leads?"

"I have My Lord, I was going come to you this evening. Rabastan and Rodolphus used their connections in Knockturn while I used the ministry to comply a list of names. Most of which have turned up on the Werewolf Protection Program which has just been instated within the ministry." Harry's attention snapped solely on to Lucius and the shadows grew oppressive within the room, they flickered around the death eaters and the elite shifted.

"The names Lucius," Harry hissed causing the shadows to whisper and hiss, the entire elite jumped slightly and it would have been amusing if Harry didn't want the names.

"I have them," Lucius drew out a roll of parchment, the shadows came up and took it from the blond elite member and it vanished from sight. Tom looked slightly amused at the fear he could see in his elite's eyes, but only Harry knew that due to their link.

"I want a full list of everyone in the WWP and want them to be monitored." Tom ordered, "Rabastan, Rodolphus and Bella in Knockturn and the more shadowy areas, Izar and Lucius in the ministry, Severus with the old fool and Dolohov use your connections."

"Yes, My Lord," he dismissed them and they apperated away, Harry emerged from the shadows and the expression of his face was nothing short of evil.

"I don't think Umbridge is the only one who is going to die this week." Tom commented and Harry's eyes blazed.

"I think it's time the hunters became the hunted."

Chapter 15

Notes:

Un'beta'd

Unfortunately, I am not the great J.K Rowling, but the plot is all mine XD

Little note, Outhouses = Outbuildings

Parseltongue is in bold italics.

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 15,

Dumbledore was nowhere to be seen Tuesday at all or Wednesday morning and Harry couldn't help the occasional skip he had in his step, if it wasn't for Paws hissing in his mind for him to watch himself then he would had a few slips in his persona. Tom thought it was amusing to say the least, and Harry had seen him biting back his own smirks at the absent headmaster. Of course the man was also pissed that Ginny hadn't left his side both days and come Wednesday evening he had a killer headache, he was thankful Luna was already had a headache reliever waiting for him and sighed.

"Thanks Ray,"

"I had a feeling you would be needing one, given the circumstances."

"Yes, well Tom isn't exactly filled with joy."

"One would think he wouldn't be so possessive seeing as its merely sex."

"Don't ask me, it's a little quirk of his that I do so love exploiting, and if he didn't have it then I don't think my Halloween plan would work." Harry pointed out and she grinned.

"True, and its going to be quite fun to observe," Luna said with a light laugh, Harry grinned.

"I'm thinking now would be a good time to check out my hideaway for the wolves, with this law everything needs to be done quicker." Harry said, "I can use the timeturner and relive the day."

"Well its 5:30 so you have to be back by then because we have no one to cover for you."

"Its private tutoring, Tom'll think of something." Harry waved off her concern and she nodded.

"Ok, well be careful."

"Will do," He grabbed his cloak and vanished down to Tom's office, he slipped passed the wards and laughed when Tom didn't even bother to look up from his book.

"You still want to come to check out Peverell Manor?" Harry asked him and Tom hummed, Harry rolled his eyes and sat down waiting for Tom to come back to the living realm. It took about 15 minutes before Tom closed his book and turned to Harry who was in a semi meditative trance, when he felt Tom's magic change he came out of it and blinked a few times.

"You've returned." Harry said brightly,

"Obviously,"

"Do you still want to come to Peverell Manor with me?" Harry re-asked the man, Tom nodded.

"Of course,"

"I thought so, I was intending on going back to breakfast and leaving." Harry told him,

"Yes, that would give you perfect cover."

"Did you have a first period?"

"No, fortunately,"

"That means you would have been in your office, so we'll have to leave from your rooms." Harry said and Tom raised his eyebrows.

"You know that how?"

"Because you have a routine that you don't like to break too much, you get up, have tea or coffee depending on your day ahead and your mood, light breakfast, if you have a free first period then you go to your office to read, deal with the crap of the day, dinner with red 1922 elf made wine before going to your office for an hour and an half to read and deal with the pestering of students before retiring to your rooms where you deal with actual problems with a glass of firewhiskey or cherry scotch and either go to manage your eaters, read or I come." Harry explained as he walked through the connecting door to Tom's rooms missing the slightly stunned look that came to the Dark Lord's face as he followed the teen.

"You've noted my routine?"

"Of course, I would be dead if I didn't study people, everyone is a potential threat to me."

"Indeed," Harry pulled out his timeturner and threw the long chain over Tom's neck, he turned it 10 times and watched as the room blurred. When the spinning had stopped, he tucked the chain away and smirked when he cast a tempus and it said it was 7:45.

"This gives a lot of time." Harry said and then he stilled, he pulled out his cloak and tossed it over himself and Tom just in time because other Tom swept through the room in the next second, he didn't wait around long only flicking his wrist to summon a book before leaving and Harry breathed in relief.

"Well that was close."

"How did I not feel our presence, the magic would have been obvious even if it was hidden." Tom mused,

"It's the cloak." Harry told him tucking said cloak away, "It doesn't just make me invisible, it completely and utterly hides me from anything and everything, and it even works as a shield."

"It is not an ordinary cloak."

"No, but I haven't the time to research it, its been in my family for years."

"That in itself is strange because even the best invisibility cloaks wear after 10 years."

"Well, if I survive this, something I do intend on doing thank you very much, I'll look in to it."

"Shall we leave?"

"Yes, I don't want to leave directly from here however," Harry said and Tom nodded, he grabbed Harry and apperated them to Malfoy Manor entrance hall when Harry proceeded to collapse and try to hold in his dinner. Tom couldn't help but burst out laughing and Harry threw a stinging hex at him, not that is deterred the man from his hilarity, Harry called one of his elves.

"What cans Dobby bes doing for Master Harry Potter Sir?"

"Nausea draught please," Harry gasped out and then elf popped back in almost instantly, Harry knocked back the potion without a grimace and waited for his stomach to settle. Finally, he rose to his feet with a deep breath, Tom was trying to cover his snickers with his hand, which he was failing at because his shoulders were shaking, Harry threw him a filthy look.

"That was low,"

"That was funny," Tom corrected and Harry glowered.

"Evil evil man,"

"Thank you, it has been a while in the making." Tom said seriously, Harry blinked before face palming.

"Oh Merlin," Tom smirked, Harry rolled his eyes and walked over to him, he activated the portkey in his Lordship ring before Tom could even ask how they were getting there and took a lot of pleasure when the Dark Lord stumbled. Harry was going to make a snide comment when he caught sight of the Manor they had arrived at, the word manor was used in the loosest fashion possible because it was not, by any means a manor.

"Holy fucking shit! That's a damn castle." Harry exclaimed wide eyed, Tom gathered his bearings and looked around, his eyes widened also as he took in the colossal building before them.

"I believe they got the naming of this particular property incorrect." He muttered and Harry made a voice of agreement, they stood in a stunned silence for a minute just gazing at the building. Even in the distance, which was quite large due to the huge lined driveway the 'manor' had the building was massive, the metallic black, cast iron gates stood tall and proud at the entrance of the grounds with the Peverell crest of a triangle with a circle and a line within it in the centre.

"Shall we?" Tom asked being the first to snap out of it, Harry shook himself and nodded.

"Right," Harry walked forward pressed his ring to the gate, "I Harry James Potter-Black, heir to the House of Peverell, do hereby claim access to Peverell manor." The gates flashed and Harry felt as the ancient magic washed over him accepting his claim, the gates swung open allowing him entrance and Harry stepped over the threshold.

"I, Harry James Potter-Black, do hereby open Peverell Manor to those with Peverell blood so mote be it." The gates flashed again and Harry turned to Tom, "You should have automatic access now, if not I'll have to find the ward stone."

"I believe I will be able to enter now you have opened the ah manor again, but I don't think I will be able to control anything." Tom said after a minute, he walked forward and Harry could almost see his magic testing the area to make sure he was safe. Tom walked through the ward boundaries, or where Harry presumed they would be, without difficulty and Harry grinned.

"Now, do you want to walk up?"

"I think, to be safe, we shall walk and that way we can take in these parts of the land." Tom said and Harry nodded in agreement.

"There is definitely enough of it, I mean look at that, the whole driveway is lines with forest until it opens up in to a court thing."

"It is rather substantial." Harry looked at Tom in disbelief,

"Substantial?"

"Ok, excessive. Very excessive," Tom corrected,

"If it looks huge now, its going to be ridiculous when we actually get there, isn't it?" Harry questioned rhetorically.

"Oh yes,"

"Thought so," Harry sighed, "Hey Tom, I've never asked, but do you have an animagus form?" Tom looked at him for a few moments and Harry knew he was debating whether or not to answer, of course that in itself told Harry that he did, but he needn't tell the Dark Lord that.

"I do as well as my parsel transformation."

"Do you have your land animal or your aerial?"

"Land and before you ask I take on the form of a black panther and yes I will use it to properly see the lands if you wish." Tom stated and Harry smiled delightedly and clapped his hand like and excited child.

"Brilliant, this is going to be fun!" He cheered and Tom rolled his eyes with a slight smile.

"Come on, we have a lot of land to cover and that is just before we reach the exceedingly large building our ancestors saw fit to build." Tom said and transformed in to his animagus. A sleek and elegant panther replaced him and it was bigger than an average male panther. His coat has a sheen to it which made it look inky in colour, powerful muscle were wound tightly under the skin prepared for anything, deadly sharp claws marred each paw that could cut through solid wood if pushed enough, razor-like teeth that would cut through flesh and the whole deadly image was finished off with demonic red eyes that seemed to shine against the black fur. Tom took a few testing steps getting used to being on four legs and then he flicked his tail, Harry grinned as he ran his hand through the silky fur and he purred,

"Awh you're so cute," Harry cooed and the panther growled and shot him a look, Harry's grin turned in to a smirk, "You can curse me later, but right now I'm going to marvel at the fact the mighty Dark Lord is purring like a cute little kitty cat." Harry repeated his previous motion making Tom purr again, Harry snickered and Tom snapped at him which made Harry outright laugh.

"If I shrank you down I could carry your around like my very own pet kitten." Harry said and Tom looked less than impressed and from the emotions Harry was picking up he would be glaring if he was human, the cat hissed at him in warning and Harry grinned again.

"And I could add cute little bows to your ears and tail and give you an adorable name like Mr Cuddlepus or Mr Schnookems." Tom's whole body froze and Harry was hit with a massive amount of disbelief which made him break down in hysterics, of course that left him unprepared for when the irate panther lunged at him and pinned him to the ground growling fiercely and his tail whipping back and forth showing its anger, not that Harry stopped laughing.

"I can see it now," He gasped out through his laughter, "I could get you playmate and call it Mr Tibbles," this renewed his fit and increased the pressure Tom was applying to his chest making it hard for him to breathe, Harry coughed a few times and tried to get himself under control. The panther looked as if it was holding itself back from taking a swipe at him much to Harry's amusement,

"I would even get you your very own engraved bowl with your name on it." Tom hissed and drew his paw back just as Harry transformed in to a snake and slid away, the panther was up and chasing after it and Harry willed himself in to his wolf form and bolted. After a few initial stumbles he got the hand of running which was lucky because Tom was ridiculously fast, Harry headed for the wooded area and tried to lose him in the trees. Harry did managed to actually look at the areas he was running through and thought they would be great for wolves, especially cubs playing, and he could see them taking up residence in the wooded areas. The lapse in concentration cost him because Tom slammed in to his left side causing him to release a surprised yelp and roll over a few times, he growled as he felt the sting of his claws take a good swipe at him. He pushed when he rolled over to his paws and lunged for Tom who slipped out the way and darted off, Harry growled and took chase following the scent, he cheated a bit and used the shadows to move him faster through the woods and soon caught sight of Tom again.

Harry put on a burst of speed and when he was sure he was close enough he pounced on Tom's back forcing him to the ground and he made sure to dig his own claws in making the cat hiss. Harry rolled over and back to his feet quickly so he was ready, they circled each other gauging the other's reaction until Harry led down and covered his snout with his paws, he looked back at Tom who would have been rolled his eyes if he was human, Harry wagged his tail and barked. Tom shook his head and walked off, Harry yipped happily and bounded over with all the excitement of a puppy, Tom hit him with his tail which made Harry whine pitifully. They scoured the rest of the land before the building together and Harry thought it was great, they exited the woods and came to a low set stone wall and a huge open court yard which held a fountain as its centre piece. The building itself was much more grand and intimidating up close, starting at three stories in the centre it got taller as it went out finally reaching 5 storied with roof terraces. There was a low balcony that covered the ground floor and stone steps that let op to the imposing front doors, there were statues under the balcony which were hidden in the shadows and Harry could see the balcony stretched around the building, there were windows on balcony face leading Harry to believe that their were rooms there. He changed back along with Tom and they walked across the court and up the twisting steps to the front doors, they were a deep green with the Peverell crest in black branded across them. The building itself was done in a black stone which added to the intimidation factor, and Harry could see a stone carving of the Peverell crest on the centre pillar of the building.

"Well, here goes nothing." Harry muttered as they reached the door, it swung open for them and they were led in to an entrance hall that could rival Hogwarts. The floors were a glistening black marble and the wall opposite help hundreds or portraits and paintings stretching up to the floor above where the ceiling finally came in to view. The walls were a slight slate with some dark wooden panelling covering the bottom half, the entrance hall seemed to cover then entire front of the manor and it was sparking clean meaning there was-,

"Masters Masters, you haves returned to us elves." Harry and Tom were suddenly surrounded by 10 excitable house elves all of which were jumping up and down happily; Harry grinned, he really liked house elves.

"Calm down, and can the manor head elf step forward. The others can go back to their previous works, I will call you all at a later time as when you are needed." Harry instructed calmly, all but one popped away instantly, the one left was obviously an old elf by its white ear tufts and wrinkled skin.

"I is Nip, head elf to Peverell Manor, how can Nips be of service to the new masters?" He introduced himself in a squeaky but hoarse voice, it was odd.

"First thing, why in Merlin's name is this place called a Manor?" Harry asked in exasperation and Tom rolled his eyes, but Harry didn't hear any objections from the man.

"Nips is knowing that this is being called Peverell Manor because the Noble and Most Ancient House of Peverell used to have a castle before it was left in ruins after the Battle of Hastings in 1066." Both Tom and Harry blinked in shock at that information.

"There was a magical influence during the Battle of Hastings?" Tom questioned and Nip nodded eagerly.

"Yes Masters, as the muggles battles for nobility and other such things, the magicals were battling the rights to theys magics. With the comings of the Normans magicals cames a wave of new magics that the native English were not knowing of and not liking with, the English battled to save their Norse Magic and Peverell Castle was the strong hold of the Olde English magicals. The natives weres winning the great battle, but theys were betrayed by someone theys be trusting by the name of Cole and the great castle was seized and destroyed losing the battle to the Normans and killing loads of Olde Enlish wizards in the process. The Peverells, at the time, were a large clan of wizards, the biggest in England, Scotland and Wales and nearly all of them were killed too, but William Peverell's sons managed to escape the burning building with their mother."

"William Peverell! As in the William Peverell who was a commander in the muggle battle?" Harry interrupted,

"The very same Masters, he was believing that if they could drive the muggles away the magicals would be forced to back aways."

"Wow,"

"What happened to William Peverell and the traitor?" Tom inquired,

"William was trapped and he knew he was dying when he sent his sons away with his wife, but he knew of the traitor and on his dying breaths he used Olde Norse sorcery to curse the traitor and its entire line until the day a Cole once stood with a Peverell again loyally to the end." Nips finished gravely.

"What was that curse, what did it do?" Harry demanded completely enraptured by the tale.

"The curse banished them from these lands, theys be cursed with pale skin and pale hair to signify their betrayal, theys be always shrouded in suspicions and theys magic would be stilted and broken in places until they grew loyalty to a Peverell once more. Only then would they be permitted to enter the Norse realms again and only when a generation had been completely loyal to a Peverell would theys magic be whole and the suspicions cleared, however the skin and the hair would always stay the same as a reminder forever more." The little elf stopped speaking and the fell in to a contemplative silence.

"And what was this curse called?" Tom asked finally,

"Tis the curse of Bad Faith." Nip answered and it took a few seconds before it clicked in both minds; Tom and Harry's jaws dropped.

"Malfoy!?"

"Yes Masters, the Cole line was banished to France because theys be considered Normans after they're betrayal." Nip confirmed leaving Tom and Harry in a stunned silence as they digested the information.

"Well shit," Harry finally managed after a few minutes of silence.

"Yes, I believe that sums it up nicely." Tom agreed and Harry laughed.

"Oh this is the icing on the cake."

"It does explain why the Malfoy family were only a minor house with in the French aristocracy and why Abraxas only got so far within the ministry, don't get me wrong he tripled the Malfoy name to what his father left when he passed, but it's a shadow to what Lucius was able to accomplish when he took the Lordship at 17 when Abraxas stepped down." Tom mused and Harry shook his head.

"I am literally stunned."

"I certainly didn't expect to find out something of this severity when I agreed to accompany you."

"Shall we get on with our actual visit, there may be more information as we go on?" Harry suggested.

"Yes, let's,"

"Nip, would you be so kind as to take us on a tour please?" Harry asked and the elf nodded happily. He led them to the east where there was a grand marble staircase tucked away that went up in a spiral all the way to the very roof by the looks of it, they were led around first to a open parlour which was sparsely decorated with a cloak pole and a futon, the main feature was a huge fireplace on the back wall just left of the window, it was obviously for flooing by the size of it.

"Tis bes the floo parlour where Masters' guests be arriving when theys being allowed." Nip told them before moving on, the next room stretched the entire rest of the side of the house and it was the imperial ballroom which was nothing short of stunning. Gleaming marble floors sparkled with opulence, the Peverell crest hung proudly at the stairs at the other end of the room and 4 crystal chandeliers hung from the high ceiling. Great marble pillars lined the inner balcony that ran on the walls of the room and large Victorian styled bay windows ran along the back wall and down the rights giving the room a glow about it. The Peverell crest was printed in the centre of the floor as a final touch and the double doors that led in to the ball room were a deep green with onyx handles.

"Whoa," Harry breathed amazed, it was a beautiful room and it made him wondered what the castle must have looked like if this was the 'manor', especially seeing as this ball room was easily the size of the great hall. Nip ushered them out and around to the formal lounge, it large and spacious decorated out in the Peverell colours of black, green and purple, black flooring with deep green seating with dark wood and purple draped. Next was a second parlour, but this one had more seating and had patio doors that led out to the first flower garden of the many the manor held. There was another set of patio doors in that corridor and they led out to an inner courtyard which held a smallish stretch of laws and some nice seating, it was the very centre of the manor and it was surrounded by the tone walls of the building. They were led along to the informal lounge which was decorated similarly to the formal lounge except it was brighter and had a friendlier vibe to it. The next doors they passed were leading to an outdoor stone seating area which held statues and a water fountain, they didn't bother to look to much in to it as they were led to was a completely oversized dining room which was dark wooden floors and a mahogany oval table which seated around twenty.

"It would really suck if you lived alone." Harry commented and Tom snorted, Harry grinned. There was another flooing parlour but it was a bit more friendly instead of the cold haughtiness the other held.

"This is being the familial flooding parlour, when Masters controls the wards they cans grant access to peoples for a temporary basis ors theys cans bes tying them in to the wards." Nip explained before taking them up the grand spiral staircase on this side of the house, they went to the second floor where there was a single window in the staircase which lit it up nicely. The front side of the second house only held one door and when they entered they knew why, it held the biggest library Harry had ever seen in his life, it made the Hogwarts, Gryffindor, Slytherin and Malfoy ones dwarf in comparison. There was 7 windows that flooded it with natural light that were directly opposite the door and there was an inviting seating area in the centre before it was overcome with shelves and shelves of books and Harry just knew that it held every type of magic without Nip telling him.

"Peverell Manor is being considered to haves the biggest magical library in Britain, but people bes forgetting." Nips said and trotted off down the corridor, Harry had to forcefully drag Tom away from the library and only when they had turned the corner did the man stop looking back with a kicked puppy expression. Tom was pouting, not that he would ever admit it because Dark Lords did not pout, but Harry had enough proof for himself which was enough, as they looked at the master study, the sun room and one of the entertainment rooms which held a billiard table, a few chess boards and a card station. The man only stopped pouting when they reached a very impressive duelling and target rooms which were the size of the library as they held an indoor running track, two duelling platforms, a strip of practice dummies, a section dedicated to weapons of every kind and finally a target strip.

"Now this is very nice indeed." Tom murmured impressed and Harry nodded his agreement,

"Its no wonder the Peverells were noted for their power and duelling." Harry added. They were led around the final corner where there was another study which was smaller then the master one by about a foot and that was it, and what looked like it was a sitting room with a few seats scattered around, according to Nip it didn't have any use. Harry did note that the corridors were illuminated with the light and when he looked out the windows he could see the inner courtyard. On the third floor there was the beginning of the many bedrooms the manor held, they were shown the guest rooms each of which held en suits and the whole things were the size of the Gryffindor dorms. They were shown the lower roof terrace where there were comfortable seats arranged to get the most from the sun. There was another entertainment room which held the same as the other one except there was a variety of books and magazines in this one as well as a dart board and child fortress which could be build and destroyed as many times as they person pleased. Another sun room which held a liquor cabinet and a book shelf as well as connecting to the other lower roof terrace so it had patio doors that opened out bathing the room in light. Nip showed them yet another sitting room and then more guest rooms before taking them to the final floor which was usually used for family only when the Peverells were residing in the building.

There was the master suit which Harry was tempted just to throw everything away just to stay there, it held the biggest and the most inviting bed he had ever seen, the main colour was purple and it held scatterings of black and green to highlight certain features such as the double set of windows it had framing the bed, the plush couch with matching chair, the gorgeous fireplace that was made out of solid marble or the dressing room which Harry would love to fill with his clothes. The en suit attached was the size of the prefect bathroom in Hogwarts except it was colours with black and green marble and tiles flecked with purple. It was Tom's turn to drag Harry away from the room as they were shown the heir suits and the queen suit which followed by the other family bedrooms. Then Nip led them to the 'den' which looked to a room made to hug you, it was warm, cozy and filled with seats that you would just sink in to, the carpet was thick and woolly and Harry cursed that he had to return to Hogwarts. The top floor only held the sides and the back on the building were it cut of at each staircase, they last thing they were shown was the very top roof terrace which allowed you to see the vast lands surrounding the Manor, Harry could see the out houses scattered around, some were even tucked within the wooded areas and in the very distance he could pinpoint a lake.

"I think, with the outhouses as well, that this is satisfactory." Tom said taking in the view.

"Yes, we can have staff on the top floor and have it warded for them if they wish, and have everything else open for everyone. The library will have to monitored obviously, but I know the Peverells copied every single one of their books and they are stored securely within their vaults at Gringotts." Harry told Tom who looked happier at that fact, Harry hid his smirk.

"You will need to have your wolf see and make the changed he recommends, also you'll need to speak with the elves and look at the outhouses." Tom said and Harry nodded.

"Nip, what's on the actual ground floor and the lower ground?"

"The ground floor holds the elves living area, the kitchen, the pantry and medical wing."

"I thought there were only 10 elves?" Harry asked and Nip shook his head.

"No masters, yous only bes seeing the head elves for their stations. I is being the overall head elf because I is being here the longest and has much more experiences and knowings than the other elves."

"So what are the stations?"

"Kitchen elves whos is running all foods for the entire Peverell Manor and outhouses, theys being 12 elves under Pelly head kitchen elf. Medical elves whos is keeping the medical wing sterile and completely clean ready for use at all times, theys keep the potions in correct order and make sure everything is stocked for any time, theys bes 3 elves under Sprite head medic elf whos bes trained in the basic healing and potions making. Serving elves whos is personal elves for the Peverell family, theys be catering to the whims of theys masters, making sure theys food bes served at the correct time and making sure theys masters having everything they needs, theys bed 6 elves under Mippy whos is the masters very own personal elf.

"Cleaning elves is being in charge of the cleanliness and maintainece of Peverell Manor, theys be keeping everything spick and span for the next Peverell and there is being 14 elves under Coby. Outhouse elves looks after all the outhouses making sure they is clean and tidy for masters gusts and keeping them up together and making sure masters' guests have everything they needs, theys being 36 elves under Blippy, twos for each outhouse. Greenhouse elves is making sure all the plants and crops is being kept growing and they is harvesting them when the times comes, we had 7 green houses so theys being 14 elves under Patch. Animal elves bes looking after the tamer wildlife Peverell Manor holds including owls, falcons, eagles, horses, hippogriffs and kneezles, theys being many more animals here but theys be looking after theys selfs, theys being 10 elves under Gup.

"Land elves look after the lands and make sure theys not becoming to wild and over grown, theys be planting new trees when the others fall and keep the lake and the boat house clean and together, theys being 30 elves under Skippy. Finally wes having the gardens elves whos bes keeping the flowers, shrubs and bushes pruned and pretty for masters to see when theys be returning, theys being 8 elves under Rose." Nip explained and Harry did the math, that was a lot of elves, no wonder they had practically all the downstairs.

"143 elves, holy shit that's a lot of elves."

"The largest amount of elves in Britain second only to Hogwarts whos be having 256 elves working in the castle."

"Wow," Harry said under his breath, "How come there are so many elves still working here when Peverell Manor has been empty for centuried?"

"Master Charlus Peverell created a ward that allowed magic to be fed in to it that was able to keep us house elves alive if theys being no current master. One person on there selfs could allow an entire staff of elves to live perfectly for 100 years by living in the manor for 10 years." Nip told them and Harry blinked, it was handy.

"But why is everything in such good order, I mean, you couldn't have been given orders by the last Master you it would have been your grandmother or even her mother."

"We is all being blood related to the elves whos bes getting orders from the last masters, theys bes telling the elves to keep the manor running as smooth as possible until the next master. So the orders is being passed down from elf to elfling tills theys bes reaching us and wes continuing to work likes wes been ordered."

"That is a very efficient ward Charlus Peverell created, that way you do not have to buy new elves and reorder everything of something you know nothing about." Tom said and Harry nodded.

"Ok Nip, what's on the lower ground?"

"Lower ground is bes holding the wine, whiskey and scotch cellers, and the potions labs and store rooms. Under that bes the dungeons and the cells and under that bes the ward stone."

"That is what we need." Tom pointed out,

"Can you take us to the ward stone please?" Nip nodded and led them down the spiral staircase right to the ground floor where they were given a brief tour of the kitchens, the medical unit, which looked like the hospital wing at Hogwarts, and the elves' area before they were led down a stone staircase where they were show labs that Snape would die for and a wine cellar Lucius would kill for. They were shown the dungeons which were brilliantly terrfying before going down a final stone staircase where there was only one door.

"Tis the ward stone, Nip is not being allowed in there." He told them.

"Ok Nip, I'll call you when I need you." The elf nodded and popped away, Harry tried to open the door but it wouldn't open, even when he tried the ring.

"Try blood," Tom instructed and Harry conjured up a silver dagger and nicked his finger, he smeared the blood on the handle which pulsed and swung open allowing him entrance, Tom had to do the same before he was allowed in too. Inside was simple, it was a stone room with a glowing, pulsing crystal in the centre which was on a podium or sorts, Harry could see hundreds of runes carved in to the stone which made up the foundations of a wardstone, but most of them were beyond Harry. Tom understood quite a few of them, but some were even too much for him, however they both were able to appreciate the outstanding magical talent to the person who created this room.

"You'll need to reactivate the wards to gain their full potential, I cannot read them all in Rune form so the only way you are going to be able to know exactly what is here is by manually reading them, something you seem to be good at." Tom said and Harry nodded, "They are currently on a basic activation and have been for a while, I would brace yourself for a magical flux."

"Do you think it wise for me to tie them in to my blood straight away?" Harry asked.

"Yes, that way you'll be able to grant access to whomever you wish and it will power the wards to their full potential. After you have activated them, I shall add my own blood to fuel them more so."

"Got it," Harry took his dagger and slashed across both of his palms deeply so his blood ran free, he pressed them against the crystal which went a bloody red opposed it the white it had previously been.

"I, Harry James Potter-Black, Lord of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Peverell do call forth on my blood and magic to activate the wards." Harry murmured, the stone pulsed and the runes flashed and Harry could feel the magic building around him. "Ego, ut sanguis Peverell, facto in vetustorum invocare super omnibus et singulis terris, dum aliter dicere. Eu pupillis qui a patrum nostrorum. Inde, et tradant eas in sanguinem et tueri amet tellus ac domum." Magic blasted out of the stone forcing Harry to his knees, he felt the ancient wards flare to like and he felt his magic being pulled to the extremes as the dormant wards once again came to life to do their jobs, he felt them expanding over all the lands and each of the outhouses, he felt numerous other buildings be protected and finally he felt the manor itself be wrapped in a protective cocoon of magic. Harry slumped sideways when the ward stone settled happily on a AK green like Harry's own magic, he sat breathing deeply for a couple of seconds as the world stopped spinning then he slowly pulled himself to his feet. Tom was pressed back against the wall and was looking at the stone with a curious expression, Harry looked at his palms and noted how they had been healed without so much as a scar and smiled slightly at the wonders of magic.

"Do you want to add your blood now?" Harry inquired softly, he could feel the wards connected to him, but he was just to exhausted to tell them apart.

"Yes, I shall do so now." Tom agreed, "They were much more powerful than I expected, I am surprised you are still conscious."

"My magical core is surprisingly larger than the average wizard." Harry said with a grin, but his tiredness was clear.

"Apparently," Tom cut his palm and pressed it to the stone which turned red again with the mixture of the blood. "I, Tom Marvolo Riddle, son of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Peverell do call upon my blood and magic to fuel the wards." Tom murmured and the magic built again around them, "Qui ex te natus est ex linea signum Peverell hac custodia et oderunt eam potentiam, in auxilium meum et sanguis magia do uoluntate festucam sic fiat." The wards pulsed again with only a slightly smaller reaction to last time and Harry could feel the power going in to the wards from Tom, when it was finished the stone was a rich purple and Tom stumbled.

"They're incredible, aren't they?" Harry whispered amazed.

"I've never felt anything like them." Tom returned in the same tone, Harry could feel that Tom had some control of the wards now even if he had the power to overrule the man.

"I need a pepper up," Harry said, "The place is secure, no one is getting through unless we want them too."

"Come, before you collapse, I refuse to carry you." As soon as Harry was out of the room he called for a pepper up and necked it when it was given to him making him feel a whole lot better, he made Tom take one too because the man was looking more on the unhealthy pale side and for one he didn't argue. He felt a twinge in the wards and tilted his head, he followed it with his magic and realised there was a house elf ward on the manor, only elves bonded to the Peverell family could gain access and come and go as they pleased without being confirmed by the masters first, it was rather ingenious really as most tended to underestimate elves.

"I believe this place is perfect for the wolves, I'll run it past Remus later on after lunch and then preparations can be put in to place and all corrections and changes can begin." Harry said,

"Yes, that was the changes can be made this week and when the next article comes out next week you can begin movement." Tom added,

"Wonderful, now I want to eat before I go back and get Remus, you coming?"

"Yes, I will have a small lunch before checking on Lucius and ordering things for the coming Halloween." Harry grabbed the master spot before Tom and maturely stuck his tongue out at the man while he was gloating, Tom was amused by the teens antics and honestly didn't know how he could go from overly mature, slightly sadistic wizard to childish teen in seconds, it was mad, but it was a quirk that Tom enjoyed in the teen. He shook his head to clear his thoughts, he was having to many odd thoughts around the teen lately, they were becoming more frequent, but he pushed it aside, nothing was giving off any warnings and his instincts weren't telling him anything bad so he let it go for now. It turned out that the Peverell house elves knew how to cook very well, Harry felt extreme jealousy to the future residence of this building, they were going to be spoilt.

"This food is fantastic," Harry sighed in appreciation, when an elf popped in to clear their plates Harry stopped it before it, or rather she by the skirt, could leave. "Tell the kitchen elves that there food is amazing, and those brownies were the nicest brownies I have ever ate." They elf looked stunned before it popped away and Harry swore he heard the elves tears from where he sat.

"You really have a way with elves." Tom commented amused and Harry grinned.

"I just have a way."

"And you say my ego is huge."

"It is, I never denied mine wasn't." Tom rolled his eyes.

"I am leaving, no doubt you shall be busy for the rest of the day and later in to the evening, however we do have your tutoring session so you needn't worry about rushing back."

"Brilliant, that does make things easier. Have fun with your minions."

"Oh I will, the outer circle have been slipping."

"What, that small muggle attack was yours?" Harry questioned shocked,

"Yes, the fools may not have left my mark, but I would recognise the work. I selected the units they are placed in myself along with the elite, it was unit 4."

"Damn, I miss the torture and the screams." Harry pouted and Tom smirked.

"I'll open the connection if you wish?" Harry's eyes lit up with the same insane light they held when he first arrived at Malfoy manor, Tom had by no means forgotten that occurrence, but it was a true reminder of what Harry was capable of when pushed.

"That would be most appreciated." Tom flashed one last smirk before he apperated away. Harry transformed in to his phoenix and flamed to the Gryffindor rooms where Remus was in the library, he few over to the man and tilled happily, the werewolf looked up and grinned.

"Hello cub," he greeted and Harry trilled again, he fluttered his tail feathers at Remus who raised an eyebrow, "You want me to come?" Harry trilled in answer and the marauder grabbed hold so he could be flamed in to Peverell Manor gated. Harry changed back and held out a brass dagger to Remus who cut his palm and smeared blood on the gates, Harry twisted the wards so Remus was permanently accepted unless he changed it himself and the gates sung open. Harry apperated to the front court and gave a grand sweeping gesture with his hands.

"Welcome to Peverell Manor," He announced in a 'tah dah' sort of voice, Remus' jaw dropped as he took in the castle like building. "Equipped with 32 bedrooms discounting the family rooms, 2 entertainment rooms, 2 sitting rooms, 2 lounges, potions labs, kitchens, library, training room, 4 parlours, ball room, dining room, studies, dungeons, medical unit, 2 court yards, flower gardens, 7 green houses, owlery, falconry, eagle habitat, lake, boat house, 18 outhouses and over 300 acres of land."

"Fuck!" it said it all when Moony swore, Harry knew then that the house was surpassing all expectations on any level.

"Yeah, it's a tad excessive, but big enough to cover the wolf problem and treat any injures." Harry told him leading him up the stone steps.

"This is beyond words cub."

"I know, but I thought if I take you round now then we can work on everything that needs doing and start making proper progress. Once I have the ok from you and everything is on the move I can go and see Ellen and run the idea passed her, get her thoughts and ideas and then set the plan in to motion." Harry explained.

"Right, I'm guessing you've checked the lands."

"Yes, perfect for wolves." Harry confirmed, "I haven't checked the outhouses yet, but I can ask an elf."

"Is there going to be enough elves to manage?" Remus asked worriedly and Harry laughed,

"Oh yes, we have enough elves here for sure." Harry assured, "Nip,"

"Yes Master,"

"First, my name is Harry and the other Master here earlier was To-," Harry cut himself off, he knew Tom would have an aneurism if the elves referred to him as 'Master Tom' all the time, "The other master was Marvolo."

"Master Harry and Master Marvolo," Nip repeated and Harry nodded happily.

"Yes, now this man here is Master Moony, he's likely to be staying here a lot with some other people."

"Hellos Master Moony, I is Nip and I is head elf for alls of Peverell Manor."

"Hello Nip,"

"Now Nip, can you give me a full run down of what's in the outhouses."

"Nip is only knowing the basics Master Harry, yous bes needing Blippy." Said elf popped in dressed in his little uniform and he was smiling brightly.

"What cans Blibby bes doing for Master Harry?" He asked,

"I need a run down on the out houses."

"Wes be having 18 outhouses across Peverell Manor grounds, 6 of them bes having 4 rooms, a dining room, a kitchen, a living room and drawing room and a study. 8 bes having the same except 3 bedrooms and bigger living rooms and 4 bes having 2 bedrooms and 2 drawing rooms instead. All of the outhouses is decorated in the Peverell colours, theys bes fully furnished including books and small entertainments and each holding a small garden to themselves before opening out to the lands. 9 bes in the wooded areas where 4 is deeply hidden and 9 bes more in the open."

"Is there any silver in the outhouses?" Remus asked and Blippy thought for a second.

"No Master Moony, all cutlery and utensils is being gold or copper and all metals is either being steel or iron."

"That's good, they're fine for wolves, silver is the main issue."

"Coby," Harry called and another little elf popped in.

"Yes Master Harry?"

"I need you and your staff to go around the entire Manor and remove anything made from silver, I'll give you the Peverell Gringotts card and you can replace it with gold, steel, iron and coppers ok?"

"Yes Master Harry, we'll start right away." Harry handed over his Peverell card, "Do you have an estimate of how long it will take?"

"Coby is knowing that wes can haves it done for you by Sunday at the latest."

"Perfect," He popped away with a bow, "Now Moony, we can go around the manor and discuss any changes that you mind want or need. I was thinking that you could change the empty sitting rooms and drawing rooms in to classrooms many or you can change one in to a den and have story time. You could fill it with soft cushions that way if the little cubs fall asleep then they're soft."

"That'll be a good idea cub, I know there are some wolves that miss home comforts now the confines are tightening and they've been forced to go without." Remus agreed. Harry took Remus around the manor starting with the dining room where they agreed that the large table would be placed in to storage and they would purchase smaller ones to go around the vast room, Harry started writing a list. They agrees that to start with they would get 8 tables that fit 10 people around them and if more was needed then there was room for more, the tables would be round to give a more welcoming feel and they chairs would be dark wood. The informal lounge would be like a small common room where people could sit and talk and they would only need to purchase more sofa and rugs for people to sit, the informal lounge would be a room of silence that Remus suggested for rambunctious cubs that needed to calm down, Remus recommended buying some lavender scented cushions for the room.

The ball room was being left alone because Remus said they could used it for meetings and gatherings that they might have and they were going to use the parlour for check ins to know what wolf was where, how many was in their pack, what cubs they had and what condition they were in to be safe so they didn't end up with illnesses that could have been prevented. On the second floor, the library and the training room were left as they are except Remus expressed the idea for some age determining wards around some of the books in the library and the equipment in the training room. The studies were to be warded from everyone except those working for the Werewolf Sanctuary, which Harry was going to call it, and the entertainment room was going to be kept minus the silver which was going to be removed by the elves. They were going to remove the wall between the sun room and the sitting room to make a classroom for all the cubs and young wolves that wanted to learn be it magic or ordinary education, Remus was well versed in both and he knew of a few wolves who were also in the know, they could also teach the cubs, especially the newly bitten everything there is to know about being a wolf, they were going to have tables and book shelves in the room, but they weren't going to make it too formidable.

On the next floor up, there wasn't much they needed to change, the entertainment room and the bedrooms could be kept the same and the only thing they were going to change was the sun and sitting room again. Harry and Moony decided to remove the wall between the sun room and the sitting room again to make a huge den where there was going to be a wall filled with all the children's books they could find and it was going to be covered with soft toys and pillows so they could read stories and play soft games. As it opened on to the terrace Harry said he would ward it so no cubs would have accidents and fall off. The final floor was going to be warded against anyone accept the staff working there and it would be there's to make their own, Harry insisted on Remus having the Master Suit because he wouldn't be using it and Remus was going to be there a lot more that he was, and the staff working there would do anything they wanted as long as they didn't purposely damage anything. They made their way back down to the dining room where they were served dinner, neither had realised they had been that long and mulled over their final plans. Wards were to be added to the stairs leading to the potions labs, only staff and apprentices were going to granted access, a bathroom on each floor outside of the bedrooms, like the ones in school as well as a shower room. They would need wards on the terrace, the library the training room, the study and the staff floor as well as the huge ward for the entire building.

"I think that's everything cub, from my perspective anyway." Remus said after reading the list for the third time.

"Good, if this can be put in to motion then next week I can go to Ellen."

"I don't think the renovations will take that long, it'll be the bathrooms which will take the longest and I don't think elves do that. The wards will have to be cast by you and everything else can be bought by your elves." Remus pointed out,

"You're right, Coby." The elf popped in and Harry handed over a list off all the things he needed bought for the new Peverell Manor. "I need these things to be bought by next Tuesday please, when the renovations are done then I'll tell you where they need be."

"Yes Master Harry," He squeaked with a bow and popped away.

"A job well done, I think." Harry said, "I'll write to Ragnok about the renovations and have it done through goblin construction, that way the building won't be damaged and my secrets stay safe."

"Good idea. When do you think you can have that done by?"

"I'll write the letter now and send it as soon as I get back to the castle, Hedwig won't be pleased if I don't use her." Harry smiled at the thought of his owl, he drafted a letter to the head goblin and sealed it with his rings.

"Ok cub, you ready to go." They had both finished their meals and Harry nodded, he changed in to a phoenix and flamed them back to the Gryffindor rooms. Harry threw his cloak over him after waving goodbye to Moony and made his was back to his rooms, it was 6 oclock so his other self would be gone so he wouldn't have to wait around. He grinned at Luna when he took off his cloak and released a sharp whistle out the window for Hedwig, his trusty owl swept in and Harry made sure he paid extra attention to her.

"Think you can get this to Ragnok for me girl, its important." She hooted her confirmation and took of after he had fed her some treats. Harry collapsed on the sofa with a tired, but pleased sigh.

"I take it everything went well?" Luna asked him and Harry nodded.

"Better than expected, you should see the place Ray, it was immense."

"Is it up for the job though?"

"Yes and more, Remus and I have just gone through everything that needs to be done to make it wolf ready and its looking good."

"Brilliant, that way it'll be a big fuck you to this whole WWP." She stated fiercely and Harry hummed his agreement.

"It feels good to be doing something that is going to help so many people, I had forgotten what it was like to genuinely want to help someone without being forced." Harry had a soft smile on his face that Luna so rarely saw and it made her smile brightly.

"I'm glad you are happy,"

"Me too, I just hope this isn't for nothing."

 

Notes:

Translations:

From Harry; I, as blood of Peverell, call upon the ancient magic within to secure the lands and every thing upon it until I say otherwise. Activate the wards created by my ancestors. Let them be fuelled by my blood and magic to protect my land and home.

From Tom; Accept this token from thee who was born from Peverell line to power the wards and protect those upon it, I give my blood in aid and my magic in will, so mote be it.

Chapter 16

Notes:

Un'beta'd

Disclaimer: I'm not J.K. but the plot is all on me.

Parseltongue is in bold italics!

Chapter Text

Chapter 16,

Harry was extremely twitchy on Thursday much to Luna's amusement, she rolled his eyes he started pacing again for the third time that morning and forced him to sit down.

"Will you please stop pacing, you're going to send me mad." Luna told him with a laugh, Harry threw her a sheepish smile.

"Sorry, I'm slightly on edge about later." Harry apologised,

"It was your idea, and you won't even be here." Luna exclaimed and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I know that, its not me I'm on edge for. You know damn full well that he is going to be more than pissed, I don't want him taking it out on you because he'll know that you know." Harry sighed running a hand through his hair, it was Luna's turn to roll her eyes this time.

"Have some faith in my ability,"

"I do, never doubt that." Harry reassured, "Its just that I've seen Tom's and I've seen him when he's pissed."

"Just stick with the plan, let me deal with my part." Luna told him firmly, "Now go to breakfast and remember your parts." Harry grinned and kissed her cheek,

"You know, I don't know where I would be without you."

"In a cave," Luna deadpanned and Harry laughed, he threw on his glamour and trooped down to the great hall thanking his stars he had already sorted the gifts that he was going to give in apology for his plan. He flashed Ginny a smile as he saw she was already there and took a seat next to her easily pushing back the pain he was shot behind his Occlumency shields.

"Good morning, Harry," She greeted him brightly, Harry smiled again,

"Morning Gin, how are you this morning?" He asked and watched her visibly brighten because he started the conversation.

"I'm good thanks, looking forward to Quidditch." She told him and Harry blinked, he had forgotten he had been taken off the team.

"Are you staying as seeker?"

"Yes, seeing as your ban hasn't been lifted." She frowned at that and Harry looked down as if he was upset, in truth he didn't have time for the game this year, but he wanted his broom back, it was his last relic from Sirius.

"I know, I still hate Umbridge for that."

"She was a cow," Ginny agreed heartily,

"What have you got first?" Harry asked casting a quick tempus,

"History unfortunately," Harry grimaced,

"Unlucky, well, I'll walk you there, I have charms." He led her out and she clutched on to his arm, Harry felt the slithers of pain slipping past his shields and his eye twitched; it was only going to get worse.

"You have Defence last period, don't you?" He questioned as they went and Ginny nodded,

"Yes, why?"

"Can you wait for me there, after the lesson I mean, I want to talk to you." "Sure, but what's it about?" She inquired interested and Harry gave the crooked grin that his father always used, something that he did not like on his own face.

"It's a secret," She gave him a Merlin awful pout and whined a bit, but when they reached the classroom she gave in with a huff. After dropping Ginny of at history, he made his way to Flitwick's lesson and sat at the back of the glass like he usually did. They were learning the refill charm, something that Harry knew well already, so he took the notes absently and thought on what he would be doing tomorrow; he couldn't wait until he could end Umbridge. He had a free lesson after charms which he spent in the library writing up the essays he had fallen behind on and by the end of it he had a severe hand cramp, he hated the fact that he still had to do all this stupid homework when it was Dumbledore that had made his schedule supposedly so busy. Granted he wasn't actually attending everything he was supposed to, but the old fool didn't know that so he could have least have cut him a break. Harry dutifully met Ginny for lunch and smiled and laughed in all the right times during their conversation, he kept his happy bubble up despite the fact that Tom wasn't just angry anymore he was down right pissed. He again walked her to her lesson before running of to his own so he wasn't late and getting to Herbology severely out of breath, he ignored the questioning looks he was given from Badger, Swift and Paws and continued on with his work,

Snake, what in Merlin's name are you doing? Paws asked him within his mind, he bit back his smirk,

Setting up something that will, hopefully, lead to my desired result, He replied brightly and he saw her look even more confused,

By being around her all the time? It was said with copious amounts of disbelief and Harry coughed to cover his snicker.

Just wait and trust me, I'll fill you in later, he saw her give a discrete nod and pass on the message to Swift who looked equally, if not more, confused than her.

"What do you think he's up to?" Ron asked Hermione and they watched Harry again collect Ginny and allow her to clutch at his arm, to the outside world who didn't know, they looked like a new couple with all the laughs and smiled.

"I really don't know, I can't seem to work it out." Hermione sighed in frustration, she didn't know what her friend was up too and it was driving her crazy, she knew that he was disgusted by Ginny's very presence so why he was voluntarily hanging out with her was beyond her.

"He has to have a plan in mind, there is no way he's actually liking her company." Ron said, "But why?"

"Sometimes I hate the fact he has the mannerisms of a snake." Hermione groaned, "This is ridiculous,"

"And the fact that he's putting himself through a headache and a half, I mean, have you seen the glare He's currently wearing?" Ron's eyes darted to an irate Dark Lord before going back to Hermione. Hermione frowned for a second before her eyes widened,

"He's doing it on purpose." She gasped and Ron blinked,

"Huh?"

"He must be deliberately annoying Him, remember he warned us to stay away from him at the meeting, this must be why." She explained,

"Ok, so that's plausible, but why?"

"That I can't work out," She sighed and her shoulders slumped, "I have Runes,"

"I'll see you at dinner," Ron called as they spit and he went to the library, he caught sight of Harry entering the library with veiled disgust in his eyes and shook his head; he would fine out later.

Harry himself was all for abandoning the plan in the hope that he could forever hide in his room and not deal with her ever again, but if he wanted that then the plan was necessary much to his ire. He knew that Swift and Paws were totally confused and Badger was just going with it, but he would inform them later and then they would understand, he sighed as he continued his essay from earlier, he had an hour and a half of peace before it was the final part and he had to damn essays.

"I hate you for this, Lemons." He grumbled to himself. It was tedious work dumbing himself down, it was just another thing to add to the list of things he hated Dumbledore for and he gave a tired sigh. Luckily, he was able to finish the essay relatively easily and for the other 45 minutes he sat and read in a secluded corner, he knew what he was about to do was pushing it, but it gave him a massive thrill and he knew the aftermath was desirable for him. Packing up his things, Harry made his way to the defence classroom and got there just as the 5th years were piling out. Ginny came out last and Harry gave her a bright smile, he could see Tom in the room behind and he knew the man saw him when his scar flared.

"Hey Gin, how was class?" He asked pushing back the pain for now, he knew it was only going to get worse.

"It was fine," She waved it off, "What did you want to talk to me about?" Harry took a 'nervous' deep breath and shuffled his feet.

"Well, its Hogsmead tomorrow and Halloween and," He took a another deep breath but this one was to push back the pain which was leaking out of his shields, "I wanted to-to know if youwanttogotohogsmeadwithme." He rushed the ending and Ginny blinked a few times confused.

"Say that again." She asked and Harry shot her a sheepish smiled.

"Sorry," He apologised, "Do you want to go to Hogsmead with me?" Ginny gasped, Harry on the other hand was experiencing pain worse than the Cruciatus and only due to the fact he had his shields up was he still standing and ignoring it.

"As in a date?" She questioned slowly and Harry looked down as if embarrassed,

"Um yes, if you want." He mumbled and she beamed,

"Oh Harry, I would love too." She threw her arms around him in a hug and Harry bit back his grimace, the pain was becoming unbearable and over her shoulder he caught sight of Tom and nearly winced. The man wasn't angry or even pissed; he was livid and Harry didn't help by smirking. The mans eyes were a flat black and Harry knew it was only years of control was stopping him from acting, he was actually surmised the glamour was still holding. Harry had to leave right now before he collapsed, he extracted Ginny from his arms and forces a smile,

"So I'll see you tomorrow?" He asked and she nodded happily,

"See you tomorrow, Harry," She kissed his cheek and left, when she was out of range Harry was hit with so much pain it ripped through his shields and he collapsed against the wall with a gasp of pain. His hands went to his head and he felt blood running down his face, he cursed when he felt Tom's magic snapping around him and bolted down to his rooms all but falling in when he got there. Luna jumped up when he fell to his knees and gasped when she spotted the blood,

"What in Merlin's name?"

"I severely underestimated how angry Tom would be." Harry got out, he pulled himself up and leant against his kitchen counter.

"The news got back to him fast, I expect the whole school knows." Luna said shocked and Harry winced slightly at that, he was thickening his shields as much as he could so he could function.

"Ah, I may have changed the plan slightly." He told her and she raised an eyebrow.

"What did you do?"

"I might have asked her out in front of his classroom." Harry answered slowly and Luna's eyes widened in shock.

"You didn't, not with him in there?"

"As well as a hug and a kiss on the cheek." Harry said and Luna paled,

"You're insane,"

"I know and its not safe for you to be here tonight, stay with Badger and explain what happened, I have to speak with Paws and Swift anyway." Harry told her and thankfully she didn't argue, both of them went in to the bedroom and backed all the stuff they would need for an overnight stay away and left the room. Harry grabbed his eyes and ears and kissed on the cheek before sprinting away, he didn't stop running until he was on the 7th floor and he paced three times in front of the blank wall thinking carefully. He wanted a room where he couldn't be found until he wanted to be found, as soon as the door was there he ripped it open and slammed it shut, he happily fell on to a chair with a sigh. Harry's head was pounding and it wasn't letting up, he doubted it would until he saw Tom again alone.

WHAT IN MERLIN'S NAME DID YOU DO? Paws yelled in his head and Harry cringed, he really didn't need the extra pain at the current moment.

Please don't yell; it hurts. Harry asked in a near beg,

Snake, what have you done? He's not pissed he's murderous. Swift stated and Harry couldn't help but smirk at that, he had no doubt that his plan was going to work now.

My plan is working then. Harry said pleased and he felt a ton of incredulity hit him through their links.

This is your plan? Paws said in disbelief,

Yes,

And what exactly is getting him so angry he's stiffer and a board going to do? Swift asked slowly,

The final parts of the plan should be executed tomorrow, Harry told them and there was a frustrated silence before Paws spoke again,

Ok, so we'll find out tomorrow. But what did you do to get him this angry, this is beyond anything I've ever seen?

I may have asked out Ginny in front of his classroom, Harry answered and there was an almost deafening silence in his head until,

YOU DID WHAT? They both screamed and Harry winced again,

Stop with the loud sounds! Harry exclaimed,

Snake, are you out of your mind? Paws demanded,

No, not with this anyway, Harry assured her,

What possessed you to do such a stupid thing? Swift questioned slowly and Harry grinned,

Tomorrow,

Good luck on surviving until tomorrow, Snake,

Oh I'm hiding currently, I'm not stupid, Harry said and he heard them both scoff in his mind, it was odd.

That is highly debateable at the current time. Paws stated and Harry laughed,

Just trust me in this, ok? Harry asked of them,

We do, they said together,

Good, now please stay out his way, I think he's a little unstable at the current time.

You don't say, Swift said in sarcasm.

Luna's informing Badger, but can one of you warn Bleach and Moony?

I got that, I can write it off for something potions related, Paws said,

Thanks,

And I'll do Moony,

Great,

Have fun surviving, Swift said brightly and Harry closed the connection. He called for Winky and asked for some food and a headache potion, once he had ate he downed the potion and welcomed the small relief. It stopped his head aching enough to push most of the pain back behind his shields, Harry thought it best he meditate so he could sort his shields out properly. He slipped in to a tance easily enough but he kept it there until he was in his mindscape; it was a mess. Harry sighed and began the slow process of clearing up and mentally told himself that he was not going to piss Tom of like that again. He noticed a change in his Mindscape, other than the mess, and went over to explore it, it was two threads that were close together and lead to the back of his mind, he frowned and pushed one of them with his magic. Harry grinned when he felt the familiar magic of Swift and he knew what they were, he left them alone and moved on to where the Horcruz was and cringed back.

Tom's magic was flaring angrily around and even at a distance it was painful, Harry conjured up magical shields to surround the soul shard and layered them up, he then added more complex ones with layers and finished off with three different parsel shields to fully contain it, he sighed in relief when he could no longer feel anything. He'd take the most of them down after tomorrow, because he had grown accustom to feeling Tom's emotions and he knew it would be weird without them. He went around and made sure everything was in order and his normal shields were layered up as much as he could before withdrawing and blinking aroud, it was now dark out and he cast a tempus finding himself shocked that he had been in his own head for over 2 hours. He grinned when he felt no pain coming from the link and relished in his triumph, he spotted a cloth and a bowl of water left for him and smiled; he really liked his elves.

Harry washed his face freeing it from blood and refreshing himself before sitting back and relaxing. He opened up the eyes and the ears and activated the seeing mode, Harry watched as a few students sat in the library or lingered in the halls, he spotted Paws talking to Draco and Swift heading up to the Gryffindor rooms; he mentally thanked Paws for connecting the rooms to his map. Luna was with Badger in Gryffindor tower and it amused him to no end that no one had noticed her at all, she really could blend in to her surroundings. Finally, his eyes drifted to the defence corridor and he didn't know whether to wince or smirk, Tom's classroom was in ruins and it wasn't getting better and the man continued to destroy it with his wand. He was thanking his stars that he had as many shields up as he did because he had a feeling that Tom was only getting angrier, Harry also noticed that his own rooms were looking a bit worse for wear and then he did wince, he was glad he made Luna leave. He was tempted to send a note to Tom, but that would have been incredibly stupid thing to do so he refrained from doing so.

He did, however, continue to watch Tom break things and hoped that the pain he was going to be in was worth it, he winced at a particularly violent blasting hex was sent at the window from Tom and closed the map. Harry decided it had been way to long since he had duelled to his level and thought it best for him to practice, he asked the room for a platform and some dummies and grinned when it gave him a variety of levels to work on. He started by duelling one of the dummies on hard, but that didn't offer even a semblance of a challenge so he added more until he felt that he was actually stretching his core. It always gave him a thrill when he duelled, the twists and turns, the dodges and jumps and the flow of his magic surrounding him; it was exhilarating. Harry then moved on to duelling with only light magic, it was much harder and took a lot more effort, but he managed it for 30 minutes before stopping to catch his breath. He then did the opposite and duelled solely with dark magic which was substantially easier that its counterpart and he could keep that up for much longer, he finished with a flourish decapitating the final dummy and fell on to the chair panting. He called for Winky for some food and a drink before he would go again, he had a funny feeling he would need the practice very soon.


To say Tom Riddle was angry would be a severe and gross understatement, to say he was pissed would also be a horrible understatement; he was furious. Livid and murderous came to mind for his current mood and the anger was only growing. And it was all down to one person; Harry Potter. The things that teen did to him was unbelievable and the damned brat knew it. He hated the fact that Harry had to act like a love sick teenager around the blood traitor when Harry was his. It was odd, because he usually would have moved on partners by now, but there was something about the teen that made him want more. He was a possessive man, it was a trait that he never grew out of and it only got worse, if he deemed something as his then no one was allowed to touch it and that was exactly what that bint was doing.

It didn't help that his behaviour around Harry was completely off kilter, things that he would never allow to happen he didn't think twice when Harry did them. And Tom didn't know why he let Harry get away with anything, he had always put it down to it being Harry so it didn't matter; but it should. He also had this bizarre urge to show Harry off, to show the world that Harry was his and he had no idea why, he supposed it was the same reason he had kept Harry as his current sleeping partner; whatever reason that was. He wasn't sure why he still had Harry around, but Harry was different to other people and there was just something about him that kept Tom interested. He didn't really care why, but Harry was his and that was what mattered; and that was why he was angrier than he could remember.

Watching Harry all over the Weasley blood traitor set him on edge as it was, and then to hear him ask her on a date in front of him was too much for him and a burning rage consumed him, it was like acid coursing through his veins. It took all of his self control not to kill her right then and when she kissed him he had to lock himself in to place or he would have forgone magic and physically dragged her off and away from what was clearly his. He didn't forget the smirk Harry had sent him either, the brat knew exactly what he what he was doing, but Tom didn't know why he was doing it. If it had been anyone else, Tom would have cursed them in to oblivion. As soon as the girl was gone Tom's magic was flaring out angrily and it didn't improve when Harry chose to run instead of allowing Tom to show him exactly who he belonged to. The teen wasn't at dinner and his rooms were completely empty much to Tom's ire, his magic lashed out in fury and no matter how much he tried he could not get his anger under control. He wanted Harry with him now, but the teen was clearly hiding and all of his friends were doing the same, Tom snarled and slashed his wand through the air causing more damage to his already destroyed classroom. He knew one thing for certain, the Weasley bitch had to go and in the most painful way possible, Tom smirked at the thought. He waved his wand in a sweeping motion to clean the room and left to his own rooms, he removed his glamour and placed on his 'Dark Lord' robes on as Harry had labelled them and apperated from the room; he had plans to change.


Harry paced the entrance hall in wait, he had already ate an early breakfast and he was waiting for Ginny to come down from the tower. He had dressed in jeans and a shirt, he was completely depressed that he couldn't properly dress up, but he knew that his nice clothes would look wrong on his with the damn glamour he had to wear. Harry understand where Ron and Hermione meant about Tom, he knew the man was pissed, he had seen him lose his temper, but it seemed he went beyond that because the man's hands were actually shaking in rage at the head table. Harry felt the many shields he had put up to keep him from headache slowly cracking and had decided that it was time for his to leave the great hall before he passed out from the pain that would come through, he didn't think he would be able to handle it at such close vicinity. He had seen Swift, Paws, Badger, Raven and Bleach shooting him looks and he tried to convey that he knew what he was doing without words, Luna had nodded with an amused smile and Bleach gave him a look that clearly said the blond was worried for Harry's mental capacity much to the teen's amusement.

Be on your guard today, He warned Swift and Paws through their link,

We will be, Paws answered, But will you tell us what's going on

I don't know for definite, but I have one of my feelings, Harry replied and he almost heard her sigh.

We'll be on our top forms then, Swift deadpanned and Harry had to cover his laughter,

Pretty much yeah,

Don't get yourself killed, Snake, Paws told him and Harry grinned,

I won't, he cut the connection when he spotted Ginny walking down the stairs, he bit back a grimace at her clothing choice. She was dressed in a skirt which was too short to be classy and a tight top which was very low cut, she had paired it with a pair of ballet flats and a small purse, he wanted to sigh, but instead he hitched on a smile.

"You look great," He complimented and she beamed.

"Thanks, you look good too." She returned and Harry wanted to scoff, he knew he didn't look good and if it wasn't for his masks he wouldn't be caught dead in his current look.

"Ready to go?" Harry asked holding out his arm.

"Yes, lets,"

Harry led her out and they took a pleasant stroll to the village, many of the students were already at the all-wizarding village and it was quickly filling up.

"So, where are we going today, Harry?" Ginny asked sweetly.

"I hope you don't mind," Harry began nervously, "But, I got us a table at Café Magick because I couldn't stand going to Madam Puddifoots."

"Oh that's fine." She said and then frowned, "But, how did you get a table at that place? They're usually books a month in advanced."

Harry gave her a very sheepish smile,

"I may have uh slipped my name in somewhere, turns out that being me has its perks." He shrugged and Ginny burst in to giggles, Harry stopped himself cringing at the sound.

"That's brilliant,"

"It worked, we have a booth."

"What time have we got to get there?" She asked,

"Doesn't matter, they're keeping it open for me all day." Harry told her and sometimes being him really did have its perks, if it didn't then he would be stuck at that Merlin awful 'romance café'.

"Oh, well can we go to a few shops first?"

"Yeah that's fine, and then we can eat and then I'll take you to Honeydukes." Harry said and she smiled brightly. Harry was first led to Zonkos where Ginny bought a few things and Harry didn't as he had a strict loyalty to the twins and Zonko products just didn't compare to the twins genius in the slightest. Then they went to the stationary shop next and Harry had to stock up on parchment and quills, but he also purchased two bound parchment books and a pack of sketching charcoals which he sent back with Winky to his rooms for Luna when she got there without Ginny noticing. He also stopped in the book shop to pick up a pre-release copy of an Arithmancy book he knew Paws followed religiously, he was going to offer it as a peace offering for what he had done; he already had Bleach, Badger and Swift's in motion as well as Paws' second.

"You ready for lunch, Gin?" Harry asked when they had finished in the book store.

"Yeah, I'm looking forward to it." Harry took her down a side alley and up to the well presented Café Magick. There was a pretty witch on a podium as they entered and she shot them a bright smile,

"Good afternoon and welcome to Café Magick," She greeted them brightly,

"Hello," Harry said warmly, "We have a reservation under Potter," Harry wasn't surprised when her eyes darted up to the scar on his forehead and she was even more eager than before.

"Of course Mr Potter, right this way."

They were led in to the café and Harry admired the décor, it was done out in coffees and creams with comfy looking seats surrounding the round tables.

"Oo, this is nice." Ginny exclaimed and Harry made a sound of agreement.

"Here we are," They had been taken to a secluded booth and Harry gave her a galleon tip, she beamed and left them. Harry sat opposite Ginny and picked up the menu, he was surprised at how dignified it was.

"Hello, my name is Karley and I will be your waitress for this afternoon." Another witch had arrived and she was dressed in a neat uniform smiling at them, "Can I get you some drinks?"

"Gin?"

"Um, can I have a glass sparkling red berry."

"And I'll have a non dairy mango and pineapple smoothie."

"Anything else?"

"No, that will be all for now." Harry said. She nodded and tapped the table making their drinks appear,

"Just touch your number to make your order." Karley told them and left. They sat in silence drinking for a few moments before Ginny started a conversation, they spoke about Quidditch, school, his training and the upcoming Yule.

"Do you know what you want to eat?" Harry asked already having decided what he wanted.

"I think I will have the BLT baguette with a side salad." Ginny decided after a minute of looking at the menu. Harry nodded and tapped the number on the side of the table with his wand, Karley appeared after a couple of seconds.

"Can we have a BLT baguette with a side salad, the chicken marinade rice and peas and a separate side of lightly salted fries."

"Ok, would you like another drink sir?"

"The same again,"

"Your meal will be along shortly." She told them,

"So how is the team coming along this year?" Harry asked her. He hadn't been paying any attention to the house teams this year, he had had much more important things on his mind.

"Its ok I guess, I mean its hard now without you or Ron on the team."

"You got the captain spot didn't you?"

"Yeah, me and Sloper, McGonagall didn't want me doing alone in OWL year because of Wood." Ginny explained and Harry shuddered. Oliver Wood was one of the biggest Quidditch fanatics in existence, Harry didn't miss the before dawn practices he had been put through.

"That is understandable, Wood was a little crazy."

"From what I've been told, Wood was more than crazy." Harry laughed a bit at that,

"Ok, Wood was unhealthily obsessed." Harry agreed,

"I don't know how he did it, with OWL's too."

"Yeah well, Wood was part creature or something because he did it during his NEWT's as well." Harry pointed out.

"I think he was taking too many potions." Ginny said.

Just then their food arrived and Harry was relieved, he had a reason to be silent now as they ate. There was a bit of small talk over the meal, but otherwise it was thankfully silent and Harry took the time to analyse his shields. He could feel the pressure building and that could only mean one thing, luckily he had been prepared, but he would have to veto desert. He finished first and sat quietly while Ginny ate her fill, and when the cutlery was placed down the plates disappeared when Harry tapped the table.

"I was thinking we could head out to Honeydukes," Harry suggested, "My treat,"

"That sounds wonderful, Harry." Ginny agreed with a smile. Harry summoned the waitress and asked for the bill, he left an extensive tip and led Ginny out. They went back to the main part of the village and the pressure in his head reached his peak, Harry visibly cringed.

"Harry, what is it?"

"I think we have a problem," He gritted out as his head exploded in pain.

Guys, I apologise in advance, He said to Swift and Paws,

What are you talking about Harry? Paws asked just as 20 death eaters apperated in and Harry felt the anti apperation and anti portkey wards go up.

"Shit," behind the death eaters Harry could see one, shrouded in a black cloak and darkness oozing from every pore; the Dark Lord Voldemort was here.

"Is that
"

"Yeah," Harry hissed, "I need to get you out of here." They began running through the alley and Harry discretely headed in to the death eaters so they got split up.

"Ginny!" He yelled in a 'panic', he spotted her briefly before the death eaters came closer.

"Harry!" She was trying to get to her when the DE's struck and Harry was forced to duel; it was manic. The village was panicking as the death eaters ripped through it and people were running everywhere, the Dark Lord was casually flicking his wand and destroying building and people alike. Harry made sure he stuck to only light magic as he fought the DE's and he could see Ron and Hermione fighting in the same predicament as him, he looked around and saw Ginny was also fighting but she didn't see the Cruciatus Curse sent at her from the Dark Lord and she went down with a scream much to Harry's enjoyment. He tried to fight his way through when the teachers and aurors arrived, he didn't see what curses Voldemort was using but there was a lot of screaming.

"A warning to you Harry Potter," He hissed when Harry stumbled through. He was hit with a Crucio from Bellatrix. who was the most obvious person by the cackling and Harry went to his knees, but he didn't scream. It was cut short, thankfully, and he chanced a glance at Ginny; she looked a mess and he couldn't actually see her breathing. Dumbledore arrived to them just as the Dark Lord motioned for his followers to leave,

"Remember, no one is safe." And then he was gone before Dumbledore could act.

"Ginny, Ginny," Harry called frantically, "Ginny, wake up!"

"She has to be taken to the hospital wing," Dumbledore said,

"Ok, right." Harry nodded and didn't look away from her. He didn't know if she was alive, but he was hoping the answer was negative.

"Take this portkey, it will go directly to Poppy." Harry took the piece of string and felt the familiar hooking before he vanished in a swirl of colour. He landed hard in the wing and levitated Ginny on to the bed just as Madam Pomphrey rushed over from her other patients, the wing was already bustling with injuries from the attack, but Ginny was the worst. Pomphrey immediately went to the work, Harry was pushed back and he knew he wouldn't be able to leave until he was told to. The doors burst open and Molly rushed in followed by Arthur, the twins and finally Ron and Hermione.

"Oh my baby girl!" Molly screeched and rushed over. Harry took a step back so he didn't have to touch the woman as she came,

Is she dead? Swift asked hopefully.

Don't know, she wasn't breathing when we got here, Harry told him,

YES!

"Is she going to be ok?" Molly demanded,

"If you let me get on with my work I will tell you." Poppy snapped pouring potion after potion down Ginny's throat, she was waving her wand at a frantic pace and then Ginny gave a great, shuddering breath.

Dammit, Harry and Ron groaned at the same time,

Keep it together, Paws warned and Harry's eyes twitched, the girl must have super luck or something because any other person would have died. Dumbledore swept in at that point and Harry bowed his head, he wanted out of the wing at that point, he would have to think of another way to kill her if she got through tonight.

I need to leave, Harry stated,

Ok, I got this, Swift said and Harry caught the brief smirk, Just go with it like the golden boy,

Ok

"How is she doing, Poppy?" Dumbledore asked gravely,

"She's alive, for now." Poppy sighed,

"Yeah no thanks to you, Potter," Ron snarled suddenly. He was directing a righteous glare at Harry who caught on immediately and flinched back,

"Ron I-,"

"I don't want to hear it. You almost got my sister killed, my baby sister, because that monster is after you. Why did you have to go and get her involved in all of this."

"I didn't mean to, I tried to keep her safe."

"Not hard enough because you're fine and she's in a hospital bed." Ron snapped furiously, "You let her get attacked instead of you!"

"No-no, I didn't I-,"

"Can't you see its not safe for anyone to be around you?" He hissed and Harry looked down as if defeated,

"You're right, but I did try, really I did." He looked up imploringly and was met with a glare.

"Clearly not enough." Ron growled, "Stay away from my sister, Potter, before you get her killed." Harry's eyes widened and he fled from the wing. As soon as he was clear he leant against the wall and tried to muffle the laughter that wanted to bubble up,

That was art, Paws said amused and Harry snickered,

Nice going Swift, that was quick thinking! Harry said,

First thing that came to mind, and they all ate it up. Swift gave a mental shrug,

Yes, even Dumbledore seems to be considering something, Paws said,

I'll be on my guard for anything he throws my way then Harry decided,

Yes, it is to be advised, Paws agreed, And I take it this was your plan

Yes, what do you think?

It was a brilliant one, do not get me wrong, but I am worried about you. Paws said and Harry couldn't help but agree,

I know, but I knew he had plans to attack Diagon and he wouldn't have changed it so this was the only thing I could think of. It wasn't the original, but I wanted to make sure he was pissed enough to change the plan to something that would have suited me. Harry explained to them,

Well, we'll speak more at a different time, we're supposed to be praying for her survival currently, Swift stated, Just be careful Snake,

Got it, the connection closed and Harry took a deep breath to centre himself. He looked down and flicked his wand, he was covered in blood and dirt so he changed his clothes to something he actually liked and removed the filth, he removed his glamour and cast a quick disillusion. Call him a coward, but he wasn't going to face Tom yet, the man was still in rage mode. Unfortunately for Harry, his plan of avoidance did not pan out how he wished and as soon as he stepped on to the defence corridor it became apparent that he would be facing an extremely pissed off Dark Lord. His magic was extremely thick and it was crackling in some parts, Harry spotted that Tom's office door was open and he was seriously contemplating if it would be worth running, but that thought was squashed when said man leant in the door way and glared directly at him.

"Fuck," He cursed under his breath. Tom left the door way and Harry sighed; he was so screwed. He cautiously made his way in to the office and flinched when the door slammed shut and the wards flared up so tight that they were visible for a second, Harry's disillusion was dropped and a wave of white hot pain washed over him forcing him to his knees with a gasp. He felt the blood run down his face and bit his tongue to stop himself making a sound, he knew he had pushed a bit to far, but he believed that Tom wouldn't harm him beyond the pain in his scar; he hoped.

What possessed you to do something like thisss, Harry nearly winced at the sound of parsel, it showed that Tom's anger was beyond English, but he wasn't going to be pushed in to submission. He looked up in to the furious red eyes and wasn't surprised when he met anger, but it was warring with possessiveness which is exactly what Harry knew would be there which is what he had played on.

Did it get to you, Tom, watching me all over her? Harry questioned with a smirk and hissed when the pain flared again, Tom wordlessly snarled at him and his wand dropped in to his hand.

You are pushing my limits, Snake He warned and his voice had turned deadly,

What are you going to do, curse me? Go on, do it, throw a Crucio at me like you want to, see where it gets you. Harry knew that he really shouldn't be baiting him, but he wanted to see just how much leeway he could have. Tom's wand tip started to glow the familiar red and Harry braced himself, he could feel the magic reaching its breaking point and then suddenly Tom lashed out; only nothing hit him. The glass exploded around him and Harry looked around to see Tom with his back to him and his wand on the floor, he could see the man had his fists tightly clenched at his sides and he was so still that Harry wasn't sure if he was breathing. Harry pulled himself up as his scar dulled to a throbbing pain and silently approached,

I should curse you Tom stated,

Probably, Harry agreed,

You are infuriating,

I am

No one who has caused me so much anger lives for long

I am not just anyone Harry pointed out and by now he was stood in line with Tom, Tom looked at him and Harry felt it, the overwhelming possessiveness that was flowing through the man before Tom crashed their lips together. Harry felt hands grip his hips tightly and he knew it would bruise, he was pushed back against the desk and was easily lifted so he could sit and wrap his legs around Tom. Tom broke the kiss and immediately attacked Harry's neck,

Do not do anything like that again Tom warned him, his voice husky as he lightly bit the shell of Harry's ear.

Why? Harry challenged. He gasped and head dropped back when Tom bit down on a sensitive park of his neck,

You are mine

I am not an object, I do not belong to anyone,

You are mine, whether you believe it yet or not. Tom didn't let him argue back because he kissed him again and Harry's mind was swept away. He felt his clothes be vanished and he released a soft moan when Tom started to kiss all down his chest and lightly bit his nipple. He sucked on Tom's fingers when they were pressed to his lips, and groaned when it became apparent that Tom was going to slowly torture him by exploring his body. He moaned again when Tom licked his tattoo and followed the tail to dip his tongue in his navel, he cried out when licked his straining member before coming back up to his neck. Tom removed his fingers and replaced them with his lips, he teased Harry for a few seconds before pushing in the first finger and waiting for the teen to relax. He continued to tease him and lightly brushed over the spot that had Harry writhing beneath him, he added the second finger and continued all the while kissing the teen and biting his neck. He added one more finger stretching the muscle before removing them making Harry whimper, he was practically burning with need and made a note to tell Tom he had to use magic next time like he usually did. His body arched up when Tom slid in with one swift motion and his nails drew blood from Tom making the man hiss. Harry rolled his hips urging Tom to move which he did gladly, and he was still torturing Harry by moving slowly and Harry groaned.

Fuck me, now He ordered with a clear edge in his tone. Tom pulled out and then slammed in to him hitting his prostate; Harry screamed. Tom picked up the pace and moaned when Harry's dragged his nails down his back, he changed angle so he hit Harry's spot head on repeatedly and cries grew louder and needier making Tom go mad.

Yes, harder, Harry cried, Yes,

So tight, Tom hissed, Scream for me and groaned when Harry did just that. He switched angles again to go deeper in to his willing lover and Harry made a keening sound,

Shit Tom, yes He yelled, I'm so close, hearing that, Tom picked up speed and with a few more sharp thrusts Harry's muscles clamped down and he came screaming Tom's name, the tight heat and hearing his name was enough for Tom to follow Harry and he collapsed forward on Harry catching his breath. When they had both calmed, Harry muttered a cleaning spell and Tom pushed himself up, Harry flicked his wand so he was covered by a pair of black skinny jeans.

"We have plans," He reminded the Dark Lord who looked as if he was about to remove said jeans. Tom sighed and flicked his own wand to clothe himself, it didn't stop him kissing the teen or running his hands all over his body.

"Tooom," Harry groaned, "You can continue this after I've killed my amphibian."

"You are here tonight, don't bother to argue."

"Wouldn't dream of it," Harry said with a smirk. He summoned up a black t shirt and called for Winky,

"What cans Winky bes doing for Master Harry?"

"I need you to collect the black velvet case placed in my bedside cabinet, right side, and tell Luna that I'll see her tomorrow."

"Yes Master Harry," She popped away and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Let's just say I've been planning Umbridge's demise for a while and I edited this especially for her."

"I have the feeling I am going to enjoy this,"

"Oh you are, and you can even have a few curses before its my turn." Harry told him and Tom's expression went blood thirsty.

"Good,"

Winky popped back in with the velvet case he asked for and Harry smirked, Tom looked interested,

"You will have to wait," Harry said and Tom rolled his eyes,

"Fine,"

Tom changed in to his Lord Voldemort robes and Harry called forth the shadows to drape over him,

"I know where she lives and I know the wards that surround her house, we won't be getting in without the ministry knowing and that is something we cannot afford."

"You already have a solution, so lets go." Tom drawled with a touch of impatience,

"On you head be it," He grabbed his arm and shadowed them the address that Swift had gotten for him. Harry took a sick amount of pleasure when Tom retched at the feeling and offered a sweet smile in return to the death glare he got.

"Pay back for the apperating stunt you pulled and don't think I won't be returning the torture you gave me earlier." Harry stated and walked off. It was dark, but he could see a fire in a room up head and it lit up the surroundings enough for him to see the sickening décor.

"I really do hate this woman." Harry muttered. He chanced a look at Tom and snickered at the look of utter disgust on the man's handsome features,

"This is truly horrific, it should be made illegal instead of the unforgivables." He said seriously. Harry bit his tongue in an effort not to laugh. They stepped in to the room unnoticed by Umbridge who was reading a book with a cup of tea clutched in her fat, ringed hands, she was dressed in nightwear made from pink silk which made her even more unattractive.

"Good evening Madam Umbridge." Harry murmured loud enough for her to hear as it bounced around the shadows. Umbridge jumped violently and went for her wand, but she was too slow as Tom had already summoned it to him and snapped it in half.

"Who are you?" She demanded, "How dare you come in to my home, do you know who I am?"

"We are well aware of who you are Umbridge, and I dare come in to this disgusting place you call a home to do one thing; to kill you." Harry said this as if explaining the weather and Umbridge's flabby face went blotchy.

"How dare you!"

"We have been over this." Tom drawled, "I am bored and your voice had already angered me, Crucio," She dropped to the floor and began screaming. It seemed that she even managed to screw that up because her screams were not nice to hear, even Tom seemed to cringe away from the Merlin awful sound she was making and cut the curse when it became unbearable.

"How you managed to be such a screw up I don't know, but by Merlin your parents really fucked up." Harry stated and Tom coughed to hide his laugh.

"Ardens Caro," Tom muttered and Harry grinned showing too many teeth for it to be pleasant. Slowly Umbridge became uncomfortable with the temperature, then she grew hot and then hotter still until she began to claw at her skin to relieve the heat, she was crying and begging much to Harry's amusement.

"Don't spill too much of her blood, I have plans for it." Harry muttered and with an air of great reluctance, Tom cut the curse.

"W-why are you doing this?" She got out and Harry sneered,

"You see, I don't like your view on wolves and the new legislation you just had put through is the cause of your sudden predicament."

"The filthy half breeds deserve it." She spat,

"Ah ah, wrong answer," Tom hit her with a brief Crucio.

"Its too late to change it." Umbridge gasped and Harry nodded.

"Oh I know, but you're still alive and I don't like that fact so I decided to change that fact instead." Harry drew out the velvet case and opened it, sat on the cushion was a simple black feathered quill, but to anyone who knew anything about dark artefacts would recognise it for what it was,

"A blood quill," Tom said,

"Yes," Harry confirmed, "With a few added extras,"

"Oh, and what may they be?" Tom asked in interest and Harry's expression turned nasty.

"Nothing more than she deserves." He crouched down to where Umbridge was huddled shivering on the floor and held out the box.

"Remember this Delores, you used them enough on the kids in Hogwarts." He heard Tom release a low hiss behind him and felt the man's magic crackle.

"She did what?"

"Yes, it was what made me want to kill her originally. After all, I must not tell lies." Umbridge's attention snapped to Harry and her eyes widened in recognition,

"Potter," She snarled and Harry smirked,

"The toad has a brain,"

"You'll never get away with this."

"I already have got away with this." He told her brightly, "But while we're here. Why don't you look at the quill, pick it up examine it, you are an expert on them." He didn't give her an option, he made her feel compelled to take it and as soon as it was in her hand it flashed and she began to write on the floor.

I deserve to die

"Now, as you can see, like a normal blood quill, it carves in to your hand and uses your blood to write; that's where the similarities end." Harry stated,

"Do go on." Tom said watching the toad, "I am interested in the deeper cutting the quill is causing."

"That is the first feature, the cuts are much deeper – almost to the bone – and then they don't heal over." Harry pointed to the freely bleeding lettering.

"A welcome feature,"

"Next, is that this quill doesn't just use the hand to take the blood, it carves in to every piece of flesh available including tongue and eyes."

"Very nice," Tom murmured with his eyes alight.

"Yes, that is nearly my favourite part." Harry agreed, "But it does get better."

"Oh?"

"Yes, you see this quill is charmed so that she'll never be able to stop writing, until she dies she will always want to write and the longer she lasts the more frantic she will become to write." Tom released a low, dark chuckle,

"She'll write herself to death."

"Indeed, but she will never get used to the pain, every time she writes it with hit a different nerve which will never break. Then, once she has broken it in, the nightmares will start. With every line she writes she will begin to see her fears, she'll feel every bite, every touch, every breath and every scratch, but she will never be able to touch them or stop them and there will be no physical wounds except the quill. And finally, when she is a broken mess on the floor begging for it to end, her blood will begin to boil, it will bubble and steam making her write and write until she's dead and it'll heal her like nothing ever happened and the quill will return to its box. The only evidence will with the repeated lines on the surfaces of the house and it'll be deemed a suicide, for she could no longer take the guilt of what she has done." Harry explained this in a vicious glee. Tom looked at the teen noticing the insane glint in the AK green eyes and smirked, he was amazed at the wonderful torture that could come from a quill when one was inventive enough, and turned on by Harry himself. Umbridge had started to whimper and her eyes were darting around like she was watching something even as her hand continued to write, she released a pained yelp and jumped away from something that wasn't there. Her blood was dripping down her arm as the cuts were making their way up her blotchy flesh and both Tom and Harry watched fascinated.

"Feel free to curse her, she won't die until her bodies covered in words." Harry said and Tom smiled in a less than pleasant way. He flicked his wrist and a light blue beam shot out and hit her ankle, Harry guessed it was a bone breaker but he was wrong by the sound that it made, her bone was literally crushed and she screamed. Loud and long high pitched screams of agony and Tom repeated it to her other leg to make sure she couldn't move from her nightmares. He one by one shattered her ribs but left the ones by the lungs alone so one didn't pierce and she drown, he hit her with a concussion curse followed by a dizzying hex which were highly amusing for Harry because she threw up due to their effects; but she never stopped writing. The words had covered her entire arm and were now stretching on her back and seeping blood on to the garish nightwear, Umbridge was screaming constantly by now, she was trying to avoid things that weren't there, but she could barely move through the pain and she couldn't stop writing. Harry added his own curses and the pair took turns to throw curses and hexes that didn't spill blood watching her get more and more frantic to write, Harry didn't know whether to cringe or cheer when it carved through her eyes, but the scream she gave to that was pleasant to hear so he enjoyed it. Her blood was splashing everywhere and the faster she wrote the more of her flash she covered, she was slumped in her own vomit and urine as she wrote mumbling to someone to help her and Harry happily clapped his hands.

"Ooo she's broken, she's broken." He sang and they watched as the final bits off her flash were carved in to; and then she screamed. It was a bloodcurdling shriek for mercy as the very blood in her body boiled itself away, she gave one last choked scream until she knew no more and dropped to the floor dead. All of her previous wounds were gone and she looks as good as new except the shining words of I deserve to die marking every surface she could reach.

"I think we're done here." Harry said with a bright smile, he still had a slightly manic glint in his eyes, but it wasn't saying much seeing as Tom had the exact same one.

"After that perfect display, I believe we have other things to do." He came up behind Harry and pulled him back where it became known just what things were on his mind. Harry was only too eager to respond and he hummed when Tom nipped his neck,

"Much more interesting then watching a corpse," He pushed his ass back drawing a low moan from Tom and smirked, he turned around in his arms and pulled him in to a heated kiss. When they broke apart both sets of eyes were dark with desire and only one thing on their minds as the shadows swallowed them m

Chapter 17

Notes:

Read the tags please.

Un'beta'd

Parsel is bold italics.

Oh, and there's a change of POV in this chapter.

Chapter Text

 

Chapter 17,

Harry's prediction of seeing Luna the day after Halloween was incorrect. Tom decided that he was going to keep Harry to himself and remind the teen, multiple times, who had a claim on him; even if Harry refused to except he belonged to anyone. After finishing Umbridge, Harry had returned to the house the next day and found his broom that she never returned, that had been the only time he had been away from Tom. When Harry woke on the Sunday after Halloween he was aching slightly and he was alone, he sat up blinking slightly confused to where Tom was. He tilted his head and he was sure he could hear the sound of a paper being turned, he climbed out of bed making sleep trousers wrap around him as he trooped out of the room. Tom was stood in his kitchen nursing a cup of coffee reading the paper in only sleep trousers and Harry grinned, he strolled over and nimbly hopped up to sit on the counter.

"You're finally awake." Tom said in greeting not taking his eyes of the paper and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I would have been awake sooner, but somebody decided they were going keep me in their bedroom for an entire day." Harry pointed out and Tom smirked. His eyes trailed appreciatively over Harry's form taking in the bites and bruises littering the pale skin,

"One of my best days, I'll admit,"

"Inhuman amount of stamina," Harry muttered making Tom laugh lightly, "Tea please," a steaming cup of tea appeared on the counter next to him made just how he liked it. They stayed in the comfortable silence and Harry angled himself so he could read the paper also, Tom rolled his eyes at that but allowed him to do so which made Harry smirk. On his third cup of tea, he cast a tempus and cursed, it was his day with Luna and he was running late.

"I have to go," Harry said hopping down. Before he could step away, Tom had seized him in a kiss that made him forget his own name.

"You know, I've decided that you are not coming anywhere near me until Wednesday." Harry said when he regained his senses.

"Is that so?" Tom asked amused.

"Yes, it is and you won't convince me to stay when its my Luna day." Harry stated firmly.

"Wouldn't dream of it," Tom said innocently.

"You're insatiable, you know that?" Harry told him, and Tom gave him a lecherous smirk.

"Your fault,"

Harry rolled his eyes and removed himself from Tom's arms, he flicked his wand to clothe himself and fixed his smaller glamours to cover all of Tom's marks.

"Am I to expect an article tomorrow?" Tom asked and Harry tilted his head.

"Unless something else comes up, but I shall let you know." Harry said after a minute. He glanced over at Tom who was leant against the counter with his arms crossed over his bare chest and swallowed, Tom caught his straying eyes and smirked which made Harry glower.

"Damn it," He grumbled and stalked away as the man chuckled. "I hate you."

"I know,"

Harry cast a quick disillusion and ran to his rooms, when he entered he saw that everything was back in order and Luna was, thankfully, still asleep. He spotted Hedwig on her perch with Mischief, the twins owl, and another one he didn't know he went over to them, they both had letters for him which made him raise an eyebrow.

"Did you wait for me girl?" He asked her softly, gently stroking her feathers. She hooted in a way that said yes and motioned to the other owl with another hoot. "Any you made sure they waited too?" She bobbed her head and Harry grinned.

"You are the best owl in the world." He complimented and she seemed to puff out her chest in pleasure. Harry removed her burden first before seeing to the other two and feeding them all owl treats, the two outside owls flew off after a drink and Harry resized the box that Hedwig had brought and opened it. He sighed in relief when he saw the content, he could now stop himself being murdered by his friends. Harry knew without a shadow of a doubt that they were going to kill him, he had shut them out completely after he had left the hospital wing and he knew it was only a matter of time before they were out for blood.

"Winky," His elf popped in bowed,

"What cans Winky bes doing for Master Harry."

"I need all of these boxed and wrapped separately as gifts, then I need you to go to Honeydukes and order their biggest chocolate box, the 50 galleon crate and have it wrapped for me too. Use the card I gave you."

"Yes Master Harry," She nodded flapping her ears, "What is Winky be doing with the gifts?"

"I'll have this one," He picked up a velvet case, "Done first and given straight back to me, and the others in my bedside cabinet."

"Yes Master Harry," and she popped away. Harry took the letter that came with his box and grinned when he saw it was from Director Ragnok,

Dear Lord Potter-Black,

The following items within the crate are of such the ones you requested and the necessary transfer fee has been taken from your account.

Regarding the construction you wish to make upon Peverell Manor, I believe we have the staff available to do so. I have set an appointment for you on the 3 rd  of November at 10am to meet with the head of construction and myself to discuss your plans and the cost of work and hire.

May your gold flow and you investments prosper,

Director Ragnok of Gringotts back,

That was brilliant for Harry, he didn't care what the cost was and it wasn't like it was going to effect him, the Potter accounts would keep him living in luxury for the rest of his life without him raising a finger; money wasn't an issue. If he could get this set up in motion, then he could see Ellen and tell her the good news. The letter reminded Harry of something however,

"Coby," He called and the Peverell elf popped in.

"Master Harry called for Coby?"

"Yes, I would like an update on the tasks I've set you." Harry stated.

"Wes bes removing all the silver from the Manor and bes placing it in yous vault sir, and wes bes replacing it to. And wes gots everything on the list yous bes giving Coby sir, and its bes put in storage until Master Harry is there to tells Coby where to put it." The elf told him practically bouncing in excitement.

"Brilliant Coby, well done," Harry praised and grinned when the elf squeaked in shock, "Now, I need the Manor in spotless condition for when I come back."

"Of course Master Harry, Coby bes doing what yous is saying." He said with a bow before he popped away.

"Blippy?"

"Yes Master Harry?"

"Are all the outhouses ready to be lived in?" Harry asked.

"Yes sir, Blippy is making sure they is stocked and clean for Master Harry's people."

"Good, keep up the good work." He popped away and then Harry called for Nip.

"Yes Master Harry?"

"I am meeting with the goblins tomorrow to discuss the dates for the edits I require on the building, I need you to make sure everything is in order for their arrival and I want you to make sure that everything runs smoothly while they are at work as I cannot be there." Harry told him firmly, if it was one thing he would count on it was the loyalty of a house elf; if you didn't treat them like crap.

"Nip is making sure everything is perfect for Master Harry." The old elf said nodding his head to emphasis his point.

"Thank you," the elf left with a bow and Harry released a breath; everything was moving nicely. Winky popped in with wrapped gift and the crate of chocolate, Harry's eyes widened at the sight; the crate was the size of his arm; and that was at its shrunken state.

"That is a lot of chocolate." He muttered and Winky nodded.

"The man bes saying it should last half a year." She told him and Harry grinned.

"Perfect, thank you Winky, is everything else done?"

"Winky is just putting the gifts in Master Harry's cabinet."

"Good, put the chocolate there too thanks," She popped away. Harry picked up the letter from the twins next and couldn't help but smirk,

Snake,

The toad has been found, reporting tomorrow. Self done is the belief. Bowler is in a fit, trying to pin of star gazers but unsure. Images caught; beautiful. Delay the bug on lemons,

M&P

Harry's eye twitched at the mention of Fudge, if that fool tried anything against the centaurs then he was a bigger idiot that Harry ever believed. He hoped that nothing stuck, but he would send a warning to the centaurs just in case because they didn't deserve the attack. If they kept up the belief it was suicide then there would be no problem, but the ministry wasn't know for holding the smartest people in the world. Harry sighed and turned to the final letter; he knew what it was and scanned it. His eyebrows rose when he saw that she had done the article on Umbridge and had told him about it, it seems she was becoming loyal. He summoned some parchment and jotted a short reply telling her to leave his article until Wednesday so people settled down from the toad.

"I need you to take this for me, but can you wait until later so I can add another letter?" He asked her and she bobbed her head looking pleased with the extra work, Harry smiled and stroked her feathers. "Thanks girl," Harry felt a shift in magic coming from the bedroom and winced, Luna was awake and, even though she had helped him plan, she was going to be slightly ticked off. Harry grabbed the wrapped box, called Winky for Luna's favourite breakfast and stood behind the table so she could see the food as a first sign of peace. He remembered the sketch pads and charcoal and asked Winky to grab it as Luna showered and he put that and the box behind his back as he head the door open. Luna stepped out and her eyes immediately found Harry's and he offered her a sheepish smile to which she raised an eyebrow and Harry bit back a wince.

"I have breakfast," He offered and she studied him for a few moments before walking over and sitting down.

"And?" She asked lightly and Harry grinned,

"I brought gifts too." He said and handed them over. Luna released a small cheer at the sight of the sketch books and Harry took it as a good sign for his unsure future, she then carefully unwrapped the box and, with a gentleness only she possessed, opened it to reveal two stunning hair slides. They were silver twists with sapphire and diamonds clutched around them, they had a few stones straying away from the main frame giving them a stylish finish.

"Harry, they're beautiful," She gasped,

"I'm sorry," Harry said and she smiled at him.

"I suppose you are forgiven," Luna said in a put upon manner and Harry grinned.

"Thanks, it worked out in the end."

"Sort of, she is still alive." Luna pointed out,

"Yes, and don't ask me how. She should have died, the only person I know who has had a luckier break than her right them was me back in second year." Harry shook his head, "Lady luck was shining on her that day."

"Hopefully lady luck will stop soon, we have things to do." Luna sighed,

"Ah, that reminds me." Harry said, "I need you to go and speak with the centaurs, there is a chance the ministry is going to try and pin the death of Umbridge on the trauma she suffered by their hands and I want them to be prepared."

"Of course they would blame someone else, the pathetic fools." She hissed, "I'll go tomorrow, I like watching the foals."

"Thanks, now eat your breakfast and I'll carry on speaking." Harry told her changing his jeans in to joggers with a snap of his fingers.

"Got it,"

"Ok, so Umbridge is dead and let me tell you it was a beautiful thing to watch; I outdid myself honestly. I'm expecting Dumbledore very soon because I'm currently able to avoid Ginny at all costs, Swift and I had a little scene in the hospital and he told me to stay away from his sister so I'm good for now, but you know Lemons is going to be plotting." Harry took a breath before continuing, "Now, I'm meeting with Ragnok to start the construction with Peverell Manor so I will know when it will be finished and ready to be opened as the Werewolf Sanctuary, I'll go speak to Ellen when the date and everything is set so I can talk her in to moving and running it and so she can start stockpiling all her potions. Finally, the next article needs to be pushed back because Rita has also done an exclusive on the toads death and I want ours to be front page news and nothing else intruding so it will be released on Wednesday which means I am all yours until then."

"Staying here?"

"Yes, I told him I wasn't letting him near me until Wednesday." Harry said with a grin and Luna laughed.

"Wow. So you've got everything moving then?"

"Yes, when its complete I'll take you to the Manor; its beyond Ray. Hell, it made Tom speechless and Moony swear."

"Holy mother of Merlin,"

"Yes."

"Our day is going to be interrupted today, unfortunately." Luna said suddenly and Harry tilted his head.

"Oh?"

"Yes, and it will be best if you went with the Dark Lord to the Gryffindor rooms, it will be safer." Luna told him.

"I'll keep that in mind," Harry said slowly, "When will they be here?"

"Right about
 now." The portrait swung open and in strode a very pissed of Paws followed by a warily looking Swift and a frowning Badger.

"Wait right there." Harry cut off the rant that Paws was undoubtedly about to spill and he darted off to his bedroom and grabbed all of the gifts, when he returned Bleach and the twins were present and all of them, except Luna and the twins, were giving him the speak now look.

"I'm sorry?" He offered sheepishly and the looks didn't change.

"You have a lot of explaining to do." Paws stated and Harry winced at the stiff tone.

"Here, I bring gifts of apology." Harry said handing them over quickly. There were sounds of delight from them and the twins looked at him with a pout.

"Where's our gifts?"

"I don't have to apologise to you!" Harry pointed out with a smirk.

"Fair point," Fred conceded,

"Nice choices though." They looked over the gifts in appreciation and Harry grinned.

"What can I say, I know my friends." And it was the truth. He had got the book for Paws and paired it with an Arithmancy book written by Ravenclaw herself and it looked as if she was about to vanish in to the pages for an extended amount of time. Swift has received a crystal chess board with two sets of chess pieces, one white diamond and the other black diamond. Badger had an extinct cutting of a plant Harry had no idea about, he had found it in the Peverell vault under preservation and knew it was for the upcoming Herbology master. Finally, Draco had been given a potions journal written by Slytherin himself as well as stunning black dagger from the Peverell vault – something the blond seemed extremely happy about.

"Ok, you're forgiven," Paws said with a smile, "But what happened and what in Merlin's name were you thinking?"

"So, as you know I've been rather flaky this week," Harry began and grinned at the scoffs, "I said in the last meeting I would be sorting the wolves and that's in progress; Peverell Manor is in the works and I have an appointment with Ragnok about some slight constructions needed."

"Is it too small?" Paws asked and Harry couldn't help the loud laugh that burst forth.

"Sorry, but small isn't the word I would use to describe the Manor. It made Tom speechless and Moony swear."

"WOW!"

"Yes. I'm having some renovations to make it more cub friendly and all the silver and other such things have been moved. Once it's finished I'll be adding the extra wards and I'll be needing some blood from all of you for your access, but I'll tell you about that point."

"You've been busy then."

"Of course, and Umbridge has finally been removed." Harry told them brightly. "It'll be announced tomorrow, guys?"

"We've been sneaking around the ministry and its in an uproar." Fred began,

"It was easy to get what was going on and the bug is in her element." George finished.

"Wonderful." Harry said pleased, "I've pushed back my article until Wednesday to give the Umbridge scandal to die down. Speaking of scandal," He turned to Draco, "Have you spoken to your father or Zabini?"

"Father is in the process of sending out the notifications, they obviously have to be formal to signify the importance."

"Of course, I shall be writing to Hadrian Greengrass myself, I've yet to reply to his letter and any later then I would be considered rude."

"As for Blaise, he is willing, but he has a few things he wants."

"I expected no less," Harry said amused, "What does Zabini want?"

"He wants to meet with you, he practically wants in and, if I'm completely open with you Snake, he would be a brilliant ally." Bleach said.

"I have never had a problem with Zabini, but at the same time I know nothing about him except the rumours of his mother and the standing of Manuel Zabini." Harry mused,

"He can be trusted, he will only aid us." Luna chimed in and Harry smirked.

"Well, there you have it. Arrange a meeting with him for this week, Tuesday, RoR for now and we'll work out the details." Harry told the blond who nodded.

"Done."

"Badger, you've been quiet?" Harry said and Neville grinned,

"I've been learning from Raven to disappear, I've been hearing some interesting conversations with people not thinking that I am much of a bother." He told Harry pleased.

"Really?"

"Yes, it is quite amusing. I've over heard a conversation between McGonagall and Hagrid about the potions master Horace Slughorn, something about Dumbledore meeting with him about something crucial."

"Did they mention anything else?"

"Only that it was Order business." Neville said and Harry stilled.

"Raven do your thing, Badger, carry on with your work."

"Will do,"

"We think we've made a breakthrough with the mail ward, its on its final tests now." The twins said and Harry nodded.

"Good, that will help. Now, I want to have the wolves securely working before our hunt, Swift?"

"I've been going over the plans and as soon as Paws has given me all the information on the Flammels then I will incorporate it in and we're good to go,"

"Ok, anything on Ginny?"

"Alive," Swift sighed in dismay and Harry cursed.

"Damn,"

"Which brings me back to; what were you thinking?" Paws asked,

"I knew that, with the new interest with Dumbledore, Ginny would be more intense and I couldn't deal with that. I also knew that Tom was planning a hit on Diagon Alley for Halloween and I knew he wouldn't change them unless pushed. So I played on his possessiveness and made sure that his only thoughts were on removing Ginny as the quickest convenience." Harry explained with a smirk.

"Well plaid." Swift said,

"I know." Harry laughed, "I just want to know how she's alive, she shouldn't be after that attack."

"I don't know either, but it bought you time away from her and you didn't die." Badger said brightly.

"I was worried he would actually kill you." Paws grumbled, "He was beyond angry."

"I was going to avoid him until he cooled off, but he was waiting and made it very apparent I was going to be with him immediately." Harry shook his head.

"Did he curse you?"

"Surprisingly no, even after I goaded him." Harry told them honestly and they looked at him as if he had just declared Dumbledore was a saint.

"You-you goaded him." Paws repeated weakly,

"Yeah, told him to throw a Crucio at me like he wanted to do." Harry shrugged.

"So you knew he was pissed beyond measure and then you told him to curse you." Swift summed up.

"Yep,"

"You've actually lost your mind." Luna stated,

"I don't think I've ever had it to be honest." Harry laughed.

"Moving on from Snake's insanity," Badger said with a grin, "What's on the agenda?"

"Raven is going to the centaurs, and then she is with you, Badger see what else you hear. Twins are on the mail ward and infiltration which they seem to be really good at. Paws carry on with your research and looking in to Flammel, Bleach talk to Zabini, I'm working on the wolves and Swift, I need you to work with the twins and find these people –," He handed over the list that Lucius had given him last week, "– I want everything on them. I want everything down to the time they eat their lunch and go to the damn toilet and I need it as soon as possible without detection."

"I'm guessing you want the wards and how to get to them as you are asking me." Swift said looking it over, "Who are they?"

"Yes, everything," Harry agreed, "And those people are the filth that have been attacking the wolves." Swift glared at the names and nodded.

"Its done," He and the twins stated.

"Anything else?" Harry asked,

"Yes," Paws shifted and grinned at him; Harry was not reassured by the grin at all, "You may want to go and speak to Moony, he kind of knows what you did." Harry's eyes widened and he looked to Luna who nodded.

"Ah fuck,"

"Yeah, good luck with that." Swift snickered and Harry glowered,

"I hate you."

"See you later Snake," they said as they got up to leave,

"Are you coming down with me or leaving?" Draco asked the twins as they left,

"We always have time for you, Draco," Harry and Luna exchanged grins.

"That took a surprisingly short amount of time." She noted,

"If the twins are anything its persistent." Harry pointed out,

"What are you two up to?" Badger asked and Harry blinked,

"You are getting really good at that." He told him and Badger smirked,

"Thank Luna," He said,

"And we are not up to anything." Luna told him and Neville raised a disbelieving eyebrow.

"Sure, why do I not believe that?"

"Because you're a sceptic," Harry said,

"Or you two have to be the most conniving people when together known to man."

"Ok, so you have us there." Luna conceded,

"So
"

"Well we may have a few predictions on couples that we may or may not be helping along." Harry relented,

"Bleach and the twins
 Really?"

"Oh yes, they've had a thing for Bleach for a while." Luna said,

"And we're just waiting for it to fall in to place, which seems to be happening quicker than we would have thought." Harry added,

"Huh, so who else have you got on the cards?" Neville questioned,

"Who do you think?"

"Well, I'm taking a guess here, but Swift and Zabini
" He said slowly and Harry and Luna grinned,

"You saw it too?"

"Whenever he is mentioned Swift seems to pay extra attention," Badger noted,

"And Zabini has had eyes on Swift since he started Quidditch last year." Harry told him and Badger nodded.

"How long do you think?"

"Well, if Zabini joins us then not very long at all, and no doubt, at the Dark Yule balls then he will be all over him." Harry said with a smirk and Luna tilted her head with her eyes misting over slightly.

"December will be the first kiss." Luna stated and Harry smirked.

"That's cheating," Harry said and Luna stuck her tongue out.

"I'll see you guys later," Neville said standing up, "I have my new plant to plot."

"See you Nev,"

"I demand your time." Luna said to him suddenly,

"Oh and what can I do for my sister?"

"I have been designing some shoes, and you are going to make some with me." She told him getting up and pulling him with her. "Come on," Harry didn't bother to argue, he followed her up to their room and sat on the bed. "Now, I've got the base structures, I just need you to work your material magic and do all the tiny details." Harry was handed the shoe base and the sketch pad, it was a set of silver satin heels with a rose-like riffle on the toe and they were around 4 inches high, or they would be when Harry finished with them.

"Ok Ray, let me get to work, and I'll finish the dress I was making for you." Harry said flicking his wand and bringing out the manikin that had her dress on it, he had made it himself, but they had run out of time to finish the detailing because they had started later than expected.

"Perfect," Luna clapped happily, "I've been working on a design for Badger so we can add him to your communication, and I think I've finally decided on my own too."

"Have you spoken to Bleach about having one?"

"No, but I was going to design one anyway, a small one so not to blemish his skin and I'll start on Venom's too."

"Venom?" Harry asked and Luna nodded,

"Well, his animagus is a rattlesnake and as your Snake, he's Venom." She explained,

"I see," Harry nodded, "And why am I not surprised that he is a poisonous snake."

"His mother is the Black Widow."

"True, it is a shame that I have never met her. I have only met Manuel Zabini, his father, and I am sure his mother is twice as interesting."

"Oh no doubt, but she is Italian, so she spends most of her time there." Luna pointed out.

"Our paths might cross in the future."

"You should send your letter, he is having drinks with some this evening."

"Let me finish this pair and then I'll do just that." They fell in to silence and they were each working meticulously, Harry added the final stitches to the shoes to finish of the rose ruffle before conjuring a shoe box and carefully placing them within it making sure to wrap them correctly. Luna absently handed him a sheet of parchment and a quill and he drafted a letter to the Greengrass Lord, he went over it a second time to make sure he had all the correct language and just enough hints for him to understand but not enough for there to be a direct link.

"Done, I'll be right back." Harry darted out of the room with his letter and gave it to Hedwig who took off instantly. He turned and went back to their room calling for Winky to get them some snacks, it seemed they were going to be there a while.


Hadrian Greengrass was a very formidable man. He had taken over the Greengrass Lordship when he was but fifteen when his father died suddenly and he had made their name strive to be great. He had always stuck to the Greengrass ways, he had never stuck his house on a direct side keeping them neutral and he always, no matter what, stuck to his honest beliefs. For that, he was not a man who could be influenced, he was not a man who could be bought and he was not a man who was corrupt. He never became a Death Eater in the first war despite believing in many of their goals, but he was formidable with a wand and there were many that would chose to hand themselves over to the aurors before facing him with a wand. Hadrian knew how to protect his family and that is why they had been left alone, he loved his beautiful wife Naomi and his daughters Daphne and Astoria and he did everything he could to make sure they were safe.

The Dark Lord and Dumbledore had both approached him and while the Dark Lord respected his decision, Dumbledore had tried to push and it had not ended well. But that was the past. Hadrian was surprised to see the changes when the second war started again. He never, not even for a second, doubted the Dark Lord's return when Harry Potter first claimed and when it kicked of he expected it to start where it left off; but he couldn't have been more wrong. The first year had been quiet, the Dark Lord seemed to be laying low for whatever reason until the exposé at the ministry of magic, most thought it would be the time for the Death Eaters to come out; but it never happened.

Sure there were a few small raids, but it was mainly working on infiltration and collecting information which seemed to be working, and then the complete unexpected happened. Harry Potter, or Harry Potter-Black as his correct name was, attended the Malfoy summer ball and he was at complete ease with the Malfoys and the Dark Lord. He had managed to speak with Potter-Black and had been astounded at the young man's perceptive of the ministry and the wizarding world as a whole, Hadrian didn't know where he managed to get his information, but it brought a new insight to a lot of things. He had been shocked, because of this, when he did not see Harry in the Wizengamot meeting and Dumbledore in the Potter seat, Harry had made it abundantly clear his feelings on the old man and it made no sense, especially as Narcissa was sat in the Black seats. Hadrian couldn't believe his ears when the Potter seats voted for the new werewolf legislation and it prompted him to fulfil his idea of correspondence with the Potter-Black Lord and he was waiting for a response.

"You are quiet this evening, Hadrian." Naomi Greengrass said softly, "What troubles you?"

"I am thinking my dear, of recent occurrences that have left me confused." Hadrian answered, "I am hoping these questions are soon answered."

"Is this about the missing Potter-Black Lord within the wizengamot?"

"Yes, if I got a correct reading of the young man, he would have never voted for the new werewolf legislation and I cannot help but question why his seats did so."

"Has he not responded to your letter? It is most irregular for a correspondence letter to be ignored in such a way."

"It has not yet reached the time where it would become rude, but no I have received no reply." Hadrian confirmed, "I am hoping one arrives soon," the floo alarm sounded out and Naomi rose to her feet with her husband.

"I hope you do not mind my taking Narcissa to the tea room, we have not had time to speak recently."

"You go ahead, my dear, I need to speak with Lucius also and I believe Izar is joining us." He gave her a brief kiss before walking through the manor. Greengrass manor was a large stately home set on miles of land, it was decorated in neutral colours with hints of reds, blues and bronzes as per their house colours.

"Ah, Lucius, Izar, good to see you, my friends." Hadrian greeted shaking the Malfoy Lord's hand before moving to the Nott Lord.

"Likewise, Hadrian, are you well?"

"I am, come let us sit, I feel as if we have a lot to discuss." Hadrian led him to the parlor and offered him a drink.

"I have a notification for you, Hadrian, one of the greatest importance." Lucius told him after accepting his drink,

"Oh?"

"I have enacted a complete Act of Silence regarding my summer ball." He stated and Hadrian's eyebrow rose, he saw that Izar had not reacted showing he already knew.

"A full Act?" He repeated, "Am I to assume this is because of a certain individual?"

"I am not at liberty to speak openly, but you are to assume such things." Lucius said slowly and Greengrass nodded once.

"I see, I am sure I am not the only one who was beginning to question the irregularities that have occurred in the recent months."

"You are quite correct, and there are many other things currently in progress which would endanger some important people as well as ruin a good many plans." Lucius said sipping his drink.

"As we are amongst friends, is it safe for us to converse?" Nott asked and Lucius nodded,

"The Act will force silence against those who do not know." He said,

"Do you know why he has not been in the wizengamot?" Nott questioned straight away, "And with Dumbledore in his seats too! How do we know that this wasn't his plan to begin with? To scope out the Dark Families and report back to Dumbledore and his foolish Order,"

"I can safely say that it is no act," Lucius said firmly,

"I do not doubt Harry's words, but why are you so sure in yourself, Lucius?" Hadrian said and Lucius contemplated for a second before answering.

"I am sure of myself, Hadrian, because of the circumstance surrounding Mr Potter-Black's arrival to my manor this previous summer." Lucius told them.

"So it was true that he was staying there?"

"He is friends with my son, and Narcissa took a liking to him." The three men shared a look, they all knew what happened when Narcissa wanted something.

"I see, and just what circumstances surrounded his arrival?" Hadrian inquired.

"Mr Potter-Black arrived at my manor in a manner than was less than sane. He seemed less coherent to his surroundings than Bella is when she looses her mind. I would say he was completely oblivious, however he was instantly able to recognise the Dark Lord before he collapsed."

"His mind snapped?" Nott said sceptically.

"No, he knew his actions and he was still scarily in control of his magic. From what I am able to deduce, his magic ruptured many obliviations and bindings and he temporarily lost control of his mindset." Lucius said to them.

"He is wearing a mask." Hadrian stated connecting the dots and Lucius nodded.

"A very well constructed one."

"But why is he doing such things, and why is he allowing Dumbledore to control half of his seats?" Izar demanded.

"That is obvious, Izar." Hadrian said, "Dumbledore was the one responsible for the binds and the obliviates so Harry is hiding from Dumbledore."

"Dumbledore bound his precious weapon."

"That precious weapon was never a willing weapon in the first place, am I correct, Lucius?"

"You would be correct." The blond confirmed. There was a tapping on the window and the three Lords turned to see a beautiful snowy owl waiting to be allowed in, Hadrian flicked his wand to open the window and the great bird swooped in and landed on the arm of Hadrian's seat.

"You are a stunning creature." Hadrian said softly and smiled briefly when the bird puffed out her chest, her intelligent amber eyes surveying the room with interest.

"She is truly magnificent," Nott agreed admiring her, "Who owns such a bird."

"That, gentlemen, is Mr Potter-Black's bird." Lucius told them and smirked when Nott looked disgusted.

"Of course it is." Hedwig pinned the Nott Lord with a filthy look that caused him to shift slightly, "Also slightly unnerving."

"Yes, I have found that that owl has a much higher intelligent level than any other bird I have come across." Hedwig turned to Malfoy and gave him a look that said 'of course'.

"I have been expecting this letter, it was close to being late, but I understand more so why now." said Hadrian, taking the letter easily. "Treat, girl?"

"He would have to be careful who he is seen corresponding with under Dumbledore's eye." Lucius mentioned and Hadrian nodded.

"Do you mind if I read now? I am most interested in what Harry has to say. I asked him about the articles on Dumbledore and his opinions."

"Go ahead," Hadrian cracked open the wax seal

Dear Mr Hadrian Greengrass, Lord to the Ancient and Noble House of Greengrass,

I was pleased to receive your letter to initiate further correspondence and I would like to offer my sincerest apologies for not contacting you sooner and for the delayed reply.

I would be pleased to continue to correspond with you and I find myself honoured that you hold my words in such high esteem. I too find myself most interested in your own opinions and ideas for our ministry invigorating. It is a great shame that there is so much truth in your words of corruption and gold.

My thoughts on our delightful Chief Warlock have not changed make no mistake, but there are certain circumstances that I have been forced to work around in order to keep myself and mine safe. The Lady Malfoy has blood ties to the House of Black, obviously, and because of this I was able to pass my seat on to her with some well placed words with the goblins, unfortunately, I am the only living blood for the House of Potter and therefore Dumbledore is, illegally, controlling my seats by claiming Proxy. With his powers of Chief, it seems he had overridden the ancient magics on the Wizengamot hall because I have never, willingly, named him my proxy. As for the questions, it would be highly dangerous for me if these questions were overheard by any not attending the ball, and I believe Lord Malfoy is sending out a complete Act of Silence for which I believe would be enough to calm even the most gossip led people.

Dumbledore is a master at removing himself from situations that he does not wish to be in, but even I was surprised at how well he removed the questions from himself surrounding the article about he and Grindlewald. I believe I am able to reassure you that there is a lot more of Dumbledore to be made known to the public and I am sure you, along with the rest of the public, will be surprised and horrified at what is to come. The minister's current probation is nothing less than expected, and I do believe we will be in a position to vote in a new minister, one who cannot be bought, after Yule.

There are many whisperings circulating currently, and I believe that, should you wish to take a more active role within the ministry, or know someone who does, the current senior undersecretary to the Minister position has recently become open. It will be announced tomorrow thanks to a little bug and that person would be in prime position to further aid out world for when the new minster is finally selected.

Respectfully Yours,

Harry Potter-Black, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Potter and Black,

Hadrian's eyebrows had climbed further up his face as he read on and the last paragraph truly intrigued him.

"Have you heard any whispered in the ministry as of late, Lucius?" Hadrian asked and Lucius shook his head.

"I have not managed to obtain anything, it seems that something is amiss, but it is something that the ministry wish to keep covered up entirely." Lucius answered and Hadrian hummed.

"I do believe that I have now come across that knowledge." Hadrian told them,

"Oh, do share with us, Hadrian."

"It seems, and the announcement is tomorrow, our ministry is now missing a senior undersecretary to the minister."

"Umbridge has retired?" Nott said sceptically and Lucius shook his head.

"No, she's dead." Lucius stated.

"How are you to know?"

"It is quite simple, Mr Potter-Black hates Umbridge more than anyone else in this world. You have just found out from him and if it is to be 'announced' tomorrow, it means that is going to be published which says its more serious than a mere retirement."

"He killed her?" Nott scoffed.

"I have no doubt that he did." Lucius said easily, "And when it is announced, it will be as discrete as humanly possible."

"Potter, a murderer, I think not Lucius!" Izar brushed the thought aside and Lucius raised an eyebrow.

"I have personally saw first hand what happens when Harry Potter-Black no longer wishes people to live." The blond aristocrat said, "And it is easily on par with Bella."

"Surely you jest."

"Severus said the very same, I do not jest and I do not say these words lightly; Mr Potter-Black is a very dangerous individual, more dangerous than you can even hope to think."

"I have to speak with my wife." Hadrian said, "This message about the Senior Undersecretary position is enlightening, I may endear the idea myself."

"You?" Lucius repeated surprised, "You do not take any personal interest within the ministry."

"The ministry is corrupt as well as useless, the latest bill passed by Umbridge was a prime example of that." Hadrian stated coldly, "However, it can be changed I do not see why I cannot help with that change myself. I would so love someone to try and bribe me as they do with so many others." It was a thinly veiled jab at Lucius, but Malfoy smirked.

"I do believe most would know that it would be unwise to try, Hadrian. But your insight would only benefit the ministry, there would be no need for bribes if the ministry was competent."

"The sooner Fudge has been removed the better for our government." Izar grumbled, "That man is as useless as they come."

"Harry believes there will be a new minister after Yule." Hadrian said scanning the letter again.

"Yule!"

"Yes, he believes we will be in the position to vote."

"I will have to speak to My Lord, see if he knows as he has much more contact with Potter-Black currently." Lucius said pensively.

"What of the Dark Lord, Lucius. He and his forces have been very quite as of late." Hadrian pointed out, neutral he may be, but it didn't mean he didn't keep an ear out. Lucius smirked,

"This also falls under the Act of Silence," He said and he felt the magic work within him, "The Dark Lord is currently teaching."

"Who has angered him so much that he is personally dealing with it?" Nott laughed, 'teaching' when mentioned with the Dark Lord usually meant the person was in for a very painful encounter.

"No, Izar, this time I mean teaching in the literal sense." Lucius told him amused.

"I do not understand, Lucius. The Dark Lord is teaching?" Hadrian said confused and Lucius chuckled.

"The Dark Lord is currently teaching Defence Against the Dark Arts at Hogwarts." Malfoy explained and both other Lords looked at him blankly.

"Excuse me, Lucius, forgive my repetition; but did you just say that the Dark Lord is teaching DADA at Hogwarts?" Hadrian asked slowly, there was a copious amount of disbelief in his tone and Izar nodded in agreement.

"You heard me correctly gentlemen." Lucius confirmed, "When Mr Potter-Black suggested putting someone from the ranks within the position to get information from Hogwarts the Dark Lord believed it prudent to place himself there instead."

"Oh Merlin,"

"So Professor Drield is actually the Dark Lord in disguise and Dumbledore has no idea?" Izar said quickly becoming amused. The three of them shared smirks,

"The best thing was that Dumbledore held the interview that allowed the Dark Lord to obtain the job." Lucius said and they chuckled.

"He is really clueless."

"Speaking of Dumbledore," Izar began, "He and Grindlewald?"

"I have to say that was a shock to the system." Hadrian agreed, "And he wormed his way out of it like an artist."

"It is inconceivable, but yet it makes sense." Lucius said,

"It makes you wonder just what else Dumbledore has been hiding." Izar shook his head,

"It seems that there is much more to come." Hadrian said.

"I cannot wait. If this was the beginning, then I shudder to think of the other truths."

"I will enjoy Dumbledore's belated fall from grace." Lucius stated.

"Of that we can agree on, my friend."

"Most definitely,"


Harry sighed as he sat at the end of the Gryffindor table Monday morning. He had forgotten he had not been seen since the attack on Halloween and it seemed within that time the students of Hogwarts had decided that he hadn't been stared at enough and so they were going to utilise all there time to stare at him again. It wasn't anything he wasn't used to, but it became tedious when people were staring at him with pity and other things he didn't take the time to decipher. Ginny was still in the hospital wing, something which he was ridiculously thankful for, and she was still in a coma, according to Madam Pomfrey she wouldn't be waking any time from what Swift was telling him after he had gone to see her Sunday evening. Harry had no idea whatsoever how she survived, but nevertheless he would take it in his stride and he would work with it. Luna had warned him that morning that Dumbledore was now on the move so Harry had to watch his step, now that Ginny was temporarily out of the equation the old man would be working Harry personally which meant Harry was going to have those damned twinkling eyes on him whenever was possible. It was a shame, especially seeing as he had so much going on and the wolves were coming up together, but with the timeturners he may just make it. He could always pull some all nighters if needs must. He had to see Ragnok that afternoon and he would be using the time piece for that so he had an alibi, he also had to fine the time to go and see Moony with Tom because the last thing he needed was wolf v Dark Lord on his hands; he wasn't sure how that would go. Harry sighed again.

Head up, Snake, mails here. The voice of Swift drifted in his mind and Harry perked up a little bit. He had managed to send a message to Tom telling him his article was being pushed back because of the Umbridge announcement, his eyes drifted to the Dark Lord sat at the head table with his glamour over him, Harry much preferred the man without his glamour despite him still being good looking with it on. Harry still, to this day, could not believe that the Dark Lord, of all people, had managed to get the DADA position and Dumbledore was still clueless. The post owls swept down and Hedwig landed in front of him to have some bacon, he smoothed the feathers of his faithful owl with a small smile.

"Hey girl," He greeted, "Flight ok?" she hooted and bobbed her head twice which made Harry's smile stretch, he heard the appreciative sounds of the girls around him as Hedwig sat proudly on his arm; his owl always got looks and she loved it.

"Always one for the attention," Harry joked, "But you completely deserve it," He added when she glared at him, she puffed up at that and he shook his head. He paid the paper owl and unfolded the paper, his eyebrows shot up as he read the article, it seemed Rita was getting better and better.

Senior Undersecretary Delores Umbridge;

Suicide!

After last years disaster as High Inquisitor of Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry, Delores Umbridge returned to her prestigious position as Senior Undersecretary to the Minister for Magic, a decision that left many questioning why she deserved it.

Madam Umbridge seemed to flow effortlessly back in to the ministry retaking her duties and working diligently with many ministry personnel, but did she truly fit right back in? As mentioned, there were questions about Madam Umbridge right to her position, but there were also many who wondered if, after such a spectacular failure, she was up to performing her duties to the best of her abilities and ensuring our nation was run correctly. And they were right to question! It seems that, after her return, Madam Umbridge decided to focus all of her attentions on, not helping our nation, but slandering and restricting many of the ancient magical creatures sacred to our world. Centaurs, unicorns, thestrals, vampires and werewolves felt her wrath and nothing was done to stop her. But her conscious was not as dead as she made it seem and, after passing the latest government legislation on werewolves which was low key and hidden from public knowledge, Madam Umbridge could no longer take her guilt and, on Halloween night, she took her own life. There was no note, but there was a final message that she left that made it clear she knew she had done wrong; I deserve to die (See picture right). If someone of such a position could be allowed to run amok with our world and no one stopped her, what else has the ministry allowed to go through without the public knowing? There are many questions mounting up about our government, first the Minister's probation, secondly Dumbledore and now the Senior Undersecretary? Just how far does this corruption go and will our ministry ever have what is in the interest of its people over its gold?

Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondent to the Daily Profit,

More on the ministry P.4

It was a beautiful piece and Harry really did like how she slipped werewolves in to the 'sacred magical creatures' part. He was also pleased to see how there was not one person who looked unhappy at the announcement of her death, he did see that Draco, Neville, Luna, Swift and Paws were all looking at him with an expression that told him he had another explanation to be giving; Harry nearly grinned. He would speak to them later, they would enjoy the details he was sure. Harry passed the paper to Hedwig,

"Mind taking this to Moony for me?" Hedwig hooted and took off. Harry finished his breakfast and left the hall, he knew he had to be careful, but he couldn't help but think that it was a brilliant start to the day.

 

Chapter 18

Notes:

The tags are important.

Un'Beta'd.

Parsel is in bold italics.

Chapter Text

 

Chapter 18,

Whispers and looks followed him all throughout the day and Harry was honestly glad to flop down in his rooms, everything seemed to be about the attack on Halloween and he was sick of hearing Ginny's name. He had to live the entire day before he could go back and have his meeting, he was hoping to get everything done today so he could visit Moony tomorrow and calm the irate wolf down. Luna skipped in with a knowing grin and Harry groaned, that grin did not bode well for him,

"Put me out of my misery." Harry grumbled,

"You have your very first lesson with the wonderful headmaster today." She chirped and Harry gaped at her,

"What!"

"Oh yes, I just found out."

"Please tell me you are joking." Harry pleaded and she shook her head.

"No, you will get the notification at dinner."

"Why, Merlin, why?"

"You need to go, Snake. I think its going to be very important."

"Concerning
"

"I believe it involves the Dark Lord and his past." She said slowly and Harry's attention snapped towards her.

"Oh, have you anything else?"

"No, it was the only thing I picked up on, but I think Slughorn has something to do with it too."

"I have yet to mention the man to Tom, but I shall have to speak with him if it is what you suspect. I do not have a good feeling about this." Harry said and Luna nodded.

"Shall we?"

"Ugh, if we must." Harry pulled himself up and headed out for dinner. He kept his head down as he entered the hall and slunk over to the end of the Gryffindor table, he watched the hall through his fringe and wanted to curse all of the people staring at him. He reminded himself that he only had two more months to go until Yule where he could be himself all the time, small compromise but it would be worth it in the end – he hoped so anyway. Harry looked up to see McGonagall making her way towards him and bit back yet another sigh, this day was seriously trying on his nerves and he hadn't even finished. He was tempted to go and annoy Tom, but he refused to allow the man to touch him until Wednesday despite how he was feeling.

"Mr Potter,"

"Hello, Professor,"

"The Headmaster would like to see you in his office straight after dinner,"

"Yes, Professor, does he prefer anything?"

"He is most partial Bertie Botts."

"Thanks," She nodded and walked away. Harry picked at his food with his mind moving a mile a minute. Even though he had Luna's prediction, she couldn't give him specifics and he was on edge at what the old man wanted, especially as it was to do with Tom. He got up, when he noticed that Dumbledore was no longer present, and left the hall, he took the long way to the headmaster's office and muttered the password to the gargoyle to allow he to jump on the revolving staircase. Harry took a deep breath and masked everything, he brought forth his fake memories and feelings to the front of his mind in case Dumbledore wanted to browse while he was in there. He raised his hand to knock and was told to enter.

"Ah, Harry, come in." Dumbledore greeted jovially, "Have a seat. How are you, m'boy?"

"Hello, Headmaster, I'm fine thank you. How are you?" Harry returned taking his seat.

"I am fine," Dumbledore said, "I, first, wanted to see how you were doing after the attack on Friday?"

"I-I don't know, sir." Harry began looking down and fiddling with his frayed robes, "I did try to help Ginny, but there was so many of them and Lestrange hit me with a Crucio when I got there. She's got it in for me ever since Sirius." Harry met his twinkling eye and allowed pain and fear to come forward, he felt the old man slip in and out and he was sure the man's eyes brightened.

"I understand, m'boy."

"And with Ron too, he's right, I can't protect her when she's with me and I only got her hurt. You were right in the summer." Harry looked down again making himself as small as possible.

"I'm sure Mr Weasley was only stressed,"

"But he was right."

"Voldemort is an evil man, there was very little you could do in a surprise attack such as that." Dumbledore 'reassured'.

"You are right, sir. As always," He made himself sick sometimes.

"Now, I am sure you are wondering while I called you here today, Harry?"

"I was curious, sir, you have been very busy. What with all of your duties, the order and the Rita Skeeter on top of everything. When will she give up trying to spread her lies?" Harry forced his face in to righteous indignation.

"Rita Skeeter lives to be vicious as I am sure you remember. We believe she is working with someone in the Dark." Dumbledore said and Harry nodded.

"Only someone working for him would try something like this." Harry agreed, and he mentally made a note to warn Rita to watch herself; he didn't want to find another reporter. "But what about this morning, sir?"

"That, Harry, I believe was a piece of truth opposed to her usual fiction."

"Really? Umbridge is dead?"

"Yes,"

"So who is going to replace her? It can't get any worse."

"I believe Cornelius is going to select a candidate this week."

"Oh, ok."

"On to the reason you are here. I am sure you remember, Harry, I said I would begin teaching you this year and I believe it is time we started."

"Really? What are you going to be teaching me, sir?" He asked eagerly and Dumbledore chuckled.

"I think that, to beat the enemy, you have to know the enemy so I hope you will join me in to the past to learn all about the young Tom Marvolo Riddle and his quest for immortality." He told the teen. Harry blinked twice before it felt like a rock had been dumped in his stomach,

"Immortality?"

"Yes," Dumbledore rose and went over to his glass cabinet to extract his pencieve, he poured a crystal phial in to the device and motioned for Harry to stand. "This is a memory that you may find of interest." Harry dropped in to the memory followed by Dumbledore and he landed on a dirt path, he looked around to see if he recognised it and he didn't. He followed the old man up and focused on the ministry man that Dumbledore pointed out, they walked up and arrived and what only could be called a shack. Harry was alarmed to see a snake nailed to the door and completely understood why the man did not want to approach. There was a sound from the side and a man dressed in disgusting rags dropped from the tree to the left making the man they had been following stumble in his bid to get away from the ragged man.

#You're not welcome# Harry picked up on the use of Parseltongue instantly, he was so used to it by now that it was no longer difficult to identify. The man in rags was a complete eyesore, he hat matted hair, missing teeth and his eyes were wild and uncontrolled, he did, however, have the sharp features that were associated with a pureblood and Harry deduced that this is what happened when one inbreeded too much and lost their money. The ministry man stepped away hastily and it was understandable why, he tried to introduce himself, but it was brushed aside like he was talking to a wall.

#You're not welcome# the grimy man now has a wand in one hand and a knife in the other, the knife looked as if it could infect someone with its touch alone and Harry fought to wrinkle his nose; side effect of living with Petunia.

"I don't understand," The ministry man stuttered and Harry bit back a grin,

"He's speaking Parseltongue," Harry noted when he felt Dumbledore was about to ask.

"Very good," Harry turned back to the memory as watched as the ministry man was blasted to the ground with strange looking puss issuing from his nose. There was a loud shout of "Morfin!" and an man that reminded Harry strongly of the statue of Salazar Slytherin in the chamber came running out of the shack, he blinked twice.

"Are these who I think they are, sir?"

"Who do you think they are, Harry?"

"Voldemort's relatives,"

"Then you would be thinking correctly, Harry." Dumbledore confirmed sounding slightly surprised, "What gave them away."

"That man, the one who is running over, he looks like the statue in the chamber, or what I can remember of it."

"I see," they went back to the memory where the monkey man was looking down at the guy from the ministry in disgust.

"Ministry is it?" He demanded,

"Yes,"

"He got your face did he?"

"Yes, he did."

"You should off announced yourself then, this is private property. You can be trespassing without expecting my son to defend himself." Harry looked around the area and couldn't help but wonder who would want to trespass on the hovel anyway. Mr Gaunt ordered his son in to the house and Harry felt for the poor snake which swung on the door when it was slammed, the ministry man stopped the puss and straightened himself up.

"It was your son, Morfin, I am here to see." He stated and suddenly Mr Gaunt was on the defensive. He demanded to know about the ministry man's blood status but he was brushed aside and Harry couldn't help his smirk at that, he would have done the same with a bit more style. The retreated in to the shack after an argument and Morfin was there with a snake hissing it a twisted little song, Harry felt for the creature. Harry span around when he realised that there was someone else in the room, a girl who was cooking, but she looked like utter hell.

The ministry man was trying to explain why he was there when the girl dropped something and the sound echoed around to room, Mr Gaunt let go at his daughter and Harry's eyes narrowed at his attitude; it was a bit too much like the Dursleys for his liking. Harry watched somewhat amused when Mr Gaunt blew up at the thought of being summoned, and his eyes were drawn to the ring on his middle finger; it looked a bit like his head of house ring. Harry wondered if Tom ever got hold of that ring, he would like to have a look at it as a Peverell heirloom. Mr Gaunt then dragged his daughter over by a chain around her neck and Harry's eyes widened before he masked it, he recognised the locket, which Gaunt identified as Slytherins, he had seen it at Grimmald Place and he had a feeling it was not supposed to be there; he would have to get it from Kreacher.

Harry shot Gaunt a disgusted look when he spat on the floor, he understood the gesture, but it the vile place didn't need any more filth. Harry turned his head at the sound of horses and then back to Morfin when he started a hissed conversation with his father about the muggle man on the horse, his sister, who Harry was worked out was Tom's mother, has turned sheet white and she was frantically shaking her head trying to get Morfin to stop talking. Gaunt lunged for his daughter and the ministry man fired a hex, it turned in to a screaming match with curses, hexes and Merlin knew what else until the man from the ministry fled and Harry was told to follow him. He ran straight in to one of the horses and Harry caught sight of the man on the horse, dark hair and sharp aristocratic features he was so familiar with; Tom Riddle Senior. They left the memory and Dumbledore motioned for him to take a seat, Harry's mind was whirling but one thing he was certain of was that he was glad Tom took after his father more so than his mother – he knew where he got his temper from however.

"That woman was Voldemort's mother, wasn't she?" Harry asked when it became apparent Dumbledore was not going to speak first.

"Yes, and we caught sight of what would go on to be his father."

"The muggle on the horse." Harry said,

"Yes,"

"They didn't get together naturally, did they, sir?"

"No, I do not believe they did, Harry." Dumbledore agreed, "Can you think of a means to which they ended up together."

"I would say love potion over Imperius because she doesn't seem to be all that good at magic."

"I would hasten to guess the same, Harry. A large amount of gossip was caused when the squire's son ran off with the tramp's daughter."

"I can imagine." Harry muttered, "So what happened then? Voldemort grew up in an orphanage."

"I can only make guesses, but I believe she stopped using the potion and when he became clear headed he left her and her unborn child." Harry felt a surge of hate for Tom Riddle senior and he was glad Tom killed the bastard.

"He walked out on his child?" Harry repeated in disgust, he was pretty sure he could never ever walk out on his child no matter what the circumstances.

"You do not agree." Dumbledore said and Harry shook his head.

"I know what she did was wrong, but they say people do stupid things for love." Harry said, "But he should have stayed, even for the kids sake. Who knows what a difference he could have made?"

"I have often thought of that myself, but it is something we will never know."

"What happened to Morfin and Gaunt?"

"Morfin and Marvolo were both sentenced to time in Azkaban, Marvolo came home to find out his daughter had abandoned him and he never lived to see his son return." Well that explained where Tom got his middle name from and he understood why she left when she could. "And I think that will be all for tonight, Harry." Harry blinked biting back his comment and rose to his feet.

"Is this going to help me, sir?" He asked not being able to help it.

"I believe so, Harry," Dumbledore answered and Harry nodded choosing not to question where the man lost his sanity.

"Ok, sir,"

"Goodnight, Harry,"

"Goodnight, sir." Harry left the office and made his way back to his rooms slowly, his mind was still turning over the memory and the more he thought about it the more he pitied Merope, but at the same time he despised her for being so weak. She was a witch, and a pureblood, no matter what there was something to be done, but he understood that when you have been belittled and terrorised enough you started to believe it and when you started to believe it then it could destroy you. The only reason Harry had been so lucky was because of Ron and Hermione, Merope had no one. He stepped in to his rooms and sat down heavily on the sofa, he felt Luna pull him down and begin to run her dainty hands through his hair. They sat that was for ten minutes before Harry spoke,

"I need to speak with Tom,"

"Not yet you don't, your emotions are running haywire and that, for you, is never good." Luna said softly and Harry sighed.

"I still do not know how to control them, and I do not know what most of them mean." He told her and she kissed his forehead.

"I know, but you have me."

"I do, don't I?"

"Of course, Harry, always will."

"I have to get going soon." He said after another minute.

"Let you rest for a while, you need not over tax yourself."

"I can run for days,"

"I know, but living a double life if tiring and I sense a great deal of timeturner use soon." She told him and he didn't bother to argue.

"Kreacher," He called and the elf popped in.

"What can Kreacher be doing for Master Harry?"

"I was wondering if you managed to save the locket that the Order was trying to get rid of." Harry asked him and Kreacher nodded his head.

"Oh yes, Master Harry, Kreacher is saving it and hiding it, sir,"

"Could you bring it to me please, Kreacher, it belongs to a very dear friend of mine," Kreacher nodded and popped away before returning with the locket, Harry's attention snapped straight to it and all he could feel was Tom.

"Thank you, Kreacher, have you anything to report?"

"No, they is still not noticing Masters wolf because Kreacher is telling them that Masters wolf is fine."

"Well done, Kreacher," Kreacher nodded and popped away. Harry held the locket like it was glass and Luna tilted her head,

"What's wrong?"

"I do not know how this locket got in to Grimauld Place, but I know it was never supposed to be there." Harry whispered. He placed the locket around his neck and tucked it under his shirt, "I'll keep this safe until I can return it." Luna's eyes widened and she looked from the locket to Harry,

"Is that –,"

"Yes,"

"Oh Merlin,"

"I recognised it tonight, and remembered where I saw it."

"A memory?"

"Of Tom's family,"

"Oh, I see,"

"I think I should be going, I want to make sure everything is sorted and then I can sleep for the afternoon while other me is dealing with all the crap." Harry said to her and she nodded,

"Yours robes are hung on the door, your plans are in the pocket and the towels are ready," Luna told him and Harry smiled,

"You are the best sister in the world." Harry said pressing a kiss to her cheek as he got up.

"I know." Harry vanished in to the shower and slipped in to the black robes Luna had left for him, these were simple formal robes with green and gold detailing which finished them off nicely. He slipped the locket underneath the robes and went back to the living room where Luna sat him down and went through his hair.

"I should start paying you for that." Harry murmured relaxed.

"I like my gifts," Luna said and he could hear the smile in her voice.

"I do get good gifts," Harry agreed,

"If you go back to half past nine then no one will be here which will allow you to shadowjump away."

"I'm so glad that that has come back, I thought it would take forever."

"The others shall be going through the same phase soon, too." Luna pointed out and Harry hummed, Luna tapped his shoulder and Harry reluctantly got up. "Everything will be fine,"

"I know, I have faith in you." Harry cast a tempus and seeing it was approaching 9:30pm he waited the few minutes before going back 12 hours exactly. Harry shadowed to Knockturn alley and drew up his hood as he weaved his way through the packed street, it seemed no matter the time Knockturn alley was always busy. He stepped up to Diagon and walked to the bank, he didn't mind waiting in there; it was much safer than out on the alley. He went to the nearest teller and waited for it to finish.

"I have a meeting with Director Ragnok," Harry said and the goblin looked at him and then his rings before nodded.

"I shall alert the Director of your arrival, if you would follow me to the waiting room."

"Thank you," Harry followed the goblin and mentally asked how it was possible for something so small to walk to fast. He was shown a seat and watched as the goblin disappeared in to Ragnok's office, he didn't have to wait long before he immerged and was ushered in to the office.

"Ah, Harry, good to see you, do take a seat."

"And you, Ragnok," Harry sat down with a smile,

"Would you permit me to ask why the need for construction?" Ragnok inquired, "From what I have seen of the prints, Peverell Manor is quite substantial."

"I am tuning Peverell Manor in to a werewolf sanctuary." Harry told him and grinned when Ragnok blinked in shock,

"A werewolf sanctuary?" He repeated,

"Yes, it's the least I can do and the construction is to make it more wolf friendly."

"You would use one of your own properties for this."

"Of course, I intend to fully fund the program."

"You are truly a unique wizard Harry Potter-Black." Ragnok shook his head, "Most other wizards, especially those of noble birth, would never give up one of their properties to help what they consider a lesser creature."

"I do not consider any magical race a lesser creature than myself, if they respect me then I shall respect them." Harry stated,

"What of protection?"

"I have created a ward that will allow none other than werewolves and my trusted on to the property unless I grant it once it is up and running." Harry said and Ragnok nodded impressed.

"Shall we get down to business?"

"Yes lets, time is money." Harry mirrored the director's favourite words causing him to grin.

"That is the truth." Ragnok tapped something on his desk to summon his receptionist and spoke in Gobbledegook to him, Harry caught a few of the words but languages had never been his speciality. There was another knock at the door and a gruff looking goblin entered and took the offered seat.

"Harry this is the head of construction, Grinder, he is the best we have." Ragnok introduced and Harry help out his hand to shake, he caught the surprise on the goblin's face as he took the hand and shook it.

"It is a pleasure to meet you, Master Grinder, I am sure our business will be profitable." Harry said warmly and there was open surprise on his face this time, Grinder muttered something to Ragnok in their language and Ragnok chuckled and nodded.

"Very strange indeed,"

"I do not know what sort of plan you would need, but I have written everything out." Harry said to both goblins, "I need a toilet room on every floor above ground like communal ones as well as a shower room and a bathroom. I need a few walls knocked down and some rooms extended in to the next ones." Harry handed over his plans to Grinder who looked them over and nodded.

"Take 2 weeks to complete." He said and it was Harry's turn to blink in surprise.

"Wow, that's fast." He said, "How many workers do you think you will need?"

"Two teams of 14,"

"What's the average price for something like this?"

"Age of building, work needed, materials, time and labour cost 70,000." He answered and Harry nodded, that was also a lot cheaper than he expected too.

"Double it and add a 5,000 commission to each worker as a bonus." Harry said thinking about it, it wouldn't even scratch the surface of his vault so he wasn't worth it.

"Are you sure?" Ragnok asked amazed and Harry nodded.

"Definitely, I trust your judgement and if you say these are the best then they deserve to be paid like the best." Harry stated,

"You are a very strange wizard." Grinder said and Harry grinned,

"So I've been told." He laughed, "When can you start?"

"My teams are ready, we only need materials and plans."

"Do you want me to take you to the property now so I can twist the wards to allow and your teams access, that way you can come and go as you see fit."

"You trust Goblins to work alone."

"Of course, I would only be in your way and you have not given me reason not to trust you. What could you possible do in the property you are working on?"

"Many would believe we would steal from them."

"One of the biggest crimes one can commit in a goblin's eyes is theft is it not?" Harry asked and Ragnok nodded vigorously.

"Theft equals the mines."

"Then I see no reason to worry, besides, if there is anything that peeks a goblins interest they need only ask and I'm sure we could come to an arrangement."

"I like you." Grinder stated, "You are different from any other." With that he got up and left.

"Um thanks?" Harry said to the now empty space.

"You do not understand how much respect you have earned with our race." Ragnok commented and Harry blinked.

"I don't understand why, I am not complaining nor sneering, I am genuinely confused."

"You are one of the most powerful people the in wizarding world magical and political and you and you associates treat us with nothing but respect. There are those, in the many, that are of lower standing, wealth and political backing than you and they treat us like we are not fit to share the same air as them." Ragnok sneered the last part and Harry frowned.

"It is wrong," Harry said, "They are foolish,"

"Very few share your viewpoint."

"Very few hold intelligence." He made a mental not to have all the ministry restrictions and legislations on Goblins pulled in his next meeting to see what the ministry have done to a race that should have been held in some of the highest regard.

"I believe you are correct." Grinder came back in but this time he was carrying a small box.

"Ready,"

"Would you mind me leaving from here, Ragnok?"

"No, go ahead."

"This is an unpleasant experience, but I swear it is harmless." Harry said to the goblin as he took his hand, he willed the shadows to surround him and then jumped to the gate of Peverell Manor.

"Welcome to Peverell Manor," Harry said, he gripped the iron bars of the gates and willed the wards to twist as he wished. "There," the gates swung open and they jumped to the entrance hall.

"Do you wish me to show you around or are you fine with the elves?" Harry asked,

"Elves are fine,"

"Ok, Nip," the elf popped in and bowed,

"Yes Master Harry,"

"This is Grinder, he is the head of construction and he is here to do a few modifications for me. I want you to listen to anything he says unless it will harm you, understand?"

"Yes, sir,"

"Good, tell the other elves too, I want full co-operation."

"Of course Master,"

"Wonderful, now if you need anything or want anything I am sure the elves will cater and if you need me send an elf to fine me." Harry said to the goblin,

"Ok,"

"Thank you, for doing this," Harry said and gave a short bow of respect before vanishing in to the shadows.

He landed back in his rooms and cast a tempus, he had been with Ragnok longer than he thought and it was now approaching lunch time again. Harry darted up to his room and grabbed his parchment and quills before coming in and setting up shop on his chair, he had an essay to finish and he wanted to write out a few things he wanted done. He was sure Hadrian had gotten his letter and he was hoping that the Greengrass Lord would take the obvious hint and apply for the job, it would help them because Hadrian was someone with an actual brain inside his head; one that didn't revolve around gold. He needed to speak with Tom abut a few things and he needed to give the man back the locket, although Harry did like wearing it around his neck.

He had a date for the wolves which meant he could go and speak with Ellen soon and he also had to speak with Moony, he would do that on Wednesday after he had given the inhuman amount of chocolate he had bought the wolf. It was November now which meant they had to pick up the pace, it was cutting it close and he was starting to feel the stress. He finished the last line of his conclusion and went to change, he needed to work out, but he wanted to do something physical so he decided to pick up his sparing again to get back in to shape, he felt like a slob. He disillusioned himself and went to the seventh floor, he paced in front of the blank wall and slipped inside when the door appeared; Harry grinned. It looked like a gym, there was sand bags, jump robes, a mat, a running track, a pool, hand to hand dummies and weapons. He started with a warm up, press ups, sit ups, jumping jacks and then the jump rope, he was alarmed when he was feeling slightly winded by the time he had finished.

"I am so out of shape." He grumbled. Harry started with a few laps, he used to do this for Quidditch but as he didn't take the sport anymore he made a note to start doing them again, he made four laps before moving on to the sand back. He wrapped his fists and then let all of his stress out on the back, it felt good to violently release his pent up frustrations, if this was how he felt when he hadn't toyed with Tom in two days then he Wednesday was looking like a mountain. He moved on to the combat dummies and started to spar, Harry was pleased to note he fell back in to the familiar movements with ease. His stamina wasn't as it used to be, but he pushed himself until his legs were shaking and he dropped to he knees panting.

"Better than can be expected," He muttered pulling himself up. He finished up by running one more lap before downing a bottle of water and heading back to his rooms and getting straight in the shower. Harry went in to his kitchen and leant against the counter, his mind was still whirling too much for him to focus on his plans but he didn't know what to do.

"Winky." He called suddenly, an idea coming to mind.

"Master Harry called,"

"Can you bring me some flour, caster sugar, vanilla, light brown sugar, white chocolate chips and some butter please?"

"Yes, sir," She popped away and the ingredients appeared on the counter. He pulled out a bowl and began working on a recipe which was ingrained to his brain, he worked almost absently humming to himself and he didn't even notice Luna was there until she sat on the breakfast stool.

"Baking cookies?"

"Yes, I felt like bringing forth old past times."

"You'll be back in about 25 minutes, its approaching dinner."

"I know, these will be done in 10 and then I'll disappear for a bit." He told her and she nodded. Luna stayed and watched as Harry effortlessly made the cookies and used magic to bake them.

"I don't mind if I do," Luna said helping herself to one, Harry rolled his eyes.

"Would you like a cookie?" He asked rhetorically making her giggle.

"Mmm, these are so good." She groaned and Harry smirked.

"What can I say, I have talent."

"Now shoo, we can't have two of you in the same room." Harry rolled his eyes but vanished in to the shadows and went to the chamber to read. He had a few hours until 9:30 so he busied himself with looking over some of his past workings and familiarising himself with it again. It was an odd feeling, relearning your own work, but one he had read about his spells and other things, it was like he had known it all the time; it was strange. There was one particular spell he was interested in, it was one of his more vicious ones, and he didn't know where he was going to use it, but he made a note of it.

Hey, I've had my first lesson with the fool and my meeting with Ragnok, he sent to Swift and Paws, I'm on timeturner time,

What did lemons want? Swift asked.

Teaching me about Tom, it isn't anything good,

His


Yep,

Wonderful, Swift sighed and Harry felt Paws enter the conversation.

So the goblins agreed your plans?

Yes, thankfully,

When can they begin, we know they are not interested in human needs. She said and Harry grinned, the others would never understand goblins and him.

They have already began, working now actually

What!

Yes, it was simple enough, Harry said and he felt Paws' exasperation.

I'll never understand you.

Course you won't, I don't even understand me!

He had a point, Paws, Swift added,

I know, that's what's frustrating,

I've decided to restart my physical training, I am so out of shape, so I would recommend it. Harry told them,

I was going to talk to you about that, can you still pull up a training room? Swift asked and Harry sent back a positive feeling as he answered,

I was using it today, just as good,

We'll never find time to always train together, but we'll make time for ourselves to go there, Paws said,

Best hope currently, we have to pick things up!

The thing we need is for you to stay calm, Paws stated and Harry sighed,

I am, but its hard work, especially with these lessons,

Just hold it together for two more months, we all have to,

I know, and I will,

Snake, I've gotten three names on that list so far, do you want them? Swift asked and Harry's eyes lit up.

I believe there is a hunt approaching, Harry said gleefully, Find an opening to snatch them and we'll act,

Got it,

I think I have a lead on a name for the Ravenclaw Heir, but it's still slow work and I've dug up as much as possible for the Flammels, its just going on out trip. Paws told him and Harry nodded,

That's fine, but its finding the time and place, I think we're going to be timeturnering it,

We'll manage, we always have,

Harry cast a tempus and got to his feet as he saw he had minutes to get back to his room.

I'll speak with you guys soon, he said before closing the connection and shadowing to his room dead on 9:30. Luna smiled brightly at him and held out a drink,

"Perfect,"

"Thankfully, but I'm tired, I've been training today too."

"Well, leave it half an hour and then you can go to bed." She said, "I think tomorrow will be a bit brighter."

"I hope so," Harry agreed, and he really did.


It was with major effort and will power that made Harry pull himself up and in to the shower Tuesday morning, Luna thought it was wholly amusing to listen to him complaining throughout.

"Eat some food, drink some tea and get going." Luna ordered handing him the mug and he slunk down in to the living room.

"Don't wanna,"

"Stop being a child," She said and Harry stuck out his tongue for the sake of it. He ate his breakfast and drank down the tea before kissing Luna's cheek and vanishing, he was still stared at when he got to the great hall, but it wasn't as bad and there was less whispering which he was only too thankful for. As usual, he played with his food to make it look like he was eating, his eyes scanned the room and on their own his eyes drifted over to Tom. The man's charmed eyes were looking around to room, Harry could see the man was frustrated with something and Harry had an idea what that could be. He made a mental note to ask the man what he was doing with his Death Eaters because, apart from Halloween, they had been silent. Harry looked up when their was the sound of hundreds of wings from the rafters, the post owls swooped down to their recipients and Harry held out his arm for his own paper. He paid the bird and unfolded the paper, his eyebrows shot up and he could not, for the life of him, stop the pleased smirk that came to his face when he saw the headline.

New Senior Undersecretary; Lord Hadrian Greengrass!

The best decision since removing the High Inquisitor!

Last night, after many applicants for the job, the position of Senior Undersecretary to the Minister was finally filled. The ministry, and the minister himself, has been up in arms since the sudden suicide of Madam Delores Umbridge and many were wondering who would fill that elite position.

There were many vying for such a chance, to help make the decisions of our world and automatically gain a place within the wizengamot, but the question was; who was right? After all, the person wouldn't really have to be that good at the job having Umbridge as their predecessor, but the last thing we needed was another corrupt, prejudice individual that used the position to carry out their own vendetta. There were many discussions and as I moves around the ministry, I saw many arguing over who was best, and it seemed that it was going to last for days when a final applicant came forward only to immediately gain the position. That person was Hadrian Greengrass. Hadrian Greengrass, Lord of the Ancient and Noble House of Greengrass, came forward and after a short discussion with the Minister, Madam Amelia Bones, head of the DMLE, Rufus Scrimgeor, head Auror, and Albus Dumbledore, Chief Warlock, Mr Greengrass was given the position. I managed to track down Mr Greengrass to get his opinion of his new position and how he was going to help our world (See Picture), he said;

I am extremely pleased to have been granted this position. Of course, it is tragic what happened to Madam Umbridge, but I believe it was her time to leave the ministry for she was no longer the best person for the position. I will strive for what is best for the wizarding world as a whole and not just myself, and I will do my best to move us out of the dark cloud Madam Umbridge has left us in.

It does look promising and, if he can keep to his words, our world will be seeing some changes very soon!

More on Hadrian Greengrass, P4,

More on what Umbridge left behind, P6,

Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondent to the Daily Prophet,

He couldn't believe it. He may have been wishing Hadrian would apply and get the job, but he didn't actually believe he would get the position as more of a neutral dark opposed to neutral light. Better yet, Dumbledore had approved and, as Harry looked up at the Headmaster, the man was actually pleased with it. This was perfect! Hadrian Greengrass would be a force to be reckoned with, he almost wanted to cackle. He felt several sets of eyes on him and he looked up first to meet Luna's which were alight with pleasure and he let his own show. He turned to see Draco's inquiring eyebrow and he nodded once to let him know he would speak with him in potions, which he had today, and then he turned to the Dark Lord who was looking at him with a look that demanded an answer to his obvious question of; Did you do this? Harry let a small smirk curl on to his face and sent a hellava lot of smug satisfaction through their link, Tom blinked once and then twice before sending back a feeling that Harry could only describe as; How in Merlin's name!? Harry had to cover his grin as he sent through simplicity and he nearly snickered when he saw Tom's eye twitch, he was hit with irritation and a demanding feeling to which he sent back patience and was rewarded with a sharp stinging pain to his scar much to his amusement. He felt Paws in the back of his mind and opened the connection.

You did this. She stated and Harry found it amusing that she didn't even bother to ask.

Why do you say that? He asked curious that all of his friends had automatically assumed he had had something to do with the position.

You have only ever had good things to say about Greengrass and he one of the only people that cannot be bought, and you said his ideas for the ministry were something you would completely agree with. Paws stated and he shook his head.

I may have mentioned that the position was available and I may have mentioned that it would be good if he applied.

Why am I not surprised, Swift laughed joining the conversation,

I do not hear you both complaining! Harry huffed,

We're not, this is brilliant!

Then this is because


Just wanted to clarify that you were responsible, Paws said primly. Harry rolled his eyes and got to his feet, he had potions and Snape wasn't worth his breath, he couldn't wait to meet the man when they were at the balls, he didn't know which one he was going too, but Harry assumed it would be the Malfoy one at least. Oh it was going to be so much fun! He trooped down towards the dungeons and he felt a familiar presence come up next to him,

"Hey Bleach," Harry greeted when he was sure no one was around.

"Snake," Draco returned, "You are on a roll, aren't you?"

"This week is going to be rather full on," Harry agreed, "Tomorrow is going to be another of mine."

"Dumbledore? I can't wait!"

"I know people are going to eat it up," Harry stated,

"How did you make her death look like a suicide?" The blond asked and Harry smirked,

"That was so much fun, I'll have to show you guys," He said brightly, "But in answer, I edited a blood quill, and let's just say I'm kind of a genius."

"Death by quill?" Draco repeated incredulously and Harry snickered,

"Pretty much,"

"Wow, I'm actually impressed,"

"You should be,"

"Prat," Draco punched him in the arm, "How did you get Greengrass to take the position? He's impossible to bribe and he doesn't take well to blackmail."

"Simple, I asked him." Harry said and Draco stopped to look at him in disbelief.

"You asked him?"

"Yes. Well, I suggested that the position was open and someone like him could be highly beneficial to the ministry."

"That's it?"

"Yes, what were you expecting?" Harry asked,

"Something much more,"

"Why though, I actually like Hadrian Greengrass." Harry said and Draco shook his head.

"Only you would be able to ask someone to be Senior Undersecretary and they actually do it." Draco sighed and Harry rolled his eyes.

"You set up for tonight?" Harry asked changing the subject,

"Yes, midnight in the RoR, is it going to be everyone or just you?"

"If he is to be included then we'll be doing it properly." Harry said, "You can get the twins, Ray will get Badger and I've got mine."

"Ok," Draco said and then after a few seconds he stopped, "How come you said I can get the twins?" Harry smirked,

"I am not blind," Was all Harry said and walked further in to the dungeons leaving a spluttering blond behind. Draco finally caught up with him when they were by Snape's classroom, he threw Harry a filthy look which would have been more effective if he had not been blushing.

"I hate you."

"I know, but you should know Luna and I predicted this relationship nearly the first week back."

"I don't know how you both do it, but it's odd."

"We are odd." Harry stated,

"Don't I know it?" They couldn't speak anymore because Snape threw open the door and they walked to their normal spots. Harry fetched the needed ingredients for the draught of living death, they were going to be completing over multiple lessons.

"I knew we would be doing this." Draco said as they began preparing and Harry nodded,

"Of course," Harry said, "But we're lucky, we both know some handy shortcuts."

"Paws?"

"Of course, ask me to cast spells or play with magic then I'm good, ask me to make a potion and it really isn't my strongest point." Harry said and Draco snorted, they fell silent to concentrate on the potion and when it was at a stable point they continued their hushed conversation.

"I like how you call it playing with magic."

"What would you call it?" Harry questioned as he crushed the bean that held way too much juice for something that shrivelled.

"I don't know, but most don't do the impossible when they're 'playing'." Draco said stirring the cauldron, he added a counter clockwise stir after every seventh and it slowly began to lighten.

"Are you sure?"

"Yes, Harry,"

"Oh," Harry shrugged, he took over the stirring for Draco and put their ingredients under preservation.

"Your potions should be approaching the lighter stages waiting to become clear." Snape drawled, his voice easily carrying over the din despite its softness.

"We're ahead which will work out for the next lesson." Harry muttered, "Do you want to put this under stasis, the last time I tried it exploded." Draco snickered,

"I remember that,"

"I was pink for a week."

"Best week of my life." Draco sighed happily, Harry punched him.

"Shut it," they packed up and left the classroom, Harry was surprised, it was the most peaceful lesson of potions he could ever remember.

"I'll see you later," Harry said,

"Midnight, and I'll get my twins." Draco said as he headed off to charms, Harry chose not to call him on the additional "my" in that sentence. He headed to transfiguration, he would have his results back from his essay and he knew McGonagall wouldn't be happy, he had made sure his grade dipped down to an A so he was expecting her to call him on it; he was hoping to get an extension on all his work due to his extra lessons, that way he wouldn't have to worry about remembering them for the due dates. It was surprisingly difficult for him to drop his grades so much, especially when most of the stuff they were covering was things he had already been over. He took his seat at the back and meticulously took notes like he was supposed to, but his hand was working like a separate part of his mind because he was thinking furiously on how this meeting with Blaise Zabini would go. He didn't doubt he would be useful, he never doubted Luna's word, but he wondered how Zabini was going to be, he had only spoken to him briefly.

"Mr Potter, could you stay behind." McGonagall's voice cracked through his thoughts and his head snapped up.

"Yes, Professor," the rest of the class was packing up and he hadn't even noticed. He placed his things away and slowly approached the desk, when the final student had left the room the door was shut with a flick of McGonagall's wand and she pinned him with a stern look.

"Mr Potter, I have to tell you that I am disappointed with your latest essay." She began and Harry was alarmed at how accurate he was at his guess. "Your grade has dropped from an E to an A and I am beginning to worry that you cannot keep up with the course."

"No-no, its not that Professor," Harry said hurriedly, making sure to look the right amount of panicked.

"Then what is it, Potter, I cannot have students below an E grade in my classroom."

"I've been busy lately
" He tried and her lips thinned.

"What could you be doing which is possibly more important than your school work, Mr Potter, you have been unable to continue on the Quidditch team so you should have much more free time." She snapped and Harry blinked in shock, surely she wasn't that dim.

"You do know that I have extra lessons, right Professor?"

"Of course, you should be able to keep up with a few extra classes. What does that have to do with anything?"

"Professor, I have tutoring with Professor Drield twice or three times a week, I have Occlumency with Professor Snape once a week and I have lessons with Professor Dumbledore too. That's five days a week, plus all of my other classes, then homework given in my extra classes as well, I'm barely sleeping two nights a week!" Harry exclaimed, "I'm trying, but I have to rush most of the time, I'm getting by on my practical because I use nearly all of it with Professor Drield."

"How long have you been doing this, Potter?" McGonagall asked,

"Since the beginning of October,"

"I see, and why did you not come to me for an extension?"

"I thought I could handle it and I didn't want to seem as if I was getting special treatment." Harry muttered looking down.

"Mr Potter, you are taking on more than any other sixth year (isn't that the truth, Harry thought), you are more than qualified for an extension."

"Really?"

"Of course, you'll be granted two weeks instead of one. I will speak to your other teachers, you'll need extra time to keep up your grades."

"Thank you, Professor, really,"

"That's quite alright, Mr Potter, I expect your grades to rise back up."

"Of course, Professor,"

"Of you go,"

Harry grabbed his bag and left to grab some lunch, with his extensions he wouldn't have to worry and that would allow him some freedom. He only had Herbology left for that day so he went to the library for his free and went over the final draft for his charms essay, it was at an E because he was naturally better at charms anyway, he took after his mother in that respect. He saw Neville enter the Library and waved him over, Neville 'jumped' and scurried over.

"H-hi Harry,"

"Hey Nev, have you done your Herbology essay?" Harry asked and Neville nodded,

"Y-y-yes, w-why?"

"Could you look mine over, I always struggle with Herbology?" He didn't even have to lie; herbology was not his strongest subject.

"M-me!?" He exclaimed and then winced when Madam Pince turned her beady eyes on them, "Why m-me?"

"Because you're the best at Herbology." Harry told him earnestly, Neville squeaked and went red.

"I-I don't know, H-Harry,"

"Please, Nev, I'm falling behind."

"If y-you're s-sure."

"Thanks, you're the best." Harry pulled it out and handed it over, as Neville sat down they briefly caught eyes and had to fight back their snorts; it was hilarious acting sometimes.

"Everything seems fine for what you've w-written," Neville told him, "If you add in that the Mandrake can also be used as a poison due to it effecting the mind and having no antidote it will pull up your grade."

"Thanks," Harry did as suggested and then grinned, "You're a genius, Nev,"

"I-it was nothing,"

"Want to walk to Herbology with me?"

"S-sure." They walked down and out of the classroom and Professor Sprout greeted them cheerfully, they handed in their essays and took their spots around the centre table. They were studying much more dangerous plants and Harry had to keep his wits about him, the venomous tantacula still had a thing for his tattoo and he spent most of the lesson dodging his advances because it happened to be the one he and Neville were working on; Neville seemed to find it hilarious.

"I hate plants," Harry grumbled as he left, Neville snickered,

"They seem to really like you,"

"Shut up, Badger," Harry muttered throwing him a mutinous look.

"Yes, Snake," Neville's lips were still twitching and Harry was not impressed,

"I hate you too,"

"I'll see you later," Neville told him and they separated. Harry trooped up to his rooms and threw his things down on the table and made his way to the shower. By the time he was out and finished, Luna had returned and she was curled up on the sofa reading.

"It will be better if we leave earlier to get to the Room tonight, that way we can meet the others before Bleach brings Venom."

"Ok, oh and Draco and the twins?" He said and she looked up.

"Yes?"

"They're together,"

"Really, as in actually together!?" She repeated surprised and Harry nodded,

"He confirmed it today, called them 'my twins' and everything."

"Wow, I wonder when they'll be more open about it," She mused and Harry smirked,

"It's the twins, they'll be all over him as soon as possible."

"You make a point,"

"Of course," She rolled her eyes and Harry grinned. He leant back and jabbed at his connection with Swift and Paws,

Don't forget we have that meeting with Zabini tonight, he told them,

Midnight?

Yes, meet you on the 7 th  with Badger,

Got it, Swift replied,

Snake, I've made a breakthrough, Paws excited voice came through and Harry perked up.

Go on,

The spell that was placed on Bellatrix, I have it!

Brilliant, bring it tonight, He said,

Will do, the connection closed and Harry looked at Luna with a pleased grin,

"Paws has found the spell cast on Bellatrix," He told her and she smiled,

"That's wonderful Harry,"

"Yes, I can't wait to see what it was and what it does."

"With Dumbledore, who knows?" She shuddered and Harry grimaced.

"That's what I'm worried about." He sighed,

"You'll find out tonight,"

 

Chapter 19

Notes:

Please Read the tags

Un'Beta'd

Parsel is bold italics

Chapter Text

Chapter 19;

"Harry, will you pick a pair of shoes already, I only left three options." Luna said in exasperation, Harry huffed.

"You know this is completely your fault, you were the one that got me in to fashion and design!"

"Well no one else was going to make sure you looked as good as possible."

"Then don't complain," Harry returned coming down in a pair of black Converse, he didn't like the hightop version of them so Luna had introduced him to the lower ones which he didn't mind at all. "There,"

"Finally," She sighed, "Have you got the map?"

"Of course. Ravenclaw on patrol tonight, and the ones on the seventh floor are at the left side."

"Let's go," Harry grabbed Luna and used the shadows to get to the seventh floor, he kept them hidden as the two prefects walked past and around the corner. Harry stepped forward and walked in front of the wall three times thinking clearly of the room he wanted, when the door appeared Luna came forward and the pair of them vanished in to the room. Harry kept the map open and he watched as Badger slipped out of the Gryffindor common room in and changed in to his animagus form to scurry down the corridor.

"Twins are here," Luna pointed out and Harry's eyes snapped to the two wild cats running through the dungeons to collide with a certain blond who tried, and failed, to scowl at them. Zabini was snickering at his friend's predicament and it only increased when the cats changed in to the grinning twins, they couldn't hear what was being said but both twins got a punch and Zabini a slap around the head. The door opened and Neville slipped in,

"Swift and Paws are on their way, they've had one of their usual Ron and Hermione arguments so have been glaring at each other all night until Paws 'stormed' to bed." Badger told them throwing himself down on a seat, the room was a replica of Harry's rooms which few extra chairs and a few more personal touches.

"I don't miss those." Harry said with a grin, "They need to hurry up," he sent them a prod of impatience and received a mental acceptance. He saw Swift leave first and vanish under a disillusion, he was soon followed by Paws who, Harry was surprised to note, had gotten her secondary mode of transport back and appeared on the seventh floor and stepped in to the room.

"You too?"

"Yes, I don't know what it was, but it was like I had a feeling in my magic and when I willed it to happen, it just did." Paws explained shaking her head,

"I know, I had the same urge and it couldn't have come at a better time."

"I wish mine would hurry up." Swift grumbled waling in, "I can feel it, but its like its tucked away,"

"It'll come, just don't force it," Harry said and Swift nodded,

"I won't,"

"Heads up, their approaching the room." Luna called, Harry took the chair in the middle and the other two were claimed by Swift and Paws, Raven and Badger took the sofa on the right leaving the sofa on the left for Draco and the twins and the final chair for Zabini. The door opened and the twins entered skipping followed by Draco who was rolling his eyes at their antics, a fond smile on his face, and Zabini who seemed wholly amused by it all. As soon as the door shut Harry sealed the room, there would be no one getting in or out of the room without his express permission. He closed the map as they sat down, he saw Tom in a staff meeting and sent a dose of sympathy to the man who, Harry didn't know how, knew exactly where their charms were and sent a brief glare at it before focusing his attentions back to whatever Dumbledore was saying, Harry smirked and he also seen another version of Tom in his rooms as the Dark Lord just as he apperated out; there must be a DE meeting.

"Good evening, Blaise Zabini, and welcome." Harry began setting the map down, his eyes were taking in every detail of the Zabini heir and he did like what he saw. He noted that Zabini, while he was focussing mainly on Harry, his eyes often strayed over to Swift and Harry could see the shock and desire in the startling blue eyes.

"I am glad to be here." Zabini answered and Harry smirked.

"I have it on good authority that you could and would be a brilliant asset for me – us – and that you were interested in joining us." Harry said, "What say you?"

"I think that I could be a helpful number to your group." Zabini said carefully, "I
 hear things, I can get information that should be impossible and I have a set of talents that can be
 deadly." Harry's smirk stretched at that, oh he had no doubt that the famous, or rather infamous, Black Widow had passed on her knowledge to her son. He would have to be careful though, if Blaise was interested in Swift then they would have to have eyes on him because if anything happened to Swift then Zabini would be dead before he could even deny his actions; Harry would make sure to warn him.

"I see," He said instead of voicing his inner thoughts, "And do you know what we are doing?"

"I have my suspicions."

"Go on,"

"I believe you are working on destroying Dumbledore," Blaise said, "After what I witnessed at the ball, I cannot help but notice your day to day life is nothing but an act. Most wouldn't, there are many that believe the ball was you spying for the light, but most are not as sensitive to magic as I and you can't fake darkness." Harry decided that he liked Blaise, the teens honestly was a great way to get in to Harry's good books, if there was one thing he could not stand it was lies despite him being a master at it. It was probably one of his most hypocritical traits, but he lied to keep him and his alive, others lies to benefit themselves and Harry reassured himself that he only lies when necessary. He shared a look with Luna who nodded discretely and then at Badger who blinked once in agreement, he then turned to his mental connection,

What do you think?

He's honest, something that is a rarity, Paws said, And he could come in handy, especially when we want to pick off some of the more annoying Order Members and ministry officials.

I was thinking the same, Harry agreed, Swift?

I think he could help us, it would be another set of eyes in the snake pit and another source of knowledge and that is something we can never have another.

So he's in?

He's in! Harry smiled slightly and nodded to Zabini,

"Consider yourself a part of the group Blaise," Harry said, "And your new name is Venom,"

"Venom?" Blaise repeated confused.

"Your animagus is a rattle snake, is it not?" Harry asked and grinned when Blaise looked shocked.

"How did you know?"

"Raven," Harry said simply, motioning to Luna. Blaise blinked a few times and turned to Draco questioningly, but Draco just shook his head.

"You will get used to it," The blond reassured, "Just know that whatever Raven says is the truth, it will happen and just accept that she knows."

"Right then,"

"Wonderful," Harry clapped his hands together, "Now for proper introductions. We have Ron is Swift and Hermione is Paws, Luna is Raven, Nev is Badger, the twins are Manic for Fred and Panic for George, Bleach is Draco and I'm Snake. I solemnly swear that we are pleased to welcome you to the group."

"I have a feeling things are going to get very interesting." Blaise said and the smirks he received were anything but reassuring.

"Oh you have no idea." The twins said gleefully,

"There are a few things you need to know," Paws said, she was hiding her glee better than the twins but it was there in her eyes.

"Ok,"

"The first is about our current Defence Professor," Swift continued,

"Is he dark or something?" Blaise asked and the others couldn't help their laughs.

"He's not just dark." Harry said, "He's the Dark Lord." Blaise blinked once, then he blinked again, he opened his mouth to try and speak but words seemed to fail. Neville looked at him in sympathy,

"I know, I felt the same way,"

"You mean to tell me that the Dark Lord is currently teaching me Defence against the Dark Arts?" Blaise said incredulously,

"Yes, very successfully actually," Luna confirmed, and when no one told him it was a joke he released a shaky breath.

"Oh Merlin and Morgana," He muttered, "How?"

"I honestly have no idea, but it was Dumbledore that gave Tom his interview." Harry shrugged,

"Tom?"

"The Dark Lord," Harry clarified,

"The Dark Lord's name is Tom?"

"Yes, but for the love of Merlin don't let him hear you say that, there is no doubt in my mind that he will kill you." Harry warned and Blaise nodded hurriedly,

"Noted,"

"Now, on to other things," Paws said dragging the meeting back, "I am sure you have been following the papers,"

"You are behind the Dumbledore articles!" Blaise exclaimed, "I knew it!"

"Yes, as well as Hadrian Greengrass' sudden position and the death of Umbridge."

"So it wasn't a suicide?"

"Oh no," There was nothing nice about Harry's smile, "It was definitely not suicide."

"What did you do?" Blaise questioned intrigued, to make a high ranking ministry official's death look like a suicide was impressive.

"Yeah, Snake, you didn't tell us what you did to the amphibian." The twins said, "Do inform us."

"Death by quill, wasn't it?" Draco said amused and Harry grinned a shark like grin,

"It was beautiful," He said, "Remember that thing I was working on, back last year, just after Sirius and before we were obliviated again?"

"Yes, you were playing again." Swift remembered, "It was a weapon?"

"I dismantled and edited a blood quill." He told them and watched as their eyes lit up.

"And what interesting features did you put on to such a thing?" Paws asked,

"Would you care to see? I do warn you, Tom and I had so much fun." They all shared a look before turning to Harry with smirks.

"Get a pencieve,"

Harry closed his eyes and a stunning stone basin appeared in front of him, he focussed on the memory and drew it out. With a casual flick of his wand he projected the memory to play for all of them, Harry sat back and relished in it, he didn't think he could ever get tired of seeing this particular woman die.

"Snake, that was beautiful," Paws stated, she had a gleam in her eyes that made Harry smirk, it was mirrored in the others eyes and it was what called them to the dark.

"You are kind of a genius," Draco agreed, "That quill is positively nasty and you were particularly vicious."

"Stop before I start blushing," Harry said mock bashfully and then laughed when he received snorts.

"Shall we have an update?" Swift suggested and Harry nodded.

"Floor's yours, Paws."

"Ok, well I was reading some of the old scrolls you got for me Snake, I know where you got those too, so don't even go there with you 'happened' across them." Harry grinned unashamed, "And it was nearly faded and it was almost covered in what I am assuming is blood." She pulled out the scroll and unrolled it to show them.

"Is that English?" Swift asked squinting to see the tiny words.

"No, and I had to consult Moony to help me translate it. Its ancient Greek and it's a very old curse created by a man who was jealous of his brother when he won the affections of a girl they both sought after. He wanted his brother to lose the girl by his own hand and so he created a spell of illusions, but it isn't one like I have ever seen. It's a permanent illusion and it works on inversions, friends become enemies, love becomes hate and so on, it changes everything and the person doesn't notice because it has to be triggered. It can be keyed in to anything, a person, a name, even something as simple as word." Hermione explained to them and Harry's eyes narrowed,

"So family would become an outsider and an enemy?"

"Yes,"

"And the trigger can be switched?"

"Yes, its like a switch." She said and Harry cursed,

"What about the counter."

"That's the problem," She groaned frustrated, "I was continued reading and, while the spell incantation was there and the instructions on how to cast it, the counter wasn't. It seems that the wizard forgot the trigger word and accidently said it while alone with his brother and he was killed."

"So Bellatrix Lestrange has been cursed to believe the opposite whenever something is done around her to activate the trigger, Bellatrix Lestrange, the woman who is one of the most feared Death Eaters in existence, the woman who practically apprenticed under the Dark Lord and one of the most powerful women in our world currently, and we have absolutely no idea what this trigger is." Badger summarised and, by their expressions, Harry knew they were all thinking the same thing.

"Well fuck,"

"But things don't make sense, didn't you chase her after she killed Sirius and she was mocking you." Swift pointed out,

"And that was what I was going to come to next," Paws said, "Dumbledore's twisted the spell, the incantation is the same, but there is loopholes in the casting that allow for changes. I think Dumbledore keyed the intent of the illusion in to certain people, maybe even a certain person, we can't be sure."

"So minus knowing what the curse does, it's a complete unknown?" Harry said and Paws nodded,

"I've looked in to everything I could find on that time and it just repeats when I've already read."

"This is something," Harry reassured her, "We know what we're working with. Do you know if it's a mind spell?"

"Yes, but it doesn't seem to be one that you can throw off like the Imperius." She sighed, "It embeds the illusion deep in to the subconscious, even through Legilimency you would see what the victim saw and it can't be countered with Veritaserum."

"Ok, can you copy your translations of everything so I can study it?"

"Already done," She passed him over a copy and he nodded in thanks,

"I start to work on that soon, I'm sure Tom will be filled with joy when he finds out." Harry said and Bleach scoffed.

"Please, it is common knowledge that Aunt Bella is his one of his most trusted and most favoured Death Eater, he is going to be livid."

"I swear I'm always the bringer of bad news." Harry grumbled,

"I wonder why?" Raven said dryly and Harry smirked,

"It has its perks,"

"Sure it does,"

"What else have we got going on?"

"Well, somehow we now have a competent person in the ministers office." Badger said and Harry nodded,

"I am waiting for a reply from Hadrian, I have no doubt it will arrive by the weekend. I was so glad he took my suggestion."

"I'm still shocked at that." Bleach said and Harry shrugged,

"He didn't have to,"

"No, but if you hadn't mentioned it, no doubt we would have had another pathetic cretin in the position." He countered and Harry smirked,

"What can I say, it's a talent."

"Is there anything else coming out about Dumbledore?" Blaise asked and Harry grinned rather viciously,

"Front page tomorrow."

"Wonderful,"

"You should look forward to it."

"You know, I find it awful that all the information collected has been shared apart from the things you've found out about Dumbledore." Paws said and Harry grinned unashamed,

"Its much more fun this way,"

"I've brought the names of the first three," Swift remembered handing over the sheet,

"The first two should be easy to extract," Harry said copying the sheet and giving it to the twins who grinned,

"Ah the ministry, our favourite place to be,"

"How are you not getting caught?" Badger asked and the twins shared smirks.

"Ask us no questions and we shall tell you no lies." They responded and he shook his head,

"Never mind,"

"We can set something up, it'll take about a week, but we can let you know any changes." Manic told Harry, who looked pleased,

"Brilliant, work your magic gentlemen." He agreed, "The last one is a bit more difficult, but I know exactly how to deal with him."

"I continue with the rest," Swift said,

"We've got the mail ward sorted, we're in observation so it should be ok to come off next week." George said, "That way all of your mail will be going to you will Dumbledore remains oblivious."

"That means I can finally accept you in to the House of Prewett." Ron said happily and the twins grinned.

"Gred and Forge Prewett," They said together, "We like it,"

"Prewett?" Zabini repeated,

"Oh yes, I forgot about that," Harry said, "Ron is no longer Ron Weasley, but Ron Prewett, Lord to the Ancient and Noble House of Prewett, Hermione Granger is now Hermione McKinnon, Lady to the Ancient and Noble House of McKinnon and I am Harry Potter-Black, Lord to the Ancient and Noble House of Potter, Black, Peverell and Lord to the Presidential House of Gryffindor."

"Holy mother of Circe," Blaise yelped, "Where did the last two come from?"

"There has always been a long standing rumour that the Potters came from the Gryffindor line, turns out it was not a rumour, and as for Peverell, that was just a lucky bonus."

"So you have those four, Malfoy, Longbottom, Lovegood, McKinnon and Prewett on side?"

"Along with Slytherin, and Gaunt if its still active, and I'm pretty sure Greengrass would back me if it came to it." Harry added,

"When are you entering the arena, this is going to be thrilling." Blaise asked eagerly,

"Hopefully the first session after Yule," Swift said,

"This is so much better than the connections my father built up." Blaise said,

"Allied with Selwyn and Bulstrode isn't he?"

"Yes, its ridiculous." Blaise shook his head, "It is a shame my Italian family stayed in Italy, the Marcellus name is much more influential."

"Yes, but you come in to your majority soon, is your father not stepping down?"

"No, Zabini cause states that unless the current Lord is deemed unworthy or dead, they keep the lordship until I am 21." Blaise sighed,

"That sucks." Harry said,

"It wouldn't be so bad if my father had an ounce of common sense, he doesn't see that siding with the likes of Selwyn is dragging us down."

"Why don't you just get rid of him?" Harry asked puzzled and Paws hit him.

"You can't say that," She chided and Harry looked confused,

"Why not?"

"That's his father!" Harry continued to give her the same blank look and she sighed, "Killing is not always the answer, lets just leave it at that."

"Lets get back on track, shall we?" Badger said amused, "Mail ward next week and wolf hunting to match, how is the wolf project going?"

"Renovations are currently in progress, it should be done in two weeks which means I can go and speak to Ellen and we can send word out soon." Harry said pleased, "I need to tell Moony,"

"Don't forget the chocolate." Raven told him and Harry nodded,

"Definitely not,"

"Moony?"

"Remus Lupin, my honorary uncle,"

"Ah right, and the chocolate?"

"He has a slight addiction to it." Harry answered and Blaise nodded,

"I'll remember that."

"He's currently residing in the Gryffindor rooms. Draco can take you up there, you'll have access to them whenever you want, but do be careful when going, it really wouldn't be good if you were followed."

"You found Gryffindor's secret rooms?"

"Yes, and the Slytherin ones."

"I can't wait to see them,"

"Well, Snake is the only one who can take you down there, actually, he's the only one who would take you down there, but your more than welcome to ask the Dark Lord." Swift said and Blaise backtracked,

"Whenever Snake is ready,"

"I don't see why you're all so afraid of Tom," Harry shook his head, "Sure the man has a slight temper, maybe a few anger issues and can be a tad homicidal, but really, he's quite pleasant. He's got a brilliant sense of humour and is wicked smart."

"You know, Snake, you probably should have started with the last line first, everything else did, in no way, reassure any of us." Paws told him seriously,

"Really?"

"Not even a little bit." Badger agreed,

"Well I tried," Harry sighed, "It's his fault really, I think it's the overwhelming arrogance that puts people off."

"Did he just
" Blaise trailed off looking at Harry as if he had lost his mind.

"What, insult the Dark Lord?" The twins clarified, "Yeah, he does that a lot."

"Is he insane?"

"You think that's bad? Try have him insult the Dark Lord to the man's face." Swift snickered,

"He also baits him, mocks him, aggravates him, chides him and orders him." Luna added and Blaise looked a little ill, well so did the rest of them as they didn't realise just what Harry got up to with the Dark Lord.

"How are you still breathing?"

"It's my charm." Harry deadpanned before grinning,

"Is it safe to be around him?" Blaise asked genuinely serious and they others burst out laughing.

"Its Harry, of course not,"

"He has this wonderful friend, her name is fate, yeah, and she has a real thing for him." Fred joked,

"We think he had an affair with her in a past life and this is the penalty," George continued, and they all laughed while Harry pouted,

"I hate you all."

"We know,"

"Final thing," Harry said forcing their attentions back, "I had my first lesson with the old fool and he believes showing me memories is going to help me defeat the great and powerful Dark Lord,"

"Really?"

"Yes," Harry nodded, "He's after the key to Tom's immortality,"

"Oh dear,"

"That could be a problem,"

"What are you going to do?"

"I'm going to speak to him tomorrow, this is obviously a big thing and no doubt it will be another thing that adds to his joy."

"Maybe you should sweeten him up first, Snake?" Bleach suggested and Harry smirked,

"I have every intention to,"

"I feel as if I'm missing something." Blaise said slowly and Swift grinned,

"You forgot again, Snake,"

"Oh yeah," He turned to Zabini, "I'm currently sleeping with the Dark Lord." The Italian started choking on his own spit.

"I'm sorry,"

"Yeah, I had the same reaction to that as well." Badger told him,

"Anything else that I need to know?"

"No, nothing," Harry said tilting his head in thought, "Oh actually, this is not a threat, just a promise by the way. But if you betray us or in any way go against me, you'll end up like Parkinson."

"That was you!"

"Yes, and I took every pleasure in doing so." Harry stated,

"I'll keep that in mind."

"Wonderful."

"I think that's it," Luna said,

"Yes, I believe so." Harry agreed, "Anything else, guys?"

"Oh, the Seal is in full activation and the word has been spread," Draco said, "Your covered,"

"Thank Merlin for that." Harry sighed, he got to his feet and tucked Luna under his arm, "I was thinking about adding Badger, Bleach and Venom to our communication if they wish, its something for them to think on and I'm sure the twins will explain when they walk Draco back the dungeons." Harry dodged the pillow aimed for his face by the blushing blond and grinned. "I'm not sorry,"

"How long?" The twins asked,

"Almost the first week back." Harry and Luna answered together,

"Why are we not surprised?"

"Because we're amazing,"

"I'll let you know by the end of the week," Neville said, "Luna'll have explained it properly for me by then."

"Alright Nev,"

"Same for me, Snake," Draco said,

"I'll see you guys later, I hope you enjoy the article." The two Slytherins and the twins left, Harry turned to the other two. "That went well,"

"I think so," Paws agreed, "I'll see you in the morning,"

"Night, Paws,"

"You approve of Zabini?" Swift asked and Harry nodded,

"He'll be great,"

"Yeah, I think so too. See you in the morning," Swift left with a thoughtful expression on his face and so he completely missed Harry and Luna's smirks,

"We could make money out of this." Luna said with a laugh,

"We'd be great," Harry agreed, "Ready to go?"

"Yes, I'm exhausted and I don't want to miss the article." Harry tightened his arm and let the shadows take them.


Despite the fact that he had to go to the great hall and endure all the staring and whispers that still remained, Harry was extremely excited Wednesday morning when he woke up. He happily made himself breakfast after talking Winky in to allowing him to do so, he cheerfully greeted Luna with tea and food, he joyfully showered, dressed and applied his glamour and he merrily skipped out of his portrait hole and down to the great hall. Dumbledore, Harry decided, had been looking too cheerful and so this article could not be at a better time. So far this week, minus the whole staring issue, it had been a very good week and this was only going to add to it, so it was in that frame of mind that Harry took his seat at the end of the Lion table and waited for the mail to arrive.

This article was going to be great, it was one of the best, while the last one had been shocking and terrible, this one was set to be shocking and vicious, he almost cackled. He got a brief sense of questioning from Tom and had to bite back a smirk, he sent back as much anticipation as humanly possible and he saw the Dark Lord smirk slightly. It seemed to take forever, but finally the mail arrived and Harry had to force himself not to snatch at the paper when the bird landed, instead he carefully took it, paid the animal, and led it out in front of himself almost disinterestedly. When he saw the front page however, his disinterested air because difficult to hold, on the front of the paper was a picture of an arrogant looking woman with a look that screamed 'I am superior' on her face, he didn't know where she got her pictures from, but Rita was brilliant.

The Truth About Dumbledore;

The Mother,

Where The Ideas Were Nursed,

With the revelations of Percival Dumbledore previously, I had many questions on my mind, first of which; who was the woman that married a monster? Was she merely a victim of a bad marriage or was she also hiding dark secrets that she passed on to her children? And if she did, what else could Albus Dumbledore possibly be hiding?

We now know that Percival Dumbledore was convicted of muggle attacks and died in Azkaban, but what we have yet to discover is how that effected the family he left behind because of his sick nature. The Dumbledore Matriarch, Kendra Dumbledore, was left to repair the tatters of the Dumbledore reputation and to raise three young children alone. She fled to the village of Godrics Hollow, where we now know Dumbledore would meet his lover, and started again appearing as many thought a happy family. The secrets began then because even though there were 3 children in the home, no one remembers seeing young Arianna and rumours quickly circulated of an illness, but she was never checked in or seen by anyone in St Mungos. Kendra Dumbledore was a muggleborn, although it seemed as if she was ashamed of that fact and tried to remove herself of that label as she 'pretended otherwise'. She was described, by those who knew her, as 'terrifying', 'proud' and 'very domineering'.

While her other children attended Hogwarts, Kendra was at home looking after her sick daughter, however many believed that Arianna Dumbledore was a squib and it was said that she was kept hidden out of shame. One person I interviewed, who wishes to remain anonymous, told me, 'she was the sort of witch who would have been mortified to produce a squib.' That began my search in to what Kendra Dumbledore was really like, and it was shocking what I found. It seemed that her disassociation with being muggleborn went deeper than just 'pretending otherwise' and she was a firm believer in pureblood supremacy. Not only highly hypocritical given her own blood status, but also highly discriminative against her own children and could be behind the disappearance of Arianna Dumbledore. Kendra's true colours only seemed to have immerged when they has settled in to Godrics Hollow and by that time, both elder boys had already started attending Hogwarts and were known to the world. Unfortunately for young Arianna, she was not yet old enough to attend the great school and when her father was imprisoned she was left to face the unjust and prejudiced actions from her mother alone.

What happened in that house is unknown, but it is clear that Kendra became more and more outspoken against those of non-pureblood decent and muggles and even went as far as to claim she was a pureblood, a daughter from the Noble House of Thomas, an American house that was not known in this country and because of her appearance, which resembled a native American she was believed. She continued her lies and her secrecy until Albus' 7 th  year of Hogwarts, Dumbledore was said to be a gifted student and he had aspirations to travel the world, his plans were crushed when he received a message of his mothers tragic demise. Kendra Dumbledore's death was sudden and unexpected, shaking the little village because of the mysterious nature in which it occurred. As it was, Kendra was at home 'looking after' her daughter when there was an explosion and Kendra ended up dead. Many speculated that it was a backfired spell, but those who remembered Kendra's cold personality and sometimes cruel attitudes believe that Arianna finally had enough of her mother's endless attacks and fought back ending in her death.

What happened to that poor girl under Kendra's care is not known, neither is the true nature of Kendra's death, but what we can obtain from these mysterious happenings is that it wasn't just his father Albus got his wizard-dominating beliefs from. Kendra Dumbledore was the master of secrets and lies and it seems to be a prominent trait she has passed on to her eldest son. With a muggle attacking monster of a father and a prejudice, deceitful, secretive mother, it is no wonder why the young Albus Dumbledore grew to love the equally disturbed Grindlewald and planned for a wizard over muggle rule. What we need to know now is if anything else could be hidden in the Dumbledore closet that could be aiding the said-to-be hero now and if we need to worry about him revealing his true colours like his parents before him eventually did.

Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondence to the Daily Profit.

He had done it again. Complete and utter silence settled within the hall and Harry took a moment to bask in it, oh the sound was beautiful. He looked up at the headmaster and was actually startled by the amount of rage in his usually twinkling blue eyes, he was furious and actually seemed to be shaking in the effort to control himself. Harry bit back a smile. He knew the exact moment when Tom had finished reading because he was hit with so much incredulity, amusement, disbelief and utter glee that it forced him to look down to cover his expression.

When he looked up the whispering had began and people were looking up at the old man in disgust, it was one thing to keep quiet about blood, but a whole other thing to outright lie about it. Harry knew that the purebloods would be outraged that 'filth' dared pretend to be one of them, the halfbloods would find it a joke because Dumbledore was a halfblood and the muggleborns would be horrified and scared that the champion of light was linked to a blood supremacist.

Well done, Snake, well done indeed, He could hear Swift's mental clap and almost grinned,

It does have a certain ring to it, He agreed,

This one packs a hellava punch,

I think you've touched a nerve though? Paws pointed out and Harry could see the old man's fury building as he gripped the paper.

It gets better, Harry assured them,

How?

Just you wait, He cut the connection and slipped out of the hall just in time to see Dumbledore storm out of the side door as the noise in the hall rose to Quidditch level. Rita was getting a raise, he decided as he all but skipped down the corridor. He couldn't wait for his defence lesson later and so he happily made his way to charms, it was all he could do to keep the grin off of his face, but he was pretty sure that was more to do with the fact Tom seemed to be completely elated. His morning lessons passed quickly and he made his way to the great hall only to fight a smile when he say the old fool wasn't present, he was the main point of conversation and everyone seemed to have forgotten the Halloween attack, or at least his part in it anyway which was more than alright for him.

His final lesson of the day was defence which he went to after he had his free in the library, he finished his potions essay to an E standard and tucked it away before heading up to the defence corridor. Ron and Hermione were already outside when he approached and they traded smirks which vanished as the rest of the class arrived, Professor Drield welcomed them in to his room delightedly and Harry almost broke down laughing at that, it seemed this article had really raised Tom's spirits.

They were going to be beginning silent casting now, something that they should have started before Halloween but they were, for those who were not in the DA, painfully behind on their defence practical and so the Professor had to drag them up to scratch. They would be starting on their first year spells and moving up, it was something that required a lot of concentration; unless you were Harry. He just seemed to have a connection with his magic, even Hermione said she had to have some degree of concentration to cast silently cast, oh she was amazing at it, as was Swift, but they couldn't work magic like Harry could. Harry had fun silently jinxing everyone around the classroom, but once again, Hermione didn't find it amusing when he started with her and so he hastily stopped and pretended to concentrate on silently casting.

He had remembered to speak the words when he first duelled in front of everyone weeks back, but he could make it seem as if he was more advanced and put it down to tutoring, that would be easier and he was expected to be ahead in defence. Thankfully, the lesson came to an end and Professor Drield dismissed everyone with a word to practice their silent casting, Harry made sure to be the last one up and when he reached the door it shut on its own accord and he felt the wards flare up. His glamour was removed and he felt a strong set of hands grip his hips as he was pressed up against a firm chest, he bit his lip to stop any sounds coming from him as his neck was kissed and bitten, but he gasped when a particular spot was bitten.

"Such a temptation," Icy breath ghosted over his skin and Harry sucked in air through his teeth, he chose to ignore the fact that he had missed this despite it only being three days, and instead focussed on the feeling that only one person could bring. He allowed the shadows to come to him and move them to a much more comfortable area; Tom's rooms.

He was span around and pressed back against the bedroom door, he looked up to see dark ruby eyes running all over him as his robes and shirt vanished with the shadows. When their lips met it was an assault of fiery passion, one of Tom's hands locked on to the back of Harry's head while the other stayed on his hips as he devoured him, Harry released a low moan in the back of his throat as he relinquished control. He pushed his hips forward making Tom groan at the friction, his hand slid down to Harry's leg and hitched it over his hip bringing them closer and Harry responded by wrapping his other leg around him and grinding himself down. Tom's head dropped back with a pleased moan and Harry took the opportunity to attack the man's neck, he vanished the robes and shirt with a twist of his wrist and bit down on the pale skin.

Harry trailed his way back up Tom's neck and kissed him, he sucked on his tongue and used the distraction to map out every part of Tom's mouth much to his pleasure. The door he was pressed against was practically kicked open and Harry soon found himself on the bed with Tom pinning him down, he gasped when Tom began to kiss and bite down his chest and Harry arched slightly when his nipple was bitten. He was getting lower and Harry cried out when his tongue dipped in to his navel and along his tattoo, it made his body burn with desire and the rest of his clothes vanished as Tom continued his assault.

"Fuck!" He cried when a hot mouth covered his erection. Tom had a gift, Harry decided, one of his hands gripped the sheets below him while the other went to Tom's hair, "Shit, Tom," Harry couldn't help the loud moan that he released when Tom hummed around him, it sent vibrations through his entire body bringing him closer to the edge. It didn't take long before he was shouting Tom's name as he came and the man was up and kissing him again, Harry had barely caught his breath and he could taste himself on Tom. He could feel the man's lust and desire and it was so high that it was nearly painful, he bit the man's lip drawing a low hiss,

Fuck me, He murmured, Do whatever you want to me, Harry felt the magic preparing him and thanked his stars that Tom wasn't going to torture him this time. Harry felt his body arch up when he was thrust in to, he felt the burn and relished in it urging Tom to move so he could ride out the pain. Tom gripped his hips hard as he began to thrust in to him at a furious pace, Sso tight, Ssnake he hissed as Harry released a sharp yell when his spot was hit.

Shit Tom, there, right there, FUCK!Harry dug his nails in to Tom's shoulder with enough strength to draw blood, Tom growled at the feeling and changed angles to go deeper in to his willing lover. Heat was coiling in his stomach as his prostate was abused and he was nearly there, H-harder, fuck, sso close. Harry came hard and his muscles clamped down almost painfully around Tom bringing him over the edge with a shout, he felt Tom pull out and collapse down next to him panting just as much as he was.

"Interesting effects banning contact," Harry muttered after a minute, Tom scoffed,

"You ever do that again and I won't be responsible for my actions."

"It was only three days!"

"This place is a nightmare! And if I torture anymore of my Death Eaters then I won't have any left." Tom pointed out,

"I suppose you do have a point, I can't exactly begin torturing students and I have to watch my step with the old fool." Harry mused, "I guess the ban wasn't my best idea."

"You don't say." He drawled sarcastically.

"You could teach that, you make it an art." Harry commented with a grin, Tom rolled his eyes. Harry pulled himself up and looked over his shoulder at Tom, the man was stupidly gorgeous and he couldn't help licking his lips at the sight of him sprawled out on the bed naked; it was a very nice sight. Tom caught his eyes and smirked, he pulled him down for a heated kiss and Harry groaned,

"I want a shower," He murmured and Tom made a noise of disagreement, "Care to join me?" Harry watched somewhat amused as Tom's eyes glazed over before going dark. Tom registered what Harry said and froze, Harry, completely naked, under hot running water; that was something he was very interested in seeing. Harry got up and sauntered away knowing he would be joined momentarily, as soon as Tom got his mind relatively clear that was anyway, and he wasn't wrong. As soon as the water started running he felt Tom come up behind him and turned to face him, Harry knew his eyes went all but black at the sight. Tom under running water was
 he couldn't find the right words but he summed it up by pulling him in for a fierce kiss.

Harry didn't give Tom a chance to take control and Harry admitted to cheating to gain the upper hand by wrapping his hand around Tom's hard cock and squeezing lightly, in retaliation Tom forced him back against the wall and lifted him up causing him to gasp and allowing Tom to gain back his usual control; not that Harry minded at all. He was barely given time to prepare before Tom was in him again, the water making for lubrication to ease the pain, Tom didn't let up with his assault, he fucked Harry relentlessly against the wall being driven mad by the screams and pleas issuing from Harry's mouth.

"Ah Tooom," Harry moaned, "M-more," In answer his prostate was slammed in to making him scream out and arch up. He was coming closer and closer to the edge and with one last thrust Harry came hard collapsing forwards, Tom followed him biting down on Harry's shoulder to ride out his release. When he felt like he could actually stand, Harry dropped his legs and actually had his shower, something that was made monumentally more difficult with an insatiable Dark Lord as a shower guest.

"Honestly," Harry sighed draping himself on the sofa once he was dressed again, "I don't know where you get your stamina from, but you should sell some of it."

"You invited me in to the shower, it's completely your fault." Tom said completely unashamed, Harry rolled his eyes with a smirk.

"My bad," He checked his neck to make sure the locket was back around it and looked over to the Dark Lord. "How's your current mood?"

"Pretty good, why do you ask?"

"Good. You are not going to like what I have to tell you." Harry told him brightly, Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Am I going to need a drink?"

"A very large one, but you are not allowed to throw the glass at me." Harry said,

"Shame,"

"Hey!"

"So, what news do you bring that is going to dampen my mood?" Tom asked.

"Well, its two things, but they tie in together and a separate issue." Harry said, and Tom sighed

"Get the other issue out of the way first." He said,

"We, I say we but I mean Paws, have found out what spell has been cast on Bellatrix." Harry said, "Its an ancient Greek spell that causes Illusions, it creates an alternate universe almost where friends become enemies, love becomes hate and so forth, and it can't be detected by Legilimency or Veritaserum. The illusion is imbedded in to the subconscious and can be activated by a trigger word or action, but it seems that Dumbledore has twisted it to his needs because there was a few loopholes available when casting."

"You are not aware of the trigger, are you?"

"No, and that's only the first problem." Harry said, "There is no known counter, the person who created it was killed before he created the counter curse."

"That complete bastard." Tom snarled, "How dare he curse one of mine in such a way!"

"I have the translated version of the spell if you want it, I was going to start working on a counter as it needs to be created."

"I will endeavour the same." Tom agreed, "I hate that man,"

"It's a mutual feeling, I assure you." Harry said, Tom drank down his drink before pouring himself another.

"Let's get the other things out of the way, it can't get much worse."

"I wouldn't count your dragons before they've hatched." Harry muttered, and then sighed at Tom's raised eyebrow, "Well, I had my first 'lesson' with Dumbledore. It turns out the headmaster has decided that I am need to learn all about Tom Marvolo Riddle and his quest for immortality." Harry decided to get the first bit out all in one – like a plaster. Tom blinked a few times before his eyes flashed in understanding and then narrowed,

"Go on,"

"He's showing me memories of your past, actually, the first one was before you were even born, but he believes that it is going to be beneficial for me to know these things." Harry said and watched as Tom's eyes narrowed further.

"And it was about what exactly?"

"Do you want to see it? It's from a ministry official and it has your Grandfather, your Uncle, your mother and a glimpse of your father in it." Harry spoke the end two softly, watching Tom carefully. The man had gone very still and Harry could feel a whirl of different emotions flying through him, most of which Harry couldn't identify if he tried.

"Yes," It was spoken quietly, but Harry heard and he nodded. He got up and planted himself on Tom's lap so he was straddling him which gained a raised eyebrow, "Not that I do not enjoy this position, but what are you doing?"

"Well, while I can use Legilimency very well, I've never exactly learned the finesse of the skill and I can only retain control through physical contact. So as I don't want to fry your mind, please stay still and for the love of Merlin don't force me out, just make it apparent that you want me to leave." Harry added the last part as a warning.

"You are not entering my mind." Tom stated and Harry rolled his eyes.

"If I wanted to I could, due to this handy connection you made." He pointed out, "Besides, I'm not going in to browse, I'm going in to project a memory, I won't even be there." Tom looked like he was debating with himself for a while before he released a sharp breath through his nose and relented.

"Fine,"

"Good, now stay still and don't be pissed at me, I'm only the messenger." Harry placed his index fingers on Tom's temple and looked in to his eyes, he brought forth the memory and gently pushed it in to the others mind. It was a weird feeling, he made sure to stay on the outskirts of Tom's mind while the memory was playing and he could feel the man's emotions building the further along the memory went. When the memory reached the assault on Merope, Harry was hit with an emotion he couldn't identify for the life of him and, by the confusion that followed, Tom couldn't either.

Tom's anger spiked alarmingly when the memory drew to an end and they caught sight of Tom Riddle Senior, Harry carefully retracted the memory and pulled out of Tom's mind before getting up and stepping away. The man's magic was starting to curl around him and Harry saw that, despite his expressionless face, he was more than a little pissed, conflicted and extremely confused. They stayed in silence until Tom's magic died down and the man spoke,

"He's hunting them," Tom stated and Harry blinked, it seemed the man was going to avoid everything else in the memory, Harry was good with that; it would come up eventually.

"Yes, so it seems." Harry agreed, "Did you get that ring?"

"I did, and need to retrieve it. I believe the locket should be safe." Tom said and Harry shifted,

"Ah, about that, now I do believe your mood is about to drop just that little bit more." Harry hedged,

"Why?"

"See, the locket is definitely safe, just not where it's supposed to be – wherever that was." Harry told him and Tom's eyes narrowed in to slits.

"Where is it?" He demanded, Harry reached up and unclasped the locket from his neck and pulled it out. Tom's eyes widened and he got up to gently take the locket from Harry.

"How?"

"It was lucky really." Harry told him, "When I saw it in a memory I recognised it from the House of Black, Kreacher had kept it because of his 'great master Regulas'. I asked him for it because if Dumbledore saw it he would recognise it and it was safer around my neck than anywhere else."

"Thank you," Tom said quietly,

"No problem." Harry said, "Besides, its soothing," Tom raised an eyebrow at that, he looked at the locket and then back at Harry before smirking. He walked around Harry until he was behind him and re-clasped the locket around his neck, Harry sighed softly as he felt the magic surround him and he shot a questioning look at Tom.

"As you said, its safer around your neck than anywhere else, and I have no doubt that you will do a better job than Lucius." Tom said, but Harry didn't buy it for a second. That may be part of the reason, but there was definitely an ulterior motive to that action and Harry could feel it. Harry looked down at the locket and remembered it was a Slytherin heirloom, he saw that there was a distinctive Slytherin 'S' and he gave Tom an unimpressed look.

"And it has absolutely nothing to do with the fact that this is clearly a Slytherin locket and its now around my neck?" He drawled. Tom gained an innocent look and blinked, which Harry did not believe even a little bit.

"That did not even cross my mind." He said and Harry's expression didn't change.

"Really? So the fact that something that is clearly yours, and only yours, is now around my neck didn't even come to mind?"

"Now that you mention it, it is a welcome addition." Tom agreed lightly and Harry released a frustrated huff.

"Fine, I'll wear it, but only because I like the feeling." Harry grumbled and Tom's eyes flashed in triumph.

"Good,"

"I hate you,"

"I know,"

 

Chapter 20

Notes:

Un'beta'd

Read the tags please.

I'm not J.K

Chapter Text

Chapter 20:

 

"The reason I don't curse you is beyond me." Tom grumbled and Harry rolled his eyes.

"It's because I am the most awesome person you've ever had the pleasure to meet." Harry said seriously.

"This is completely your fault."

"We've been over this, Tom." Harry sighed,

"You don't seem to understand. You banned me from one of the best libraries I've ever seen!" Tom exclaimed and Harry bit back a groan. All he had heard from Tom since he had woken up was complaints and threats against his person because the man hadn't been able to go to the Gryffindor rooms since Halloween. It hadn't actually been that long, less than a week, but apparently Tom used the library more than Harry thought.

They were on their way up now and Harry had had the sense to collect Moony's chocolate before leaving, there was no way he was going to face the irate werewolf without a bribe and the only reason he had stopped Tom from going up there was because Moony would see it as an attack on his cub and since the man now had this weird, but brilliant, connection with his inner wolf, like he should have had without Dumbledore's influence, he could change at will and Harry didn't know what would happen if that came to pass, nor did he want to. Unfortunately, Tom had decided it would be today he would point out his problems to Harry and he was being very vocal about it.

"I've lost valuable reading time because of you," Tom complained

"I am only doing this so I don't have to mediate." Harry stated, "So for the love of Merlin, stop complaining, you're acting like a PMS'ing girl." Harry wasn't fast enough to stop the overpowered stinging hex hitting his leg, he hissed and only stopped himself from falling by grabbing on to Tom.

"What the hell?" Harry demanded and Tom shot him an unimpressed look.

"PMS'ing girl," He stated and Harry couldn't help his grin,

"But it's true."

"I am going to hurt you." Tom warned and Harry snickered,

"No, you won't. You want to get back in to the library." He said confidently and Tom glowered at him knowing it was true.

"I hate you,"

"I know," Harry said brightly. They got to the entrance and Harry took out the shrunken crate, which had to have a double shrinking charm on it so it would go in his pocket, and enlarged it back to its original size.

"What in the name of Merlin is that?" Tom demanded, looking at the crate in alarm.

"That is my bribe for Moony, I think it should be enough chocolate to last him a few weeks." Harry said and Tom blinked a few times stunned.

"A few weeks, there is enough chocolate in there to last a year."

"Which means it would last around two months for Moony, the man is a major chocoholic. This should keep him sweet enough to listen to reason and not try and kill you." Harry explained.

"I still fail to see why he would try and kill me, it was you who initiated everything." Tom muttered as they climbed the stairs.

"You caused me pain and put me in danger, I am Moony's cub and the only remaining person in his pack." Harry pointed out, "Besides, why do you think I have a bribe, Moony is not going to be happy that I placed myself in danger."

"This is ridiculous, I highly doubt your werewolf will be that concerned-," He was cut of by a furious warning growl, Harry winced.

"You were saying," he hissed. Harry crept in to the Gryffindor rooms and stuck close to the walls where he could see a furious Remus pacing the room, his enhanced speed clearly being used. As soon as Tom stepped in to the room, Remus released a truly dangerous snarl and started towards him, Harry could feel Tom was slightly apprehensive but he stood his ground.

"Whoa, calm down, Moony," Harry said soothingly, placing himself between wolf and Dark Lord.

"I will be perfectly calm once I've seen to the person who dared hurt my cub." Remus growled, his voice mix between his own and Moony.

"You cannot attack Tom, you do remember he is the Dark Lord, right?" Harry said slowly and Remus bared his teeth.

"I am aware, but I am also one of the few werewolves that doesn't rely on brute strength, is well educated and can actually duel." Remus got out and Harry conceded he did have a point, he felt Tom's wariness increase, it seemed the man had also forgotten that Remus Lupin, while indeed a werewolf, was foremost a wizard and was a very intelligent one at that.

"But you can't attack Tom, it was my idea." Harry said not really happy admitting that fact to the clearly angry werewolf, he winced at the furious glare he got pinned with after.

"I know that too." Remus stated, "I don't know what you were thinking, cub, but let me tell you that I am not in the slightest bit impressed. All I get a notification that there is an attack on Hogsmead, where you are on a date (Harry bit back a hiss at the sharp pain from his scar) with Ginevra Weasley, of all people, and the attack is being led by the Dark Lord."

"If it makes you feel any better there was actually only one other person who knew the whole of my plan." Harry hedged and it turned out that it didn't make him feel better.

"No, no it does not make me feel better funnily enough." Remus snapped, "Of all the careless, ridiculously dangerous things you have done, one would think you were learn that nothing good ever comes from them!"

"At least it wasn't a basilisk this time." Harry tried and he heard Tom groan under his breath and felt a wave of resignation just as he saw the expression of Remus' face, Harry realised that his pseudo uncle didn't know about the Chamber yet, Sirius decided it was best if they left that particular story out, and he had just told him.

"Shit,"

"Basilisk, what do you mean basilisk, you should have never seen a basilisk." Remus exclaimed going from angry to alarm in seconds.

"Um yeah
 about that
" Harry trailed off when he remembered the chocolate, he saw the wolf was about to completely let go and he summoned it. "Here," he watched amused as Remus' attention snapped to the crate.

"I smell chocolate." He said,

"Yeah, call it an apology;" Harry said brightly, "It's the grand special box from Honeydukes."

"The 50 galleon one which has a selection of every type of chocolate they make including the Yule Cranberry Cream, mixed liquor slab and the 10kg Spring awakening Egg?" Remus asked with a trace of longing in his voice, Tom blinked in alarm at the amount of chocolate and the price.

"Yes that's the one." Harry confirmed.

"You paid 50 Galleons for chocolate, isn't that a bit much?" Tom asked shocked.

"You can never put a pay too much for chocolate." Remus stated his eyes not leaving the crate, Tom looked torn between amusement and incredulity.

"I'll take your word for it."

"Take it, Moony, it's all yours." Harry said and Remus all but lunged for the crate and horded it in to his room.

"That had to be at least 50kg's of chocolate."

"I did say Moony had a slight addiction." Harry pointed out, "It's actually a pretty handy addiction to have, I remember, back in third year when I first met him, when the dementors attacked me I would have been a lot worse off if not for the fact Remus had this huge slab of chocolate on him."

"He carries chocolate with him?" Tom said in disbelief.

"Everywhere he goes, even in battle." Harry said and walked toward the library.

"But that's insane."

"It's Moony, he was best friends with a Black; what did you expect?"

"Fair point,"

Moony appeared back in to the library and Harry only stopped himself laughing when he saw the man had two massive bars of chocolate with him.

"You are forgiven, but don't think I'm happy with you." Remus said and Harry grinned,

"Of course not, Moony,"

"That goes for you, as well." He said looking at the Dark Lord through narrowed eyes.

"I expected no less." They kept eye contact for a few moments before Moony nodded and turned to Harry with a smile.

"So, cub, what have you been doing, I did enjoy the articles this week. How did you get Hadrian Greengrass, of all people, on side?" Harry threw himself down in a chair as Tom vanished in to the shelves, the books were calling him apparently.

"See, all I did was suggest that he take the position because he would be better than anyone else and he did, I was honestly quite surprised that he did." Harry said with a shrug, "As for the others, well, those were rather glorious. Umbridge had to go, with the latest law she just passed there was no question and I did take an immeasurable amount of pleasure in doing so. And the article on Dumbledore was brilliant, I cannot deny that Rita has a monumental talent for ruining."

"She has a rather unique style," Remus agreed,

"Peverell Manor is on the build, goblins are working on it as we speak and all silver has been removed. Grinder told me that it will be done in two weeks, so I think I shall go and seen Ellen soon."

"I can't believe this is actually credible," Remus said quietly, "This is pretty inconceivable."

"I told you, Moony, I will not stand for it." Harry replied softly, and Remus smiled,

"I'll begin to plan my outing then, if this is going to be done soon the word will need to be put out." Remus said and Harry nodded,

"Definitely, Ellen will be too, I hope. I've planned all of this, but I haven't spoken to her." Harry frowned at that.

"Cub, you really don't need to worry. There is very little chance that she will turn down something like this, especially when she see's it." Remus reassured him.

"I'm counting on it, do you think I should tell her now or wait until it's complete?" Harry asked.

"I would say wait, that way, when you tell her she can go straight there." Remus said after a moment of thought and Harry nodded,

"My thoughts exactly, just in case something comes up with the buildings or something." Harry agreed. Just then, Tom immerged from the book shelves and Harry's jaw dropped at the amount of books the man was carrying, Remus blinked but didn't show any other response and Harry shook his head.

"What in Merlin's name are you doing?" Harry questioned as Tom sat down and laid the books out gently.

"Preparing to read, I would have thought it obvious." He answered and Harry glowered at him.

"No shit!" He snapped, "I meant, what the hell are you doing with a personal library in front of you?"

"My personal library is at least 5 times the size of this," Tom informed him primly and Harry shot him an unimpressed look. "And I have lost valuable time so I must catch up."

"So you are going to migrate in the library for a week. Tom, you teach."

"Harry, I have a time turner, I merely wished to select the books I shall be reading."

"You are impossible." Harry sighed, "You carry on like this and I'll be seeing your wings." He neatly dodged the hex sent at him and smiled sweetly in response to the glare he was sent.

"I may not Crucio you, but I know many other curses." Tom warned.

"I'll leave you to it then." Harry said and Tom nodded.

"Smart choice,"

"When are you going on your hunt?" Remus asked him and Harry tilted his head.

"This weekend, there has to be something there for us and I believe Swift and Paws have it covered." Harry said,

"I'm holding my next DE meeting this weekend if you wish to be there, I am waiting on for a full layout of the ministry, but I have a feeling it has been a failure." Tom put in and Harry perked up at that.

"Oh, why the certainty?"

"It seems the term 'lay low' means very little and as I have had
 other things to occupy my time they are becoming restless. If they have failed, then I can remind them why it is unwise for them not to listen to me." The smirk that came to Tom's face was not reassuring for the death eaters and Harry laughed delightedly,

"I am so there." He said, and Remus shook his head.

"Poor souls," He joked and both Harry and Tom adopted indignant expressions.

"Well I never," Harry gasped.

"One would think you had little faith in us." Tom continued and Remus looked at them blankly.

"I wonder why,"

Their expressions melted and they smirked.

"I have a room booked in hell if I ever make it there." Harry said, "You should see it, it has a hell of a view."

"Oh Merlin," Remus groaned and Tom laughed at that.

"I'll take the room next if I get there."

"I'll let Lucifer know." Harry agreed seriously, he cast a tempus and cursed. "Fuck sake, I'm going to be late to potions."

"Have fun with that, Snape loves you cub," Remus said cheerfully.

"I'm tempted to lock you in his damn office, he had a pathological fear of you, you know that?" Harry said as he applied his glamour.

"I know, its why I intend to smile at him every time we meet in the future." Remus said Harry laughed, he flicked his wand and switched his in to his robes.

"Have fun reading little ravens, I'm off to learn." He said and ran away from the curse sent at him by Tom. He darted down the stairs and in to the shadows of the dungeons, he snuck down the corridor and slipping in to the door just as it was closing.

"Potter! You're late, 20 points from Gryffindor and detention," Snape snapped and Harry glowered at him, he slunk over to his seat and dropped down next to Draco.

"I hate that man," Harry muttered,

"I don't think he likes you that much either," Draco said lightly and Harry turned his glower at the blond.

"Well done, your observation skill are truly something to be proud of." Harry deadpanned.

"Potter, I know you are of the belief you know everything, but pay attention. I would have to deduct from Mr Malfoy's grade because of your failings." Snape sneered and Harry glared at him.

"I am so dealing with this tonight." Harry stated and Draco nodded,

"Just don't kill him, Paws would kill me."

"I can make no promises."

Snape continued to lecture them on the potency of Amortenita before snapping at them to begin making a cure for the potion, Harry found it ironic that they would be covering this potion when Dumbledore was trying to get him dosed in it.

"The irony of this is unreal." Draco said with a smirk and Harry grinned,

"I was thinking the same thing." Harry agreed, "I'll get the ingredients." Harry went to the store cupboard and took out all the things he needed, of all the counters he was sure he could make, this was one of them. He walked back and he and Draco worked effortlessly together, they both knew this like the back of their own hands.

"I think I may have had a breakthrough with a love potion immuniser," Draco told him quietly, "The only problem is, I don't know how to test it correctly and I really don't want to poison you."

"Brilliant," Harry whisper exclaimed, and then he frowned, "You're gunna need Mr Malevolent over there, aren't you?"

"Unless you want me to accidently poison you, it would help yes." Draco said and Harry sighed,

"Wonderful," He grumbled, "Ok, tonight I'll try and drum it in to his mind that it would be wise for him to leave me alone."

"And not kill him in the process
"

"And not kill him, besides, I think Tom would be a more than a little pissed if I killed his potions master."

"Yes, funnily enough, I think he would." Draco agreed,

"Time," Snape called, "Bottle up your attempts and place them on my desk." Draco took theirs up and Harry packed their station away.

"Another O," Draco said and Harry grinned,

"This is the only class I can get away with it," Harry told him and Draco smirked,

"I'm guessing its getting to you."

"Just slightly, I had to ask for an extension from McGonagall!"

"Ouch,"

"Yes, and with the way things are going its going to get worse."

"We're picking things up from now though, yes?"

"Definitely, we're going out this weekend for our hunt so I have my fingers crossed." Harry told him and Draco nodded,

"I had an idea for the names on the list you gave the twins," the blond said,

"Go on,"

"Venom," Harry blinked twice before it registered in his mind what Draco was talking about and then he grinned.

"Confer with the twins and then run the final idea back before you go." Harry said,

"Will do,"

"Class dismissed, Potter stay."

"No killing,"

"Yeah yeah," Harry sighed and sat until the door shut,

"I want you back here at 6, do not be late."

"Yes professor." Harry said making sure to keep his voice even. Snape looked at him closely, with no expression on his face, before nodded.

"Go." Harry didn't need telling twice, he was out of the room and heading to the great hall. He had just sat down when Swift's voice cracked through his thoughts,

Snake, very bad news! He exclaimed and Harry blinked,

What?

She's awake. Swift stated and Harry felt his stomach drop.

You have to be fucking kidding me! He complained, Why!

I don't know, but we're in the wing now and she's up and complaining to Molly about the pain she's in because she agreed to go out with you.

I wonder if she'll stay away from me now! Harry said hopefully,

Don't get your hopes up, Snake, you know they'll think of something, Swift said and Harry nearly scowled.

I know, but I can hope. This means Dumbledore will make another move very soon. Damn, I have detention with the bat tonight and I have to speak with him because Bleach might have made a breakthrough, I want to go on our hunt this weekend and Tom's invited me to a DE meeting. He told him and he heard Swift whistle.

Are you not glad I snatched the turners?

Very much so, Harry agreed, But its going to be pushing it.

We got this, Snake,

I know, I trust you with my life.

Until the end.

Harry cut the connection with a warm feeling filling his chest, he didn't know where he would be without his friends and he knew he could count on them no matter what. He really wasn't happy about the news about Ginny and knew that Tom would be filled with joy at the prospect of her return, but there really wasn't anything he could do – he should have killed her.


Harry's final lessons passed in a blur, he didn't know how long it would be until he could use his full ability, but if he had to keep this up he seriously believed his brain cells might actually start dissolving or something. He slumped down on the sofa in his rooms with a groan, if it wasn't for the fact that he knew they had to tread carefully, he would have given Rita everything they had already and told her to do her worst, but it needed to look like she was researching because otherwise people would question where she was getting her information. Harry released another groan and pulled himself up, he smiled at Luna as she flitted in and kissed his cheek.

"Patience brother," She told him and he grimaced,

"Never been my strongest point," He grumbled and she laughed lightly,

"We both know that is an understatement, and if it was only your life on the line you would have risked it all." She stated and Harry conceded to her point. If it was just him it would have been so much easier, it was much simpler for one person to dodge attacks than a group, but he would never risk his friends like that; it was not worth it.

"I'll try and keep it together,"

"It will pay off,"

"What would I do without you?" He asked rhetorically and she giggled.

"We've discussed this. You'd be in a cave."

"I don't think I'd even make it to the cave if I'm honest." He sighed in mock despondence,

"Don't you have detention tonight?" She asked and Harry groaned yet again,

"Damn, I knew I had to do something tonight."

"I have a plan for you, to get him on side." Luna told him, "But you'll have to play it carefully."

"Do tell,"

"Ask him why he always compares you to your father, and not your mother." Luna said, "Mention that he never mentions her and see his reaction."

"Why would he have a reaction?"

"I have found out a bit of information on our resident potions master," Luna informed him, "I was extremely surprised."

"Go on,"

"It turns out that he was the one to introduce your mother to magic, they were childhood friends and up until that memory you saw last year they were best friends. Only, I believe Snape's feelings went further than that." She explained and Harry looked at her stunned.

"I'm sorry?"

"Yes, I was rather surprised too. You can confirm this with the Dark Lord, but I believe Snape was the reason why he told your mum to step aside." Harry would always remember the sound of his mother refusing to move aside despite the fact she was offered a way out. It was crazy to think that it was because of Snape that she was even given the option,

"That is
 completely mad." He said eventually,

"I know, but if you play it correctly then I think you will have him. You may also want to know that, while he is loyal to the dark, he is not fully committed because he believes the Dark Lord ignored his wishes."

"I seriously need to know how you do this." Harry said to her amazed, "You are incredible." She blushed lightly and he grinned.

"You're going to be late," She reminded him and he cursed,

"Thanks," Harry bolted out of his room and ran down to the dungeons, he only just knocked on the door at 6 and was ordered to enter.

"So you are able to tell the time, Potter. You should do that in my lesson." Snape drawled and Harry bit back his instinctual snappish comment, he took a deep breath and remembered what Luna said.

"You're just like your father, not caring about whose time you waste."

"You know, sir, you always compare me to my father, but you never my mother." He said innocently, "Why is that? Did you not observe her enough to know that I might have some of her qualities other than her eyes?" he wouldn't have caught it if he hadn't been looking for it, but Snape paled slightly.

"What are you talking about, Potter?"

"Well, it occurred to me, that it's always my father you compare me too and he is the only one you ever mention, but I do have a mother. Why do you not ever mention her? Did you hate her as much as you did my father, I know you've insulted her, so you must have known something about her." Harry said and it was much more obvious when Snape lost colour this time.

"I did not hate your mother." Snape all but snarled and Harry blinked, not that he doubted Luna, but that was a strong reaction for Snape.

"Oh, so am I just not like her then?" Harry asked and Snape pinned him with a filthy glare, it was more venomous than Harry could remember and if he hadn't been used to Tom's glares he would have stepped back.

"Why the need for this sudden questioning, Potter, has your arrogance increased so much that you believe I have time for this?" Snape hissed and Harry took another deep breath to calm himself.

"No, it just seems to me that everyone forgets that I do have a mother. Everyone is always mentioning my father, but it's like they forgot Lily Potter died to protect me, especially you." Snape looked as if he had been kicked in the stomach and Harry caught a brief flash of pain in the obsidian eyes so he continued. "Its funny, I know enough about my father know what he was like, but next to nothing about my mother. Unless you count everything Petunia told me about her, but I like to think my mother wasn't an unnatural freak."

"Petunia Evans was a foul, selfish, jealous, heartless bitch." Snape growled and Harry nearly smirked, the man had slipped.

"Did you know my aunt, Professor?" Harry asked shocked, "She always spoke so badly of my mother, both my parents really, but mainly my mother. She told me she died in a car crash."

"As if a car crash could have killed Lily," Snape scoffed in disgust and then he blinked, he realised what he had done and pinned Harry with a look, Harry made sure to keep his expression openly frustrated.

"Did you know that I had never even seen a picture of my mother before I got here? And I still know nothing about her, she was good at charms – that's about it. I'm good at charms, but I'm not like my mother."

"Why are you telling me this, Potter?"

"You knew her, didn't you? Besides, if anyone is going to be honest to me about anything it's you." Harry shrugged and Snape sighed through his nose.

"Yes, I knew your mother." He said reluctantly, "She was
 a wonderful person."

"Am I not like her?" Harry asked, "You seem so set on the fact I'm a prince like my father, but I grew up with Petunia, she hated me more than you do."

"I do not hate you, I merely have a high amount of dislike for you." Snape corrected and Harry nearly laughed. "And I suppose you have a few qualities from your mother."

"You were friends with her, weren't you, professor?"

"Who told you that?" He demanded and Harry shrugged,

"None of the people you suspect," He said,

"What do you want, Potter?"

"I want you to remember than I am the son of Lily Evans, and, just for a second, can you think how she would react if she knew how you've been treating me for the past 5 years." Harry said and Snape actually winced, "Believe it or not, I share very few qualities of James Potter, it is nearly impossible for me to be like him because of Dumbledore."

"What has the headmaster got to do with anything?"

"He sent me to Petunia after my parents were killed because of his fake prophecy." Harry told him

"Fake prophecy, what are you talking about?"

"There was a prophecy made-,"

"I know about the prophecy," Snape dismissed, "I want to know why you believe it was fake."

"The centaurs told me and the when I checked with Trelawney, it shows she was imperiused." Harry explained and Snape's eyes flashed in fury.

"Why would Dumbledore do that?"

"That is something we are still working out," Harry said, "You must have noticed that the man sits back like a chess master directing his pieces, and he always has back up plans and covers."

"Lily died for nothing? He killed her." Snape breathed and Harry knew it was time for the final point.

"Not for nothing, she died to protect me." Harry said softly, "Tom told her to move out of the way, told her that she didn't have to die but she refused to move."

"He did?"

"Yes, multiple times actually. It's what I hear whenever dementors come near me."

Snape sat unsteadily at his desk and Harry gave him a bit of time to compose himself, the man had just had many of his beliefs shake up so he was allowed discrepancies.

"Why are you telling me this? You have absolutely no reason to."

"Because I'm honestly sick of the abuse you give me." Harry told him truthfully, "You hate me because of my father, and I can understand that with what I saw last year, but I am not him. And I am half of Lily, so remember that next time you feel like slating me for breathing."

"I do not slate you for breathing." Snape said and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"You took points of me for breathing too loudly." He deadpanned, Snape narrowed his eyes before looking away, he remembered that incident.

"You would not have brought this up if you didn't have a reason to," Snape pointed out and Harry nodded,

"True. I propose a truce. We are never going to like each other, it's a given fact. But, there is nothing to say we cannot work together in peace. You are dark, I am dark, and there are things in works that would really benefit a brilliant mind like yours." Harry said to him and Snape looked at him with an unreadable expression.

"How do you know that I am not with Dumbledore? You have seen me with the Order and if that were true then I could go and report you to the headmaster immediately. Keeping silent about the Dark Lord is one thing, you are completely different." Snape said slowly and Harry conceded he did have a point.

"Professor, your magic is inky, you are dark and going against it would be pointless because the arts, not matter what, will always call to you. You've never left the dark, you may have lost faith because you believed the Dark Lord ignored your request to spare my mother, but you have always been dark." Snape looked openly shocked at that before he masked it and Harry took it as a personal success, "But if you are that way inclined and wish to inform the headmaster, then you would be making sure that my mother truly did die in vain because I would be dead. Not only that, but you would forfeit your own life because Tom really doesn't like it when things don't go his way, and me dying constitutes as not going his way."

Snape shuddered at that, he knew exactly what sort of death would be coming to him if that were to occur. What Potter said was true, he was dark and that wasn't anything he could change, and he could never live with himself if he got Lily's only child killed.

"Ok, Potter, you have yourself a deal." Snape agreed and Harry grinned,

"Wonderful, I can guarantee I won't be poisoned now." He said brightly and Snape blinked.

"Excuse me?"

"Well, Dumbledore likes to use potions in controlling me and Draco has been working endlessly to create counters for many of them. He created a counter for a blood poisoning potion and he believes he had created a love potion immuniser, but he is at a lost at how to test it without using it on me." Harry explained and Snape nodded,

"Send him to me, I'll make sure he doesn't poison you, Potter."

"Awh thanks, Professor, that sounded like you actually cared."

"Do not blind yourself, I merely wish not to be the one trying to cure you." Snape sneered and Harry laughed,

"That's better,"

"Remove yourself from my classroom, Potter,"

"I'm already gone," And he slipped out of the door. He finally released his smirk and disappeared in to the shadows, he all but skipped in to Tom's rooms as he vanished his glamour and threw himself down on the sofa once he had switched his clothes.

"What did you do and how many people did you kill?" Tom asked and Harry shot him an indignant look.

"Well that's rude. I am allowed to be happy, you know."

"Indeed. What did you do if you didn't kill anyone?"

"You are no fun," Harry huffed with a pout and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"I apologise." He deadpanned and Harry laughed,

"If you must know, and not allow me my suspense and bragging rights, I finally got through to Snape and got him onside." Harry told him and Tom looked surprised.

"Did you curse him?"

"Shockingly enough, no I didn't. I did, however, play on his emotions and make him see it my way."

"Impressive, trying to get emotions out of Severus is the same as trying with a rock. What did you use?"

"My mother," Harry answered and Tom blinked, then he blinked again and then he tried speaking before blinking again,

"I'm sorry."

"Did he not ask you to spare her life?" Harry asked and Tom nodded slowly,

"Yes, and I did try. Severus is in my inner circle, and, contrary to popular belief, I do listen to them and take their thoughts and questions in to consideration."

"Exactly, and there would have been only one reason Severus Snape would lower himself enough to ask you, of all people, to save a muggleborn's life."

"He was in love with her." Tom said and a moment,

"Yes,"

"And you played on that. How?"

"A few reminders that he's been treating the only son of Lily Evans like utter shit for the past 5 years, that I know nothing about her and that Dumbledore faked the prophecy and voila, one potions master."

"Very impressive, Snake," Tom said with a smirk, Harry mock saluted.

"What can I say
?"

"Where did you find out the knowledge about Snape? I have never spoken about it and I highly doubt Dumbledore would have told you." Tom inquired and Harry smirked.

"Raven,"

"Of course it was her,"

"You think that's good, that girl has a gift."

"I have no doubt,"

"I have some bad news."

"Oh?"

"Yes, the female Weasley is awake." He said and Tom's expression went dark.

"Is that so?"

"Unfortunately yes, which means Dumbledore is going to be calling again soon. I'm expecting it to be tomorrow,"

"No doubt the old fool will have something planned." Tom agreed, and Harry was following the man's feelings through their link and raised an eyebrow.

"She's still in the wing complaining about being in pain, and I've bought myself time because of Swift so I can avoid her like the plague." Harry told him and the growing possessiveness died down.

"Good," Harry rolled his eyes.

"You are impossible,"

"I know,"

"I know what I wanted to ask you." Harry remembered suddenly, looking at the Dark Lord.

"Oh?"

"Yes, it came to me the other day
 Where is Nagini?" He asked and Tom's expression went mulish.

"She is at Malfoy Manor, she's refusing to talk to me." Tom said and Harry blinked,

"Refusing to talk to you
 but why?"

"When I told her I was coming here she was extremely excited, you see I've had her since I was 16 and she grew very attached to the castle. Unfortunately, for obvious reasons, I couldn't bring her with me and she was not happy. She threw a complete fit about it, tried to attack me and then she was awful to me before slithering off and refusing to speak again. She refused to even come in the same room as me! It was like I had committed the ultimate betrayal because she was not with me, honestly, you would have thought I had found another familiar." Tom explained indignantly and Harry fought, with a great amount of difficultly, not to laugh. He couldn't believe his ears, this was gold!

"You had an argument with your snake?" He clarified making sure to keep his voice completely even, Tom scowled at the wall.

"She was being completely unreasonable. You can't hide a snake that size, and she would have hated to have been kept in the chamber because it's cold."

"You had an argument with your pet snake." Harry said again, his voice only shaking slightly with the effort to hold in his laughter.

"Nagini is not a pet, she is a familiar." Tom corrected and his eyes narrowed when he saw Harry's slightly shaking shoulders.

"You had an argument with your snake familiar." Harry repeated and Tom's scowl deepened.

"She started it," He muttered petulantly and that was Harry could take, he burst out laughing and tried to smother it with his hand when Tom glared at him.

"I'm sorry," He gasped, "But you had an argument with a snake, and by the sounds of it, she won the argument."

"She was mean to me!" Tom exclaimed and that saw fit to renew Harry's hilarity, he bent over and clutched his sides, he laughed until tears ran down his face and he forced himself to get under control.

"I have to meet Nagini on better terms, she sounds like a delight."

"She's a menace." Tom grumbled, "She tried to turn herself in to a living belt or something. She would not let go of me and she was wailing, it was
 odd."

"Can snakes even wail?" Harry asked and Tom rubbed his temples.

"I didn't think it was possible until the day I told her she would have to stay at the manor. It was extremely strange to see a 12ft long, highly venomous snake wailing,"

"I can imaging, really I can. But I still want to meet her."

"She'll be at the meeting, the Death Eaters are terrified of her and she loves it."

"Perfect," Harry got up and stretched,

"Where do you think you are going?" Tom questioned and Harry raised an eyebrow,

"To my rooms,"

"Yes
 that is not going to happen," Tom stated and Harry smirked,

"Is that right?"

"Most definitely," Harry walked over Tom and trailed his finger along his neck, he leaned down and spoke directly by his ear.

"I supposed there might be something to make me stay." Harry smirked as Tom's eyes darkened and walked towards the bedroom, "I wonder if you can convince me."


"You know you have to leave very soon." Tom pointed out and then hissed as Harry bit down on his neck.

"Unimportant," Harry muttered as he continued his assault, he made sure to leave a mark before going up his neck.

"Breakfast is in less than 20 minutes," Tom tired even though he made no effort to stop Harry, Harry hummed in agreement.

"I know, but there are other things I would much rather put in my mouth." Harry told him and Tom groaned, Harry smirked and kissed him. He slithered down Tom's body kissing and biting as he went, Tom moaned when Harry covered him with his mouth. Harry relaxed his throat and took as much as he could, he hollowed his cheeks and felt Tom's hand fist his hair. Tom's head dropped back in ecstasy, Harry had a talent with his mouth and Tom bit his lip to stop his moan of pleasure only for it to emerge when Harry hollowed his mouth. Harry dragged his teeth along the thick flesh lightly and then sat up smirking when Tom groaned,

"You want to finish this?" Harry asked lightly and before he could blink he was pinned down with Tom over him.

"You are an awful tease," Tom informed him, his voice low and husky in his arousal.

"Show me how wrong I was," Harry said coyly. Tom muttered a spell and pushed in to him, Harry gasped at the feeling of being full and his legs instinctively wrapped around Tom. Tom moved slowly at first teasing Harry and only when he was gasping and moaning for more did he speed up, he hit Harry's prostate making the teen cry out and dig his nails in to his back. Tom moved so he hit that spot repeatedly and Harry finally screamed out his release, his muscles clamped down milking Tom for his seed and they both lay panting.

"I think I'm late for breakfast." Harry said and Tom scoffed,

"I wonder why."

"I may have gotten distracted." Harry shrugged, "I have to shower."

"A cleaning spell would also work."

"I'm still getting in the shower, what is the point?" Harry pointed out, "Unless you don't like the thought of your cum inside of me, then we may have a bit of a problem." He smirked at Tom's low hiss and climbed out of the bed heading for a shower. Harry came out dressed in his robes and cast a tempus,

"See, just in time to get to Transfiguration." Tom pulled him down in to a hot kiss from where he was led on the bed,

"Come back here tonight." Tom told him, and Harry nodded,

"Of course," Harry slipped out of the room and began yet another boring day or pretending to be an average student. It was mind numbing. It was the same things he had already learned about only much slower and he had to pretend he didn't know them. For some reason it was getting to him more, little things were annoying him and come dinner that evening he really wasn't feeling seeing the headmaster for another lesson. Unfortunately, McGonagall had passed on the message in his first lesson and so Harry found himself trooping up to the head office and having a round of guess the password until he found the correct sweet. His mood decreased when he saw the pencieve led out on the desk, but he hitched on a curious expression on his face and sat down when invited.

"Good evening, headmaster," Harry greeted cordially,

"Good evening, Harry, are you well?"

"Yes thank you,"

"Wonderful." Dumbledore said joyfully, "I believe I am able to inform you of some good news."

"You can?"

"Yes, young Miss Weasley is recovering from her ordeal splendidly and is now awake in the hospital wing." Dumbledore said and Harry tried, he really did, but he couldn't fully get a pleased expression on to his face and the old man noticed. "What is the matter, I thought you would be pleased."

"I am, its just, I got her put in there in the first place." Harry said looking down at his hands, "I can't help but feel responsible."

"I understand, my boy, but she is going to be ok."

"I know, and I am thankful."

"I am sure, as soon as she is released, she will want to tell you herself that she doesn't blame you."

"It would be safer is she stayed away, sir, who knows that Voldemort would do to her next time." Harry shuddered but it had nothing to do with Ginny.

"I think, Harry, this is an argument for another time." Dumbledore decided, "Because right now we have to delve in to the past and try to uncover the truth about a boy called Tom Riddle."

"Is this going to have him in it, sir?" Harry asked and Dumbledore nodded,

"Yes, Harry. This time, we are going in to my memory and it is the first time I ever met Tom Riddle. I was deputy headmaster at the time, and it was my job to introduce the new students to the world of magic."

"You were the one who told Voldemort about Magic?" Harry said genuinely shocked.

"Yes, and I think you will find my memory rather filled with detail." Dumbledore rose to his feet, "After you." Harry fell in to the memory and landed in an old fashion street which was bustling with people. He looked around and easily spotted a younger version of Dumbledore, the man was dressed in the most revolting purple suit Harry had ever had the misfortune to lay eyes on and he wasn't surprised the man was drawing looks from the surrounding people. It was odd to see the old man with auburn hair, and it really didn't help the suit whatsoever.

"Sir, why that suit?" He asked before he could stop,

"I liked the colour, Harry." Dumbledore said brightly, and when Harry looked at him as if he was insane the man merely chuckled. They followed the younger Dumbledore through the street to a grim building surrounded by a wall and iron gates, it wasn't a pleasant sight and Harry grimaced. He was looking at the surrounding area and felt a pang of sympathy for Tom, it must have been hell growing up here especially during the war and he mentally patted the man on the back. Which he was looking around, younger Dumbledore had entered building and was following a woman to in to an office Harry hastened to catch up so he could watch. She invited Dumbledore to sit on a rickety chair and seated herself behind a cluttered desk, eyeing him nervously.

"I am here, as I told you in my letter, to discuss Tom Riddle and arrangements for his future," said Dumbledore.

"Are you family?" asked Mrs. Cole.

"No, I am a teacher," said Dumbledore. "I have come to offer Tom a place at my school."

"What school's this, then?"

"It is called Hogwarts," said Dumbledore.

"And how come you're interested in Tom?"

"We believe he has qualities we are looking for."

"You mean he's won a scholarship? How can he have done? He's never been entered for one."

"Well, his name has been down for our school since birth —"

"Who registered him? His parents?"

There was no doubt that Mrs. Cole was an inconveniently sharp woman. Apparently Dumbledore thought so too, for Harry saw him slip his wand out of the pocket of his velvet suit, at the same time picking up a piece of perfectly blank paper from Mrs. Cole's desktop. He watched as the old man cast a compulsion charm and conjure up some gin at the same time, Harry spotted the tell tell signs of Legilimency and nearly scowled; the old man had been doing that for too long. They spoke about Tom's history and how his mother died, it wasn't detailed but that didn't make it any more pleasant, but he found out why Tom was named so.

Harry wasn't surprised that Tom was an odd child, and he didn't doubt that he was strange growing up what with his accidental magic, but there was something about how Dumbledore confirmed that Tom had a place at Hogwarts that got Harry to pay more attention to the memory. She started to explain some of the odd happenings that had happened around Tom, a dead rabbit, scared children and Harry marvelled at the control Tom must have had to be able to accomplish that at such a young age. As she continued to speak, Harry watched Dumbledore's reaction and his eyes narrowed when younger Dumbledore had a flash of anger in his blue eyes when she mentioned the incidents, it was mixed with confusion and Harry blinked; what was going on?

She asked if he wanted to see him and this was the bit Harry was looking forward to, he noted Dumbledore's reaction and followed them up the stares and knocked on a door. The room was bare. There was nothing in it except a wardrobe and a bed and Harry's eyes were immediately drawn to the child whom sat upon the bed, he was tall for eleven, pale skin with high cheekbones and perfectly shaped eyebrows, he had pink lips and nose which had the smallest traces of an upturn. There was no doubt that this was Tom Riddle. He was sat, not that Harry was surprised, holding a book and his eyes narrowed when he took in Dumbledore, they looked at each other before Dumbledore introduced himself and sat down.

Dumbledore's introduction had set him on edge, that much was obvious and Harry was watching the headmaster for what Tom had seen, he found it in the form of fury in the blue eyes even though he was smiling pleasantly.

"Tell the truth." Even back then Tom's voice was commanding, it was smooth and cool and it was ringing, so much so that Harry was shocked. But his shock was nothing compared to what hit him after he caught sight of Dumbledore's expression when child Tom said the caretaker wanted him in an asylum, the man was pleased, like he had wanted it to happen and Harry's eyes went in to slits.

"I'd like to see them try." Riddle sneered and Harry wanted to laugh, he had been sneering all these years and he had managed to perfect it. He had also managed to perfect an emotionless mask at eleven because not one came to his face when Dumbledore told him that Hogwarts was a school for magic, it was eerie if anything.

"It's. . . it's magic, what I can do?"

"What is it that you can do?"

"All sorts," breathed Riddle. A flush of excitement was rising up his neck into his hollow cheeks; he looked fevered. "I can make filings move without touching them. I can make animals do what I want them to do, without training them. I can make bad things happen to people who annoy me. I can make them hurt if I want to." Harry wanted to slap him.

What in Merlin's name was he thinking, not even he had made such a mistake when he got told he was a wizard. Dumbledore did not look pleased and when Riddle bowed his head the younger Dumbledore's expression went dark but it cleared when the boy looked back up. Harry blinked at the change in the young Dark Lord when Dumbledore told him how to address him and then hid his smile when his transformed in to, no doubt, the boy he allowed teachers to see. Harry nearly choked when Dumbledore set his wardrobe on fire because that was probably everything that Tom owned but when the flames went the piece of furniture was fine.

"Where can I get one of them?" Riddle demanded and Harry almost snorted, he didn't think he had ever heard Tom speak in such a way. It was weird to see Tom act in such a way, Harry found it endlessly amusing that Tom was a bit of a klepto and made a note to poke at him later.

"There are a lot of Toms," He muttered sullenly and Harry blinked, the man didn't like his name because it was common. He realised it must have been a bit of a blow to discover that hid father wasn't the magic wielder but his mother, but Harry took a guess that it was that that started the man's pathological fear of death.

"I can speak to snakes." Riddle said and Harry barely caught his groan, why wasn't he acting more guarded? There was something up with this and by Dumbledore's reaction, where he did not look even in least bit surprised, Harry was right in his suspicions.

"I think that will be all." Old Dumbledore told him and they fell out of the memory, "Sit down," Harry sat down in his usual spot and stared at the desk for a while, he had more questions than he could get answers too and it was frustrating, but one thing he was sure of was Dumbledore had something going on.

"That was
 strange." Harry said eventually, when it became clear that Dumbledore was not going to speak.

"His powers, as you heard, were surprisingly well-developed for such a young wizard and — most interestingly and ominously of all — he had already discovered that he had some measure of control over them, and begun to use them consciously. And as you saw, they were not the random experiments typical of young wizards: He was already using magic against other people, to frighten, to punish, to control. The little stories of the strangled rabbit and the young boy and girl he lured into a cave were most suggestive. . . . 'I can make them hurt if I want to. . . .'"

"And he admitted he was a Parselmouth." Harry added seeing if he could get any ideas from this Dumbledore. Much to his disappointment, the man showed nothing except a smile.

"Yes, although his ability to speak to serpents did not make me nearly as uneasy as his obvious instincts for cruelty, secrecy, and domination." Harry knew all about all three of those things, but he failed to see the problem with them.

"He was still only a child though, sir, an orphan that just had really good control." Harry said and Dumbledore's eyes flashed in something Harry couldn't register.

"Indeed," He said, "But for now, I think we shall draw to a close."

"Ok,"

"There are a few things I want you to note down, Harry. They are incredibly important. The first is his dislike of his name, he shed it, as you know, within a few short years of that conversation and created the mask of 'Lord Voldemort' behind which he has been hidden for so long." Dumbledore said and Harry blinked, he wouldn't quite say hiding, the Dark Lord Tom didn't really have the same effect as the Dark Lord Voldemort.

"I trust that you also noticed that Tom Riddle was already highly self-sufficient, secretive, and, apparently, friendless? He did not want help or companionship on his trip to Diagon Alley. He preferred to operate alone. The adult Voldemort is the same. You will hear many of his Death Eaters claiming that they are in his confidence, that they alone are close to him, even understand him. They are deluded. Lord Voldemort has never had a friend, nor do I believe that he has ever wanted one." Now Harry knew that was complete crap. Tom did have friends, he was close to Lucius and Severus and Harry was sure that he had mentioned Theodore Nott having a grandfather that Tom kept in contact with. The man just had some severe trust issues, but being who he was made it understandable.

"And lastly — I hope you are not too sleepy to pay attention to this, Harry — the young Tom Riddle liked to collect trophies. You saw the box of stolen articles he had hidden in his room. These were taken from victims of his bullying behaviour, souvenirs, if you will, of particularly unpleasant bits of magic. Bear in mind this magpie-like tendency, for this, particularly, will be important later." So Dumbledore also noticed that Tom was a klepto, it wasn't surprising, but Harry was sure that there had been other things going on.

"Of course headmaster, I don't think I'll be forgetting it any time soon." Harry said and Dumbledore looked pleased.

"Of you go, Harry,"

"Night sir," He hurried down the stone steps and straight for the defence corridor; he had a Dark Lord to speak to.

 

Chapter 21

Notes:

Un'beta'd

I'm not J.K

Read the tags please.

Parseltongue is in bold italics.

Chapter Text

"I still can't believe it." Harry shook his head and Tom glared at him.

"You did say that you think something else is going on. I was eleven, leave younger me alone." Tom grumbled.

"I think the best thing I found out was that you're a total klepto." Harry said acting as of Tom hadn't spoken.

"I am not a kleptomaniac." Tom stated a bit too forcefully,

"You totally are." Harry disagreed, "I mean, even now, you steal, swipe and covert anything that you can get your hands on; you just have to."

"I do not!"

"Bottom draw on the right of your desk," Harry pointed out and Tom sent him a fierce glare.

"Shut up, Harry."

"I mean it does make sense with you being a complete control freak, having severe anger issues and all."

"Stop talking."

"Now now, just because you like to collect little things and I found out, lets not get angsty about it." Harry said grinning, "But if it makes you feel better, you were an extremely attractive child." Tom perked up a bit at that and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I always was attractive." Tom agreed and then sent a dark glare at Harry when he coughed something that sounded suspiciously like 'forth year'. "That does not count."

"If you say so,"

"I do,"

"Shame. It was a rather iconic look."

"There was nothing remotely iconic about that look, it was a mistake on the rat's fault." Tom sneered and Harry's expression darkened.

"What happened to the rat?"

"He was told to remove himself from my presence and not to return until he grew a spine or he was called." Tom said and Harry scowled.

"Can't you call him so I can kill him?"

"I would rather not have to bare his presence, however short a time it may be."

"If I see him I kill him." Harry warned and Tom nodded.

"By all means,"

"When are we going to torment your Death Eaters?" Harry asked pushing the thoughts of killing Pettigrew with his bare hands from his mind.

"I have a staff meeting soon, which means I shall be using the timeturner to guarantee my alibi. The meeting starts at 7, so I shall be calling the Death Eaters close to then."

"I should probably go and tell Luna where I'm going, the last time I didn't I had to gift my way from her wrath along with the others." Harry mused and Tom quirked an eyebrow.

"What sort of gift did you obtain for her to constitute your not telling her?"

"I got her a set of hair slides,"

"Is that all, from what you have said, your sister is rather
 high maintenance."

"For the love of Merlin, do not let her hear you say that. You may be the Dark Lord, but that would not stop her from finding a way to hurt you." Harry warned,

"I have a strange feeling that I should believe you." Tom said and Harry nodded,

"Besides, there were not just hair slides." Harry said,

"Oh, and what was so special about these hair pieces?"

"They were goblin made silver hair slides with hand cut fey diamonds and siren sapphires originally made for the last High Elf Princess." Harry told him and smirked when Tom blinked.

"Yes, they were more than just hair slides." Tom agreed somewhat faintly, "It is believed all creature jewels were lost, and to have something from the Royal High Elves is unheard of."

"Well, I've never liked sticking to the norm." Harry pointedly ignored Tom's scoff, "And I have a few other items with creature jewellery, most of them are female pieces, but there are a few male items that I plan to use for the balls and some off stones which bring me an endless amount of interest."

"Such as?"

"A raw amber from a wood nymph, a mermaid's pearl, a cracked onyx from a draken were the three that were on the top of the list. But I have loads more, I think my favourite that I saw was the Naga jewel, I don't know what gem it is or if it has a name of its own, but its awesome."

"You know that one of those stones alone could make you enough money to live like the Malfoys for the rest of your life." Tom said amazed, "Excluding that, the historic value they must have, many creature jewels are supposed to have secrets."

"The hair slides that I gave Luna have every Elvin and Fey protection on them, Ragnok read them for me." Harry said and Tom looked extremely interested at that.

"Is there anyway to distinguish the charms?" He asked and Harry shook his head.

"No, I asked Ragnok and, according to him, they are so entwined that they were only able to detect the nature of the spells and the species that cast them." Harry said, "It's rumoured that the slides were a gift from the Fey to the High Elves to forge their alliance with them. The reason for the siren sapphire has yet to be discovered."

"Remarkable," Tom murmured, "And you gave them as a gift,"

"Yes, they suit Luna better than me."

"Many would have sold them." Tom pointed out, Harry shrugged,

"I don't care much for the money, I have loads of that. I had them evaluated however,"

"No, money is something I doubt you are short on." Tom agreed amused, "How much were they worth?"

"I was actually quite surprised at the price, I know it's a rare piece, but the gold they were worth was remarkable." Harry shook his head, "98,500 galleons,"

"Extraordinary,"

"Very," Harry agreed, "Of course, I need to truly go through my entire inventory. The Potter estate alone if enough to keep my and my grandchildren afloat for their entire lives, and that's without liquidating all antiques, jewels, weapons and property."

"If it makes you feel any better, I have yet to go through the Slytherin vault." Tom told him, "The Gaunt vault was empty, as expected, but they Slytherin vault could only be accessed by those deemed worthy,"

"You must be the first on in a century." Harry said and Tom nodded,

"Longer than that, it seems Salazar was extremely picky on who he deemed worthy."

"I am not surprised." Harry muttered, "Can you imagine what would happen if the likes of Marvolo Gaunt would have gotten his hands on the Slytherin estate?"

"I shudder to think," Tom agreed, "I know there is very little left of property, it seems that Slytherin valued objects and monetary wealth opposed to land and property,"

"Gryffindor was the same, I think the only place left which is still Gryffindor land is Godric's Hollow."

"I do not believe that Slytherin has that. If I am correct, however, Slytherin has a potions cove hidden somewhere which, if preserved, would be invaluable."

"I can imagine Snape's face if he ever saw that." Harry laughed, "It might actually break that mask of his again."

"That would be a success in itself. You managed it, no doubt."

"Of course, it worked pretty well. But it was only for seconds before he got himself under control." Harry shrugged,

"I have to give an update to Dumbledore over your private lessons." Tom told him, "I shall be telling him that you are advancing on silent casting,"

"Ok, I won't be surprised if he questions me." Harry agreed, "I've had two of his lessons now, so I might be entitled to a break."

"Watch out for the girl,"

"I will be, Dumbledore is going to be pushed in to a corner with the next two articles so he will be pulling out all the stops."

"After that latest article, I would not be surprised." Tom agreed, "I fail to see how they could get any worse for him, granted I do see where you are going."

"Trust me on this, Tom. While the next one may not be as brutal, it is setting it up for the final one and it is beautiful." Harry sighed wistfully, "I don't think I have ever read words that moved me in such away."

"I'll keep you to that." Tom said and Harry nodded,

"If you are not stunned speechless then I will submit myself to your will for an entire day." Harry said completely sure of himself, Tom eyed him and smirked.

"I'll definitely keep you to that."

"I know," Harry cast a tempus and grinned when Tom groaned under his breath, "Do have fun listening to Dumbledore's drivel." Tom didn't even grace him with an answer as he reapplied his own glamour and stalked from the room. Harry snickered and used the shadows to get back to his own room and was surprised to see Neville sat with Luna going over things.

"Hey, Snake."

"Hey, Badger, what's going on?"

"We're just discussing information," Neville told him, "It seems that Dumbledore has left the castle repeatedly, and that he has met with this Slughorn person a few times too."

"Do you have any idea where Dumbledore has been going?"

"Nothing specific, but he's been going around the country and we believe he has made regular stops around the village of Little Hangleton." Luna explained and Harry cursed.

"He's hunting." He muttered, "I am unsure, as of yet, if Tom has collected his."

"I think it would be time to send out some distractions." Badger suggested, "Something for him to focus his attentions on."

"I have an idea, but I don't know if it will work yet. It could go so badly wrong."

"But the other thought is inconceivable." Luna pointed out.

"I know," Harry muttered, "Ok, I think I can organise this."

"I'll tell the twins to speed up on the plans," Luna said straightening up and Harry grinned.

"You can feel it to?"

"Yes and its getting stronger by the day." Luna said brightly,

"Thankfully,"

"What is your other plan?"

"A few mini raids, get the order busy again." Harry shrugged, but Luna shook her head.

"No, not that one." She waved him off, "You're plan." Harry shifted and pulled at his hair throwing her a sheepish look.

"Can you hear me out first?"

"Sure,"

"I plan on marking the final and seducing him-," He didn't get any further because Luna released a shocked shriek.

"Are you insane!?" She demanded looking at him with wide blue eyes,

"Is that a trick question?"

"Snake
 Harry, that is not a good idea." Neville said warily, "If he even catches wind of this
 I don't even want to know." Harry scowled,

"He won't," He stated, "Besides, he is not my keeper, and it's not like I will allow filth to touch me so."

"This is a risk
 an unnecessary one too." Luna told him and Harry shook his head.

"No, it's not. Think, for a second, the stir it will cause and then add it to the fact that there is only one time of day in which he is open for attacks, and even then the chances of getting a hit on him are extremely slim." Harry said to them and, while they didn't look pleased, they could see the logic in his thinking.

"I suppose
"

"Anyway, I'll wear a minor glamour and it will be discrete."

"Fine, but I swear to Merlin I'll reincarnate you if you get yourself killed." Luna warned and Harry smiled.

"Trust in my abilities, sister."

"Ok," She sighed and he kissed her cheek.

"I am going on a trip, so you can continue your discussion." Harry said,

"Where are you off to, Snake?"

"I'm off to watch Tom hurt people." Harry said brightly,

"Do have fun, Snake,"

"I will, don't worry about that." He flicked his wrist and summoned his map to watch the meeting. It really didn't look to thrilling and Harry couldn't work out what it was about because there was a meeting a few days ago, he'd ask Tom if he cared enough later. Harry went up to have a shower and change his clothes, he changed in to all black before having the shadows form his robes and making his way back to the main area.

"Cool." Badger commented and Harry smirked,

"They do hold some appeal, yes."

"He is just speaking with Dumbledore about you." Luna informed him,

"He's giving him a progress updated, bit that's alright, he informed me in advance."

"I think Dumbledore is getting twitchy, with the articles building and Ginny being out of the equation for so long he is going to be applying pressure to you. Especially with the Death Eaters being so quite, he is bound to be suspicious." Neville pointed out.

"I know, which is why these raids might distract him, it'll be good seeing I'm going to be out a lot with the wolves in the upcoming weeks." Harry said, he ran his hand through his hair and checked the map, "I'm off,"

"See you later, Snake," Harry tossed them a careless wave and vanished in to the shadows. He shamelessly watched as Tom changed his clothes and the Dark Lord shot him an amused look to which Harry replied with a grin,

"Are you calling them immediately, or the Elite first?" Harry asked,

"I need to speak with my Elite first, especially Bella."

"Good, I have a suggestion."

"Oh?"

"Yes," Harry used the shadows to take them to Malfoy Manor without alerting Lucius and they headed to the meeting room, "I think it would be a good time to organise a few minor raids – just to give Dumbledore something to do."

"And to distract him from
?" Tom trailed off and Harry smirked,

"Oh you know me so well." He sighed clutching his heart theatrically, "But yes, I need the order and the aurors distracted while I send Venom out for his first."

"I think I can arrange that,"

"Wonderful. Now, what do you plan on doing with Bella?"

"I have been working on a way to counter the spell completely. I know you mentioned that Dumbledore twisted it to suit his own ways, but I believe if I can created a baseline counter then it should cover everything."

"You're kind of a genius, did you know?"

"Yes, it is something I have become aware of recently." Tom agreed and Harry looked at him blankly.

"I'm going to give you that one." He said shaking his head, Tom flashed him a smirk. Harry rolled his eyes and jumped through the shadows over to the throne at the far side of the meeting room, he draped himself in the pretentious seating and shrouded it in shadows.

"It's almost a good look for you." Tom commented as he swept forward, Harry wondered how the man made himself glide across the floor in such a fashion.

"Almost?"

"Yes
 it's my throne."

"Ooo, ouch!" Harry gracefully pulled himself up and made a sweeping bow towards Tom. "Your throne, Your Majesty,"

"You're an idiot,"

"I have yet to see it," Harry disagreed, "Besides, you started it. And you can keep your throne, I can make myself a better one." Tom raised an eyebrow.

"By all means demonstrate." He said and Harry smirked,

"Now, if this works, prepare to be amazed."

"You know what would make that statement much more enticing?" Tom said,

"What?"

"Forgoing the 'if this works',"

"Na, it adds depth." Harry waved him off and Tom rolled his eyes.

"I'm prepared," He deadpanned. Harry closed his eyes and delved in to his magical core, he found his shadow ability connected through his shadow wolf form and then he looked towards his phoenix and mentally smirked. The bond was nearly formed, it could just use a bit of magic and it would be complete; something Harry carefully fed it. He was hit like a brick with shock and only his iron control stopped him slipping, he knew he was on fire and, if he remembered correctly, it was poisonous green flames with flecks of black. Harry opened his eyes when the connection was complete and saw himself surrounded by flames and smirked, he called the shadows up and pushed the flames away from him mixing them together, it was an extremely cool effect with the blacker than black shadows and the twisting green flames wrapping around the structure of the throne as it formed. When it was solid enough to support him, Harry threw himself down and kicked his legs over the arm.

"Tah dah,"

"Ok, I am amazed." Tom agreed looking at the throne, "I want one."

"Absolutely not," Harry replied instantly,

"Why ever not?"

"It's my throne." Harry repeated the man's earlier words and he crossed his arms with a huff.

"Fine,"

"Are you pouting?" Harry asked incredulously.

"No," He denied but Harry could see it.

"Oh Merlin, you are! You are so pouting because you can't have your own way."

"I am not!"

"Denial is in Egypt, Tom," Harry sang and the man turned to look at him confused.

"I'm sorry?"

"Denial, it's in Egypt." Harry repeated, he watched as the meaning fell in Tom's mind and then the man glowered at him.

"Ha ha ha, are you not the most hilarious person in existence." He grumbled.

"Well, I think 'existence' is pushing it, but definitely in Europe." Harry said thoughtfully. Tom shot him an unimpressed look, but Harry could sense the underlying humour which made his own lips twitch in to an unremorseful grin before he laughed and Tom chuckled.

"You are impossible."

"I know,"

"Where is Nagini?" Harry asked and Tom tilted his head.

"She usually comes when ever I arrive."

"But you usually apperate in," Harry pointed out.

"That is because you despise apperation,"

"Damn straight."

"She should have sense my magic by now. She will, no doubt, be here soon."

"Brilliant,"

"I fail to grasp your
 excitement about meeting my familiar." Tom said and Harry grinned.

"This is the same snake you managed to lose an argument to, of course I'm interested." Harry's grin morphed in to a devilish smirk that didn't bode well for Tom, Dark Lord or not. "And then there is the fact that she has been your longest companion and until today, only you have been able to understand here." Tom blinked twice before his eyes widened slightly and he actually cursed.

"Shit,"

"This meeting is going to beautiful." Harry sighed happily.

"I will stop her speaking to you." Tom stated but Harry felt the doubt of that statement.

"Really?"

"Yes, Nagini is my familiar. She is bound to listen to me." Tom seemed to be trying to be reassuring himself more than he was trying to convince Harry, and it was failing on both counts.

"I can feel that you are lying." Harry pointed out and Tom threw him a look of death.

"I am aware." He spat, "Damn familiar,"

After all this time apart masster, this hurts me. A female voice echoed around the room and the sound of scaled sliding across marble could be heard. Harry looked towards the sound and saw a huge, deep green snake sliding over to them and he could seriously see what Tom meant when he said that you could not hide a snake that size. She had a large triangle head and shining black eyes, her red tongue was working quickly as she scented the room and approached the throne. As she got closer, Harry could see that she was lighter green diamonds going down her back and they were mixed with black ones; overall she was stunning.

Nagini, you chose not to speak to me, Tom pointed out in a tone that suggested he had already had this particular conversation.

But master, She drew herself up, and was that the puppy dog eyes? Harry didn't even think that was possible for a snake, I miss the big nest, and I am all alone here with the fussy blond people. You betrayed me! Harry barely caught himself from choking on his laugh, he kept it in by a margin as Tom pinched the bridge of his nose.

We have gone over this, Nagini, it is simply not possible for you to accompany me to the castle.

Have you found another familiar master? Do you no longer want me? She threw her great head back and released a wail of despair, Harry was paralyzed with hilarity as he took in the sight. It would look like a threatening gesture to anyone else, a huge snake with his mouth wide open revealing all the venomous fangs, but when you could hear what was actually being said and it was a completely different matter. Harry couldn't even get himself to move so he could laugh, his entire body was frozen and Tom turned to him clearly unimpressed by his humoured state.

Do you believe me now?

I believed you before, but you failed to mention how hilarious this is! Harry choked out,

Another speaker! Nagini exclaimed switching from wailing to excitement instantly, she slid over to Harry and looked at him. You will make my master come to his senses.

Hello Nagini, what seems to be the problem? Harry greeted politely,

My master abandoned me to the cruelty of the blond humans. She complained rather pitifully given her size, Harry has to mask another wave of humour,

I have not abandoned you, Nagini,

Alone, no visits, no extra large snacks while he goes to the big nest,

You cannot be there, it is impossible.

But who is there to make sure you do not get in trouble? She questioned and Tom took a deep breath,

I am capable of looking after myself, I am a fully grown man. Tom told her,

There is no one to clean up the bodies, no one to fearlessly threaten those who dare approach the 'Great Lord Voldemort' and no one to make sure you stop taking other peoples things and hiding them. She said earnestly and Harry was all but dying in his seat with laughter, he had given in when she had said she was there to stop Tom getting in to trouble, but now he could barely breathe. Harry was trying to suck in sharp breathes, but every time he tried he replayed the words in his mind and he would collapse again. He didn't know whether the 'fearlessly threaten the Great Lord Voldemort' was his favourite or the fact that she confirmed that Tom was a klepto.

Have you quite finished? Tom growled glaring at him and the snake who looked very pleased with herself.

Oh Merlin, Harry gasped, I can't breathe, he felt tears streaming down his face and he forcefully tried to calm himself down by pulling at Tom's irritation, it worked to a degree because he got his breathing under control, but he was still snickering.

Are you done?

I am not even sorry, Harry told him,

I can feel that, Tom stated before going back to his beloved familiar, Nagini, I have explained my reasonings, you have to accept them. She gave him a dark look before turning to Harry.

You will take me to the big nest, other speaker. She instructed in a demanded voice, You smell of my master so you are there too.

Nagini! Tom's voice held a slight warning, but Nagini didn't falter, she slithered over and wrapped herself around her master making herself look like a large scaly scarf.

Pleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleasepleaseplease?

I've said no,

But master,

No,

What if-

No

I could-

No

Even if-

No, and if you keep on you can get off. Tom said and she huffed. She slid back to the floor and slithered off to the side where she curled up and kept a menacing glare on Tom.

I am cold. I hope you are happy, She grumbled. Harry muffled his laughter as Tom rolled his eyes and flicked his wand to heat the floor.

"You see what I have to deal with." Tom complained and Harry grinned.

"I fail to see the problem."

"You would,"

"Of course, Tom," Harry responded brightly.

"At least I can begin the meeting." Tom muttered to himself and took out his wand, he drew the dark mark in the air and jabbed it with his wand,

Elite, he hissed and Harry felt the magic ripple. Almost instantly, there were 7 cracks as the elite apperated in and dropped to their knees,

"My Lord," they murmured together.

"Rise, my elite," Tom commanded in a cold, detached voice. The elite rose to their feet and both Tom and Harry watched in amusement as they stumbled back when they saw Harry and his seat, it was true that he had the shadows wrapped around him so much that he looked like he was one with the throne and the only thing on show was his eyes, his hair and the bottom half of his face.

"Um, My Lord
?" Lucius managed to recover first and Harry smiled a rather frightening smile, it was full of teeth which contrasted starkly against the shadows.

"Is something bothering you, Luciusss?" He asked emphasising the final 's' and allowing the shadows to make the sound bounce around the room.

"Ignore him, he bores easily." Tom instructed and Harry nearly pouted, he should be allowed his fun! He vanished his throne and vanished back in to the shadows so he was completely hidden, the elite's eyes followed him slightly behind their masks and Harry smirked to himself. "We have short time before the rest are called."

"Sorry, My Lord,"

"Now, Bella, I believe I have found the cause of your sudden mind change during the battle." Tom stated,

"You have, My Lord?" There was no mistaking the hope in her voice, "I know we opposed each other, and I know he was against us, but he was family and I would never purposely kill him like that."

"It is an ancient spell, that causes subconscious illusions that are triggered by a selected notion. It could be a face, a word or even an action, and it is to be believed that Dumbledore, the one responsible, twisted the intention of the spell for his own purposed." Tom explained,

"Do you know of the trigger, My Lord?" She asked hopefully and Tom sighed through his nose.

"Unfortunately I do not." He sounded extremely pissed at that and Harry knew he was, "I would not have this information if it wasn't for our current guest,"

"I have my own researcher, she found that the spell originated from Ancient Greece, and there was never a counter created." Harry's voice sounded from the shadows and it was distorted, "Dumbledore cast it personally and it was purposely to be rid of Sirius Black, he had yet to release any information about the trigger, but he is being monitored."

"Is there anything to be done?" Bella asked and the usually insane Lestrange sounded nervous; it was odd.

"The possibility of a counter is currently being examined." Tom told her and she nodded,

"Thank you, My Lord, I am most grateful."

"Lucius, how goes the ministry?"

"After the appointment of Hadrian Greengrass, there are many old legislations which have been dug up and I believe he plans to throw most of them out of the window. It seemed Delores Umbridge' death came at the most convenient time, she has been keeping many important things out of many different ears." Lucius told his Lord. "Dumbledore is also moving on a new bill he wishes to rush through, I believe his is starting to worry about the slander he is gaining because of the articles. The last one was particularly vicious."

"Do you know where they are coming from, my Lord?" Nott asked, "I have asked around, and Skeeter is no where to be found." The smile that came to the Dark Lord's face was truly terrifying, it was more than a little sadistic and Harry knew he had a slight problem when the only thing that came to his mind was that that smile was perfect for the man's face.

"Inquire no more, Izar. It is unneeded," Tom murmured and it was clear the conversation was at a close. "Do you know what is to be expected with this bill, Lucius?"

"Not as of yet, he is keeping it to his chest, but I know it is in the 'war' category." Lucius answered and Harry couldn't help the grin that came to his face as he stepped out of the shadows behind the elite.

"Oh I do believe I know what bill he wishes to pass." Harry said with glee.

"Your twins?"

"Yes, they came to me with the draft of something the old fool was having his subordinates work on. I never believed he would actually have it passed, but I did say if he would it would be after Halloween." Harry said,

"Do you know what is written?"

"Not exactly, but I can have it to you by Monday at the latest. I do know, however, if it gets passed, from the transcripts I have seen, the Death Eaters will become a legal organisation."

"Surely he isn't that stupid?"

"No, Dumbledore may not be." Harry agreed, "But Dumbledore is not the one writing it."

"Who is he getting to write it? Moody?" Rabastan snorted at the very thought, but Harry smirked.

"You would be correct."

"You have to be joking?" He exclaimed and Harry shook his head,

"Unfortunately, I am not. It seems Dumbledore pushed this on to his best 'lieutenant'."

"Oh Merlin, the old fool truly is crazy."

"If that is true, then he will have only cursed himself. I'll need that legislation at the quickest possible time."

"Done,"

"Now, on to a more pressing issue," Tom said, "You have been tracking individuals, do you have information?"

"There are rumours, My Lord," Rodolphus began slowly, "They are whispering of a hit against some dark creatures, wolves, and they want to make it big. They're gathering any anti-werewolf supporters for it, but they are quiet about the location and the time."

"I have heard the same, My Lord," Dolohov agreed, "But I have heard that the hit will happen within the month."

"This is good," Tom murmured, "Watch them, see if you can get closer, find out everything you can. It is imperative we do not lose any more of the wolves, they are our closest ally and if the continual attacks happen it will drive them away. Bella, Lucius and Nott, you shall be needed elsewhere."

"Yes, My Lord." Tom nodded and drew his mark again to call his inner and outer circles. Harry faded back completely and moved to the left wall of Tom's throne just as cracks began to rip through the silent room. The black and white masks of the inner and outer circles respectively shone as a sharp contrast against the chrome of the elite and Harry watches as each of them fell to their knees. It was less than a minute until they were all in attendance and Tom rose to his feet,

"Rise my faithful followers," His voice was stiff and commanding and it carried through the entire room. The Death Eaters rose as one, they were completely still as they stood and the Dark Lord observed them with icy crimson eyes.

"It seems you have finally learned not to disregard my orders." He began and Harry picked up on the slight shifting of a group in the outer circle, they must have been the rogue Unit 4 Tom was speaking of. "Unit 5 and 6, you were given orders – do you have my report?" two groups of around 12 stepped forward from the rows,

"We have, my Lord." One spoke clearly, his head bowed slightly in submission, "We have discovered 4 villages that have been warded securely by Dumbledore's Order, or under his command. We have mapped out their locations and the wards we discovered." They stepped back and Harry could tell Tom was pleased.

"Acceptable, make sure you place your report in the correct place." He told them neutrally, but they seemed ecstatic and nodded.

"It will be done, My Lord."

"Unit 2, your report." Voldemort called and Harry instantly knew he was going to enjoy this. They stepped forward and each of them were quivering as they moved, and when the Dark Lord turned his unrelenting eyes upon them Harry swore one of them whimpered.

"M-my Lord, please
 we t-tried, w-we – we did – but it was impossible!"

"What are you saying, Daviss?" Voldemort asked in a hiss.

"W-w-we couldn't complete it, My Lord." The man, Davis, finally managed and Harry was flooded with anger which wasn't his own.

"What happened?" He demanded,

"There w-were c-c-complications." He got out, "We didn't foresee a – a change o-over." Harry watched as Tom paced in front of his throne silently, it was a technique he used to make the tension grow for the Death Eaters. He was currently in full Dark Lord Voldemort mode and the man was pissed, that much was obvious and if it wasn't then the stuttering fool that had given said report gave it away.

"It seems as if you have failed me." Voldemort said softly, his voice was void of emotion and icy cold.

"N-no, M-my Lord, we tried, but-,"

"Silence," The Dark Lord snapped and they had all dropped to their knees by now, there wasn't one which wasn't quivering like a frightened child. "I do not care for your excuses and I care even less for your failures. My orders were simple and yet you are here before me informing me of your mistakes." His magic was swirling through the room and Harry smirked, he knew what was coming next and he was excited; he hadn't been able to watch Tom torture his death eaters.

"Crucio," the death eater fell to the floor screaming and the Dark Lord's magic swarmed the room crackling around in dark amusement. Harry looked at the man and saw he had a vicious, blood thirsty expression on his face which went straight south for Harry. Voldemort turned his wand on the other kneeling death eaters in turn and Harry watched fascinated, the man made torture an art and Harry could not, for the life of him, keep his thoughts clear, his eyes never left the Dark Lord as he twisted his magic to do his bidding.

Voldemort swept his arm gracefully and all of them began screaming and clawing at their heads and their eyes, he snapped his wand like a whip and there was crack of magic before they were pushed forcefully to the floor, two of them were arching at angles that could not be healthy. And as he watched, there was only thing that registered in Harry's extremely clouded mind. He wanted Tome now. His body was burning and he was sure it was leaking through his Occlumency shields by the smirk that flashed across the man's face. Harry pushed himself further in to the shadows and tried to drag his eyes away, but that was easier said than done when the man was splashing himself in blood and Harry bit back a whimper, if Tom didn't dismiss his damn Death Eaters soon then Harry was not going to be responsible for his actions. As if reading his mind, Tom pulled back on his magic and sat gracefully on his throne.

"I warn you that it would not be wise to fail me a second time." He stated, "Dismissed," they scurried out like rats, except for the elite who calmly walked out with their heads held high, and as soon as the doors slammed shut the wards flared. Harry came out of the shadows directly in front of Tom and his eyes were so dark it was as if the shadows were in them, he was filled with a burning need and he was pulled down in to a hot kiss so he was straddling the man. Harry used the shadows to move them to Tom's room in the manor without breaking the kiss, he hissed when Tom bit down on his lip and it started to bleed.

You seem to have a thing for torture, Tom hissed pinning him to the bed,

Yess, Harry sucked in a sharp breath when Tom bit down on his neck, Fuck me, he demanded, Fuck me like a follower, Master, Tom's eyes went black as soon as he said those words and Harry was washed with a delirious amount of desire as his clothes were vanished. Use me like I'm disposable, treat me like a whore, Tom attacked his lips and dominated the kiss, he broke away to trail viciously sharp bits all over Harry's neck some sharp enough to bleed.

On your knees, Tom ordered, And turn around, Harry felt a thrill shoot through him as he complied to the command, he dropped on to his hands when he felt Tom apply pressure to his neck. Harry felt magic wash over him and that was the only warning he received before Tom thrust in to him; he screamed. The pain shot up his spine forcing him to arch up and his hands curled in to fists, Tom didn't give him chance to adjust to the feeling as he started to move at a furious pace. He continued to fuck him as Harry cried and screamed out in a mix of pain and pleasure, Harry dropped to his forearms allowing Tom to go deeper and one of Tom's hands yanked sharply at his hair making him arch almost painfully,

Fuck, Master, he cried when his spot was pounded in to, Harder, AH-! Harry felt the heat coiling in his stomach as Tom continued to hit his prostate, each thrust was sending heat through him and Harry came hard when Tom slammed in to him and bit down on his neck at the same time. Tom followed him after a final thrust and they both collapsed on to the bed breathing heavily. Harry knew he was going to be feeling that very soon but he felt to damn good to care. He waved his hand to clean them both from the mess and rolled over on to his back wincing slightly as his had a brief flare in pain,

"I'll remember to inform you each time I have the urge to torture my Death Eaters." Tom murmured and Harry smirked.

"I could live with that." He agreed. The man pulled him over and Harry straddled his hips, and leaned down to kiss him, "I'm really not feeling school just yet."

"I have just the thing to keep you occupied."


"I know what I was supposed to tell you." Harry remembered as he vanished the shadows around him. It was late, but neither of them had felt like leaving the bed at Malfoy Manor, and if it wasn't for Harry reminding Tom that he had plans for the next day then he was sure the man would have refused to allow him back.

"Oh?"

"Yes, Venom was only one reason for the extra raids with the DE's." Harry said, "I wanted to know if you've moved your little trinkets."

"I have moved the one I thought the easiest to discover, after the
 shocking discovery in the summer I believed it best. Of course, I did not expect you to deliver the one I felt the most protected." Tom said indicated the locket which didn't move from around Harry's neck, the only time he planned to take it off was if he was going near Dumbledore.

"You may want to collect them all, just in case." Harry said, "Dumbledore has been branching out, and I don't know if it does have anything to do with you, but I got an extremely bad feeling when both Badger and Raven told me the old fool is meeting with Horace Slughorn." Tom's eyes narrowed dangerously when Harry said that name and hissed curses spewed out his mouth.

"He was my potions master, had a real thing for me and it allowed me to get anything from him. He was the one who told me what a Horcrux was, and we discussed the power of the number seven." Tom gritted out and Harry pinched the bridge of his nose.

"Why must this happen now." Harry groaned, "Ok, this can be contained. The twins can get rid of Slughorn and make it look like a potions accident, at the same time as the raids and while Venom is taking out a bit of scum from the ministry. We'll work it so it pans out on the same day, next week, after the article so on Wednesday or Thursday."

"That will work, I will arrange the raids for Thursday, but I'll scatter them, make sure that their forces are spread thin." Tom agreed, "I may even send Bella to pump up the fear."

"That's mean." Harry said, "I like it."

"Of course you would,"

"Most definitely," Harry agreed, "But don't worry Tom, we'll make sure all the pieces of your black soul are kept safe."

"Black soul?" Tom repeated amused,

"I'm sorry, evil black soul." Harry corrected, and Tom rolled his eyes. He pulled Harry closer and kissed him, Harry moaned in the back of his throat as Tom explored his mouth, but reluctantly, he pulled away.

"I have to make plans." He murmured and Tom sighed through his nose,

"I know,"

"That means you have to let me go," Harry pointed out,

"I do not like that option," Tom grumbled, but released him.

"I'm going out tomorrow, so I'll see you tomorrow night anyway to fill you in." Harry said and Tom nodded,

"I am interested to see what you find."

"Same, I am hoping it's good." Harry agreed, "Now, I'm off." Tom stole another kiss before Harry vanished in to the shadows. He didn't know why he was surprised to find his room full, but he took one look at the smirking Luna and grinned,

"You are extremely handy." He told her and she gave a mock curtsey.

"I live to serve,"

"Pfft, yeah, ok." He scoffed, "Ok, I have a plan and I need it organised quickly."

"Speak to us, Snake." Fred said eagerly,

"What have you got on that devious mind?" George added,

"Right, Bleach, have you spoken to Venom?" Harry asked and Draco nodded along with Blaise.

"I am ready to act on your word." Blaise confirmed,

"Good, the date is set for Thursday." Harry told him, before turning to the twins, "Now, gentlemen, there is a new target, one that needs your expertise."

"Go on,"

"Horace Slughorn, noted potions master and a man slimier than Malfoy Sr," Harry said and grinned and Draco's indignant look, "You know it's true, Bleach."

"I resent that," Draco huffed,

"Anyway, I need it to look like a potions accident, there can be absolutely no suspicion that it was not how it seems." Harry said to them seriously,

"We can handle it," George assured him, "Is this for Thursday too?"

"Yes. There is going to be scattered raids that will hit at the same time, Venom will take out his, you will hit yours and I will go for mine." Harry explained,

"Got it,"

"I still think your idea is a stupid one." Luna told him, and Harry sighed through his nose.

"I know, you have mentioned it a few times." Harry grumbled, "But there are more important plans to be made."

"Our hunt," Swift put in, "Everything is ready to go."

"I say tomorrow," Harry said and Paws nodded,

"We need to get it out of the way, and tomorrow we can spend the entire day searching."

"I've planned to fly there and back." Swift told them, "Simply because we do not know where or what we are going in to."

"That's fine, it's been a while since I've flown and we can make a proper day of it." Harry agreed,

"We shall be here for 10am, and then we'll shadow to London before flying to Crawley," Paws said,

"Ok, but on the way back I want to make a pit stop in London to collect some things." Harry said,

"I had a feeling you might, and so I marked it down." Swift said amused,

"Brilliant. I have a feeling that tomorrow will be extremely enlightening." Harry said pleased, "Now, Tom knows about Bella, and is working on it. The female Lestrange has been informed also, and has been alerted to be cautious. But, I do have some truly interesting news."

"Oh, and what have you found out during your time within the Dark Lair?" The twins asked,

"Remember that legislation you overheard, the one that Moody was writing? Well, it seems that Dumbledore is going to have it pushed through."

"No way!" They exclaimed and Harry nodded smirking,

"Yes, he really is that stupid!"

"Oh Merlin," Swift sighed shaking his head, "He really has got very little going for him."

"Tell me about it." Harry agreed, "I couldn't help but laugh, and what made it even funnier was that Rabastan guessed accidently who had written it."

"That pretty much says it all." Badger muttered,

"I am guessing you want a full copy of the legislation." Fred said and Harry nodded,

"Monday at the latest, if you will,"

"Consider it done."

"Thanks," Harry said gratefully, "One more thing, there are rumours surfacing within the darker corners that the wolf hunters are planning something big."

"They are going to learn a painful lesson." Luna said viciously and Harry agreed,

"They are, and they are planning to move at the end of the month." Harry said,

"Do you have any idea what?" Paws asked,

"No, but Dolohov and the others are going to try and infiltrate the operation. Until then I have no idea." Harry sighed,

"At least we have ears out." Swift said,

"True, but seeing as we're practically in the second week of November we have move quickly."

"Well the goblins will be finished come the end of next week. Two of the wolf hunters will be out of the way, the order will be distracted and Slughorn out of the way." Badger told the room, "We will be fine as long as we keep calm and done screw up."

"You're right, Badger," Luna agreed,

"Of course I am,"

"Oh Merlin, he's been around Snake too much." Paws mock groaned and Harry shot her a hurt look.

"I resent that." He sniffed,

"No you don't," She deadpanned and Harry grinned,

"You're right, its so cool."

"I have research to do," Paws said, "I'll see you tomorrow, Snake,"

"See you, Paws, Swift."

"Severus is testing the potion, but it looks good." Draco told him, rising to his feet with Venom and the twins,

"Wonderful, I won't be dosed anymore."

"You got Snape onside?" The twins said incredulously, "How in Merlin's name did you do that?"

"Raven." Harry answered as if it explained everything,

"Fair enough," They conceded,

"I'll let you know as soon as I know about the potion."

"Thanks, Bleach." Harry said sincerely, "We'll meet on Tuesday or something,"

"Got it,"

The four of them vanished leaving Luna and Neville to pin him with looks,

"Ok, I know my idea is risky, but you know that it would be the only chance I would have to lead him away." Harry pointed out,

"You should allow me to do it, I could do-,"

"Absolutely not!" Harry cut her of sharply, "There is no way in hell I would allow that." Luna crossed her arms, but didn't argue anymore.

"I just hope you have a gift or something." Badger said and Harry grinned,

"Lady luck kissed me as a child, right before I was dropped in a pool of back luck." Harry stated,

"Well, he's got that one right." Badger allowed and Harry rolled his eyes,

"I'll be fine, nothing will go wrong, and once its done I'll explain what happened." Harry reassured them,

"Fine, but if this goes wrong I will hurt you." Luna huffed and the stalked up to the bedroom,

"I best go cheer her up, Merlin knows I need her." Harry sighed pulling himself up,

"She's worried about you, Snake. Maybe you should listen to her." Badger suggested, before he left the room.

"Honestly, its like they have no faith." Harry complained to the empty room.

Chapter 22

Notes:

Un'beta'd

Should have read the tags by now guys :P

Parsel is in bold italics

This is personally one of my all time favourite chapters <3

Chapter Text

Chapter 22:

 

"This is oddly exciting." Harry said to Luna as he came down from his room. He had dressed all in black for the outing, black jeans and a black long sleeve top that was non descript but Harry was sure he pulled if off well. So maybe his jeans were tighter that most's would be, and maybe his top highlighted his body, which was coming along nicely now he had started training again, but other than that it was plain.

"I don't know what you will find, but I have a feeling that something big is going to happen today." Luna mused,

"Good or bad?" Harry asked, his gaze sharpening.

"I don't know, it's murky, like a mist." She sighed frustrated,

"Do not worry yourself," Harry soothed, "I am sure we will find out eventually."

"I hate sending you places completely blind." Luna said and Harry smiled slightly,

"I have Swift and Paws, they are enough."

"Damn straight," Swift agreed walking in, he was dressed in blue jeans and a white top.

"Hey Swift,"

"Paws is coming, she slipped on her glamour." Swift said, "I edited the plans slightly, we just need to brush over them before we go."

"Fine,"

They didn't have to wait long for Paws to fall in to the room, she was carrying a small beaded back and was dressed in a mix of Harry and Ron.

"Sorry," Paws said, "I don't know what I was thinking."

"Never mind," Harry waved her off, "Swift has made some changes."

"Oh?"

"Yeah," Swift took the floor, "I switched the roots. We'll shadow to Brighton and fly up to Crawly where we will track the Flamel property from there, then we shall fly up to London to make a pit stop and shadow back. That way, there is no suspicious behaviour of three large birds seemingly flying back and forth." Swift explained to them, and Harry smirked.

"Brilliant. We can deal with everything else after."

"Yes, we can use our own runes and spells to find the property and work from there." Paws agreed,

"Be careful, all of you." Luna warned, as she kissed Harry on the cheek."

"Don't worry, Raven, we're in this together." Swift assured,

"Swift, I need the rough coordinates." Harry said. Swift handed him a sheet of parchment, Harry took the numbers in to his mind and held out his hand for them to take. "Hold your breath," the shadows swarmed them and they vanished from the room.

"I forgot that yours was much more intense." Paws groaned slumping back against the wall once the shadows had dispersed, Harry smirked and cast a quick notice-me-not charm around them.

"We're definitely in Brighton, I can smell the sea." Harry said, "Do you know the direction we have to travel."

"Yes, follow the beam." Paws told him, she flicked her wand and Harry blinks as a bright yellow beam appeared in his vision, it was leading them west from the alley in which they were in.

"Ready when you are." Harry said. All three of them immediately changed in to their animagus forms, Harry in his black phoenix form, Swift in his black falcon form and Paws as her black eagle form.

We'll have to speak like this, Harry said through their link. He beat his wings and took to the sky, Swift and Paws followed them up and they took off swooping now and then to adjust to the form.

That is fine, Paws said, I was worried it wasn't going to work.

That would have been a disaster. Swift said, I can't believe we didn't think about that.

Yeah well, thank lady luck, she's feeling kind currently. Harry joked. Once they had gotten used to the feeling, they began following the beam to their destination, it was set to be a long flight, but they were magical animals and their flight would take a shorter amount of time then a normal bird.

Who is going to be fuelling the gate? Harry asked, about an hour in to their flight.

You'll hold them visible, I'll bring them up and stabilise you and Paws will power it. Swift answered him,

Ok, are we expecting anything else?

We are working partially blind, we do not know what kind of things we are going to be discovering. According to my research, the Flamel residence has never been located so I could not find anything. Paws sounded like she was sighing,

How did you managed to find it? Harry wondered,

Remember that book on Alcamy, the one by Flamel that you found?

What the handwritten one?

Yes, She clarified, Well, I discovered that when a magical person writes something they leave minute traced of their magic within the ink and the paper. I managed to extract his magic from the book because there was enough pages to collect a recognisable amount of magic. From there I merely place it in your tracker to search for the highest concentrate of the magic – hence the beam. Paws explained,

Brilliant, Paws, Harry said, and he would be grinning if he were human,

We're getting closer, Swift pointed out, The beam is getting thick,

I estimate 10 minutes, Harry said,

Shall we go lower? Paws suggested,

Yes, we can to the final bit on foot.

They began a slow descent following the thickening beam, Swift spotted a covered area in which they could land and to they followed him down to the ground.

"What do you think?" Swift asked looking at Harry, who had his head tilted and his eyes narrowed.

"We're close, I can feel the wards." He murmured, "Come on," he walked in a seemingly random direction, but the others didn't question him because they didn't want to break his concentration. Harry was walking through the trees when he suddenly stopped.

"Snake?"

"I think we have arrived. Swift?"

"On it," Swift flicked his wand and began muttering under his breath, there was a flare of magic and strong ward lines appeared in front of them.

"Whatever fuelled these wards is still active." Harry said, "You shouldn't have been able to pull them up that easily."

"I know, I can feel them now." Swift agreed. Harry closed his eyes and let his magic wrap around the ward lines.

"Defessa,"

The wards pulled on his magic as they tried to retreat back to where they were supposed to be, but Harry kept focussed and tightened his hold. Paws pulled out a black cube from the small beaded back and placed it directly under the ward lines, the cube had many runes scribed across it was it was thrumming with ambient magic.

"Ready?" She asked,

"On your call,"

"Now," she poured her magic in to the runes on the cube and the thing flared to life, it shone brightly and when it began to pulse, a beam shot up and connected with the wards. Sparks immediately began issuing from the connection, and Paws poured more magic in to the cube making it shine brighter and cut through the first ward line. It took a while, but eventually the rest of the ward lines were cut through and a gateway was opened for them to walk through.

"Mark it," Harry said, and Paws placed an 'X' in each corner of the door allowing Harry to drop the wards.

"Lets go, on your guard." Harry warned and led them in. Harry couldn't help but stop stunned at the building that came in to view as they passed the wards; it was truly beautiful!

"Wow," Paws breathed from behind him.

"I'll say!" Swift agreed,

In front of them was a picturesque cottage surrounded by ivy and flourishing plant life. It was large, it seemed to stretch out each side for ages, and it had a thatched roof. The building itself was made out of old stone, you could practically feel its age within the air, and it had a big solid wood door with wrought iron hinges and a iron ring for a handle.

"I didn't know what to expect," Paws said, it seemed there was something in the air that made them speak quietly, "But this isn't it."

"It looks like the gingerbread houses that you can buy during the Yule season." Swift murmured,

"Can you feel the magic," Harry whispered amazed, the air was practically thrumming with it, and while the property was stunning, it was the magic that captured his interest.

"Its making my skin tingle," Paws said, "It's like it's still alive."

"Come on, we have to get moving." Swift reminded them, "Snake, can you feel anything dangerous?"

"No, its welcoming currently," He said, "But I have no doubt that will change soon."

They began moving hesitantly through the grounds, they were filled with plant life and flowers and Harry was sure Neville would have a small fit if he could see it. As they continued to get closer to the house, Harry could feel the magic changing, it had recognised that they were not its owners and it was starting to react.

"At the ready," Harry warned. They only managed to take a few steps when black vines shot up from the ground and snaked towards them, Harry was already released a shot of flames immediately recognising the vines as Devil Snare, and Swift and Paws followed almost immediately.

"Round one, do you think?" Swift asked as he dispelled his flames.

"Yes, that was just a warm up; I can feel it." Harry confirmed. Just as the words left his mouth, a plant, which had looked nondescript at first, reared up and spat vicious looking needles at them. Paws banished them backwards, but the plant spat more and Harry was sure that neither of them wanted to be on the receiving end of the needles, or the liquid on them.

"Swift target the plant." Harry told him, as he banished more of the needles.

"On it," Swift threw a Reducto at the base of the plant and part of it ripped away, the chunk that went flying off split in to many pieces and as soon as it touched the ground it grew in to another spitting plant and began targeting them with needles.

"That could be a problem" Swift observed,

"Paws, can you hold the needles?" Snake asked and she nodded,

"Swift, you keep blasting and gouging, I'll vanish and incinerate." Snake said. They worked together to get rid of the plant, Harry found that it couldn't be vanished and so he took to sending blasts of flames at the flying foliage.

"Well, that was certainly interesting." Harry said brightly, wiping his brow from where he was sweating because of the heat.

"Not the word I would use, but I'll go with it." Swift said shaking his head.

"I've never seen or heard of that plant before." Paws said, "I'll ask Badger when we return."

"I'm sure he would know, after all he practically li-," Swift was cut off when he was forced to duck due to a flying branch. Harry span around to see where it came from and his eyes widened at what he saw, the garden, which was previously been peaceful and postcard-like, was now alive and ugly. The plants and flowers were now deformed and somewhat demonic, they were moving, crawling and fighting their way towards the three of them and Harry swore he could hear them growling and snarling.

"Swift, I think we've found a bigger problem." Paws joked weakly, as she twisted out of the way of something which would have, undoubtedly, caused her a lot of pain.

"Yeah, I agree,"

"I really didn't want to destroy this place, and we have to be careful because of the house." Snake groaned,

"We can shield it," Paws said,

"Can you hold it against Fyre?"

"It'll be difficult, but together we should be ok," Swift said, blasting a plant that lunged for him.

"We have to get closer though." Paws pointed out, and then squeaked, "Its spitting bulbutous pus."

"Lovely."

They fought their way to the front of the house with the plants putting up a hell of a fight, they were replicating and it was like every time they killed one of them another would sprout up from somewhere.

"Ready?" Harry asked, he was sick of the plants already, he had cuts down his left arm from where a bramble had gotten too close and he was annoyed.

"Ok, Snake,"

Fiendfyre he hissed and a massive, burning black phoenix erupted from his wand, it flared up in the air and dove at the plants as Harry directed it. He had to concentrate everything he had on not losing control of the spell, it was had a mind of its own and if he wavered for even a second then it would break away. It swooped down and turned everything in its path to ashes and once it had toasted the last bush, Harry pulled back on his magic and forced the flames to die. He stumbled slightly on the drawback and he was panting heavily, he sucked in a few sharp breaths through his nose before standing up and nodded to the others to show he was fine.

"I haven't done that spell for a while." He commented, "I forgot how strong it was."

"You ready to go on?" Paws asked concerned.

"Yeah, I'm fine," Harry waved her off, "There are more wards on the house, but they can be unpicked. I don't think they expected anyone to get through the Garden of Horrors."

"Swift, its on you." Paws said, and he nodded. Ron waved his wand and began muttering under his breath, Harry felt the wards flare and he watched impressed as Swift slowly, but precisely unpicked and banished the wards.

"Nicely done," Snake complimented,

"Thanks,"

The three of them proceeded in to the house with extreme caution, they took not of the beautiful interior, but they didn't let it fool them like they did the garden.

"Are we splitting up?" Paws asked,

"No," Harry vetoed straight away, "We stick together,"

"Yeah, who knows what they have in here after the Garden of Horrors." Swift agreed,

"Together then," Paws said. They moving through the house and they came across many rooms on the ground floor alone. The living room, kitchen, sun room, dining room and sitting area held nothing of interest, but there was a heavily warded door that led off from the kitchen that they wanted to look in to.

"Let's go upstairs first," Harry decided, "We'll do the main house first."

Harry led them up the stairs and they found 4 well sized rooms, two studies, a library and a bathroom. They went in the bedrooms first, the two smaller ones were bare except for the necessities, they were decorated in neutral colours and were light and airy. The third was obviously a woman's room, it was tastefully feminine and it was more personal than the first two despite the fact it had nothing in it that they needed or wanted. When they got to the master bedroom, Harry could feel magic and they found some rare, if not lost, pieces of jewellery. One in particular caught Paws' eye, it was a emerald and diamond tiara and she was looking at it confused.

"What is it?" Harry asked,

"I think I recognise it," She said and then her eyes widened, "Oh Merlin,"

"What is it?"

"I know what this is, this is a piece of French history. It's the tiara Louis-Antoine, the Duc D'Angouleme in 1819, had commissioned for his wife the Duchesse d'Angouleme Marie-Therese. There are pictures of this and I read a book on how it was lost many years ago, it was never reported stolen, but it was never seen again past 1840." Paws told them, "I wonder how it ended up here?"

"Is it possible for it to have been a gift?" Harry wondered, "I mean, the Flamel's met in Beauxbatons so they must have been in France from time to time and they were bound to go back."

"That could have happened, I supposed." She agreed, "Shall we go to the study next?"

"Yes, then the library after we've packed everything." They stripped the room of everything they felt was important before heading to the studies. Once Harry had checked everything over and made sure there was nothing dangerous within the room, Paws went of packing the first one while he and Swift went to the second and did the same.

"I think I have found some journals." Snake told the others when they finally reached the library.

"Me too, they seem to spells the same as ours." Paws said,

"We'll have to go through everything when we return home." Harry said, "That way we can look at everything."

"Yes, It will be much easier that way." Swift agreed,

"Paws, run wild." Snake joked as they entered the library. Of course, once they had actually stepped in to the library he realised that Paws would actually be running wild; the place was immense. It was large, not as big as the Gryffindor library or even Hogwarts, but packed with books on Merlin knew what, and Paws eyes were blown wide with excitement.

"Yes, you can take them all." Harry told her and she darted of, flicking her wand and packing the books in trunks Harry swore were not there a second ago.

"Do you think we should help or stay back?" Swift asked quietly, eyeing her warily.

"I think its best we stay back until she demands out involvement." Harry murmured,

"Wise,"

The pair stayed well back as Paws dealt with the library and all the books which looked like journals she packed separately, she had vanished in to the shelves when Harry heard a shout and followed the sound with his wand out. They found Paws stood in front of what appeared to be an empty bookcase, but as soon as Harry got closer he could feel the magic.

"Want me to twist them?" Harry asked,

"Yes, so the books are not harmed."

"I like how she thinks I'll harm the books." Swift snorted and Paws pinned him with the look.

"You can read, identify, cast and tear any wards we come across, but we all know that Snake can get passed any wards without detection."

"Yes Swift," Harry added unnecessarily,

"Shut up, Snake."

"Want me to empty the other room?"

"Yes, here." She handed him a trunk and Harry got to work as Paws went to finish the other shelves. These wards weren't as strong as the ones on the Malfoy library, but Harry guessed that was because no one got to this part of the library without being stopped. He picked the wards apart one by one and then, when the final one fell the book shelf was suddenly full, but this time it was full of scrolls, hand written books and journal that Harry could see were not written in English. He immediately began backing them with extreme care and then went back to the entrance of the library to wait for the others, he didn't have to wait long as Paws came along with Swift and she looked delighted.

"The journals are what I'm really looking forward to seeing." She said, he voice and magic thrumming in excitement.

"Tell me about it, we've found many!" Swift agreed wholeheartedly.

"Come on, we have one more room to go." Harry said and led them down. Swift tore down the wards and they cautiously crept in to the room, they were stunned to see that it was a lab of sorts and Paws gasped.

"This must be his experimental room, with all his notes." She whispered and Harry's eyes widened with the implications of it.

"I want it all." He breathed stunned, he couldn't help the huge grin that came to his face when he could parade around in front of Tom with the knowledge of the philosophers stone; the man would have a fit. They stripped the room of everything, carefully packing it away and shrinking it down to fit in to the beaded bag.

"Ready to hit the skies?" Swift asked, making sure the room was bare.

"Yes, we have everything." Snake said, "Do I need to shadow?"

"No, we're just flying to London and then shadowing back to school." Swift told him, "That's why we went to Brighton."

"Right,"

They left the house and took to the air, Harry swooped around the other two trilling and diving in his exhilaration.

Happy Snake? Paws questioned amused at his behaviour.

Did you see what we just found? Harry asked rhetorically, This is brilliant,

I have to admit that I didn't expect to find Flamel's work room. Swift agreed, The things we could potentially have in our possessions
 he trailed off, but the others knew exactly how he was feeling.

Do you know how long its going to take to get to London? Harry asked,

Shouldn't be too long, just longer than the first trip, Swift answered,

Ok,

They flew with eagerness and freedom that they didn't usually have, it was nice, to be free, and with everything that was going on it was nice to be just the three of them. Not that they didn't adore the others in their group, but the three of them had been through so much together that they had a special bond that would never be removed. They were connected, in the deepest possible way, and that was something Dumbledore never took in to account when he tried to separate them, he had forgotten that when you are willing to die for someone, when you would be willing to stand up and take the world for someone that there is no way of separating them. Harry released a trill of wild delight,

What is it Snake?

Dumbledore
 his voice, even in their heads sounded thick with laughter, He's made the worst decision of his life, and he had no idea. Harry laughed, I know he's committed acts that are unspeakable, and I know we probably don't know half of what he's done. But what he tried to do this summer, that was his biggest mistake because if he hadn't tried to spell you away from me, if he hadn't tried to shut me away we probably would have never known the extent of his actions for a long time. He laughed again at the reality of the situation, it was mad, it was ridiculous, it was-,

Foolish! Paws laughed with him, That man signed his own failure,

And we'll be there to see it! Swift put in gleefully,

Together, Harry said,

Together!

The flight seemed much quicker than the one they had previously, but it was obvious they were approaching a big city because of the activity below them. Harry was doing aerial stunts for the enjoyment of the other two when he stopped suddenly and began circling.

Paws, down to your left, I felt wards
 strong ones. Harry said swooping down to where he picked up on the magic.

But this is a completely muggle area, there shouldn't be any magic here, She said following him,

I feel it too, Swift said already diving down next to Harry, they are powerful, but seem dormant.

That's what I thought, Harry agreed, Can't harm to check it out. They landed in the nearest tree and changed out of view. Harry nimbly dropped down to the pavement below and bit back a laugh when Swift fell from the tree, Paws was giggling in to her hand as she jumped down and helped him up.

"I think you need to do something about your balance, Swift." Harry joked,

"Yeah, yeah, laugh it up." He grumbled grinning, "It was the transition."

"You were always the one that struggled with that," Paws said, "And Snake has the weird ability to switch from animal like a button."

"Yes, and we agreed that Snake was just an exception to the rules." Swift pointed out.

"Its just because I'm much cooler than you." Harry said puffing his chest out. The three of them shared a look before dissolving in to fits of laughter,

"Oh Snake," Paws laughed, "You do make me laugh,"

"I have that ability," He agreed, "Come on, lets go." They walked down the street casually, the best way to hide was to look like you belonged somewhere and with all their outings they were perfectly comfortable in the muggle world – even Ron!

"They're getting stronger." Harry muttered, "And they don't feel too pleasant, if my senses are correct."

"Then they are probably awful." Swift said and Paws nodded in agreement. They continued down the road until Harry could feel the old ward swarming around them, it was placed within the land itself from what he could feel and that meant it wasn't for the office block which was currently in place.

"Its not for this building." Harry murmured trying to feel out as much as he could.

"Why do you say that?" Paws asked curiously, wards were not her strongest subject and, while she could cast them successfully, she couldn't feel them or identify them like the other two.

"Because they're in the land itself, as if to cover the entire site," Swift answered for Harry, "And they are strong."

"Ok, Paws, I need a revealing rune as well as a signature rune, I'll fuel them and power them while Swift keeps us hidden and stabilises me." Harry said snapping in to leader mode. These particular Runes were ones they had created themselves so they could get access to heavily warded areas, they were difficult because they were fuelled by blood and powered by magic, and so far, only Harry had been able to hold them for longer periods of time.

"Ready, Snake," Paws said. Harry conjured up a dagger and sliced his wrist letting the blood flow on to the ground, Paws quickly got carving where the blood was falling and Swift handed Harry a blood replenisher to keep his blood running. "Ok, go," Harry collected as much of his magic as possible and directed at the two runes, they flared to life violently and started to work quickly. They could all feel the magic getting thick in to the air as the dormant wards were pushed to the surface, Harry chucked back another blood replenisher to be on the safe side as he felt the magic reach its peak. There was a bright flash of light and it was almost as if a ghost of the past magic had been revealed, Harry heard Swift gasp and turned to look at the web and his eyes narrowed when he saw an all to familiar name; Albus Dumbledore.

"Got everything, Swift?" Harry asked,

"Yes, its copied and sealed." He said and Harry retracted his magic as Paws healed up his wrist and gave him a final potion.

"What's Dumbledore done now?" Paws asked with some trepidation.

"It's a web, but it's a blood web." Swift said and when he saw Paws' confusion he elaborated, "It means that the wards are tied in to the blood they were cast from and all their decedents."

"What wards are here?" She questioned,

"Some pretty nasty ones," Swift muttered, "Aggravating wards, anger wards, disgust wards, anti-healing ward, nightmare ward and magical suppresser," Paws looked horrified,

"Those are awful, but why here?" She wondered and Harry's stomach dropped, he looked around the area and he shook his head begging any entity in existence to make him wrong.

"Paws, where are we?" Harry asked her, but he couldn't keep his voice from shaking. Both of his friends turned to look at him in shock and it switched to alarm when they saw him sheet white and shaking.

"What is it, Snake?"

"Answer my question." He said harsher than intended, but his mind was going over all the possibilities that could happen if he was right.

"We're in London, the outskirts"

"Oh Merlin, please no." Harry groaned gripping his head, "Do you know this exact address?"

"No, but I've been here before with my parents." She told him, "Before this was built, there used to be an orphanage here instead, I think." Harry sank to his knees when he heard that,

"No no no no, this isn't good."

"What's wrong?" Swift demanded, he was seriously starting to worry.

"Cast the blood revealing spell, I bet I can guess whose line it's connected to." Harry stated, his voice oddly hollow.

"How could you possibly know?" Paws asked, "We only found this today." Harry looked up at her and she stepped back when she saw a trace of fear in the bright green eyes.

"The wards were cast for the orphanage, and not just any orphanage," He all but whispered. "Wools Orphanage; Tom's Orphanage. And that blood will be from Salazar Slytherin," both of them paled considerably at that.

"You cannot be serious." Paws gasped,

"Why else would there be wards here?" Harry snapped, his mind was overflowing and the main thing he was starting to feel was panic, "Tom grew up in an Orphanage, you know that, but I know it was in London because of Dumbledore. It took me a second to recognise the area, but I'm sure,"

"Swift, run the spell." Paws got out. Swift shakily ran the spell and Harry, despite the fact he was certain before, felt a sense of overwhelming horror when he saw the Slytherin name rise from the ground.

"Merlin and Morgana," Swift breathed, "This-this
"

"This is the lowest form of low," Paws whispered, "How could he do this, why would he do this?"

"He's going to flip," Swift murmured, "He's going to completely lose it." Harry didn't need to ask who Swift was talking about, he knew exactly who and he was not, even a little bit, looking forward to what he had to do.

"I have to tell him," Harry stated lowly, not telling him wasn't an option and Harry could feel the man's inquiring jabs every now and then showing his Occlumency shields had dropped briefly.

"Snake
" Paws trailed off knowing that he had to, but knowing it wasn't safe to do so.

"I can't keep this from him, Paws, not this. This is everything he hated about his life, everything that was bad for him was here and now we've just found out it was orchestrated by a meddling old man." Harry shook his head and leant back against the bars surrounding the building. "I feel sick,"

"Come on, we have to clear up and get back," Swift said taking control, "Paws, get rid of the runes and the blood, Snake, take a pepper up to be on the safe side." Harry didn't argue as he was passed the potion, he drank it down and felt a bit more refreshed that he did before. He got to his feet shakily and took a deep breath, he had to do this and he could do this, he had faced many other things that could kill him; this was no different.

Or that was what he tried to tell himself anyway, he nodded to the other two to show he was good to go and they walked away from the office block. It didn't take them long to get to a covered area where they were able to change and take flight, Harry needed the distraction or he would have used the shadows, he used the feeling of freedom take over and allowed his instincts to take him with the wind. They weren't far from Knockturn Alley and Paws spotted it first so she signalled to the others to begin their descent, Harry changed back in the air so he landed in a crouch.

"Ready to go back?" Paws asked,

"Ready as I'll ever be." Harry said, "What's the time?"

"We should just be leaving the great hall for dinner, you'll vanish first as soon as you get to your rooms."

"Got it. I have to go, I have to get this over with now. I'll tell Luna where I'm going so don't worry about that, but be on your guard. I need you to be able to move at the slightest hint that Tom's gotten past me and is heading for Dumbledore."

"We've got you covered, Snake." Swift assured him,

"Always,"

"Good," Harry nodded, "I'll see you soon," the shadows wrapped around him and took his to his rooms just as his other self vanished in the very same way. Luna looked up with a smile which vanished when she saw how pale his was.

"What happened?" She gasped getting up and leading him to a chair, and passing him a large drink of Vodka which Harry drank down instantly.

"Dumbledore," He answered,

"What is it? What did you find?"

Harry shook his head,

"We were flying back, we didn't read much while we were there because it was practically there for us to take, and I felt wards in a supposedly muggle area. We decided to check it out because they were not supposed to be there, and when we got down there I found out they were old, I could feel it, and they were strong. We cast the revealers, our ones, and they were not nice wards. Aggravating wards, anger wards, disgust wards, nightmare ward, anti-healing ward and magical suppresser and they were tied in to a blood web." He explained, Luna blinked a few times before her usual pale complexion went white.

"It wasn't
" She trailed off when Harry nodded closing his eyes,

"Yes, cast by the chess master himself."

"Oh Merlin
 this – I don't even know what to say." She gasped, "Does he
?"

"No, I'm going there now, I – I have to tell him, Ray, he needs to know."

"I know, but, Harry, please be careful."

"I will," He got up and threw up every Occlumency shield he possessed to lock everything back, he had to focus. "I will," He said again. Luna kissed his cheek and he left the room under disillusion, he walked down the corridor and felt Tom out in his office alone – something which he was thankful for. He slipped in to the office and shut the door with a snap gaining Tom's attention, he could feel the crimson eyes on him but he couldn't bring himself to look at the man and he pressed himself against the door. Despite his best efforts, his initial panic and fear increased tenfold being in Tom's presence and he had no doubt that the man could feel it too.

"I need to tell you something." Harry finally spoke, it was barely above a whisper but Tom heard.

"Is it something you found during your hunt?" Tom asked and Harry scoffed under his breath,

"Something like that," He muttered,

"You are scared," Tom noted quietly, "And panicking over something. It increased when you got here, too." Harry heard the silent question; Why are you afraid of me? He turned to meet Tom's eyes and used everything he had to control his emotions, they were burning under his skin and clouding his judgement. "What do you need to tell me?" Harry opened his mouth to speak, but he couldn't get the words out, his mouth had suddenly gone very dry. He didn't know how to tell him, how could he explain that his childhood had been down to one man's meddling? That all the abuse, the hatred and the loneliness was because of a man who lived to control people like chess pieces, Harry shook his head.

Tom grew alarmed at Harry's behaviour, he had been startled when he first felt panic from the teen earlier, it was odd for Harry to panic over anything so to feel it so strongly it raised questions. Startled, however, didn't even cover how he felt when he felt a large does of fear from Harry, he couldn't remember the last time he had felt genuine fear from the teen, even when they had been duelling on opposite sides he hadn't felt it so strongly. So when Harry entered his office and both of those emotions increased his was on his guard, and the teens current behaviour wasn't helping.

"What is it, Harry?" He watched as Harry visibly got himself with difficulty,

"I-," Harry cut himself off, "Come to the chamber with me?" Tom blinked at that and raised an eyebrow, "Please, just-just come with me?" Harry asked and Tom nodded once, Harry stepped forward and took his hand to move them in the shadows. They appeared in the main entrance hall and Tom looked at him in silent question, Harry took a deep breath and took a few steps back.

"Ok, just bare with me." Harry said,

"I will,"

"So we were flying back from the Flamels, we have to go through everything we found as soon as possible by the way, and I felt the traces of wards that were not supposed to be there. We went to check it out and discovered that they were in the land and that they were old and strong, we drew them out and found a blood web." Harry told him,

"What wards?" Tom asked slowly and Harry could feel his mind working furiously, he swallowed and continued.

"Aggravating wards, anger wards, disgust wards, anti-healing ward, nightmare wards and magical suppressers," He answered and Tom went still,

"Where were these wards?" He questioned and his voice dropped in sound and temperature

"We were in London," He told him and, if possible, Tom went stiller and his ruby eyes began to burn.

"Where, exactly, were these wards?" He demanded, Harry shook his head,

"Tom... I'm sorry, I-,"

"Where. Were. These. Wards?"

"Wools Orphanage
"

Silence.

Even the air seemed to still after the utterance of those words. Tom had gone so still he could have been made from marble, he didn't even seem to be breathing, but his eyes were practically glowing as his rage grew.

And who cassst thesse wardsss? Harry knew that Tom knew the answer to that question, but he still didn't want to answer it.

"Dumbledore," He said, "Keyed in to the Slytherin line." BOOM. It was only because Harry was expecting it was he not thrown back as Tom's magic exploded out of him, the force of it kept him pressed to the floor and Harry had to wrap his own magic around him to free himself. He knew he had to act before Tom simply apperated in to the old fools office and tried to kill him. Harry closed his eyes and brought forth all of his magic and let it flow out of him pushing back on the opposing force. Raw magic was battling against raw magic, Tom's icy power was whipping around him trying to overcome Harry's own fiery magic and they were at a stalemate. Harry was hit with so much rage that it nearly forced him to his knees and blood poured from his scar, the only reason he was still standing was because it wasn't directed at him, he hissed and threw the first curse.

That snapped Tom's attention to him and the man retaliated against the new 'threat'. It soon became heated and spells were shooting in all directions as they duelled, Tom was overpowering his curses and they were becoming dangerously close to hitting Harry, something he did not wish to happen as most of them were particularly nasty. He just ducked out of the way of a blasting hex to his head when he had an idea, it was obvious Tom was not in full control of his actions and if he got past Harry and went to Dumbledore it was would ruin everything, something he could not let happen. Harry span out of the way of another spell and called on his magic again, only this time he let it build inside of him as he continued to dodge spells, he felt it reach its peak and then he pushed it out directly at Tom. Harry began to layer it around Tom's magical core, it was a nasty trick he had learned and he never usually resorted to something as despicable, but he had no choice and so he continued to layer his magic around his core until it was sealed shut. Tom dropped to his knees with a gasp, his hands flying to his chest and he felt the lack of magic.

"What have you done to me?" He breathed terrified, it was a sound that Harry hated and he fought back a wince.

"I've temporarily sealed your magical core," Harry told him and Tom's attention snapped to him and his eyes flashed.

"You did what?"

"You were going to kill me." Harry exclaimed, "You were about to ruin everything,"

"Give me back my magic."

"You still have your magic, you just can't use it currently," Harry said and the glare that he received was one usually reserved for Dumbledore. Harry was about to speak again when his nose began bleeding and he cursed, it broke his concentration for just a second, but it was long enough for Tom to break the seal freeing his magic. Harry's magic snapped back in to him forcing him to the ground and Tom's blew out knocking him down. Harry pulled himself up so he was ready and just in time because Tom was up on his feet much quicker than what should have been possible, and was still murderous only it was partly directed at Harry now. He knew exactly what the man was intended to do and it would be extremely bad if he did, so Harry did the only thing he knew he could hold the upper hand with; he lunged. He wrapped himself around Tom and then allowed himself to become a dead weight which dropped them both to the ground, he twisted himself to he had Tom pinned against the floor with his arms above his head.

"You are not going to ruin everything because of that man." Harry snapped and Tom snarled at him,

"Get off me,"

"No, you are going to calm down now."

"I'll be calm after I kill him with my bare hands."

"And ruin everything that has been done? You are going to allow that man to ruin everything we've worked for? You are stronger than that, Tom,"

"You don't know what you are talking about." Tom hissed, "He's already ruined everything!"

"I know, ok," Harry spat, "I know exactly what I am talking about."

That got Tom to stop squirming as he registered just who it was who was speaking, that is was Harry, the other person that Dumbledore had manipulated just as much, if not more. With the distraction, Harry switched his grip so Tom couldn't move because he knew that the man was not going to like what he was going to say, but he needed to hear it and so he ploughed on.

"I know. I know about the hatred, the fear, the pain and the suffering. I know about the loneliness, the beatings, the starvation, and the nightmares. I know all about the disgust, the confusion that the people that are supposed to be taking care of you, loving you, hate and fear you to the point where they cannot stand the sight of you, and you have to sit back and watch every day as everyone but you is given attention, food, warmth, all the things most would consider the bare essentials. And so that confusion, that hurt, and that rejection turns in to anger, hatred, and it consumes you to the point where it hurts to feel anything else and so you shut it down. You direct your hatred in to plans, in to revenge when everything is turned upside down because you find out that you are not the devils child, you're not unnatural, you're not a freak; you're a wizard.

"You are introduced to this entire new world and despite the fact that you do not want to you start to feel hope, you are getting away from the place that has caused you nothing but pain and misery for your entire life. And then everything is destroyed. You find out that nothing has changed, that the hatred and the disgust is still there and so you close yourself off permanently, you focus on your studies, in to making yourself better, stronger than any other so you can prove to them that you are better than them, but more importantly, you do it to prove to yourself that you are not weak. And I know how it is when you've shut yourself off from your emotions for so long that you can't understand what they mean, they've been toyed with and messed with too much that you don't know what's going on inside your own mind, and so you strengthen yourself against it, to move past it because you cannot afford distractions like that.

"So when something like this is found and you discover that everything you've ever hated, everything that was responsible for your pain and your fear should never have happened in the first place it hurts. It feels like you are burning from the inside out and you want to rage and storm the one responsible because you feel as if you don't have anything else left inside you, but that is not true. You are Tom Marvolo Riddle, the smartest wizard to ever pass through these halls, the Lord Slytherin, the greatest and most feared Dark Lord in the last known century. The man who singlehandedly controls the biggest Dark army in known existence, the person who has sought and found more magic than anyone else can even hope to claim and the strongest man I know. I will not let you be beaten by Dumbledore." Harry finished his rant breathing heavily, he looked at Tom and had to stop his reaction at the lost expression on the other man's face; it was the most open he had ever seen him,

"It hurts
" Tom finally admitted slumping back on the floor and closing his eyes, he looked a little defeated and Harry sighed,

"I know," He said softly, "Believe me when I say I know. But you are better than him, in every way, and you will move past this, like every other obstacle."

They stayed there in silence for a few moments, the only sounds were the dripping water and their own breathing.

"Thank you,"

Harry wouldn't have heard if he had been any further away, and he smiled slightly.

"Any time," He said and then grinned deciding it was enough of the serious mental strain for the pair of them that day, "It's a side effect of my awesomeness." Tom rolled his eyes.

"He is going to die." Tom stated after a few minutes of silence, Harry nearly snorted,

"In the most painful, humiliating and horrific way possible," He agreed, they stayed there settling in to the silence again.

"Are you going to get off me now?" Tom asked finally and Harry raised his eyebrows.

"Are you going to try and kill Dumbledore in the near future?" Harry questioned and Tom huffed but shook his head.

"No, I will hold on to all urges to murder the old fool with his own beard until the correct time." He said and Harry eyed him warily before slowly releasing his wrists and pushing himself to his feet pulling Tom with him.

"I can tell them that you didn't murder me." Harry said brightly and Tom shot him a look, "I was in the line of fire, even I thought you might murder me." He shrugged and Tom shook his head.

"I wouldn't murder you unless you suddenly sprouted a beard, don't by the way, they are messy things." Tom said and Harry snickered at that, "But if you pull that little magic stunt again, all promises are of the table."

"It was the only thing that would stop your magic, I don't know if you've noticed the blood and the state of the chamber, but it's pretty bad." Harry motioned to the spots of blood on the floor, the mess of rocks and stone and the blood remaining on his face and top.

"Ah,"

"Yeah," Harry waved his wand to clean himself up which made Tom raise an eyebrow, "I just forcefully pushed my magic in to your body and made it encase around your core, I'm a little tired!" He defended and Tom conceded to the point.

"Here," He waved his wand in a sweeping motion and the damage immediately began to repair itself, Harry chipped in on some of the larger damages and once they were finished the chamber looked good as new.

"There, now we can go back." Harry said, "I am about 15 minutes before my body shuts down due to blood loss and core depletion and I'd rather it not be here."

"What else have you done today?"

"Forcefully held the Flamel wards visible for them to be broken, battled my way in to the property, used feindfyre to stop us getting murdered by plants, twisted more wards, used my shadows, lived a day once and to find the wards we created these runes and they are fuelled by blood and powered by magic, and I'm the only one who can hold them for an extended amount of time. Problem is, the magic and blood cannot stop flowing or it will break the chain and you have to start again." Harry explained and then he shook his head to clear it slightly.

"That's insane, you shouldn't even be conscious right now." Tom told him shocked and Harry grinned,

"Not the average person, remember?"

"Still
"

"Don't worry about me, I'm use to this," Harry waved him off, "Let's go," Harry grabbed Tom's arm and jumped them back to the man's rooms. Harry was hit with a wave of dizziness and lethargy and he would have collapsed if it wasn't for Tom's quick reflexes.

"So you tell me that you are close to passing out because you have depleted your core and then you go and use more magic." Tom muttered exasperated and Harry grinned,

"Of course, it's the me thing to do." Harry said cheekily, Tom rolled his eyes with a slight smile.

"Come on, idiot, you can sleep it off here."

"Why here?"

"I refuse to take you back and the only reason you are still on your feet is because I'm keeping you there, you do the math." Tom stated and Harry wondered if Tom knew he used a lot more muggle phrases when he was around him. He looked at where Tom's arm was wrapped securely around his waist and then back at the man.

"Huh, so you are." He said amazed, "Guess I'm sleeping here," Tom helped Harry up to the bedroom where the teen proceeded to fall face first on to the bed with a pleased groan. "This is so comfortable."

"Apparently," Tom drawled amused, "You can't sleep like that," He vanished Harry's clothes leaving him in only his underwear, the teen yelp at the sudden cold making Tom chuckle and receive a glare.

"Evil, evil man,"

"I do try," Tom agreed. Harry curled himself up under the quilts and waved Tom away,

"Go finish your reports and let me sleep, I'm a guest, you're supposed to be nice." He ordered and Tom scoffed at the command, but did so anyway.

He walked back to his living room where he sat down and poured himself a large drink, he knew it would be pointless to even try to finish any work he had been doing, his mind was too messed up to concentrate. He was going over Harry's words, it was if Harry had lived his life as he spoke and for the first time in his life Tom Riddle did not feel alone. It was a strange feeling for him and he didn't realise it yet, but he was slowly opening himself up to the one person that was more like him than any other. He didn't think it was possible, but his hatred for Dumbledore had grown exponentially in just a couple of hours, the old fool would pay, he would pay in the highest possible way and Tom would make sure about that.

Tom sighed, Harry was right when he said he didn't understand his emotions, actually there wasn't anything Harry wasn't right about when they were in the chamber but he would not tell the teen that, Merlin knew he would never hear the end of it, but they were running high and he couldn't analyse them because he didn't know what to look for. And it frustrated him. He despised the fact that of all the things he had mastered, all the things he had accomplished, he was unable to master his own emotions. He had tried, once, to completely shut them down, and he had succeeded, but the consequences of that action were dyer and he knew, despite the fact that he hated feeling most of the time, it was better to feel and mask them than to not feel and lose his sanity. He sighed again and finished his drink, he didn't want to think of his childhood, he didn't want to remember everything that he had been forced to go through and knowing that it should have happened made him feel sick.

To know that his hatred of muggles should have never happened in the first place, it left him feeling lost. Tom shook his head, he wouldn't be beaten by Dumbledore, he would not allow that meddling, manipulative, disgusting old man to take away everything he had worked for, he would focus his attentions on the bigger picture and he would succeed.

"You have made a very big mistake, old man." Tom murmured to the empty room. He rose up and walked towards his bedroom, he didn't mind sharing his bed, weirdly enough he had grown accustom to Harry's presence, he should have been concerned about that, but he could not bring himself to care; he would deal with that when it was actually relevant. When he went to climb in to bed he almost laughed at the position Harry was in, he was curled up in to an impossibly small ball like he was trying to keep in his body heat.

"Don't laugh at me." Came a muffled voice, Tom's eyebrows rose.

"Why are you not asleep?"

"Don't ask me, my body's weird and this bed is cold."

"It is not cold, you have a ridiculous amount of body heat." Tom stated and Harry grumbled incoherently much to his amusement.

"Just get in and share your warmth." Harry murmured and Tom chuckled.

"What if I came merely to annoy you?" He asked and Harry unfolded himself enough to give Tom a filthy, if bleary eyed, glare.

"Do not mess with my sleep." Harry warned, "Dark Lord or not I will make you extremely sorry for doing so." Tom couldn't stop a smirk curling on to his face at that, he had no doubt that the teen meant every word he said, he was rather attached to his sleep, but it was too amusing not to react.

"Is that so?"

"Yes,"

"I suppose I will allow you to sleep in peace." Tom sighed in a put upon manner, Harry did not look even the slightest bit impressed much to Tom's amusement.

"Wise decision,"

Tom rolled his eyes at the deadpanned statement and actually climbed in to his bed, Harry, like a snake would, slithered up from his curled position and all but draped himself over Tom with his head just below his shoulder and his arm over his stomach.

"I am not a pillow." Tom drawled even though he made no move to shift Harry from him, Harry whacked him.

"Shh, pillows don't talk." He said grinning, Tom shot him an incredulous look,

"You are unbelievable," He muttered, he wrapped his arm around Harry ignoring the smile he could feel on the teen's face and they both fell asleep.

Chapter 23

Notes:

I'm guessing by this point you have read the tags

Parsel is in bold italics if it's been used

Un'beta'd

I'm not J.K in case anyone was wondering, y'know.

Chapter Text

 

Chapter 23;

Harry was not feeling it when Tom woke him up Monday morning, he knew he had a lesson, but his entire body was aching from the magical exhaustion and movement wasn't an option for him.

"You have potions in less than 30 minutes." Tom told him amused, he hadn't been able to move because Harry had firmly wrapped himself around the man and was using him as a pillow.

"Turner," was the response he got, Tom assumed that that was Harry for he would use the timeturner when he eventually got up.

"Are you going to allow me to move?"

"No, but if you stay and let me sleep on you, you can drag me in the shower before we go back." Harry bargained,

"Deal," Tom didn't even have to think about that, and he was not opposed to more sleep. Running an army and planning a war usually left him without sleep, and with the timeturner used he had been putting in so he could be at the manor going through everything as well as teaching extra sleep was something he wasn't about to turn down.

"Good," Harry was about to fall back in to blissful unconsciousness when;

SNAKE! He bolted upright startled and clutching his head,

"Holy fuck!"

"As that was not me, I am presuming you just got a mental call." Tom said and Harry scoffed,

"Something like that, my mind has started to automatically accept messages. They're yelling at me." Harry told him massaging his temples.

"What have you done now?"

"Honestly, I don't know. I mean, I saw them yesterday before I came
 Oh yeah, they thought I was going to die. Yeah, probably should have checked in." He remembered and Tom shook his head exasperated,

"You're impossible."

"It's a gift." Harry said, "But they should have noticed I hadn't died, I mean, there was not mad battle last night."

"You know what might be a good idea?"

"What?"

"Asking them why they were yelling." Tom pointed out and Harry snapped his fingers.

"Good idea!" What?

We started on the Flamel stuff without you, we thought you'd be unconscious for a while and you will never believe what we have just found. Paws said excitedly,

This had better be good, Harry warned,

It is, Swift assured, Not only did Dumbledore steal the Mirror of Erised, but Flamel has proof that he stole the original philosophers stone.

"What!" Harry exclaimed out loud and in his head, Speak!

Its been recorded by Perenelle Flamel that Dumbledore attacked them at during a blind spot, Nicolas was injured due to a failed experiment and Perenelle was weakened due to the extensive healing she had performed to save his life.

Apparently, Nicolas never developed a healing elixir with his special rock, only the theory, Swift added,

Anyway, Dumbledore attacked and took the stone, and without it, they knew they were going to die. They didn't have enough time to create another one, but they made sure they put everything they knew down and sealed it down in their cottage. Apparently, Perenelle has some seeing blood or something because she wrote that she knew that one day someone would begin to suspect Dumbledore and they would need everything they could get on the man. Paws explained, and Harry was stunned.

Well fuck!

Yes!

This means that he still has the stone. Harry pointed out, and there was silence from the other two until;

Damn!

Shit!

That bastard is immortal for the near future. Harry said,

Immortal, but not indestructible. A killing curse, or anything lethal will still kill him. Paws reminded them and Harry gave a mental sigh of relief,

Thankfully, Swift muttered,

I'm guessing your going to use the turners after you've gone through as much as you want to?

We will,

Ok, I will join you. But for now, sort anything that needs translating in to a separate pile, I'm gunna surprise Moony.

Will do, Snake.

Harry blinked a few times indicating he was coming back to the living world and Tom raised an eyebrow in question when Harry turned around.

"Dumbledore is a sneaky bastard." He stated and Tom nodded,

"Yes. Yes he is. Why specifically this time?"

"He is in possession of the Philosophers Stone." Harry said and Tom shot up looking at him wide eyed.

"Excuse me?"

"Flamel didn't give it to the old man for safe keeping, Dumbledore attacked them and stole it leaving the Flamels for dead and taking the stone for himself. Meaning, when he claimed it had been 'destroyed' it hadn't because that man is too selfish to have not kept it hidden away." Harry explained.

"Is there no end to his deception?" Tom asked rhetorically, "He went against his own master, he severed an ancient bond for his own gain. That's something even I wouldn't do, and I've split my own soul."

"It seems the further we dig, the deeper this hole goes. It's a pit of
 well shit really." Harry shook his head, "I'm almost scared to see the lengths this man will go to,"

"The problem isn't the lengths he will go, you can find those out. No, what is worrisome is the reason behind them. Why is he doing this, what is his motive?" Tom said and Harry closed his eyes with a groan.

"That is the one thing we have found no clues for." Harry rubbed his face and yawned, "I'll come back to that, my body requires sleep. Remind me that is isn't a good idea to live a day and then use my shadows, animagus form, fiendfyre, fight a deadly garden, twist wards, duel, encase someone's magic and then clean up; it hurts."

"Yes, I'll be sure to do that." Tom agreed, his voice laced with sarcasm, "You know, I don't even think I would have been conscious after doing that."

"Of course you would have been, its you." Harry said in a 'duh' voice,

"Maybe, but I think we would be the only ones."

"Yes, but we're cool like that." Harry said. Tom didn't disagree and the pair of them led back down went to sleep.


"Hey Moony, I've gotten you a present." Harry greeted his wolf as he walked in to the library of the Gryffindor rooms.

"Hello Cub, are you ok?" Moony asked looking up with a smile.

"Yes. We discovered more of Dumbledore's meddling yesterday, but other than that everything is fine." Harry said,

"Was it bad?"

"One of the worst things to date and it was only my forcefully stopping Tom from killing the headmaster did everything not blow up." Harry told him,

"Oh dear,"

"Yes, but in other news, I bring you things to do." Harry handed him multiple black journals and leather bound books, "Tah Dah!"

"What are these?" Moony asked, picked up a book and turning it over in his hand, his eyebrows shot up, "This is Auvergnat dialect, this is a severely endangered language, barely anyone speaks it anymore." He picked up another, "This is Cornish, and I'm pretty sure this is Corsican."

"The only one I recognise is Cornish." Harry said, "And these are some of the books and journals that we collected from the Flamel residence. You have an unhealthy amount of knowledge of old forgotten languages, so, run wild Moony."

"This will be a challenge." Moony said, excitement creeping in to his voice as he looked the books over, "But I am definitely interested."

"Good, we don't know what to expect, but you are the only one I know that can translate things of this standard. I think Tom could do a few, so he may be up, but your knowledge of languages tops even his." Harry said and Remus grinned.

"I won't say anything about that."

"No, I wouldn't either." Harry laughed. "Oh, do you know if you need your wolfsbane anymore, you know, now you have that whole voluntary transformation going on?"

"I don't think so, Cub. I can changed when I want, and I always keep my mind, that and my senses are better than ever. I'm faster, stronger, can hear more, smell more and sense more." Remus told him, and Harry was impressed.

"I'm glad."

"I am too,"

"We're compiling all the information we have gotten on people within the wizarding world. It's crazy, the Flamel's are turning out to be just like Cassiopeia Black and her little book of secrets." Harry said and Remus mock shuddered,

"I pity the wizarding race." He joked,

"I've found out a nice little bit on Fudge. Turns out, the dear minister has been allowing illegal trading to happen in certain spots as long as he gets a cut of the profit." Harry told him and Remus' eyebrows shot up.

"No way!"

"Yes, I couldn't believe it, but Nicolas seems to have been monitoring the situation to back when it began when Fudge was senior undersecretary." Harry said,

"Whoa! What else?"

"Dumbledore stole the philosophers stone for himself."

"You mean he's immortal." Remus gasped,

"Yes, but not indestructible as Paws reminded me." Harry reassured and Remus breathed in relief.

"Thankfully! That would have been too much."

"Tell me about it."

"So you've found a lot of information then."

"Yes, even trivial things. Hell, there was even information on the Potters. Did you know that Edmund Potter insulted a high elf's appearance and was cursed to have untameable hair for the rest of his and his bloodline's lives. I'm actually the first to have broken the curse." Harry said and Remus grinned,

"That hair didn't seem too bad, there was never a Potter without a partner." Remus pointed out and Harry smirked,

"What can I say, it's our natural charm."

"Yes, that's what it is." Remus muttered grinning,

"Hey! I resent that," Harry exclaimed, with a mock hurt expression on his face, "I'll have you know that I am a completely charming individual." He puffed his chest out like a peacock and the pair of them burst out laughing.

"I can practically feel the charisma."

"I know, oozing, right?" Harry snickered,

"So, other than bringing me work, what are you doing here? Don't you have lessons?"

"Yes, but I'm killing time. It's just under an hour until dinner when I'll go back and relive the day. I over did it yesterday and needed the extra hours."

"And monopolise time with a certain Dark Lord." Remus muttered and Harry just grinned.

"I wanted to ask you how your plan and research was coming on."

"Well, I haven't been able to move forward on the Hufflepuff heir, but I finished a line for Hermione and I have to pass it on when she next comes up." Remus told him, "I've looked in to the wards with Ron, he comes up to study the castle wards, but I've made a break through."

"Oh? Go on,"

"It seems that Dumbledore has twisted some of the wards to link directly to him, he fuels him and gives him power when he pulls on it. There is a ward that we can't identify, its odd, its there sometimes, but other times we can't see it so we can't get a read on it." Remus explained and Harry looked grim.

"He needs to be out of the castle and soon."

"He does, but the way he has twisted the wards, it wouldn't matter. They are no longer tied to the 'headmaster' but directly to him."

"Fuck!"

"Yes, Swift is searching to see what the main ward he is draining is and I am researching ways to counter or break it as well as to bring the wards back to their former glory."

"I know Paws research is focusing on spells and the heirs. Draco is potions, the twins are the twins, Luna and Neville are listening for anything and everything that can be used against anyone and everyone and I'm working on the wolves, ministry decrees, creating spells and wards, working with Tom to counter Dumbledore's moves with the Order, slowly destroying the headmaster and trying to remain undetected."

"So you're not busy at all then, Cub?" Remus asked lightly, Harry shook his head.

"Not at all, got plenty of time on my hands." Harry agreed seriously, before sighing. "The lessons with Dumbledore are not helping, and Ginny has woken up so you know I'll have to deal with her soon enough."

"What is he teaching you?"

"I spend my time delving in to Tom's past, searching for the way to destroy the man by removing his immortality." Harry answered, "It's a giant waste of my time, not only does Dumbledore chat nothing but shit, but I already know how to kill Tom if I felt so inclined."

"I can see why that would be tiresome. But, in better news, I've planned my route for spreading the news on the wolves."

"That's good, I'll be going to Ellen as soon as the word gets back that its finished."

"We'll run over everything just to make sure and then I'll set off." Remus agreed, "I plan to go around the colonies I know and begin the rumours, I have a few friends and once the rumours start they will spread, but I'll make sure to keep it within the communities."

"I plan on using Greyback's influence," Harry warned, "I've never met him, and I can no longer go on what I have been told on him because of how much my mind has been messed with. I thought it best to warn you first." Remus sighed and ran his hand through his hair.

"I suppose I am in the same situation now." He said quietly, "I have never met him even though I should have, he is my sire, my creator and that creates an unbreakable bond. One that I can feel now I am in tune with my inner wolf, I will have to meet him eventually, and I need to find out if he is the disgusting monster he is said to be, or it is merely an exaggeration of his wolfish nature. After all, I've seen first hand that the terrifying and insane Dark Lord is actually quite pleasant when you get past his rather intimidating demeanour."

"I can have it arranged, if you want?" Harry volunteered, "That way you can meet him in a controlled environment and if you want him away then he can be forced to leave."

"Thanks, Cub, that would be great."

"Oh, and a little tip. Don't tell Tom that he is terrifying, insane or intimidating, it goes straight to the man's head and Merlin knows we don't need that ego getting any bigger." Harry told him, and Remus laughed at that.

"I don't know how you get away with insulting him as much as you do, but I find it both alarming and amusing." Remus said,

"I have a gift." Harry stated, before his eyes lit up, "I have a bit of info on said Dark Lord, if you swear not to say anything – unless its to tease him, for which I give you full permission."

"I highly doubt I will ever tease the Dark Lord." Remus said, and Harry grinned,

"That might change."

"I'll take your word for it."

"Anyway, it turns out that Tom has a naughty little habit. He's a klepto." Harry said and Remus choked,

"I'm sorry?"

"Oh yes, I thought it was absolutely hilarious, but he's a klepto."

"The Dark Lord is a kleptomaniac?" Remus repeated in disbelief.

"Yep, total klepto, and I found his current stash. So if anything goes missing, you know who took it."

"I did wonder where my black eagle quill went." Remus mused and Harry laughed,

"He denies everything of course, but his familiar confirmed it."

"Nagini? Where is she, I would have thought she would have been around."

"Tom left her at Malfoy Manor, she is waaaay to big to bring here, despite her wish to be here. She and Tom had an argument about it and she refused to speak to him for weeks because of it."

"He lost an argument with a snake
" Remus got out, barely controlling his hilarity.

"Yes, I thought it was hilarious."

"Oh dear Merlin," Remus laughed, "I would pay to here one of their conversations."

"It's brilliant, Moony. I was in hysterics, I could not breathe because I was laughing so much, it was great." Harry remembered fondly,

"I don't think I can picture it." Remus shook his head amused,

"Even if you could, it would never measure up." Harry said. He cast a temus and sighed, "Time for me to live the day again."

"Have fun, Cub." Remus said, "I'll see you soon."

"Bye Moony." Harry vanished in to the main room and turned the device back 9 hours. Once the disconcerting feeling had vanished, he cast his glamour and hurried down to the great hall for break fast. He was just in time for the main and was pleased to see a letter from Hadrian Greengrass, luckily, Dumbledore was too busy scouring the paper for anything on him to notice and Harry tucked the letter away so he could read it later.

Hey, I've just spoken to Moony, Swift, I want to see your research on the wards when we have some time. Harry sent to him,

Yes, I was going to bring it to you at the next meeting anyway. Its been my side project for a while and Moony's been helping. He replied,

Yeah, he told me. I had almost forgotten about their battered state until he mentioned them today. I'd offer to chip in, but with the heat picking up on Dumbledore, I need to keep some slots open. But if you want me to go over spell work then I'll gladly do that. Harry offered,

Thanks, and I know your occupied at the moment. Even more to come once she gets out of the wing, and as we don't want you killing anyone in the castle you'll need extra time. Swift said half joking.

I'm hoping with the next two articles that it will reveal more of his plans. He has to slip up soon,

I wouldn't rely on a slip up, Snake. Swift said, He is better than covering his slips than anything else, and if we rely on a window that small then one second could be life and death.

I know, but you have to admit, this year, already, is pushing your limits. Harry sighed,

It is, and I cannot wait for the time where I can relax with my closest without Dumbledore over my shoulder, but we have to be patient, as hard as it, so that when he falls, he will  never  get back up again.

I don't know where I would be without you, you know that. You and Paws,

I know, Snake, and you will never have to know. Swift stated sincerely, and Harry smiled slightly. He knew he didn't have to reply to that, because Swift knew how he felt, even if he couldn't say it. Harry finished his breakfast, and made his way down to potions, he was slightly surprised not to meet Draco on his way down, but his question to where the blonde was was answered then a pale hand dragged him in to the potions classroom 10 minutes early.

"Hey, only one person is allowed to man handle me currently." Harry snapped straightening his fading robes.

"Too much information, Snake." Draco said seriously, and Harry shot him an innocent look.

"I was talking about Raven, who were you thinking?"

Draco threw him an unimpressed look and Harry's expression melted in to a smirk, "I like it rough."

"Thank you, for that fascinating piece of information, Mr Potter. I can safely say my questions of life have now successfully been answered and I feel wholly fulfilled." Snape drawled from his desk, his voice dripping in disdain and sarcasm as only he could. Harry couldn't help but be amused, when Snape wasn't been overly malicious to him then his comments were pretty amusing.

"I live to please, Professor. I am of the belief I have a gift." Harry returned, to which he received a sneer. "Now, why was I dragged in here?"

"My potion was a success." Draco told him, pleased, "You're here to drink it, and then we can see if you have any adverse affects, something which I doubt."

"Brilliant!" Harry said brightly, "She is set to be released on me soon, and who knows what she's got planned. I'll have to ask my outside spies."

"Exactly, which is why I am amazing for having it finished by this time." Draco told him loftily, and, for once, Harry didn't deny it.

"What's the likely hood this tastes like hippogriff shit?" Harry asked rhetorically, taking the swirling silver potion and sniffing it.

"I made sure of it." Snape told him pleasantly, and Harry didn't doubt him for a second.

"I am glad to know, that with everything happening, I can rely on you to still be a bastard, sir." Harry said cheerfully, and downed the potion. It was one of the worse he had ever tasted and it was only his iron control that stopped him spitting it back out. It tasted like fermented eggs which had been left out in the sun and then mashed together with sour milk, it was thick and warm as it slid down his throat and when it hit his stomach it was like someone has doused him in citrus. His whole body tingled and flushed hot then cold, it was, overall, a horrible experience that left Harry clutching the table in an effort to remain upright.

"That," He gasped, sucking in as much air as possible, "Was absolutely awful."

"Aren't you glad you only need to take it once?" Draco said, smirking.

"Honestly, that is one of the best things I have ever been told." Harry said, pushing himself up and taking a few more deep breaths. "Ok, I'm good."

"Do you want to try it out?"

"Yes, that way if it doesn't work we can counter it instantly." Harry said, he was a little pale from taking the potion, but he was determined to have a safety net.

"Ok, here we go." Draco handed him a small vial which Harry downed, he felt the familiar euphoria well up before it vanished and he felt normal.

"How are you feeling?" Draco asked, tense,

"Fine, it worked," Harry said, "I felt it enter my system before it was gone."

"Thank Merlin," Draco breathed in relief, "I am a genius."

"Now that this happy occurrence is over, you can take your seats." Snape sneered and Harry was only to happy to sit down, he absolutely hated taking potions and if he could avoid it he did. The rest of the class entered and they continued on with their Draught of Living Death, Harry attempted to continue, but he found that his hands was shaking and his head was light with the fumes.

"I can't do this, Bleach." Harry muttered dropping the knife for the third time, Draco cast a glance and Harry and cursed,

"I think the potion is completely clearing your system of any remaining love potion residue. I didn't take that in to consideration."

"Is the room supposed to be spinning because there is a party going on currently." Harry slurred,

"Shit," Draco muttered, he put their potions on stasis and caught Snape's attention, "May Potter be excused, Sir?" He asked, knowing he couldn't go with him or it would raise questions. Snape looked at them and nodded, Harry saluted and stumbled out of the room, he needed to lie down right now. He got as far as his corridor before his legs gave way and he slid down the wall, all of his limbs were shaking and he could feel his glamour flickering in and out, he couldn't even muster the magic to use his shadows.

Harry forced himself to his feet, refusing to be discovered just because he had be dosed with numerous potions before now, he managed to pull himself half way down the corridor before his body gave out again and he groaned as he hit the floor. Harry managed to look at where he was and almost cheered, Tom's office was an arms length away, and he needed to get there as he felt his glamour drop. He managed to crawl to the office and roll in, he knew he had triggered the wards, but that was the least of his worries as he nudged the door closed and collapsed.


Tom felt the wards of his office go and froze in his classroom where his 4th years were making notes from the lecture he was giving, he really enjoyed teaching as he knew he would when he first applied for the job, but it was made even sweeter because Dumbledore didn't know who was teaching his precious students currently. The class didn't notice his slip as he covered it expertly, but he couldn't help but wonder who was in his office while he was in class. He wasn't too worried, there was nothing incriminating in there, everything was kept within his rooms and at Malfoy Manor, but he generally didn't like people in his spaces. Tom carried on with the lesson while his mind thought of the reasons behind his mysterious invader. The bell went and the class quickly emptied and before he could leave Harry's friends and the younger Malfoy burst in, he raised an eyebrow at their entrance and the small blonde girl, Luna, stepped forward.

"We need access to your office." She said and Tom was under the strong belief that it wasn't a request, he would have laughed at her demanding something from him, but he remembered Harry's warning and bit back a shudder. The girl's ability to just know things was disconcerting in the least, and down right alarming at worst.

"And why is that?"

"I need to make sure Harry's ok, he's current unconscious there." She told him and he felt surprise on his face before he wiped it.

"This occurred, how?"

"I perfected the love potion immuniser, but it works as a system flush to remove traces of love potion and possibly others. Harry took a does, but we didn't take in to account that his system must be riddled with residue." Draco explained, "He had to leave potions, but I thought he had made it back to his rooms until we got there and he wasn't. We checked the map and saw that he only got as far as your office and I guess he went in there because his glamour fell."

"I shall bring him back to his rooms." Tom told him, wondering if it was possible for anything to be even partially normal around Harry Potter.

"Thanks," they left and Tom shook his head. He apperated to his office and was slightly alarmed to see the state Harry was in, he was ghostly white and shaking, he skin was coated in a shiny sheen of sweat and potions by the looks of things and Tom quickly vanished it so it didn't sink back in to his pores. He picked Harry up with ease and the movement shook the feverish teen in to partial consciousness, bleary green eyes looked at him in confusion.

"I don't think I want to know." He murmured and Tom bit back a snort.

"Normality doesn't become you." He said and Harry managed a small grin.

"Course not,"

"I am going to apperate, so brace yourself." Tom warned and Harry's whole body tensed, they vanished near silently and appeared in the main room of Harry's quarters.

"Tom," Harry got out, paler again.

"Yes Harry,"

"I would put me down unless you want me to throw up on you."

Tom's eyes widened and he quickly, but carefully, put Harry down on the sofa where he rolled over and threw up a strange green sludge which Tom vanished with a flick of his wand. Luna immediately rushed over to him when Harry rolled back over on to his back, she began casting spells and muttering under her breath.

"I have to teach, don't die. I would get bored," Tom told him before leaving the room,

"His charm astounds me." Luna muttered and Harry chuckled weakly.

"It's unique."

"I am so sorry, Snake. I didn't take in to account your previous experiences with potions." Draco said fretfully and Harry managed to wave his arm in a 'never mind' gesture.

"'Least my system is going to be squeaky now."

"I'm afraid you'll have to sleep it off." Luna sighed, "Any potions I give you will be brought back up, and there are no spells for this sort of thing."

"S'fine." Harry muttered, "Night." And then he was out.

"I swear he never catches a break." Swift said shaking his head.

"He really doesn't." Paws agreed,

"I can't believe I didn't think of this." Draco sighed, "It's lucky he's so strong or he could have died, I don't think he realises."

"Don't worry, Bleach. It isn't your fault, Dumbledore and his lackeys were the ones that dosed him, and if it wasn't for them then he wouldn't need the immunized in the first place." Luna said, her usual soft features hard with anger as he ran her hand through Harry's hair.

"We'll have to go back so we are not missed." Paws said, "Snake will too when he wakes up."

"I'll stay with him," Luna said, "He's going to feel like hell when he wakes."

"We'll leave him your capable hands, and I'll inform Badger tonight." Swift said, "Tell him we hope he's alright, and if we don't see him before, we'll see him Thursday."

"I will,"

The three of them turned their timeturners back once and vanished from the room. Luna sat on the chair and turned to a book, she vanished the sheen that appeared on Harry at regular intervals and checked on him to make sure he was fine. He slept through lunch and Winky brought her food, she asked after her Master Harry and Luna reassured her that Harry would be fine when he awoke. Luna flicked through the book again and made some changes with her quill, it was her information book that she kept all of the details that people didn't want other to find out and she was making sure it was as detailed for her brother as possible; especially on the people she knew he didn't like. It was approaching dinner when Harry released a pain groan, Luna moved to his side instantly and ran a soothing hand through his hair.

"Easy there, Harry," Luna murmured,

"Who threw me in front of the knight bus?" He groaned and Luna smiled,

"Your system has just been completely flushed of all remaining potion residue."

"Oh. Ok then." He cracked an eye open and immediately shut them with a hiss, "Vision is not recommended."

"Here," Luna flicked her wand and dimmed the lights allowing Harry to open his eyes.

"Thanks,"

"Can you sit up?"

"If you pull me."

Luna helped him in to a sitting position and Harry was not impressed to feel his body felt like lead.

"Come on, lets get you to the shower and feed you. You should be ok then."

"How long was I out?" Harry asked getting unsteadily to his feet, Luna helped him balance and they made their way, slowly, to the bathroom.

"We found you 10 minutes after first period, we're now approaching dinner."

"Ugh, I'll have to live the day yet again."

"Yes, all bar first."

"Wonderful," He muttered, "Well, three's a charm."

By the time they had reached the bathroom, Harry could walk on his own and he kissed Luna on the cheek,

"Thanks,"

"Your clothes will be ready to go, don't forget your glamour and your food will be waiting."

"You are amazing." He told her,

"I know."

As Harry vanished in to the shower to relieve his aching body, Luna flitted down to the kitchen and called for Winky to bring Harry some food. Out of the pair of them, Harry was by far the superior cook and Luna didn't know a dish that Harry couldn't make, and when he made deserts Luna all but melted. It was odd, that someone like Harry could cook like a chef and loved designing and making clothes, but it was just him she supposed. Winky popped in with chicken and bacon pasta, something Harry had a real thing for, and popped away just as said person came down redressed and glamoured.

"Feeling better?" She asked,

"Much, and I need to eat." He said, she passed him the plate and watched amused as Harry inhaled the food.

"We'll have to go back several hours, and continue from there. The guys send their best and said if they don't see you before, they'll see you Thursday." Luna told him, "And in case you didn't remember, the Dark Lord told you not to die else he get bored."

"Ah, his charm is brilliant." Harry laughed,

"Isn't it?"

"I just want to read my letter from Hadrian before I go, I'm curious." Harry remembered,

"Oh, do share."

"Of course," Harry flicked his wrist and summoned the letter from the bedroom, he cracked open the seal and began to read.

Dear Harry,

After reading your letter and consulting with some close acquaintances, I understand your situation better, and word of the Act has reached me. I, if I am correct, believe it was the best course of action to protect yourself and I am sure you will be pleased to know that there have been no whispers of your activities or person since.

You were not incorrect when you said there was much more to see about Dumbledore, and his reputation is taking some beating because of the releases of the papers. I was as surprised as you said I would be when reading of his heritage, and I do think, if my observations are correct, he will have a harder time at avoiding confrontation about his past. Whilst I do not doubt the truthfulness about he and Grindlewald, many did because it was an outstanding revelation, but there is so little known about the Dumbledore family which leaves very little to be denied. Also, it is aided by the direct quotes taken from protected sources, but one need only match up the dates to work out who was around to see Dumbledore grow up.

I have to say I am pleased with the information you passed on for it enabled me to gain the Undersecretary position, to which I have found is in great need of a firm hand. There is a plethora of 'misplaced' laws and legislations, and my eyes have truly been opened to just how bad our ministry has become. I knew, of course, that there was gold going in pockets, but Dolores Umbridge was as corrupt as a human could possibly get and the things she has hidden from the public is astonishing.

Things are growing here in the ministry, and with my new position is has shaken things up because I cannot be bought and I cannot be blackmailed. Dumbledore has approached me already, he, in his skewered perspective, believes that it is best for me to give up my neutral stance and sit within the light as I am now in grave danger. He did not take my refusal well, but, as I said, I cannot be bought or blackmailed. He has an upcoming legislation that he wishes to push through and my votes would have guaranteed its passing, now that I have refused he will not sit back and allow me to work peacefully. It is my hope that he continues to lose face, for it will be the only thing to stop his crusade against me as I am digging in to his legislation with both hands.

Faithfully,

Hadrian Greengrass,

"It seems that Hadrian is in danger." Luna said after a moment of silence.

"Dumbledore is getting reckless, to go after Greengrass, even in the shadows, is a mistake. If anything happens to him, especially with the public behind him as they are currently, there would be uproar." Harry muttered distracted, "I don't want anything to happen to him, which means he needs to look as if he's stopped digging in to anything related to Dumbledore."

"You know he won't." Luna said, "Hadrian Greengrass doesn't back down, it is why the Dark Lord leaves him alone and no one has crossed him."

"I know, but if he continues, Dumbledore will remove him." Harry sighed, he tilted his head before a smirk made its way on to his face.

"You have an idea."

"How about I gave Hadrian something even graver to put his attentions to and make Dumbledore believe that he had lost interest?"

"And just what do you have to offer?" Luna asked interested,

"I think it might be prudent to set Hadrian on the missing trial of Sirius Black."


Remus rolled his neck and sat back with a sigh. The books that Harry had given him to translate were his biggest challenge to date, but he was having a blast. Call him crazy, but there was something truly great about completing something that others can't. All of the books were of a different language, there were some that even he had never heard of and he had set them aside to go through once he had finished the ones he knew. He wanted to teach himself the languages as he translated the books, that way he gained as well as gave.

Remus sat up and pulled his workings forward, he had finished the Cornish book as well as the ancient Greek because they were languages he was well versed in translating, he was a bit shaky on the Ancient Egyptian so he had put that one aside and moved to the Corsican book. Corsican was an Italo-Dalmatian language spoken on the island of Corsican mainly, it was an extremely old language and only 10% of people known to speak it spoke it as a first language. He had found the language when he was combing through new things to learn and he turned his attentions to languages, he had decided that if their was a book available then he was going to attempt to learn it and his plan had succeeded up until the war intervened.

It was good to get back to an old past times, even if it was in the middle of a war where he was on a completely different side than before and his entire beliefs had been thrown on their head. He had lost so much before, but he was still standing and so was his cub, and so he would continue to fight, doing anything and everything he could to make sure his cub stayed standing. Remus' head snapped up when he felt the now familiar magic of the Dark Lord enter his senses, the man swept in to the room and gracefully placed himself in the chair opposite.

"Good afternoon, Harry's wolf." He greeted and Remus rolled his eyes, it was the same greeting every time,

"You know, I do have a name; it's Remus." Remus said amused,

"Are you not a werewolf?" The Dark Lord asked,

"Yes,"

"And are you not in Harry's little
 thing?"

"Well yes,"

"So you are Harry's wolf." Tom pointed out and Remus groaned in to his hand. He really didn't know why he bothered, the man was more stubborn than Lily and that was saying something.

"Never mind," He sighed half exasperated, half amused and he noticed the amused glint in the red eyes.

"I have been informed that you are translating books." The Dark Lord said and Remus found it quite amusing that Harry was able to predict the man's movements so easily.

"Yes, I've finished the Ancient Greek and the Cornish. I'm working on the Corsican currently,"

"Corsican? I have not seen than language in years, I remember stumbling across it when I travelled to northern Sardinia." Tom said interested, he picked up Remus' working and looked through it impressed. "You are well versed in this language."

Remus blinked in shock, he was well aware that that was the biggest compliment he was ever going to receive from the man, but it sent a small thrill through him to know that the Dark Lord actually complimented him.

"Thanks, I used to have a lot a spare time on my hands."

"You are self taught?" There was a touch of surprise in the man's voice, and Remus grinned.

"Yes, my parents spent most of their money making sure no one found out I was a werewolf; not that it helped."

"Harry was right, you are intelligent." Tom decided, "What other languages are you versed in."

"I know quite a few, and there are others I know by eye. I have seen most of these before, even if I haven't a hope of translating them yet, if I can find a book I can translate them." Remus said,

"I believe I recognise most, but there are some I am, I admit, unfamiliar with. This one, for example, I don't believe I have seen before." Tom picked up a book which had what looked to be scratches and claw marks on it and Remus grinned.

"I would have been extremely surprised if you did," Remus said, "That is the original language of the Children of the Moon." Tom looked extremely interested in that and sat forward slightly,

"Do you speak it?"

"Unfortunately no." Remus shook his head, "According to wolf legend, only those of true blood, i.e direct descendents of the originals can speak the language. I can, however, read and write it."

"You will teach me this language." Tom decided and Remus blinked,

"Ok," He agreed, not that he had much of a choice, but then it was not as he minded.

"Good. What languages do you not know here?" Tom said looking back at the books, Remus picked up three books and laid them out. They were the only ones he had never seen before and he couldn't, for the life of him, even begin to try and find references to them and one of the languages gave him the creeps.

"Ah yes, and I assume that his one-," He picked up the book that made Remus shudder, "Makes you uncomfortable."

"Very,"

"It's Vampiric," Tom informed him, "Said only to be able to write it with the blood of a vampire."

"That would explain the weird feeling." Remus muttered, eyeing the book with distaste. "The others?"

"This one-," He held up the another book, "Is Torlakian, found in Albania, Romania, Bulgaria, Macadamia and Serbia. And the final one is as much a puzzle to me as it is to you."

"Torlakian
 I've never even heard of it."

"It is not found outside the mentioned countries, but it is not yet endangered to be extinct, merely vulnerable." Tom explained and Remus nodded,

"And the final one is a complete mystery." He picked up the book and looked at it closely, "It doesn't trigger any memories."

"How close are you to finishing your current works?" Tom questioned him,

"Merely cross referencing to make sure I've gotten everything right."

"Good, we shall start with the mystery." Tom said, "I do enjoy a challenge." Remus' eyes lit up with the prospect and he readily agreed,

"Yes, lets." He said flicking his wand to order his previous works and clearing the table, "Have you managed to explore the language section to this library yet?"

"I have only glanced,"

"I think you will appreciate it." Remus said as they got up to search for books, "It is like nothing I have ever seen." They went as far back in to the library as it would go and Remus made a flourished gesture to the entire back wall.

"All of it?"

"All of it." He confirmed,

"This will be interesting." Tom commented, "I'll start this end." They split and began combing through the books to find a reference or a book on the mysterious language, they spent hours looking through book after book and ones that looks similar got added to a pile levitating behind them. It was a surprisingly small pile of books they brought back to the table to be examined in detail and Remus shook his head.

"This language is definitely a unique one." He said looking at the collected books.

"Hm, so it seems." Tom agreed, "I may have found some small references, but it is not much to go on."

"Same, brief mentions only."

They led out their books and started going through them, and it wasn't long before an argument broke out between them.

"No, it clearly isn't that." Tom disagreed, his voice sharp and snappish, "You are supposed to have enhanced senses, you should be able to see the difference in the finishes to know that that is the Voro-Seto dialect, once popular in Estonia. This is a much better comparison."

"Ok, that is something I have never heard of. But with all that intelligence and intellect you speak so highly of, you should easily be able to see that that is not even close to being what we are looking for, and is obviously Ume Saami from Sweden." Remus countered with equal heat.

"Is that even a real language, wolf?" Tom hissed.

"Yes, Dark Lord, it is, I question whether yours is not just a figment of your imagination." Remus spat. They were so engrossed that they didn't notice that they had an audience, Hermione had been stood in the doorway for the past 10 minutes as they worked together brilliantly and then started arguing. It was shocking for her, to see the Dark Lord so human and
 available for lack of a better word.

He had always been out of reach to her, to everyone accept Harry that was, and she could never understand what Harry was trying to say when he said the Dark Lord was great to be around. It was shocking, to watch him work and to see how his mind worked, she could see what Harry was saying now. She had been slightly afraid when Remus had snapped back at him, but had watched amused as the pair seemed to get in to a scrappy little argument over who was right and Paws shook her head bemused. She decided that it might be best to stop the argument before it turned to wands, she doubted Harry needed the stress.

"Hello, Remus, Dark Lord." She greeted stepping forward, she froze when she was faced with two wands until they registered who it was.

"Hermione,"

"Harry's friend,"

"May I ask why you are arguing?"

"We're working on translating one of the books, it's the only language we're both in the dark over and we're discussing who had the right one." Remus explained, throwing the Dark Lord a dark look to which he received a sneer. Hermione walked over to see what they were looking at, fighting back the smile that wanted to emerge at their petty behaviour. She flipped a few of the pages of the books they were looking at and then back at the original frowning a little,

"You're both wrong." She told them, and they both glared at her. She nearly flinched at the duel glares, but she remembered that Harry would not allow these two people to harm her and so she merely raised an eyebrow. "Don't look at me like that, I've come across this language when I was searching for the spell on Bellatrix and didn't understand a word of it. Harry gave me a set of books and scrolls for my birthday, I found it in one of the books which Harry has a copy off. Something about it being an ancient micro-language from
 Poland maybe?" Hermione explained and the men shared a look,

"Come on, wolf," Tom said, "I want that book," he grabbed Remus and apperated away, Paws shook her head. She needed to make sure she wasn't crazy, and for that, she needed a good book.

Remus and Tom laded with an uncharacteristic crack in Harry's rooms which made both Harry and Luna aim their wands at the entering parties.

"Holy shit, Tom! What happened to the silent approach?" Harry demanded, collapsing back down on to his chair.

"I was preoccupied." Tom waved him off, "I want your books." Harry blinked and turned to Remus.

"Hey Moony, why'd he drag you here?"

"We're translating a book that neither of us know, and we need a book. Hermione said she had seen the language in the books you gave her for her birthday." Remus explained,

"Ok
"

"So, we want your books." Tom repeated, with a touch of impatience. Harry bit back a smirk, he really did enjoy watching Tom when he got in to work mode, the man was relentless and it didn't surprise him in the slightest that he had teamed up with Moony.

"Would it kill you to be polite?" Harry asked and Tom gave him a deadpanned look.

"Yes. Now fetch me the books, we have things to be doing and I want to know what language it is." He snapped crossing his arms, and tapping his foot.

"You know, you could show a little bit more consideration seeing as I am supposed to be getting the books." Harry pointed out and blocked the stinging hex aimed for his head, "I'll go get the books then, shall I?"

"Wise decision." Tom agreed. Harry vanished up in to his room and dug out the trunk in which he had stored the Malfoy books in, tapped it to reinforced the feather light charm and chucked it at Remus who snapped it out of the air.

"That it the entire Malfoy Family library right there, so do be careful, I would hate to have to copy them again." Harry told them, both Tom and Remus' eyes lit up in delight and they vanished with a crack, Harry shook his head.

"You know, I think it might have been a bad idea to introduce those two." Harry said to Luna,

"I think you might be right."

 

Chapter Text

 


Chapter 24;

It was like the entire castle was waiting for it, and because of this, when the post owls flew down and there was another blaring headline about the headmaster no one was surprised.

The Truth About Dumbledore;

The Brother,

Where The Ideas Were Disrupted,

From the long list of secrets that have come to light from the murky past of Albus Dumbledore, many are yet to come. It is known to us that Dumbledore had questionable parents and deadly love interests, but Dumbledore also had siblings. Aberforth Dumbledore and Arianna Dumbledore were both key factors in Dumbledore's youth and it is known that Aberforth stood up to his brother when Albus wanted to continue with his plans to make muggles subservient to wizards. However, Aberforth Dumbledore has his own shady life that could have affected his brother's great plans, some more than others, and just how much was Aberforth affected by his home life.

As already mentioned, Aberforth Dumbledore was willing to stand up to his talented brother and Grindlewald to protect his sister and maybe now we know some of the secrets of the Dumbledore household it is more apparent why. Growing up within a mix of secrets, lies and quite possibly violence, Aberforth became what some called a 'wayward' child and he failed to shine out of his brother's very big shadow. What little information there is about the second Dumbledore child it is clear that there was a definite resentment between the pair, and Aberforth was the one to put the famous crook in Albus' crooked nose, the reason has yet to be uncovered, but you can believe this reporter will get to the bottom of that mystery. Aberforth was known to come to wands over things rather that talk things through and it seems he was the one to inherit his fathers open violence, resulting in many petty duels during his time at Hogwarts. It is unsure his relationship with his mother, but we can speculate that it was rocky due to his clear favouritism of his sister Arianna.

After his mother's sudden death, Aberforth wanted to drop out of school to care for his sister, but Albus, now the head of the Dumbledore family, refused to allow him to do so and made him complete his education, something Aberforth did not appreciate and his behaviour deteriorated. The summer brought the arrival of Grindlewald and many more arguments between the two brothers, Albus was more interested in his muggle domination to care for his family and Aberforth stood in the way of his plans. It was only after Grindlewald fled that Albus stepped properly in to his role and took up the mantle head of house, but the brothers never were the same again because something happened that as of yet is unknown. After he graduated from Hogwarts, Aberforth split from his brother, the whereabouts of Arianna is unknown, and pursued his own life away from his brother and the conforms Albus set for him. Aberforth rebelled and ended up putting more blemishes on the Dumbledore name by getting in to trouble from duelling, fighting and inappropriate use of charms on livestock, but nothing to suggest he followed either his mother, father or brothers views or ideas. I, of course, looked in to Aberforth Dumbledore today as there was no certificate of death and was surprised to find him in a comfortable life running the Hogs Head Inn in Hogsmead. It is unknown if he is still in contact with his brother as neither has ever mentioned the other, it is almost like they do not exist to each other, and I have yet to find what caused such a rift between the two.

However many questions come to mind and the first being; what happened to Arianna? Did something happen involving the young hidden witch that drove the brothers apart? Did Albus continue with his mothers secrets and lies to keep his sister hidden and did Aberforth finally have enough? Or was it the mystery of Kendra Dumbledore's death that saw the complete disappearance of the youngest Dumbledore? All this has yet to be discovered, but I will dig deep readers and I will find the truth.

Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondent to the Daily Prophet,

It wasn't as punchy as the ones previously, but the questions that it left were exactly what Harry was hoping for. Whispers broke out and there was one question on everybody's lips: what happened to Arianna Dumbledore? Dumbledore didn't seem to be as bothered with the paper, but when the questions started reaching his ears, the old man's eyes widened and he was frantically looking around as if to stop them but not knowing how. The great thing about this article, however, was on the next page was a side article about Dumbledore with extra information on his charges over livestock. It was at that moment, when the rest of the school turned the pages and the hall plummeted in to an eerie silence. Rita, the dear she was, had left clear instructions on exactly what to do with the picture that accompanied the article, and it was the usually stoic potions master spitting out his morning tea after looking from Dumbledore to the picture that broke the rest of the hall. Retching, shrieking and Harry was sure someone actually passed out as the realisation of what they were seeing sank in. Dumbledore all but ripped open the paper when he saw the looks of disgust aimed at him, and went deathly pale before flushing red with rage. He stormed from the hall after bunching up the paper and throwing it down on the floor like a petulant child, Harry sat back and watched the hall in its chaos. He felt a bit sorry for the older professors, McGonagall looked ready to flee in her cat form and poor Sprout was as green as the plants she worked with.

Well, that went well. He commented and was given filthy looks from his friends, Or not.

Where was our warning? Paws snapped,

You didn't have to magnify the image. Harry pointed out,

I hate you. She informed him before leaving the hall, Harry bit back his smirk and looked at Tom. He was, by the looks of things, trying to consol Snape who seemed to be in the same condition as Lucius had been in. Harry sent the man his amusement, and received disgust and humour in return. He cast a tempus and grinned, he had plans for the evening and he was hoping to go back and use the day to scout his target. He passed through his lessons easily, the questions about Dumbledore's elusive sister on everyone's mind and was pleased with the outcome. If Dumbledore had any intelligence what so ever, something which Harry was reluctant to admit but understood the truth, he knew what was going to be coming next. He was just glad he had Rita set up behind impenetrable wards, as soon as the articles had come out he had had Luna set something up for that he was thankful. He would bet the entire contents of the Potter vaults that Dumbledore would be doing everything in his power in the upcoming days to make sure the final article did not reach the papers. It would be in vain of course. On the off chance that Rita was captured and removed, Harry had already been sent the draft and he was sure an anonymous article following in Rita's footsteps would make the front page of the Prophet. Harry wasn't surprised Dumbledore was not at dinner, it made it easier for him and his friends to slip out and meet in his rooms.

"It was rather light this time." Luna pointed out, Harry nodded,

"I know, it's the build up."

"I would have thought we had enough build up already." She said and Harry grinned,

"No, definitely not, not nearly enough. Think about it, for a second, after reading that article, what is the main question on your mind?"

"What happened to Arianna?" Luna answered immediately and then her eyes widened. "Oh, I see."

"Yes, and I can't wait for it to be seen by everyone else." Harry said brightly.

"You are delightfully evil." Luna said and Harry grinned,

"Thank you dear sister, you are too kind."

"The twins are currently within the castle, they're on their way with Venom and Bleach." She told him,

"Good, we need to run through timings before leaving. I think I'm going to tail mine."

"I still think it is a stupid idea." Luna stated and Harry shook his head.

"I know, but it is the only way."

"I said I could-,"

"Absolutely not." Harry cut her off and she scowled.

"I am not a child."

"I know. But I refuse to allow my sister access to sleezy clubs in Knocktun, when they would probably try and make you whore yourself out or force you on stage to strip." Harry returned and her expression didn't change.

"That's a minor risk and you know it. If you go then you know there are many things that could go wrong, the biggest of which is here in this castle."

"The risk to me is nothing compared to you, and I can handle Tom so your argument is invalid." Harry told her, his voice going hard.

"Harry, you know that he's on edge and if this gets back to him then he will snap. I can be in and out within minutes, I can dress like a doll-," She tried but was cut off again.

"No."

"You can't stop me from going."

"Watch me." He said darkly, glaring at her, "So help me Merlin if you even step near one of those clubs alone. I'll have you layered in trackers and protective enchantments quicker than you can say Knockturn."

"I am 15 years old."

"You are my little sister, I will not have you in danger for something I can handle myself. Do not argue with me, Luna Maia Lovegood, because I will win." Harry sent a mental call to Paws to send Badger to him as a back up, he didn't put it past her to get there without him.

"Fine," She snapped crossing her arms.

"Don't be like that. You know you mean the world to me, that's why I'm keeping you safe." Harry sighed,

"You can't keep me safe if you're going to get yourself killed." She yelled at him, Harry winced, but stood resolute. There was no way in Heaven, Hell or Avalon that Luna was going and that was final, whether she liked it or not. They were glaring at each other when the others came in, and Luna finally relented by throwing herself down in a chair as far from Harry as possible. Harry looked at the others and shot them a wry look,

"This is going to be brief, I wanted to double check that everything is fine for today/tonight." He said,

"We've got everything covered, we'll be going back performing at lunch, our alibi is air tight them." The twins told him, Harry nodded,

"Good, Venom?"

"Draco is lending me his timeturner so I can hit the 5 o'clock rush." He answered, "My plan is solid."

"Wonderful, remind me to get you kitted with a turner soon. They come in handy." Harry said and Blaise nodded.

"I'm not going." Draco shrugged, "It's fine for now."

"That's fine. I'm going back to tail mine for the day, before I get to work I need to observe." Harry said, "Badger, you're needed here. Watch Luna, and do not let her out of your sight." There was a very clear warning in his voice which made Badger nod seriously.

"I don't need a baby sitter!" Luna exclaimed angrily, glaring at him. Harry gave her a blank look and summoned his cloak,

"You are not getting a baby sitter, you're going to spend the evening with one of our friends to distract you from your unnecessary worry and stop you from putting yourself in danger." Harry stated, and he didn't give her chance to argue because he shadowed out.

"He is infuriating." She growled,

"Listen to him, Ray," Manic implored,

"You know he will flip his lid if anything happens to you." Panic pointed out,

"I can look after myself." She said, anger lacing her tone.

"And he knows that, but you know he is much more protective of you than anyone else. Despite the fact he was the one who taught you how to fight." Manic told her, Luna sighed.

"Fine, I won't leave, but I am extremely unhappy." She said to them,

"You know he'll make it up to you." They said cheerfully, "We're off," they dropped a kiss on Draco's cheeks and vanished from the room, the Malfoy heir blushed but was smiling. Venom shook his head at his friend and followed the twins out,

"So, anyone want to talk about the article?"


As soon as Manic and Panic left the school wards, they went back in time and apperated outside the wards of a large house, it wasn't big enough to be a manor, but it was much larger than your regular house. They waved their wands in sync and glamours wrapped around them changing their red hair bright blond, their blue eyes deep brown and removing all freckles from their face. Manic flicked his wand and the wards flared, there was a small hole within them, low to the ground, just big enough for them to slide through singularly in their animagus forms.

"Ready, Manic?"

"Ready, Panic." They changed and slipped through the gap, the two wild cats scampered towards the house before changing back.

"Are we going on heat and then our performance, or just by eye?" Panic asked,

"Go by heat, not sure if it's alone." Manic decided, he put his wand to his temple and muttered "Calor Conspectu," Panic copied the notion and they walked in side. Their vision was like that of a snake, it was one of Harry's spells that showed everything as a heat signature and allowed the person to see where anything that could be a target. Manic cleared the first floor with Panic covering his back, they moved up and on the second floor, Panic found a woman sipping tea in what looked to be a lounge. She spotted them, but before she could make a sound she was stunned with an edited stunner and disillusioned. They moved further up the house and on to the final floor and there was one strong heat signature in the master room, it was so hot that it was reading deep red in their vision. The twins grinned, they had slipped their target, one Derek Franklin, a fever fudge the previous day and because he had not received their cure he was still suffering the effects.

"Got the sphere?" Panic asked, indicating his own.

"Yes, break on three once we're in there?"

"Done,"

They crept in to the room and saw Franklin curled up on the bed, he was sweating and shivering violently – they may have doubled the needed dosage! – and smirked. Each twin threw their spear down making it shatter on the floor, immediately the room filled with vicious, bloodthirsty growls that seemed to echo. Franklin jerked up at the sound, his eyes darting around in fear and the twins grinned. Fred flicked his wand and darkened the room, the growling sounded more ominous in the dark and the twins changed their eyes to glowing amber. Franklin whimpered when he saw the two sets of eyes glaring at him within the darkness, they looked just like those filthy halfbreed eyes, this was why they needed to be killed.

"S-s-stay away f-from m-me." He stuttered. The twins cut the growling and began to laugh, it was low, husky and it made Franklin shiver in fear.

"Time to become one of us." Fred growled, using his animagus to make his voice different.

"N-no, NO!"

"You wanted to hunt us. Now you'll be hunted with us." George said using the same tone.

"No, please no," He begged, "I'll stop, I'll stop."

"It's too late," they sang,

"Beg and plead,"

"Try as you might,"

"There is nothing you can do."

"We bite!"

Franklin was openly crying now much to the twins amusement, and they were about to make it worse; they had borrowed another spell of Harry and most of the things he made were not pleasant.

"Visiocturna fallacia," George cast and the malevolent navy beam hit Franklin square in the chest making him fall silent. They didn't have to wait long for the effects to start, he started twitching and jerking away from an invisible attack. Then he started yelping, yelling and suddenly screaming out in pain. The twins snickered, it was the illusion spell that Harry had created for his blood quill, they had found it in one of his English note books and borrowed it for their target; they were sure he wouldn't mind. The spell, according to Harry, would eventually break the mind of those it was cast on, depending on the severity of their fear and the strength of their will, the spell could last up to an hour as the mix of fear, pain and resignation would cripple the human mind simply to relieve it from its torturous existence; the twins loved it. Franklin, however, was not strong of will and he seemed to be extremely scared of werewolves because his mind snapped within 10 minutes. He was left drooling on the bed, eyes glazed and expression vacant, George cancelled the curse and removed traces of all magic while Fred wiped any evidence of them being there from the room. George pulled out a syringe and stuck it in Franklin's arm, the clear liquid was pushing in to the blood and the man's eyes dropped closed and he stopped bleeding.

"Well, that was fun." Fred said, walking out.

"Yes," George agreed, "Next one?"

"Wonderful suggestion, twin, lets go." The pair slipped out of the house and out of the wards before apperating away. They came to a small muggle village and skipped down the road, it had been utter hell tracking their second target, one Horace Slughorn, because for the past year the man had been moving around more than Dumbledore's eyes twinkled. Once they had him though, he was not getting away which is why they effortlessly broke in to the house he was staying in and flashed equal evil grins when he ran out with his wand pointed at them.

"Good evening, Mr Slughorn." They greeted and his eyes narrowed.

"Who are you?" He demanded, his wand not wavering.

"We're here to pass on a message." Manic told him,

"From who?"

"The Dark Lord." They said together and Slughorn paled.

"I-I have not done a-anything." He stuttered,

"You've been meeting with Dumbledore." Panic said casually, and they both took pleasure when Slughorn lost more colour.

"I-I haven't, he came but I-I stayed away." Slughorn denied, the twins shook their heads tuting.

"Ah ah ah, lets us not lie." Manic said, disapproval lining his tone.

"It is extremely unbecoming," Panic agreed, mimicking his twins tone.

"Its too late now,"

"You brought this on yourself."

"Foolish man." They shook their heads. Slughorn went to curse them, but Manic dropped a small sphere and the room immediately filled with thick smoke, they heard Slughorn drop and smirked. Waving his wand in a circle, Panic cast the unique counter as his twin levitated Slughorn to where the man was keeping his postion's lab. They found a constructed room in the basement and Manic flung the man in to the wall as if he had been blasted back by the cauldron, Panic grabbed a cauldron and started throwing things in, he had his twin had created a certain mix that, on the surface, looked like it was becoming the wolfsbane potion, but really was a load of ingredients that would explode.

"Ready when you are." Panic said holding the final ingredient, Manic nodded and Panic flung the ingredient in the cauldron. They had time to vanish their magical signatures and bolt from the room, they were still thrown from their feet when the cauldron exploded and Manic groaned. Panic slapped a hand over his twins mouth when he heard someone move outside, they changed in to cats and slunk in to the shadows just as Dumbledore rushed passed them. As soon as the headmaster went down the stairs, they darted from the house and down the street, only when they were at least 5 streets away did they change back and catch their breaths.

"Shall we go buy our Draco something for when we see him tomorrow?" George suggested,

"Let's,"

They turned on the spot and apperated away; they had a fussy blond to shop for.


Meanwhile, Venom had gone back to 4:45pm and apperated to London. He knew, thanks to his mother, other entrances to the Ministry that had been long ago forgotten and he would be using one today. Casting the familiar obscuring charms that had been personalised by his mother, apparently you can never be too obscure, Blaise made his way to Knockturn Alley. He walked through the alley with his head down, he walked further in than most thought possible and continued to walk. He felt old wards and paused, he flicked his wand to make them flare and then he jabbed a rip in the centre to break them, temporarily and continued. The pathway became uneven and jagged, it started sloping downwards rapidly and the air became colder until Venom knew he was underground.

There were more wards which he slipped past effortlessly because of their age and their cracks, he picked up speed making sure to make no sounds as he moved. The twists and turns reminded him of the inside of Gringotts and it wouldn't have surprised him if the goblins had carved these tunnels, they were rather good at mining. He approached stone steps and took them two at a time, the tunnel had narrowed and he tucked in his arms as not to scuff them. Venom's eyes went upwards, he was looking for something that would take him above the exit, it was the one that wasn't monitored and he needed to stay undetected. He smirked when he saw a shadowed hole, using the jagged rock as leverage, he hoisted himself up and scrambled in to the gap which was a lot smaller than he anticipated.

Blaise kept on his stomach and slid like his animagus counterpart, he decided it would be easier to change as he could no longer see anything, it was as if the light had been removed from the gap and he couldn't protect against oncoming attack. As a rattle snake, it was much easier to move and he could pick up anything coming his way by their heat signature. The entire tunnel was a cool blue so he continued down until he reached a wall, he was momentarily confused until he looked up and changed back and pulled himself up. Venom could see the light at the end of the next tunnel he arrived in and used his snake to keep in the shadows, he wasn't sure where this came out exactly, but as a snake he could remain unseen for longer if it was necessary. He was surprised to come out down in the ministry holding cells, on the lower levels where they were only used by the worst of criminals, Blaise presumed that they were thinking it would take them longer to escape; the hole in the wall being the problem.

Once he was in and human, he double checked his obscuring spells and made his way up in to the main section of the ministry, he changed his robes to a low level auror to give himself extra cover for the atrium and then he was waiting. He cast a tempus and bit back a grin, he was on time and if his calculations were right, something he didn't doubt, then his target, Peter Mavericks, would be leaving the lift now. He kept his eyes on the crowds piling out and as soon as he caught sight of his mark he was off. Venom pulled out a set of Chinese needles and extracted one, they were much thinner than regular needles and possessed bubbled ends so they could be handled. He came up behind his mark and pushed the needle in to his neck, it had to be the perfect position, and his mother started to teach him this particular art when he was 8.

Immediately the man's entire body stiffened and he couldn't move, Venom smirked as he passed, it was a Chinese art, usually used for healing, but there were certain places on the human body where needles should not be placed because they would cause harm; this was one of those. It would stop the blood flow from the brain and the rest of the body, and Venom could see that it was happening already, Mavericks' head was bright red and with a flick of his wand he summoned the needle away. Blood started flowing from the man's nose and the people around him started to notice, he was still paralysed and he couldn't even scream out in pain. More blood came, but this time from his ears and that was quickly followed by his eyes, he was drawing a crowd as people tried to help him, and Venom made sure he was able to watch everything.

Eventually, blood poured from his mouth and Venom watched as the light leave his eyes, his body was still locked in its position, but when people realised he was dead the alarms sounded. Venom jumped in the nearest floo and went to the cauldron, he walked through to the alley and cancelled the transfiguration of his robes as he moved towards Knockturn alley again. He moved back in to the shadows and considered it a good job as he apperated away.


Harry had gone back to the beginning of the day and started following his mark, one Jacob Smith, from the moment he left his house. The man was paranoid and had a baseline anti-apperation ward on the entire house, even for himself, so he had to leave the wards to go anywhere as he floo was also disconnected. He didn't notice the Parsel tracker that found its way on to his boot and Harry followed the pulse of magic through the shadows. He wasn't surprised when he landed in Knockturn alley, the shady alley allowed him to keep his shadows wrapped around him. Smith seemed to be doing deals with some of the crooks in the alley and Harry suspected that a few of these would be avoiding fines and prosecution because of the things they told him, he couldn't hear them, but it didn't take a genius to work out he was getting information on werewolves.

It set Harry on edge, Ellen's shop was hidden, but information on it could be leaked and that would be extremely bad given the current time. If he wasn't there for a reason, Harry would have been bored out of his mind, Smith spent the entire morning bargaining and dealing with the scum of the alley before heading to lunch. Harry watched as the man leered at the pretty female waitress that reminding him of Luna and he mentally thanked his protective side for not allowing her to come, Smith also seemed to have a thing for a guy at the bar. He had dark hair and pale skin, deep brown eyes and rather feminine features, he was attractive, whoever they were and Harry had something to build his glamour on.

After lunch, Harry followed Smith to a field where the man just stood and looked around, it was harder for Harry to hide, but he did have an invisibility cloak and he threw in a silencing and scent masking spell for good measure. He briefly wondered what Smith was doing when his enhanced hearing picked up the sounds of howling and his eyes widened, Smith had found a wolf hideout and as Harry had not been able to see Ellen since he had flushed the place with gold, he didn't know how many others had been found, but he knew that Smith could not be allowed to report this back to the other hunters. Harry would have to cut his observations short, that way he could stop this location getting reported, and continue his mission.

Smith went through the trees and Harry had to admire his tracking skills, he was good, but he was putting it to bad practice which was a shame, especially as it was going to be resulting in his untimely demise. When he was close enough, Harry cast an edited confundus charm on Smith, convincing him that he had already reported the location of the wolves and it was time to hit the clubs for the night. It was approaching 6 already and Harry was surprised, they had been around the entire area and he hadn't noticed. He apperated to the club that Smith decided on and stowed his cloak away, he took to the shadows and cast a glamour on his face making it softer, more feminine, he changed his eyes to bright blue and made his hair longer.

If someone knew him they would recognise him, but other than that he would be fine. He changed his clothes in to something more revealing, he made his t-shirt cling to him and his jeans hugged him in all the right places, before entering the bar. Harry spotted Smith at the bar and walked over, he ordered a drink and slouched over making his top roll up. He could feel Smith's eyes on him and looked at the man out of the corner of his eye, the man seemed to puff himself up before sliding over.

"Hello, I'm Jake," He introduced smoothly, Harry made sure he looked a bit startled but smiled slightly.

"Hi," He returned somewhat shyly, "I'm James, Jamie,"

"Well, Jamie, allow me to say that it is wonderful to meet you." He said and swiftly kissed his hand, the gesture made Harry's skin crawl, but he made himself blush lightly by remembering the time he had accidently walked in on Sirius and Remus; that had been forever burned in to his mind.

"Thanks,"

They sat in silence for a bit until Harry had finished his first drink and Smith insisted he buy him another, they struck up conversation about work.

"I'm a healer," Harry told him, "Burns specialist."

"Really? Becoming a specialist is difficult, I'm told." Smith said impressed, he was three drinks ahead of Harry and that was exactly what Snake wanted.

"It was hard, but worth it." He agreed, "What do you do?"

"I've recently gained a promotion," Smith said, his voice oozing with smug pride, "I'm an auror, but I have been selected to handle dangerous halfbreeds." Harry's eyes widened and he looked at the man in awe,

"You're from the Werewolf Protection Programme," His voice hushed and he watched, with hidden amusement, as Smith puffed up.

"Yes, I was personally selected for the job." He claimed and Harry looked at him in admiration.

"Wow, that's really dangerous." Harry said, "What's it like, facing one of them?"

"Well, you have to be quick. They're fast, see, but you can't show them that you're scared of them, I'm the human which means I am the better. Once they know that, they usually come in quietly, but some fight back and I've been forced to subdue some of them." Smith explained, he was obviously proud of his work and Harry made sure that he showed the right amount of enthusiasm for the explanation even if it made him sick.

"You've actually had to fight a werewolf?" Harry said, his voice hushed,

"Yes, look at this." He pulled up his sleeve to reveal a scar stretching up his arm, it was obviously made by claws, but it was something that could have been a lot worse.

"Oh Merlin," Harry gasped peering at it in shock, "I would have been terrified."

"I was merely doing what is right." Smith said in an attempt of modesty,

"You're really brave." Harry told him, looking up in to his eyes and placing his hand gently on his arm. Smith seemed to puff up even more and bought Harry another drink, they spent a few hours laughing and chatting and with more alcohol came more advances. Smith was
 sloppy. Harry really couldn't help but compare him to Tom and it really wasn't helping, he was fighting his instincts of not breaking Smith's arm and when he drops a messy kiss on his cheek Harry very nearly killed him. He was reminded that Tom would be less than pleased, but then he pushed that aside, it wasn't as if Tom really had a say and he wasn't intending on allowing Jacob Smith from touching him more than necessary. He kept pushing drinks on the man and not drinking his own, finally, Smith wrapped an arm around his waist and leaned in to his ear.

"Fancy joining me?" He asked, his voice low and Harry had to fight back showing his disgust.

"Sure," Harry agreed, and allowed himself to be led out. He felt eyes on him, but as he looked around the bar and saw no one watching him he thought nothing on it. When they stepped out, Smith stumbled and Harry took that as a brilliant signal to take over the journey and apperate them away, they landed in a wide open field with literally nothing around. Smith fell on his ass and Harry sneered, he wiped his hands on his jeans and pulled out a blade that he had in his boot.

"Where are we?" Smith slurred and Harry smirked down at him,

"I felt that this was a better location for what is about to happen." Harry told him, his voice smoother and darker than it had been all night.

"What's going on?"

"You see, Jacob Smith, I know all about you and you work for the so called Werewolf Protection Program and you make me sick." Harry said and he thrust his knife down in to his shoulder making his cry out.

"Who are you?" Smith cried and Harry laughed coldly.

"No one to you, but someone who hates you." He said. Harry pinned Smith to the ground and stabbed his other shoulder making him scream, his lip curled when he thought of all the wolves hurt by this man and he had a sudden burst if inspiration. Harry ripped the blade deeply across Smith's abdomen freeing his insides and spraying himself with blood, he plunged his hands in and pulled out his intestines.

"Imperio," he cast the spell and forced it to take hold, the man was much to injured to fight, but he wanted to make sure he had full control. Eat them, he ordered, Harry grinned a truly awful smile as the man was made to comply, it was disgustingly stomach turning, but he made sure to watch everything; he never wanted to forget. With the amount of blood spilling out of the wounds and the fact that he was poisoning himself, Smith's body soon gave out and slumped to the ground. Harry sighed in disappointment, he was enjoying that, and he had to get rid of the body.

Harry grinned, he pulled out his wand and chopped up the body, he would scatter it and if anyone managed to find all the pieces then they would be amazing. He transfigured the pieces in to forest bits such as sticks, leaves and rocks and then overpowered a banishing charm to get rid of them. Harry smiled to himself, eyes lit up with an insane light, and cast a tempus, his first self would have left long before them so he shadowed back to his living room and successfully scared the living crap out of Badger and Luna.

"What happened to you?" Badger said alarmed,

"I had to cut him in to tiny little pieces." Harry told him sweetly, his voice sickening, like syrup, and Badger flinched at the sound. Luna muttered a curse under her breath and got up,

"Harry," She called and his absent attention snapped to her, she smiled at him and held out her hand, "Come with me, and will get rid of the blood. You're bleeding on the carpet." He looked down surprised,

"Oh, ok then." He grabbed her hand and cheerfully skipped away. Luna ushered him in to she shower and while he was cleaning, she pulled out his sleep wear and asked Winky for a cup of milky tea. As she suspected, when Harry immerged from the shower, he was rather out of it so she fed him the tea and watched as he fell bonelessly in to bed. Once she made sure he was sleeping peacefully, she went back to the living room and sat down next to Badger.

"What was that?" He asked after a few moments of silence.

"That was a glance as what Harry calls his demon." Luna told him, "He has another personality almost, it's Harry, but its not. It's him without feeling, without emotion, without a care, but all of Harry's power and knowledge. It was the thing that broke through the Malfoy wards, delirious and covered in blood, it is the thing that Dumbledore created and that Harry keeps back daily."

"Is that why Harry struggles with his emotions so much. I know that he barely gathers the basics because of the way he grew up and they were practically forced from his body, but this
 demon you called it, can't be helping." Neville said and Luna shrugged,

"I don't know. I can't imaging it helps him." She sighed, "I hate Dumbledore."

"It's a shared thought, I assure you." Neville agreed, "You'll be ok?"

"Yes, I'll be fine. He's asleep and should be fine tomorrow."

"Ok, night Raven." Neville waved and left. Luna sighed to herself and made her way up to the bedroom; sometimes, she wanted to kill Dumbledore herself.


"Luna!" Harry called from where he was mashed between his sheets, "I'm confused."

"I am not surprised, your demon made a little appearance." She told him, running her hand through his hair. Harry peaked his head up and looked at her in question, "You were a bit out of it when you got him, what do you remember?"

"I stabbed him, and then things go a bit blurry. I know I cast the Imperius and made him eat his one insides, brilliant by the way, but I've got nothing after that." Harry said after a moments thought.

"You said you cut him in to little pieces when you got back."

"Oh, huh, well I probably did." Harry shrugged,

"Are you ok to get up and go to school?" She asked and he pouted,

"I don't wanna," He complained and Luna smiled slightly,

"Come on, we're having a meeting later to discuss how everything went." Luna said. Harry grumbled under his breath as he pulled himself and in to the shower, he washed himself thoroughly removing all trace of Smith from him; he shuddered at the thought. Harry threw on his glamour and tugged on his uniform before trooping down to the living room, he dropped a kiss on Luna's cheek and headed out. Charms and transfiguration passed quickly and Harry dragged himself down to lunch, he could feel the tension amongst the teachers in the great hall and he could tell that something happened within the raids but he just didn't know what yet. Harry spent his free in the library before going to defence and then slinking up to his rooms, he was not feeling it today for some reason, he was impatient to know what had happened and to hear back from the others.

"Are you not going down to dinner today?" Luna asked him, as she danced her way in.

"No, I want to get this meeting out the way and then go to bed. I don't feel too good." Harry sighed,

"Do you want me get the Venom and Bleach?"

"Please. I'll get the others."

Luna vanished and Harry opened the connection to Swift and Paws, Meeting, bring Badger.

Be there in 5,

Swift, Paws and Badger arrived in the shadows and threw themselves down on the sofa,

"Hey guys,"

"You don't look great." Swift told him in greeting, Harry laughed,

"Yeah, I'm tired. For some reason, it really hit me today how sick I am of this." He sighed, "I'll perk up in a minute."

"Harry, I think I finally see what you mean." Paws said, smiling at him, he raised an eyebrow in question and she elaborated, "About the Dark Lord, he really is human."

"What made you come to that conclusion?" He asked, amused.

"I was in the library in the Gryffindor rooms and he was there with Moony." She said and Harry grinned,

"Ah, that explains everything. Those two argue like children."

"Moony snapped and insulted him, the man didn't so much as blink." Paws shook her head shocked, "I was expecting at least a curse."

"Tom does have some self preservation. He knows I would flip if he cursed Moony maliciously, and seeing as I'm wearing one of his trinkets around my neck
 well I think that says it all."

"He's rather relentless, isn't he?" Paws said and Harry nodded.

"When Tom gets in to something, he has to see it through." Harry agreed, "It's a rather endearing trait of his."

"I will admit that I was shocked. I thought he was going to curse me what I said he was wrong, but he didn't,"

"Let me guess
 he glared at you?" Harry said, laughing.

"Yes, it was terrifying."

"I don't know what he does, but he manages to scare the best of people with that glare."

"Well whatever it is, you have the exact same thing." Badger put in with a grin, Harry pretended to blush.

"Awh thanks. What can I say
"

"Hey, Snake," The twins greeted entering the room,

"Gentlemen, Bleach, Venom." Harry returned, smiling. "Come and sit, we have loads to discuss. Twins, want to start?"

"Both of ours were a success." Fred began, "We borrowed one of your spells and Franklin played host to it yesterday." Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Oh?"

"Yes, your nightmares curse. It was
 beautiful." George sighed,

"I want to see that." Harry said with a smirk. "I can just imagine-," He cut himself off with a hiss of pain as he was suddenly flooded with rage from Tom, at first he was going to brush it away, but then he felt the possessiveness rushing through the man and he knew exactly what caused it. His friends looked at him in worry and Harry threw up some barriers against the pain,

"You all need to leave if you want to stay alive." Harry got out and then whimpered as the pain forcefully ripped through his temporary barriers and blood started to run down his face.

"I warned you." Luna said with a mix of anger and worry.

"I know," Harry groaned, "But you can argue with me later. Go, now!" his friends scattered, some through shadows and some through animagus forms, it was just in time before an extremely pissed off Tom apperated directly in to his rooms. Harry was overcome with pain and it only got worse as Tom closer, the man stalked forward and forcefully yanked his head back using his hair and furious crimson eyes glared down at him. Harry could feel it, Tom was so much more enraged now then he was with the Ginny incident and Harry guessed it was because the man knew how much he hated the girl, but this was different. This was a random pick up, or that's what it looked like, and Harry had no doubt that was what Tom had been told.

Give me one could good reason why I sshouldn't kill you for thisss Tom demanded and Harry struggled to understand the vicious hissing.

Because you are not my keeper and I can do what I like? Harry tried, and almost immediately regretted it. Tom's hand moved from his hair to his throat and Harry fought to breathe, he realised that Tom was not thinking clearly and was likely to kill him unless Harry calmed him down right now. Calm down, he choked out, but if anything Tom's hold tightened and Harry felt his head begin to feel light.

You think to tell me to calm down after this! You dare even think about someone else, and you expect me to calm down! What part of MINE is unclear to you? Tom snarled,

Not an object, Harry got out and then choked, And before you kill me, you may want to actually listen to me.

I fail to see why,

Harry's eyes narrowed and he felt his own anger spark, if Tom was going to trust him so little that he was not going to even allow an explanation then he ought to get used to not laying another finger on him ever again. Harry made his skin burn scorching hot forcing Tom to release him with a pained hiss, Harry twisted himself to switch their positions and before it registered, he had Tom pinned on the floor with one hand around his throat and the other pointing his wand between the man's eyes.

In your arrogance, you failed to remember that there is always a reason behind my actions. Harry hissed, and when Tom went to speak Harry tightened his hold and made his hand heat up Do not even think about speaking. He snapped, You do not even allow me to explain my actions, and you dare try and kill me for something you have not yet confirmed.

I saw them memory, Tom rasped and Harry noticed his lips were going blue, but at that point he was past caring.

You only saw me leave, not my intentions, and not my future actions. Harry snarled, Do not presume you know what I did after leaving. Now, are you going to hear me out or continue to try and kill me?

I will listen, He agreed sounding less hostile,

Good. Harry said, And I give you one warning. If you ever try anything even remotely similar to how you acted previously, I will make sure, with every inch of my power and resources, that you find yourself 6ft under the fucking ground. Do we have an understanding, Dark Lord? They were silently glaring at each other for around a minute until Tom relented,

Understood,

Harry used the shadows with vanish to the other side of the room, where as Tom silently apperated to the opposite side.

"Speak," Tom ordered and Harry huffed,

"If you would have come and asked me what I was doing, instead of throwing a fit worthy of a Malfoy, you would know that I went there to seduce that particular wizard." Harry said and Tom's eyes narrowed.

"That is not raising your favour," Tom stated,

"It should, because if you know that I went for that particular person then I had no intention of allowing them to touch me." Harry pointed out with a raised eyebrow, Tom blinked twice.

"You left with him."

"Yes, and now he's lying dead in pieces. Your point?" Harry threw back,

"He was one from the list." Tom said and Harry gave him a mocking round of applause,

"Oh look, there is that intelligence you hold so dear." He said snidely, and Tom rolled his eyes at the comment.

"If you would have, I don't know, informed me that you decided that you felt the need to seduce someone out of a bar to kill them, you realise this wouldn't have happened." Tom returned in the same tone, and Harry conceded he did have a point. Especially as he knew how Tom would react and Luna had warned him against both doing it and not telling Tom.

"Point taken, but if you would have allowed me to explain before flying of the handle then this also wouldn't have happened."

"Oh, and if you saw in someone's mind me seducing someone and leaving with them, you would accept that." Tom said with a raised eyebrow,

"Yes," Harry answered immediately, and Tom smirked,

"You are lying." He stated, "I can feel it," Harry scowled at the wall because he knew that Tom spoke the truth, if he had seen the same thing he would have flipped. That thought alone should have been the first major clue that the 'casual sex' they had started was developing in to something more, but Harry was wilfully blind to that fact.

"Fine, I would have been pissed. But I wouldn't have acted exactly like you did, and I would have waited for a damn explanation before killing you."

"I kill first and then asked questions." Tom shrugged unconcerned and Harry threw him a dirty look.

"Besides, you are not my keeper. I am allowed to do things without your express permission." Harry grumbled and Tom's eyes narrowed again.

"You are perfectly able to do as you wish, but you know exactly what pisses me off, and if you do not want extreme reactions then you should tell me before hand." Tom said to him, and Harry mentally cursed the man viciously.

"I hate you." Harry said,

"I know," Tom confirmed. Harry sighed and turned around, crossing his arms as he did so, Tom rolled his eyes and walked over. He wrapped his arms around Harry's waist and gently kissed his neck,

"Would you like me to apologise for trying to kill you?" He murmured and Harry merely sniffed and stuck his nose in the air, Tom shook his head amused, "I apologise for attempting to kill you, and I will endeavour to ask your explanation if a situation like this arises again."

"Hm, acceptable I suppose." Harry relented, turning around and accepting the kiss Tom pressed to his lips, but he broke it off before things could escalate. "But you did try to kill me, so there is more chance of you teaming up with Dumbledore than coming to my bed tonight. And before you throw anything back, you are not taking me to yours either."

"You cannot be serious." Tom exclaimed, and Harry smirked,

"Deadly." Harry confirmed, "You could have had me wherever you wanted, with me begging you for more. But you didn't listen to me, and tried to kill me, so I am afraid that that kiss is the only thing you are getting tonight." Tom gave him a foul look,

"I hate you."

"I know," Harry said cheerfully, and with one last look of death, Tom vanished. Harry smirked, served the bastard right he thought.

Hey guys, I'm still alive. It's all clear. Harry sent to them, and he could feel the relief. They must have been together because they arrived back within the shadows and Luna rushed over to him,

"What were you thinking?" She chided, slapping him across the head before pulling him in to a hug.

"Next time I will listen to you." Harry stated,

"Damn straight," She agreed, "Now let me fix you up," she called for a bruise salve and gently smeared it on the quickly developing marks.

"He took it well then?" Neville asked lightly, as Harry winced as Luna poked his neck.

"Oh yes, he was thrilled." Harry deadpanned.

"I think we're missing something." Paws said, "What did you do?"

"Remember that I went out last night to dispose of my own name?"

"Yes, as we monitored the Order and the raids."

"Well, I may have missed out exactly what I intended to do." Harry said,

"He thought it'd be a good idea to seduce his mark away from the bar before killing him," Badger said and Harry nearly flinched at the looks he got.

"Are you insane?" Paws yelled, "Why would you do that?"

"I was going to tell him like tomorrow or something, but apparently someone saw me there and recognised me which means it was someone from the elite." Harry said and Swift shook his head.

"You puzzle me."

"I know,"

"So what happened?"

"He tired to kill me," Harry stated,

"No shit Sherlock." Paws snapped, "After that."

"Turned the tables, pinned him and left the same marks and more on him. Explained and warned him if he ever acted like that again I would put him under the ground." Harry shrugged, "We're fine, I'll go see him tomorrow after he's licked his wounds."

The group was looking at him as if he had completely lost his mind.

"You really don't see it, do you?" Luna said, amazed.

"See what?"

"Never mind." She shook her head along with the rest of the group.

"So where were we?" Harry asked and they sat down to commence with the meeting.



Chapter 25

Notes:

Thanks for the great response guys!!

Un'beta'd

Parsel in the bold italics

I'm not J.K

Please read the tags

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 25:

 

"So our first was a complete success." Fred picked up when everyone had settled back down, Luna had called for some snacks so they were happily munching away.

"Good, I hope he suffered."

"He did." They confirmed,

"Our second was a success." George said, and Harry sensed a 'but'.

"Go on,"

"But we were nearly caught." He said and Harry sat forward.

"By who?" Harry demanded,

"Dumbledore," They groaned.

"Explain,"

"We had just staged the explosion, but we were thrown down." Fred said and his twin picked up,

"We were picking ourselves up when Dumbledore came in. We got in to our forms and in to the shadows in time and we ran for at least 5 streets before we changed back." He explained and Harry nodded.

"Good, the last thing we need is Dumbledore tracing it back to you." Harry said,

"We did cover our tracks, glamours, charms and removal of out magical signature." Fred assured and Harry looked less tense.

"That's good, you should be in the clear. But I want you to make sure your escape plan is solid." Harry told them and they nodded.

"We will do."

"Ok, Venom?" Harry turned to Blaise who smirked.

"My target fell in full view of everyone in the ministry and it is completely untraceable." He said, his voice slightly smug and Harry returned his smirk

"Do tell."

"There's an ancient Chinese art that my mother taught me. Its lethal, its excruciating and its doesn't even use magic. It involves the body's natural pressure points and the Chinese used these to heal, unfortunately for my enemies, they can also used to harm and I just happen to be trained in the harming side." Blaise explained to them,

"Now I really want to see this." Harry said interested, "It sounds like something I would enjoy."

"That would explain the delayed response from the aurors at the raids." Paws noted, "If your target was taken out in the middle of the ministry then the aurors would have been more interested in containing their home ground opposed to an outside threat."

"The Order was quick to respond though." Swift said, "I only saw 10 minutes before some of the Order arrived, and that was only at one location."

"How many were scattered?" Harry asked,

"At least 5,"

"So what happened? I could feel the tension with the staff."

"Bellatrix was released." Paws said and Harry immediately understood,

"Ah,"

"Yes and that woman is crazy." Paws stated and Swift scoffed.

"She's bat shit insane if you ask me."

"All of the above." Neville decided.

"True," Harry conceded, "What did Bella get up to?"

"She went mad. As crazy as she is, she is extremely powerful and deadly."

"Of course, she's a Black." Harry said,

"She was let loose in the middle of a battle with the aurors and she killed Johnson, Vance and Bones."

"Amelia Bones is dead?" Harry exclaimed, "Holy shit!"

"It was
 immense." Swift said, "And it kept them distracted. They called for reinforcements, but she left after Bones fell."

"Mission accomplished then." Harry said, sitting back.

"Definitely,"

"Ok, Snake, your turn." Paws said and Harry grinned,

"I used my powers of seduction to lure Smith out, then, well, let's just say he met an unfortunate end."

"You got memories?" Swift asked and Harry wrinkled his nose.

"Partly, I kinda lost part of it."

"Demon?" Paws inquired and Harry nodded,

"I was really mad."

"Understandable,"

"Ok, so everything for the raid plan went accordingly. Do we have anything to discuss?"

"We've finished the mail ward." Fred said with a grin,

"Really?" Ron questioned, excited.

"Yes, its finished. We can put it in to play now, if you wish?"

"Yes, do it now." Ron agreed,

"Ok, it's a simple process, but you'll need to wear this on you at all times." George told him, handing over a silver band with a rune carved in to it.

"What is it?"

"Well, we discovered that, as not to alert Lemons, the ward needs to stay active. So we decided that if we could put a slight
 bend in the ward, while keeping it active, then there should be no problem and the caster would not be aware. Its all about manipulating the ward to twist around its casters wishes and work in favour for the one being cast on." Fred explained,

"A drop of blood if you will." George held out the band and Ron smeared some blood on the rune causing it to flare to life. The twins took out their wands and began muttering under their breaths, Ron began to glow and when there was pulse of magic he gasped and the air settled.

"Tah dah," They said. The rune band was glowing and Ron grinned,

"Guys, you're brilliant."

"We expect a welcome to the family letter soon." Fred warned him and Ron mock saluted.

"Consider it done."

"Ok, so a quick run through." Harry said, bringing the attentions back. "The mail ward is done. Tom's trinkets are safe and the leak is contained. The wolves are in progress and Remus has his route planned. Dumbledore is set to crumble. First names are sorted. Flamel has been found and the information and journals are being translated by Moony and Tom as we speak and I've hopefully set Hadrian Greengrass on the trail of something that will keep him out of danger for the near future."

"That's pretty much everything currently." Paws said,

"I've finished the immuniser, and am working on the odd potions." Bleach said,

"We're the outside spies and are following the Order movements." The twins said,

"I'm on research for heirs and other things I can find." Paws said,

"I'm working on the other names of the wolf hunters." Swift put in,

"I have my ears out around the castle with Raven." Badger said, "And I can find little bits from my wondrous grandmother.

"I'm free to help whoever," Venom shrugged,

"Which leaves me the wolf situation, working with Tom, and bouncing around everything else," Harry surmised,

"Well, I don't know if we're more busy or not." Swift said and Harry grinned,

"We got this."

"Oh we so got this." Paws agreed,

"We have to go, we have a meeting with a sheet of parchment." The twins said, Harry nodded and they left after dropping a kiss on Draco's cheeks. Harry had to fight back his smirk as the blond blushed, but chose not to say anything yet, he would corner the blond before he left. Badger left with Venom, Swift and Paws and they waved their goodbyes leaving Harry with Luna and Bleach.

"Ok, tell us everything." Harry said, eagerly sitting forward. Draco blushed again, but he was smiling brightly and he held out his wrist showing a simple silver band lined with diamonds and a Latin inscription,

"Our beautiful Dragon." Harry read and then grinned, "They really know what buttons to work, don't they?"

"They do, and they wore me down eventually. Demons," Draco said fondly,

"Is it serious?" Luna asked. Draco pursed his lips and looked down at the band, he seemed to be thinking about the question before smiling slightly,

"I hope so,"

"You know, they've been absolutely enamoured with you since our 4th year." Harry told him, and Draco blinked,

"Really?"

"Yes, they wouldn't tell you that, of course, but yes,"

"Wow,"

"They won't let you down." Luna said to him, smiling and Draco seemed to brighten.

"Thanks Raven," He got up to leave and Harry stopped him when he got to the door,

"One more thing, Bleach." Harry called, Draco turned, "When are you going to tell your father?" Draco's eyes widened in horror and he stumbled back in to the wall.

"Oh Merlin," He breathed, "I have to tell my father that I'm dating a Weasley, not even one Weasley, 2 of them."

"Is he going to be more worried about the fact there are two or the Weasley part?" Harry asked, jokingly.

"Honestly, I'm not sure. Obviously, triad relationships are accepted within our ways, and with twins they are encouraged, but the fact remains that I chose Weasleys." Draco's head dropped with a groan, "Someone kill me."

"Can I be there? I really want to see if Lucius collapses, that way you have collateral on him." Harry said, trying and failing to be innocent.

"I don't buy that act for a second, but as it will give be blackmail I'll inform you when I decided to tell him." Draco agreed, "I'll buy whiskey first," He left muttering about the amount of money he was going to need from his trust vault to keep his father sane with the announcement much to Harry and Luna's amusement.

"When do you think I should remind him that the twins will be Prewetts soon?" Harry questioned and Luna grinned,

"After he's told Lucius,"

The pair looked at each other and burst out laughing.


Harry's neck was extremely sore when he woke up in the morning and he cursed Tom to the deepest pits of Hell, Luna, the amazing person that she was, had already left the necessary potions on his side for him to take after his shower. He slunk down to the living room severely wanting a cup of tea and found Luna in the kitchen smiling at him as if she knew something that he didn't, now with Luna that was a common occurrence, but this time Harry felt like it was something to do with him that he was missing.

"Ok, who did what and do I need to harm them?" He demanded and Luna giggled
 yes giggled.

"I don't think you need to harm anyone." She giggled again and Harry eyed her warily,

"What is it?"

She placed a green velvet box on the counter with a small envelop on top, he was very familiar with the sort of box as he often got one for Luna whenever he bought her jewellery. Harry picked up the envelop and pulled out a single sheet of parchment, he unfolded it and his eyebrows shot up when he saw the familiar script.

Sorry,

There was no signature but there didn't have to be, he would recognise that writing wherever he saw it, it was elegant, it was perfectly scripted; it was so Tom. Harry turned his attention to the box suddenly much more interested in what was inside, he opened it and pulled away the decorative paper to reveal a stunning wire wrist band. It was white gold and it was like barbed wire, there were tiny emeralds and diamonds twisted in the metal and when he slid it on to his wrist it wrapped around three times. Harry couldn't stop his delighted smiled coming to his face even if he tried and he looked up to see Luna smiling back at him,

"Well?" She asked, raised an eyebrow. Silently, Harry held out his arm and she gasped, "He definitely knows how to say sorry."

"Oh he is so forgiven." Harry said,

"Is that white gold?" She questioned and he nodded,

"Yes,"

"You should get extreme reactions out of him more often; that is a nice compensation." She joked and Harry laughed,

"I think he would notice."

"Ah, shame that," She shook her head in mock sadness, before looking back at him, "That reminds me, however." She looked at him expectantly and Harry groaned.

"I'll take you shopping as soon as the manor is finished,"

"Wherever I want?"

"Wherever you want." Harry replied,

"And I can buy whatever I want?"

"Whatever you want." He agreed and she beamed,

"You are officially the best brother ever." Luna informed him and Harry grinned,

"What can I say, it's my natural charm."

"We have lesson," She said, casting a tempus and Harry nodded,

"I'll see you later, sister of mine." He said brightly and left the room, the need for tea forgotten.

His day went brilliantly, Harry didn't even bother to keep the smile off of his face and when people asked about his cheery mood he simply replied that it was a good day. It seemed that the weather was mimicking his good mood, the usual forecasts had been cold as it was November, but they had a brief breakthrough with the sun. It wasn't warm, not by a long shot, but it lit up Hogwarts like nothing else could. His final lesson rolled around and Harry skipped down to potions still smiling, Draco shot him a weird look as they sat down and only when Snape had set them to work of taking notes with their partners did the blond turn to him and demand an explanation.

"What in Merlin's name is going on with you?"

"Nothing nothing," Harry all but sang and Draco grew alarmed,

"Have you been slipped anything?"

"No,"

"Are you going to tell me why you are so happy?" Draco asked in exasperation.

"I received a lovely gift this morning." Harry told him, "A very lovely gift." Draco perked up,

"Do tell,"

Harry showed him the new addition to his wrist and the blond's eyes widened, he grabbed Harry's arm and looked at the bracelet closely.

"18 carat white gold, quarter carat diamonds and emeralds hand twisted in to the gold, thick enough to be a male design but wouldn't be worn by a straight married man." Draco murmured, mainly to himself and Harry shot him a look of shock.

"How do you do that?"

"Its one of those hidden talents," Draco waved him off, "This is a very nice piece of jewellery, and a very expensive one at that being hand made, almost goblin quality."

"It's beautiful, isn't it?"

"It is, and I may actually be jealous." Draco agreed, "Who got it for you?"

"Tom," Harry sighed happily. Draco jerked in surprise, so much so that he knocked the empty cauldron from the desk sending it clanging to the floor and bringing Snape over. Draco didn't even notice, he was too busy gaping at Harry, actually gaping at him, and Snape was so surprised by the lack of decorum from the usually pristine Malfoy that he didn't snap at them.

"Mr Malfoy, do try and keep your actions to yourself." He drawled, and even that didn't snap him out of it.

"Yes, sir," He answered absently, his attention still on Harry. Snape looked at him with a raised eyebrow and Harry shrugged, he flicked his wand and reset the cauldron making Snape sweep away.

"Back to your work." He snapped at the rest of the class, which hurried to comply.

"Are you ok, Draco?" Harry inquired,

"You know, I'm not too sure." He replied, somewhat faintly, "I could have sworn that you just said you had been given that stunning bracelet by him."

"You did, I got it as an apology this morning." Harry confirmed and Draco went back to his silent shock, he caught sight of Swift and Paws looked at him in question.

I think I broke him. Harry said, somewhat amused.

What did you do? Paws asked and Harry mentally shrugged,

I only answered his questions.

She didn't have time to reply as the bell went and the class packed up,

"Potter, Malfoy, wait behind."

We'll wait, Swift said mentally as they left. The door shut and Harry physically shook Draco,

"Snap out of it, I don't want to explain that I broke you." Harry told him. Draco shook himself a few times, looking from Harry to the bracelet and back again.

"You know what? Warn a guy next time."

"If you two cannot keep your extra curricular activities out of my classroom, you will find yourself scrubbing cauldrons in the lesson for the rest of the year." Snape sneered and that got Draco's attention.

"Severus, you cannot be serious!" He exclaimed horrified, Snape merely raised an eyebrow in answer.

"Leave." He ordered and the pair left the room. Swift and Paws were waiting in the shadows and Harry pulled them all to his rooms through the shadows.

"Ok, so what was that about?" Paws questioned,

"Blame him," Draco said, "He's being him again."

"What did you do, Snake?" Swift sighed and Harry looked affronted.

"Excuse me? It was him who asked me the question. I merely told him the truth."

"You don't see it!" Draco exclaimed, "And even if you did, you wouldn't even know until it hit you in the face."

"Dark Lord?" Paws confirmed.

"Yes, look at his arm." Draco said, and the pair noticed the bracelet.

"Wow, its gorgeous." Paws breathed, looking at it closely, "Wait, you can't mean-,"

"Oh yes, his darkness gave it to him." Draco stated and the pair looked at Harry in the same way Draco did.

"I don't see what you are all talking about. It was only a gift, a nice one granted, but still. I don't understand what I'm supposed to be seeing." Harry huffed,

"Unfortunately, Snake, its something you have to understand for yourself." Paws told him and Harry rolled his eyes at them.

"Whatever, now you have finished speaking about things I clearly don't understand, can we go now? I'm hungry and I have places to be." He didn't give them chance to answer because he wrapped the shadows around them and moved them to their dorms, it was a neat trick, but he could only do it to places where he had been before unlike if he was moving. It also took a considerable amount more energy to do it, but he was much more powerful so it didn't really matter. Harry made his way down to dinner and glanced towards Tom, who, by his emotions, was oddly pleased with something.

His assessment of the Dark Lord was completely accurate. Tom was feeling rather elated, not that anyone knew that of course, but he had been slightly on edge that morning when he had sent his gift to Harry's room. He had sent it with his elf, who glared at him and shook her fist, and Tom wouldn't admit it to anyone, even under duress, but he was slightly intimidated by the angry elf who warned him against hurting her Master Harry again.

It was odd, he had felt slightly bad for lashing out at Harry as he had done, and the marks which shone up on his pale skin sent a jolt of remorse through Tom. He had apologised, but trying to kill someone, while on the same side anyway, was worth more than just an apology and so he had gotten a bracelet for Harry as the teen usually had something wrapped around his wrist – mostly the leather wristbands – and had it left there for when he woke up.

Nothing would have prepared for the sheer pleasure that shot through him when he caught sight of Harry wearing it, and every time he saw it he had to fight back a pleased smirk; it was extremely odd Tom decided, but he didn't care enough to analyse why he was feeling such things because he liked seeing the bracelet on Harry and that was enough for him. He watched as Harry entered the hall for dinner and couldn't stop the burst of pleasure he got when the teen's attention was more focussed on the bracelet than anything else, Harry looked up at Tom's jolt of pleasure and raised an eyebrow.

The man's eyes flicked to his wrist where his new bracelet was sat and Harry looked away so the man wouldn't see his bright smile but he knew the man had when he felt a wave of satisfaction and pleasure. Harry wanted to curse Tom, he really did, but he looked at the bracelet and his smile was back, he rolled his eyes, he didn't know what was going on, but, given the current times, he was just going to go with it and let himself feel – whatever that entailed. He didn't linger on dinner, he wanted to shower and change, Luna merely smiled at him when he skipped in to the room and she had already chosen his clothes.

"You know, I should start paying you for being my assistant." Harry joked, coming down and running a drying charm through his hands and combing through his hair.

"No, then I wouldn't get very many gifts, only the ones that are given out at Yule and the occasional birthday if remembered." Luna said, shaking her head,

"Oh, I see. Only here for the gifts." Harry sniffed,

"You got me." She said in mock despondence.

"I'm going to be gone all night." He said, "So run wild,"

"I plan on fishing." Luna told him, smirking, and Harry's eyes lit up.

"Wonderful. I do hope it is a worthwhile trip."

"I have no doubt,"

Harry kissed her on the cheek and shadowed to Tom's rooms, the man wasn't there yet but that didn't surprise him. Harry threw himself on the sofa and led out, he was dressed in a tight white top, short sleeve, his green skinny jeans and his boots, which were left loosely done up. He rested his arm across his stomach while the other arm went above his head, he was taking in all the details of his bracelet when Tom walked in without so much as a raised eyebrow. Harry watched the man remove his cloak and outer robe leaving him in a delectably tight black shirt, and very nicely fitted suit trousers, Harry bit back a sigh. A hand entered his vision and Harry allowed himself to be pulled up in to Tom's arms,

"I see you are wearing my gift." Tom murmured, linking their hands and holding up the offending wrist, "You like it,"

Harry looked away trying to fight his smile, he didn't know why the bracelet made him this happy but it did, ridiculously so, and Harry had the suspicion that it was more to do with who gave it to him, despite how gorgeous the bracelet was. He cursed in his head when he felt a light blush cover his cheeks and his fight on his smile failed,

"I do," He admitted, Tom ran a finger across his cheek,

"Am I forgiven?" Tom asked, enjoying the sight of the blush on Harry's pale skin.

"I might consider it," Harry mused, smirking when Tom growled and his hands gripped his hips. "Something wrong, Tom?"

"You are a tease,"

"Is that right?"

"I have not seen you since Monday, there was an incident last night and now you come here, looking positively mouth watering, and not forgive me. That, Snake, is teasing."

"What if I merely came to say thank you?" Harry suggested, looking up innocently.

"I can think of many ways in which you can say thank you." Tom said lowly,

"Oh, do you care to share?" Harry inquired, coyly,

"I think I can show you much better."

"Really?" Harry bit his lip and reached up to wrap his arms around Tom's neck, "I think that might be something I am interested in," Tom smirked before he was kissing him, Harry kissed back with equal vigour but was forced to submit and he felt Tom's smugness. In retaliation, he left his hands drift south and brush over Tom, who, but his current position, was very interested in where this was going and the man hissed.

Harry stepped away and walked backwards towards the bedroom, he made his top melt away and smirked when Tom eyed him hungrily – he knew his extra workouts were worth it. Tom stalked towards Harry like a predator, his eyes dark with desire and filled with clear intent. Harry knelt on the bed after kicking of his shoes and his eyes beckoned Tom towards him, he vanished Tom's shirt with a flick of his wrist and reached up to kiss him. Tom towered over him in this position and so Harry pulled him down on him, easily switching positions so he was led down with Tom pinning him.

He gasped when Tom bit down on his neck, his body lighting with the familiar burning pleasure, Tom trailed licks and bites down his neck and chest making him writhe underneath him. Tom got rid of the rest of their clothes and slicked his fingers, he pushed one in to Harry kissing him to muffle the low moan that came forth.

"Don't tease me," Harry moaned, he gasped when Tom pushed in a second finger, relishing the pain that followed it. Tom smirked as Harry thrashed under him, he pushed a third finger in and twisted until he hit the spot that had Harry crying out for more. Harry whimpered at the loss as the fingers were removed, he felt Tom at his entrance and groaned.

"Tooom, I need you in me
 please,"

Never one to ignore begging, from Harry anyway, Tom snapped forward fully seating himself in Harry, a low moan escaping him as he was surrounding by heat. Harry arched up, a scream ripping from his throat as he was abruptly filled, a sharp pain going up his spine and his hands instinctively gripped Tom's shoulder and back. Tom began to move slowly, he kept an even rhythm making sure to brush over that spot turning Harry in to a writhing, whimpering pile of need. Tom felt his lust increase and his eyes raked over Harry. The teen was flushed, his raven hair haloed around his hair contrasting with his pale skin, he stunning green eyes darkened with a burning lust looking up at him, his full lips pouting and bruised and Tom couldn't help but lean down that claim them.

"Faster," Harry demanded, his voice rough and filled with need. "More,"

"Something wrong, Snake?" Tom asked, his own voice husky and Harry hissed. He wrapped his legs around him bringing them closer and looked up in to wine coloured eyes,

Please, Tom, please, his hisses came out strangled and choked. His body was of fire, every part of him could feel every touch and thrust Tom was giving him and it was sending him mad. Tom's eyes darkened as the ancient language rolled over him, he loved it when Harry spoke in that language, especially during sex and he was only too happy to comply with his teen's pleas. Harry yelled out when Tom suddenly thrust in to him with much more vigour, he could feel the thick flesh sliding in him repeatedly and when Tom hit his prostate Harry screamed as his entire body was shot with jolts of pleasure.

"Yesss
 Merlin, yes, there
 harder
 AAH." Harry was practically delirious as Tom angled himself to his that spot repeatedly, his nails dragged down Tom's back making him hiss and if Harry had any semblance of self he would make note to get them cut. Harry could feel his release approaching and his body arched as it hit, he came Harry shouting Tom's name as he was flushed with fire. Tom only managed a few more thrusts after the tight heat closed down around him before he followed Harry in to release, he collapsed down next to his panting lover and calmed his own breathing.

"Ok, so you're forgiven." Harry decided when he could speak again, he cleaned then with a wave of his hand and glanced up at Tom with a smirk. Tom rolled his eyes but his amusement was clear,

"I am thrilled," He deadpanned. Harry laughed and pulled himself up, his back arching slightly as he stretched. Tom trailed an appreciative finger along the curve of his spine enticing a pleased shudder from the teen, Harry looked over his shoulder and couldn't help but feel a tiny bit smug that he had such an effect on the usually stoic wizard. Harry leaned down and kissed him, enjoying the taste that was Tom and moved so he was potentially pinning the man down. Tom's hands immediately went to his hips and slid him down his body so be was pressed up against his steadily hardening member, Harry rolled his eyes with a grin, eyes dancing with amusement and desire.

"Insatiable,"

"I blame you," Tom shrugged, drawing him in for another searing kiss. "Are you staying?"

"Hm, I think I must. How else will I show you what forgiveness entails?" Harry gave his best innocent look, which might have worked if not for the darkness of his eyes, and Tom groaned,

"I think I have to agree." He murmured, his eyes filled with hunger, "I definitely need to be informed." Harry smirked; he could show him exactly what forgiveness was.


Harry couldn't help but thank Merlin it was Saturday, he was exhausted, hungry and snappish. He had had to live the day four times already and he had forgone his usual hour of rest in between, Luna had been busy also so she had not reminded him. The first day had been fine, wonderful actually, because he hadn't left Tom's rooms, or his bedroom to be precise, and when he had finally gotten up to do something he had been relaxed and happy.

His relive was so he could show his face and allow Dumbledore to watch him from afar, he had studied in the library alone, eaten in the great hall and taken a walk around the castle to ease the old goats mind. The second relive had been a bit more taxing, he was looking in to obscure branches of magic, looking in to anything that might help Tom with a counter curse and making note of anything of particular interest. While that was tiring on the mind, especially after going through his shields to organize his mind, it was the third relive that had him exhausted.

He had dedicated the entire day for training, physical, mental and magical training that had him practically passed out on the floor by the time he had finished. With a great amount of difficulty, he had dragged himself back to his rooms and collapse on the sofa, thankful that he had already lived a day under Dumbledore's eye which meant he didn't have to go again. Harry groaned and called Winky for some food before he passed out,

"Master Harry should be resting." She chided once she had popped in and saw the state of him, "Winky is bringing a pepper up."

"You are a complete dear, Winky." Harry told her, gratefully. The little elf popped away embarrassed and Harry shook his head, he gulped down the potion and wolfed down his food which made him feel a hell of a lot better. He had a few things to go through before he crashed for the night, and he wanted to go and see Moony to see how the books were coming.

He knew Tom had been living the days twice, sometimes three times, so he could teach, translate and keep on top of everything for the Death Eaters. Harry knew that this year would not have been possible without Swift's quick thinking, if he wouldn't have grabbed the turners then he would have long dead. He shook his head ridding himself of the thoughts, he had more important things to think about than 'ifs' and 'buts' because they were not going to get him anywhere. Harry got up, stretching as he did so and went to shadow to the Gryffindor rooms when an elf popped in.

"Master Harry, sir," It squeaked, "Nip has news, sir," Harry blinked a few times before his brain woke up and his eyes widened.

"Do you need me back at the manor?" He asked, excitement lacing his tone.

"Yes, sir, Master Grinder is telling Nip to fetch you, sir." The elf told him and Harry grinned.

"I'll be right there," Harry said, and vanished in to the shadows. He appeared in the entrance hall with Nip and the elf led him to where the goblin was. Grinder was in the now changed informal lounge and Harry bowed to him,

"Greetings, Master Grinder,"

"Greetings, young Lord," The goblin returned, "The constructions have been completed."

"Wonderful," Harry grinned, "Is there anything that cropped up?"

"No, work fine. Look around now," He replied and Harry nodded,

"Yes, lets,"

He allowed Grinder to lead him through showing him the classrooms, the new bathrooms, toilets and showers and Harry's personal favourite room; the giant den. He was already making a mental shopping list of all the things he wanted to buy and where he was going to put them, Harry was thrilled with the work that the goblins had done and expressed so to Grinder.

"Ragnok asked, we delivered," Grinder said, and Harry grinned at the goblin.

"Still. Your work is fantastic, and for that I thank you. I am sure Ragnok will make sure you are paid correctly." Harry said. Harry saw the goblin out and then had a mad jumping up and down phase, he shadowed directly to the Gryffindor rooms spotting Tom first as he was at the table in the library working furiously.

"I'm borrowing Moony from you." Harry told him and Tom absently waved his wand to show that he heard and that he really didn't care, Harry grinned and darted off to find the wolf.

"Hey Cub," Remus called, not looking up from his book.

"Hey Moony, I need to borrow you."

"Oh!?"

"The manor's finished." Harry said and Remus' eyes light up.

"Really!?"

"Yes, I've just seen the Goblin's out." Harry replied, "Come on, I've told Tom I'm stealing you." Remus placed his books back on the shelves and accepted the hand Harry offered, they were swallowed by the shadows and landed in the entrance hall. Harry led him around the manor like before and Remus noted the very well made changes,

"So, have you planned the wards?" Remus asked and Harry nodded,

"Yes, there is going to be an age restriction on the library. No one under 5 can enter without an adult because their books will be in the den." Harry said, "And from what I can tell, there is already a hoard of protection on the books and the really dangerous ones are warded too."

"That's a good idea." Remus agreed,

"I'll be warding all the balconies to make sure there are no accidents, and I'll be warding the final floor for 'staff' only. Plus, I want to ward the downstairs, but I was going to leave that to you, that way you don't need me to be here every time there is a new apprentice or new wolf that needs the labs." Harry explained,

"Ok, I can do that."

"I also plan on giving you control of the main wards, so you can allow access. The only people who will be able to override you would be Tom and I, that way you don't need to send word for me if any stray wolves make their way here." Harry continued,

"Thank you, Cub." Remus said, his voice full of sincerity and Harry knew he wasn't just speaking about the wards. Harry hugged him tightly,

"One day, Moony, I'll make sure this isn't necessary." Harry murmured,

"I know you will, Cub. I know you will."

They shared a smile before continuing on, Harry showed him the chill out area and the classrooms, the latter had the older wolf in love and Harry dragged him away.

"Coby," Harry called,

"Master Harry called for Coby?" The elf squeaked, once he had arrived.

"All of the things I had you purchase, I want you to follow Moony's instructions to where they go. He is going to be living here with some guests of mine, so I want you to listen to his orders ok, along with all the other elves."

"Yes Master Harry." Coby nodded, before turning to Moony, "What can Coby bees doing for Master Moony?"

"Have you got that list, Cub?" Remus questioned. Harry closed his eyes and summoned the list to him through the shadows, it took a bit of concentration but he knew exactly where it was and the exact layout of his rooms.

"Here. You set everything, I'll do the warding." Harry said, "Meet you in the library when I'm done."

"Got it," they parted ways and Harry headed up to the rooms that led out on to the inner roof, he had already researched and practiced the wards needed during one of his many relives and so he wasn't worried about them failing. He waved his wand in a jagged motion and muttered under his breath, the magic built in the air and the edges of the roof suddenly flared with light and a clear barrier settled in to place.

Harry took a deep breath to deal with the draw back of magic, he had been too busy today but he knew that if he had to ward the house on the day where he and Tom settled the main ward then he would likely overdo it and put himself in a coma. He moved to the library and cast the ward necessary over the door and he did the same with the training room, accept he changed that to 8 instead of 5 because there were many more dangerous things in there. He had created a ward for the top floor and the study, he was going to tie it in to a separate ward stone which he had dug out of the Peverell vault, or he had an elf fetch it for him.

"Nip,"

"Yes, Master Harry?"

"Can I have that ward stone, please."

"Yes sir," He popped away and returned with the stone in his hands. It was simple, it just looked like a large crystallised rock but it you could feel the magic within it and Harry lifted it carefully. He was going to be placing it in the master study, that way Remus could add anyone he wished to the 'staff' wards. Harry would have to add his friends and Tom in to the stone when he came back, all he would have to do would be to pour their blood on the stone and they would be accepted so he wouldn't have to use any magic to do so.

Once he had cast the ward and tied it in to the stone, he went and selected all the rooms and the top floor and wrapped it in to the ward and felt it flare to life. With his job done, Harry headed to the library and threw himself in to a chair in wait. Even though he had taken that pepper up, his body was starting to protest to the strain that it had been put through and Harry knew that he was going to be asleep very soon. He looked up when Moony walked in and smiled tiredly,

"Everything set!?" He asked,

"Yes, and I think this place is ready. It's just the final ward." Moony said and Harry nodded in agreement.

"I'll drag Tom here tomorrow and it will be done." Harry said, "I'd do it tonight-,"

"But you're on the verge of collapse." Remus cut in, "Come on, cub, lets get back. I'm going to head out tomorrow to leak the word, but I'll be back to meet with Greyback."

"Ok, how fast do you think it'll travel?"

"If I can get the phrasing right, then it should go quickly. I'll have to scout the areas and I'll see the moods of the packs, but I do have some friends."

"I have a wolf hideaway, it was the one I stopped Smith from reporting. I can get the coordinates from the tracker if you want?"

"Once I've met with Greyback, that'll be great."

Harry nodded and they vanished in to the shadows, Harry left Moony in the Gryffindor rooms and headed back to his own; he needed sleep.


"Don't make me move." Harry groaned, gripping the covers and wrapping himself in it much to Luna's amusement.

"You have loads to do today and I would rather think that you would want to get it done." She said, "I've set a box up for the phials and mine is already there."

"Fine, fine, I'm up." He muttered, not moving an inch.

"Don't make me move you." Luna warned and Harry was up and in the shower in a flash, Luna grinned, "Good boy."

"You know, I really don't know how you became so scary." Harry grumbled through the door.

"You taught me." She chimed,

"Curse past me." He sighed. Harry had a much needed shower, brushed his teeth and got dressed, Luna handed him a pepper up, a mug of tea and Harry ate the breakfast at the bar.

"I'm sorry about missing our day again, I have much to make up for." Harry said and she waved him away.

"I know how important this is. Besides, I know I'll be missing days too, and we'll be working together with the wolves."

"You're the best."

"I know,"

Guys, I need your blood. Harry sent to them and received silence.

You know, Snake, even for you, that was weird. Paws told him and he grinned,

Come on, grab Neville while you're at it.

Be there in 5,

"I've already sent for the twins." Luna said, "They'll grab Bleach and Venom."

"I've got to ask the twins why we're not connected."

"Oh, they said that yours is on a different rune chain because when they did theirs it was an experiment." Luna answered his question with a shrug, Harry raised an eyebrow before shaking his head and leaving it.

"I suppose they would experiment on themselves." Harry rolled his eyes at the twins, he might have to speak to them about their experimentation on themselves.

"Morning all," Said twins greeted, skipping in followed by Draco and Blaise,

"Gentlemen," Harry nodded,

"Snake,"

"We're just waiting on the others." Luna said, "Winky, can we have some refreshments please." The elf popped in and filled the coffee table with fresh fruits and sparkling water, nothing to heavy for the time in the morning. There was a gathering of shadows in the room and Swift, Paws and Badger appeared, Swift wearing a pleased grin.

"I got it." He cheered and Harry smiled,

"I told you it would come."

"Yeah I know," Swift waved him off and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I have good news," Harry began, "The manor is ready, Moony should have set of already and I am going to be setting the main ward today. For that, I am in need a small phial of blood from each of you so I can key you in. Those who have not donated blood will not be able to access the manor, even if Tom or I key you in at the gate. This ward will stop all those who have not been infected or born with the werewolf gene from accessing the lands or manor, and I have no doubt that even if they put the best curse breakers up to the job that they would get through."

"I have the phials, so if you would just bleed in them Harry can be on his way." Luna picked up, passing the phials around to them. Each of his friends didn't even question his motives as they cut themselves and bled in to the phial, it showed an enormous amount of trust because blood was the most dangerous substance within the magical world.

"Do you want them labelled?" Paws asked,

"You can, but it is not necessary. The ward I created does not need magic to key people in." Harry informed her. Luna went around and collected the blood and handed the box to Harry, where he shrunk it down and placed it in his jacket pocket.

"There are extra phials for any death eaters His Darkness wishes to be keyed in." Luna told him, "The rest is down to you."

"Thanks. I don't know when I'll be back, the power needed for this ward is
 unimaginable so there is a strong likelihood I'll be passing out soon after." Harry explained, "And I had better go tell him that his study partner isn't going to be there."

"Those two are rather scary when working." Paws said, grinning, "They are both exactly the same."

"You're comparing Moony to the Dark Lord." Swift said in disbelief, looking at her as if she had grown an extra head.

"You haven't seen them. It's odd." Paws shook her head, "It's something you have to see."

"I'll take your word for it." Swift said. Harry grinned at the pair,

"I don't know what you plan on doing today, but I may see you later." Harry said, and waved as he vanished in to the shadows. Tom wasn't in his rooms and Harry used his scar to discover that the man was in his office, Harry moved quickly to his destination and grinned at Tom's raised eyebrow.

"Morning," Harry greeted brightly, Tom sat back behind his desk with a look that clearly said: why are you so happy this morning? "I have good news."

"I would not have guessed." Tom drawled, sarcasm lining his tone.

"You feeling up to doing a unhealthy amount of magic today?" Harry asked and Tom blinked,

"The manor is finished,"

"Yes and everything is in place. Moony and I completed the inner warding yesterday as well as the furnishing, its just the main ward that needs to be put in place and the word needs to be spread. Moony has already set off, but he will return because he wishes to meet with Greyback when you call him in." Harry explained,

"This ward needs to be set before I call Greyback, he will want to test the place for himself. Despite popular belief, he is extremely protective of werewolves, his own pack more so." Tom said and Harry nodded,

"I cannot pass judgement, I have never met him. However, if he tries to harm Moony then I will not be responsible for my actions." Harry warned,

"I can guarantee that that will not be necessary. Greyback was the one to bite Remus, he will not harm his own cub." Tom assured,

"Ok. Another thing, do you want any DE's keyed in?"

"No, but you may want to ask Narcissa. I have heard that she is becoming bored and she may enjoy seeing the cubs, I have observed that she is fond of small children." Tom said after a moments of thought

"Babies are adorable, Tom." Harry said and Tom made a noncommittal sound at the back of his throat.

"Other than Narcissa, there would be no one I would suggest." Tom picked up and Harry nodded,

"Ok. Are we casting the ward directly in to the ward stone, or from the lands and then tying it in?"

"We will need to go to the lands to make sure it covers everything, then, once it has been cast, we twist it in to the other wards and tie it in."

"I believe the ward will last 5 days without being keyed in to anything. A ward of his size needs something to lock on to, I made it on the basis that it would have a base and not be a free standing ward."

"We shall only need 24 hours at the maximum, however, we are able to go back and tie it in instantly." Tom pointed out.

"True. You know, this is going to be the biggest ward I have ever cast?"

"I do not doubt that. I have never cast something this substantial before either."

"Ready to hit the shadows?" Harry asked, and Tom didn't even grace him with a comment for the change in phrase.

"Let's,"

Harry skipped over and took Tom's arm, easily wrapping the shadows around them and landing them outside the master study.

"I'm not sure if your status nullifies the extra wards so you're going to have to try and get in to the study. They are not harmful, it just forms an invisible barrier." Harry said, "It's the ward that will only allow the 'staff' in to the top floor and the studies."

"I see," Tom murmured, his eyes narrowed at the door. Harry felt the man's magic reach out and test it before his expression cleared and he walked through the door.

"Well, that clears that up." Harry said cheerfully.

"Our status will cancel out all other wards. It appears that the wards are becoming sentient in the fact that they will offer all those of Peverell blood access." Tom explained, "It's a welcome fact."

"Agreed. Come on," Harry took his arm again and moved them to the grounds. "Nip," the elf popped to them and looked up eagerly.

"What can Nip bes doing for Master Harry and Master Marvolo?" He asked. Harry felt a shot of shock from Tom followed by something else and he found himself pulled back in to a firm chest and a kiss pressed to his temple.

"Thank you," Tom murmured, and Harry smiled knowing Tom could feel his acknowledgement.

"Would it be possible to have the co-ordinates for the south point of the property lands and the north point too?"

"Nip can be taking yous."

"Wonderful," Harry clapped his hands, "I'll take south point,"

"Don't try and use magic afterwards, you'll end up putting yourself in a coma." Tom warned and Harry looked affronted.

"Excuse me, I happen to have an extremely large core."

"Yes, but you haven't reached your majority and therefore your core is still expanding and won't settle on your eventual size until your 17th birthday," Tom pointed out, and Harry pouted,

"Yes, remind me that I am underage thank you."

"I often forget," Tom admitted,

"I noticed, multiple times."

"You're legal in the muggle world." Tom stated with a sniff, "North point, if you will." He held out his hand and Nip popped him away before Harry could say anything in return, not that he would have been able to, Tom had just stunned him in to speechlessness. He couldn't believe what he had just heard, Tom had just used the muggle world, muggle world, to justify his actions.

"Well shit,"

"Is Master Harry ready?" Nip questions, shaking Harry out of his shock.

"Yes, lets go, Nip."

He was popped to a place where he didn't even recognise, but he could see the manor in the distance and gaped as it looked like a tiny gingerbread house.

"Holy mother of Merlin!" He exclaimed, "Just how big are the lands?"

"Very big, sir. Nip is not knowing the precise acreage." The elf responded. Harry took in the view amazed, he could see the stretching forest which seemed to go on forever and the large lake that led out so he could just see the other end, it had a small island in the middle and Harry thought it was stunning. He felt a flash of something from Tom and he could only describe it as ready, he sent back acceptance and took out his wand. He took a deep breath and reached in to his magical core, he began to chant under his breath and twirled his wand in an odd circular motion.

Harry felt the magic build and continued his chant and his wand movements allowing the magic to thicken and swarm around him until it was visible as a large green dome surrounding him. When it had become a near opaque dome, he began a fresh chant and on the last word he swiped his wand upwards sharply. His magic blew out as the ward was formed, he could feel his core emptying as the ward solidified around him securing itself in to place. Harry sucked in a sharp breath when he felt his magic mesh together with Tom's and he continued to push magic in to was ward to make sure the magic fused together. His magic drained in to his reserves and continued on and just as his vision began to swim the dome flashed and settled heavily in to place, he could feel the ward and the power that it possessed which made him smile slightly. Harry dropped to his knees in utter his exhaustion, his breaths coming in short sharp pants and the edges of his vision was slowly bleeding black.

"Nip," He gasped, "Get me to the other Master." When he appeared next to Tom his stomach rolled but he managed to keep his breakfast, his vision blacked for a second as he collapsed to the floor but he blinked it away. Harry spotted that Tom was also on his knees and was shaking slightly, he didn't look to healthy and Harry hated to think what he might have looked like.

"Bed, now." Tom managed to get out,

"Nip, take us to a room." Harry ordered, his vision rapidly fading. "I'm going to pass out now." And he did just that. Tom took hold of Harry's arm and held put a hand for the elf and felt himself apperated away, his own vision swam but he managed to get both Harry and himself on to the bed before he too fell in to unconsciousness.

Notes:

All comments and feedback welcome XD

Chapter 26

Notes:

Merry Christmas and Happy holidays everyone!

Un'Beta'd

I'm not J.K but this story is so mine :P

Parsel is in bold italics if it crops up

Read on folks!

Chapter Text

Chapter 26:

"Who let the fucking hippogriffs in?" Harry demanded, and then groaned as his entire body seemed to ache.

"I do not know, but when I find them they will be meeting a painful end." Tom responded, his voice slightly slurred in places.

"I need food, a shower, more food and sleep. In that order," Grumbled Harry,

"I would agree, if I could move." Tom muttered,

"Ugh, I forgot I would have to move." Harry whined pitifully, "I hurt."

"I second that."

"I was not expecting it to take that much magic. I felt it drain my reserves." Harry said, thinking back.

"No. The size of the lands startled me, and I also entered my reserves." Tom agreed, "I don't believe I have ever used so much magic in one sitting."

"Ok, I am going to attempt to move now." Harry decided, and Tom made a sound of disagreement.

"Good luck."

Harry pushed himself up on shaking arms and made an attempt to pull himself to the edge of the bed, with difficulty he swung himself around and heaved himself on to his feet.

Only to collapse.

He landed in a heap on the floor and groaned again, he heard Tom burst out laughing from the bed and had to join him as he lay sprawled out on the ground.

"That went exceedingly well." Tom commented, his voice full of mirth and Harry snorted,

"Yeah, brilliantly." Harry pulled himself back in to a sitting position and took a deep breath, his body felt like it was made from lead and his movements felt as if he was underwater.

"I do not believe that I shall be attempting to move as of yet." Tom said and Harry laughed,

"No, I wouldn't advise it." He heaving himself back on the bed and sat back against the headboard.

"Nip," He called and the elf popped in.

"Masters are awake. Nip is being worried about Masters, yous be sleeping for nearly 2 days." The elf told them. It took a few moments for that to sink in to Tom and Harry's minds before they shot up and gaped at the elf.

"2 days," Harry parroted hoarsely.

"Nip is being unable to wakes yous."

"Oh dear Merlin, that's a long time."

"I have never been out this long before." Tom muttered, stunned.

"Ok, I have things to pick up and I have to relive the day. Dumbledore cannot get suspicious of me now." Harry stated, "Nip, two pepper ups, we need food so if you could alert the kitchen staff that we want a decent meal on the table in 20 minutes that would be great." The elf popped away with a nod.

"Shower, then go and key your friends in while I shower." Tom said and Harry nodded. Once he had downed the pepper up Nip had brought him, he had the quickest shower possible, despite his body telling him that it wanted to stay in the nice hot water for as long as possible. He darted out, freshly changed, and headed out to the master study where he added half the blood in each phial to the ward stone so it would recognise his friends and allow them access to the 'staff' rooms.

He then ran all the way to the bottom of the manor, with his body in high protest of that action, and began the process of tying the new ward in the ward stone. Luckily, it didn't require a lot of magic, just him, as head of house, to accept the ward in and confirm it with blood. Once it was tied in, he brought it to the front of the ward stone and added the rest of the blood making the stone flare a bright amber colour once it had been done and Harry sighed in relief; it was finally done. He made his way back up to the dining room and blinked a few times when he saw the array of smaller tables before he remembered that he had changed it, he walked over to where Tom was sat nursing the strongest tea imaginable and joined him.

"You look like death." Tom informed him,

"Yeah? Well we make a great pair then, because you look like death warmed up."

"Thank Merlin for glamours." Tom sighed,

"Yes, whoever created them needs an Order of Merlin." Harry agreed. Food, lots of food, appeared in front of them and all thoughts of conversation were forgotten as they pounced. Usually they ate moderately, but after using so much magic their bodies required double the amount of food to sustain them. When the food was clear, which didn't take long at all, Harry realised he was still slightly hungry so he tapped the table and asked for some toast and bacon and made himself a sandwich.

"Much better," He sighed, sitting back and closing his eyes, "Although, another sandwich would not go amiss." He grinned as it popped in front of him and ate it.

"I do hope that there are no more wards ever needing put on this place." Tom said, "I would hate to do that again."

"I'd ask the goblins." Harry said, "I'm sure Ragnok and I could come to an understanding and if not then the place doesn't get warded."

"When do you plan on spreading the word?" Tom asked and Harry thought for a second.

"Remus has left, but she should be back by now and hopefully our other selves are talking to him. I think I shall go tomorrow, there is no way I could go today without my body keeling over because I'll have to do at least two relives as it is."

"Why two?"

"One for Dumbledore, and one for making plans with you, Remus and the others and then going to see Narcissa."

"Ah, I see. Yes, it might be best if you do leave it until tomorrow."

"Ready to go back?"

"I would rather I didn't." Tom admitted, "But lets."

Harry cast a tempus and saw that it was approaching 3pm so he and Tom turned their hour glasses seven hours before shadowing back.

"Do you want to plan with Remus first, or live the day?" Tom questioned.

"Live the day, I still feel like crap." Harry decided, "That way, I can spend an hour in the shower before turning back again and meeting you in the Gryffindor rooms."

"I like your thoughts."

"I'm a genius like that, see?"

"You have to be in the hall in fifteen minutes." Tom drawled and Harry cursed.

"Dammit." Harry shadowed in to his rooms where, as per usual, Luna was there was waiting for him.

"How did everything go?" She asked, reaching up to kiss his cheek.

"The ward set in to place and you're all keyed in. But by Merlin did it take a lot of power." Harry shook his head, still amazed that it had taken so much.

"Yes, but you suspected it would." She pointed out,

"I did," He agreed, "However, I did not estimate just how much power it would take. We both passed out and I felt it drain my reserves when I was casting. Hell, we're both still asleep right now, we didn't wake until 2 at least." Luna looked at him wide eyed.

"Oh Merlin. Are you ok?" She asked worriedly, handing him another pepper up.

"Yes, I'm fine. I've eaten more food than what's healthy and could really do with soaking in bath tub for three hours, but other than that I'm fine. I plan on living this day and then going to plan with Moony and Tom about spreading the word. I'm not going out until tomorrow to see Ellen, I don't think I will physically be able to do it today." Harry explained,

"Are you going to call a meeting with the rest?"

"I was going to meet with them to discuss things, but then I was thinking it might just be easier to spread the word. Or do you all wish to see the manor and get the layout first?" Harry looked at her in question.

"I think it would be best if the others and I have access to the manor before hand, that way, if we do go to help the wolves, then we will know where we are. Plus, we're going to want to scout our areas."

"Scout your areas?" Harry repeated.

"You know Bleach is going to want to check out the potions labs, and didn't you say it holds the biggest library in the world? Can I just say the fact that you have yet to take Paws is not going to sit well with her, Badger is going to want to raid the green houses, Swift is going to want to see the training room and you know I want to see the infirmary."

"We'll go later." Harry said, realising how right she was, "Where would I be without you again?"

"In a cave."

Harry laughed as he left the room, he headed down the to great hall with the bad feeling it was going to be a very long day for him. He met Swift and Paws eyes and he knew they could see his exhaustion when their eyes filled with worry.

Don't worry, I'm fine, just tired. He soothed then, before they could asked,

How did it go? Paws asked, concern lining her tone despite him saying he was fine.

It was immense, you'll understand when you see it, there lands were far greater than we anticipated and the magic required
 I cannot even begin to explain. He told her,

Meeting later? Swift questioned and Harry gave a mental nod,

Yes, I'm taking you all to the manor. I'll explain everything later. The connection was cut and Harry slowly ate his breakfast, he was thinking about the things he needed to do within the next day or so. Getting everything planned was a must, that way Remus could go and set the word out properly, then he would be going to Ellen. He would beg and plead if needs must but she would be going to the manor, even if it was for her safety alone, he would drag her there. There was something bothering him when he thought of the wolves and he had learned to trust his gut a long time ago. He sighed, worrying wasn't getting him anyway and he quickly headed off, not that he was paying attention whatsoever, he was auto pilot and he realised he was still effected by the ward when he collapsed on his way to Herbology. Thankfully, no one was around because he wouldn't have been able to explain the fact that he just dropped to the floor. Harry groaned and pushed himself up,

"Winky," He called and his elf popped up in front of him, "I need a pepper up."

"Right away Master Harry," She vanished and was back in a second, Harry eagerly downed the potion and allowed the effects to wash over him.

"Thank you," He said and she bowed before leaving. Harry took off in a run and managed to get to the correct green house only 5 minutes, he hastily apologised to Sprout and the lesson continued. He had forgotten that the plants were rather fond of him and spent most of his time dodging their advances much to his annoyance, and he slapped the Tantactula when it went to grab his head.

"Bad plant," He told it sternly, he bit back a grin when it dropped like a scolded puppy.

"Very nicely handled Mr Potter," Professor Sprout informed him with a smile,

"Thanks," He muttered, looking down. As soon as the bell went Harry all but ran up to his rooms, he only had a free period now and though he usually went to the library he had managed to keep his school work load down and he had a sneaking suspicion that Luna was helping with that too. Harry didn't even think when he got to his rooms, he went straight up and ran a bath, happily submerging in it.

It may have been the best thing to have ever happened to Harry as far as he was concerned, he poked at the bond he had with Tom and sent all the feelings he had because of the bath. He laughed quietly to himself when he practically felt Tom pout, the man was still teaching and Harry sent back a feeling of patience to which he got a something that felt like shut up! He laughed again and relaxed back, he didn't know how long he was in the bath but Luna had returned and he could also hear the rest of the group in the living room. Harry pulled himself out of the bath and dried himself off, he pulled on a black pair of skinny jeans and a white top before grabbing his boots to pull on and heading down to the living room. Harry happily accepted the glass of juice and the pepper up that Luna handed him and sat down,

"So, how did it go?" Paws asked immediately,

"The ward is in place and the manor is spectacular." Harry told them, "Only, it took a lot more magic that either of us expected."

"You seem better." Swift noted,

"Yeah, I've been in the bath since Herbology." He said with a grin, and they laughed at that.

"So what's the plan now?" Bleach questioned,

"I'm taking you all to the manor so you can get the layout and see your areas, Ray pointed out to me earlier that it would be good for you to go before hand." Harry said and they nodded. "I also have to live the day for a third time because I have to meet with Tom and Remus and Greyback, and I also need to go and speak with Cissa as well as make the portkeys that are to be given out."

"Are you sure that you can make it through, Snake?" Badger said worriedly,

"I'll be fine, you know I'm good for days." He waved off the concern, "Are you all ready to go?" They all said their consent and Harry got up, they all crowded him and he brought up his shadows, it was the biggest group he had ever taken at one point so it took more focus but he managed it fine given his state and he took them to the gates of manor.

"Welcome to the Werewolf sanctuary." He announced and watched as their jaws dropped. They stood there in a stunned silence gazing up and the massive manor in front of them, Harry stood and allowed them to get it out of their system, after all, he and Tom had had the same reaction.

"This is a manor?" Bleach spoke eventually,

"Yeah, there used to be a castle which is why this got named the manor." Harry said and the rest of them began to blink.

"What happened to the castle?" Paws inquired, always searching for knowledge,

"It was burned to the ground. William Peverell was betrayed during the war between the Normans and the Olde English."

"William Peverell
 sure not-,"

"Yes, that William Peverell, the magicals believed that if they could drive the muggles back then the opposing magicals could be pushed out. They were winning too." He added,

"Do you know who the betrayer was?" Venom asked,

"Yes, a man named Cole, but he paid for his crimes because, with his dying breath, William Peverell cursed him and his entire line. They were cursed with pale skin and pale hair to show their betrayal, they were banished to France, they'd be always shrouded in suspicion, and they're magic would be forever stilted until they were loyal to a Peverell again." Harry explained, and he could see they were all fascinated.

"Wow, that's fascinating." Paws murmured, "I'm guessing its Norse magic."

"Yes,"

"What was the curse called, I want to look it up." She said and Harry couldn't help the smirk that curled on to his face.

"I don't think you'll be the only one looking up this specific curse." He said, looking directly at Draco when he spoke and the blond raised an eyebrow.

"Why me?"

"Because the curse is called the Curse of Bad Faith." Harry answered and Draco gasped, and those who were fluent in French also gasped with their eyes widening shock.

"We're missing something." Swift spoke and Harry grinned,

"Bad faith, in French, where the Cole line was banished, is Mal Foi." Harry explained.

"My family!?" Draco exclaimed, "Are you sure? My father has been successful and is very powerful, we don't fit the last part."

"Your grandfather, Abraxas, was loyal to Tom. Tom has Peverell blood, which meant, as Abraxas died still loyal to Tom then the curse would have started to wear and your dad, who was also loyal to Tom, reached his full potential." Harry pointed out, "Didn't you think it odd that, even when you were sticking to the rules, when it came to me people were always suspicious?"

"Well shit." Draco muttered and Harry laughed.

"My words exactly,"

"That is rather astonishing," Badger said, "As history goes."

"I know, when the elves were explaining to Tom and I, we were stunned." Harry shook his head, "Anyway, shall we get back to the task."

"Right, of course." Paws agreed, putting away her questions. Harry suddenly grinned at them, his eyes glinting in mischief,

"Let's see the lands shall we?" He asked rhetorically, "Race you," with that he took of in his wolf form and sprinted away. Paws took of after him in her leopard form with a snake around her neck followed by a white lynx, a badger and two wild cats, Swift took to the skies with Raven in their avian forms and swooped in and out of the trees following the sprinting wolf. No one managed to catch up with him, Harry was just too fast for them and he had a head start, but they all had fun bounding around the lands and when they got to the vast front doors they were all flushed and grinning.

"Let's start the tour," Harry said in excitement, "Now, I know that, when we see things, some of you are going to want to vanish. So, I'm making a rule that says that we have to stay in a group until we get to the library where you can then go to wherever it is that you want to vanish to."

"Agreed,"

"Now," He led them in to the grand entrance hall.

"Wow," Luna whispered and Harry nodded with a grin.

"Yeah, I thought that." They started off by going to the ball room, to which Draco and Neville was practically salivating over because of the sheer opulence that would be involved with a pureblood ball. Harry explained how it was going to be where all new wolves would get taken to because it was huge and it wouldn't make them feel trapped, they saw the logic because, if you were being hunted, you would hate to be taken to an unknown place and then find yourself in a tiny room. He showed them the formal lounge which had been turned in to a time out room and the informal lounge which was a common room of sorts, he pointed out the inner court yard before showing them the dining room.

"See, we changed it from one massive table to more little ones." Harry said, "That way people can socialise and it can sit more people."

"It's a good idea, and it feels less stiff." Swift agreed,

"Yes, they will not be used to it so this is for the best." Luna murmured. Harry briefly showed them one of the floo rooms before taking them to the downwards. He showed them the infirmary but he kept his hand on Luna's arm so she didn't wander off, he did the same when he took Draco through the wine cellars and the labs.

"I think I'm in love," Draco sighed,

"And you can explore all you want, claiming whatever one you wish, once we have been through the rest of the house." Harry stated, pulling him out of the lab and leading them back up after informing them that the ward stone was below. They went up to the first floor and he showed them the master study, which he had keyed them all in to as it meant they were keyed in to all floors, the sun room and the entertainment room before dragging them along to the training room.

"Tah dah!" He announced grandly,

"Holy mother of shit." Fred exclaimed,

"This is fan-fucking-tastic." His twin continued,

"This is warded so no one under 8 can enter without an adult, so you know." Harry said, "You can come back later." He was glad the library doors had been closed or he knew he would have lost Paws, he took them to the 'den' and the girls cooed.

"This is adorable, Snake."

"I have my moments." He muttered shifting, he got a kiss on each cheek from them and he grinned, jokingly flicking flint from his clothes. "What can I say
" they laughed and continued up the stairs to where Harry showed them the room which had had the wall taken out, it was a play room/class room/whatever the wolves decided to do with it room and he pointed out the wards he had put up to make sure there were no accidents if the cubs were playing. Of course, he pointed out the new bathrooms when Badger asked about the similar doors they had been seeing on each floor, and he showed them the many guest rooms that the floor held.

"This is ridiculous, who needs this many rooms!" Paws exclaimed, shaking her head, "I mean, I know we need them now, but this was a family manor before now."

"Yeah, it is a bit excessive but I'm not complaining because without then we would have had to build something this size." Harry said to her and she shuddered at the thought.

"Point taken."

He took them up to what would be the staff rooms and he said they could pick a room, all except the master, queen and heir rooms were free. It was like children had overtaken their bodies and there was a free for all to get the rooms that they wanted. The twins and Draco got theirs first and they were quickly followed by Luna who grinned and chose her room by leaning against the wall next to the door wand in hand; no one bothered her. Ron and Blaise got rooms next to each other much to Harry's amusement and Badger managed to get the room that looked out on to the green houses.

"Finished children?" Harry questioned mockingly, and dodged the multiple stinging hexes aimed at him. "Now now, do be nice to the master of the house, I can still block you from the places you want to go." They all glowered at him but they didn't hex him again knowing he would be mean enough to block them. Harry smirked and led them out and back down to the library, be brought Paws forward and plastered on a serious expression.

"I know that this will be extremely difficult for you, and I know that you have a time turner, but you do have to live which includes eating, sleeping and showering. So I am giving you free access to this room with the agreement that you have an elf to remind you when you need to eat and you remember that it isn't going anywhere." Harry told her, she gave him a look that said you're insane.

"I can look after myself perfectly well, Harry." She reminded him,

"Uhuh, and how many times do you use your turner because you've overstayed in the Gryffindor library?" He asked and she looked sheepish, despite him being busy everyday he did know, roughly, what his friends were doing and he always knew when they used a turner.

"I won't be that bad." She insisted, Harry merely raised an eyebrow and pushed open the doors.

"We'll see," He muttered and motioned for her to go in. He watched, highly amused as her eyes went impossible wide and her lips parted in awe. He looked at the others and saw they looked equally stunned at the sheer number of books and Harry braced himself for Paws' explosion. He wasn't disappointed, she launched herself at him and he was pretty sure she was crying.

"I'll take 2 elves and extra food and sleep breaks if you please let me live here, I'll still go to school and you'll see me every day, but please don't make me leave." She pleaded in to his shoulder, her arms and legs wrapped around him tightly. Harry was shaking in the effort not to vocalise his laughter and gently rubber her back, placing her back on her feet.

"As long as you swear to remain healthy and I don't hear from the elves that you are putting off food for the books, you can have unlimited access to the library." Harry told her, and then winced as the loud shriek she released as she threw herself at him for a second time. Harry stepped back with the force of it and she kissed his cheek before sprinting in to the library like there was a fire following her,

"Well, shall we leave her too it?" Harry suggested, laughing.

"Yeah, I wanna go to the training room." Swift said excitedly,

"Agreed," Venom said and Harry took them back, the pair of them headed to look at everything and Harry shook his head smiling. He went down and they lost Luna in the infirmary and she was already talking with the elves about how things were run so she could make it how she wanted to. Harry allowed Draco to run wild within the labs and he selected one he deemed perfect, and he lost the blond who called for the elf who worked down there and started asking all sorts of question.

"My demonic twins, I think I have the perfect place for you if you would like to follow me." He said with a smirk, the twins eyes lit up and they hurried to follow. He took them to the ritual room, it was large and the most secure room within the manor.

"I think you can run wild in here without making damage." Harry said, "You can do whatever the hell you want."

"We love you Snake." They chorused and kissed his cheeks, they went in and were waving their wands before the door had even shut.

"I'm scared." Badger joked and Harry laughed,

"I think that's wise." Harry agreed, "Come on, I've got the perfect thing for you." They went outside and Harry took him to where all the greenhouses were and did a grand flourish with his arms.

"Wow," Neville breathed, looking around in awe.

"All yours, Nev. You can do what you want."

"I love you Snake." He stated and absently walked away, Harry went back to the manor chucking to himself. He knew that there was no way they were leaving any time soon and he trusted them with his life so he called for Nip,

"Can you make sure that there is an elf looking after each of the people within the manor please? These are my most trusted friends, and I want them taken care off."

"Yes Master Harry, Nip will tells the other elves." He nodded his head, "When is Master Harry's other people coming?" Harry didn't realised but he had ended up in the common room and so he took a seat.

"I'll tell you what is going to happen, Nip, and I'll need you to make sure all the other elves know too. This is extremely important." Harry told the little elf seriously,

"Nip is listening, Master."

"Are you aware of the current war?" Harry asked him,

"Nip is not knowing, sir,"

"There is a war going on between what is labelled the 'light' and the 'dark', the light is led by a manipulative old man called Dumbledore and the dark is lead by Master Marvolo." Harry began and Nip's eyes went wide.

"Master Marvolo is a Dark Lord." He gasped.

"Yes, and, don't tell him I said this, but an amazing one too. He is the most powerful wizard in the world and the most feared Dark Lord in the last century, possibly even before then." Harry confirmed,

"What about yous, Master?"

"I used to be in the light, Nip, I was lied to and that's why I was there. Dumbledore, he had my parents killed, sent me to horrible people who beat the crap in to me, he forced me to do impossible things and controlled me and my friends with spells and potions. He had my godfather killed and he tried to take my friends away from me. When he did that, my magic broke all the things he did to me and I went to the dark," He told the elf,.

"Dumbledore is a bad man."

"Dumbledore is a very bad man." Harry agreed, "Now, Dumbledore and the current ministry are in control, but we in the dark are slowly infiltrating to overthrow them, they are bad people Nip and we need them gone or they'll kill me, my friends, Marvolo and his friends." The little elf gasped horrified,

"No no no no no, Dumbledore is not killing Master Harry or Master Marvolo." Nip said shaking his head.

"We will do everything in our power to make sure it doesn't happen." Harry reassured, "But that is why this place is being used. Master Moony is a werewolf."

"Nip is knowing, Master Harry, we elves can feel it."

"Well, Dumbledore and the ministry are having people hunt down the wolves and their cubs and kill them." The elf gasped again, "And I, we, don't want it to happen. So we've turned this place in to a sanctuary, I've opened the wards to allow the wolves entrance and those I've selected. I need you and the other elves to help Moony out, he will tell you what to do, and I, hopefully, will be bringing another who'll be in charge too." Harry explained and Nip seemed to pull himself up.

"Yous can bes counting on us elves, Master Harry sir." Nip said surely, "Nip wills be telling the elves and we's be helping."

"Thank you, Nip, I'm counting on you." Harry said, and the elf bowed and popped away. Harry got up and cracked his back, he knew everyone would know where he was and so with that, he shadowed back to Tom's rooms and dropped down on the sofa next to said man with a sigh of relief.

"Give me ten minutes and then we can go get Moony," Harry murmured, closing his eyes and leaning back.

"Where have you been?"

"Took the others to the manor after school, gave them a tour and then came straight here."

"You did not go back to sleep?"

"No, got in the bath instead."

"You are impossible." Tom sighed, "You are still suffering the effects of magical exhaustion. The second one in a number of days."

"Meh, details details," Harry said airily, waving him off. He pulled himself up and rolled his shoulders, he arched his back until it cracked again and clicked his neck.

"That is not pleasant." Tom informed him,

"It feels great." Harry said in return. "How many hours are we going back?"

"It is currently approaching 9, I arranged a meeting with Fenrir at 6."

"Go back three and use the remaining time to talk to Moony." Harry suggested,

"We'll go to the Gryffindor rooms." Tom said, and then added, "I never thought I would spend so much time in Gryffindor."

"Stranger things have happened." Harry pointed out and Tom scoffed.

"You should know."

Harry stuck out his tongue and vanished in to the shadows, taking Tom with him and they landed in the living area of the rooms. They turned back 3 hours and then walked in to the library where Moony was relaxing back in his usual chair.

"Give me ten minutes and I'll move." Moony muttered, not opening his eyes. Harry snickered at the similarity and Tom rolled his eyes,

"Long night?" Harry asked,

"Yes, the rumours have been spread and I know they're moving quickly. There is so much fear within the packs that it all but flew, and I know that it was causing excitement." Moony told them. "They're uncertain because of the WPP, but the thought of somewhere that they would be completely protected is something they wouldn't even think to turn down. They need reassurance."

"Greyback will give them that."

"We need to start making portkeys." Harry remembered, "Or the wolves won't be able to find it."

"What are you going to use?" Moony asked,

"Honestly, I was just going to get a load of galleons and pass them out," Harry shrugged, "I'm not going to miss them."

"That is actually not a bad idea." Tom mused, "Where are you having them go?"

"Ball room, it'll be the check point." Harry said, "It's big, its open and it can handle many people at once."

"We'll make as many as possible waiting for Greyback, that way he can take them when he leaved," Tom said,

"I'll be right back," Harry said, he vanished in to the shadows before appearing back with a large bag. "Ready to go?"

"I will go first, and inform Lucius of Mr Lupin's entrance to his manor." Tom said and apperated away, Remus looked to Harry.

"Malfoy?"

"Sorry Moony,"

"Should I change?" He asked and Harry snorted.

"Have you seen how I'm dressed?" He said rhetorically, "Lucius can shove it."

"How are you not dead yet?"

"Because I can flatten anyone I've ever met in a duel accept Tom, and I've never tried Dumbledore."

"Explains so much." Remus laughed and Harry grinned, he took another pepper up when he felt a jab from Tom and offered his arm Remus allowing them to leave within the shadows. Harry landed in the throne room and made an over dramatic sweeping gesture,

"Welcome to the room of death." He exclaimed in a dramatic voice, "Where the Lord of Darkness and Evil resides and comes creeping in the night." Then he started to laugh manically and felt fell to the floor,

"Um Cub?" Remus spoke hesitantly, not quite sure what happened and looked towards the Dark Lord.

"Have you gotten it all of your system now?" Tom asked, trying not to analyse what the hell that was.

"Methinks so."

"How many Pepper ups?" Tom sighed,

"I forgot," Harry answered blinking owlishly as he felt the burst of manic energy settle, "But I feel better now,"

"You may not want to take any more." Tom advised sweeping over and offering a hand for Harry,

"You know, you are extremely smart." Harry decided, accepting the hand and pulling himself up, "Whoa, spinning room,"

"Cub, you're an idiot." Remus shook his head, Harry grinned.

"I know, but let's pretend that nothing happened and start making Portkeys." Harry put forth and they agreed, Remus collected the newly made portkeys and they had the same trigger word on them all: Sanctuary. Tom looked up when the doors were pushed open and Lucius walked in with a shirtless man. The man had a dark tan, defined muscles littered his frame and his bottom half was covered with so torn jeans. He had strong features, cropped hair and bright amber eyes,

"Huh," Harry muttered surprised, his eyes trailing over Greyback's form. Tom's eyes narrowed at the amount of attention Harry's eyes were paying to the werewolf's bare chest, he reached down and tugged at Harry's hair so the teen's eyes snapped up to meet his own.

"That will be all, Lucius, but inform your wife that Harry's wishes to speak with her after this meeting." Voldemort told the blond, who left with a bow.

"You called upon me, Dark Lord?" Greyback said, his voice holding a gravely quality to it.

"Yes, Greyback, my associate here has been working on something to aid the werewolves. He wishes to speak with you." Tom said and Harry got to his feet. He slowly walked towards the wolf and began to circle him, he tilted his head side to side as he made his analysis.

"I have heard many things about you." Harry told him, continuing to make his circles. "Most of them not very flattering, I can assure you. However, the credibility to the sources that informed me of such things has taken a recent downturn so I am left to make my own assumptions on you."

"Your assessment matters very little to me." Greyback sneered, his teeth bared and a growl building in his throat. Harry responded with his own which shocked the wolf enough to shut him up.

"It should, I have a lot of power within my hands and, as of yet, the only thing I wish to do is help you and your kind with that power."

"No one does anything for free." Greyback stated, his previous mask let go and he was making his own assessment of Harry.

"Fortunately for you, my aid does come free. My uncle, he is very dear to me, is of your kind and it is my goal to make sure no one has to suffer as he. Also, Ellen came to me, she has been collecting files of those who have been attacked, the cubs
" Harry clenched his fist at the memory and forced back his anger, he knew Greyback knew what he was talking about because his amber eyes were flashing.

"You know of Moonrise and her store?" He questioned suspiciously,

"I fund that store. All the extra potions and the new things she had developed are because I flushed it with my money." Harry told him,

"Why?"

"I told you, I have an uncle who is a wolf. The current standing of werewolves is not something I tolerate."

"The packs are getting scared, even my own. With the ministry hunting us many are considering leaving, the attacks on the cubs are taking the most out of them,"

"The ones responsible are already being dealt with, of that I can assure you." Harry stated,

"I am protecting them as much as I can, I've had many smaller packs join my own but there is not many placed that can fit that many wolves and not be detected." There was genuine fear in his voice that Harry picked up on and he smiled a genuine smile.

"I will help you, you care for your pack and the wolves in general and that is enough for me." Harry said softly, "You are not what you have been portrayed to be."

"No, I am not."

"I have someone who you should be introduced to, correctly that is." Harry said to him, and Greyback raised an eyebrow. Harry removed the shadows from where they had been covering Remus and the man stepped forward, Greyback's eyes widened in shock and he took an unconscious step forward.

"My lost cub," He breathed, his eyes running over Remus form and drinking in the sight hungrily.

"Lost?" Moony questioned, his voice going deeper as his wolf was closer to the surface.

"You were supposed to grow up with the pack, when the moon took you in to her arms you were supposed to have come with us but I couldn't find you. We searched, years were searched, wolves are not supposed to be alone, but you were never found."

"I went to school, my father kept me hidden." Moony said and at the mention of his father, Greyback growled.

"Foolish man, he knew that it would have a bad affect on you."

"Knew? How could he have known?"

"Of course he knew, he was the werewolf specialist of his time. He studied our states both human and wolf, out mannerisms and out habits, he knew the ins and outs of a wolf pack and still he took you from me." Greyback ground out, his amber eyes flashing again,

"Is that why you chose to bite me? Because my father knew too much,"

"No, I chose you out of revenge." Greyback told him honestly,

"What?"

"I told you, your father was there werewolf specialist of his time, and he got that reputation by conducting his studies by any means necessary. He took my brother, my twin brother, captured him and subjected him to all kinds of torturous things. You see, when wolves birth cubs and they are twins you will always have one dominant and one submissive and Rom was the submissive. They captured him, the one day he was without his mate to protect him, he was gone for over a year and when he came back he cut his throat with his own fang.

"The next study released by John Lupin was that werewolf subs cannot become impregnated by someone other than their mates. I chose you because I wanted to take what was most precious to him, I chose you because I wanted to hurt him and have him know that the race he hated so much was now related to him, I chose you because I wanted him to squirm every time he went to capture another wolf because, in the back of his mind, he would know there would be a chance that it would be you he was capturing and I wanted it to tear him apart." Greyback finished in a low growl, Remus looked torn between horror and disgust and Harry placed a steadying hand on his arm. Remus turned his wild eyes towards Harry as if begging him to say it was false,

"I'm so sorry, Moony," He murmured and Remus laughed, it was borderline hysterical and it matched the tears that came down his face.

"This is just brilliant." He gasped, hunching with the onslaught of emotions, "I've found out that a man I trusted is a manipulative bastard who had my own pack killed, sent my cub away to get hurt, puts everyone's lives at risk for his 'greater good', lost my mate and now I find out that my father was a sick psychopath that liked to experiment on werewolves for kicks. This is just fucking wonderful."

"Calm down, Moony." Harry instructed, and when Remus went to throw him a snappy retort Harry looked him dead in the eye to convey that they would pay for their crimes and the wolf slumped.

"I hate them all." He sighed,

"I know." Harry shrugged and turned back to Greyback, "You said you haven't got a place to hold all the werewolves without being detected?"

"Yes,"

"What if I can give you a place like that, something that has everything you could possibly want or need for your wolves? Would you spread the word and bring them there?" Harry questioned, Greyback's eyes narrowed.

"How could you guarantee they would be safe?"

"I created the ward myself. It only allows werewolves through and my most trusted."

"There are things that wolves need, we need land, lots of it. We need places to heal, places to teach, places to relax."

"Done, done, and done."

"What about those more familiar with indoor living?"

"Got it and all silver has been removed. Areas have been warded off for the places to dangerous for younger cubs as well as the main ward keeping those unwanted out." Harry said before he could question again.

"What is this supposed placed?" Greyback asked,

"It is a werewolf sanctuary." Harry answered simply, "I have specifically created it to house many werewolves and their cubs, I swore on my magic to Ellen that I would find a solution to the hunting problem and this is what I have. The lands are unimaginable, there is a lake, a forest and open stretches as well as there being 18 outbuildings ready to hold families who prefer indoor living as well as a manor with 32 bedrooms to house anyone who prefers it in there. I have classrooms set up within the manor for the cubs to learn, soft areas where they can snuggle down and listen to a story. A fully functional infirmary and potions lab, I have had new bathrooms in place for use so there are a set on each floor and I've created a common room as well as a communal dining area for anyone and everyone to eat."

Greyback looked at him as if he had never seen someone like him before,

"You have done all these things to help strangers."

"Yes,"

"To house and feed?"

"And clothe, I've asked the elves there to cater to everyone's needs."

"We've nothing to repay you with."

"I need no repayment, only the promise that there will be no malicious damage towards my property or the people within it."

"There are people there?"

"Only my most trusted, and they are there to help. One is an upcoming healer and, if I can get her on board, will work with Ellen to heal any who needs it. One is an upcoming potions master who will make any potions that Ellen may need. One can help as a teacher, she knows practically anything there is to know about muggle or magical world and would gladly teach the cubs. Two are a set of mischief makers who would like nothing more to mess around and lighten everyone's mood. One is an upcoming Herbologist who will be keeping an eye on all the plants we have there and supplying the potions cupboards and finally, the other two are fighters. One specialises in assassination while the other is all rounded. If, on the off chance, someone who isn't supposed to gets through the wards, they will have removed the problem before any of your wolves would even need to worry about it. That and they can call me and, I assure you, if anyone dares cross my land without being a werewolf or someone I let in they will find themselves as testers for my new spell." There was a vicious gleam in Harry's eyes once he had finished, "And Moony will be there too."

"I'd have to see it." Greyback stated,

"I expected no less." Harry agreed easily, "I will take you to the manor and take you on a tour, if mine are still there you can meet them and see that they can be trusted yourself."

"Very well,"

Tom, are you coming? Harry asked, not looking away from the werewolf.

No, I need to speak with Lucius. I shall continue to create portkeys in your absence, however. Tom told him and Harry nodded,

Ok, I'll speak with Narcissa when I get back. I know Greyback will accept, he would be foolish not to, and I'll take Remus with me because he'll need to speak with Greyback.

Very well, I shall meet you here. Tom said and swept from the room. Harry held out his arm for Remus and for Greyback.

"I swear, while it may be highly unpleasant, it is no danger." Harry assured him, "I have a very unique way of travelling." Greyback gripped his arm warily and they vanished in to the shadows.

Chapter 27

Notes:

Sorry about the delay! There is no excuse and I cannot thank you all enough for reading!

I'm not J.K but the plot is mine!

Un'beta'd

Snake - Harry
Paws - Hermione
Swift - Ron
Raven - Luna
Bleach - Draco
Venom - Blaise
Manic - Fred
Panic - George

Chapter Text

Chapter 27:

Harry took them to the outside of the gates to the manor so he could test the ward for the first time, he had opened up all the other wards to allow in anyone unless he forced them out, however, this would be the first time he would be testing to see if his ward worked on a wolf not connected to the main wards. He opened the gate and motioned for the pair to enter and he saw them both shudder when they walked through the ward and Harry couldn't help but smirk when he saw it worked as it was supposed to. He stepped through and felt the ward surround him too.

"Welcome, Fenrir Greyback, to the Werewolf sanctuary." Harry said and grinned when the werewolf looked around blinking.

"This is an ancient family home." Was the first thing out of his mouth, and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I know, it used to be the Peverell Family Manor," Harry said, "It's mine."

"You used one of your own family manors?"

"It's my money and food too. Trust me when I say I've got enough of it." Harry shrugged, "Do you want to see all the lands?"

"Yes, there are many wolves." Greyback agreed,

"Ok, Moony, you haven't seen this either." Harry said and then shadowed to the south point that Nip had taken him. "Does this count as enough land?"

"What's your territory?" Greyback asked, looking around and Harry snorted.

"Everything you can see comes with the manor." Harry told him and both their heads snapped around to look at him.

"Excuse me?" Remus yelped in shock and Harry laughed,

"Yeah, I know, it's completely excessive." Harry said,

"This is much more than we would need." Greyback muttered, "The forest alone would cover my pack and then some."

"There are outbuildings within the forest for those who wish as well as ones that are scattered about in the open." Harry said,

"What about the lake."

"Mine too, you would be free to use it as much as you want. I do not know what dwells there, however." Harry tilted his head, "And I've been told that there are other animals within the forest."

"That is nothing we would not expect."

"Let's go to the manor next, we have a lot to go through." Harry moved them to the entrance hall and began yet another tour of that day. He knew that his other self was currently giving a tour to his friends and so he decided to take a different rout so they didn't cross paths. He took them down to the infirmary and showed it to Greyback,

"This would be where healing will take place, of course, if there are wolves who are not comfortable within enclosed spaces then I am sure that, as long as no harm comes to her, Raven will come to the injured party." Harry said and Greyback nodded.

"This seems expensive."

"According to my elves, this is the best that they were able to purchase." Harry confirmed, "Do you want to see the potion labs?"

"No, that is Moonrise' station."

"I am not sure how you conduct the education within the packs, but the potion labs have been warded to only allow access to adults and if there are apprentices then they will have to be keyed in to the wards. Moony knows how to do all of that, so there is no confusion." Harry said,

"We have wolves who learn certain subjects like healing and potions who shadow their masters, other things are taught in groups."

"Good, because we created a classroom and another room that could also be used as a classroom, and all the wards can be edited by Moony." Harry said. He took them up and showed them the common room, the time out room and the classroom which Greyback was extremely pleased with.

"Many cubs miss out, but this will allow them to learn."

"You'll have two teachers at least that will teach the cubs things that those within your pack have been unable to learn. Both Moony and Paws are full of knowledge and both make great teachers." Harry said, "Now, I changed the dining room to make it less formal and let it be more sociable." He showed Greyback the smaller tables and the werewolf nodded,

"There are those who miss small comforts such as eating at a table. It has been a long time since they have, and some have never been able to do such a thing." He murmured and Harry's eyes flashed in fury, the ministry and the wizarding world would be in for a huge awakening when he ripped apart every magical creature rule and built them in his view. He took a deep breath and led them away.

"Now, I know that many wolves who may come here will be used to living outside, but they'll need to check in and for that I've sectioned of this room and this will be the room the portkey will drop them." Harry said showing the ball room and he chuckled when Greyback's eyes widened in shock.

"This makes the Malfoy room look poor." He stated and Remus was overcome with coughs as he tried to hide his laughter, Harry openly laughed at that.

"I thought it was open and light enough not to scare anyone as they'd be coming somewhere unknown."

"Yes, the windows bring in much light and there would be no crowding as some may react badly to anyone approaching their packs." Greyback agreed,

"Ok, next up is the training room. I don't know how useful this would be, but its been warded not to allow those under 8 entrance without an adult." Harry said leading them up, Greyback whistled in appreciation when he seen the room.

"Wolves who have survived without magic or those who don't know how to use it have trained with weapons, this will teach those who want to learn." He said and Harry nodded. He showed the den, the multipurpose room and the ritual room where he warned his against entering due to the twins. Harry pointed out the toilets and shower rooms which were open to anyone and everyone.

"You have them specifically made?"

"Yes, because, while most of the rooms have en suits, what if there was a cub who was playing and needed the bathroom? They'd need to run all they way back to their room just to go." Harry shook his head. "Ok, the master study is where the 'staff' wards are based, these stop anyone going up to the top floor and in to any of the studies as they'll only be open to those who work there. Moony is keyed in obviously, and those who are working here and staying on the top floor will have to be keyed in. Just a drop of blood on to the ward stone will do." He moved around to the library and laughed at his reaction.

"Why so many books?" Greyback questioned when he found his voice.

"No idea, it's the biggest library in the wizarding world according to the elves. Now, everyone has access to this, accept those under 5 who need to be brought in with an adult. The children books are in the den and the multipurpose rooms and can be accessed by anyone." Harry explained. They went up and Harry showed them the room which went on to the balcony and explained about the wards stopping anyone from falling off when playing, before going round and showing the guest rooms.

"They are huge. Families could live in one of these." Greyback exclaimed.

"Really?" Harry asked, looking around, "There are individual rooms."

"You mean you didn't have these made bigger?"

"No
" Harry looked at his astonished look and shrugged sheepishly, "Well this place can fit many more than I thought, there are like 32 rooms this size."

"Gaea," He breathed and Harry grinned.

"The floor above this is just the same except the staff rooms are there, and some of those are taken by my trusted." Harry said shrugging, "So yeah, that's the manor."

"And you want to open this place to a pack of werewolves that you have never met?" Greyback confirmed incredulously,

"Yes,"

"Surely you must want something in return, an alliance, a binding?" Greyback couldn't seem to grasp that Harry wanted nothing from him.

"I want nothing, I've told you, Ellen came to me, and Moony is a wolf, that is enough for me to do this. I only ask that you promise no malicious damage to the property or my trusted." Harry told him firmly, "And I ask that you look after Moony, if anything happens to him then I will do everything in my power to end the one responsible."

"You know, you are entirely too protective." Moony rolled his eyes, but didn't say anything else, Harry smiled slightly.

"I know."

"How will I get the wolves here?" Greyback questioned and Harry grinned,

"I have made portkeys,"

"I just can't believe it." He shook his head, "This is everything we could ever want and need and you are just giving it to us. Why?"

"I know what it is like to be hated for something you cannot control, and if there is one thing that I abhor more than anything else in the world it is when people attack children; any children." Harry stated,

"You know, if this gets out what you have done, you will be persecuted."

"By the time the ministry find out who this sanctuary belongs to, I'll be running the wizengamot." Harry waved him off.

"You are really giving this to us, aren't you?"

"Yes, and it is already fully funded. Moony will be in charge here in the running of the manor and the things that he'll need to sort out like how food will be distributed, but the elves will be available for people to call anyway." Harry said to him,

"How many elves?"

"150+," Harry answered and grinned at the shock looked, "Yeah, I know,"

"I can do nothing but thank you," Greyback said, his voice full of sincerity and Harry smiled softly.

"I am only doing what I can and I can promise you, when I step in to power within the wizengamot I will destroy every restriction on your kind and build them back up again." Harry returned. They shook hands and Harry breathed in relief, the wolves would be safe when Greyback got out and spread the portkeys; he would go and collect Ellen next.

"I need to plan on where I am going to spread the word." Remus reminded Harry, "I have it worked out, but I'll need to finalise it and you said there was a forest that you knew held some wolves."

"Oh yeah," Harry remembered, "Come on, lets go outside, I know other me will be around here somewhere and I don't want to run in to me."

"What?"

"Timeturner." Harry led them back out in to the grounds, he grinned at Moony and punched him in the arm, "Tag, your it." He bolted away, changing in to his wolf form mid run and headed for the trees. Of course, the other two were werewolves and it wasn't long before Harry felt them snapping at his heels so he pushed himself further and used his agile frame to swerve in and out of the trees. Moony pounced on him sending them rolling across the ground and he yipped in amusement before bounding off, Harry barked and followed, snapping at his tail, and Greyback was running on the side of them. Harry managed to tag Moony just before they reached one of the hidden outbuildings and he changed back laughing and out of breath.

"You're fast, cub." Remus noted, walking in to the building.

"Thanks, I work out."

"You have managed to accept your wolf." Greyback said to Remus, his voice lined in surprise.

"It sort of just happened." Remus shrugged, "I only managed it when Harry got me out."

"He was being kept dosed with potions by Dumbledore." Harry added at the Alpha's confused look, his expression darkened and he growled.

"How dare he?"

"My sentiments exactly," Harry agreed, "Ok, wolves?"

"Well, as I've told you, Cub, I've spread rumours and they were picking up heat-,"

"That was you?" Greyback interrupted shocked, "The whispers of safety had reached the outer of my pack."

"Yes, I have contacts within some packs." Remus confirmed,

"I will confirm the rumours, and spread word that myself and another have the power to take any wolf seeking sanctuary to safety." Greyback said, "My first priority will be bringing my own pack here, but if I spread the word that there are portkeys being given out then they can be passed around."

"How quickly do you think the word will spread?" Harry asked,

"If I confirm the rumours which have already spread then you should have arrivals by the day after tomorrow." Greyback stated and Harry grinned.

"Wonderful, I need to go and seen Ellen tomorrow. Now that this is set up she can be brought in." Harry said pleased,

"Moonrise will be happy, she worries about all of us." Greyback said and Harry nodded,

"I know, and I am glad that I can help." Harry cast a tempus and blinked, "Damn it, its approaching 9 again."

"We've been here that long?" Remus said surprised and Harry nodded,

"I have to go and seen Narcissa yet." Harry grumbled, "Ok, we're going to need to go back and pick up from 7," he pulled out the turner and threw it over Moony and Greyback's necks, he turned the hourglass back twice and allowed the disconcerting feeling to stop before removing the chain and tucking it back in to his shirt.

"What was that?" Greyback demanded, shaking his head to clear it."

"Well, it is now approaching 7pm." Harry said brightly, "We'll go back to the manor, collect the portkeys and you two can be on your way."

"We've gone back in time." Greyback confirmed,

"Yep,"

"Oh,"

"Don't think about it, you'll get a head ache. I've already lived this day multiple times." Harry said and Greyback wisely nodded. Harry took them back to Malfoy Manor via the shadows and Tom didn't even blink when they appeared next to him, he merely held out the finished back of galleons and continued his conversation. Harry grinned at the Malfoys' surprised expression, Harry handed over the galleons to Greyback,

"There isn't a limit on each portkey, but anyone who is not a werewolf will find themselves thrown far away from the property so if one gets lost you needn't worry. The key word is sanctuary and, as I've said, it will take you to the ball room." Harry said and Greyback nodded,

"You are welcome within my pack whenever you wish." He said sincerely before turning and leaving,

"I'll use my timeturner so I can be at the manor in case anyone arrives earlier than expected. I've already set up an inventory and a check in system." Remus told Harry before following the Alpha wolf out.

"Any problems?"

"Only convincing him that I didn't want any payment for the sanctuary." Harry rolled his eyes,

"You know the reason why." Tom pointed out and Harry nodded,

"Of course, and I hate that the suspicion is there in the first place, but there is nothing I can do about it currently." Harry sighed, he was started to feel extremely light headed but he still had things he needed to do so he shoved it back and pulled himself together. "May I speak with Narcissa while you continue with Lucius?"

"By all means," Tom allowed and Harry nodded, he walked over to Cissa and threw up a silencer so they didn't interrupt each other.

"What can I do for you, Harry?" She asked warmly, and Harry smiled.

"I have it on good authority that you may be interested in working with some young children." Harry told her and she brightened.

"I do so love little ones. They are most adorable." She said and Harry grinned,

"I said that, but someone doesn't agree with me." He rolled his eyes and Cissa laughed,

"I do not doubt." She said, "What are you proposing?"

"I was going to suggest that I add you to the wards of the sanctuary so you would be able to go over and help with the cubs. Now that Greyback is going to spreading the word there will be many seeing refuge, and the cubs are the ones I am most worried about. There could be injuries and if they are anything as bad as what have been previous then your talents at healing would be greatly appreciated." Harry explained and she looked extremely interested.

"I believe that sounds like a delightful thing I could be doing." She stated, "But I would need to know what injuries have been seen in case I need to re-

practice certain things." Harry looked wary at that but understood her request,

"I do not wish to cause you any distress, but I agree that you need to see what has been coming in to Ellen." He said slowly,

"Is it so bad?"

"Unfortunately, it is much worse." Harry sighed, "Winky,"

"Master is calling?"

"Bring me the wolf file please." He asked and she popped away, returning with the file that had pushed him in to action. "Thanks, that will be all." He dismissed her before turning back to Narcissa, "All I can say is that the ones responsible are being dealt with as we speak." She raised an eyebrow and accepted the file, Harry watched has her pale skin lost more of its colour and her previous relaxed expression hardened in to a cold mask of fury. Her knuckles went white as she gripped the file and her eyes resembled chips of ice as she turned her attention back to Harry.

"They suffered,"

"As much as we could possibly make them." Harry assured,

"Good. You have my full commitment." She said and Harry grinned,

"Wonderful. I just need a drop of blood and I swear upon my magic that it is only for the wards and I shall not use it for anything other." Harry said and his magic flashed, Narcissa conjured a phial and allowed herself to bleed. Harry took the phial and vanished in to the shadows and in to the corridor of the ward stone, he entered the room and added Narcissa to the wards before leaving and heading back to the manor.

"There, all keyed in. Would you like to see it?" Harry asked,

"That would be lovely, Harry. I will have my cloak fetched." She agreed enthusiastically.

"We just have to be careful, I am currently walking around that manor twice." He said and then laughed at the bizarreness of that statement.

"Will you not see yourself?" She asked concerned,

"No, the manor is big enough that as long as I change my rout then we will not be seen. Besides, you need not see everything, only the first three floors."

"How many floors are there?" She questioned surprised,

"5 above ground," Harry asked and nodded in answer to her raised eyebrow, "Excessive." He politely held out his arm and she took it lightly, they vanished within the shadows and Harry took her to the front door.

"It is beautiful,"

"Welcome to the former Peverell Manor," Harry said and held the door open for her,

"This is very nice, Harry."

"Yes, it is." He agreed, "Now, I know that one of me is currently within the infirmary and another me is showing my friends the guest rooms. That means we should see the library, the training room and the multipurpose room before heading back down to see the ball room, the class room, the common room, the time out room and then heading down to see the infirmary."

"Lead the way," She said and they headed off. Harry didn't think he would ever get bored of the reactions to the library, he might even bring more people just for his personal enjoyment and he allowed Narcissa a few minutes to compose herself before leading to the multipurpose room, the den and the training room.

"I have to say I am highly impressed." Narcissa told him,

"Thank you, I have to admit I was stunned when I first walked around the building." He said leading her down the opposite staircase to which his other self was walking up, he knew that he was also walking up the same staircase on to the top floor and it was so weird to know where he was while going somewhere else. They went through to the ball room where Harry conveniently ignored Narcissa's squeal of excitement when she saw it, and he mentally apologised to Lucius because he had a feeling that Malfoy Manor would soon be under renovation. They went on to the class room and then the common room and the timeout room before going down stairs to the infirmary,

"Oh, this is very nice." Narcissa murmured looking around, "I think I could make myself very at home here."

"I know that Luna and Ellen will be here too, Luna is self taught and Ellen is a specialist on werewolves so I am sure that the three of you will work very well together." Harry said and Narcissa nodded,

"What of the potions we will be needing?"

"Ellen is capable, and I do believe your son has already taken a lab for himself. He is incredibly talented." Harry told her and she beamed at the praise towards Draco.

"He has come a long way."

"You are now free to come and go here whenever you wish, and I will alert you when the wolves start coming in."

"That will be lovely, Harry." Narcissa said, "Is there anything else?"

"No, we can be off." They left through the shadows and walked back in to the room where Lucius and Tom were still discussing the ministry.

"Is everything in order?" Tom asked him,

"Yes, everyone has been given a tour, and the plans have been put in to action." Harry confirmed.

"I do not doubt that Greyback will move quickly." Tom mused, Harry nodded and then he stumbled when he was hit with a wave of nausea and dizziness, his vision went blurry and started to go black around the edges.

"Cissa, would you mind so much if I spent the night?" Harry asked, and his voice slurred in places.

"Are you ok?" She questioned worried,

"Yeah, I'm fine," He waved her off, holding his arms out for balance, "I'm just going to pass out now, so don't mind me." And with that his eyes rolled back and he collapsed, it was only the fact that Tom was waiting for him to drop that he didn't hit the floor.

"Honestly, he does not listen to anyone's advice." Tom muttered, rolling his eyes as he conjured a couch and led Harry on it.

"Is he ok, My Lord?"

"It is merely because he had overtaxed himself. He has recently suffered two bouts of magical exhaustion within a number of days and today he has used the timeturner at least 3 times and he hasn't slept in between. He thought it best to flush his system with pepper up." Tom explained, shaking his head.

"Oh my," Narcissa murmured, "That is not good for his system."

"Try explaining that fact to him." Tom said, "He has absolutely no regard for his personal safety or health whatsoever, and yet he throws his entire attentions in to protecting others."

"He is a mystery, My Lord," Lucius said, "He knows he is dangerous and he is as dark as they come, and yet he is
 different."

"His entire group reminds me of the elite, the way in which they coordinate together and their power and talents, and yet Harry still protects them all. He is a puzzle."

"And what he has done for the wolves, Lucius, if you could see it." Narcissa shook her head, "I cannot put it in to words."

"I swear he enjoys making questions." Tom sighed, "Now, Lucius, you were speaking about Hadrian Greengrass."

"He is like a man possessed, My Lord. He received a tip off and he has been tearing in to court transcripts ever since, he completely dropped his inquiry in to Dumbledore's latest legislation to put his efforts in to this." Lucius explained, "There was no warning either."

"What year is he looking in to?" Tom asked, his mind working quickly.

"The year of your disappearance, My Lord."

"He is investigating the missing trial of one Sirius Black." Tom stated, not doubting his words. It made sense, if Harry was communicating with Hadrian Greengrass there would be no one better than he to be put on the trail of Sirius Black's missing trial.

"That did not occur to me, My Lord," Lucius admitted, "But now you have said it, it makes sense as Mr Potter-Black is in communication with Hadrian."

"I will ask him about it tomorrow to confirm it." Tom said, "However, I am sure that is what Hadrian is searching for."

"Is there anything you wish of me, My Lord?" Lucius asked and Tom shook his head,

"Nothing as of yet, but continue your work within the ministry as per usual." Tom said rising to his feet, "Do not worry about housing him, I shall take him back to the castle so he does not have to relive the day before he even starts it again." Tom flicked his wand and levitated Harry over to him, he took hold of the teen and apperated away. He smirked at Harry's aversion to apperation even while unconscious, he went to put Harry down but the teen did not want to let go of him and Tom rolled his eyes. His business was finished for the day so he wasn't opposed to some extra hours of sleep, not that he had much of a choice by the vice like grip Harry had him in.

"Impossible," He muttered, flicking his wand to change them both and with difficulty got in to bed.


"How the hell did I end up here?" Harry murmured, his voice muffled as he had not moved from where he was curled in to Tom.

"It may have something to do with you refusing to let go of me while unconscious." Tom told him amused and his amusement only grew when he saw Harry's cheeks flush.

"I did no such thing." He denied while internally cursing himself.

"Is that so? And what, do you suppose, happened instead?" Tom drawled,

"You got lonely and decided to steal lil ol' me." Harry stated with a sure nod, Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Really?"

"Uhuh,"

"I decided to steal you, did I?"

"Yep. Sounds like something an evil Dark Lord would do." Harry said surely.

"Indeed,"

"What time is it? I feel like I have slept for hours."

"You have, it is approaching 8am." Tom told him,

"Huh, well at least I'm fully recovered now." Harry said, sitting up and stretching.

"You should have rested yourself fully yesterday." Tom said and Harry shrugged,

"Meh, I'm alive."

Tom rolled his eyes and refrained from physically hitting Harry across the head, instead, he got up and headed for the shower.

"I'm not catching you the next time you collapse." Tom informed him,

"Awh what? That's a bit unfair." Harry cried, grinning.

"Get ready golden boy, you have things to do." Tom called and Harry scowled at the door.

"I hate you."

Harry called his elf for his clothes and books while the castle provided another shower for him to freshen up, he felt tons better than he did before and he reminded himself not to take too many pepper ups in one day. Harry cast his glamour and headed out, he picked up his bag and waved to Tom as he went to live a joyous day as Harry Potter: the golden boy of Gryffindor. It was tiring, going through the same boring things day in when he knew he could do so much better than what he was allowed. The confrontation with Dumbledore was approaching if they kept to their timeline and that was the only thing stopping Harry completely losing his mind, that and he had Tom to vent his frustrations on. He was happy to see Luna already in his rooms when he returned and he dropped down in to his chair.

"Hey Ray," He greeted,

"You should have rested yesterday." She stated and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I am aware."

"Just so you know." She quipped and Harry shook his head with a slight smile.

"Yeah yeah. I'm sure you want to know how everything went." Harry said,

"He accepted,"

"Of course he accepted, but before that we had a conversation and I introduced him to Moony." Harry said and her eyes widened.

"How did he take it?"

"There was a bit of a revelation actually." Harry said to her, "Turns out that John Lupin wasn't as wonderful as he was made out to be, and Remus took it hard. I've left him with Greyback because they needed to bond or whatever packmates do."

"Did it take much to convince Greyback?"

"Quite a lot actually, he couldn't seem to understand that I didn't want anything in return. And it was only after we had been through the entire manor did he understand that I wanted nothing." Harry told her, "After that, I was welcomed in to his pack."

"You really pulled it off."

"And I have Narcissa on board for the infirmary, you and Ellen will meet her and she will be available."

"Brilliant. Are you intending to go to Ellen today?" Luna asked,

"Yes, I am going to change and leave. I merely wished to check in with you." Harry answered,

"Thank you,"

"Did everything go ok within the manor yesterday?"

"Snake, I know you told us that it big and that you had it done, but it was immense." She gushed, "It was more than I could have ever imagined."

"It will be good for the wolves, I am hoping that Greyback would have already began spreading the word."

"No doubt he would have." Luna said surely, "He wants his pack safe."

"Are you going to go over to the manor?"

"Yes, I'm already there." Luna said, "I'm going to be living there with Paws."

"Make sure you sleep enough, and please be careful." Harry said and she nodded,

"Don't worry about me. You need to work on looking after yourself." Luna stated looking at him sternly, Harry rolled his eyes.

"I will be fine," Harry got up and stretched, "Honestly, you should stop worrying."

"I'll stop worrying when this is over."

"Yeah, me too." He sighed. Harry went up to his room and changed his clothes, he grabbed a black cloak and went back down to the living room. "I'm going, I'm hoping to get Ellen at the manor tonight."

"Be careful." She warned, Harry kissed her cheek and vanished in to the shadows, landing in Knockturn Alley. He kept to the shadows and observed, there was something off about the alley, more so than usual, and his eyes darted around. He moved silently toward Ellen's store when he saw them, there was a group of people that stood out to him. They were heading in the same direction as he was and Harry used his shadows to get closer to them and listen to their hushed whispering.

"It's been marked," One of them hissed, "It's the one on the corner, and it can't be shut down."

"It's getting its funding from somewhere." Another said, "We haven't been able to track the investor, and the clearance that Madam Umbridge gave us has been wiped since Greengrass took the job." Harry felt his blood run cold when he heard Umbridge's name, these were part of the WPP, and the only place they would be interested in down in Knockturn would be Ellen's, and there was no way they were going to get her. Harry vanished and appeared directly in to Ellen's store and rushed through to the back, he followed the sounds down to her potions lab and Ellen span around in shock to face him.

"Harry!"

"Hey," He greeted, "We need to leave."

"What?" She exclaimed in shock, "What do you mean, leave?"

"Exactly what it sounds like." Harry said, "They're about to hit your shop, the scum from the WPP." Her eyes widened in horror.

"What am I going to do? Everything is here, the wolves rely on me to heal them. I can't leave them."

"Ellen, you have to come with me. They will kill you if you stay here, and I know the wards are strong, Merlin knows I paid for the best, but they will get in eventually. There are just too many of them." Harry implored,

"But I am the only one that can help them, without me the wolves would be left untreated and the death rate will go up so high." She shook her head furiously, "If only the rumours were true."

"You need to shut down the wards now, they're nearly here."

"Right," She went in to a dark room and splashed blood on the ward stone and the wards flared to life, Harry had to admit that he was very impressed with their strength, and it might buy them some extra time to pack all of the needed stuff.

"Rumours?" Harry asked,

"There is talk among the wolves about some 'sanctuary' which is being open for wolves only, a safe haven for all of us to go." She explained rolling her eyes, her voice was filled with derision as she spoke and she completely missed Harry's huge grin.

"You've heard them, then? I didn't think they would move this quickly." He questioned lightly, already packing her ingredients away in conjured cases.

"What do you mean?" She looked at him and Harry smiled.

"What did I swear to do when you handed me the wolf cases?" Harry said with a raised eyebrow and Ellen gaped.

"You can't mean-,"

"That this sanctuary is the real deal? That is exactly what I mean."

"But the amount of money and land you would need
" She shook her head, "That shouldn't be possible."

"It's already done and I have people who will be working with you if you agree to run it." Harry said looking at her pointedly,

"Wait, you mean you didn't come to stop the attack?"

"No, I only noticed them when I got here. I would have been coming for you anyway. I swore I would fix this, and this is what I have." Harry said softly, and then winced when he felt the wards shake, "And right now we have to get all of your things packed because the wards are going to be coming down soon." Ellen went around in a mad rush packing everything in to the trunks Harry was conjuring for her to use, the main thing was her books where she had created potions to help and heal the wolves, and Harry made sure to protect that trunk more than anything as he shrunk them all down and put them in his pockets. He felt the wards begin to a fray and cursed, Ellen was about to rush to pack her own clothes but the wards snapped and Harry grabbed her and shadowed them out just as he heard multiple screams of Bombarda Maxima. He fell out of the shadows in the entrance hall of the manor, a shard of glass sticking out of his collar and he groaned.

"Ow!"

"You just saved my life." Ellen gasped, shocked, "They weren't even going to take me it."

"I told you, they're scum." Harry stated.

"What is this place?" Ellen asked, looking around in awe.

"This, my dear Ellen, is the Werewolf sanctuary." Harry told her,

"You've used a pureblood manor as a sanctuary?" She murmured, stunned.

"Yep, my pureblood manor actually. Come on, let's get to the infirmary and you can watch as my sister, who will be helping with the healing and looking after the cubs, yells at me." Harry said brightly.

"People have already volunteered to help?"

"Yes, you have two in the infirmary. An upcoming potions master who will be at your disposal, along with two who know their potions and will also be helping in anything that you need. I have two here to help teach the cubs and general running of the place, one running the greenhouse and two more for anything they're needed in. And of course, me!" Harry explained,

"But how are the wolves going to get here?"

"Greyback is already spreading the word and Moony was the one who started the rumours. They've got portkeys that will bring the wolves to the ball room, I'll show it to you in a minute, it's the check in room and I think Moony is there to check in any wolves that have arrived earlier than expected." Harry told her,

"I thought you said that Moony was out spreading the word."

"Yes, he is. However, he has a timeturner, so he is currently doing both." Harry said and Ellen blinked.

"So you have Alpha on board?"

"Yes, can you not smell him? He was here yesterday." Harry said and Ellen inhaled deeply,

"I can." She realised, "That must be why Drew was called. Alpha said it was crucial to Pack survival."

"Probably," Harry agreed. They arrived in the infirmary and Harry was surprised to see both Luna and Narcissa there, and they were working over books on werewolf anatomy. They looked around at his entry and both of them seemed to zero in on his injury, it might have something to do with the fact that there was a piece of glass sticking out of his shoulder, he knew better than take it out.

"What happened?" Luna demanded, "I am pretty sure I would have told you to be careful before you left this evening."

"I was careful!" Harry defended, "The thing that the Eaters has heard rumours about, you know, that thing building in Knockturn? Turns out that the WPP was hitting Ellen's shop tonight and they were on the move when I got there. We were lucky, I had already commissioned wards for the place or it wouldn't only have been this injury. We got out just as they blew the place." Harry shrugged and then cursed viciously.

"Stand still," Narcissa ordered. She carefully extracted the shard as Luna siphoned off the excess blood, and then with a wave of her wand the wound healed over without a scar, leaving the area merely red. "There,"

"I thank you, my Lady." He swiftly kissed her hand, and she smiled slightly,

"You and your charm." She muttered,

"But of course. Now, where are my manners?" He straightened up and brought Ellen over, who seemed to be too shocked to speak.

"Ladies, allow me to introduce the wonderful Ellen. Ellen, please let me introduce the beautiful Lady Narcissa Malfoy and my wonderful sister, Luna Lovegood."

"Very nice to meet you." Ellen said, finding her voice.

"And you, Harry has spoken highly of you." Narcissa said graciously,

"These are the two who I said would be helping in the infirmary," Harry said, "Narcissa is the best healer around, and Luna is an upcoming healer."

"You broke impossible, didn't you?" Ellen asked Harry rhetorically, she turned to the two ladies, "I cannot thank you enough for this."

"Now, we got everything out didn't we?"

"Everything except my clothes, I didn't have time to get them." Ellen said and Harry blinked,

"Oh! Well, that won't do. Mippy?" He called, trying to remember the name of the elf he wanted. An unfamiliar elf popped in and bowed to him,

"What cans Mippy bes doing for Master Harry?"

"Do you take care of tailoring?" He asked and she nodded her head.

"Mippy is being in charge of everything for serving, master." She answered and Harry smiled.

"Wonderful. As I am sure you have been told by Nip, things are set to become very busy here soon. And this lovely lady here is going to be in charge with Moony. Now, I want her to have a personal elf, possibly one who has been working within the infirmary before as that will be her main place. I also want you to make sure that all of her sizes have been taken and I want a full wardrobe to be commissioned, everything that she wants done I want made and it will be taken out of the Peverell vault. Can you see to that?" Harry completely ignored Ellen's spluttering and her insisting that it was too much by focussing on the elf who was looking delighted and nodding happily.

"Mippy cans be doing that, sir."

"Good, now can you make sure that all of her things are taken and set up within the Queen suit please?"

"Right away, master." Mippy popped out, taking the shrunken trunks that Harry handed to her and he finally turned back to a gaping Ellen.

"What did you just do?" She whispered and Harry blinked,

"Nothing,"

"But – you – I," She stuttered and Harry smiled brightly,

"Come, let me show you around so you know where everything is and then you can settle in to your room before getting acquainted with everything. We'll start with the labs as they're closest, before moving on to the lands and then back in to the manor." Harry said, leading her out, "I will see you both soon." He called to Narcissa and Luna, and left. He took Ellen down to the labs and pointed out the one Draco had claimed as his own,

"I'll send Bleach over to help you stock up on all of the potions you'll need and you can have whatever space you need." Harry said,

"Ok, I'm going to be here for a while. If this place is open to all wolves then I'm going to need loads of potions."

"Don't worry about that. With you, Bleach, Manic and Panic it shouldn't take too long. And if needed, Bleach, Manic and Panic can be here twice."

"That is going to be strange." Ellen muttered and Harry grinned,

"You'll get used to it." He assured her, "Now, I'm only going to take you to the south point so you can see the overview of the lands."

"Right,"

Harry vanished them within the shadows and they appeared outside, Ellen gasped as she looked out to the stretches of land.

"What's yours?"

"Everything you see comes with the manor, which means everything you see is now part of the Sanctuary. The entire perimeter is warded only to allow wolves in, and those I have personally selected." He explained, "That means you all will be perfectly safe because even on the off change they find this place they will never get in, and then, if they do, which I doubt highly, me and mine will be here and we are enough to hold them off so I can slam up the main wards again."

"You have outdone yourself." She murmured, "This is beyond anything I could have ever hoped for."

"This is the best I could offer. Everything you and your people could need will be given to you here, the elves are under instructions to obey you and Moony and to give those staying here anything they want as long it doesn't harm me or mine, of course. The manor, as you will see in a moment, has 32 guest suits, which, according to Greyback, could fit families and not just individual people like I had intended. There are also 18 outbuildings scattered around the lands to hold those who are used to or have missed living inside. Everything has been warded and is cub proof meaning they can run wild and not be in fear of falling of a balcony or getting in to places they shouldn't. You'll have to be keyed in to the 'staff' wards and you'll have your own study to work in, and I know Moony wants to go through things with you, because he has had more time to plan things and if you are both running this then you'll need to work together." Harry told her and then added, "You will help run this, right?"

"What? Of course I will!" She exclaimed, "Harry, I don't think you understand what you have done. This – this is something I cannot even put in to words. This will save the werewolf population within this country and if the word spreads then you may have foreign wolves coming to seek safety. I can't believe this." She threw her arms around him and Harry stumbled slightly, her repeated thank you's muffled in his cloak.

"You are completely welcome." Ha said, "Wanna see the rest?" she nodded in to his shoulder and he laughed slightly, they moved through the shadows and Harry started with the master study where he took a bit of her blood to key her in to the wards, the only reason she got in was because she was him and he was a walking override. He walked her around to the queen study where Mippy had set her journals on the book cases along with a few of the books, and Harry smiled.

"Well, this one is yours." He said, "You have to invite anyone in if they want access, unless they are keyed in to the staff wards." Ellen nodded to show she understood and they moved on to the training room, where Swift and Venom were duelling furiously, and Harry laughed.

"This is Swift and Venom, they'll be available to help when needed, and, as you can see, they are very apt in the art of duelling so they could teach fighting. I know that they are trained in hand to hand too, I made sure Swift was and Venom is an assassin." Harry said,

"Wow, they look really good."

"They are," Harry agreed. He showed her the bathrooms, the multipurpose room and she fell in love with the den.

"Awe, this is perfect." She cooed and Harry grinned,

"I have my moments," He joked. He showed her the library and dragged her away when she stopped gaping, they only seen one of the guest rooms because they were practically the same and she agreed with Greyback.

"Alpha was right, these are huge." She exclaimed, looking at them wide eyed.

"They came like them, so I left them." Harry shrugged, "Come on," He showed her the 'staff' floor and what rooms had already been taken, and then he led her to her room. "Tah dah,"

"This is my room."

"Yep, what do you think?"

"I think that you are out of your mind." She stated, walking in to the huge room. Just like the rest of the manor, it was decked in the Peverell colours and this room was done in shades of purple with spats of black within it. The carpet was a fluffy, rich, royal purple, while the walls were a deep plum. There were two huge windows that framed the massive four poster bed, the drapes surrounding the bed were a purple mesh artistically twisted around the ebony frame. All the wood furniture was ebony and the two doors leading to the bath room and the dressing room matched that, the sofa, which was placed in front of the black marble fireplace, was of a deep purple. The bathroom was done in black tile and clear glass and there was a large mirror on the opposite wall making it look larger.

"So, do you like it?" Harry asked when they were back in the bedroom.

"This is fantastic." She said, "I think I'm in shock."

"Well, we haven't quite finished just yet. We have to see the main floor and I think Moony is in the ball room, which is where we'll finish." Harry said. Harry showed her the opposite staircase and then led her around the main floor. He showed her the class room, the common room, the time out room and then the dining room.

"As you can see, there are many littler tables for people to come and eat. I am not sure how Moony intends to run the food, but I do know that there will be food available for everyone." Harry said and Ellen smiled.

"I think that will be the biggest shock, being able to eat a meal, a proper meal." She murmured looking around, and, unnoticed to her, Harry's fist clenched at that simple thought.

"Final room is the ball room, it's the check in room." Harry said, pushing back his anger. He led her around and found the ball room doors open, Moony was bustling about organising things and he had chosen a long table at the very end to set up a book and a basket.

"Hey Moony," Harry called as he walked in.

"Hey Cub," He returned and then smiled at Ellen. "You are Moonrise,"

"Yes, I assume that you are Harry's uncle, he speaks highly of you." Ellen said, "You are also the lost cub that has been found,"

"Huh, that's a popular rumour." Remus chuckled, "I think Alpha has been spreading that around as much as the sanctuary."

"Can I leave you two to get on with it? I have to get back and inform Tom and the others of today's outcome." Harry said and the pair nodded,

"We'll be fine, Cub. You go." Moony waved him off and Harry grinned,

"Thanks, see you soon." Harry used the shadows and vanished before them. Ellen was still looking around the room in shock and Moony smiled slightly.

"It is pretty unbelievable, isn't it?" He said quietly, and she released a shout of laughter.

"Unbelievable?" She repeated, "He doesn't understand, he doesn't know just what he has done."

"No, Harry has a very different outlook on the world. Things that most would consider too much or too extravagant do not register to him, and it shows with this. This, to him, is what needed to be done, not more that could have been done." Remus told her and she snorted,

"Why am I not surprised? I mean, when he came to me and said he was going to invest, I expected a start up of a couple of galleons. What did I get? 10,000 galleons every month, which he doubled since the last time I saw him." Ellen shook her head and Remus grinned,

"Did he replace your wardrobe too?" He asked and Ellen nodded,

"Full wardrobe, no arguments," She confirmed,

"Yeah, that's Harry." Remus shrugged, "Right, want to get down to business? No one has arrived yet, but Alpha did tell them to pack up and wait the night if they could before coming."

"So tomorrow we should expect some wolves?"

"Yes, now, what I've done here-," He led her over to the table, "Is, I have got a book which will log all wolves that we check in alphabetically so we can find them if its needed. It will also link those who are in smaller family packs together so we know which cubs belong which which family. So, one of us will write them in and the book with sort and order it."

"Impressive," She nodded, "Have you got a rota on where the wolves will be going?"

"I was thinking that we could ask what they would prefer and once we've worked out if they're indoor or outdoor we could work around that."

"Ok, and there is much more inside space as the rooms here are big enough to hold family packs." Ellen said, "I think there will be quite a few packs that want to stay outside."

"Yes, and they can set up wherever they want. I think there is enough land." He joked.

"Definitely,"

"Now, I've sorted the food with the elves and the best way I can organise it would be in Hogwarts style. I've had another large table bought and the food will be brought up and everyone can help themselves, that way, the food can stay up for a few hours and it doesn't matter if people miss the 'breakfast' times. We'll do breakfast 6:30 till 11, then from 11:30 until 2 we'll do sandwiches and lunch, from 2:30 until 4 we'll do snacks such as cakes, biscuits and other such things, from 4:30 until 7 we'll do dinner, from 7:30 until 11 we'll do light snacks such as biscuits and hot drinks. All through the day they'll be drinks available, milk, water, juices, hot drinks and other things that the elves can come up with. We'll do special menus on certain days, and we'll have a 4 week menu that we'll rotate." Remus told her and Ellen looked impressed.

"You've really thought this out."

"I know what I have missed when I've been staying with some packs and this was the best I could come up with so that no one goes hungry." Remus shrugged, "Of course, there are going to be those who are not comfortable in this setting, so I was going to set up something outside where they could still get food."

"Eventually, everyone will be comfortable being inside again."

"That's the plan."

"Do you know everyone who is going to be helping?" Ellen asked,

"Yes, the book was given to me by Paws. I gave her the idea and she made it, all I have to do a tap my want on the book and it will find what I want."

"They are good people then?" She inquired, biting her lip in worry.

"The best you will ever meet." Remus stated,

"I still can't believe what he has done, this entire thing, I'm overwhelmed."

"I know, its more than anything you would have ever imagined." Remus said, " I know I felt the same way when he showed it to me."

"It is. Ok, so I have potions to make as an outline for tomorrow, I think I shall be getting on with that." Ellen decided,

"Bleach and the twins arrived about 10 minutes ago, so they will be able to help you make the potions. That way, we can have a stock going."

"Right, how advanced can they brew?"

"I am pretty sure that Bleach, at least, will be able to tackle anything you throw at him."

"Ok, this is good, I'll just go get my things."

"Call an elf, they'll bring it to you."

"I'll have to remember that." She muttered and left the room, Remus laughed,

"You have definitely outdone yourself, Cub."

Chapter 28

Notes:

It's my birthday so tradition tells me I have to update at least 1 story!

I'm not J.K but the plot is mine :)

Un'Beta'd

Snake - Harry
Paws - Hermione
Swift - Ron
Raven - Luna
Bleach - Draco
Venom - Blaise
Manic - Fred
Panic - George

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 28:

"You can call of your elite from finding out what the WPP wanted in Knockturn," Harry told Tom, walking in to his rooms.

"Oh? And what were they after?" Tom asked, and Harry nearly grinned at the fact that the man just knew he had found out.

"They were planning on hitting Ellen's shop." Harry informed him,

"I swear you attract trouble." Tom sighed shaking his head,

"Excuse me?"

"You walked in to the middle of the attack, did you not?" Tom said and Harry pouted,

"I hate you,"

"I know."

"Anyway, I got Ellen out just as they blew the place up. She's settled in to the sanctuary with Moony, Luna and Cissa."

"You can finally sit back and stop worrying about the wolves." Tom said and Harry grinned somewhat sheepishly.

"Not quite, I just have one more thing to do before I will stop worrying." Harry told him, Tom raised a questioning eyebrow and Harry ran a hand through his hair. "I know of a place where some wolves are residing, once I get them portkeys then I will stop."

"You continue to astound me." Tom muttered and Harry grinned,

"What can I say, it's a talent."

"What are you going to be focussing your attentions on now?" Tom asked and Harry thought for a second.

"I will still continue to monitor the wolves, I want to make sure that everything is running smoothly, but I can turn back to my research, taking out targets and avoiding Dumbledore. I also have to prepare for the backlash of the next article." Harry said to him, "Dumbledore has been searching for Rita and, while I know she won't be found, I know that Dumbledore will not react well to the next article. It cuts way to close to home for him not to, and its going to land on me."

"Is his anger going to be so much that you need to worry?"

"I cannot tell, all I know is that he is not going to like it." Harry shrugged,

"Do you have a follow up?"

"Not immediately no, I need to see how he and the public react to this final blow before moving on." Harry said,

"I see." Tom murmured, "I spoke to Lucius about the ministry and its movements, you have set Hadrian Greengrass on Sirius Black's missing trial."

"I have, I was supposed to inform you of it as not to cause any confusion." Harry said, "Hadrian was going after Dumbledore, and, while I understood why, Dumbledore is in a position where he would have removed the problem instead of trying to smother it."

"You are
 protecting him?" Tom said slowly, a trace of confusion in his voice.

"Yes,"

"Why?"

"I do not fully understand why, only that I've decided to like Hadrian Greengrass and I protect those that I like." Harry said, he tilted his head, "Don't ask me to understand because I can't, that is but another thing Luna is there for."

"She is there to help you understand?"

"Something like that, she is there to ground me. She
 I can't even explain because I don't even know what it is. I just know that I miss things, things that I should know but don't." Harry sighed, "I'm weird ok,"

"You do not need to inform me of your abnormalities, Harry, they have become increasingly clear, and yet I find myself fascinated." Tom admitted and Harry smiled.

"You'll work me out when I work you out, so I think we're somewhat matched." He said and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Oh?"

"Come on! You have to know that you're like, the most fascinating person on the planet, right? I mean, you're a genius in every sense of the word, your mind is something that cannot possibly be explained and your ambition and cunning are unparalleled." Harry shook his head, "And now I feel the need to kill something and smear blood on me to prove not everything is going strange."

"Yes, that was
 odd, for lack of a better word. When do you plan on meeting with your friends?"

"Tomorrow if possible, I plan on spending some hours for myself for the rest of the night and then sleeping. It seems my body does not like being overworked." Harry said, glad they were moving past whatever just happened. He was confused at the feeling he got when he realised that Tom found him fascinating, he couldn't place it and he couldn't be bothered to either so he pushed it away and continued their talk.

"I am meeting with my Elite the evening after, you are welcome to join me if you wish." Tom told him, "Lucius believes that Dumbledore's bill will be pushed through."

"Oh wonderful, he is going to highlight the fact that he's a complete fuck up to the rest of the world." Harry mock cheered, "I think I shall join you, I want to observe Bella."

"Very well," Tom allowed, "How did Narcissa take to the manor?"

"I think I will have to send Lucius a particularly nice bottle of whiskey because he may have lost his wife. She was already over there discussing things with Luna when I went there with Ellen, and I know that she is eager to begin." Harry said with a smirk, "I believe that there will be a massive influx of timeturner use over the coming months. I know Moony, Luna and Paws, at least, are living each day twice, Moony three times because I don't believe he will be giving up his work in the Gryffindor rooms either."

"It will make a change for it not to be you. Of course, you will end up using yours just as much, if not more." Tom stated and Harry shrugged sheepishly.

"Well
 there are things to be done and I know that most of the time you live the day twice to keep the Death Eaters in line."

"You are correct, I found it easier to concentrate on all DE work within the study at Malfoy Manor. As much as I trust the castle, the fact that Dumbledore has his hand in her wards still leaves me on edge."

"That is what I will be looking in to now I have time. Did Moony tell you about the strange ward?" Harry asked and Tom nodded,

"The one that keeps disappearing and reappearing? Yes, it is most unusual."

"I know, but I will find out what it is eventually. Unfortunately, I have very little time even with the time turner. I have plans to start my trip in to the ministry legislations that I don't like too, it is something that I am not looking forward to." Harry ran his hand through his hair. "I understand the phrase: Ignorance is bliss."

"Yes, and unfortunately for you 'bliss' has been shattered." Tom commented dryly, Harry mock glowered at him.

"I can't even blame you." Harry sighed, "I can't wait until Dumbledore is dead, I think I'm going to take a nice long vacation."

"You know, that does sound like a brilliant idea." Tom agreed, "Somewhere isolated." They both sat their imagining the peace and then Harry shook his head,

"I'm going to relax for the night before I throw myself back in to everything tomorrow." Harry said pulling himself up, "Merlin knows I need it,"

"Remember to keep an eye out for the old man, he's left you alone for a while." Tom said and Harry nodded before leaving with a wave.

He took himself to his rooms where Luna curled up reading, he flashed a smile as he went to change and grab the map, then he left again. The seventh floor was clear and he asked the RoR for his training room, he was pleased to see the same one appear again and sealed the door as he entered. He started off by doing laps around the track, gradually speeding up until he was sprinting. Harry moved on to doing stretches, press ups, sit ups and pull ups and then he took to the weights, the physical work out allowed his mind to fade in to the rhythm of his movements. He did another round of sit ups so he could keep his mid section toned and in shape, Harry rolled up and took a brief water break before moving on to fighting. The RoR was something that he didn't think he would ever understand, some of the things that it, or rather she, created should not be possible, but he wasn't going to complain as he needed them.

He stepped up to the dummy and began a low level fight, he used all of the techniques he had picked up, Harry had never been formally trained in any type of fighting but he knew he was fast and he used that to his advantage. Of course, he had also been involved in many different things and had picked up on many differed styles of martial arts that he meshed together and, thanks to his delightful family, boxing. He practiced fighting for balance and stamina, because he had yet to be in need to actually use his physical strength, that wasn't to say he didn't use it just that he didn't need it. Once he had beaten the dummy he moved on to his magical training, as he did before, he duelled multiple dummies with just light magic, then with just dark magic and then finally he reset them and poured everything in to the duel. He did so love to duel, the twist and turns, the ducks and the dodging and, despite the fact that he had taken multiple hits and was now littered in cuts and bruises, he loved it. Harry finished it with a cutter to the jugular and, unlike last time, he didn't collapse and he was pleased to note that his stamina was being built up again.

He took another water break and a five minute rest to catch his breath, he had already, unknowingly, been training for over two hours and so he figured he deserved it; he would make it bi-daily thing. Once he was calm again, Harry did once more set of push ups, sit ups and pull ups, and he hit the track a final time before he shadows back to his rooms. Luckily, Luna was there to heal him as he was losing more blood than he first thought, the blond merely rolled her eyes as she healed him and then pushed him up to shower.

"Honestly," Harry muttered, "You would think I didn't know how to look after myself."

"You don't, not properly anyway." Luna called after him and Harry rolled his eyes. He relaxed in the shower and sighed when he felt himself loosen from the tense position he had been in for the past few days. He grabbed a pair of joggers and a top to wear, threw it on with a pair of socks and made his way to the kitchen.

"Do you fancy anything in particular to eat?" Harry asked Luna,

"Pasta," She said after a moment thought, "The rest, surprise me."

"Gladly," Harry called Winky to get him some ingredients and went about preparing their food, the meticulous movements came naturally to him and Luna wandered over to sit at the bar.

"So, what's for dinner?" She inquired and Harry smiled,

"Spaghetti Bolognese, with garlic bread." He answered and her eyes lit up.

"One of my favourites,"

"Of course, and a white chocolate and raspberry cheese cake for desert."

"Oh you do know how to sweeten me up." Luna said, pleased and Harry grinned.

"I may have learned some tips, yes." Harry agreed. He tapped the cheesecake tin to cool the base before adding the topping and setting it aside to set, he made sure to check the cooling charm on it every now and then so it didn't melt. He turned back to his Bolognese and added tomatoes and chopped herbs to the cooks meat, fried off onions and garlic, he stirred it before putting the lid on the pan and allowing it to simmer. The pasta was put in to boiling water to and left to cook as Harry stirred it occasionally, and his attentions turned to the garlic bread.

He didn't have time to make bread from scratch, and so he made garlic butter instead and spread it on to a sliced baguette before putting it in to the oven. Harry checked the cheesecake and strengthened the cooling charms, he picked up the raspberries and separated them, some he placed on the now semi solid top of the cheesecake, the others he began to crush and mix with icing sugar until it was nearing a sweet syrup. Once that was done he turned back to his Bolognese and checked it was ready. Harry grabbed two pasta dishes and filled them with spaghetti, then he dished out the Bolognese on top before covering it with grated cheese; he placed the garlic bread on a side plate.

"Bon appétit," Harry said with a flourish,

"I love you," Luna stated with a happy sigh, "You can cook and make my clothes, it's the full package."

"So you choose my lease useful skills to highlight." Harry joked, grabbing a fork.

"They are not the least useful at all." Luna chided, "I'll have you know that both, at your level, are very rare."

"I suppose. And to think, I owe it to them." Harry looked disgusted at the thought.

"Let's not think about that." Luna said, wrinkling her nose.

"Agreed," Harry nodded, "Although, now you mention it
 I was thinking about a dress for one of the balls. If I could sketch it out, it might be something."

"Wonderful." Luna said brightly, "I do love looking at your creations. I've been making a few of my own."

"We can look at them tonight, I'm all yours."

"Perfect."

They finished their main course and then Harry handed out slices of cheesecake and syrup, Luna repeated how much she loved him and Harry laughed at her sugar induced bliss. Winky came in for their plates, pots and pans, and she would not hear anything about Harry cleaning up.

"Yous bes cooking, Master, yous bes letting Winky clean up." She ordered shaking her fist. Harry stepped back with his hands raised in defence, she nodded firmly and popped away taking everything with her. Harry looked at Luna wide eyed, the girl was laughing helplessly at his predicament and Harry shuddered.

"I just told off by my house elf." He said stunned, "She just yelled at me," he sounded so shocked that that it renewed Luna's giggles.

"You actually looked scared." She gasped, "You've faced down the Dark Lord with a smile on your face, but it comes to a house elf and you're terrified."

"Did you see her, she shook her fist at me." Harry exclaimed in his defence, "You can't argue with a fist."

"Oh Merlin," She shook her head still grinning,

"So as I'm not cleaning now, let us get on to our work." Harry said. Luna darted up to their room and came back with two scrap books, she threw the green one with patterns and bits of material sticking out at Harry and kept her own blue one with her. Harry grinned and opened his book, he flicked to a fresh page and took out his wand, holding it like a pencil, tip down, he began sketched away with Luna doing the same; they had many things to catch up on.

"As you know, I've been fishing." Luna spoke quietly, "I've congregated the information on Fudge with the things found with Flamel and they are filed and ready. I've been digging around on many of the ministry employees, those high paid high sprung idiots who believe they rule the world and have found many dark secrets that they will not want coming out."

"Do share," Harry said, interested.

"They range from taking bribes, making things disappear, pilfering and even the occasional torture. I know that the reason Scrimgeour's record for information is so high is because he tortures his suspects. I know that Dawlish abuses his position and tends to get more hands on when it comes to arresting them. Tonks is leaking information back to Dumbledore as is Kingsley, but we knew this. The new recruits are riddled with Dark Marks and I think the only person who didn't have anything bad in their name was Bones, but she's no longer with us." Luna told him and Harry smirked.

"Well, the auror department needs to tread carefully." Harry mused and Luna mirrored his smirk.

"Definitely." She agreed, "I've also turned my attentions on the teachers here. When we finally take the school, we are going to need to clean house and so I thought dirt would be needed."

"Now this I'm interested in."

"It seems that many of the staff are actually teaching illegally." She said, "I've looked in to it and Dumbledore is responsible for all hired staff, the only way they go before the Board is if there are multiple complaints. Because of this, Dumbledore has been able to hire sub-par teachers and pay them less, taking the rest of the money for himself. Burbages, Trelawney, Hagrid, Vector and Binns are missing the required Mastery in their chosen subjects, and it is assumed that they have them because only Dumbledore has seen their credentials. This also means that all of these teachers owe him favours, and they have gotten their hands dirty in many things. Vector, while not an Arithmancy Mistress, has a nasty streak of charms and ruined the mind of Sally-Anne Peaks, you remember her?" Harry nodded and she continued, "It was because she discovered the truth. Burbages has kept the Muggle Studies course so far behind that its actually a danger to the Statute of Security, many come out believing that we still use horse and carriages."

"Oh dear Merlin! I can't believe they are teaching something that behind, I don't even see the point of the class. We're much better off without muggle influence anyway." Harry shook his head, his lip curling, "Of course, some people are going to need to go in to their world I suppose, so I guess the class, if taught properly, has merit."

"Hagrid, as you know, does whatever Dumbledore wants." Luna said and Harry nodded, it was unfortunate that Hagrid would have to go but the man was to wrapped up in Dumbledore, add to the fact that he would take one look at Tom and try to kill him without question.

"And Trelawney speaks for herself along with Binns." Harry added,

"The rest of the staff have their masteries and then some, Snape has Potions, Herbology and Defence, Sprout has Herbology and Potions, Babbling has Runes, McGonagall has double Transfiguration, Flitwick has Charms, Defence and Duelling and even Dumbledore has Defence and Transfiguration."

"What is Tom down for having?" Harry asked interested,

"Defence, Charms and Arithmancy," Luna said after a moments of thought.

"Wouldn't surprise me if that was true," Harry laughed, "I can't wait to see what masteries we can get."

"Of the school subjects I think you have Defence, Transfiguration, Charms, Creatures. Paws would have Charms, Runes, Transfiguration and maybe Defence. Swift would have Charms, Defence, Creatures and pushing Transfiguration. Bleach could have Potions, Charms, Herbology and perhaps Defence. Venom I'm not sure about, Defence and Charms for sure, but I haven't analysed him and Badger would get Herbology, Charms and Defence." Luna guessed and Harry made a note for future reference, he wrote his suggestions down and sealed it.

"What subjects are available outside school?" Harry questioned with interest. He flipped the page in his book and started his next design, and Luna tilted her head.

"I know there's warding, healing, duelling and spell craft, but I haven't really looked in to it." Luna said slowly.

"Duelling is mine," Harry said, "And if they allow dark spells then I'll attempt spell craft."

"Hopefully the entire curriculum would have changed before we take our masteries." Luna said, "The entire thing needs a reform,"

"I think Tom will make sure of it," Harry told her,

"I have noticed that he seems to like teaching." Luna hedged and Harry snorted,

"The man adores teaching, and it only gets better because its right under Dumbledore's abnormally crooked nose." Harry laughed,

"I cannot imagine why that would be a bonus at all."

"When it gets out that the Dark Lord was the teacher for this year, I really have to be near Dumbledore. Especially since Tom is on the list of favourite teachers." Harry said and Luna nodded,

"I do believe he is tying with Moony currently," Luna agreed. Harry looked over his page and grinned, he span it around and showed Luna.

"What do you think? For Hadrian's ball," Harry said, Luna looked it over and grinned,

"This is mine, right?"

"Of course," Harry said,

"Then I love it. Ice blue?"

"Yes, with a white lace back and diamonds for jewels."

"I would have to have my hair up or the back would be ruined." She mused looking the design over. It was a floor length gown with the back of the dress made up of an intricate lace design, it was long sleeved and the neck line was extremely high.

"Yes, but if I design you another one I'll make it so you can wear your hair down."

"Perhaps a one shoulder number?" Luna suggested and Harry tilted his head,

"Hm, that idea has merit. What have you gotten?"

Luna turned her book around and Harry's eyebrows rose, he looked over her book in awe and gently he took it from her hands and gazed at it.

"Ray
Luna, this is amazing." He breathed. It was a picture of a majestic white stag stood tall and proud under the light of the full moon, next to the stag was a fully grown grim with glowing eyes and the two were surrounded by a field of lilies. It was all done in black and white and underneath the sketch, in practiced calligraphy, was numquam oblivione delebitur.

"I know you were thinking of having another tattoo, and I knew you wanted a tribute, so I got thinking and this is the result." She explained and Harry nodded mutely.

"I love it." He told her sincerely.

"Good,"

"I know where to have it too." He said, handing her back the book, "And I'll have the twins looked it over and see if they can do it for me."

"I'm glad you like it."

"It's stunning."

"Just make sure the next dress it a show stopper." She said with a grin and Harry laughed,

"Anything for you,"


"Um excuse me?"

Harry gave a start as a small voice broke in to his haze, he was in the library 'working on his homework', he had decided that, as long as he wrapped a glamour around the book and all the pages then he would be safe. He knew that, even with the timeturner, he would be struggling with time, it was something he was willing to risk, especially seeing as it was only Arithmancy equations he was using. It wasn't a subject he was good at, he preferred to listen to his magic when it came to making spells and when he was playing, but he did have a grounding in the subject because both Paws, Raven and Bleach wouldn't have it any other way.

It was helping him out at the moment, he was searching for the numbers he needed that would allow a spell to sink in to one's subconscious, it was a break down of the base for Legilimency and he was meticulously copying it out so he could further his theory for the counter for Bella's curse. It was only the opening for the spell, but it was something and if he could get this done then it may help Tom. Harry doubted anyone else had noticed, but it was driving the Dark Lord absolutely insane that he could not get this counter for one of his most favoured and Harry didn't like the fact that Tom was stressing so much. He hadn't even realised he had been approached until the voice spoke and he turned to face one of the smallest humans he had ever seen.

"Are you a first year?" He asked, shocked, the girl was tiny and rather cute, in a 'awh' sort of way.

"Y-yes." She squeaked,

"You don't need to be scared, little one. I was just startled," Harry reassured and he was glad to see her shoulders relaxing a little.

"I've been told to give you this." She said, handing him over a scroll with a purple ribbon, Harry bit back a sigh and nodded with a small smile.

"Thank you," He cast a tempus and blinked at the time, "Its almost dinner, you had better run off back to your friends so you don't get caught in the crowds." She looked down at her feet and shuffled a little before looking back at him with a truly heartbreaking expression,

"I don't have any friends, the girls in my house are mean to me." She whispered and Harry felt this heart twinge, he looked her over and noticed the things he had seen on Luna when he first got to know her. The tense shoulders, hands curled and ready to defend, a helpless look in her eyes and she was holding herself too straight, Harry felt his own eyes narrow as he made his assessments. She was being bullied and he really hated bullies, he wasn't surprised to find that she was in Ravenclaw. While Flitwick was an excellent teacher and head of house, the students were smart enough to hide the evidence or scare their victims in to not telling. What Harry couldn't understand was why the girl was getting bullied, she was pretty enough for a tiny person, long dark hair, deep brown eyes and a heart shaped face. There was something about her though that was
 different, he couldn't put his finger on it, Harry knelt down brining himself down to her height and offered a gentle smile,

"What's your name, little one?"

"Alina,"

"Little noble one," Harry muttered and she smiled with a nod,

"Why are the other girls mean to you?" He asked and she shuffled her feet again, she seemed to be debating we herself before speaking,

"My mother is a Dark Elf," She relented and Harry blinked, that would explain it, her magic wasn't fully human.

"Is she!? That's interesting." He said and she looked up at him with wide eyes.

"Y-you don't think that makes me a freak?"

Harry released an involuntary hiss at that word and she flinched back, he took a deep breath and fixed his expression,

"Sorry, I just really don't like that word." He said soothingly, "You are not a freak, and anyone who tells you that is wrong. If anything, they are the freaks for being prejudice."

"They said that things like me shouldn't be around the normal people." She muttered and Harry's eyes flashed, "And when the older girls heard they agreed."

"Let me guess, Marietta Edgecombe and possibly Cho Chang?" He asked, biting back the anger that wanted to leak in to his tone, she looked at him wide eyed again.

"How did you know?"

"They did the exact same thing to my sister. She will be here now to make sure you're all healed up."

"Healed, what do you mean?" She said quickly, Harry merely raised an eyebrow.

"I would say that you have at least two fractured ribs and bruising elsewhere." He said and she looked stunned,

"But-but-,"

"Don't worry, it'll be our secret. They won't find out that I helped you from me, are you going to tell them?"

Alina rapidly shook her head and Harry smiled,

"Wonderful," He said, "Are they taking your things too?" Alina looked down at her feet and nodded, it was lucky she was looking down because Harry's expression went dark. He took another deep breath,

"Well, we can't be having that now, can we?" He said, he looked up when Luna entered the privacy bubble he had thrown up, she looked at the girl he was knelt before and her eyes light up in understanding. "Alina, little one, this is my sister, Luna." The little girl looked up and seemed astonished at Luna's presence, Luna gave her a smile and knelt next to Harry.

"I think I can make you feel a better." Luna said softly, "Here," She waved her wand and ran a diagnostic, Harry saw her eye twitch showing her displeasure before it was gone and she twirled her wand. She reached in to her robes and handed Alina three potions,

"These taste nasty, but they'll have you as good as new." Luna assured. Harry had to bite back his chuckle at her disgusted face, but she fully relaxed when the potions fully kicked in.

"Thank you," She said sincerely, and Harry waved her off.

"Don't mention it." He told her, he sent a pulse of magic that made her gasp and smiled, "This should keep most of the damage at bay, and if they give you more trouble, just come and find either of us. I'm usually here until dinner, and you can find Luna in the green houses or down by the lake." She nodded,

"Come on, I'll walk you to the great hall and make sure you get there ok." Luna suggested, "I'll see you later, Harry."

"Thanks Ray, bye little one."

Alina waved and followed Luna out of the library, Harry took another breath before pushing himself up off the floor and picking up the scroll. He knew who it was from as soon as he saw it and he fought to keep his sigh at bay, he really didn't want to be dealing with the old man today, especially as he was pissed over the bullying Alina was receiving. He dropped his head with a groan before getting it together, he knew that it was coming, he would just have to deal with it. Harry collected up his research and stuffed it in to his bag, he opened the scroll and saw that he was required in Dumbledore's office at 7pm, he could go to dinner and see the old man before meeting with his friends afterwards.

I've got to push our meeting back, Dumbledore is calling He told Swift and Paws,

Wonderful Swift grumbled, Do you think its about His Darkness?

More than likely, I doubt he'd be calling for anything else at the moment. He's on clean up isn't he.

That is true, Paws agreed, Which also means he's going to have a shorter fuse, you'll have to be flawless tonight, Snake.

I'll be fine. Pass on the message to Badger, I am sure Luna has Bleach and Venom, which means the twins will know too.

Got it,

He cut the connected and dragged himself to the great hall, it was at full capacity at the moment and Harry slunk to the end of the Gryffindor table to pick at his food. He thought about sticking his head in to Tom before he went, but then decided against it and decided just to drop by after his meeting with his friends. They had things to clear up, plus he would need to pass on the information to the Dark Lord afterwards anyway; Harry couldn't wait to see the man's reaction to the state of his beloved school; that should be fun.

Tom adored the castle and he had a strong belief in good education, Harry wondered why it always seemed to be him that brought bad news, honestly, he was seriously thinking about sending Luna. Then he thought about how that really wouldn't work out and sighed, it was left to him and with that morose thought he got up and left for his rooms. He dropped his bag down on his chair and moved to the kitchen, Winky popped in with some food for him and he sat and ate it gladly. It would be good when he could finally eat in the great hall with out the worry of being poisoned or dosed, he was pretty sure he had forgotten what that felt like. He cast a tempus and smiled slightly, he had time to finish his equation chain before he left for Dumbledore so he summoned his things and got back to work. Once he got in to a rhythm it was easier to develop, he made a few edits to the equation to manipulate it for his own needs, he changed the memories part in to open subconscious and he then added an extraction chain too.

That way the magic should, in theory, open up the subconscious fully and extract all the foreign magic before leaving the body. Harry jotted down the last chain just as his alarm went off alerting him that it was 6:55, he cursed and darted from the room, his glamour going up almost unconsciously as he went. It didn't take him long to get to the headmasters office and he muttered the password, he hopped on the moving staircase and politely knocked on the door. Dumbledore called for him to enter and Harry hitched on a politely curious expression as he moved in to the room, the old man was sat behind his desk in midnight blue robes with moons and stars decorating them, for Dumbledore's rather ostentatious tastes they were rather nice.

"Good evening, Headmaster." He greeted, keeping his voice soft and demure.

"Ah, good evening, Harry my boy. How are you?"

"Good thank you, sir." He replied,

"I expect you have been wondering why I have not called you for some time." Dumbledore said, going straight in to business for a change. Harry blinked and noted the change in behaviour, while the old man's eyes were twinkling, there was something angry about him and it seemed as if he was restraining himself from doing something.

"I did wonder, sir. But I merely assumed that you were busy, what with the Order and all of your other duties. I understood that they were much more important, for the Greater Good of the world." Harry answered, choosing his words very carefully in his mind. He needed Dumbledore to fully believe that he was under his thumb, especially today, the old man was tense and it seemed the continuous attacks and other happenings were finally getting to him, and Harry knew then that the next article was going to be spectacular. He watched a light enter Dumbledore's eyes once he had finished speaking and allowed himself a mental victory dance, and he felt Tom's amused questioning in return. Harry sent him patience before refocusing on Dumbledore,

"You are right, of course, my boy. I have been exceptionally busy these past few weeks, and it is my hope that the Order will be able to become more active legally soon."

"That would be good, sir. It would send out a message to the Dark that we are fighting and build up some moral." Harry said eagerly,

"That is what we aim to achieve." Dumbledore agreed, obviously pleased that Harry's view on the subject. "The way the ministry is currently, we are unsure who has allegiances with the Dark and who doesn't."

"And with people like Malfoy still running around
" Harry let the sentence die knowing he didn't need to finish it, it was something that irked the Order to no end, Lucius Malfoy was possibly the slipperiest person on the planet and they hated it.

"Be that as it may, we are here to continue our trip in to the past of Tom Riddle and his search for immortality."

"What have you got to show me this time, sir!?"

"This memory is particularly important, Harry and is crucial for furthering our search." He told the teen and Harry nodded. He followed Dumbledore in to the pencieve, they landed in an
 office? Harry took a moment to catch his bearings, his eyes darted around and he noticed a walrus like man sat at the head of the large table and there was a selection of students surrounding him – majority Slytherins and then Harry's eyes fell on a face he recognised instantly. It was all of his control to stop any outward reaction when he saw Tom, he was stood by the fire, his sharp, handsome features highlighted by the flames and the shadows. His profile was sharp, and straight and the glass in his hand was being tilted to the side reflected light off the liquid inside it. Harry noticed that he was wearing Marvolo Gaunt's ring, he would have to ask the man how he got the ring at the age of sixteen, Harry bet it was an interesting story.

"Sir, is it true that Professor Merrythought is retiring?" Tom asked, turning to face Slughorn who was digging through a tin of crystallised pineapple.

"Tom, if I knew I couldn't tell you," The man said reprovingly, but he winked to lessen his tone, and Harry gave a jolt when he realised this must be Horace Slugnorn. He had never seen the man before, but given the setting and the familiarity in which he interacted with the younger Tom Riddle it was obvious. He watched the interactions more and one of his eyebrows raised unconsciously when he saw the awe inspired and admiring looks Tom got from the other students in the room. Slughorn seemed to be a mixture of impressed, curious and calculating, and he mentioned the fact that the pineapple was his favourite. Harry fought from rolling his eyes, of course Tom would know that it was his favourite, and the students around his released muted laughs at the mention of Tom's ability to know things he shouldn't. The memory went dark suddenly and they were surrounded by a thick fog, Slughorn's voice rang out;

"You'll go wrong, boy, mark my words."

The fog cleared instantly and Harry blinked, Slughorn had tampered with his own memory before Dumbledore had gotten it, there was obviously something the man was trying to hide and Harry shook his head, refocusing on the memory. Slughorn noticed the late hour and jumped up startled, he began ushering them out, barking out orders to a few of the students. Harry's attentions were taken away from Tom momentary as he heard familiar names and he spotted Rodolphus and Rabastan's father along with Avery Sr. The group filed out, all but Tom and Harry knew it was deliberate, Slughorn put his glass on the table and noticed Tom was still there.

"Look sharp, Tom." He said, "You don't want to be caught out of bed, and you are a prefect."

"Sir, I wanted to ask you something," Tom began, his voice the right mix of curious and determined.

"Ask away, m'boy, ask away
" Slughorn encouraged,

"Sir, I wondered what you know about. . . about Horcruxes?"

And it happened all over again: The dense fog filled the room so that Harry could not see Slughorn or Tom at all; only Dumbledore, smiling serenely beside him. Then Slughorn's voice boomed out again, just as it had done before.

"I don't know anything about Horcruxes and I wouldn't tell you if I did! Now get out of here at once and don't let me catch you mentioning them again!"

"Well, that's that," said Dumbledore placidly beside Harry. "Time to go." So this was who first told Tom about Horcruxes and this was exactly why Dumbledore went after the man, Harry was now a lot happier that they had removed the problem. Of course, the man had not actually given Dumbledore any information, be it because he was ashamed or scared, but Dumbledore could be extremely persuasive and Harry kept the mindset of it only being a matter of time before Dumbledore got exactly what he wanted. Harry retook his seat as his mind ran in circles, he was started to hate these lessons even more, they made his head burst with questions and he did not have the time to search for his answers.

"As you can see, Harry, the memory has been tampered with." Dumbledore said as he retook his own seat.

"The fog, sir?" Playing the clueless lion,

"Yes, Horace Slughorn took the time to tamper with his own recollections."

"Why bother?" Harry asked, genially curious of Dumbledore's deductions.

"I believe he was ashamed at what he remembered." Dumbledore said, going with one of Harry's opinions and the teen nodded. It did make sense, if Slughorn had been the one to give Tom the information he would be ashamed of it now if he was not of dark association.

"As you can undoubtedly see, it has been crudely done, so much so that the alterations have are apparent."

Harry bit back a scoff at the glorious understatement, he would say a random fog covering a memory would be highly obvious, but he didn't say anything, merely nodded and let Dumbledore continue.

"Unfortunately, before I could collect the full memory from Horace he was murdered." Dumbledore told him, and Harry gasped.

"What?"

"It seems as if Voldemort was clearing up lose ends. I felt the hidden wards I placed over Horace' accommodation trigger, but before I could reach him he was already dead. It was made to look like a grievous potions accident, but I do not doubt that it was the work of the dark." He explained and Harry made himself look the right amount of disappointed, distressed and sad.

"Do you know who it was, sir?" He asked, but he made sure to pay hyper attention to the man's reaction. Dumbledore's eyes flashed but there was no recognition in his expression to which Harry was thankful for, he would have hated for the twins to have to put their escape plan in to work.

"I am afraid, at this time, I am unaware of the assailants. I only know it was two people and they were very quick and skilled with a wand, they also knew their potions as they caused a deadly explosion." Dumbledore said,

"Perhaps Snape taught them what to do." Harry suggested innocently,

"I trust Severus Snape, Harry, you know this. I doubt that Severus would teach someone how to kill with his potions." Dumbledore stated and Harry had to use a lot of control not to snort at the naivety that Dumbledore held, surely the man wasn't that stupid.

"Yes, sir." He said, looking down. "Of course,"

"Now, as we have not got a memory to work from, we must use my knowledge and my guesses to build from here." Dumbledore returned to the topic at hand, "You will have noticed that the memory was edited just after he mentioned Horcruxes."

"Yes, but what are they?" Harry asked,

"To make a Horcrux, one would split their soul and encase it elsewhere, thus, protecting themselves from death as they have an anchor to this plain." Dumbledore explained.

"And
 do you- I mean, did he do it, sir? Make a Horcrux, I mean." Harry hedged, already knowing the answer as he was currently wearing one under heavy concealing charms and that charming little fact that he was one himself.

"I believe he did, or several." Dumbledore answered,

"Wait, you think he made more than one." Harry said alarmed.

"It is my belief that Tom Riddle was aiming for seven. You see, Harry, seven is the most powerful magical number and, while he was at school, Tom Riddle was fascinated with the workings of magic."

Harry was actually quite surprised at Dumbledore's deduction, the man did know a few things about Tom and they were a little bit close to home for Harry to feel particularly comfortable.

"But still, seven times?" Harry cringed for effect, "He would have to be
 never mind, he is insane." He shook his head.

"Four years ago I had proof that Voldemort had split his soul." Dumbledore stated, and Harry blinked. He mentally cursed in his head,

"How?"

"You handed it to me, Harry. When I saw the diary and you explained what happened in the chamber I knew it was much more than just a memory, I knew it was a piece of soul and it was the careless disregard to which the diary was handled which clued me in to the fact that he had made more than one and my thought went to the magical number seven."

"I see," Harry said, hating the fact that he could see the logic despite Dumbledore not having all of the facts. "So we have to find these part of his soul or he can't be defeated?"

"I am glad you have seen the problem ahead, Harry." Dumbledore said pleased,

"They could be anywhere,"

"Do not forget that you have destroyed one already, Harry. This leaves us with five to find and then the man himself," Dumbledore pointed out,

"But they could be anything," Harry said, trying to fish for information. He knew that the Horcruxes were safe, but he wanted to know just how much Dumbledore knew.

"Not anything, Harry. Do not forget that Voldemort is a collector, he liked to collect trophies and I believe he would only make exceptionally valuable items in to houses for his soul."

"Like
"

"The locket perhaps, and the ring," Dumbledore mused, "It is also my belief that he used Nagini also, as he was one short when he attacked you all those years ago."

"So that's three we have to find," Harry muttered,

"I believe you will have much better insight than I, Harry." Dumbledore said and it was then Harry knew that Dumbledore did, in fact, know he was a horcrux, he shouldn't have been surprises really; the man was scum after all.

"Me?" He gasped,

"I think so, yes." Dumbledore said, "You are the child of the prophecy."

"Are you sure, headmaster?" Harry checked, and Dumbledore nodded serenely,

"Positive,"

"Um, ok," Harry made sure he looked unsure of himself and looked down,

"I think, for tonight, that we have done enough." Dumbledore decided and Harry nodded,

"Good night, headmaster." He muttered and left the room. Harry rode down the stairs and strode determinedly back to his rooms, as soon as he was safe he released his groan and collapsed on to his chair.

"Why me?" He asked the room, "Was I complete bastard in a previous life or did I actually have an affair with fate."

"You know, talking to yourself is not promising for your sanity," Luna's light voice fluttered over and Harry cracked a half smile.

"We're all a little mad, sister dearest."

"That is very true." She agreed, "How did it go."

"Unfortunately, Dumbledore is not dumb. I'll need to speak to Tom, and it will have to be tonight because I have to run a few other things past him also." Harry told her, "I don't know what the man is doing but he's getting rather frustrated with it, and he's completely focused on it."

"Probably research,"

"Most likely, or he's looking for a book."

"What else did you find out?" Luna asked,

"Well, the old fool definitely knew about my addition and he was planning on using it." Harry said with an annoyed sigh, "And, no doubt, I was being raised as a pig for slaughter, being led to die at the right time." He sneered the last but and Luna frowned at the thought,

"He is disgusting,"

"Isn't that the truth?" Harry grumbled, "Also, Dumbledore has confidence in this new law that he wants passed, he's not the only one either, according to Tom, Lucius believes it will pass too."

"Its unusual, I have not heard anything about it through out the school, it is completely outside." Luna said,

"Do not worry, no doubt you have other information for me."

"Of course," Luna assured, "I looked in to our new little friend,"

"Alina?"

"Yes, she is from one of the remaining Dark Elf clans. They are somewhat infamous actually, the Khlystovoy Clan."

"Really, but I thought they retreated and remained in Russia after the Battle of Stalingrad? Didn't Grindlewald attack them and the Lezviye Clan when they refused to join him?" Harry questioned, "I mean, there is a reason that that Battle was particularly bloody, even for the muggles."

"Yes, he did, and while the remaining Lezviye Clan retreated to their forest once they had won the battle, only part of the Khlystovoy Clad did. It seemed their leader did not believe Grindlewald would take his defeat lying down and thought it best to divide the clan in to family clans in the hope their blood would survive. Of course, he was right to do so because we have met one of them today." Luna explained and Harry nodded,

"Ok, go on."

"Well, Alina was born in this country, however he mother was not so she is the first one to go to Hogwarts. Her father was born in his country, a halfblood that went here, his name is Robert Dean, his mother was from a low level pureblood house and his father was muggleborn."

"I see, so she had a pretty interesting history." Harry said and Luna nodded,

"I would say so."

"Well, I'm going to keep an eye on her. There is something about her, I think that we'll be seeing a lot of her in the coming weeks."

"I believe you are correct."

"Now, lets get some snacks and wait for the others. We have loads to discuss." Harry said brightly,

"Don't we always?" Luna asked rhetorically.

Harry laughed.

Notes:

Thanks for reading!

Chapter 29

Notes:

Thank you for all your responses to this fic.

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 29;

Harry was just helping himself to a biscuit when Paws stepped out of her shadows with Badger and Harry flashed them a smile,

"Hey guys,"

"Hey, Snake,"

"Where's Swift?" Harry and asked,

"He was working with Venom in the Gryffindor rooms last time I checked." Paws answered,

"Oh?" He shared a look with Luna and bit back his smirk, "For how long?"

"All day," She said, "I know they have also been to the manor, it's coming along nicely."

"We'll talk more when the others get here, I haven't been able to get over there today. I went back to finish working on one of my own spells, got a few extra hours in researching the counter, spent normal time finishing my counter equations and seen Dumbledore." Harry explained,

"I think you'll be alright not going, Snake." Badger said seriously, and Harry grinned,

"Hopefully,"

The portrait swung open and Bleach walked in with the twins, they were talking about something and the twins were hanging on to his every word. Harry caught the sounds of ingredients and shuddered, potions, the subject that hated him.

"And you cannot use a stasis spell, it lessens the potency. Neither Severus or I have discovered why as of yet, but it does not matter." Draco told them,

"That would explain why our draught fell flat." George noted,

"Yes, and you kept blaming me." Fred shook his head,

"You were blaming me!" George pointed out,

"Blame Dumbledore," Harry suggested, "He's the reason behind most things."

"Great idea, Snake," The twins decided, dropping down either side of Draco.

"We're just waiting on-," He was cut off as Swift came through the shadows with a disgusted looking Venom.

"That is completely foul." He muttered and Harry smirked,

"Tom said something along those lines. I don't see it."

"You wouldn't," He grumbled and Harry laughed,

"Right, as we are all here we can begin." Harry said, "Ray, want to share what you've found?"

"I've been fishing and it seems there are a lot more problems hidden within the ministry that first though." She began,

"Oh you mean other than the general shitness that is our government?" Swift asked rhetorically.

"Yes, unfortunately,"

"What have you found?" Paws questioned,

"Well, it seems a lot of the department heads have been taking bribes and making things disappear." She said, "The one that seems to be the worst is the Department of Magical Transportation, there have been a lot of unauthorised portkeys made that have not been recorded and some illegal floo networking."

"Have you been able to dig up who they lead back to? " Swift inquired,

"No, not yet, but I'm working on it. The head of that department has not indicated whether they are pro Dumbledore or pro Darkness, depending on which would give me an indication to who it will lead back to." Luna explained,

"We can help with that, the ministry is our favourite place." Fred suggested and Luna nodded,

"I have also found out that Scrimgeour and his top dog Dawlish have some dirty little secrets." She continued,

"This should be interesting," Bleach said, "Scrimgeour is a piece of work as it is, and Dawlish leaves a lot to be desired."

"It turns out that the reason Scrimgeour's record is so high is that he tortures his suspects until they are spilling the beans."

"He's taking a leaf out of the Dark's books." Paws muttered, "How has he not been caught."

"Because he's is always with Dawlish." Harry answered before Luna, "And Dawlish, as Bleach has said, it a piece of work."

"Yes, he likes to get a bit more hands on with his arrests." Luna told them, "With the pair of them nothing gets out,"

"How did you find out?" Venom questioned and Luna shot him a sly look,

"That is a trade secret."

"She knows everything, you will be lucky if you can actually hold a secret from Raven." Harry told him, and Venom looked uneasy.

"No secrets at all?"

Luna have him a somewhat disturbing smile,

"No. None. It was a shame Theodore Nott didn't know about that, his father really should be careful what he says to Snake at the balls this coming Yule." Luna stated and Venom's eyes widened in shock,

"But that's-,"

"No longer a secret?" Harry put in.

"You're going to ruin him, aren't you?"

"Well, I wouldn't say that. He just needs to keep himself quiet during the balls and we will all be happy." Harry said lightly.

"So you're going to ruin him, aren't you?" Venom repeated and Harry flashed an evil grin.

"More than likely."

"Theodore Nott Sr is going to be pissed." Venom sighed, "Not with you, but with his son."

"Tom's friend? Nott's grandfather?"

"Yes, he relinquished his Lordship when his son turned 21 and lives in one of the Nott Estates in the countryside. Barely anyone hears of him these days, he's content on living his life with his books and his lands," Venom said,

"Tom keeps in contact with him," Harry said, "They've been friends since their school days, I'll have to speak to him about this Nott's temperament, and what might happen before I crush Izar Nott."

"You are terrible." Paws said with a shake of her head, but she was smirking and Harry flashed an innocent look.

"I don't know what you mean."

"Of course not,"

Harry laughed,

"Anyway, other information I have found out from the ministry is things we already knew, Tonks and Kingsley have been leaking information to Dumbledore and the new ranks of Aurors are riddled with Dark Marks." Luna picked back up,

"Well, whatever information they are leaking it's coming straight back to us anyway." Badger said with a shrug,

"Ok, so once I have gotten bored with the ministry I turned to the school and what I found was not good. Our staff are lacking masteries and many of the teachers owe Dumbledore, meaning they have been doing his dirty work while he sits back and pockets the money he has left over from paying them a cut wage." Raven explained and the group looked shocked,

"You mean to say that we've been taught by people not qualified?" Paws said horrified and Luna nodded,

"But surely the Board of Governors would have noticed?" She demanded,

"No, because it's down to Dumbledore who to hire and who not to, and because of that only he sees their credentials. What he has done is cut their wage to take the rest for himself, but because they owe him for allowing them to work here they get their hands dirty for him."

"This isn't right!" Paws exclaimed, "This has to be changed right away!"

"You're telling me, I'm the one who has to tell Tom." Harry grumbled and they winced,

"Ah, good luck with that, Snake." Swift said sympathetically,

"Gee thanks," He muttered, "Ok, so Paws, what do you have?"

"Not a lot, I'm afraid. I've only been able to find a bit of information one a branch from Ravenclaw." She told the group, she pulled out a sheet of parchment where she had been making her family tree. "I have found out that the female Denver child married a Welsh man by the name of Charles Wynne but I haven't been able to find out if they had a child yet. The second male child married and his wife and child died in childbirth and his death was extremely messy, it seemed he went mad with grief and killed himself. The final male child married and had a son, the daughter dying after she conducted dragon pox."

"So we're looking at Denver and Wynne now?" Harry clarified,

"Yes,"

"You may get somewhere within the Potter library, my family spend a few centuries in Wales." Harry suggested,

"Have you a copy with you?"

"No, but here." He threw her his Potter Gringotts card, "This should be enough, you are listed anyway."

"Thank you," Paws looked excited at the prospect, "I just have to ask for the library vault, yes?"

"Yes, I had all the books and scrolls separated in to a separate vault. Anything you take will be listed so take whatever,"

"Brilliant,"

"We've been watching the Order," George picked up when Paws indicated she had nothing more to say.

"And they are planning something, it doesn't sound good either." Fred continued and Harry sighed,

"Of course not, why would they give us a small respite?" He asked rhetorically, "Go on, Manic, Panic,"

"The latest plan is that they are going to 'eradicate' more of the Darkness that plagues their world."

"What does that mean?"

"According to the head chicken, they are searching out clusters of Darkness to remove. It is their belief that if they start picked away at the problem it will eventually fall because the Dark will no longer have a foundation."

"So they are going after places like Knockturn to start with and then they will start picking off the lower level dark houses." Harry said, "This could be a problem, but I'll take it to Tom later, he will be able to pass it on to his Eaters so they can be prepared."

"They didn't say anything for definite, it's the beginning of plans because they were focussed on this law."

"About the law
" Badger interrupted,

"Yeah?"

"It's got majority vote." He told them, "According to my grandmother she has been holding functions and it seems that they those invited have pledged they would vote for it."

"Manic, Panic, as soon as it passes I want a copy of the actual law. We will need to break it down if we are to use this to aid ourselves and the dark." Harry ordered,

"On it, Snake."

"Did she have anything else to say, Badger?" Harry questioned,

"Only a few passing comments about my shame on our house and how my father would be ashamed," Badger waved a careless hand, "Same old,"

"Lovely,"

"Yes, a pleasant woman."

"Bleach?"

"I've been making potions, I thought it would be good to stock up and I've been bouncing ideas with Severus of a liquid shield. We cannot work out if it would be consumed or pasted on the skin." Draco told them and Harry blinked,

"To what strength?"

"Hopefully up to the strength of a straight Diffindo for an hour."

"That would be amazing," Paws said thoughtfully, "it would take the strain of off shielding."

"It's a work in progress, but with all the books we have and Severus' knowledge we should have something soon." Draco said to them,

"This is good, keep us informed."

"Of course,"

"Swift?"

"Two more names," He responded, handing over a sheet of parchment, "These should be easier." Harry knew, as much as he wanted to be the one to hunt the bastards down, he had other things to be getting on with. "Venom?"

"Already dead," He answered with a smirk, "I've been looking over one of the Flamel journals, an Italian one, and I've finished the translations."

"Oh?"

"Yes, it was filled with potions, spells and bits of Italian history." Venom explained, "It was all rather interesting actually."

"Have you copied it yet?"

"No, I was going to bind the original before copying and securing the first one." Venom said and Harry nodded,

"Good idea, I'll have two copies if you will."

"Dark Lord?"

"Yes, the man reads a lot."

"So, Snake," Swift began, "What have you been up to?"

"Well, obviously you know the wolf sanctuary is up and running." He said and they all made sounds,

"It's amazing," Paws said,

"I can't believe what you have done, you haven't missed a thing." Badger stated,

"And to think, you did all of that because I jokingly mentioned a safe house." Draco laughed and Harry grinned,

"I know, it was one of your finest moments." Harry joked,

"Seriously though, Snake. I had just stocked up the infirmary when some of the wolves arrived, you should have seen them." Draco shook his head, "Some of them were a mess, and others were in shock."

"I hope its enough."

"I think you've saved them." Paws told him,

"I haven't been there today, I'll go tomorrow I think, unless I am unable." Harry decided,

"What else have you been up to?"

"I've finished my research and my equations for the beginning of the counter curse for Bellatrix, I'll be giving it to Tom later." He explained, "And I had a meeting with Dumbledore earlier."

"What did he want?"

"Another lesson on Tom, but this one confirmed that he knows about them and he knows about my addition." Harry said, "He's got a plan for me to be involved because he said that I would be the one to find them, some shit about me being the prophecy child."

"He really does speak utter crap." Badger shook his head,

"He's tense however, he's cracking under the pressure and I'll find out from Lucius tomorrow how badly he is being affected in the Wizengamot."

"Death Eater meeting?"

"Yes, Tom mentioned it yesterday." Harry agreed, "This next article is going to be explosive and it will not be forgotten, and then I know which one I'll be using to have him ousted from the school. I'll have to collaborate with Lucius again for that because of his links to the governors."

"What are our future plans?"

"I think its time we start thinking of what we want to implement when we have control. Paws, Bleach and Venom, start working on the laws we want drawn up, Paws, I'll take you down to the chamber so you can collect our law plans and then run them past Bleach and Venom to have the drafted." Harry commanded,

"We'll get straight on it."

"Swift, I need to have all the information on the school wards please, there is something there that we're missing I think and I don't like the fact that Dumbledore has had his filthy hands in my precious castle." Harry said and he nodded,

"I've already started breaking them down in to individual ward chains but they are weaved together tightly, hopefully I'll make a break through."

"Badger, keep your ears out for student gossip, as mundane as it is I have found that all gossip has its roots. I need to get a grasp on what the students are actually thinking and no one speaks in front of me whatsoever."

"I can do," Badger agreed, "I have noticed that the Gryffindors have been cursing your name now that you can't play Quidditch."

"I had completely forgotten that the season started, how badly did they lose by?"

"240 – 50."

Harry winced,

"Ouch,"

"Well the reserve seeker is currently in hospital so they had to use a sub and it wasn't pretty, that plus the beaters do not have the same flare as the twins."

"Thank you, we're here 'til Thursday." Said twins called, and Harry rolled his eyes.

"Lovely." He shook his head, "Keep us informed."

"Will do,"

"We know what we're going, we're also going to attempt to put a listening device in the minister's office and the DMLE." George said and Harry smirked,

"If anyone can,"

"We'll do it,"

"Venom, you have your names and you'll be working with Bleach and Paws."

"I know exactly what accidents these things will have," Venom stated and Harry smirked,

"Wonderful," Harry said, "Now that just leaves Raven and myself."

"I'm working with Ellen and digging," Luna said and Harry nodded,

"I'm researching and planning, I have a few things in the mix that I want to build on." Harry said, and then sighed, "I'm counting down the days before I can fully relax."

"Have you been training too?" Paws asked,

"Yes, I'll be picking up the pace of that too." Harry confirmed, "So we have our plans and now we just have to get on with it, I suppose."

"Cheer up, Snake, you'll have Ginny back soon." Swift had the sense to vanish in to the shadows before Snake could curse him, Paws got up with a roll of her eyes.

"Don't worry, I'll hit him for you." She told him, "You coming, Badger?"

"Yes, see you later guys."

The pair of them vanished in to the shadows as the twins got to their feet,

"Well, people to annoy, offices to break in to." Fred said,

"Busy busy busy,"

"Have fun, demons." Harry said and they left after kissing Draco,

"I have to go too," The blonde said, "I have something brewing,"

"Bye Bleach,"

The portrait slid shut leaving Venom at the mercy of Harry and Luna, the pair locked their unique eyes on to him and Blaise fought not to fidget.

"I-,"

"You get one warning." Harry said, interrupted what he knew was coming.

"Excuse me?"

"Do not hurt him." Harry warned him, "I swear to you now, with everything I am, you will regret the day you were born if you do." Blaise blinked a few times,

"How did you know?"

"We know." Harry and Luna stated together,

"You two scare me, you know that."

"It gives the desired effect." Luna shrugged, and Blaise got up.

"You have my word," He said, "I won't hurt him." With that he left, leaving Luna and Harry alone.

"Well, that went well." Harry said brightly and Luna smirked,

"I think so too."

"What are your plans for the rest of the evening?" He asked her and she shrugged,

"I think I'll go back to the manor and see if we have any cubs arriving."

"You'll let me know?"

"Yes, of course." Luna agreed, "Oh, and you'll need this." Luna passed him a sheet of parchment before kissing his cheek and vanishing. Harry opened the sheet of parchment and was momentarily confused, he read it over twice before laughing.

"I would truly be in a cave." He shook his head and got up, stretching as he went. Harry gently prodded at the connection with Tom and was rewarded with a sharp burst of irritation, he frowned at that and summoned his things so he could go but as he was about to vanish he realised he had not changed. He went and grabbed a pair of jeans to throw on and a white top, he slipped on his daps and went back to the living room and vanished in to the shadows. Harry took an instinctive step back when he arrived in Tom's rooms; they were a mess. The man had books everywhere and it looked as if some of the furniture had been used and targets for his angry curses, Harry carefully stepped over the broken table and moved over to where Tom was furiously scribbling on a parchment at least 4ft long.

"Dare I ask?" Harry ventured, approaching with caution.

"No," was the short answer and Harry rolled his eyes,

"I'm asking anyway," Harry pointed out,

"Counter curse,"

"I thought so, I noticed it's been driving you insane," Harry said, stepping closer and manoeuvring himself around the broken furniture. That actually got Tom to look up,

"How- never mind. It's you, of course you noticed." Tom muttered somewhat sullenly,

"What have you got so far?" Harry inquired, finally making it through the assault course and dropping down opposite Tom.

"I have the counter, I have it completely figured out along with the incantation but I cannot get it in to the right part of the mind. It's like its deliberately eluding me." He explained frustrated,

"You didn't happen to try any experimental equation links, did you?" Harry asked,

"A few, but they were a waste of time."

"Did you try using an experimental link with a separate branch of magic to bridge two things together?" Harry questioned, pulling out his own work,

"Like what?"

"An edited form of the Legilimency strand of magic, perhaps." Harry said handing over the parchment, Tom all but snatched it up and Harry bit back a smirk. He watched as the crimson eyes flew across the page and his smirk grew when Tom developed a tick in his left eye,

"I do not know whether to curse or kiss you right now." He grumbled and Harry laughed,

"Well, I wouldn't be opposed to the second option." Harry joked, "I finished this today, I thought that if you changed the equation for memories to subconscious and tie in and extraction chain to draw out the foreign magic you could add it to your own workings and have the full counter. Of course, you'd have to be the one to tie it in, Arithmancy is really not my subject, but I doubt you would have any issue with that."

"No, I am surprised that you did these equations. Don't you hate Arithmancy?"

"Yeah, but you try living with Paws, Bleach and Raven and not learn it." Harry sighed,

"This is surprisingly good," Tom said looking it over again, "This has the basis to counter most mind alterations without causing harm to Occlumency shields."

"I do have some brain cells,"

"Indeed," Tom agreed, "I should be able to have this finished by tomorrow-,"

"Nope." Harry cut him off, "You are stopping now."

"Is that right?" Tom asked, leaning back with a raised eyebrow.

"Yes, that is right." Harry confirmed, he got up and placed himself in Tom's lap straddling him, Tom's hands automatically went up to rest on Harry's hips. "Besides, I have a few things to tell you."

"What is to stop me working after?"

"I can think of a few things," Harry mused,

"I see,"

"Come on, let's fix your rooms." Harry pulled Tom up with him and waved his hand, things began fixing themselves and when Tom repeated notion the furniture started ordering itself and the cosmetic damages were fixed.

"There,"

"It does look better," Tom said and Harry rolled his eyes, he shoo'd Tom to his chair and went over to the drinks cabinet. He pulled out a tumbler and dropped 4 ice cubes in to it and the poured in the cherry scotch he knew Tom loved. Harry was about to close it but he noticed a new bottle and raised an eyebrow, he was surprised to see it there but pleased because he knew that it was only for him; no one else liked apple vodka as far as he knew. He took over Tom's drink and handed it to him, Tom raised an eyebrow and blinked when he realised that it was spot on to which Harry merely smirked. He placed himself back on Tom's lap, this time he was say sideways and his legs draped over the arm of the chair and his back propped up against the other arm.

"I'm just that good," Harry assured Tom, who rolled his eyes.

"Why the victory dance earlier?" Tom asked and Harry laughed,

"What makes you think it was a victory dance?"

Tom just gave him a look,

"It was a victory dance, a mental one."

"Ok, you're right, I was mentally dancing in victory." He conceded,

"Well?"

"You jinxed me yesterday, Dumbledore called." Harry sent him a scowl and Tom smirked,

"I can assure you that I would not wish Dumbledore on anyone."

"That's reassuring, I think that that is too evil even for Dark Lords." Harry stated seriously, "Anyway, Dumbledore is getting tense and there was definitely something off with him when I saw him. I was in victory because I had him eating out of my hand, and I found out that he definitely knew about your little accident."

"How?"

"He basically said I was a freaking Horcrux detector. Something about me being able to find the due to being the prophecy child, and seeing as we both know he created the prophecy that leaves only Mr Shard." Harry pointed out,

"Mr Shard?" Tom repeated amused, and Harry pouted,

"Do not mock me, Mr Soul Shard was quite happy with his name thank you."

"My apologies,"

"As it should be,"

"So what else did he show you?" Tom questioned,

"Your meeting with Slughorn back in your 6th year." Harry said and he watched Tom blink twice before sighing.

"Let me guess, the one where I asked Slughorn about Horcruxes?"

"Of course,"

"So he knows that I went for seven?"

"Oh, he knows you went for seven but not because of the memory."

"Oh?"

"Slughorn, rather badly I might add, edited his memory. It blocks out the bit after he thanks you for the crystallised pineapple and everything from after you asked about horcruxes." Harry told him,

"Really? Then how did he get seven?"

"Unfortunately, Dumbledore was one of your teachers, Tom. He knows a little bit about you."

"I know he watched me, but I was always guarded around him. I do not know how
" Tom trailed off and cursed.

"You were slightly obsessed with magical properties were you not? Seven is the most powerful magical number, with three and thirteen being the other two."

"That is surprisingly clever for the old man."

"Yes, I had to give him that."

"He will not find them however, though you are responsible for two of them." Tom eyed him as if to take the locket away and Harry's hand flew up clutching it possessively.

"It's mine, eyes off." He snapped, and Tom smirked,

"I need not worry then,"

"Smug bastard," Harry muttered, and Tom chuckled.

"It looks good on you," Tom murmured, trailing a finger along Harry's neck, "As does this." He held up the arm that held the bracelet and Harry smiled,

"You are entirely too pleased with yourself, My Lord." Harry did so like watching the effect of his words, he saw Tom's pupils dilate slightly and then man swallowed before everything was controlled.

"Of course, you are still wearing both."

"Impossible," Harry shook his head, "I've spoken to mine today and that law is 100% going through, Augusta Longbottom has been holding functions and those invited have pledged to vote for it."

"That will probably match up with Lucius' information, he's had his ears about." Tom said, "It's said to go in to vote this week."

"I know, I've already got the twins got get an exact copy. That way we can rip it to shreds to help us with our plans." Harry said,

"Will they be able to get it on the day it passes?"

"The twins will be in the room to grab it as it passes,"

"Good,"

"Now, apart from more information on the ministry, a few more names on the Ravenclaw heirs list and two more wolf names I think I've told you everything of importance." Harry thought for a moment before shaking his head, "Oh, no, Dumbledore and the Order are planning to start attacking collections of Darkness. So, I would warn all of your Eaters because once the man has hit places like Knockturn he'll turn to low level Dark Houses."

"I'll mention it tomorrow. I merely need to check in with the main section, then I shall speak with my Elite, I'll use the timeturner for an extra few hours and I will attempt the counter curse with Bellatrix." Tom decided,

"Wonderful," Harry said pleased, "Now," He turned so he was straddling Tom again and he tilted his head, "I believe you were needing a stress reliever?"

"Very much so," Tom agreed, he captured Harry's lips in a fierce kiss that left the teen breathless, "Dance for me?" Harry's eyes light up and he grinned,

"Of course," Harry climbed to his feet and asked the castle for a pole, his wand dropped to the floor playing music and Harry fell back in to familiar movements. He span around the pole and shot Tom a coy look as he noticed the red eyes getting darker, Harry dropped down and slowly rose up arching against the pole. He heard Tom hiss and smirked to himself, Harry wrapped himself around the pole, lifting himself and twisting at the same time, he mentally thanked his training for his upper body strength as he released one arm and landed lightly on his feet. He ran his hands slowly over his body, teasingly pulling up his top only to drop it and twirl around the pole. He could feel Tom's desire pumping threw the link and smirked, he allowed his top to melt away as he dropped low again and as he rose up he made sure to stick his ass out allowing smug pleasure to fill him when Tom released a small groan. Harry lifted himself and span around the pole, dropping to his knees and crawling over, he dipped his back and watched Tom follow his every movement. Harry climbed up on to Tom's lap vanishing Tom's shirt as he moved, he kissed up his pale chest paying close attention to his nipples before moving upwards. He bit down on his collar and soothed the mark with his tongue making Tom suck in a sharp breath, he trailed little bites up to over his neck and he licked a sensitive spot below Tom's ear and nibbled on his ear lobe.

"To your tastes?" Harry asked, as he continued his ministrations.

"Very much so," Tom answered, his voice rough with desire and Harry knew he was going to have bruises on his hips from Tom's grip. Harry nearly yelped when Tom stood suddenly, he wrapped his legs around his waist to support himself and shot Tom a dirty look – not that the man paid any attention to it. Instead, he attacked Harry's neck biting down hard enough to draw blood and Harry gasped, he tugged at Tom's hair and crashed their lips together. They both fought for control, until Tom bit down on Harry's lip distracting the teen and allowing himself the upper hand. Harry didn't notice they had moved until he was thrown on to the bed, Tom was over him in an instant, kissing and biting anything within reach. He had pinned Harry's arms above his head not allowing the teen much movement, Harry growled and thrust his hips upwards creating friction and making Tom's grip slacken for a moment. That was all Harry needed, he twisted himself and flipped their positions so Tom was flat on his back and Harry over him.

"You are a very evil human being," Harry stated,

"I know, I practice it on a regular basis." Tom agreed, "And if you do not remove the rest of your clothes in this instant I will show you exactly how evil I can be."

"Are you threatening me, My Lord?" Harry mock gasped,

"Promising, Snake,"

Harry grinned and snapped his fingers vanishing both of their clothes,

"Better?"

"Much," Tom said, before pulling him down in to a kiss. Harry didn't complain when their positions were reversed, he felt Tom's magic swarm over him and he realised the man was incredibly impatient; Harry blamed the dancing. He drew his legs up towards his chest and felt Tom at his entrance, he relaxed completely and Tom pushed in, Harry cried out as pain shot up his spine but it was soon washed away when Tom began to move. Tom drew back and thrust in again, drawing a sharp yell from Harry as pleasure ripped through him, he relished in the tightness around him and angled himself to go deeper. Harry swore viciously as Tom went deeper and the older man swallowed the teen's moan with a hot kiss, he dragged his nails down Tom's back when his spot was hit and the man hissed. The pace picked up and Harry could not control the sounds he was releasing,

"Deeper," Harry got out, and gasped when his plea was met. He arched up when Tom slammed in to his spot sending his body in to flames and his head dropped back in ecstasy. Tom went faster and his thrusts were becoming erratic as he drew closer to his release, Harry felt heat coiling in his stomach, his spot was hit repeatedly and Harry came hard with a shout of Tom's name. Tom felt Harry constrict around him and managed a few more thrusts before following his younger lover in release, he dropped down next to Harry and calmed his breathing before muttering a cleaning spell. Harry rolled over and led on Tom's chest, the older man's arm coming up to wrap around his waist.

"You know, you get so impatient when I dance for you." Harry murmured, shivering slightly as he felt Tom trailing patterns on his hip.

"You should not look so good when you dance for me."

"If I didn't look a little bit attractive then there would be no point in me dancing." Harry pointed out,

"True. Which means we will have a circle, for you look entirely too good and I become impatient."

"Eh, oh well." Harry did a one shoulder shrug, "I've just remembered something."

"Oh?"

"Yes, there was something else that I was supposed to tell you from the meeting."

"Is it something that will dampen my current mood?"

"Probably make it free fall in to a pit of man eating Grindylows." Harry said and Tom huffed,

"Leave it until the morning,"

"Good plan,"


"If you want to eat before going to the Great Hall then you will need to get up." Tom's cool voice cracked through Harry's peaceful bliss and he groaned.

"Why can't Thursdays be for sleeping?" He complained,

"Because most of the population do not spend their time living each day multiple times, running on pepper up, and secretly fighting for their lives as they try to bring down a crazy old man who has too much power." Tom stated,

"Well, when you put it like that." Harry agreed,

"Besides, you have something to tell me."

"Ahh yeah, shit, that's going to brighten your day." Harry grumbled,

"Wonderful," Tom sighed, "You're things are in the wardrobe, your potion is on the dresser and your toiletries are in the bathroom."

"Thank you, tea four sugars please." Harry called and pulled himself up. He drank down the potion and stumbled in to the bathroom to clean up and get ready for the day, he brushed he teeth after his shower and threw on his uniform. Harry gratefully accepted the mug Tom handed to him and easily hopped on to the counter next to where Tom was stood, he took a gulp of the hot liquid and sighed.

"So, don't be pissed at me but I've found out a few things about the school, from Raven." Harry said,

"Go on?"

"I assume Moony had told you of the wards."

"Yes, we've been over this,"

"Yes, well, as well as fucking with the wards, Dumbledore had also messed with the funding and the education here." Harry said and was pinned with a look,

"What has he done to my school?"

"Our," Harry corrected, and Tom waved him off.

"Yes, I know, Gryffindor,"

"Anyway, it turns out that there are a few members of staff that are lacking the required masteries teaching here. Dumbledore is the only one who has seen their credentials and because of that he had gotten away with choosing under qualified staff members and taking the rest of the money he is not paying them." Harry explained, "This also means that they owe Dumbledore and have been getting their hands dirty for him." Tom's eyes were flashing but he took a deep breath so he didn't curse Harry, something the teen was monumentally grateful for.

"This needs to be corrected soon. I will not have substandard education within this great castle," He stated stiffly, "I think the research for the heirs needs to be picked up."

"I'll tell Paws, she's on her own currently because Moony has too many other things. He's with the wolves, translating Flamel, working with Swift on the wards and with Greyback with the pack." Harry said, running a hand through his hair, "Then again, Paws is pulling back on the heir search because she is drafting laws too."

"Pull Remus from the wards and put him back on research, I'll have Rabastan come in and help Swift with the ward as he is an expert on them." Tom suggested and Harry nodded.

"That would work, that would leave Paws more time to work on heirs and laws, because Moony will be on heirs too." Harry said, "I'll be helping with the wards, I've handed the counter over to you so I'll work with the wolves, work on the heirs, plan the next article, run intel between the two groups, work on my own creations and keep Dumbledore off my back." Harry blinked and then groaned, "Remind me to stock up on pepper ups."

"Do not kill yourself," Tom warned,

"I won't," Harry assured, "What are your plans?"

"I'll hold my meeting later,"

"I'm still coming,"

"I've been trying to compile all my reports but my death eaters have decided now is the time to be extra efficient so they are stacking up. I am trying to plan the takeover of the ministry and take in all the variables. I have already begun working on laws that I want passed, I have been collecting information on those with dark affiliation just in case they need warning or I need to warn mine. I need to finish this counter, I am still translating the books, which are becoming more difficult as I go. I have been doing my own search on the heirs to the castle, I have been working on a way to counteract the strain Dumbledore is putting on the wards, keeping up with my allegiances and teaching." Tom told him and Harry chuckled,

"If you die, I will be highly displeased in having to resurrect you." Harry said and Tom smirked,

"Yes, I imagine you would be."

Harry cast a tempus and sighed,

"Well this should be fun, I'll see you 4th period." He dropped a kiss on Tom's cheek and vanished in to the shadows, he grabbed his cloak from the air as Luna threw it at him and left his rooms raising his glamour as he went. He knew he had to speak to Luna but he would grab her later and there was the fact that she probably already knew, he hopped down the stairs and slunk in to the great hall. He was mentally mapping out her day, he was going to live this day, go back to do his research and finish his latest spell, then he was going to find Luna to get the wolves and finally he would go back to train for the day before going to the Death Eater meeting and the going to sleep.

Harry sighed, this was going to be a familiar routine the way things were going, he had to keep this up at least until they made a breakthrough with something; getting Dumbledore out of the school would be a great one. He wasn't particularly bothered by his classes, ever since McGonagall had put around the word of his extension they had not been a problem, and Harry had a feeling that Luna was completing some of his homework too, because he couldn't remember the last time he had actually done a Herbology essay. Harry walked in to the library and moved over to his hidden corner, he really did like this place and he mentally thanked Paws for pointing it out to him.

He didn't have long until he was due in Tom's class, but he didn't want to stay in the Great Hall and the library didn't look to suspicious on his behalf. He did managed to draft out the plan for his Transfiguration essay before he felt someone approach, he blinked when he saw Alina dart over and he flicked his wrist to throw up an edited Notice-me-not charm around his area. The spell was one of Paws' creations and it was a notice-me-not mixed in with a repellent so not only would the area be overlooked but it would make those who were persistent remember something; magic and muggle.

"Hello, little one," Harry said, peaking over the table to where she was huddled, "They giving you a hard time again?" She nodded, her eyes scared.

"They took my books and ripped them up." She told him, "They said it was for getting help yesterday because you fixed my robe."

"Did you tell them anything?"

"Only that you were a 'he'," She told him,

"That's ok then," Harry said,

"They said that the only reason you were helping me was to get some." She muttered and Harry balked.

"What!" He yelped, "That is the most absurd thing I have heard in a while."

"I said you wouldn't take advantage of me." Alina said, "I was right, right?"

"Yes you were right." Harry ran a hand through his head, "Not only are you much too young, I'll let you in on a little secret." Harry dropped his voice down to a mock whisper, "I'm gay," Alina looked a little bit confused,

"You were always with that girl,"

"Unfortunately, I have to fit in to an image for the current time."

"Is that why you wear a glamour?" She asked innocently, and Harry shot her a wry grin.

"I am not surprised that you saw through it," He said, "But you're right, that is the reason I wear a glamour."

"My mother says that you shouldn't have hide," Alina told him, sitting down and looking more comfortable.

"Your mother is a smart woman," Harry said, "Unfortunately, until I am able to I have to stay hidden."

"You hate it, don't you?"

"More than anything," Harry agreed, "Now, what's this about your books?"

"They ripped everything up and now I can't do my work, Snape's essay is due soon and he'll kill me." She exclaimed and Harry bit back a smile.

"Snape is rather strict."

"He's terrifying,"

"I've met scarier."

"And I had finished half of Professor Drield's essay, now I have to start again." She sighed and slumped down, "This is horrible."

"I can help you with your assignments, here." Harry pulled out two rolls of parchment, a quill and some ink. "Now, do you remember what Drield's was one?"

"The disarming spell,"

"That one is a particular favourite of mine," Harry mused, "How long was it?"

"He wants a foot on the history and use of the disarming spell."

"You are in luck," Harry said, he drew out a thin book that he was using for his research, "This book, while a bit advanced for your year, breaks down the principles of the basic defensive spells and tells you of their origins." He flicked it open to the disarming spell and handed it over, "This should impress him, he's very in to thorough research and he likes it when people read on ahead. So if you finish that, the next page is on the Protego shield which will come next."

"Thank you, Harry."

"I'm going to teach you some spells to protect your essays too." Harry decided, he took his wand and took out another roll of parchment. "Tap the sheet and say Impervious." She repeated the notion and Harry felt the magic work, "That's right. Now, that makes it waterproof. The next one you have to drag your wand down and say Ignepio, this makes it fireproof."

"Ok, I think I have it." She said,

"Right, the next Lacerunis needs a sharp slash across the sheet." Harry illustrated the notion.

"What does that do?"

"It stops the parchment form being torn or broken." Harry explained,

"Wicked,"

"You have to remember to put these spells on all of your work," Harry reminded her, "Once you've finished these essays, I'll take them to Snape and Drield so they can't be taken from you again."

"Thanks,"

"Do you remember Snape's essay?"

"No, and I can't ask him."

"One moment," Paws?

Yes, Harry?

Do you remember what Snape's assignments were for first year second term?

The second term was the focussing on bezoars, moonstone and porcupine quills. So the essay for this time of year should be bezoars.

Thanks, Harry cut the connection and turned back to Alina,

"Does Bezoars sound familiar?"

"Yes, we had to write what they are for in potions."

"That is simple enough, they have an entire chapter on them in 1000 magical herbs and fungi." Harry said, "I know you don't have a copy right now, but you can borrow one from the library for now until you can get another copy."

"If I write home they'll know," Alina whispered and Harry waved her off.

"Don't worry about it now," He said, "How's the essay coming along?"

"I think it's finished," She handed it over and he looked through it. She had beautiful handwriting, and Hermione would be extremely pleased with her grammar and punctuation.

"This is very well done," He complimented, "I'll take this to Professor Drield, I have him 4th period." Harry cast a tempus and cursed, "Which started twenty minutes ago, fuck!" He blinked, "Don't repeat that word."

"I won't," She agreed, giggling.

Harry stuffed his things back in to his bag and stood up,

"Now, there is a spell to keep people away from this area, it will drop as soon as you leave so if you want to keep people away stay here and use the books around these shelves." Harry said,

"I will."

"Don't worry about your things, Alina. It'll work out." And with that he was off, he bolted, he flew up the stairs and through the shortcuts he knew off. Harry jumped through a wall and on to the corridor of the defence classroom, he slid to a stop in front of the classroom and straightened his appearance before stepping in. He cursed the fact that he happened to be late to the one lesson Tom decided to have a theory class, he offered a sheepish expression to Tom's raised eyebrow.

"Mr Potter, 20 points for being late and you can stay behind to discuss your detention."

"Yes, Professor." Harry muttered, taking his seat. He waved off the inquiring looks Swift and Paws gave him and got on with the reading they were supposed to be doing.

Where have you been?

Teaching, he told them and they blinked,

Excuse me?

I've been teaching, he repeated,

You're not giving anything else, are you? Swift sighed,

There is nothing else, I was actually teaching. Harry mentally exclaimed,

You are impossible, They sighed and he bit back a smirk,

Was there any particular reason you didn't inform me the lesson had started? He asked,

You blocked the connection, Paws told him,

I really have to stop doing that.

Yes, you do,

Harry rolled his eyes and sighed, he had read this book like seven times before and he could probably quote it word for word and make edits, hell, his own copy had copious amounts of edits in it as well as changes to the spells or extensions. Harry kept his head down but he let his mind wander, he could get away with going shopping today for Alina before he got stuck in to his research and then he could have Winky take Alina's new things to the girl and ward her bed area. He would have to go to Germany to shop, they were completely anti-Dumbledore after the whole Grindlewald incident and it was one of his favourite places to go; he loved the German magical sector – actually, he just loved Germany.

He knew exactly what he was going to buy, and he was able to without her being there thanks to Luna, he would have to pick up something for Luna because he had yet to take her shopping, though he should be able to get something for a temporary basis. If he was lucky he would be able to pick up his materials for his latest dresses, and if his favourite little shop was still there he could get his lace too. He was liking the sound of this trip, he could pick up some new jeans and some dragon hide trousers, he had a feeling Tom would like those.

"Is there anyone there?"

Harry's head snapped up and he was shocked to find the classroom empty bar Tom, he blinked a few times and shook his head,

"Huh, did not notice that." He muttered,

"That is apparent," Tom drawled and Harry stuck his tongue out, "Why were you late?"

"I was teaching," Harry told him, and Tom raised an eyebrow,

"Teaching,"

"Yes, here," He handed him Alina's essay, "This is Alina Dean's essay for your next class."

"And how did you come about this?"

"She's getting bullied, all of her things have been destroyed so I've decided to help her out." Harry shrugged,

"You do realised you are already on the verge of killing yourself, correct,"

"Yes, but she's adorable." Harry said, "And the only reason she is getting bullied is because she's half Dark Elf. It wouldn't be too bad if it was ordinary teasing, she came to me yesterday with a fractured rib and other injures and there are older years picking on her too. It's cruel, and I don't like it."

"Dark Elf?"

"Yes, from the infamous Khlystovoy Clan."

"Really," Tom looked interested now, "This is surprising,"

"Yes, I know but Ray already did a full background and found that after the Battle with Grindlewald the Khlystovoy Clan split up to make sure their Clan continued." Harry explained,

"You are going to continue this, aren't you?"

"Of course, I'm going shopping for her later. It's going to be fun,"

"You are beyond my realm of comprehension." Tom decided, "I assume I shall see you later for the meeting?"

"Of course, my dear Dark Lord, I would not miss it."

"Are you attending both?"

"Probably just the Elite. I've decided that tonight it a goodnight to check out the area where some wolves may be hiding." Harry said,

"Very well, you know where to go."

"Until later,"

Notes:

This fic has been nominated for the "All-time Favourite Harry Potter Fanfic" for the Fanatic Fanfics Multi-Fandom Awards, so if you wanna vote for this one it'll be at http://awards.fanaticfanfics.com/ - Thanks guys

Chapter 30

Notes:

I have to majorly apologize to all of you. For some reason, my laptop would not let me access the AO3 website at all, so I haven't been able to keep everything updated. As it is, RL also happened, so I've had exams and coursework and all kinds of crap I'd rather not do. So, like I said, massive apology to all of you, and thank you for sticking with it. ~

Read the tags as always,

I'm not J.K obviously!

Any parseltongue is in bold italics

Chapter Text

 

Chapter 30:

"Oh good, you're already dressed." Harry said brightly, as he walked in and saw Luna sat waiting for him.

"Yes, I thought we could leave right away." She said, "How was your research?"

"I think I have a lead on Denver," Harry replied, hopping on one foot as he pulled on his dragon hide boots. "Have you got the coins?"

"Yes, they're already packed." Luna confirmed, "If you've gotten a lead on Denver that will help, what else have you been researching?"

"I've compiled the evidence for Rita's next big swoop, and if it's released at the right time Dumbledore should be gone and Fudge should be called for a vote of no confidence." Harry told her,

"That sounds brilliant,"

"Plus, as I'm sure you've noticed, I've been shopping today and picked up a few things."

"I love the shoes." Luna agreed, "Thank you,"

"Any time,"

"I've taken the liberty to have a new wardrobe put in for your materials so they do not get creased."

"Wonderful, thanks,"

"And I sent Winky with Alina's things, she'll see you soon."

"Ok," Harry grabbed his jacket and zipped it up, "Ready?"

"Yes, I've got my potions ready and I've alerted Ellen that we may be bringing in more wolves so she is at the ready."

"Good, let's go." Harry took her arm and they vanished in to the shadows, they appeared in the shallow part of the trees where Harry had killed Smith.

"There are wolves here." Luna murmured and Harry nodded,

"On our guard, but they shouldn't be hostel."

"Have you gotten anything from Greyback yet?" Luna asked, "He said you were welcome in the pack."

"Oh, yes, Moony passed it on through Winky." Harry pulled out a fang on a length of string, "I thought it might lessen the situation." They walked through the woods slowly, Harry was following the slight scent left by the wolves to lead him to their location. They came to a halt when two men stepped out in front of them, they were tense and glaring and Harry held up his hands in a peaceful gesture.

"You have no business here, wizard." One of them said,

"I've come to help you." Harry stated, "The ministry has this forest on their radar, I've come to get you and your pack out of here before they come."

"How do we know you are not with the ministry?" The other demanded,

"I have Greyback's approval." Harry told them, he held up the fang for them to see and they relaxed.

"Follow us,"

They moved deeper in to the woods with the two wolves, Harry made sure Luna stayed close to him just in case.

"Where are we going to go? We have cubs that need places to stay, and we have to stick together."

"Have you not heard of the werewolf sanctuary?" Harry asked,

"Yes, but isn't it just a rumour?"

"No, it's very real." Harry assured,

"How do you know it's safe?"

"Because I created it myself." Harry answered, "My uncle is a werewolf, he means a great deal to me and it's in his honour."

"You have a wolf uncle?"

"The lost cub," Harry tried, and the wolves stopped.

"Your uncle is the Alpha's lost cub?"

"Yeah,"

"Wow,"

They stepped through a clearing and Harry blinked in surprised when he saw a few cabins, which were obviously hand built, there were a few wolves scattered around and the cubs were running around the cabins.

"Knight?"

"Greyback sent them," the first wolf, now identified as Knight, spoke, and the entire camp seemed to relax.

"We haven't got a lot of time. The ministry has this place on its radar, so we need to pack up and leave." Harry said, "I have the portkeys, the location is ready and you'll be able to check in with Greyback when we arrive. I know Moonrise is in wait."

"You know what happened to Moonrise?" One of the females asked, looking nervous.

"We heard her shop was blown up but nothing else."

"I got her out just as they blew the shop, I wasn't going to allow her to be harmed. She is currently helping run the werewolf sanctuary I've set up." Harry explained, and many of them breathed in relief

"This is brilliant news, many of us relied on her and we did not know if she survived or not."

"I am sorry she has not been able to send out a message, but she's been busy running the Sanctuary with Moony." Harry explained and they nodded, "Raven, help the mates,"

"On it,"

"How many have we got here?" Harry asked Knight, catching the bag of galleons Luna threw at him.

"25, including cubs,"

"How many with magical training?"

"None, most of us are non-magical but there are cubs with magic."

"Ok, that's fine." Harry pulled out a few coins, "These are portkeys, the activation words is Sanctuary, pass them around."

"How many can they take?"

"As many as needed, there is no limit. Don't worry about dropping them either, if anyone other than a wolf or those keyed in to the specialist wards they'd be thrown miles away and probably die." Harry said and the wolves smirked. The camp bustled with activity as everything was packed up, Harry helped the wolves moved their cabins and froze when his senses picked up a dense cluster of magic approaching.

"Raven, we have a problem." Harry called, "North east, 16, give or take."

"18, heading in quickly. They're cloaked,"

"Knight, start getting yours out of here. The ministry have moved quicker than we anticipated." Harry said, and Knight nodded. The coins were thrown around the camp and the first set of wolves vanished just as the first spell threw towards them,

"We'll head them off, get everyone to safety." Harry called, he had already thrown up three shields to protect people's backs. He saw the ministry officials break in to the clearing and cursed, he waved his wand and covered his face with a mask, he made it completely black so it wasn't confused with a Death Eater mask and he saw Luna do the same. Harry tossed two banishing spells and followed it up with a disarmer, he wanted the distracted for now and he had span out of the way to avoid the cutting curse. If they were playing nasty then Harry would be sure to return the favour, he slashed his wand and an expelling hex slammed in to the nearest auror and a bone breaker hit the one behind. Other aurors broke through and spells rained down on them, it was a bit overwhelming and Harry took his first hit. He muttered a curse and fell in to his regular duelling movements, it was awkward because he couldn't fully duel, and he also had to keep shields up around the camp as the wolves were taken away.

Harry heard a scream behind him and saw a female wolf drop to the ground, she vanished in a swirl of a portkey and was followed by her mate and a cub. Harry cracked his wand and his fire whip slashed through the air, it snapped at an aurors arm and Harry yanked him to the ground. He saw Luna twirl her wand and he questioned whether he wanted to know what the inky black curse that came out of her wand did. Harry was forced to roll on the floor when two curses came towards him and he pushed himself back up and flung a hurling hex over his shoulder, he saw more vanish with the porkeys and let up on the shields but then hissed when a cutter sliced across his back.

Out of the corner of his eye he saw Luna go down under a torrent of spells, the distraction cost him and a bone breaker shattered his arm and three cutters hit different parts of his body. Harry felt anger seep in to his mind and a red mist began to cover his eyes, he viciously sliced his wand and sent out a blast of raw magic. His spells picked up pace and they grew darker and more violent, the aurors fell in surprise at the sudden onslaught, which allowed Harry to make his way over to Luna and shielded her with his own body. He was relieved to see she was conscious, just bleeding heavily and before he could grab her there was a terrible scream.

"My babies!"

Harry span to see an auror hauling two small cubs out by their hair, the mother was injured and cradling her arm as she was pinned by another auror. The cubs were crying for their mother and Harry took in the scene with narrowed eyes, a cold fury welled up inside of him and he didn't feel the spells that hit him. Luna pulled herself up and darted over to the mother, she kicked the auror in the face and slashed at his throat allowing the mother free. Harry snapped when he saw the auror holding the cubs strike one of them, his magic exploded out of him and he stood calmly. All the spells approaching him fizzled out when they reached his furious magic, he stalked over to where Luna was protecting herself and the mother wolf and threw them a portkey. He was casting as he moved, his wand blurring as he cast,

"Get out of here." He ordered,

"I can't, not without my cubs,"

"Raven, get her out of her." Harry snapped, "I promise you, Miss, I will get your cubs to safety." Luna activated the portkey and Harry stuck, his magic acting as an extension and he stuck down the aurors still standing. He was trying to hit the auror holding the cubs, but he was using them as human shields which meant they were also taking stray curses. Harry had an idea but it was going to be a close call, he rolled on the ground and pushed himself up closer to the auror. He was outmanned and heavily injured, but as his metal spikes went through someone's heart it dropped the numbers down to 5 which he was thankful for. Harry cut down a tree and it fell heavily to the ground giving him a distraction he needed, Harry jumped over some debris and took a flying leap at the auror taking them all tumbling to the ground. He had to fight back his pained cry as his entire body seemed to protest the movement but he pushed it back in favour and punching the filth in the face, he hissed a spell in Parsel which forcefully closed the airways of the auror beneath him before pushing a coin in to the cubs' hands.

"Sanctuary," He spat out and just as he spoke he was blasted back and the cubs vanished without him, Harry slammed in to the ground and he screamed when he felt a white hot pain rip through his spine and his ribs. He felt his throat constrict and his vision swam, spat out blood and rolled over on to his front, his left arm gave out beneath him and his right leg wasn't working. He could feel his ribs moving and it made him queasy, Harry cursed when another cutter ripped through his already abused back but he pushed himself up. He slashed his wand erecting a shield, his vision blacked for a second and he stumbled, he growled and pulled at his shadows, forcing them to surround him and he vanished from the now destroyed clearing. He wasn't concentrating on where he was going, his magic took over and Harry retched when he fell out of the darkness. He recognised the location instantly and offered a cheerful wave to a stunned Tom, Lucius and Snape.

"You should see the other guys." He slurred before his consciousness left him and he collapsed, Tom's reflexes were as good as ever and he lowered the teen to the ground.

"This explains why he didn't make the meeting," Tom mused, shaking his head.

"What in Merlin's name happened?" Lucius exclaimed, as the Dark Lord waved his wand over him, Tom cursed as he saw the results of the diagnostic and snapped his fingers for Harry's elf.

"Where is Harry's sister?"

"Miss Moon is being treated at the wolf Sanctuary." She squeaked, and Tom bit back a snarl.

"Fetch Narcissa Malfoy instantly," He ordered and she popped away, "Severus, help me stabilise him, he has a fractured spine, 4 shattered ribs, a punctured lung and a torn intestine that need to be addressed immediately."

"Dear Merlin, just what does he do with his spare time?" Severus demanded, pulling out his potions. "His back needs to be attended too immediately but I cannot do that, his lungs need emptying and fixing." Tom waved his wand clearing his airways as Severus poured potions down the teen's throat, the floo flared to life and Narcissa stepped out, she was already flustered and she rushed over.

"I am guessing he is in a worst state than Miss Lovegood?" Narcissa asked rhetorically,

"Here," Tom thrust the diagnostic at her,

"Merlin, does he ever catch a break?" She sighed, waving her wand over the teen.

"No," Tom answered. Narcissa jabbed her wand and there was a sickening crack as Harry's back was reset, she ran her wand down his front to set up temporary supports for his chest before vanishing the remnants of his ribs and pouring a double dose of Skele-grow down his throat. She set his arm and leg in to position for the potion to work and begun on his other injuries, Narcissa had to cut away the remains of his destroyed t-shirt before she healed the burns as Snape covered them in salve and started sealing the many cutting wounds, drawing out the dirt and debris as Tom covered them in anti-scaring, anti-inflammatory salve.

"What is this?" Snape asked, indicating the snake tattoo. It was the only part of the teen that didn't seem to have a cut on it.

"That is a communication device." Tom told him, "Miss Granger and Mr Weasley also have a design, it allows them to speak without others knowledge."

"How?" Lucius questioned amazed,

"Harry and his group are very intelligent," Tom said and the others blinked, knowing it was extremely high praise from the Dark Lord, "It was created by his twins."

"Extraordinary,"

"He also wears a glamour," Snape noted, not being able to see the teen properly due to bruises, cuts and blood.

"Yes, a strong one."

"Strange,"

Once Narcissa saw the Skele-gro taking effect, she gave him a double dose of Muscle-gro to fix the ligament damage and the intestinal tear, she waved her wand to fill his lungs up with clean air to make sure they were clear and nodded. She gave him a dose of blood replenisher, remembering to add in a neutralizer to allow them to take effect, she waved her wands over the developing bruises and then covered them in salve to speed up the healing process.

"That's as much as I can do." Narcissa sighed, wiping her brow, "He'll be in a coma until he's ready."

"Can he be moved?" Tom asked,

"Yes, but his body has to stay straight, along with his arm and leg." She told him, "I'll strap them to make sure." She tapped her wand and muttered Ferula, the bandages sprung out and wound themselves tightly around the affected limbs.

"One moment," Tom waved his wand and Harry gently lifted off the ground, with extra care to make sure his body was not jolted, he moved him in to the bedroom and placed him on the bed. He warded his room as he left and went back in to the sitting area, Severus and Narcissa were packing their things away while Lucius waved his wand to clean up the blood.

"Do you have any idea what happened, My Lord?" Lucius asked,

"Narcissa, did you happen to have an influx of wolves today?"

"Yes, they came through in sections, some were injured and then Miss Lovegood arrived heavily injured with a hysterical woman, she was screaming about how they had her cubs." Narcissa shook her head, "It was highly distressing, and Miss Lovegood was not much better. She was trying to heal herself to return, yelling that 'he' was left alone with too many against him. I assume, now, that she was speaking of Mr Potter-Black."

"Harry spoke of a location he knew of where wolves were residing, he said the ministry knew about it so he was going to go there and get them out before it was too late. It seems that the ministry were a bit quicker than he assumed." Tom said to them, his mind constantly probing at his link with Harry, it was decidedly odd not having Harry's presence in the back of his mind and it was something he did not like.

"But to obtain such injuries, he would have had to have been against many opponents."

"Knowing Harry, he probably got everyone out before going after the cubs himself," Tom said and didn't mention that if he would have seen an auror attacking a child he would have done the same. "Is Miss Lovegood conscious?"

"No, she had to be put to sleep to heal. She was bleeding out."

"Then we cannot gain answers until they are conscious, unless you are able to speak with some of the wolves?"

"I can return and see if they have any details, if you wish, My Lord?"

"I would appreciate knowing what has proceeded," Tom agreed, she nodded and kissed her husband before vanishing in to the flames.

"Is this ordinary behaviour, My Lord?" Severus questioned, belatedly realising that he knew very little about the real Harry Potter.

"For Harry? Yes." Tom sighed, "He is still a puzzle too me, he acts a certain way and then proceeds to something such as this."

"Why didn't he get out when he could?" Lucius questioned, "It was obvious he was outnumbered, why not leave?"

"I do not believe he was outnumbered per se, I believe, given the state of his back, he was unable to fully duel as he was too busy shielding the wolves."

"With himself?" Snape demanded, and Tom sighed through his nose.

"More than likely,"

"Has he got any self-preservation whatsoever?"

"I am still discovering the answer myself."

"What is his business with the wolves?"

"He created a werewolf sanctuary to protect them."

"You have spoken of a safe haven for the werewolves, but you did not speak of very many details, My Lord."

"I have not been there since the final ward so I cannot say fully, your wife would be a better person to ask." Tom said, he ran a hand through his dark hair and mentally cursed Harry repeatedly in his head for confusing him. He had an odd feeling running through him, it was like he couldn't do anything until he knew the teen was ok, he realised, with a jolt, that he was worried about the brat and cursed in his mind again. The flames flared green again and Narcissa stepped out, she looked more composed this time, minus the stunned expression on her pretty face.

"What is it?" Lucius asked worried,

"That teen is clinically insane." She stated, "There is absolutely no other explanation to why he thought it would be a good idea to deal with 18 fully qualified aurors/werewolf hunters as well as shield the entire wolf camp and Miss Lovegood."

"He did what?" Severus exclaimed while Tom took a deep breath to keep himself from going and cursing said teen.

"I have spoken to the wolves and they all said the same thing." Narcissa shook her head, "And when Miss Lovegood went down he thought it would be a great idea to use himself as a human shield to get her up. It was then the cubs were snatched and he went after them, he sent the mother and Luna back with the portkey and went for the cubs. According to the mother, who calmed as soon as her children were returned, there were 7 still standing when they left."

"He shouldn't be alive." Lucius muttered, "It should be impossible," Tom bit back a scoff,

"That is the truth. But after surviving a direct killing curse, years of abuse, a basilisk bite, a 50ft drop, multiple dementor attacks, the triwizard tournament, many duels and fights with myself, a battle with my elite, being possessed and everything Dumbledore has done to him I honestly don't think 'impossible' is a word that can even be comprehended in respect to Harry Potter." Tom stated,

"When you put it like that then I believe you are correct, My Lord."

"I think he may have broken impossible." Narcissa said seriously. Tom sighed again, he knew he would have to inform Harry's friends, and he wasn't looking forward to speaking to his ever so slightly overprotective werewolf uncle either; he would make the teen pay for this. He snapped his fingers and called back Harry's elf,

"Yous bes calling again, extremely powerful and very terrifying Dark Lord, sir." She said and Tom blinked as the other three muffled their snickers.

"Excuse me?"

"Master Harry bes telling Winky that." She nodded, "He's be saying that or 'oh feared one'." Tom took another slow deep breath and pinched the bridge of his nose.

"I am going to put him straight back in a coma when he wakes up, but from my one he won't wake." He growled,

"Master Harry's bes telling Winky to expect a death threat from yous, and he bes telling Winky to tell you that-that." She shifted and Tom raised an eyebrow, he knew he was not going to appreciate her next word and that was confirmed when she seemed to pull it together and soldier on, "That yous should be thankful that hes be stroking that massive ego of yours, he bes saying that he would hate for you to be able to fit your normal sized ego in to a normal sized house." By the time she had finished her voice was painfully high, and Tom had developed a twitch in his left eye. The three other occupants were gaping at the elf and they had to fight back the bizarre urge to laugh at the sheer audacity of the Potter Lord.

"You were right, my dear." Lucius said to his wife, "He is clinically insane."

"Fetch me Mr Weasley and Miss Granger," Tom snapped and she popped away instantly, "I'm just going to kill him, excuse me." Tom turned and went to walk away,

"Um, My Lord?" Severus interrupted, stopping the Dark Lord "As much as it pains me to stop you from killing the brat, might I suggest waiting to until you are not in a school where Dumbledore resides."

"I suppose your thoughts have merit, Severus." Tom grudgingly agreed, "What will be the after affects from his injuries?"

"I am unsure, he does not follow usual healing patterns, his healing is accelerated vastly."

"That would be his phoenix animagus." Tom said thoughtfully, "They are regenerative,"

"He has a phoenix animagus?" Lucius repeated, "Draco said he was a snake."

"He has a snake form also,"

"Two forms?"

"Three, he has a shadow wolf form." Tom told them and they blinked,

"Yes, impossible seems rather insipid." Snape muttered. There was a hesitant knock on the door and Tom flicked his hand to open it, Weasley and Granger stepped, Granger raised her eyebrows at the guest but relaxed slightly when she saw it wasn't a teacher matter.

"You summoned us, Dark Lord?" She asked politely, when they had fully entered and shut the door.

"Yes, it's about your idiotic best friend."

"What has he done this time?" Ron sighed, "I swear, we should have had him admitted when he thought it was a good idea to jump out of Gryffindor tower."

"Excuse me?" Narcissa exclaimed, "Why?"

"He was 'testing his reflexes'," Hermione answered shaking his head, "In his defence, he had never actually claimed to be sane."

"Be that as it may," Tom interrupted, deciding to ignore Harry's insanity, "He's put himself in a coma."

"What!" They yelped,

"We leave him for a day," Hermione groused, "What did he do?"

"Went to collect some wolves," Tom told them, "From what the wolves have told Narcissa, there were 18 and Miss Lovegood went down."

"And let me guess, he shielded everyone else except himself and when Luna fell he used himself as a human shield." Swift asked rhetorically, a self suffering sigh escaping him.

"How did you know?" Lucius questioned,

"It's Harry." They answered, as if explained everything,

"What injuries did he receive?" Hermione inquired,

"Here," Narcissa passed them the diagnostic and they blinked,

"Huh, managed to fracture his spine this time." Hermione said,

"That's what? Every bone in his body now?" Swift confirmed and she nodded,

"I believe it is,"

"I am guessing you healed him?" She directed the question at Narcissa,

"Yes, he's in a coma now."

Hermione tilted her head thoughtfully,

"That means, given the severity of the injuries, the full healing, the potions, his animagus and the fact that he's Harry and doesn't do normal
 he should be up and fine tomorrow."

"I highly doubt that he will be awake tomorrow." Snape said, "Not after such an attack."

"Hm, you are right, maybe this evening." She agreed, missing his meaning purposely,

"He took overnight to heal at the manor," Narcissa remembered,

"Yes, but those were older injures and his animagus had been separated from him. When we went to the Flamel residence, he was injured during our
 venture but he was completely fine, minus exhaustion, when he returned." Swift pointed out,

"Are we to assume that Raven was also injured?"

"Yes, she is at the sanctuary in a healing coma also."

"Winky?"

"Yes Miss Paws,"

"Listen out for Raven waking up, she'll panic and you'll have to assure her that Snake is fine."

"Yes Miss,"

"Have you told Remus yet?" Swift asked the Dark Lord,

"No, not as of yet," He replied and they smirked,

"Good luck,"

"You can leave now." He stated and they left, but Tom was not pleased with the smirks on their faces. "Harry is an extremely bad influence to the entire human race."

"They were oddly calm about this situation." Lucius noted,

"It's Harry, they are more that aware of his erratic behaviour." Tom said,

"True,"

"Now, as we were discussing before the interruption, Lucius, if you could give a detailed report of those who are currently satisfactory within the ministry. Use the report given in today to do so, your knowledge of the ministry is much greater than anyone else."

"It will be done, My Lord."

"Severus, you're hand at potions may be required, but I cannot be sure until Harry wakes up. Otherwise, be prepared for the Orders celebration and note it, they will believe they have the upper hand soon, we must select the correct time to prove their belief incorrect."

"As you wish, My Lord."

"Narcissa, as you are here now, your observation skills around the Wizengamot would be highly beneficial."

"I'll pick out any weak or wavering spots, My Lord, and my eyes are on the old man."

"Good. Send Rabastan through when you return, he should still be at your manor." Tom instructed Lucius and the blonde nodded, the two Malfoys vanished in to the green flames, one going to their manor the other to the sanctuary, while Snape left for his dungeons. The Dark Lord breathed easily for a moment and took a large gulp of scotch before blanking his face and waiting for the second Lestrange to step through, he was not kept in wait as Rabastan fell out of the fire and brushed himself off.

"You require me, My Lord?" He asked,

"Yes, your expertise in wards is needed. I do not know how long this task will take, but you will be required to reside here during your work. This will give you access to a library, and give you somewhere to work." Tom explained, and Rabastan looked interested.

"Am I to assume that I am going to be looking in to the castle wards?"

"Yes, you shall not be alone however, one of Harry's friends is also working on them and you shall be with him." Tom said,

"Very well,"

Tom nodded, he grabbed Rabastan by the arm and apperated to the Gryffindor rooms, he walked through the living area and towards the library, he amused himself by watching Rabastan's reaction to the vast library.

"These are Gryffindor's Private Quarters, everything here is accessible to you as long as it does not leave here without Harry's permission." Tom stated, he led him to the ward room, and he wasn't surprised to see Swift there.

"Oh, hello, I had forgotten I was getting someone else to work with now that Moony has been put back on research." Swift mused,

"Rabastan is my expert on wards," Tom told him, "Rabastan, you are allowed any room as long as it is not already in use or the heir/Lord rooms." with that the Dark Lord left, he had spotted Harry's wolf within the shelves of the library and sighed. He was going to kill that teen when he woke up. Tom sat in his ordinary spot and waited for the wolf to immerge, he was carrying a mixture of language books and history books which meant he was multitasking.

"Evening," Remus greeted, "Come to translate?"

"Unfortunately no," Tom answered, "I came to speak with you about your nephew."

"Harry? What about him?" Remus asked, looking up from his book and giving the Dark Lord his full attention. Tom debated the best way to go about this and decided it was best like a plaster; quickly.

"He's in a coma after battling with aurors and wolf hunters." He stated and watched as brown eyes blinked twice before flaring livid amber, a feral growl rippled through the room and Tom saw as his canines elongated.

"Where is he?"

"Currently in my rooms, he appeared there and he cannot be moved until he wakes. He fractured his spine so his body must remain straight." Tom explained, and Moony's eyes flashed,

"I want to see him." Moony stated and Tom nodded once,

"Very well," He apperated them to his rooms, straight to Harry's side, and Moony whined at the sight of his cub. He ran gentle hands over him, sniffing to pick out all the different scents,

"Narcissa Malfoy has been to heal him," He noted, "And Severus has used potions on him."

"Yes,"

"He is healing, he will fine." Moony decided, after another examination.

"Miss Granger believes he will be up tomorrow." Tom said and Moony nodded,

"That's good,"

Tom apperated him back and watched the wolf revert back in to the man, it was odd really, but he had never held the stigma against werewolves like many other people within the wizarding world. When you came from the Muggle world after 11 years of being told you were the devils child, werewolves were completely ordinary.

"I am guessing he went after a wolf hideout himself and got caught taking them out?" Remus sighed and Tom nodded,

"Yes, he and Miss Lovegood."

"Wonderful," Remus shook his head, "The kid can't catch a break,"

"It seems he can't,"

"Are you taking a book to translate, or are you going to research?" Remus asked, changing the topic from his cub's extremely bad luck.

"I believe I shall take something to translate," Tom said, "Merlin knows I need the distraction."

"Here," Remus tossed him a book that had parchment sticking out, "This was the one you had started."

"Ah yes, I remember now. I also remember the reference book I was using." Tom murmured, "I shall alert you when the brat wakes up."

"Thanks."

Tom nodded and summoned the book he had been using before he apperated to his rooms and dropping down, in a rather undignified manner, on to his chair with a sigh. He didn't know if he had more trouble now he had Harry Potter on his side or before when the teen was against him, at least when they were on opposing sides Tom knew what to expect. He would plot to kill the teen, they would meet in a confrontation of some sorts and Harry would manage to wriggle, twist and contort himself out of whatever situation he found himself in without severe injury. Now, on the other hand, he could not, for the life of him, predict or plan anything the teen was going to do, except the verbal insults Harry tossed around every now and then. Tom found himself liking it though, he couldn't remember the last time he had someone so openly fearless of him, even in the face of his fury Harry goaded him without a touch of apprehension.

Even his elite, who he had regained the more relaxed atmosphere that they had had back during the first war and he was still sane, would never even think of saying anything insulting about him, let alone to his face. Harry, it seemed, didn't care, the amount of times the teen had pointed out his arrogance and egotism was actually amusing. It had, if anything, quelled his temper, and he was, even if only in the privacy of his own mind, thankful for that, because he had truly missed having his elite around him in a free speaking manner. Only this evening he had received a teasing jab from Antonin and instead of cursing him he found himself returning the exchange and enjoying being able to do so. It was easier to work with his elite when they were like this, and he made a note to make sure it continued, as long as it did not bleed in to the rest of his circles, however, he doubted that would be a problem, his elite were nearly as feared as he was and they kept the circles inline if he was unable.

One thing he was able to be certain of with Harry was the teen's continuation to confuse him, the brat seemed incapable to keep to a pattern, bouncing from one extreme to another within seconds and not even thinking anything about his unusual behaviour. Tom couldn't help it, he was just so interested in the teen, he wanted to find out every single layer that was Harry Potter and he had no intent on not fulfilling his wish. Of course, tonight was just another of those things that Harry did, it made him want to strangle the teen for being so incredibly stupid, but at the same time he knew exactly why he did it. What he didn't understand was why he was worried, there was absolutely no rational reason for him to be worried about Harry when this was not the first time he had seen the teen unconscious or even the first time the brat had collapsed in front of him; he was starting to make a habit of it actually. Tom sighed through his nose again and looked down at what he was supposed to be working on, it wasn't going too well currently, his mind was not focussed on the task at hand and too busy trying to solve the mystery that was Harry Potter; with little success. He gathered himself another glass of scotch and forced his mind on task, he was going to be up all night so he might as well be productive.


Harry was aware of two things when his consciousness slowly returned to him. The first being that his entire body ached, it was like he had been working out for three days straight (and yes he did know what that felt like because he, Paws and Swift had attempted to see how long they could run for and ended up in comas), and then dragged through a particularly dense bush backwards
 by his hair. The second thing was he was not alone. He couldn't quite remember the end of the battle, he remembered Luna going down and getting over to her and then things began to get hazy as rage overtook rationality, he thought back furiously and remembered the cubs being taken, Luna taking the mother and then his memory faltered. He honestly didn't know if he had made it out with the cubs or not, he couldn't work out if he had been captured and was in holding or he had somehow gotten to safety. Without moving an inch, Harry took a mental inventory of his body, yes he ached, but he didn't feel any lingering sting of open wounds and he was not numb anywhere indicating any broken bones he had were no longer broken so he concluded that he had reached safety somehow. He reached his magic out to tasted the other person in close vicinity and immediately recognised the icy, pulsing magic of one Dark Lord.

"I see you are awake." Tom's tone was just as icy as his magic, it was full of bite and suppressed anger. Harry cracked one eye open and tilted his eye to meet the furious crimson eyes of the Dark Lord, he flashed a sheepish smile,

"Oh. Hey, Tom," He greeted brightly, his voice slightly hoarse and mentally winced when he saw Tom's eyes flash a dangerous red. Harry pushed himself up, fighting the hiss of pain that wanted to escape when his back and ribs gave a serious protest to the abrupt movement, and stretched himself out. He blinked at the cast on his leg and arm and vanished them with a careless wave of his hand, he sighed when his back cracked along with his neck and he rolled his shoulders. He did notice that his back was still not appreciative of his movements and grimaced,

"You know, my back hurts." He mused, and glanced at Tom when the man hissed.

"Of course it hurts, you imbecilic, foolish, aggravating, idiotic, annoyance." He snapped, "You fractured your fucking spine." Harry blinked, and then he blinked again, and then blinked twice more before frowning.

"Wait, I what?"

"You, being the moronic person you are, thought you would make a great human shield while on your werewolf outing." Tom hissed, "And instead of shielding yourself, you send back Miss Lovegood and went after the captured cubs yourself."

"So I got them, then?" Harry asked, picking out that bit of information.

"Yes, they arrived at the sanctuary relatively unharmed."

"Oh, well that's ok then." Harry shrugged, "I can't actually remember getting them, but whatever I did worked."

"What part of 'you fractured your fucking spine' did you not comprehend?" Tom demanded, "There is literally nothing 'ok' with that, you know you actually need your spine for most things. Not to mention shattering your ribs, tearing your intestines, puncturing your lungs, breaking both your arm and leg and arriving looking like someone had been sharpening their blades on you."

"I'll be more careful next time?" Harry ventured and he spotted Tom's hands twitching like he wanted to curse him or simply strangle him.

"You are the bane of my existence, I swear you were born merely to annoy me." Tom growled, and Harry beamed,

"It makes life exciting, Tom." Harry carefully pushed himself to his feet and stretched again, pushing back the throb that rose up in his back. "I'm having a shower, I feel icky."

"Icky?"

"Yes," Harry decided, and Tom merely sighed,

"Very well, but do try and manage such a menial task without injury. You do have things to do before you go back and show your face to the masses." Tom pointed out, sneering slightly, and Harry grimaced.

"Wonderful," He muttered, before offering Tom a sincere smile and a kiss on the cheek, "Thank you for catching me, and not letting me drop to the ground." Tom rolled his eyes but smiled slightly,

"Go and shower, idiot."

Harry grinned and mock saluted before vanishing in to the bathroom, Tom shook his head and went to his living room, he asked Harry's elf for some food for the teen and shook his head. Why was he not surprised at Harry's attitude, the careless disregard in which he listened to his injuries irked Tom to no end and he could not work out why, he shook his head to remove the thoughts for now. He looked up when Harry came out dressed very nicely and Tom bit back a sigh, he would have thought, by now, he would have stopped being effected by Harry's mere appearance; apparently not.

"Ooo, food," Harry exclaimed, snatching the plate for himself and just sitting exactly where he was stood to eat it.

"You know there is magic available to you to conjure something to sit on, better yet, there is a chair right there." Tom pointed to the chair not three feet from him. Harry looked up and gave him a look of sadness and disappointment,

"But the chair is far away and magic involves effort." He said, shaking his head as if Tom should have known that. The Dark Lord didn't bother to reply, he knew it was pointless and decided on rolling his eyes and sighing, Harry grinned and finished his food.

"So what have I got to do today, and what's the time?"

"It is currently the early afternoon." Tom answered, "As for what you have to do, you have quite a list."

"Oh?"

"You need to meet with Rabastan to confer over the wards, you need to meet with Severus and explain what potions he is needed to brew, you need to explain to my elite exactly what you have going on with your sanctuary – though that is not a priority and can probably wait until the next meeting. We need to discuss what happened during the death eater meeting, you need to actually go over to the sanctuary, you need to check in with Narcissa, you need to check in with your friends and you need to get on with whatever you were supposed to be doing." Tom told him, and Harry looked at him in resignation.

"That sounds delightful,"

"Oh, I nearly forgot,"

"Yes?"

"You also need to check in with your wolf." Tom said and took a lot of pleasure in Harry rapidly paling.

"You didn't
"

"Inform your minutely overprotective werewolf uncle that you were in a coma after fracturing your spine, because you thought it was a good idea to take on 18 aurors/hunters?" Tom said innocently, "No, not at all. Do I look like someone who would do such an evil thing?" Harry was looking at him in utter horror,

"You're a monster," He breathed and Tom cackled,

"That is but one thing in retaliation for your little escapade yesterday."

"It wasn't my fault."

"Maybe so." Tom said with disinterest, "Your house elf on the other hand
" He trailed off and his eyes narrowed when Harry immediately began snickering.

"Well it's true. Just imagine the horror if your ego suddenly became normal sized." Harry whispered the last too words as if it was a taboo and Tom gave him a completely unimpressed look,

"You know, your wolf wished to be informed as soon as you woke." Tom stated and Harry sobered up in a flash.

"I'll just be going,"

"I thought as much."

"I'll see you later." Harry said sullenly, he cast a despairing look at Tom as he left to which he only received a smirk, his shoulders slumped before the shadows covered him and he was gone. Harry stepped out of the shadows in to the Gryffindor rooms warily, he was not looking forward to Remus' reaction and he didn't even have anything to bribe him with; Sirius would be ashamed. With an air about him of a dying man, Harry walked in to the library to his doomed fate. He was not surprised when Moony's amber eyes snapped towards him and he was suddenly being squeezed in a relieved hug, Moony put him down only to whack him around the back of the head with a growl.

"What were you thinking?" He demanded and then held up his hand. "Never mind, you obviously weren't thinking or you would have realised what an irrevocably stupid idea this was."

"I-,"

"Not to mention you have no regard to your personal safety whatsoever, and unless you have people remind you that you are supposed to stay alive you obviously don't remember." Moony ranted, "It isn't like it was just a few minor injuries, oh no. You went and fractured your spine."

"I-,"

"It is lucky Miss Lovegood is constantly around you, or Merlin knows what you would end up doing." Moony shook his head, "You would have probably killed yourself."

"Moony, I am fine." Harry stated firmly, looking at him imploringly. Moony sighed and hugged him again,

"Can you at least try and not give me heart failure, Cub. I really don't think I can handle much more." Remus muttered in to his hair.

"I'll try my best." Harry assured and Remus snorted. The pair sat down and Harry looked his uncle over, the man was looking like a new person now he paid attention, the little time he had had with the wolves had done him a world of good.

"You're looking great, Moony." Harry told him, and Remus grinned,

"Greyback and Moonrise' doing. They decided that I was not in acceptable condition, despite being fully healed."

"I like the results." Harry said and Moony nodded,

"I do to," He agreed, "I've found out loads of things living with wolves on a daily basis, and I can say that, for the first time in 20 years, I am looking forward to the full moon."

"I'm glad," Harry said pleased, "This is brilliant, I honestly didn't think it would work out so well."

"Cub, you have no idea. You'll see when you come over, but you have changed these people's lives. The look of shock and awe I see when they arrive is something I'll never forget, and the cubs, they are so happy running around in the ground and playing. Plus, being given the chance to learn, both magic, wolf and muggle basics is something that some of them hadn't even comprehended." Remus explained shaking his head,

"That's good, as long as its working." Harry said, "Paws is starting to work on the laws we want put through when we take over, I'm going to hold a meeting with Greyback and a few others to find out exactly what will make the werewolves lives easier."

"That will be good idea, and they will appreciate that because you are taking the time to treat them like people."

"Of course I will treat them like people, they are." Harry rolled his eyes,

"Yes, but Cub, these people are used to be treated like pariahs, to be included is not something they are used to."

"I don't understand it, Moony." Harry admitted, "I can't see why there is so much stigma on a werewolf, I really can't."

"It's just the way things are, I guess." Remus shrugged before snickering, "You should have seen some of the wolves' reactions to when they saw the Lady Malfoy,"

"Oh?"

"They looked at her as if she wasn't real, half terrified, half awed by her presence, it was quite amusing. And the disbelief as they watched he pick up a small Cub was brilliant, it was like they expected her to eat it or something."

Harry snorted,

"Cissa loves children, she was extremely excited to be able to go and help."

"We're in the process of setting up the apprentice system. We were going to have a meeting about it and see what skills the wolves had to see if they could begin training, then we were going to speak to the qualified people we have such as Moonrise, Narcissa and the twins. We were not sure about you and your people because you have so much going on." Remus told him.

"You can ask them, but I don't think it's to be advised for me currently. Once we have Dumbledore out of the castle then yes, we will be able to breathe easier then."

"I thought as much,"

Harry looked around when Swift and Rabastan walked in to the library discussing something, Harry waved them over.

"Gentlemen," He greeted,

"I see you're alive then." Swift noted,

"Of course,"

"You know, now that you've fractured your spine, you've gotten every bone in your body."

"Really?" Harry said interested,

"Yeah, me and Paws have been keeping tabs." Swift confirmed,

"Huh," Harry shrugged, "How are you guys getting on?"

"I've been matching up our previous research on the school wards with the ones on the map, the ones we have actually found don't even come close to all of the ones there. The difficulty is separating them out enough to label them, we're about half way through the ones we've found." He explained, "I was thinking if we could note down everything that is there then we could work out the ones Dumbledore has added or twisted as they would not fit in, and then we could work out what the mysterious ward is."

"That's a good idea actually, that way you will be able to see where Dumbledore has connected his magic and where he's drawing his power from. It should make it easier to cut him off."

"Exactly,"

"How are you finding it, Rabastan?" Harry asked,

"Challenging, but fun." He flashed a grin and Harry laughed,

"There's a lot of that." Harry agreed, and Rabastan chuckled before vanishing in to the shelves, Harry turned back to Swift.

"Is Paws at the Sanctuary?"

"Yes, we were with Bleach and Venom working on a law."

"I have to go and see then, I'm heading that way now." Harry said, "Then I have to check on Raven, she better be ok or I'm going to be pissed at her for taking such a risk." Remus and Swift both gave him a look of utter incredulity and Harry blinked, "What?"

"You'll be pissed at her risk?" Swift repeated, "Her risk,"

"Well yes, she could have died!" Harry said as if it was obvious,

"YOU FRACTURED YOUR SPINE." Remus exclaimed, "If anyone was close to dying it was you,"

"But I'm fine." Harry pointed out, and Remus threw his hands up.

"I give up." He sighed, "Just be careful and don't do anything stupid."

"Yes, Moony," Harry said dutifully, he cast a tempus and nodded. It was approaching three which gave him plenty of time to check in at the Sanctuary and see how everything was working out before going back and living the day for the masses and then going to see Tom; it was already a long day.

Chapter 31

Notes:

Thank you for all your responses to this fic.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

 

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Venom – Blaise 

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

 

 

Chapter 31:

 

The first thing Harry saw when he appeared at the Sanctuary was three little children barrelling through the entrance hall and down the corridor, he smiled to himself and made his way to the hospital wing. Luna was sat up in her bed and she was not looking happy, Harry bit back a smirk and cleared his throat.

"Is the service not to your standard, Miss Lovegood?" He asked coolly.

"Harry!"

Harry was fully prepared to catch the speeding missile that was his sister, and he was relieved to note that she was in perfect health again; there would have been a few deaths occurring otherwise.

"I'm so glad you are ok," He murmured and she huffed,

"Me? You were the one that ordered me away when you were still outnumbered." She pointed out, giving him a dark look.

"You were injured." He defended,

"You looked like a chopping board!"

"I was fine." He waved her off, "I had to make sure you were safe."

"And why did you not come through with the cubs?" She demanded,

"Ah, well, I may have been hit with a Reducto as the portkey activated." He told her, rubbing the back of his head sheepishly and mentally cursed when she went still in his arms. Luna stepped back slowly and looked at him.

"How badly were you injured?"

"It was nothing, I was fine." He brushed it off and pulled her towards the door. "Come on, I want to have a look around."

"You had better not be hiding things." She warned and Harry grinned,

"Would I do that?"

"Yes,"

Harry rolled his eyes and carried on up the stairs, he hadn't been to the sanctuary since it opened so he was looking forward to seeing how it was getting on.

"So how are things around here?"

"Oh, it's brilliant, Snake." She answered enthusiastically, "Ellen and Narcissa are teaching me advanced healing and Ellen has taken on an apprentice. A sweet little thing called Star,"

"That's good,"

"Draco is lost to the labs, he's like a mad scientist in there and I've seen him with the twins; it's alarming." She shuddered and Harry laughed.

"I don't think I want to know what they are doing in there thanks." He joked, "Though, I can image."

"Paws has the library mapped out, and she teaches the younger cubs how to read, write and count. She seems to love it. And Moony is back in his element teaching,"

"I'm glad he's happy." Harry said, "Let's go and see him."

"He's usually in the ball room, come on." She led him through the halls and in to the ball room, Moony was sat at the other end of the room writing something in a book, he looked up when they entered and he glowered at Harry.

"You should be resting." He said and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I'm fine, honestly."

"You fractured your spine, cub. You need to take it easy." Remus insisted, and Harry winced when Luna sucked in a sharp breath.

"Now, Raven
 Luna
 my beautiful sister," Harry began, stepping away from her and holding up his hands in defence. "I'm fine, and everyone got out fine."

"You fractured your spine." She repeated, advancing on him threateningly,

"I may have,"

"You said you were fine."

"I am fine. Narcissa healed me and now I'm good to go." Harry hastily told her,

"Fracturing your spine is not fine, Harry," Luna stated.

"Look, I didn't tell you because you worry way too much about me as it is. Besides, I did get out of there alive and I am healed now. Please, don't worry."

Luna gave him the evil eye and stalked away, muttering to herself, Harry breathed in relief and walked over to Moony,

"So, how are things?"

"Things are running as smooth as they can be. We've had some shaky arrivals but Alpha has been on hand to calm them down and its been smoothed over."

"How full are we?"

"Currently, we have seven outbuildings free and twenty four rooms open. Alpha wasn't exaggerating when he said we could fit families in those rooms, we have eight families currently in the manor and living comfortably." Moony explained, "Ellen has sectioned off the infirmary, I don't know if you noticed, and there are a few wolves in there healing. Those from your rescue and others who have come in and were injured, Bleach and the twins have been mass producing potions but they are still behind on many essentials because of sheer numbers. Badger is keeping the greenhouses stocked, but the potions are practically eating the crops and he's struggling."

"Damn, ok, I can get an extra hand for the potions, Tom has already spoken to Snape and gotten him on board so that will help. I will speak to Badger, he can have one of my Peverell cards and he can go shopping, he had a turner so he can go global." Harry said, "How many do we have living in the woods?"

"We've checked in at least fifty wolves that prefer the outdoors. The elves have been in their element cooking and preparing food and drink for all the wolves, and some of them venture in to eat but Alpha is working on the rest of them. Currently, trays of food are prepared and taken out to them, and they have a few pitchers of drinks that refill whenever they are empty."

"Brilliant, it is coming along nicely. Have you managed to organise clothing and other things that they have missed out on?"

"I wanted to speak to you about that, actually." Remus remembered,

"Oh?"

"Yes, there are many that literally have nothing. And I was wondering what I should do."

"Replace whatever they should have." Harry said as if it was obvious.

"Yes, I gathered you would say that." Remus rolled his eyes, "But I am not exactly the prime example of knowledge in that department, you were the one that got everything I have, remember?"

"Right, well, if you speak to Mippy she will have her elves size up the wolves and put in the order. As for a basic wardrobe which includes seven trousers, seven t-shirts, two robes, two cloaks, two jackets, a scarf, a hat, a pair of gloves, seven pairs of underwear, seven pairs of socks, two pairs of shoes and a winter jacket. It won't be prime material, it will just be regular clothing, but yeah." Harry shrugged, and Remus shook his head.

"You are unbelievable."

"What! I do need to keep this place running, if I gave everyone wardrobes like yours and Ellen's I would be broke come next year."

"Not that, cub. It's just that you don't see how much you're helping. This is more than any of them expected. I had one family come in, they were injured, and they believed that they were only allowed to stay until they were healed. The mother was in hysterics when I told her that they could live here permanently."

"It's the least I could do." Harry waved him off, he really didn't see what the big deal was; it wasn't like he was ever going to use the manor. "I've been told you are having fun teaching again?"

"I love it, cub." Remus said brightly, "I've been teaching history and basic magical training for the cubs. Most of them have never been taught anything so we're working on theory as they don't have wands."

"If you want to take them to get fitted for wands then I'll cover the costs. Take them to Gregorvitch or something, I'm sure I have a property in Germany that you can floo over too, and if I don't then Lucius, Paws, Swift, Venom or Raven does."

"I will speak to the parents and see what they think, if we can guarantee safety then I think there may be a few adults that would want a wand too."

"Let me check my property listings, and get back to you on that then." Harry said and Remus nodded,

"Ok, I can get preliminary plans in place just in case."

"Perfect,"

"Other than that-," Moony was cut off when there was a pulse of magic from a portkey and five figures fell to the floor in a heap. Moony stepped forward cautiously, and the two adults were up and in front of their cubs in a second. Moony held up his hands in peaceful gesture,

"You are safe," Ha reassured them, "You've made it to the Werewolf Sanctuary."

"Alpha?" The obvious head growled,

"I'm Alpha's lost cub," Moony told him,

"The one called Moony?" He asked and Remus nodded,

"Yes,"

"Who is the wizard?" He demanded,

"This is my cub, Snake. He created this place to protect our race." Moony explained, and they seemed to relax.

"My mate and cubs are injured," The wolf stated, his voice wavering, "I was told you could help."

"Are they able to walk?"

"Yes, I can carry the youngest."

"Cub, run ahead and alert Moonrise." Remus instructed and Harry nodded. He darted off and ran down towards the infirmary, he caught Ellen coming up the stairs and flashed her a grin.

"Just looking for you," He said, "Moony's bringing in an injured mate and three cubs."

"Ok, where's your sister?"

"Luna is-,"

"Here." She answered and Harry chucked,

"Here apparently,"

"Can you set up while I get the potions?"

"On it,"

"Do you mind if I observe?"

"Of course not, Harry. Come on,"

They walked down the wing and Harry stepped back to allow the two to get to work, Luna waved her wand over four beds and set them to order. Ellen pulled out the go to potions which included a pepper up, blood replenisher, silver removal and a few others Harry didn't recognise. He heard Moony come down and he directed the family over, the dominant put his youngest cub on the bed that Ellen pointed too, and the mate and two other cubs followed Luna to the other beds. It seemed that the oldest cub was around Alina's age and was looking around curiously, he hopped on to the bed without a fuss and swung his legs cheerily. Ellen rushed to the youngest cub and began her work as Luna worked on the two others, Harry stood back and watched them and couldn't help but smile at how easy it seemed. They both had a way of soothing their patients as they healed them, Moony kept the dominant calm as his mate was worked on and Ellen handed out the necessary potions.

"They are all going to be ok." Ellen assured him, "The youngest will need a few follow up doses of nutrients and your mate may also need some too, but other than that they are fine."

"We don't have anything to get those potions." The dominant said worriedly, "We have nothing, they took it all and then some. We don't even have anywhere to live." Harry's eyes narrowed and he stepped forward.

"You don't have to worry about the potions, they will be given to you for free and you can live here." Harry stated and they turned to look at him in shock.

"What?"

"You can live here." He repeated, "This is a sanctuary, there are many wolves living here. You'll have food, drink, clothes, a place to sleep, full medical care, and full education if you want it for your cubs."

"You – you would do that
 for us?"

"Of course, this place was created in Moony's honour. And I promised Ellen a safe place for wolves." Harry said to them. "Come on, we'll get you checked in and we can decided where you'll stay."

Moony came forward again and he had his book in his hands,

"I'll need your names and ages first."

"I am Darren but I go by Blade, this is my mate Jason who goes by Cloud and our cubs; Sam, Tula and Peter. 38, 36, 10, 6 and 4 respectively," Blade told him,

"Ok, good. Now, would you prefer to live outside or inside?"

"We can live inside?"

"Yes, in the manor or one of the out buildings." Harry said,

"We can live in here?" The one called Sam said in shock,

"Yes,"

He turned his pleading eyes on to his father and the man nodded with a smile,

"Inside it is."

All three cubs released cheers and Harry grinned,

"Where are they staying, Moony. I can take them up so you can sort everything."

"Room 14 is available for a family this size."

"Well if you would all like to follow me, I can show you to your new living accommodations." Harry said brightly, "Once you're settled in, an elf will be along to fit you for some clothes and to get you fed and watered."

"Wait we get clothes too?"

"Yes, its only a basic wardrobe but I thought it would help. You can have a have a bath or shower and get changed if you want too." Harry told them. He led them up the stairs and through the manor, he pointed out the places they would need to know as he went and when he got to their rooms he motioned to the rooms which were already taken.

"You may see those who you already know, and Alpha will be around for any quires if you can sniff him out." Harry said, "Ah, here we go." He opened door fourteen and led them in, their looks of stunned disbelief were completely worth it in Harry's eyes. The room was large, it was in mixed tones of black and Moony had obviously adjusted the room to fit a family instead of just a bedroom. There were now four beds in the room, a spacious double and three queen sizes fitted in nicely, there was also a two sofas, a wardrobe and a fireplace with room to move.

"Who else is with us?" Blade asked and Harry blinked.

"No one, this is your family's room." Harry answered,

"But it's so big."

"Don't worry, they are all like this." Harry assured, "Now, I've pointed to the bathrooms so you are welcome to use them as you please, though, you do have a private bathroom just through there" He pointed to the door, "And –," Nip popped in and handed Harry a small book, "This is your information pack. It should have a map and all the information needed for you." They all looked overwhelmed and Blade turned to him,

"Thank you," He said, his voice dripping in sincerity,

"It's nothing," Harry said, "I hope you enjoy your stay. Food is currently in the dining room." He stepped out of the room with a smile and made his way back down towards the ground floor, if he could get to Bleach or Badger before he left then he could get them on board earlier than planned. He hummed to himself and descended the stairs, he was walking past the den when he heard a sharp yelp. He went to investigate and saw a group of three cubs standing over a smaller cub, they were laughing and the girl on the floor looked particularly sad.

"Hey, none of that," He called, moving towards them. When Harry got closer he realised they were a lot smaller than he first thought, they looked up at him wide eyed so he crouched down to their level.

"You shouldn't pick on others. It's not very nice." Harry told them and they blinked,

"But Mister, we were only playing." One of them said, scuffing his foot on the floor.

"You might only be playing, but others might not understand you and you could end up hurting their feelings, or worse, hurting them." Harry said seriously.

"Oh." They seemed stumped, "Even if it's only a joke?"

"Yes, even if its only a joke. It's very bad to pick on others."

"My mummy says we shouldn't be bad cubs." One said surely and Harry nodded,

"Your mummy is right," Harry agreed,

"I know who you are." The third said suddenly, "You're the person who rescued us yesterday, with Miss Raven."

"You're Mr Snake?" The others gasped in awe and Harry grinned, finally being recognised for something other than the BWL title.

"The one and only."

"Wow," they were looking at him like he was Merlin himself, "You're amazing,"

"Thanks,"

"Did you really punch the nasty man in the face to rescue Rico and Rina?"

"The nasty man was going to bad things to the cubs, and I had to get them out of there so I had to hit him. But fighting without reason is bad, remember that."

"Yes, Mr Snake." They chimed,

"Now, run along. I'm sure you are hungry and I know they have some chocolate cake in the dining room." They ran of with a cheer and Harry turned to the little girl and offered a smile. "Are you ok?" She nodded his head, still looking up at Harry in amazement. "Want to come with me?" She nodded again and Harry easily lifted her up and set her on his hip.

"What's your name then?"

"Mama calls me Petal." She whispered and Harry smiled,

"Well, Petal, my name is Snake and we're going to look in on my friends." He told her. He headed towards the library to see Paws, he wanted to see her in her little slice of heaven and to make sure, for himself, that she was not killing herself with books. Harry walked in and he found Paws in the middle of what seemed to be a mini classroom, she had about eight cubs sat around with pens, pencils and quills out on the desks. Paws was walking between them and correcting any mistakes as she went, it seemed she had written out the letters and had them copying the lines.

"Miss Paws is teaching me how to write too." Petal told him quietly, "She's very nice, and I like it."

"That's good. She's one of my very best friends, I've known her for five years."

"I'm five years old." She said proudly and Harry grinned,

"Really! Well, you are big aren't you?" He said and she nodded surely.

"Snake!" Paws called, "You're up and about then."

"Did you expect anything else?"

"No, not from you." She shook her head, "Though, I am surprised that Moony let you up."

"He got distracted with an arrival. Raven is after my blood though and so far I have avoided Narcissa."

"You should have just told her."

"I know, but she worries too much." Harry rolled his eyes, "Anyway, how's things?"

"Oh, its wonderful. This is one of my classes, they are working on their alphabets today." She told him brightly, "I see you've gotten involved too."

"I found this little one in a bit of a spot and thought I would help out." Harry said, "She's one of yours I believe."

"Yes, Petal is very good with her words."

"That's good then, isn't it?"

"Miss Paws, Miss Paws,"

"I've gotta go, I'll speak to you later."

"Got it," Harry waved and turned around, "Let's see who else we can find." Harry walked around and stepped in to the training room, Swift and Venom were in the middle of a hand to hand battle and Harry grinned at Petal's shocked look.

"I never been here 'fore." She said to him,

"No, you're not yet big enough unless you're with an adult. It's dangerous, see." He pointed to the weapons on the walls and her eyes went wide.

"Whoa,"

Swift slid Venom's feet out from under him and had him at knife point in the next instant, Venom smirked and yielded,

"And that is what we'll be getting to. I'll be working on your hand to hand while Venom will be focusing on blades." Swift told them, helping Venom to his feet.

"What you have to understand is that this is dangerous, and your parents have trusted us to teach you. This means that you cannot mess around, one of these knives can kill you." Venom picked up, "Ok, first off. On the track and run some laps."

"I see you've both settled right in." Harry called, smirking at the pair.

"We're just that good." Venom stated and Harry laughed,

"I see,"

"You're up and walking."

"Yup. As always." Harry said, "How's things."

"Good, this is our second class and they've all been pretty receptive so far. Some of the older cubs are a bit sketchy but once we show them how we fight their attitude changes."

"That's alright then. It's good to see this place up and running."

"Yes, it's amazing," Swift agreed, "It's surprisingly fun to teach, and with this no one gets bored because there is always something to be doing."

"How busy does it get?"

"Not very, I mean, this place is so big that there is room and then some. The busiest room is the dining room and even then there is room to spare." Swift told him, "It takes them a while to get used to the change."

"I can understand that, but Alpha is here to calm them."

"Yes, without Moony, Moonrise and Alpha this wouldn't work." Venom said with a shrug, "Those three are very good."

"Moony is working extra hard if you remember, he's always at the Gryffindor rooms working and I don't know if he is doing anything else either."

"You know, Snake, when we finally get a break I am spending an entire day in bed doing absolutely nothing." Swift decided, "I'm just going to lay there and know that I have nothing to do."

"I'm taking a holiday, Tom and I have already decided."

"The Dark Lord on vacation," Venom snorted, "I can see that." Harry rolled his eyes,

"I'll leave you to it, I have to get this little one back to her pack."

"See ya, Snake."

Harry flashed a grin as he left, he felt out Moony, who was back in the ball room, and headed in that direction. He was sat back at the other end and smiled at Harry when he walked in, the werewolf raised an eyebrow at the cub on his hip.

"Cub?"

"Hey, Moony," Harry greeted, "I was wondering if you could tell me where this little one's pack is so I can take her back and make sure she get's there safely." Harry said and Moony nodded,

"Of course, let me see." He flicked through his book and snapped his fingers. "Her pack is in the forest, they're in quite a big group, you should be able to sniff them out once you get there and she lives in one of the outhouses there."

"How do you do that?" Harry asked curiously,

"Paws did something to this book which acts almost like the map, it recognises each wolf that has been checked in by their signature so I can get everything up instantly." Remus explained and Harry blinked,

"That's impressive,"

"I thought so,"

"Ok, thanks Moony." He turned back to his cub, "How about we get you a cookie before we go and find your pack?" She nodded enthusiastically and Harry grinned. He called for Nip and asked for a cookie, his elf was only too happy to pop in with a cookie the size of the child's face and was rewarded with a delighted giggle and Harry thanked him before heading out on to the grounds. He had forgotten how large the grounds actually were and shook his head,

"How about we take the easy route?" He asked her, "Can you hold on?"

"Yep," She said, "But why?"

"I have been told this feels horrible, but it's much quicker than walking."

She didn't look reassured,

"Ok,"

Harry wrapped the shadows around him and moved in to the forest, he stayed still while Petal got her barrings and her cute little nose was wrinkled up in disgust.

"Yucky,"

"Not nice?"

"Nope." She shook her head to emphasise her point and Harry chuckled,

"It's over now," He pointed out, "You can finish your cookie." Harry took a deep breath and picked up many different scents, he inhaled again and finally picked up on Petal's weaker scent and took off. The further he got in to the forest the stronger the scent became, he could also tell that the Alpha was close by and assumed that he was with the pack he was heading towards. Harry stepped through in to a clearing and found the wolves, it was a large group, he could see around twenty and they had set up in and around one of the outbuildings. It looked incredibly homely, but his presence didn't go unnoticed and they all seemed to look at him like he had extra limbs.

"Cub," Greyback walked over and Harry grinned,

"Hey, I thought you were here."

"Ah yeah, your form." He remembered and Harry nodded,

"How are you finding things?" Harry asked and Greyback grinned,

"This is absolutely brilliant. My pack has settled in extremely well and we finally feel safe."

"That's good, I wasn't sure how well received this place would be." Harry said and Greyback shook his head.

"You don't need to worry about that, this place is loved."

"Good. Well, a family pack just arrived today, there were some injures but Moonrise fixed them up. They asked for you and they're now in room 14 if you want to check them." Harry told him.

"I will see them now, I have to go and check on Cub."

"He's as busy as ever," Harry said and Greyback rolled his eyes.

"I know," He looked around at his pack and smirked, "You've shocked them,"

"Why?"

"You're closeness to the little cub." Greyback motioned to Petal and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Excuse me?"

"Most wizards would never hold a cub. Let alone carry one around."

"Well I don't care, she's adorable." Harry stated firmly,

"You're an odd Cub." Greyback said, "I will see you again."

"Bye Alpha," Harry said and then walked further in to the clearing, "I'm looking for this little one's mother?"

"She'll be cleaning, Freya's her name." Someone told him,

"Thanks," Harry followed the scent of soap and found a woman rinsing off something in a little stream they seemed to have found.

"Mama!" Petal called and the woman whipped around,

"Oh Petal, there you are you silly little thing." She exclaimed, rising to her feet. "You should know better than to run off."

"Sorry, Mama," Petal looked down and the woman rolled her eyes before turning to Harry, her eyes got a guarded expression that he was only too used to seeing in the werewolves eyes.

"Thank you for finding her,"

"It's fine, she's been a delight." Harry replied brightly, following the female wolf as she walked around back to the group.

"Come on, Petal. You've had enough excitement today." The woman said, and Petal pouted. Harry lifted her gently to the ground and his heart went out when she looked closed to tears, he crouched down to her level and pulled out a small box. It was what he was going to give to his sister, but he had a feeling that he was going to need a much bigger gift to get him out of this hole. He opened it and pulled out a white gold charm bracelet which was littered with small flowers with blue and white diamonds in the centre of each bloom, he put it on her wrist and charmed it not to fall off or break.

"Here, something to remember me by." He told her, Petal beamed at him and gave him a hug before running.

"Thank you, Mr Snake." She called as she went. Harry stood up gracefully and became aware of the stunned silence that had fallen around the clearing, one of the wolves stepped towards him, his face set in a mask of disbelief.

"You – you are the one that created this place?" He whispered and Harry blinked, he looked around again and shuffled.

"Yes," He replied slowly, and when they didn't say anything he continued hurriedly, "I didn't know what else to do. I mean, the WPP was cracking down and I had to do something and this was the best I could do. I can get you whatever you need, I have money if you need anything and there are elves here that are supposed to be helping out. They should be answering your calls and seeing to your needs." Harry explained hastily, he had tried after all and this was the best thing he could come up with. He shifted again when whispers broke out, another stepped forward and frowned slightly.

"You have done all of this for us, werewolves?"

Harry frowned and shot him a confused look,

"Well yes, of course,"

"But we are pariahs, we are nothing in this world. Hated and scorned by the masses for our condition."

"It's not a condition, it's a race. Besides, I don't like the masses of the wizarding world." Harry returned almost instantly, the first wolf came forth again and spoke.

"But if it is discovered that you have done this you will be persecuted." He pointed out,

"I don't care, they can try and come after me but they'll never catch me, and they will never stop me." Harry stated,

"But we are nothing, we have nothing, we can never repay you. You have saved our lives, our cubs' lives."

Harry perked up at that, a little proud of himself,

"I do not want anything in return. You own me nothing."

"Why would you do this?" One asked, "You owe us nothing either." Harry pulled himself up and looked around,

"You know Moony? The one running this place with Moonrise?" Harry asked and grinned when the whispers broke out of the 'lost cub', "That's the one. Well, he's my uncle, and he had to be kept safe because he's all I've got left and if anything were to happen to him then I am afraid my very mind would break. So that's the main reason, but I don't like it when children get hurt and when I went to check in on Moonrise she told me of the attacks on the cubs so I swore to her that I would help her and this is what I have." Harry ran his hand through his hair, "I don't really know if its enough, but your safer now, right?" They all seemed to look at him in disbelief and then, suddenly, he was surrounded by wolves thanking him. Harry found himself hugged tearfully by mothers and his hand shaken from dominants, he felt a bit overwhelmed because he couldn't name the feelings rising up in him. It was odd for this reaction to happen to him, he hadn't done anything for their thanks so it was a shock to him.

"Come on, you all are crowding him." A female voice called, amusement lining her tone. Harry looked around to see Petal's mother stood there with her hands on her hips and giving them all a look, the wolves seemed to take one look at her and scatter much to Harry's amusement and relief.

"Thanks,"

"You're welcome," She replied and Harry smiled, his smile turned in to a grin when he saw five little cubs running around in the clearing in their wolf forms. One of them bounded over and butted his legs, the little wolf yipped at him and wagged its tail, looking up at him as if to say come on then.

"Oh, alright then," Harry agreed,

"Be careful, their bite is still infection." The mother warned and Harry smiled,

"Don't worry, I'll be fine." Harry assured, and then transformed in to his wolf form. Harry shook himself out and took a few tentative steps towards the cubs, he wanted to make sure none of them felt threatened before fully going over. The one closest to him yipped again happily and Harry followed the wolf over to play, the little cubs believed, as he was the biggest, it was there role to take him down and Harry soon found himself running around the clearing while the little cubs pounced on him. It was fun, Harry thought as he rolled over to avoid a flying cub, and so simple. He didn't realise how long he had been there until he began to see the moon poking through the clouds and mentally cursed, he had to go because he had a day to live again. Harry changed back and grinned at the pitiful whines that action caused, he crouched back down when the cubs came around his feet and petted them softly.

"Don't worry, little ones." Harry said, "I'll come and play again. I promise." They eyed him before deciding that he was telling the truth and running off to continue their game. Harry walked over to where most of the adults were situated and smiled,

"I have to go unfortunately, it's getting late and I have to go to school."

"Isn't it a bit late for school?"

"Yes, but I have a timeturner so I have to go back and live the day in school." Harry explained and they looked confused,

"Does that not make you exhausted?"

"A little bit, but it's nothing I can't handle and if I didn't then this place wouldn't exist and the work me and mine are conducting wouldn't happen." Harry shrugged,

"You are the strangest wizard I have ever met." The mother decided and Harry laughed,

"I've been called worse." He joked, "Now, before I go, is there anything that you need or want?"

"Oh no, there is nothing, we couldn't possibly have anything else." Harry recognised the speaker as one of the wolves talking to him earlier.

"Come on, there must be something. Anything, all of my resources are at your disposal and I have a lot of things." Harry insisted, looking around almost pleadingly.

"Well, while we love the outdoors and we have a building, we all don't fit in and now that winter is setting in it does get a bit cold for the cubs." The mother explained slowly, as if worried she was crossing the line. Harry blinked,

"Why haven't you gotten blankets?" He questioned shocked, surely they would have been given something that simple?

"We do, just not very many." She said and Harry snapped his fingers summoning Nip to him instantly.

"Yous be calling Nip, Master Harry,"

"Fetch enough heated blankets for all of wolves here and their cubs in earthy colours." He ordered, "And see to it that they are supplied with hot chocolate, tea and warm milk on the evening and nights with biscuits, but make sure they are given to the mates in case there are any misbehaved cubs."

"Yes, Master Harry, right away." Nip popped out and came back almost instantly with two huge piles of blankets. "I bes telling the kitchen elves too, sir."

"Good, thank you, Nip." Harry said pleased, and then he had another idea, "Have Mippy send her team here to and get them some more clothes, and if they don't want the clothes at least the materials to make their own clothes. And have an elf come and check on them twice a day to see if they need anything, unless they are called and of course one of the elves will have to answer."

"Right away, Master." The elf bowed and popped away and Harry nodded to himself,

"This is too much,"

"Of course it isn't. It's the least I can give you and if you need anything else you just have to call for an elf. They have all been instructed to serve all the guests here." Harry explained,

"You are a very good person." The mother stated,

"One day I hope that becomes true." Harry told her, "If you want me for anything then just ask Moony or any of the humans here, they can get hold of me instantly."

"Thank you, truly."

"You are most welcome." Harry nodded to them all and then vanished in to the shadows. He appeared outside the ballroom and happily went over to Moony,

"Hey cub, been talking to the wolves?"

"Yes, Petal's pack is fun and I was playing with the cubs." Harry answered brightly, "It's been nice, and I made sure they had everything they needed."

"That's good, it's quite hard to give extra help to those outdoors because they are the ones who are most used to having nothing at all." Remus sighed and Harry nodded,

"I guessed that, but I've got them to take blankets and clothes." Harry said and Remus looked at him in surprise.

"Really?"

"Yes, and hot drinks for the evenings."

"Only you, cub." Moony said amused, shaking his head. Harry shrugged,

"You all don't believe it's my natural charm."

"I'm starting to believe that."

"So you should," Harry sniffed, he cast a tempus and groaned, "Time to be the golden boy."

"I don't envy you, cub."

"Ugh, why cruel world." He bemoaned, "I suppose I should go and see if my sister still wants to kill me."

"She's in the infirmary."

"Thanks, Moony." Harry hugged him and shadowed to the infirmary where Luna was in a discussion with Ellen. The raven animagus turned her nose up at him and turned away, Harry blinked at the cold reception and sighed to himself as he walked over.

"Ray?" He called softly and she merely sniffed and continued with her organising, Ellen sent him an apologetic look before leaving and Harry grimaced. "Luna – little sister?"

"What do you want?" She demanded coldly and Harry's eyebrows shot up.

"Why are you still mad at me? I don't understand." And he really didn't, yes he didn't tell her but it was only so she didn't worry about him and, besides, he was fine now so it didn't matter.

"You could have died." She hissed at him, and he stepped back at the tone.

"But I'm fine." He pointed out, "It wasn't that bad."

"Wasn't that
 Harry, you fractured your spine. That is so far past bad that it isn't even funny." She snapped, "You put yourself in danger unnecessarily and nearly killed yourself."

"It wasn't unnecessary." Harry insisted, "I had to get you and the wolves out of there."

"Not at the cost of your own life. You used yourself to shield me twice,"

"Of course I did, I couldn't throw up more shields." Harry said bewildered, "How else was I going to stop you getting hit by the spells?"

"You shouldn't have focused on me at all. You should have kept yourself protected and left me." Luna told him and Harry's expression darkened immediately,

"Don't be stupid, you come first." Harry stated, his voice steely.

"But, Harry -,"

"No, don't." Harry held up his hand and looked at her dead in the eye, "If it came down to it, between throwing a shield up to protect myself or stepping in front of a curse for you, you would win every time."

"You shouldn't do that, I'm not worth it-," He cut her off again.

"Never say that," He spat, venom leaking in to his tone and his expression settling in to anger. "Never say that you are not worth it because you will always be worth it."

"You-,"

"Do you have any idea what happened when I saw you do down with that curse?" Harry asked rhetorically, "It was like a red haze had settled over my vision and there was this rattling in the back of my head screaming at me to kill them, to kill them all with my bare hands. As soon as you went down, every single enemy in that clearing signed and dated their deaths by my own hand and there was nothing they could do about it." Harry stopped the pacing he hadn't even realised he was doing, "I was fuming that anyone would dare attack you, my little sister that I don't even remember getting back to Tom last night. After you were away to safety that's it, its gone because it wasn't me in control then."

Harry shook his head and rubbed his hand over his face.

"You know me better than anyone you know exactly what was rattling around in my head, you are my little sister, one of my best friends and there is nothing you can do or say that will ever change that and you will never change the fact that I will always put you before me no matter what. Because if I lost you then I would make the world burn and there would be nothing to stop me from doing so." Luna warred with herself for a moment before flinging her arms around him, Harry wrapped his arms around her and tucked her head under his chin and squeezed lightly.

"Why do you have to be so damn convincing." She grumbled in to his chest,

"I really don't know,"

"You'll just have to train more, because I refuse to lose you." She ordered and Harry nodded,

"I will,"

"Good,"

"I have to go."

"I know, I'll see you later." She leaned up to kiss his cheek and Harry vanished in to the shadows, he appeared in his rooms and turned back 8am with a sigh. Once the odd feeling of timetravel has settled, he made his way up stairs and got changed for the day.

He cursed himself for forgetting to go in and see Bleach but he would track him down eventually, he had too many other things on his mind and he steeled himself for the day before heading to the great hall. He had mentally mapped out what he wanted to do in the upcoming weeks, and that was all he had left. If Dumbledore was not out of the castle by Yule then all of his plans would have to shift and that was not acceptable for him, Harry had too much hanging on his planned results.

He wanted to be himself when he returned to the castle after the Yule break because he knew himself enough to know that he would break soon. It was getting to the point where he could feel himself fraying and if he broke then he was dead, his friends were dead and Dumbledore would have won; that was something he could not allow. It was also the fact that in his lessons he was performing to not even a spec of his ability and he was struggling with that, people thought it was hard to overachieve, they should try under achieving and then complain; it was so much harder.

You had to watch everything you did, you have to make sure that every wand movement was just slightly off, you had to mispronounce and you had to keep your magic in your full control at all times. There was no room for slip ups. And Harry was in full agreement with Paws when she said the library was a respite, because he practically ran there for his free slot after lunch. He made his way to his spot and was surprised to note that his spot was taken, Harry was about to walk away when he recognised the familiar signature of Alina and continued on. His privacy spells came up almost unconsciously as he dropped his things down, he was feeling this day more than ever and he carefully lowered himself on to the bench. He looked over at Alina and grinned when he saw she was giving him the brightest smile he had ever seen.

"I take it you got your packages?" He asked unnecessarily,

"Everything is so amazing, and the trunk is beautiful." She gushed, "And everything fits perfectly, and it all looks so good and no one can touch it or my bed and nothing has been broken at all."

"That's good." Harry said pleased, "See, I told you not to worry."

"Yeah, but how was I supposed to know you were going to go out and buy everything for me." Alina rolled her eyes and then blinked, "Wait, you went out and bought everything for me."

"Yes, I happen to like shopping and Germany is my favourite place to go."

"Germany?" She exclaimed, before shaking her head, "But you bought everything."

"I know,"

"It must have cost you a fortune." She whispered in shock, as if she was only just realising, "Everything is so nice."

"Eh, only a few thousand." Harry waved her off, not noticing her stunned expression,

"Thousand?"

"Yeah, change really,"

"Are you rich or something?" She asked jokingly but Harry smirked,

"Filthy rich," Harry told her very seriously, "So rich that I can literally afford to throw away money." He thought back to all the galleons he used as portkeys and grinned.

"Really?"

"Yep, I'm the only heir to a few old names. Potter and Black being the ones everyone knows about,"

"But there's more?" She asked in disbelief,

"A quick one, aren't you?" Harry said with a grin, "But yes, I have two more actually, but they don't get announced until after Yule."

"Wow," She blinked a few times, "You didn't have to buy me things."

"I know, I wanted to," Harry said, "Ask Luna when you see her next, I buy her things all the time, often things were cost more than people's yearly salary."

"Well thank you."

"You are quite welcome."

"So what are you doing here?" She asked, and Harry chuckled,

"Same thing as you I'd imagine."

"What, hiding?" She said sceptically and Harry grinned,

"Yes, hiding, and I think this is the perfect spot."

"It is a nice spot," She agreed and then looked at him shrewdly, "Why are you hiding?"

"So I don't slip up and do something stupid before my last lesson."

"Oh, ok," She shrugged and went back to the book she was reading before he came, he recognised it as on he had picked up and smiled to himself. He pulled out a sheet of parchment and wrote down all of the things he had to do soon, he knew he had to speak with Snape and he had his research to conduct. He had other things to be doing too, but they involved Tom and he intended to see the man tonight to catch up on the things he missed. Harry ran his hand through his hair and sighed, this had better be worth it in the end.

"Come on, back to classes."

"But I hate potions." She complained and Harry grinned,

"Yeah, I know the feeling. But we have to do things we don't like."

"Well we shouldn't." She sniffed, swinging her long dark hair over her shoulder.

"Come on, Little elf, let's go."

She pouted but hopped of the bench and left with a wave, Harry followed her out after a few moments and headed to his final lesson of the day; Charms. Flitwick was his usual cheerful self and Harry weaved his charms easily, he made sure to slip up a few times but get it right before the end of the lesson to escape homework; he really did not need anything else to clog up his time. He picked at his food at dinner and escaped as soon as possible without it being suspicious, he threw his things on the bed as soon as he was in his room and changed his clothes to whatever Luna had put out for him. He looked longingly at his bed before pulling himself together and shadowing to Tom's rooms, the man was already there and Harry dropped down on a chair, biting back a hiss as he did so.

"You are an exceptionally foolish person." Tom informed him,

"I know,"

"Good,"

"So what did I miss?"

"Lucius information backs up what yours said and it went to vote today, the announcement should be tomorrow." Tom told him and Harry nodded,

"The twins will get it as soon as it passes, the wording can be ripped apart then." Harry mused,

"Dumbledore's eradication has already started, he's been picking of little places that are known for their darker natures and worry is beginning to spread." Tom said, "My Death Eaters have been warned and they are putting the word about for caution."

"He's moving quicker than I thought, dammit, this is really bad timing." Harry sighed, "Ok, the words out, you might want to speak with your vampires. Now that the werewolves are gone they will become the next target."

"I know, I have already sent envoys."

"Ok, good, that's good." Harry ran a hand through his hair, "I have yet to speak with Snape today and I haven't spoken to Bleach either, nor have I checked in with Cissa."

"If you collect the law tomorrow we shall meet with the elite and you can speak then." Tom suggested and Harry nodded,

"Yes, that's better. I've already spoken to Rabastan and they are working together fine."

"I am guessing you made it to the sanctuary?" Tom questioned and Harry nodded, his eyes lighting up.

"You should see it, Tom. It's amazing." Harry told him, "And the little cubs are adorable." Tom rolled his eyes at that, smiling at Harry's antics.

"I am sure they are." He agreed, "You should be able to settle in to a routine of research and magic now,"

"Yes, which is good, and I'm waiting for the best time to release the final article in the series and planning the next one. I'll have to speak to Lucius because I want it to correspond with Fudge's removal."

"Oh?"

"Yes, and if I know Rita it will have the ripple effect that I want it to."

"I see," Tom knew the brat would not say anything else, "Do you know where you are going to start your research."

"I'll pick up where I left off."

"What exactly are you researching?"

"Well, it came to my attention that, while we may take over and we may rule the world, none of it is going matter if the people in it are not receptive to change. Yes, we can attempt to rule by fear but eventually the numbers will revolt and we will be back to square one. So, I've been researching in to the history of magic, and not just ours, other countries too, and cross referencing them with our own. If I can get historical evidence that dark magic isn't evil, and that werewolves shouldn't be feared and other races should be embraced I thought it would help." Harry explained, "I've been using the Flamel journals and other historical books from around the worlds to compile evidence to throw at the critics." Tom blinked a few times and shook his head,

"You constantly surprise me," He murmured, amazed "That is truly a genius idea. I will collect my books from my travelling too." Harry smiled, studiously ignoring the light blush that came to his cheeks and Tom's genuine compliment and continued.

"I'm also using it to help find the heirs and doing my usual magic experiments. I'm sending loads of my research to Paws to help her draft out laws we want put through and I'm also helping by sending Swift any knowledge of obscure wards I find." Harry said to him, "And I've also been digging up all the old legislations that have been almost forgotten about. I started at the start of the century, I've been decided which ones need reform and which ones need to be abolished and I was going to hand them off to Lucius once I had finished with them."

"How many times are you living the day?" Tom inquired and Harry shrugged,

"I don't know, I lose track if I'm honest. I've only lived twice today though,"

"You need to slow down." Tom stated, rather alarmed at how much the teen was taking on. He had not realised that Harry was doing so much, and he was slightly concerned.

"Hypocrite much?" Harry threw back with a raised eyebrow and Tom glowered at him because it was true, he had been living the day multiple times to fit all of his work in too. "I know I'm working too hard, and my training probably isn't helping, but until Dumbledore is out of this castle I have no choice."

"I really hate that old man." Tom decided and Harry laughed,

"Yeah, me too." Harry agreed. He snapped his fingers and got Winky to bring his work to him, he pulled out his sheets of parchment and the books he was currently working from and got on with his research. He was, at that time looking in to the Transylvanian legends of vampires to build his case for the future vampire laws. They were currently classed as dark simply because they needed blood to survive, it was pathetic in Harry's eyes and any information would help. Harry got lost in his work, so much so that he jumped a foot in the air when Tom tapped him on his shoulder.

"Holy mother of shit." Harry cursed, clutching his heart, "I thought you had given up trying to kill me?"

"I did call you," Tom drawled amused,

"Really?"

"Multiple times,"

"Oh, sorry about that."

"It's approaching midnight,"

"Merlin, I didn't realise,"

"I thought as much,"

Harry waved his hand and cleared up his work, he hopped up and then dropped back down again with a yelp, his hand flying to his back.

"Shit," all of his mentally pushing back the pain since he woke up from his injuries had finally caught up on him, his back was practically pulsing with pain and it hurt to stand.

"What is it?" Tom asked, and Harry grimaced,

"My back really does not appreciate me living two days, carrying around a cub and playing chase in wolf form." Harry told him and Tom sighed through his nose.

"I really cannot imagine why." He said dryly, Harry rolled his eyes and carefully pulled himself to his feet. He cringed in pain and then realised it hurt to move so he froze himself up, his back was on fire, his ribs were aching and his legs burned.

"This isn't going to work." Harry decided, scrunching his eyes closed in pain,

"You know you wouldn't have had this problem if you concerned yourself with your health."

"Yeah yeah, I know, you were right blah blah blah." Harry grumbled, trying to straighten out but having no success. "I need potions." Tom sighed,

"I have a better idea," Tom said, "Come on," he effortlessly lifted Harry up bridal style and carried him in to the bedroom, "The things I do for you."

"What exactly are you going to do?" Harry asked, allowing Tom to place him on the bed.

"Turn around and lie down." Tom instructed, vanishing his shirt, Harry eyed him before falling on to the bed on his stomach. He felt Tom climb on to the bed straddling his back and he was about to ask what Tom was doing when he felt the most wonderful pressure on his back and all questions vanished in a pleased groan. Tom's hands felt like magic itself working all the kinks and knots out of his back and Harry felt himself turn in to a happy pile of goo on the bed,

"Dear Merlin is there no end to your skills?" He asked with a pleased sigh,

"Not really, no." Tom answered amused, Harry chuckled lightly.

"Seriously, you have a gift." Harry decided, feeling his muscles relax and his tenseness melt away. Harry was practically asleep when Tom eventually finished and he had to bite back a whine of disappointment when the man removed himself and led down next to him.

"Better?"

"So much," Harry said in relief, "Thank you,"

"Don't expect it all the time." Tom warned and Harry pouted,

"Awe what?" Harry grinned at Tom's blank expression, "Fine,"

"If you paid attention to your health it wouldn't be necessary." Tom reminded him,

"Yes, I know." Harry rolled his eyes, "Now stop nagging and let me hug you." It was Tom's turn to roll his eyes, but he allowed Harry to roll over and settle on his chest and wrapped his arm around his waist before they both fell asleep.

Notes:

Thanks for reading!

Chapter 32

Notes:

I'm sorry for my terrible delays on updating :( so I cannot thank you enough for sticking with this story! RL and university got in the way, but I'm trying my best I promise!

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 32:

 

"We have it," Fred and George said breathlessly, holding out a scroll of parchment with an official seal, Draco looked up from his lounged position on his bed in the Slytherin dormitories and raised an eyebrow.

"What, exactly, do you have?"

"The law Dumbledore wanted passed." Fred said as if it was obvious,

"We've just managed to get it, it went through officially yesterday and we've been in wait for it to be confirmed by the Wizengamot magic." George explained, and Draco said up with a smirk.

"You two are decidedly sneaky." He murmured and they bowed,

"We do try."

Draco reached up and kissed both of their cheeks,

"Come on, my lovely demons. Let us see if we can find Snake. I am sure he's free now." Draco straightened his robes and left his room, two wild cats bounding around his feet as he moved. The common room was practically empty and those who were in there paid no attention to Draco, everyone in Slytherin knew better than to aggravate the Malfoy heir, something Draco was monumentally pleased with. He left the common room and took the quickest route to Snake's rooms without being noticed, he wasn't really surprised when he found the rooms empty, and decided to check his next spot; the library. He would either find Snake, Raven or Paws there and they would be able to find Snake, Draco had a shrewd idea where the Potter Lord was but he couldn't bring himself to knock on the Dark Lord's personal rooms to find out if Snake was there. Draco watched as the wild cats seemed to vanish as he walked in to the library, his silver eyes flicking over the many tables and finally settling on a head of bushy brown hair he was oh so familiar with.

"Granger, you have a book I want." He barked, gaining her attention and allowing those around her to know the reason he was even approaching her.

"What are you talking about, Malfoy?" She snapped, looking up at him with a look of barely concealed disdain on her face.

"Do I have to repeat everything I say to you, or is it merely that hair that keeps your brain from functioning?" Draco drawled, his face curling in to a sneer of disgust, he glanced at her and caught her sparking eyes and barely bit back a smirk. It was amusing working like this, as much as it was tiresome, but it was a necessary.

"No, merely I choose not to keep my attention on things I deem actually important, and, well, you just don't cut it." She returned, a sweet smile on her face. "Now what do you want?" By now he had taken the seat in front of her and they were glaring at each other.

"I'm looking for a book on Snakes, I've been told you've been hording it."

"I have no idea what you are talking about. I have not seen nor heard from this book, I suppose you want me to help you look for it?" Hermione sighed in a self-suffering sort of way, and Draco sneered at her.

"Obviously, Granger, seeing as you were supposed to have it."

"Fine, come on Malfoy, I haven't got all day." She packed her things with a wave of her wand and strutted from the library, Draco following her with a much smoother glide. As soon as they were out in an abandoned corridor they shared amused smirks and Hermione chuckled.

"That was almost art work." She told him,

"I have a gift."

"Why are you looking for Snake?" She asked,

"My demons-," Draco was cut off when said demons came bouncing down the corridor, "My demons have managed to get hold of the law,"

"Really, that was quicker than I thought." Paws mused, "Give me a moment."

Swift, Snake?

Yes? Swift replied instantly, but there was nothing from Snake.

I don't suppose you have seen Snake? She asked needlessly,

No, I'm working with Venom and hanging in the common room.

Wonderful, we're looking for Snake. The twins have found the law.

You know where he is, Swift pointed out, Want me to meet you outside his Darkness' rooms?

Sure.

"We're going to His Darkness, Snake isn't answering." Hermione told him and Draco sighed,

"I really didn't want to do this." Draco muttered with a withering look towards the ceiling, "Come on then," they headed up to the defence corridor and down past Snake's rooms and along to where they knew the Dark Lord was resided. Swift was already leaning against the wall and Paws rolled her eyes,

"I swear, without Raven planning his day he's completely incapable of keeping times."

"He wouldn't be Snake if he was normal." Swift replied.

"Unfortunately, you are right." Paws sighed. She knocked sharply on the portrait and waited for it to be granted access, it took longer than usual but when portrait swung open they filed in to find the Dark Lord glaring at them clutching a mug of tea and Harry was sat on the counter top nursing his own cup.

"Exactly what are you doing here?" The Dark Lord demanded, and Harry nudged him.

"Hush and drink you're tea." Harry told him, the Dark Lord turned his poisonous look to Harry, who didn't even blink even as the others cringed.

"I am highly displeased." Tom stated, and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I'll make it up to you."

"I am sure."

"What are you doing here though, guys?" Harry asked friends,

"One law, Snake, oh master of Darkness." The twins said together, and Harry grinned.

"You two are great, you know that."

"Well, it is popular opinion." George agreed,

"And we like to agree with the masses." Fred continued.

"We'll need to go over it." Harry mused, "And the Elite will need to see it."

"Yes, but that is not possible now. You do actually have to attend school to be seen and there are other things to be done." Tom pointed out.

"That and I don't need to be there. We are not, technically, part of the death eaters and we are needed elsewhere." Paws added, and Harry nodded.

"Got it, I can always report back to you anyway." Harry said. "Bring Badger in on the laws, he would know the ins and outs of it because of his psychotic grandmother."

"I will speak to him,"

"Good."

"There are whispers happening in the Order, we think something has happened." Fred said to Harry, who raised an eyebrow.

"Really? Do watch them."

"We will."

"Bleach, now you're here, you're gunna need to put in some extra hours making potions for Ellen. I know Badger is struggling on ingredients but I'll be sending him shopping with one of my cards, I have to speak to Snape today too." Harry said to him, and Draco nodded.

"I'll fetch a list of off her today and I'll speak with Severus."

"You can all leave now." Tom told them, and Harry laughed. He went to hop down off the counter but Tom placed himself in front of him, "You can stay where you are."

"Guys, I'll speak to you later."

"Yeah yeah," the group trudged out and shared an amused glance before going their separate ways. Harry raised an eyebrow and Tom just looked back blankly, Harry rolled his eyes and kissed him.

"Must you be mean to my friends, they've done a good thing?"

"I was perfectly pleasant," Tom said, "I didn't curse them when they appeared at a terrible moment, if they had been death eaters they would have been cursed."

"I suppose you have a point." Harry sighed, before he smirked, "I did say I would make it up to you,"

"Hm, you did." Tom agreed, "I wonder what you have in mind."

"Ah well, you will have to wait and find out." Harry decided, "Now, are you going to let me go?"

"I am not fully pleased with that option," Tom said to him, "However, you will be returning later so you are able to leave."

"Thanks for that." Harry muttered, he jumped down after kissing Tom and flicked his wand to apply his glamour. "I'll see you later." Harry walked down to the library to return the books he had needlessly taken out, he didn't see any signs of Alina so he didn't stick around. It was cold, but he went to walk around the quidditch pitch where he could be seen by the odd student who had braved the cold. As he was walking, his mind was planning many things that he had to be doing, there was the research he had been completely and he could feel he was on the edge of something, it was within reach but he couldn't quite grasp it and it was annoying.

He had delved in to some pretty cool legends and he knew that all legends began with some truths. There was also the work he was doing on the heirs, it was the Hufflepuff heir that was making him frustrated, they couldn't even show that the line died out because it was as if it just disappeared. Harry had been searching with Paws for Ravenclaw too, he had found a link to the Wynne name that Paws was following up, he had handed it to her when he had passed over the backing for the laws they were working on. As they wanted leniency with the Werewolves, Harry had already compiled the facts surrounding werewolves and numerous facts that could act as proof to why his laws should be put through. The first one was the dissolving of the WPP followed by the lifting of the werewolf registry, the next one he was considering was possibly bringing forth a tax rebate to those who willingly employed a werewolf as an incentive for others to do so. Though, and he would have to talk to Moony and Greyback on this, he was hoping to have all English werewolves accept their inner wolf so the moon didn't forcefully take them and make them mindless.

That alone should have his laws put through, and he had passed everything to Paws so she, Badger, Bleach and Venom could word them and write them to make them appeal to the masses; he knew he lacked the finesse to do so. Harry cast a tempus and blinked when he saw it was well in to lunch, he would be able to drop by the great hall to get a feeling on Dumbledore. The Great Hall, as always on weekend, was loud, and he couldn't help but notice that Dumbledore looked rather pleased with himself as he sat at the head table speaking with McGonagall. It made Harry more than anxious to look at the law later, he wondered exactly what Dumbledore would have put in there. With the old man, and those writing it for him, it could be anything. This one could truly be anything, he had been looking through the old laws and legislations for his research so, by now, he was able to spot the flaws and the openings in which he could exploit. But that wasn't all Harry had been looking in to in regards to the ministry, he had also been digging in to the ministry classifications, the sections within the laws that split a magical creature from a magical race and a pureblood from a half blood.

Harry had found these were crucial in creating new laws, on one of his many timeturner relives he had spoken to Paws about working through redefining many crucial points within the ministry. They had plans to scrap the term 'Muggleborn' completely, they were going to call them First generation witches and wizards, and if they passed the laws they were intending then there would be no need to link them to muggles at all. The creature and 'being' definitions needed to be updated too, currently, because of some arrogant pureblood back in 1811, muggleborn magicals were not legally classified as being witches and wizards they were classified as beings only and that really needed to be changed. Currently, Harry had added another relive to his schedule so he could personally draft out definitions himself, he knew the others would help if he told them, but he knew they didn't need more stress on them so he thought it best if he do the first and second drafts and just told them he was doing research.

He was planning on handing them to Tom and Lucius to go through once he was done with them, he could give them his research and the defining points for what he was basing his definitions on. Harry knew that today alone he would be reliving three times at least, he would do a relive after this to continue his magical experiments, he was trying to adapt the ministry's ability to track underage magic to something that could trace the first sign of accidental magic. His thoughts were if they could find the muggleborns at the first sign of magic it would help them bring them in to the wizarding world as soon as possible, he knew Tom planned on cutting out muggle influence completely and Harry believed if they could find the magical children then they would be going a step in the right direction. Of course, it was a lot harder than it seemed, and he may have taken a trip in to the ministry to find out information on the devices they used, but it was needed. He was thinking that before they took the magical child they should test the parents, that way they may discover squibs that had been cast out generations ago.

A squib, while lacking the ability to cast active magic, could still use, make and create potions and Runes, and had they could work with docile plant for Herbology, and they had every right to be in the magical world. If, by any chance, one of the parents was a Squib then they would have the option to follow their child in to the magical world and become active members of society. Squibs had the chance to do many things within the magical world so they deserved a choice too, well, that's what Harry thought anyway. It would also stop many of the children becoming orphans suddenly. Yes he had already had outlining plans for orphanages, ones he, Paws and Swift had come up with previously, but the less orphans the better really. The second relive would be to continue his research in to the heirs which he would be doing in the Gryffindor rooms with Moony, Swift and Rabastan, meaning he would also be helping out where he could with them.

The wards were being particularly stubborn and they were trying to unravel them to reveal them without alerting Dumbledore, which was turning out to be a lot more difficult than they thought. Harry intended to catch a few hours' sleep before reliving the day and continuing his research in to magical history and cultured of races and creatures, he wanted to finish his re-write of a werewolf. Now he had actually been around them, as little as it was during the sanctuary, he had a better idea of how he could finish it, and he had every intention of running it past Moony, Greyback and Ellen first. He intended on going to Tom to meet with the Elite before conducting any of his relives, he had enough of his research completely to show them what he was intending to do, and all the things he was planning on researching already had an outline, it was simply a case of bulking it up with facts and references.

Harry yawned and left the hall, he decided that it couldn't hurt to get all his assignments out of the way in the library until he could go speak to Snape. He did have a few essays to be doing and his spot in the library was empty. Harry tuned everything out and focussed on writing sub-par essays to be handed in, they would be makes at a low E grade, a solid E being the highest and that could be accounted for because of his 'private tutoring' with Professor Drield. Potions and defence would be the only two subjects that would be coming back O's, and he could blame the potions on Draco and there was nothing anyone could say about it, that and his theory on his OWL came back as an O too. Harry magically dried the ink on each sheet of parchment, before rolling them up and placing them in his bag. He knew that Draco should be heading back down to the dungeons by now, he had noticed the blond amongst the shelves when he had entered so he quickened his pace to catch up. Draco was waiting by the stairs leading down to the dungeons and Harry flashed him a grin,

"What do you plan on saying to Sev?"

"I'm going to ask him if he's up to making a lot of extra potions, I'll meeting with the Elite later so I will explain better then."

"Do you think he'll get on board?"

"I think Tom has already spoken to him." Harry said,

"That will make things easier." Draco led the way down to Snape's office, Harry could sort of see the appeal of Snape living down in the dungeons but he couldn't do it himself. Draco knocked on the door, alerting Harry to the fact they had arrived and he blinked.

"Potter, Draco?" Snape looked at the pair, once they had entered on his call.

"Did Tom talk to you about the potions?" Harry asked him, getting straight to the point, and Snape nodded once,

"He did mention my making potions."

"Wonderful, you can collaborate with Bleach. Ellen needs potions and lots of them, with the amount of wolves now residing there and the conditions they have been left in she's always needing more." Harry said pleased, "You can make doubles or however many you can work on at once, depending on the potion of course and Bleach might join you with his turner." Snape blinked and turned to Draco, the blond smirked and shook his head.

"That was Snake for: There are many potions that need to be kept in constant stock and we are falling behind due to sheer numbers, Ellen has a list of potions she had specially crafted for the wolves and I spend most of my time keeping them up together while Manic and Panic work on the everyday potions. We seriously need another set of hands, I'm already living three days to keep up with everything, and you can work much faster and at a better quality than anyone we know." Draco translated and Snape raised an eyebrow.

"Just how many wolves are you supplying for?"

"Easily 100+," Harry answered and Snape blinked twice.

"Excuse me?"

"You can understand the velocity."

"How many people are making potions?" Snape inquired.

"There are four of us currently, however, myself and the twins are using time turners to double up so there are technically seven." Draco answered and Severus pinched the bridge of his nose.

"Dear Merlin. Potter, you should not be allowed to be left alone to do things and Draco should know better." He sighed and Harry pouted.

"I'll have you know I happen to be very able."

"Did you or did you not fracture your spine recently?"

"That's every bone in your body now?" Draco asked interested.

"Apparently, but it's beside the point." Harry waved then off, "Can you help?"

"I will need to see what potions need to be made."

"Bleach, you're up."

"I have a book of potions that Ellen has made, and you will know how to make the others." Draco told him, "I can bring you a copy, we'll need extra ingredients but Snake supplies those."

"That must cost an incredible amount."

"Eh, I'm never going to spend it. I have like three other fortunes to burn through," Harry shrugged, "They need it more than me."

"Very well, Draco, I shall be in my personal labs. Find me there."

"Ok,"

"Thank you, Professor." Harry said with a nod of his head, "Come on, Bino, I have a meeting to get to." He dodged the hex that was aimed for his head and smirked, "Not to your tastes?"

"Bleach will be fine."

"Got it,"

Snape rolled his eyes as they left. Harry and Draco split at the entrance hall as they entered the great hall, Harry played with his food until he could get away with leaving. He had places to be and meetings to keep, he was surprised when he didn't see Luna when he returned but then she was ever so slightly annoyed with him, despite what she said. He grabbed his bag and filled it with his current research and Dumbledore's law, Harry shadowed to Tom's office, where the man was going over class essays.

"We'll be going to Malfoy Manor for the meeting, while I do believe the castle will keep us from being discovered by Dumbledore, I do not want the risk." Tom told him, without so much as glancing up. Harry assumed that, by now, Tom just knew the feeling of his shadows arriving. Paws had told him that when he used his shadows it could be felt, he didn't know what it felt like but it was a good fact to know.

"That's understandable." Harry said, agreeing with Tom's reasoning, "I've spoken to Snape and he's agreed to make potions so I'm leaving that up to Bleach." Harry told him.

"Very well, do you intend to speak with the Elite about the sanctuary?"

"Yes, it's best that I explain exactly what's going on." Harry decided, "It's much easier."

"That is correct. There will be a few things that need to be spoken about also, the reports of the Order, and, by extension, the ministry's movements on are coming in quicker than first thought." Tom said, putting down his quill and flexing his fingers.

"Well, I need to go over a few things with you and Lucius especially." Harry said, "It's just an outline for now, but I thought if you both had a rough idea on what I have been doing then you could add your input and we can collaborate when and where we need."

"Is this to do with your research on history and culture?"

"Kinda," Harry flashed a sheepish grin, "I may have omitted some of the things I was doing." Tom rolled his eyes,

"Of course you did," He sighed, "So you've been living extra days to do this?"

"I only do like three relives to get everything done, and that includes extra sleep." Harry waved him off, "Besides, my friends don't need the stress."

"I am not even going to bother to argue." Tom decided. He went to speak again but both Tom and Harry froze as the wards signalled the arrival of someone.

"Dumbledore," Tom hissed and Harry cursed, he couldn't use his shadows just in case Dumbledore picked up on the magic and there was no-where to hide. He looked towards the desk and Tom shot him a look,

"Not a chance in hell," Tom stated, and then cursed when there was a knock at the door.

"Where am I supposed to go?"

"I don't know, think of something." Tom snapped and Harry threw his hands up in exasperation. His attention snapped to the window and he smirked, just as the door was opening Harry bolted to the window and launched himself out as the headmaster stepped in. Tom felt his heart stop. They were Merlin knows how many feet above the ground and Harry, the crazy fool, just threw himself out of the window. He saw a large, black bird swoop down and breathed in relief; he was going to kill him when he got hold the teen, but right now he had other things to deal with.

"Good afternoon Headmaster, how can I help you?"

"Ah, Martom, it's good to see you." Dumbledore greeted, inviting himself to a seat, "I am sorry for the surprise visit, however, I need to know if there has been anything different with young Harry recently." Tom blinked at the question, otherwise he gave no indication that it startled him.

"No, he's been responding well to everything I throw at him. We had some trouble with silent casting, but I instructed him in a rather different method and he was really receptive to it." Tom explained to the headmaster, and Dumbledore looked relieved.

"Wonderful. I was beginning to wonder if the full schedule was getting to him."

"No, it doesn't yet appear so."

"Good, good," Dumbledore nodded and Tom caught sight of the anger bubbling underneath the relieved demeanour and he suspected Harry's twins were right when they mentioned something had happened within the Order.

"Is there anything else, headmaster?"

"No, that was all. I worry about the boy." Dumbledore said and Tom barely bit back his scoff of derision.

"I can imagine."

Dumbledore nodded and left, Tom shook his head and took a deep breath; he had a teen to kill.


Albus Dumbledore left his professor's office and went directly to his own, he had scheduled the emergency Order meeting to be directly after dinner and he knew they would not start without him. It was necessary to meet immediately, and he had to check in from an impartial party on the Potter boy's behaviour as it regarded the upcoming meeting. When he got to his office, he wasted no time in flooing to the kitchen of Grimauld Place, and was pleased to see his followers waiting eagerly for his presence among them.

"Good evening," Dumbledore greeted, his grandfatherly mask fully in place. "We have a few things to cover this evening, but first, we have something that cannot wait."

"What is it, headmaster?" Diggle asked and Dumbledore but on a grave expression.

"It seems that we have lost all communication with Remus. He has been running envoys with the werewolves and we have not heard from him, or been left signs in a number of weeks." Dumbledore explained, using the cover he had created for most of the Order. He thought it was pointless them all knowing Remus was being kept controlled in the house so he didn't run off with the Potter boy in some misplaced attempted at protection. Of course, it also wouldn't help that, on the chance Remus did run off it would mean he would have broken through the numerous spells Dumbledore had placed on him and that would be disastrous. And that is exactly what it was. Tonks had reported that Remus was missing, she had gone in to check on him as the dratted house elf refused to answer her and found the room empty.

For one thing, the werewolf shouldn't have been able to get out, the second thing was there was only one thing the wolf would be interested in and that would be Potter. With Lupin loose it meant the spells had loosened or broken and that could have serious repercussions, he would have to keep an even closer eye on Potter to make sure he had no contact with the werewolf, he might even spin it so it looked like Lupin had been captured by the dark forces so the boy wouldn't believe any words the wolf said to him. This was a serious upset to his plans, he didn't factor in the wolf escaping and now it would take his attentions away from where they needed to be. Dumbledore pulled himself out of his thoughts and watches as most of the Order looked disappointed at the news while others looked indifferent, it was the reaction he expected and he was very happy that a major fuss was not created.

"I shall be looking in to his disappearance, but for now we have to work under the assumption that he has been captured or killed." Dumbledore said and they nodded.

"Headmaster, while we are on the topic of wolves," Moody spoke up, "It seems that they are disappearing as we speak."

"Yes, the WPP has brought in many reports stating all of their watch bases are now empty." Kingsley agreed,

"And there was this big thing in office yesterday because thirteen WPP officers turned up dead and the others injured. It seems they were looking for a pack and ran in to some opposition, but the ones that survived said the same things: Masked and powerful, but not death eaters." Tonks added.

"This is strange, the darkness seems to be spreading and we will have to up our effort to purge our world of it so we are safe." Dumbledore mused.

"We can be more active now." Moody growled, pleased.

"Yes, the Wizengamot passed our recent law and we are now a legal defensive group. I believe Scrimgeor shall be approaching you, Kingsley, to act as a liaison between us and the aurors." Dumbledore said to him. "It should help us get even more sensitive information to help defeat the dark."

"I will wait for him to act, Albus."

"Very well." Dumbledore nodded, "That should be all unless anyone else has things they wish to discuss?" when no one spoke up they were dismissed and Dumbledore waited until there was a smaller group present, those who were fully inducted to his plans.

"We'll have to watch the boy, Albus." Molly said instantly, as soon as the privacy spells were in place. "With the wolf on the loose he could get in contact."

"I know, I plan on calling him to my office and explaining that we believe Lupin has been captured."

"That should stop him believing anything he is sent." Tonks said and Dumbledore nodded.

"Yes. I will need to watch him."

"My Ginny should be up soon. Madam Pomfrey has finally finished healing her completely, and there have been no more complications, so she can be the eyes within the school." Molly stated and Dumbledore nodded.

"That will allow me to focus on other things. How goes the purge?"

"A few of the darker bases I have picked up over the years have been eliminated." Moody told him gruffly, "Plus, I have put targets on a few minor darker houses; the Danhills, the Howards, the Dennis' to name some."

"Good, this will show that they cannot hide."

"I think I may have found some information on some dark creatures, they are not wolf or vampire but I am not sure what they are just yet." Tonks spoke up, "I am looking in to it and tracking them."

"Keep a very close eye on them, anything related to the dark is dangerous."

"I will, headmaster."

"Is there anything else?" when they shook their heads he called an end to the meeting, they said their goodbyes and Dumbledore returned to the school. He would have to wait and see, but he knew, in the end, everything would work out. He was, after all, Albus Dumbledore. Soon to be hailed the greatest wizard ever.


Harry looked up from his book when he felt his portrait open, Tom walked, well more like stalked given his current mood, in and glared at Harry.

"What in Merlin's name were you thinking jumping out the window like that?" He demanded, but Harry was not listening to that. His attention had been caught when he saw what Tom was wearing when he walked in. The man had lost his usual form fitting robes and was dressed in black trousers, which were a very nice fit if Harry were to share his opinion, a tight, long sleeve button up shirt with the top two buttons undone and the sleeves rolled up. Harry swallowed hard. Tom raised his eyebrow at Harry's silence before he noticed the green eyes rapidly going dark, he smirked and slowly walk forward.

"See something you like?" Tom asked lightly,

"Very much so," Harry answered huskily, "But I think I can make an improvement." He went over to Tom and vanished the man's shirt with a flick of his wrist, he seized Tom in a heated kiss as he ran a hand down the man's chest and abs. Harry's hand was getting progressively lower until he brushed against Tom's growing erection gaining a low moan, which increased when Harry applied pressure. He felt Tom playing with the lip of his jeans and before anything else could happen someone cleared their throat. They both span to see a flushed Luna, Paws, Badger, Venom, Swift and Bleach, and the twins were behind them grinning at Harry,

"Can I help you?" Harry asked with a raised eyebrow,

"Um we have an important update." Paws answered and Harry noticed their eyes drifting, he looked to his left and saw Tom was, unashamedly, stood their shirtless with his arms crossed. Harry's eyes narrowed at his friends, he released a sharp whistle and snapped his fingers,

"Hey, eyes up yeah? Or on me." He snapped and they flushed, "Tom, put your shirt on."

"You vanished it," Tom said amused, repeating the excuse Harry had given him before. Harry shot him a deadpanned look and flicked his wrist to re-dress the man, Tom smirked at him and straightened his shirt correctly.

"What is it? I have to meet with the Elite and I'm already behind on my work because of Dumbledore."

"Then you are going to love this." Fred said, as his friends came in and made themselves at home.

"Dumbledore has just had a meeting with the Order and he's got a few things planned." George picked up and Harry blinked,

"That was quick." Harry said, looking at Tom with a raised eyebrow.

"He was asking about you, he seemed worried."

"That would make sense, they have found out Moony is no longer in his cage." George said and Harry groaned.

"Damn, that means Dumbledore is going to be watching me like a hawk."

"Yes, and Ginny is going to back in play very soon."

"Wonderful." Harry sighed, "Anything else that I need to know instantly?"

"Yes, well, not you specifically." Fred said, indicating the Dark Lord stood behind him. "I don't know if they are yours, but the Danhills, the Howards and the Dennis' are being tracked and targeted by Moody."

"They will be alerted,"

"Oh, and Snake. Expect to be called up to Dumbledore's office, he is going to tell you Moony has been captured to make sure you won't believe anything if you were to receive it." George warned him and Harry scowled but nodded.

"Thanks guys," Harry ran a hand through his hair, "Badger, take this and go shopping to anything you want to put in the greenhouses, hell, buy more greenhouses if it's needed." Harry handed him the Peverell card and the teen grinned.

"Thanks, things are wearing thin."

"Run wild."

"I will."

"Are you going to be able to put any input in to the laws?" Harry asked him and Badger nodded.

"Yes, I have spoken to Paws and I am running polishing with Bleach, so anything you send to Paws with be buffed and shined through us." He said cheerfully and Harry chucked.

"Thanks. Paws, I've already given you my heir lead, so that's out the way. Swift, if you ask Raven, she knows there my latest theory is on the wards, it's not much but I've been busy. Those on law, once you've got everything polished pass them back and I'll file them for Tom and Lucius." Harry said,

"Snake, do remember to sleep. Don't think we don't know you are living at least three times." Raven warned him, "I will dose you otherwise."

"Got it."

"I've given Severus the list so he is updated." Bleach told him, and Harry nodded.

"Ok, this is great. Is there anything else before I leave?"

"No, we'll be continuing with our work and we're just going to stay here."

"Ok, I'll see you whenever." Harry said and he and the Dark Lord vanished in to the shadows.

"Do you think he will actually start looking after himself once Dumbledore is out of the castle?" Swift asked.

"He had better." Raven grumbled. "He won't have an excuse."

"It's Harry. That in itself is an excuse." Paws muttered.

Harry landed in the entrance hall of Malfoy Manor and followed Tom to one of the many sitting rooms within the grand building, he threw himself down and ruffled through his bag as Tom called his Elite.

"You know, it's fast approaching December. You'll have to start pushing if you want Dumbledore out." Tom noted and Harry sighed.

"I know. I did not expect for things to be this intense." Harry shook his head, "The thing is, I can't really push my timeturner use anymore, I am already aging myself faster and I do not want to rupture my core."

"No, I understand your caution. Especially given your approaching majority." Tom mused, "Is there anything you can pass on to draw back?"

"Not really, I mean, Paws is teaching, researching heirs and working on the laws. Swift is unravelling the wards, studying wards and magic and teaching. Badger is planting, harvesting and looking after the greenhouses, teaching, keeping an ear out for any gossip and information through school and grandmother and working laws. Bleach is doubling up making potions just to keep the sanctuary stocked, teaching, or at least assisting, and working on laws. The twins have eyes on the Order at all times, they are in and out of the ministry, they get things we are not supposed to have, double up with Bleach to make potions and run their shop.

"Moony is running the sanctuary, teaching, spreading the word for the sanctuary, researching heirs and translating. Luna is collecting all information and finding blackmail that would could need, healing with at the sanctuary, babysitting cubs, and bouncing between the others. And Venom is teaching, taking out the members of the WPP, listening to the whispers that usually go unnoticed, translating anything that comes in Italian or some version of ancient languages from Italy and bouncing around everyone else." Harry then groaned, Tom blinked a few times.

"I see," He shook his head and Harry sighed.

"I'll just have to deal with it." He leaned back in his chair just as the Elite walked in. Tom waved his wand and the seating formed a semi-circle around himself and Harry, the Elite took their seats and looked at their Lord.

"As you know, there has been movement amongst the werewolves and it has been causing a stir. It was briefly mentioned the last time we met, but the one responsible was not in attendance, due to the fact he believes in trying to kill himself." Tom began and Harry threw him a look.

"I did not try to kill myself. I was merely outnumbered." Harry told him primly.

"Indeed," Tom returned, his tone telling exactly what he thought, "Your sanctuary."

"As you would have noticed, there have been werewolves disappearing all around the country after the announcement of the WPP. This is because I have opened a werewolf sanctuary, which is hidden from the world and can only be accessed by those who are werewolves and those I have personally keyed in to the wards." Harry explained,

"What are you doing in this 'sanctuary'? What is it even for?" Nott asked, the sneer barely hidden in his words. Harry's left eye twitched but otherwise he gave no reaction.

"The sanctuary is a safety place for the wolves to reside without facing persecution, and I am funding it. I have others helping run it." Harry answered calmly.

"What exactly are you funding? They will be found eventually." Nott stated and Harry twitched.

"I highly doubt it. The ward is impenetrable, and on the off chance that it is found then the area is highly defended. As for what's being funded, there are easily over a hundred wolves living at the Sanctuary being kept in clothes, food and drink, and medical care." Harry said.

"You pay for it all?" Rodolphus asked, surprised.

"Yes," Harry nodded, "Now, a problem we have found is the amount of potions needed. I have already spoken with Snape and he had agreed to give an extra pair of hands for potions, Badger is working on getting more plants and ingredients for the potions and I know Bleach will be stocking up too."

"I have been handed a list of potions that need to be made in mass." Severus confirmed, "Though the numbers are large, I can have three or four cauldrons of the same potion at once."

"Good, there are going to be more wolves coming in and Moonrise believes there may be wolves from other countries seeking refuge." Harry said,

"You do realise that there is a possibility you'll be overwhelmed by sheer numbers. There cannot be many places that can house that many people." Rodolphus pointed out, and Harry smirked.

"I can safely say that it will take many years for this place to run out of space." Harry told him surely, "It's rather large." Tom rolled his eyes at the understatement.

"What else happens at this sanctuary?" Dolohov asked,

"Well, mainly mine are teaching the cubs. We are trying to integrate them back in to a relatively normal lifestyle, things like familiarising them with living indoors, eating at a table and learning magic, or magical topics if they do not have the ability to actively cast." Harry told them, "I believe there are group classes as well as one to one apprenticeships which are currently in place."

"Impressive,"

"I personally visited the sanctuary and it, according to the wolves and those running it, a resounding success." Harry said proudly, and he studiously ignored Nott's sneer.

"As Lucius and Izar would have mentioned, Dumbledore successfully passed his latest law." Tom spoke, sensing that the conversation of the sanctuary was over.

"Yes, it passed by majority and seemed to be highly popular." Lucius agreed.

"Badger did say that there had been functions to gain support." Harry said, "Though, I expect that there those who were less than impressed. Hadrian, for example?"

"You are correct, Hadrian is not pleased." Lucius admitted.

"That should be amusing." Harry muttered.

"In regards to the law, it has been collected to allow us to exploit it for our own interpretation."

"Manic and Panic snatched it as soon as possible." Harry agreed, pulling it from his bag. "I haven't been able to look at it myself."

The Magical Protection Act 1996:

"The magical protection act," Bellatrix read, her voice lined with derision, "Dumbledore believes he is protecting magic. The man is insane." Harry barely stopped himself from snorting, coming from Bellatrix Lestrange, calling anyone insane was damn right hypocritical. Though, Harry looked her over and did note she didn't look half as insane as she was the last time he saw her. The counter curse seemed to have been a success, Harry hadn't actually spoken to Tom about it but he assumed because the man was no longer practically twitching in agitation.

"Yes, but Dumbledore believes he is the only one who can rule over and protect the magical world." Harry said, "He's a narcissist, with a major superiority complex and an ego to match. The problem with Dumbledore is that he can act, he can act and manipulate the people around him because he has bred them to look at him in a certain way."

"What do you mean, 'bred' them?" Nott snapped and Harry rolled his eyes.

"It's simple if you think about it. Dumbledore has been teaching in that school for at least seventy years, and he has been headmaster for at least forty years. That means there are several generations of people that have looked upon and have been taught to believe in the image Dumbledore presents, that means there are four generations of people within our ministry, our world, that believe Dumbledore is the next Merlin." Harry explained, "Dumbledore chose the best place to put himself to be."

"That explains him never taking the minister spot." Dolohov mused.

"Anyway, back to the law." Harry said.

The Chief Warlock, by and with the advice and consent of the Wizengamot, England, enacts as follows:

Any individual found to be part of an independent or subordinate vigilante action shall not be in breach of the law if they are acting within the protection of magic.

The act of protecting magic falls when-

The individual or subordinate captures or fights against those harming magic,

The action of harming of magic falls within subsection (2)

The individual or subordinate uses their resources to aid those that fall within subsection (3)

The action of harming magic falls when it-

Involves serious harm against those within subsection (3)

Involves serious damage to property belonging to those within subsection (3)

Endangers a life of any within subsection (3), other than that of the person committing the action, or

Creates a serious risk to the upholding of the Statue of Security.

Those fall within this subsection if they-

Are a witch or wizard residing within WUK

Are a magical being (See MoM Classification 1811)

"Wow, Dumbledore really did screw up." Harry laughed, looking at the law with a smirk on his face.

"I don't know, this is not as bad as I thought. There are very few things that can be twisted."

"Are you serious? This is practically laid out for us to manipulate, we can use it to make the Death Eaters legal and there is nothing they can do about it." Harry said enthusiastically. He looked up and met blank looks, he blinked. "You really don't see it?"

"The way the current ministry is, we fall within multiple clauses within Sub (2)." Lucius pointed out, and Harry shook his head.

"That's completely beside the point." Harry insisted. "Here," Harry pulled out multiple thick folders from his bag and laid them out on the coffee table. He knelt on the floor next to the table as he organised everything, he quickly filled the table with sheets of parchment that were filled with different colour notes.

"What in Merlin's name is all this." Lucius questioned, his eyes flicking all over the sheets.

"This is just something I have been working on." Harry said, "I have been tearing in to the ministry classifications that have been defining our world for the past century and they are completely riddled with faults, most of which can be exploited for ourselves. What I have been doing is reclassifying creatures, races, beasts, beings and blood status for future reference. To do that, I have been cross referencing magical history and other cultures to build a reliable and definitive classification, that is not prejudice and that is actually accurate." Harry looked up and saw he was being given looks that clearly said they thought he was insane. "Um yes?"

"What do you mean, reclassifying?" Rabastan questioned, and Harry smiled slightly.

"Take the ministry classification of a 'magical being' from 1811." Harry said, picking up, "The ministry states that 'any creature that has sufficient intelligence to understand the laws of the magical community and to bear part of the responsibility in shaping those laws.' Is a magical being. However, this was written by a pureblood supremacist who added a clause that stated those of muggleborn birth were not witches or wizards but only magical beings. This, for us currently, is very beneficial, because werewolves are also beings, vampires are also beings, all the dark creatures that we have been working to get better laws and regulations for are beings. The Death Eaters are, in core, fighting to protect magical beings, and using their resources to protect them, I.E. the Death Eaters are a vigilante action acting within the protection of magic."

"Very impressive, Snake." Tom drawled and Harry flashed him a smirk.

"What can I say, it's a talent."

"Dumbledore won't even realise his mistake."

"I know, and it's because he's allowed the old laws and classifications stew. If he would have fixed the details on muggleborn status then we probably would have had a problem." Harry stated, "And before you argue, I am already working on something that will enable muggleborn to integrate and flourish in our society without the muggle influence."

"What other things have you been working on?" Lucius asked, after looking at his Lord for permission.

"Well, on the relative same note, I have been looking in to current laws also. I know I've got mine looking at them too, however, I've been looking in to things that will gain public favour and make them more receptive to the new laws." Harry explained, "The laws have been this way for so long that suggesting that werewolves be allowed to live like normal people would cause an uproar, because they have been taught to believe that wolves are nothing but rabid creatures that have no control. However, if we can prove them otherwise then their arguments become invalid."

"But to do that it would be extremely difficult." Rodolphus pointed out and Harry shook his head.

"Not if you're willing to look." Harry responded, "Take the vampire laws and classifications I am working on, they are part of the living dead beings section and are also classified as a dark creature due to the fact they need blood to survive. Fear and disgust have been bred through a number of things, rogue vampires creating stories of blood feasts, childes breaking in to blood lust and not being in control and those who hold a grudge against vampires fear mongering. This has made is so Vampires now seem like these vicious, uncontrolled menaces that are only after blood. Thus, the laws restricting vampires from even entering main districts like Diagon, banning them from marrying and reproducing and other such stupid things." Harry looked around to make sure they were all following what he was saying before continuing, "Now, if you actually look in to the history of the vampire, their origins, the legends and their actual culture and lifestyles, it's not hard to illustrate that they are nothing like they are portrayed to be. Vampires don't even need to kill their donors, just drink their fill, and if they had access to a regular blood supply from willing donors
" Harry trailed off as he looked as his research, his mind running through multiple ideas that had just appeared. Tom looked at Harry and noticed the glazed look in his eye and stopped his Elite from calling on the teen.

"Just wait for it, he does this." He told them. Harry tilted his head mentally poked his connection with Paws,

Yes? She asked,

How do the muggles go about donating and storing the donated blood? Harry questioned and he felt her mental blink in confusion.

Um, you give around a pint of blood every three to four months, and the hospitals freeze the blood to keep it fresh. She answered slowly.

There is no adverse affected from it leaving the body before it is used, it doesn't lose any qualities?

No, it's perfectly fine.

Ok, thanks.

Why?

Tell you later. Harry cut the connection and his idea settled in his mind, he blinked a few times coming back to the present and smirked.

"I knew I was a genius." He stated, shaking his head as if he was surprised with his brain power. "I, without a doubt, was put on this earth to be above the mere mortals that I am forced to survive with. Seriously, my mere conception was blessed by the Lady magic herself. For I am MAN." Harry finished his declaration grandly, his hands raised in a placating gesture and his eyes closed in relish. The Elite were stunned in to absolute silence, and Tom had a hand over his mouth as if to keep his amusement internal.

"Have you had an idea, Snake?" He managed to ask, and Harry nodded slowly.

"The things I come up with, I am just beyond." He replied seriously, and Rabastan cracked up. He had been getting used to the Potter Lord since he had been working on the wards and he found the teen to be great, this wasn't the first time he had heard a grand declaration but this was definitely the best one to date.

"Oh good Merlin," He gasped, "Do you even hear yourself." Harry grinned,

"I have just come up with the answer to the problems that will be raised when it comes to the Vampire laws." He told them.

"Go on," Tom said, as it seemed no one else had regained the ability to speak yet,

"The obvious counter argument that is going to be raised when it is pointed out that Vampires don't need to drain their donors is going to be the forced bite and the trauma that surrounds the incident."

"That much is obvious." Nott stated, looking at him in disdain, and Harry threw him a look of loathing before turning back to his work.

"It was one of the things that made our attempts back within the first war fall through." Lucius added and Harry smirked.

"Yes, but my thought process is never conventional," He pointed out, and he turned to Tom, "Blood banks." The Elite look at him in confusion, but the Dark Lord's eyes lit up and he smirked.

"That is truly a fantastic idea, we have the means to store it with Runes and spells, as well as keep it fresh and warm." Tom said and Harry nodded.

"That, and we have an entire wing in Azkaban that is filled with soulless people that can be drained and put to good use." Harry pointed out and Tom shook his head with a wry smirk.

"Can you make it happen?" He questioned and Harry tilted his head, he summoned a quill and some fresh parchment from his bag and began scribbling ideas down.

"I'll need a centre to take in donations, contracts drawn up that can be signed by those working, donating and receiving blood. I'll need to work out how many donations per week that will be needed, and I'll need to work out a system to regulate and control donations. Blood tests will need to be taken, and maybe there could be a program for people so sell blood if they have a certain type that is sought after, something could be set up for the vampires to buy it or at least make donations to the upkeep of the blood they will be drinking." Harry muttered to himself, and then he underlined something. "Probably going to need an incentive to get people donating, blood is powerful after all, but if there was a law in place then it might help. I'll need to research it, and I'll need to create the clauses that make it fair and practically." Harry waved his hand to pack all of his things away when Tom tugged at his hair.

"You haven't finished yet." Tom said amused, and Harry pouted.

"Fine, I'll do extra time."

"Now, Lucius and Izar, your input for the new ministry laws will be crucial. Start compiling plans and laws that we will want to have put through and I will cross reference it with Harry and his research and drafts." Tom told them, "You have direct access to the older laws, especially you, Lucius."

"As you wish, my Lord."

"We've had intelligence given to us that Moody is tracking the Danhills, the Howards and the Dennis'," Tom told them, "Bella, Rodolphus, I'll need your eyes out to watch him. Get rid of Moody if you can, but do not engage in a full duel, stealth is high priority."

"Yes, my Lord."

"Dolohov, keep monitoring all the dark creatures we know about and make sure they are not being tracked. If they are report back to me instantly and alert them in a sign of goodwill."

"I will, my Lord."

"Severus, continue with your monitoring the old fool, and working on the potions."

"Very well, my Lord."

"And Rabastan, I want you to continue to put all of your time in to those wards."

"I can do that, my Lord,"

"Good," Tom nodded in dismissal and the Elite bowed and began to drift out.

"Oh, Malfoy." Harry called,

"Yes?"

"I apologise in advance for all renovations, changes and ideas Cissa comes up with within the next month." Harry told him with a smirk, and Lucius shuddered.

"Noted,"

Harry laughed to himself as the blond Lord walked out with the rest of the Elite, Tom chuckled and Harry flashed him a grin.

"Cissa did say she liked my ballroom."

"Come, you have things to do." Tom said and Harry nodded.

"I know, I also have things to make up for." Harry agreed with a pointed look. Tom ensnared Harry at the waist and pulled him close, he claimed Harry's lips in a heated kiss.

"I have to agree,"

Harry laughed and they vanished in to the shadows, not noticing the mercury eyes watching them as they went.

Notes:

Thanks for reading, guys!!

Chapter 33

Notes:

So, I'm a terrible person and forgot about AO3 so I'm doing a massive upload to try and get this fic up to where it should be.

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 33:

 

Harry was still laughing when the shadows vanished and Tom pinned against the nearest wall, his eyes were dancing as he looked at Tom.

“Patience is a virtue.” Harry told him and Tom scoffed.

“In what way did I make you think I was a saint?” He countered and Harry laughed.

“Is there something you wanted, Tom?” He asked, tilting his head slightly. Tom pressed himself closer to the teen, biting lightly on his earlobe.

“I like how we left off,” He murmured.

“Oh, remind me?” Harry said, his voice dropping as Tom trailed kisses down on to his neck. He breathed in sharply when Tom’s hands started to wander over his body and he bit his lip to stop any sound coming out when Tom brushed over his nipple.

“You were without these unnecessary clothes,” Tom told him, easily vanishing his top with a snap of his fingers, “And you had these gorgeous legs wrapped around me.” Tom’s hands drifted lower and lifted Harry up as if he weighed nothing, Harry wrapped his legs around Tom’s waist, moaning at the friction it caused.

“It’s coming back to me.” Harry admitted, rolling his hips and he hissed when Tom bit down on his neck hard. “Had you not just mentioned how you going to make me forget my own name?”

“Something like that.” Tom confirmed before he was kissing him. Harry was left breathless when Tom rose for air, he was barely given time to recover before Tom turned and threw him on to the bed; literally.

“Hey, I’m not a rag doll.” He exclaimed, pushing himself on to his elbows, “I don’t appreciate being thrown around thank you very much.”

“I am sure that will be the last thing on your mind very soon.” Tom stated, stalking over. He knelt between Harry’s legs and flashed a dark smirk before he was everywhere, he kissed, licked and bit down Harry’s exposed skin, paying extra attention to his nipples and turning the teen in a whimpering mess. Tom removed the rest of Harry’s clothes, his own following instantly and wandlessly slicked his fingers to prepare his teen, Harry groaned when he saw what Tom was doing which made the Dark Lord smirk. By the time he had three fingers stretching his lover, Harry was writhing beneath him, begging for anything. Tom entered slowly, teasingly and Harry whimpered as he began a slow, even pace.

“Tom, please please.” Harry groaned, “I need more,”

“Patience is a virtue.” Tom repeated, and Harry managed to glare at him.

“I’m not a fucking saint either, so fuck me.” Harry snapped, and then yelled out when Tom slammed straight in to his prostate. His body seemed to arch up and his blood was lit on fire, and Tom did so enjoy the image Harry presented. Harry threw back his head when Tom hit that spot again, a loud cry leaving him as he did so, he could feel everything as Tom pulled out and thrust back in sharply. The Dark Lord slowed down causing Harry to whimper, he moved at a slow pace until Harry was incoherent. Harry was feeling light headed, Tom was torturing him, he couldn’t even speak probably, so he wrapped his legs around him and clenched his muscles making Tom hiss out a groan. The languid pace sped up, the lust and desire flowing between the pair was growing and for every thrust Tom gave Harry moved to meet him, their movements becoming erratic as they neared the end. Tom changed angles and repeatedly hit the spot that turned Harry in a screaming mess.

“Come for me,” He ordered, his voice husky and Harry exploded, his release hit him instantly and his vision whited. Tom felt the muscled clamp down around him and managed a few more thrusts before he filled his younger with his seed, and collapsed down next to Harry. They led there, basking in the afterglow and just enjoying the company for many minutes, Harry stretched and hissed, he rolled over and led his head on Tom’s chest, curling his hand around the man’s waist.

“You know, I have so much to do and so little time.” Harry said, his voice barely above a whisper, and he shuddered when he felt Tom’s hand trail patterns on his hip.

“How many times will you relive after this?”

“Three times,” Harry answered, “Once for ministry work, once for anti-Dumbledore work and the final for magical work.”

“What magics are you working on?” Tom asked, looking down at the dark head on his chest.

“Ah, now that would be telling.” Harry said and Tom could feel his smile.

“You are very evil.”

“I know.” Harry agreed, “I suppose I can tell you that I’m working on this very nice version of the Cruciatus curse.”

“Oh?”

“Yes, it’s coming along very nicely.”

“I can only imagine.” Tom murmured, “I would like to see it, once it is perfected.”

“Of course,” Harry agreed, “I was supposed to ask you something, but I have been rather busy.”

“Go on,”

“The counter curse, I assumed it worked, but it was highly inconsiderate for me not to ask how it went.” Harry said and Tom smiled slightly, not that Harry could see.

“Yes, it was highly successful and Bella has been working with Narcissa to overcome the fact that she, unintentionally, killed her cousin. She was rather distraught.”

“I can imagine.” Harry said, “And she didn’t even glare at me today.”

“Yes, her aversion of you has practically vanished. The curse is no longer working and you are of Black blood, you will no longer have any issues with her at all.” Tom explained and Harry nodded.

“Good.” He stayed silent for a few moments before speaking again, “What is Nott’s father like? The one you are friends with.”

“How did you know I was friends with him?” Tom asked and Harry turned to look at him questioningly.

“You told me, back when we were at Malfoy Manner still. You mentioned it, something about the disappointment Theodore would feel if he could see his son.” Harry said and Tom blinked.

“That was a tiny detail months ago, completely inconsequential.” Tom pointed out and Harry shrugged.

“I remember everything you tell me.” Harry said absently, “So, what’s he like?”

“Theodore Nott is a very simple man. He values traditions, and magic, and he is exceptionally powerful. If he saw how his son acts towards you he would probably hex him to Avalon.” Tom told him.

“That’s reassuring.” Harry said, “Because Izar Nott is coming very close to me ending him.”

“I had noticed. Izar is foolish, and he has been warned to not go against you, but he seems to be blinded by hatred.” Tom’s voice was layered in amused exasperation and Harry shook his head.

“It seems to happen a lot with me. Snape was the same until I got through to him.”

“Yes, but even that took six years.”

“Don’t remind me, Tom.” Harry huffed and whacked him when he felt Tom chuckling. “I’m leaving.” Harry sat up and went to move away but Tom wouldn’t let him.

“Do not be like that.” Tom said in amusement, “I am surprised you managed in six years.”

“Uhuh,” Harry nodded, his expression unimpressed and his tone sceptical. Tom rolled his eyes and pulled him down into a slow kiss, one that made Harry’s eyes glaze over and darken in lust.

“So sure you are leaving.”

“I-what?” Harry muttered, and Tom chuckled again. Harry shook his head to clear it and shot a small glare at Tom, one that was more of a pout than an actual glare much to Tom’s amusement.

“Distracted, Snake?”

“You are terrible.” Harry stated with a huff, he slipped out of Tom’s arms and into the bathroom to have a quick shower. He came out dressed in a looser pair of jeans and a v neck top and running his hand through his hair to dry it.

“I’ll be vanishing for the rest of the day completely, I’ll do my relives and then I’ll crash. Tomorrow, I am hoping, there will be something in the paper about the law.” Harry said to the Dark Lord, who had moved enough to sit back on the bed with underwear on.

“I believe Hadrian Greengrass would have spoken out, you may even receive a letter from him.” Tom replied and Harry nodded.

“I am hoping that is the case.” Harry agreed, “Now, I have research to conduct and a ministry to rip apart.”

“Do have fun.”

“I will.” Harry kissed his cheek and shadowed away.

 

 


 

 

War Council:

Dumbledore Passes New Ministry Law:

Senior Undersecretary Speaks out!

 

In a shocking move within the last Wizengamot Session, the Chief Warlock, Albus Dumbledore, invoked the War Council and passed through one of the first War Legislations by Majority vote: The Magical Protection Act.

 

With this surprising move, speculation has arose to just what the motivation was behind this sudden move. Since the first war, rumours have spread about a Vigilante group, run by Dumbledore, working to combat the dark forces within out world, and with this passing of legislation it has been speculated that it could be another ploy to give Dumbledore yet more power. As Headmaster, Chief Warlock and Supreme Mugwump of the ICW, Dumbledore is one of the most politically powerful men, if not the most, in our world, with this passing of this law he will now have the power to direct his group, said to be called the Order of the Phoenix, to capture and take down those believed to be within the Dark. But isn’t this a job for our aurors and ministry staff? Why, suddenly, is such a law being put through allowing civilians to interfere with the law? One member of the ministry, and a Lord who voted against the passing of the law, was Undersecretary Greengrass, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Greengrass.

“It is ridiculous,” He said, walking through the ministry where we managed to catch him. “This is nothing more than an indiscrete power play enabling those who have no business taking the law in to their own hands to do so.”

His distaste for Dumbledore’s latest mood was apparent, and it was apparent he was not the only one. Mr Lucius Malfoy, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Malfoy, was also available for comment.

“This latest law is an act of desperation.” He told us, “With Dumbledore’s recent exposĂ©, people are starting to doubt, rightly so, if he has what’s best for our world in mind. He has had too damage control, and with this law, Dumbledore, as his vigilante group are able to remove his opposition in the name of the law. It is a disgrace.”

Speculation will continue to grow and people will ask themselves if this was truly the best course of action for our world, and, eventually, they will have to ask themselves if Dumbledore is really as honest as he makes out to be.

Rita Skeeter, Daily Prophet Correspondent.

 

Harry raised an eyebrow at the paper, Rita was turning to be the best thing they had on their side at the moment and he seriously had to send her a gift for all the work she was doing. Even without him telling her to. It seemed as if she wanted to ruin Dumbledore just as much as he did, and she was using anything and everything to make the old man look bad. It wasn’t as powerful or as impacting as the ones Harry was sending to her, but then, this plus the other three and the one still to come were going to pack a punch. He couldn’t wait for his finale to be released, he knew he would have to have something written up to finally push Dumbledore out but the next article was going to blow. Harry noticed that Hadrian’s owl landing next to him and he quickly undid the tie and fed the bird, it seemed the owl knew that it couldn’t be around Harry for very long because it took off with its bacon instantly.

Harry tucked the letter away and left the hall, he knew Dumbledore’s eyes were on him so he made his way to the library, he would have to sit there for a bit before retreating to his rooms and seeing Luna. His sister had been distant with him since the wolf attack, but he had something for her. While he was busy with his research yesterday, he had taken a little break to create something for her, and he hoped she liked it. The library was quite today, as it always was on a Sunday and Harry made his way to his usual spot, gladly dropping down to his table and pulling out a book. It was a history book, he wasn’t taking the class granted, but he could get away with saying he wanted to take it at the ministry as he had gotten an A in it after all. Of course, if one were to inspect the book he was actually reading then he would have to make up some hastily made excuses on how he had got the book and why he was reading it; which is was why it was charmed to Avalon and back. Harry had nearly finished his book, and the notes he was making, when his little bubble was popped a despondent little figure dropped down opposite him.

“Hey, Little Elf,”

“Hi,” He replied in a small voice, and Harry frowned.

“What’s up?”

“I couldn’t find you yesterday.” She whispered, and looked up showing Harry a bruise on her cheek and a split lip. His eyes flashed dangerously and he stood abruptly, making her flinch slightly.

“Sorry,” He said, taking a breath to calm himself. “I was stupidly busy yesterday, but that is no excuse.”

“What were you doing?” Alina asked and Harry grimaced.

“Trying to fix the ministry, it’s a long process.”

“Why are you trying to fix it? Isn’t that Fudge’s job?”

“Yes, but he’s practically useless and he won’t be in power much longer.” Harry stated, and then he sighed. “I can’t have you being attacked and then not being able to find me. Come on,” She blinked at the instruction but followed him out of the library. The halls were desolate and Harry took the quickest route to the defence corridor he knew, making sure to point out unique details so Alina would be able to find the same route if she so wished. He walked down to his rooms and the portrait swung open, he mentally asked Hogwarts to recognise Alina and allow her access at all times and he felt the warm of the castle agreeing with his request.

“Where are we?” She asked, looking around with wide eyes.

“This is where I live.” Harry answered, “And now you know where it is, you can come here if you want. Even if there is no one here, I will know when you enter and come see you. But I don’t mind if you just stayed here to hide out, there are books and I have elves that work here if you wanted anything.”

“Really?”

“Of course.” Harry assured. She beamed at him and flung her arms around his middle, Harry often forgot how small she was because her head rested on his stomach.

“Thank you, Harry.”

“So what’s say we hang out here for the day and you can help me bribe my sister with cookies?” He suggested and Alina nodded delightedly. “Let’s get out of these horrible robes first.” Harry snapped his fingers and Winky popped in, a smile ready for her master.

“Yes Master Harry?”

“Can you go and collect a change of clothes for Alina? Something like my Sunday clothes.” Harry questioned and she nodded.

“Right away, Master.”

“Let me show you around, not that there’s much to see.”

“Ok,” She agreed, “How comes you have your own rooms?”

“Dumbledore’s a bit of a d-,” He cut himself off and looked at the little elf by his side, he reminded himself that she was little and that she shouldn’t be swearing yet. “He’s a bit of a fool.”

“Oh.” She frowned, “I know why, but why?” Harry chuckled at the bizarreness of that sentence, but he understood what she meant.

“He’s under the belief that if he separates me from my friends then he’ll get what he wants easier.” Harry told her.

“It’s not working how he wants it to, is it?” She said after a few moments and Harry snorted.

“Not even close.” He confirmed. They got to his bedroom and Harry grinned when she bounced on the bed before hopping off, he pushed open the bathroom door and she gasped.

“It’s huge!” She exclaimed and Harry blinked.

“No, it’s rather normal.” He corrected, “I’ll show you a huge bathroom one day, its like three times this size.”

“Wow!” She whispered amazed. Winky popped back in and handed Alina the clothes, and Harry herded her in to the bathroom.

“Run wild.” He told her with a laugh. He grabbed his own clothes and slipped in to his joggers and a tight top, forgoing shoes and padding over to his wardrobe in his socks. He hissed at the secret compartment he had creates and pulled out a covered hanger, a white box and a blue velvet case. He carried them down to the living room, hanging the hanger on the door and putting the box and the case on a conjured table. Alina came barrelling down in to the room and Harry very nearly cooed, she looked adorable, and even smaller in before. She was dressed in a set of dark blue dungarees that finished in a pleated skirt, with a green and pink pattern over them, over a dark pink top and cute little black shoes with white socks pulled up to her knees. It was an outfit that made her look years younger and Harry couldn’t help but smile. He picked her up and deposited her on the kitchen counter much to her shock, he called for Winky and asked for some ingredients before looking back at Alina.

“What’s in the bag?” She asked, pointed to the hanger off the door.

“Ah, that’s something for my sister.” Harry replied, “Want to see?”

“Yes.”

Harry unzipped the bag and held it up, Alina gasped and looked at the piece in awe.

“Whoa, where did you get it?”

“I made it.” Harry told her, zipping it back up.

“You made it?” She repeated, shocked and Harry grinned.

“Yeah, bit of a pass time for me.”

“That’s so cool!”

“Thanks.” Harry said, putting the hanger back. He went back to the kitchen and grabbed one of the bowls left by Winky. “Have you ever made cookies before?”

“No,” She shook her head, looking at the collection of ingredients with interest. “Can you even do that?”

“Of course I can.” Harry said, “And you are going to help me. It will be fun.” Harry put a bowl in front of Alina along with a sieve. “Ok, first thing is first. We need to sieve the flour. Just do what I do.” Harry put a spoon full of flour in his own sieve and shook it gently over a bowl, Alina watched him with keen eyes and did the same thing, she was a bit messier than Harry but it was to be expected. They repeated the motion a few times until they had the right amount of flour, then Harry added some salt and Bi Carb and put the bowls to the side.

“Next we have to mush some stuff together.” Harry told her. “We have to get the butter and mush it with the sugars.” He passed her a bowl with chunks of butter in it and poured in the brown and caster sugar on top, handing her a fork to start with.

“What do I do?” She questioned, looking at the bowl.

“Just mash it up.” Harry said, “Doesn’t have to be neat.” To illustrate, he began mashing with his fork and she laughed and copied him. They continued until all the sugar was gone and Harry swapped out her fork for a wooden spoon, he cracked an egg and added it, threw in an egg yolk and some vanilla.

“I gotta mix it?” Alina confirmed and Harry nodded. He watched her as she mixed everything together as he absently mixed his own, when it was blended together he flashed a grin.

“Now for the messy bit.” He said, “We have to put the flour in to this, and we get to mix it with our hands.”

“Wicked!” She dumped all the flour in to the mix and stuck her hands right on, her nose wrinkling cutely when she felt the gooey mix around her hands. The flour kept puffing up as she was mixing it and Harry laughed when she looked surprised, Alina pouted and flicked some of it at him. When the mix was binding, Harry threw in some chocolate chips, both white and milk and they mixed them in until the dough was ready. He tapped the oven with his wand to get it to the right temperature and then separated the dough in to even size balls before sliding them in to the oven, setting an alarm to alert them when they were done. Harry cleaned them up with a wave of his hand and lifted Alina back on to the ground.

“How long do they take?”

“About fifteen minutes.” Harry said, “So not long.” They both looked around when Luna danced her way in, and Harry flashed her a smile as Alina waved.

“I was wondering where you were.” Harry said, “Can you sort Alina’s face out please?”

“I’ve been listening to things, nothing that interesting, only Dumbledore’s ability to prove he is in fact a fool.” Luna told him, “And of course, hold still Alina.” Luna waved her wand and the makes all but vanished. “I’ll get you a salve to put on your cheek before you leave.”

“Thank you, Luna.”

“No problem.” She turned to make her way upstairs but Harry cleared his throat.

“Don’t you want to see your presents?” He asked innocently and her eyes light up.

“I thought you had forgotten.” She said and Harry scoffed.

“As if,” He waved the very thought away, “No, this just took a bit more time.” He pointed to the door and where the hanger, box and case were resting and her pale eyebrows rose. She opened the case first, inside was a simple set of diamond stud earrings with three matching silver bracelets, each with four stones on them. The next thing she opened was the box and took out its contents, it was a pair of simple white satin platformed heels, with a line of diamonds going down the heel. Luna squealed slightly when she saw them and carefully put them away. Finally she turned to the hanger and unzipped the bag, she gasped in utter awe when she laid eyes on what was inside. It was a floor length ball gown, made from ice blue satin and a sweetheart neck line. It was a fishtail design and the base of the dress was entirely backless, however, to preserve her modesty, there was a layer of intricately designed lace and mesh that covered the dress, adding texture and detail. The lace went up to the neck and it was long sleeve, and on the back, where the dress stopped, the lace was there covering and in each of the twisted flowers there was a diamond stitched in.

“Oh Harry,” She breathed, her eyes tearing up as she looked at the masterpiece.

“I’m so sorry for worrying you.” He said and stepped back a few times with the force of Luna throwing herself at him,

“You idiot.” She muttered in to his shoulder.

“I’m taking a guess here, but I assume you like them?”

“Harry they’re beautiful!” She exclaimed, “I can’t believe you did this.”

“Anything for you.”

“I think I shall wear this one to the Malfoy ball. The Malfoys usually throw the best ones and I want something perfect.” Luna decided and Harry smirked.

“I have plans for the balls anyway, I am quite looking forward to them.”

“I can imagine.”

“Harry, the cookies.” Alina called from where she had taken up residence in front of the oven, her head poked up over the counter and Harry grinned.

“Oh yes, we can’t have them burning now, can we?”

“Nope.”

Harry tapped his hands with his wand before opening the over and taking out the cookies, they smelled pretty amazing and he placed the trays on the counter.

“Tah dah!”

“I do so love it when you bake.” Luna sighed happily, carefully grabbing a piping hot cooking and putting it on a plate.

“Alina helped today.” Harry said, grabbing a cooking for himself and handing one to the girl in question.

“Really? Did you have fun?”

“Yes! I’ve never made cookies before.” She told Luna.

“Harry makes other things too, he’ll probably show you some other time.” Luna said, “He’s a rather good cook.” To emphasis her point she bit in to the cooling cookie and smiled.

“So you cook and make clothes?” Alina said, as if she didn’t believe it.

“And duels, creates spells, plays quidditch and has a gift with animals.” Luna added.

“Whoa, you’re like Merlin or something.” She breathed and Harry laughed.

“I wouldn’t say that, I just happen to have learned different things.”

“You’re still amazing.”

“Thanks,” Harry said with a smile, “How about I show you some spells before you leave, that way you can get ahead in Professor Drield’s class and he will like that.”

“He was so happy with my essay, said it was the best one he had ever read from a first year and I got twenty points.” Alina said proudly, “That book is helpful.”

“Have you covered the disarming spell practically yet?”

“Yes, Professor had us learn that when we handed the essay in.” Alina said, “We’re working on the shield charm now.”

“Ok, shall we go through that and I can show you a few others, one’s I know you’ll be learning after Yule.”

“Yes!” She bounced around to the main area and Harry followed her with a shake of his head. Luna made herself comfortable in Harry’s chair and sat back and watched, Harry was a great teacher and she liked watching him work.

“So the first thing you have to remember is that the shield is there to protect you, so that means you have to want it to protect you. Many first years struggle with this spell.”

“No one has gotten it yet, we’ve has a few lights but even Jamie Fisher, who gets all the spells, can’t get it.” Alina said emphatically and Harry nodded.

“It’s because it’s not really in the curriculum on how to get this spell up straight away.” Harry said, “Now, I want you to think, really think, of something in front of you protecting you. You have to concentrate fully on being protected, on wanting to stay safe. Try closing your eyes too, and imaging that shield there protecting you from harm.” Alina closed her eyes and did what Harry said, frowning as she pictured being safe and protected and Harry nodded to himself.

“Keep picturing it, it is the most important thing on your mind, picture it clearly.” He said, his voice soothing and low, “Now speak the word Protego,”

“Protego,” She spoke clearly and a clear blue shield erupted from her wand, it was firm and powerful and Harry smiled proudly. He knew that this method worked because it was one he used with the DA for those who still couldn’t get the shield, it wasn’t taught at school but if you pictured something enough your magic would finish it for you; it was helpful like that.

“Open your eyes.” He instructed, and she gasped when she saw the shield. As expected, it rippled and flickered out, but she had seen it and she looked at Harry with excitement.

“Did you see that? I did it, I actually did it.” She cried and Harry smiled.

“Yes you did. Do you remember how it felt when you said the spell?” He questioned and she tilted her head.

“It was warm, I could feel my magic flowing and then it was gone.”

“Good. Let’s do it again, except this time you keep your eyes open and when you see the shield you don’t lose focus.” Harry said and she nodded determinedly. They went through the stages again and the shield came from her wand, it flickered slightly but Harry saw her face frown in concentration and it help up and she smiled.

“Congratulations.” Harry told her.

“So do I have to concentrate like that all the time?” She asked, looking the spell over before it faded out, and Harry shook his head.

“No, we’ll go through this another time and then we’ll go on to the cheating way. Once you’ve learned the spell properly then there is usually a quicker way of doing it.”

“Cool,” Alina managed to get the shield up without a flicker this time and Harry grinned, she was definitely a powerful little thing.

“Can you still feel your magic?” He questioned and she nodded, “Ok, what I want you to do is remember that feeling, memorise it, let it fill you up.” Harry knew she had did it when she gasped. “Ok, now, thinking of only that feeling, say the spell.” The shield burst out, stronger than before and her eyes went wide.

“Wow!”

“It’s an amazing feeling, right?”

“Yes, it’s tingling.”

“Do it again and then we’ll move on. You can practice on your own before the class.” Harry said. He thought of what to show her next, there were a few that would be coming up but he had to take in to account that they weren’t in a practice room.

“So what next?” Alina questioned and Harry nodded to himself.

“The next spell is surprisingly easy, the trick is controlling your magic.” Harry said, “And you have to promise that if you use it against a person that you only aim for the arms because I don’t want you arrested for murder just yet.” Her eyes widened.

“What spell is it?”

“It’s the severing charm, Diffindo.”

“Professor Flitwick mentioned that one.”

“Yes, and it’s usually used for cutting ropes and clothes, however, it you have enough power and control it can cut through skin very easily. So be careful.”

“I will. I promise.”

“Good. Now, I want you to imagine this-,” He conjured up a t shirt and hung it mid-air, “Being cut in half and the bottom falling away.” To illustrate what he meant, Harry flicked his wand and the top was sliced in half, the bottom fluttering to the ground. Alina nodded and Harry repaired the top with another flick of his wand, “You’ll have to keep your eyes open for this one, you need to aim your wand at the top. Once you think you’ve got it pictured, the spell is Diffindo,” Alina repeated the spell and a violent ball of light shot from the wand, destroying the top and carving in to the wall behind. Harry gaped a little before laughing, Luna was snickering in to her hand and Alina was looking at her wand in shock.

“Powerful little Elf,” Harry said, “Did you feel the magic?”

“Yes, it felt different, like a wave.”

“I want you to imagine that feeling, but instead of the wave, I want a stream.” Harry commanded. It was a few attempts before Alina got the stream Harry was after, but by that time she could over power and under power the spell. Harry cast a tempus and blinked, it was fast approaching dinner, they had worked entirely through lunch and he shook his head; it didn’t feel like they had worked that long.

“It’s nearly dinner time.” Harry told Alina, “I can have Winky bring you some of our cookies later.”

“Thank you, Harry. You’re the best.”

“And you know you can come here whenever you want,” He said, indicating the room, “It’s no problem.”

“I will,” She looked at him before running and hugging him again and leaving.

“She’s too cute.” Harry decided.

“That outfit made her look adorable.” Luna said, “You bought that one, didn’t you?”

“I couldn’t help it.” Harry defended, “And she’s so small anyway.” Luna laughed and shook her head.

“Open your letter from Hadrian, I want to know what it says.” She told him and Harry rolled his eyes. He summoned the letter to him and broke the seal.

 

Dear Harry,

 

I have to say, your insight into how Dumbledore’s mind works is rather astonishing. You were quite correct, and when I stopped looking in to his legislation he halted his observations of my person. I realise, however, that he is getting desperate, and the passing, for it did pass if you are not yet aware, of this legislation only proves it. I did vote against it, and have been very vocal in my protest of the law, and Dumbledore is not pleased. I have not actively challenged him as of yet, so he is mere being cautious.

 

I, as you suggested, looked in to the ministerial records of court transcripts and was stunned to realise that you were, again, correct. It was not as if I doubted you, but believing that the ministry, even as corrupt as it is, would actually send a man to Azkaban without a trial is truly astonishing. I have been compiling evidence to prove the injustice, and I have been finding things that will ruin the reputation of certain individuals should they became known.

 

We must converse during the Yule break, I am sure we will have a lot to discuss. My instincts tell me that you have not been as idle as you have appeared to be, and I believe we will have much to discuss.

 

From,

Hadrian.

 

“I wonder what he has found in regards to Sirius’ trial?” Harry mused, and Luna shrugged her shoulders delicately.

“I cannot say I know as of yet.” Luna said with a frown, “I haven’t managed to be around to catch anything.”

“Do not worry about it, I mean, I will be seeing Hadrian over the Yule holidays and Yule Ball invitations shall be sent out within a week. I’ll be getting those, and depending on the style of the invitations I will have a rough idea what to wear.”

“I’ve already got that covered.” Luna chimed and Harry laughed.

“Ok then, I will have an idea on what Paws and you shall be wearing.”

“I already have one dress.” Luna said, a happy smile coming to her face and Harry grinned.

“I am glad you like it.”

“I think it may be your best one to date.”

“It came to me and I already have your sizes.” Harry shrugged. “I know you already know, but I have to fill the others in on the law and how royally Dumbledore screwed up again.”

“It is rather amusing that it was his own fault, despite how refined that law actually is.” Luna agreed, “Though, I am definitely not complaining about his screw up.”

“No, that’s for sure.”

“Do you want to call a meeting now?”

“No, I’ll speak to them tomorrow. I’m imposing my company on you for the rest of the day.” Harry told her and she beamed.

“Good. You get the rest of the food and I’ll get the sketch books.”

“Remind me to speak to the twins about the tattoo tomorrow.” Harry said to her as she darted up stairs.

“Will do.”

Harry smiled to himself as he called his house elf, he was looking forward to relaxing for the day.

 


 

He walked directly to charms Monday morning. Winky had already popped in to give him his breakfast after his training so he just didn’t bother with the Great Hall, if questions were asked he would claim he overslept due to exhaustion. They were now expected to perform silent magic in all of their practical magic application and it was a relief for Harry because he had a valid excuse for being able to case silently, Professor Drield was, after all, tutoring him privately and the man had gone through his entire spell list; well, that was what Dumbledore was being told anyway. Flitwick shot him a pleased smile when he cast a silent banishing charm and awarded him ten points, Harry grinned and continued on, he might just get away with picking up his ability. As long as he messed up the wand movements a few times it should go unnoticed, he lingered behind in the classroom when the diminutive professor called for him.

“Yes Professor?” Harry asked,

“I just wanted to speak to you about your work. Professor McGonagall explained the reasoning behind your falling essay grades and I am pleased to see your grades are coming back up.” Flitwick told him in his cheerful squeaky voice, Harry smiled in relief.

“That’s good, I was worried about failing the year.”

“You don’t have to worry about that now, Mr Potter.” Flitwick assured him, “As for your practical work, you have always had a quicker grasp on magic, but Professor Drield has assured me that you should not struggle with any silent casting due to your private tutoring.” Harry sent a mental thank you to Tom while on the outside he nodded excitedly.

“Yes, Professor Drield had me start with first year and we worked through all the spells I knew so I had a firm understanding.” Harry explained and Flitwick seemed to bounce on the spot.

“Wonderful, I hope to see the full extent during your end of year exam.”

“Of course, Professor.”

“Now, run along. I’ll send you with a message to Professor Sprout.” Flitwick waved his wand and Harry plucked the sheet of parchment out of the air,

“Thanks sir,” He waved his hand and left the room, he slipped through the corridors and out of the main doors heading towards the greenhouses, it was cold out and Harry thanked warming charms as he went. He passed his note to Professor Sprout and she waved him in to line, Harry stepped up near Neville and followed the other teen’s instructions to catch up. He would always hold a slight resentment to Herbology due to being forced to garden by the muggles, it wasn’t something he control but it was something he would have to deal with. Sprout didn’t say anything to him and Harry went to lunch, it was a rather dreary day and the mood seemed to be reflected in the hall.

It wasn’t very loud, which he was thankful for, but he didn’t linger. Harry headed up to Transfiguration early and took his custom seat at the back of the room, McGonagall nodded when he cast his spell silently and Harry was allowed to leave without homework; something he was monumentally thankful for. His final lesson for the day was potions, he hauled himself down to the dungeons and met Draco outside the classroom. Harry was thankful that Draco paid attention, because he had no idea what they were doing. Draco shot him an unimpressed look and Harry grinned sheepishly.

“Did you expect anything else?”

“You are impossible.” He sighed, “Just prepare the ingredients.” Draco pointed to a page in the book he threw at him and Harry did as he was told, potions hated him anyway.

“How did you even get in to this class?” Draco asked him, as Harry passed him the first set of ingredients.

“You know, I have no idea. I think I got lucky because the theory was on potions I know a lot about. I mean there was Polyjuice, wolfsbane and an extra credit question on Veritaserum.”

“True, that must have dragged up your grade.” Draco agreed, “As well as your prep.”

“It’s not that I can’t make a potion, it’s just that when I do it tends to go wrong.” Harry said,

“I’ve noticed.”

Being the mature one, Harry stuck his tongue out and continued preparing his ingredients. It was another thing he could pin on the muggles, due to them forcing him to cook he could use a knife better than most.

“So what are we actually making?” Harry asked when they were on the final stages of the potion.

“Have you not paid an ounce of attention?” Draco asked incredulously.

“Um
 yes?”

“Honestly!” He rolled his eyes, “It’s the numbing potion.”

“Oh, cool.” Harry peered at it, “It don’t look that great.” He noted, looking at the mustard yellow colour simmering in their cauldron.

“No, it has to stand and next lesson we’ll boil it up and it should settle on a clear honey colour.”

“Right, I’ll take your word for it.”

“You’re potion should now resemble a mustard colour. Preserve your potions and pack away.” Snape ordered, Harry took the equipment and washed up quickly before going back to his station and packing everything away as Draco preserved their potion, the last time Harry had tried to do that still made him shudder; he was pink for a week. Snape dismissed them but called for Harry and Draco to remain, Harry shrugged and sat back down, waiting for the class to file out. When the door slammed shut he felt Snape’s wards flare and turned to his Professor.

“Yes?”

“Some of the ingredients needed for the potions I am making are not available for me to retrieve and pass them for school costs.” Snape began, and Harry blinked.

“I forgot, damn, sorry about that.” Harry shook his head, “Bleach, did I give you a card?”

“Yes, want me to double up on the ingredients and pass them on?” He suggested and Harry nodded.

“Yes, Badger is working on restocking the Greenhouses, though he has got permission to buy whatever he wants so we should go back to supplying most of them ourselves. I’ll have to speak to Fenrir or Ellen and ask if there are any wolves that are able to harvest directly from the forest.” Harry mused, “I bet there’s a goldmine of things in there.”

“That’s a brilliant idea. The place is thousands of years old, after all.” Draco agreed. “I shall have your ingredients by tomorrow, Severus.”

“Very well.” Snape nodded, and they were dismissed. Harry nodded to Draco as the blond headed towards his dorm and Harry went in the opposite direction and went towards the Great Hall. He didn’t even manage to make it into the Hall before McGonagall swept over to him and told him he was expected in Dumbledore’s office. Harry nodded and smiled on the outside but on the inside he was bemoaning his suffering, he trudged up to the seventh floor and muttered the password to the statue. He knew this was coming and he knew what to expect so he steeled himself to deal with Dumbledore’s shit as he knocked on the door and entered the office.

“Ah Harry, my boy, have a seat.” Dumbledore greeted and Harry smiled.

“Hello headmaster,” Harry returned, “How are you?”

“I am fine, thank you.” He answered, “But I am afraid I do not call you here with good news?” Harry made his eyes widen and he sat forward.

“What is it? Who’s been hurt? What has Voldemort done this time?” He asked in rapid succession and Dumbledore sighed.

“I am afraid to say that, on a recent mission to the werewolves, Remus has been captured.” Dumbledore told him gravely and Harry gasped, looking horrified.

“Remus? No! It’s can’t be! Headmaster, are you sure?”

“I am so sorry, my boy, but the dark forces are indeed spreading.” Dumbledore sounded as if it caused him pain and Harry took a moment to marvel at the man’s sheer audacity. He actually believed the shit he spoke, and Harry couldn’t wait to see the man’s face when he realised just exactly how far the “dark forces” had actually spread.

“But we’re going to go save him, right?” Harry cried desperately.

“The Order is gathering intelligence to discover his last movement so we can begin tracking him to discover his location.” Dumbledore assured, “We are doing everything in our power to find him and bring him back safely.” Harry nodded, but he bit his lip as if he was worried.

“Ok. Is there anything I can do?”

“At the current time, it is best if you remain in the castle and keep training.”

“I can do that.”

“There is something I wish to warn you about.” Dumbledore began, sounding almost hesitant but Harry didn’t buy it.

“Yes sir?”

“I am afraid that, in order to lure you out, Voldemort may use Remus against you.” Dumbledore said and Harry looked shocked.

“What?”

“It is my belief that, over the next few days you may receive letters from Remus filled with lies in order to draw you away from the school and in to the Dark’s clutches.” Dumbledore explained and Harry looked sick.

“What shall I do?”

“If any such letter does come to you, I would like you to bring them to me immediately. Think nothing of the contents, for it is but a ruse.”

“Ok sir, I can do that.” Harry said, nodding determinedly, “I won’t even read them, I know Remus’ handwriting by now.”

“Very good, Harry.” Dumbledore said with a pleased smile, “And thank you for being so understanding.”

“I just hope we get him back before it’s too late.” Harry muttered despondently, looking down at his hands.

“So do I, dear boy.” Dumbledore agreed.

“Is there anything else, headmaster?” Harry asked, “I-I think I need to think this through properly.”

“No no, there is nothing else. Go, rest, I understand this is stressful for you.”

“Thank you, sir. Good evening.” Harry murmured and he left. He rolled his eyes as soon as he was free and shook himself, he would have to speak to Moony about possibly sending some fake letters to him or something; he would have to discuss it with the wolf himself. Harry headed straight back to his rooms and found Luna lounging on the sofa and he dropped down on to his chair with a sigh.

“You need to prepare yourself, Ginny will be back very soon.”

“I had a feeling that would be true.” Harry sighed, “I think I might get away with avoiding her for a bit, play on the fear of her getting attacked again.”

“That could work, it would have been something that Harry would do.” Luna agreed, “And your idea about the letters, I believe, won’t be needed.”

“Oh?”

“No, I think, if you remain on this path, then Dumbledore will be too busy to care.” Luna said, “That and we only have two weeks left before Yule break is upon us.”

“It’s not a lot of time, is it?” Harry groaned, “Ok, we can do this.”

“I’ve picked up your search for the Ravenclaw heir, you can drop that.”

“Are you sure?” Harry asked, looking at her and Luna nodded.

“You are doing too much, I can handle a little bit more. My listening doesn’t take any effort, merely being in the right place at the right time.”

“Ok, thank you.” Harry said sincerely.

“It is not a problem.” Luna waved him off, “Now, I have arranged a meeting so you better get cooking.”

“Excuse me?”

“Everyone missed dinner, so chop chop.”

“Wait a minute!? You volunteered me to cook!”

“Yes, chicken if you will.”

“The things I do for you.” Harry grumbled, “What time are they going to be here?”

“About an hour.”

“Fine fine,” Harry pulled himself up and went to get changed. Luna had already led out his joggers and t-shirt, and Harry quickly changed before heading back down. He moved in to the kitchen and started pulling out pans to work with and he snapped his fingers to call for Winky.

“Yes, Master Harry?”

“I’m going to need twenty deboned chicken thighs, cheese, some of the elves barbeque sauce, some streaky bacon, some potatos, oil and some turmeric and cumin powder. Plus some salad, some vinegar, white wine, mustard, salt and pepper.” Harry said to her, “And can you get me an extra tray, I’m going to need it.”

“Right away, Master Harry!” She squeaked happily, popping away.

“Oooh, are you making what I think you are making?” Luna exclaimed, peaking over the sofa.

“Depends on what you think I’m making.” Harry countered.

“Are you making desert?”

“We still have cookies.” Harry pointed out and she pouted.

“Not even a raspberry sorbet?” She pleaded and Harry sighed.

“Fine!”

“Here you is, Master Harry.” Winky called, laying out all of the food Harry had asked for.

“Thank you very much, Winky. Can I also have a pail of raspberries, some sugar, lemon juice and some water?”

“Yes, sir,”

“Happy now?” Harry turned to Luna with a raised eyebrow and she grinned.

“As a Nargle.”

“Uhuh,” Harry said sceptically. He put all of the chicken thighs in to a bowl and coated them in some of the BBQ sauce and left them to sit. He chopped the potatoes up in to wedges and spread them out on a tray, he covered them in oil lightly and then coated them with turmeric and cumin powder, using his hands to turn them so they were fully coated. He put them straight in the over, knowing they would take the longest to cook. He then heated up the frying pan to sear the skins on the chicken to seal in the BBQ flavour, putting the bowl of remaining sauce aside for later. He was so in to his cooking, from where he was stuffing the chicken with cheese and wrapping them in bacon, that he didn’t notice the others entering.

“Yes! You’re making my favourite.” Swift exclaimed, and Harry looked up sharply to find his room full of people.

“It wasn’t as if I had a choice.” Harry mock grumbled, but he was grinning.

“So what’s for desert?” Paws asked and Harry rolled his eyes as Luna smiled smugly.

“Cookies and raspberry sorbet.” Harry answered as he lay the wrapped chicken in a deep tray, he threw them in the oven and washed his hands. The raspberries were chopped up and put in a saucepan with the sugar being reduced down in to a liquid, Harry squeezed some lemon juice in to the liquid and added some water. He let that simmer until he felt it was ready to be strained, he pushed it through a sieve and added another splash of lemon and tapped the bowl with his wand, putting a slow freezing charm on it as he cast the spoon to slowly stir the mix. Once that was in the process of setting, he started chopping cucumber, lettuce, tomatoes and spring onions. He left some of the onions whole, only putting slits in to the tops and throwing them in a bowl of water; he wanted them to curl. He poured some oil and vinegar in to a bowl and added mustard and a dash of salt and pepper before whisking it together to make a vinaigrette. He put it to the side with a cooling charm on it, he washed his hands again and shook them to dry them.

“That’s going to be about an hour guys.” Harry told them, “Shall we get on with the meeting?”

Notes:

Thanks for reading guys!

Chapter 34

Notes:

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 34,

"So Snake, are you going to explain what in Merlin's name you were going on about when you asked about the storing of blood within the muggle world?" Paws asked him with a raised eyebrow and Harry grinned. He jumped over the sofa and picked said girl up from his chair so he could sit down, he dropped her back down in his lap where she proceeded to get comfortable by throwing her legs over the arm and leaning on the other.

"Well, now that you mentioned it, I might as well lay out my latest idea. You are going to love it!" He told her. "We're going to be creating blood banks."

"Excuse me?" She exclaimed, turning slightly to face him, "Where has this come from?"

"You know all these laws we're working on? I was thinking about the counter arguments that would have arose over the vampire ones, and the main one would be the trauma of the forced bite. But if that was never a requirement then it would no longer be a problem." Harry said excitedly, and Paws blinked.

"Whoa, you're missing a massive point." Bleach interrupted, "Like, I don't know, the whole draining of humans." Harry looked at him blankly.

"What?"

"Snake, they don't know about your research or reclasses." Luna pointed out, and Harry slapped himself.

"Oh right, I forgot about that. I've been over it with the Elite already."

"What have you been doing?" Badger asked and Harry tugged at his hair.

"Trying to fix the ministry." He said, "You know all the classifications in the ministry? Yeah, I'm rewriting them."

"You are WHAT!?" They all exclaimed and Harry grinned.

"Well they are stupid and with them as they are our laws just won't work."

"How are you even doing that?" Swift questioned.

"I've been researching the history of magic and its races, along with their cultures and legends to write some of my own laws, as well as the ones I'm passing to you. But I'm also using it to rewrite the classifications and produce evidence that can be thrown in any sceptics face to shut them up." Harry explained, and they all looked as if he was insane.

"You've been doing all of this alone?" The twins said slowly, their voices telling Harry exactly what they thought of his mind set.

"Of course, you guys have been busy." Harry answered.

"But you've been helping us with the wards." Swift said.

"And you've been passing on laws," Bleach added.

"And you've been working on magic." The twins continued.

"And you have been looking for the heirs with me." Paws put in.

"And I've been working on reworking blood status', working a way to track muggleborns, developing our orphanage plans, outlining and planning a full ministry office or suboffice on a way where muggleborn parents can be tested to see if they are Squibs, and then developing placements in which Squibs can be embraced by this world, keeping in contact with Moony and the wolves, keeping Tom updated along with the Elite and keeping myself away from Dumbledore." Harry finished, "I know, I've been busy."

"You're out of your mind." Paws exclaimed, "Pass some of that on!"

"No way, you guys have been way too busy as it is. Besides, Ray is taking the heir search from me."

"But Snake, you have to be living at least three times." Badger hedged and Harry shrugged.

"Yes, four at the most, but that's only when I train too."

"Yeah, he's lost it."

"Ha ha." Harry muttered scathingly. "Paws, I'm going to need your help with the blood banks. If we can have these up and functioning by the time the werewolf laws are presented to the Wizengamot then we'll be in prime position to throw the final touches for the vamps and be ready to go."

"What have you got so far?" She asked and Harry waved his hand to summon his work, he snatched it out of air and handed his folder to Paws.

"This is all I've managed to get so far, it's an outline."

"Holy Merlin." Paws breathed, slowly climbing off Harry to lay everything out on the table, "Snake, Harry, this is immense."

"Let's see," Bleach said, getting up and moving closer, his eyes widened when he saw what Harry had done. "Wow, Snake. This is impressive."

"I can work from here," Paws said, "I'll make a trip to a blood bank and add to this plan and pass it back to you, we'll work like that until all of the needed evidence and plans are compiled."

"Brilliant, so I can pass that to you now, and you give it back to me Friday?" Harry suggested.

"Saturday, just to be on the safe side."

"Ok," Harry nodded. "Now, I went to speak with the Elite and we went through Dumbledore's law."

"What's it like?" Venom inquired and Harry smirked.

"If Dumbledore hadn't been arrogant enough to let the old laws and classifications stew then it would have probably been a lot worse for us." Harry said. "As it is, Dumbledore allowed the muggleborn classification to remain as Being opposed to witch or wizard, therefore making it possible for the Death Eaters to become legal."

"Why is that?" Swift asked, "I mean, what do the classifications have to do with it?"

"Dumbledore has to remain the one who champions muggles and Muggleborns, and because of that he had to include the word being in his law." Harry began, "But, what he has forgotten is that all wolves, vampires and other such races are classified as Beings. Obviously they want to see as if they care about everyone, but this is the big flaw, especially, as it can be proven the Death Eaters are fighting to protect magic."

"Oh this is perfect." Bleach murmured with a smirk, "The old fool truly set himself up."

"I know,"

"So what are you doing with the blood statuses?" Badger asked.

"The work Muggleborn is going to be completely abolished. Those who are suspected of muggle birth are going to be called First Generations, because they are magical and I do not believe the child should be shunted for its parents. That and I think that, given the criteria, the first generations should be able to create their own houses and so forth." Harry explained and Bleach sat forward interested.

"Go on,"

"Think about it, for a second, a muggleborn is magical yes? So they are a magical person, capable of producing and casting active magic, if they then marry another muggleborn, what is there child?"

"You know, I don't know." Bleach said, sounding surprised.

"Exactly." Harry nodded, "But if you adjust you're thinking to looking at the muggleborn as a brand new magical person, their blood is new blood, their magic is fresh magic, they become the first generation of magic, a first generation pureblood."

"I see, so if they were to marry another
 first generation, their child would then be a pureblood, second generation." Draco said slowly, obviously thinking about it.

"Yes, exactly like that." Harry agreed, "And, after so many generations, say six, of the same name they can then apply to become a minor house. They would have to have money and other things, land, possibly a business or a trait, and then they work their way up like everyone else."

"What about their muggle parents?" Bleach pointed out.

"Ah, well that is where the orphanages and the squib testing comes in to it." Harry said, "If one of their parents turn out to be a Squib then we will have to inquire if the magical family wants to induct them back in to their line, or, if not, they are free to start up within the wizarding world. It is my plan that Squibs be fully accepted, and no longer a thing of shame and disgust. If they can be involved in anything towards the magical world then they deserve to be in it. Can you imagine the revenue they could bring in, agriculture, potioneering, shop keeping, or they could take other jobs that done involve active casting."

"The orphanages?"

"If the child has no squib parents, or none that will follow them, they will be put in the new magical orphanages and be placed up for adoption for those who either want more children or those who are unable to have them. It's the perfect solution, especially given that child abuse is not the done thing in this world." Harry said, "Muggle influence will be non-existent. Within the orphanages, all the traditions and magical history that those of magical families get taught when they are growing up will be taught in the orphanages."

"This is an incredible idea," Bleach stated, "It would change everything and would cut so many problems."

"Good, you can help me have it ready to present to your father." Harry said brightly and Bleach grimaced.

"That's going to be delightful."

"I know!" Harry grinned at his despondent look, "Let me go and check the food." Harry made his way over to the oven while the others talked amongst themselves. He turned the wedges and sprinkle another layer of spices on them, he checked the chicken and grinned. He pulled the chicken out of the over and pouted all of the liquid in to a sauce pan and added some more BBQ sauce before putting back in, he poured the rest of the BBQ in to the same saucepan and put it on the heat. He chopped up the rest of the raw bacon and fried it off in the frying pan, when it was cooked he transferred all of juices and the bacon in to the BBQ sauce and let it simmer. It would take around fifteen minutes to reduce down and by that time the rest of the food should be done, he checked the sorbet and saw it was nearly done much to his pleasure.

"Ok guys, about twenty minutes."

"Oh good, it smells delightful." Paws said. "Is there anything else you need to go over?"

"Not right now,"

"Ok, well I took up that lead with Wynne and you were right, it leads on to another line; the Carter line." Paws told them, "I've drawn it out but it seems to have died off without any heirs almost immediately."

"So what? It's back to Wynne now?" Harry asked.

"No, back to Denver, Wynne ran out too." Paws sighed.

"Wonderful."

"Yes, but where I have had no success in that we have managed to get a base outline to shut down the WPP, and with your reclassifications then it should be a lot easier."

"Brilliant, as soon as I have them fully written out and finalised I can pass them over for you to pick details from, if you want?"

"Yes, that will be perfect. Badger and I are doing the polishing for the laws while Venom and Paws are doing the writing." Bleach agreed and Harry nodded.

"Swift?"

"Well our work on the wards is going very slow because we are trying to unpick them without Dumbledore knowing and it is proving very difficult." Swift scowled at the wall, "Dumbledore has his claws very deep within the wards and the slightest of jumbles could alert him, something we cannot allow."

"Is there any way to pick them apart?" Badger questioned, and Swift grimaced.

"I wish. It's taking this effort now to do just that but it's very difficult."

"Wow, I didn't realise it was that bad." Badger said with a frown.

"Do you think it's doable though?" Harry questioned and Swift closed his eyes.

"Eventually yes, but it will go a lot quicker if Dumbledore was not in the castle."

"So, if everything goes to plan you'll have a better chance after Yule." Harry clarified and Swift nodded.

"Yes, much much better." Swift agreed.

"I've got a full shopping list for the Greenhouses and I do believe I am currently shopping as we speak." Badger informed them all and Harry grinned.

"Come on them, let me have it. How much are we expanding?"

"I swear it is no larger than needed." Badger declared and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Uhuh,"

"I only bought say ten more greenhouses
 Master ones." Badger muttered, looking at the floor. The entire group burst out laughing and he grinned sheepishly, "In my defence, Snake did say run wild."

"Good Merlin, we'll be starting our own botanical garden." Harry mock complained, "And no, that is not permission for you to actually start one." He added, pointed at Badger, who pouted.

"When do you think you'll have them up and running?" Paws asked, still sounding amused.

"Not long, I've bought loads of roots and cuttings, and we have many of our own to be transferred so they can spread." Badger said with enthusiasm, "If it goes to plan we should be fully sufficient again soon."

"That's excellent, thanks Badger." Harry said sincerely and Neville waved him off, passing back the card.

"No problem, Snake."

"That reminds me, I've got Severus fully stocked and he is producing potions in quantities like you would not believe." Bleach told him, "He's easily doing the same amount as I am during a double up." Harry's eyebrows shot up.

"Is that even possible?" He exclaimed.

"I know you don't like him, Snake, but Snape is the best. The man is like a machine when it comes to potions, and the last time I saw him he had eight large cauldrons on the go."

"Holy Mother of Shit." Harry breathed, "Wow, I'm impressed."

"I'll say!" Paws muttered, wide eyed. "That's a record surely? What was he making?"

"He was doing Skele-gro and nutrients, both versions he had perfected to be the very best." Draco explained, "The only problem is that he has to teach and sleep."

"You can take him back with your turner, if you want?" Harry suggested and Draco smirked.

"Exactly what I was thinking." The blonde agreed, "With Severus working for a straight day on potions, we will be overstocked in no time."

"Then do it,"

"I've taking out two of the three names on my latest list." Venom threw in, a somewhat malicious smirk on his handsome face, "It got particularly
 messy."

"Now that is beautiful news to hear." Harry said pleased.

"I've got one more, but he seems as paranoid as Moody." Venom grumbled and Harry frowned but nodded.

"I have faith in your abilities."

"It will be done."

"Which reminds me," Swift cut in, "I have the final names from the original attack." He handed over the parchment to Venom. "That's everything I have."

"Does that mean we are working on the rest?" Fred asked.

"We should be able to get a full list of who is working within the WPP from the ministry." George continued.

"As much as it pains me to say it, I think we need to leave it for now." Harry sighed, "If it looks like the WPP is being targeted then things might get heated. Though, if you want to grab the odd name and scatter them, then it might be ok."

"We can do that." They agreed, "If we listen we can find those who brag, they are the ones giving themselves away."

"Good plan."

"I've been listening but it is just a repeat of what I have already found." Luna sighed. "I've spent most of my time helping heal the cubs, and I have taken over Snake's heir search."

"I'm surprised," Paws mused and Luna sighed.

"I know, but we've got the information from the school, and the dirt on some of the players outside. I didn't think it wise for me to venture in to the nests just yet." Luna said and Harry nodded.

"No, we are not that desperate yet." He agreed, "No, continue how you are."

"Ok,"

"We've not been that busy." The twins shrugged,

"We got the law,"

"We listened to the meetings,"

"And we've been making potions."

"That's about it."

"Though, we did create something cool." They finished together and the group looked at them in interest.

"It's an illusion device." Fred began explaining.

"What is does is it projects a certain image, or scene in front of those it's against." George continued and the others raised their eyebrows.

"How does that even work?"

"See, it's a little cube." Fred pulled one out and held it up, it was an uninteresting grey cube that one wouldn't look twice at. "But it I were to activate it
" the cube pulsed and suddenly there was the overwhelming need to watch what it was showing them. Harry saw a brief glance of Tom before he ripped his attention away and his own magic flared around him.

"What in Merlin's name is that thing?" Paws demanded, glaring at the twins, who were looking particularly pleased with themselves.

"We got the idea from the Mirror of Erised. The need to gaze in to the Mirror to see that wistful fantasy, it's basically been compacted in to the cube but on a wide scale."

"It may not draw everyone in for a long time, but it is a hell of a distraction." George shrugged and the group muttered their agreement. Harry was trying to work out why he saw Tom for a second when the cube was activated, but he was coming up empty. He shook his head, he was probably imagining things because he needed to update the man on what they had gone through today.

"Whatever that thing does, it's pretty incredible and is going to be invaluable." Harry said, putting his mind back on the meeting, "Though, there might be the slight problem of attracting the wrong person's attention."

"We're working on that. We think if we can use Paw's range of magic sensory Runes with our own variations them we may be able to tie it in to blood allegiance." George told him.

"You mean you are attempting to make these adapt to who we are against?" Paws said in amazement, her, Bleach, Venom and Raven sitting forward in interest.

"That's the plan, and at the current time we have a good outline." Fred confirmed, "We're going to need your runes, however."

"They are yours." Paws said, "And I want to see everything."

"Of course, we can bring you the outlines." They said and her eyes light up, Bleach cleared his throat and the twins kissed each one of his cheeks.

"We already left you a copy in your rooms, Dragon." They chimed and he smiled at them, his cheeks tinging ever so slightly pink.

"Thank you,"

"We'll be with Paws." Raven and Venom stated simultaneously and then grinned. Snake, Swift and Badger shared rolled eyes and hapless grins that said it all.

"Oh, Snake," Badger perked up, "I've been dropping rumours and casual remarks around some crucial people while I've been around the school. Little things about Dumbledore when I've heard questions."

"Really?" Harry looked interested, "How's that going?"

"All I have to do is shuffle, look at the floor and say that's what I heard from the Hufflepuffs and they lap it up, they don't even blink at me and it starts to spread." Neville laughed, a dark smirk on his face, "The current one is that there has been information dug up on Dumbledore that he's trying to keep out of the paper since the other articles have been coming out. The speculation on that alone should be enough to sour the old fool's mood."

"Brilliant thinking, Badger." Harry complimented.

"It has spread to the Slytherins." Blaise confirmed, "I did wonder, but the Snakes are twisting things their own way and sending it back out. The latest I've heard is that he turned on Grindlewald because the man impregnated his elusive sister." Harry very nearly choked at that, that was a brilliant rumour and he couldn't wait until the paper actually came out if this was the ones they were coming up with alone.

"Wow, that's great." Harry laughed, "I'll be sure to tell Tom that one."

"I think he might like it." Paws said with a grin.

"Ok, so who wants food?" Harry asked and they all looked at him as if he was insane. "Right, stupid question."

"So how good is this food supposed to be?" Bleach asked with a raised eyebrow, "I've never ate your cooking, Snake."

"Nor me," Chimed Badger and Venom.

"Oh dear Merlin," Luna groaned, "You do not know what you are missing."

"Circe above, it's better than anything I have ever tasted." Paws agreed with a wistful sigh.

"And when he really gets going." Fred shook his head, a look of awe on his face.

"It's like eating a slice of Avalon." George muttered in a revered tone.

"This dish especially, it's the best." Swift added. Badger, Venom and Bleach shared a glance.

"Is it really that good?" Bleach asked sceptically, as Snake rolled his eyes in the kitchen.

"YES!"

"Ok then," He muttered. Harry was chuckling to himself as he stirred his sauce, it had reduced down so it was thick and he tasted it to make sure it was the right amount of sweet and smoky. He laid out the plates and carefully placed a portion of the wedges in a stack on each, he then laid out two pieces of chicken on the plates and sprinkled a bit of cheese on the top to melt. He mixed the salad and the vinaigrette together and dished it out in to equal potions, and he poured the sauce in to ten separate serving jugs, Harry tapped each plate to keep it warm and then waved his wand to levitate the plates, cutlery and jugs over to his friends.

"A table if you will, Great Lady." Harry asked, and smiled softly when a beautiful mahogany table, with ten chairs appeared. He laughed as his friends all but apparated to the table and he served the plates, "We have chicken stuffed with cheese, wrapped in bacon served in a sweet smoky barbeque bacon sauce. With a side of seasoned wedge potatoes and a simple salad with a French vinaigrette."

"Wow, Snake, this looks amazing." Paws complimented.

"Start without me, I have something to drop off." He motioned to the final plate he had, not including his own and they looked at him in question but he waved them off. Harry vanished in to the shadows and appeared in Tom's rooms, he knew the man wasn't there, he was working furiously on about five different things from what Harry could feel, and he knew the man had not stopped for a break. Harry thought it was the least he could do is to make sure the man ate a decent meal to keep his energies up. He placed the meal down on the kitchen counter, a heating and preservation charm being placed on it immediately, he wave his wand to conjure up a sheet of parchment and a quill to jot down a note.

I know you've been busy today, and I know you didn't stop for a break. If I'm not allowed to wear myself down, you can't either, so I made you this to keep you going.

Desert is on its way.

Harry didn't bother to sign or address it, he knew it would be obvious who wrote it so he saw it as a waste of his time. He left the rooms and appeared back in his own, sitting at the head of the table to start on his meal. Harry blinked when he saw that none of them had started and he rolled his eyes.

"Please, begin," He said. With childish enthusiasm, they dug in to the food and almost immediately there were groans of appreciation.

"Sweet mother of Circe, you were not exaggerating." Bleach stated in surprise, "Snake, this is amazing."

"What can I say?" He said with a laugh. They ate silently, the odd compliment floating over to Harry and he smiled slightly, yes it was their fault that he could cook, but once he had adapted it and started using that skill for himself and created his own style it became something he did enjoy doing. It was odd, he supposed, but he wouldn't ever call himself normal. It wasn't long before all plates were clear and his friends sat back with pleased sighs.

"That was incredible." Badger decided.

"I'll agree on that." Venom said with a nod.

"Well, don't say you're too full. I have made a desert." Harry said with a grin, waving his wand to clear the table. The plates stacked in the sink and then vanished to be cleaned by the elves. Harry laid out smaller plates and placed a cookie on each plate, making sure they were still moist and soft, and then he scooped out ball of sorbet and placed it alongside each biscuit. He grabbed spoons and took them to the table, handing them out before he took his own seat.

"It's not a masterpiece, but I was on short notice." Harry said.

"I bet it still tastes great." Swift said, taking a huge bite from his cookie to illustrate his belief. Harry sampled the sorbet and tilted his head, it wasn't his best, but it wasn't a complete failure. He would have to reduce the berries for longer, and maybe a touch more sugar.

"I think we should do this more often." Paws said, once she had cleared her plate.

"Yes, it's nice." Luna agreed.

"Well you will have to give me more notice." Harry said, waving his wand to stack the clear plates, "I don't like serving substandard deserts." They all turned to look at him as if he was insane, but he didn't see it because he was cleaning up and serving a double portion of sorbet on to a square plate. He left the rest in the bowl and kept a freezing charm on it, knowing Luna would be raiding it later and tomorrow.

"Substandard desert." The twins repeated incredulously, "Snake that was delicious."

"No, the sorbet was off, not enough sugar and the raspberry flavour didn't come through as much as I'd hoped." Harry denied, tapping all of his counters to disinfect them and putting all of the soiled pots, pans and trays in to the sink for the elves to clean. Winky always got a bit touchy when he cooked and then cleaned his things up, she told him he was only allowed to do one or the other.

"You're insane." Venom decided, "There was absolutely nothing wrong with that." Harry shot him a look that clearly said he didn't believe him.

"Sure there wasn't." He said sardonically, "Anyway, it doesn't matter. Just give me at least a days' notice so I can put together something memorable."

"Got it," Paws agreed.

"Have we got anything left to go over?" Swift asked, "Or are we good?"

"Two more things, but nothing too crucial." Harry said, walking back over to the sitting area. The table vanished as soon as they were all sitting by the fire and Harry let Luna curl up on his lap with her head on his shoulder.

"What else have we got to do?"

"Just a check-up." Harry said, "Kreacher!" the aged elf popped in with a loud crack and they were alarmed to see the rather demented grin on his face.

"Master Harry be calling Kreacher?" He croaked, "Kreacher be in the middle of teaching."

"What did you do?" Harry asked, torn between alarm and amusement.

"Kreacher be locking up the Black disgrace in a room where nobody can hear her scream." The elf cackled and Harry grinned.

"What did Tonks do?"

"She tries to be demanding things of Kreacher, but Kreacher refuses to serve the disowned disgrace to the House of Black." Kreacher told them, "She be ordering Kreacher to do things, but Kreacher won't and Kreacher locks her away so she brings no more shame." He looked inordinately pleased with himself and Harry couldn't help but laugh.

"Very well done, Kreacher." Harry said to him, "What else has been going on?"

"Dobby has been talking their potions, and Kreacher has been sending them to young Master Malfoy to test."

"They've been repeats of the ones we've already seen." Draco cut in when Harry looked at him.

"How did they find out about Moony being missing?" Harry asked the elf.

"The man with the eye finally saw through our enchantments." Kreacher said morosely, "Kreacher will punish himself-,"

"No, there will be no need." Harry said to him hurriedly, "You did very well to keep them blind for this long." Kreacher looked unsure but nodded.

"Kreacher has also been hiding things, it makes them confused."

"Keep it up, Kreacher. I'm hoping to have them out of the house soon."

"As Master wants." The elf bowed and disappeared.

"Which reminds me, I need to go and see the wolves to speak with Moony." Harry said and they nodded.

"That's it for the night, no?" Badger said and Harry nodded.

"Yes, we're good." Harry confirmed. His friends rose up and said their goodbyes, Harry waved them out as they disappeared in each of their different ways and he smiled down at Luna, who was half asleep.

"Come on, little sister." He murmured, "Let's get you to bed." He carried her up and switched her clothing with a flick of his wand, he tucked her in to bed and kissed her forehead. He smiled slightly and went back to his kitchen, he grabbed Tom's desert and shadowed to the man's rooms. Said man was relaxed in his chair reading his book, an empty plate on the table in front of him and Harry grinned.

"You got my note." Harry said, walking over. Tom placed his book and looked up with a slight smile,

"Yes, you are an incredible cook." Tom told him sincerely, and Harry smiled brightly.

"Thanks, I am glad you enjoyed it." Harry said.

"Now where's my desert?"

Harry rolled his eyes and handed over the plate.

"It was served with a cookie, but I know you are not all that fond so I just doubled up on the sorbet. It's raspberry, so I know you like it." Harry explained, handing over a spoon too. He collected Tom's plate and glass and took them to the kitchen, he put the plate in the sink and walked around to Tom's drinks cabinet to pour him a glass of cherry scotch with four cubes of ice. He brought the glass back and set it on the table, he raised an eyebrow in question at the empty plate and Tom smirked.

"You're hired." He said and Harry shook his head with a grin as he took the plate and banished it to the sink.

"It would have been better but Luna dropped the fact I was cooking for everyone about two hours ago." Harry said and Tom blinked.

"You made all that within a two hour time frame." He repeated, and Harry nodded.

"It's something I can make with my eyes closed."

"Would you mind if you slowed your surprises down to perhaps one a week?" Tom asked and Harry laughed, he placed himself in Tom's lap and kicked his legs over the arm of the chair.

"I have a few things to fill you in on," Harry said, "I've spoken to mine."

"Oh?"

"Yes, Paws is now expanding from my outline that I have created for the blood banks." Harry told him, "I only outlined exactly what we would need, what contracts we would have to put in place and suggestions for what ministry legislations might need to be written up to make the idea seem more appealing, but it's something I guess." Tom shot him a look that clearly questioned his mental facilities but he didn't voice his thoughts.

"What else?"

"Well, Badger has been spreading rumours to escalate Dumbledore's downfall, and they have escalated, according to Venom, and have been brought in and twisted by the snakes."

"I can only imagine what has been sent back out in regards to Dumbledore from the Slytherins." Tom muttered amused, and Harry grinned.

"Apparently Dumbledore only faced down Grindlewald because he impregnated his sister." Harry said and Tom laughed.

"I want to be around the old man when that gets back to him." He got out and Harry snickered.

"It would be a picture." Harry agreed, "Though, once my next article gets out, Dumbledore will be even more pissed."

"You keep speaking of this article, yet you will not even give me the slightest of clues." Tom grumbled, knowing it was completely pointless to even attempt to get an answer out of the teen.

"Just wait, I know you are going to enjoy it." Harry said with a smirk.

"We shall see."

"My twins have been busy," Harry said, "They've made a little cube that works like the Mirror of Erised. They are currently fine tuning it to who it will affect when it's activated."

"Really?" Tom said interested, "Does it have all it the qualities?"

"As far as I can tell, they only activated it for a minute but we all had to look at it and flashed an image for the moment that it was active." Harry said, shaking off the image that he saw again, and completely disregarding it.

"When do you think they will have it ready for a full demonstration?" Tom asked and Harry tilted his head.

"I don't know, the Runes they are working with are incredibly complex." Harry said, "They are a mix of ordinary and blood Runes so it will depends on when they manage to get the balance right without killing themselves."

"Do any of your friends do anything that can be considered even marginally ordinary?" Tom questioned and Harry pouted.

"Well Badger
" Harry trailed off remembering what the other teen just bought, "Venom
" he stopped again realising he was talking about the son of the Black Widow, "Bleach is
" He bit his lip, Bleach was a Malfoy, that automatically took him out of the ordinary box, then tie in the fact that he befriended him and he was miles away. Tom was getting more amused and Harry stuck his tongue out as he felt it, crossing his arms with a huff.

"Fine, we're all a bit weird." Harry said with a sniff, "But you're Death Eaters are hardly the epitome of ordinary."

"Oh, in what way?"

"Really? You are actually asking that question?" Harry said in disbelief, and Tom merely raised an eyebrow. "So you have Lucius – need I say more. The Lestranges, again, need I say more. Dolohov is practically invisible, he's a ghost and he's brilliant at it. Snape is the world's best potions master, and he, as much as I hate to admit it, is absolutely fantastic with the art – though if you tell him that I will deny it and make you suffer." Harry narrowed his eyes at Tom's innocent look before continuing, "And Nott cannot be ordinary because no normal person is that stupid." Tom muffled his snicker in Harry's shoulder.

"You may have a point." He conceded and Harry grinned.

"Of course I do."

"What changed your mind on Severus?"

"The fact that he was working on eight cauldrons at the same time. That's incredible." Harry said, a touch of amazement in his tone.

"I think I may have to tell Severus, if only to see him in shock." Tom said with a smirk on his face, Harry shot him a mild glare.

"Uhuh, do that and see where it gets you." He muttered and Tom rolled his eyes.

"What else have your friends been doing?"

"Well, Badger thought it would be great to start a botanical garden at the sanctuary and bought ten master greenhouses for himself to play with." Harry said and Tom shot him a look of disbelief, "No, I'm not exaggerating."

"Oh dear Merlin,"

"Yes, this is what happens when you let your friends run wild with your bank card."

"It is very lucky you are incredibly rich."

"Tell me about it!"

"Your smart one?"

"Paws?" Harry confirmed, "She's finished the Wynne line and we're back to Denver. Luna is picking up my heir searches, they were not happy with my work load so they are trying to lessen it."

"That makes sense."

"Venom is working on the final names from the attack and the twins are going to gather some of the names from the WPP who brag and who enjoy their work to get rid of. We don't want to be obvious they are being picked off or it might raise suspicions." Harry said and Tom nodded.

"Understandable,"

"Swift and Bastan are struggling on the wards, Swift thinks it will be better when Dumbledore is not in the castle because they will be able to be more active on pulling at the wards." Harry said and Tom frowned.

"Will he not still feel them?"

"Yes, but it will be diluted, and there is a strong possibility that if he is behind other wards it will be countered. That and if he is out of the castle by legal means, his appearance here to investigate would cause too much exposure that he won't want."

"I see," Tom frowned, "The sooner he is removed the sooner he can be pulled from these castle's precious wards."

"I know, I am already planning the next article. I am hoping to tie it in to something that will say goodbye to Fudge too."

"That is why you wish to correspond with Lucius."

"Yes, if I can get this just right, the next Wizengamot meeting, after Yule, will see the end of Fudge."

"Is it solid?"

"Two words: blood quill." Harry said, and Tom's eyes flashed.

"I believe that will do it."

"Ideally," Harry yawned, "I think that was it, other things are just trivial information." He got up and stretched, making his top ride up, "I probably shouldn't have started my day training and then turning back, but there we go." Tom really couldn't help running his hands along the exposed skin, paying attention to the tattoo he was fond off. Harry shuddered, looking over his shoulder to catch the smirk on the Dark Lord's face.

"You are completely terrible." Harry stated, doing nothing to remove the man's hands.

"I am a Dark Lord, Harry. It is a large part of the job description." Tom replied seriously, so seriously that Harry cracked up. He turned around pressed his lips to Tom's in a teasing chaste kiss.

"Well, Mr Big Bad Dark Lord, are you going to show me exactly how terrible you can be?" Harry asked coyly, and Tom smirked.

"I do have a reputation to keep." Tom mused, his eyes glittering and Harry's expression melted in to devilish. He walked backwards towards the bedroom and smirked when Tom followed him; he wouldn't be resting for a while.


Harry skipped along the corridors of Peverell Manor, greeting any of the wolves he saw and hi fiving all the cubs that ran up to him with a smile. He rounded the corner and nearly ran in to the person he was looking for.

"Ellen!"

"Harry!"

"I was looking for you." Harry said, after he calmed his racing heart.

"I've just put away another batch of potions." She told him, "Whoever you have making them on top of those I've met is very good."

"I have Severus Snape making them," Harry said and then grinned at her stunned expression. "Yes, that Severus Snape."

"You have one of the greatest potions' master known to man making potions for us here." She said faintly, "Good Merlin,"

"Not important right now." Harry waved her off, "I need a meeting with you, Moony and Alpha."

"Ok, what about?"

"I'm currently working on reclassifying what a werewolf is, currently you fall under being and beast, but I'm trying to change that. To do that, I want your input, and then, one we have settled your classification, we are working on tearing down the old laws and legislations and rebuilding them. I thought it best to work with you and see what you want." Harry explained and she gave him a look he couldn't understand before hugging him tightly and taking a deep breath.

"Moony is working in the ball room again and Alpha was overseeing lunch, where do you wish to meet?" She asked and Harry blinked up at her confused by her actions.

"Um, Master Study?"

"Sure," Ellen walked of and Harry shook his head and shadowed to the ball room, Moony was talking to one of the wolves, an amused incredulous expression on his face, which brightened when he saw Harry.

"Cub!"

"Hey Moony," Harry greeted, "Can I steal you?"

"Sure, we're finished here." He said and the wolf nodded, somewhat reverently, to Harry and left. "So what are you doing here?"

"We're going to be having a meeting with Alpha and Ellen to talk over the werewolf laws that we're going to be putting in to place and I've been working on reclassifying werewolves and I wanted all of your opinions." Harry said to him, and Moony looked at him interest.

"Really? That's really something."

"Thanks, I thought that, now I've spend some time with the wolves, it would be better to get some opinions of an actual wolf instead of presuming to know what is wanted or needed."

"That's brilliant! Speaking of the wolves," Moony said, before getting an amused expression on his face, "They seem to be super protective of me and any cub that gives me a hard time is immediately reprimanded and told to behave because I'm 'Mr Snake's uncle and must be kept safe'." Harry looked around the room as if he had never seen if before, and looked at his nails.

"Oh? Isn't that curious." He said absently, and Remus snorted.

"You wouldn't happen to know what that is about, would you, Cub?" Moony asked lightly and Harry sniffed.

"It is the truth," Harry said primly, "You will just have to accept it and move on."

"You are completely impossible." Moony said with a smile, "How about you stop worrying about me and look after yourself."

"Or you could just deal with the fact that that is never going to happen?" Harry suggested.

"We shall have to agree to disagree." Remus sighed, "Didn't you want to meet with Alpha and Moonrise?"

"Oh right," Harry remembered, "Come on, Moony. To your study." Harry grabbed him and they shadowed to the master study, Moony shuddered in revulsion as the shadows disappeared and Harry smirked to himself.

"I do believe that will forever be disgusting." Moony decided and Harry snickered.

"Lies Moony, Lies."

Ellen and Fenrir walked in to the study and Harry smiled, he sat down and motioned for the others to do so.

"Ok, so as Ellen and Moony already know, I'm working on reclassifying the definition of exactly what a werewolf is. Currently you fall under beast and being, and I intend to change that. You three are here to help me put in the defining points of a werewolf for the new classification, and then you are here to offer your input to the new laws that we are writing so we get them right." Harry explained and Greyback blinked a few times.

"You are asking us." He repeated, stunned. Harry nodded, missing the look completely as he was fishing out a quill and some parchment from Moony's desk.

"Yes, how else am I going to get it right?" Harry said as if it was obvious. Greyback looked at Remus, who shrugged.

"I know, I have a weird cub."

"Hey!"

"It's true, cub. And you know it." Remus pointed out and Harry pouted.

"Fine!" He rolled his eyes, "I don't see what the big deal is."

"People don't ask werewolves what they want." Greyback stated and Harry shook his head.

"Those people weren't me. Besides, how are you supposed to know if things are actually correct if they do not speak to those who they are actually trying to identify?" Harry said. "It's rather stupid on their behalf. But then, those in the ministry are not exactly filled with intelligence."

"So what's the plan?" Moony asked, and Harry placed the quill over the parchment ready to dictate.

"First, you three have all accepted your inner wolves, yes?"

"Yes." They confirmed and Harry nodded.

"Do you think it is possible for all wolves to accept their inner wolf? Is there something that could be done to help them do that or anything?" Harry questioned and Greyback frowned.

"The accepting of the inner wolf should be natural. It is only the fear of the ministry and the repercussions of being a werewolf that seemed to have crushed that natural instinct." Greyback explained, "It should have been simple enough, but the pressure of being a werewolf has a more profound effect on the mind, which is where the instinct is set."

"I see," Harry frowned slightly, "Would it be possible for you to spread the word further, bring wolves here and have them in safety to accept their wolves until I have my new classifications put through and the new laws."

"I can do that. Our reach is growing, I can send my Beta out. He is able to blend in better, and he is known amongst the packs." Greyback suggested. "Bring them in."

"If you could get all of the werewolves here and accepting their wolves, the laws would be so much easier." Harry said. "Of course, I could work around it but I was trying for simplicity."

"It is possible Cub." Remus said, "But what will that do?"

"Well, as the current ministry has you in your wolf form as beasts. If it was all controllable, there would be no grounds for that category." Harry said, "You'll be classified as Beings and a Race."

"I see,"

"Now, as a magical race, there need to be distinguishing features, specifics that are yours." Harry said. "And we'll have to have a sub definition to the cubs born to two wolves because, correct me if I'm wrong, they are slightly different to infected wolves."

"Yes, they are." Ellen confirmed.

"Ok, tell me everything."

They sat there and Harry defined what a werewolf was from a werewolf's perspective, he identified features and symptoms and actions of a werewolf and then he went over the differences between a werewolf bitten and one born from two bitten wolves, and finally they discussed the even smaller difference from a werewolf born from two born werewolves. Harry grinned at the three of them when they finally finished discussing everything.

"I'll take all of this information and tie it in with some legal crap, have it polished up and then I'll run it past you before it gets put through." Harry told them. "But it will literally be fine tuning the wording and putting in actual sentences opposed to notes." The three of them nodded, they had an air of utter relief and Harry shot them a small smile.

"Things will change." Harry said to them firmly, passion in his avada eyes.

"With you saying that, for the first time, I actually believe it." Ellen murmured.

"I have to go, if I get this ready to go and I can send it over to Moony tomorrow." Harry decided, "I'll let you get back to your work." They left the office and Harry turned to Moony, "Moony, if you could. We're looking for a wolf or some wolves who are able to harvest potions ingredients directly from the forest. If you could convene with Badger and Bleach I would be grateful."

"I'll look in to it, Cub." He assured and Harry grinned. He followed Greyback out in to the grounds, he flashed a grin at the werewolf before transforming and bolting in to the woods. He followed the scents to Petals pack and happily bounded over to where there were a group of cubs playing. They yipped happily in recognition and pounced on him, Harry rolled over and barked. He spent the next hour bouncing around with the cubs like a child until they were laying exhausted on the floor, he changed back laughing and crouched down.

"Up you get, little ones." Harry said, "You can't be sleeping here." He grinned at the pitiful wines he received as they got up, he scooped up the smallest one and walked over to the fire.

"Mr Snake!" Freya exclaimed, and she rolled her eyes at the cub in his arms. "Petal."

"I thought it was her." Harry said with a grin, "I wasn't quite sure." He handed the sleepy cub over with a smile as the mother sighed.

"Thank you for bringing her back, she doesn't understand that she's smaller than most."

"That's ok, I had fun."

"What brings you back?"

"I've been working on things for the ministry, trying to write changes about werewolves." Harry told her, "I thought, seeing as I am not a werewolf, it would be better for me to actually ask a werewolf."

"You are a very strange human." She said after a moment and Harry laughed.

"Yeah, I get that a lot." He agreed, "How is everything?"

"Wonderful." She said with enthusiasm, "Your little elves pop in all the time and make sure we have everything we need."

"That's good," Harry said, "So there is nothing that you need?"

"Oh no, we have everything we could possibly need." She assured him.

"Have you travelled up to the main house yet?" He asked and she nodded.

"Alpha said he wanted us to try so we've been going up in groups to eat in the main hall. For some, it's been years since they have even been indoors, let alone ate there and at a table too." She explained and Harry frowned.

"I hate that, but I understand that it's difficult." He murmured, "I presume Alpha has told you what he wants at the end?"

"He wants all of us to be used to and feel comfortable indoors." Freya said to him, "It's working, especially with Moony and Moonrise."

"I am glad. With the laws that we intend to pass, you all will become eligible to marry, have a job, and own your own businesses and houses." Harry explained, "They are being written as we speak."

"I can't even begin to imagine it." She said honestly, "But I am starting to believe." Harry flashed her a smile and cast a tempus, he sighed to himself.

"I'll see you again." He said and left with a wave. He landed in his rooms and grabbed his school robes and bag, he turned back his timeturner to dinner time and left the rooms. Thankfully, he had already lived his day of lessons, he didn't think he would have the patience to do that at the current time. The only time he was going back to dinner now was because he knew Dumbledore's eyes were going to be on him at all times, he would rather be working on the final write up for his classification but it was not to be. If he didn't show up at the Great Hall, Dumbledore would be coming to him and he really didn't want that. And the only reason he was going before he started his work was because he knew he would not want to bother once he got into it.

He sighed to himself as he reached the entrance hall, he pulled on a dull expression to his face as he walked in. His eyes automatically sought out Tom at the head table followed by Luna at the Ravenclaw table, then Draco and Blaise over at the Slytherin and then finally to his own house where he saw Neville, then Hermione and Ron. He blinked when he saw the alarmed expression in their eyes, he was about to jab the link to ask them what was wrong when his question was answered for him in the form of a cringe-worthy, spine grating voice that he had not heard for over a month.

"Harry!"

Notes:

Hope you enjoyed reading!

Chapter 35

Notes:

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 35:

"Oh fuck," Harry muttered under his breath, he closed his eyes and prayed he was going insane, but when a warm hand grabbed hold of his arm he knew it was not to be. He opened his eyes and found himself face to face with none other than Ginny Weasley. It made him want to scream. He had forgotten that she was going to be released soon, he didn't realise it would be this soon and he had to actively fight his initial reaction to yank his arm away from her.

"Harry!" She said again, a big smile on her face; one that he wanted to remove permanently.

"Ginny? What are you doing here? Aren't you supposed to be in the hospital wing?" He asked her, pulling himself together and putting a shocked and worried expression on his face. She beamed at him.

"Madam Pomfrey finally fixed me right up, and I thought I would come and surprise you." She said enthusiastically, and Harry had to force the smile to his face.

"Really? That's great." He managed. She nodded and led him over to the Gryffindor table and sat down practically on his lap, Harry bit his tongue as his scar flared violently and he sent back a wave of his own exasperation and anger at the situation. He knew that he would not be able to deal with Ginny full time again, his patience was stretched to the limits as it was, to have her hanging all over him like he was some trophy would snap it forcefully.

"So how are you?" He made himself ask, knowing it was expected of him.

"I feel great, there were complications but Madam Pomfrey is amazing." Ginny answered, and Harry nodded.

"Yeah she is." Harry agreed. He filled his plate with food and listened to Ginny's excited chatter about being back in school, she didn't remove her hand from his arm during the entire time that they were eating and Harry had a killer headache by the time he could blag himself out of the meal.

"I'm really glad you're back, Ginny. But I am really tired, Professor Drield has been

working me to the bone since Halloween." He told her, his voice dripping with sincerity and exhaustion. She nodded in understanding and reached up to kiss his cheek, it took all of his effort not to react to the violent blast of pain that issued from his scar and his own disgust that shot through him at her action.

"Good night, Harry. It's really good to be back with you." She said and they split up. Harry jogged up the first set of stairs and slipped in to a deserted short cut, he leaned back against the wall to centre himself. He was not ready for this, and it had been a while since he had had a headache to this degree.

"Dammit," He growled. Harry pushed himself off the wall and headed for his rooms, if he could focus on the wolf classification it would be ready to be sent through. He yelped when he was forcefully yanked to the left, it was only him grabbing on to the arm that pulled him that kept him on his feet. He looked up in to the expressionless face of the Dark Lord, his face could have been carved from marble where it was so blank, and bit back a smirk; he did so like pushing Tom's buttons.

"I have this strange feeling that you are not very happy." Harry said lightly, straightening himself out as much as he could while still being encaged in Tom's arms.

"I wonder what gave you that idea." Tom drawled, sarcasm lining his tone.

"I think it might have been the near dislocation of my arm, if I'm honest." Harry said seriously, and Tom rolled his eyes.

"Your arm was not nearly dislocated." Tom said shaking his head, and Harry grinned.

"That's what you think." Harry said, "I'll try and get rid of her tomorrow, I have an idea."

"Make sure it works, Snake." Tom stated, and Harry rolled his eyes.

"Yes, My Lord," He muttered, smirking slightly as Tom's eyes darkened. "Let me go and get my work, it has to be past to you and Lucius anyway." Tom seemed like he was about to refuse before he relinquished his hold of the teen and allowed him to shadow away, Harry appeared back almost instantly and dropped himself down next to the table, which he then commandeered and covered with multiple sheets of parchment.

"Classifications?"

"Yes, I've just got to write up the new wolf one up and then it's ready to be polished and ministry-fied." Harry replied, "I went to the wolves earlier." Tom picked up Harry's latest set of notes, and raised an eyebrow.

"This is a very interesting outlook." He said, "You've made them their own individual race?"

"Yes, and with this-," Harry handed him another sheet, this one was filled with the information of born v bitten wolves, "You'll see why."

"Ah yes," Tom nodded, "This is impressive."

"Thanks, I just have to tie it in with the basics that I already had down." Harry said, "What have you been doing?"

"I have been moving death eaters in to prime position to hold up the ministry when it falls." Tom said, "Alongside that, I have been planning different variants of the ministry take over. I am hoping to do it without an actual battle."

"It should be possible. Once you have enough eaters in place there should be no need for an actual fight for the ministry, most of their 'own' would already belong to you."

"That is the general idea." Tom agreed.

"Am I to assume that Lucius is to be minister eventually?"

"Of course." Tom agreed with a smirk, "Can you imagine his reaction if I gave anyone else the position."

"It would be a dignified hissy fit." Harry said with a laugh, imagining the Malfoy Lord's reaction to him not getting the ministry position.

"Besides, the only other who would qualify, and is seated firmly within my ranks is Nott-,"

"Absolutely not." Harry cut him off and Tom rolled his eyes.

"I am well aware that he would not be voted in." Tom said and Harry sniffed.

"He wouldn't even be considered."

"I would say you are being impossible, however I understand your reasonings." Tom said and Harry frowned slightly.

"I do not understand his behaviour, but if it continues it is going to be very poor for his health, and the health of his house."

"I may alert Theodore to his son's actions soon. It will depend on his actions at the first ball." Tom mused and Harry nodded.

"You may have too, I've had my sister looking for information and lets just say there are things that Nott will want to be kept secret." Harry said, "I am unsure if his father knows of these certain actions, but if he doesn't
"

"It is going to be a train wreck, isn't it?" Tom sighed and Harry gave him a truly nasty grin.

"Yes."

The pair fell in to a peaceful silence, Harry was focussed on his classification and Tom was reading up the very history of the ministry. It was a first-hand recollection of the ministry and how it began, he had found it in one of the Flamel diaries, it was one of the few in actual English and it was turning out to be a gold mine for information. He was directing a floating quill to make notes on things of interest as he read, Tom had taken the idea from Harry and decided that if there was anything that would aid them in fully controlling the ministry it would be to know everything about it.

Some of the things Flamel had noted were really surprising, like the fact that Sicarius Potter cast the base wards of the building in 1629, or like how Ezra Avery carved the very Rune foundations. He shook his head, they could have an advantage here. If the wards and the Runes recognised the blood that cast them then they may be able to take control without anyone realising. They would have to be tested. Tom tilted his head with a thoughtful look, Rabastan would have to be the one that tested them, and possibly Swift too.

"What is it that has you so thoughtful?" Harry's questioning voice cracked through his thoughts and Tom looked at him. The teen was looking at him with open curiosity and Tom found himself smiling slightly before he answered.

"There is a possible way for the ministry wards to be overridden." Tom told him, "I was considering having Rabastan, and your Swift, analyse them."

"Really? That would be highly beneficial." Harry said, "I doubt Swift would turn down the opportunity."

"I will continue to gather necessary information before we send them in. It should be at the end of the week." Tom decided and Harry nodded.

"Now that I have your attention." Harry began, "I believe I am done."

"Let me see," Tom put down his book and held out his hand for Harry's parchment. The teen bit his lip and handed it over, it was written in the beautiful script, Tom had never seen the teen use such writing, and he admitted he was impressed. Harry had defined the wolves as Beings part of a magical race, he had outlines exactly what a werewolf was, except he had put in exactly what a werewolf was instead of what the ministry thought a werewolf was.

Then he had outlined defining points of a werewolf, werewolf triggers, such as attacking one's mate or cub, and then followed it up with traits and actions common in werewolves. Underneath the main section was a subsection on born wolves and their descendants. Overall, it was extremely detailed, and it was exactly what was needed. With the new laws, and what they were trying to accomplish, this was perfect, and there was proof to back it up, as Harry had attached a report to the classification with references to the information pertaining the wolves.

"This is astounding." Tom said, blinking in amazement. "I highly doubt much will need to be changed, but I shall take it over to Lucius."

"Thanks," Harry looked down to hide his pleased smile, "I am hoping to have them all done like this."

"If they are all to this standard then it will completely reform the ministry." Tom stated, "Do you intend to speak with all of the races you are creating?"

"I intend to, or at least have someone actually speak with them. Ray will be the one speaking to the Centaurs, and I shall do the goblins myself." Harry said after a moment.

"I wish you luck with the goblins." Tom muttered and Harry waved him off.

"Nah, it'll be fine. I'll just speak to Ragnok and see what he says."

"Of course you will." Tom muttered with a sigh, "It's you."

"You say that like it's a bad thing."

"No, just an extremely aggravating at times." Tom jokingly grumbled, Harry looked affronted but his eyes were sparkling. He pulled himself up and stretched, cracking his back and his arms in the process much to Tom's disgust. Harry cleared his things with a wave of his hand and turned back to Tom, who was watching him closely.

"There is absolutely no chance that I am going back to my own rooms, is there?" Harry asked rhetorically, and Tom smirked.

"None whatsoever."

 


 

"Mmm, Tom," Harry moaned, his hands gripping said man's shoulders in a vice grip. He had been in the middle of getting dressed when the man decided to ravish him, heated kisses that left him breathless, burning, teasing licks and bruising bite marks down his neck and body. He had thought the man had relieved his frustrations the night before, Harry glad he was able to sleep that off because Tom had been positively vicious, but apparently not. In response to his moan, Tom licked Harry's tattoo and watched as the teen threw back his head gasping.

"You will get rid of her today, won't you, Harry?" Tom murmured, as he kissed his way back up his body.

"Yes, yes," Harry breathed, "Yes, I'll get rid of her. Fuck!" the last word was yelled out as Tom covered his nipple with his mouth. "Shit, Tom, I'm going to be late,"

"You'll just have to clean up quickly." Tom muttered, uncaring.

"I can barely walk because of you." Harry groaned, "And my hips are bruised to fuck." The bruises on his hips would be there for a week at least, Tom ran his hands gently over them as he kissed Harry.

"And you look even better for it." Tom told him and Harry managed a breathless laugh.

"You are so twisted."

"You are surprised?" Tom said incredulously, and Harry grinned and shook his head.

"No,"

Tom finally allowed him to sit and do his shirt up, but the man stopped him when he went to cast a freshening charm and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"When she touches you the only thing she'll be able to smell is me." Tom stated and Harry blinked at him in disbelief.

"Holy mother of shit, you've lost your mind." Harry decided and Tom rolled his eyes.

"I have not."

"You are way way way way too possessive of something that is not yours." Harry said to him, rising to his feet and straightening his tie, missing when Tom rolled his eyes again.

"We've been over this, you are mine."

"And I've told you I am not something to be owned, nor do you have any claim on me." Harry pointed out, summoning his robe to throw on over his shirt and trousers. He noted, with a roll of his eyes, that it also reeked of Tom, not that he was too displeased, the man did smell very nice, but that was beside the point.

"For as long as I am using you, you are mine." Tom stated indifferently and Harry looked at him with a slight smirk.

"Using me?" He repeated, "Cold."

"You are not doing the same?" Tom questioned, an eyebrow arching in question.

"Hm, you do have a point." Harry admitted, his smirk growing, "You are useful, I suppose. You do make a wonderful stress reliever."

"Glad to be of service." Tom said sarcastically, and Harry laughed quietly. He stepped over to where Tom was sat on the bed, resting his hands on the man's shoulders while Tom's arms came up to circle his waist and he rested his chin on Harry's chest to look at him. Harry leaned down and pressed a soft kiss to his lips, smiling slightly.

"If it makes you feel any better, and get you to remove the damn notion of my belonging to anyone," He shot the man a light glare, "I will remove her from my presence today, as soon as possible."

"Hm, that will have to do for now." Tom relented and Harry rolled his eyes. With one last kiss, he summoned his bag and left via the shadows, his glamour rising up without so much as a second thought. He made his way down to the Great Hall and mentally groaned when Ginny latched on to him immediately, he pulled up a wary smile, as if something was troubling him and went over to the table. Harry snorted to himself when she pointed out that he smelled different and knew if Tom was in the vicinity he would have been so smug. He merely played with his food, not interested in it at all and Ginny picked up on his depressed mood, finally raising a question when they reached the entrance hall.

"What's wrong, Harry?" She asked, concerned and Harry shifted slightly. He looked around and then down at the floor before looking back up at her, an almost scared expression on his face.

"I-I," He made himself stutter and then stop, making her more worried.

"What is it?"

"I can't do this." He whispered, looking at her slightly before averting his eyes.

"What do you mean?" And this time Harry heard genuine worry in her voice.

"Me and you." Harry said, his voice going lower. "It's not safe?"

"What are you talking about?" She demanded and Harry shook his head.

"I can't be seen with you." Harry repeated, his voice growing stronger. "We can't be seen like this anymore."

"Why not? I thought you liked me."

"I do, more than anything in the world," Harry said with as much sincerity as he could fake, "But Ginny, if Halloween has taught me anything is that Voldemort will stop at nothing to get to me. Including harming the ones I love."

"But Harry-,"

"No buts, Ginny. I won't have you killed because of me." Harry said vehemently, "Not you. I refuse. And if I have to be unhappy to keep you safe then so be it. I'll have to train harder to defeat him, and then we can be together."

"Please don't do this." She begged him, but Harry set his face in to determination.

"You won't change my mind." He said, "I'm sorry, Ginny, but for now, this is goodbye." Harry forced himself to kiss her cheek and walk away stiffly, as if he was forcing himself to leave her. He continues walking in such a fashion until he was on the Transfiguration corridor, he breathed in relief to note she wasn't following him and the corridor was practically empty. Harry could already see the day brightening as he walked towards the classroom, he flashed a brilliant smile at Swift and Paws as he entered and sat down with a pleased sigh; mission accomplished.

 


 

Harry dropped back on to his chair with a happy groan, letting himself go boneless and closing his eyes. Ginny had tried speaking with him again, but Harry just repeated that he was sorry and left in a hurry. Come dinner time she had given up and he had all but skipped back up to his rooms, happy to collapse in to his chair. The day had not been busy, per se, but with the mounting pressure of getting everything up together, it was becoming difficult to hold himself together. Every day he could feel the minutes passing quickly, and his work seemed more and more like an impossible task.

He sighed to himself, this was getting him nowhere. He got up and summoned some books, he would continue reading the vampire legends before writing out an outline of the new vampire classification. He looked around when his portrait opened and Alina all but feel in, she was crying and Harry noticed she had a heavily limp. He had picked her up and set her on his hip without a second thought, hushing her gently and wiping her tears away.

"Hey, what's wrong?" He asked softly.

"Someone threw a tripping hex at me and I landed on my leg." She told him, sniffing in an effort to stop crying. Harry hissed to himself and sat her on the kitchen counter, he pulled up her robes to rest above her knees to examine her leg. He barely controlled his growl when he saw the large bruise forming, he summoned a bruise salve from Luna's stock, along with a pain reliever. Harry carefully pasted on the salve and handed her the potion for her to drink.

"Better?" He questioned and she nodded. "Now, how about we get you something nice to eat?" Harry went to the cupboard and pulled out the remainder of the raspberry sorbet he had made, he handed her a spoon and offered the bowl.

"What is it?"

"Raspberry sorbet. Frozen raspberry juice with sugar." He said and she eyed it before trying a tiny bit. Harry grinned as her eyes widened in shocked delight and took a bigger spoonful.

"Wow."

"Nice?"

"Yeah! Where did you get it?"

"I made it," He said and she looked surprised.

"Like you made the cookies?"

"Yes."

"You are so cool!" She decided and Harry laughed.

"Thanks." Said Harry, "So why did you get cursed this time?"

"Marietta was angry because my hair clip was prettier than hers, and then she took it. It was the butterfly that you bought me." She explained and Harry's eyes narrowed.

"You'll have it back, don't worry." Harry assured, "My sister does occasionally go in to the tower, and she'll have it returned to you in no time."

"Marietta will think that I stole it back." Alina pointed out worriedly.

"Not when Raven has finished with her." Harry muttered under his breath, "Don't worry about her."

"If you say so."

"I do." Harry said with a grin, "Now, you finished with the sorbet?" She took one last large spoonful before nodded, Harry checked the cooling charms and put it away. He went to talk when Nip popped in, the little elf was frantic as he bounced over to his master.

"Master Harry, you has to go to the manor right away, sir." He squeaked and Harry blinked.

"What's going on, Nip?" He demanded, fearing the worst.

"Tis not bad sir, but Master Moony is calling for yous, sir. He's be telling Nip to fetch Master Harry immediately, he's be needed yous help." Nip explained and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Ok, I'll be there now." He said and Nip nodded and popped away. He looked at Aline, who was looking at him in confusion, and grinned. "Wanna come on a trip?"

"Where to?"

"It's kind of a secret sanctuary." Harry told her, "I've been hiding the werewolves because of this crappy WPP law."

"Really?"

"Yes. So, do you want to come?"

"Yes!"

Harry laughed at her enthusiasm and set her on his hip.

"This feels disgusting." He warned before they vanished in to the shadows. He couldn't help but laugh when he saw her disgusted look before he looked around and realised he had landed in chaos. There were werewolves everywhere, some were wounded, some were arguing and others were stood looking around in fear. He looked out of the window to see the courtyard in the same stated and pushed his way down to the ballroom to find the exact same thing. It was loud and the most prominent thing Harry could hear was growling and foreign languages, his ears picking up French, German, Italian and the odd Spanish word as he moved forward. He looked around shocked, eyes wide and fought his way over to Remus, Alina holding on to him and looking around amazed.

"Moony? Moony!?"

"Cub!" the werewolf's relief was palpable and Harry looked around again.

"What in Merlin's name is going on?" He demanded and Remus tugged at his hair.

"Dumbledore has been reaching further than we thought, and some ministries, after the passing of the WPP, have started to crack down on wolves under Dumbledore's direction." He explained, "Word spread and this happened." He made a helpless motion around and Harry ran a hand through his hair.

"Ok, so we need some order and we need languages." Harry said, "Give me two seconds." He weaved his way over to a window and set Alina down. "Think you can hang on here until we get some of this sorted?"

"Sure,"

Paws, Swift?

Yes? They answered almost immediately, sounding frantic.

Are you in the masses of wolves by any chance?

Yes, and dying Swift answered dramatically and Harry rolled his eyes.

Ok, Paws, with Moony, handle the Spanish. Swift, get to Badger and try to get some order. Get the twins to play with the cubs. Harry instructed and he felt their acceptance.

"You don't happen to see any people with violently blond hair, do you?" He asked Alina, looking around.

"Like Draco Malfoy?" Alina said, pointing out the blond.

"Brilliant, thanks." He said, "BLEACH!" The blonde's head snapped around and he fought his way closer.

"What?"

"Get your mother, start ordering those speaking French. You can get starter packs from Moony and get people moving."

"On it,"

Harry looked around and his hand shot out to grab Venom before he could be swept away.

"Start ordering those speaking Italian, starter packs are with Moony."

"Got it."

"Here goes nothing," Harry muttered before raising his voice slightly, " Können alle deutschen Werwölfe in einer geordneten weise zu mir kommen?" As soon as he finished speaking, a group of wolves fought their way through to him, each one talking rabidly. Some with cubs around their feet or in their arms, some wounded and others dead on their feet.

" Beruhigen Sie sich bitte! Ich bin hier um zu helfen, aber ich kann Ihnen nicht helfen wenn Sie mich alle anschreien." Harry said trying to sound soothing. They did eventually calm down and Harry snapped his fingers for Nip to collect some starter packs. He ordered the wolves in front of him in to packs, and then went through them, starting with the ones injured and then the ones with cubs.

Those that were injured were handed a starter pack, which Harry charmed to be translated in to their chosen language. He explained where they needed to go, indicated the map and handed them a note to give to Ellen or Luna explaining what he could see wrong with them and what language they spoke to help them out. Once the injured were dealt with, Harry turned his attentions to those who had cubs, he worked out if they wanted to stay in or out, and when they are sorted he showed them where to go and told them that someone would be up to make sure they were settling in. He also told them that basic materials or clothes would be sent to them, and gave them a brief outline of the food and drinks system before sending them on their way.

His group eventually thinned and let him see Narcissa and Draco rapidly speaking in French, trying to calm down a frantic wolf over something. Paws and Moony were slowly dispersing their crowd and finding other speaking Spanish, while Badger and Swift seem to be motioning wolves in the right direction. He turned around to see if he could find Venom and laughed to himself, the dark Italian was stood in a window and seemed to have roped in a helper from the other Italian wolves. Fenrir and Drew were going in between the wolves and they were doing something, Harry wasn't sure what, but it seemed to be calming the wolves down. Fenrir seemed to be having words with a man around the same size and build and they came to an understanding, the large group around him drifted away, following what Harry guessed was their Alpha. Ellen and Luna had disappeared and Harry assumed that had retreated to the hospital wing to deal with the injuries, Harry rubbed his face over with his hands and turned back to Alina.

"Welcome to my life." He said with a grin at her wide eyed look.

"You're mental." She stated and he laughed.

"I never denied that." He said, "Though, this is a bit more manic than normal."

"So what actually happens in this place?"

"Werewolves come here to stay so they are safe. There is a ward here that stops those not keyed in, or werewolves from coming in. The only reason you got in is because you were brought here by me through a method that is barely detectable." Harry explained, "We'll go down and key you in to the wards later, so you can come back even if you are not with me."

"Who else would bring me?"

"Luna might. She has odd spontaneous ideas like that." Harry said and Alina smiled brightly.

"I like Luna, she's very nice."

"Yeah, I don't know what I would do without her if I am honest."

"She said you would be in a cave." Alina said and Harry laughed.

"Yeah, she's right there." Harry agreed, he looked at his elf when Nip popped in with a worried expression. "What's wrong, Nip?"

"Master Harry, we's not being able to be serve the new wolves." He squeaked, "We's not able to knows what theys bes saying." Harry groaned to himself.

"Dammit!" He muttered, "We cannot have the others running language errands when they have other things to do."

"You need foreign elves." Alina pointed out, and Harry looked at her in amazement.

"You are great." Harry told her with a grin. "Schwarz Lodge elves to me." Fifteen elves popped in before him, they were dressed in black togas with the Black crest in silver and blue stitching, squeaking their happiness at being called by their master.

"Ruhe!" He ordered and they settled, "Leiter Elf?"

"Ja, Meister," An elf Squeaked, and Harry guessed it was a female.

"Ich brauche vier Elfen, die hier mit den den deutschen Werwölfen helfen." Harry said, and watched as the head elf sorted through the elves and pushed four forward. "Gibt es einen unter euch, der Englisch spricht?"

"Einer," The head elf indicated one and Harry sighed in relief.

"Good, now, you are going to be in charge of the elves working here." Harry told the English speaking elf, who nodded excitedly.

"Yes, Master Black, sir." She squeaked, her voice heavily accented.

"Ok, what I need is for you to speak with Nip, he's head elf here in Peverell Manor and he will give you all your needed instructions for your new duties." Harry told her, "You'll also be the one to offer translations to the people or werewolves working here."

"I cans bes doing that, sir."

"Good, thank you." Harry said with a relieved sigh, "You are dismissed." They bowed and disappeared with a crack.

"Now you just have to deal with the others." Alina said and Harry nodded.

"I know I don't have anything in Spain that I am aware of anyway." Harry mused, "Stay right there." Harry walked over to Moony, where the others seemed to have gathered and grinned.

"Hello fellow humans, and not so human." He greeted brightly, and they laughed.

"Hey cub,"

"I hate to ask, but would you lot mind gathering some elves from any houses in Italy, Spain and France. They will be needed to either translate or serve the foreign wolves, I've already got some of mine from Germany."

"We can work something out," Paws assured him, "I'm guessing their communicating with Nip?"

"Yes, one English would be great." Harry said.

"Ok, well, I am going to find something to work as a lasting translating device." Paws said with a huff, "We cannot go on like this. I'll make one if needed."

"See you later, let me know how it goes." Harry said.

"We're off too." Badger said, indicating himself, Swift and Venom. "We are extremely behind now."

"Us too," Draco said, "We have numerous potions on the go and we cannot afford them to spoil with how many wolves we have here now."

"See you guys later." Harry said, "We'll catch up when we can." They drifted away leaving Harry with a tired looking Moony and an oddly excited looking Narcissa. Her expression changed as soon as she caught sight of Harry and the teen cringed.

"Oh dear," He murmured.

"Harry James Potter-Black, you had better have a very good explanation to why I had to stop you from dying." She demanded, and when Harry went to speak she stopped him, "And you had better have an even better an explanation for thinking it would be a bright idea to get up the day after you fractured your spine."

"Um, I was ok?" He tried and her glare gained icicles and he barely stopped himself from flinching back. "Or I was,"

"You were absolutely not ok, Harry James, and when I have healed you I expect a mandatory day of rest in the absolute least." Narcissa hissed.

"I had school," Harry tried but she didn't bite.

"You also have a timeturner," She pointed out coldly, "But even then you didn't just go to school, oh no. You spent you're first day here, seeing to everyone else' needs while completely forgoing your own."

"In my defence, the cub was adorable." Harry hedged and Narcissa's eyes spilled pure venom, "I'll just shut up now,"

"Wise decision. You will be subjected to a full body examination during the Yule holidays, no questions." Narcissa insisted, "And if Miss Lovegood informs me that you have kept yourself in anything less than perfect health, so help me I will make you extremely sorry."

"Yes Ma'am," Harry assured, nodding hurriedly. She looked him over with scrutiny before she found what she was looking for and then she was back to smiling like nothing was bothering her in the world.

"Well, this is certainly more eventful from the usual pureblood regime." She said and Harry laughed.

"I can imagine." He said, "I have someone I want you to meet." He jogged back over to Alina and carried her over.

"Oh, isn't she adorable." Narcissa exclaimed, and Alina blushed.

"Cissa, Moony, this is Alina. Alina this is my very dear Uncle Moony, and the beautiful Lady Malfoy."

"Hello,"

"Wherever did you find such a treasure?" Narcissa inquired brightly and Harry smiled slightly.

"I think she found me really." Harry said, "Having a bit of trouble in school."

"Oh no," Narcissa looked concerned, "Whatever for?"

"This little lady is half Dark-elf." Harry said proudly, and Narcissa's eyes just lit up.

"Really? Isn't this a delightful surprise?" She said and Alina blinked in shock.

"See, I told you it was a good thing." Harry murmured and Alina grinned.

"What Clan are you from?"

"We are of the Khlystovoy Clan, Ma'am." Alina answered, a touch of pride lining her tone along with a slight Russian accent and Narcissa's eyes widened ever so slightly.

"None of this Ma'am business. It's Cissa dear. I am sure we will see a lot of each other." She said, "You should wear your crest with pride, the Khlystovoy Clan have done many impressive things over the years."

"Thank you."

"Here's something for you, Little Elf." Harry said, "Moony here is the one of the best teachers you'll ever meet, and he's a prankster extraordinaire. He might have some spells that you might find useful." Her eyes light up and she turned to Moony in excitement. The werewolf grinned and flicked his wand, Harry's hair turned violently green and she burst in to giggles.

"Wicked!"

"Wanna stay here with Moony and Cissa for five minutes while I go and see my sister?"

"Yeah!"

Harry laughed at her enthusiasm and placed her down on her feet.

"Be good," He said and she grinned. Harry vanished in to the shadows and appeared in the doorway of the infirmary.

"Snake!" Luna exclaimed, coming over with a cub in her arms. "I thought you were here."

"Hey! Yes, I was dealing with the Germans." Harry told her, kissing her cheek, "Is everything ok?"

"Yes, we've got some elves that speak other languages now, so its running smoother."

"Good, I did ask the others if they could lend some elves." Harry said, "Things are going to be extremely busy now, aren't they?"

"Oh yes, but it's a challenge and its fun." She told him. "And don't worry about Alina's hair clip, I'll get it back to her later."

"You are a darling." Harry said.

"Of course." Luna looked around at a shout and she nodded, "I have to go back to work. I'll see you later?"

"Yes. I'll leave you to it." Harry said, he left and walked back up to the ballroom. He smiled at the sound of laughter and grinned when he saw all three of them multiple colours and in various states of dress.

"Well, this is a sight." Harry said and they turned to face him grinning. Harry laughed at them, thoroughly enjoying seeing Narcissa with red hair and clown shoes.

"I learned four new spells, and Moony says that they can only be taken off if you know the specific counter curse. Otherwise they have to wear off." Alina told him excitedly and Harry smirked.

"I think there are a few girls that would wonderful with rainbow hair." Harry said and she nodded.

"I can't wait until tomorrow." She told him, standing still so Moony could remove the spells. Harry cast a tempus and blinked, it was approaching 9pm and he had a little one to be getting back.

"Come on, you." Harry said, scooping her up. "Let me show you around a little bit and then we have to get back." She pouted and crossed her arms.

"Fine," She huffed and Harry chuckled.

"Don't worry, you can come back." He assured, "We'll key you in."

"Thanks,"

Harry showed her how to get to the library and the training room, he took her to the nest and then up to the top floor and showed her one of the last remaining bedrooms.

"Holy Merlin!" She exclaimed, looking around the room in shock.

"What do you think?"

"What even is this?"

"This is your new room. In case you come here and it gets too late. I thought it would be nice if you had somewhere to sleep, just in case."

"But it's massive." She pointed out unnecessarily, looking around the beautifully decorated room. It was purple and green, with shades of black.

"I know, and look." He took her to the bathroom and she actually squeaked in shock, much to Harry's amusement. "I told you I could show you a bigger bathroom."

"This is insane." She decided and Harry laughed.

"But do you like it."

"Um yes!" She said in a duh voice, "Look at it."

"Yes, it is rather nice."

"Rather nice?" Alina repeated, "Moony was right, you are weird." Harry made a noise of protest and huffed.

"Well isn't this nice." He grumbled.

"There there,"

Harry tickled her for that until she was yelling that she was sorry, Harry grinned and cast a quick disillusion charm on them both. Harry vanished in to the shadows and they landed just outside the Ravenclaw common room, in the shadowed corner by the suit of armour. He checked that no one was around and set Alina down and cancelled the spell, he knelt down and made sure he robes were neat and tidy.

"Now, you know where to find me and you have spells to use. Luna will get back your hair clip and you'll have it by tomorrow night." Harry said to her, he conjured up a phial. "Prick your finger, I need to key you in to the wards." She bit in to her thumb easily and let some blood flow in to the phial, and Harry healed the wound with a wave of his wand.

"Thank you for cheering me up. I had loads of fun." She said and Harry smiled.

"Any time, Little Elf." Harry said, "Off you go." She waved as she ran over to the Ravenclaw entrance, she easily answered the riddle and entered the room. Harry went directly down to the ward stone room, he opened the door and easily tied in Alina to the wards before going back to his rooms and dropping down in his bed with a groan. He was exhausted and just wanted to sleep, but it was not to be. His scar flared and he was flooded with excitement and impatience from Tom, he groaned to himself and pulled himself to his feet. He shadowed to the Dark Lord's rooms and blinked a few times to see the man rapidly talking to someone in Romanian in the fire, the man held out his hand for Harry and tugged him over to his side almost absently.

"Harry, this is Atanase Bogdan, he is the leader of one of the most powerful vampire clans in the world; the Noapte Sange Clan." Tom introduced, "Atan, this is Harry Potter-Black, the one who is redefining your people's status within our government."

"Dark Lord, vhen you mentions somevon involved in such matters, you failed to mention how very beautiful they were." The vampire said, his accent thick but his tone seductive. Harry didn't need to be looking at Tom to know that the man was shooting death rays from his eyes, the man had tensed and his grip increased slightly.

"I did not believe it relevant." He snapped, and the vampire smirked, his fangs on show.

"Nu posesiv?"

"Liniᶊtit." Tom hissed, before turning to Harry, "Atan here has agreed to send over information on the vampires, their appearance and their habits and actions." Harry's eyes lit up in delight and he grinned.

"Really? That's brilliant. This would save me having to set up an interview." Harry said happily, "Do you think you could send over information on mating and birthing of vampires, as well as the difference between the bitten and the born?"

"It shall be done."

"Wonderful, thanks." Harry said sincerely.

"I shall send it with the envoy," Atan said, directing his words to both men.

"It is appreciated," The Dark Lord said with a nod and the vampire vanished from the flames. Harry turned to Tom with a bright smile and restrained himself from bouncing up and down.

"You are really great sometimes." Harry told him, "Thank you."

"I do have moments of unusual greatness." Tom agreed, smirking at Harry's groan.

"You're arrogance astounds me still." Harry said, "Though, it is allowed today because this is brilliant. As soon as this information gets to you, I can start the process of writing up the vampire classification."

"It should lessen your reading workload."

"It will, and I am very grateful." Harry said, "I am also exhausted." He said dropping down on to Tom's sofa.

"Were you not supposed to be researching tonight?" Tom asked, "You said you had much to do."

"I was planning on it." Harry said with a muted groan, "But there was an emergency at the Sanctuary, and I had to go there immediately."

"What was the problem?" Tom questioned, "You are not injured."

"No, it was not an emergency in that sense, but the sense that there was at least a hundred wolves that turned up from different countries." Harry explained and Tom blinked.

"Excuse me?"

"Yes, Germany, Italy, France and Spain, and do you think many of them spoke English? No, they did not." Harry shook his head, his eyes closed as he relaxed on the sofa. "So I arrived to find the entrance hall, the court yard and the ballroom in utter chaos and everyone yelling in different languages."

"I see the emergency." Tom mused and Harry snorted.

"Yes, so did I." Harry agreed, "Trying to get that many wolves, who don't speak English and don't speak the same language, who are injured, scared and distressed, in to some semblance of order is challenging."

"What did you do, in the end?" Tom inquired and Harry sighed.

"In the end I had Cissa and Draco on the French, Paws and Moony on the Spanish, Venom on the Italian, while I took the German. Badger and Swift were running directions and interface, the twins on entertainment, Fenrir and Drew on wolf stuff and Ellen and Luna on healing." Harry told him, "We got there eventually, and the wolves were settled in. But we had to call elves from summer homes and winter retreats because of the language barrier, it's, hopefully, in order now."

"You're sanctuary is rapidly filling." Tom said, "Do you believe it will become over occupied?"

"No, because most of the wolves prefer to live outside. Out of the thirty two rooms available within the manor, I do believe only fifteen are occupied. There are still at least four outbuildings available also." Harry said and a moment's thought.

"I was under the impression that there were more wolves living inside."

"Oh there are, but family packs live in one room to themselves. Apparently they are big enough, and they are pleased with that amount of space." Harry said with a half-hearted shrug.

"It is truly appalling the standards they have been reduced to." Tom said in disgust.

"I know, but this is working." Harry said, he pulled himself up and yawned. "Ok, I need to go and actually get some sleep. You are too distracting."

"I apologise for my distractions." Tom said sarcastically and Harry sniffed.

"Apology accepted."

"Impossible," Tom sighed and Harry grinned as he vanished in to the shadows. He threw on some black pyjama bottoms and climbed in to bed, falling asleep almost instantly.

 


 

Ginny, it seemed, was going to be pining for a while, Harry thought, as he sat down at the Gryffindor table for breakfast. She gave him the most pathetic look imaginable and Harry had a hard time not scoffing, but he ignored it instead, focussing on the food in front of him. He wasn't paying much attention when the mail came, but he yelped when he was viciously pecked by a nondescript owl. He untied the letter and tucked it in to his robes, recognising the Gingotts seal and rising to go and read it. He cracked the letter open as soon as he was in an empty corridor and he found his eyebrows rising further and further up his head.

"What in the name of Merlin is this?" He whispered in confusion. According to this, he had received five very substantial payments of 500,000 galleons in to the Peverell vault from Prewett, Longbottom, McKinnon, Zabini and Malfoy family vaults. He knew the houses would earn it back within the month, but that was beside the point. He frowned to himself as he walked to his first lesson. Why would they be giving him money? And why to the Peverell vault? It served no purpose. All through the day Harry pondered on his new mystery, getting slightly lax with his spell casing to the delight of his teachers and finally he latched on to Bleach on the way down to potions.

"Why did you give me money?" Harry demanded and Draco raised an eyebrow in a way that made Harry believe he was missing something.

"That should be obvious." He stated and Harry blinked.

"Should it?" He asked and Draco rolled his eyes.

"I'll explain after, we need to meet anyway." Draco said, "You need to focus, I am not allowing you to kill us by not paying attention."

"What are we even doing?" Harry wondered and Draco sighed to himself.

"We are making the Erumpent Potion." Draco told him and Harry's eyes widened.

"What! We're doing what!" Harry exclaimed and Draco shot him an unimpressed look.

"You heard me."

"He's insane! Is he finally trying to kill us all? Because he's going the right way." Harry hissed, eying the beginning potion with slight fear.

"Will you calm down?" Draco snapped and Harry hedged away.

"Calm down?" He repeated, "Are you out of your mind? Do you know what happens when I even stasis a potion?" Draco looked at him in a new light.

"Very good point." He agreed, suddenly wary of Harry being anywhere near the potion, "Sit at the end and read, I don't want to die today." Harry complied without complaint, he didn't know what Snape was thinking assigning him that potion, it was like the man wanted everyone to die. He opened his book and read over the potion they were making. He already knew of it because of Luna, but that was just the general gist of the potion, he wanted an explanation so he sat back to read. The more he read, the more he became thankful he was way out of the way, he would have probably killed the entire classroom by now. It was near the end of the lesson when Snape swept over, he raised an eyebrow at their arrangements and looked between the pair.

"I do believe that this years' potions assignments were to be done in a pair." He drawled and the pair blinked at him as if he was stupid, something, by the glare he sent them, he did not appreciate.

"That's the Erumpent Potion." Harry pointed out as if explained everything.

"I am well aware of what potion you are completing, Mr Potter, as I am a Master of the art." Snape snapped coldly and Harry raised an eyebrow, his sarcastic biting comment derailed when Draco kicked him.

"Sir, do you not remember what happened the last time Potter used magic around a potion?" Draco asked and Harry blushed slightly; he had been pink for a week. Snape blinked and his lips twitched slightly, making Harry glower at the book in his hands.

"Ah yes, it has come to mind now." He mused, "Did it not last the entire week, the pink dye?" Harry threw Snape a dark look and grumbled under his breath as those around him snickered, remembering the incident from last year.

"Yes, around that amount of time." Harry muttered.

"Very well, continue as you were. We need not the unnecessary deaths." Snape said and billowed away.

"I thought you looked great pink." Draco told him seriously, and it might have been believable if his eyes weren't sparkling with laughter.

"I hate you all." Harry threw back and then vanished behind his book as Draco smirked at him. Harry was one of the first people to get out of the room when the bell rang, he slipped up to his rooms and threw his stuff on the sofa, still muttering to himself. He was going to find a way to make the potions master pink for a week and see how he liked it, he huffed to himself and sent a jab and Swift and Paws. They didn't have a lot to discuss, meeting a few days prior, but he could tell them about the werewolf breakthrough and the favour Tom called in with the vampires for him. Paws shadowed in with Badger and Raven, while Swift came with Venom and the twins bounced in as wild cats with Draco following shaking his head.

"What's up with you?" Paws asked and Harry frowned.

"Why did you all give me money?" He questioned and they looked at him blankly.

"He doesn't see it." Bleach informed them, "It's still slightly ingrained I believe." The others frowned amongst themselves and Harry blinked.

"What?"

"Its for the sanctuary." Paws told him and Harry blinked again.

"Why?" He asked bewildered and she sighed.

"One day," She muttered to herself.

"You don't have to do everything by yourself, Harry." Swift told him seriously, "All of us are here to help you, with everything. That means the sanctuary too, you don't have to do it alone." Harry looked at them all blankly, he tilted his head to the side as if he was trying to understand.

"We stand with you." Luna told him, "Not the dark, not the light, not even with our families; we stand with you."

"Oh," Harry said, blinking owlishly. "But I didn't need the money."

"That doesn't mean we are not going to help." Bleach pointed out, "I can handle the potions we're making but it doesn't stop the twins from helping me."

"Basically, you just have to shut up and deal with it." Badger told him, "We've given you the money, you can't give it back because that would be extremely rude and we'll give it back to you again." Harry couldn't really argue with that, he was still slightly confused but he was pleased for some reason.

"Ok then," Harry looked at his friends again and shrugged. "I guess I've been outvoted."

"Yes, so don't argue." Paws said to him firmly. "Now, anything of interest happen?"

"I've given the final draft of the werewolf classification to Tom and Lucius." Harry told them, "They are going to go over it, but Tom believes that there shouldn't be much, if anything, to change."

"Brilliant, Snake." Badger said.

"The other thing would be the fact that Tom has managed to get the leader of the Noapte Sange Clan to send all the information about Vampires so I don't need to set up an interview or anything." Harry said pleased, "I don't even need to meet with him, I spoke to him yesterday and he's sending it with envoys."

"The Dark Lord set this up?" Bleach repeated and Harry nodded with a smile.

"To lessen my workload." He confirmed, missing the significant look shared between his friends. "Though, I still need to write it up. That won't be problem as soon as Tom gives me the information. But with Ray taking my Heir search and the wolves being settled then I should be ok. I've gotten rid of Ginny for now so I can focus down and concentrate on getting Dumbledore out of here, I have just over a week to push the board in to a decision."

"We'll see if we can move quicker, every detail is needed." Paws assured him, "Don't worry too much on the details of your projects, Dumbledore is the big fish."

"Ok, I'll keep you updated." Harry said and they said their goodbyes, leaving Harry and Luna alone.

"This is it." Luna said, "This is what it's coming to."

"I know," Harry sighed, "I only hope we are ready."

Notes:

Next chapter done and dusted!

Chapter 36

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 36:

Lucius Malfoy wasn't one to be confused often. He prided himself with being in the know before most, which enabled him to either change things or share the news himself. But it seemed ever since the summer, with the arrival of one Harry Potter-Black, he spent more time confused than in any other state. Every single thing that teen did was a paradox, he was vicious and cruel but he doted on his friends, he was selfish and conceited but he opened and funded a sanctuary for complete strangers and he took cunning and sly to a whole new level and yet his bravery was unparalleled.

It made his spin. He had lost count on how many times he was surprised by him, and the teen didn't seem to have any plans on stopping with his surprises any time soon. However it wasn't the mysterious teen's behaviour he was now confused over. No. It was his Lord's. Lucius has been following the Dark Lord since his seventh year at Hogwarts, he had proudly taken the mark like his father before him, and he had served his Lord with vigour; even when the man had lost his mind. He admitted to himself that he was relieved that his Master seemed to regain his sanity and their goals were back on track, and it was even better to see the man his father had raved about to be brought back. Lucius felt he was getting his friend back as well as his Lord and it was a very good feeling. It was because of that he was confused.

He had thought he had some inkling of the man's behaviour, but then there was Harry Potter throwing everything he knew out of the window. Never, not in his memory, nor his fathers, for he had asked his portrait, had his Lord slept with the same person twice. And never had the man allowed someone to share his bed for the night afterwards, but low and behold both had happened. Lucius had received the shock of his life when Harry had walked out of his Lord's bedroom in nothing but the man's shirt, he wouldn't deny that the teen was gorgeous, and he understood exactly why his Lord would desire him. He thought it was just a one off, something that had occurred in an accident and wouldn't happen again. But it did. He had seen the teen around his Lord all the time, he had seen his Lord carry the teen in his arms when he fell unconscious.

He had seen his Lord personally look after Harry when he had returned nearly dead from the wolf attack and just last week he had seen the pair kissing in his own drawing room. However, that wasn't the only thing he had noticed. Lucius wasn't a blind man, and a blind man could see that the pair were completely in tune with each other. They seemed to know what the other was thinking, or they could predict the others next move and they didn't even realise they were doing it. They were completely oblivious to their behaviour and Lucius shook his head. His Lord acted differently around the teen especially. Harry had an extraordinary amount of leeway, and Lucius had personally seen him insult the Dark Lord without so much as a stinging hex in retaliation. He didn't understand. Lucius looked up when there was a knock at his door and his beautiful wife walked in, he offered her a small smile which was returned.

"Our Lord is due soon." She said to him, "You have been quiet all day, what troubles you?"

"I have been thinking of our Lord." Lucius answered.

"Oh?"

"His behaviour has been abnormal as of late." He began, "It is confusing. I have seen and heard things that are completely out of character." Narcissa blinked.

"Such as?"

"Taking a lover? Allowing one to share his bed? Ignoring blatant insults?" Lucius listed, "And they all seem to revolve around Harry Potter-Black." Narcissa raised an eyebrow in scepticism.

"I am sure you are merely thinking too much on it, dear." She told him but Lucius shook his head.

"Just last week I saw the pair kissing in the drawing room." He said and when she rolled her eyes he frowned, "Watch him today and you shall see, he is different. Especially when Mr Potter-Black is brought up."

"Very well." She agreed, "Shall we adjourn to the living room for his arrival."

"Let's" Lucius rose and followed his wife down to their informal living room. She, ever the perfect hostess, had already had drinks led out for them. She also had brilliant timing because Lucius felt the wards tingle signalling someone's arrival via apparation and their Lord swept in to the room moments later.

"My Lord," they intoned, a bow and a curtsy following their words. The Dark Lord waved off their actions.

"You invited me, Lucius," He said somewhat amused.

"Would you like a drink, My Lord?" Narcissa asked, and Tom nodded.

"Thank you, Narcissa." He accepted the drink as he sat in the offered seat.

"How are things running at the school, My Lord?" Narcissa questioned.

"Slow, I do enjoy teaching, however my content is heavily monitored due to the old fool."

"Is there any progress on his removal?"

"Harry believes he shall be ousted by Yule," Tom answered, a slight smile touching his lips unconsciously.

"He may be correct, the board of governors are in discussion for his removal with all of the backlash from the papers. They are split currently, so they will need a push, but I believe it can be done." Lucius explained.

"That is good, Harry said he needs him gone before the Yule hits."

"I thought he was working on the classifications." Lucius said surprised and Tom rolled his eyes fondly.

"He is working on multiple things currently. The classifications are merely what he calls a side project."

"Excuse me?"

"Do not ask me to understand his mind, Lucius. I believe he is in his own world." Tom said with a smirk.

"What of the laws he is working on?"

"Another side project." Tom confirmed, "Which brings attention to your searches."

"Yes, I have been working with Izar and we have sorted through many laws. We've collected those we believe need immediate change, ones that need work but are not crucial and those which are currently fine. So far we have no laws that are acceptable to be left as they are, and the pile of immediate changes is ever growing." He told his Lord and Tom nodded, not in the least surprised.

"Section them as you go, if you isolate what laws dictate to what part of our world it will be easier to go through when the time comes." He commanded and Lucius nodded.

"I shall speak with Izar and inform him."

"Very well,"

"How go the preparations for the Yule Balls, Narcissa."

"Things are moving swiftly, My Lord. There are rumours of who are on the guest lists and seating plans. Many are speaking of the secret of the Lord or Lady McKinnon." She said and Tom smirked.

"Are there any leads?"

"Not anything worth listening too." She said with a slight frown, "Though, there is a belief that it is someone from outside our isles."

"I see," Tom chose not to reveal exactly who the McKinnon Lady was, he knew Snake was going to have a great time when the balls arrived. He went to speak again but was interrupted when he felt the familiar magic of Harry's shadows and said teen stepped out of them. He was dressed in loose joggers and a tight black top, which had specs of sugar and flower on it, indicating his being in the kitchen. The teen's eyes settled on his immediately and a bright smile came to his face; too bright.

"I've been looking for you." He said, completely oblivious to his surroundings, "I wanted you to try something." It was then the Dark Lord noticed the plate and fork in the teen's hands.

"Oh?"

"It's an experiment." Harry said and Tom's eyebrows rose, "Here."

"Absolutely not." Tom denied and Harry blinked.

"Why not?"

"You just told me it's an experiment." Tom said indignantly and Harry waved him off.

"You liked the last thing I gave you." He pointed out and Tom's eyebrows rose.

"That was not an experiment."

"Please?"

"No!"

"Tom!" Harry groaned and the Dark Lord shook his head.

"I am not a Guinea Pig." Tom stated and Harry huffed.

"Will you please just stop being difficult and try the cheesecake."

"Do I look like a personal servant that is made to try food?" Tom said and when Harry opened his mouth he cut him off, "Don't answer that." Harry pouted.

"Please can you just try it?" He asked again, "Just a bite."

"No,"

"Pleeeeeeeeease?"

"No!"

"Toooom." Harry whined, "You're being mean."

"I am the Dark Lord."

"That's not an excuse." Harry complained, his voice taking on an irritating whiny sound.

"Harry," Tom sighed and Harry actually stamped his foot much to Tom's eternal amusement.

"Tom please."

"You are not going to convince me to be your tester."

"For the love of-," Harry sighed again, "Will you please just try the damn food, you know I have better things to do than argue with you."

"No," Tom stated resolutely, smirking at the teen.

"Please, I've asked nicely."

"No,"

"It's has cherries in it." Harry tried.

"My answer is still the same."

Harry sighed before he had an idea, he bit his lip and looked down at his feet as he shifted slightly. He looked back up through his eyelashes and tilted his head slightly, an expression of pure innocence on his face, with his eyes glinting in promise. Harry had to fight back his pleased smirk as he visibly watched Tom's resolve melt faster than ice in Egypt. He couldn't stop his smug expression when the man shot him a truly poisonous glare as he snatched the plate and the fork, he span around in shock when he heard Lucius clear his throat slightly and blinked.

"Oh, how very rude of me. One moment," He vanished and returned almost instantly with two more plates with forks and handed them to the Malfoys.

"What is it?" Narcissa inquired and Harry smiled.

"It's a black forest cheesecake, or an attempt anyway." Harry answered and she nodded, interested. Tom took a cautious bite and had to forcefully stop his groan of appreciation as his taste buds exploded with flavours. First it was the light creamy top, and it was followed by a sharp but sweet cherry syrup and it was mellowed out with a rich chocolate biscuit base. Good Merlin it was fantastic.

"So, what do you think?" Harry asked, biting his lip and looking expectantly at Tom. Tom merely looked at him and Harry beamed.

"I'll put the rest in your rooms as soon as I get back." He said brightly, refraining from clapping his hands as Tom nodded pleased. He turned to watch the Malfoys and grinned when Narcissa's eyes widened in delighted shock.

"What elves made this, or where did you buy it?" She demanded, completely missing the Dark Lord's smirk. Harry looked marginally affronted at that.

"Neither." He said, his tone offended, "I just spent hours slaving over that; it's my latest creation." Both blondes looked at him stunned.

"You made this?" Lucius repeated and Harry nodded.

"Yes." Harry confirmed and Narcissa released a barely concealed squeal of delight.

"I simply must have it at out Yule Ball." She stated, "It has to be the cake option. Anything else would pale in comparison." Harry smiled brightly, happy with praise.

"I am sure we can come to an arrangement. I can come over to discuss it with you, if you like?"

"Very much so," She said with a smile. Harry nodded and turned back to Tom to collect his plate, he automatically snapped his fingers to refill the man's drink and added an extra ice cube as there was only three in the glass. He summoned the Malfoys plates and absently leaned down to kiss his cheek,

"I'll see you later." Harry told him and then he smiled, "Thank you for trying my cheesecake." Tom merely rolled his eyes but he was smiling slightly and Harry grinned as he vanished again, the Dark Lord turned back to his hosts.

"Before we were interrupted, I believe we were speaking on the rumours circulating this years' Yule." He said and the Malfoys seemed to blink and the complete lack of reaction and abrupt continuation, he didn't notice the pointed look Lucius sent his wife before that.

"Yes, all other rumours have been silenced. People are too cautious to speak due to the Act of Silence."

"Ah, Harry is a major point of conversation then."

"Oh yes,"

"I am not surprised." Tom admitted, "What of Antonin?"

"He wishes to speak with you, My Lord." Lucius said, "He had been finding many things about other Dark Creatures, and there have been whispers, but that is all he has mentioned."

"Tell him that I shall meet with him soon." Tom decided. "Has Izar mentioned anything about the ball?"

"Ah," Lucius shifted, "He has expressed certain opinions about the guest lists, and certain ideas for his own ball." Tom closed his eyes with a muted sigh.

"Izar is going to get himself killed if he does not open his eyes." Tom stated, his voice taking on a steely edge.

"I have warned him, My Lord." Lucius said, "I have told him, within my restrictions, but it seems to wash over him."

"He does not realise what he is getting himself in to." Tom said, "As confusing as he is, I do know that Harry has a plan for Izar and it is going to be extremely messy."

"Surely it won't be too bad?" Lucius hedged and Tom gave a low, cold laugh.

"It will be even worse." He said surely, a malicious smirk coming to his face.

"Oh dear," Narcissa muttered, not sounding too distressed at all, "Harry does seem to liven things up, doesn't he."

"That is a small understatement." Lucius sighed.

"While we are on the topic of Harry, Lucius. Have you looked over his classification?" Tom questioned and the blond nodded.

"I have to admit, if you had not given it to me, I would not have believed Mr Potter-Black wrote it." The Malfoy Lord stated, "It is almost perfectly done, and the script in which it is presented is stunning."

"Are there many corrections or changes needed?"

"No, there are only a few words needing a change." Lucius said, "And it is mere wording, a few alterations in the legal terms."

"Very well, if you correct the words, I shall pass it back and Harry will write out the final version ready to be filed." Tom said and Lucius nodded.

"I will make the corrections and pass it to you as soon as possible."

"Good." Tom nodded once before turning to Narcissa, "Harry informed me of a slight crisis at the sanctuary."

"We had many international wolves arrive, and Mr Lupin has received information that Dumbledore's influence over the wolf situation has spread further than we believed." Narcissa said, "Due to the apparent success of the WPP, those listening to Dumbledore's direction have also take to hunting the wolves, and many with cubs have found themselves in situations they can no longer handle." Tom's eyes narrowed slightly.

"How great were the number of injured cubs?" He questioned, his voice cold, and Narcissa's look of pure ice told him all he needed to know. "Very well, I shall inform Harry that whatever he is planning involving the removal of Fudge needs to be quickened."

"Has he spoken of that?" Lucius asked and Tom shook his head.

"No, but he will have had something put in place merely as an outline." Tom answered.

"The barbaric WPP must go, My Lord. One of the cubs I was healing was no older than two years of age, and she was showing signs of Cruciatus exposure." Narcissa told him and Tom hissed.

"Rest assured, it shall not be in place very much longer." Tom stated. "Has Remus attained any information regarding the people influenced by Dumbledore?"

"He is searching, he has received some leads, but his time is limited due to the work he is doing within the sanctuary, the research and translation, teaching and getting the word out with the other wolves." Narcissa explained, "Though he has managed to work out that Dumbledore has more influence within the French ministry than anyone else, and that his numbers in Germany are the lowest – for obvious reasons."

"Yes, I highly doubt that Dumbledore's name is friendly due to Grindlewald." Tom murmured, "This is highly frustrating, Bella and Rodolphus are monitoring Moody and the families he is tracking, Rabastan is working around the clock trying to isolate and identify what Dumbledore has done to the castle walls with Harry's Swift, Antonin is working on the dark magical creatures, and it is imperative that he has all his focus on that due to the large numbers of creatures considered dark. Both you and Izar are tied up with the legalities of the ministry, and I could assign Izar to search but I do not wish to listen to the hour long rant that will follow from Harry." Tom sighed through his nose, "I shall have some members of the inner circle sworn to secrecy and then pass them to Remus, he has the leads therefore he is in the position to direct them."

"I shall pass along the message." Narcissa said. "Do you wish to meet with him?"

"I shall, he is in the Gryffindor rooms daily. I will find him there."

"Very well, it shall be done, My Lord." She assured him and Tom nodded, he cast a tempus and sighed.

"Right now I have a staff meeting to attend and I do not wish the old fool to suspect anything from me." He said, mentally complaining about the suffering he was about to endure by listening to the old man's voice at close range."

"Very well," Lucius nodded, "I shall pass on the message to both Izar and Antonin." They all rose and the Malfoys bowed/curtsied to their Lord before he apparated away, Narcissa turned to her husband slightly wide eyed.

"I understand what you mean." She said, "But they are completely blind to what is right in front of them." Lucius raises an eyebrow.

"What do you mean?" He questioned and she gave him an almost pitying look.

"If you cannot see it, Lucius, then I cannot tell you." She said, shaking her head. He gave her a blank look and Narcissa sighed, walking away from her husband muttering about oblivious males. Lucius shook himself and cast a tempus, he had time to visit Antonin before it was deemed rude. He called for an elf to fetch his cloak and walked to the floo room, he threw in some powder and stepped in to the grate, calling for the Dolohov Lodge. He was greeted by an elf when he stepped out and he asked to see the master of the house, he walked the familiar route to Antonin's study and stepped in.

"Lucius. What brings you?" The Dolohov Lord asked, not being one for many words.

"Our Lord requires me to pass on that he shall be meeting with you soon." Lucius told him, taking the offered seat "We spoke only moments ago."

"Very well, I do have many things to discuss with him." Antonin said. "Does he require me to do anything else?"

"Not currently, he wishes you to focus all your attentions on the dark creatures. Though, he will have to speak with you himself as I do not wish to presume." Lucius said and Dolohov nodded.

"Very well, was there anything that came up that concerns me?"

"No, it was mainly focused around the movements from our silent partner."

"I see. Was there anything else?" He asked and Lucius hesitated.

"You
 you have known our Lord the longest." He stated and Antonin raised an eyebrow.

"Yes."

"Has he ever kept a lover?" He asked and Dolohov gave Lucius a look that clearly questioned the man's sanity.

"Our Lord has never taken a lover, and I doubt he ever will
" He trailed off when he saw the look the blonde Lord was giving him. He sat forward. "Are you sure?" He whispered and Lucius nodded.

"Oh yes. It is not even secretive, nor short. From what I have deduced, is began in September and it has continued, developing almost." He explained and Antonin blinked.

"This is surprising. Our Lord never bothered with a lover, always citing that it was bothersome to deal with people who believe they have power." Antonin mused, "I cannot picture him dealing with the same person."

"He does more than deal with them, he allows them an exceptional amount of leeway. I honestly do not understand it." Lucius shook his head, "Watch our Lord during your meeting, you will know it when you see it. And try not to mention anything to Izar." Dolohov blinked twice and smirked.

"It's the Potter-Black teen, isn't it?" He said and Lucius nodded.

"Yes,"

"I shall keep my attentions sharp, no doubt the teen can be brought up somehow and I shall see for myself." He decided.

"You will not miss it." Lucius told him, "Today I saw the teen manipulate our Lord in to doing what he wanted with a mere look. I was most astounded."

"Surely not. Leeway yes, but manipulating him is a whole new level." Dolohov said surprised and Lucius shook his head.

"If it were not with my very own eyes I would not believe it either. This is the fifth interaction I have witnessed with them that didn't involve a formal meeting with the elite. Each time it has been illustrated that our Lord allows him to do as he pleases." Lucius told him surely, "Just you wait, it is most bizarre."

"I am intrigued." Dolohov stated, "I shall watch and inform you of my opinion. Though, if you are indeed correct, this could explain our Lord's return to his past self completely."

"I swear Potter-Black was born simply to do things that no one else would ever accomplish." Lucius sighed and Dolohov chuckled slightly. The blond rose to his feet and swept from the room with a nod of his head, leaving the Dolohov Lord to contemplate this new development. It was unexpected, and Antonin was sceptical to believe it until he had seen it for himself, but he wasn't completely in disbelief. After all, he had seen his Lord's recent behaviour and it was odd, not that he was complaining, he had missed his old friend and it was good to see the same charismatic, charming and witty man back again.

He had followed his Lord through everything, and he would do it again even if the man fell back to the madness, but he much preferred the person he was now and if that was down to the Potter-Black teen then so be it. Though, he could see the appeal. As a man who was open to both ventures, Antonin could wholly understand his Lord's attraction to the teen. Not only was he powerful, but he was highly attractive and he wasn't a simpering sycophant after a slice of power from the Dark Lord. There must be something else there, however, for the Dark Lord to continue to hold on to the teen. Perhaps it was an extended fling, his Lord was trapped in the castle under Dumbledore's nose, and the Potter-Black teen was a willing and highly attractive partner, who wasn't going to try brag about sleeping with the powerful Dark Lord. It was the perfect set up really, and Dolohov nodded to himself; he would see what he witnessed.

 


 

It was today. After the rumours had spread, the law had passed and an extended break, the day had come for the article to be released. Harry wasn't just excited, he was absolutely exhilarated and he knew, he just knew today would be the day that changed many things. It would be subtle, of course, but this would be crucial in the swaying of people's opinions, and he couldn't wait.

"The smile on your face is highly disturbing." Tom told him, coming out of the bathroom, his hands absently straightening his robes.

"Oh I know." Harry said, his voice filled with supressed glee, "But I cannot help it."

"What has happened to get you in such a state?" Tom asked and Harry flashed him a truly terrible smile.

"Remember I promised the article of articles for the final Dumbledore family series?" Harry said and Tom nodded, "Well, I read through the draft Rita sent me and dear Merlin is it bad."

"Bad for Dumbledore."

"So so so bad for Dumbledore." Harry confirmed, "So bad I may even consider a touch of sympathy, if only for how this is being broadcasted."

"That bad?" Tom questioned in disbelief and Harry nodded.

"Worse."

"I also remember a little promise you made in regards to this article." Tom murmured and Harry grinned, rising to his feet.

"I do too, and if you are not completely speechless I'll throw in an extra day of being your complete slave and I'll even wear a collar with your name on it." Harry told him, and Tom bit back a groan at the image created by those words.

"You are that confident."

"100%,"

"Then let us make our way to the Hall." Tom said and Harry smirked. He left first through the shadows, coming out in a hidden corridor that led to the entrance hall, his glamour wrapped around him as he went. He slipped out and headed in to the hall, barely keeping the skip out of his step as he went to the Gryffindor table. He looked around the hall, making brief eye contact with his friends and nodding slightly, telling them to be prepared. Dumbledore was sat at the head table and he was looking rather cheery that Friday morning, Harry smiled to himself; that wasn't about to last.

He wanted this to be the day where he finally got an open reaction from Dumbledore over the paper, other than him just storming off in a huff. Not that Harry blamed him for that, if it had been revealed to the world that he was being fucked by his brother in his animagus form he would have stormed out as well. Oh he was so excited. Tom caught his eye as he took his seat next to Snape, he still had trace amounts of scepticism in his feelings and Harry sent him how confident he was feeling with his promise. He got a quirk of an eyebrow in return and he had to hide his grin as he turned back to his breakfast. For Harry, it seemed like an entire year had passed before the post owls swept in to the hall, but when they did his stomach gave a jolt as he laid eyes on the paper. He paid for his own with shaking hands, and, when he unrolled the Daily Prophet it took everything he was to minimize his reaction to just widening his eyes. Harry had not realised Rita had gotten her hands on a picture, but she had and it was smack bang in the middle of the front page, the glaring headline above it.

 

The Truth About Dumbledore;

The Sister,

Where The Ideas Burned;

The Ugly Truth,

After everything I have found out about the Dumbledore family, I didn't think I could be more shocked by what I had yet to uncover, but dear readers, I am yet again astounded by the startling truths pouring to light. We have found out that Albus Dumbledore was after Wizard domination over muggles with his lover Gellert Grindlewald, we know his father was a muggle hater convicted of the attack of 3 muggle children. We have found his mother was a master of secrets and lies and a hypocritical blood supremacist and we know his brother wanted nothing to do with his family except his allusive sister. Now I present to you the missing piece, the one thing that has eluded me and raised questioned with you; Arianna Dumbledore.

What happened to the girl who was driven to kill her own mother through acts unknown? As Kendra Dumbledore was very apt at covering her tracks, it has been impossible for me to deliver the truth of what happened to the little girl that never made it to Hogwarts. I cannot tell you if she was indeed a squib and was a shame upon Kendra Dumbledore or if she was in fact ill, either could be plausible, but I can confirm that she was the only one in the house when Kendra was killed and she survived uninjured. There were no records of her, except her birth, at St Mungo's which leads us to believe that she was never ill. Wouldn't any mother want their child seen to by experts if they were so ill that they were confined to the house? Apparently not, readers. But this reporter did discover something, something that will truly reveal the true nature of Albus Dumbledore to those who do not want to believe.

Everything seemed to change for the Dumbledore family after Kendra's sudden death, of course we are aware of the arrival of Grindlewald and his romance with Albus, we know of Aberforth standing up to his brother and demanding he stop his schemes with the dark wizard, and we know Grindlewald fled. But what I bring you now it the reason behind him fleeing, the reason for the resentment between the Dumbledore brothers that still lasts, even today. That's right ladies and gentlemen, this reporter has discovered why Grindlewald left his devoted lover, the one he planned to rule the world with, and went it alone. In the summer of 1899, Aberforth had, by now, taken over caring for his younger sister while Albus was planning, but the idea of moving his sister did not sit well with Aberforth and it turned to wands. Enraged at being denied what they saw as their right, Dumbledore and Grindlewald tried to force Aberforth to see it their way, but it didn't go to plan. Aberforth, Albus and Grindlewald duelled viciously until tragedy struck. During the fight, Albus had yet again neglected to think of his sister, the member of his family that he believed was holding him back from the greatness he so wished to achieve. She ventured out of the safety Aberforth had created for her and little Arianna was struck by a curse that killed her. What is unknown was the caster behind the curse exactly, but Albus had the most to gain from her death and it could have easily been him.

Could that be the reason he was so reluctant to face his lover? Grindlewald fled, but was it out of guilt or was it through favour? Was he the one to cast the curse or was he simply taking the blame for the man he loved? Is that why Albus gave Grindlewald so much leeway? And is this the true reason Grindlewald is still alive today? It seems to me that if, as it is led to believe, Grindlewald was the true caster of the spell that killed his sister, then Albus would have been the first to go after him, through family honour and vengeance, but we know that is not the case. This reporter did find out that Aberforth blamed his brother for the murder of his sister and physically attacked him at the funeral, giving Dumbledore his famous crooked nose. It explains the reason behind the rift between the two brothers, Aberforth never forgave Albus for killing their sister in the name of muggle subservience and hated him ever since. This astounding and somewhat disturbing discovery shows us why Albus Dumbledore has hidden his history so well. After all, why hide if you have a clean conscious? But the real question is, if Dumbledore is willing to go as far as to kill his own sister, who was aged just 14, what would he do to the people who mean nothing to him to gain control? Albus Dumbledore is already in many positions of power, but is it safe to keep him there? Have we already given him too much based on the façade he shows to the world, and is it too late to save ourselves from the same fate of little Arianna?

We can only wait and see.

Rita Skeeter, Special Correspondence to the Daily Prophet,

Harry couldn't help but wince at the sheer brutality in which Rita had written this story, there were absolutely no cushioning in her words, just accusations flowing like lava. Harry looked around the hall and horrified shock was the most prominent reaction, and it settled heavily in the utter silence of the hall. Harry could feel the blank shock radiating from Tom and the man was looking at the paper as if it had literally just spoken to him to inform him that Dumbledore was actually his mother. Harry's attention snapped to the man in question when magic ripped violently through the room, the old man was on his feet, raw fury etched upon his weathered face and his teeth bared in a furious snarl. He viciously ripped the paper in two, setting it alight with a flare of magic that also blasted the headmaster chair back in to the wall with a booming crack.

"When I get my hands on you, Skeeter, you will wish you were never born to this earth." He roared to the heavens, before storming from the room via the side door and slamming it with a resounding bang. The hall was beyond silent, every single person was looking at the door in which Dumbledore had just left with disbelief – including Harry. He couldn't believe the old man had just done that! He wanted a reaction, a few curses or a burned paper, but to actively threaten someone out loud, to the entire school, and then have a temper tantrum and endanger people's lives with uncontrolled magic was insane. The man had practically handed Harry the tools for his removal.

"Did anyone else notice he didn't deny it?" A tiny voice piped up, and Harry's eyes snapped to the speaker. It was a small Hufflepuff forth year, he had seen him hand around with Dennis Creavey and at that moment in time Harry could have kissed him. Stunned whispers broke out when people realised that Dumbledore hadn't denied it, and they started to realise, started to believe that Dumbledore had killed his sister, his own sister, for power. The room descended in to utter chaos and the teachers were helpless to stop it, they were in just as much disarray as the students.

This was a man that, for many of them, they had followed and trusted their whole lives, McGonagall looked particularly distraught. Harry had to fight back his cackle of glee, everyone believed it, and everyone was taking in the fact that the great Albus Dumbledore was nothing but a despicable monster. This was set to be the best day of his life so far. Harry got to his feet and slipped out of the hall, it wasn't hard to go unnoticed when the hall was in such a state. He walked up to his rooms knowing he had some moments free, and he wasn't at all surprised when he ran into Tom on the corridor outside and pulled in to the man's rooms. The man opened his mouth to speak but nothing came out so he closed it, he went to speak again but just shook his head and in the end just shook the paper to illustrate his point that was escaping his words.

"I know," Harry said, a grin that would make a Cheshire cat jealous adorning his features, "Oh I know." Tom gripped the paper, looking it over again and tried to speak yet again but nothing came out.

"I did warn you." Harry pointed out and Tom shot him a look that clearly said he didn't believe him, "Hey, if you are going to continue to underestimate me then that's all on you." Harry told him, "I did give you ample warning."

"But to this!" Tom finally got something out of his mouth and Harry mentally patted himself and Rita on the back, "This – this is-is-is
" he trailed off having nothing to describe it with.

"I know,"

"And his reaction!" He exclaimed, "He's just dug himself a very deep grave, all because of this."

"Why did you think I was so confident?" Harry said, "This was as cut throat as it was going to get on the family front. I won't say Rita can do no worse because she always seems to get better each time"

"As good as she is, I highly doubt she would be able to top this." Tom looked at the paper again, this time somewhat reverently, "I think I need to get this framed." Harry burst out laughing at that, he could imagine it hung in the man's study along with the other ones and laughed harder.

"Oh dear Merlin," He gasped, calming down. "I think it is safe to say that, once the letters for his violent reaction reach the parents, the board is going to tip more for his removal."

"Just one more push perhaps?" Tom said and Harry nodded.

"I'll speak with Lucius and see how it will effect Fudge, being Umbridge worked under and reported back to him." Harry said, "The December Wizengamot has passed, and the January one is always later due to the Yule celebrations. That means if I get the article out in time to push Dumbledore out, I.E, next week, it will also snowball in perfect timing for the January session."

"Very well thought out." Tom complimented, "Shall I alert Lucius of your expected arrival?"

"Please, it will be tonight." Harry said, he cast a tempus and cursed, "Got to go, I have McGonagall and I believe she will be particularly unforgiving."

"Yes, I do not doubt it!" Tom agreed, "Later?"

"Of course." Harry confirmed and then he was gone. He ran up to the Transfiguration corridor and slid in to the classroom just as the door was closing, falling in by the skin of his teeth. McGonagall still shot him a venomous look, but she didn't take points or give him detention. She got straight on with her lecture, her tone short and snappy and not even Hermione, as her teachers' pet self, raised her hand to say anything in the lesson. The room was so tense when they were dismissed that Harry thought it would snap at any moment. There was a mad rush to the door and Harry felt himself get dragged through the shadows to an empty corridor, his best friends faced him with excited expressions.

"Well done." Swift said, "Just well done." Harry grinned and Paws squealed a little bit in her excitement.

"Oh Merlin, Snake, this is pure, untouched gold. This article is so good, I'm considering asking Rita to sign it." She told him honestly and Harry snickered.

"If you do, get two signed will you. Tom wants one framed." He said to her and she grinned.

"Gladly,"

"Come on, we're going to be late." Swift told them, catching their attention. "We'll meet in Snake's rooms later."

"See you then," Harry said, "Bye guys." He shadowed away and walked down to the greenhouses, Harry watched the students and grinned to himself. Professor Sprout was not her usual self and she had everyone doing menial tasks around the greenhouses, such as spreading and turfing, she looked oddly depressed and Harry could see the paper stowed away in her robes. Harry didn't blame her, her entire beliefs had been shaken and it was a lot to take in, he couldn't help but feel unbelievably pleased with himself. Harry was followed out of the greenhouse by Neville and the other teen looked at him, shook his head, and continued back up to the castle, much to Harry's amusement. He spent his free period and lunch break calming down an excitable Luna, who insisted on bouncing around their rooms like a crazy person for the entire hour, it was highly amusing for Harry and allowed his little blond sister to run wild. Once she was done she merely danced away and Harry laughed, following her out and heading down to potions, he barely stopped his yelp when Draco punched him in the arm.

"Hey! What was that for?" Harry demanded, rubbing his arm.

"You know exactly what that was for." Draco hissed, "What was that?" Harry sniffed and stepped away from the blond.

"I did say the final one would be the one to push him over the edge." Harry said.

"Yes, but this is like nothing I could have ever predicted." Draco whisper exclaimed and Harry smirked.

"Since when was I predictable?" He questioned and the blond sighed.

"You've gotten me there."

"Of course, now would you mind not attempting to bruise me anymore? I would greatly appreciate it, thanks."

"Yes yes, stop complaining." Draco told him and Harry shot him an incredulous look, "You'll have to read again, I'm finishing the potion."

"Got it," Harry edged his way around the cauldron and sat at the end of the desk again, taking out his book and settling down to read. Snape didn't even bat an eyelid and at the end of the double period Draco handed in the potion and Harry knew they had received top marks.

"You know, the way things are going you are going to pass through my hard work." Draco told him and Harry rolled his eyes.

"Really, we are in the middle of numerous things that could change the very foundations of our world and your potions grade is what you are worried about." Harry said sardonically and Draco sniffed.

"I wish to be a master,"

"Yeah, but this year means nothing." Harry pointed out, "Next year is when you'll be taking your N.E.W.T's, unless you plan on taking them early?"

"I may, it would not be too difficult. It will depend on how things are come June." Draco said and Harry shrugged.

"Don't know what you are complaining about then."

Draco punched him again, and Harry laughed. The pair made their way out of the dungeons and split, Harry going alone to the Great Hall for dinner while Draco met with Blaise and Theo Nott and headed up themselves. Dumbledore, unsurprisingly, was not at dinner, and it did nothing for the man's reputation. Everyone, even the teachers, were talking about Dumbledore and what he had done; it was perfect. He would have to have Rita a gift sent for sure, she needed something for her absolutely fantastic writing skills. Right now he was going to watch the chaos of the hall and enjoy it.

Notes:

Tadahh!!! Next one done!

Chapter 37

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 37:

He should have known that Dumbledore's absence from the Great Hall was more than just the man having a hissy fit, he cursed to himself. Of course the old man would be latching on to his precious weapon in desperate times, if things came crashing down for him it would be Harry as the scape goat, which meant the man had to come up with a plan. A plan that involved Harry. Harry cursed his luck, he had things to do, he was supposed to be meeting with Lucius tonight, he needed to get the final article sent off for Rita to work her magic. The headmaster was on his last limbs now so he was extremely unpredictable, and unpredictable meant dangerous. Harry had informed Luna of where he was going, she was going to wait for him in his rooms and if he didn't come back within an hour she was going to alert the others. Harry sighed as he got to the statue and took a deep breath, he had to get it together and be prepared for anything.

"Acid Pops," the gargoyle leapt aside and Harry ascended the spiral staircase, he knocked politely and sneered when the grandfatherly voice called for him to enter. That wouldn't do, he took another deep breath to centre himself, and, after altering his expression, Harry stepped in with a small smile.

"Good evening, sir," He greeted, taking the seat he was pointed to. He noticed immediately that the old man was tense, his blue eyes were twinkling madly, insanely almost and Harry was immediately on edge. He forced himself to remain relaxed, not to show anything was afoot and kept his expression clear.

"Good evening, Harry, how are you my boy?" Dumbledore asked and even his voice held a strained note, this wasn't good, Harry noted.

"I'm ok, thanks, sir." Harry replied, keeping his voice soft and warm, despite his instincts telling him to get out of that room. "Um, how are you, sir? You seemed stressed earlier." He didn't want to ask that, but it was expected of him, he was supposed to care when the man was not at his best instead of rejoicing.

"I am feeling much better now, thank you, Harry." Dumbledore answered and it was obvious he forced himself to remain calm. "Rita Skeeter seemed to have gained a taste for attacking me needlessly. It is unfortunate, but nothing I cannot handle."

"She should have been fired a long time ago." Harry said, scowling at the wall.

"She is in place to sell papers, nothing more." Dumbledore assured him, "Just like with yourself, she will eventually become bored."

"I hope so, this is getting ridiculous. I mean, who does she think she is!?" Harry exclaimed, "Shouldn't the ministry shut her down?"

"Cornelius is more interested in saving his own rapidly crumbling image, that stopping Rita Skeeter from trying to get at me is the least of his priorities." Dumbledore told him, and Harry frowned.

"Sounds about right, Fudge would only save his own skin."

"The happenings of the ministry is not what I called you up here for, however." Dumbledore said, obviously wanting to get on to the topic in which he wanted. "I called you up here to see if you could satisfy an old man with tea." Harry had to squash a shudder of disgust; that was really worded wrong. Just the mere thought, oh good Merlin that was horrific. Harry ignored the questioning feeling Tom sent him and focused on the headmaster.

"Of course, sir. I would be happy too." He agreed instead of voicing his actual thought process. Harry knew better than to actually drink anything, if it wasn't dosed with Veritaserum then he wasn't a Potter.

"Wonderful, wonderful," Dumbledore said pleased. He poured out the tea and handed Harry his, placing biscuits on the desk between them. "Biscuit?"

"No thank you, sir. I ate too much treacle tart." Harry said with a sheepish grin, and Dumbledore chuckled. Harry blinked when he felt the brush of a compulsion spell, it sank in to his mind and urged him to drink the tea, it didn't stick however, and Harry thanked the parsel spell for keeping his mind safe. He followed the compulsion anyway, but he vanished the liquid as soon as it touched his tongue. It had taken him weeks to learn how to do that trick, but he had eventually gotten the hang of it when he had gone for broke and sipped basilisk venom. His survival instincts had kicked in right there.

"So, Harry, how are your studies coming along?" Dumbledore inquired, setting the pace for this meeting.

"I'm doing ok, I think." Harry said humbly, "Defence is the best."

"Professor Drield has been well received by all the students. He is a very pleasant man." Dumbledore mused and Harry had the mad urge to laugh at that, if only Dumbledore knew. Harry couldn't wait for the day when it came out that the Dark Lord had been teaching, that all of the students and all of the staff loved him and that the man was actually brilliant.

"He's an amazing teacher, one of the best I think we've ever had!" Harry said with excitement, "And, I don't think this one wants to attack me."

"Yes, yes, that is a wonderful success in itself." Dumbledore agreed jovially, "You haven't had the best track record with defence teachers, have you, dear boy?"

"They generally don't seem to like me, no." Harry said ruefully, and he felt the compulsion grow stronger so he took a bigger gulp before vanishing it again. The process was made harder by the fact that he had to muffle his magic as he vanished the liquid or Dumbledore would know something was amiss. Harry knew the effects of Veritaserum had on the body so he became more relaxed and made his eyes glaze over, and Dumbledore's eyes flashed in triumph. The old man sat back and continued the discussion, asking menial questions that seemed innocent enough and Harry answered them, making sure to keep his voice relatively flat as he spoke. The questions began to get more personal and the compulsion was strengthen so he finished the tea and set it down, making himself fully lax and then Dumbledore truly began.

"I have noticed, and excuse an old man for being interested, that you no longer spend time with Miss Weasley." Dumbledore noted, and Harry only just stopped himself from tensing, he didn't like where this was going, "You seemed to get on very well."

"Yeah, Ginny's great. I like her a lot." Harry told him, the generic answer coming to his lips unconsciously.

"You have a more personal interest?" Dumbledore asked.

"I dunno," Harry answered, "I really do like her, but I have so much to do and I don't want her getting hurt, I would never forgive myself if she was killed."

"I am sure you would do your utmost to look after her." Dumbledore pointed out.

"I would do anything to keep her safe. I can't have her getting hurt, and after Halloween
" Harry shuddered, "No, she's safer far away from me." The words made him feel ill, but Dumbledore lapped them up, stroking his beard thoughtfully.

"I see," Dumbledore murmured, nodding more to himself than in answer to Harry's words. There was a look that came to Dumbledore's eye that Harry didn't like at all, it was a look of desperation and Harry didn't have time to react before he felt the old man's magic flare and he found himself frozen in place. He internally cursed, he tried to counter it without flaring his own magic but it just wasn't possible. He jabbed at the connection for Swift and Paws and they answered immediately.

Dumbledore's got me frozen to the chair, I don't know what he plans to do. This could go bad. He told them, making sure to watch every move the old man made. He rose to his feet and pointed his wand at Harry, he regarded him almost thoughtfully as Harry looked up at him with portrayed confusion. In actual fact he was fuming, it was taking everything he had not to destroy the office and burn the old man.

Shit! Swift cursed, Can you not break it?

Not without flaring my magic, and then he'll know. Harry responded.

We'll be in your rooms, Paws told him, We'll plan for anything. Harry just had time to hear Dumbledore speaking.

"Rita just had to speed up my plans." Dumbledore muttered, "I was having you groomed perfectly, but she just had to get in the way." Harry was really trying to get out of the spell without alerting Dumbledore, but it just wasn't working, and the old man was losing it.

"I can't get rid of her, and if I get torn down now, it leaves you, my precious weapon, without a guide." Harry really wasn't liking the direction Dumbledore was taking, his panic must have leaked through because Tom sent an insistent jab of questioning to which Harry responded with a flare of uncertainty and a touch of worry.

"This is for the best." Dumbledore told him, his tone matter of fact. "I need you to comply with my vision, and your fortune is part of that vision." Harry was swarmed with the oily magic of a heavy compulsion charm seeping in to his skin, it felt like it was crawling over his body and sinking in to his brain. It was telling him to go out with Ginny, to date her and sleep with her in the hope that she conceives. It told him to start a family with her, to conceive a child and do the right thing by her and his new child. It wasn't just a compulsion charm, it was a web, weaving around him, with layers of meaning and Harry couldn't stop his shudder and it tried to trap him but was blocked by his protection spell.

"This is for the Greater Good." Dumbledore stated, before waving his wand again, "Obliviate," Harry relaxed completely, letting his eyes fog over as he sank back in to the chair. Dumbledore's voice whispered in his mind telling him he felt a little sick, and that he should excuse himself to lie down. The old man retook his seat and settled himself back in to the grandfatherly mask he wore every day, Harry burned with such hatred that he barely caught his magic from lashing out and he forced himself to remain calm. He centred himself with an enormous amount of difficulty, he took a deep breath and 'came around', blinking owlishly and shaking his head.

"Are you quite alright, my boy?" Dumbledore inquired kindly, his voice lined with concern.

"So sorry, headmaster, I just feel really ill." Harry said to him, his voicing wavering just slightly in an effort to control his anger. Dumbledore gained a look of concern and peered over his half-moon spectacles at Harry.

"That is quite ok. Why don't you run back to your rooms? I expect it's been a long day." Dumbledore said sympathetically and Harry nodded.

"Thanks sir," He said and he left the room swiftly. He got to the bottom of the stair case before his shaking limbs became apparent and he was forced to lean back against the wall. Harry took several deep breaths but it was to no use for him, if anything it just made him angrier as he listened to the man's sprouted words in his head over and over. He wanted to rage and storm, to show Dumbledore just how screwed he actually was, to crush the old man and all of his plans in one fail swoop. The logical side of his mind was telling him to get back to his rooms and get to safety, while the primal side of his mind was calling for blood, and logic was rapidly losing face.

"Harry?"

Harry's attention snapped to the sound of a soft voice, and he nearly breathed in relief. Luna was stood with her hand stretched out and Harry all but lunged to take it, her calming magic washing over him and soothing him, stopping his mind from whirling. She led him back to his rooms and as soon as the door was sealed, Luna stepped away and Harry's magic just exploded out of him, tearing in to the room and making the occupants of the room throw up shields to protect themselves. It took a while before it was safe to drop the shields, but even then Harry's magic was still dancing around him and the teen was pacing.

"What did he do to you?" Paws questioned and Harry released a snort of derision.

"You mean other than informing me that he plans to take my fortune and that I'm his precious weapon?" Harry hissed sardonically, his voice only just staying in English.

"He what?" Swift demanded and Harry laughed coldly.

"Oh yes, Rita and her article have pushed up his plans, and I, the precious weapon, cannot be left without a guide." Harry informed them and they scowled.

"But why did he freeze you?" Paws asked and Luna gasped, alerting Harry that she knew.

"This one was particularly nice of him." Harry said, "Dumbledore upgraded this time, he decided to go with a lovely little compulsion web instead of just a charm." Paws gasped and Swift hissed.

"How many layers?"

"At least two, but there could have been a third that I didn't recognise in anger." Harry said, his magic spiking in his anger.

"What was it centred on? What did you manage to get out of it?" Paws questioned, fearing the answer as Harry's anger was so great.

"Dumbledore wishes me to date and sleep with Ginny," Harry told them, mock brightly and they both sucked in a sharp breath through their teeth, Luna was already clutching the arm of the sofa.

"He has to be fucking kidding me!" Swift fumed, and Harry laughed high and cold.

"That wasn't even the best thing." Harry said, his magic growing thick and tense.

"What do you mean?" Paws demanded, "That's practically rape!"

"Oh no, Dumbledore wants me to conceive. He wants me to have a baby and do right by my new family. And then he obliviated me." Utter silence met his words as all three of them looked at him in horrified disgust.

"What are you going to do?" Luna whispered, her voice shaking slightly, and Harry laughed again, his voice taking on a hysterical note.

"I have absolutely no idea." He exclaimed, "How am I supposed to work around a solid web that, unless I had broken all of his enchantments, would be active immediately? You can guarantee that he would have informed Ginny of the changes and she's going to be back faster than you can blink."

"This is it!" Swift moaned, "He's done it this time."

"I'm dead, it's as simple as that." Harry stated, "I won't touch her, I physically can't make myself go there." Harry shook his head rapidly, "I-I-I just can't do that, and he'll know, when I don't give in to the spell, he know and he'll come after me." Harry tugged at his hair with both hands, the horrible realisation that even after everything he had done it wasn't enough hitting him and he retched. Luna was next to him in an instant, rubbing his back and handing him a glass of water.

"Don't you dare give up on me, Harry Potter-Black." Luna told him harshly, "This is not it, and you will not die. We will think of something, and we will get through this – together." Harry nodded, breathing slowly and calmly as her unique magic soothed him. He span around when Paws gasped, her eyes were wide and she had gone very pale.

"What? What is it?" He demanded, not wanting to hear anything else negative that evening.

"The Dark Lord," She breathed and Harry blinked a few times, he was momentarily confused and then it hit him.

"Oh fuck!" He cursed, he covered his face with his hands and groaned. This could not be happening. "And I missed my fucking meeting. Dammit Dumbledore." Harry kicked the table sending it across the room.

"He is not going to be happy." Swift sighed and Harry released a noise of disbelief in the back of his throat.

"That's a fucking understatement, if ever I heard one." Harry muttered, "Only the other day he informed me that while he was using me that I belong to him, granted I informed him otherwise but I doubt it registered."

"Using you? Is he bli-, Ouch!" Whatever Swift was saying was cut off by Paws stamping on his foot, she gave him a look that told him to shut up and Swift shrugged and looked down. Harry gave them an odd look, but he pushed it away as he had other things on his mind at that moment. One of them being how to explain to a slightly violent Dark Lord that he had to impregnate a girl he hated.

"I must have been a fucking bastard in a past like," Harry complained.

"You need to get rid of your anger before the rest of the room collapses." Swfit told him, and Harry looked around the room with a wince.

"Right, got it." He vanished in to his room and came back changed in to his jeans and t-shirt.

"We will get working on something to cover this situation." Paws assured him, "Speak to the Dark Lord and reschedule your meeting, we will not lose it now, not after everything."

"Ok, I can do that." Harry said with a nod, he sighed and ran a hand through his hair. He kissed Luna on the cheek and left the room in a particularly violent swarm of shadows.

"Why did you stamp on me?" Swift demanded of Paws, as soon as he was sure Snake was gone.

"You have to have noticed how oblivious they are?" Paws said, with a roll of her eyes, "We have to let them figure out for themselves. You know if you told Harry what has happened he would deny it, call us crazy and generally react badly."

"She has a valid point," Luna agreed, "He's not ready, and when he is we'll know."

"I feel for him." Swift sighed, "It's not fair,"

"I know, but I think, in the end, it will be ok." Paws said.

"In other news, following where Snake has gone." Swift said, a smirk curling on to his face, "How long do you think Ginny is going to last this time?" the two girls laughed coldly.

"Not long at all."

 


 

His shadows flared out around the room as Harry stepped out, he waved his hands and they vanished in to nothing, not being able to control them with a thought in his fury.

"What happened?" Tom demanded, he had obviously been in wait for the teen. "You're emotions have been bouncing around almost dizzyingly."

"Dumbledore happened," Harry bit out, clenching and flexing his fingers.

"What has the old fool done this time? Minus his outbreak this morning, I have not heard from him whatsoever."

"Oh no, you wouldn't have. No," Harry shook his head with a nasty smile, "He was rethinking his master plan, and has come up with an oh so great idea."

"You are his master plan." Tom pointed out slowly, and Harry's smile stretched but it wasn't a nice look.

"Exactly," Harry said, "And the precious weapon cannot be without a guide, so the old man needs a plan. He spiked my drink and ended with a nice little Obliviate." Tom's eyes narrowed and Harry released a muted scream, his magic flared and crushed the table in to dust.

"Duel me," Tom ordered, "You cannot go around like this." To illustrate his point, Harry's magic fluxed again and broke the sofa. Harry hissed before his wand was out and he flicked a particularly vicious curse at the Dark Lord's head, it didn't even come close to hitting its mark, of course, but the duel began. Their spells flew between them furiously, the magic in the air flaring and crackling in the high emotion and neither of them seemed to get a decent hit on the other. It was like a dance, as they span and twisted to avoid oncoming spells, graceful and deadly and each of their movements was so very unique. Tom eventually had Harry out, twisting so his wand was at his throat and his arm hand around his wrist. They were both breathing rapidly, and their magic settled around them slowly.

"Just what exactly did the old fool wish for you to forget?" Tom asked him quietly, and Harry laughed without humour.

"You mean other than informing me that he wanted my fortune and that I was being groomed?" Harry questioned sardonically, "Well Dumbledore, in all his wisdom, thought it would be a great idea to weave a little compulsion web around me." They still hadn't moved from their position from the end of the duel so Harry felt Tom tense behind him, and the hand on his wrist grew just that little bit tighter.

"And just what is this compulsion web for?" Tom inquired lightly.

"It seems Dumbledore wishes me to date and sleep with Ginny, in the hope that she conceives a child." Harry told him brightly, and the Dark Lord went completely still. It took around three seconds for Harry's words to completely register in his mind before he was livid.

"He did what!" He snarled and Harry nodded.

"Oh yes, and it was a strong one too, with layers. Wants me to do right by my 'family' once she's pregnant." The hand gripping Harry's wrist became painful and Harry found himself span around, his lips claimed in a demanding and possessive kiss. He was backed in to the wall with force and in retaliation he yanked at Tom's hair and roughly bit his lip drawing a low hiss from the man. Harry infused his hand with magic and ripped away Tom's robes and shirt, leaving angry scratch marks in his wake, and his neck was bitten hard enough to draw blood, the pain blowing away in to shooting pleasure.

Tom's hands ran all over his body getting progressively lower until they slid down his legs and lifted the teen, Harry wrapped his legs around Tom and was pulled back for another searing kiss. He sucked on his tongue gaining a low moan for his action, and he rolled his hips, pulling himself closer to Tom as he did so. The sudden cold on his skin made Harry gasp, Tom had vanished his clothes and was kissing and biting down the pale skin. Magic swarmed around him and Harry felt wet and clear, and that was the only warning he got before he was thrust in to. His head dropped back as he cried out, a burning pain spreading up his spine mixing with dizzying pleasure, and Harry dragged his nailed down Tom's neck and along his collar making the man hiss.

"Snake," Tom's low, husky voice held a moan and it sent shivers down his spine, Harry sucked in a sharp breath through his teeth. Tom pulled back and slammed in to him, and Harry yelled out, his grip tightening on Tom's shoulders, digging his nails in and easily breaking the skin. He set the pace, hard and brutal and it made Harry burn for more. He begged for it, needing more pain, more pleasure, demanding that Tom go harder, that he go deeper, and he screamed when Tom hit that spot that lit him on fire.

"Fuck!" Harry swore, "Tom, shit, Tom," he felt himself getting closer to the edge as Tom repeatedly hit that spot that made him scream with pleasure, it was building in his stomach.

"Cum for me," Tom ordered, his voice low and husky, tight with his own growing release. Harry came with a shout, his body falling forward as his muscles clamped down around Tom, milking the man of his seed. Tom bit down viciously on Harry's neck, riding out his own release as Harry clutched him like a lifeline. He licked the fresh bite mark, soothing it with his tongue and Harry shuddered, pulling himself closer.

Mine, Tom whispered in parsel, his voice ghosting over the mark he had created, and Harry moaned, his mind fogged and groggy. You're mine, Snake.

Yes, Harry hissed in to the man's neck. Right now, that didn't sound like such a bad thing, but he missed Tom's triumphant smirk as they apparated away.

 


 

He was actually out of his mind, Harry decided, as he climbed through his portrait hole the next morning. He was aching slightly, and his head was still spinning, he could feel the numerous bruises dickering his body as he moved and he groaned. He didn't want to be up at this time of day, it was too early and he had too much going on. He had forced himself up out of the very comfortable position in Tom's arms and dragged his unwilling body out of the man's rooms. Tom had an emergency staff meeting, and to keep everything in order he decided to go straight away; much to both of their displeasures. He slapped himself as he dropped down, face first, on to the sofa, he needed to sort himself out.

This was getting ridiculous. What was he even doing? Every single time Tom had claimed he belonged to him, Harry had rejected the notion immediately, but yesterday, when Tom got possessive over him being with Ginny he had relished in it, something he really shouldn't do. This was casual, it was working out of mutual benefit and as soon as Dumbledore was out and they could relax and it would be done. He swore to himself that he would not become one of those people that got caught up in the Dark Lord, and he had a sinking feeling he was becoming almost reliant on the pleasure and the moment.

"You're back," Luna noted and Harry made a noise that she, and the other two took as a positive answer.

"What's up?" Swift asked, "We didn't expect you back yet."

"I wasn't supposed to be." Harry told them, slowly pushing himself up, "Tom has an emergency staff meeting." He slumped against the arm of the sofa and his three friends sucked in a sharp breath. "What?"

"Your neck." Paws gasped, and Harry's hand flew to the bite mark with a curse.

"Yeah," He tugged at his head sheepishly, turning away, "I'm a fucking idiot."

"What have you done?"

"I've been too caught up in the moment," Harry sighed and there was silence after that.

"It's not that bad." Paws hedged, and Harry gave her a deadpan look and she shrugged. "I'm trying to be helpful."

"Not a lot you can say." Harry pointed out, "What the fucking hell does it look like?"

"It looks like a claiming bite." Swift pointed out unnecessarily and Harry groaned.

"Exactly!" Harry sighed, rubbing his hands over his face. The others shared a look.

"You can hide it if you don't like it." Luna said, "You do with the rest of the marks."

"That's the point!" Harry burst out, jumping up, "I don't not like it! I don't understand it, but it's like it's supposed to be there. I can't – I don't – it's just
" Harry tugged at his hair and looked at Luna almost desperately, "I don't get it, help me!" Luna sat him back down and covered his hands, which were clutching his head, with her own and looked him in the eye.

"I will always help you." She told him, "Now take a deep breath, and calm down." Harry did as he was told, and settled himself. "You will be ok, and you will grow to understand what is going on." He nodded and took another deep breath.

"Ok, I'm cool. I have this." Harry said, "It's just so strange, it's an odd feeling. I don't think I've had it before." Harry said, frowning slightly, missing the significant look his friends' shared. He cursed himself, he didn't like this confusion and it was Tom's fault. He needed a clear head, he needed his wits about him and he needed to focus – something he couldn't do with and around Tom it seemed. He shouldn't have let the mark be given to him and he really shouldn't have agreed when the man said Harry was his, but he did both. Harry got up and dropped down in front of the fireplace, watching the flames as they destroyed the wood fuelling it, tilting his head from side to side as he watched the different shapes created.

"I think I will have to stay away from him from now on." Harry said after a moment of thought, and the three of them looked at him in shock.

"Really?" Paws said surprised, looking at the other two in concern.

"Yes, it's getting out of hand, and I need to keep my head clear. Things are getting too dangerous." Harry mused.

"Whoa Snake, are you sure?" Swift questioned, and Harry nodded. "But why? I mean, you are having fun and it's not hurting anyone."

"I said I wouldn't lose myself." Harry said and they frowned at his back.

"You haven't." Paws said slowly. "You are still you, you don't belong to him."

"But I said I did." Harry whispered, and with that he got up and vanished in to his bedroom leaving a stunned group behind.

"Did he just say what I think he said?" Paws said in disbelief, and the other two nodded.

"Yes he did."

"This is bad." Luna said slowly, "This is moving too quickly, and he is not going to be able to understand what's happening."

"This could go two ways, neither of them are looking particularly promising." Paws murmured, "And one is too horrible to even think about."

"The sad thing is he doesn't even realise. He doesn't recognise what he's going through, or what he puts himself through." Swift sighed, "Isn't there any way we can help him?"

"We can only be patient. I will go through things with when I can, but he has to learn everything on his own, even if it takes time. If we tell him, he won't understand and reject, he has to be able to feel and identify on his own." Luna said with a despondent shrug, "The best we can do is buy him time."

"Do you think he will actually call it off?" Swift asked, and Luna shook her head.

"No, he's confused at the moment, and he doesn't like feeling that way. But, as you've just heard, he's too attached, even if he doesn't realise it." Luna said.

"Why do you say that?" Paws questioned and Luna tilted his head.

"Because Harry was worried he would get caught up in the man's magic, he was worried he would become just another face in the crowd, someone who relies on the Dark Lord's attention to function; but we know it's not true and so will he once he's thought it all out." Luna explained, "He doesn't rely on the man, he's not caught up in being around the Dark Lord; it doesn't define him. And we all know he will never become just another face in the crowd."

"Isn't that the truth?" Swift snorted, "The way he looks at him."

"Yes, but look at his emotional growth." Paws said and Swift snorted again.

"What emotional growth?" He asked rhetorically, "It's a question to who is worse between the pair of them."

"It's also a question to who realises that their so called 'casual' affair, isn't so casual anymore." Paws pointed out. "Good Merlin, why is it always us that have to do clean up?"

"We've been doing it since eleven." Swift said, "I would have thought you would have been used to it by now."

"This is all good conversation." Luna said, "As much as I do love trying to work out what goes on in Snake mind, does anyone else remember why Snake went last night?" they both paled and Swift cursed.

"I have no idea how we are going to be able to work around this one." Paws groaned, "This is a whole new level, and if Harry doesn't follow what he supposedly has been compelled to do then Dumbledore will cotton on immediately."

"He's getting desperate. This article has pushed him over the edge, and he has to watch his queen." Swift muttered, "He's placed himself as the king and our pieces are getting to many checks on him, he's panicking and he wants Harry tied to his Kingside Castle so he has an out."

"Carry on," Paws said, looking at him.

"It's simple, if this pushes Dumbledore out and he no longer has main control over Harry, he not only loses his weapon, he loses his weapon's assets. With Harry tied to Ginny, and a child on the way, he gains the Potter, Black, Peverell and Gryffindor seats, vaults and properties and all the secrets that go with them, because Ginny is his fully." Swift explained, "This is his failsafe, and I doubt she would even carry the chid to term, but it would be enough for the Golden Boy to sign everything over. He wouldn't disown it."

"But Harry won't sleep with her, he won't be able to." Luna pointed out, "And there will be no way that Dumbledore will not know."

"This is so fucked."

"Harry wanted Dumbledore out of the castle by Yule, it is the only way we even have a chance." Paws stated, "Problem is, we only have a week and a bit."

"We'll need to plan with Snake, things need to move faster than ever." Swift said, "Venom, Bleach, Badger and the twins need to be updated and the priority becomes removing Dumbledore while keeping ourselves alive."

"Snake was supposed to be meeting with Lord Malfoy yesterday evening, he will still need to do that and, I hope, that will be the push needed." Luna told them.

"Very well, we need to plan for Ginny." Paws said.

"It depends on if she's still alive to even factor in our plans." Luna said with a cold smirk, and Paws raised an eyebrow.

"What do you mean?"

"I do not know if you saw the mark Harry came back with, this morning, but I do not think the Dark Lord is in agreement to sharing." Luna pointed out and the other two shared smirks.

"You make a good point, Raven." Swift murmured gleefully, "I'll be surprised if she makes it in to next week."

"It will be a problem if she doesn't." Paws said, "Who knows what Dumbledore will do to Harry without her."

"Oh Merlin, I don't want to know." Swift said with a shudder.

"We'll plan for everything." Paws said, snapping back to business, "We'll have to remain focused and on point, we have multiple possibilities, and we will have to factor in an erratic, slightly unstable Dark Lord to anything and everything we do."

"I believe I am perfectly stable, thank you very much." A cold, drawing voice spoke from behind them. Swift yelped, Luna screamed and Paws squeaked in shock, and they all span around to see the Dark Lord, in all his glory, stood looking at them with a raised eyebrow.

"Um, sorry?" Paws ventured, when she eventually found her voice, and Tom rolled his eyes.

"Where is he?" He asked, focusing on the reason for him being there.

"Hibernating." Luna answered and Tom blinked.

"Hibernating?" He repeated, and Luna nodded with a shrug.

"Yes, he's thinking."

Tom looked to the heavens as if asking for strength and sighed.

"Honestly, do you have to schedule everything he does?" He questioned Luna, and the girl laughed lightly.

"He does remember, he's just working things out." Luna said, "But mostly, I do keep him up together, yes." Tom shook his head and walked towards the bedroom muttering to himself.

"Dear Merlin, I asked for one surprise a week, one! Is that too much to ask?" He muttered before vanishing in to the room, the three of them exchanged looks as they heard muffled speech, a flare of magic and a muted thump. The door was open again and they say Harry being dragged out, with very little resistance from the teen in question, by a triumphant looking Dark Lord.

"Apparently I don't sleep here anymore." Harry told them, rolling his eyes as Tom tugged him closer and wrapped an arm around his waist, "I have to meet with Lucius, but I'll come back and we can plan from that. Alert the others; Dumbledore is now priority."

"Got it," Paws said and then the pair of them were gone.

"Anyone going to comment?" Swift asked and they shook their heads.

"Nope."

"I'll fetch Venom, Luna get Draco and the twins, Paws get Badger. We'll meet back here in ten minutes just to brief up and outline some plans." Swift decided and the girls nodded. He left in his own shadows and appeared back at the Sanctuary, Venom didn't need to double up on his days because he wasn't on Dumbledore's radar. The House of Zabini has always been neutral. Swift skipped up the stairs to the training room and he wasn't surprised to see Venom going through his regular exercises and he took a moment to stand back and admire him. Blaise Zabini was a very good looking individual, he was highly sought after by both male and female, and Ron wasn't one to ignore that.

But, despite many willing bodies, Zabini seemed to be chasing him. He didn't fall for his charms immediately, despite the other teen being ridiculously charming, and he waited to see how Blaise responded. He was used to people falling all over him, after all. Ron was surprised when the Italian teen only seemed to get more interested, he continued his advances and Ron found himself melting slowly. Little gifts and heated looks had become a daily thing and Ron could see himself dating Blaise, the teen was a lot different to what rumours said, but then again, so was he. As much as he wanted to continue to watch Venom train, they had things to be getting on with and so he walked further in to the room and flashed red sparks.

"Hey," Venom greeted with a smile, "I thought you were with Snake?"

"I was, I've come to get you." Swift said, trying to ignore how that smile made him feel, "We got problems."

"When don't we have problems?" Venom asked rhetorically, waving wand to correct his appearance, "What's going on now?"

"Dumbledore's gotten to Snake and we need to plan." Swift said and Venom's eyes widened.

"Damn," He jumped down off the platform and rushed over, "Let's go." Swift grabbed his arm and they vanished in to the shadows. They landed in Snake's rooms and the others were already there, and each of them had a look of worry on their faces. Venom threw himself down on the sofa and Swift sat at his feet, leaning back against his legs without a thought.

"So what's going on?" Draco asked, "Raven was less clear than usual."

"We have a major problem." Paws began, "After the article yesterday, Dumbledore got to Snake."

"What!"

"Got to him?"

"Do we need a break out mission?"

"We need to get moving now!"

"Whoa, calm it." Swift exclaimed, "Snake is fine-ish."

"Explain, now!" Badger ordered.

"Dumbledore weaved a heavy compulsion web around Snake, he's backing himself up."

"Shit!" the twins cursed, "A web?"

"Yes, with at least two layers, possibly three." Swift confirmed.

"Oh dear," Bleach muttered, "But that wouldn't be too much of a problem on its own. What did the compulsion contain?"

"That is where the problem lies." Paws said with a grimace, "The web is for Harry to date and sleep with Ginny, in the hope that she conceives a child, and then to do 'right' by her and his new family." They looked at her in shock horror and she nodded.

"We're screwed." Badger stated.

"Pretty much." Paws agreed, "We need a miracle."

"So what's Snake's take on this?"

"He's having his own sort of panic as well as trying to deal with his fucked up emotions." Swift told them and Bleach sighed.

"Wonderful, that is just what we need." He said, "If he snaps or breaks now, we are all dead."

"We know, I'm working on it but things are moving a lot faster than I thought." Luna said sharply.

"What do you mean?" Venom asked, and Luna bit her lip.

"He's become aware that he is feeling something, he just can't work out what or why." Luna said, "We cannot tell him because he wouldn't believe us and it could end badly, very badly."

"What of Him?" Bleach questioned and Luna shook her head.

"Just as emotionally uniformed." She said, "But he wants Snake, he just doesn't know exactly how much of Snake he wants."

"So basically, in their minds, it's still a casual affair." Fred said slowly.

"But in reality it has become much more." George continued.

"So much more." Paws confirmed.

"So much more?" they repeated together.

"Harry said he belonged to him," She said and they blinked. "He's attached, he just doesn't know how much and in what respect."

"So not only do we have an impossible situation to work around, it is a possibility that Snake will have an emotional breakdown where, depending on when and how, he could either self-destruct or rupture and destroy everything?" Bleach listed, "Have I missed anything?"

"Only that we also have to factor in the fact that the Dark Lord really doesn't like sharing." Paws added and Bleach threw her a withering look.

"Well isn't this wonderful." Badger said mock brightly.

"So what are we going to do?" George questioned.

"The base plan at the current time is pushing Dumbledore out at the fastest possible convenience. I know Snake missed his meeting last night, but he is heading to Malfoy Manor today to work with Lord Malfoy on the final push; fingers crossed." Swift explained, "Now, what we need to do is come up with some counter measures to put in to place so that that final push can be put in to action."

"We have very few options, and all of them extremely risky." Fred pointed out.

"Whatever they are, we would like to hear. We have nothing." Paws said.

"Theirs polyjuice, taking it in turns to be Snake in school hours but there would be getting the actions right and it would still not get around the fact that she is going to expect sex." George began and they nodded.

"Then there is distraction. Keep her distracted at all times, Snake is never alone with her and she is kept busy." Fred continued, "But there is the problem that she, and then Dumbledore, will get suspicious of the distractions. They would begin to question and the last thing Harry needs is to be backed right in to a corner, he would snap."

"Both of those are full of risks, and I don't think we could pull them off," Swift said thoughtfully, his voice lined with frustration, "There are too many variables and if the slightest thing is off then we're done, there won't be any coming back."

"We have one more idea." The twins said, "But it's a long shot again, and it would need something first."

"Go on,"

"A layered illusion. Like the cubes we've made, but different in the fact that we control the illusion with a little help from Ginny herself." Fred suggested.

"How would you even begin to pull that off?" Badger questioned and the twins shared a look.

"That's the problem, we would need a bit of her blood before it could work." George said with a frown.

"But even with her blood, how would that work?" Paws asked, "An illusion has no form, no basis."

"Normal ones don't, the ones we're working on are a bit more complex than just a protected image." George told her.

"Our illusions are more like visions almost, they get buried deep inside the subconscious and stimulate the senses, convincing the brain that they have smelled, tasted, saw, heard and felt everything the illusion is projecting." Fred finished explaining and the others looked at them in amazement.

"That's impossible." Luna whispered and the twins shared a grin.

"It should be, but we have it. With a mix of our own Runes, some ones we've found in the Flamel books and some of Paws', we've managed it." Fred said with a grin.

"We already have the base line, the starter that seeps in to the mind, we just need to build the actual illusion. And for that we need her blood."

"What will her blood do?" Bleach asked.

"The blood, as you all know, if our life force, it can tell everything about us." Fred began, "What we have discovered is that it holds a lot more than just who or what we are, it also holds our very essence. Our thoughts and feelings, our wishes and our memories, and with the use of her blood, we can create the perfect illusion, and give her the exactly what she wants."

"That is amazing." Paws breathed, "You have records of all of this, right?"

"Yes, it is paired with our Erised cubes, which, by the way, are almost finished." George told them.

"This concept was actually an accident from working with those." Fred said with a shrug. The group sat in silence for a few moments, thinking it over in each of their minds.

"Raven, you'll have to get the blood." Swift said suddenly and the group seemed to snap back in to focus. "You are the only one to have reason to go near her, other than me, and Dumbledore is already watching me for any signs for defection."

"I can do that, a small Herbology accident and I can collect some." Luna agreed, "You don't need too much, do you?"

"No, literally a drop will suffice. The Runes will do the rest." Fred assured.

"How long until you can get this up and running?"

"As soon as we have the blood, it can be running within the hour. Building the illusion, with her blood especially, is simple. We are only creating the illusion of sex, we'll have to work with Harry on the other things." George said and they nodded.

"Ok, we have a plan. Have one at the ready, once it's in place we just have to wait on how Snake is going to play, and then plan how it's going to be activated." Paws decided, "We just need to be on our guard. We'll meet back when Snake comes back, we go from there." The group nodded and started to make their way out of the rooms, leaving Luna, Ron and Hermione.

"We can but hope." Luna said with a sigh.

"This is going to be pushing it even for us." Paws muttered, "And with Snake how he is."

"We have to hope." Swift cut in, "We have just over a week to get through before we can get a break."

"But if Dumbledore is not out then it isn't going to be a break." Luna pointed out, "Snake will be trapped, and you know Dumbledore will be all over him. You'll either be trapped here or with your family, Badger will be with his psychotic grandmother and the only break Paws will get is if she goes to her parents – and there is nothing she can do in the muggle world while isolated."

"Plus, Venom and Bleach are only two people. They will not be able to do the work of all of us, and you know Molly will expect the twins' home for Christmas." Paws added.

"So we need Dumbledore out, we have a week left." Swift muttered, "Is there anything we can do to get the old man's attention out of the castle, just for now, so Snake doesn't have to
"

"How about we utilise the Death Easters." Luna suggested, "When Snake gets back, we'll get him to speak to the Dark Lord and set up some outside distractions."

"That could work, but they would need to be something that Dumbledore is interested in." Paws said.

"That in itself could be difficult, he's going to be focussing on Harry." Swift pointed out.

"Then we'll give him something that links in." Luna said.

"He'll never go for it." Paws vetoed straight away.

"He might," Luna tried and Paws shook her head.

"No way," Paws denied.

"What are you going on about?" Swift demanded.

"She's suggesting we dangle a Horcrux out for Dumbledore." Paws said and Swift blinked, "The Dark Lord will never go for it."

"What if it wasn't an actual Horcrux?" Swift suggested, "What if Dumbledore only thought it was?"

"Is that even possible?"

"It might be, and, if we get him out, it might focus his attention elsewhere over the Yule holidays." Swift said.

"Go on?"

"We'll run it past Snake when he gets back, but if we leak trails of a location, Dumbledore is bound to look in to it, and he's going to be focused on that. We'll plant a fake Horcrux, we'll layer it to fake the aura, and use it at a distraction." Swift said thoughtfully.

"It would need to be planned with His Darkness' approval." Paws mused, "But it's a sound idea."

"Right, we have two concrete plans to be setting up, all we need now is Snake." Luna said, "I'm going out to listen, anything I pick up in the next few days could be crucial."

"I'm going to be setting out the plans, we'll need plans, we'll need back up and we'll need and escape." Swift said, "I'll get right on it."

"I'll begin with the needed spells for the fake Horcrux, if they are already ready then we'll be good to go." Paws decided.

"You know," Swift began, getting to his feet, "I really do hate Dumbledore."

"Don't we all?"

Notes:

Next chapter all done! Hope you like...

Chapter 38

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 38:

"You have to be the most possessive, argumentative and relentless man I have ever met." Harry informed Tom as they reached his rooms. The arm around his waist was warm and secure, and Harry had become acutely aware of how much he actually liked it being there. He was so confused. He had tried to go through everything in his head, but it wasn't making any sense. He hadn't exactly been celibate, what made Tom so different? Harry bit back a groan, it wasn't worth the headache.

"Yes, I am aware," Tom agreed unconcerned, Harry shook his head with a sigh. It wasn't as if Tom had ever hid his possessive behaviour, Harry just never understood it.

"So how is this going to work?" Harry asked, figuring he would evaluate the situation when he a moment to think, and Tom shot him a blank look.

"It really is perfectly simple, you are going to stay here every night until Yule where I can see you and have you to myself." He stated and Harry blinked.

"Is that right? And you don't think that that is ever so slightly OTT?" Harry questioned him and Tom gave him another blank look.

"No,"

"Of course not," Harry shook his head and gave up, there was no way the man was going to let this one go and Harry could still feel the waves of possessiveness streaming from him. He cursed his mind for not rejecting and hating the idea immediately, he should have told Tom to take a long walk but his instant reaction, much to his confusion and annoyance, was to smile to himself, a notion he crushed. Though, he was considering calling whatever they were doing off, it was the farthest thought from his mind, it could last until Yule, then he could have a clean break. He could collect his mind and order things where he wasn't so distracted by the man's presence, it was the best that he could hope for. Besides, there was no problem in indulging himself, he worked hard enough.

"What if I don't want to stay here?" Harry questioned with a raised eyebrow, he was highly amused when Tom's left eye twitched and suddenly the man was in front of him and gripping his hips hard.

"I think I could change your mind." Tom said lowly. He began to kiss down Harry's neck and ran his tongue over the claiming bite which made Harry shudder in pleasure. That damn mark, it still felt so good, despite the fact that Harry knew, with a clear and foggy mind, that it really should not be there.

"Really?" Harry cursed his body's reaction and the fact that his voice was now husky.

"Yes," He licked the mark again and Harry hissed and tugged harshly at Tom's hair.

"That shouldn't be there, and you know it," He said seriously, and glowered at the smug smirk that curled on to Tom's face.

"But yet you allowed it, enjoyed it even," He pointed out, his voice practically seeping in smugness.

"I claim temporary insanity," Harry stated turning around and crossing his arms with a huff, it was the best excuse he had right now. He missed it when Tom rolled his eyes amused and pulled him back against his chest, his arms going around his waist easily.

"Is that so?"

"Yes, I don't know what I was thinking."

"So why isn't it glamoured and hidden away?" Tom inquired lightly and Harry tensed, he cursed Tom in his head repeatedly because he didn't have an answer for that. Well he did, but it wasn't an acceptable one so he liked to believe that he didn't have an answer for it.

"It uh needs to heal?" He answered, but it come out as more of a question, and then he wanted to slap himself, that was possibly the worse excuse he had ever came out with and Tom knew it too.

"Needs to heal?" Tom repeated, barely concealing his laughter.

"I fucking hate you." Harry growled and twisted out of Tom's arms to stalk in to the bedroom which made Tom laugh openly, Harry slammed the door grumbling. Tom walked towards the door but it was locked tightly, Harry's magic thrumming around it somewhat violently and Tom chuckled to himself. Harry may say that he was angry but his feelings said different, the teen was extremely confused and was feeling a mix of emotions which was almost dizzying. Not that Tom was any different, he was trying to organise his thoughts when it came to the teen and he was having absolutely no luck whatsoever.

The only thing he was certain of was he was possessive of the teen and when he had heard what Dumbledore had intended it was like a siren had exploded in his mind screaming MINE! There was just something about Harry Potter that made him different. He knew it himself, that he was different and it was highly content to blame it on the Harry. But all of this was completely beside the point, right now he had to get the overgrown child out of the bedroom so they could attend a meeting that they were supposed to go to the night previous. He knocked on the door, belatedly realising he had been locked out of his own bedroom and shook his head.

"Harry, you can't lock yourself in there." Tom told him through the door and he was ignored, "Honestly, you are acting like a child."

"You are being horrible to me." Harry yelled back petulantly, and Tom rolled his eyes.

"I am the Dark Lord, Harry. Did you expect rainbows?"

"No, but would it actually kill you to not be mean to me?" Harry sighed.

"You know, I think it might." Tom said sincerely and Harry snorted.

"You'd probably melt." He grumbled.

"You would have to throw water on me first." Was Tom's witty come back and Harry paused in shock hilarity for a few moments before he burst out laughing. Tom smiled when he heard Harry laughing, knowing he had broken the ice, and knocked lightly again. This time he felt Harry's magic drop and the teen opened the door just slightly and peaked around to look at the Dark Lord.

"You are such an idiot." Harry informed him, he was smiling despite himself. Tom rolled his eyes.

"So you inform me regularly," Tom said, "I do not think my ego has ever taken such a hit until you came along." Harry grinned at that, opening the door more so he could lean against the frame. Tom felt his eyes trail over the teen unconsciously, even dressed down Harry looked good and he felt his desire spike.

"So are you going to be nice to me?" Harry inquired, pouting slightly and Tom chuckled. He pulled the teen towards him and Harry didn't put up too much protest.

"I suppose I could make an attempt at this nice concept." Tom mused, pressing a gentle kiss to Harry's neck.

"This I would very much like to see."

"I could say that I think you are brilliant for the article you pulled off against Dumbledore yesterday." Tom murmured against his neck and Harry smiled slightly.

"Go on,"

"Or I could say that you are incredibly smart for the work you have been doing and plan to do to reshape our world." Tom continued.

"Is that right?"

"Indeed. But the best thing, I think the most important thing currently, is that you look so very beautiful right now that I find it hard to focus."

Harry would deny it until the very end but he blushed like a damn school girl and his smile was almost painfully bright.

"You and your damn charm." He grumbled and Tom chuckled, he couldn't help feel a deep sense of accomplishment at the blush lighting up Harry's pale skin and the smile he got made an odd but nice feeling rise up in him.

"Do you think you could find it in yourself to get dressed so we can attend our meeting?" Tom asked, and Harry tilted his head thoughtfully.

"Hmm, I suppose that shouldn't be too much of a stretch." Harry decided. "Do you still have some of my clothes here?"

"Of course. You know where."

Harry smiled and went back in to the bedroom, he grabbed his deep crimson jeans and a black top and quickly threw them on. Harry slipped on his boots and went back to Tom, he ran his hand through his hair and rolled his shoulders.

"Winky!" He called and his elf popped in.

"Yes Master Harry?"

"I need you to collect the folder I have on Dumbledore and the one I have on Fudge and Umbridge." Harry told her, "Make sure you have the photos too, they are needed."

"Right away, sir." She popped away and Harry turned to face Tom's enquiring look.

"Photos?"

"Yes, as evidence for the use of a blood quill." He said, "It's ok just taking a photo of mine, but, as popular as I am with the public right now, we needed others and when the people get wind that she, and by proxy Fudge, were carving in to eleven and twelve year old kids, let's just say they are not going to be happy."

"How are you going to prove the repetition?" Tom asked and Harry smirked.

"It does pay off to have detention multiple times." He said, "I know where all the records are kept, which means I have access to said records. I have proof that she repeatedly exposed multiple people to the quills. Though, my records are the highest, hence the lovely lettering on my hand." Harry held up his hand to illustrate his point, the white scars shone against his skin in the light.

"Her death was most pleasant." Tom said, his eyes narrowed at the scars. Winky popped back in with a two folders filled with Merlin knew what, Harry gave a somewhat vicious smirk and thanked her profusely.

"Ready?"

"I was waiting for you." Tom pointed out and Harry rolled his eyes.

"Yeah yeah, blame me." He joked, taking the man's arm and vanishing in to the shadows. They appeared in the Malfoy Manor entrance hall and Harry followed the Dark Lord through the halls down to the informal sitting area, where the Lord and the Lady of the manor were sat enjoying tea until they spotted the Dark Lord.

"My Lord." Lucius exclaimed, leaping to his feet in shock. Harry couldn't help but snicker in to his hand as he moved forward to greet Narcissa, Lucius threw him a dark look therefore missing Tom's amused glance.

"How are you, Harry? No problems since your accident?" Narcissa inquired, offering him a seat and Harry smiled. Tom took the seat next to Harry as Lucius sat next to his wife and called an elf for drinks.

"No, I am fine just like I said I would be." He assured her, and held up his hands in defence when she shot him a look. "I know, I will be subjected to the full medical when the holidays are in full swing. If I get Dumbledore out of the way, that is."

"Is it imperative that he leaves the castle before the holidays?" She asked and Harry nodded.

"Most definitely." Harry said, "With his latest stunt, I physically cannot afford to have him there for the holidays. I'll be dead before they end."

"What in Merlin's name has happened?" Lucius questioned and Harry grimaced.

"Well my little article had a much more profound effect than anticipated." Harry said, "I've currently, or so Dumbledore believes, got a two or three layered compulsion web weaved around me. If I don't follow its instruction, which I have no intention of doing, he is going to know that I am not under his control and he will come after me."

"A compulsion web?" Lucius repeated incredulously, "What exactly does he want you to do so badly?" Harry offered him a cold, humourless smile.

"Dumbledore wants me to sleep and impregnate one Ginny Weasley to secure my fortune in to his grasp. That way, if he falls, he can use me as a fall guy and he still gets to keep everything." Harry explained and Narcissa gasped.

"But that's practically rape." She whispered in disgust.

"Oh I know, and right now I do not have any options." Harry ran a hand through his hair and sighed, "We have just over a week until the holidays, but that is still a week in which Dumbledore is going to expect his web to start working. Ginny is going to be all over me come Monday, and, unless my friends have come up with some super plans, I am going to be expected to reciprocate." Tom hissed at that and Harry shot him a look, they had a silent battle until Harry raised an eyebrow and Tom rolled his eyes. The Malfoys watched the exchange with keen eyes and Narcissa hid a smile when the pair turned back to them.

"What are you going to do?" Lucius questioned, "If you are expected to follow this web, and if you don't Dumbledore will come after you, then you need to have something planned."

"That is where you come in, I believe, Lucius." Tom said. "Dumbledore is the reason this meeting did not happen yesterday as scheduled."

"I see," Lucius murmured, "And how exactly can I help in this respect?"

"Well, it is of my belief that, after the rather vicious article yesterday, the Board of Governors are just going to need one more little push to remove Dumbledore from office." Harry said, "Am I correct?"

"Yes, there is to be an emergency meeting on Monday to discuss the recent article, but I have spoken with many of my fellow Board Members and it is the general consensus that one more bad mark against Dumbledore will push them to a unanimous vote." Lucius agreed and Harry gave a full toothed smile.

"What of the Ministry, how is Fudge coping under all the negative light Dumbledore has been receiving? It is common knowledge that Fudge relied heavily on Dumbledore for the first half of his career as minister." Harry inquired lightly and Lucius gave him an odd look before he spoke.

"Fudge has been trying to tread lightly given his recent probation, but with Umbridge's cover-ups coming to light, Dumbledore's recent expose and his general behaviour, it is not at all working in his favour. It would be my estimate that he will be voted out within the next election."

"So, if there were to be something big, something that is guaranteed to rattle everyone's cages, it might even push things to a vote of no confidence?" Harry suggested.

"It would have to be something astronomical." Lucius said and Harry's smile stretched.

"I love being me sometimes." He sighed happily, and then he nudged Tom, "Best thing that ever happened, me coming to your side. Honestly, the things I do."

"And you lecture me about my ego." Tom muttered and Harry laughed.

"Yes, but I am a nicer person than you are." He pointed out and Tom conceded he did have a point but he wasn't about to tell him that.

"Get on with your meeting, I am sure Lucius has much more important things to be doing opposed to waiting on you." Tom said instead.

"Yes yes, stop your whining." Harry waved him off, he held up his folder, missing Tom's glower, and smirked at Lucius. "I think this will be just the thing that will take Dumbledore out of the school and a Vote of No Confidence in the next Wizengamot session in January."

"What could you possibly have to cause such an effect?" Lucius demanded.

"How does 'Former Undersecretary Repeatedly exposes students to Blood Quill: Where were Fudge and Dumbledore?' sound as a headline?" Harry asked sweetly.

"She did WHAT?" Narcissa exploded angrily, "She made students use a blood quill?"

"Oh yes, it was her favourite method of detention. Even the little firsties were subjected to her lovely methods."

"That foul loathsome woman." Narcissa hissed.

"Did you not have a record number of detentions with Umbridge last year?" Lucius asked slowly, "I remember Draco writing home about it." Narcissa's eyes widened and they searched his hands. Harry held up his left hand to show the 'I must not tell lies' scar that stood as a constant reminder of why the ministry had to go and the Lady Malfoy gasped.

"Oh you poor thing." She whispered and Harry shrugged.

"I enjoyed killing her." He said and Narcissa nodded surely.

"I do not doubt it, she deserved nothing but the very worst."

"Bella would have been proud." Tom told her and Narcissa gave a smile reminding everyone that she was born a Black.

"Wonderful."

"The reason I have come here, Lucius, is I would like your opinion on deciding what should go to the papers and what should be passed to the right people." Harry said, he pulled out the details on Dumbledore's ignorance to the student population throughout fifth year, the records of the detentions, photos of the damage caused by the quill – Paws had taken them when he had been too out of it to care – and finally the lesson plans that Umbridge was dishing out which caused the rebellion Defence Group.

"Where do you get all of this information?" Lucius questioned, looking it over slightly amazed, "All of this is undisputable."

"We're just really good at what we do." Harry said, "Now, with this, I am not too bothered if my name does come up. It won't be suspicious because it wouldn't be the first time Rita has printed something without my knowing."

"You could use the spin of the Boy-Who-Lived viciously tortured while trying to tell the world the truth?" Lucius suggested, "Not only would that gain more favour for you, allowing you to manipulate the public more, but it would make both Fudge and Dumbledore look terrible."

"Yes, Fudge would be hated because he failed to believe you and Dumbledore would look terrible because he never helped you even though he knew the truth." Tom mused, "It is a very good angle." Harry grimaced and nodded.

"It is the best angle," Harry agreed, "But I do so hate that title."

"Stop your whining." Tom told him promptly and Harry gave him a dark look.

"I really hate you sometimes."

"I know."

"If it's the best spin I'll run with it. Paws managed to get some of my hand while it was fresh, she was planning on bringing it up with the Order back when we were running with potions and compulsions. The idea was that even if they didn't listen directly to her then S-Sirius would kick up enough fuss to force them to listen." No one mentioned the stutter on his Godfather's name, something he was thankful for. It was still hard for him to speak of the man he had lost prematurely, but he knew that he was going to make Dumbledore pay for that with his own life even if it killed him.

"Those should be used, and the images of the younger students definitely, but we shall keep their names and faces out of the paper for legal reasons." Lucius decided. "All of these records and information needs to be copied, I'll take one set to the Board as there will be a meeting the day the paper is released; I can guarantee. A second set will be needed for Ms Skeeter to reference, and adapt as she sees fit for the paper; she might have a few pages dedicated to lesson plans and detention records. A third set for ministry records, because if this is going to be the main and final source to get Fudge out of office they will want to archive it. And the originals for yourself."

"Very well," Harry snapped his fingers and the photos and records started to multiply, he waved his hand and they sorted themselves in to organised piles for him to use. He shrunk and tucked the original away along with two of the copies and he slid one over to Lucius to look through and hand to the Board. "Which bits might be beneficial to leave out?"

"Names of the students shouldn't be posted in the paper except yours, I'll hand them to the Board. You also might want to leave out the rebellion defence group and twist the detentions to show it was the students disrupting the class because they wanted to learn and the ministry was not allowing them to do so. Play on the fifth and seventh years especially." Lucius said after a moment's thought, Harry had noted all of that down and tucked it in to the folder he would be sending to Skeeter.

"This should be simple enough, I'll have this sent off to Rita tonight with Hedwig. She'll get it to her by the morning." Harry said, "I'll inform Rita that this needs to be written and posted in the quickest possible time, if she can get it written and perfected by Tuesday or Wednesday then it might just save my life."

"Oh Harry, what are you going to do?" Narcissa murmured fretfully, "That awful man has you trapped."

"I honestly do not know, Cissa." Harry said honestly, "I've been in some pretty tight situations before, but this is something I cannot see ending positively."

"What of your friends?" She asked and Harry frowned.

"I know they were meeting to talk about something but I do not know what they have come up with. The problem is, even with a plan of avoidance, the compulsion, if it was in effect, would push me to sleep with her and I physically cannot make myself do that." Harry said, his voice taking on a disgusted, if slightly desperate note. "Oh dear Merlin, I really haven't got an out." It was like it had just hit him the situation he was in, he looked at his hands and then back up at Narcissa, stunned. "I'm going to die." He blinked a few times and laughed. "I'm actually going to die. I haven't even wrote my will."

"You are not going to die." Tom stated, "And you need to calm down."

"I don't have an out this time, Tom." Harry said, turning to face him, "I can't sleep with her, it's not just that I won't I can't. And he'll know about it in an instant, and he'll come for me."

"You are not even worried about yourself." Tom said in exasperation, reading his feelings easily.

"Well if he comes to me, I'll die. That's not the problem. If he comes for me and realises I'm not under his control, he'll realise that my friends are not under control and he'll go after them." Harry said as if it was obvious, "Of course, I don't particularly want to die, but it will be a damn sight harder for him to kill me then it will be them."

"If he comes for you then get yourself and yours out." Tom said, "Hide,"

"He knows about my properties, he has eyes on them all except a few that no one knows about." Harry said, "It would have to be behind impenetrable wards, ones that cannot be broken
" He trailed off and grinned. "The sanctuary."

"Unless he has any other werewolves working for him then you will be safe there." Narcissa agreed.

"Safe yes, but I'll also be grounded." Harry said with a frown, "I have to speak with the others, at the moment we have so many things in the process of working that it's not even a conceivable thought to hide without identifying everything we are doing."

"Meet with your friends, make a plan and then have a backup for the backup plan." Tom said, "I have already told you once that you are not to die."

"Gee thanks for the kind words." Harry muttered sarcastically.

"You are most welcome."

Harry rolled his eyes.

"I have to meet with my friends, you have things to do also, no doubt." Harry said and Tom nodded.

"Yes, I have to call my inner circle and select a number of them to work with Remus while he searches out Dumbledore's people attacking the wolves. I also have to meet with Antonin to discuss the information he has gathered surrounding the Dark creatures he has found." Tom told him.

"Ok, so I'll go see my friends, you go and do what you need to do. I'm guessing you'll be meeting Remus in the Gryffindor rooms?"

"Yes, it is the easiest access point, though, he will need to meet the circle members elsewhere." Tom said.

"Simple enough, just drag him here to meet them in the hall." Harry pointed out.

"If he complains I am telling him that it was your idea." Tom informed him and Harry grinned.

"You do that,"

"Is there anything else you wish to discuss with Lucius?" Tom questioned.

"No, he has a copy. We can't move until Rita has done her thing." Harry said, "So I thank you for your time, Lucius."

"Plotting the downfall of Dumbledore is always a pleasure." Lucius replied and Harry laughed.

"Cissa, I have a few more ideas to run past you for your Yule menu. If I am not dead come the holidays I shall discuss them in more detail." Harry offered.

"That sounds delightful, Harry." She responded with a smile. Harry got to his feet and turned to Tom.

"I'll see you later," He said, "What time do you think you'll be back from Dolohov's? I think I'll cook tonight, keep me focused on something."

"I shouldn't be later than dinner." Tom answered after a moment, "What do you plan on making?"

"Hm, well, you haven't eaten yet, and I highly doubt you will stop to eat so steak or chicken or both?" Harry mused, "Oh, I could do my version of a mixed grill."

"It sounds delightful." Tom told him honestly, and Harry flashed him a smile before he vanished in to the shadows going directly to his rooms. He went straight to his window and gave a sharp whistle, Luna came down the stairs and smiled at him just as Hedwig flew in.

"My beautiful girl." Harry cooed, "I know I don't give you enough attention, I apologise for that." She hooted at him and butted at his hand, Harry ran his hand over her soft feathers and whispered compliments to her much to the owls delight. She hooted at him again, cocking her head to the side and looking at him questioningly. "You know me so well." He told her, he held up the shrunken folder with a sheepish grin, "I need you to get this to Rita as soon as possible, it's a matter of life or death, Hed," She puffed up importantly and Harry grinned, he tried it to her leg and she was gone like a ghost. Harry shut the window and dropped down on to his chair, he offered Luna a smile but she didn't buy it for a second.

"What is it?" She questioned and Harry gave a short burst of laughter.

"I'd think that obvious."

"Let me find the others. We've come up with some plans, ones that might just work for this upcoming week." She told him and Harry looked at her in amazement.

"You have?"

"They won't work on a permanent basis, but they should stretch long enough to get Dumbledore out of the castle." Luna assured, "You call Swift and Paws, and they will bring Badger and Venom."

"Ok," Guys?

Hey Harry.

Luna's calling a meeting, he told them, bring Badger and Venom.

Got it,

"They'll be here now," Harry told her. "Draco and the twins?"

"Venom will pass on a message to Draco, the twins are with him." She said and Harry nodded. He took a seat in his chair and threw the situation over in his mind, he thought it amazing, and not in a good way, how his life had come to this. Seriously, he must have been a complete and utter prick in his past life. His attention snapped up when his friends walked in and Harry flashed an unamused smile at their grim expressions.

"Cheer up, it's only Dumbledore finding a way to kill me." He said brightly and he knew he deserved the stinging hexes they threw at him.

"Not the time, Snake." Paws told him, "Really not the time."

"I laugh or lose it, pick one."

"Fair enough." She allowed.

"Ok, first thing, how did your meeting go?" Swift asked, "We have little time to mess around today guys."

"I've worked everything out with Lucius and I've sent it off. If she can work her magic, then I've asked for the draft Tuesday/Wednesday for it to be released Wednesday/Thursday." Harry said and the group seemed to breathe in relief.

"We can do this." Swift said.

"Do what?" Harry asked.

"We have a few plans that, given the time limit you've given Rita, might just keep you alive and free from sleeping with the tramp." Paws said and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Go on,"

"The first is on us." Fred told him, "Remember our cubes?"

"Ain't gunna forget those in a hurry." Harry muttered and they grinned.

"Well, we had a small accident while developing them and, as we do, we took that accident and made this." George produced a flat, circular piece of silver, it was thin and it was no bigger than a sickle, but everyone could see the multiple runes carved on to each side.

"What it is?" Harry questioned and they shared a father frightening grin.

"This is our new illusion device. It creates a vision like illusion, able to simulate touch, sight, smell, hearing and taste by delving in to the subconscious and mimicking the minds already programmed ideas of the senses." Fred explained and Harry looked at them in disbelief.

"Are you kidding me?"

"No, we've tested them and they are fully working." George confirmed, "There's only one slight problem."

"Yes?"

"It has to be put on direct skin to the person who is going to be seeing the illusion, and it has to be activated." Fred told him, "That and it needs Ginny's blood."

"How are we going to get her blood?" Harry exclaimed, "The other things can be managed."

"That's simple," Luna said, "I'll be getting it."

"How?"

"I'm in her year, there will just have to be an accident in Herbology or Creatures." Luna shrugged lightly and Harry smiled.

"Be careful,"

"Of course," Luna agreed and Harry looked back to the twins.

"Ok, I can get it on her, but how do you activate it?"

"Just a pulse of magic, and all of the Runes have to light up." George answered and Harry nodded.

"Right, that's the actual sex sorted out. Now it's just enduring her until Dumbledore is gone."

"Yes, that is what we wanted to talk to you about." Badger agreed, "Can you do it?"

"I honestly don't know, but at the same time, I don't know if it's even possible contemplating me not." Harry said with a sigh, "Tomorrow is free because I never leave this room on a Sunday, or as far as she and Dumbledore know, and they won't expect me to. I should be able to get through Monday and Tuesday, and I have to slip the device on."

"With the device, it's important that it goes on when in the 'setting' and then you vanish. You have thirty minutes before you have to return to remove the device, or it will either replay or fade, leaving her alone." Fred said firmly.

"I'll set an alarm." Harry promised. "So that's a solution to problem A, but it still doesn't help if Dumbledore's breathing down my neck. So much as a twitch out of pace and he will Snap. You didn't see him, he's losing it quickly, and it won't take much at all."

"Well, we have an idea, but it's a long shot – even for us." Paws began and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Oh dear, it must be bad." He joked and she managed a dark grin.

"What if we draw Dumbledore's attention away with something else that involves you?" Luna asked and Harry took around two seconds to understand exactly what they were suggesting before he burst out laughing.

"You are having me on, right?" He gasped, before becoming serious in an instant, "You want me to go and ask Mr Paranoid if it's ok if we dangle one of his trinkets out for Dumbledore to sniff out? Are you freakin' insane?"

"They have to be to even contemplate that." Bleach decided.

"That's not a long shot, that's an impossibility." Venom added and Harry nodded in agreement to both assessments.

"We know it's a stretch." Luna agreed, "But Swift had a second idea to go with it."

"Let's hear it," Harry said and Swift smirked.

"What if said trinket wasn't real?" He said and Harry blinked.

"Come again?"

"We'll leave a trail, something Dumbledore would think the Dark Lord would do, and we'll put a fake one there instead." Swift told him, "Paws is already working on a spell weave to mimic the feeling of a horcrux just in case. It's flawless, it draws Dumbledore away and everything is kept safe"

"Yeah, that sounds good, but there's getting Tom to go for it." Harry pointed out, "He's wound up enough as it is, this is almost guaranteed to be a no."

"Then you'll just have to get him to change his mind." Paws said.

"Yeah, it's not like you haven't had much practice at that." Badger said dryly.

"Fine! I'll try, but I can't promise anything." Harry relented, mentally asking the entities if there was something he was currently doing to annoy them.

"That's what we have." Paws sighed, "It's all we have so make sure you get him to say yes, because we're going to need a location from him too."

"Ok, ok," Harry ran a hand through his hand, "It certainly gets interesting around here, doesn't it?"

 


 

Tom shook his head at Harry's departure and turned back to the Malfoys.

"You'll have to excuse his general lack of manners today, he's running on instinct, I believe." Tom told them, "Dumbledore forced his wand."

"It is understandable, My Lord." Narcissa said, "What Dumbledore has done it truly unforgivable."

"I do not know if it possible, but I do hope that his friends have thought of something." Tom said with a sigh, "This is one of the most stressful things I have done in years and I haven't even been in the castle four months."

"I don't think it's the situation, My Lord, more of the company." Lucius put in lightly and Tom made a noise of agreement.

"Yes, I am inclined to agree." Tom muttered, "A meeting shall be called in the near future. I want to know exactly what happens at the Board meeting, and watch Fudge for any signs."

"It will be done, My Lord." Lucius said and Tom nodded before apparating away. He went directly to Dolohov lodge and made his way through the halls up to the study, he knew the place well, he had visited the Lodge many times in his youth. He knew Antonin was here by the feeling of the wards, so he wasn't surprised when the man greeted him in the doorway of his study with a drink.

"Good afternoon, My Lord."

"Antonin," He returned the greeting with a nod, following the Dolohov Lord back in to the study and taking a seat.

"How goes the school, My Lord?"

"Busy and currently very precarious." Tom answered, "With the latest article, Dumbledore has become desperate and his attentions are now solely focused on Harry."

"What is Dumbledore's plans for the Potter-Black teen?" Dolohov asked and Tom glared at the glass in his hand.

"He's weaved a compulsion web around him to sleep with the Weasley girl in the hopes of conception." Tom told him darkly, "Thankfully, Harry had already protected himself against such spells, however, Dumbledore believes the web has taken."

"I see the complication." Dolohov murmured, "What does he intend to do?"

"He is regrouping with his friends to see if they can plan something. He is too busy worrying about what will happen if Dumbledore kills him and then gets to his friends." Tom said with a self-suffering sigh.

"What about his own life?" Dolohov asked incredulously and Tom rolled his eyes fondly.

"He fails to worry about such a trivial thing." Tom said, and when Antonin looked confused Tom shook his head. "Do not even attempt to work out his mind, Antonin, you will just give yourself a headache and you won't succeed."

"Does he not wish to save himself?"

"Oh he would prefer if he didn't die, but it wasn't the first concern that came to mind." Tom said, "I've given up trying to reason with him."

"I see,"

"He's a menace." Tom stated, but there was a small smile on his face that Antonin picked up on. He wasn't about to go on Lucius' word, the blond was rather dramatic when it came to things but he could understand exactly what the blond meant. Even just the small mention of the Potter-Black teen had an obvious effect on his Lord, it was an interesting development and Antonin was extremely surprised but he was also excited to see what was going to happen with this. Would this go anywhere?

"Enough of the brat, what of the Dark Creatures?" Tom questioned, focusing his thoughts on the reason for him being there.

"I have been following clusters of dark residue to find them and there are a few clusters hidden around the country." Antonin told him, and Tom took a moment to mentally commend the Dolohov on the ability. Picking up the residue was very difficult and he himself struggled with it, so for Antonin to be able to follow it he was very able.

"Are there many?" Tom asked, knowing that there were very few creatures native the UK.

"I have found Dark Elves and Dark Veela, they were the biggest groups that I have found, but they also blend in more than others." Antonin began, "There is a small section of Siren residing at Lizard Point in Cornwall while just north of that point at Kynance Cove there is a clan of Water Nymph."

"Interesting," Tom murmured thoughtfully, "I assume that they are a significantly smaller collection."

"Yes, there is less than 35 combined." Antonin confirmed, "They prefer warmer waters usually, but some found home here until they were driven out by the hunters."

"Such a shame,"

"It is," Dolohov agreed, "I did find traces of Harpies, but they are no longer in this country. It seems they were merely passing through and heading towards Russia where many nest."

"I would have been surprised if they were pitching here, I have not heard of a Harpy colony native to the United Kingdom since the Dark Lord Malakai." Tom remembered. "Many creatures could not tolerate the overbearing light that seeped this country and so they fled. Lamia, Fae and Sprites vanished from our homelands to safer, more diverse areas. Only few Water Nymphs remain, but nothing of Fire or Forest Nymphs that used to populate the area."

"It pains me to see our lands reduced to this." Antonin sighed, "We have a few Vampire clans here, most answering to a higher power and they are drawing back further in to the shadows. The werewolves have vanished to the majority of the country, which is something to be thankful for because I ran in to some rather insistent members of Dumbledore's collection. They are searching but having no success, and I was forced to remove three watching a branch from a Dark Elf clan."

"Oh?"

"Yes, their plans for the children made it worth the risk." Dolohov told him darkly and Tom's eyes narrowed.

"Very well." Tom said in the same tone, "Continue you're observations, what little group of creatures we do have in this country I would like to remain alive and untroubled."

"I will see to it."

"Good. Is there anything to be of concern?"

"There have been whispers of a movement. Plans to remove smaller parties of the dark in the hopes that eventually we will be overwhelmed." Antonin replied, "I am gathering more information, but I do have to be careful."

"Gather what you can, as long as we keep updated with everything they are doing then we have a chance at blocking them." Tom said thoughtfully.

"Very well,"

"I shall be sending some members of the inner circle to discover the connections Dumbledore has established outside this country, starting with those hunting werewolves." Tom said, "If you wish to compare sources while you track it would be best if you contact Harry's uncle, as he will be leading the hunt."

"His uncle?" Antonin repeated slowly.

"Ah, not by blood you understand. An extremely close family friend, I am sure you remember, he was a complete menace when opposing us, Remus Lupin."

"The werewolf?" Dolohov confirmed and Tom nodded.

"Yes, I have found him to have a rather brilliant mind," He said pleased.

"It matches his ability with a wand then," Dolohov muttered, rubbing his left forearm, where a thin scar remained from one of his scurvies with said man.

"Indeed. He is extremely close to Harry, and very protective of him, which is highly amusing." Tom said, with a smirk, "Especially given Harry's complete lack of anything even close to self-preservation. Honestly, it was like it was bled out of him."

"I did hear of his recent accident." Dolohov said, "Multiple broken bones, pretty chopped up and unconscious?"

"That would be putting it lightly," Tom grumbled, "He actually managed to fracture his spine, rupture his spleen and tear his intestines, along with the aforementioned above." Antonin blinked in disbelief.

"How in Merlin's name did he cover that up? Better yet, how did he even get in to a situation?"

"He was up and tending to the cubs at the sanctuary the next day." Tom said with a roll of his eyes, "Merlin knows he doesn't listen to reason, or even sense."

"I do not know what to say in response to that." Dolohov admitted.

"Do not trouble yourself, Antonin, I have that very same predicament daily when dealing with Harry. I am under the belief that he has made it his life ambition to raise questions and surprise me." Tom shook his head in fond exasperation.

"I am sure you do not mind that much, My Lord." Antonin replied, amusement lining his tone and Tom smirked.

"I cannot say that I do, no." He relented, "I makes for an exciting time, in the very least."

"That seems like an understatement."

"He's different," Tom allowed, "Now, I shall inform Remus of your tracking in case you cross paths. It wouldn't do for you to appear hostile."

"Understandable, I wish not to be mauled." Dolohov agreed.

"I shall call a meeting soon, Dumbledore is on his last limbs." Tom said as he rose, he nodded to the Dolohov Lord and apparated away. Dolohov watched him leave with a hidden smirk, different indeed. It seemed his Lord was rather taken with the Potter-Black teen, and it was as obvious as Lucius said it was. He could honestly say he was surprised, if there was anything there, he would have never suspected it to be so apparent, and he honestly couldn't wait to see them interact together – outside of a formal setting that was. Things were changing.

 


 

Tom apparated directly in to the Gryffindor rooms and walked straight toward the library, knowing that Remus would only be in one place and he wasn't disappointed. The werewolf was hunched over a pile of books, furiously scribbling on a sheet of parchment.

"Mbajë në një të dytë," Remus said absently, and Tom blinked at the use of Albanian.

"A ka ndonjë arsye të veçantë për ndryshimin në gjuhën?" He asked and Remus finished his sentence before looking up and motioning to his work.

"The reason for the change in language is because I was finishing the translations to Flamel's Albanian travels. It seems he discovered a lot of Folk Lore while there and took note of it." Remus explained.

"I see. I can understand the interest, I myself have travelled to Albania and it is a very interesting place." Tom said and Remus nodded.

"I would like to go there." He admitted.

"I would recommend not going alone." Tom said, "The forests there are particularly harrowing unless you have the ability to possess a number of creatures."

"I'll make note."

"I haven't come to socialise, however appealing the thought of relaxing with the books is." Tom said, "I have two things."

"I am going to assume that one of them has something to do with Harry." Remus said with a sigh, and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"What gave it away?"

"You get this look in your eye, it's a mix between resignation, exasperation and amusement." Remus informed him, "I believe it is quite common when Harry is involved."

"Yes, well, he's in a league of his own in that respect."

"What has he done this time?" Remus sighed.

"You will be pleased to hear that it was not anything he did to himself, but rather what was done to him." Tom divulged.

"What did that old fool do to my cub?" Remus demanded and Tom mentally cursed Harry for leaving things like this to him.

"Dumbledore has wrapped him in a compulsion web to sleep with the Weasley girl in the hopes she conceives a child, and then he is to do 'right' by that child." Tom answered and Remus' eyes flashed. He took a deep breath to control his initial instinct, which was to rip out Dumbledore's throat, and centre himself, it was pointless running of and doing something foolish when he didn't know all the facts.

"I see, and how is this issue being resolved?"

"Harry is meeting with his friends as we speak, he shall be coming to me once we are both finished with the day's discussions and we shall, hopefully, have formed a strategy that has a backup strategy and an escape plan – the final of which we do already have in place." Tom explained and Remus nodded slowly.

"I am not surprised that he has resorted to this, the latest article was vicious." Remus conceded, "I just wish is wasn't always Harry."

"He is more concerned about his friends." Tom noted and Remus rolled his eyes.

"Why am I not surprised?" He questioned rhetorically. "Of course he doesn't care about the fact that he is going to die, oh no! That would be the ordinary thing to do! Did you know that this is the person that used to want to be normal? He wanted to be 'just Harry'. Yeah, that went real well for him."

"Harry? Normal? That wouldn't be a wish that would be a miracle, a complete phenomenon." Tom declared, "When did he give that up?"

"As soon as he realised it wasn't going to happen."

"So first year?"

"Yeah, I would guess so." Remus agreed. "Now, enough about Harry, he'll send me grey prematurely. What of the other thing?"

"Narcissa tells me you have begun looking for the contacts Dumbledore has to target the wolves."

"Yes, but its slow progress even with the leads I have." Remus told him, "I can only do so much, and not many wolves want to risk leaving the sanctuary just yet."

"Understandable, Dumbledore has become extreme in his crusade." Tom stated, "I come with a solution."

"Oh?" Remus looked at him in interest, "What is it?"

"I shall swear in some of my more trust worthy inner circle members, Avery, Jugson, Rowle, Rookwood and Mulciber, and they shall be yours to do with as you will. It will give you able bodies to direct as you make your searches." Tom announced and Remus blinked.

"That sounds brilliant, and they would have very little to fear in these wizarding circles, as long as they can hide their affinity." Remus said enthusiastically. "Though there may be a problem with them actually listening to me."

"I am sure that you have your own method of convincing them it's in their best interest to listen." Tom said with a smirk, "Besides, if they value their continued existence, they will do as I tell them."

"I suppose that is always a good motivator." Remus mused, mock thoughtfully.

"We are going to Malfoy Manor to gather the inner circle members," Tom said rising to his feet, "Blame Harry, it was his idea."

"I have no doubt." Remus grumbled, "Fine, fine," he got up and straightened his robes, "I swear I am taking the longest holiday when this is over."

"I believe they are sentiments shared by many." Tom agreed before apparating away, Remus sighed and followed him. They went directly to the meeting room and Remus fought not to roll his eyes at the throne the Dark Lord was sat on, the velocity of the man's ego would forever amuse him. Remus watched interested as the Dark Lord drew the dark mark in the air and hissed at it, he felt the pulse of magic ripple around him and immediately cracks sounded through the room. Five death eaters dropped down to their knees with a murmured word.

"Rise," The Dark Lord commanded and Remus blinked at the change in tone, he had become some accustom of speaking to the man normally that he had forgotten the icy tones that he could produce. "You shall be working abroad following the leads that Mr Lupin has collected, following those Dumbledore has ordered to track and kill the wolves."

"Remus Lupin, the werewolf?" Avery asked and then hastily added, "My Lord."

"The very same." Voldemort confirmed, "He is no longer within Dumbledore's organization, and you will be taking an oath not to reveal his presence to anyone."

"Can he be trusted?" Rookwood questioned and the Dark Lord's magic snapped.

"Do you question my judgement, Rookwood?" He demanded quietly, his voice taking on a hissing quality.

"No-no My Lord, I would never." He exclaimed desperately, his eyes watched the white wand.

"Be thankful I am feeling merciful, Rookwood," Tom told him quietly, "And that Mr Lupin has better things to occupy his time opposed to listening to you scream." The five of them finally realised that there was someone else in the room and they looked at Remus in shock, the werewolf offered them a smile, one that had too many teeth to even closely resemble pleasant; Avery actually flinched when he saw it, much to Tom's amusement.

"You will be following Mr Lupin's instruction, and should you go against them you will not like the consequences." Tom warned them.

"Yes, My Lord."

"Now, for the oath." The Dark Lord made the five of them swear an oath of silence and dismissed them. He conjured up a bronze pendent with the Dark Mark engraved upon it, he twisted the spell weave that he had created to control the mark to allow Remus to be able to call them when he needed them. It would save the journeying back and forth.

"Here," Tom handed Remus the pendent, "This will enable you to call them to you. And it will be imperative you know that Antonin Dolohov is also tracking Dark Creatures, should you cross paths." Remus nodded.

"I get my own pet death eaters," Remus pretended to wipe a tear away, "If Pads could see me now." Tom rolled his eyes and walked towards the door.

"Do see yourself out, Remus. You have new pets to be dealing with." He called before vanishing without so much as a rustle, Remus looked at the spot where the Dark Lord was only moments ago.

"Unbelievable."

Notes:

Thanks for reading!

Chapter 39

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 39:

Tom had just picked up a book when Harry appeared in a swarm of shadows, the teen was feeling a lot of resignation and self-pity when he arrived and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"What is it now?" He asked, fighting back the urge to sigh and Harry shot him a winning smile.

"Hi, to you too." He responded brightly, and Tom rolled his eyes.

"Yes, yes, I can feel your emotions," He reminded him and Harry groaned.

"I forget about that." He complained.

"Apparently," Tom said, "Now, I repeat. What is it?"

"We've come up with a plan," Harry informed him, "But you are not going to like it."

"There are many things I do not like, Harry." Tom pointed out and Harry shot him a look.

"Yes well, you are really not going to like this." Harry sighed, "We need to draw Dumbledore's attention away from the castle and, by extension, me."

"That's going to me near impossible." Tom stated and Harry nodded.

"I know," Harry agreed, his hands coming up to absently fiddle with the locket around his neck. "The only way that Dumbledore would even think about taking his eyes from me is if the distraction is somehow linked to me." Tom looked at him and his eyes were drawn to his neck, where Harry was turning over his locket in his hands and his mind clicked in to place.

"Absolutely not." He denied vehemently, "I will not allow it." Harry chucked to himself without humour.

"Yeah, we thought you would respond like that."

"I will not dangle a part of my soul within reach of the old man." Tom stated firmly and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Do you believe the old man able to get past your defences?" He asked lightly and Tom shot him a dark look.

"Completely beside the point. This is not information, nor is it location of war necessities – this is my soul!" Tom exclaimed, "He's been close enough as it is." Harry ran a hand through his hair and took a deep breath, he could feel how opposed Tom was to the idea, it was practically pulsing within his mind and he doubted that there was anything even he could do to make him change his mind; but he had to try.

"Please Tom, will you just listen for one moment?" He quietly asked but Tom shook his head.

"There is nothing to listen to," Tom informed him, "I will not do it." There was an air of finality around his words and Harry almost choked on the heavy feeling that settled in his stomach, it burned, and Harry realised it hurt that Tom felt so little about his continued existence. That confused him because, logically, Tom was under no obligation to keep him alive, and it was merely the man making sure his own survival was foremost protected – it was completely understandable. But yet it hurt. Harry blinked a few times and pushed everything back and away, leaving him cool and focussed.

"You'd have me die?" He questioned, his voice cold even to his ears, and detached, "Huh, cold even for you, but then again, you are the Dark Lord." He reasoned and Tom's eyes narrowed at the change in behaviour, and the sudden absence of any feeling from Harry; it was as if he was hollow.

"Die? No, I have already told you that you are not to die." Tom reminded him, his voice sharp, his anger leaking in to his tone without his permission. Hadn't he already expressly told Harry that he wasn't going to die, that he wouldn't allow it? He didn't like the sudden detachedness in which Harry was speaking to him, it made something shift within him and it took more effort that he allowed himself to acknowledge to push that away.

"Do you think I would even contemplate this as an option if we had anything else at all?" Harry demanded incredulously, "Besides, if you would just listen for one freakin' second, you would hear that we have a safety measure suggested." Tom narrowed his eyes.

"Go on,"

"You'll strengthen the defences on one of the locations, but leave a trail, one so subtle that it suggests to Dumbledore that it was your belief in your superiority that he would never find them that caused you to make a 'mistake'." Harry explained, and Tom nodded slowly, he could see that as a plausible idea but he still didn't like it.

"And this safety measure?"

"Simple really," Harry began with a smirk, "The horcrux won't be a real one." Tom's expression went blank before his eyebrows shot up.

"Excuse me?"

"Paws is working on a spell weave that should mimic the feeling of the horcrux as we speak, she thought it best that she start in case you gave us the ok." Harry told him, "We'll get a replica and we'll cover it with the weave and hide it for Dumbledore to sniff out."

"You think it possible? To put a fake horcrux for him to find and he'll go for it?" Tom questioned slowly, interested but sceptical. It would be a long shot that Dumbledore would go for it if a horcrux suddenly fell in to his radar, surely he would be suspicious?

"I think it's the only shot we have. It would have to be in a location that wasn't suspicious." Harry said, "He's been researching you your entire life, he thinks he knows you so it would have to be in a place that fit the idea he has of you. One that he would associate
" Harry trailed off and tilted his head to the side, something coming to mind; he stopped fiddling with the locket and held it up. "Where was this originally hidden?" Tom blinked at the sudden switch, but he was getting used to that habit of Harry's.

"It was in a cave I had found, off the coast. I took two of the more bothersome orphans there to make them see things my way." He answered and Harry flashed a dark grin.

"Perfect." He murmured, "This is perfect."

"Explain," Tom ordered and Harry turned abruptly to face him.

"How does this sound? We'll put a locket in the very same cave and set Dumbledore after that one, he'll believe it, he would be foolish not to." Harry said, excitedly, "It would be something you would do, you did do it, Slytherin locket in a place where you were fully able to control your powers. He'll bite that within a second." Tom smirked at that, he was liking the sound of the plan more and more, and he would know that the real thing would be safe because Harry currently had it around his neck and the teen would be within his reach.

"The only problem I can foresee is the trail." Tom said thoughtfully, "I would have to be so subtle that even Dumbledore would consider overlooking it."

"I think I already have that." Harry said, and he laughed. "And it's so simple," his mind was rapidly forming this plan and he grinned, oh this was brilliant. "I swear. My best thoughts come from these situations." Tom rolled his eyes, he could feel the teen again, and his mind was turning over so quickly that he hadn't a hope of keeping up.

"Would you care to share?" Tom drawled and Harry pouted.

"You couldn't let me bask for even a minute." Harry asked and he sniffed when Tom shook his head in exasperation.

"You are impossible."

"Fine fine," Harry huffed, "This locket was found in the House of Black, and Regulus is dead. So how did it get there? Who could have found the cave and escaped with the locket?"

"It should have been impossible for the person to escapes, there was extensive defences to prevent them leaving the cave." Tom said thoughtfully, "Even I took an elf there. The potion I created to hide the locket would severely weaken them." Harry had to laugh at that and Tom shot him a confused look.

"I thought you would say that." Harry said, clarifying Tom's look.

"How?"

"I've worked it out, and if I'm right this just got a whole lot easier." Harry said and Tom blinked.

"Go on?"

"The elf you took with you, it would have happened to be Regulus' elf, would it?" Harry inquired.

"Yes, as a matter of fact, it was." Tom confirmed slowly.

"It all makes sense." Harry breathed, "It is such a shame that so many, especially those who have been in the wizarding world for so long, often forget the power of magical creatures."

"How does that have anything to do with the current situation?" Tom questioned and Harry grinned.

"Isn't it obvious? Wizard magic has very few things that can counter or block house elves. The reason this locket was found in the House of Black is so simple that it's very clear why you didn't even consider it." Harry said enthusiastically, "The reason Regulus was able to get the locket out was because he took his elf with him, and when he had the locket he ordered the elf to go home." Tom looked at him blankly and Harry rolled his eyes. "House elves cannot disobey a direct order like that, therefore, he went home. He simply apparated home after his master ordered him to, taking the locket with him, and bypassing all the, no doubt, intricate and powerful defences you created to stop wizards from getting to your horcrux."

"Ingenious." Tom whispered stunned and Harry grinned.

"I love house elves." Harry decided.

"I would never had come to such a conclusion." Tom admitted, "It seems too simple to even be plausible, and yet it makes perfect sense."

"I know, and this is where elves are going to come in handy again." Harry said.

"How?"

"I think the same elf that took the locket in the first place is still alive." Harry told him.

"Oh?"

"Yes, one moment." Harry said, "Kreacher?" the elf popped in immediately and went to address his master, but he caught sight of Tom first and released a muted scream of fear and tried to hide behind the table and his own hands much to the Harry's amusement. Tom looked at the elf with an incredulous expression and then rolled his eyes at Harry's silent laughter.

"Honestly,"

"Sorry," Harry didn't even sound remotely sorry, but he calmed himself and knelt down next to Kreacher. "Don't worry about him, Kreacher, ignore him, he's a giant teddy bear." Harry told the elf soothingly and Tom threw a dark look at the teen's back, less than impressed with the comparison.

"Teddy bear?" He repeated sharply, and then to his utter incredulity, and amusement as much as he hated to admit it, Harry merely waved him off without so much as looking at him. The Dark Lord shook his head and looked to the heavens, waved of in favour for a house elf, what was the world coming to? He didn't even know why he put up with such actions, if one of his death eaters were to do such a thing, even his elite, who he actually liked, they would have been cursed before he had even thought about it. But Harry did that and nothing, absolutely no reaction whatsoever! What in Merlin's name was going on with him? While Tom was having his mental conversation, Harry had all of his attention focussed on his elf and getting him to calm down.

"Now Kreacher, I am going to assume that you were the one to help Regulus in his final task." Harry said and Kreacher nodded.

"Kreacher was forbidden from speaking of it to anyone." The elf croaked.

"Do you still want to help Regulus, in his memory?" Harry asked and Kreacher's eyes widened almost comically.

"It would be Kreacher's honour, Master Harry."

"I need you to make sure Dumbledore hears you speaking about the cave you and Regulus went to, but what is really important is that you make it sound like you were unable to get the locket. Make it sound as if you failed and you came back empty handed." Harry told him and the elf nodded slowly.

"Kreacher can do that, master Harry?" He said, but he was confused and Harry picked up on it in an instant.

"I know Regulus didn't fail, but I want Dumbledore to go to the cave and suffer like Regulus." Harry explained, "See, if it wasn't for Dumbledore, then Regulus would probably still be alive, and so it's only fair that Dumbledore has to pay." Harry watched Kreature's eyes flash and he nodded furiously.

"Kreacher will make sure Dumbledore hears him, and Kreacher will make sure Dumbledore believes the first locket is still in the cave. Dumbledore won't suspect a thing, no he won't, because Kreacher will make him believe, in honour of Master Regulus." The elf said surely and Harry grinned.

"Brilliant, Kreacher. You will do Regulus proud." Harry told him and the elf bowed and popped away. Harry rose back to his feet and turned back to Tom.

"Dumbledore is to blame for Regulus' death?" He repeated and Harry shrugged.

"Well, I can't think of a plausible reason for Regulus' sudden defection and him trying to take out a piece of your soul." Harry reasoned.

"That is true. He did not know what the locket was, and he was very loyal – all the Blacks are." Tom conceded.

"I don't know if's it's the truth, but Dumbledore is to blame for most other things. This really wouldn't surprise me." Harry said.

"You need to make sure you're friend has the weave ready at the soonest possible time." Tom pointed out and Harry nodded.

"And you'll need to make sure the cave is ready," Harry added, "I'll sort the fake locket and the spell, I'll go and check on Paws in a second to get a time estimate. Once I have that, I'll come to you and we'll go to the cave to plant it."

"Very well." Tom cast a tempus, "I have to show my face at dinner for a moment."

"That's fine, I'll go see Paws and meet you back here." Harry said, Tom nodded and left as soon as his glamour settled over him. Harry prodded the connection he had with Paws and waited for her to respond.

Yes?

Where are you? Harry asked her.

Peverell ritual room, it was the only places safe enough to build the weave away from anyone and everything. She replied.

Ok, I'm coming to you, I'll arrive outside so I don't disrupt the magics. He told her and stepped through the shadows, she had already opened the door to the stone room when his shadows had vanished and Harry grinned.

"Hey,"

"Hi," She returned, leading him in to the room, "What brings you?"

"I finally got Tom to give the go ahead on plan trinket." Harry told her and she looked at him in shock.

"Already?" She exclaimed, "Wow, I thought it would have taken until Monday in the least."

"Yeah, well it wasn't looking promising until I told him that it would be fake." Harry said, "But then I had a bit of an epiphany while I was trying to convince him, and it sealed the deal."

"Oh Merlin, what did you realise." Paws questioned, somewhat dreading the answer and Harry looked marginally offended.

"It wasn't a bad thing." He said hotly and she raised an eyebrow. "Seriously, it wasn't."

"What was it then?"

"How did the locket get back to the House of Black in the first place, if Regulus was dead and Sirius was with Dumbledore and then Azkaban?" He asked her and she blinked a few times.

"I have no idea." She said slowly, "No doubt the Dark Lord put up protections against theft."

"Exactly, my thoughts were quite simple really. It wasn't a human that took it from the cave." He said and she gasped.

"House elf!"

"Yep, and not just any house elf either." Harry informed her.

"Kreacher?" She tried and Harry nodded.

"Yes, so we have the locket safely around my neck and around Tom, and an elf that would have plausible reason for knowing about the locket and cave. He's agreed to mutter about the cave, the locket and Regulus failing to get in within Dumbledore's earshot." Harry listed, "It's practically set itself up."

"That was a rather brilliant epiphany." Paws noted, "So I am to assume you are here for a time estimate?"

"Yes,"

"Well, you are in luck." She told him, "It should be done by Monday, Tuesday the latest."

"Perfect, you are great, Paws." Harry said honestly, "It you could weave it around a locket then I would be most grateful."

"I can do that." She confirmed, "I'll let you know when it's done."

"Thanks." Harry hugged her and vanished back to Tom's rooms. The man was still in the Great Hall Harry found, so he went to the kitchen and called for Winky to bring him a number of ingredients and certain pots and pans. He lost himself in preparing and cooking, so much so that he didn't notice when Tom returned, or that he wasn't alone when he returned. The Dark Lord was speaking to Severus and informing him of the recent backlash when they stepped in to his rooms, and the potions master turned to him in question when sounds from the kitchen drifted over.

"That would be Harry cooking, he's trying to keep himself focussed on something." Tom told him, as if that explained anything to someone who didn't really know the teen. Snape followed his Lord in but he stopped short as the kitchen came in to view and he took in the Potter-Black teen, and everything going on around him.

"Can he cook?" Snape questioned, looking at the mess and Tom smirked.

"I wouldn't let him hear you ask that, he'd get very offended." Tom said.

"It just doesn't fit." Snape said.

"Oh, and you have found anything else that has?" Tom inquired and Snape made a sound in the back of his throat.

"Yes, that is true." He allowed.

"In answer to your question, however, is yes. He can cook, very well, surprisingly."

"Then what in Merlin's name is all of this?" Snape indicated the mess that Harry had created around him, and the multiple things going on at once.

"He's making something he has done before, frequently I would presume." Tom answered.

"Really?"

"Yes, his eyes are somewhat glazed, indicating memory movements. His actions are absent, the way he is stirring the pan and then going back to his previous task without so much as a blink. He hasn't got his head tilted to the side, showing that he is not curious. Finally, he hasn't noticed us. He's oblivious to his surroundings meaning he isn't even contemplating something going wrong." Tom explained easily, without even a touch of hesitation.

"He looks very different without his glamour." Snape muttered, "I still find it so very strange."

"That is normal compared to the rest of him." Tom murmured, before he raised his voice and flared his magic slightly, "Harry?" the teen's attention snapped to him instantly, even if his hands didn't stop moving, and a warm smile came to his face much to Tom's confused pleasure.

"Tom! You're back." He said, "I didn't noticed, sorry."

"I see you are busy."

"Yes, but it is fun. I changed a few things up when I got working, and you'll just have to deal with my weird presentation. I think it's cool." Harry told him brightly, "You're drink is already on the table." Tom looked to see a glass of red wine sitting for him and smiled.

"I was informing Severus of the recent backlash." He told the teen, taking his seat and indicating Snape to sit too. Harry looked up again and started when he saw Snape there.

"Oh, hey Snape. Did not know you were there." Harry said, "You don't want food, do you? Because I don't think I've made enough." Snape blinked.

"You are quite alright, Potter. I ate in the Great Hall."

"Good," Harry threw two steaks in his skillet pan and they sizzled loudly.

"What in Merlin's name are you making?"

"My version of a mixed grill." Harry answered without a thought, he threw in two tomato halves to griddle with the steaks as waved his hand and cleared an area. The two dark wizards watched him work for a few moments before going back to their conversation.

"Dumbledore's actions show that he is getting desperate." Snape agreed, "The Order is up in arms over the latest article and Dumbledore is working on cleaning up this mess. Though, from the last meeting, I am beginning to believe that it will never work as much as he wants it to."

"What of the Order?"

"With the escape of Lupin, and the relentless bad press, they are becoming distracted. The last meeting was more of a debate on whether finding Skeeter was as much as a priority as finding more of the dark allies." Snape said in disgust, "And Dumbledore seems more inclined to find the blasted reported currently. He was furious, and he said something about using his contacts to get her. By the end of the meeting, he was convinced, and had convinced most of the Order, that Skeeter was hiding out with Dark Creatures, so the hunt has begun."

"He'll never find her." Harry informed them, from the kitchen.

"Why?" Snape asked and Harry shot him a smirk.

"He would have to tear down the blood wards to do so." Harry said, "She's hidden in one of my properties and while Dumbledore is keeping an eye on them, he has had more important things to do than watch properties that belong to me because I am right under his nose."

"I see you thought this through." Tom commented and Harry nodded.

"Of course. I knew as soon as the articles started, and they were rather brutal, that he would be going after the author. I needed to protect my investment, and Rita did deserve a reward." Harry explained easily.

"Fortunately, the Dark Creatures are already being monitored and Dumbledore's connections are being tracked." Tom said, "You will need to watch him carefully, Severus. If he is removed from the school then we are no longer going to have eyes on him."

"Wouldn't it be prudent to keep him somewhere we can see him?" Snape asked and Harry snorted, Tom rolled his eyes at the teen.

"No, Dumbledore cannot remain here. There is too much riding on Harry and his friends' work for him to stay." Tom said, "And I do not wish to taint this castle any more than strictly necessary."

"I see," Snape paused, "It is unsure to what Dumbledore will do if he is removed."

"Yes, which makes your position even more important. He trusts you, Severus, and he will come to you." Tom said.

"Especially if everything goes to plan. January is going to be beautiful." Harry said, "Ok, nearly done."

"What are you going to be doing in January?" Tom questioned and all he got was that annoying smile that Harry gave when he wasn't going to say a thing. "I should curse you."

"Yeah, probably. But you won't." Harry said lightly, "It wouldn't end well."

"Does Dumbledore still have hopes on Scrimgeour?" Tom questioned Snape, ignoring Harry's comment much to the potion master's confusion.

"Yes, and his Wizengamot power is spreading. Shaklebolt, Vance and Jones are dealing with the lower levels and he has someone feeding things to and from the Noble and Most Ancient circle." Snape answered.

"Augusta Longbottom." Harry called over.

"What makes you so sure?" Snape questioned.

"Other than the fact that she sold her grandson to Dumbledore to spell and manipulate? Not much." Harry said sarcastically, "She's obsessed with her son, and his image, to the point where it's almost deranged. Dumbledore opposes the force that took Frank away from her, of course she'll do anything to help him. She's twisted the logic that the prophecy was Neville's fault, which is why she sold him to Dumbledore."

"But the old fool faked the prophecy." Tom pointed out.

"Yeah well, I didn't say it made sense." Harry shrugged. Snape quirked an eyebrow, but that was the only sign he gave that he, too, found the situation odd, the potions master rose to his feet with the Dark Lord.

"I shall keep keen eyes on him, My Lord, and report anything back."

"Very well," Tom said and Snape was dismissed.

"Everything is done now, I hope you're hungry." Harry said and Tom turned to face him, he blinked at the dining table which was now in his rooms but decided not to bother asking and just took his seat. Harry came over with rectangle slate plate and placed it in front of Tom, he places a black bowl filled with wedge potatoes next to it and a square black bowl filled with onion rings.

"So, we have medium rare sirloin steak, with bacon, because I don't like gammon, sausages and chicken, because I prefer it to lamb. Served with mushrooms, griddled tomatoes, onion rings, season wedge potatoes and salad." Harry told him and Tom gave him a smile.

"Thank you, and I do like the presentation." Tom said and Harry grinned.

"Thanks, I like the plates." He brought over his own food and sat down. They enjoyed their meal in relative quiet, only the odd word exchanged between them; it was peaceful. Harry protested when Tom cleared the table, but he was silenced with a kiss and a smirk, the teen huffed playfully and vanished the table instead.

"Winky," Harry called, "Can I have my ministry box please?"

"Right away, Master Harry." She said with a nod.

"Can you not just bring it to yourself?" Tom asked, and Harry nodded.

"Usually I'm able to, but I can't actually remember where I left it exactly." Harry explained, "I need to know where to direct the shadows precisely when I'm trying to grab things, unless if I'm taking myself."

"I see,"

Winky handed Harry a tomb size box full of sheets, journals and books and Tom blinked, he thanked her and threw himself on the sofa in front of the table.

"I can see that look." Harry said, "Just think, this has a shrinking charm and an extension charm on it too."

"Dear Merlin, what is in that?"

"This is all of my personal work that I intend to do to the ministry, with the books and references to back everything up. It still needs work, obviously, and there are some departments that have a lot more details than others, but yeah." Harry shrugged.

"What departments are privy to more details?" Tom inquired taking a seat next to the teen.

"The Department of Child Welfare and the Improper Use of Magic Office are the current ones that have the most details. I plan on opening different offices and departments to manage a few things, or possibly get rid of them, depending on how things work out." Harry told him.

"Oh? And what are you going to be working on tonight?"

"Ah, now this is something that Lucius is absolutely going to adore." Harry said brightly, summoning a wad of parchment and a black journal.

"You enjoy teasing him much more than you should." Tom informed him and Harry smirked.

"I really don't get to do it enough." He countered, "In all seriousness, he will either love or hate it, but I'm having Bleach present it to him with me."

"It is something to do with blood." Tom stated and Harry nodded.

"Yes, this whole blood purity argument is bullshit and you know it. We could both flatten every single one of the purebloods in this country without so much as breaking a sweat, and one of the most powerful people within your ranks is Snape." Harry pointed out, "That right there pretty much counters their arguments. Add to the fact that, as much as we hate him, Dumbledore is very powerful."

"Yes, I am aware that there is no actual merit to the blood purity argument, however, I have found that majority of the distaste for muggleborns come, not from their blood, but their ignorance, and their insistence of changing the wizarding world to fit their world." Tom responded, "At least to those who actually have a brain."

"Hm, well, then this might not go down as badly as presumed." Harry acknowledged, "You intend to cut out muggle influence, correct?"

"Yes, it is better for us if we are completely hidden from the muggle world."

"I agree, but there were a few gaps in your idea." Harry said, "The major one being muggleborns. They are magical, and it is not right, nor fair, should they be forgotten about."

"No, no magical child should be subjected to muggles."

"But it wasn't even that that caught my attention." Harry commented.

"No?"

"No, it was the title itself." Harry admitted.

"Muggleborn?"

"Yes." He confirmed, "You are cutting out muggle influence and yet you still have an entire section of the magical world labelled as muggleborn. It didn't fit."

"I see your point." Tom allowed, "What did you have in mind?"

"They will no longer be called 'muggleborn'." Harry said simply, "Because they will no longer be recognised as being born from muggles."

"Explain," Tom ordered and Harry pulled out a sheet of parchment.

"I was looking in to what actually defined the blood status' and they are truly shockingly bad." Harry began, "To be a pureblood, both sets of your grandparents have to have been magical, anything less than that puts you are halfblood apparently."

"Yes, I know this."

"So when two muggleborns have a child it is what? A halfblood, according to the current classification. Well, what happens when that halfblood then has a child with another child born from two muggleborns? Is their child suddenly a pureblood, even though its parents are halfbloods?"

"I see your point, it does not make sense at all. What are those children? And it could go on for generations." Tom noted and Harry nodded.

"Exactly, and it is one of the greatest reasons why our world is unable to move forward and expand." Harry said.

"In what respect?" Tom questioned and Harry frowned.

"Ok, just for a moment, clear your mind of any and all things you have heard about magical blood. A muggleborn is, to what we currently know, the first person within their family to have magic, a brand new magical person, yes?"

"Yes," Tom agreed slowly.

"So their blood is fresh blood, their magic is new magic. It's bright and clear and pure."

"It is,"

"And like I said before they are the first in their family, a first generation. A first generation with new blood and new magic, a-,"

"A first generation pureblood." Tom finished for him and Harry grinned.

"Yes!"

"I much prefer that." Tom decided, "But how does it link in to our world stilling?"

"All of these children have been pushed aside and told they won't amount to anything because they are muggleborn, they can barely get decent jobs, and they haven't a hope of getting even close to the Wizengamot because they cannot ever become a house." Harry said, "If that changes then we will grow and we will expand because the muggleborns won't be so set on leaving."

"I see, so you'd reclass them to enable them to further themselves in our world."

"Yes, and I think that they should be able to make their own Houses. If two first gens were to marry, their child would then be a second gen, then a third gen and then a fourth gen and so forth. Is that not the basis of the Houses that sit within the Wizengamot now? Houses that have built themselves up over generations, collected knowledge, power and wealth over hundreds of years to become what they are today?" Harry argued, "Without the label of muggleborn and the stigma and laws that follow it, the possibilities would be astonishing. And those houses that have died out, leaving our halls with larger and larger gaps would be filled again in a couple of hundred years. We could possibly have every house category filled again, from Presidential to minor."

"It is almost impossible to imagine, but the thought
" Tom drifted off, "We would, theoretically, be the most powerful wizarding nation in the world."

"If we had the ministry running like that, along with the changes we make, our government would be untouchable." Harry agreed excitedly, "Then, we would be safe from invasion due to, well, you. It would become obvious, when everything is in place, who is ruling, and your presence, and your army would stem most. Those who did attempt it would be decimated."

"Yes, and it would be your influence that would keep many from our own country from trying to rebel." Tom continued, "Your name and legend would have many of those in disagreement coming around."

"The possibilities." Harry whispered.

"We shall just have to make sure that those possibilities become reality." Tom stated and Harry nodded.

"Most definitely."

 


 

"Luna, my darling sister, I am yours." Harry announced grandly, strolling in to his rooms, much to her amusement.

"Good morning, Harry." She greeted, grinning at his actions.

"I am free for you for hours, make use of me as you will." He told her, dropping in to his chair with absolutely no grace whatsoever.

"Oh, really?" Luna stroked her chin thoughtfully, "Decisions decisions."

"The suspense is killing me." Harry joked and she laughed.

"Well we cannot have that."

"No, I would prefer life, if I'm honest." Harry agreed.

"Yes, we have worked very hard to preserve it." Luna mused, "It would be a shame for it to all have been for nothing."

"A crying shame indeed."

"Before we go on," Luna said, "Paws dropped this in this morning, something about it was due yesterday but given the circumstances
" she threw a folder at him and Harry flicked it open to see the blood bank information. Hermione, the diamond that she was, had extended his outline and gotten the necessary research references to back it up. She had also highlight a few spells that were highly recommended, by healers, for storing things like blood and human tissue, they did keep a small amount in case of extreme circumstances.

"I love this girl sometimes." Harry stated, "This is perfect."

"You can put it away, though." Luna told him, "No work, as such, today."

"Oh Merlin, that doesn't sound promising." He muttered and she threw him a look.

"Hush you,"

"Meh!"

"You should be nice to me, I've done something nice for you." Luna informed him primly and Harry smirked.

"You always do nice things for me." He pointed out, "What makes this occasion so much different?"

"You'll see." She said mysteriously and Harry huffed.

"Fine fine. Let me go and put this away." Harry darted up to his room and put the folder on the bedside table, he grabbed his and Luna's sketch books and went back down. "I want to show you a few things."

"You've been designing?" She asked and Harry nodded.

"I thought that, if everything went well and I was free over the Yule holidays, I could make them there." Harry explained, flipping over the book. "This one is something I am undecided about, it could work for many seasons, and I haven't decided the material or the colour. That and the final neckline has yet to be confirmed."

"I still like it, not as good as mine, mind you, but nice." Luna said, "Which reminds me, these came today." She walked over to the kitchen and brought over four very formal looking envelopes.

"Ball invitations," Harry said.

"Yes, daddy wrote to me and told me that, given the changes he can feel happening, we shall be attending all of the balls this year." Luna claimed brightly and Harry grinned.

"Wonderful. Let's see which order they are actually in." Harry opened all four envelopes and pulled out four different formal invitations. The Malfoy invitation was written on silver card, with golden details, and the information was written in a fetching shade of blue. Nott's was on pale orange, written in purple and decorated in blue. Zabini was written in black, on yellow and decorated in purple. Finally, Hadrian's was on blue, decorated in red and written with bronze, and Harry checked the dates and times on them carefully, alone with the details in case of a underlying themes or tips that many of these invitations often carried.

"Hadrian's is first, like you first believed." Harry said, "And he has an announcer, meaning statement outfits are a must, especially if I arrive how I wish to."

"You want to do the Golden Trio, don't you?" Luna laughed, "Oh the shock that people would have."

"Exactly,"

"I think it's a brilliant idea." Luna added and Harry grinned.

"Thanks," He said, "Now, Zabini's is next, which, if I am completely honest, I am not looking forward to as much. I will attend simply because it is a different circle and we'll be able to pick out what they are currently doing and speaking about. I know that Zabini is allied with Selwyn and Bullstrode at least, and there will be the top three families, which means I'll be sat with the Malfoys at least, and probably the other newcomers, which, in this case, are Swift and Paws."

"Yes, I will more than likely be sat with you at Hadrian's ball, he and my father are well acquainted." Luna put in and Harry smiled.

"Good, it will be nice to have you there." Harry told her, "It'll be the Malfoys, Swift, Paws, but I don't know who else. I don't know who Hadrian is allied with currently, if it is still Davis or not."

"No, I am unsure also. I do not know if Hadrian is as closely acquainted with Nott as he is us." Luna mused, "It will be interesting to find out."

"Nott is going to be highly interesting. The man hates my very being, so I do not even want to assume what is going to happen at that ball." Harry commented, "That's going to be fun."

"I believe there will be something there that will put other things in motion." Luna guessed, "He is too foolish not to make some sort of slight."

"I hope he does, I really really hope he does." Harry murmured, grinned darkly, "And finally, the Malfoy Ball. The one we know is going to be the best."

"I know I won't be sat at the main table." Luna admitted, "But I bet Hadrian will be now, what with his recent promotion."

"That should be interesting. I know Lucius is allied with Nott, and then there are the Lestranges, which should be interesting seeing as Rabastan and Paws have now actually met and Bella isn't fully insane now." Harry decided, "Then there is also Nott's ball to take in to account, because if he does something to me then all cards are off the table."

"Of course, we cannot forget the arrival of the Lord Prince." Luna threw in with a smirk and Harry grinned.

"Oh yes, we cannot forget about that." Harry agreed, "Snape is going to have kittens, or bats, whatever he breeds as."

"I doubt he will attend any other than the Malfoys, and he'll only be going to Lucius' because of friendship obligations." Luna said and Harry smirked.

"That, and like everyone else, he's scared of Narcissa."

"Yes, I would not like to be the one to anger the Lady Malfoy." Luna shuddered at the thought.

"I'll send of my replies as soon as Hedwig gets back," Harry decided.

"That should be fine," Luna said, "We have things to go through." Harry grimaced.

"I don't understand why it is hitting me so hard now." He complained.

"It is simple really. You spent eleven years of your life forcefully squashing your emotions and natural reactions, and then, for a further five, you were not given access to your own thoughts and feelings, despite being in a better situation. Now, for the first time in sixteen years, you are able to feel and process everything that's going on in your head, or at least attempt to process it." Luna explained gently.

"But I don't understand them anyway." Harry sighed, "I feel things, they affect me and I don't know how I am supposed to react because I don't know what they are. And when I do recognise whatever emotion it is, I don't understand why I'm feeling it."

"I know it is difficult for you, but there is nothing that can be done. It is something that you will need to process yourself." Luna told him.

"Why are they even necessary?" Harry burst out. "Yesterday, for example, for some reason, which is beyond me, I was hurt because Tom wouldn't, at first agree to the horcrux plan. I was hurt! What even is that? I don't feel hurt, and not for some trivial reason such as that. I mean, come on! Tom is just looking out for his own survival, it makes perfect sense."

"Do you have no explanation to why you would be hurt that the Dark Lord would not agree?" Luna asked and Harry frowned, scrunching his nose up as he thought and Luna had to bite her lip to stop mentioning how cute he looked.

"Well, I suppose that I was a little shocked that he would have me die instead, but then again, he is under no obligation to keep me alive anyway." Harry said slowly.

"So you didn't like the fact that your life was worth so little in his eyes? Does that sound about right?" Luna suggested and Harry blinked.

"Yeah, yeah that fits." Harry agreed, "But why would I care about that? He's the Dark Lord, we had already established that he's a selfish, cold, unfeeling bastard waaaay before this year started."

"Do you still actually believe that?" Luna questioned, "Now that you've spent time around him?"

"Well no, not in to such degrees. Don't get me wrong, he's still cold, arrogant and has an ego the size of Everest, he's mean, sadistic, possessive and a complete bastard, but its Tom." Harry couldn't stop the smile coming to his face even if he tried, and he looked at his hands wondering exactly what it was happening to him. "He's gorgeous, powerful, a freakin' genius and a Klepto, he can do things with magic that you wouldn't believe and he is so strong, he's doing so much to change this world that, despite me never telling him this, I admire him." Luna carefully hid her reaction to Harry's words, it was much more serious than even she had believed. Harry wasn't just attached to the man, he didn't just care for him, he was in love with him, and he didn't even know it.

"Could your feelings have something to do with your change in perspective?" She asked.

"It might be, I guess I don't see him like I did before." Harry shrugged, "Its his damn charm."

"His charm?" She repeated amused and Harry grumbled.

"Bastard made me blush," He admitted and Luna's eyebrows shot up.

"What?" She all but shouted in shock, "You don't blush."

"Yeah well, apparently I do when Tom decides to be all charming and nice to me." Harry muttered somewhat petulantly, "And I don't know why I'm reacting like this."

"What did he say?" She asked interested and, to his, and Luna's, utter shock, Harry felt his cheeks heat up when he remembered what Tom had said. Luna looked at him in shock before hiding her smile behind her hand, this was a very different side of Harry that's for sure.

"I told him he should be nice to me," Harry began, his hands fiddling with his sleeves. "He said I was smart and brilliant."

"But that wasn't it." Luna said, already smiling, which told Harry that she knew.

"No," He allowed, "Stupid man called me beautiful." Luna had to stop herself from cooing as Harry would really not appreciate that whatsoever, but that was ridiculously sweet and it obviously worked.

"I see what you mean." She said instead, "Did you dislike the feelings that it brought?"

"Yes, I mean, they weren't horrible, but I don't like the confusion." Harry confided, "The feelings were all warm, but I don't know why. What makes Tom's words so different? I've been called beautiful before, and smart and brilliant, but when Tom says it its different." Harry huffed. "Am I missing something?"

"You just need to figure out what's going out in your head." Luna said carefully, "It's pointless me telling you how you feel because I'm not you, I don't know what's in your head or heart." Harry frowned.

"I know, but it would be easier if you were." He grouched, "Ok, enough of the depressing and messed up shit within my head."

"Yes, my nice thing has just arrived." She said and the portrait opened, the twins came in grinning and Harry's eyebrows shot up.

"As much as I love the twins, they are with Bleach now and Tom would actually kill them." Harry said and Luna rolled her eyes.

"I am well aware." She told him primly, "You have forgotten what I drew for you a few weeks ago?" Harry blinked a few times before he hit himself.

"My remembrance tattoo." Harry remembered, and then he grinned, "You set it up for me."

"Yes, now shirt off and get ready." She ordered and Harry mock saluted.

"Gentlemen!" He greeted the twins, "I've just been told that you're here to tattoo me again."

"Yes, Miss Luna told us and gave us the picture." George confirmed, "It's amazing."

"Yeah, so you heard the girl, shirt off, Snake." Fred told him and Harry rolled his eyes.

"You sound way to enthusiastic about me removing my clothes." Harry informed him and Fred smirked unashamed.

"I'm set with our dragon." Fred said, "Doesn't mean I can't admire a gorgeous form when I see one."

"Well, I am rather good to look at." Harry agreed thoughtfully, he tugged of his top and threw it on to the sofa. "Where do you want me?"

"Here," George flicked his wand and transfigured the table in to a camp bed as Fred set up the equipment, Harry shrugged and led down and settled himself.

"So where are we having this one?" Fred asked and Harry pointed to his left collar and chest, just above his heart.

"Do you want to make any changes?"

"I am not sure about the caption." Harry admitted. "I think I'll change it and go for Recordatus est, in aeternum."

"Forever remembered," Luna murmured, "Very nice."

"Let's get to work then, Snake." Fred said, "Want the numbing potion?"

"Nope, let's have a dose of pain." Harry decided, and they shrugged. George tapped his wand in the area Harry wanted the design and they began to work, the buzzing of the guns filled the room and Harry breathed in deeply as the first wave of pain washed over him.

"Have you thought about the backlash that is going to hit when Dumbledore is forced to leave the castle?" Luna questioned and Harry hummed.

"Yes, and Snape brought it up yesterday too." Harry admitted, "The biggest one being that we are not going to know what Dumbledore is doing, nor where he is."

"Yes, and there isn't much to be done about that."

"Though, come January Dumbledore is going to know anyway." Harry pointed out, "Shit will be getting hot then."

"We'll be a little bit protected here." Luna mused, "But we will have to be so careful."

"I know, it's going to be a tense few weeks, and then it will explode when February hits." Harry stated.

"Is that the plan?" George asked, "To get him out of the Wizengamot in the February?"

"That's the idea." Harry confirmed, "It's not plausible to go for a Vote of No Confidence and a Breach of Oath in one session."

"Would it be better for Fudge to go first?" Fred questioned, "When Dumbledore sees you he's going to know, wouldn't it be better to get rid of him first?"

"I would usually agree, however, I highly doubt it will be any of us to call for the Vote. When the article comes out, the public and many of the Lords and Ladies are going to be pissed." Harry explained. "Clear Fudge and put someone who will actually do what we want in to power, and then our only enemy is Dumbledore and his sycophants."

"Ah, that makes sense."

"This is all, of course, basing on the fact that I don't die." Harry pointed out.

"You won't die," all three of them shouted and Harry grinned.

"Ok ok, I'm not dying." He repeated, "It will depend on if I'm underground or not. If I'm hiding then things might be a bit more difficult."

"Positive thinking, Snake." Luna told him, "We'll get through this."

"Sorry,"

They lapsed in to a peaceful silence and Harry allowed himself to feel the needles currently sticking in to him as the twins focused on his tattoo, it was painful, but Harry enjoyed the pain. It was rather grounding for him. It was nice, the quiet. Nothing was needing to be done and nothing was buzzing around in his head, he was just led in utter peace. He must have drifted in to a trance because Luna flicked his nose making him snap his head back in shock, she giggled at his reaction and he glowered at her.

"What was that for?" He asked, rubbing his nose.

"You're finished." The twins said and Harry blinked.

"Really? That was quick."

"We've been here for about three hours." Fred told him, "Be careful with your arm." Harry got up and rolled his shoulder, hissing when it burned.

"Lovely,"

"Do you want it wrapped, or shall we put the potion on it and leave it?" George inquired.

"Just put the potion on it, I don't want it wrapped and if the potion sets in now I can shower later." Harry answered.

"Got it."

"HOLY MOTHER OF MERLIN!" Harry yelped, and the twins burst out laughing.

"Yeah, it's cold by the way." They remembered.

"You bunch of utter cu-,"

"ANYway," Luna interrupted, pushing the twins away from Harry and standing in front of the teen with her hands of her hips. "You have to rest for the rest of the day, you can show me the rest of your designs and go over mine." Then she turned to the twins, "And you have an illusion base to build and a blond to see."

"Right away, Miss Lovegood." They chimed together and then shared a grin, Luna sniffed.

"Good."

The twins cleared up and said their goodbyes, leaving Harry and Luna to sit back and do what they did best; gossip, eat and draw.

"I think, Mr Potter-Black, we have a lot to do."

Harry barely stopped his hiss of pain when he caught his arm as he pulled of his jacket, Tom looked up with a small smile that Harry returned.

"Did you enjoy your day of peace?" Tom asked.

"Yes, most definitely." Harry confirmed, accepting the kiss Tom gave him and returning it.

"Hm, it seemed so." Tom placed his hands on Harry's hips and pressed light kisses on his neck, Harry sighed in contentment before his arm twinged and he remembered.

"Ah ah ah," He stopped Tom's ministration, and stepped back, "You are not allowed to touch me tonight."

"Is that so,"

"Yup, so all thoughts should be cleared right now." Harry said firmly.

"And why exactly?" Tom questioned, his eyebrow quirked,

"I'll show you in a minute, I need a shower," And when Tom smirked Harry prodded him in the chest with a warning look, "Don't even think about it, you are not getting anywhere near me tonight. It's not happening, and don't touch my torso." Tom rolled his eyes as Harry darted around him and vanished in to the shower. He shook his head and followed the teen, deciding that if he wasn't allowed to do what he wanted then he might as well wait for his highness to be ready. He flipped open his book and led back on the bed, switching his clothes to sleepwear. When Harry stepped out of the bathroom, it became very apparent why he didn't want Tom to touch him, he was shirtless, revealing his toned chest that was, last time Tom saw him, unblemished. Tom looked at him in shock and tugged Harry down gently next to him so he could have a closer look, the tattoo was red around the edges, and it looked slightly sensitive to Tom's eyes.

"It's beautiful," He murmured and Harry all but beamed.

"Thank you," Harry replied brightly.

"What made you get it?" Tom asked, his eyes still trailing over the design, going over the moonlit lilies surrounding the elegant stag and the dangerous looking grim, settling on the inscription underneath.

"Luna drew it for me a few weeks ago, and I don't really have a lot that actually represents them." Harry shrugged and then hissed, "That wasn't the best idea."

"You will have to sleep on your side." Tom noted, "To relieve pressure."

"Hopefully it will have settled by tomorrow, the twins did say it should be fine, just a bit tender." Harry said and then he huffed and led down on his back. "I am not looking forward to tomorrow."

"No, it is not set to be a pleasurable day." Tom acknowledged, "Come directly here after class ends."

"You will be keeping your temper and your possessiveness in check tomorrow or so help me you won't lay a single finger on me for an entire week." Harry stated firmly, and Tom shot him a narrow eyed glared.

"She is going to be draping herself all over you tomorrow, you cannot expect-," Harry cut him off, he sat up and turned to face him sharply.

"I expect you to keep all of that shit behind your shields." Harry snapped, "I actually have to deal with her remember. It's me that has to deal with her simpering and her advances, while she will go back to Dumbledore to plan my demise and what she's going to do with my fortune."

"You know very well that despite my shields, anger will leak through." Tom stated and Harry glared at him.

"Then don't get angry. The last thing I need is a vile headache from you as well as dealing with her." Harry told him, "I'm here, aren't I? I'll be here until Yule no doubt, and if you want a peaceful time of it, and want to actually touch me at all this week, you will keep it together."

"I could go elsewhere." Tom pointed out and Harry smirked, he knew it was an empty threat by what the man was feeling.

"You could." Harry allowed, and his smirk stretched in to a nasty smile, full of white teeth, "But you've insisted that I stay here with you, which I don't mind, so if you so much as look at someone else while I'm staying here then not only shall I slaughter said person in the most vicious possible way, but I will make you live to regret it and you, my dear Dark Lord, will never lay a hand on me again. Ever." There was something about the thought of Tom sleeping with someone else that made him want to hurt something. Tom looked at him and Harry raised an eyebrow as if to say do you want to try it? He sighed and pulled the teen down to kiss him, Harry had to stop himself from smiling at Tom's resignation and acceptance, he might actually get through tomorrow without wanting to carve his head open. The Dark Lord let Harry go enough to lay down on his side, and he wrapped his arm around his waist, Harry's back pressed against his chest. He closed his eyes and tried to ignore the frustration that was flowing through him, he shouldn't have been forced to change by a threat from the teen, but even contemplating not touching Harry again was not even plausible. His mind had vetoed the idea immediately, despite him saying that he could go elsewhere. While that was true, he could go somewhere else, he didn't actually want to. He sighed, it was confusing and frustrating. Harry shifted in his arms and squeezed his hand.

"Stop thinking about things, Tom." Harry murmured, "Sleep, we're going to need it."

Notes:

Thanks guys!

Chapter 40

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Chapter 40:

It took more effort that Harry was willing to admit to get himself out of bed and in to the shower Monday morning, his entire being was screaming for him not to but he knew he didn't have a choice. He knew that Dumbledore would be watching his every movement, his every expression, and he knew that if there was even a tiny slip up from him then it could end it all. Both he and Tom were silent as they prepared for the day, they knew that they were not going to like what was about to happen, but they could do nothing to stop it; not yet.

Tom kissed him fiercely, leaving Harry breathless, before the man swept from the room and in to the role of professor. Harry sighed and trudged out after making sure his glamour was secure, he made his was down to the great hall, going the long way around just to kill time but even that didn't help. She was there, waiting for him outside the hall and Harry fixed a smile on his face as she rushed over and threw her arms around him. As to not appear wooden, Harry returned the gesture before stepping back and taking her hand.

"Good morning," He greeted, locking the smile on to his face and Ginny beamed.

"Hi," She returned, "Are you feeling better? Professor Dumbledore said you were feeling ill." Harry fought back his twitch and nodded.

"Yeah, I'm fine now." He answered, "Breakfast?" He led her in to the hall and they sat down near the end of the table, Harry braced himself for the customary flare in his scar only to blink when nothing came. He didn't dare glance up at the head table, instead he focused all of his attention on keeping Ginny talking and happy so Dumbledore's eyes would leave them. He smiled and nodded, choosing to picture her being skinned alive and then burned; that made his smile brighten.

"Come on, I'll walk you to your lesson." Harry said, "What do you have?"

"Transfiguration," She told him and Harry mentally sighed, he was almost guaranteed to be late for potions, but he ignored that and led her through the halls holding hands.

"So how's Quidditch? He asked, "You're back with the team now?"

"Yes, Katie is glad to have me back." Ginny said, "After the defeat we suffered while I was in the hospital wing is making them desperate. And Sloper couldn't pick up my slack basically leaving it to Katie, but she has NEWTS so it was really hard."

"I had forgotten that this was Katie's last year, Merlin knows how Oliver did it." Harry mused, and he didn't even have to fake his curiosity; he genuinely didn't know how Wood did it. The other guy had to be inhuman.

"It puzzles Katie too, but I'm back now and I'm determined to win our next game and get us back in the running."

"I am sure you'll be able to do it," Harry said confidently. They arrived outside the Transfiguration classroom and Ginny kissed his cheek before entering the room, Harry took a deep breath and left. He slipped through halls as fast as he could, using shortcuts and even going as far as leaping down half a staircase and landing in a roll in a bid to lessen the time he was going to be late to Snape's class. He was mildly impressed with himself, while he was late, something he knew which was inevitable, he was only late by eight minutes. Not surprisingly, Snape removed twenty points for tardiness, but it could have been worse, so Harry merely shrugged and dropped himself down next to Draco.

"How's is it so far?" Draco asked in a low voice, his tone clearly concerned and Harry offered him a small smile.

"It's not too bad. I know it's going to get worse, but I also know that everything that could possibly being done is being done." Harry returned, his expression going wry. "I have to deal with it."

"How's your head?" Draco questioned and Harry blinked, it took him a moment to realise what Draco was talking about and then he shook his head.

"Oh its fine, not a peak so far."

"Really? Well, at least your headache won't be blinding."

"That is always a bonus." Harry agreed, "What are we supposed to be doing?"

"Reading up about the properties of the Erumpent potions that makes it so volatile." Draco explained.

"You mean other than it contains Erumpent horn?" Harry questioned sarcastically and Draco nodded solemnly.

"Yes, other than that." He said it so seriously that Harry snorted.

"Right then, at least I have an advance on that seeing as I didn't make the potion." He tugged two books out of his bag and flipped them open, he flicked through 1000 magical herbs and fungi searching out all the ingredients listed in his other book, which held the recipe of potion he was breaking down. The classroom was peacefully silent, not even Snape's swooping disrupted the peace of reading and the occasional scratch of a quill; it was nice. It allowed him time to think, to mentally prepare himself for what he would be doing for the rest of the day.

He would be meeting the twins for sure, and then he would be checking in with Paws before seeing if there was anything else that he could do with the Dumbledore situation and if there wasn't then he would have to focus on anything and everything else. He had to keep focused lest he do something remotely stupid. Despite how peaceful the class was, it didn't stop Harry being up and out of the room as soon as the lesson was called to a close, and he headed back up Transfiguration for his own lesson.

He shot Ginny a bright smile as she left the classroom and her answering one was equally as sunny, Harry let the expression drop as soon as he took his seat at the back of the room. He almost groaned when he realised it was going to be all theory for the lesson, it was because it was close to Yule and the teachers didn't want their students forgetting anything new they could possibly be taught before they departed for the holidays. It was annoying, but it was easier than having to purposely sabotage his own work with mispronunciation or faulty wand movements. With his lack of focus, he doubted he would be able to keep up the effort it took to make his work look worse than it was, and the very last thing he needed was for McGonagall rushing to Dumbledore to exclaim about the miracles he was suddenly performing in her class.

He had a free period next, but so did Ginny and Harry knew he was going to be expected to spend it with her, that was going to be the real challenge, but he could possibly make take her to the library to help do her work – she did have OWL's after all. Yes, he liked the sound of that plan, now he would just have to make sure she couldn't argue her way out of it. Harry jumped when he was pulled back to the present when the class was dismissed and there was a sudden scraping of chairs, he pulled himself up and hitched on a bland expression as he went down the entrance hall to wait for the she-weasel to appear. He was, unfortunately, not disappointed with her timely arrival and she all but threw herself at him, much to his disgust, but of course, on the outside, he was only too happy to see her and he wrapped his arms around her.

"Hey Gin," He greeted brightly, "How's class?"

"They've been ok," She allowed, taking his hand, "It's been extra hard his year due to OWLs."

"Yeah, I remember last year." Harry said with a shudder, "It was like the teachers were trying to kill us with the sheer amount of workload."

"I know! And most of it is expected to be done in the holidays too." She added in outrage, "How unfair is that? We only get two weeks for Christmas."

"I know, its awful." Harry agreed, "How about we go and tackle some of it now? That way, when we finally do break up we can both relax without having to rush anything for school on the last day." She brightened at the mention of their both relaxing, and it wasn't Harry's fault if he forgot to mention that they would be relaxing at completely different places during the Yule holidays; she shouldn't assume things.

"You're right, Harry." She said enthusiastically, "That leaves us more time to spend some quality time together. Alone." Harry wasn't so sure he managed to have the right amount enthusiasm in his expression when she said that, but she didn't comment so he led her up to the library praying for a grain of patience to allow him to get through this without issue. Instead of going to his usual hidden spot within the library, he took an open table, anything to make sure Ginny censor her behaviour under the watchful, and absolutely fantastic in Harry's opinion right now, eye of Madam Pince. Ginny pulled out McGonagall's latest essay and Harry grabbed the only one he actually had left, which was Herbology, and they set up their things on the table.

"I can't wait to go home for the holidays." Ginny declared, looking at her work in distaste.

"Nor can I," Harry agreed, "Its been quite stressful these few months."

"What with Dumbledore getting attacked, You-Know-Who coming after me and all of this work on top of that." She shook her head, "You would think, surviving an attack from You-Know-Who himself would tell the teachers that I'm going to be fine for the exams." Harry very nearly choked on the breath he just took; what in Merlin's name? She couldn't be serious? He looked at her and noticed her was waiting for a response so he nodded hurriedly, putting on a serious expression to add emphasis.

"They really should, I mean, you were at the Ministry last year too." He added.

"I know!" She exclaimed, "But its like all of the teachers have forgotten, I would have thought Professor Dumbledore would have told them."

"Perhaps he didn't want to be seen as favouring students." Harry suggested, "Look at last year and how Umbridge attacked me because Dumbledore put faith in me, and with the papers how they are now
 well, the ministry will take anything they want to make the Headmaster look bad."

"You are right." Ginny said, "I hate the ministry, it will be better when we have a good minister in charge."

"Yeah, but Fudge won't go down without a fight." Harry pointed out, scribbling down the last sentence for his introduction.

"His position of power will be over soon, Professor Dumbledore said so." Ginny said firmly and Harry grinned.

"Well that's ok then, I mean, if Dumbledore believes it then it must be true." Harry replied, and it was said so bitingly sarcastically that it didn't sound sarcastic at all and she beamed at him.

"Exactly," She nodded and turned to her work, "Harry, can you help me with this. I just don't know how to explain it properly."

"Let me have a look," Harry said, holding out his hand, she smiled and pushed it over. "What grade are you getting in Transfig at the moment?"

"E's usually, why?"

"Well, I don't want to put anything in there that makes it look like you didn't do it. McGonagall is very good at spotting things like that, she used to catch me and Ron all the time when Hermione was helping us and we would have to do it again." Harry explained and he wasn't even lying, the head of the Gryffindor house knew how to spot edited work better than anyone.

"Ah, that makes sense." Ginny mused, "I'd never thought about it like that."

"That's because you are probably smart enough to not have help on most of your work." Harry complimented, and mentally heaved when she smiled and blushed slightly. They fell in to blissful silence while Harry looked over her work, surprisingly it wasn't actually bad, but then, he had never said that Ginny wasn't intelligent, just plain thick when it came to common sense, or rather, misguided when it came to her upbringing – the only female influence she had was her mother, after all. Didn't make Harry hate her any less, she used said intelligence to attempt to drain him dry and kill him so she would die eventually.

Harry looked up when he felt familiar magic and saw Alina enter the library, she spotted him and made to come over but Harry shook his head and had a 'stay away' signal with his hand. She frowned at him and Harry pointed at his watch and then up at the ceiling, her eyes narrowed but then her expression cleared when she got the message that he would speak to her later. Harry breathed in relief and turned back to Ginny, he handed back the essay with a smile.

"It's really good," He told her honestly, "I've just outlined what needs to be in the last paragraph, and then you've just got your conclusion."

"You are the best, Harry." She said enthusiastically, kissing his cheek and taking up her own quill. Harry went back to his own essay, biting back a groan and jotted down a rough outline, he would bribe Badger to do this for him later, it was his favourite subject after all and Harry was sure he could find some mysterious plant in one of his vaults. When they had both finished their essays, Harry politely escorted Ginny down to the Great Hall for lunch, she was practically sat in his lap as they ate a small lunch. Harry made sure to laugh in all the right places as he picked at his food, his arm not once leaving its place from where it was wrapped around her shoulders, allowing her to lean on him. Harry had never been so pleased to hear the bell go as he was at that point, Ginny frowned and he mirrored her expression as they began standing up.

"What do you have next?" He asked and she huffed.

"History,"

"Oh lovely." He muttered, "I'll walk up and then head to charms." Harry said holding out his hand for her to take.

"I really cannot wait until I can drop history." Ginny sighed, "It will be the best thing to happen to me."

"The very best huh?" Harry questioned jokingly and she rolled her eyes.

"You don't count, it was fate that brought us together." She insisted, "It was just something that was meant to be." Yeah, because that's the reason, Harry thought with derision.

"Of course, Gin," He said instead, "Though, I have to know, how is the rest of your family going to take this?" he indicated their joined hands and she waved him off.

"Don't worry, mum thinks of you as family anyway, so does dad, and my brothers won't say anything if they don't want to be on the receiving end of my wand."

"That's ok then."

"Though, mum might insist on a promise ring until we are formally engaged, just to 'protect me'." Ginny said with a roll of her eyes, but Harry barely stopped himself from laughing. Molly Weasley would have to do a better job than that to protect her daughter, the girl had begun sleeping around when she was thirteen, her birthday was late, in August if Harry remembered correctly.

"I think I have one of those in my vault, something Si-someone mentioned before." Harry changed what he was going to say, not being able to bring himself to utter his precious godfather's name in her presence.

"You should have, the Potter Promise ring, it would match the Potter Signet ring and possibly the marital bands."

"I'll write to Gringotts and see what they send back, you never know, you might get a surprise for Christmas." Harry said lightly and she beamed.

"I'll see you at dinner?" She asked and Harry nodded surely.

"Definitely, I'll wait for you in the entrance hall." He assured her and accepted the kiss on the cheek she gave him before leaving and sprinting down to the charms classroom, falling in to the room just behind the last student. Flitwick, like the rest of the teachers, didn't give them anything new, but he did have a practical lesson where they reviewed all the spells they had done so far in silence. He awarded points to those who managed to do them all silently, which meant that Harry earned points due to his 'tutoring' with Professor Drield, and it also meant that he didn't have to butcher his own work because he was expected to have covered this and more' thankfully.

The tutoring that Dumbledore set up for him was becoming more and more helpful, and he said as much when Flitwick asked him about his progress, of course no one, other than Ron, Hermione and Neville understood exactly what he meant and they were snickering to themselves. Harry headed down to the greenhouses with the rest of the Gryffindors, they were all talking quietly to themselves as they went, walking next to Neville unconsciously. He flicked up a warming charm as they hit the cold December air, it was going to snow soon, that much was obvious, but Harry wanted to be away from the castle when that happened. He remembered to remove the charm when he stepped in to the greenhouse and frowned slightly when Professor Sprout told them that they were merely doing maintenance for the lesson.

It was very simple, so simple that Harry felt his mind drifting to their latest plans, he wasn't worried per se, but he hadn't expected to be backed in to such a corner. There was a lot riding on so much and he really didn't want to be trapped, he couldn't afford to be and the fact that he had to deal with Ginny on top of all of that was not sitting well for him. Sometimes he thought it would be better if he hadn't ever broke through the enchantments, that way he would be ignorant, he wouldn't be stressed and everything would be in an order he understood; instead of the heap that it was currently in. Harry sighed to himself as he watered another plant, he wondered what he did in a previous life to piss off fate so much.

The final bell rang and Harry headed up for dinner, and just like he promised, he waited for Ginny in the entrance hall. She all but ran in to his arms and the distaste he felt for her welled up inside of him, it was almost like vomit and he had to forcefully swallow it down as he hitched on a smile and led her in to the hall.

"Good rest of the day?" He asked.

"Yeah, it was ok." She said, "Arithmancy is such a drag."

"I'm so glad I never took that subject." Harry said surely, "It looks way too complicated."

"Well, Bill told me to take it because it would help out later in life." Ginny said, "But, the only career I would want would be Quidditch and even then, I'll have other obligations to see to first."

"That's why I didn't take it." Harry agreed, "I mean, I think I could make it as a Quidditch player?"

"You would be the best they could ever hope to hire, you are the youngest seeker in a century, AND you've only ever lost one game." Ginny praised. "You could play for England."

"That would be amazing, wouldn't it?" Harry said. They sat down at the end of the table and this time Ginny really was on his lap, but Harry remembered that the compulsion wanted him to sleep with her, so he wrapped his arm around her waist and set his hand high up on her thigh; much to her pleasure. Harry had to fight his very instincts to stay in that position, but he did notice that they were not the only people sat in such an open position. There were couples all over the hall wrapped around each other and Ginny was only too happy to imitate them, she kept leaning down and kissing him, on the cheek and chaste ones on the lips, ones that Harry's mind rejected instantly, and she actually fed him a strawberry at one point. So by the time the end of dinner arrived, Harry was feeling violently ill and he wanted nothing more than to curl up and hibernate for the rest of the week.

"I have tutoring tonight," He told her, as they left the Great Hall together and she looked put out.

"Oh, do you?"

"Yeah, but I'm free tomorrow I think, so I'm all yours." Harry told her and she perked up, "I was thinking that we could spend some time together tomorrow, just the two of us." Ginny looked thrilled at the prospect and Harry prayed to whatever entity that the twins and Luna would be ready by then, they should be, Luna would have probably heard what he just planned so he had high hopes.

"That sounds brilliant." Ginny remarked, "We could go back to your rooms."

"We might, but I think I have a better idea." Harry informed her, "But it's a surprise."

"Ok fine." She huffed. They had reached the tower and Harry almost sighed in relief, but he stopped himself when she turned to face him. "Well, I guess this is goodnight."

"Yeah, goodnight, Gin," Harry murmured and then she was kissing him. His first immediate thought was that it was much too soft, she pulled herself flush against him and Harry was forced to put his hands on her waist. There were too many curves and fleshy parts, and she tasted way too sweet, and she was making this odd sound, and she was doing this weird thing with her tongue, and Harry was too pleased for words when it was over.

"Wow," She breathed, and Harry made a noise in the back of his throat.

"Yeah," His voice was slightly hoarse and he could feel the tell-tell stirring in his gut, and the rising bile in the back of his throat that told him that he was going to be sick and very soon so he spoke again. "I'll see you tomorrow."

"Bye Harry,"

He watched until she was in the portrait hole before turning and calmly walking away, he got to the end of the corridor and to a blank stretch of wall before he shadowed straight to his rooms and bolted for the bathroom. Once his stomach contents had left his body, Harry shot multiply teeth cleaning and freshening charms at his mouth, and he even disinfected it just to be on the safe side. He still felt as if his skin was crawling, he could feel her on him, on his lap, kissing him, holding his hand and Harry shuddered. He hated her, and he hated Dumbledore for forcing his hand, he felt vile and he could still smell her on him. Harry threw of his robes and set them on fire before heading to the shower, he turned the water up to hot and started scrubbing his body. Again and again he washed, until he was red raw and his fingers ached, but it still wasn't enough, and Harry realised he was starting to hyperventilate as he tried to clean her from him.

"Shit," He gasped, stumbling from the shower, managing to grab a towel before falling in to the bedroom. He wasn't surprised when Luna rushed over to him, gently rubbing his back and murmuring to him until he got his breathing under control.

"I'll have the blood for the twins tomorrow, we have Herbology first period." Luna told him softly, "Just hang in there."

"I can't do this," Harry croaked, the emotions that were welling up inside him made him dizzy and he shook his head as if to clear it. "It's too much."

"You can do this, as horrible and disgusting as it is, you can and you will do this." Luna soothed.

"I can still feel her everywhere," Harry shuddered, "Pressing up against me, kissing me, touching me,"

"Hey, calm down." Luna ordered when his breathing picked up again, "Once you are dressed, take the blood bank information and go and take your mind of this whole day, go to His rooms and be distracted."

"Ok, I can do that." Harry allowed, nodding his head as he listened to her soothing voice. "I just need a distraction."

"Exactly,"

They stayed in that position for ten minutes, Luna rubbing Harry's back and stroking his hair while Harry settled himself enough to get up and get dressed. Harry pulled on his black skinny jeans that, he now noticed, were sporting a few rips in them, but he pulled them on anyway and he was quite pleased with the effect.

"Could you do this to a few of my other my jeans, better yet could you get me some more jeans?" Harry asked Luna and she smirked.

"Check your wardrobe." She informed him and Harry grinned, he kissed her cheek once he had pulled on a white top and grabbed the file she handed to him.

"You are one of the best things to ever happen to me, Miss Lovegood." Harry stated seriously before he vanished in to the shadows. Tom wasn't back yet so Harry took a seat and began looking through in detail, what Paws had sent back to him. It was brilliantly done, as was everything that Hermione put her mind to, and he was pleased to see that the only thing they were really waiting for is the information from the vampires themselves. Harry was considering having a discussion with the head vampire, if Tom could get in contact with him again, and running the idea past him, that way, he could have all the ideas from a vampire's perspective making it more accessible to the race itself. It would be a topic for discussion anyway, right now he had the skeleton and it was ready to go.

His attention snapped up when Tom walked in, he didn't think it would be too long before the man came here and he felt his entire body relax when the man's magic washed over him. It was like his body was waiting for the confirmation that it was away from the harpy and he was finally back to himself, back to who he was supposed to be. He didn't take the time to analyse his feelings too closely, now was not the time so he focused back on the man that had just walked in to the room. He had found it extremely weird that he hadn't felt so much as a flare of anger or possessiveness all day, nothing at all, not even a twinge of emotion from the link and it was only now that he was with Tom that he realised how much he had missed it. Having a blank wall in his head where usually there was some feelings or presence was odd, and it was glaringly apparent that the entire connection had been shut because his mind didn't even twitch now that Tom was close to him.

The lack of anger and possessiveness, though, was somewhat alarming, and Harry played with the idea that Tom had let his ingrained ideas go, but when he really looked at the man he dismissed that notion entirely. Tom was absolutely livid. His face could have been carved from diamond, it was white with utter fury and his hands were shaking in rage. His eyes, now that they were released from their silvery glamour were a flat black, but were somehow managing to flash dangerously, and Harry was genuinely surprised he had managed to hold his glamour with such a reaction. Tom's magic was stifling the room, icy and biting, it was clawing its way through every crack and crevice and Harry felt his breath catch slightly as it swarmed him. Harry got up and walked slowly over to the Dark Lord, he knew that he was going to be in a lot of pain tomorrow, and he knew that there was probably something severely wrong with him when that thought only saw fit to excite him.

He took one of Tom's shaking hands in his own smaller one, stilling the violent tremors by squeezing slightly as he looked up in to the black eyes. He almost sighed in relief when he felt the traces of blind rage and inhuman possessiveness slipping though in to his mind, assuring him that their unique link was finally opening up again. Harry leaned up and kissed him gently, stepping closer to the unresponsive body in front of him and the iron control Tom had been holding throughout the day snapped. Their link burst open flooding Harry's head with mindless rage and possessiveness, making his gasp in a mixture of shock and pain, and Tom used that to seize control of the kiss.

The Dark Lord growled in the back of his throat and slid his hands all over Harry's body before taking an almost violent grip on the teen's hips, pulling them closer together as he searched out every part of his teen's willing mouth. When the need for air became too great they broke apart, but Tom didn't stop his assault, his mind was screaming at him repeatedly and he kissed and bit down Harry's jaw and neck, removing the glamours Harry kept on his marks and biting down on the claiming bite he had given the teen a few days ago. Hearing Harry blissfully moan out his name soothed him ever so slightly, but not enough for him to stop at all, and when he felt the mark was vivid enough to last at least until the Yule holidays he began kissing the teen again.

He realised that Harry was just wearing too many clothes, something the teen seemed to believe in himself because both their top halves were suddenly bare. Tom pushed Harry back until he hit the wall and Harry retaliated by bracing himself and wrapping his legs around Tom's waist, creating wonderful friction and Harry groaned, needing more. He needed to be cleansed of the taint that she left behind, and Tom seemed to be thinking along the same lines because the rest of their clothes vanished and Harry felt more magic wash over him, preparing him for what was about to come. He yelled when Tom filled him in one swift motion, the familiar burn of pain running through him, matching the tingling pleasure he felt. He was barely given time to adjust, not that he minded, as Tom was relentless and immediately began moving. The man knew his body well by now and found that bundle of nerves that set him on fire, dropping his head back and crying Tom's name repeatedly.

Are you still thinking of that little bitch, Snake? Tom hissed, thrusting in sharply and hitting Harry's prostate hard, the teen all but screamed much to Tom's pleasure.

Wh-what- AH- m-more, ah- TOM! Harry cried out his name again and Tom hissed wordlessly.

Is she still on your mind as she was on your body?It came out as a hissed grunt, his own release was building as he slid in and out of his willing partner. He wanted Harry's mind wiped of the disgusting cretin that was pawing over him earlier.

Who?-Ah, Tom- FUCK!Harry held on to Tom's shoulders tightly, he was near the edge and he could feel it building as Tom repeatedly hit his prostate creating floods of pleasure. He screamed out Tom's name as his release hit and Tom bit down on his neck, his vision blanking for a second and Tom managed a few more powerful thrusts before following Harry. It was smug satisfaction soothing his possessiveness as Harry yet again shouted his name as his release hit, it was he who had fucked the teen in to an incoherent mess (albeit an extremely hot mess, but a mess none the same), it was he that created the look of utter debauched pleasure on the teen's face, and it was he who Harry was clinging too as pleasurable aftershocks rippled through his body.

Harry was making no attempts to even move, and Tom would be less inclined to do so if he didn't know they had loads of work to be doing. He pulled out of the teen and muttered a cleaning charm, he then gently placed Harry back on his own feet and flicked his wand to dress them both, though his arm didn't move from where it was locked around Harry's waist.

"You know we have things to do." Tom murmured, tracing Harry's taunt stomach lightly. The teen was feeling extremely satisfied and content and Tom couldn't help but feel smug as he was the one to create such feelings.

"The amount of smugness coming from you is unbecoming." Harry informed him, finally standing up properly and looking at Tom. The Dark Lord merely smirked.

"Who's on your mind right now?" Tom asked lightly and Harry glowered at him, though it lacked any real heat.

"Yeah yeah, cocky bastard." He grumbled, but he smiled when Tom kissed him and allowed the man to lead him over to sit down.

"It's not cocky when its true." Tom corrected, "Now, I have to finalise the plans for the ministry wards, I think I shall have enough information to send our ward experts out very soon."

"Brilliant. I have everything and nothing to do, though I can feel Paws at the back of my mind screaming at me right now, but I think if I answer it she may want to kill me." Harry said with a grin, chuckling when Tom rolled his eyes.

"Were you not the one to tell me that she's the genius in the group?" Tom pointed out, "Shouldn't you be keeping her happy, lest she find some way for revenge. It's what I do with Narcissa." They both shuddered at the thought of an angry Lady Malfoy.

"You are wise, oh Lord of Darkness." Harry said, putting on a mystical voice, making Tom snort.

"Dear Merlin, that was strange even for you."

"I try my best." Harry agreed. "I have a question."

"Go on?"

"Would it be possible for you to contact that Head Vampire again for me please?" Harry asked, "Only, Paws and I have a skeleton draft for our blood bank idea and I thought it might be beneficial to actually get a vampire perspective on it. After all, I did have Moony and then Alpha and Ellen's advice on the Sanctuary."

"I do not see any problems with that." Tom allowed, "Though, I am still waiting on the envoys, I can send the request back once they arrive. They are due the first week of the Yule holidays."

"Wonderful, thanks." Harry offered him a grateful smile. "Ok, now I need to see what Paws wants." He opened the connection between him and his best friends and was rewarded with the largest mental huff imaginable.

Finally. She explained, I've been waiting for like twenty minutes. What in Merlin's name have you been doing?

Um getting my brains thoroughly fucked out. Harry answered honestly, Its been a really hard day.

Oh Harry, She sighed, Are you ok?

I am now, He said, the leer blatantly in his voice.

Oh you. She laughed, I won't comment due to the horrific strain you've been under today, so don't get used to it.

Yes, Ma'am.

Now, to the reason I have been prodding you. She began, You can come and check the locket, I'm going to need you to make sure it feels legit before I hand it over.

You are a goddess amongst us, Hermione, and don't let anyone tell you otherwise. Harry could practically hear her blush as she cut the connection and Harry grinned up at Tom.

"I've got a locket to go and collect."

"She has worked quickly." Tom mused and Harry nodded.

"If its ready to go, are you ready to go to the cave?" He asked and Tom nodded.

"Yes, the defences will recognise its caster, and I know how to dispel them all. Though, should the need arrive, I am well equipped at casting fire spells."

"Infiri?" Harry questioned, and Tom smirked.

"Many,"

"Thanks for the heads up." Harry stood up and stretched, hissing slightly when he felt his body twinge. "I won't be long." He left right after Tom stole a kiss. He shadowed to the sanctuary and ran straight in to Moony, the werewolf looked busy but that didn't stop him from scooping Harry up in to a tight hug before setting him down and going on his way. Harry smiled to himself, heading up to the ritual room where Paws should be, he conjured up a purple gladioli flower, knowing them to be Paws' absolute favourite and knocked on the door. She threw open the door looking distracted but one sight of the flower and who was holding it and she brightened, shooting Harry a delightful smile as she took the offered bloom.

"It's beautiful, and it's my favourite." She commented, eyeing him and Harry offered her a somewhat arrogant smirk.

"I know,"

"Honestly," She rolled her eyes but was still smiling. "Come on then, let's keep you alive."

"It sounds so much worse when you say it." He mused, entering the room. The bare stone room was as daunting as usual, but in the centre lay a locket which was positively pulsing with magic. Harry inhaled deeply, surrounding himself with the magic and he grinned, it felt just like the locket and it was only because he was deeply entwined in his best friends magic did he feel the minute traces of her own cleverly masked signature.

"Wow," He murmured, "This is fantastic." He picked up the piece of jewellery carefully and looked it over, it had a resemblance to the Slytherin locket, but if you knew what the real one looked like you would be able to spot the differences.

"Thanks," Paws replied, pleased. "It was less difficult than I anticipated."

"That's good, this should set us up for the beginning of Yule too." Harry said, "If the article comes out within the next two days, it leaves us with time to finish the school term in relative peace and prep for the holidays."

"Sounds like a plan," Paws agreed, "Which means I am going back to the laws I was working on with Venom and my search for the Hufflepuff heir."

"I'll see you later. I'm off to bait Lemons." He told her, she waved him off with a fond laugh and Harry vanished back in to the shadows. He appeared next to Tom, who didn't even blink from reading his book, and grinned.

"My best friend is really a genius." Harry informed him brightly, and Tom raised an eyebrow, finally looking at him.

"Oh?"

"Yes, feel this." He handed the man the locket and his grin stretched when the man's eyebrows shot up in surprise.

"If I didn't know any better I would assume that this is the real thing." Tom said surprised, "This is very well done indeed."

"I know, I'm surprised myself. I didn't think she would be able to create a masking so similar."

"I believe that this shall pass inspection. Let us leave now." Tom decided, rising to his feet. They both cast multiple fire resistant charms on their clothes and their bodies before summoning cloaks and shadowing to Malfoy Manor. Tom them took Harry's arm and apparated them to a rock in the middle of the ocean, wrapping an arm around the teen's waist to stop him from falling in due to his reaction to side-apparation.

"What the fuck!" Harry yelped over the crashing waves, "You really are a vengeful person."

"Oh and you are so forgiving." Tom scoffed.

"I wasn't judging, merely making a statement." Harry informed him, shooting him an innocent smile, to which Tom rolled his eyes.

"We have to climb from here." Tom told him, not rising to the bait and smirking at Harry's pout.

"Fine, where am I going?" Harry asked.

"You see that small ledge, down at the bottom?" Tom pointed to the ledge in question and Harry raised an eyebrow. It was a very small ledge, barely over a foot deep but he nodded anyway.

"I commend you for getting here as a child." Harry said.

"It's not as bad as it seems, there is a port as such on the other side, but there is a ward that prevents near all forms of magical transport and I didn't think you wished to take a swim." Tom explained and Harry nodded.

"Tell me why we didn't just get Kreacher to pop us in to the cave?" Harry asked.

"Because he is currently trying to entice the headmaster in to coming to said cave." Tom answered and Harry sighed.

"That's right." He remembered, "So, how far down do you think that ledge is?"

"It's about a twelve foot drop." Tom calculated and Harry nodded.

"Right, this should be fun." With that he jumped from his position and used the shadows and his magic to cushion his landing, though he still nearly pitched forward in to the ocean and only Tom suddenly grabbing the back of his top stopped him.

"Oh hey Tom, thought you were still up there." Harry said breathlessly, his eyes light up with the thrill of the drop. Tom shot him a dirty look and physically whacked him around the back of his head.

"You are an idiot." He stated simply, "Your Gryffindor blood rings true."

"Thanks," Harry said with a proud smile, which Tom ignored, "So how did you get down."

"I said it was warded against nearly all magical transportation. I am one of, if not, the only persons who can fly unattended." Tom pointed out, "I am unsure if I can take passengers."

"Ah smart." Harry complimented, "Well then, oh sly one, after you." Tom led him down the precarious ledge and in to the aforementioned port, Harry looked around in interest, sensing rather than seeing the magic present.

"A blood sacrifice?" He questioned and Tom nodded.

"Yes, it triggers the traps on the inside of the cave depending on the power of the blood."

"Even smarter," Harry acknowledged, "That genius status of yours was well earned."

"Of course it was." Tom sniffed. He waved his wand and the cave opened to admit them both, the magics didn't react given that they were being commanded by their caster. Harry looked around and he could feel the smile creeping on to his face, the cave was, for lack of a better word, dark. It had dark and murky waters, thick and stifling air and an island in the middle of the water that held this creepy glow in the very centre.

"Not. One. Word." Tom ordered him, obviously following his train of thought and Harry snickered.

"I wasn't going to say a thing." Harry assured and Tom hmmed, obviously not believing him for a second.

"Can you get us to the island? I do not wish to take the boat."

"Yeah, 'course." Harry said, he took Tom's arm and they shadowed to the centre island, lading shakily on the uneven stone. Harry hopped up to the podium and was surprised to see it was a bowl filled with a greenish liquid that held its own glow, he hovered his hand over it and could feel the barrier preventing him from going any further.

"What potion is this?" Harry asked, looking at it as closely as he was able, "I do not recognise it. Not that I am an expert on potions in the slightest, but I've never seen a potion this colour."

"You wouldn't have seen this potion before, even if you were a master of the art." Tom informed him, "This is something that I created personally."

"Oooooh, really?" Harry asked, looking at the potion with even more interest than before. "What does it do?"

"It's a nightmare potion, it forces the drinker to relive their deepest fears as if they were happening at this very moment. What makes it so unique is that the potion uses the drinkers own magic to recall the memories." Tom explained and Harry looked at him impressed.

"Please tell me you suck at Quidditch." Harry begged and Tom smirked.

"Fortunately, the sport has never been my strongest point. Flying on the other hand
" He trailed off and Harry rolled his eyes; yeah he knew the man could fly unattended, and he would be teaching Harry how to do that.

"It's a bit like my nightmare curse, the one I tied in to the quill." Harry mused, "Though, mine will actually make the person feel the pain of their fear and eventually break their minds."

"That sound's delightful, you will have to show me that some time." Tom said with interest and Harry smiled slightly.

"Of course."

"The potion was merely a way to incapacitate the drinker enough so they fell prey to the infiri."

"A much more fitting way to go." Harry agreed. "How do you go about making sure they drink it?"

"Ah, I simply charmed the bowl. It cannot be broken, moved, transfigured, banished, burned, carved, vanished, shattered, charmed or anything you could possibly thinl of." Tom explained, "As for the liquid itself, it is the same as the bowl. It also cannot be poured away because it will just appear back in the bowl."

"You, my wonderful Dark Lord, are utterly vindictive." Harry said sincerely and Tom looked pleased. "Now, with all of that brilliant magic. How do we get access to the bowl?"

"Ah, well, I did put a safety feature in." Tom said proudly, "Here," he tapped the barrier of the potion and hissed at it Empty. The liquid drained away and Harry could see it collecting in the bottom of the podium, making the crystal look an eerie green.

"You are just showing off now." Harry pointed out, "Hey!" He looked in to the bowl and was astounded to see another locket lying innocently at the bottom, he reached in and grabbed it cleaning it with an absent wave of his hand.

"What is that?" Tom asked and Harry shrugged.

"No idea," He replied, "But it has a clasp." He flicked the locket open and a note fell out, Tom snatched it from the air and unfolded it, his eyebrows raising as he read.

"Well?"

"To the Dark Lord, I know I will be long dead by the time you read this message, but I want you to know that it was I who discovered your secret. I have stolen the real horcrux and intend to destroy it as soon as I can. I face death in the hope that when you meet your match you will be mortal once more. R.A.B." Tom read out, his voice oddly mesmerising and Harry had to shake his head to focus again.

"Regulus?" He confirmed and Tom nodded, a thoughtful expression on his face.

"Yes, but this note is most unusual."

"Oh?"

"Hm, simple things, such as the words and the phrases." Tom admitted.

"Why? I mean, it's a perfectly normal letter, and if I wanted to goad you I would write exactly that."

"Which is why this seems all the more strange." Tom told him, "You would write something like this, someone who, despite the fact they know and can play the game, would rather not and would want to bait someone simply."

"I don't understand." Harry said confused, "Isn't that the point of the letter?"

"Yes, but you also have to remember that Regulus was a pureblood Black. Even to his closest of friends etiquette was presented." Tom pointed out, "Think of something the littler Malfoy was write as a taunt." Harry's eyes lit up in understanding and then his eyes narrowed.

"I know I was candid about it the other day but do you think it could have been Dumbledore?" Harry wondered, "I know he doesn't know about his cave or even about the locket, but it is a possibility that he managed to get hold of Regulus and turn him against you."

"Yes, but without information what would be the use?" Tom pondered and Harry shook his head.

"Simple, it would cause a huge discord within your ranks. He would be controlling someone within your Elite, those who are your most trusted and privy to near all your plans. He wouldn't need the information, merely someone informed enough to disrupt your plans from the inside." Harry pointed out, "He knows of your paranoia, and it would have been crippling at the height of the war. I am guessing, and it is literally nothing more than speculation at this point, that he somehow ordered Regulus to 'disrupt the war to the highest degree' or something along those lines, to which, instead of causing discord amongst the ranks, Regulus went after you."

"That is surprisingly logical," Tom mused, "It could be plausible, and with this note it is like someone other than Regulus wrote it. We have no way of verifying any of this, however."

"We have no way of verifying this yet." Harry corrected, "Let me check in with Ray, she might be able to shed some light."

"I really need to know how she gets her information." Tom stated and Harry laughed.

"I'm not sure myself. I have my theories, and she'd probably tell me should I ask seriously, but I like the mystery that is Luna." Harry said with a shrug.

"It's certainly different." Tom allowed. "Now, to business."

"Right," Harry pulled out Paws' charmed locket and dropped it in to the bowl. Tom tapped the crystal again and hissed Fill.

"That will hold." Tom said and Harry nodded.

"It was rather anticlimactic." Harry decided and Tom rolled his eyes.

"For you, I'd say that was an achievement."

"Hey!"

"Don't bother denying it." Tom told him, "Come on, let's go back to the port. I need to check the enchantments."

"Yeah yeah," Harry shadowed them to the port and watched as Tom scanned his magical protections, he nodded once to show everything was in order and Harry took them back to the Tom's rooms in the castle.

"We merely have to wait for your elf to alert us to Dumbledore's actions." Tom said and Harry nodded. He was about to sit down when he tilted his head and smiled.

"I'll be right back." He vanished before Tom could even blink and he was back before the man had summoned his drink, only this time he wasn't alone. He has a small child sat on his hip, one he recognised as the first year Ravenclaw, Alina Dean, and Tom had to bite back a sigh of exasperation. Of course Harry would take it upon himself to look after the little girl, Tom didn't blame him, but he often wondered if Harry had any self-preservation skills whatsoever. Harry was smiling as he listened to the little elf speak, and then grinned when she noticed the different rooms.

"Where are we?" She asked him in wonder.

"We're currently in our defence Professor's private rooms." Harry told her, smirking as her eyes went wide and he spotted Tom roll his own.

"Wow, really? But what are we doing here and where is he?"

"Something came up and I've relocated until everything is sorted." He answered simply, walking further in to the room, "And you have eyes," she shot him a dirty look at the comment but looked around anyway, and her eyes became impossibly huge when she spotted Tom. She tugged on Harry's top urgently, her eyes not moving from the Dark Lord's form as the man calmly gazed back at her.

"Harry." She whispered and Harry had to hide his growing grin.

"Yes?"

"I think the Dark Lord is sitting on the sofa." She whispered again and Harry burst out laughing.

"I know." He assured her, smothering his laughter at her indignant expression.

"But what if he kills us?"

"You've been staring at him for the past five minutes, I think you're safe." Harry said, as he went toward the kitchen "Besides, he's a big kitty cat. He won't hurt you." The glare he got for that remark was enough to freeze a volcano, Harry merely shot him a sweet smile and pressed a kiss to his cheek as he passed, making Alina giggle. Tom grumbled to himself in parseltongue, promising to curse him in to the next century much to Harry's amusement.

"Now, the reason I brushed you off earlier is because I'm currently acting as if I am under a compulsion web." Harry explained, "Which means I'm going to be acting as if I'm in love with Ginny Weasley and think Dumbledore is a god amongst men." Alina wrinkled her nose cutely and shook her head.

"When can you stop hiding?" She questioned and Harry sighed.

"I really hope it's going to be this week." Harry stated, "I don't think I can carry on."

"Course you will, you're Harry." She said brightly, "Luna says that you're the most brilliantest person she knows, and that's you'll get through anything." Harry smiled at that.

"I'm thankful for both of your faiths." Harry said, "But this does mean that until Ginny is off my back you can't see me in the library, though you can still come to my rooms."

"That's fine, we were hiding from the Ravens anyway."

"True." Harry acknowledged, "Now, I didn't make these but my house elf is amazing." Harry offered her a brownie which he guessed Winky had sent up, seeing as nothing went to Tom or his rooms without her knowing.

"Ooo yummy!"

"You'll be alright until the Yule break, won't you. Just in case I'm stuck."

"Yeah, I'll be fine, and Luna is always around when I need her."

"Yeah, she's good at that." Harry agreed, "Alright then, Little Elf. Bed time for you, and make sure you have Professor Drield's essay in, I'm told he can be very mean." He mock whispered and she giggled as Tom glared over at them both. Harry made the shadows swarm around them and motioned for Alina to jump in, she did without a care and offered a wave before she vanished to outside the Ravenclaw common room.

"You are completely destroying my reputation." Tom informed him grumpily and Harry laughed. He leaned down to kiss the pout, which the man would deny was there in the first place, from his lips, allowing Tom to pull him on to his lap.

"You are still the all-powerful, fear inducing Dark Lord you have always been." Harry placated and Tom looked at him shrewdly.

"With you around that will change soon enough." Tom quipped and Harry offered his most innocent look possible.

"Then you must punish me, My Lord. For I shall truly not learn otherwise." Harry told him, his voice low and sultry. The smirk that curled on to Tom's face was positively sinful and Harry knew it was going to be a long night; he was completely ok with that.

Notes:

That's all for now, I'll work on the rest next week hopefully!

Chapter 41

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

Chapter 41:

"Don't make me leave," Harry begged desperately. He had managed to wrap himself around Tom like a sloth and he absolutely refused to let go, Tom was looking at him with amused exasperation as he tried to get dressed. It was lucky he was much stronger than most, and knew how to magically enhance his abilities, or he would not have been able to move around at all that morning.

"As much as I would rather you not leave my sight, you have to keep Dumbledore off your back and I have to teach." Tom pointed out, his anger at the situation apparent in his emotions.

"Why do you have to talk sense?" Harry demanded, still refusing to let go.

"Because your Miss Lovegood is currently not with us, which leaves me to make sure you don't get yourself killed." Tom pointed out and Harry huffed.

"Damn," He sighed.

"That also means you have to release me and stop acting like a sloth." Tom told him and Harry looked at him in betrayal, he uncurled himself and landed on his own feet.

"I'm sad now." Harry informed him and Tom kissed the pout from his face.

"Poor you,"

"I thought we had the conversation of you being nice to me." Harry said, thrusting his bottom lip out in exaggeration. Tom took it upon himself to bite said lip and Harry hissed slightly at the sting.

"I'm not a nice person," Tom said.

"Hm, we can agree on that." Harry allowed, "Leave the connection open somewhat today, as much as I wear my marks with pride, I like the ability to walk."

"I still may remove that ability." Tom decided, "But yes, I shall leave the connection open."

"Good," Harry pressed a light kiss to his lips and skipped towards the door. "Oh, there's a strong possibility that Ginny will believe I'll be sleeping with her tonight." And he vanished in to the shadows. Tom's fury was felt in his scar, but Harry was pleased to be feeling it rather than the nothing he felt yesterday. He didn't know how, but Ginny managed to attach herself to his arm before he had even reached the Great Hall and greeted him with a morning kiss, much to his disgust. She was extra chirpy that morning, prattling on about something that Harry didn't care to pay attention to, nodding in all the right places instead.

He walked her to her first lesson as usual, surprisingly happy about the searing lingering behind his scar as he left the hall. As he knew that it was going to be theory classes from here on out, he sat at the back of his lessons and let his mind wander at what was to come, there were so many variable that Harry was a mix between excited and fearful. If but one thing were to go wrong then it was game over. It was an exhilarating thought, Harry decided as he walked towards Herbology, he caught sight off Luna as he went and she nodded with a bright smile; Harry breathed in relief. It looked as if he was implementing one of the plans that night, he would just have to wait on the twins now. He caught up with Ginny at lunch and kept himself all smiles and laughs, assuring her that they would get some time to themselves later.

"It's a surprise." Harry insisted, laughing as she pretended to pout and latch on to his arm.

"But Harry
"

"Ah ah, nope. I'm not telling you." He said firmly, "You'll have to wait." She pouted some more but then huffed and relented.

"Fine,"

"It'll be really good," He assured, "I promise."

"You'll meet me in the entrance hall for dinner?" She asked and he nodded.

"Of course, I wouldn't miss it."

They parted after she kissed him on the cheek and he walked to defence, it was his last lesson which gave him time to prepare. Tom was, by the pounding behind his eyes, in a delightful mood and Harry offered the man a bright smile when he entered the classroom, to which he got a flare of pain and a flash of disdain. Even as a professor Tom was a little snappy, but it motivated the students to perform at the best of their abilities. Harry perched on his desk when the rest of the class piled out and raised an eyebrow at Tom's brusque question of his presence.

"Are you not a delightful ray of sunshine?" Harry questioned brightly and Tom hissed.

"Do not push my patience." He warned and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I fail to see why you are in such a mood, you know exactly who I am coming back to tonight." Harry pointed out and Tom sighed.

"I am well aware." He said, "But her presence is infuriating, she clutches you like a trophy."

"And you know its fake, on my behalf at least."

"Just get this over with," Tom sighed and Harry smiled slightly.

"Don't worry, Tom. Rita should have performed her usual magic by now." He said, "I'm hoping this will be the last day."

"Very well. See you tonight."

"Bye," Harry waved and headed to his room. Luna and the twins were there and they each gave him a rather frightening grin, which Harry returned with one of his own.

"Gentlemen, sister, how lovely to see you." He greeted smoothly. "I hope everything is going well."

"Oh more than well, Snake." The twins told him, their voiced darkly gleeful. "It's ready." Fred held out a small circular disk which was absolutely riddled in Runes and Harry grinned.

"Wonderful," He purred, "This is just wonderful." He took the disk and turned it over in his hands, it was incredibly detailed, beyond what he could understand but he had faith in the twins. "How long do I have?"

"It will last around twenty minutes for everything to happen." George told him.

"You'll need to leave when it starts and return just before it ends." Fred continued.

"Got it." He slipped the disk in his pocket and flopped down in his chair. "I've got some time before I need to meet her again, but there is nothing to be doing right now."

"Just relax for a bit," Luna suggested, "Until the article comes out there isn't much to be doing anyway, you've already looked over Paws plans and we don't need to meet until Dumbledore is out."

"Sounds like a plan," Harry decided, sitting back and closing his eyes. "Roll on the holidays!"

"You mean roll on the article to make sure the holidays are perfectly relaxed." Fred corrected and Harry snorted.

"That's the one."

"How do you think Rita did?" George asked and Harry shrugged.

"I highly doubt it can be any better than the last one, but its going to be bad. It is Rita, after all." Harry said thoughtfully, "I really cannot wait."

"I hope this is the last thing needed to get Dumbledore out." Luna sighed, "I hate hiding."

"I know, but it should be better after this." Harry soothed, cracking open his eyes to look at his sister, "And once he's gone, we're free in here."

"Thankfully,"

CRACK!

"Kreacher?"

"Master Harry is telling Kreacher to tell him when the old man is hearing about the cave." The house elf told him, his voice croaky as always and Harry sat up straight.

"Has he taken the bait?" Harry questioned in excitement and Kreacher nodded his aged head.

"Yes, Master Harry. And he was cornering Kreacher asking questions, and when Kreacher is answering them he was looking very pleased and he rushed off." Kreacher explained and Harry let out a whoop of joy.

"He's taken the bait." Harry crowed, "Oh this is so perfect."

"Now for the article and life is good."

"I can face the rest of this day with a damn skip in my step." Harry cheered, "Oh thank you Kreacher."

"Kreacher is happy to serve the Lord to the House of Black."

"Return to our house, Kreacher. Make sure they are not taking our things."

"Right away, Master Harry." He bowed and left and Harry wanted to jump around. Dumbledore would be pissed if he got removed from the school, but with this bit of information it would keep him distracted and that was exactly what they needed.

"So you just have tonight to deal with her and hopefully Rita pulls through." Luna said pleased. "You haven't got a letter yet, but I will let you know if you do and I'll send of an affirmative reply."

"Thanks! I'll finish the rest of my holiday work now before heading out." Harry said. "Get it out of the way." Thankfully, it really wasn't all that difficult, especially given the fact that he could write more like himself as it was to be handed in after Yule, and if Dumbledore wasn't out of the castle by the time then Harry wouldn't be in the castle. Once he put the finishing touches to his potions essay he got up and stretched, his back cracking as he did so.

"I'm going to head down." He told them, "Wish me luck,"

"Everything will be fine," Luna assured him, "Just keep to the time," Harry nodded and left, he ran up to the seventh floor and planned the room he wanted in the RoR, he tried to make it perfectly romantic but when he asked the room to do that it came up with something that looked oddly like Tom's study at Malfoy Manor much to his confusion.

He shook his head and shut the door, clearing his thoughts to everything and just pictured one of the scenes he had once seen on Lavender Brown's romance novels she had left in the common room. When he opened the door again he grinned, it was perfect for Ginny, a pretty, big bed with rose petals scattered on the covers, two big, artificial windows framing it. Harry shut the door and strolled down to the Great Hall, Ginny wasn't yet there but he leant against the wall and kept his eye out, though he didn't have to wait long before she came down with two girls he didn't recognise.

They spotted him and they did that Merlin-cursed giggly thing that only girls can do, he tried his best not to cringe or curse them and hitched on his best abashed smile. For a reason completely unknown to Harry, the two girls either side of Ginny sighed happily and left her at the foot of the stairs, where Ginny all but skipped over to him.

"Hey, Harry,"

"Hi, Gin. Good day?" He asked as she took his arm. He turned to lead her in to the Great Hall as she told him just about everything that had happened to her since she had woken up that morning, he nodded in all the right places and laughed when he was supposed to; please let Rita have something magical for him.

"But obviously the main thing that's been on my mind is my surprise." She finished dramatically and Harry laughed.

"I should hope so, I have it all planned out." Harry told her grinning crookedly and she beamed.

"I really can't wait!" She placed herself in his lap and Harry wrapped his arm around her and pressed a light kiss to her shoulder as he had seen the other guys doing to their girlfriends, his almost cried and as a wave of pure lava ripped through his scar and he masked his violent flinch as a motion to grab some food. He bit his tongue and locked away the pain and slowly released the breath he didn't know he was holding, Harry's eyes flickered up to the head table and sighed; his head was only going to become worse. He put his focus back on Ginny so he could at least pretend to listen to her, it looked, to the outside world, as if they were in their own little bubble, but Harry was acutely aware of the world around him. Ginny finished the last bite of her dessert and looked at him expectantly, Harry laughed fondly at her and stood up.

"Come on," He said, "Let's go,"

"Oh Harry, I'm so excited." She squealed. Harry brought her back up to the Room of Requirement and walked passed the wall three times, he covered her eyes and led her in to the room.

"Ready?"

"YES!" She cried and Harry let her see, she sucked in a sharp breath as she looked around the room. "Wow,"

"Do you like it?" Harry asked nervously and without warning she threw herself at him and attached her lips to his. He froze for a second before forcing his body to respond, she was very eager so it wasn't hard for Harry to push her back on to the bed. He slipped his disk out of the pocket as she tugged his robes off and he threw hers away, following his example, she ripped off the top half of her clothes and kissed him again. Harry pressed the disk to her back as she pushed her body closer to him and pushed magic in to it, he saw the Runes flare and he stepped back.

His eyes widened in shock as he saw Ginny's version of him continue where he left off, and Harry cast a hasty disillusion as the scene in front of him got heated. It was completely bizarre and Harry shuddered, he shadowed out of the room and directly to Tom's rooms. He had forgotten, in his haste to leave, that he had to begin with Ginny so his appearance was rather mussed, Tom's eyes snapped to him and they flashed furiously, Harry's scar seared and he swore Tom apparated over to him with the speed in which he moved.

The possessive feelings Harry was familiar with flared up with abandon and Tom was kissing him before he could even speak, his school shirt was literally ripped from his body, the buttons spilling everywhere and making him hiss as the fabric burn. Tom licked, bit and kissed all of the exposed skin he could, he wanted to remove all traces of that harpy from Harry, the thought of her all over the teen nearly sent him in to a blind rage. It disgusted him, and he loathed it.

"Tom," Harry gasped, "15 minutes,"

"Don't remind me," Tom growled, biting down harder than intended and drawing blood, Harry yelped and pulled Tom's hair. The wound was soothed by Tom's tongue before the man was kissing him again, Harry surrounded himself with Tom's magic and presents and let all thoughts of Ginny leave his mind. Tom pulled him back in to the bedroom not breaking his fierce kiss, Harry hit the bed and fell back, his breaths coming in pants and his lips bruised. He climbed up to his knees, his eyes dark and gaze heavy as he looked at Tom, a burning need in the pit of his stomach.

"I want you," Harry whispered, pulling him forward by the front of his robes. "I want you to fuck me." He kissed his jaw as his hands ran down Tom's chest removing the robes. "I want you to remove her from my mind," He bit down on his ear lobe making him hiss and sly hands ran up Harry's legs to rest on his hips. "I want you. I want all of you, Dark Lord. I want Voldemort."

As soon as the name had left his lips he felt a change, the hands on his hips went painfully tight and Tom's entire body stiffened. His head was abruptly yanked back by his hair and he gasped, his eyes found familiar crimson and found them glowing like freshly spilt blood. He was kissed harshly and Harry tasted blood, the Dark Lord climbed on to the bed pushing Harry down and pinning to him.

Turn around, Voldemort ordered and Harry complied instantly. He dropped to his hand when pressure was applied to his neck, his trousers were vanished and he felt the magic preparing him. Scream for me.Harry felt like he was being ripped apart and he screamed, but he wasn't given time to recover as the Dark Lord pulled out thrust back in sharply, this time hitting the bundle of nerves that made Harry cry out. His vision swam as pain and pleasure clashing, overloading his already frayed system, but he wanted more. Voldemort kept up his brutal pace, letting the cries and the pleas wash over him, egging him to do more, to push more. Anything to clear the foul, red headed harpy out of his teen's mind.

Voldemort! More, My Lord, pleas-AH! Harry felt his body arch and his spot was abused, he was reaching his edge rapidly, the heat in his stomach growing with each thrust and he came hard when Tom hit his prostate and bit down on his shoulder. The Dark Lord felt Harry constrict around him, the teen's back bowing as his release hit and screamed out his relief, and Tom followed his younger lover after a few more thrusts. Harry's arms shook and collapsed underneath him, he felt Tom drop down next to him once he had vanished the mess they had made, the man's hand gently resting on his bruised hip. They led there for a few moments, the only sounds their slowing breath and Harry relished in the moment with just the two of them.

"You will need to be healed." Tom murmured, his voice lined with a touch of concern, "You are bleeding."

Harry rolled over carefully, his entire body protesting the movement vehemently but he looked up at Tom with nothing but satisfaction on his face.

"It's fine," He said, not breaking eye contact, "I wanted it. You wouldn't have if I hadn't."

"Even still," Tom ran his hand down his spine slowly and down over his ass, Harry sighed softly as he felt the healing magic work. He kissed him gently in thanks and smiled, he leaned his head against Tom's chest just taking in the man's scent before he was forced back in to his current reality.

"I just need to check in with Luna before I come back." Harry told him, "She'll pass on the message if needed."

"That's fine." Tom replied, "You'll need to see if Skeeter has responded."

"I do, and I really hope that she has." Harry agreed. He pulled himself up with great reluctance and rolled his shoulders before climbing out of the bed. He raised an eyebrow at the bruises he could already see developing on his pale skin, but he didn't even bother to glamour them, it was a reminder for him and he needed the grounding. He pulled on his trousers, shrank Tom's shirt seeing as his was shredded, he pressed a kiss to Tom's cheek before leaving the room to grab his shoes and shadow back to the RoR. He stayed back until he watched illusion him lie down next to Ginny, her eyes closed in bliss and he took his shot, he darted forward, dropping his clothes as he went and slipped the disk from her skin making other him vanish. Ginny rolled over and curled in to his arms, sighing in apparent happiness and a disgustingly bright smile on her face.

"That was amazing." She breathed and Harry huffed a laugh.

"I know." But he was pretty sure they were thinking about different experience. They led there for a few moments before Ginny sighed and sat up, Harry cast a tempus and pretended to huff.

"He have to get going, I need to get you back to the tower before curfew." Harry told her, making sure to have the right amount of reluctance in his tone to keep her happy. She pouted but nodded in understanding, she got up, showing no shame in her body at all as she fetched her clothes. She didn't need to if he was being completely fair, she was a very pretty girl and she had a great figure which she kept up together with extensive Quidditch training. If she wasn't a conniving, manipulative, gold digging bitch, she would make someone a very nice girlfriend/wife, but that was exactly what she was so it was a moot point.

Harry collected his own clothes and threw them on without fuss, making sure she never saw his torso or back else she see his Rune tattoo that couldn't be glamoured, he didn't bother to neaten himself out because he wasn't planning on staying in his uniform. Once she was dressed Ginny latched on to his arm, Harry smiled at her and they left the room together. They didn't talk much on the way to the tower and for that Harry was thankful, he needed a break soon, he was just so tired of it all. He kissed her at the Fat Lady and made sure she was out of sight before turning on his heal and running back down the corridor, he found a shadowed archway and jumped through to his rooms where Luna was curled up on the sofa with Neville, the twins, and Bleach.

"Hey guys," He greeted, and they flashed him looks of varied concern.

"Well?" Fred finally demanded, when Harry didn't speak up.

"It was possibly the strangest thing I have ever seen in my entire life, but it went perfectly fine." Harry relented and they all breathed in relief.

"Thank Merlin," George slumped, "When you weren't back after half an hour we were beginning to panic."

"I had to walk her to the tower." Harry erased their worry, "It was fine, and she is very happy."

"So that should keep things pretty for at least two days." Neville said, "What about the article?"

"Ah," Luna gave them all a rather vindictive smirk, "Rita has delivered."

"Oh, let me see." Harry asked and Luna shook her head.

"Nope, this time I'm going to keep it a secret." She declared and Harry pouted.

"That's mean." He informed her and Luna laughed.

"I know."

"Hey! That's my line."

"Not today." She returned simply, "Now, go and relax and we will see you tomorrow in the great hall."

"Yes Ma'am," He saluted her and vanished. Tom was waiting for him and as soon as they got there the man was pulling him closer, Harry smiled and reached up to pressed their lips together. Tom slowly ran a hand through his hair and tugged his head back, he sensually trailed his tongue alone Harry's neck and revealed the bite mark that was hidden under glamour.

"You take a perverse pleasure in that mark." Harry murmured and he felt Tom smile against his neck.

"Do you want to see how much?" He offered and Harry knew, in the back of his mind, that it was a bad idea to answer in the positive, however, the words were out of his mouth before he could censor them. Tom looked way too pleased at that as he led him back to the bedroom and Harry thought he would really enjoy the rest of this night.

 


"Did you speak with Miss Lovegood last night?" Tom asked, he was sat up in bed but didn't seem to be inclined to move just yet.

"The article is in, but she wouldn't let me preview it so I honestly cannot tell you what's to come." Harry said with a sigh, "Not that it's going to take much to push the Governors now."

"No, he set himself up really badly. It's the first time I haven't seen him have a cover for himself ready."

"Especially given the fact that it was obvious what was coming."

"Minus the brutality of it. I do not think anyone was expecting that from our favourite journalist." Tom said with amusement.

"I still can't believe how harsh she was!" Harry exclaimed, "If I didn't hate Dumbledore more than anything else in this universe, I would feel pity."

"I have to agree." Tom allowed, "But he didn't help himself."

"No, he sunk his own ship there too." Harry grinned, "Poor thing."

"You are so convincing."

"I know. Don't I just sell it?"

"We need to get up." Tom pointed out and Harry huffed.

"Please don't remind me." Harry groaned, "I was doing so well not thinking about it."

"I apologise, but if anything does happen with the article I would like to be there witnessing it." Tom told him and Harry nodded.

"Yeah, there is that." He sat up with a stretch, "I'm getting in the shower. And no," He turned around and pointed at Tom, "You are not joining me."

"Such a wasted opportunity." He complained and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Have you forgotten last night already?"

"No, merely interested in continuing it."

"Insatiable." Harry stated and Tom leered at him.

"I know."

Harry went straight in to the shower and let the water wash over to him, they were close and at the same time they were no-where near finished. Harry had yet to go and see Remus properly, so he didn't even know what was going on at the wolf sanctuary so they would have to see if Moony could get to their next meeting. He had been spending most of his time working on his magics and solidifying all the information gathered for the ministry.

His clothes were waiting for him when he got out and he threw them on, he dried his hair by running his hands through it and left it how it fell. It needed cutting badly, he had removed the lengthening charm he had put on it back in Malfoy Manor but it had still managed to grow out and longer. It was starting to irritate him if he was honest, it was reaching his shoulders. He grabbed his bag from the sitting room and waited for Tom, now that Dumbledore had caught the scent of the fake Horcrux, Harry was desperately hoping the man was going to go hunting instead of focussing all of his energy on Harry. He was in the middle of putting his glamour up when Tom swept in to the room already looking like his professor self, and Harry found himself rather thankful that the man had to wear a glamour while teaching. He would hate to have to gouge out so many students' eyes for eyeing Tom. Harry shook his head, frowning at that thought; where had that come from?

"What's wrong?" Tom asked, noticing the look.

"Strange thoughts." Harry said, "My mind has been doing that recently."

"Oh? Perhaps it's stress." Tom suggested and Harry smiled.

"Yeah, that's probably it." He agreed. "Let's go and see what Rita has got for us."

"Are you going to be meeting with your friends?" Tom inquired and Harry nodded.

"Yes, and I am hoping to get Moony here too." Harry replied, "That way, we can discuss what's going on with the wolves and you can check in and see how your people are working with Moony."

"I can get him from the Gryffindor rooms, if you wish?" Tom offered, "I will need new books soon, I can go up today."

"Thanks." Harry cast a tempus, "Now, the paper is due in 10 minutes, so I can go down with a smile on my face despite having to deal with her."

"The one redeemable feature," Tom muttered. Harry laughed and waved as he stepped through the shadows, he came out by the Chamber of Secrets and continue on down without missing a beat. The entrance hall was rather busy and Harry spotted Ginny waiting for him, he hitched on a smile as he made his way over and allowed her to snuggle in to his arm. They sat down for breakfast and Tom had somehow beat him there again, the man had engaged Snape in conversation about something but his eyes flicked to Harry every now and then. Harry had just taken a bite out of his bacon sandwich when the owls flew in, Hedwig came without a letter, she just wanted her own bacon and Harry was only too happy to feed her. He was showering her in affection and many of the girls around him cooed as she butted at his hand, Harry smiled, he did so adore his owl.

"You are so lucky to have such a pretty owl." Ginny commented wistfully and it told Harry all he needed to know about Ginny's character when Hedwig paid absolutely no attention to the compliment.

"Thanks, she is the best owl in the world." Harry agreed and Hedwig straightened up proudly, much to his amusement. Ginny took the paper that got dropped off in front of him and opened it, her gasp of horror told Harry that Rita had achieved another headline.

Torturing Teachers!

Children forced to endure torturous detentions,

Boy-Who-Lived Victimised!

Where were Fudge and Dumbledore?

Hogwarts School of Witchcraft and Wizardry is often regaled as the greatest school for magic in Europe, possibly further. With its rich history, number masters of their fields, and wards created by some of the greatest witches and wizards known to man. Everyone knows this. So last year, when the Minister announced that he was sending his very own undersecretary to handle the apparent low standards of our great school, it caused a number of controversial opinions.

Minister Fudge backed his decision to interfere in the school process amidst allegations that Headmaster Albus Dumbledore was losing his touch. Dumbledore faced repetitive defamation from the ministry last year for backing up Harry Potter's announcement of the return of He-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named, which were later discovered to be truthful and the ministry failed to do anything about the situation, choosing to bury its head in the sand instead. It has come to light now that, despite Fudge's raving review of the late Dolores Umbridge's performance, not everything is as it seems. An inside source has revealed that instead of aiding our great school to rise above the others, Umbridge used her ministerial power to create a tyrannical ruling that drove students to rebellion. To keep the students in line, she issued an unprecedented amount of detentions, and it was there in which the true horror began. Umbridge's method of punishment seems benign, simple lines to establish what the student had done wrong, a boring and tedious task lasting hours to make sure the message was clear. But the punishment becomes a whole lot more sinister when it is revealed that she forced the students to complete these lines with an illegal blood quill. Hour after hour, our students, our children, were forced to write in their own blood to satisfy her bloodlust, and if that wasn't enough to turn your stomachs, readers, then picture this. Official detention records, from inside the school itself, reveal that students as young as eleven years old were subjected to this barbaric punishment repeatedly.

There was one person who was subjected to Umbridge's relentless tirade more than any other, and it was all because he tried to warn the world of the danger we were facing. Harry James Potter, now 16, was targeted by Umbridge with accusations of lying, attention seeking and other crimes that we all know now to be completely false. The records reveal that Mr Potter received an astronomical 126 detentions, lasting between 4 and 7 hours long, from Umbridge during her time at the castle and he received no aid. Told to keep his head down and to keep quiet, our saviour suffered her hateful wrath for trying to help us all, and there was no one there to help him when he needed it. Aren't our children supposed to be able to rely on teachers and the ministry? How are they supposed to know that there is someone there for them when this happens and nothing is done about it? 

It begs the question, ladies and gentlemen; where was the Great Albus Dumbledore? He was headmaster for most of the year, and this was happening under his crooked nose? Was he unknowing, or did he choose to ignore the pleas of the students in an effort to save his own reputation? If he can allow so many to suffer under his command, then is he safe to keep in such a position of power? Dumbledore has been revealed to have been hiding so many secrets, can we add the suffering of our children to that list?

And what of Fudge? Is it possible that he didn't know what Umbridge was up to, despite being the one to put her in the position and constantly sing her praises? Doesn't he have the power to grant wavers on illegal, non-tradable items, such as the blood quill? Or does it lie more sinister than that, and he was the mastermind behind the whole scheme? Merely wishing to silence those who could upset his precious position of power. Are our children safe with people like these in charge? We can only guess and hope for what the future might bring.

Rita Skeeter, Daily Prophet Correspondent.

p.2 for pictures of the blood quill damage.

p.4 for the detention records.

Well. That ought to get people's attention. Harry blinked at the paper a few times, it was so honest that it seemed all the worse. It would force people in to action, it had to! A yell of fury shook his from his thoughts and he looked up to see Dumbledore being swarmed by a large quantity of red letters, each of them approaching their time at different moments much to Harry's delight. Dumbledore banished them when they came, but he looked panicked, he had to know how bad this was looking for him.

"How did she even get this information?" Ginny demanded and Harry shook his head.

"I have no idea!" He exclaimed, "I haven't seen or heard anything about this getting out." And he was also secretly a Chinese man named Keith.

"What do you think is going to happen?" She asked worriedly.

"I really have no idea." Harry said, and he actually wasn't lying.

 


Lucius Malfoy swept in to the meeting room with all the arrogance, pride and elegance that was needed to be a Malfoy, his head was tilted at the perfect angle to make him seem approachable but still make people feel about an inch tall; it was an art he perfected. His morning was already a good one, he had received three frantic floo calls from Fudge already and now he had been called to an emergency Board of Governors meeting; very few things could make this day any better for him. As per usual, the room settled when he entered and Lucius looked around the room. Lord's Davis, Spinett, Smith and Abbott were sat there in a visible rage and Lucius bit back the urge to smile, this was going to be very interesting and he walked forward to take his seat at the head. It really had not taken him very long to worm his way back in to his positions, and the spot at the Governors was so convenient when he wanted to aggravate Dumbledore.

"Lucius, clear this up for us as Skeeter is known to exaggerate." Lord Nott spoke evenly, and Lucius refrained from rolling his eyes; him and his vendetta against Potter-Black.

"I had the same belief." Lucius began, his voice calm, even, "However, this time, it seems Ms Skeeter has actually left out details to lessen the severity of the happenings within the school last year."

Shocked silence met his words and he counted back in his head from 5, which is why he wasn't surprised when Lord Peter Smith jumped from his seat and started shouting.

"I will have Dumbledore's head on a pike." He roared, spittle flying everywhere in his apoplectic rage, "I've supported him for nearly my entire adult life, I've never questioned his odd methods but this is too far. He is done! No longer is he fit for headmaster."

"Peter, you need to calm down." Lord Gamp told him and Smith span to face him.

"Calm down, CALM DOWN!" He exploded, "That man, that disgusting, odious man allowed my son, MY SON AND HEIR, to be abused with a blood quill." And that would explain his violent reaction, Lucius surmised, and it would also account for the foursome's dark expressions. All four of them had children in Hogwarts last year that were taught by Potter, which meant, all of them were punished for it for weeks afterwards. Of course, the main thing was all of the people here had children in Hogwarts, which is why they were on the Board in the first place, and no one in the room wanted to even contemplate their child being subjected to such a device; Lucius included.

"Fudge has to answer as well." Lord Davis stated and there were murmurs of agreement, and then the man smiled a truly nasty smile, "Lord Greengrass is less than pleased." Which Lucius took to mean Hadrian was on a war path.

"Before we make a decision on what to do about this situation, because something does need to be done," Lucius said, "We will need to review the evidence before us." He pulled out the folder Harry had given him and allowed it to be passed around.

"This is the official documents of everything Skeeter claimed, and as you can see, she left a few things out." Lucius told them all and then sat back to watch the inevitable happen. There was shaking heads and angry mutters as the detention records, the hospital records and the photos were revealed before them, but if that wasn't enough, he needed to twist the knife.

"We also must consider the recent articles about Dumbledore." Lucius put in, "This allegation has been proven to be true, so we have to look at the others. I have found the arrest record for Percival Dumbledore's attack on the muggle children." Here he pulled out the folder that he had "borrowed" from the DMLE records, "I have found a small article detailing the fight at Kendra Dumbledore's funeral where Aberforth physically attacked his brother." He produced a paper and indicated the small article that had taken him a while to find. "I discovered the lack of medical records for Ariana Dumbledore, showing she was never at St Mungos, and other than a marriage certificate, I can find nothing about Kendra Dumbledore."

"Dumbledore's indiscretions can no longer be ignored." Lord Ogden stated, his voice cold and stiff. "We have to primarily think of the next generation and this illustrates that Dumbledore no longer has the school, and its students', best interests at the forefront of his mind."

"So we vote?" Lucius asked.

"Yes, we vote."

"All those in favour of removing Dumbledore as headmaster of Hogwarts, effective immediately?" He questioned the room.

"Aye." Came the unanimous reply and it took all of Lucius' self-control not to grin like the cat who got the cream, it was finally happening, Dumbledore was finally getting some of his just deserts. Lucius summoned their official documentation parchment and began meticulously filling out the form, the name, the reason for the action of dismissal before it got passed around the room to be signed and stamped by the twelve Lords.

"Let us journey to the school, gentlemen." Lucius said coolly, rising to his feet and grabbing his cane. "We must act now."

"Yes. Dumbledore has already been allowed too much leeway." Lord Ogden agreed. The twelve Lords rose and headed towards the end of the wards, it was quiet between them, a stony silence resting heavily around the group as they span on the spot and disapperated. When they appeared in the Hogsmead village, there were early signs of the businesses opening and people already discussing the paper. As they made their way towards the school it was obvious they had been spotted and Lucius wouldn't be surprised if it had already gotten back to the ministry that they were there.

They were admitted to the school without fuss, the wards recognising their positions and allowing them through. Lucius felt excitement build within him when he walked in to the entrance hall, the students were coming down to lunch and they were looking at the Governors with curiosity, the Malfoy Lord spotted his son coming from the dungeons with Izar's son and the Zabini heir.

"Draco," He called and his son turned to face him, the smile that came to Draco's face when he saw him was positively evil and Lucius felt him own face mirror his son's before the Malfoy masks came in to place.

"Father, how very pleasant to see you." He greeted.

"Yes, official business." Lucius said and Draco nodded.

"I shall let you continue. I would not want to keep you from your duties." Draco said, but they both know he wanted to get a good seat in the great hall to watch the show. Lucius led the Governors in to the Great Hall and took a twisted amount of pleasure when Dumbledore spotted them straight away, the old man knew, by the looks of things, but he was trying to keep his grandfatherly image in place. Lucius was really going to enjoy this.

 


Harry jumped violently when the connection between him and his friends flared to life at the exact same moment his scar also seared, he sent a jab of annoyance at Tom and opened the connection between his friends.

Yes.

GET TO THRE GREAT HALL RIGHT NOW. They yelled at him together and Harry blinked.

I'll get right on that. Harry assured slowly, wondering what all the fuss was about.

Hurry. The Governors have just arrived. Harry literally slung his book to the side, made sure his glamour was in place and threw himself through the shadows, falling out on the first floor and running all the way down to the Great Hall. He slipped in and just caught sight of Lucius at the front, making his way to the centre of the hall. Harry dropped down at the Gryffindor table, his whole body thrumming with hope and excitement as he looked at the Governors.

"Ah, gentlemen," Dumbledore greeted cautiously, "How may I help you?"

"It has come to the attention of the Governors that, Dumbledore, you are no longer able to correctly and professionally handle the position of Headmaster of Hogwarts School or Witchcraft and Wizardry."

"Surely we can discuss this in a calm manor. Let us adjourn to my office, I am sure we can reach a decision that with only strengthen us all." Dumbledore said pleasantly, but Harry could see his eyes were cautious.

"This is not time for discussion." Lord Smith sneered.

"Come now-,"

"Our decision has been made." Lord Ogden stated.

"By Order of the Board of Governors, effective immediately, you are hence forth removed from your position as Headmaster." Lucius announced, his expression not giving away how happy he was to be informing the old man of this. Harry sat there unmoving, he feared that should he move too look at his friends, Tom or Dumbledore then his entire façade would break and he would get up and start cheering madly. He kept his eyes on the Malfoy Lord even as the hall burst in to speech, some were cheering, some were yelling in anger and some were merely gossiping, and Harry only looked away from Malfoy sr when Dumbledore rose to his feet in anger.

"You cannot do this." He stated firmly, his voice cold and his eyes dangerous.

"I assure, Dumbledore, I can." Lucius returned, "It has been decided, by the Board, your conduct of this school has been getting increasingly worse over the years, and this latest one has finally become too much."

"It is merely a scandalous story." Dumbledore insisted and Lucius finally broke his emotionless mask to flash an ever so slight smirk.

"I have records of all allegations, including detention records, photographs and medical records to correspond." Lucius countered, "To subject our children to blood quills is something even I never thought you would sink to."

"You cannot remove me from my position, I am Albus Dumbledore. I have been Headmaster of this school for nearly 50 years."

"Dumbledore, you have already been removed, we have already passed the action. We are merely here as a formality to inform you of what has happened." Lucius told him shortly.

"You cannot make me leave."

"You are lucky not to be facing child endangerment charges." Lucius stated, "Should you refuse to leave, the aurors shall be summoned and you shall be brought before the Wizengamot for formal charges of breach of position, trespassing, multiple counts of gross negligent child endangerment and child abuse joint enterprise." Dumbledore went pale at that. He knew he was backed in to a corner, if he refused to go then the aurors would arrest him, he could then escape but he would be on the run and away from the castle and would have to remain hidden, or he could leave willingly and legally be active.

It would enable him to search for Voldemort's horcrux without having to dodge the ministry at every movement, and he could use the Order more actively. He wouldn't be able to keep a close eye on his weapon, but the Weasley girl would be sticking extra close to him so he would receive regular updates. It was problematic but it was manageable.

"Very well, gentlemen. I see you have left me with no choice." Dumbledore said calmly, "But remember this, I shall not be gone for long." He walked swiftly around the table and down through the middle of the Great Hall to meet Lucius, Malfoy, ever the gracious Lord, motioned his arm for Dumbledore to go first and lead them out. The entire Great Hall was in utter silence as they watched the Great Albus Dumbledore be escorted from the Hall dismissed from his position. The doors swung shut and no one in the hall seemed to move, even the teachers were frozen in utter disbelief.

Suddenly, as one, the teachers rose and all but ran out of the side door and that's when the hall burst in to sound. It was louder than ever before, reminding Harry of the Quidditch stadium as everyone seemed to be screaming at everyone, he didn't know what to do. This was actually happening, Dumbledore had just been relieved of duty and Harry felt his entire body sag in utter relief; they had done it.

"What just happened?" A voice asked from next to him, and Harry almost groaned when he remembered Ginny.

"I really don't know." Harry said and he wasn't even lying. When it seemed as if the hall was getting out of control, McGonagall strode in with Snape and Flitwick next to her and the sound in the hall plummeted faster than what should have been humanly possible.

"The Board of Governors have decided that Professor Albus Dumbledore should be dismissed form his position, so from this day forward, I am Headmistress." She announced and there was a round of applause, especially from the Gryffindor table and she offered them a tiny smile in thanks. "Within the next few days, as per Hogwarts tradition, the new Deputy Headmaster shall be selected and it shall either be Professor Flitwick or Professor Snape." Silence met the last name and Harry found himself torn between wanting a decent Deputy Head or a strategic one.

"Classes will resume as normal." She told them, "Of you go," the students filed out at their own speeds, everyone talking about what had happened with Dumbledore and Harry split from Ginny without even kissing her goodbye. He all but ran up to his rooms and fell in, the twins, Venom, Bleach and Luna were already there, he flashed a grin just as Badger came in and Swift and Paws appeared in a swarm of shadows.

"It actually happened." Swift stated, his voice and layered with disbelief. They all looked at each other in a sort of stunned excitement before Harry spoke.

"Dumbledore is no longer Headmaster, he's gone."

They burst in to cheers, there was a lot of hugging and an even bigger cheer went up when Swift finally kissed Venom in the middle of the group.

"We did it, we actually did it." Bleach exclaimed.

"Skeeter is going to be receiving so many gifts." Paws declared, "I'll buy her freakin Mansion if she wants."

"We have nearly a week of Dumbledore free time on our hands." Harry said, "This is the best day ever."

"I see you are already celebrating." A voice noted from the door.

"Tom!" Harry all but threw himself at the man in excitement, and Tom couldn't find it in himself to complain about having an excitable teen wrapped around him. "Isn't this the best news?" Tom lowered Harry back to his feet and just kept an arm around him, neither of them noticed the knowing and slightly worried looks his friends shared.

"It is pleasing." Tom agreed, "I have just spoken to Lucius, and what Dumbledore is unaware is as he has been formally dismissed unanimously by the Governors, he is unable to ever take back the position as Headmaster of the school." Harry's eyes lit up.

"I bet he's going to love that when he finds out."

"I am saddened that I will not be able to a witness his reaction. Lucius is heading to the ministry so his information shall be with us this evening." Tom told him and Harry nodded.

"Well folks, we have lessons but we have breathing room for sure." Harry said delightedly, "And it means I can finally go back to my experiments full time, I'm on the verge of a breakthrough for an edited spell."

"What spell?" Bleach asked.

"I can't tell you that, where would be the surprise?" Harry returned and Bleach glowered.

"So it isn't just me you do that to?" Tom said amused.

"He takes a perverse pleasure in being aggravatingly vague." Paws assured him, shooting Harry a less than impressed look.

"I'm not even sorry." He said without blinking, "Though, I don't know what you are complaining about, I'll be sending my Arithmancy work to you for verification – just like I always do."

"Yeah, but you know Hermione, if she doesn't know everything she believes the world is slowly coming to a tragic and painful end." Swift put in with a sly look and she threw a stinging hex at his face, lucky he blocked it but the thought was there.

"I have to teach now," Tom told Harry, turning the teen so he was facing him. "Are you still wishing to meet?"

"Yes, so can you get Moony for me?"

"Of course, I should have the information from Lucius then so we can discuss that also." Tom said.

"Good, I'll get mine and we'll come straight there."

"Until later then,"

Harry kissed him goodbye and went back to his friends, who were giving him rather odd looks.

"What?"

They seemed to blink and their expressions cleared, Harry raised an eyebrow and looked at them in question.

"Meeting?" Luna asked, her voice confused as she covered their lapse.

"Oh that. We need to meet and just run through everything. Last time was an emergency and only focusing on how we were going to get me out of the shit hole Dumbledore dropped me in." Harry explained, "I was just asking Tom to get Moony because we haven't heard from him in a while and I know he's been out on his own hunt and Tom said that he should have the information from the ministry later too."

"Oh, ok then." Paws answered, "It makes things easier because I have a few things I wanted to go through and I know Venom has as well."

"Yes, I believe I've had a bit of breakthrough." He agreed.

"Brilliant, so we'll meet here and go to Tom's rooms to speak with him and Moony." Harry said.

"We are going to be meeting with the Dark Lord." Bleach hedged, sounding slightly worried.

"Yeah, Tom's interested in how we work."

"When did he mention that?" Swift asked and Harry shot him a confused look.

"He didn't say anything, but I can tell he is. It's obvious, he just would never say it."

"Ah ok. Well we have lessons now so we'll meet after dinner?" Bleach suggested and everyone nodded.

"Have fun, everyone, and do try to look disappointed." Luna said with a smirk and Harry laughed.

"My darling sister," Harry said, "I need a favour before I leave."

"Sit down and I'll sort it out, it's looking a bit of a mess anyway and if you hadn't of asked I would have cut it in your sleep." She told him primly and he laughed.

"Thanks," He sat on the table and didn't move as she did her work, he trusted her to make him look good and if he didn't like it he could magically make it grow and start again. She eventually tapped his shoulder and he got up rolling his shoulders, he turned around and Luna held up a mirror for him to inspect. Harry smirked in to the mirror, she had cut it so it was just grazing his neck, using its natural disorder to allow it to fall just over his scar and around his ears.

"You are the best." He told her, kissing her cheek.

"I know," She agreed, "Now, off you go to lesson and do keep your excitement in check around her."

"I will, I promise." Harry assured her before he grabbed his bag and left to face the rest of the day.

 


It was a positively stunning day, Lucius surmised as he walked through the halls of the frantically buzzing ministry. He would have to pick his wife up some flowers in celebration, perhaps even take her out, yes, that was much more appropriate, and some new jewellery too. After years of trying to remove Dumbledore from his powerful positions he had finally legally removed the old fool from his most dangerous one, and he felt liberated.

As he waited for the elevator to arrive, he couldn't help but overhear many ministry personnel practically slaying Dumbledore and Fudge, it made him want to smirk in delight. Despite the rough start, Lucius truly liked the Potter-Black teen, he was more cunning and manipulative than he could have ever expected and have a vicious streak that was almost on par with his Lord. His work against Dumbledore in just these four months had managed to overthrow the old man, get a competent person at a key point in the ministry, put Fudge on his last legs, and save nearly the entire country's werewolf population.

Lucius would love to watch the teen's team at work, he had seen them, the ones he knew were to be working with Potter-Black, and if he hadn't known about what they were doing then he would have never even suspected them. The mudblood girl and the Weasley boy were in the middle of the table, the girl with her nose stuck in a book and the boy stuffing his face with atrocious manners, Potter-Black at the very end with the Weasley girl hanging on his arm looking like he was with the love of his life and finally the Lovegood heiress was sat with a staring vacantly up at the enchanted ceiling.

It was rather astounding how they controlled every single part of their movements as well as plan everything else to receive results such as this. But Lucius wasn't about to complain about his luck of understanding, especially as he was striding towards the minister's office watching the lesser beings around him scurry out of his way. He was the Lord Marques Lucius Malfoy after all, and for him to be here of all days was bound to be interesting. Lucius spotted Hadrian Greengrass, just the man he had come to see, and the man cut a direct path towards the blond, an expression of burning fire and his entire body radiating fury, Lucius wanted to grin. If there was anyone he would be wary of ever challenging, other than his Lord, it was the man who now stood before him.

"Lucius," He greeted tersely.

"Hadrian," Lucius returned, "How goes the ministry?"

The man's eyes flashed before he answered, motioning for the Malfoy Lord to follow him.

"About to go under a very abrupt change." Hadrian stated, waving his wand to open his door and flicking it when they both had entered. The office was large and the wards on it were extensive, showing how much so when they flared to life.

"I see you have read the latest?" Lucius offered, taking the indicated seat.

"Oh I have seen it alright." Hadrian snapped, his angry leaking through now out of the eyes of the public. Lucius allowed himself a small smirk and Hadrian's eyes narrowed. "Potter-Black I assume?"

"Yes, and unfortunately there was a lot left out. None of it, minus the spiel that it came from the top down, was fabrication. I have the evidence if you wish?"

"No, I don't need it. And that 'spiel' that you mentioned, isn't so exaggerated after all." Hadrian flung a scroll of parchment down on his desk for Lucius to read and the blond took it eagerly. He unrolled it and felt his eyebrows climb up his head when he saw the signed and sealed authorisation from Fudge to the use of restricted item and the written confirmation that it was a blood quill. Whatever it was, Lucius had not expected this. He hadn't actually believed that Fudge was that stupid to allow Umbridge to use a blood quill, and on children.

"What is wrong with the man!?" He exclaimed, dropping the scroll back on the desk.

"He has finally gone too far." Hadrian declared, "I have found so many administrative errors streaming from his office, dodgy dealings and pay offs. And as if that wasn't enough, a Lord to a Noble and Most Ancient House was thrown in Azkaban without a trial or even a Priori Incantatum."

"He's on probation. He is probably scraping to save his pathetic career." Lucius pointed out and Hadrian sneered.

"No, I do not believe that he should be given a chance to even try." Hadrian murmured, his eyes narrowed in thought and Lucius sat forward.

"Oh?"

"No, the man is as good as gone. I will use everything in my power to make sure that deplorable, piteous man is out of his position by the next session." Hadrian decided, "A vote of no confidence will be called, and I shall use the Yule circuit to make it happen."

"It is ambitious." Lucius said.

"Perhaps." He mused, "Can I count on your support, Lucius?"

"It would be my utmost pleasure, Hadrian." Lucius agreed without even thinking. "I am currently proxy for another house as Narcissa is to Black, we will both vote with you."

"Thank you, my friend." Hadrian said graciously. "Now, what brings you to the ministry?"

"Ah, rather the same thing. Only, I have already been successful." Lucius told him rather smugly, and Hadrian raised an amused eyebrow at his tone.

"Is that so? And just what has this latest scandal caused to put you in such a joyous mood?"

"I have just come from Hogwarts itself." Lucius began, a shark-like smirk appearing on his face. "There has been a change in positions." Hadrian's eyes widened slightly before he chuckled.

"Dumbledore had been pushed from his post." He said pleased, "I bet he was absolutely delighted with that fact."

"Oh yes, he was positively glowing with happiness." Lucius agreed sarcastically, "We had to list the charges he would face if he didn't passively leave the castle immediately."

"An immediate dismissal, they must have been displeased."

"Lords Smith, Abbott, Davis and Spinett were the forerunners, but it was Lord Smith who settled it. The man was livid."

"He has an heir does he not?" Hadrian confirmed and Lucius nodded.

"Yes, one that happened to be on the receiving end of said blood quill."

"His support is guaranteed then." Hadrian noted.

"I would say so."

"So McGonagall has taken over, who is in place as deputy?" Hadrian asked.

"It has yet to be decided, but it is between Severus Snape and Fillius Flitwick."

"How is it decided?"

"No one knows, it's just Hogwarts protocol and the Board has to approve." Lucius said with a careless wave. "Either would be approved due their qualifications and their long term careers at the school."

"Yes, both would never allow the utter dregs that Dumbledore pulled." Hadrian allowed.

"Things are becoming blurry." Lucius said, "Dumbledore is out of the castle but not out of the spotlight and he is still dangerous."

"There lies the problem." Hadrian leaned back on his chair, "Though I am sure your associates are planning."

"No doubt they are." Lucius acknowledged, "However, we also have to consider what the opposing side is planning. Dumbledore won't be idle and he has been pushed in to a corner, he will already have a plan."

"Yes, I see the dilemma and it is a great one, however, not one we will be able to accomplish anything with yet."

"Indeed."

"During the circuit will be the best time to gather information." Hadrian said.

"Most definitely, and I am looking forward to this year's circuit. We have new players."

"Yes, the recovered Lord Prewett and discovered Lord or Lady McKinnon. We received their R.S.V.P also."

"I was surprised that Lord Prewett answered in the positive so suddenly. Even this summer I received a negative reply."

"Perhaps he is doing as we will be, gathering information. A lot has changed within the past four months, and Yule is prime time."

"I will be interested to finally be able to meet him."

"Yes, though I think I have more of an interest in the mysterious McKinnon." Hadrian said thoughtfully, "They have not voted for anything since they have been discovered and gained another seat."

"Yes, I have been curious about them, I thought they'd attend the session after their seat gain." Lucius confessed, "Your ball has claimed the opening spot."

"Yes, and given the current happenings I am most pleased." Hadrian remarked, a ghost of a smirk on his face, and Lucius chuckled.

"I can imagine." Lucius conceded, "We have claimed the final slot again, though Narcissa has made changes to the menu."

"So close to the event? Naomi has everything sealed already."

"I do not interfere, Hadrian."

"Wise decision."

They both shared a shudder at the thought of their respective wife angry with them, it wasn't a pleasant thought. There was a knock at the door and the Weasley boy entered when called, he started when he saw Lucius Malfoy but composed himself and looked at Hadrian.

"The minister would like to arrange a meeting with the entire of the ministerial staff." Percy told him primly and Hadrian raised an eyebrow.

"Very well," He said and motioned for Percy to leave and turned back to Lucius. "It seems I have to go and visit our beloved Minister."

"I do not envy you, friend." Lucius said rising to his feet. "Until later,"

"Until later."

Lucius left the office swiftly, he needn't speak to Fudge, the man would be losing power faster than he could predict so it would be a useless waste of time. He needed to shop for his wife and then he had a meeting with his Lord to attend; the man would want to know of Hadrian's decision.

Chapter Text

Chapter 42:

"So what are we doing tonight, Harry?" Ginny asked him and Harry sighed.

"I have tutoring tonight, Professor Drield asked if I wanted to do extra and seeing as what happened with Professor Dumbledore I'm worried so I agreed." Harry explained and she looked frustrated but nodded.

"I understand," She said reluctantly and Harry threw a grateful smile. They finished eating dinner and split at the entrance hall, Harry went directly up to his rooms and bounced in, Paws, Raven and Venom were already there and Harry threw them all a bright smile.

"Ah familia!" He greeted cheerfully, in a terrible Spanish accent.

"So you are obviously in the most terrible mood possible." Paws noted sarcastically, a smirk on her face.

"Oh yes, this day has been absolutely tragic." Harry agreed, dramatically dropping down on to his chair and letting his glamour fall.

"Loving the new hair, Snake." Fred called, walking in to the rooms followed by his twin and Bleach.

"Luna's magical hands." Harry said with a grin.

"Of course it was." George threw in with a grin of his own, "You'd end up shaving yourself bald."

"Hey!" Harry exclaimed indignantly, "I would have had some hair left." The twins laughed at him and the others shared amused looks. Swift fell out of the shadows panting, his skin, even as his glamour dropped, was flushed and he looked ruffled.

"What happened?" Paws demanded as Swift sat up and tried to catch his breath.

"My psychotic sister." He said and that explained everything.

"What did she want?" Luna questioned and Swift rolled his eyes.

"Complaining about Dumbledore being removed and forcing Harry's attention of off her just when they were becoming so close." Swift shook his head, "She was certain that she will be coming back from Yule with an engagement ring, or at least a promise ring."

"Good Merlin," Bleach sighed, "She's a head case."

"I'll say!" Swift pulled himself to his feet and rolled his shoulders. "I left when she started on what Manor she would decide she would live in. It's actually quite-,"

"Why in Merlin's name would you leave the common room without me?" Badger demanded, striding in to the room and directing a fierce glare at Swift.

"I had to save myself." Swift defended. "I have to go home with her."

"We're supposed to be friends!" Badger yelled at him, "She was latched all over me the instant you made a break for it. I swear she's lining me up for her next target, in case Harry dies before they marry!" the entire room froze as they contemplated that.

"You know, that isn't actually too hard to accept." Harry pointed out slowly. "Has she been around you at all this year, Nev?"

"In the beginning, before you got hold of me it was every day and then when you started paying more attention to her then not so much." He answered and Harry looked around.

"We have discovered her back up plan." He said.

"It isn't too much of a surprise. Neville was the other Prophecy child and from a wealthy and Noble background." Paws agreed.

"Oh sweet Circe." Neville whispered, "That's so disgusting."

"Welcome to the club, Nev." Harry said brightly, "Where love potions, compulsion charms and webs are a frequent thing and people plan to kill you for your inheritance."

"I need a drink." Badger complained, throwing himself down on the sofa.

"Not yet, we have to go to Tom." Harry said with a laugh.

"Get me the bottle." Badger decided and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I fail to see the need for caution."

"Oh, I don't know
 perhaps because he's the most powerful man on the planet, he's curse happy and terrifying." Bleach ventured and Harry looked at him blankly before laughing.

"Terrifying, Tom? HA!" He waved him off, "Please, the man is no more terrifying than I am." This time it was Harry who received the blank looks.

"You do know that you are scary as fuck, don't you?" Venom asked him slowly and Harry blinked.

"What?"

"Never mind, we just reserve the right for caution," Paws told him, "Though, I am not too worried, I have seen him argue with Moony multiple times now."

"See, Paws gets it."

"Paws is weird." Swift stated and she hit him. "Ow!"

"Come on you lot, let's go to Tom's." Harry said getting up, "Everyone got their things?"

"Everyone but you." Luna said with a laugh, handing him his folders.

"Oh yeah, thanks. I forgot about these." Harry said with a sheepish smile. "Paws, Swift, grab people." Harry took Luna and Badger while Swift grabbed Venom and Bleach and Paws got the twins. Harry landed in the living room with his friends and Tom's attention snapped to him.

"You had your hair cut." He said straight away and Harry smiled.

"Yes, what do you think?"

Tom eyed him for a second and Harry noted the touch of darkening in his eyes and his smile brightened. "I knew you would like it." He missed the looks of confusions his friends shared as he walked over towards Tom.

"Did you hear him say anything?" Swift whispered to Paws, too low for any but her to hear. Paws shook her head, he eyes watching every move her best friend and the Dark Lord made and her mind couldn't seem to grasp what was so obviously in front of her.

"Guys, set up yeah?" Harry said, waving his hand to expand the coffee table and then he flicked his wrist to conjure up a few more chairs before turning back to Tom, who had banished his sheet of parchment. "You spoke to Lucius yet?"

"Not yet, he should be here any moment."

"Perfect, we have loads to go through." Harry said, dropping himself down in front of Tom's chair and putting down his own folders. "Moony?"

"He was here
"

"Hey Cub." Moony literally popped up from nowhere and Harry craned his neck to turn and blink at the man.

"Oh
 Hi!" Harry smiled at the man as he ruffled his hair and took a seat next to the Dark Lord.

"You ok?"

"Better than ok with what happened this morning." Harry said and Remus grinned.

"Yes, I imagine so."

Harry was cut off as the floo flared to life and Lucius Malfoy stepped out, the man blinked when he saw the collection of people and Harry saw the man start at the differences of appearance in most of them.

"Ah Lucius, you are just in time. Harry, his friends and his uncle were just about to meet, perhaps you would like to sit in?" He lightly tugged at Harry's hair to make him look back at him and Harry nodded to say that was fine.

"Thank you, my Lord." Lucius took the seat on the Dark Lord's left and flashed a smirk at the Harry.

"May I say that today was one of my proudest moments." He told him and Harry grinned viciously.

"I am equally as happy to say that I got to watch you formally remove Dumbledore from his position."

"How goes the ministry?" Tom asked him and Lucius's smirk stretched.

"Our current undersecretary has performed some of his own investigations and uncovered some very interesting happenings at the ministry." Lucius began, "Not only many administrative errors and there have been underhand dealings and pay offs."

"What else did he find?" Bleach asked his father and Lucius looked positively evil.

"A signed and sealed authorisation permit from Fudge for the use of the Quills."

Luna and Hermione gasped in horror as Harry, Ron, Fred, George and Neville immediately grabbed their hands, each holding a permanent reminder of the offending item.

"This
 changes things." Paws said slowly.

"What has Greengrass said?" Swift questioned, "If he has found this he would have a plan."

"He is calling for a vote of no confidence and he has asked from my support. He intends to use the Yule circuit to gain the backing."

"He'll have it for sure." Harry stated and his friends murmured their agreement.

"Yes, many of the DA were from houses with Lords or Ladies in the Chambers." Neville added, "That and your plans."

"We couldn't have planned this better." Harry said with a pleased smirk, "I thought we would have to raise it, and I was hoping that it wouldn't come down to that as we need to keep face."

"Yes, there could be a potential backlash." Neville agreed, "Though it can be controlled much easier with this,"

"That and a neutral like Greengrass calling for the vote will impact the severity even more so." Venom put it.

"Today has given us leeway," Harry said, "We gotta use it to our advantage. Dumbledore's immediate eyes are gone and we have it on good authority that he will be suitably distracted while on the outside of these walls."

"He took the bait?" Tom inquired and Harry nodded.

"Yes, I forgot to mention it. I had other things on my mind." Harry apologised.

"At least we will know where Dumbledore will be during the Yule holidays."

"Yes, it's going to be when you get in to the Wizengamot that it going to be the problem." Fred pointed out.

"He is going to know that you are out of his control and its going to throw everything he knew in the air." George picked up.

"Making him unpredictable." Moony finished, "And an unpredictable Dumbledore is not a good thing."

"But we have no other choice." Paws threw in as if it was obvious. "We need our own eyes within the Wizengamot."

"Without our own eyes we can't analyse behaviour, we won't be able to see what alliances are strong and which ones we can shatter for our own benefit for definite." Swift picked up, sitting forward to pull out a sheet of paper. "We know of every house within the Chamber, and we have a relatively up-to-date list of the alliances between what houses. There are some that have the potential to be broken and should if the chance should arise. But if we get in there ourselves we will be able to scout others."

"Which ones?" Lucius questioned and Swift thought for a second.

"If we can get Smith away from Shacklebolt and Diggory, it will form an almost instant alliance with Davis and by extension Greengrass which will strengthen the neutral/dark power. Then there is Meadowes, while a lower house, they are set to gain seats due to their age and their expanding estate through their experimental charms business, and at the moment they are with the lighter side of things.

"If we break them from Weasley, Roswell and Johnson, that would lessen that growing influence. Johnson has recently reached Noble and Most Ancient status which means we cannot afford for Meadowes to gain another seat while allied with them. But, and this depends heavily on the revelation of the McKinnon House, but Meadowes would work well on building up the Lovegood alliances and then later the McKinnon house."

"I'm guessing you have also been playing with pairings also." Harry said with a grin and Swift nodded.

"Of course."

"How do you intend to end the alliances?" Moony questioned and Swift smirked.

"Smith should be easy enough. Shacklebolt is allied with Dumbledore and when it comes to it, Shacklebolt with choose Dumbledore believing him to be the high power and Smith won't be willing to be associated with Dumbledore after the quill incident. Smith's kid was in the DA with us." Swift explained, "And Diggory has been completely in Dumbledore's corner since the incident with his son, which with end things with Smith in an instant."

"Nicely planned out." Paws complimented and Swift murmured his thanks.

"The other houses?" Bleach pointed out.

"Their ties with Johnson are the strongest, however, the Lord Meadowes is unaware that it was the Lord Johnson who handed Meadowes son and heir in to the DMLE and let him take the fall for a smuggling business they had set up." Swift told them, "If he were to find that evidence it would create a blood feud between the two houses and Meadowes would seek an alliance with a house as far away from Johnson as possible; in steps Lovegood. The Lovegood House swore not to be allied with a Johnson since the collapse of the Astral Museum they had partnered in, Johnson got in to gambling debt and was using Museum funds to cover it. Because of this, they are the perfect candidate for an alliance, and by extension, Potter and Longbottom. Once we're at that step, we shall have to see if the new McKinnon intends to pick up old alliances, in which Meadowes are."

"Where do you find this information?" Lucius demanded and Swift offered him an innocent look.

"I do not know what you mean." He said. "It is common knowledge."

"Of course it is." Tom drawled amused.

"Even then, with our own eyes within those Chambers, we are still going to be pitted against past actions." Neville pointed out, "My delightful grandmother wrote to me yesterday, she was bragging about the new connections she has managed to make recently, with a side of how I could never measure up to my fathers image and how, because of my irrefutable failures, she is being forced to conduct their house within the Wizengamot, else I sink them in to the ground."

"I see she is just as warm and comforting as she was back in school." Tom muttered in disgust and Harry laughed.

"You went to school with her?" Neville said in shock. "Dear Merlin, I expect that would have been an experience."

"I mentioned to Harry that I never understood the marriage between her and Herbert Longbottom." Tom said to him, "She has always been a vicious woman."

"She has not changed." Neville grumbled.

"She didn't happen to brag about which connections she has made?" Paws wanted to know and Neville offered her a dry look.

"Of course she did." Neville said, "MacMillan, Fawley and Abbott are now full allies with the House of Longbottom."

"It will be oh such a shame when she never gets to use them." Bleach sighed mock despondently.

"Such a burning shame." Neville agreed.

"What do you mean? Do you intend to break the alliance?"

"No, I intend to kick her out of her seat on the grounds of breach of trust due to her withholding the heirship and then Lordship from the heir apparent. In punishment, she will be stripped of her title and banished to Longbottom Lodge, in the Welsh highlands."

"It's as if f I wasn't looking forward to the Wizengamot after Yule already." Lucius murmured in utter relish to himself and Harry chuckled.

"If you take those alliances for your own, you still have the power." Moony said to Neville, "If Greengrass is calling for a vote you can back him with an extra bit of power."

"That is true, we don't know what the outcome will be for certain."

"We needn't worry about the vote." Luna spoke for the first time in a while, "There are at least seven different Houses that intend to call for the Vote, so even without the circuit, Greengrass will have backing."

"How could you possibly know that?" Lucius questioned surprised.

"Father, you must understand, when Raven says something she is always right and you should just go with it to save your sanity." Draco told him in resignation, "Otherwise you will walk around with a permanent headache."

"Lovely." Lucius grumbled and Luna offered him a serene smile.

"So down to business." Harry said, focusing all of their attentions. "We have had a major success but we still have many things that need to be worked on, so lets put this free time to work, yeah?"

"I'll start." Paws said, pulling forth her folders, "Blood banks."

"Yes, so I looked over your workings and they are great." Harry said, "I averaged out the number of vampires and decided that the building we could set this up in wouldn't need to be that large at all."

"Which is good, because if we needed something like the Peverell Manor then we would marginally screwed." Paws said with a grin and Harry laughed.

"Yeah, we got lucky there." He agreed, "We need more information from the Vampires directly before we can work on anything concrete. I have a few temp contracts that could be of use, but Tom said he would send he would send an envoy with the vampire contact to try and set up a meeting between me and the head vampire of the Noapte Sange Clan, that would enable me to find out this would work from the vampire perspective, and, if it is plausible, then how we should continue."

"That will give us so much insight." Paws said in excitement. "We can put the shell plans down until the meeting then?"

"Yeah, we've both been through everything we have and we do have more things to be focused on." Harry told her, tucking the sheets to the bottom of his folder.

"I've hit a dead end with Rabastan on the wards." Swift spoke up, he tossed Harry a scroll and the teen looked it over. There was a list of wards, some he had never heard of and others that were to be expected. There was also a key as to how powerful they were and if they were active or dormant, it seemed that Dumbledore had truly screwed with the wards because some of the wards that should be full power were not even a quarter of what they should be. One of them would be the ward that was built to stop dangerous artefacts from entering the castle walls, it should have stopped the Mirror of Erised, it should have sensed the diary at alerted the headmaster so an inspection can be carried out to see if the item was dangerous to the students. Another, which was completely down, was the creature ward, it should have stopped the troll, the basilisk from leaving the chamber, the acromantula within the forest, but Swift had noted that it was almost dead rather than just unpowered.

"Well, this is shit." Harry stated flatly, handing the sheet up to Tom and Swift grimaced.

"That's only the ones we've been able to unravel without Dumbledore noticing. Even with him gone its going to be difficult because he's taking power from the wards somehow and has a permanent connection with them. We are missing something, I know it, but I cannot guess what it is." He pulled at his hair in frustration.

"These wards are concerning, but your time scale has opened up considerably." Tom said to Swift.

"Thankfully,"

"I have a side project for you and Rabastan." Tom said and Swift looked at him in shock for a few seconds before his expression cleared and he nodded.

"What is it?"

"I have been researching the ministry, from the very beginning. I have found that it was a Potter and an Avery who case the first wards and Runes on the entire building. You and Rabastan will discover the entirety of the wards and confirm if blood connection has any power towards the ward and Rune structure, or if they have to be over written entirely." The Dark Lord explained and Swift took a quick note.

"We can use the turners to get this done while still working on the school wards." Swift decided, "I'll run some of my ideas past Rabastan before we set out for an actual analysis. Though, would it be possible to see the passage where it mentions the creation of the wards and Rune structure."

"Here." Tom summoned the book and passed it over to Swift, "Page 284,"

"Thanks," Swift flicked it over and ran his hand down the page, he pressed a sheet of parchment to the book before taking it off and reading it over. "There,"

"Did you just copy the page?" Lucius questioned, surprised and Swift nodded.

"Yes, Snake was kind enough to create a page copying spell for those of us who can't hiss at things." Swift said absently, "He still hasn't made one to bypass the copying charms for entire books though, has he? No. It's very inconsiderate."

"My sincerest apologies, oh man who clearly does not have magic so is obviously unable to make his own damn spell for his own damn books." Harry snapped and Swift raised an eyebrow in confusion.

"Why would I bother making a spell? We have you."

"Don't bitch at me then." Harry told him with a sniff. "Besides, I have my own spells to be working on! And, I'll have you know, I do not hiss at things. It's a language."

"Sure, that's what you want us to think so we don't have you committed." Swift muttered and Harry crossed his arms with a pout.

"And to think I was going to buy you the Cannons for Yule." Harry muttered, turning his head away. Swift's head snapped up and he looked at Harry with huge eyes.

"You were?"

"Yes, I already had the contract draw out and everything." Harry said lightly, "But if you were thinking about having me committed then it must have been a mad idea."

"NO! I mean, I was only joking. You are as sane and brilliant as ever." Ron declared, his voice cajoling.

"Hm, I don't know
 you were pretty mean. Not even Tom is that mean to me." Harry pondered, "I will have to see how I feel once I'm over this great betrayal."

"Dear Merlin," Venom muttered, "They are like a pair of children arguing over quills."

"Hey, Baby Widow, don't make me hurt you." Harry warned and Venom held up his hands.

"I'm friendly." He said and then blinked, "What did you just call me?"

"Baby Widow." Harry replied and Venom gave him a look of utter disbelief.

"What?"

"What?"

"You just
"

"I didn't do anything."

"You just said I-."

"No, I didn't." Harry denied and Venom shook his head.

"What are you-,"

"You sure?"

"What?"

"I don't know."

Venom sat back looking as if he was questioning his own being and his friends laughed at him, Paws shot Harry a reproving look, which lost its effect due to her amused eyes.

"You are terrible." She told him and Harry's expression was innocent.

"Don't know what you mean."

"Before you break him anymore." Swift broke in with a grin, "I'll have to get Paws and Bleach's input on Runes just as a backup."

"That's fine, it can be put in place of my heir search." Paws said, "I'm at a bit of a block at the moment, so I have a bit of time."

"Ray, how goes your search?" Harry asked and she frowned, something he never liked to see.

"I pulled another line and it's strange, I am missing something, like I have forgotten something." She answered and the entire group looked at her in concerned horror, Harry was on his feet and casting diagnostic spells on her before anyone could blink. He summoned one of his parchment sheets and read it over quickly, it was a very old medical spell that he had stumbled across in one of the English Flamel journal that scanned the aura to see any inconsistencies or foreign magics on the person, revealing any spells on them that should and shouldn't be there. Luna was clean, there was a darker blue thread running all through her aura but it melded in with hers perfectly so he put it down to Luna's uniqueness. Harry gently took her hands in his and looked her in the eye, he did a brief surface scan to make sure he couldn't detect anything before squeezing her hands.

"Have you eaten anything other than things provided by my elves?" He asked gently, his worry evident and it was only growing as he saw a touch of fear in his sister's eyes.

"No, she gets me everything."

"Do you have any blank spots, or remember doing something which you wouldn't normally do?"

"No, and when I'm not at school I am with Moonrise and Cissa."

Harry steeled himself so he didn't lash out, if anyone had did anything to his sister he would gut them and mail the rest to their family.

"We will find out what's going on." He assured her, "Do not let yourself panic and I will get an elf to track you."

"Thank you."

"Why such concern?" Lucius inquired, and Harry looked at him seriously.

"My sister never misses anything." He stated, walking back to his seat, but Tom pulled him down on his lap and he didn't protest. "She knows everyone's darkest secrets, and most hidden desires. When she says something is going to happen, it is going to happen and if she's missing something then it means it was taken from her."

"I see," Lucius said but it was obvious he was still sceptical. Luna turned her piercing blue eyes on the senior Malfoy and seemed to freeze him in place.

"You doubt me." She stated and Lucius didn't reply so she continued. "Foolish, of course."

"It is not possible for you to know so much about everyone. You are only one person, you will miss things, it is inevitable." He said reasonably and Luna continued to gaze at him steadily.

"Your older brother died when he was four months old. You have two other siblings, a sister and a brother. Your mother was attacked and killed when you was 9 years old because your father snubbed a man. It caused him to send both siblings to live with your French cousins when they were both young and they do not know that you are their brother, only a cousin with a strong relationship. You're father never got over her Death and later died of Dragon Pox, because he simply stopped fighting. The blood supremacy that you often illustrate is only half of what you truly feel. You do not believe those of lesser birth should be killed, but you have a fierce disgust of muggles. You love your wife more than life itself. Your greatest and most proud achievement do date is your son. Your ingrained ideas of family is what drives you. If anything were to threaten your family, even someone you knew was a greater power, even your very own Lord, you would do everything in your quite considerable power to end the threat." Luna's voice never changed from the airy tone she usually spoke in, but it sounded all the more haunting. Lucius was looking at her in something akin to fear and Harry smirked.

"Do not doubt my word, Lucius. You should know by now that I don't make a habit of lying." He murmured. Luna blinked, finally breaking the connection and allowing Lucius to shake himself off.

"How-," His voice was rather unsteady as he tried to calm himself down.

"She's Luna," the entire group answered.

"I see," This time, he sounded like he understood completely. Luna tilted her head and placed her feet on the ground as she sat forward.

"Dumbledore has left some very unhappy staff members in his wake." She told the group, as if nothing untoward had happened.

"Oh?" Bleach looked at her with a raised eyebrow and Luna smirked, "It seems that Dumbledore performed a huge cover up of the use of the quills. He told McGonagall that he was overseeing Umbridge's actions, which is why she told all of her Lions to keep their heads down and get on with it."

"I bet she is absolutely delighted." Moony said with a snicker. "He should have covered all of his bases."

"She is highly displeased, and questioning everything she ever believed in Dumbledore. She doesn't seem to be able to get over the fact that he allowed students, innocents, to be harmed in such a way." Luna mused, "It could be a turning point, if she loses her faith in him then it removed his main influence at the school."

"This is good." Paws said, "Swift, can you work with this?"

"Already have an idea." He said, "Depends on how fast Snake and create a reversed version of the notice-me-not charm, directed at staff only."

"I can have it to you by tomorrow evening." Harry told him and Swift grinned.

"Simple guilt tactic. No matter what, McGonagall does try to do right by her students, but she has always had too much to do." He explained, "So, we use a reversed notice-me-not on the blood quill scars, and we cast it on every student we know who has them and make her, and the rest of the staff see them."

"Perhaps, on the later stages, add in a mild illusion, have the scars flash back to look as if they are fresh before turning back to scars." Harry suggested and Swift nodded.

"Even better. That should push her over, to have a daily reminder, especially on the little second years, of what she, by proxy, allowed to happen should steel her resolve."

"I like it, I can get to work using turner time and you can plan who, what and where the spells are going to be cast on each of the scarred students." Harry decided.

"Got it, I'll just need a copy of the detention records."

"Done."

"Now, before we go on, I have a quick question." Swift said and Harry raised an eyebrow. "What's for dinner?" He asked and Harry blinked.

"Excuse me?" He said and then he got other strange looks.

"You are not cooking?" The twins said in alarm and Harry looked at them as if they had lost their minds.

"I was supposed to be cooking?" Harry said and his friends looked scandalised.

"We're celebrating." Bleach pointed out.

"And this is the first time we've met all together in a while." Venom added.

"Why wouldn't you be cooking?" Badger questioned as if it was obvious.

"So none of you have eaten?" Harry confirmed and they all shook their head, even Tom, Moony and Lucius. "For the love of..." He jumped to the kitchen, literally jumping through the shadows, and called for Winky to bring him a list of ingredients, his mind mentally going through something that would enable him to feed everyone and keep himself involved in the conversation. Harry tossed off his robe and pulled up his shirt sleeves, he tapped all of the counters to make sure they were clean and summoned some equipment.

"Can we have something nice for desert too?" Luna asked sweetly and Harry mentally cursed, knowing he couldn't say no.

"Sure, give me ten minutes to prepare everything and I'll be back over. I know what I can do." He told them, "Warn a guy next time." He started prepping a cheesecake, using vanilla extracts for the cream and ginger snap biscuits for the base. He set it to cool before prepping a lasagne, chopping and mixing quickly and using magic to fo multiple things at once. He made the white sauce using butter, flower and milk before stacking it in two ceramic dishes and putting it in the oven. He then prepped the garlic bread for sides and then mixed brown sugar, half-and-half, butter and salt in a saucepan over a medium heat, whisking it to make it thicker before adding a touch of vanilla and letting it thicken. He poured it in to a serving boat and put a light cooling charm on it before finally going back to the group.

"Not bad, Snake, only took twenty minutes." Bleach said and Harry stuck out his tongue from his place back on Tom's lap, where he had kicked his legs over the arm.

"Shut it or I'll lace your food with muggle drugs." Harry warned and Bleach shuddered as Venom, Paws and Moony laughed and Tom smirked.

"Back on topic as we wait to be fed." Badger joked and Harry pouted, "The sanctuary is now fully self-sufficient with ingredients, and it will only be extremely rare potions that will need to be sourced from outside the walls."

"Well done, Badger." Harry complimented, "How goes your botanical garden?"

"It's beautiful, its everything I could ever want."

"Well we all know Badger is going to die in a Herbology related accident." George quipped and Badger threw a stinging hex at him.

"How goes the rest of the sanctuary, Moony?" Harry questioned.

"It is moving perfectly." He answered, "The arrival of new wolves has calmed right down, we have a few stay foreign wolves arrive and the odd British wolf, but no big numbers like the sudden crisis."

"Brilliant, is there anything that you need?"

"No, Greyback has moved their full time, he has circulated all the coins we have at our disposal and believes his time is better spent looking after the wolves we have saved. Territories have been made between the biggest packs outside so there have been no arguments, all the Alphas have come to an understanding and the entire front courtyard has been labelled a free zone, where anyone can go at any time." Moony explained, "Moonrise, Raven and Cissa have performed an amazing feat within the medical wing and all patients have now been released to go back to their families or packs. Moonrise has returned to creating wolf potions, Luna keeps track of the medical wing and introduces wolves who have been without amenities for so long back in to domestics, and Cissa has seemingly adopted a following of star-struck cubs who follow her around and she sits and reads stories to. She is also teaching them basic customs, etiquette and Latin."

"I knew she would like the job." Harry said delightedly.

"Oh yes, that is a given. Her group has grown from what it originally was, and it's quite adorable to watch little three year old cubs going on and on about 'Miss Lady Cissa'." Moony laughed and Lucius sighed in a self-suffering sort of way.

"Dear Merlin, I would stake she adores that." He muttered and Tom threw him a smirk.

"You did chose to marry a Black, Lucius." He pointed out smugly, "They have never known the word humble."

"That is an unfortunate truth, My Lord."

"Excuse me, Mr I-Breed-And-Keep-Rare-Albino-Peacocks-And-Have-Them-Prance-Around-My-Gardens-To-Illustrate-How-Rich-And-Important-I-Am and self-styled Lord I-Have-An-Ego-So-Large-It-Often-Appears-As-A-Physical-Representation-Around-My-Head-And-Has-Now-Expanded-So-Much-It-Actually-Has-It's-Own-Name – its called Jeffery in case you are wondering!" Harry interrupted in one large breath, "I hardly see you as the definition as humble either, so hush up." The pair of them looked at Harry in indignation, the teen raised an eyebrow as if to say I dare you to dispute and wisely, neither of them did so Harry turned back to Moony.

"How goes your other mission?"

"Difficult. My pet Death Eaters have been collecting information but its snippets here and there. Dumbledore's control is a lot tighter in France then what we had believed and the Spanish and Italian countries are split." Moony told them.

"I'm not surprised." Harry said, "Try getting information in Germany, they may not have Dumbledore's influence personally, but you can put money on the fact that there would be many willing to sell the man out. Take inventory, there will be those within the German Government who will have direct lines in to the other countries and it will only take a number or an item before they will spill their guts."

"That's a really good idea." Moony said impressed, "We can re-evaluate our plans and use this as an opener."

"Once you have information you can plan multiple things." Harry said and Moony nodded.

"Yes, I'll meet with them and we'll get on that." Moony said, "I am hoping to have good news to pass on to Alpha in regards to the wolf situation. Everything else in the sanctuary is going so well, it's just this lingering threat."

"Yes, it is understandable." Harry agreed, "Bleach?"

"We have finally, with the help of Severus and working sometimes three times with myself and the twins, got an excess amounts of potions." Bleach told him and Harry smiled pleased. "We actually have an active stock built up and we're finally able to be comfortable with the amount we have now in ratio to the wolves."

"Wonderful, this is great work guys." He complimented them.

"Thanks. It gave me time to work on the laws more." Bleach said to him, he pulled out a few sheets of parchment and banished them to Harry to read. "We now have a rough draft for two of the werewolf laws that we could pass, using your new classifications of course."

"Really?" Harry exclaimed in surprised, looking over the sheets of parchment.

"Yes. The first is a baseline law, making it illegal to discriminate from hiring a werewolf over another just because of race. Its going to be the build up on many work related wolf laws that Badger and I are working on together." Bleach explained, "We split up the laws so Badger and I were working on the wolves, and Paws and Venom were working on the vampires."

"I see," Harry read the first law, shifting the sheet so Tom could read it too, "This is really good."

"It's not finalised obviously, but it has the basics."

"It will be the foundations of what we want to create." Badger added, "We have an idea for a tax deduction to those who hire other races, particularly wolves as they are out for the moon. Though, there should be a massive drop in problem if Greyback manages to get all of the wolves to accept their wolf."

"It's sort of a work in progress at the moment. But at the same time, it's a bit of a catch, I mean, the wolves are shunted so they try and push away their wolf making them volatile, and so they can't get jobs because they haven't accepted their wolf, and they haven't accepted their wolf because they were called monsters and shunted." Harry said, "Stupid, close-minded idiots." He handed the first law to Moony to look over as he turned to the second one, "What's this?"

"That is the second law is a mix of two, and it is making it legal for werewolves to declare their marriages and register their children like everyone else." Bleach explained and Harry nodded.

"Yes, that would automatically put them on the Hogwarts list if they then later show magic." Harry mused, "I like it."

"That one, especially, needs cleaning." Badger told him, "But I want that one put through as soon as possible."

"Yes, it shouldn't be necessary that we need a law," Harry mused, "It might even be possible just to abolish the restriction and have it open, just have your written outline published to alert everyone that it is now completely legal."

"That is an option." Bleach agreed, finally collecting the laws once everyone had read them.

"These are really good," Moony told them, "I know they'll be well received."

"As for the other laws." Venom cut in, pulling of some parchment of his own. "Paws and I have been working on the vampires and we are nearly in the final stages of making it legal for vampires to roam all the magical districts. We have isolated the stipulations in which the vampires would have to stick to, but it's simple things like no snacking on people in the alley."

"Brilliant, this should be easy enough to work with." Harry said, reading it over. He passed it around and got up to check on the food, making sure everything was cooking. He grated some cheese and sprinkled it on top of the lasagne before returning to his friends.

"Other than the laws," Venom was saying, "The final members on the list were removed and Raven already took the memories. Now, its just observation."

"Ah blood and chaos, sounds delightful." Harry said. "Food will be done in around ten minutes"

"Oo, what are we having?" Swift asked interested.

"You'll have to wait and see."

"You're evil." Swift decided and Harry nodded.

"I know, I've been taking lessons on Tom so I can become super evil." Harry responded seriously and Tom jabbed him in the side as he draped himself over the man and kicked up his feet.

"Leave me out of your arguments."

"So you are not evil?" Harry ventured and Tom looked at him as if he was insane.

"Of course I am."

"Exactly," Harry's said primly and Tom rolled his eyes. "Gentlemen, you have been rather quiet."

"We have finalised our cubes." George told him, throwing one of the offending items in the air and catching it with the other hand.

"They are in the second stages of testing," Fred picked up, "They are coming along brilliantly."

"Great! They will be very handy if we have to go in to battle." Harry told them pleased, "How intense are they?"

"The same potency as the Mirror," they answered, "Though, we are hoping to be able to enhance the compulsion just a little bit more."

"Is that possible without it expanding on to those we don't want it to touch?" Paws questioned and the twins shrugged.

"That's the problem, we don't know."

"Can you not do the experiments on yourself this time?" Harry asked and they grinned.

"Of course."

"You are still going to self-experiment, aren't you?" Badger said with a sigh and the twins nodded.

"Yes."

"Why bother with the lie?" Swift wondered and they shrugged.

"Make Snake feel better."

"Ah, yeah, ok." He nodded and Harry rolled his eyes.

"What else have you been doing?" He asked and they gave him smug smirks.

"We, that is to say my twin and I, have been very successful recently." Fred told them all.

"We have managed to successfully bug the DMLE." George continued and Harry sat up.

"What?"

"Yeah, we have it all the offices and the corridors bugged." Fred said, "And we have it wired up to collect every single word said within the considerable range of our bugs."

"It's simple." George unfolding something and led it out on top of everything. "This shows the location of the bugs, and it transcripts everything that has been said."

"Congratulations." Harry said brightly, "This is truly amazing."

"I have to agree, gentlemen. It is an incredible feat." Tom told them and they bowed.

"Thank you."

"How did you manage it?" Lucius asked impressed and the twins shared a look.

"Ask us no questions and we shall tell you no lies." They chimed and Lucius gave them an unimpressed look but didn't ask again.

"We have also replaced the old bugs with our updated ones, we can now, roughly, tell you who said what. There have been a few mistakes on overlapping conversations but in general we have everything." Fred explained.

"We now have full intel for the Burrow, HQ and the DMLE which we monitor." George said with a smirk, "And we saw a very interesting conversation between Dumbledore and Kreacher."

"Do share." Harry said with a smirk of his own and George chuckled.

"He got extremely excited, he started sprouting ideas out loud, talking about retracing childhood steps and getting another foot in front of 'Riddle'." George read out. "He then started muttering that he should have seen it before because if Malfoy had one, so he is now toying with the idea that perhaps more followers have items."

"If this would have been a year ago he would not be incorrect." Tom mused, "Bella had one."

"Lestrange, really?" Harry asked in disappointment and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Bella is possibly the most powerful, the most dangerous and the most loyal follower I have. If there was anyone I knew that would protect something I needed, it would be her." Tom told him firmly and Harry shrugged.

"I suppose she is different now she hasn't got a curse on her." Harry relented. "Did he say anything else of note?"

"Not really, only that he would go back to watching your properties just in case, but then we knew that was coming." George said with a raised shoulder.

"Yeah, we knew he would be doing that." Harry agreed.

"So we're now at the shop, bouncing ideas around for our creations and working at the Sanctuary." Fred finished and Harry nodded.

"Cool, I don't think there is anything pressing for you guys at the moment." He said, "Though, we are on a break now so we can pick up whatever. Remember though, while we are free to relax, nothing comes out until after Yule so try to keep personalities and glamours up."

"Of course, it won't be difficult for the last week." Paws said airily.

"Yeah, we've had four months of shit, we're good." Swift agreed and Harry laughed.

"Yeah, it seems a bit ridiculous to remind you."

"We know what you mean though." Paws assured.

"However, we are going to be executing the Wizengamot plan in to action. With the Vote secure, it will speed everything up and we will need to strike." Harry told them and all of his friends looked excited.

"What plan?" Tom asked and Harry merely smiled and kissed his cheek.

"Who's up for food before we go over Yule plans?" He questioned and his friends were at the table provided by the castle before he had even finished his sentence. "I assume they are all hungry." He got up and went to the kitchen, shooing Tom and Lucius over to the table also and giving Tom a look that made sure he didn't argue. Harry summoned the plates and threw in the prepped garlic bread, he took out both his lasagnes and rested on the counter to plate up. He called Winky to get two bowls of salad and directed her to put them in the centre of the table, he plated up the food and then pulled out the garlic bread, presented it on plated to be put in the centre of the table also. Harry waved his hands and levitated all the plates to move with him, he set them down at the respective person's placemat and grinned at the muted squeal he got from Paws and the cheer he had from Swift and Fred.

"I present Lasagne, with a side of green salad and garlic bread." Harry told them.

"You made my favourite!" Paws burst out, smiling brightly, "Thank you."

"You're most welcome." Harry said, sliding in to his seat next to Tom.

"You can actually cook." Lucius said amazed.

"Wait until you actually try it." Draco told his father, "I didn't believe these lot when they said Snake was a good cook, they made a bit of an understatement." Harry rolled his eyes and waved him off.

"I'm alright." He said. They quietened down as they began the meal, there were multiple sighs of pleasure as they started to eat and Harry smiled, his smile brightened considerably when Tom shot him an impressed look. It took a surprisingly short amount of time for everyone to clear everything Harry had served and he grinned at them.

"I have your approval then,"

"Oh yes," they all agreed.

"More cheese next time though." Swift threw in jokingly and then had to hold up a shield in defence as Paws, Raven and Bleach hexed him.

"You have an incredible talent," Lucius told him honestly, "Though, I do hope you are prepared for my wife to find out how far it extends."

"I don't think anyone can prepare for that." Draco muttered and Harry laughed.

"I am sure it will be fine."

"Hm, we shall see." Lucius said and then he offered a rather nasty smirk, "You see my wife has ordered me to inform you that you are expected to reside at Malfoy Manor for the Yule, she insists. She has also promised the most just retribution should you refuse." Harry blinked and then swallowed.

"I will definitely be listening to her and I would only be too happy to stay at the manor for Yule. It saves me having to work around Dumbledore, though, I will come through with Tom and not on the train because of the people on the platform."

"Wonderful, I shall tell my wife." Lucius said.

"So
" Luna broke in, looking at Harry expectantly.

"Oh, alright, I'll get the desert." He said, getting up and going back to the kitchen as Winky cleared the table. Harry got more plates and set a neat slice of cheesecake in the centre of each, he ten poured the caramel sauce in to individual serving boats and levitated it over.

"Ooo, I love cheesecake." Venom said pleased. "What flavour?"

"We have vanilla and ginger cheesecake, with a caramel sauce." He told them all.

"I have never had such a combination." Lucius noted and Harry shrugged.

"It was an experiment that turned out right."

"This is delicious." Badger decided and Harry smiled. Once everyone was finished, Winky took all the dishes down to be cleaned by the elves and they made their way back to the sitting area.

"We know where Snake and I are residing for Yule," Bleach began, "We will be completely free to do as we please. How are you going to get around the constraints?"

"Paws and I are expected back at the Burrow for 'Christmas'." Swift said with a grimace, "However we have planned it out."

"Yes, we'll be living at least twice and we will be bouncing around the sanctuary and the manor." Paws explained, "It should work out ok, though we will have to be careful."

"You should be fine." Fred said, "We're expected too so we can cover if you are missing without explanation, if not then we can cause a distraction."

"That's a relief." Swift muttered, "Thanks guys."

"I am going to be bouncing around all areas." Luna informed them and Harry didn't bother to ask anything else. If Luna said she was going to be at all areas then she was going to be at all areas.

"Will your father question?" Badger asked and Luna shook her head.

"Daddy understands that some things are necessary." She replied simply.

"Well, as you can all imagine, my grandmother has summoned me home for the holidays." Neville said in disgust, "She will be even more insistent now that Dumbledore is gone so I won't have leeway. Though, I'll be living a second day at the sanctuary so I don't kill her."

"Why would you want to commit such a deplorable act?" Harry gasped in mock horror and Badger rolled his eyes.

"I wonder, truly I do."

"I shall be pulling back over the holidays," Moony said, "This is going to be the first time in a while, for some the first time ever, that the wolves are able to celebrate Yule. I want to make it a grand affair."

"Get the elves to put on a huge spread, and you can throw a party if you want." Harry suggested and Moony nodded.

"I want to do something memorable."

"We should all be able to come on borrowed time, too." Paws said, warming up to the idea, "It'll be a good experience."

"Yeah, I like it." Swift agreed, "The twins can help create some play areas for the children." Harry sat up and tilted his head, he looked at Paws and a gleeful light came to his eyes.

"I'm scared." She stated and Harry grinned.

"Ball pits and soft play." He said and her eyes light up.

"Yes, so many times yes." She agreed, "I can take them to one in the muggle world and them we can work on constructing one, one of the lounges perhaps?"

"I don't care where, just make sure there is a death slide and a massive ball pit because I want to play in it too." Harry told her and she nodded.

"It is going to be fantastic."

"Do we want to know?" Bleach asked warily and Harry shook his head.

"No,"

"Right then. Venom, what are you doing for Yule?"

"I have obligations as Erede della Casa antica e Imperiale di Marcellus (Heir to the Ancient and Imperial House of Marcellus), I have to attend all functions and complete my mother's training." He explained, "But I have my turner if needed and I am back in England for my father's ball and the obligations for the Zabini name too."

"You are going to primped and prepped this Yule," Swift laughed.

"I don't know why you are laughing, you are expected in Italy to meet my mother." Venom threw back and Swift shut up.

"You suck."

"You know it." Venom returned and Swift blushed and hit him much to the rest of the group's amusement.

"Children, please." Harry called before the pair could start play fighting, and then he turned to Tom. "What are your plans for the Yule?"

"I will be collecting all of the information from my Death Eaters, we will need to discuss the current happenings and the Elite will have things ready. I have a skeleton plan for the ministry takeover, though they are split in two due to the indecision over the wards."

"I see,"

"I also have multiple Death Eaters slowly moving in to place for the takeover, I now have at least one in each department, except the ministerial office."

"If needs must, I may be able to speak with Hadrian." Harry said, "That should help us."

"If he agrees to help."

"He will." Harry assured, "But then, things might change and he might not be needed."

"There is a lot that needs to be thought about. I have also finished translating a few of Flamels Journals with Remus and we have access to more magic and information for later on in our movement." Tom told him, "The heir search is difficult, I've opened some of Salazar's journals to see if there are any leads but it is slow work."

"Yes, it seems to be the same for everyone." Harry mused.

"I have almost finished the plan for the school. There are a list of laws that will need to be put through officially, and the entire school curriculum is going to be receiving a complete overhaul." Tom explained and Paws looked up in excitement, much to Harry's amusement.

"If you want a second opinion, give it to Paws. She has memorised the Hogwarts Charter, and she has inside knowledge of the current muggle world which can held the Next Gen transition." Harry suggested and Tom nodded, he flicked his hand and Paws caught the two scrolls that appeared before her.

"I can have them back to you by the weekend."

"It is not necessary, the holidays shall be fine." Tom decided and she nodded, she was looking at the scrolls as if they were pure gold and Harry rolled her eyes.

"Is there anything else we need to go over?" He asked them and there was negative answered all round. "Well, I think we are done."

"Brilliant, I have cub training that I missed." Swift said getting to his feet, "It's accuracy today, so it should be fun."

"Don't die." The twins chimed, "We'll be watching all three areas and see where Dumbledore pops up."

"Good, let me know if anything happens,"

"You know it."

"I have an experimental potion I should be getting back to, and I want to speak with Severus to make sure he hasn't killed anyone now this quill incident has dropped." Bleach said, "No doubt he will be less than pleased."

"I don't envy you." Badger said, "I get to relax for the evening before starting again tomorrow. I think we have earned it."

"Most definitely." Luna agreed, "Though, I am going to be doing some listening of my own. Tonight is going to be a good night to eavesdrop."

"Do be careful sister, the last thing I would want is for you to get caught." Harry warned and she smiled in a less than promising way.

"Do not worry, if I am caught, they will soon forget."

"Good,"

"I'm going to-,"

"The library," everyone finished for Paws and she glowered at them.

"I hate you all." She decided and stepped through the shadows, taking all of her things with her.

"I have stealth with our other class." Venom said, laughing at Paws' antics, "Let's go, Swift."

"Want a lift, Moony?" Swift offered and the werewolf nodded, he hugged Harry tightly before grabbing Swift's arm and the three of them vanished in to the shadows together without fuss, Harry blinked to see Luna already gone and he looked at the twins, Bleach and Badger.

"Where'd Luna go?"

"How are we supposed to know?" Bleach exclaimed, "You are the one that keeps up with her."

"Oh yeah," Harry shrugged, "She'll pop in when she wants something."

"See ya, Snake." The twins called, following Draco from the room and Badger handed Harry over a scroll before he left.

"This is inventory of all the plants I have managed to hybridise, some of them you might find interesting." He told him, "When you are done, give it to Snape. He might want some to experiment with."

"Thanks, Nev." Harry said and the other teen nodded before making his own exit.

"I must return to my wife, My Lord." Lucius said, as he straightened his robes, "And I shall tell her of your acceptance." He directed the last comment at Harry, who nodded.

"Very well, Lucius. Continue on your work with Izar, but make note of any happenings in the ministry that are linked to Dumbledore's departure from the school." Tom commanded, the blond bowed and left via the floo. Once he was gone, Harry turned to Tom with his arms crossed and a smirk on his face.

"So, what did you think?"

Tom snagged him by the waste and pulled him closer, pressing a light kiss to his lips.

"I think that you are rather amazing." Tom told him honestly, "The way your entire group works is quite astounding." Harry mentally cursed when he felt his cheeks heat up, but he was smiling and he wrapped his arms around Tom's neck.

"Thanks. We have so much going on that it is nice to have a catch up like that." Harry said, "I am very happy with the laws."

"Yes, they are very well constructed." Tom agreed, "It is truly a day for celebration."

"Well, now that we are alone
" Harry began, his voice dropping, "How about we start a celebration of our own?"

"I think that is a truly excellent idea."

Chapter 43

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

Chapter 43:

They had made it. Finally, the holidays were upon them and they had made it through the week without error or problem. Rita had had a front page every day since the blood quill incident, announcing Dumbledore's dismissal, raving about Fudge's failings and questioning if either deserved to hold any positions of power whatsoever. It had been a great week, Harry decided, dropping down on to the sofa and stretching his legs out over Tom's lap. He was exhausted, but it was the good kind of exhausted, where he had worn himself down playing with his magics, revising and reworking plans for the ministry and spending more time at the Sanctuary.

He had also attended two Death Eater meetings with Tom too, Dolohov reporting that there has been some action against the Dark Elf clans, and that he had had to step in at one point. Nott and Lucius had commented that the laws they were sorting through were shockingly bad, but they were developing the system to make the load bearable. The Lestrange couple had been keeping an eye on Moody, Bellatrix especially having a delightful time in taunting the grizzled ex-auror, while making sure he didn't take out the upcoming dark houses. Rabastan was working with Swift to create and execute a plan to get access to the ministry wards, all the while still working on the school wards. Snape, as always, was at the castle teaching, but he was attending more Order meetings outside the school and reported that Dumbledore seemed to be almost obsessively researching something and went off the radar for days at a time, much to the alarm of the Order.

The lower Death Eaters had also brought back rather positive results. They were sliding their way in to every section of the ministry, gaining promotions and spreading discord, and while it was a slow work-in-progress it was still working and Tom was pleased. Remus and his group of Death Eaters had managed to get an in with the German ministry, and Moony had told him that they were in the process of negotiations, though everything was slower due to the time of year. With Dumbledore out of the castle, Harry and his group had been able to move around much more flexibly, little things like not having to go to lunch or dinner and relaxing their iron control on their magic. Sure he still had to deal with Ginny when he did show up to meals, but those were few and far between and when he did have to see her he always had a ready excuse available. She couldn't even complain too much either, Dumbledore was gone so for him to want to learn more magic was only natural. She was getting extremely frustrated with him, much to his amusement, but there was nothing she could do without Dumbledore in the castle. He loved it.

Tom was still a bit possessive, but Harry didn't mind, he got to have great sex after all. Tom had sent back the meeting request with the Vampire envoys and was making shells plans on how to move his people forward in to positions of power. He was also working on translating more of the Flamel journals, he had pointed out that he had gotten the information about the Ministry wards from one of them so who knows what other things were hidden in Flamels words. He was doing other things too, working with magics, secondary plans for the education system, searching for heirs and actually teaching at the castle. Tom had stated that the reason he seemed to be doing so much is because his Death Eaters were like unruly children that needed to be constantly monitored lest they get distracted and in to trouble. Harry had found Tom's exasperated expression hilarious.

The reason he was so exhausted currently was because he was on his third re-live and he had been actively casting magic in all of them, he had made a breakthrough on one of his spells, but the other one had been anything other than successful. Just thinking about it made him groan and throw an arm over his eyes.

"You are more tired that you should be." Tom commented, looking him over with a critical eye.

"I've been working on something for months now and I simply cannot get the hang of it." Harry sighed, removing his arm and sitting up slightly. "It's ridiculous, I've never had magic be this damn complicated."

"What are you trying to do? You never struggle with spells."

"It's not a spell as such," Harry said, "Remember what I said about muggleborn, and how all magicals have a right to be in our world?"

"Yes, I have been looking in to the possibilities myself and discovered the benefits of including Squibs in to our world too." Tom told him and Harry gave him a bright smile.

"You are fantastic, you know that?" Harry stated and Tom raised an eyebrow to get him to explain. "I had already written out the rudimental plan to have all First generation's parents given blood tests to see if there are of Squib blood because they have the ability to becoming upstanding members of our society and it would lessen the orphan count."

"Yes, it would and that is a good idea." Tom agreed.

"What I am struggling with is creating or adapting something that allows us to trace bursts of accidental magic. If I can find something that can trace it we will have the ability to find First Gens earlier and bring them in to our world straight away." Harry explained, "I already have the skeleton plans for a magical orphanage so those who don't have Squib parents or ones who don't want to follow have a decent place to stay. I just can't seem to get the magic right."

"Why in Merlin's name are you trying to do so much alone?" Ton questioned incredulously.

"All of my friends have been really busy with everything else and I didn't want to add more to that." Harry said with a shrug and Tom rolled his eyes.

"What am I, chopped liver?" Tom wondered and Harry blinked, his expression completely black which told Tom that he hadn't even contemplated asking him.

"I didn't think about asking you." Harry admitted, "Which seems rather idiotic of me considering you're kind of a genius."

"Exactly. If you pass your workings to me I will be able to offer insight." Tom suggested, "We leave tomorrow as it is, therefore we shall have more time to do as we please."

"I know, we made it. Dumbledore is gone and I am free to run wild." Harry said with a happy sigh.

"I feel the need to remind you that you are staying with Narcissa and Lucius Malfoy, I don't believe 'wild' is the correct term needed." Tom joked and Harry snorted.

"Have you seen Narcissa around Ball season?" Harry asked and Tom shuddered.

"Remind me to conveniently be away on business during those few days." Tom muttered.

"Oh no, if I'm having to suffer then you're going to be there with me." Harry said and Tom shot him a look of disgust

"That is just unnecessarily cruel." He sniffed and Harry laughed.

"I learned from you." Harry told him primly and Tom gave him an unimpressed look.

"What are your plans for this evening and tomorrow?"

"Well I have to speak to my friends in ten minutes, but it's only to check in before we break up tomorrow and then I'll serve our dinner. Tomorrow I am collecting everything that I'll need to take with me and then I'm with you."

"What are your intentions for the harpy?" The disgust in Tom's tone was actually quite impressive and Harry grimaced.

"I shall have to 'see her off' I suppose," He grumbled before his expression twisted in to a nasty smirk, "After the holidays, however
"

"I would feel pity for her if I didn't want to personally carve out her eyes with a blunted spoon and then extract her brain from the empty sockets." Tom mused and Harry gave him an impressed look.

"That was extraordinarily creative for on the spot thinking."

"Thank you."

Harry snickered and pulled himself up with some effort, his body was comfortable and didn't agree with the movement at all. He wandered over to the kitchen and put the chicken pie he prepared that morning in to cook as well as putting some potatoes to boil.

"Now, I won't be long with my friends and I'll leave my workings here for you to look at." Harry told Tom, putting a folder down on the table, "Keep your hands off the sorbet, I know you stole some of it earlier."

"If you are going to parade a cherry sorbet around in front of me, then you are to expect it to be eaten." Tom reasoned, Harry rolled his eyes with a smile and kissed him before vanishing in to the shadows. All of his friends were already in his rooms and he raised an eyebrow.

"Did you all move in?" Harry asked and Ron gave him a pitiful look.

"Ginny," He stated and Harry smirked.

"Is she giving you trouble now that I have to train extra hard because Dumbledore's gone?" Harry questioned slyly and Badger gave him a look of disgust.

"You have no idea."

"Really? I have no idea." Harry repeated incredulously and Badger shook his head.

"At least with when she is with you she is obvious in action. With us it's a different mood every hour and good Lord does she ever moan."

"Did you have to pretend to sleep with her?" Harry inquired lightly and they looked ill at the thought.

"Ok, you win."

"That's what I thought."

"I have already packed everything you shall need for the holidays." Luna told him, "Though you will need to go shopping for materials and Yule gifts."

"You, my dear sister, are amazing." He stated seriously and she smiled, "Now this is only a check in before we break up and embrace freedom."

"I suggest that we do the minimal work during the holidays." Swift decided, "We have worked our asses off during the past four months and we even managed to get Dumbledore out. We deserve a full break."

"As much as I like studying, I have to agree." Paws admitted reluctantly, "We have all been reliving the days over and over, I think we have time to take these two/three weeks easy and just enjoy ourselves. The only time we'll need to relive is for a break, we are going to be expected to behave like our fronts, so I would like to have my time away from the Burrow as free time."

"I think that will be for the best." Draco agreed, "The only ones who need to relive are Paws, Swift and Badger, everyone else should have enough freedom to be themselves."

"Yes, we have a shop to run, us flickering in and out won't raise questions thankfully." Fred said with a grin, "That and Molly knows we have a flat above the shop that we stay in."

"And as you will be expected to celebrate Christmas, you'll have time on the 23rd to meet and exchange gifts for Yule." Harry added and they all shared a grin.

"I am going to Italy on the 21st to meet Venom's family, but other than that I'll be with Paws." Swift said with a smile, "It shouldn't be too difficult."

"Mother has a strict regime for Yule, but other than that we will be free – unless Mother kidnaps Snake to cook for her." Draco said with a smirk and Swift sighed.

"At least we know that the Malfoy Ball with have truly spectacular food."

"Cissa has already decided I am making one of the deserts." Harry informed them and Swift's eyes lit up.

"Thank you Merlin." He muttered to himself.

"So it is agreed that we are actually have a break." Badger said to them, "And we'll meet at the Sanctuary on the 23rd."

"Mione, we'll need to go out the day before to prepare for the 25th, that's when I want everything built. It's the ball season from the 25th evening onwards."

"It's going to be so exciting." Paws exclaimed, "Is it temporary or permanent?"

"I was thinking we could make it temporary and if it's a hit them have a bigger, more permanent one out on the lands – inside a separate building." Harry explained and she nodded.

"What about building an outside climbing area?" She suggested, "Many of the cubs have an excess amount of energy, having a safe area for them to climb and explore would be beneficial for them."

"If you focus on that and you'll focus on the first, we can have them both put up temporary and then if they take off speak with the Goblins to have them secured." Harry decided and she nodded with a grin.

"Perfect,"

"So I wish you all a happy Yule, and you know where to contact me if anything is needed." Harry said with a smile. "Go careful guys."

"We will, Snake. Just remember to take a break, yeah?" Swift pointed out, "You deserve a rest too." Harry waved them off with a laugh and vanished in to the shadows. He stepped out and caught Tom with a spoon in his mouth and the bowl of sorbet on the counter, Harry cleared his throat and the man didn't even look remotely apologetic.

"It is very nice." Was the only excuse he offered and Harry rolled his eyes, slapping his reaching hand away from his sorbet.

"Carry this on and I'll never make anything with cherries in it again." He warned and Tom shot his a look of horror.

"That is just unnecessary."

"Stop eating it then." Harry told him, "You are going to ruin your dinner and I didn't spend hours slaving away making you a chicken pie for you not to eat it."

"You've made chicken pie?" Tom repeated, suddenly very interested in the oven.

"Yes, you did say you used to enjoy it during the winter and I'm pretty sure December is in winter." Harry said simply, Tom looked at him curiously before pressing a soft kiss to his lips and going to sit down. Harry smiled slightly and began serving the food as soon as he deemed it ready, the pie was with potatoes, steamed mixed vegetables and chicken gravy served separately. They didn't speak much when they were eating, only when Tom complimented Harry, much to the teen's pleasure.

"Ok so this sauce is another one of my experiments." Harry explained, "Its bittersweet chocolate-cherry, to be pared with the sorbet."

"As long as it doesn't kill me I am sure it will be fine."

"I'll bring you back if it does." Harry quipped in return and Tom laughed. They ate the desert and Tom noted how the sauce went perfectly with the sorbet but it wasn't even half as nice on its own, Harry said he would make a note of it and cleared the plates. Winky was there to take everything away from him and Harry flashed her thankful smile, going over to the sitting area instead and making Tom's lap his pillow.

"Comfortable?"

"Very,"


He had tried to put it off for as long as possible but it just wasn't to be. Ginny was latched on to him wailing over how they were going to be apart for so long and she was going on and on and on and on and on and on


"It'll be fine, Ginny. Just two weeks." Harry interrupted her before she could start another over dramatic description of how terrible the holidays were going to be because they couldn't be together.

"I know, but it's just so long." She groaned and Harry made sure he looked very upset when he nodded. Fortunately, Flitwick was on duty and he ushered the students down towards the carriages and Ginny was only able to peck him before running off. Harry let his expression fall away and didn't even bother to linger like he was watching her leave, he span on his heel and walked back to Tom's rooms, where the man was just finishing his last teachers report before they would be leaving.

"I see you didn't bother to wait." Tom noted and Harry scoffed.

"No. I've already had to deal with her incessant wailing over our separation."

"Lovely."

"Yes, that's one word for it." Harry muttered in disgust, "Ready?"

"Why the sudden need to leave?" Tom asked and Harry grimaced.

"Honestly, I want to get this damn medical exam over with." Harry told him. "Cissa wishes to give me a full one."

"I fail to see the haste." Tom admitted.

"Full exams give your entire injury history, do they not? Starting from current or latest injuries back to the beginning."

"Yes,"

"Cissa freaked at my results with the wolves. How do you think she is going to take my injury history?" Harry pointed out dryly and Tom smirked.

"Ah. Good luck, and do try to have fun." He said gleefully.

"Thanks, Tom. That really made me feel warm." Harry muttered with a scowl, before a somewhat vicious smirk came to his face.

"I don't like that look." Tom stated warily and Harry chuckled darkly.

"You can mock me now, but let's see how pleased you'll be when Cissa is informed that most of my serious past injuries are because of you. I'm sure the basilisk bite I received when you set the thing on me will go down delightfully." Harry informed him brightly and suddenly Tom wasn't smirking anymore.

"So I'll come with you so she doesn't go overboard?" He suggested quickly and Harry grinned.

"Thanks Tom, you're the best."

"Let's get this over with." Tom sighed, giving him an unimpressed look. Harry rolled his eyes and pulled the man through the shadows him, he received a rather nasty stinging hex for that, but he laughed at Tom's ill look.

"You've been used to my shadows for months now." Harry pointed out, clenching his hand over the sting.

"When I am prepared. You cannot merely pull someone through those disgusting things." Tom snapped, still looking queasy.

"Hey! Leave my shadows alone! They are wonderful."

"You are insane." Tom stated and Harry burst out laughing.

"HA! Coming from you that's saying something." He quipped and then ran away laughing. Tom threw spells at him as he followed, though he would deny chasing him until his dying breath. Harry knew where to lead, however, and he took the man to the room where Narcissa was enjoying her morning tea. Tom's well directed tripping hex caught him in the doorway sending him tumbling in to the room, rolling over and leaping over the sofa for somewhere to hide. Tom darted in to the room with his wand out and Narcissa shot to her feet, Tom's widened at the sight of her and then turned back to Harry, who had poked his head above the back of the sofa, with a narrow eyed glare, which darkened when it became apparent that Harry was laughing.

"You sly mother fu-,"

"My Lord!" Narcissa exclaimed and Tom flushed slightly. Harry howled with laughter at the man's disgruntlement and pulled himself to his feet, he had to bend over though because he was laughing so much.

"What in Merlin's name were the pair of you doing?" She demanded.

"He was trying to kill me." Harry got out and Tom scoffed.

"If I was trying to kill you, you wouldn't be here." He grumbled, and then he closed his eyes realising what he had just set himself up for.

"You sure about that, Tom?" Harry inquired, his voice light and innocent and Tom threw him a poisonous glare in return.

"Haven't you got a medical exam to attend?" He spat, taking a seat and Harry grinned.

"Of course," Harry turned to Narcissa, "Cissa, wonderful to see you again. I am here for my consensual medical exam." She smiled and nodded.

"Good. It won't take long, but if there is anything on your results that are irregular may incur further treatments." She explained and Harry withheld a groan.

"Is it possible to keep all treatments from injuries gained this year only?" Harry asked and she shoot him a suspicious look.

"Why?" She questioned slowly, Harry sighed and walked to stand in front of her.

"You'll see."

Cissa gave him a long look before getting to work, she ran her wand over his entire body, front and back, murmuring under her breath. Her eyes widened at something and Harry knew it wasn't good when she actually cursed, Narcissa sliced her wand in a rather violent motion and then flicked it downwards sharply. Parchment started to unroll from the end of her wand and Harry could see it was listing his injuries, when it became longer than his own body he knew that there was absolutely no chance on earth that even Tom could stop the upcoming fit. Harry glanced at the man for some sort of help, but he was as helpful as a blade of grass because he was staring at the growing parchment with a look of amazement and alarm.

"Harry James Potter-Black." Narcissa whispered dangerously. Harry blinked, so that was the thrill of fear when normal people had their full name called by an adult. He slowly turned to face her and he must have looked like a dear caught in headlights because he felt a shot of amusement from Tom.

"Um, yes?" He would deny that he squeaked and he would hex Tom laughing, even if he muffled it very well.

"You will take all potions I prescribe for you. You will not miss a single meal. You will not put yourself in any situation that could potentially cause you harm for the entirety of this holiday." She stated in a dangerously calm tone, to which Harry nodded immediately. She looked him over, as if evaluating his honestly, before spinning on her heal and gliding out of the room, taking the parchment with her. Harry remained frozen where he was standing for a good two minutes after she had left and slowly released the breath he had been holding.

"That was rather mild." He managed reasonably.

"I believe you have managed to ignite her anger so much that she is completely calm." Tom told him, his amusement clear.

"At least I know she isn't going to try and kill me." Harry decided, trying to be cheerful. "It's not as if I am going to be doing anything dangerous over Yule."

"I would go to your sister if you decide to do any kind of training." Tom said with a smirk, "Else Narcissa tie you to a bed and force-feed you potions."

"Noted." Harry said, "Shall we settle in and begin our much needed holiday?"

"That sounds like a wonderful idea."


Harry was exhausted. For the past four nights he had gotten no sleep whatsoever, it was like since he left the castle is body refused to shut down. It was killing him. He would go to bed only to toss and turn all fucking night before giving up and reading, Harry had a small idea what could be the cause, but he refused to acknowledge it and he wouldn't take a dreamless sleep. Normally, he could go days without sleep, but with all the extra work he had been putting in over the last few days so he could clear his schedule for the upcoming celebrations was dragging him down. He knew he had agreed to relax over the holidays, but there were some things that couldn't wait, mainly to do with gathering information for the balls and future ministry happenings, and getting spells and things in place for January. But it wasn't just that.

The constant use of magic for his experiments, the endless reading and translating he had been doing over the journals he had taken from Flamel, the repeated trips to the Goblins to have everything put in place for the cubs and the ridiculous amount of effort it took to wade through the ministry spiel so he could continue on with his own laws, classifications and departments; it was getting to be too much. He had finished what he had wanted, which was the one good thing, and he was now free to fully relax, but he still needed sleep. His thoughts were getting sluggish and his magic was resting heavy. It probably wasn't wise to be living multiple times without sleeping either, but there wasn't anything to be done about it.

Narcissa had insisted he participate in the annual decorating of the manor, and he admitted he did have fun doing it, but it caused him to live another day to do so. The woman would string him up if she knew of his full state, she had been pushing potions at him since he had had his exam and Harry wasn't stupid enough to not take them. He stalked down for breakfast and it was obvious that he should not be approached, with each day he lost sleep, the worst his mood became until now he was to be avoided. Tom hadn't been around so Harry couldn't even distract himself, the man in question was clearly pissed off, but Harry couldn't find it in himself to wonder why at the current time. He was busy making sure he didn't kill anyone himself, let alone pondering how many bodies Tom was stacking up.

"Good morning, Harry," Narcissa said warmly and Harry nodded, he didn't even want to eat but he grabbed a piece toast so he didn't get yelled at.

"Draco and I are set to go shopping, do you wish to join us?" She asked, Harry shook his head, if he had to deal with too many people today it would be a bad day. Draco smirked.

"No mother, Harry is going to avoid all human contact for the rest of the day or there will likely be bloodshed." The blond said lightly and Harry glared at him.

"Oh, is there something wrong?"

"M'fine," Harry muttered, not wanting to go through another medical exam. He left the table as soon as possible and vanished to his room. As he didn't want to see anyone, he decided to design Paws' dresses for the balls. Harry would sketch out the ideas, colours, materials and designs before drawing it out as a finished design and then he could make it depending if he had the time – though he was planning on making sure he had the time. All of the sewing practice he had from the Dursley's came in handy and with a little magic, literally, he had become quite the maker he had illustrated to himself that he hadn't lost his touch when he had made Luna's apology gown. He had enjoyed himself a lot making that, the repetitive movements were oddly soothing and there was something about making his own creations come to life that was extremely satisfying. He needed to go shopping desperately, not only did he need to buy Yule gifts, but he also needed materials and packaging if he was going to get these dresses done. He still had things left, but he was looking to make at least seven more dresses and it was always better to have too much than not enough. Harry was looking forward to the balls, it would be fun and his best friends would be joining him, no one knew what they were really like and together they were great.

He spent the morning putting his ideas on paper, changing and rearranging things and even managing to finish another of Luna's too. These balls were at the peak of things, everyone would want to speak to the new Lady McKinnon and elusive Lord Prewett and Harry wanted the best seats in the House when everyone realised who the two new people were. As Luna said, he wanted them to be presented as the Golden Trio; Harry, Ron and Hermione, and he couldn't wait. That and the balls would be the lead up to the new school term, when he got back everything would change. Dumbledore was no longer there and it would only be a week before they would be sworn in to the Wizengamot and that would hit the papers like wildfire. Everyone would know, and then they would be free to do whatever they wanted, they could be themselves in school and Harry couldn't wait. He was filled with excitement, even if he knew he still would be working around the clock to get things in to place after that.

With a sigh he tossed his wand away and jumped on his bed, if he couldn't sleep he would meditate. He needed to settle himself. Harry always loved looking at his core, it was soothing and energising at the same time, the way the magic was free and unconfined. He sorted through his Occlumency shields and made sure they were at their best, or as best he could get them given his current exhausted state. If there was one thing Harry loved, it was his sleep. He wouldn't take a potion because he would be unprotected and at a disadvantage, something he would not allow. Harry wouldn't take that potion unless he was alone in his manor with the wards up in full power; not that he was paranoid.

When he pulled out it was approaching dinner, Harry felt better than he previously did, but unless he got some sleep he would be snapping at everyone, something he didn't want especially this close to the first ball. He also didn't want to ruin Narcissa's Yule celebrations, he knew that she had something planned and Harry wanted to be able to enjoy it too. He dragged himself down to eat and then he planned on wrapping himself up in his blankets until he fell asleep; it sounded like a good plan. Draco and Narcissa were talking about the upcoming balls when he entered, which did peak Harry's interest so he tried to stay involved in the conversation.

"Hadrian's is the first, I think I will wear gold to his and blue to Izar's." Narcissa mused.

"You will have to choose what shade before I decide my robes mother, that way we do not embarrass ourselves." Draco said.

"Of course, Dragon,"

Harry managed to smirk when Draco coloured slightly.

"What colours are you wearing, Harry?" She asked him and Harry shrugged.

"I am not sure, maybe blue or black to Hadrian's. I will have to speak with Luna before I make any concrete decisions." Harry replied.

"Why do you need to speak with her?"

"We have an agreement, I give her money and let her do whatever she wants." Harry grinned and Draco rolled his eyes.

"You two are awful together, you're like a pair of children."

"You're one to talk," Harry scoffed, Draco sniffed and swept his robes.

"I don't know what you mean."

"Sure," Harry dragged the word out, "And put you around Manic and Panic and it's a different story," Draco blushed violently much to Harry's amusement.

"Shut it, Potter," He hissed and Harry smirked; he knew Draco had yet to tell either of his parents, and while Narcissa was likely to accept it with a smile, it was Lucius' reaction to the twins that Harry couldn't wait for. He would have to bring Tom with him, he was sure the man would find equal amounts of amusement in the situation.

"You started this,"

"At least I don't spend the day stuffing my face and talking about mindless drivel,"

"No, you spend the day betwe-," Harry was cut off when Draco flung a silencer at him, the blond was glowing pink and glaring at Harry who laughed silently.

"End of the conversation?" Harry asked lightly, once he had countered the spell.

"Yes," He stated. Narcissa was watching them with raised eyebrows, Harry grinned and shook his head.

"Me and Luna spend usually Sundays doing nothing apart from talking, making bets and planning," Harry shrugged. "Lately it's been difficult, however, we still manage to find our days."

"I see," Narcissa's amusement was clear and Harry flashed an unremorseful smile. They ate the rest of their meals in relative silence, both Tom and Lucius absent from the table but Harry knew where they were. Lucius was trying to finish off as many laws as possible so he could spend the upcoming days with his family and playing the political game. Tom was in his office, the man was in an absolutely foul mood, one that Harry knew not to bother him with because he too was in a terrible mood and both of them together probably wasn't ideal right now. Besides, it was Yule and he was practicing that clean break. Harry excused himself when he was finished, he was dead on his feet and he was mentally begging for sleep to come to him.

"If you do not sleep well tonight, tomorrow you shall be taking a potion whether you like it or not." Narcissa stated in warning, "You barely look after your health as it is."

"I keep myself alive." Harry waved her off.

"Barely," Both she and Draco muttered and Harry pouted.

"I'm not that-," He was cut off with a look from Cissa and his shoulders drooped, "Fine."

"Good."

Harry walked through the manor almost absently, his mind was still active but his eyes were heavy and he couldn't seem to focus on anything for too long. It was aggravating, especially because he knew that if he could just get some sleep then he would be ok. Harry curled up and read the transfiguration book he had taken from Gryffindor's rooms, Harry wanted to make sure he had no energy left before he settled down. Unfortunately, it was not to be. He finished the book and cast a tempus, it was 11:30 and he groaned, he flung the book over to the chair and led down with his eyes closed. Harry led there for what felt like hours but no matter what he did, sleep evaded him, and he was pissed off with it. He rolled over for what felt like the millionth time when his door was flung open and he found himself dragged out of bed by an irate Dark Lord.

"What the fuck?" Harry exclaimed, stumbling as he tried to regain his footing.

"You are coming with me." Tom snapped in a voice that book no room for arguments, the man was practically thrumming with lethargy, frustration and anger and Harry couldn't find any words to actually use. He was pulled down to the man's room, where the door was slammed shut and warded behind them. Harry was pushed down on to the bed and Tom climbed in next to him, covering them with the quilt and he wrapped his arm around Harry's waist much to the teen's confusion.

"Um Tom?"

"Sleep," He ordered in a tired voice. Harry blinked a few times before a smile came to his face, though he did ruthlessly push away all feelings and thoughts surrounding the situation. Instead, he snuggled down in to the warm bed and let his eyes drop closed; he was asleep instantly.


Harry awoke slowly and he felt like he was in comfiest position he had ever been in, it was utter bliss and the sleep heavy feeling that surrounded him told him just how well he slept the night previous if it wasn't already obvious. He felt refreshed, revitalised and it took him a moment to realise that he was pressed up against a warm body and there was an arm draped over his waist. He didn't want to move, it was the best night's sleep he had had in memory, but he felt light kisses against his neck and he smiled, he wouldn't mind waking up like that every day and then he blinked at his thoughts.

"Tom," he complained, "I was sleeping."

"Past tense," came the muttered reply, Harry laughed lightly, he pulled himself up so he was sitting and stretched his back making it click in a few places.

"That is not pleasant," Tom told him and Harry flashed him a grin.

"I know,"

Tom rolled his eyes, Harry turned around to kiss him and smiled.

"You are in a decidedly happier mood than the past few days." Tom pointed out as his hands settled on Harry's hips.

"I am, it's the first night I've slept since I got here. I like my sleep thank you." There was a flash of shock in the crimson eyes before it was gone and Harry didn't ask, if Tom wanted him to know he would tell him.

"Do you have plans for the ball settled?" Tom asked him and Harry tilted his head,

"Of course, but it depends on what happens at the first ball to see what happens at the others." Harry said, "You are attending all of them this year, aren't you?"

"Yes, I've decided they might actually keep my interest this year." Tom said thoughtfully, a smirk curling on to his face and Harry grinned.

"Oh and I wonder why that is?"

"I wonder," He drawled.

Harry kissed him and then pulled him up.

"Come on, you can get on with whatever you've been trying to do for the past few days."

"I blame you," Tom said and Harry laughed.

"Thought you might,"

"What are you doing today?" Tom asked and Harry tilted his head.

"Probably going to finishing designing the girls' dresses,"

"Designing their dresses?" Tom repeated and Harry nodded.

"Yes, it's a hobby of mine. I design women's clothes, actually I can design anything as long as it's not my own clothes." Harry told him, he flicked his wrist and transfigured his clothes in to dark jeans and conjured a white top.

"How do you know your design will be followed, most usually stick with a base." Tom pointed out coming out of the bathroom dressed.

"I'll probably end up making them if I'm honest, I just need the final draw up and the sizes before I can get on with it." Harry shrugged and Tom looked at him.

"You make them?"

"Yeah, I find it soothing."

"I do wonder about you." Tom muttered and Harry rolled his eyes. They left the bedroom and Harry slipped in to his room so he could properly change and he grabbed his design book. He threw on some shoes and made his way to the dining room, he greeted the room brightly and kicked Draco when the blond was going to make a snide comment.

"You seem better, Harry."

"Yes, I feel refreshed," Harry agreed helping himself to food, he opened his book on to his current design and took out his wand. He gained numerous strange looks when he held the wand like it was a pencil, but he ignored them in favour of finishing the final details.

"What are you doing?" Lucius finally asked.

"I am currently finished this last detail so I can decide the final material and season." Harry muttered absently, if anything the looks increased.

"I'm sorry?"

"You know, I think this will be perfect for Yule." Harry stated looking at the page with narrowed eyes, "With that material it would be perfect, of course it could only be in pale colours and nothing too dramatic."

"You know you are talking to yourself," Draco told him and Harry looked at him startled.

"What?"

"You're talking to yourself again,"

"Oh, right. Sorry." Harry said sheepishly looking at the incredulous looks he was being shot.

"What is it, Harry?" Narcissa asked and Harry held up his book.

"It's one of my latest design, I wasn't quite sure if it would be for Yule or summer, but then I changed the design and picked the material and thought it best for Yule." Harry explained showing her, she looked at it amazed.

"It's beautiful,"

"Thanks, I believe its one of my better ones." Harry agreed, "I've been toying with a few ideas and this one came to me when I was finished Luna's latest."

"Do you draw a lot of these?" She questioned.

"A fair few, it all depends on what is going on." Harry told her.

"I would love the first one for our ball." Narcissa told him seriously and Harry's eyes lit up.

"Really?"

"Yes, depending on the price and the stones." She said and Harry gained a thoughtful look.

"What are you doing today?"

"Nothing, I had to rearrange the appointment with the florist."

"Would you mind if I borrowed you for some time? I can guarantee a brilliant outcome."

"I don't see why not,"

"Wonderful," Harry said with enthusiasm, "We might be able to create something new today." They both finished their breakfast and left the dining room, Harry went to his room looked at it before nodding.

"Yes, the perfect lighting I think." He said and flicked his wand to conjure up a stool.

"Would you mind standing on the stool in as little as you feel comfortable." Harry asked going over to his trunk and pulling out numerous packages, boxes and a tape measure. "Oh and if it makes you feel better, I'd likely look more towards your husband then yourself; no offence of course."

"None taken, dear," Harry turned around to see Narcissa stood in her underwear on the stool, he blinked and then shrugged.

"Right, now I can properly size you," He tossed his tape measure in the air and it began taking sizes, Harry walked around her taking in every detail of her figure until he was sure he had everything. He went over to his book and, focussing on Narcissa only, he pulled the memory out and let it seep in to the pages. A replica of her appeared at all angles and he smirked, he snapped his fingers so the sizes appeared written underneath and nodded.

"This should be simple enough, I have samples of colours, stones, metals and materials." He said and Harry handed over the packets, Narcissa sat down and browsed through them.

"I think these are perfect." She said and Harry went over, "Although I don't think I have ever had a dress made from chiffon, usually they are silks or satins.

"It is a new material for me to work with, but I have been practicing," He told her.

"Its so soft and ever so light." She said and Harry nodded, she had also chosen diamonds in a silver case and pale silver. He conjured a dressmaking dummy in Narcissa's sizes, Harry threw the material over her for the top half and he started to pin it in to place in a rough outline.

"You're making the dress," She commented surprised and Harry nodded.

"Yes, I learned because of my delightful relatives. It's like cooking, they made me do it and I grew to love it in my own time, especially now as I have no restrictions." Harry explained and she looked impressed. He clipped it all in to place and then removed it, Harry suspended it in midair and fitted the shaping wire in using his wand making the dress take shape. He cut away the excess and ran his wand slowly across the bust stitching in the ripple detail, he put it on the dummy again and pinned it securely but comfortably. When he deemed it acceptable, he left the top half and started on the skirt by creating a thin under layer made of silk. Harry added an extra 3 inches to the bottom to allow for heels and began layering it up, he pinned it at the left hip for the ripple effect and then stitched it at the back leaving the top 4 inches for a zip.

Harry stitched the top to the skirt leaving a touch of over hand and the back open with his wand, he made sure it was sewn together perfectly before placing it carefully back on the dummy to begin the final stages. Harry layered some of the material together and wrapped it around where the skirt and top met making the dress flow seamlessly, he secured it at the back and then he added a final thin layer to the whole dress leaving it perfectly together. Finally, he ran his wand up the spit at the back and watched as the back sealed together with a silver zip, he couldn't help but smirk when it settled perfectly. For the last touch, he stitched the right shoulder strap on the right side of the zip at the back and led it over across the front to the left and then carried it down to sit on the left hip. He placed a snowflake-like silver clasp filled with diamonds over the stitching and secured it, Harry stepped back to look at the final piece and grinned; it was stunning

"If you would," He directed her back and she stood back up on the stool. Carefully, he helped her slide the dress on and zip it up, it fit perfectly and he couldn't help but smile brightly at the results. The top was figure hugging and the pale silver material was darker in some places giving it the layered effect he wanted. The strap leading to the hip drew attention to the snowflake design purposely and it led on to the floating, floor-length skirt that finished the dress off. He pulled out a box from his trunk and re-sized it, it was the pair of shoes he had designed with Luna back in school and he thought they were perfect for the dress. They were silver satin 4" closed in heels with a ruffle on the toe. He got Narcissa to slip them on, and they adjusted to fit her, with some silver bangles, diamond studs and he pinned her hair up in a French braid making sure to leave none hanging down on her neck. He passed her a small darker silver clutch with the same snowflake clasp on it for the very final and Harry stepped back.

"I think we have a finished product," Harry told her with a smile, he conjured up a full length mirror and placed it in front of her and she gasped.

"Wow," She breathed amazed, turning left and right to admire the dress.

"So what do you think?" He asked, even if she didn't like it he could put it to use, a few adjustments and it would look fine.

"It's stunning," Narcissa stated admiring her reflection, "I don't think I've ever had a gown this beautiful."

"Good, I'm glad." He said, pleased.

"You could make a business with this, your designs are amazing and I know I would be a regular customer." She stated seriously, "I'll pay 6400 galleons for this gown." Harry blinked in shock at that.

"Are you serious?"

"Definitely, and the quality of the dress itself especially as I saw you make it is astounding." Narcissa told him, "How do you do it?"

"It was just something I picked up, I had to re-size and recreate my clothes all the time when I was with them and I had to do that by hand so with a wand its much easier." Harry explained with a shrug.

"Well it's phenomenal," She said, "And the shoes?"

"Oh those are what Luna and I created in school, we were messing about with ideas and those were the finished product along with the clutch."

"I'll pay 1500 for the pair and the bangles." She said after a moments of thought.

"That would be amazing, I think I could arrange something with Luna and we could make something out of this. She is amazing at men's wear and she helps me design shoes and other things." Harry mused and Narcissa nodded.

"I would recommend it, and you,"

"Thanks," Harry said with a smile, he helped her out of the dress and put it in a clear bag on a hanger to keep it protected. Narcissa redressed as Harry boxed up the shoes, bangles and clutch and on a whim he pressed his wand to the packages and a beautiful black phoenix appeared in mid-flight with HPB scripted underneath.

"Signed and sealed." Harry said and Narcissa smiled.

"Perfect," She agreed, "If you to decide to create something with this would it go under your name or both?"

"I don't know," Harry answered after a moment's thought, "It would depend in if Luna is interested or not."

"I understand. I will have the funds transferred over," She told him with a smile."

"Hold with that for now, I can visit the bank and have an account opened for the and that way I can create a business if I want."

"Ok," She agreed easily and Harry grinned before his eyes lit up.

"Would you permit me to create a few designs for you?" Harry asked and she smiled.

"That would be lovely, you know the Malfoy house colours?"

"Gold, silver and blue?" Harry confirmed.

"Yes,"

"I can sketch out a few ideas and now I have your sizes I can make them for you to view." Harry said thinking out how he could do it. Making the dress seemed to make his mind explode with ideas and he had time to focus on them. He would have to go shopping later, and if he ran over the necessary time then he had a time turner; Cissa would kill him if he was late to dinner this evening. Once he had been shopping and have everything back at the manor then he was free to begin work. The next day was the gift exchange and the Yule log, he would be living that day first before anything, and only once he had relived the day to see his friends would he go back and tackle some of the dresses and some of his own work. It was a lot, and he would have to be very careful not to do too much, but he was running out of time. Hadrian's ball was in three days!

"Would you like a room for your work, there are many rooms that are not in use?"

"That would be brilliant." Harry said gratefully, "If it could have good lighting then I would me most appreciative."

"It shall be done," She snapper her fingers and an elf popped in, "See to it that these are placed in my dressing room with the utmost care and have the second sun room on the east side dusted and aired." She ordered and the elf bowed before popping away with the dress and accessories.

"We are running late for lunch, the elves should be finished by the time we have ate and then an elf will take you."

"Thanks," Harry said waving his hand to order his room slightly.

"No, thank you Harry, the gown is something to be commended." They walked down to the dining room discussing possible designs, they entered to discover the meal nearly over and Harry blinked.

"Wow, 4 hours." He muttered sliding in to his seat.

"Yes, what have you been doing?" Lucius wondered and Narcissa turned to him in enthusiasm.

"Harry has just made me the most gorgeous dress I have ever seen with stunning shoes and accessories," Narcissa told her husband who blinked.

"Made?"

"Yes, it was quite extraordinary. He made it up from material to my perfect size right in front of me. I suggested he make a business out of it, and you owe him 7900 dear."

Lucius looked like he was going to choke on the number.

"Excuse me?"

"Hand made, one-of-a-kind original, real diamond ball gown, with hand made shoes and accessories." Narcissa said and Harry noticed the steel in her voice.

"Of course dear," Lucius agreed hurriedly and Harry bit back a grin; everyone was afraid of Narcissa.

"You were wondering what you were going to do when Dumbledore was seen to," Tom pointed out amused, Harry flashed him a grin.

"Apparently I'm going in to the design business; who knew?"

"I still find it astounding that you make clothes," Tom shook his head.

"I supposed one wouldn't associate something as intricate as design with someone who plays Quidditch, duels and kills easily." Harry agreed, "But I'm weird so yeah," he shrugged.

"You have the second part correct," Tom muttered and Harry gasped in mock affront.

"Well I never,"

"My example," Tom drawled with a smirk, Harry grinned.

"I know,"

"Have you spoken to your wolf!?" Tom asked and Harry shook his head.

"No, as of yet things have been pretty quiet. I did say I would drop in during the Yule break so I doubt I'll hear anything until then." Harry said and Tom nodded. He watched as Harry got a somewhat glazed look, and smirked when the teen shook his head blinking.

"You are going to disappear." Tom stated and Harry blinked.

"Um I was going to disappear for a bit, how did you know?"

"You gained a look that said you had an idea, and last time you had a spontaneous idea you ended up vanishing for 2 days and forgetting to eat." Tom said and Harry tugged at his hair sheepishly.

"In my defence, I did think is was Friday still." He said and Tom rolled his eyes.

"Just remember to eat and you do have to sleep." Tom told him and Harry grinned.

"Yeah, I'll remember this time I swear, besides, I have my turner."

"Because I believe that," Tom muttered with a sigh, he excused himself and swept from the room and Harry laughed to himself.

"Did you really vanish for 2 days!?" Narcissa asked astonished.

"I honestly didn't realise it was that long. I was so busy creating, well twisting, a ward that I lost track of time." Harry shrugged and the older Malfoys blinked.

"Made a ward?" Lucius repeated in disbelief.

"Oh yes, mother, father, when Harry decides to do something he doesn't do it by halves."

"People don't just go and make wards." Lucius pointed out and Draco scoffed.

"Harry does,"

"It was needed, how else was I going to protect the wolves?" Harry asked rhetorically.

"You mean to say the ward created around Peverell manor was yours?"

"Well, Tom added a little bit, but yeah pretty much."

"Extraordinary,"

"I know," he agreed with a smirk.

"Do not forget that we have the Yule feast this evening." Narcissa reminded him, and Harry nodded with a smile.

"I wouldn't miss it." He assured her, "Now, I think I shall be off." He left with a nod calling for an elf to show him the way as he went.

"He's..." Lucius trailed off,

"Strange, bizarre, odd, weird, mind boggling?" Draco offered and Lucius nodded.

"All of them and more,"

"Yeah that's Harry,"

"I still haven't figured him out," Lucius shook his head and Draco smirked.

"It is no use father, Harry is impossible to figure out even after 2 years. I believe Raven is the closest."

"Raven?"

"Oh sorry, it's a habit; Luna Lovegood."

"She is rather-,"

"Strange, odd, bizarre, weird?" When they both nodded Draco laughed, "What do you expect, her and Harry are like twins." Draco excused himself leaving his parents to stew on the mystery that still was Harry Potter-Black.


Harry grinned as he looked at all of his boxes and bags surrounding him from his very successful shopping trip, he didn't have anything pushing to do so he decided to go shopping instead and he went back a few hours to add time. Germany, he decided, was his absolutely favourite country and he loved shopping there, and when it was lit up for Yule there was never anything more beautiful. Being able to shop, free of his masks and constraints was liberating, and he had gone a little mad. But it was Yule and he didn't care. He didn't have time to go through everything now however, he was running a bit late and he needed to have a quick shower and change before he was late to Narcissa's Yule Feast; she would sting him up.

Thankfully, there was already an outfit ready for him and he marvelled at Luna's eye for what felt like the hundredth time. The robes were a rich navy blue with a white shirt and the same colour tie, he threw them on and styled a little before deeming himself acceptable and making his way down to the dining room. Narcissa gave him a very pleased smile when he swept in to the room and took his seat, he was followed swiftly by Draco and when they were all seated Lucius rose to his feet, goblet in hand.

"To fulfilment in life, prosperity, family and friends, to many Happy Returns, and, most importantly, to Lady Magic herself." He said, an open smile on his aristocratic face. Everyone raised their goblets to that and the feast began. Malfoys were not known for their simple lifestyle and Harry had never had a meal at the manor that was anything less than fantastic, however, the feast in which appeared, and the beauty in which it was presented, left him momentarily speechless. He felt a flash of amusement from Tom and looked up to see the man watching his reaction, the Dark Lord tilted his head in a 'what did you expect?' motion and Harry grinned.

He took a bit of everything, enjoying both new and old flavours. Low conversation picked up, Lucius and Tom were speaking about the burning of the log which was taking place tomorrow while Draco and Narcissa spoke of when the Lestranges would arrive the next day. Harry stayed mostly silent, chipping in when someone spoke to him but making no attempt to start a conversation; he didn't need to.

It was such a pleasant atmosphere, and he wanted to fully enjoy what it had to offer. Surprisingly, the five of them made a huge dent in the feast and there was very little left over, Narcissa instructed the elves to meet with the Head Elf if Peverell Manor and sent the remaining food over for the wolves. Harry felt as if he was going to explode, he hadn't eaten that much food in a while and it felt good.

"Let us retire to the living room," Narcissa suggested, rising to her feet. Lucius offered his arm for his wife and led her out, Draco stood to his mother's left, continuing their conversation while Harry hung back with Tom. The man offered his arm to the teen, who rolled his eyes but took it and allowed himself to be led from the dining room.

"It'll be odd, being with the Lestranges in an informal setting." Harry mused, "I do not know what to expect."

"I believe you will find yourself mildly surprised." Tom answered honestly and Harry hummed in response.

"I am hoping for a pleasant evening, it will be my first log burning after all."

"Ah yes, Dumbledore." Tom remembered with distaste. "You will enjoy it, of that I am certain." Harry took a seat next to Tom when they reached the living room and joined in to the conversation of the balls, Lucius was mainly interested in the two new Lords and Ladies and it was all Harry, Draco and Tom could do not to rub their hands together in glee; it would be so much fun. After a couple of drinks, they all went their separate ways to finish of the day before heading to bed. Harry went to his room to go through his shopping and calling for Dobby and Winky to help wrap his gifts, though one he made sure to do himself because of who it was for. Once that was done, he went to the room Narcissa had given him to set his things up, he wanted everything in place so he could begin when he made the time. It was going to be fun.


When Tom went to his room that evening he stopped in surprise to find it already occupied, Harry was spread out over his bed, shirtless, reading like he owned the place.

"Good evening," Tom drawled and he raised an eyebrow when Harry looked up with a smirk.

"Oh hey,"

"What are you doing?" Tom asked him, "And do not give me the answer of 'reading' because I will hex you." Harry grinned.

"I'm currently lying on your bed, why?" He blocked the hex sent to him and sat up, Tom rolled his eyes and vanished in to the bathroom, "In actual fact, I've decided that because your bed seems sooooo much more comfortable than mine that I would borrow it."

"Is that so?" Tom said amused coming out shirtless, Harry made a noise of agreement from behind his book.

"Hey!" He exclaimed as Tom banished his book, Harry found himself pushed backwards on to the bed and he smirked.

"Have something in mind Tom?" He asked lightly.

"Hmm, quite a few things actually," Tom murmured running his hands over Harry's exposed skin, he pressed open mouthed kissed down his neck and along his collar; Harry groaned in pleasure.

"Tom
"

"Here you are, lying on my bed, in my room, with barely any clothes on." Tom said lowly. Such suggestive behaviour.

"I thought you might need a little hint." Harry breathed, reaching up to pull Tom closer to him.

"Really? Then I guess I should take that hint." The innuendo was barely hidden in that sentence and Harry laughed lightly before Tom was kissing him. The man ran his hand over Harry's hip and down his leg, vanishing his jeans and hitching his leg over his own hip, bringing them closer. Harry hissed when he felt one of Tom's fingers slide in to him, the man was set on dragging things out and Harry received a smirk much to his aggravation.

"Tooooom," He complained, his voice tight with need, "I want you in me."

"Patience," Tom told him, his own voice husky. He pushed in a second finger in and brushed over the spot that had Harry gasping and demanding more, something Tom was only too happy to give. When the third finger was entered, Harry was sure he was going to go insane, Tom was driving him mad and he was doing it on purpose.

"Will you just fuck me!" Harry hissed, pushing down on those fingers wishing it was more, "Please Tom, I need it." He whimpered when Tom drew out his fingers but he didn't have time to complain as Tom thrust in sharply and Harry cried out. He felt everything as Tom set the pace, it was hard and fast and Harry's breaths were coming in harsh pants as Tom changed his angle and hit his spot repeatedly. The waves of pleasure were coursing through his body, lighting his every nerve on fire and bringing him closer to his release, when it hit he yelled out Tom's name. Tom followed him after a few more thrusts and dropped down next to the teen, breathing heavily, and pulled him over so he was lying on his chest after cleaning up with a wave of his hand.

"So you definitely got the hint then." Harry murmured, and Tom chuckled slightly.

"Something like that."

"Oh, and just as a head's up. I'm dragging you to the Sanctuary tomorrow." Harry told him and Tom raised an eyebrow, not that Harry could see it.

"Indeed?"

"Uhuh,"

"Very well," Tom sighed, "I suppose I shall accompany you."

Harry smiled.

"Night, Tom.

Chapter 44

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

Chapter 44:

Harry was 'disgustingly' cheerful when he woke up, gaining many looks of disdain from Tom as he got ready for the day. He merely grinned at the man, kissing his cheek and skipping down to the dining room. He pulled Tom with him, making the man keep up as he was gripping his hand and refusing to let go. Tom didn't really mind of course, but he had to keep some of his reputation intact – not that Harry paid any attention to that whatsoever. The Malfoys were completely dressed down for breakfast, an air of general happiness surrounded them all and Harry was only too happy to join when Narcissa ushered him over, insisting he and Tom join them.

They had a feast of a breakfast, everything Harry could possibly want, including pancakes rolled in sugar, was presented and he gladly tucked in. Draco laughed at Harry's enthusiasm, dragging the bouncing teen down to the living room when they were finished. Narcissa had redecorated, filling the room beautiful vines and evergreen wreaths, such as holy. There were neat stacks of lovely wrapped gifts placed in the centre of the seating area, and Harry skipped over, folding himself on to the two seater sofa once Tom had sat down.

"Draco, would you care to begin?" Lucius asked and his son nodded with a smile. Draco passed out gifts to everyone and Harry saw that they were from him, he cautiously shook it, making Draco roll his eyes. Lucius opened his gift from his son, admiring the collection crystal decanters and matching glasses with a smile.

"They are magnificent," Lucius commented,

"Look at the bottom." Draco instructed, and Lucius did, eyes widening as he saw what was printed there.

"These are over 500 years old." He exclaimed, "Moon-kissed crystal,"

Harry could see it now they were out of the box, the crystal shined a very pale blue and it seemed to hold its own soft glow.

"Thank you very much, son."

Narcissa went next, gently removing the silver paper to reveal a white clothing box. She opened it and gasped, unfolding an icy blue cloak and at first it could be mistaken for velvet but when she moved the material it shimmered.

"There were only four of these ever made." She whispered, "Oh Draco, it's beautiful."

"What material is that?" Harry wondered, looking at it through slightly narrowed eyes.

"That's the mystery. No one has ever been able to work it out, and those who owned them coveted them." Narcissa told him, "This is a season cloak, it changes colour to match the seasons perfectly, co-ordinating with the rapid weather changes too. This is the Yule addition, with hand stitched diamonds and a silver clasp."

"Very nice,"

"It's perfect," She declared, kissing her son on the cheek and giving him a one armed squeeze. Everyone looked at Tom to go next, so he carefully opened his gift to reveal a beautifully carved mini chest that held a single vial of potion. Tom lifted it up to show the rich purple colour was completely uniform, and then he looked towards Draco for an explanation.

"This is my latest, and greatest, creation to date." Draco began, "It, simply put, allows the drinker to see magic whenever they want. It's based on the theory/tales of Merlin's 'mage sight', it, essentially, creates it permanently; though there is a reversal potion. It's the only phial made, and the only copy of the recipe is in the bottom."

The Malfoy parents cast their son an extremely proud look as Tom's expression suddenly became a lot more interested, he offered a slight smile to the Malfoy heir and a nod of his head.

"I am very grateful, and impressed." He said honestly. Draco went slightly pink, but it was obvious he was very proud to have given a successful gift. Once Tom had set the potion down, Harry opened his present and grinned excitedly when he saw what was in his box.

"Are these what I think they are?" He asked.

"Yes," Draco confirmed and Harry laughed in delight. He pulled out a set of black fingerless gloves, made from dragon hide, and held them up.

"What are they?" Narcissa asked.

"They are morph gloves." Harry said, "They switch to full, protective and invisible. They are magic resistant, waterproof, fireproof ect., and they holster daggers and wands."

"What a splendid creation." Lucius noted surprised, and Harry nodded with a pleased look.

"Thanks, Dray."

"Now, it's my turn." Narcissa declared, delicately flicking her wand to pass out her gifts. Harry thought it was odd that there was none of the blatant excitement of exchanging gifts, and yet it felt as seasonal and close anyway. He preferred it, Harry decided, smiling at Tom's surprised and oddly touched expression when Lucius presented him with Abraxas Malfoy's silver pocket watch. Tom himself handed out his gifts to the group, presenting a restored original copy of her late father's workings on cross-breeding between races to Narcissa before handing Harry a longish box. Harry looked at it with a raised eyebrow, feeling oddly excited to see what Tom had gotten him. He pulled of the paper, admiring the beautifully carved case revealed before opening it. His eyes widened in complete shock, looking up at Tom with huge eyes.

"Is this...?" He whispered, trailing off when Tom nodded once, a slight smile on his face over Harry's reaction. He knew Harry would love it, so once he had been able to he had contacted a few of his allies and secured one for him. It was worth it, he decided, as the teen pulled out a vicious looking dagger looking completely amazed, it was entirely black with a single gleaming emerald at the hilt, the wickedly curved blade catching the light as he span the knife.

"Ancient dark elven blade," Harry murmured in awe. "Able to deflect spells as well as conduct them." He pressed a loving kiss to Tom's cheek and gave him a bright smile, "This is amazing – thank you." Tom merely pulled him closer, dropping a kiss on his temple with a smile. Harry couldn't believe it, glancing at the blade again. These blades were never seen out of dark elf hands, they used to be the desire of many, and Harry had read about them many times. He had said months ago he would kill for one himself, he knew how to use a dagger quite well and he would love to be able to use a dagger in battle. How Tom had managed to get one he didn't know, but to give it to him, Harry shook his head, kissing the man's cheek again.

"It's your turn now." He pointed out to the teen. Harry's eyes lit up, waving his hand to pass out his gifts, sitting forward to see everyone's reaction.

"Go on, Draco." He encouraged, and Draco eyed him.

"I'm not going to open this and it show that you have somehow managed to find/create Thor's Hammer or something am I? Because you are known for overdoing it with presents." Draco asked warily.

"I don't overdo it with gifts." Harry argued, "I merely like getting nice things for people."

Draco's expression told everyone how much he didn't believe him, but he opened the present and his eyebrows shot up when he saw a full potions prep case, eyes widening when he saw what was inside.

"Mother of Circe! Is this written by Zygmunt Budge?" He exclaimed, unrolling the scroll, and then he grabbed a vial out of the case. "Are these phoenix tears?"

"Yes and yes." Harry confirmed, "Black phoenix tears, actually."

"They are rarer than basilisk venom."

"There's some of that in there too." Harry said with a slight smirk, which stretched when Lucius looked up sharply.

"Very impressive."

"Just wait, father. You have to open yours yet." Draco said amused, "Thanks, Snake."

Lucius looked at his long, somewhat thin, box with some curiosity and some caution, not being able to guess what the Potter-Black teen had got him for a Yule gift. He opened the box to reveal a pale cane, made from pure Ivory and unicorn horn with a platinum snakes head and diamond eyes.

"For the Yule season," Harry said, "The horn was freely given, of course, as was the ivory."

"It's spectacular," Lucius murmured, "Hand carved?"

"Yes, and perfectly preserved."

"You have my thanks," Lucius said.

"I am very excited now." Narcissa said brightly, removing the paper from her gift. It revealed a deep blue velvet case that she opened to show a beautiful hair piece, made from platinum with water nymph topaz and mermaid's pearl. It came with a card of authenticity, explaining what it was and a seal of authentication from the Goblins.

"Wow," She breathed, "These jewels are supposed to be lost forever."

"Impossible doesn't work for me." Harry reminded with a grin, "I thought it would be perfect for you as it was also Malfoy colours."

"This is too much. You are giving away two mermaid's pearls at the very least."

"Cissa, you have literally saved my life – twice! If anything I should get you different ones for each day of the week." Harry said sincerely. Narcissa gave him a warm smile, gently placing the box to the side.

"Don't actually get her one for each day of the week." Draco told him hastily, and Harry pouted slightly before grinning.

"It's fine. There are other holidays and celebrations." He said airily and they shared a chuckle. Harry looked to Tom to open his final gift from those present suddenly nervous, he had tracked this for weeks before finally securing it and picking it up when he went shopping. Tom was very interested to see what Harry had gotten for him, especially seeing as he didn't believe he had ever mentioned wanting or seeking anything material that he didn't already have.

The only other thing he actually wanted was the wizarding world and Harry was already helping him to get that. He quirked an eyebrow at the ornately carved wooden box that was revealed, and although he recognised the crest and then name printed on the top, it was the year written on the bottle inside that made his eyes widen and his breath catch slightly. The Macallan 1926 Fine and Rare, one of the greatest, most expensive and rarest scotches on the planet. It was coveted with a vicious greed, almost impossible to find and even harder to secure.

"I hunted this one down as its supposed to be one of the very best scotches in the world." Harry explained quietly, drawing Tom's attention away from the gift.

"It is," Tom confirmed, still amazed. "The 1926 addition only has a very few made and even fewer surviving today, said to be the greatest one of their collection." Harry smiled at Tom's obvious pleasure, happy that he had picked correctly when he had first looked in to muggle scotch. He knew Tom preferred it, cherry scotch being one of his ultimate favourites, and so when he was doing some research and came across one made the year Tom was born he had just had to have it.

"It seems that year produced some of the best of everything." He commented quietly. Tom drew him in to a soft kiss, hissing his appreciation when they broke apart making Harry blush slightly.


They spent the rest of the morning doing nothing but chatting, Lucius and Tom got in to an interesting debate over freestanding and Rune based wards with Lucius arguing the latter, while Draco and Narcissa were fully explaining the Burning of the Log from their perspective to Harry as he had never experienced it before. He admitted he was looking forward to it. The elves had prepared a light lunch, not wanting to over fill them for the feast that would be presented that evening, and during the meal the Lestranges arrived baring gifts of their own. Harry took that as his queue to leave, saying a quick goodbye to the Malfoys and tugging Tom with him.

"Calm down," Tom said amused, "Remus will still be there."

"Don't pretend as if you are not as happy as I am to go and see him. You've been itching to discuss Merlin knows how many different things from your latest translation."

"Flamel really wanted to hide something. I've discovered that the book we have been struggling on is not merely one language, which is why we have not been able to identify it correctly." Tom told him animatedly, "I've managed to pick out three of the languages within the text, but I do not know how many are there overall."

"See, this is why we need to rush and see Moony." Harry said with a laugh.

"Why are we going upstairs?" Tom asked.

"So I can get my presents for them." Harry answered.

"You could have called a house elf." Tom pointed out and Harry pouted.

"And you didn't think to tell me that before?" He complained.

"You use house elves every day of your life." Tom said in defence. Harry huffed, dragging Tom the rest of the way down to his own room so he could collect his presents, before taking them through the shadows. They were overcome with a lot of shouting and laughing and Harry's eyes lit up.

"Yes, its ready!"

"What is?"

"My massive indoor play area." Harry said excitedly, "Come on,"

"No way!" Tom denied, "I'm going to the library."

"Tom, don't be foolish. Moony will be with the cubs." Harry said as if it was obvious, already leading the way through the corridors.

"You cannot drag me to a children's play area. I am the Dark Lord." He stated, despite the fact that Harry was doing exactly that.

"Who said anything about children's play area?" Harry objected, "This was half for myself."

"That's because you are a massive child."

"You are mean to me." Harry decided, and then he spotted his surrogate uncle so he darted off. "Moony!"

"Harry! You're here." He exclaimed, catching the teen and squeezing him happily.

"I see everything is going well." Harry said, looking around the huge room with amazement, and his eyes brightened when he saw the death slide. "Oh I am so going on that."

"The cubs love it, and so do the adults. We've got a huge feast planned for the evening and we've finally got every wolf inside the manor." Moony told him pleased, "This was a brilliant idea, it's exactly what we need. Not only does it help build up their muscles but it brings all the packs together. Cubs from England are meeting ones from France and learning all about the different cultures and lifestyles, and it helps with languages too; I've seen them teaching each other. The ones who have wands bombarded Paws with requests for translation spells, but she was still working on one. I don't know how she did it, but she found or made a translating rune or charm or something, and when you write down a sentence it'll translate it in to the decided language; it's quite incredible."

"How could you forget Hermione is a genius?" Harry laughed, impressed despite his joke. He would have to ask her about it.

"I'll blame the busy schedule." Remus said with a grin.

"I do hope you are enjoying the holidays, Moony." Harry said seriously, "You've done so much more than I ever planned. I got you out from the Order so you were safe and could be in peace."

Remus shook his head, hugging the teen close to him and sighing.

"You really don't know how good you are, Harry James." He murmured, pulling back and resting his hands on his shoulders. "I would rather be here, helping you and helping all these people, than hidden somewhere, wallowing in what I could and couldn't have done. You've given me a whole new purpose in life and I wouldn't have it any other way."

Harry beamed, hugging his uncle again and then casting a look around at the playing cubs.

"If not for anything else, they are all going to sleep well tonight." Harry noted and Remus snorted.

"Oh that's for sure. I think all of the parents will be – what in Merlin's name!" Remus cut himself off as he looked up to see the most bizarre scene he had ever seen. The Dark Lord was slowly backing away from a small cub, who looked to be questioning him relentlessly as they looked up and followed him. Harry burst out laughing, feeling Tom's wariness and alarm over the cub and it took him nearly a full minute to get himself together. He recognised the bracelet on the cub's wrist, so he went over and scooped her up, twirling her around making her giggle.

"Mister Snake!"

"Hello, little miss Petal." Harry greeted brightly, setting her on his hip easily. "Are you having fun?"

"Yeah! I went all the way to the top of the tower." She told him proudly, and Harry gasped, looking at her with wide eyes.

"You mean you went all the way up there?" He repeated, pointing to the top of the structure, the same level as the mega death slide that he would be going on later.

"Yep, and I did it all by myself."

"Wow, aren't you brave." Harry said surely, smiling slightly when she beamed. "So what are you doing over here with Marvolo?"

"He smells like you, Mister Snake." She said, "And I ask'ed him why and he used words with lots and lots of letters." Harry laughed at that.

"He does that a lot," Harry assured and then he dropped his voice to a mock whisper, "I think its because he's really really really smart. But don't tell him I said that."

"Promise," She swore, she looked at Tom curiously before turning back to Harry, "He has red eyes, but he wouldn't tell me why."

"You have blue eyes." Harry pointed out.

"I know that, silly Mister Snake." She insisted, shaking her head like Harry was being foolish, "But he's not supposed to have red eyes."

"Oh? Why not?"

"Cuz Alpha says only the Dark Lord has red eyes."

Harry glanced at Tom, who seemed to be looking and feeling a mixture between stunned, wary, amused and something else he couldn't quite understand, before looking back at Petal with a growing grin.

"Who do you think he is?" He asked, motioning to Marvolo. Harry felt mildly bad for how fast her head snapped around at his words, though it didn't stop him snickering when her eyes got really big.

"Wow." She wriggled indicating she wanted to get down and she slowly walked towards Tom, who looked like he was fighting not to back away again. She stopped when her tiny sock covered feet were toe to toe with Tom's shoed ones and then tilted her head back as far as it would go so she could look up at him in amazement. "You is very big, Mister Dark Lord."

Harry nearly cracked up at Tom's momentary blank look, he knew the man literally had no idea what to do and while he wasn't panicking, he wasn't thinking rationally either if Harry was reading his feelings correctly.

"You are very small." Tom informed her simply, and she looked really serious when she nodded at that.

"Mama says I gotta eat my greens, but they're yucky!" She stated, her nose wrinkling cutely, "So I p'tends to eat them and then gives them to the horsies and asks Nip for cookies." Tom smirked slightly at that, crouching down slightly because looking at the child look up at him made him ache.

"Very sneaky," He said impressed, "But if you are not eating your vegetables then how are you going to get any bigger?"

She looked completely stumped at that, looking at him in confusion before it switched to a questioning expression.

"Is that why you is really really big? Cuz you ate lots and lots of veggies?"

"Yes, with every meal."

"Even broccoli?" She looked horrified at the thought and her eyes widened when Tom nodded seriously.

"Especially broccoli."

"Do I still get cookies?" She asked warily.

"Of course, but what you have to do is save it until after the horrible broccoli because then the cookie takes the taste away." He said and she nodded, looking somewhat amazed.

"I will tell mama to save cookies for after and then I'll get really big just like you." She announced, "Bye, Mister Dark Lord." With that she waved and ran off, and she seemed to be telling all of her friends what she had just done because she was pointing at Tom and their eyes were widening. Harry shook his head, the man was ridiculously good at everything even when he didn't know what to do. It gave him a strange feeling to see Tom handle a child, but it was a nice feeling whatever it was. Harry walked over to the man, who had risen back to his normal height, and pressed a soft kiss to his lips, smiling.

"You're pretty great at everything, aren't you?" Harry said, fondly rolling his eyes when Tom didn't hasten to nod. "You still looked a bit like a deer in headlights when she first came over to you."

"I have never spoken to a child that small before." Tom said, settling his arm around Harry's waist. "I did not meet little Lucius until he was seven years old."

"Well you handled it very well considering and I think Petal's mother will thank you for the vegetables tip."

"Are all children like that?"

"No idea," Harry said, starting to walk away, "But let's get you over to Moony before you gain your own fan club."

"I see you are no longer being targeted by a persistent cub." Remus noted with a grin to the Dark Lord, Tom threw him an unimpressed look, though it was obvious there was no feeling behind it.

"She wasn't scared of me." Tom said, sounding slightly put out and Harry and Remus laughed.

"Don't worry. You still terrify the masses." Harry assured.

"Most little children don't really understand fear, and they usually only start to fear things once they have actually been scared by it." Remus told him, and then he cast a glance as where Petal was animatedly talking to a bigger group of cubs. "Somehow, I don't think you scared her at all."

"This is your fault." Tom declared, looking at Harry, "My reputation is being scrapped. First Miss Dean, now a collection of cubs, Harry this just isn't right."

"There there." Harry replied, grinning when Tom huffed, "Didn't you want to speak to Moony about the languages you found for Flamel's journal?"

"You found something?" Moony asked interested.

"Yes, it seems that it isn't one language after all." Tom told him, and when Moony's eyes lit up Harry knew he had lost the both of them for a number of hours.

"I'm going to see my friends." Harry said, "I assume you'll both be in the library?"

"Yes," they answered together. Harry kissed Tom's cheek, hugged Moony and then skipped off, spotting Hermione by the ball pit. He couldn't help but sneak up behind her and push her in, of course, he wasn't stupid enough to remain there once she spotted him and he fled. Kicking off his shoes and climbing upwards, laughing at her outraged yelling.

"Just you wait until I get my hands on you, Harry James!" She yelled, already out of the pit and climbing up after him. Harry found Ron on his way up, and the red head teen earned Hermione's ire by dumping a load of plastic balls down the passage she was climbing.

"RUN!" He cried, darting off laughing. Harry was only too happy to follow him, though he nearly fell down a tube when he lost his footing.

"Merlin this is a challenge," He said, rolling to his feet.

"Yeah, one we'll never finish if we don't hurry up." Ron said, pointed on the rapidly moving Hermione.

"Up that net," Harry decided, running over and starting to climb. He and Ron made good time, getting to the next level and half way down the corridor before Hermione had reached the net.

"Up or across?" Ron asked, motioning to the squishy stairs or the rope swing.

"Across, throw the rope back quickly and we can tie it off the other side buy us some time." Harry said with a grin. Ron swung across, nearly falling backwards when he slipped on the edge, tossing the rope back in time for Harry to take a running leap off the edge, grab the robe and miss Hermione's stinging hex by millimetres.

"Whoa that was close." Ron said, cheerily waving at Hermione from the other side.

"I hate you both."

"No you don't," Harry denied, grinning when she smiled at them.

"Race you to the death slide?" She suggested.

"Then we have to do it from the bottom." Ron said. They all shared a look.

"Race you to the bottom." All three of them yelled. Harry ran to the nearest set of big steps and jumped down the quickly, spotting Ron swinging back across the rope and Hermione already climbing down the net. Harry found a tube slide so he took it, not expecting it to spit him out the other end and catapult him in to the air. He yelped, catching the rope waiting for him mid-air and landing heavily on the other side.

"I love magic." He whispered, picking himself up and heading further down. He came to a false exits, resulting in him having to climb back up and take the other one before he managed to get back on to normal ground and run over to where Hermione was waiting somewhat smugly.

"Where's Ron?" He wondered. He burst out laughing when he saw his other best friend seemingly going in circles on the first level up. "Nice Confundus."

"He tripped me." She offered as an excuse. Ron shook off the spell and managed to get over to them, throwing a look of disgust at Hermione, much to both of their amusements.

"Evil evil evil woman,"

"I know,"

"Where are the others?" Harry asked.

"Somewhere in this." Hermione answered, "There's Neville."

"The twins are over by Moonrise,"

"And Luna is-,"

"Here," said girl answered from right behind them, making them jump slightly and spin around.

"Luna!"

Harry happily picked her up and span her around in a hug, placing her back on her feet and accepting her kiss to his cheek.

"Come on, let's grab the others so we can swap presents before going on that death slide."

"This idea of yours was a great one." Ron said, "Though I haven't been on the slide yet."

"Just you wait, it's going to be great." Harry said, "Has anyone else been on the tube that throws you through the air?"

"The one where you have to try and catch the rope?" Hermione asked and Harry nodded. "I've been on it once, missing the robe by a hair."

"What happens if you miss?" Ron asked.

"You land in a spring net, its layered with cushioning charms and shock reduction spells to stop most of the jarring. The goblins did an amazing job, and while everyone is in here, they are currently building the outdoor adventure playground, and I know they plan on building it up to the very tallest of trees, and there is going to me multiple zip-lines." She explained.

"Wicked."

"Very nice job on the translating parchments by the way," Harry said, as they made their way through the room.

"Thanks. I found the base structure and varied follow up steps in one of the Flamel journals I translated, then I just built it up." She told him, "It was very interesting."

"I still find it weird you can read languages but not speak them." Ron said shaking his head.

"Ron! How could you say such awful things?" Harry gasped in horror, though his eyes were sparkling, "You should know by now that Hermione is our own bookworm. Of course she can read languages."

The boys laughed while Hermione slapped their arms, smiling fondly at their antics. They met with the twins and Neville and managed to snag a small quieter corner in the playroom to switch presents. The girls got rare jewellery from Harry, while he got the Ron an elven bow and arrow, because he knew the other teen had all but perfected his archery, Neville got a scroll written by Hufflepuff herself on Herbology, while the twins got a journal written by the Marauders – it was only a copy, but they appreciated it all the same. Actually, Harry felt a thrill of fear when he saw the somewhat unholy glint in their eyes as they looked over the journal. Harry was aglad they all liked their gifts, and he loved his, especially the new boots Luna got him. They sat there for a good hour and a half before Harry flashed them all a grin.

"I'm thinking it should be the first person back here, but you have to go down the death slide." He suggested.

"You're on," Ron agreed, "We'll use the Quidditch relay spell to make sure everyone does down."

"And we should have a rule that says no magic." Neville added.

"Oo, yes, I like it." Luna said smiling.

"Ok, Ron, cast the spell." Fred told him. As soon as the spell was cast they were off, running in to the play area and scrambling upwards. Harry literally threw himself over everything, not caring about getting hurt as he knew it was built for little people so he was completely safe. When he finally got to the top, he wasn't alone and he and Ron rushed to the slide together. They fought, pushing each other back and dragging the other down until they both fell; only they didn't hit the ground. They were, apparently, a lot closer to the edge of the slide than first believed because when they fell they fell down the slide and both of they yelled out as they shot down the slide in the wrong angle. Harry was extremely thankful when the slide started to slope and even out, though they both hid the cushioned stop and rolled over to their backs panting. They shared a look and burst out laughing, and they were gasping for breath when the rest of their group reached them.

"I was going to ask if you two were alright, but I think I have my answer." Hermione said amused.

"That was so fun," Harry said grinning, accepting George's hand up.

"How did you even manage to end up going down head first?" Neville asked.

"He pushed me." They exclaimed, pointed at each other.

"Honestly," Hermione shook her head with a laugh. "Come on, we have to prepare for the feast, it's starting in like twenty minutes."

"Is that the time already?" Harry said alarmed.

"Yes, why?"

"Narcissa is going to kill us." He moaned, "I have to run to get dressed for dinner."

"See you tomorrow, Snake." They called, laughing as he ran out of the room as if he was on fire. Harry jumped through the shadows and landed in the library, rushing through the shelves to find Tom and Moony.

"Where's the fire?" Moony asked him as he came to a stop.

"We have to go," Harry said.

"Already? You only just got here."

"The feast is starting in twenty minutes." Harry told him.

"Holy Merlin," Moony exclaimed, leaping to his feet, "I'm running late."

"Narcissa," Tom said, looking at Harry seriously. The teen nodded, shuddering at the thought of an angry Narcissa.

"I'll see you soon?"

"Definitely," Harry assured, hugging his uncle tightly before the man rushed off, muttering about how much they had to prepare.

"Come on, we have to shower and dress for dinner so we can escape with our lives." Harry said, only partially joking. He and Tom vanished in to the shadows, coming out in Tom's rooms to make sure they were far away from Narcissa until they were dressed. Harry jogged down to his rooms, switching his jeans and top for a black shirt and dress trousers and finishing it with a deep green open front robe before styling his hair in to a semblance of order. Tom was waiting for him outside his rooms and Harry took his offered arm to make their way down to the dining room. Luckily, they made it to the dining room just as Draco was entering, illustrating that they were not yet late.

"Ah, you are back." Narcissa noted pleased.

"As if we would miss your feast, Cissa." Harry said in mock horror, sitting down when Tom pulled out his chair for him.

"Have some faith in us please, Narcissa." The man said, faking his mild offence as he sat next to Harry.

"Forgive my oversight." She said blandly. Harry noticed that they each had a smaller plate to the side of them for their sacrifices and smiled slightly, he was quite excited to see what would be happening that night. The rest of the table greeted them, though Harry saw the Lestranges had an odd look on their faces as they glanced over at him. He didn't pay any attention to it, they didn't seem hostile. The feast that was presented to them put anything he had ever seen to shame, it rivalled a Hogwarts feast and Harry shook his head.

"How goes the sanctuary?" Draco asked and Harry grinned, sitting forward slightly.

"Oh Merlin did you miss it." Harry said, "The play area is finished and they have so many things to do, there's this awesome tube that spits out of the end and you have to try and grab the robe to swing to the other side or you drop all the way down in to this net."

"And let me guess, you had to have a go?" Draco commented, Harry nodded, looking at him as if he was an idiot for thinking otherwise.

"Of course. It was great, and me and Swift ended up falling head first down the death drop, which was amazing."

"How about the cubs?" Cissa asked.

"Bless them, they love it, and so do the adults." Harry answered, "The goblins did a hell of a job, everything is cushioned and layered in shock reductions and Merlin knows what else to make it extra safe."

"Is it very big?"

"Massive," Tom replied, "I was taken there against my will."

"Admit it, Petal is adorable." Harry said.

"She was very inquisitive, but not all together unpleasant." Tom allowed reluctantly.

"You met with some of the cubs, My Lord?"

"I was attacked," He corrected and Harry snorted.

"You were not attacked, she was merely interested in who you were."

"Absolutely no fear whatsoever." Tom said with a shake of his head.

"Wait, the cub wasn't afraid at all?" Lucius questioned surprised.

"No, she was more interested in if Tom ate his vegetables to make himself so tall."

Both the Lestrange brothers hastily hid their snorts of laughter at that, ducking their heads even though their shoulders shook. Bella and Narcissa hid their grins behind their glasses while Lucius and Draco looked at Harry as if he had lost his mind.

"Excuse me?" Lucius said slowly.

"Oh yeah, seemed to be more amazed at the fact he was at least four foot taller than her." Harry said with a chuckle.

"She sounds sweet." Narcissa said softly.

"Petal is lovely," Harry agreed, "Tom thinks so too, but he's trying to keep his reputation intact."

"Which you do not help with." Tom grumbled, pouting slightly making Harry lean up to kiss it away.

"Eat your broccoli," He instructed, laughing when Tom nearly gaped at him.

"I hate you." Tom muttered, though he had a slight smile on his face and Harry grinned.

"I know,"

They turned back to the feast and struck up conversations with other people, not noticing Narcissa hissing to her sister to stop the Lestranges saying anything about their actions. Harry was speaking with Draco and Rabastan about the flying they did previously that day, and he was excited to challenge the youngest Lestrange brother to a flying contest. He remembered to set aside bits of everything he ate for the log, catching sight of the amount others were placing and keeping it roughly the same. Once they were all finished, Lucius rose, offered his arm to Narcissa, and led the group to where they would be holding the Burning of the Log. Harry grabbed his plate, taking Tom's arm and trying, quite unsuccessfully, to keep his excitement in check. Tom chuckled at his behaviour, watching as Harry's eyes shined as he saw the log light up for the first time. Tom brought Harry over, handing him the ceremonial blade to add blood to his sacrifice, before they both turned to Lucius for him to begin.

"Lady Magic, we bless you on this midwinter night." He murmured. "We offer our sustenance and our life force as appreciation for the gifts you have bestowed upon us." Lucius poured his plate in to the flames and they flared, stirring the magic within the air. After Lucius, they went in a clockwise circle around the log to offer their sacrifice to Lady Magic, the air getting thicker as the magic grew around them.

Harry was the final person to finish, pouring in his sacrifice and breathing in the rising magic. The flames grew, burning bright orange, almost white in intensity and magic seemed to explode around them, swirling and pulsing as she heard their voices and accepted their offerings. It danced around them, making Harry's own magic thrum under his skin, as if it was answering its mothers call. It was such an intense feeling that it left Harry breathless, to feel magic so potently, so fully, it was indescribable. When the flames eventually started to die down to their original height, they all took their seats, removing their formal robes for comfort. Harry was only too happy to curl in to Tom when the man wrapped his arm around his waist, he threw his legs over Tom's lap and settled his head on his shoulder as he watched the flames bounce around them.

Such peace was a rarity. Harry couldn't remember feeling so well relaxed and whole, it was odd, but very welcome. He had loads of work to do, and a million other things to accomplish, but at the very moment he didn't care; he'd deal with it when it came.


Harry vanished for an entire day much to the amusement of Tom, he'd seen the teen slip away from breakfast and just disappear. The final preparations for the upcoming balls were put in to arrangement, Narcissa had turned in to a half demon as the final touches of her own ball were put in to place. The first ball was just the next day, so Cissa was getting a bit worked up due to the fact that she had not managed to finalise her menu. Harry was oblivious to the world around him, focussing only on his work to keep himself going. After the day with Narcissa, he seemed to have caught the design bug because he kept coming up with different ideas, he had a dress for Paws and Raven for each ball as well as the random designs he had come up for Narcissa.

Only when he was sure he was run dry for ideas at the time did he leave his room and venture back in to Malfoy Manor as a whole. What he had done was work for the entire day before moving the remains of his designs and materials back up to his bedroom, turning back time and continuing from where he was working. When he emerged after his two days of work, he waited for his other self to fade out before moving all of the designs dresses back down to his work room. He walked down the hall on his way to the lounge to find Narcissa, but luck was on his side because he walked past a parlour and she was sat in there having tea with Naomi Greengrass.

"Ah Harry, you've made it in time for dinner," She said with a smile, Harry grinned.

"I've been busy,"

"I hope you remembered food," Narcissa warned and Harry blinked, food had not been top priority.

"I had a sandwich," He told her.

"And when was that?"

"Honestly, I have no idea," Harry flashed her a perfect smile which made her blush slightly and Naomi giggled.

"A charmer,"

"A pleasure to see you again, my Lady." Harry greeted swiftly kissing her hand and flashing her the same smile.

"You are terrible," Narcissa said, "Have I not warned you to keep your health in check."

"I know," Harry flashed a smirk, "But I do believe I said I was going to run a few designs for you?"

"Oh wonderful," Narcissa said with a touch of excitement, she turned to her friend, "The dress I showed you?"

"The gorgeous silver one that you said was handmade in front you?" Naomi confirmed and Narcissa nodded.

"Yes, the very same,"

"I remember it, it was truly stunning. You said it was from an upcoming designer; HPB." Naomi said, "I wondered what their work would be like later if that was only 'upcoming',"

"Would you care to see?" Harry asked and she looked at him startled.

"See?"

"Yes Mimi, Harry is the art and creation of HPB; Harry Potter-Black." Cissa told her with a smile.

"You, you made that gorgeous dress?" She questioned in amazement.

"Yes, I've been busy coming up with new designs. Actually, I've just finished the final one, I've made each one of my designs for viewing except the ones for the girls. Raven, my design partner, believes that creating a business out of this would be fun."

"Would you like to be present for the first ever exclusive viewing of HPB, I just know that this will take off." Narcissa questioned her friend, they both shared an excited squeal, that Harry was sure no one would ever know about, and got gracefully to their feet.

"Lead the way, Harry,"

Harry led them back to the room Narcissa had given him. It was a very large room and it was filled with light, all the previous furniture that had been in there had been shrunken and placed carefully in a trunk he had conjured and tucked away. What stood in place were 12 human shaped figures covered in black sheets with boxes at the feet and a few other boxes to the left.

"So, this is my Yule collection. The boxes at the feet are the shoes I would recommend with the dress, but there are other shoes that I've made and the clutches are around too." Harry explained motioning to everything as he spoke about it.

"You make shoes too?" Naomi asked and Harry nodded.

"Shoes, accessories, clutches, and dresses,"

"What about male clothing?"

"Raven's department mainly, she has an eye for male robes, but I do throw my part in when I have an idea, and I make great suits." Harry told her, "Now, when the covers are removed, you will see a chart next to them which shows all the colours that particular dress comes in."

"Ok,"

"Ready?"

"Yes!" they both exclaimed and Harry laughed, he waved his hand and the black covered all vanished showing all 12 dresses; they both gasped. Harry smirked, he had put a hellava lot of effort in to them, and he was rather impressed.

"Oh Harry," Narcissa murmured softly,

"They're beautiful," Naomi said equally as soft, they both seem to drift forward to the dresses and Harry couldn't help but grin when Narcissa gravitated towards the ones he had designed with her in mind. The first one was a shimmering silver fishtail dress with pale blue ruffles in the tail, it was a sweetheart neck line with a high back and he had paired it was a pale blue shimmering shoe and pale blue satin clutch. The second was a deep blue satin, strapless, A-line number which had a cluster detail on the left hip and diamonds running through the rippled and down the skirt, Harry had removed a few of the skirt layers to diminish the width of the skirt, but he had left most to keep the shape. He had paired it with dark blue, diamond studded shoe, silver elbow length satin gloves and a silver clutch which held a scattering of diamonds on it.

The third was a simple, golden dress that was clenched between the breast with snowflake in the centre. From there it flowed down loosely until it trailed on to the floor and it was made from silk, it was held up by two thick straps and he had paired it with a simple golden slipper and pale gold clutch. The final one was very daring, and it had been the last one he had made. It was a dark gold, completely backless dropping so low that it grazed the bottom curve, halter-neck dress which left little to the imagination, the front only had two strips of material that covered the breast and linked together just below the breast with a thin strip of diamonds leading down, there was also a split that finished high up on the thigh. It was risky and only someone with complete confidence would even think about wearing it, he had paired it with simple peep toe gold heels and a sparkly clutch.

"Do they meet your approval?" Harry asked.

"I want three of them," Narcissa stated, "The dark gold, the blue and the silver."

"The shoes also?"

"Yes, with a selection of wristbands. I will be wearing Malfoy and Black jewels too."

"I'll have them bagged and boxed for you, My Lady." Harry murmured and Narcissa smiled.

"I shall inform Lucius the bill has risen to 32,000." She said, "I am sure there will be no problem."

"Thanks," Harry called for Winky to wrap the selected dresses and take them to the Lady Malfoy's dressing room with the woman's permission. Harry followed Narcissa over to where Naomi seemed to be struggling with something, he had come up with these dresses while he was making the finished touches for Luna and Hermione's gowns, he had sketched them out and went from there. The first was a one shoulder number, done in bronze, with an elegant knot where the strap met the dress, there were a few layers of crossed material before going down to a thread of beads around the waist, from there it flowed down to the ground where Harry had added in different length layer so it stood out and curled slightly. The shoes to match were a simple bronze satin 4" heel with three diamonds on the toe in a triangle shape.

The second was a deep purple, it was almost a halter neck, only instead of being tied behind the neck, it went up to fascine around a collar of diamonds, the back of the dress was also attached to the same collar making the dress a high back number, it clenched in at the waist and had snowflakes going around before flowing down loosely to be paired with darker purple peep toe heels that had a snowflake on the back of the shoe. The third was royal blue, it had a sweetheart neckline and from the neckline to the hips it had embroidered primroses with glittering sapphires at the centre of each flower, before flowing down to the ground and Harry had made dark blue embellished shoes to match the primrose pattern with matching dark blue clutch. The final was a figure hugging, one shoulder red dress, from the shoulder strap down to the mid-thigh slit there were diamonds on one side, the dress flared out from the split and the back was covered in a clear red net and diamonds until the waist before the dress flowed down with a scattering of diamonds. He had finished the dress with a plain red closed in shoe and matching clutch.

"What is the matter, Mimi?" Narcissa questioned.

"I want them all!" She exclaimed, "All of them, with the shoes, and the clutches,"

"They are rather gorgeous," Narcissa agreed amused.

"How much are they? I'll pay anything," Naomi said to him.

"They don't really have a set price," Harry said sheepishly.

"I paid 7900 for the entire set," Cissa told her, "With a little tip of course,"

"Wonderful, I shall inform Hadrian to write out a draft of 32,000 immediately." She said brightly, "I cannot wait to feel the envy of those at our balls."

"I do take a hellish amount of pleasure in just thinking of Evelyn's reaction." Narcissa agreed.

"Is this the Lady Selwyn?"

"Yes, she was wearing, I'll admit, a gorgeous gown to the Malfoy ball and she could not stop speaking of how it was a gift from a Princess in some country. Hand chosen or something." Narcissa said dryly and Harry smirked,

"So your hand made, personally styled numbers are going to be a cause for stir?" He ventured and they both flashed shark-like grins.

"Most definitely,"

"Wonderful, I do so love causing stirs." Harry said laughing, "My Lady, if you would permit me to take your sizes, I can have your gowns fitted by the end of the day and sent to you. The Greengrass family are blue, bronze and red, yes?"

"Yes, we are. That would be wonderful, Harry." She said pleased, he made a note to change the purple to icy blue to fit in with the colours as she stepped on to the platform Harry just conjured and removed her clothes easily. Harry wondered how many people would envy his position right now and bit back a chuckle as he took her measurements, he took a full view of her figure as he did with Narcissa and dragged the image in to his book and nodded with a smile.

"All done, the adjustment will be made and finalised within the hour." He told her, "My elf will deliver them, she will come to you and ask where you require them before bringing them to make sure you are not busy when she arrives."

"Thank you,"

"What do you intend to do with the remaining dresses?" Narcissa asked, indicating the remaining five,

"I don't know yet, I already have dresses for my girls. I might give one of them to Ellen, and resize one for Alina as a gift." He shrugged, "I might keep them and have them modelled and photographed for an advertisement for the shop."

"It is such a shame Martina is no longer within our circle." Naomi sighed.

"I always said that contract would ruin her, but her father insisted on Parkinson." Cissa agreed.

"It was because of the business,"

"Yes, but that business was not as profitable as they believed." Harry scoffed, and the woman looked at him in question, "The Blacks funded that business and bailed them out more times than I can even remember."

"That explains everything," Narcissa mused, "I was unsure if you would actually pull funding, and when they went under I didn't know if it was you or something else."

"Oh it was me, and I relish in the fact that Parkinson still owes me money."

"Oh my," Naomi gasped, "To be in such debt is a disgrace,"

"And he still thought it would be a good idea to insult me; foolish man." Harry shook his head, he cast a tempus and blinked, "Right, time to eat I guess."

"Yes, you must catch up on the meals you have missed." Narcissa stated.

"Then after, do you wish to discuss the menu?" Harry asked and Narcissa's eyes lit up.

"I would love to, Harry." She said to him before turning to her friend, "Allow me to show you to the floo."

"Of course, Cissa."

They linked arms and Harry shook his head. He began his resizing and recolouring, as it shouldn't take too long. He had edited a few colour changing spells to work on permanently dying his clothes, because he never did like making replicas. The only problem was, he had to edit the spells differently for each material, which is why he had the colour chart in which the dresses could come in. Once they were done, he sent them off with Winky and shadowed to the rooms back in Hogwarts, turning his time turner back ten hours and getting to work.

If he and Narcissa were going to talk about the ball menu then it would be easier if he had all of his dishes prepared for her to see and taste. When he was finished, he charmed them to stay fresh and warm/cold and shadowed back to the dinging when the times matched, grinning when Tom rolled his eyes at the action, taking his customary seat. Harry couldn't help but laugh when Lucius was overcome with hacking coughs at the price Narcissa informed him she had just spent on her ball gowns. What made it all the more funny was the proud and powerful Lucius Malfoy offering a meek "Yes, dear," once had recovered the ability to breathe normally, and then mouthing "32 thousand galleons" with a look of utter disbelief to the Dark Lord behind her back. Even Tom hastily covered his laughter at the Malfoy Lord's predicament, but everyone at that table knew he would never deny his wife anything. One thing was certain, Lucius Malfoy adored his wife.

"To the kitchen with us, Harry." Narcissa announced, once the meal was finished. Both Tom and Draco's attention snapped around as the pair rose, looking very interested in what they were doing and even Lucius perked up.

"The black forest cheesecake, I believe, has already been decided." Harry told Tom, smiling at the man's pleased expression. He pressed a kiss to Tom's cheek and left with Narcissa. The Lady Malfoy took him down to a part of the manor he had never seen, and in to a wide open kitchen, that had four elves running about. They all froze when their mistress entered, and then many exclamations of service burst forth.

"Go back to your work, we are merely using some of your space." Narcissa told them and they bowed and followed her word.

"So, as I said, I have come up with a few things to run past you for your ball." Harry began, "And I made them for you to see and taste before you decide."

"When did you ever have the time to make them?" Narcissa wondered and Harry grinned.

"I made them all after you suggested this meeting earlier." Harry answered, flashing his timeturner.

"I shall never become used to those things." She stated with a sniff, making Harry chuckle.

"Shall we begin with starters?" Harry offered, "I have to admit I struggled with these, they are not my speciality at all."

"I will be happy to try anything." Narcissa assured him. Harry smiled and calling for Winky to bring the first course. She popped in with four dishes, each presented in a different way and Narcissa's eyes light up when she saw them. She took a bit of the lemon sorbet to make sure all flavours were off her tongue before nodded to say that she was ready.

"The first, the meat starter, is Smoked Duck, Walnut and Blue Cheese Salad with Beetroot Sorbet." Harry told her, pushing polished silver plate forward. He had had to make it once before for the Durseleys at one of the fancy dinners the whale liked to host, he, personally, didn't like it that much, but that was because of the blue cheese; he hated the stuff. The duck sat in slices over the cheese salad in the very centre of the plate, with the sorbet quenelle shaped on top.

"It is very neat." Narcissa said, "Clean and precise."

"I was at a loss on how to present it, if I am honest." Harry admitted with a shrug. Cissa picked up a fork and sampled it slowly, rolling the flavours and textures over on her tongue before taking another bite. She nodded and then turned to the next one.

"I wasn't sure if you were going on the meat/vegetarian route or meat/fish/vegetarian," Harry said, allowing her to cleanse her palette with the lemon sorbet and then pushing his next plate forward.

"For Yule, we usually present a full menu."

"Even better," Harry decided. "This is a crab claw salad, made with lightly salted cucumber, mango and chimiechurri dressing." He had presented this in a martini glass, with a layer of chopped cucumber at the bottom, followed by the mango and then the crab salad on top. The clear glass became frosted at the bottom, like it was icy and it was a stand-alone item.

"I love this presentation," Narcissa told him, "It is very unique for a starter presentation, and the design on the glass itself fits with the season perfectly." She repeated the process of sampling the food and then cleansing her pallet, and Harry pushed his final starter forward.

"This is a truffled parmesan mousse, made with mushrooms and green vegetables." Harry said. He had used a halo tumbler for this, with white frosting on the base of the glass that led out on to the silver plate he had set it on.

"Again, very unique and with the season, those this one seems warmer." Cissa mused, "I think it might be the richness of the honey colours against the creams and the sharp green."

Once she had finished and sat back, Harry folded his hands in front of him and waited for her verdict.

"I liked them all." She told him, "But I do not believe the duck would be suited at all."

"Fair enough," Harry banished the plate to the other end as the Lady contemplated the other two.

"I almost selected them both because they were beautifully made and complimented their other flavours well, but the Yule season this year is going to be absolutely crucial. I have no doubt that there will be whispers of the crab claw being too 'cold' for Yule, so I will have to decline that dish for Yule." Narcissa decided, "I wish for it to have a place in next summer's solstice ball, on the other hand."

"I would be honoured." Harry accepted with grace and Cissa smiled.

"I must have the truffled parmesan, however. It is a gorgeous combination of flavours, and the colourings match the warmth needed for the Yule season."

"Thank you," Harry said with a pleased smile, "Shall we move to mains."

"Let's." She agreed.

"We start with a lime cleanser this time." Harry said, "I made one for each course beginning."

"Oh lovely,"

"First up we have brill, pomme dauphine with crab ravioli and a garlic and saffron cream foam sauce on a bed of kale." Harry said with flourish.

"I haven't had brill in sometime." Narcissa noted, looking the plate over. The fish was sliced in half and crossed over on the kale, with the pomme dauphine spaced between the crab ravioli around the fish and the sauce drizzled over the fish and around the edge of the plate. Cissa sampled a bite of everything individually before trying it as a whole and then cleansing her palette.

"Next we have tea and orange marinated rump steak with fondant potato, ginger baby carrots and a parsnip puree." The steak was led in the parsnip puree with three carrots and the potato to the side on an oval plate.

"What tea did you use for this?" She asked, liking the unusual flavours.

"Lapsang Souchong tea with a bit of Szechuan pepper."

"I do not believe I have had it."

"It is a Chinese tea. Petunia was in a woman's group and they went through an 'aromatic tea' phase, and this recipe was in the book she brought home about incorporating tea in to cooking. I added the pepper and the potato, they served it with boiled new potatoes." Harry explained.

"I see." Cissa cleansed her palette as Harry moved forward her next dish.

"Roast partridge, squash puree with girolle mushrooms, fondant potatoes and wild mushroom essence."

Harry had set this dish out like a mirror, everything was perfectly placed, right down to the scattered mushrooms down the centre of the plate. Narcissa raised her eyebrow at the presentation, but wasted no time to digging in to her tasting and cleaning her pallet once again.

"Finally we have poached chicken, with spinach, arancini and saffron sauce."

The chicken was placed on the spinach, with the three arancini around the edge of the plate and the sauce poured over the meat.

"That is a very clever combination." Narcissa said with a quirk of her lips.

"Unfortunately, I couldn't come up with a vegetarian main which was good enough for a ball." Harry told her, "So that's all for mains."

"I shall be choosing two of these and changing my menu layout." She decided, "I simply have to serve the brill and the chicken. I shall find another fish course and we will have four courses."

"I can offer two more fish options?" Harry offered, "Cod, salmon or sea bass?"

"Salmon and sea bass sound good, do you think you could have two dishes ready by tomorrow afternoon, before you leave to prepare for Hadrian's ball?"

"Yes, I can work on them in the morning before running them past you." Harry agreed.

"And on to deserts." Narcissa said brightly, looking forward to what was coming.

"So I've tried something new with the palette cleanser this time, and used honeydew melon. I've often found it refreshing and it doesn't linger." Harry said to her, pushing it forward to try once Winky had taken the dismissed plates and replaced them again with deserts. "I've got the previously tasted black forest cheesecake, but this time it comes with a cherry sorbet."

"I shall have to try it again, to make sure of course." Cissa told him and Harry nodded seriously.

"Of course."

"Yes, there is no doubt that this is perfect." She stated and Harry grinned.

"Tom is rather fond of that one."

"I can understand why."

"Next a pistachio and chocolate soufflé, with a chocolate creme fraiche ice cream."

Harry had placed the soufflé on the centre of the plate with icing dusting over it and he served the ice cream in a mini frosted bowl placed to the left.

"The soufflé is only lightly flavoured with chocolate." She pointed out.

"Yes, I thought if it was too chocolately it would become heavy. So I subbed out and made the ice cream." Harry explained.

"I see, yes." Cissa agreed, "Especially after three previous courses."

"Finally I have a buttermilk panna cotta and honeycomb sandwich, with a raspberry sorbet."

The 'sandwich' was in the centre of the square plate, there were three pieces of honeycomb holding two squares of panna cotta with the sorbet quinelled on top between four fresh raspberries. He had lightly dusted the entire plate to give it that frosted look and watched as Narcissa bit in to it.

"This is beautiful," She exclaimed, "Yes, this will be used also."

"So we have the cheesecake and the panna cotta." Harry confirmed.

"Yes, and I shall take all of your pallet cleansers, then everyone can have a selection; that will appear very nicely." Narcissa added.

"I also have a selection of crystallised nuts and dried fruits for after desert." Harry informed her, snapping his fingers and summoning Winky to bring in the martini glasses filled with the nuts and fruits.

"These are lovely." Narcissa said to him, "These can go on the drinks table and in the centre of the floating platters."

"So I am making one starter, one main, three fish, two deserts and the evening bites." Harry said, writing everything down on his conjured quill and parchment. "How many guests are we expecting?"

"Around fifty two." Narcissa answered.

"So if I make for fifty seven then we should be covered."

"That shall be plenty."

"Brilliant."

"Are you sure you are able to do so much?" Narcissa asked in concern.

"It'll be fine, Cissa. I have my turner and I have the help of elves."

"If you are sure?"

"It would be my pleasure to make these dishes for you ball, Cissa." Harry assured her, "Besides, it'll be fun."

"Leave the tidying to the elves and come to the sitting room, Hadrian's ball is tomorrow and I believe we deserve a nice relaxing evening." Narcissa decided, linking him by the arm and forcing him to lead her out. Lucius and Tom were in a discussion when they entered, though Draco was absent.

"I was beginning to wonder if you would ever return." Tom greeted and Harry flashed a grin.

"Apparently Cissa likes my cooking." Harry returned, "We've altered the menu a bit."

"How many alterations?" Lucius asked cautiously, sounding as if he was dreading the answer.

"We are now serving a fish course and after desert snacks." Cissa answered, and Lucius blinked.

"Very well, we shall have to alter the menus."

"It is no bother, Lucius. Harry managed to present the dishes in with our winter theme so we need only add the courses." Narcissa waved him off, remarkably breezy about more changes this close to the ball itself.

"Wonderful, everything is in order then?" Lucius made sure to phrase it as a question just in case; his wife was rather wound during ball season.

"Oh yes. With Harry's wonderful gown making skills, and his excellence in cooking, our ball is set to be perfect." She announced, daintily taking her seat and accepting the drink Lucius handed to her. The Malfoy Lord sent Harry a grateful look, thanking him for saving him many of headaches that usually followed during the ball season.

"As I said before, Cissa, I am happy to help." Harry told her, nodding to Malfoy as he spoke.

"We were speaking of tomorrow evening's ball." Tom informed them, "And of Hadrian's intentions."

"He wishes to begin conversing over a Vote, yes?" Harry remembered.

"Yes, we were merely discussing how he would attempt to spread word."

"Well he's going for the announcer route, meaning he's probably going to be quite direct about it."

"What makes you so certain?" Narcissa asked.

"Announcer means no personal introductions, they are being announced meaning that everyone will know someone who knows the person they don't know." Harry pointed out and then grinned, "That is English, please just work through it."

"I see what you mean." Tom allowed, "Each circle will either know of the House or will have had someone who heard the announcement of the House, making it so conversation of up-to-date topics can begin immediately."

"Exactly," Harry nodded, "He'll already have Lord Davis there with him, and both Fudge and Dumbledore have left themselves open for too long."

"It's going to be an interesting perspective." Lucius agreed, "I am almost displeased that our balls are not open, I would just adore to hear what the light families are saying right now."

"Luckily we are not completely cut off." Tom reminded him, then he looked at Harry, "Don't you have a direct line in to one of the most light-minded houses?"

Harry's expression curled in to a delighted smirk.

"Ah Nev, such a great guy."

"The Longbottom heir, ah yes." Lucius remembered, "The next Wizengamot will be beautiful."

"Of that I have no doubt." Harry agreed, "Especially after the balls."

"I am really looking forward to tomorrow." Narcissa murmured, and everyone agreed with that.

Chapter 45

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

Chapter 45:

Harry was buzzing. He had woken up at a ridiculously early hour with his anticipation bubbling over, so he slipped out of bed and went down to the kitchen to begin making his fish dishes for Narcissa. He managed to get the elves to cooperate when he had Winky pop in and explain to them in a way in which they would understand. He was all but dancing around the kitchen as he worked, humming to himself. He just couldn't wait. Harry didn't know if it was his excitement or just his general movements, but the dishes were finished quickly and he charmed them to sit until Narcissa was ready to try them, asking Winky for a little house elf magic to make sure they stayed fresh.

Harry skipped back up to Tom's rooms, grinning when he saw the man awake rising to dress for the day. He moved over to stop the man's movements, his grin turning devilish as he ran his hands over Tom's exposed chest and reached up to kiss him. Harry could feel Tom's anticipation for the night's ball behind the lust that had risen up at Harry's sudden actions. Things heated up and Tom began pushing Harry back, breaking apart long enough to mutter "Shower" before they were kissing again. Harry was only too happy to comply, vanishing their clothes with a wave of his hand and turning on the water with the same motion. As soon as the water was running, Tom had Harry under the spray and against the wall, easily lifting him to wrap his legs around him. Tom had barely cast his gripping any charms before Harry was preparing himself and sinking down on to his waiting arousal.

The teen was filled with desire and excitement, almost salacious and Tom was only too happy to give him exactly what he wanted. Harry met each thrust, demanding faster and more, and crying out when Tom found the spot that sent waves through him. It was hard and fast, and Harry collapsed on to Tom after his release hit. He was gently placed back on his own feet and Harry sighed happily when Tom began washing him, it was a relaxing experience and Harry reached up to press a slow kiss of thanks to Tom's lips. When they were finished, Tom dried them both off with a wave of his hand and they got dressed for the day. Harry walked down to breakfast on Tom's arm, just enjoying the peacefulness even as his excitement was thrumming just below the surface.

"Good morning, Harry, My Lord." Narcissa greeted warmly, as they took their seats for breakfast.

"Good morning, Narcissa." Tom returned, a slight smile flashing across his face for the woman.

"Morning, Cissa," Harry chimed, "Have you managed to see the dishes?"

"You have made them already?" Narcissa asked surprised and Harry grinned.

"I woke up early," He said, and his grin stretched when he heard Draco snort.

"Obviously you really do not want to go to the ball this evening." He said blandly.

"Dear Lady Magic herself, we have ourselves a mind reader!" Harry declared dramatically, much to the amusement of the rest of the table.

"Luna ordered me to remind you that you are to do absolutely nothing other than recreational and relaxing activities today." Draco told him and Harry nodded.

"I know, I gave her my word that I won't do anything at all." Harry assured.

"Good, she had promise in her eyes."

"She's just annoyed because I refused to allow her to see her dresses before the balls." Harry joked and Draco laughed.

"Oh, no doubt. Paws and Raven have been cursing your name."

"You haven't allowed them to see their gowns?" Narcissa repeated shocked.

"Nope,"

"But how are they to style accordingly?"

"They've been told to retrieve their main jewellery selections and to wait for the ball," Harry answered, "It is why I am leaving at half three despite the ball beginning at seven."

"I would have hunted you down should you do something like that to me." Narcissa stated indignantly and Harry laughed.

"Thankfully, Cissa, you graciously extended your Yule invitation and Lucius' marvellous wards are keeping me safe and whole." He responded brightly.

"I am glad you have entrusted my wards with your safety against angry women." Lucius put in dryly, and they shared a laugh. Harry bid the Malfoy's good day and went with Tom when they had finished breakfast, neither of them noticing the looks they received when Harry took Tom's arm without even thinking about it. Tom led him to a room he had never been to before, which wasn't saying much given the size of Malfoy Manor and this being only his second time staying there, but it was beautiful and was instantly charmed by it.

"What is this place?" Harry wondered, looking around at the smallish study-like room. It had three huge windows along the wall opposite the door, allowing all of the winter sunlight to light the room up. It was decorated in the deepest of blues, with a polished walnut flooring and a wall full of bookshelves, filled with books.

"This used to be Abraxas Malfoy's tranquillity room," Tom answered, "When he wished for peace he would come here, drink whisky and read until he was sated."

"It's gorgeous." Harry murmured, "And comfortable." He eyed they large stuffed chair in the corner with an appreciative look.

"Yes, we would come in here, Abraxas, Theodore, Richmond and I, and spend hours discovering some of the best spells and wards imaginable." Tom remembered fondly.

"Do you think he would mind us borrowing it?" Harry asked and Tom flashed a smile.

"No, I don't think he would."

"Wonderful." Harry declared, moving over to the bookshelves and glossing over the titles. He grabbed one and tossed it behind him, knowing Tom would snatch it out of the air easily enough, before taking one for himself and heading towards the chair. Tom, no surprise, had already opened the book Harry had thrown for him and had settled in to the chair, moving his arms to let Harry slide on to his lap and throw his legs over the arm. Harry left himself relax against Tom's body and settle in to his book on spell craft. The pair of them were in their own little world, their magic gently flowing around them mimicking their serenity. Harry would occasionally rub his cheek on Tom's collar and press kisses to his cheek, which would gain a small smile and light squeeze from the arm around his waist. They didn't even notice that they had gained an audience.

Narcissa had been coming to tell Harry that she would like both fish dishes for the menu and to ask if he was returning with them after the ball this evening, she wanted to catch him before he left as it was rapidly approaching three fifteen and he would be leaving soon. She had stopped short in the doorway, catching sight of Harry and her Lord together reading and their occasional touches. They were so in-tune with each other, and so comfortable.

"They are so in love, aren't they?" Her son's voice was but a low murmur, but Narcissa caught it and nodded.

"They are absolutely perfectly matched." Narcissa agreed, her voice equally low. She stepped back out of sight, turning to face Draco with a small smile. "It is pleasing to see Our Lord so much at peace. He and Harry are wonderful together."

"If you could get him or Harry to realise that, we would forever be grateful." Draco muttered dryly and Narcissa blinked.

"Whatever do you mean?"

Draco gave her a wry smile.

"They are both still under the belief that they are 'casual', mother." Draco told her, nodding when Narcissa gained a look of utter disbelief.

"Surely not." She denied, "If their obvious behaviour wasn't enough, our Lord brought Harry to this room. He hasn't sat with anyone in this room since your Grandfather passed."

"Believe me, mother, I know it seems ridiculous, but they truly believe it is casual." Draco sighed, "Harry is slowly starting to realise that it might not be, but that's only might and by slowly I mean it is more likely a newly planted oak tree would reach full maturity before he actually clicked unless an epiphany hits him in the face.

"How can they not know?"

"You know more of the Dark Lord's struggle with emotions than I," Draco said to her, and she nodded, "Harry is worse."

"I have never seen Harry have any trouble expressing his emotions." Narcissa pointed out and Draco's lips quirked.

"You wouldn't, because he doesn't." Draco said, "He can express them fine, and they are powerful. He just doesn't understand them."

"He doesn't
?"

"For example, something will happen and Harry will feel and express happiness but won't know why. Granted, it's not that bad for the basic emotions. But something as complex as love? Completely over his head. He's getting better and understanding them because of Luna, she's helping him rationalise and work through what he's feeling so we have slow progress. Only, then you have to factor in his partner and we arrive here." Draco explained.

"There must be something to be done?" Narcissa's statement sounded more like a question to both of them and Draco offered as somewhat sad smile.

"Even if we told them, do you think either of them would believe us?" He asked her and she sighed.

"I hate Dumbledore."

"It is a common thought, but what brings it this time?" Lucius voice floated over, joining their conversation.

"His infuriating inability to leave well enough alone." Narcissa replied.

"Yes, he is particularly good at involving himself in things where he doesn't belong." Lucius agreed, "Whom is it of which you speak?"

"Our Lord and Harry." Draco answered.

"Oh?"

"They are so in love but they don't know."

"Love? Narcissa – the Dark Lord doesn't-," He was cut off when his wife silently manoeuvred him to the doorway where he could see them together for a few moments before pulling him back.

"What would you call that?" She demanded.

"I have never seen him like that with anyone." Lucius whispered, "I knew that something was going on, but I never would have guessed that they were together fully like this."

"They're not, that's the problem."

Lucius gave his son the same look of utter disbelief as his mother had done so previously.

"How can you-,"

"They are completely oblivious," Narcissa cut in, "Dumbledore."

"I see your proclamation," Lucius murmured, "There is nothing that can be done externally, if one were to point out to our Lord that he was so obviously in love he would laugh and then curse whoever dared say it."

"We can't do anything now." Draco said, "Luna is working on it to the best of her ability, we just have to wait for things to fall in to place."

"Hopefully sooner or later." Narcissa muttered, "Let us part, I need to speak with Harry."

"As do I," Draco said.

"I wish to speak with our Lord about this evening." Lucius added.

"Very well."

They three Malfoys calmly walked to the doorway, Lucius knocking on it to alert the two of their presence and the pair's attention snapped around instantly.

"Yes?"

"Harry, it is just passing three fifteen and I wished to speak with you before you left to prepare for the ball." Narcissa spoke and Harry blinked.

"Is it really that time already?" He asked aloud, "It feels as if we have been here only minutes."

"Yes, time seems to have gotten away from us all." She agreed with a slight smile.

"Very well, I shall come with you now. May we walk past my rooms so I can collect my things?" He asked.

"Of course, I shall escort you to the entrance hall afterwards."

"Wonderful." He said before looking at the others.

"I came for the meeting." Draco reminded him and Harry clicked his fingers.

"Thanks for that, it slipped my mind." He admitted sheepishly, making Draco roll his eyes.

"I have come to speak with you, my Lord." Lucius said.

"He'll be with you now, Lucius." Harry replied, "We didn't realise we had been here so long."

"It is fine," Lucius waved off, looking at the man in question, who seemed perfectly content for Harry to speak on his behalf. The teen turned to the Dark Lord with a smile.

"I'll see you later," He told him.

"When will you be arriving?" Tom asked.

"You'll know when I've arrived." He answered somewhat coyly before a devilish smirk flashed across his face, "Besides, I'll be the fantastic looking one that everyone looks at."

"I have no doubt that you will look absolutely gorgeous." Tom stated with conviction, Harry felt his cheeks go scarlet at his easy words, cursing in his mind for the man's ability to do that even if a stupidly big smile came to his face. He leaned down and gave Tom a soft but passionate kiss, uncaring of the others in the room, before drawing back and looking in to the crimson eyes.

"I promise you'll like it." He murmured, knowing that Tom knew he had something planned.

"I'll hold you to that."

"I expect no less." Harry returned with a smirk. Tom snatched one more kiss before Harry moved over to Narcissa and Draco with a smile, he linked both of their arms and tugged them from the room with a cheerful "See you later," to both Tom and Lucius.

"I see your excitement is back." Draco noted and Harry laughed.

"It never went, but that room is soothing." Harry responded, "Give me a minute." He darted in to his room and emerged a minute later tucking a shrunken trunk in to his newly donned jacket pocket.

"Everything sorted?" Draco checked and Harry nodded.

"Yup, ready to go." He confirmed, "Now, lovely Lady Malfoy, you had something you wished to discuss?"

"Yes. Both dishes were absolutely wonderful and I would like them to complete the menu." Narcissa said to him and Harry smiled.

"Thanks. I'll add them to the list."

"The other thing. Are you returning with us this evening?" She inquired.

"After the ball?" Harry clarified, "Yes, I will say goodbye to my friends before we leave."

"Splendid, I wanted to make sure so there was no confusion later."

"I understand." Harry assured. They reached the entrance hall and Narcissa split from them, heading off with a word of goodbye Harry took Draco through the shadows directly to Hermione's position, following the magic of their link to guide him as he had never been to her manor before. They stepped out, unluckily, in her dressing room just as the girl in question was slipping on her underwear.

"You'll need to go strapless," Harry greeted with an easy smile. Hermione didn't bat an eyelid at the pair of them, instead turning to face Harry with an extremely displeased expression.

"And I would know that had you given me my gown beforehand." She snapped.

"I know." Harry agreed brightly, much to her disgust. She huffed, flouncing out in to her room, snatching her pale pink silk robe as she went. The boys followed her out, sharing chuckles at her behaviour and found Luna sat in a blue robe talking to Neville, Ron and the Twins. Draco went to greet his partners and Harry dropped a kiss on Luna's cheek as he passed, falling in to a waiting chair.

"It's finally arrived." Ron murmured, his voice thrumming with excitement.

"I know. I've been up since like 5am." Harry agreed, "We have everything ready?"

"Yes, you'll arrive at 7:24 exactly." Luna told him, "Once I am ready, you'll take me back to my home and come back here with the others."

"I'll be placed closely near Molly for the evening. If anything leaks out, one of the first people Dumbledore will inform will be her." Fred picked up.

"As will I be with my Grandmother also." Neville added.

"I'll be with Tonks, as a direct line to the ministry in just to be sure." George finished.

"Perfect." Harry said pleased. "I am sure Ron, Hermione or Luna will show you the memories of the night."

"I can honestly say I don't envy you." George said with a shrug, "The whole ball thing just doesn't work for us."

"Got that one right, Forge." His twin agreed solemnly.

"I'm jealous as Hel." Neville admitted, "I cannot believe I am going to be missing Yule season."

"Sorry, Nev." Ron patted him on the back and the Longbottom Lord sighed.

"It's even worse considering my lovely Grandmother informed me that we shall be attending the MacMillan ball tomorrow evening." He complained.

"Really?" Harry sat forward interested.

"Yes, she decided that I could not be left alone while she attended so she demanded my accompanying her so she can control the amount of embarrassment I cause." Neville returned darkly, and Harry winced.

"Just over two weeks until the session, and then she'll start to get her own." Harry assured.

"On the positive, it's a complete insight to the light-minded people." Draco pointed out.

"Which is the only reason she isn't suddenly ill. After all, we do only have two weeks." Neville informed them with a smirk.

"Good choice," Hermione decided.

"We cannot really predict what else will happen, other than the guaranteed surprise at our entrance." Ron said, "It does depend on their responses to conversations and the table layout."

"That's the unfortunate part." Hermione sighed, "But we know our entrance will cause a stir, we'll call it by eye after that."

"I shall meet you once you have entered." Draco said.

"As will I." Luna agreed.

"I think we're good to go." Harry stated.

"Yes, we are. It is only making sure we look good. All eyes will be on us."

"Then let's get going." Harry said. Then he turned to Draco, "Wanna lift back?"

"I'm good." Draco said, wrinkling his nose at the thought of using his shadows.

"How come everyone only complains about my shadows!?" Harry exclaimed disgruntled.

"You shouldn't be so damn powerful then," Ron threw at him, a smirk coming to his face at Harry's put out expression.

"It's not as if I woke up one day and was like 'oh I know, I'm going to be really powerful'." Harry grumbled, mulishly crossing his arms.

"No, you haven't hit your majority yet." Draco muttered and then apparated away as Harry sent a stinging hex towards his face.

"You all secretly hate me." Harry sniffed, folding his legs and sticking his nose in the air.

"Oh no, the time has come, he had figured us all out. Blast, what shall we do?" Neville deadpanned. They all looked at each other and burst out laughing.

"We're going to go now," George said to the room, "We want to be there just in case anything happens beforehand. Dumbledore will know there is a ball tonight."

"See you later,"

"So are you going to show us our dresses?" Hermione demanded and Harry snorted.

"No, I haven't even seen my robes or got in the shower."

"Well what in Merlin's name are you waiting for?" She exclaimed, "Go, now. You too, Ronald."

When both of them opened their mouths to protest she slowly rose to her feet and they were instantly gone, both using their shadows in an effort to get to the showers faster. Harry went to the one in Hermione's room as it was the only other room he had been in and it was just easier. He took a slow shower, washing his hair and body carefully before stepping out and wrapping a towel around himself. He walked back in to the bedroom and found his trunk resized at the foot of the bed, but it remained unopened due to the fact he had spelled the hell out of it to stop the girls from getting in to it.

There was also fresh underwear and a green silk robe for him to don until he changed in to his robes, and three bottles next to them. One was for his body, one for his face and one for his hair, and Harry didn't bother questioning what they did, recognising Luna's writing on the labels. Harry used all three and then got dressed so he could move back in to the sitting room. He realised, belatedly, that Hermione actually had a sitting room attached to her bedroom and shook his head; Purebloods. Ron was already there, dressed the same as Harry only his robe was red.

"You get the bottles?" He asked his best friend, who nodded with a roll of his eyes.

"Nightmare, the pair of them." Ron muttered, but Harry just grinned.

"I don't mind so much."

"Yes, but you also don't mind the whole dressing up and looking good thing." Ron pointed out.

"We all look good anyway," Harry reminded him, "But yes, I do like it."

"Harry, please, for my sanity, can you show them their gowns." Neville begged, rushing over to the pair of them.

"You alright there, Nev?" He wondered and the other Gryffindor shook his head.

"I've been with them all day, you don't understand. They have been obsessing over this to the point where every conversation turns to these damn dresses." Neville exclaimed, "So will you please just show them."

Harry looked at Ron, who nodded solemnly, and then rolled his eyes.

"Fine," He sighed, getting to his feet, "Tell them to sit." He went back in to the bedroom and unlocked his trunk, he carefully withdrew the dresses and carried them back in to the sitting room, grinning as he saw the two girls sitting forward eagerly. He conjured up two dress racks and hung a gown on each.

"Are you ready?" He asked, and was rewarded with two dirty looks for his efforts. He vanished the wrappings and stepped out of the way so they could get a full view. Hermione and Luna gasped, their lips parting slightly as they took a first look at the dress their best friend and brother had created for them. Hermione got to her feet first, walking over to her dress and looking at it in awe.

"Harry, it's perfect." Hermione whispered.

"Red is such a statement colour, and you have a gorgeous figure so why not show it off?" Harry said, "I've finished the look with these." He gave her a box, seemingly from nowhere, and she opened it to reveal a pair of white evening gloves. She have him a tight hug and pressed a kiss to his cheek.

"Thank you so much!"

"You are very welcome." He told her with a smile. Hermione cast one more admiring look at her dress before going over to Luna, who was gently running her hand over her dress.

"Oh, Luna! It's beautiful."

"It is," She agreed softly, giving Harry a bright smile and a kiss on the cheek when he came over and handed her an identical box, showing her own evening gloves.

"Pale blue and white are perfect for an heiress on Yule opening," Harry said, "And the modest design is for the same reason, giving you perfect opportunity to illustrate your full beauty at the final ball."

"Yes, the dress you made for me earlier this year." She said and he nodded.

"Exactly."

"We have to paint our nails, hair and our makeup." Hermione said, casting a tempus.

"What about our robes?" Harry asked and they looked at him as if he was insane.

"You are not putting them on until 7." Hermione told him.

"But we haven't even seen them." Ron complained.

"You don't need to." Luna said simply and the pair of them left.

"You really did an amazing job with these, Harry." Neville commented, looking the gowns over.

"Thanks, I've made them one for each ball as well as for Cissa and Naomi Greengrass."

"Two of the most prominent Pureblood Ladies are going to be wearing your dresses to possibly the most important ball season of the past ten years?" Neville repeated in disbelief.

"Yes, they bought them off of me when they viewed my collection. I caught the bug and they all came out. When I showed them, they bought dresses, matching clutches and shoes." Harry explained. Neville gave him a blank look before shaking his head and sitting down.

"This is another thing you don't really see, isn't it?" He asked rhetorically, gaining his own blank look from Harry. "Harry. Narcissa Malfoy is the dark Queen of Pureblood upper class and elite, her balls and galas are spoken about for years afterwards. Not only that but she is known to show up most women for her sheer natural beauty, and her effortless elegance. Many Pureblood girls want to grow up to be her. Plus, she is the longest standing Queen of any section.

"Naomi Greengrass is also another Queen, her being neutral, of course. The House of Greengrass, while powerful and influential within many circles, only used to host balls every few years. It was only when Astoria entered Hogwarts four years ago did they begin truly running the neutral circles and Lady Greengrass shot straight to Queen. Both of their images are always kept to perfection, but as we all know at balls people go all out. They are both wearing your gowns to every ball this season; that is incredible."

"I didn't know about the whole Queen thing." Harry said amazed.

"It's nothing official or anything." Neville told him, "But the Pureblood elite is like a swim with sharks in a nest of grindelows whilst being caught by the giant squid."

Both Ron and Harry snorted at the analogy, but agreed with it fully.

"So who is the Queen of the light section?" Ron asked.

"Lady Abbott is the current Queen, though there is a constant battle between her and Lady MacMillan since the spot opened up so abruptly." Neville said.

"Why was the opening so sudden?" Harry questioned and Neville blinked.

"Oh, shit. Harry, I'm sorry, you wouldn't know." He said regretfully. "From '77 to 78' Lady Potter was the Queen."

Harry started at that, looking at Neville with wide eyes.

"My mother? But I thought they didn't live with the pureblood mania?"

"They didn't. Neither cared for it, but your father was thrust in to his Lordship when his father died at 17 and the last thing any of the light needed was for the Potter House to sink so they held four balls, Midsummer, Samhain, Yule and Equinox and despite their young age they were flawless and Lady Potter was the Queen by the second. Of course, after Equinox, many of the balls died down. The war became too much and it just wasn't safe to be inviting anyone other than your very closest to your house."

"Wow, I didn't know that."

"You've only ever been to a dark ball. Your mother was the youngest ever Queen, too."

"It's weird to think she was the Queen of the opposite section, but I bet she would have been brilliant." Harry sighed.

"Dumbledore screwed so many people over." Ron put in quietly, "Its memories like this that really show it."

"Let's not kill the mood." Harry decided, he would have time to reflect on everything else at a later date. They had a ball to prepare for and they needed to be on their top form.

"Good idea," Neville agreed, still looking slightly apologetic. The girls eventually came back fully made up and their hair set in to place, they looked amazing as they did so Harry couldn't wait to see them in their dresses. It was only when he looked back up at Hermione did he realise that he and Ron were being given looks of determination and he swallowed.

"Sit still, don't move and don't question." They said together, sounding eerie. When the boys did the sensible thing and nodded, they revealed a tray filled with various things. Harry caught sight of comb and grinned, just waiting for Ron's look of horror and then laughing when it came.

"My dear sister, I am all yours." Harry told her, relaxing back in his chair and placing his arms on the arms of the chair. She flashed a grin and skipped over, beginning with his nails, while Hermione seemed to stalk over to Ron like a lioness stalking her prey; the other teen looked terrified. Neville was howling with laughter at him, not even bothering to hide it and Harry had to admit he was snickering to himself. He closed his eyes and relaxed, letting Luna do her thing. He could really see why Draco went on and on about the relaxing spa retreats he and his mother go to every summer when he returned home from school.

Luna was running a comb through his hair gently, getting it in to whatever style she deemed fit for him that evening. She tapped his nose when she was done, and Harry blinked his eyes open. He saw that his nails were manicured and polished, and Luna held up a mirror for him to see the windswept look she gave him. It wasn't neat and traditional, but his hair would never work like that and he wasn't neat and traditional; it suited him perfectly.

"As always, perfect." He said to her.

"Of course." She agreed. "Now, come and help Hermione in to her dress. It is six forty-five and we must get you both in to your robes also."

"Is it really that time already?" Neville said surprised, "Wow that went fast."

"I know, we didn't realise we had been so long getting our hair fixed." Hermione admitted.

"My hair just would not stay in to place." Luna sighed. Her long blonde hair was pinned and twisted in to many different knots and plaits at the base of her neck, diamonds and aquamarines weaved in to make sure no strands came down on to her neck and to finish the arrangement.

"It's so soft that it slips out." Hermione said, "I understand why you wear it down so much, despite its length."

Harry and Luna moved over to Hermione as she stepped in to her dress, they helped her slide it over her body and when she nodded they began lacing up the back. Once Harry tied the ribbon off, it fell in to the ruffles and disappeared from sight. Harry turned to help Luna, hers being easier as it was only a zipped back and the girls shared a smile as they sat down. Harry and Ron went down to help them with their heels, Hermione's being a satin red peep-toe with a cluster of diamonds on front and Luna's a simple white sating heel, with a single circle aquamarine on the toe. And finally, Neville came over with their matching clutches, handing them to each of the girls and offering them a warm smile.

"You look beautiful." He told them both.

"Thank you," they chimed, their happiness obvious.

"Now are we allowed to dress?" Ron asked and they laughed.

"Of course."

Neville vanished again, this time coming back with two clothing bags, handing one to each of the Gryffindors. Harry pulled his out and blinked.

"White?" Ron questioned surprised, holding up his white shirt and white and gold tie.

"Yes, it matches your gold robes." Hermione said, making Ron's eyes widen and he pulled the bag off fully.

"Whoa."

"Why just black for me?" Harry wondered, and Luna rolled her eyes fondly.

"Take it all out of the bag, Harry."

Harry grinned and pulled it out, his grin melting in to a smirk when he saw the crimson red lining of the robe.

"Now that's more like it."

"Hurry and change, you need to get Luna home. She is set to arrive before us and it is nearly seven." Hermione ordered. Harry pulled off his robe and tossed it on the chair, he slipped in to his black shirt and trousers, pulling on his socks and shoes and accepting the black watch she offered him and smirking at the red face it held. He slid in to his dress robes, buttoning it from neck to waist where it opened up to free his leg and flash the lining every time he moved. Ron was just buttoning his robe, his was almost opposite of Harry's being open at the top to show his white shirt and tie, but fell closed at the bottom to reveal the robe's detailing.

"You look great, guys." Neville said and Harry smirked.

"Of course we do."

"Arrogant bastard." Ron joked and Harry scoffed.

"Hey, I included you in that."

"I know. It doesn't make you any less arrogant." Ron shrugged, grinning at Harry's pouting glare.

"Come on, Ray. Let's get you home." Harry decided. He linked arms with her and they vanished in to the shadows, Harry appearing back within seconds of him leaving.

"Are we ready to go?" Hermione asked, only her eyes showing her sudden nerves.

"Yes, I can't wait." Harry said, looking to Ron.

"I think I might actually enjoy this." He agreed.

"Good luck, and I'll speak to at least some of you tomorrow." Neville said to them, he span on the spot and apparated out.

"We're going to floo and then you can come to either one of us." Ron told him, "We know your aversion to the floo network."

"Thanks," Harry muttered, looking half relieved and half exasperated. Ron took a deep breath and stepped in to the floo, vanishing in a swirl of green flames. Hermione followed quickly and Harry pulled at their link and took to the shadows. They were greeted in the floo room by an elf, who scanned their invitations with its magic before leading them in to the announcement room. Their invitations were passed to the man hired to announce their arrival and he moved them in to place for their entrance. Harry could feel how many people were in the room and he was almost certain that nearly everyone was already in attendance so they would all be waiting for him, to see if he would appear, and the two new unknown names, who were the talk of the season. The three of them shared a look, Hermione's somewhat shaky, Ron's a steely determination and Harry's a dark amusement, before their masks came up and the announcer spoke.

Let the games begin.


The ballroom was alive with excitement. This evening was something many had been waiting for over some time. The recent political battles had brought the gossip levels up astronomically, causing even the most stoic of people to be eagerly talking. Yule season was prime time this year, how could it not be? Albus Dumbledore had been removed from his placement as Headmaster after fifty years, and the Ministry was in an uproar. One of the people who seemed to be on a particularly focussed warpath was the host for the evening; Lord Hadrian Greengrass.

Lord Greengrass had never been more pleased at his wife's insistent need to open the season, he had always thought to open was to set the bar and it enabled the efforts put in to be easily forgotten, especially if you were followed by someone like the House Malfoy; Lucius was as proud as the peacocks he owned, and Narcissa was born from the House of Black. But this year was so much different. His spot as the opener of the season had been sought after but he had snapped it up and he couldn't be happier. Hadrian was stood near the refreshments with his beautifully dressed wife, he had almost felt his heart stop when his wife came home in such an excitable mood and proceeded to inform him that he had to write out a bank draft for thirty two thousand galleons, and then she told him it was for four dresses. He didn't argue with her though, he wasn't stupid.

Hadrian had placed himself nearest the refreshments because it gave him ample opportunity to speak with all of his guests, tonight would be the start of his campaign to oust Fudge from office. The man was genuinely a terrible minister anyway, but the recent Blood Quill information was too much. A man who was willing to torture many innocents, children no less, in an effort to discredit two people, who were in fact telling the truth, had to go. There was simply no other option. He wished to speak with Potter-Black this evening too. He had corresponded with him since the summer ball and he was eager to see how he felt about this latest blight on Fudge's term.

He also wanted to know when Potter-Black was going to come to the Wizengamot, because Dumbledore was using the Potter seats for his own gain and, given the circumstances, it was the last thing they needed. The teen had RSVP'd, but it was just a matter of when he would get here. Hadrian didn't know if there were outside circumstances that would make it difficult for him to get here or not. The indicator lit up showing that there was an announcement waiting, though there were only three names which Hadrian had any real interest in hearing currently.

"Presenting: The Most Honourable, Marquis Lucius Abraxas and Marchioness Narcissa Selene, Lord and Lady of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Malfoy, with their son and Heir, Draco Lucius." The announcer called, and the doors swung open.

Mutes gasps hissed through the ballroom as the House Malfoy descended in to the room. Lucius and Draco looked as every bit sharp and clean cut as they always did at social functions, in tailor fitted robes of blue, complementing the Lady of the House; not that she needed it. It was she who had caused the gasps, having spared absolutely no expense to begin the season. The Lady Malfoy gracefully entered the room in a daring backless, dark gold dress, which was held up in a halter neck-line and came down in two strips to cover her chest before it came together. To finish the dress' boldness, there was an almost indecent split from mid-thigh to foot on the left side allowing a flash of pale skin as she moved. Her long blond hair was spilling over her right shoulder in effortless waves, exposing her back entirely. She was positively radiant.

Many women looked upon her with barely concealed envy, and many men gave Lucius the same looks. The Malfoy Lord looked a little stunned at his wife's beauty that evening too, though Hadrian believed he could tell that because he had known Lucius almost all of his life. The power-couple made their way directly towards their hosts, greeting those who spoke to them on their way and separating from their son before they came to a halt.

"Hadrian, Naomi, blessed Yule." Lucius greeted with a nod, his mask in place even if his eyes were brighter than normal.

"Blessed Yule, Lucius, Narcissa." Hadrian returned, matching his friend's nod.

"The room is simply beautiful." Narcissa spoke to the hostess, a reserved smile directed towards her friend.

"Thank you." Naomi accepted, "May I state how stunning you look on this eve, Narcissa?"

"Yes, my compliments, My Lady." Hadrian agreed, and Narcissa's smile stretched for a brief moment before her own mask returned.

"Ah, a rather late change in wardrobe." She omitted and Naomi's eyes light up in understanding.

"I, too, decided to change." Naomi agreed.

"Yes, and a wonderful choice. Your gown looks even better on that it did before."

"Thank you. I am honoured to wear it, the detail
" She trailed off. Her dress was royal blue, it had a sweetheart neckline and from the neckline to the hips it had embroidered primroses with glittering sapphires at the centre of each flower, before flowing down to the ground. A smirk flashed across her face and she discretely moved her head to the right.

"Have you, per chance, seen Evelyn?"

Narcissa's own smirk came out and she too moved her head to the right, an art perfected by those who wished to look at someone without it appearing as they are.

"I do believe I saw a less than flattering colour come to her face." Cissa murmured.

"It pairs well with the less than flattering gown she sports today." Naomi added and they covertly hid their giggling, using their respective husbands as a cover. Lucius and Hadrian were in a conversation of their own, Hadrian and jokingly mentioned the rather starstruck look Lucius had yet to rid himself off and the Malfoy Lord slowly shook his head.

"I will freely admit that when she emerged from the dressing room I was completely speechless." Lucius said to him, "I couldn't prevent my cringe at the price when she told me, however, now I am in the mind that the cost was rather light."

"I do appreciate it," Hadrian agreed, casting a look at his own wife. "I was rather sceptical when she returned speaking of an upcoming designer from this country, it has barely been heard of and it is not an easy business to break in to."

"Ah, but, as I have come to understand in these passing few months, Hadrian, this new designer doesn't go much by 'impossible'." Lucius informed him, his voice going dry at the end and Hadrian blinked.

"Surely not – not Potter-Black?"

"Who else?"

Hadrian gave him a blank look and Lucius felt oddly thankful that wasn't just he that felt like that whenever Harry Potter-Black seemed to be involved.

"I am just going to leave that and ask, instead, if you have any predictions to of the much awaited Prewitt and McKinnon Houses."

"Unfortunately, no. The Prewitts intermarried so much that it is impossible to tell who would even be eligible."

"Such a shame." Hadrian murmured, "Ah, a new arrival."

"Lord Slytherin," Lucius said with a light shift; he was very in-tune with his Lord's magic.

"Ah,"

"Presenting: His Grace, Duke Marvolo Caracalla, Lord to the Noble and Most Imperial House of Slytherin."

The room fell in to silence as the Dark Lord swept in to the room, his emerald green robes, flowing and full, and should it be anyone other than the Dark Lord to wear such ostentatious robes to a ball then they would look a fool. On the man in question, however, it was effortless. His height and build allowing for the robes to fall around him perfectly, almost as if he was cloaked, and it with made with darker tones of green to give them a shadowed appearance. As expected, whispers came forth as the man glided down the centre of the room, people unconsciously moving out of his way to form a clear path. His bright red eyes flicked around the room looking for something, or rather someone, and when they didn't find it they flashed over to Lucius.

"Lord and Lady Greengrass, your invitation was well recieved." The Dark Lord greeted with a nod, when he was within their circle.

"Lord Slytherin, it was our honour." They returned.

"I see He has not arrived yet." Marvolo directed his question towards Lucius.

"No, not yet, which has left me rather surprised." Lucius answered, knowing exactly who "he" was.

"Hm, he does like his moments." Marvolo reminded him.

"Is he planning something?" Hadrian inquired, having a very good idea who the aforementioned "he" was also.

"He is always planning something, however, I do not know if he has something prepared for this eve." Marvolo replied, though he was lying. He knew Harry had something planned, and he knew the minx was ridiculously excited about it; he just didn't know what. However, Harry did promise he would enjoy it.

"Anything to cause a stir." Lucius stated. If they had been outside such a setting, Marvolo would put money on Lucius tone being that of someone who had given up trying to rationalise what they were seeing.

"Of course," Narcissa chimed in, "It is his charm."

"He has plenty of that." Naomi agreed, "Knows it too."

"He does have Potter and Black genes," Hadrian pointed out, "The only way he could be worse would be if he were somehow a Malfoy too."

The light ribbing at Lucius' well known arrogance was well met, and their circle shared hidden smirks behind their hands or their glasses, enjoying their moment.

"Presenting: The Right Honourable, Count Xenophilius Jasper, Lord to the Ancient House of Lovegood. With his daughter and Heiress, Luna Pandora."

"He'll be here soon," Marvolo said to them.

"Why do you believe that?" Lucius asked.

"His sister has just arrived. He will not be far behind her."

"Sister?" Naomi repeated.

"They have a very odd bond." Marvolo told her with a roll of his eyes.

"I have been led to believe it is a lot more than that." Narcissa commented amused.

"We are in polite company, Narcissa." He said mock chidingly.

"Forgive me," She joked.

"I do believe he has something planned." Lucius mused.

"Oh. Why the sudden certainty?" Hadrian wondered and Lucius cast his eyes to his son and the Lovegood Heiress.

"Look at the way they are stood." He pointed out.

"I see it," Naomi murmured, "It is in such a way that they can see the entrance, but also the rest of the ball room."

"They wish to witness the reactions." Narcissa noted.

"Now I am very interested to see where this is going." Hadrian decided.

"Your wait is over." Marvolo told him, his attention suddenly focused on the doors. The others took their cue to the arrival of Potter-Black and they each wondered what was about to happen.

"Presenting: The Most Honourable, Marquis Harry James, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient Houses of Potter and Black. In the company of: The Most Honourable, Marquis Ronald Billius, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Prewitt, and The Most Honourable, Marchioness Hermione Jean, Lady to the Noble and Most Ancient House of McKinnon."

The doors swung open and the three of them stepped out, plunging the room in to a stunned silence; even the music stopped in shock. Harry was visible first, he was dressed in an intense midnight black and crimson red. His robe was formfitting, buttoned with burnished rubies set in gold from neck to waist before flaring open to reveal the bloody red lining against his pressed black trousers and polished shoes. His hair, seemingly darker due to his pale skin, was styled in a windswept way, suiting him perfectly, right down to the locks of hair that fell down over his forehead, hiding his scar.

Two steps behind him and to the right, was Ron. His open front robes were a soft gold, a single diamond button drawing them closed at his navel, revealing his white shirt and gold and white tie. The robes fell closed at the button, allowing the darker gold embroidered patters to be on show. His dark auburn hair was styled away from his face, making his piercing blue eyes stand out against his pale skin.

To Ron's left, daintily holding her gloved hand upon his raised one, stood Hermione, her placement putting her on Harry's left also; completing the triangle. She was in a gorgeous crimson red fishtail dress, with a diamond encrusted sweetheart neckline. The bodice was fitted, hugging her curves perfectly before flaring out at the hip in to an angled ruffle-tail, with an ever-so-slight train. Her appearance was finished with white evening gloves, a single diamond bracelet and matching earrings. Her chocolate hair pinned back away from her face and to the side, allowing it to fall in sleek long curls down over her left shoulder to rest just under her left breast.

They walked down the stairs perfectly in sync, Harry with his hands folded behind his back, while Ron 'aided' Hermione, with his arm extended out from him to illustrate that they were not intimately together. It had to be the most undignified scene in the history of Pureblood balls, almost the entire assembly were gaping at the three newcomers without shame, and the circle by the refreshments was no exception.

Lucius couldn't believe his eyes, it just wasn't possible. The fabled "Golden Trio" stood in front of him, one already known but no less impressive; Harry Potter-Black. The second wasn't thought to be in-line to inherit, supposedly just another son; Ronald Prewitt. And the third was the one that got Lucius the most. She was a known Mudblood, the apparent brains behind the infamous Trio and yet here she stood; Hermione McKinnon. The music began playing again and the conversations burst in to whispers and the trio made their way in to the room, no one could believe it; it was mind blowing.

"Well damn." Hadrian summed up nicely.

"I did not see that coming." Tom admitted, very surprised.

"He's been planning that one for some time." Narcissa stated.

"Oh, no doubt about it." Tom agreed, "He is feeling way too pleased with himself at this moment."

And wasn't that an understatement? Harry was positively euphoric, despite his expressionless mask, and Tom honestly couldn't blame him. That was a hell of an entrance, no one would have seen that one coming and he couldn't believe that the entire Golden Trio were now in attendance of a dark Pureblood ball; it was actually very ironic. He couldn't help the way his eyes trailed all over the teen's body; the robes were perfect for him, highlighting his toned frame. The splash of crimson added just enough drama not to be overdone, and the use of rubies gave the robes that touch of boasting of his wealth.

"I do not believe this." Lucius muttered, shaking his head. "Am I really seeing this?"

"Are you really seeing the 'Golden Trio' walk in to neutral/dark ball, dressed to the nines and looking as if they were born in to this life?" Hadrian asked, "Yes. Yes, you are."

"They look fantastic," Naomi noted, "And what daring colours to choose for the opening ball, black, red, white and gold."

"The complimenting red and gold behind his black was well thought out."

"Everything was planned, right down to what direction they would enter in." Marvolo stated, "Look, he's collecting."

The Dark Lord's words were true, the trio had picked up Draco and were making their way over to the Zabini Heir. They were graciously nodding and greeting those who approached, easily slipping out of any drawn out conversation.

"What is he doing?" Lucius wondered, watching as Harry held up his hand in the opposite direction whilst speaking with Lord Davis.

"His sister," Marvolo said, and as if summoned, a small hand covered Harry's own and he gently directed the hand's owner to his side, revealing Luna Lovegood.

"Isn't she beautiful?" Naomi spoke softly, looking the girl over properly this time. She, too, was wearing evening gloves of white, but her dress was a pale blue fading out to white, one shoulder number. Designed like a Greek goddess gown, with a silver band illustrating her tiny waist and flowing down and pooling slightly at her feet.

"He seemed to know she would be there." Hadrian noted.

"They have a
 connection?" Tom offered, trying to find the best work to describe it, "Like I said, it's odd."

"When I said I was excited to see who the faces behind the two new names were, they were definitely not what I had in mind." Hadrian stated, and Lucius very nearly scoffed.

"Funnily enough, neither was I." He responded dryly. "This would explain why they seemed so excited during their last full meeting, they knew that they were going to stun everyone with their entrance."

"It wouldn't surprise me if they have been planning this since the summer after Harry attended our ball." Narcissa commented, watching the group move closer.

"I, too, believe that to be the case." Marvolo agreed, "He did have his Twins have a way to bypass a mail ward attached to Prewitt."

"That would be why he has not attended any balls and Dumbledore has been using his seats." Naomi guessed, "A mail ward would redirect everything to the old fool, and I only assume that he is in the same situation as Potter-Black in regards to Dumbledore."

"They all are," Marvolo confirmed. The group fell quiet and watched the group's approach, it was strange seeing the Golden Trio make their way through the ballroom; it seemed effortless to them. They moved around each other and let nothing true be shown on their faces. Malfoy, Zabini and Lovegood only finished the look, all three of them being born within the world of upper class. It was apparent that Harry was the leader, however. They might walk with him, but they still followed his direction, so when he slid in to place next to the Dark Lord, the group easily fitted themselves around the rest of the people around the man.

"Blessed Yule, Lord and Lady Greengrass, may I thank you for your gracious invitation to the Greengrass Yule ball on behalf of my entire company here." Harry said smoothly with a nod of his head, an action that was mirrored by everyone that came over with him.

"You are most welcome, Lord Potter-Black." Hadrian returned, "And it is Hadrian,"

"Of course, Hadrian, but then I insist that you call me Harry." Harry said with a quirk of his lips, Hadrian dipped his head in acknowledgement.

"I must say the ballroom looks stunning, my dear Lady." Harry spoke to Naomi now, and then he flashed her his most charming smile, "But not as much as our hostess, you look positively radiant."

She blushed lightly and offered him a contained smile, even as her eyes sparkled brightly.

"Thank you, Harry."

"Despite the announcements, I would like to formally introduce you all to my very dear friends: Lord Ronald Prewitt and Lady Hermione McKinnon." Harry said to them.

"It is wonderful to finally meet you both," Hadrian said, "I am Lord Hadrian Greengrass and this is my beautiful wife Lady Naomi Greengrass."

"The feelings are reciprocated," Ron returned politely, and it took a lot of Harry's self-control not to burst out laughing as both Tom and Lucius snapped to look at him in disbelief before they got control of their shock. Ron sounded completely different in Pureblood mode, smoother, colder and clearer; they all did really, his and Hermione's just weren't as prominent, unless they were angry.

"Harry was correct, Lady Greengrass, your ballroom is truly beautiful." Hermione added, before turning to face the Malfoys, "We have not formally met beforehand, Lord and Lady Malfoy, so we are grateful for the opportunity now."

"It is marvellous to meet you both correctly," Lucius returned, obviously hinting at their apparent change in name.

"Yes, outside interference can be so bothersome." Ron told him, and there was a flash of understanding on all of their faces; they all knew he meant Dumbledore.

"Forgive me, Lucius, for not greeting you," Harry remembered.

"It is no problem, Harry," Lucius assured him.

"Narcissa, such beauty as always," Harry said to the woman, who nodded with a slight smile.

"Thank you,"

"Marvolo," Harry said with a nod, which was returned. Though his did eye the man appreciatively, and the Dark Lord bit back a smirk at Harry's sudden surge of desire. Though there was an undercurrent of something, and Tom just knew Harry was dying to say something to him; he sighed.

"Just say it," He decided. Harry's expression morphed in an amused exasperation, one that Tom was very familiar with.

"Caracalla, really?" He asked in a tone that expressed exactly what he thought of Tom's choice of name. The Dark Lord flashed him a remorseless smirk.

"I find it fitting," He stated and Harry shook his head.

"You would,"

"And you don't?" Tom wondered, raising an eyebrow and Harry huffed.

"I hate you,"

"I know,"

Harry's friends shared an amused glance at their behaviour, while the others exchanged more questioning looks, before the entire group pulled their masks securely in to place.

"The esteemed Lord Slytherin, an honour, we assure you." Hermione spoke to Marvolo, who dipped his head.

"Lady McKinnon, Lord Prewitt, a pleasure," He returned.

"Your acceptance to this year's Yule season has brought much speculation," Hadrian commented to the new arrivals.

"Yes, I cannot speak fully for my friend, but I felt as if I could not miss this season." Hermione answered reasonably.

"I must agree," Ron put in, "With the recent political upset, Yule is the prime season."

"Of course, there has been many things that have occurred over the past few months," Lucius agreed, "More political stirs in four months than the past few years, I would even stretch to say."

"And with the sudden change in position at the school, we have to look at what effects this will cause within other parts of our country." Draco spoke for the first time, and got nods of agreement.

"Not only this country," Blaise put in, "Dumbledore's removal has caused much speculation in our surrounding countries, and many are wondering about the stability of magical Britain, and if it will fall further from its past greatness."

"That is
 worrying, but also could be quite good for us." Marvolo said slowly.

"Why good?" Naomi asked.

"They think us weak, currently. It allows us the opportunity to build ourselves up under less scrutiny."

"Exactly," Ron agreed, "Not only that, but we only have weak people on display. Should an appropriate power change occur, we already have the very best of people just waiting in the shadows to take over. We might have fallen from our previous greatness, but we have more than enough powerful people to restore us and make us so much better."

"You believe that there needs to be a power change then?" Hadrian questioned and Ron nodded.

"Oh there is no doubt. Fudge has to go at the quickest possible moment,"

"The man has done nothing but ridicule the position of Minister since he was appointed the post in '90," Hermione stated, "He is spineless and a fool, and the fact that he actually got the position in the first place leaves me feeling mildly nauseous."

"You have to remember that, while being one of the most useless Minister's in history, he is a cunning politician, who knows how to get votes, and knows which person to accept bribes from to keep him there." Luna pointed out, "He is the Minister, he has access to all of the country's information, he must use it somehow."

"And there lies the problem. Dealing in bribes is one thing, but when it comes to the running of the entire country, it cannot be accepted." Harry stated, "Everyone wants to get what they want, its in our nature, however, is it worth the risk of our entire country falling?"

"You believe our country will fall entirely with Fudge remaining in charge?" Hadrian asked.

"I have no doubt. Recent discoveries of Fudge leave a very gruesome picture, not only that but should someone like Russia declare war on us, Fudge would allow us to burn." Harry asserted, "Also this is a man who allowed his undersecretary to repeatedly torture a castle full of students with a Blood Quill,"

Harry, Ron, Hermione and Luna's hands all twitched unconsciously. Of course, in a circle full of the leading elite, it didn't go unnoticed.

"You all
" Narcissa trailed off when they held up their hands showing their various words. Harry's was the most prominent, his a shining reminder of the slur campaign held against them last year.

"Did you truly have that many detentions with her last year? Naomi asked, almost unsure to if she wanted to know the answer.

"Unfortunately, I did." Harry confirmed, "Thanks to Hermione, I didn't get blood poisoning, even if it was close."

If it had been anywhere else, Harry, Ron and Hermione would have grimaced at the memory, and the others would have expressed their outrage with more than narrowed eyes.

"Any movement against Fudge has the opportunity to be blocked currently," Hadrian pointed out, "Dumbledore uses many seats,"

"I can assure you, Hadrian, should I have my way, the January Wizengamot session will certainly remove much of Dumbledore's apparent power." Harry stated.

"We do intend to take back what is ours," Ron agreed.

"And we have another that is going to cause Dumbledore to take a larger hit than even he could have predicted." Luna added.

"Oh?"

"In Wizengamot history, where there was a Potter, who was right there beside them?" Harry hinted and Hadrian blinked.

"You have gotten Augusta Longbottom to work against Dumbledore." He wondered in open disbelief, and Harry gave him a dark smirk.

"No. However, Neville is a very good friend of mine, and, surprisingly, he hasn't taken too kindly to his beloved grandmother illegally withholding his Heir and Lordships from him."

"That changes things," Hadrian allowed, surprised but hiding it. "The Wizengamot is going to be extremely interesting in January."

"I have to say that I am looking forward to it." Hermione agreed, "What a session to begin with,"

"I will admit I am mildly envious to be missing out," Draco admitted, and Ron tilted his head slightly.

"Do you have to miss out?" He wondered, and got looks from the Malfoys that said he was insane. "I am aware that Lord Malfoy will not be stepping down anytime soon, however, are you not the next in line for the Rosier House? It is dead but for your mother and her sisters, all of which are ineligible to claim due to their being female and Rosier being a patriarchal line."

Even his friends blinked at him this time, but this was in amazement opposed to insanity.

"I cannot believe we did not think or that sooner," Hermione said shaking her head, "Did we not discuss Wizengamot placements last time?"

"We did, but it was so obvious we seemed to have glossed over it." Luna surmised

"It would give us a bigger edge, yet another Ancient under our section," Lucius mused, and then he turned to his son, "You will have to manage the entire House, not just the Wizengamot."

"You have taught me well, father," He responded.

"Narcissa, what are your thoughts?"

"It would be a very strategic move on our behalf," She said thoughtfully, "And Draco is more than capable of managing the responsibility."

"We shall discuss it more when we return to the manor," Lucius decided.

"Presenting: The Most Honourable, Marquis Izar Theodore, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Nott."

The smile that came to Harry's face when he caught sight of Nott entering the room was truly malicious, and his low chuckle was enough to send shivers down all of their spines.

"Now this should be fun." He murmured, his eyes glowing like green fire.

"Any particular reason why?" Hadrian asked and Harry smirked.

"Nott hates me." He answered, sounding very happy about that particular fact.

"Remember when," Luna told him and Harry nodded.

"I know, but he missed our entrance." Harry pointed out, "Drinks, Ron, Hermione?"

The two nodded and the three of them turned away from the entrance to help themselves to the champagne on offer just as Nott reached them and started making his greetings. Harry could see, from the corner of his eye, Nott looking at Blaise and Luna in question as he spoke to Lucius and Hadrian.

"Has anyone from Prewitt or McKinnon arrived yet?" Nott asked and Harry took that as his cue to turn and re-join the group, passing a flute to Luna as he did so.

"Ah, Lord Nott, so good it is to see you." Harry said pleasantly, feeling way to much pleasure when Nott couldn't stop his lip curling at the mere sight of him.

"You are already here, I see." He returned cuttingly, much to the surprise of the rest of the group. Even Harry was kind of surprised, he didn't think Nott would forgo all etiquette in his hatred of him, but that only made things better.

"Yes, I arrived with some very dear friends of mine. Let me introduce you." Harry said winningly, a very bright, and only somewhat fake, smile flashing across his face. Nott gave him a look of disgust, making it very apparent that he didn't want to meet anyone Harry considered 'dear friends'.

"Lord Nott, I would like you to meet Lord Ronald Prewitt and Lady Hermione McKinnon." Harry told him, motioning to his best friends as they marked his right and left respectively. Nott's expression was priceless. He looked as if he had been slapped in the face and the Trio smirked.

"You two?" He finally managed, and their smirks stretched before they pulled their masks up.

"Yes, us." Ron agreed.

"But how? You are not next in line." Nott said to Ron and then he turned to Hermione in disgusted outrage. "And you, you're nothing, you're a Mud-,"

"I find it most intriguing that you seem to hold so much information and critique on others, Nott." Harry cut in sharply, his voice and expression cold, even as his eyes burned. "Especially given the fact that everything that spills from that gaping hole in your face is so obviously incorrect that is isn't even amusing."

A tense air fell around the group as Nott glared at Harry, who matched the look with a much more dangerous one. Hermione lightly touched his upper arm, and Harry turned his head slightly towards her, listening to her words inside his head.

His words mean nothing to me. She assured him calmly.

It is not the point! Harry exclaimed, itching to curse the arrogant asshole in front of him. If there was one thing he couldn't abide by, it was his closest being insulted or attacked, it wound him up worse than anything else; Remus, Ron, Hermione and Luna especially.

It is not the first time I have been insulted, nor is it Ron's. She insisted, Just remember what Luna's told you earlier and keep yourself calm.

Harry gave a mental sigh and turned back to face Nott, who was still glaring at the three of them. Instead of cursing him like he wanted too, Harry deliberately moved his attentions away from Nott, to show that he just didn't care enough to even look at him, much to the other Lord's outrage. Before anything could escalate because of Nott's loose tongue, a chime sounded around the ballroom and Hadrian stepped forward.

"Thank you for coming to the Greengrass Yule Ball." He said the room, a slight up-tilt of his lips. "The meal is about to begin."

On his words, four table placement boards appeared in the room, giving the collection of guests ample room to find where they were seated. Harry cast a look around and saw he was sat next to Hermione and the Dark Lord on the leading table, though Blaise was the only one not sat with them. He nodded and went to find his father, not bothered by his separation as he knew whatever happened Swift would tell him later. Harry led Luna while Ron led Hermione over to the table, he passed Luna over to her father, who was speaking with Hadrian as they took their seats.

"Theodore will not be pleased with his son," Tom noted in an undertone, and Harry bit back a scoff.

"Nott is digging himself in to a hole that he will not be able to get out of." Harry returned lowly.

"Will it affect Theodore?" Tom asked and Harry tilted his head slightly.

"It would depend on family clauses within the Nott House."

"I see,"

Once everyone had taken their seats, conversation quieted down to murmurs amongst the tables and a pale blue menu appeared before them. Harry cast his eyes over the starters and selected the watercress and goats cheese tart, and once everyone else had selected their chosen starter conversation began.

"Harry, can you guarantee your presence within the next Wizengamot session?" Hadrian asked him seriously. Harry regarded him for a moment before he answered.

"I will not lie to you and say that it will be easy. Dumbledore has worked for seventeen years to make me his perfect weapon and his hold his strong, but I will do everything in my power to be at the Wizengamot for the next session."

"I agree with your belief that Fudge needs to go." He said to him, "And I intend to do everything in my power to make sure that happens quickly."

"You have something planned." Harry noted and Hadrian nodded once.

"It is my intention to call for a Vote of No Confidence and remove Fudge from office forcefully." Hadrian answered, "Can I count on your backing."

Harry cast a look at his friends, who nodded, and gave Hadrian a small, but true smile.

"It would be my honour to back you in such an endeavour, Hadrian." He responded sincerely.

"We will too," Ron put in, motioning to himself and Hermione.

"I offer my thanks,"

"Should we attend, I can guarantee you the Longbottom vote also," Harry told him.

"That is good news," Hadrian mused, "The more votes the better,"

Harry started his first course, playing with the flavours on his tongue and his mind automatically picked out things he would have done differently. He blamed it on the fact that he'd been cooking a whole lot more than before, actively choosing to cook for people he liked instead of being forced to. It was very nice, though, and he sipped his white wine to wash it down as he watched the room.

Luna and Hermione were in a conversation with Naomi and Narcissa about the dresses for the evening, admiring their own and critiquing the other ladies, before turning their attention on to the males. Ron was speaking with Lucius, Draco, Hadrian and Lord Davis, who was also sat at the table with them. The four women brought Lady Davis, Daphne and Tracey in to their conversation too, leaving only Harry and Tom silent, both of them watching and listening to those around them.

The remains of the starter vanished and were replaced with the palette cleanser and the main menu, Harry selected the duck for his main and turned his head slightly to see if he could spot Nott. The man in question was sat on the same table as Zabini, he seemed to be speaking with Selwyn, whom he was sat next to, and Harry wondered what they were discussing to be so absorbed with the conversation. His eyes narrowed, reading the words werewolf and legislation of off Selwyn's lips, and his action didn't go unnoticed.

"What is it?" Hermione asked him, drawing attention to him.

"Selwyn," He murmured, still reading Selwyn's lips. His eyes didn't move away until the conversation changed, but his suspicions were raised.

"What was that about?" Ron demanded and Harry shook his head.

"Have we heard of a new werewolf bill?" Harry asked them and they sat forward, looking at him with confused eyes.

"No, that would have been something we would have told you instantly."

"Manic and Panic?" He wondered but Hermione shook her head.

"No, they would have said something earlier." She assured him.

"Then there is a chance we have missed something, unless they are going for full secrecy." Harry said to his friends

"How do you suddenly know anything about it?" Lucius questioned and Harry quirked his lips slightly.

"I can lip read," He admitted, "And Selwyn is in my line of sight,"

"He has been keeping it secret," Luna told him suddenly, "He is intending to use the Yule to gain momentum with it, and will approach Lord Malfoy with it during the next ball,"

"That would explain things then," Harry mused, "Am I going to like it?"

"I cannot tell as of yet," She answered tilting his head to the side, "They are too busy speaking about you, Ron and Hermione,"

"Wonderful, we'll have to wait to discover what drivel he has come up with." Harry sighed.

"You are so sure it will be bad," Hadrian noted.

"Selwyn has regularly voted for more creature and race restriction," Ron answered for Harry, "The likelihood that it will be anything even remotely auspicious is very low."

"I wonder what it actually is about," Hermione mused.

"Your guess is as good as mind," Harry said.

Harry fell quiet again after that, listening to the discussing now happening over what possible Bill Selwyn could be trying to accomplish. His attention spanned over to the conversation happening between the other Lords when he heard Dumbledore's name.

"Of course Dumbledore is still a problem," Harry heard Ron say, "The man is so used to being in control that this will throw him, and his need will only grow worse."

"Is that something we can prepare for?" Lucius wondered.

"I doubt it." Harry put in, introducing himself to their conversation easily. "As glorious as it is to remove Dumbledore from his most dangerous position, we also lose our direct line of contact to him."

"Why do you say that Dumbledore's most dangerous position was Headmaster?" Lord Davis wondered, "Surely his control of our courts is much worse."

"If it were any other man, I would agree with you," Harry said with a nod, "However, we must remember that Dumbledore is a master of manipulation."

"I am afraid I do not follow." Hadrian admitted, and Harry looked to Ron to continue.

"Dumbledore has been Headmaster nearly fifty years, and a teacher even longer. Which means he's had many years to make himself appeal to the students going through the school and create an image for himself, just like outside the school. Now pair the benign, kind grandfather figure he projects with his previous saint-like image from the outside, and project it on to young and impressionable minds and what do you get?" Ron said to them, letting them think before continuing.

"So you have the beginning generations, being taught by Dumbledore and thinking he's powerful and a good man and they tell their children, who go and start to believe Dumbledore isn't just good, he's great – and then he defeats Grindlewald; he's a hero. So they tell their children about this hero, who they then go to school and see that he's obviously so much more, he's defeated a Dark Wizard and he's the very top of the school. And so they, too, pass it on, and the next generation go to school and by the time they leave they are singing Dumbledore's praises, the man can do no wrong. He's infallible, and so when the war hits they will do whatever he says – why would they question him? He's Albus Dumbledore."

The entire table had fallen silent to listen to Ron speak, and they were all gaining a dawning look of outraged horror when they realised that is exactly what had happened. They had thought the old fool had merely sought after powerful houses or weak points where he could gain something, but it was so much more than that. He had bread the British public to worship him and it had worked, they had had decades where Dumbledore's name was worth more than Goblin relics, and the man had engineered it all.

"Dear Merlin," Lucius murmured, "That is brilliance. As foul and loathsome as it is, that is sheer brilliance. Children, even those who have had full wizarding upbringing are impressionable, and it shows how strong his influence was. Black was a prime example of that."

Only Tom and his friends caught Harry's flinch, and the man gently squeezed his hand under the table making Harry smile ever so slightly.

"We picked up on the pattern, Harry, Hermione and I, when discussing what could possibly turn a mother on her own children." Ron told them, "The idea would have to be so ingrained that it overtook the maternal bond completely, and we realised that it would have to been something they had known since the day they were born."

"Your theories are very worrying," Hadrian stated, "But it makes it more understandable why it took so long for anything to dent Dumbledore's reputation. Unfortunately, if we are to take your theory as current fact, then we must then ask if we will ever be able to combat that power and influence or if it will continue to triumph for him."

"We do have one boon," Harry threw in, gaining everyone's attention.

"We do?" Lucius asked curiously. In the back of his mind he was hoping for anything, to think Dumbledore had seemed so much power in to their entire country unsettled him more than he would care to admit.

"Yes. One that you, yourself, Lucius helped accomplish." Harry confirmed, gaining a few briefly confused looks.

"You seem to have lost us all." Lord Davis told him and Harry placed down his glass, sitting forward slightly.

"Dumbledore did a disgustingly good job at seeping his influence in to every part of our country, and further still. His actions are unjudged and his words are seen as spoken truth, and that is exactly what gives power to his direct opposition." Harry cast a glance at Tom before focussing back on the table. "Dumbledore knew Grindlewald, but he insists that Voldemort is the most powerful and most dangerous Dark Lord in history. I have heard him say the words myself. It's a move he uses so when he then goes against the Dark Lord he appears more powerful himself. Which means, all of the people that he preaches too, all the people he directs and influences, also believe that Voldemort is the most powerful and most dangerous wizard of all time.

And those who followed Voldemort back up Dumbledore's words, citing their Lord's power, his intellect and a number of other things. So we have a united country for once, and all followers from both sides state with the utmost conviction that there is a Dark Lord alive at this very moment who is the most powerful, most dangerous of all time. And so we again have generations believing this, from the first war and breeding on to the second, until we reach the point we are at now. So much fear has been bred that Dumbledore harmed himself more than he could imagine, almost this entire country and some further than that fear to even speak the name Voldemort – how in Merlin's name are they going to fight him? Dumbledore may have an army, but what use is an army when they are too afraid to even raise their wands?"

"I understand why in the external politics that would be a boon, but I do not make the connection to the internal." Lord Davis said politely.

"The Dark Lord is the main thing standing between Dumbledore and complete control, making the external politics Dumbledore's main priority. His attentions have always been in multiple places, but you can bet now more than ever he will want to end the war so his attentions will be far away from internal politics. He's losing power. What better way to become the ultimate power than to defeat the most powerful and most dangerous Dark Lord of all time?" Hermione explained simply.

"That is a rather great boon." Lucius decided.

"And should your intentions for the January Wizengamot session go to heed, Dumbledore will know you are no longer within his grasp, so he'll be out to end the war and fast – before you have the chance to reveal all of his dirty little secrets." Tom added.

"Exactly." Harry agreed, "And with his distraction becomes the perfect opening to surge all of our attentions to the internal politics and by the time he realises it will be much too late."

"You will be in the very heart of both." Hadrian pointed out slowly, "Dumbledore will be less than pleased at your breaking of his control."

Harry forwent all etiquette and snorted at the severe understatement.

"It is exactly why Dumbledore had to be out of the castle before we entered the Wizengamot, and he had to be formally removed at that. Hogwarts wards are very powerful and as long as I remain in the castle for the most part his access to me directly will be severely limited." Harry said, though he left out that it would be impossible for Dumbledore to touch him in the castle. Hogwarts took care of her own, and he was a Founder's heir.

"That is a very dangerous line you are walking." Narcissa murmured, her voice concerned and Harry offered her a wry look.

"I do not have any choice in the matter." His tone was oddly resigned when he answered, and many averted his eyes at the hard truth of the matter. He didn't have a choice. While Tom would probably leave him out of everything should he ask it, Dumbledore never would. He would be bitter, but he had never known anything else. Besides, he had a boat load of revenge he intended to dish out, and he would not rest until he had served it or his body was cold. There was a final course switch and Harry absently selected the soufflé as he took a bit of the cleanser.

"Harry, there was something I wished to speak with you about in person, involving your position as Lord Black." Hadrian began carefully, and Harry looked at him with a questioning expression.

"Go on,"

"I looked in to the information you supplied me over missing trials and I have found some truly astonishing things that can be used to harm Dumbledore within the Wizengamot." Hadrian told him. Harry sat forward, setting down his cutlery and giving the Greengrass Lord his full attention.

"What have you found?" He asked, keeping his voice calm, even if he was feeling anything but.

"The late Lord Black was put in Azkaban without so much as a Priori Incantatum and it was Dumbledore who pushed through the action, giving evidence personally to his supposed guilt."

Harry's face went white. The pain and rage that reared up was dizzying, and it was only the fact that he was using Tom's hand as something to ground himself was his magic not spinning out of control. Dumbledore had been the one to push it though. He hadn't known that. He knew that Crouch had thrown Sirius in, and Bagnold had agreed with it, but he hadn't known that Dumbledore pushed through the action and actually gave evidence. Harry's mind flashed to the Death Chamber, watching Sirius fall through the veil over and over again and he felt bile rise up in his throat.

He didn't even notice the table had fallen silent, his mind was lost elsewhere and he didn't realise but his face could have been made from marble. Was everything linked back to Dumbledore? Was he truly the sole initiator of all the bad? Dumbledore death wouldn't be enough. Harry needed him to lose everything, he needed him to suffer beyond all comprehension and even then he would not be granted the release of death; it was too good for him. His mind was shoved back to the present by a wave of calmness that didn't belong to him, he blinked once slowly and gradually released his vicious grip on Tom's hand to calmly lift his wine glass and take a sip, as if he hadn't just been imagining a suitable torture for Albus Dumbledore.

"Is there anything to be done about clearing the late Lord Black's name with what you have found?" He asked evenly, his hand tensing around his glass when Hadrian frowned slightly.

"The possibility is very slim unfortunately." Hadrian responded. "Those in charge will state that there was a lapse in administration and it will be brushed aside. Any counter arguments would be disputed due to his family name, Dumbledore being known friends with the late Lord and Lady Potter, and there will be many that will who will recount what a dear friend the late Peter Pettigrew was."

The glass in Harry's hand shattered as his grip became too tight causing the table to jump as his wine splashed everywhere and glass embedded in to his skin, making him bleed quite heavily. Harry snapped his fingers and the glass repaired itself, the wine vanished and the wounds healed leaving his hand and the tablecloth free of blood – as if nothing had happened. Most of the table lost their composure at the display of effortless multi-charmed, wandless, wordless magic, looking at Harry in a mix of curiosity, amazement and calculation. There was concern on his friend's faces, Narcissa's too, and Harry could feel Tom's own concern. During the entire incident, Harry's expression had not changed once, and it was becoming rather unnerving.

"So, in other words, nothing short of hard evidence would clear his name." Harry stated, his voice empty of any emotion whatsoever.

"Yes." Hadrian confirmed.

"I will personally hand you Peter Pettigrew alive and snivelling the day after the upcoming Wizengamot session. I am sure that everything from that point shall be easy."

The Greengrasses and the Davis' eyes widened and Hadrian moved forward.

"He's alive."

"As much as I wish otherwise, yes." Harry said in a frosty tone. "And should Fudge have even a semblance of general intellect, he would have collected my and Hermione's memories back in third year when the late Lord Black 'mysteriously' disappeared when he had been captured at Hogwarts."

"You claimed Black's innocence to Fudge and he ignored you, heir to the injured House?" Hadrian said in disbelief.

"Did you not hear of it?" Hermione asked, in equal incredulity.

"We heard of Black's escape and Fudge's recall of the dementors, but never the reason why, nor any explanation to the situation." Lord Davis answered, looking curious.

"The reason for the recall was because the dementors were seconds away from taking Harry and my souls." Hermione told them simply. "We were swarmed, every dementor stationed at the school came for us." The entire table seemed to suck in a sharp breath, even their friends seemed horrified at the reminder.

"But there were over a hundred placed over the entire school grounds." Lady Davis whispered. "How in Merlin's name did you get away?" Hermione cast a grateful and meaningful look at Harry, a soft smile coming to her face.

"Harry drove them off with a single patronus. It was the greatest piece of magic I have ever seen."

Harry looked down, suddenly quite embarrassed by Hermione's words, he hadn't done that to be great, he had done it to save them. But Hermione wouldn't let him brush it off, she was repeating it in his head, and telling him how much she meant every word; it was quite overwhelming.

"You were thirteen." Hadrian stated stunned.

"I did not really undertake the idea of becoming a soulless husk." Harry returned candidly, "But yes, that was the reason for the recall. Should it have been discovered that the dementors had attacked two thirteen year old students, there would have been an absolute revolt. Each sector would have exploded, not just students, an heir, the last remaining of the bloodline and the light's saviour to boot. Fudge had to keep that one quiet just as much as Dumbledore did, though Dumbledore would have still come out with a good light, he did publicly denounce Fudge's appointment of the foul creatures."

"Why did Fudge ignore your words?" Lord Davis asked.

"It was claimed I had been Confunded." Harry answered.

"Excuse me?" Narcissa demanded, "A simple medical scan would have confirmed or denied that, and your statement should still have been taken."

"Neither was done." Hermione said, her tone displeased.

"What I wish to know is how Pettigrew escaped."

"When they call Pettigrew a snivelling rat, they do not mean it hypothetically." Ron put in bitterly, he would never be over the fact that that disgusting man has shared his bed and so much of his personal life; it was a complete violation of the basic human rights.

"Well I'll be damned," Hadrian muttered, understanding what he meant instantly.

"So Fudge and Dumbledore have sat back and allowed someone who is low enough to betray the secret they have been bestowed." Lord Davis summarised.

"Yes,"

"All the more reason to make sure that man is out of office sooner rather than later." Lucius stated.

"And Dumbledore may well follow should the release of his grievous errors happen." Hadrian added.

"We can hope." Ron murmured.

As the final remains of the meal disappeared, there was a moment of polite conversation before the music began planning and Hadrian led his wife on to the dancefloor. Once everyone had risen to their feet, the large circular tables vanished and were replaced with more intimate sitting areas opposite sides of the room, with the odd collection of seats around the walls. Platters of after dinner drinks appeared floating in the air and a large table at the back had a range of others for the guests to help themselves to when they pleased. Harry immediately was dragged off by Luna, who insisted he dance with her, much to his chagrin.

He got no relief as once Luna finally released him from her clutches, Hermione was there ready to spin over in to his arms for the next song. Harry gave her a dirty look, making her laugh out loud as he twirled her around. The music picked up and the dance couples started interchanging partners, Harry span Hermione away from him and she was replaced with Narcissa. Harry smiled at the Lady Malfoy before she too was span away, and replaced this time with her son.

"You are very close to pouting," Draco noted, letting Harry lead for a bit before they switched.

"I hate dancing," Harry grumbled, taking back the lead and spinning Draco away when the other teen laughed at him. Harry was made to dance with both Ladies Greengrass and Davis, along with both their daughters before Luna was back with him. Harry all but ran away when there was a brief pause in music, ducking behind a few people and using the excuse of getting refreshments as his way out. He had to laugh when he scoured the dance floor and saw Tom being forced to dance with Narcissa, the woman had a look in her eye that spoke volumes and it seemed Tom had chosen not to argue with her. When she released him, Harry swore the man ran away from the Malfoy Lady, and he was trying valiantly to hide his snickers when the Dark Lord grabbed a glass and downed it in one.

"I see neither of us have been able to escape the dancing," He commented, only to gain a highly displeased look from the man.

"I am the Dark Lord, I should not be made to dance." Tom huffed and Harry snorted.

"How did that go over with Narcissa?" Harry asked.

"I didn't say that to her," Tom said as if he was mad, "I am the Dark Lord, not suicidal."

"Wise decision,"

"I see you did not argue with Miss Lovegood or Lady McKinnon," Tom pointed out and Harry snorted.

"I could have had the most compelling argument in the history of arguments and they still would have ignored me."

"Its witches," Tom decided with certainty.

"Or at least the ones we seem to be surrounded by," Harry agreed.

The pair of them were able to keep themselves away from the dancing for nearly an entire hour, skirting around the ballroom and making conversation with whoever they could tolerate within their vicinity. Harry found himself speaking to nearly all of the neutral dark Houses, it was very interesting to listen to their perspective of current happenings. He met back with Tom at the refreshments, raising an eyebrow at the man's cautious look.

"Narcissa, she wishes to dance again." He muttered and Harry grinned, though his expression fell when he saw Hermione curtsey to her partner and cast her eyes around the room looking for someone. Harry cursed, dragging Tom back towards the wall and gently brought his shadows up to cover them subtlety. They could see out, but were completely hidden from the rest of the room much to their relief, and Tom sent him the feeling of gratefulness.

"Why I didn't think of this sooner, I do not know," Harry murmured.

"You didn't have any chance, given that you were on the dancefloor almost immediately."

"I hate ballroom dancing, oh so much." Harry groaned, "It is the absolute worst thing about the balls."

"Yes, it is tedious and rather vapid – oh no,"

"What?" Harry asked, casting his eyes to follow Tom's line of sight. He swallowed when he saw his sister tilt her head looking right at them, he took Tom's arm and willed them to the other side of the room, in an equally shadowy area, and Harry made sure to keep the shadows remaining when they had been before so it didn't look suspicious.

"How long have we got until the dancing is finished." Harry complained and Tom bit back a scoff.

"With the witches
 never."

"Oh well that is optimistic," Harry groused, "Thanks for that."

"You are most welcome,"

They managed to get away with blatantly hiding from the dancing for another hour, finally having to suck it up and dance again when Luna appeared from nowhere dragged a very unwilling Harry out of the shadows. Of course, if he had to suffer then so did Tom, and as soon as Harry was three steps away, Narcissa appeared and Tom, too, was lead back to the floor.

Thankfully, they had managed to miss the more complex and detailed dances, so Harry only had to waltz around the room with his sister; he didn't think he could actually tango or anything like that. When the ball finally started to draw to a close, Harry couldn't have been more thankful. His body was heavy from the repeated dance moves, his mind was full of the things he had found out this evening and he just wanted to curl up next to Tom and go to sleep; oh, and he wanted to curse a few things too; his anger had not left.

Harry looked over to where Narcissa and Lucius were speaking with the Greengrasses, giving Harry his que to seek out his friends. He managed to snag Draco first, the Malfoy heir heading in the same direction as Harry was. Luna and Hermione were already with Ron and Blaise when they found them amongst the crowd, so they didn't have to go looking for them.

"Are you ok?" Hermione asked him immediately, releasing her mask now that no one was paying any attention to any of them.

"Other than the fact that I am using nearly all of my control to stop my magic tearing this entire manor to pieces, I would say I'm doing alright." Harry returned brightly.

"We will be in this upcoming session," Ron stated, "Nothing short of death or full incapacitation is going to stop us. I don't even care if we are caught out before. We'll hide at the Sanctuary and we will get ourselves there."

"I really hope that is the case," Luna sighed.

"How did we not know that it Dumbledore that pushed it through, or that he gave evidence?" Blaise asked and Ron blew out a breath.

"Only trial transcripts are available for public viewing, no one knows where they keep everything else, and with the lack of transcripts we already had our evidence." He explained, "With Hadrian being able to access the Ministerial and DMLE archives, he would have had no problem, minus the actual searching."

"I have decided that there is not a pain on this earth that will ever be enough to make Dumbledore suffer," Harry told them, "Not yet, at least."

"He will pay for what he has done." Luna assured him, "And we are all 100% behind you."

"See what we can find out about Selwyn before the next ball, I know that the next ball in but a day, but if we can get the upper hand it would be beneficial," Harry said to them all.

"We'll try, but like you said, we only have a day."

"I can speak with my father," Blaise remembered, "He is allied with Selwyn, I believe."

"Oh Merlin, that should be full of interesting conversation." Harry groaned and Blaise grinned.

"And you get to sit at the head table too."

"Wonderful,"

"We have to go and say our goodbyes." Draco noticed, "We'll see you before the ball."

Harry followed Draco over to the Greengrasses after accepting hugs from the girls, the night had been a success overall, but he was happy it was over.

"Ah Harry, you have said your goodbyes?" Narcissa asked.

"Yes, I'll see them before the next ball." Harry answered, and then he turned to the Lord Greengrass.

"I have had a wonderful evening, Hadrian."

"I am glad. You shall be attending the Zabini ball?"

"Yes. I believe I shall see you there." Harry answered, then his attention switched to the Lady, "Naomi, always a pleasure."

"I shall see you at the ball, Harry. And thank you, again." She smoothed down her dress as she spoke, and Harry smiled.

"It was my honest joy," He told her, "And should you ever wish for another, you need only ask."

"You are lovely," She stated, sharing a smile with Narcissa, who nodded her agreement. They said their final goodbyes before Harry and the Malfoys left the ballroom, falling in to step with the waiting Dark Lord, who had already bid farewell.

"We'll meet you back at the manor." Harry said to the Malfoys.

"Are you going somewhere?" Lucius inquired and Draco smirked.

"No, he just doesn't want to be spat out on to the floor should he use the floo system." Draco answered, and Harry threw him a look of disgust.

"You should be ashamed of yourself."

"Am I lying?" Draco threw back. In answer to his question, Harry took Tom's arm and vanished in to the shadows, stepping out in to the Malfoy entrance hall just as Narcissa walked through. Harry stepped away from Tom, taking a deep breath and releasing it slowly to relax himself from ball posture, and only then did he let up on the iron grip he had kept his magic in.

It flared around him and Harry rolled his neck, relishing in the feeling around him. His mind whirled with plans, things that would give him a suitable outlet for his rage. Tom cast a look at the Malfoys, who nodded and left the entrance hall swiftly. He approached the teen, gently running is hand down his face and kissing him slowly, pulling him closer. Harry felt himself fully relax as he kissed Tom, letting his magic slowly fade as Tom held him close.

"Do not let Dumbledore's actions make you fall now." Tom murmured, "You are better than that."

Harry took a shuddering breath, resting his head on Tom's shoulder as he settled himself. He had to stick to their plans, if they got everything right then they shouldn't fail. They had worked as hard as they could, it would be selfish of him to blow everything because of this latest revelation. Tom led Harry up to his rooms, gaining a slight smile from the teen as he held the door open for him. Harry moved around the room preparing for bed, carefully removing his robes and sending them with the house elf that came in to collect them. He dropped down on to the bed with as much grace as an elephant, and Tom rolled his eyes, pulling him over to lay on his chest when the teen made no effort to move. They lay still for a while, just winding down from the entire evening, and then Harry thought of something that made him look up.

"You have not mentioned my taking of Pettigrew." Harry remembered. Tom ran his hands up and down Harry's hip, not speaking for a moment while he ordered his thoughts. He hadn't even thought about it really. When Greengrass had started speaking about Harry's Godfather, he felt the usual blasts of pain that came from the teen, and he felt as it grew to dizzying proportions when Dumbledore's actions had been revealed. When Harry had said that he would deliver Pettigrew to Greengrass, if hadn't even crossed his mind to argue.

"If you wish to hand the rat over to Greengrass to clear your Godfather's name, then you can hand him over." Tom said to him simply. Harry smiled brightly at that, leaning up to press a thankful kiss to Tom's lips.

"Thank you,"

"It is of no trouble to me," Tom waved him off, "Any information that he could have possibly gotten for me or my cause can easily be attained by you or yours,"

"Hm, that is true." Harry agreed. "Other than that, I did so enjoy the ball."

"Yes, it was very informative."

"What did you think of our entrance? Did I keep my promise or what?" Harry asked him, grinning mischievously.

"It was brilliant. I did not even contemplate the idea of the three of you entering as a trio."

"I couldn't help myself. Everyone has heard of the 'Golden Trio' be it from the papers or their younger family members. I wanted everyone to be reminded of that, and for them to know what we will always stick together – no matter the situation."

"You stunned the entire room silent. I wouldn't hesitate to presume that your message was received."

"When I heard Hadrian had an announcer, I knew it would work." Harry said, and then he chuckled lightly, "I did enjoy the reactions. Did Lucius say anything? I did specifically look for him, but he was too far for me to hear."

"He didn't believe what he saw at first." Tom answered him, his voice amused. "I do not believe I have ever seen that many Lords or Ladies lose their composure at the same time."

"Ah, I love doing the impossible." Harry sighed happily, making Tom snort.

"I do not even think you should be allowed to say the word." He muttered and Harry laughed.

"If I wasn't me, I would be boring."

"Yes. I quite think you would be." Tom agreed, "As it stands, you do the impossible on a regular basis and I think it's quite impossible to label you are 'boring'."

"It is the only way." Harry decided with a sniff. He shifted his position slightly to get comfortable and let out a contented sigh. "I cannot wait to speak to Lucius tomorrow, it's going to be fun."

"You should go and see Remus too," Tom suggested, knowing that Harry always found an odd calm around the man.

"Yes, that is a good idea." Harry allowed, "Are you coming?"

"I am going to visit Theodore tomorrow." Tom told him, "I shall be returning for dinner, however."

"It is a shame he gave up his Lordship. He sounds as if he would have been a much better Lord Nott."

"Oh there is no doubt." Tom agreed easily, "Theodore is a rather brilliant man, if I were to admit it."

"Can't you see if you can talk him in to retaking his title?" Harry wondered, "Having someone like that would be highly beneficial to us. Regardless of his break in holding, Theodore would be the one of the oldest members within the Wizengamot chambers, and that will bring in a lot of respect and interest from the neutrals, along with the respect he already has within the dark."

"I do not know if he will do it, but it is one of the subjects I wish to speak with him about." Tom admitted. "As with the situation with Izar, it depends heavily on the Nott clauses."

"I presume that he'll be brought up?"

"Most definitely. That might be enough to get Theodore to consider the action."

"Well one can hope. And if hope fails, there is Nott's predictable lack of control around me, and my being prepared for whatever he throws at me."

"He'll come to realise his mistake." Tom murmured.

"Somehow, I don't think he will until it's much too late." Harry returned, equally as quiet. Then he shrugged, "Ah well, it'll be a great character building experience for him."

He felt Tom look at him and by the man's emotions it was an expression of extreme disbelief and Harry laughed. He reached up to kiss the man's cheek before settling down.

"Night, Tom."

"Goodnight, Harry."

Chapter 46

Notes:

I swear I will get all the chapters from ff.net over here eventually so help me!

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

Warnings are in the tags, please read.
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

The Dark Lord wasn't even the slightest bit surprised when he swept in to Theodore's lounge to see drinks laid out and his oldest friend browsing the paper waiting for him to arrive. He grabbed the tea offered and took a slow drink once he had sat in the chair he had deemed his own, his lips quirking at the perfectly made beverage.

"Last night was certainly a spectacle, if the rumours are to be believed." Theodore commented, not looking up from his paper.

"Come now, Theodore," The Dark Lord began, casting a side glance as his friend, "Do not tell me that you have sunken to listening to idle gossip."

Theodore finally put down his paper to give the Dark Lord an unimpressed looked at the jab, which only served to make the man chuckle.

"Your humour is particularly bright this morning, Marvolo," He threw back and Marvolo smirked.

"Yes. Last night's opening ball was particularly pleasing."

"Oh? Something I would be disappointed not to witness?" Theodore wondered.

"Most definitely." Marvolo agreed instantly, "It was quite the moment."

"Then please, do share." Theodore encouraged, "I wish to know of the McKinnon and Prewett arrivals."

"They did have a major part to play in last night's happenings." Marvolo told him, "Nearly everyone was waiting to see who they were and to know where they stood given the current political shifting. All the balls have been pre-cast with the Act of Silence."

"You already knew who they were." Theodore stated, knowing it was true even when Marvolo made no move to confirm his words.

"Of course, another many were interested in hearing about since his surprise appearance at the Malfoy Solstice ball."

"Yes, the Lord Potter-Black." Theodore murmured, "And if your descriptions of him are accurate then he would have had a plan to make an impact on this ball."

"Oh he intended to make an impact," Marvolo muttered under his breath, smirking when Theodore raised a questioning eyebrow. "When Harry was announced, he wasn't alone."

"He has a partner?" Theodore said in surprise, and something vicious flashed across his friends face before it was replaced with a marble-like calm – an action that told Theodore that the thought of Potter-Black with a partner sent rage through him. They had known each other for nearly sixty years, friends for over fifty, he knew the man's expressions and that amount of calm usually only came out when Marvolo was speaking with Dumbledore.

"Absolutely not," The Dark Lord's sharp words unnecessarily confirmed his thoughts.

"With company then," The swift change of subject was obviously appreciated as the other man's expression settled back in to an amused smirk.

"Yes, of the most interesting kind."

The slight hint was not missed on Theodore and his found his eyes widening slightly as he regarded his friend.

"Surely not Prewett and McKinnon." He said in disbelief and Marvolo's smirk stretched.

"But of course,"

"How is that even possible?" Theodore demanded, "No one has heard anything about them. They have abstained from all voting and not even businesses seem to have had any purchases or inquiries from them."

"Presenting: The Most Honourable, Marquis Harry James, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient Houses of Potter and Black. In the company of: The Most Honourable, Marquis Ronald Billius, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient House of Prewitt, and The Most Honourable, Marchioness Hermione Jean, Lady to the Noble and Most Ancient House of McKinnon." Marvolo repeated the announcement from the previous mind and watched as it sank in to his oldest friend's mind.

Theodore froze when he heard those names, his mind instantly connecting them from the tales his grandson as regaled to him, but it just wasn't possible. And then he blinked, the dubbed 'Golden Trio' attending the dark/neutral ball together, as a company, an image of complete unity; Theodore shook his head.

"Now that is an entrance." He declared and Marvolo's smirk had stretched to the point where he was outright grinning.

"The entire room went silent and just stared at them. Harry in the front with Prewett and McKinnon marking his right and left in a daring black, crimson, white and gold."

"I am truly envious that I was not in attendance." Theodore admitted.

"It was glorious, and even I will admit I did not expect him to arrive thus so." Marvolo told him, "And it made an impact."

"No doubt,"

"Yes, many were very surprised and it took them some time to arrive to our circle, but when they did they were the centre of conversation."

"I assume their thinking likens to Potter-Black."

"They are at the very centre of his network. The stories of the 'Golden Trio' are correct, the only difference is they are not so golden."

"Do they intend to enter the Wizengamot?" Theodore asked, "The three of them together would be a force."

"Even more so when you consider that the House Longbottom will honour it's allegiance with House Potter."

"They gained favour with Augusta Longbottom? Over Dumbledore?"

"No, but Heir Longbottom is in Harry's group and doesn't appear to appreciate the illegal withholding of his Heir and Lordship."

"Such times I seem to miss." Theodore bemoaned and Marvolo chuckled.

"Not everyone maintained pleasant surprise at the reveal of our newcomers." Marvolo informed him.

"Oh?"

"Yes, and something I do wish to speak with you over."

"I see," Theodore's voice cooled and his expression set, knowing instantly who had broken the usual decorum, "Is there anything permanent?"

"It was
 borderline." Marvolo said slowly, making Theodore tense slightly.

"Do please explain plainly."

"I have told you, of course, of Harry's rather obsessive protectiveness of his friends."

"Yes, he fractured his spine the last time."

"Izar nearly called Lady McKinnon a Mudblood."

The room was suddenly very still and Theodore processed what he had been told, he knew his son was foolish and he knew, from Marvolo's unspoken words, the only reason Potter-Black hadn't moved against his son was because of his friendship with the Dark Lord. But he did not believe that Izar would be downright stupid. Good Merlin, not only was his slur obviously incorrect as she was the Lady McKinnon but he was right in front of someone who had a lot more power than his own.

"The consequences?"

"A final warning, I believe. This was an outright move, Greengrass, Malfoy, Zabini, Lovegood, McKinnon, Prewett and I were all present."

"The Lady Herself," Theodore muttered, "Do you know how it will ripple should he act."

"It would depend on House Nott clauses."

"Ah,"

"I do believe you should consider the possibility of retaking your title if it is an option." Marvolo said to him.

"Do you think it necessary?"

"I believe, and Harry agrees, that it would be highly beneficial should you become, once again, the Lord Nott."

"I stepped down sixteen years ago for a reason," Theodore pointed out.

"Yes, I know."

"I will have things to consider of course,"

"Do as you wish, I am merely offering our thoughts." Marvolo waved off, "Harry pointed out that, though a break you have had, you will be one of the oldest most respected Lords within the Wizengamot halls."

"I shall speak with my son while I look in to the matter."

"Very well," Marvolo allowed, "Though I can no longer promise his safety."

"I understand,"

"No matter," Marvolo decided, "There were many other things discussed last night, one being the revival of the Rosier House."

"Oh, but it is a patriarchal line."

"Yes, but the Lord Prewett pointed out that Lucius' son would be eligible to take the title."

"So he would, and it would give us another seat in our favour."

"I believe Lucius and Narcissa are discussing whether or not to grant it."

"It should be a simple decision. Merlin knows Draconis has had more than enough training for it, even I did not teach my Theodore as much as Lucius taught his son."

"You are correct, and I have seen some of his legal work first hand; he is very well learned in the art. He would do well within the ministry." Marvolo admitted.

"No doubt he is considering it." Theodore said, "Should he decide to include the Rosier House, it would be the perfect timing. With Dumbledore's recent dethroning
"

The smile that came to the Dark Lord's face was equal amounts pleased and malicious, and a low chuckle escaped him.

"That was a true masterpiece,"

"And her information is not fictional. Yes, it is written leadingly, brilliantly so, but it cannot actively be disputed." Theodore said admiringly.

"It makes it all the more beautiful." Marvolo agreed.

"Do you know her source?"

"Of course,"

"It's Potter-Black, isn't it?" Theodore said, a hint of a sigh in his voice and Marvolo smirked.

"I have warned you that impossible does not work for him."

"Yes, I understand your frustrations." Theodore said with a wry smirk, "At least it is beneficial to our cause."

"Thankfully. I often wonder what would have happened should Harry be as he is but against us."

"It is an oddly chilling thought." Theodore answered slowly, "There are many of our main players who have very damming secrets and if Potter-Black can dig out Dumbledore's past, I highly doubt he would struggle with some of ours."

"I am glad we do not have to witness it. They are a dangerously efficient team."

"Do they have upcoming plans?"

"I know they have a plan for the Wizengamot should they get there, but not details as to what."

"He is playing it close to the chest?" Theodore wondered and Marvolo nearly snorted.

"No, he likes playing games."

"I see,"

Marvolo did not look the slightest bit impressed with his friend's amusement but he didn't huff at all, at least that was what he was telling himself.

"As it is, they are settling for their plans for the Wizengamot and writing out laws for when it is possible for them to be passed."

"How goes the infiltration?"

"It is gaining speed since Dumbledore's recent drop in popularity, but legal work is always much slower."

"Should Dumbledore's decline continue it would only be a benefit to us, and something very much appreciated."

"It would depend on the state within the Wizengamot as to if that is possible." Marvolo pointed out, "Dumbledore will be clutching that position, as well as his international platform."

"Which may not be his to clutch soon," Theodore hinted and Marvolo looked at him sharply.

"Oh?"

"Yes. The recent discord over such endangerment of the next generation stretched beyond our borders and it has not been well received, especially when there was evidence presented confirming the paper's accusations."

"Where would they get the evidence?" Marvolo wondered.

"I do not know. I only received word on it this morning. They broke for Yule and only yesterday did they analyse the authenticity. With it proven there are some very unhappy people raising their voices, and it might not only be the lead position he may lose." Theodore explained.

"This is very interesting indeed." Marvolo mused, "I shall have to speak with Harry to see if he passed it along, though I doubt it. And Lucius would have informed me."

"Should that happen then there would be more shifting within the ministry, especially if Hadrian's Vote goes through."

"There are too many variables to be able to predict an outcome." Marvolo sighed, "It is as frustrating as it is pleasing. The mess that is the ministry will give more opportunities for ours to slip through, but it could also lead to Dumbledore slipping back in to power through his people."

"It is precarious, but we do hold current favour."

"Do you still hold your contacts within Selwyn's court?" Marvolo asked him and Theodore raised an eyebrow.

"You have heard whispers of his new bill?"

"Harry can lip read, but we didn't get much,"

"I am afraid I do not have any details to offer. Whatever it is, Selwyn is keeping it very close to his chest."

"How is he to gain support?"

"I believe that he intends to surprise people, therefore gaining the first thought that comes to mind." Theodore answered and Marvolo frowned.

"That is unnecessarily risky,"

"Yes, and very stupid."

"Incredibly. But he does not know the newcomers actual ideas, so he could be making sure they do not block him." Marvolo mused, "Which would make sense, of course, if it is on what Harry believes."

"Oh?"

"Creatures, specifically werewolves."

"If it is against them Selwyn won't have a hope." Theodore said immediately, "Potter-Black has enough power to make it suicide to back."

"It should be interesting. We may gain insight tomorrow at the Zabini ball, they are allied I believe."

"Ah yes, Zabini is going to sink sooner or later." Theodore noted, "It is a bad allegiance unless he revives his House."

"I believe Harry wants the Heir to take over soon."

"Also part of his group?"

"Yes, his mother taught him well."

"Ah," Theodore smirked, "If he is with Potter-Black, should he take over it would bring yet another line in to his web and a straight line in to the neutral party."

"He will have a tie in each. With the Potter-Longbottom allegiance waiting for renewal, they will, once again, become the backbone of the light side."

"Only they won't be light and it could cripple them." Theodore realised pleased, "He's very clever."

"He is rather brilliant, isn't he?" Marvolo said fondly, and Theodore rolled his eyes. He was waiting for the day to arrive for Marvolo to inform him that he was finally going to marry and settle down, it would happen soon and there would be a Lord Consort should Potter-Black accept – not that Theodore could say he wouldn't, the other Lord was obviously equally enamoured with his Lord. The best thing about Potter-Black was that he wasn't some sycophant after his next fix of power, he had much of his own, he was wicked smart and he held Marvolo's interest like Theodore had never seen before; it was actually quite incredible.

"Enough of the politics," Theodore decided, ignoring Marvolo's raised eyebrow, "How was your Yuletide celebrations?"

"Honestly Theodore, we are grown men," Marvolo sighed.

"You did not receive anything of note?"

"Now that you mention it
" Marvolo relented, without any actual fight, "Lucius' son presented me with a customised potion that will give me selective mage sight."

"Politics and potions, Lucius will be insufferable." Theodore jested and Marvolo smirked.

"Save your pity for the Ladies, Narcissa will be positively vicious."

They shared a laugh and Theodore called for a light snack and more drinks, Marvolo nodded in thanks and grabbed a shortbread biscuit he was partial to.

"What did Potter-Black surprise you with?" Theodore inquired and blinked when an incredibly soft look overcame his friend's face, he had never seen such a look, not in the fifty odd years he had known him.

"He got me a bottle of scotch whisky."

Theodore looked at him startled.

"Scotch?" He repeated, wondering why it had gained such a reaction; he sent the man scotch every birthday. It must have been a rare one. "What one?"

"A Macallan,"

"Very nice choice," Theodore allowed, knowing the brand well. They were quite pricey, but they were a beautiful blend, "What year? The '84 is quite pleasant, but the '68 is astounding."

"The 1926," Marvolo answered and Theodore stilled, turning slowly to look at his friend in disbelief.

"Excuse me?"

"You can imagine my surprise when I opened his gift and saw the year and the verification," Marvolo said somewhat wryly.

"That's one of the rarest and most expensive scotches in the world. How did he even get it?"

"I have no idea, he only said he bought it because of the year," Marvolo said and Theodore was about to ask when he realised the significance of 1926; the wedding would definitely be going ahead.

"Did yours appeal to him?" Theodore questioned, and Marvolo smirked.

"Harry did tell me he would kill for an Ancient Elven blade."

"Sweet Circe!" Theodore exclaimed, "The pair of you are as bad as the other."

"We merely know each other's tastes." Marvolo brushed off and Theodore rolled his eyes.

"You are not wrong," Theodore muttered, "Where is the Lord Potter-Black? You have yet to introduce us."

"I had planned on doing so today," Marvolo admitted, "However, the Lord Greengrass revealed that Dumbledore personally gave evidence for the late Lord Black to be put in to Azkaban without a trial and that it would be impossible to clear his name without hard evidence. I suggested he visit his uncle."

"I do still find it hard to believe that the Heir to a Noble and Most Ancient House was thrown in to that place without a trial. If Arcturus was still alive and well he would have torn them all to the ground." Theodore said with a shudder.

"Nothing was ever uncovered as to how he died, nor to why he withdrew." Marvolo mused. "But Sirius Black is a very sore subject with Harry, it is best he be with his uncle else he decided to do something potentially stupid."

"Dumbledore does bring the worst of ourselves out." Theodore agreed, "I shall have to meet him soon instead."

"Most definitely. You will find it all but impossible not to like him." Marvolo assured. Theodore withheld the fact that he already liked the teen because he made his oldest friend happier than ever before, he knew the man would definitely not appreciate that despite its truthfulness.

"He sounds like an extremely interesting character." Theodore said instead, "I will look forward to it."

"At least you have had warnings to prepare yourself." Marvolo muttered, his put-out tone only half fake and Theodore laughed.

"Come, let us have lunch before retreating to the library. I have recently purchased some very ancient tomes that I believe you find interest in." Theodore decided.

"Let's," Marvolo agreed, "I shall catch you up with my and Remus' latest breakthrough."

"Remus Lupin is another I would like to meet. He appears to be very intelligent." Theodore decided.

"I was surprised by how much so," Marvolo allowed, "I shall speak to Harry. Until then, the books await."

Theodore smiled at his friend's enthusiasm and led them out, reading and discussing new works sounded like a good way to spend the rest of the day.

 


 

Harry was very happy to see his uncle the morning after the ball, even more so for the long hug he received when he reached him and if he held on longer than was strictly necessary then Remus didn't seem to mind.

"How you doing, cub?" He asked, dropping a kiss on to his dark hair.

"I've been better." Harry admitted.

"How did the ball go?" He wondered, keeping Harry tucked in to his side as he walked towards his office, "The grins on your friends faces say so much."

Harry couldn't help but laugh at that, he could only imagine their reactions when they got to the sanctuary.

"Yeah, most of the ball was brilliant." Harry agreed, "It couldn't have gone better overall."

"I sense a 'but'," Remus noted and Harry sighed sadly.

"We found out some more information about Siri's case." Harry admitted quietly, the previously felt pain rearing up again, and he wasn't surprised when Remus tensed next to him.

"What about it?" He questioned slowly, sitting next to Harry on his sofa but making sure he was facing his cub.

"We knew that Dumbledore knew he was innocent, and we knew that Crouch and Bagnold threw him in to that hell hole without a trial, but last night we found out that Dumbledore actually gave evidence to state that Siri was responsible." Harry explained, his lips twitching in to a small smile when Moony growled.

"That absolute bastard." He snarled, "Hasn't he done enough?"

"It seems that all the bad comes back to him," Harry agreed, "And it's not only us. Did we ever tell you what it was that sent Tom in to an uncontrollable rage when we went to the Flamel's?"

"No, only that you had to stop him killing Dumbledore with his bare hands." Remus answered and Harry grimaced.

"I won't say too much as it is not my right to speak of it, but Tom had an upbringing quite similar to mine and, just like mine, we found out that Dumbledore was responsible for it." Harry told him, nodding when Remus' eyes went wide in disgusted horror, "He used some truly nasty wards, even one to stop natural healing. If it was anyone else other than Tom, they would have been dead before eleven."

"What is his game?" Remus wondered, "There has to be a plan behind his actions, because they all seem to be somehow connected."

"And that is a problem we have. We don't know. We don't know what he's working towards." Harry sighed, "We believed that he wanted to get rid of the Dark Lord, that it was a huge power play that would crown him the new Merlin, the ultimate power in the world and taking away Tom and me in one sweep. Then we found these wards for when Tom was growing up, which meant that there was something else going on, because I wouldn't have been a subconscious thought back then."

"If we are ever going to be truly free of that man we need to work out what he is working towards." Remus said, "But at the same time, if we are to keep ourselves alive we need to keep working on our projects."

"It's a very dangerous game we're in," Harry stated, "To the point that a minor mistake could cost the lives of so many people. You are right, we do need to work out what Dumbledore actually wants, but at the same time I don't want to find out what he wants only for us to be unable to fight against him."

"So far you are on track for the Wizengamot, yes?" Remus confirmed and Harry nodded.

"Thankfully yes, as long as we keep doing exactly what we are doing." Harry said, "After last night I am sure there are more than a few people who also want us all there, so if something crops up in the ministry are am 80% sure that Lucius or Hadrian will make it go away."

"You seem to have Hadrian Greengrass well on your side," Remus noted, "No mean feat given that not even the Dark Lord will bother him."

"I wouldn't say he was on my side, more that we have shared interests and my thoughts on some ideas mirror his." Harry said to him, "I also think it is because I am not after anything. I just want to talk to him. He is very interesting, and someone who cannot be bought no matter what the price is someone very hard to find these days."

"I don't remember much of him from school, he was in the same year as Lucius in Slytherin, but I know he was fair to all students, no matter their house of blood status." Remus said thoughtfully.

"It does not surprise me."

"Anything else of note happen?" Remus asked, "You've had a grand entrance and lots of information, there couldn't have been much else even at the peak of the seasons."

"Don't count your dragons before they've hatched, uncle Moony." Harry warned playfully, grinning as his eyebrows rose.

"Good Merlin, what did you do?"

"I didn't do anything." Harry defended, but then he smirked, "Nott, on the other hand, was not so fortunate."

"He made a move on someone obviously higher than him during the ball."

"With witnesses." Harry confirmed, "Greengrass, Malfoy, Zabini, Prewett, McKinnon and the Dark Lord were there to hear it."

"That was stupid." Remus stated bluntly.

"I know, and he is lucky that there was witnesses." Harry grumbled, "Should he had spoken when it was merely me, Ron and Hermione, he would be in the hospital right now."

"What did he say?"

"Called Ron 'nothing' and went to call Hermione a Mudblood." Harry bit out, "The bastard is lucky, but no more. Anything else then his time is up."

"I am surprised that you have not yet done anything." Remus admitted, "All of the others have mentioned at least twice that Nott's behaviour is getting worse. You are remarkably like both your father and Sirius in that manner, because they did not stand for insults against their friends or family, well, the Potter Family anyway."

They shared a fond smile at Sirius' well known hatred of his family before Harry looked over at the crackling fire.

"It has been difficult," He admitted, "But I haven't acted more than words because Tom is very close friends with Theodore Nott Snr. He is speaking with him today, and I am hoping that he will be able to convince him to come back as the Lord Nott. If that is possible then he will take over and we shall not have these problems, and I know that Theodore Nott Snr must be a pretty incredible man given Tom's high praise of him."

"That makes sense." Remus said slowly, "I know that Theodore Nott Snr was one of the leading people within the Wizengamot when he sat there, and should he still be there he would be one of the oldest too."

"I know, which is but another reason I wish Tom to convince him to come back." Harry said, a sly smile working its way on to his face, "If he comes back then we have the prime candidate for a new Chief Warlock, I will have to speak with him of course, and make sure he can keep it from Tom until it's in place, but it has been my growing plan."

"That is brilliant, cub." Remus praised, "He would have enough respect from the dark and neutral, and he would have the age and experience."

"Thankfully, the strongest other candidate will be removed if we get there in January." Harry said, "Augusta Longbottom, had she not been bat shit, would have been the next thought of, and if she wasn't in Dumbledore's web then I would probably vote for her – she's rather formidable."

"Yes, she is." Remus agreed, "Badger plans on banishing her, doesn't he?"

"Yep," Harry confirmed cheerfully, "To the Welsh Mountains or something."

"A just punishment."

"Most definitely," Harry said, "I honestly couldn't believe she would do that to her own grandson. I mean, Dumbledore I can understand, but her own blood? No, its beyond me."

"I assume you have plans for both success and failure of the Vote?"

"Oh yeah, but only we know. Tom has no idea what we have planned and I want to keep it that way." Harry said and Remus grinned.

"You just love surprising him."

"I won't even bother to deny it." Harry said with a laugh, "It's very fun, and you have to admit that you also like doing it."

"It's quite satisfying." Remus relented, "I really cannot believe how much things have changed."

"It makes you wonder, doesn't it?" Harry said, "If we have had these potions, spells and charms controlling us, I wonder if mum and dad did?"

"Honestly, cub, I would rather not know. I would rather believe that they went out fighting for something they truly believed in rather than something they had never wanted to fight for." Remus said quietly, "I know they were killed because of the fake prophecy, and I know for a fact that they would not have acted any differently in regards to saving you. But even then, I could not bear to know that they never intended to fight for the light anyway."

"I understand." Harry said, "I have to believe that they knew what they were doing and while I have not made peace with their deaths, I know I will once Dumbledore is gone."

"Yes, I can agree on that." Remus allowed, "Though working with the so called dark also brings forth so much more. The Dark Lord is as he was before the final years of the war, according to Cissa anyway, and that alone is something to marvel."

"He's brilliant, isn't he?" Harry said with a smile, "It's his mind,"

"Yes, I don't know how there can be so much knowledge in one human being." Remus shook his head in amazement, "I was always certain that, given his age and accomplishments despite how much we hate him, Dumbledore was the smartest anyone was ever going to get, but the Dark Lord outstrips him by a significant amount."

"He loves magic." Harry said, "While everyone believes that Tom fears death above all things, I do not think that is true. I think, if it were to come down to it, Tom would rather die than have his magic removed permanently."

"Really?"

"I encased his magic once before, it was when I was trying to stop him from killing Dumbledore. It's a vile trick, the costs can be very high and it cannot be kept up on a permanent basis, but it cuts off the connection between magic and body, like a binding. He felt it and he sounded so desperately scared
" Harry trailed off and shook his head, "If I never have to hear him sound like that again it would still be too much."

"I think I can understand." Remus said after a moment, "I know how to live in the muggle world, but I do not know how to live without feeling my magic within me. Even if it's subconscious its still there, and to have that suddenly taken
"

Remus shuddered as he let the sentence fall, Harry nodded in agreement, he knew he would rather die than have his magic taken; he knew he wouldn't be able to handle it.

"I think that is another reason Tom is so knowledgeable, his adoration of magic made him seek out as much information about it as he could. He still searches now, delighting in anything new about magic." Harry said.

"What had me so surprised is most tend to narrow their field of study." Remus said, "Dumbledore is very smart, but his specialty is transfiguration and I doubt there is anyone alive who could outreach his theoretical knowledge of it, his practical application too really."

"I would say the same with Snape and potions." Harry said.

"Yes, exactly like that. The Dark Lord, on the other hand, didn't bother to specialise, he just went for it all."

"Yeah, Tom doesn't do anything by halves." Harry laughed, "Though, if I were to narrow it down, I would say offensive magic is his specialty."

"I suppose you could say that, because that would incorporate dark arts as well as normal charms, hexes and curses."

"Exactly,"

"I didn't have chance to give you your Yule gift." Remus remembered suddenly, flicking his wand and summoning a neatly wrapped package.

"Did you get mine?" Harry asked, examining the package with excited interest.

"That wasn't a gift, cub," He deadpanned and Harry pouted.

"You deserve a holiday. Where else would you take it than at your very own hidden beach house?" Harry said innocently.

"First of all, it's not a house, it's a mansion." Remus began, giving him a look that told him he didn't buy his innocence, "Secondly, it comes fully furnished and if those two things weren't enough it has its own private beach."

"Well what if you wanted guests? As for the furniture, well you can't stay in an empty house, and why would you want a beach where you can't do exactly what you want?" Harry pointed out reasonably, Remus rolled his eyes but gave him a one armed hug.

"It was lovely, cub." He told him honestly and Harry grinned.

"My turn," Harry carefully tore of the paper and found a somewhat worn brown journal, his eyebrows rose but he flicked it open and felt his breathing stop. He looked up at Remus with wide eyes and the werewolf smiled softly.

"I found it when I went looking for some of the old safe houses, Sirius must have taken it from the cottage." He told him, "It was Lily's idea, she said that it was only right that we all kept a journal of her first pregnancy. She included us all because Sirius pointed out that just because she was having the baby it didn't mean it was only hers, he was adamant that you were all of ours.

"So she set it up, and we were told to write whatever we wanted, though Sirius and James were both warned to be reasonable. Sometimes James would take it with him, and it would be filled with his and Sirius' wonderings about the things they were missing. It goes right up until-," Remus flipped the book to one of the final pages and revealed a picture.

Harry found himself utterly lost for words as he looked down at his father, godfather and honorary uncle all around a hospital bed that his mother was laying on with a tiny baby in her arms. The shock of black hair told Harry that it was him. His father looked like the proudest man on the planet as he shared a high 5 with Sirius, who was smiling wider than anything Harry could remember seeing, and Remus was stood next to Sirius laughing at their antics and seeming looking a little stunned as he cast a look at baby Harry.

But that wasn't what got Harry about the image, his eyes stared at his mother, a mess from giving birth and obviously exhausted and yet she looked absolutely radiant, and she was looking at the baby as if it was her entire world. There was so much love in her eyes, and the utter joy on her face when she looked up at his father was astonishing.

"They were the happiest I have ever seen them when you were born." Remus said to him. "Your father worked himself in to a state when your mother went in to labour. Sirius thought it was hilarious until Lily screamed at him that if he didn't get in the room and help with the birth of his Godson then she would string him up and send him to be stuffed; he all but apparated in to the room. The funny thing was, as soon as he got in there he started panicking more than James."

"Thank you," Harry got out, completely overcome. He carefully closed the journal and held it to his chest as he leaned over to hug his uncle. "This is more than I could have ever wished for."

"I was pleased I was able to find it," Remus said, "They were not able to give it to you, so the least I could do was make sure it got to you."

"I think, when this is all over, I'll finally visit them. I haven't been able to make myself go, not yet. It doesn't feel right."

"I understand, Cub. It took me years before I could go back, when I found out Siri was innocent actually. Your time will come."

"It will. We are slowly working towards it."

"I find myself quite peaceful for the first time in many years. Even though one wrong move could have a horrific outcome, and every week we seem to find out something else Dumbledore has done, I finally feel comfortable in who and what I am."

"I'm glad, uncle Moony," Harry said, "And I'm glad I still have you."

They spent the rest of the morning talking about the Sanctuary and the success of the Yule celebrations before Moony led him down to lunch. Harry was very interested because he had yet to find the time to spend a meal at the sanctuary and he couldn't help but smile brightly as he saw the amount of wolves who were now comfortable eating inside. It was lucky that Peverell Manor was so big and that the dining room was so grand because it was filled with people, but not many could fit in comfortably.

"As you can see, we may have to plan a small renovation." Remus said pleased. "At the moment we are fine because not everyone comes at once and some still do not wish to venture this far in yet."

"It will be possible. This room is on an exterior wall, we can extend outwards without issue." Harry replied, "Even just for comfort. The only problem I can see is where everyone will eat while the goblins are working?"

"I shall speak with Alpha and Moonrise to see what can be arranged, once we have a solution I'll come to you." Remus decided and Harry nodded.

"Perfect."

"Mister Snake!"

Harry looked over at the call and saw Petal waving frantically at him from her mother's lap, Harry grinned.

"I've been summoned." He said and Remus chuckled.

"Come and see me before you go."

"I will, thanks, uncle Moony." Harry hugged him and then weaved his way through the tables and wolves to reach Petal, who wasted no time in launching herself at him.

"Hello, Petal," He greeted, catching her and setting her on his hip. "How are you?"

"Miss Paws teached us about Yule and then Mister Moony let me give my cookie to Lady Magic." She told him in excitement, "The fire got big."

"Is that right?" Harry said, making sure his voice had the right amount of amazement in it, "What was it like?"

"It was 'mazin'!" She exclaimed, "There was so much food!"

"Well I am glad you had fun," He told her, smiling when she nodded her head wildly, "Now, were you about to eat your lunch?"

He cast his eye over to her mother, who was looking amusedly exasperated as she looked at her daughter.

"She spotted you as soon as you walked in, Mister Snake." Freya said to him, "Wouldn't sit still and eat her lunch,"

"But, mama-,"

"Don't you 'but mama' me, you need to eat your vegetables."

"You aren't eating your vegetables?" Harry questioned with wide eyes, "What would Marvolo say?"

"I is eating them!" She assured hurriedly, "I'm going to be as tall as him one day."

"I'll make sure to let him know." Harry said seriously, setting her down on her chair and taking a seat next to her when she pulled him down.

"Are you staying for lunch, Mr Snake?" Freya asked, seeing to Petal's food.

"Yeah, I haven't managed to stay before so I thought I would give it a shot." Harry answered, "How are you finding things?"

"It is wonderful," She said immediately, "Nearly all of our pack are able to come inside for food now, and soon we will all be able to come up."

"That's brilliant," Harry said pleased, "Moony was telling me that we are going to need to expand to fit everyone in."

"Some of us stay within our house that we have within the forest for food. It's always stocked for us but Petal loves coming up to the big house and Alpha is encouraging everyone to come and at least eat one meal a day." Freya explained, "I do not mind either. It is strange, but a good strange."

"I am very glad." Harry said, "I didn't ever think things would work out so well here."

"This place is the best thing to ever happen to us." She told him honesty, "I didn't think I would ever feel safe again, until I got here."

"It is my intention to make it so this place isn't necessary." Harry admitted, "It will never shut, but I want all of you to be able to be part of the magical community as a whole, not hidden away. I want to make it so when the time comes, Petal gets the chance to go to Hogwarts with every other eleven year old."

"That would be a dream,"

Petal demanded Harry's attention back on her and Harry grabbed some of the food from the platters in the middle of the table so he could eat and entertain. He had noticed that his presence was gaining quite a bit of notice, and he was happy to talk to all the wolves who came up to him. Most were just offering their thanks, but others had questions which were answered easily enough. Three of the wolves that came up to him had found themselves bored, now that they weren't running and hiding for their lives they had found lots of spare time on their hands so Harry pointed them in Moony's direction for jobs and told them that if they wanted to learn things then his friends would be willing should they ask; they weren't only teaching cubs. He said goodbye to Freya and Petal when some of Petal's little friends ran over and insisted she go to the playroom with them. Harry checked the time and decided it was time to get back if they were going to be speaking about the ball with Lucius, he also wanted to speak of the upcoming even if they had little to work on. He easily slid through the thinning crowd, spotting Moony sat in a somewhat private corner with Greyback, Ellen and Drew and making his way over.

"Hey, cub." Moony greeted, offering him a seat, "Have fun?"

"Yeah, I was speaking with Freya and Petal."

"They are part of my main pack." Greyback told him, "I have never seen the runt so lively."

"Runt?"

"She was one of the smallest born cubs I have ever seen, and the smallest I've seen survive. Freya and Peirce have been too afraid to mate since, it was obvious that it was Freya's lack of health that caused such conditions." He explained, and Harry grimaced.

"Thankfully no longer an issue."

"Yeah, which we are all grateful for." Drew said, "We ain't spoke since this place was set up."

"I know. Things have been happening."

They shared a laugh at the understatement and Harry shook his head.

"It is good to see you though,"

"Same to you. I gotta say I didn't have much faith come the end but you more than pulled through."

"I understand why you didn't, and if I'm being honest it is only by chance that this happened, but I am glad."

"I've been updated about the old man, you face him soon don't you?" Drew wondered and Harry nodded.

"Just under three weeks from now. That's when things really kick off."

"Oh Merlin, don't remind me, cub." Remus bemoaned and Harry laughed.

"Sorry, but you know it's going to get hot and fast."

"Do you expect problems?" Ellen asked and Harry frowned.

"I wouldn't say expect more like know they are going to happen. It is impossible for us to predict what Dumbledore is going to do when he realises I'm no longer under his control. The only thing we can do is push forward with our plans and hope we can counter what he throws at us." Harry told them. "First on the agenda: get a minister of our choice in office. Once we have that in place we can begin implementing our laws."

"How do you think they will be taken?" Ellen wondered.

"It will have to be dealt with gently. People have been lied to for many years, but I do think many will be swayed when they read and have proof of the truth. Plus, it will still be a punishable crime to infect another person and now we know there is a true way of identifying the biter then there will be no incorrect sentences." Harry answered thoughtfully. "Anyway, we do not need to fret on that yet. What were you all discussing?"

"The renovations." Alpha answered, "I suggested we use the entrance hall if the construction is only going to be a few days, that way everyone can just go around if they want something."

"It could work." Harry allowed, "I'll make an appointment with the goblins as soon as I have some spare time and get them to contact Moony."

"We can easily call a meeting in the courtyard to alert everyone, and goblins hold no ill will to us." Drew pointed out.

"Then it's settled." Harry decided, "Now, I should really get going because I want to pop up and see Ron, Hermione and Neville before I go back. Uncle Moony, I will see you soon."

"Bye, cub. Be careful,"

"You know me!"

"That's what I'm worried about." Remus sighed, pulling him in a hug and dropping a kiss to his messy head, "Don't do anything too mad, if only for my sanity."

"I will try my best." Harry assured, squeezing his uncle before stepping away and turning with a wave. He searched the others out in the library and flashed them a grin when they spotted him.

"Oh Lord Potter-Black how good it is to see you once again," Ron said in the snottiest voice he could manage. Harry snorted and threw himself down on a chair, kicking one leg casually over the arm and slumping down.

"Lord Prewett, this is a surprise." Harry returned in the same tone.

"They have already shown me the memory," Neville said to him, "And just well done for a truly worthy entrance."

"It was definitely one of our best moves to date." Harry agreed. "Last night was intense. How you guys handle it? I didn't get to ask."

"I'm honestly surprised I didn't feel out of place." Ron admitted, "I know we've practiced for it but doing it is a completely different thing."

"I know what you mean." Hermione mused, "I was expecting to feel like I shouldn't be there despite my invitation."

"It was surprisingly fun, too." Ron added, "It was good to get others opinions from them and not rumours."

"And the amount of information that you can collect in those hours is innumerable." Hermione said with a grin.

"Our next ball will be a completely different setting. I do not know what to think." Harry allowed and Ron frowned.

"I do not have high hopes, Blaise didn't paint the best picture." He informed them both.

"Wonderful,"

"I'm off to the MacMillan ball tonight, so tomorrow before you guys go off again I'll share what information I can gather." Neville said, and then he grimaced, "I am really not looking forward to it. Ernie becomes absolutely unbearable at these things."

"I don't envy you." Ron muttered.

"I just wanted to check in and make sure you guys were alright." Harry said, "We can speak more tomorrow when we meet before the ball, I'll come around three."

"We're at my manor again," Hermione reminded him at he got up.

"Ok, see you tomorrow guys. Happy thoughts, Nev."

Harry tossed a wave over his shoulder and vanished in to the shadows, stepping out near the private sitting room of Malfoy Manor and walked in to see all the Malfoys and Tom sat discussing the ball.

"Ah, I was wondering where you had gotten to." Tom said to him with a slight smile. Harry flashed a grin and moved over to sit next to him on the sofa, greeting the Malfoys as he did so.

"I stayed for lunch and discussed renovations with the main wolves." Harry explained, "It's basically sorted now."

"Good. You need not more stress." Tom said.

"Tell me about it." Harry agreed, "I also dropped in on Ron and Hermione before coming back."

Here Lucius gave him such a disdainful look Harry burst out laughing, turning to smother them in Tom's shoulder as the Malfoy Lord looked extremely put out.

"How are Lord Prewett and Lady McKinnon?" Lucius drawled.

"I'm not even sorry," Harry snickered, "I've been planning that for ages."

"Oh, Harry," Narcissa said fondly, "You did indeed cause quite a stir."

"It was one of the greatest things I have ever seen." Draco sighed in relish, "Such a lack of decorum for high-class society."

"Once the shock had worn off I could understand Lord Prewett, but Lady McKinnon
"

"I recommend implementing a mandatory blood test for all muggleborns citing Hermione as the example." Harry said candidly, a smirk curling on to his face at Lucius grimace.

"They fitted in marvellously," Narcissa commented, "Not one social faux-par,"

"Does that really surprise you since you saw my transformation in the summer?" Harry asked and she smiled slightly.

"I do have to admit I was still surprised. The Lord Prewett is rather famous for his terrible manners."

Harry snorted at that, Hermione had beat manners into Ron with an iron fist and by the time it was their point to learn etiquette Ron wasn't stupid enough to argue.

"I am comfortable in blaming Hermione for that particular transformation," He said with a grin, "She instills fear into him like no other."

"Lady McKinnon looked beautiful," Narcissa said, "I assume the dress was of your creation."

"Yes, as was Luna's,"

"Naomi was very impressed with Luna's gown. They were both gorgeous creations and caused many whispers within the other ladies."

"Oh and yours did not?" Harry returned slyly, laughing at the pleased smirk that came to Narcissa's face.

"It was the beginning of the season." She replied primly.

"Of course, my mistake."

"The press release of the Yule season is definitely going to be interesting with the new arrivals and your gowns in play. No doubt the other Ladies will see it as a challenge."

"Witch Weekly will be the one doing the fashion spread, won't they?" Harry asked.

"Yes, though it will also appear in Lush – the upper-class version of Witch Weekly, and given the recent political changes I wouldn't be surprised if it appearing in the European equivalents. We will give permission for it to be done."

"Of course, with the Acts nothing can be published without the hosts' permission." Harry remembered.

"Thankfully, we are able to hold all releases of you and yours if necessary." Lucius told him and Harry nodded.

"I hope that is not the case." Harry said, "Especially seeing as we have even more riding on the Wizengamot now."

"I cannot foresee a problem now unless Dumbledore kidnaps you himself. He does not suspect and word cannot get out because of the Act." Lucius pointed out reasonably.

"I know, but we have spent the past four months calculating all of our moves because of Dumbledore. It is hard to think he won't get in the way."

"Given Dumbledore's capacity of appearing where least wanted, it is good to err on the side of caution." Tom put in, and Harry nodded.

"Who knows what the crazy man will think up being out of the castle." Harry said with a shudder.

"Let's not," Draco decided, a look of distaste on his features making Harry chuckled.

"Yeah, its not exactly nice thinking."

"Let's speak, instead, of Hadrian's movement." Lucius suggested, "During our after-dinner discussion he believes he has solidified enough backing to cover his Vote even without your presence. Both Smith and Ogden seem to be on bored, Ogden's allies will come with him but it looks to be the end of the Smith/Diggory alliance, and possibly the Shacklebolt one. I do not know if the Lord is as loyal to Dumbledore as the auror. Plus many in attendance last night would be very happy to see Fudge gone."

"That's good. The ending of the Smith/Diggory alliance is something Ron already planned for, and we are under the assumption that the Lord Shacklebolt is equally loyal to be on the side of caution currently." Harry remarked, "This does release some pressure, however we will not be able to control the aftermath nor the final voting and that's the thing we were worried about. Luna already confirmed the backing to get the Vote accepted."

"There are many things that are going to rely on chance no matter how well we plan them." Draco stated, "Mother and father have agreed to let me take the Rosier Lordship which means even without you we will have eyes in the room."

"Brilliant!" Harry exclaimed, "You are already briefed on what we planned so that gives us more of a chance."

"Thankfully yes." Draco agreed, "Which is good because I haven't found out anything about Selwyn's new bill and one of us needs to be there to hear it if it doesn't come out in the ball."

"Selwyn has not released any details as of yet." Tom said, "None of Theodore's contacts have heard anything."

"How was your morning with the rightful Lord Nott?" Harry asked him interested, completely ignoring Tom's look of amusement at Harry's chosen name for his friend.

"Quite pleasant. He informed me of some interesting news regarding Dumbledore's position within the ICW."

"Oh? What's happened?" Harry questioned.

"The news about the blood quills has spread and evidence has been presented and authenticated to back up the paper's claim. Theodore believes it may lead to his removal from the entire ICW, not just the head." Tom responded and Harry's eyes lit up, but then he frowned.

"How did they get the evidence?"

"That remains the question,"

"I did not send it, I used mine with the governors." Lucius said.

"I haven't had time to send it, nor would I have thought to." Harry admitted, "Nor would I know whose hands to make sure it ended up in."

"How could they have gotten hold of it?" Narcissa asked, "It is not something one can merely pick up."

"Not only that but to send it and make sure it got to the right people without notice they would have to have eyes and ears everywhere
" Draco trailed off with his expression turning to one of understanding and quickly glancing at Harry, who had just gained the exact same look.

"Luna," They said together.

"She causes me great alarm." Lucius muttered with a slight shudder.

"If it was, her initiative was perfect." Tom said with a smirk in Lucius' direction.

"Luna is a delightful girl, if frighteningly knowing." Narcissa spoke with a smile, her husband had told her about the reveal at the meeting. It had surprised her that Luna had known such secrets, but she couldn't bring herself to question it; it was Luna, she just knew.

"I will ask her if it was her, but now that I think about it I cannot doubt it was. No one else has unlimited access to everything I own." Harry said. "Despite whoever sent it, they have the evidence and it won't remain silent for long, especially in the countries that have completely outlawed blood quills."

"So all of the African countries at least." Lucius remarked, "They use bloodstone."

"Dumbledore is going to be very angry." Draco pointed out, "Do you think the ICW will act before the Wizengamot?"

"I don't know when the next meeting is?" Harry said, looking at Tom for an answer.

"February 2nd I believe,"

"Yes, to avoid any seasonal conflicts." Lucius confirmed.

"Unless they call an emergency meeting." Narcissa said, "But that seems very unlikely."

"It would depend on how many people are outraged enough to demand a new leader." Tom said.

"Plus, Dumbledore's main concern is here at the moment. He already has contacts within the countries he wants, and many allies within the ICW. He will be able to talk himself out of things with them, so he may choose to graciously step down." Harry added, "Though I am working on the best case scenario."

"Worst case is he completely loses it and goes for you as he believes he's lost too much control." Draco said brightly and Harry snorted.

"Thanks, Dray."

"Anytime."

"In other news, Neville is attending the MacMillan ball tonight." Harry told them all, grinning at the looks of interest he gained.

"That is interesting." Tom murmured.

"That is basically a direct line in to the light side thinking and their own Yule planning." Lucius said gleefully.

"Exactly, even more so given that House Longbottom will obviously be at the head table."

"I cannot wait to hear what they are saying right now."

"Do you think they will call the Act of Silence?" Draco wondered, but Lucius shook his head.

"I highly doubt it, not McMillan, unless it is specifically requested."

"Even if the Act is called, Neville can still develop our plans around it. He can't speak of the ball nor anything that happened in attendance, but he can direct our movements." Harry pointed out.

"In what sense?" Narcissa asked.

"Well say we plan to raise one of our laws but Neville has heard something at the ball that will be a conflict, he can tell us not to do it he just can't tell us why." Harry explained.

"Very nice loop hole." Tom said with a slight smirk.

"I thought so," Harry agreed.

"The only thing we can do is gather information and wait." Draco said, "Might as well make the most of the break."

"What a great idea." Harry said, stretching out on the sofa and dropping his feet in Tom's lap, much to the man's amusement.

"Are you quite comfortable?" He inquired lightly and Harry pretended to think about it.

"I think so."

Tom rolled his eyes fondly but didn't throw them off. They stayed talking all afternoon, their topics flowing from one scale to another and getting in to debates about magic and politics. Lucius, Draco and Tom got in to some heated chess battles while Narcissa and Harry watched them with amusement and discussed her schedule for her own ball.

When Tom and Lucius started threatening the chess pieces Narcissa deemed it time for dinner. The meal was enjoyable and Harry spent another hour after having drinks because saying his goodnights, Tom said he'd be up soon so Harry left with a wave. He spent the time alone working through his own projects, making notes and attempting a few of the early stages of one of his spells.

Harry had done the exercise before, but he knew from experience that a solid spell base was crucial. So many spells had been known to rupture because the creator never solidified the base. He almost didn't notice Tom's arrival and he wouldn't have it he hadn't glanced at some of his other notes when the man walked past the bed.

"Hey," Harry greeted, grinning at Tom's raised eyebrow.

"What are you doing?" He questioned, indicating the streams of parchment and multiple books that covered the entirety of the bed except where he was sat with his legs crossed.

"Personal projects," Harry answered, "But you can't see them yet," he waved his hand and obscured the words as he realised Tom could actually read parseltongue; that was inconvenient. Tom looked extremely put out and huffed, much to Harry's amusement. He waved his hand again to pile his work up and give Tom a place to sit down, Harry quickly flicked through his work and pulled out a long sheet of parchment before banishing the rest back to his room through his shadows.

"You can look at this one because it's basically finished, I'm working on the final incantation." Harry allowed, holding it up for Tom to take; which he did happily, "It's only an edit, but it's efficient."

Tom removed his robe and shoes and dropped down on to the bed next to Harry, relaxing back and opening his arm so Harry could settle comfortably curled in to him.

"An edited summoning charm?" Tom remarked in surprise, "What made you think it needed editing?"

"It was just after the first task when I got the idea, but I never started it until last year and I put it aside in favour of other things until this year." Harry said, "I thought it was ridiculous that I had to wait for my objects to fly through the air to get to me. I mean, first of all, you've no guarantee it has worked until it gets to you with long distance. Secondly, the charm can fail half way if your focus wavers or something interrupts the spell, and finally, who knows what your items are going to hit on their way to you?"

"All valid points," Tom agreed, as he read through the parchment, "Why have you got the breakdown for apparation here?"

"Oh, because my concept was to make the summoned item appear directly before you, but my first ideas kept falling flat when it wasn't items within the same room. I decided to break down the apparation process because not only can you obviously apparate to places outside the same room as you are in but you can go incredibly long distances."

"I see, so you apply the same concept but reverse the magical direction." Tom said and Harry nodded.

"Yes. As apparation is silent and internal, it had to be turned inside out for lack of a better term, which is why I incorporated its concepts in to the charm and not the other way around."

"That makes sense. Doing it the other way would create possible lethal results."

"Yeah, I didn't fancy accidently summoning something and having it appear in my stomach."

"I cannot imagine why," Tom responded dryly.

"Anyway, it's basically finished. It'll be done by the time we're back at the castle." Harry said.

"I have no doubt." Tom told him, banishing the sheet to dresser on the other side of the room.

"So, you never did finish saying about your visit to the rightful Lord Nott's residence." Harry prodded.

"The rightful Lord Nott as you have so quaintly named him is looking into the Nott clauses." Tom informed him and Harry turned to look at him in delight.

"Really? That's brilliant!"

"He has not given a guarantee, but he is furious with his son even without using the direct words."

"Thank Merlin for that. We both know Nott will screw up again which means we are getting a decent Lord in replacement." Harry said brightly "I wonder if it will be before or after the Wizengamot."

"I cannot answer, it depends on Izar's foolishness."

"I'll have to add this to our notes." Harry decided, settling back down, "You'll have to introduce us soon, Tom, he sounds very interesting."

"Yes, I do intend to. Preferably before the holidays are over."

"That would be good. Maybe after the Malfoy ball, that way all the stress will be gone for the final few days." Harry suggested.

"That sounds reasonable. I shall write to Theodore." Tom agreed.

"Good. Now, we have an incredibly boring ball to attend tomorrow night, and I believe falling asleep is frowned upon." Harry said, yawning, "Venom has already painted a bad picture,"

"Delightful," Tom sighed, waving his wand to change his clothes in to sleepwear, "At least it is a change in circle."

"That's what I am clutching at," Harry said, trying to get comfortable. He rolled on to his other side and while the position was comfortable something wasn't right. He reached behind him blindly to grab Tom's arm and pull slightly, Harry heard the man huff a soft laugh and move so his arm was around Harry's waist holding him against his chest.

"You are terrible." Tom informed him lowly, making Harry smile even has his eyes fluttered shut.

"I know."

Chapter 47

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

If you get mad at me for anything in this fic after reading the tags then thats a you problem... sorry not sorry
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

The three Malfoy's were sat having light conversation in the early afternoon before the ball when the wards alerted them to visitors. They didn't have to wait long before their guests were revealed to be Narcissa's sister, Bellatrix, and her husband, Rodolphus.

"Bella, Rodo, this is a welcome surprise." Narcissa greeted, rising to kiss her sister's cheek and accept the one from Rodolphus in return, indicating seats for them to take.

"Our apologies for the sudden visit. We must speak with our Lord." Bella replied, and then she smiled. While the smile was still slightly insane, it was no longer completely deranged. "I do like to visit anyway, so I thought we would stay for a while."

"That would be lovely." Narcissa allowed easily, a bright smile coming to her face.

"Where is our Lord?" Rodolphus asked, "In his study?"

Draco snorted as Lucius sighed and Narcissa released a delighted laugh confusing the Lestranges.

"Do share the joke," Bella said.

"Our Lord is somewhere in the manor but you can bet it isn't his study," Draco said with a slight grin, "Not after the strop Harry threw."

"Potter-Black?" Rodolphus confirmed, "What's he got to do with it?"

"What hasn't he?" Bella countered, "We all saw them at Yule."

"That is true." Her husband agreed, before turning back to the Malfoy's, "What is going on?"

"And what has it got to do with our Lord not being in his study?" Bella added.

"Our Lord announced that he intended to spend the time before the ball this evening working." Lucius began. "Only, Potter-Black seemed to have other plans."

"Why didn't our Lord ignore him?" Rodolphus wondered and this time all three Malfoys snorted, though they would deny it.

"As if our Lord would ignore him." Narcissa said as if it was absurd.

"Besides, it was kind of hard for him to ignore Harry when he decided to turn himself in to a human sloth and refuse to let go." Draco pointed out, laughing as his mother looked at him with fond amusement and his father fond exasperation over their guest.

"He did what?" Bella exclaimed.

"Oh yes. Arms and legs like our Lord was a tree branch." Narcissa confirmed, smiling.

"He complained that our Lord simply couldn't hole up in his study because Harry had plans for them and our Lord couldn't abandon him." Draco told them with a shake of his head.

"And our Lord just listened to him?" Rodolphus said incredulously.

"Well, he sighed and asked if he agreed to go with him would Harry let him go and return to human behaviour." Lucius remembered, "I feel as if this situation has happened before with them."

"With or without our Lord carrying Harry out in bridal style?" Narcissa asked coyly.

"Are-Are they together?" Bella questioned lowly, leaning forward slightly.

"Believe it or not, no." Narcissa sighed. The Lestranges shared a look before rising to their feet.

"We shall go and see our Lord, then we can come back and finish this conversation. I feel like there is more to it." Bella decided, "Any suggestions?"

"Sun room, Harry likes the winter sunlight." Draco answered. "We don't have any snow so he won't go outside."

"Thanks," Rodolphus said, offering a wave as he made to leave with his wife. Narcissa's voice stopped them in the doorway.

"Bella, Rodo, whatever you see between them, do not say anything in their presence." She warned. They both shot her looks of confusion but nodded and left, it was easy to get to the sun room, both having been to the manor millions of times previously. They could hear voices and shared a raised eyebrow when they heard a burst of laughter, they moved quickly down to the doorway and saw Potter-Black straddling their Lord with his arms draped around his neck and a wicked grin on his face as their Lord smirked at him. Rodolphus got over his shock enough to knock on the door causing both of the occupants to snap around to look at them. Harry pouted, dropping down to the side and throwing his arm over his eyes with a sigh.

"See what you did." He complained, deliberately dropping his legs heavily on to Tom's lap.

"I told you I had work to do." Tom pointed out amused.

"Ugh your cruelty grows by the day," Harry huffed dramatically, Tom barely bit back a snort at the teen's behaviour. He waved his two elite members in and motioned for them to take a seat, smirking slightly at their bewildered looks directed at Harry.

"Ignore him," Tom advised, holding Harry's legs still when he tried to kick him.

"My Lord," they greeted, bowing before they took their seats.

"What has brought you?" Tom inquired.

"We've kept an eye on some of the leads we have been building. We believe we have found a pattern." Rodolphus answered and Tom raised an eyebrow in interest, even Harry removed his arm from his face to give them his attention.

"They are working on the Dark Elves first, my Lord." Bella told him surely, "We've worked out the numbers with Antonin and there aren't many left at all. We wouldn't have even seen it if we hadn't mentioned the locations we have been following Moody and his band of filth."

"Antonin told us that they were the exact locations of where he had tracked clusters of Dark Elves." Rodolphus added, "We think they have something planned."

"Do they have a focus point?" The Dark Lord questioned, his mind whirling.

"The North East," Bella replied, "There seem to be three clusters of elves and that's where they have been the most."

"Get as close as you can." Tom instructed, "We need as much information as possible and you need to be close enough to go on the elves defence if it comes to it."

"There is an underground bunker where we could set up, keep a temporary placement in case of emergency." Rodolphus said slowly.

"Yes, that would work because we need to be able to collect information on the elves there. There may be an actual reason for the target." Bella reasoned, and then she grinned madly, "And I would love to slice up Moody."

Harry had thought Bellatrix was acting too rational, he found it odd that he was reassured by the appearance of some madness.

"See to it that it is done, and keep all communications with Antonin open." Tom instructed, "We cannot have them gain the upper hand."

"Yes, My Lord." They responded.

"I'll speak to Alina and ask what is in the North East, see if we can gain any ideas in to their plans from that." Harry offered to Tom, who blinked.

"Ah yes, Miss Dean." He remembered, "And perhaps Miss Lovegood?"

"I'll do both." Harry decided, "Luna can go fishing and then you can pass it on."

"My Lord?" Bella wondered and Tom looked over at her.

"Harry is in contact with a half Dark Elf who might be able to reveal some information allowing us to work out what Dumbledore's order is up to." Tom explained and they nodded.

"If anything serious happens we shall alert you immediately." Rodolphus said, "Otherwise we shall see you at the ball."

"Do not get caught." Tom warned, smirking at the extremely offended look he got for his trouble. Harry snickered, pulling himself up and stretching out his limbs, he bent down to kiss Tom and flashed him a smile.

"I have to go now, but I'll see you later." He said, "Tonight is set to be boring as hell so do think of some entertainment for us, Tom."

He laughed at Tom's deadpan look and sauntered off, tossing a wave over his shoulder as he vanished.

"He's
" Rodolphus trailed off not knowing what to say and Tom barely bit back his own snort.

"Do not waste your time or mental capacity on working out exactly what he is, you'll give yourself more questions and confusion." Tom sighed and Rodolphus laughed.

"Bastan said something similar." He agreed, thinking about the many times Rabastan had sat seemingly questioning his own existence after speaking with Potter-Black for more than ten minutes. They all had questions about him, and nearly all of the elite has shared a conversation about the teen, but no one seemed to know anything. One thing was said but then it would be completely countered by another story, Rodolphus found himself very confused. He did, however, completely understand why Narcissa warned him and his wife not to mention anything to do with their Lord's behaviour with Potter-Black. They were waved off with a nod that they returned with neat bows before leaving the sun room. They shared a look when they were out of their Lord's sight but didn't speak until they found their family sat in one of the many lounges.

"I thought you said they were not together?" Bella accused her sister, flouncing in to the room and dropping down on the sofa opposite.

"They aren't." Draco stated, "They believe it is casual, which is why mother said not to say anything."

"How can they think that? Our Lord has never taken a lover." Bella pointed out.

"Our Lord's emotional range isn't exactly large," Narcissa pointed out, "Harry's is apparently just the same."

"So the pair of them have gone completely blind?" Rodolphus wondered incredulously, "In all my years of service, I have never seen our Lord allow anyone to touch him, let alone kiss him in public."

"We are working on it." Draco defended, "But we have a lot going on right now and we cannot exactly tell them they are so obviously in love that the American countries can see it."

"Love!? I wouldn't-,"

"He took Harry to my father's tranquillity room." Lucius cut in and both Lestrages fell silent in shock.

"We can all admit that the Dark Lord's return to his previous self is very much a positive; I would like to keep him like it." Narcissa said firmly, "Which means that the pair of them must stay together in their own section of happiness because I would be terrified to witness what would happen to the world otherwise."

"Surely it would not be too bad?" Bella questioned, though she didn't sound so sure.

"You have not seen them as much as we have." Lucius denied, shaking his head. "They are like one person."

"They share a room here, too." Narcissa told them, "Harry has his own, but he uses it for bathing and keeping his luggage."

"Oh and the fact that when Dumbledore pulled his latest stunt with Harry, our Lord refused to allow Harry back to his own rooms." Draco remembered.

"Figure out what Moody is up to, make sure no Elves are harmed and safeguard our Lord's non-relationship relationship with Potter-Black so we don't all go down in an inhumane killing spree." Rodolphus said brightly, "Easy as a boil cure."

"Thankfully I have already prepared my will." Lucius said drolly, wincing as Narcissa whacked him on the arm.

"Lucius! You cannot joke about things such as that." She scolded, "Obviously we make sure they see sense and stay happy. How hard can it be?"

"Mother, I love you dearly, but that is possibly the worst thing you could have ever said." Draco groaned, dropping his head in to his hands.

"Whatever do you mean?"

"A silent rule we keep as a group is never ever ever ask rhetorical questions in regards to Harry." He told her, "For example: we never say 'Can it get any worse?' because yes, it can: and we never say 'How hard can it be?' because the answer is always hard."

"Normally I would disagree with your logic, Draco." His father said. "But I have actually met Potter-Black for an extended period of time and find myself understanding on a much more serious level."

"Hopefully the fates will take the question directed at our Lord." Narcissa said, only half joking.

"We had better go, we have work to be doing." Rodolphus commented, "We'll need the head start."

"Yes, I don't want to miss my shot at Moody." Bella agreed in delight.

"What has happened?"

"Moody and his team seem to be focusing on an area populated with Dark Elves, we're marking them." Rodolphus answered, standing up, "You'll understand our haste."

"Oh of course," Narcissa assured, "Go, and be safe."

"You worry too much, Cissa," Bella waved her off, kissing her cheek and skipping away, dragging her husband with her.

"Mother, father, I believe I should follow them. We're meeting up with Neville to speak of the MacMillan ball." Draco said, casing a quick tempus.

"Very well, Draco. Do remember to return in time to change correctly." She reminded him and he nodded, kissing her cheek and nodded to his father as he too left the room. The youngest Malfoy went straight to the entrance hall to apparate to McKinnon Manor, landing in the private sitting room he had apparated from previously. Immediately, his body was surrounded by four arms and two torsos as his identical menaces jumped to greet him.

"Our Dragon!"

"I see you are excited to see me." Draco returned, his smile coming to his face automatically.

"We're always excited to see you." They informed him brightly, throwing their arms around his waist as they led him to sit down.

"Hey, Swift. Where's everyone else?" Draco asked, greeting the red head in his own school year.

"Blaise is at home, Nev found the greenhouses and the girls stole Harry." Ron replied, "Apparently he hasn't shown them any of their dresses."

"Are you surprised?" Draco questioned with a smirk, to which Ron rolled his eyes.

"No. But it doesn't mean I'm not sick of hearing them complain about it."

"I don't know why they complain." Fred said with a wave of his hand.

"Harry would never give them something bad." George agreed.

"Try telling them that." Ron sighed.

"How was Italy? I do not think I have asked yet." Draco inquired.

"Brilliant." Ron answered with enthusiasm, "Rosalia is intimidating as Hel, but then no one would expect anything else. B thinks she warmed up to me though; she's a touch overprotective."

Draco snorted at that.

"That is an outrageous understatement." Draco informed him. "The only reason he even comes here is because she spends the time he's in school in England."

"Something I am thankful for."

"Oh, hello!" Neville greeted them all, walking in to the room looking slightly surprised. "Where's the girls and Harry?"

"Dresses." Everyone answered together.

"Ah, say no more." Neville nodded seriously. He dropped himself down on to the sofa with a pleased sigh.

"Have fun with the greenhouses?" Ron questioned and Neville grinned.

"Yeah. They obviously need work, as good as the elves remaining here are they aren't witch or wizard." Neville said.

"Or you." Harry's voice floated over as he came from the bedroom. "Hi guys."

"You're still alive then." Draco noted, making Harry laugh.

"Oh yeah, though I think I might have broken Paws."

"What did you do this time?"

"Well, I wasn't too sure on how the Zabini ball was going to play; it's always been a wild card. So, I thought to myself that I was going to need something to cause a minor stir."

"And that results in a broken Paws how
?" Neville trailed off waiting for him to fill in what they were all waiting for.

"When you see her dress, my good sir, I think you'll understand."

"I should think he would understand." Hermione sniffed, walking in with her nose in the air, but they could all see the smirk playing on her lips as she sat down.

"I told you I had a backup." Harry pointed out.

"Oh no, I already have the look planned." Hermione brushed off.

"It will go well with yours and Ron's anyway." Luna added, dropping down next to Harry.

"See there is method to my madness." Harry exclaimed and all of them snorted.

"You tell yourself that." Ron said, patting his hand consolingly. Harry shot him a wounded look.

"Well, that was rude."

"We have a rule to always be honest with each other." Ron replied with a straight face, Harry's jaw dropped a little and the rest of the group burst out laughing which made him pout.

"You are all mean to me."

"There there," Luna said and Harry huffed.

"Moving on from your outrageous bullying. How did it go, Nev?"

"It was as absolutely mind numbing as I expected it to be." He said with mock cheer, "With me having to remain absolutely silent for the entire evening."

The group winced in sympathy, not at all surprised by the dark snarl that twisted on to Neville's face.

"Just a few more weeks," Harry murmured and Neville nodded, taking a deep breath.

"There was one positive, of course. I wasn't allowed to leave my dear grandmother's side, and so I heard all the interesting conversations she had."

All of them sat forward eagerly and Neville smirked.

"The major part of the conversation was based around Dumbledore's recent removal as we suspected. Gran has dismissed the proxy holding our seat because of it and many of them were discussing ways in which the action can be revoked."

"They obviously do not know it cannot be reversed then," Paws said pleased, and when some of then looked at her in confusion she elaborated, "It is in the Hogwarts charter. The Board was created because it was believed that parents should have a say in how their children were being educated and that those with the power and knowledge, i.e pureblood Houses, would form a committee and have a deciding factor in Hogwarts. Decisions were based on majority vote, however there were stipulations made.

"Firstly, any heir to the Founders would have a double vote and final decision on the Board's decision, and if two of the four heirs came together they could completely overrule the Board. Obviously, unless they were challenged by the other two heirs. Secondly, the Headmaster could not be challenged unless it was a unanimous decision within the Board, meaning gaining majority would not suffice. However, because of this particular stipulation, it meant that any decision unanimously voted on by the Board could not be revoked and it was binding in magic, sealed by Hogwarts herself. The only way it could ever be changed was if the entire Board decided to retract the vote, and seeing as we have Lucius Malfoy on our side Dumbledore will never return."

They shared pleased grins at that, relishing in knowing what they had accomplished, knowing that never again would Dumbledore darken Hogwarts with his presence.

"The realisation that he's lost that position forever will hit even more when we reach the Wizengamot." Harry said pleased, "And I have decided, I do not care if we have to go in to hiding and only appear directly in the ministry, we are going to the next session,"

"I agree," Paws said firmly, "We have to be there. School, as much as it pains me to say, doesn't matter. We can all go to the ministry for testing if necessary, but we can no longer afford to be away from the Wizengamot."

"No, because they have already got Scrimgeour in place to become the next minister. Of course they plan on waiting until the next election, but he is ready to go at the moments notice. Some of them are not stupid, and would be blind to notice the anger directed at Fudge at the moment." Neville pointed out.

Surely they can't still have any faith in him?" Swift said in disbelief and Neville shook his head.

"It is not Fudge they still have belief in, it's Dumbledore. The old man has pinned it all of Umbridge and Fudge, and most of them are gullible enough to believe he truly had his hands tied. It doesn't help that obviously the Board had no knowledge until the article and Umbridge was sent there by Fudge due to his paranoia of Dumbledore creating an army against him. With Dumbledore being proven that the Dark Lord had in fact returned, many see Dumbledore as the one person that tried to warn them all. The true fanatics see the articles attacking Dumbledore as a mere repeat of last year." Neville explained.

"But then surely we can also use that for ourselves?" Ron pointed out and they all looked at him. "Well Dumbledore only said the Dark Lord was back because of Harry. People are going to question why the both of you are no longer on the same side and that's when we can hit. It'll be huge headlines again: the Saviour v Dumbledore."

"That's brilliant, Ron." Hermione exclaimed, "We can turn the focus on Dumbledore's direct actions against us. We'll us our medical history as well as the wills that he blocked and his sticky fingers over Harry's and your gold."

"Ask mother to do an official medical report, get it stamped properly and then when it's released it cannot be refuted." Draco suggested and Harry grinned.

"Cissa has already done mine; she wasn't pleased." Harry laughed, "We can also have an unspeakable verify memories if it comes to it. And me and Ron can go to Gringotts to get the official documents from them. Ragnok would love to get one over on Dumbledore officially, I swear he's been waiting for it."

"Will they just hand it over, or will they charge for an audit?" Draco asked and Harry shrugged.

"I don't care if they do charge, it's a little in regards to what the forms could do when we use them. Besides, I'm pretty sure Ragnok has done one for my account given what came out about Dumbledore and what he's been doing for the past Merlin knows how many years."

"There is that." Draco conceded, "So if we have medical and audits, we just need to get in to the ministry to get the official documentation that Dumbledore hid about sealing the wills to the House Potter and Black."

"Which we will be more than happy to collect." Fred told them with a slight grin.

"We are somewhat familiar with the ministry layout now." George picked up, a light chuckle passing his lips at the amused expressions he and his twin were receiving.

"You'll need this," Harry said, conjuring up something to write on and quickly signing his name and stamping the necessary rings. "Just in case it's not cut and dry due to it being pureblood family business."

"Have faith." They chimed, accepting the sheet of parchment without some much as glancing at it, "But thanks for the backup."

"The admin in charge will be bound to silence. Of course, this does not mean they will keep it so only use the authorisation as a last resort, because if Dumbledore knows its been accessed he will come down hard on me – it's only me with the rings and he doesn't know I still have them."

"We wouldn't endanger you over something like this." Fred stated seriously.

"If we can bug the DMLE and steal and replace a newly passed Wizengamot law we can steal the application for sealing a will, even if it is of two of the biggest names within our world." George agreed.

"I know, but things are getting tricky right now and I don't want anything happening to any of us. Who knows what Dumbledore would say if he caught wind what you two have been up to?" Harry said with a shrug. The twins snorted darkly.

"We know what would happen, thanks,"

"Anyway, back on to the topic." Luna interrupted them and Harry nodded.

"Nev, how ready is Scrimgeour and his campaign?"

"Well, like I said they are ready to go whenever, but I know a few of their main supporters, other than my grandmother and her ilk." The Longbottom Lord answered, "Unfortunately, as we first expected, the Lord Shacklebolt will be backing Scrimgeour. However, the saving grace is that it isn't due to loyalty to Dumbledore like the younger Shacklebolt, but because they used to work together within the auror office and they were quite close; Scrimgeour was the reason Kingsley Shacklebolt has done so well within the office." Neville explained and Ron frowned.

"But then do we assume that Shack is in the same league as Scrimgeour and Dawlish? Because I know he's loyal to Dumbledore and willing to do certain things, but I cannot see him working with them."

"No, he isn't." Luna said, "He barely deviates from his auror protocol, he does respect his uncle, the Lord of his House, very much. Of course, he can still use his influence heavily and he is the Heir to the Shacklebolt House."

"Hm, what about the Lord Shacklebolt's beliefs and ideas?" Paws wondered and Luna shook her head.

"I haven't yet looked in to it, but I might be able to get something up together before it comes to the actual elections. Even if we get Fudge out and our own interim minister, it will still needed to be voted on in the end and if we can break Shacklebolt away from Scrimgeour then it would be a dent to him, as Shacklebolt has a fair few number of allies."

"I can start setting up a plan for that," Ron broke in, "I'll work with you and we'll get down everything we can, then I can start building the information needed."

"And if we time it just right it will work well when we are working my father's campaign." Draco said.

"Yes, right before the votes so the public backlash hits just as they are about to cast their vote." Harry agreed with a smirk.

"I'll start a base plan now, and then as soon as ball season is over I'll start working with Luna," Swift decided.

"That's perfect, because we can start with the information we already have before going on the scout." She allowed.

"Who else do we know that is planning on backing Scrimgeour?" Hermione asked.

"Smith is a sure in, he wants Fudge gone and he's none too happy with Dumbledore, but like Shacklebolt he has history with Scrimgeour." Neville replied, "Lord Ogden is still on the fence, he is keeping his neutral position as it Bones. Abbott is leaning towards following us, which will set things up nicely because I know who I'm voting for and it's not Scrimgeour."

"The look on many people's faces is something I am looking forward to." Harry sighed, "It's such a shame I have to enter last."

"Well you should have thought about that before you went and got four Lordships." Ron told him and Harry made an indignant sound at the back of his throat.

"I was born!" He exclaimed and Ron shrugged.

"That's your fault then."

"How in Merlin's name is it my fault?" Harry disputed, mildly outraged.

"Knowing you, you had something to do with it." Ron reasoned, "Besides, you were the one you yanked the Gryffindor sword out of the hat, before that many of the Potters had become ignorant of their true power. So really, if you think about it, it is you fault."

Harry opened his mouth to refute Ron's words but realised that he actually couldn't, it was remembering the hats words when he pulled out the sword that had made him inquire about a blood test at Gringotts, so without doing that he wouldn't have ever thought to. The rest of the group were snickering at his predicament and Harry pouted, before he remembered something.

"Wait!" He burst out, "I pulled out the sword because I was forced to go down in to the Chamber, and I wouldn't have had to do that if Dumbledore hadn't screwed around with the wards."

"Yeah, I'll take it." George agreed.

"Dumbledore is responsible for most things." His twin picked up.

"One more thing will hardly be a surprise." They finished together. The group shared a laugh at that and settled back down.

"Was there anything we needed to know?" Luna questioned and Neville shook his head.

"Not particularly. I mean, the main thing was Dumbledore's loss of position and given that we already have that covered, it's back to build up and covering our asses until Wizengamot." Neville told them all and they seemed to breathe in relief.

"Thankfully," Ron muttered and Harry snorted.

"Second that."

"Anything of interest then?" George wondered, "Any snippets?"

"Unfortunately the conversation was dryer than the Sahara." Neville sighed, "Even those we go to school were quite quiet, both Susan and Hannah were there, but the entire feeling of the ball was rather subdued."

"If all goes well it will be the last one you'll have to attend alone." Hermione said brightly, "I can't promise others won't be equally as dull, but at least one of us will be there with you."

"There is that." Neville acknowledged, "Roll on January session."

"I have to admit I'm all but counting the days." Ron said, "Yeah we have tonight and two more balls, but it's Wizengamot that I'm looking forward to."

"I think we all are." Harry said, "Although, I cannot deny how much I am looking forward to the Nott and Malfoy balls."

"Yes, I think they are going to be very enjoyable." Hermione agreed.

"I know they are." Luna said simply and all of them turned to look at her eagerly, but she shook her head with a light smirk. "Not a chance."

"You've been spending too much time around Snake." Draco stated, and Harry puffed up proudly much to their amusement. He flashed a remorseless grin before he cast a tempus and blinked.

"Well, time is getting on and it's almost five."

"Holy Merlin," Draco exclaimed, "Mother is going to kill me."

"Well that looks like our que to leave, too." Fred noted.

"Yup, we'll see you out." George agreed.

"I'll see most of you later. Badger, I'll see you tomorrow or the day after." The blond said to Neville, who grinned and nodded.

"See you, Bleach. Bye guys." He called as they bounded out of the room with Draco following them at a more sedate pace.

"I think it's time we started to get ready." Hermione said, "It's going to take us at least an hour to get my hair how I want it."

"Luckily we don't have to deal with mine or we'd be exceptionally late." Luna commented and they both shared a despairing look.

"Have fun," Harry said with a grin.

"You had better get in the shower if you want to be ready in time," Hermione warned.

"Yes, Hermione." They chimed. The girls rolled their eyes and vanished in to Hermione's room and Ron, Harry and Neville shared a look.

"Unless you want to get hurt I would go and get ready." Neville advised.

"I want it to be known that I am doing this under duress." Ron announced, getting to his feet and pulling Harry with him, "Come on, I'll show you somewhere to shower seeing as you have yet to leave these rooms."

"Yeah, that might be helpful." Harry agreed. They walked through the halls of McKinnon Manor and Harry looked around in interest, he didn't get to see much of it as Ron pointed out a door that Harry could use and vanished in to a different one. The Potter Lord shrugged and went inside, grinning when he saw his outfit for the night and a tray of potions waiting for him; thank you Luna. Going through the motions of preparing himself was easy enough, he dragged it out a bit longer and it was only when it was six forty-five did he return to Hermione's room. Ron had beat him, which wasn't surprising, and the girls were nowhere to be seen as he came in and took his seat. The red head was in a rich dark blue open front robes, with a navy shirt underneath and a navy button holding the robes together at his waist and allowing them to fall freely. He had gold stitch detailing and gold cufflinks to finish the look and Harry grinned.

"The common theme for the night is dark then." Neville noted, eyeing Harry's attire with a critical eye. He was dressed in navy blue and dark red: navy trousers, wine red shirt, matching tie, with a darker blue open front robe with flared sleeves. The deep colours were intense and Harry chuckled.

"The girls will fit in." He told him and Neville shook his head with a slight smile.

"I'm not surprised."

"Harry, are you sure this is the right dress for this ball?" Hermione's voice floated through and Harry looked up towards the sound of her voice.

"Of course I am." He assured, "Though I have a back-up like I said."

"She'll be fine." Luna said, walking out with a delighted smile on her face. Her gown was deep navy blue with a jewel neckline bodice with white embellished straps and a cinched waist that had a white illusion panel leading to the full-length mermaid silhouette skirt, adorned with a cascading drape and contrast white patterned detail and modest train. Her hair and makeup was simple but effective, she had dark red lips, a light dust of blush on her cheeks, and her long blond hair was slicked back away from her face and was falling down her back to rest just below her bum.

"Wow," Neville said, looking at her with wide eyes.

"Still modest, but not so pure." Harry pointed out.

"You look great." Ron told her and Luna happily took a seat revealing open toed navy platform stilettos with a white twisting pattern that matched the illusion panel around her waist.

"Thanks," She replied, "Come on, Hermione."

"Fine," The other girl sighed, walking out of her bedroom with the confidence of a queen. Both Neville and Ron's jaws dropped and Harry grinned at their reactions, though his expression switched to a genuine smile when he turned to Hermione.

"You look fantastic."

"I love the dress, I do." She told him, "But I wonder if it will be too much?"

"Did you not see Cissa in the last ball?" Harry asked rhetorically.

"True." She allowed. Her dress was a deep purple, with a one sleeved design made up entirely of embroidered lace at the top and a bandeau top protecting her modesty. On the left side of the dress, from shoulder to hip, there was a daring cut out revealing flawless creamy skin only marred with the revealed half of the bandeau top and a strap securing the gown around her waist. The embroidered lace continued down to the full length skirt with a slight train. Her usual chocolate curls were pin straight, parted in the middle of her hair to fall like shimmering sheets framing her face and stopping by the band on her waist. She had chosen dramatic makeup, with deep smoky eyeshadow and thick eyeliner that made her eyes appear darker and rich purple lips that matched her dress effortlessly.

"Shit," Ron commented intelligently.

"What he said," Neville agreed faintly.

"I know." She sighed, shooting Harry another look, though he could see that she was more pleased than anything else.

"You all look rather intense." Neville said looking at each of them, "And Hermione
 yeah wow."

"I wanted to make an impact." Harry said in lieu of an explanation, "And why not flaunt what you have? You are a beautiful Lady and the Head to a Noble and Most Ancient House, you are also young but you are not to be taken for granted because of that, you are confident in yourself; this dress says all of that."

"You actually do think things through sometimes." Ron said amazed, "Huh,"

"Believe it or not, I do." Harry said proudly.

"You do look amazing, Paws. I can't wait to see Nott's face." Ron said with a smirk, and Harry grinned with teeth.

"My thoughts exactly."

"You have to take me home now, Harry." Luna reminded him and Harry nodded, wrapping an arm around her and vanishing in to the shadows. He kissed his sister's cheek and stayed long enough for her to leave her bedroom and her father to acknowledge her with a compliment before returning to the others. Neville handed him a drink as he sat down.

"I'm going to go back to my greenhouses at the Sanctuary and I'm going home just to be on the safe side." Neville told them, "I doubt anything will happen, but caution is for the best."

"Yes, I agree," Hermione said, "Though I do feel as if it is not necessary."

"It's probably not, but then our track record for things going right isn't exactly great." Harry pointed out, and they shared a grimace.

"The lovely truth." Ron grumbled before grinning, "Just think of Dumbledore's face."

"Ah what a lovely coping mechanism." Hermione commented dryly, but she was also grinning.

"It's working so far," He agreed.

"Well, I will wish you good luck for tonight and I will see you tomorrow." Neville said to them, getting to his feet and stretching out his limbs.

"See you, Badger," they replied, watching him leave.

"Are we ready?" Hermione asked and the boys nodded. Hermione and Ron took the floo once again allowing Harry to go to them and arrive in the Zabini floo room. It was rich purple in colour, with hints of pale yellow to brighten the room. An elf came to check their invitations and allow walked them to the ball room. Unlike the Greengrass ball, there was no announcer for this one so their entrance was not brought to everyone's attention immediately. Of course, given the stir they caused last time, and Hermione's dress, it wasn't long before they became noticed and all expressions had to be kept of their faces. Many eyes widened as Hermione glided past them: envy, astonishment, lust and anger seemed to be the main emotions, but they slid of the Lady in question like oil on water. Harry and Ron kept close to make sure any of the single Lords didn't dare approach her, Harry steered them towards the host for the evening. Lord Zabini and Blaise were stood speaking with Lord Flint, who looked like an older version of his son, and someone Harry didn't quite recognise.

"Ah Lord Potter-Black, Lord Prewett, Lady McKinnon." Lord Zabini greeted, "A pleasure to see you."

"Thank you, Lord Zabini, we are pleased we were able to attend." Harry answered for them all.

"I am sure you know my heir, Blaise." Lord Zabini said, motioning to his son.

"Of course, how good it is to see you again, heir Blaise." Harry said, withholding the smirk that wanted to curl across his face.

"Hello to you all. Are you enjoying the break away from school?" Blaise asked politely, his eyes sparkling in humour even if his face was blank.

"Greatly, there has been too much upset for it to be a comfort right now." Hermione answered.

"Plus outside company can always bring much needed peace." Ron added.

"Have you had the pleasure is meeting Lord Flint or Lord Jugson?" Lord Zabini inquired, motioning to his fellows.

"I do not believe we have." Harry answered, shaking the offered hands.

"I believe we have met Lord Flint's son, however." Ron mentioned, shaking the man's hand.

"Yes, in our first year. Opposing Quidditch teams." Hermione confirmed, offering her hand. Both men brushed their lips over the back of her fingers and bow their heads to the Lady.

"Lord Potter-Black, I have yet had the opportunity to speak with you since your appearance within our sector." Lord Flint spoke calmly. His voice was gravelly, but it held none of the slur any of the Gryffindors had heard in his son's voice.

"Then let us call this meeting fortunate. My appearance, I know, has been rather abrupt, but I am sure you understand the rapidly changing political climate." Harry replied, deciding to judge the man by his own merit. He didn't know much about this Lord Flint: he was a Death Eater, but other than that nothing much was said about him, he was a newer Lord, only sitting in the Wizengamot for two years so far since his father's sudden death. The man was a curse breaker and one of his wards ruptured as he was trying to pass it, the result had been a gruesome but instant death.

"Yes, there has been many changes over the last four months. I cannot help but believe that we have not yet seen the last of the changes." He commented lightly.

"Well, I there has been quite strong conversation of Fudge's position, and his ability to manage it correctly." Harry pointed out.

"Yes, it all seems to be resting on the upcoming session." He said, "Will you and both Lady McKinnon and Lord Prewett be in attendance?" he opened the question up towards both of Harry's friends, who had been speaking to Lord's Jugson and Zabini, and Blaise.

"It is our hope that we shall be able to be in attendance." Ron confirmed.

"Your sudden arrival within our sector has raised many questions, especially between those who have not yet had the chance to speak with you all." Lord Jugson informed them.

"I would expect nothing less." Hermione returned, a slight smile coming to her face to show she wasn't offended. "We were not in a position to be able to attend previously, our options were rather limited."

"You are against Dumbledore, then?" Jugson asked, "Your trio appearance coincides with his eviction from the school."

"We felt that given the tension this Yule season that our attendance was a necessity, no matter our alliance." Ron answered, "Dumbledore's change in position merely enabled us to move more freely."

"Do you know what he intends to do to regain his position?" Jugson wondered.

"We wish. Dumbledore has always played his hands close to his chest and now he isn't in the school I can only imagine it will get worse." Harry replied.

"Yes, that I can understand. I have sat on the Wizengamot for nearly forty years, he's always put on a facade, making his motives or actions impossible to predict." Jugson mused.

"We should leave you to greet your other guests, Lord Zabini," Hermione broke in, "Else we create a queue."

"Of course," Lord Zabini allowed. "It was good to speak with you all."

"The same to you," Ron said.

"Lord Flint, Lord Jugson, I am glad we had the opportunity to speak." Harry said.

"I look forward to your Wizengamot attendance." Jugson said.

"Yes, I, too, shall be in wait."

Hermione was the one to lead them away and both young Lords followed swiftly as she made course towards the Greengrasses.

"Hadrian, Naomi," Hermione greeted with a touch of a smile, "Good to see you once again."

"Harry, Ron, good evening." Naomi replied brightly, "Hermione, you look divine, my dear. HPB?"

"Naomi, you look wonderful." Ron told her, kissing her hand.

"Yes, a true gem." Harry agreed, repeating the motion.

"Thank you. Yes, once again he has come through." Hermione confirmed, answering the designer question, and then looked the Greengrass Lady over with a smile. "You look incredible, am I right to cite the same designer?"

"Yes, I admired the layering on this gown."

She was in a one shoulder number, done in bronze, with an elegant knot where the strap met the dress, there were a few layers of crossed material before going down to a thread of beads around the waist, from there it flowed down to the ground where Harry had added in different length layer so it stood out and curled slightly.

"Harry, Ron, Hermione, you look well."

"Thank you, Hadrian," Harry said with a smile, "I hope your ball did not cause you to much undue stress."

"With my brilliant wife's skill, it was a simple matter." He replied, casting his wife a fond look.

"Ah a queen if ever I saw one." Harry said with a wink, she blushed slightly and shook her head.

"That charm of yours will get you in to trouble one day." She warned, though it held no heat and she gave him a smile.

"We try to keep him busy else he cause a national incident." Hermione mock whispered, and they all chuckled while Harry pretended to look outraged.

"You're lack of faith wounds me, my dear Hermione."

"Unfortunately, it is an repercussion of being your best friend for five years
 we know you." Ron told him solemnly.

"You see the harshness in which I suffer." Harry said to the Greengrasses, who were watching the three amused.

"Poor you." Hermione said blandly, "Where are Daphne and Astoria, if you do not mind my asking?"

"Unfortunately, Astoria is feeling unwell and we did not wish to leave her alone." Hadrian answered.

"Oh that is a shame. I hope she recovers quickly." Hermione said.

"Hadrian, I have a question relating your Wizengamot career, or rather your experience." Harry began and Hadrian nodded for him to continue, "What is your professional opinion of Lord's Jugson and Flint?"

"Lord Jugson is a sharp man, though his status is neutral he leans heavily towards the dark. He has not been consistent in his creature votes, though he has on pureblood issues." Hadrian responded after a moment's thought, "Lord Flint is new, he has been playing things carefully since he stepped up, abstaining from many votes. He has yet to show an interest in anything specific, so he had been hard to measure."

"I see." Harry murmured, "I have just met them both. I understand you're mention of how sharp Jugson is, he easily linked Dumbledore's removal with the appearance of Ron and Hermione."

"He has become more so since his wife began ailing." Naomi commented.

"Yes, that is true." Hadrian agreed, "Several months ago the change became apparent."

"Do you know much of him personally?" Ron questioned, but Hadrian shook his head.

"No, his son is a couple of years older than I so we did not interact very much; only during ball seasons."

"We'll have to rely on observation." Hermione declared, "It is nothing we have not done before."

"Ah, Xeno, it's good to see you. It was a shame we did not get to speak very much during our ball." Hadrian greeted the man who had approached while they were speaking. He had almost white hair that came to his shoulders, and sharp features that Harry had seen many times in Luna's face, though that was where the similarities ended. His eyes were a dark grey colour, with thin lips and strong shoulders. He was dressed in a deep purple that complimented his daughter's dress well.

"Hadrian, Naomi, yes it was unfortunate, but you know how I am." It was spoken warmly, showing the two men got on quite well.

"Yes, you are your watching." Hadrian remembered.

"Luna darling, you look gorgeous." Naomi said to the girl, "It's very nice to see you again."

"Thank you, Naomi." Luna returned, "The gown, I have to admit, is HPB."

"Of course it is," Naomi muttered, though her tone was fond.

"Harry, Ron, Hermione: I don't know if you have met Xeno before." Hadrian said to them.

"To our incredible shame we cannot say we have formally met." Harry replied, "And I am very honoured to meet you, Lord Lovegood. Your daughter is truly incredible; I would not be half where I am without her."

"Xeno, please, all of you. I thank you, my Luna speaks so highly of you all, its a pleasure to finally meet you."

"The same for us." Ron said.

"We have just finished having a rather informative conversation with Lord Dearborne." Luna told them.

"Oh? I do not believe we have much knowledge of him." Ron said.

"He works in the Goblin Liaison Office." Xeno informed them, "It seems that there has been some interference and it is causing the goblins to anger."

The trio and Luna shared a look.

"That
 cannot be good." Ron mused slowly, "Was there anything else?"

"There has been an application to assign auror guards to Gringotts for the comfort of witch and wizards." Luna explained and Harry groaned out loud.

"Good Merlin someone wants to start a goblin war." He complained.

"Surely anyone who knows the slightest thing about goblins knows what a terrible idea that is." Hadrian argued, "Goblins barely tolerate wizards at the best of times, and given the amount of restrictions they have on them I cannot say I actively blame them. To put wizards in their space to comfort other wizards is just asking for conflict."

"Apparently that hasn't come to mind." Xeno said dryly.

"We'll have to look in to who put that application in and why they did so." Hermione decided.

"And try and keep Ragnok from blowing his lid; the last thing we need is a financial crisis." Harry added.

"Wonderful; mopping up more ministry mess."

"Try saying that five times faster." Harry whispered, and Ron gave him an unimpressed look. There were three sharp rings and the light music that had been playing in the background came to a pause as Lord Zabini stepped forward.

"I thank you all for attending the Zabini Yule ball." His voice carried easily through the room, "The meal is about to begin."

The tables appeared and slowly the guests started to find their seats.

"In case I do not get to speak with any of you again this evening; it was good to speak with you." Harry put in before they split up.

"Yes, it was good to see you too," Hadrian acknowledged, and the others repeated the sentiment before they parted ways. The trio weaved through the crowd carefully, finally making it through to the head table where they knew they were sat. Harry was highly disappointed when he saw the name cards at the head table; Hadrian was not at the head table, nor was Luna, but then his eyes lit up. It appeared as if Nott was considered high up or was allied with Zabini to be sat at the head table. It was just what Harry needed to brighten up the ball. He was sat next to the Dark Lord and Swift, thanking his stars he wasn't placed next to Nott; that would be a bit of a disaster.

"It's slightly disappointing who we shall be dining with this evening," Paws commented taking her seat next to Swift.

"It is," Harry agreed, "However, I am looking forward to speaking with Lord Nott, such an interesting man."

"No doubt," Swift muttered, a smirk flashing across his face. The tables quickly filled and Harry saw the Malfoys take their seats next to the Zabinis, the Selwyns sat down and Harry bit back a sigh, he wasn't particularly fond of that family and this night seemed to be decreasing in entertainment value because once Nott sat down the final seats were filled with the Bulstrodes. They must have all been allied because no one in their right mind would want to sit with all these families together for the best part of the night, Swift seemed to share his opinion because Harry was sure he could mentally hear him banging his head on a brick wall.

This is set to be oh so fun Paws said seriously in their minds.

I can almost feel the thrill now, Swift deadpanned and Harry bit back a grin at that.

You never know what information we could get if were listen between the lines Harry pointed out trying to stay positive, they both shot him a look that said 'sure', he shrugged.

We have that mysterious werewolf bill to consider. He reminded them and they seemed to perk up.

Of course, we just speaking of it. Swift remembered. Tom sat down next to him and Harry heard the man sigh under his breath when he saw who was sat there, Harry did smirk at that. At least he wasn't the only one to suffer. Slow conversation began and Harry felt his intelligence leaving him already, he tried to keep his attention working, but it was a very difficult task. Nott, Zabini and Bulstrode were discussing Bulstrode's promotion in the Department of Security, not something Harry found even remotely interesting.

Draco, Blaise and Theo were discussing something to do with Slytherin, but it wasn't anything important nor really interesting for a non-Slytherin. Lucius looked to having a delightful conversation with Lord Selwyn about the latest tax decrease given to muggleborns; it has passed by a hair, but Selwyn was making it apparent that he wasn't happy about it and poor Lucius looked like he wanted to pull his own ears off. Harry personally believed Narcissa had it worse, she was entertaining both Lady Selwyn and Lady Bulstrode, though she was making brilliantly disguised digs at them much to Harry's delight. Hermione, bless her, swooped in to aid the Malfoy Lady and Harry could see she was grateful. The pale yellow menus appeared on their plates and Harry shook himself, the food was overwritten as expected and he ordered a salad for his starter as soup really wasn't for him.

His ears perked up when he heard Lucius and the Selwyn Lord's conversation change and the topic he had been hoping for came up. It was about the new bill that he wanted passed in the Wizengamot, and Harry's attention focused solely on them, wanting to hear exactly what the bill was all about. He felt his eyes narrow the longer Selwyn spoke. The bill was about werewolves, as they had already suspected, but what made Harry's angry instantly was the fact that it was for more restrictions. The derogatory terms were spilling out of Selwyn's mouth like they were about to go out of fashion, and Harry was about to interrupt, but was beaten too it.

"Intelligence and common sense has clearly decreased over the generations," Swift stated coolly and Harry bit back a grin, the much needed entertainment had come.

"Excuse me?" Selwyn said giving Ron a dark look, Swift placed down his cutlery and gave him a blank look.

"Your suggestion for the new werewolf legislation is one that should immediately be torn up and burned," Swift said honestly, "Not only does it lack any semblance of value, but it will never be put through."

"What do you know, many decent purebloods would be happy to see these beasts tagged and monitored." Selwyn sneered and Harry sat up properly then, the man had just sighed himself up to be taken down. No one got away with calling his uncle a beast.

"You're new legislation is to 'tag' werewolves so they can be monitored, but for what purpose exactly?" Harry inquired, the derision in his tone apparent, "Not only would it be a massive waste of resources, bodies and money, but it literally does nothing for anyone."

"They have been disappearing, hiding, so it is in our best interest to have them tagged with a permanent tracking device." Selwyn replied imperviously and Harry blinked once.

"You want to have them tracked because they are going away?" He repeated, "Do you have any idea how ridiculous that sounds? You do not want werewolves in main society obviously, yet they have decided to leave and now you want to know where they are?"

"It's necessary in case of attacks." Selwyn pointed out.

"But you just said they were leaving, that they're hiding." Harry countered, "In order for them to perform an attack, they would have to come out in to the open, defeating the purpose of hiding."

"They cannot be left to their own devices. Who could guess what they may start doing, or if they bred." Nott butted in, his tone cutting. The man very nearly lost his head, and it was only Tom's hand suddenly squeezing his knee that stopped his magic snapping in response to his words.

"And there illustrates the lack of intelligence," Swift pointed out coldly, picking up easily, "Anyone with a touch of sense can see the benefits of leaving the werewolves alone, and if anyone bothered to expand their knowledge in other culture would know that it is the segregation and prejudice of the ministry that has reduced the British werewolf population to the pariah that they currently are."

"Anyone who have the right ideas about our world will see that it is a bill worth investing in."

"Do you really think you will gather enough seats to have something so prejudice and simply plain stupid put through?"

"Many will vote for it," Selwyn assured.

"But not enough," Hermione said bringing herself in to the conversation.

"So you think," Selwyn said.

"So I know," Harry stated in a steely tone; he would pull every trick he knew to make sure it never became law.

"You don't know anything," Selwyn sneered and Harry's eye twitched.

"Are you truly naĂŻve enough to believe that I do not have the power and influence to stop this bill going through if I wish it not to?" Harry asked him mockingly.

"You are merely two seats,"

"Four," Harry corrected, even if that was a lie; he had eleven. "I hold Black and Potter, add the two from Prewett, two from McKinnon and you have eight seats there. Longbottom gives another two, Lovegood gives one, Bones won't go for it so there's two, Shacklebolt will oppose which is one, Scrimgeor may go for it if he thinks it will gain him favour, he could also oppose if he thinks he will get what he wants through that, but even without him that's fourteen votes, Lucius holds the Peverell seat which will vote apposed even if Malfoy votes for it so that's seventeen and I know another four seats, possibly eight that will vote apposed so that's twenty-one maybe twenty-five. Of course, I could speak to Hadrian for the two Greengrass seats, Davis allies with them so that's one and Boot follow Davis so again another one, that right there is over half the Wizengamot voting against your new bill. Would you care to carry on and embarrass yourself or have you seen sense?" Harry gave him a sweet smile and Selwyn was flushed an angry red.

"Dumbledore is using your seat and Narcissa is sitting in the Black seat, and Longbottom could agree." He ground out and Harry didn't even bother to stop his eyes rolling.

"I will be taking my seats for myself in the next session, so both fall back in to my control. As for Longbottom, everyone knows the House of Longbottom have allied themselves with the House of Potter since the beginning of the Wizengamot, if you have forgotten a detail such as that then it leaves a lot to be desired." Harry drawled.

"There are other houses that could vote," Selwyn tried and Harry was sure the man was the result from over inbreeding.

"Any house that could have a chance of standing for this bill would be committing a status suicide to stand against so many." Hermione pointed out as if it was obvious, and it was. Selwyn went to speak again but his wife seemed to realise that her husband was about to crash them in to the ground, because she stopped him speaking. The second course was chosen and the conversation bleed of to other unimportant things, Harry did listen, but it soon became apparent that he was going to die of boredom unless someone said something stupid again.

He chanced a glance at Tom and saw the man's crimson eyes were slightly glazed indicated the man was so completely bored that he had retreated in to his mind to read, it was something that Harry couldn't manage without cutting off all communication to the outside world and he hadn't had the time to learn. Harry sighed lowly to himself, it was set to be a really long evening unless he found something to entertain himself with, why couldn't he retreat in to his mind like Tom; the man had it easy. Harry blinked an idea suddenly popping in to his head, he wouldn't be heard and he wanted to see how much will power the man truly had.

Tom He hissed lowly adding a slight edge to his voice, the Dark Lord blinked slowly coming back to the present and Harry made sure not to look at him directly.

Mmm Tom He moaned and he saw the man stiffen up,

Tom please, I want you Harry begged, I need you in me.

Stop the man ordered but Harry could hear the edge in his voice, Harry mentally smirked.

I want you to fill me with your cock, I want you to make me scream your name, Harry pictured Tom at his best and let the desire fill him before pushing it through the link, and he saw Tom become completely still out of the corner of his eye.

Harry, stop, The low hisses were husky with obvious lust now much to Harry's amusement, it was cruel, but brilliant.

Please make me beg for it, harder, faster, deeper, Tom shifted and releases a somewhat unsteady breath, Please Master, make me yours – only yours, Harry took vindictive pleasure when Tom's knuckles went white,

Yours to use Master, to make scream and beg, Harry hissed, Does master want his slut to dance for him? Harry watched as dark ruby eyes glazed and then went practically black, he was flushed with desire from Tom and had to bite back a slight moan.

Please, I need you Master, I want you to fuck me, bite me until I bleed for you, only for you.

Tom swallowed hard and Harry was sure the man had stopped breathing, his eyes were black, his knuckles were white and his jaw was clenched in an effort not to move or make a sound. The dessert has started now and Harry noted the conversation was still as trivial as before.

Show me who I belong to Master, show me I belong to you apparently Tom had finally reached his limit because it looked like he was about to force-apperate out of the room.

I'm going to kill you, Tom told him with difficulty.

Is that before or after you have me against a wall making be scream your name? Harry returned and bit his lip as lust shot through him, Tom was giving him a burning look and Harry finally met his black eyes. There was promised in those eyes and Harry had the distinct feeling he would be leaving early, Harry licked his spoon suggestively and smirked when Tom hissed under his breath. When the desserts disappeared, the Zabinis took to the floor to start the ball. Everyone rose and the tables vanished and were replaced by long tables around the room filled with drinks. Harry noted that Blaise had dragged Swift off to dance and Luna appeared in front of him, an expectant look on her face so Harry gave an exaggerated huff and allowed her to drag him off. He did throw a coy look over his shoulder at Tom to which the man returned a smirk full of promise. Harry followed the steps to the opening waltz with ease, smiling slightly at Luna's delight as he twirled her around.

"How went the meal?" He asked her.

"Nothing that we didn't already know about came up, I was sat with Greengrass, Davis and Boot." She replied.

"A much better selection that what I had to deal with." Harry complained and she grinned.

"Bulstrode, Selwyn and Nott all on one table, I bet that was fun."

"Oh yes, it was a delight." Harry agreed sardonically, "Honestly, the lack of brain cells between Nott and Selwyn is innumerable; I am genuinely surprised they manage to function."

"The others?"

"Dryer than the pages of a theory book."

"Oh dear."

"Yes, which is why I need entertainment." Harry sighed and Luna flashed him a very Slytherin smirk.

"Do not worry, I have both your excuses covered." She assured and Harry blinked at her, confused.

"What..." Harry trailed off when a hand secured itself on his waist and he felt familiar coiling magic wash over him, hiding him from sight of the others. He saw Luna slip away easily as Tom leaned in next to his ear.

"You are coming with me," Tom growled and Harry smirked.

"Have plans Tom?" He asked lightly.

"I hope you don't plan on walking tomorrow," Tom murmured and Harry's eyes dilated rapidly, he swallowed a few times at the desire Tom was pushing through the link. Harry went with no resistance when Tom dragged him from the room, he was shoved back against the nearest wall and his lips seized in a hot, demanding kiss. Tom bit down harshly on his lip and Harry hissed as it began to bleed, he went to grab the man's hair, but his arms were pinned above his head by Tom.

You're playing with fire, Tom hissed dark eyes burning with lust and desire, Harry smirked knowing his eyes were equally as dark and he slowly licked the blood from his lips watching as Tom's eyes followed the movement.

Then burn me .

It was lucky Harry liked clothes shopping because his robes were literally ripped off of him while the rest of his clothes he vanished himself. His arms were freed as Tom's hand gripped his hips in a painfully tight grip. Harry made quick work of the man's clothes as Tom dominated a fierce kiss, he trailed light bites all along his jaw and down his neck making Harry groan in pleasure and it turned in to a hiss when Tom bit down hard enough to draw blood.

Ah fuck,

I'm going to make you scream my name over and over again, Tom told him huskily.

Yesss

Fuck you so hard that you can't walk

Tom please, Harry was burning, he needed him now.

Mark you as  mine,

Yes, Tom please, He begged nearly delirious with desire, Tom easily lifted him and Harry wrapped his legs around his waist. With only copious amounts of lubricant, Tom slammed in to Harry hitting his prostate; Harry screamed. It felt like he had been torn in half and the pain was brutal, but at the same time undiluted pleasure ripped through his system making him feel light headed and dizzy.

He came back to his senses slightly when he felt his neck be attacked and he moaned Tom's name, it had an effect as the bites became rougher, more frantic, and the grip on his hips somehow increased. Tom started to move and Harry was lost in a world of pleasure, every plead was answered and he cried out Tom's name repeatedly. The pain was out of his control, the pleasure was out of his control, everything was out of his control; and he loved it. He loved the fact that there was someone who could completely control him, completely own him during sex that it made him delirious and he knew that there would be no one else that could; only Tom. A wonton moan left Harry's throat as Tom hit his spot again and his head dropped back, it was rough, bites, scratches, harsh, deep thrusts leaving Harry breathless and Tom burning.

Shit, Tom, Harry gasped, involuntarily dragging his nails down Tom's neck drawing blood and leaving four angry marks in his wake, Tom hissed at the feeling and hit Harry's spot again.

Scream for me, Harry, Tom ordered in a rough voice, I want to hear you beg, for a point he slowed down making Harry whimper,

Please Tom, he begged easily, Please, faster, ha-AH, he screamed out when he was slammed in to again and Tom picked up speed, Harry was reaching his peak quickly.

Sso clossse he moaned and Harry could have cried when Tom completely stopped, don't stop, please Merlin don't, Tom gave him a smirk and claimed his lips, the other man's eyes were still black and Harry knew it wasn't over. He needed his release and he tried to move himself but he found Tom's grip unrelenting.

Ah Ah Harry, have patience, we have all night. Tom hissed in his ear lightly biting down, Harry groaned at the feeling and tensed his muscles so he contracted on Tom, the Dark Lord moaned at the feeling and Harry smirked.

But do you want to wait? The answer was obvious in Tom's eyes and Harry found himself apperated back to Tom's room at Malfoy Manor. He was pressed down on the bed and he adjusted his leg to wrap tighter around Tom, he rolled his hips to get Tom to start moving and finally his pleas were answered. Tom snapped his hips forward and carried on fucking him relentlessly. It was hard, it was brutal, and Harry was not in control of the sounds coming from his throat. Tom was going mad just listening to Harry, it was taking all of his control to make himself last and he knew that would be breaking very soon. Harry was on the edge and heat was coiling in the pit of his stomach, he came screaming Tom's name and that sent Tom over the edge with a shout of Harry's name. Tom collapsed next to him panting and Harry was in no better state, he did get his breathing under control a little faster and he summoned the strength to hit him on the shoulder.

"Bastard," He muttered and Tom laughed, he waved his hand for cleaning spells and then wrapped his arm around Harry's waist pressing him against his chest. Harry sighed in contentment and covered Tom's hand, which was splayed across his navel, with his own.

"You know I wouldn't have taken you for a cuddle person," Harry murmured and Tom could hear the grin him his voice.

"I don't hear you complaining," He returned, "I could move," He went to retract his arm and Harry grabbed it with a surprisingly tight grip.

"No, that's perfectly ok. I do not have any problems with this position," Harry replied rather quickly.

"I thought as much," Tom drawled amused and Harry rolled his eyes, before letting them fall closed.

"Bastard,"

Tom laughed.

Chapter 48

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

If you get mad at me for anything in this fic after reading the tags then thats a you problem... sorry not sorry
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

"Oh sweet Merlin," Harry groaned. The first thing that came to him that morning was a whole lot of pain in his lower back and ass, and aches everywhere else, he felt like his entire body had been wring out and movement was not an option at all.

"You are rather vicious," Tom's voice sounded slightly muffled from where Harry had buried his head in the pillow and he summoned the will to peak out through the covers; his eyes widened and shock as he took in the marks on Tom. Sure he had left marks before, loads in actual fact, but these were definitely the worst ones to date. Long, angry, inflamed scratch marks leading from Tom's strong jaw all the way down past his collar were visible, there were also many on his arms and down his back from what Harry could tell; and they were extremely hot.

"Damn," He muttered very much enjoying the sight of the marks he had made. He blinked at the slightly possessive thought and pushed it away, not the time or situation for strange thoughts. With great difficulty and numerous curses, Harry managed to get himself in to an upright position – sort of. Tom was lent back against the head board and he glanced at Harry, his eyes went dark as he looked him over and the teen raised an eyebrow. Harry waved his hand and summoned a mirror, he blinked multiple times not quite believing his eyes as he saw his reflection.

"What in Merlin's name?" Harry said in shock, his neck was covered in bite marks, his lips were bruised, he had many other marks on his jaw and collar and he had a rather wild look in his bright eyes; he looked completely debauched.

"I like it," Tom stated and Harry wasn't surprised; damn possessive bastard. Harry waved his hand to settle a glamour over himself, but they were immediately cancelled by Tom.

"Hey!" He exclaimed and Tom shrugged unashamed.

"I want to see it,"

Harry narrowed his eyes before smirking, he flicked his wrist and nothing noticeably happened, but he knew it had.

"What was that?" Tom asked warily and Harry smiled innocently.

"I don't know what you mean,"

Tom grabbed the mirror and tried to place glamour over his marks, the glamour settled before it faded away revealing the marks again. Tom tired again and the same thing happened, Harry continued looking on in confused innocence which Tom did not, for one second, believe.

"Will you look at that, I can still see them," Harry said in mock amazement, Tom threw him a withering look.

"I wonder why?"

"Well if you won't let me glamour mine then you can't yours."

"Fine," Tom sighed.

"Fine I can glamour them?"

"No, I want to see it. I won't use a glamour,"

Harry blinked at that, but then he shrugged; that was fine by him. He went to move momentarily forgetting his earlier pain, it soon came back to him and he spewed out some vicious curses.

"Winky," His elf popped in with two phials of potion in her hands, Harry grinned and drank them both. "You are a darling," she blushed furiously and popped away.

"I don't think I have ever met an elf that doesn't like you." Tom said amused.

"You should have seen Kreacher when I first met him," Harry said with a shudder, he carefully stretched his limbs and sighed in relief when he realised he was on the mend; thank you phoenix animagus.

"Thank Merlin," He muttered to himself, he felt an arm snake around his waist and pull him back before light bites trailed along his neck.

"What are you doing – finishing your design?" Harry asked with a raised eyebrow, though he made no effort to move, very much enjoying the feeling.

"Yes," Tom said unabashed and Harry rolled his eyes.

"I think people can see the marks, Tom,"

"I don't believe so,"

"You might as well brand your name there," Harry shook his head, he whipped his head around when he felt Tom still. "No, don't even think about it." Tom shot him an innocent look which Harry did not buy for a second.

"I do not know what you are insinuating." Tom said and Harry shot him a pointed look; Tom's expression melted in to a devilish smirk. "I think it would be a wonderful addition,"

"Not happening," Harry denied.

"Even on a chain?"

"No,"

"In parsel?"

"No-," Harry cut himself off thinking about that before he whacked Tom and shook his head. "No, I am not being branded with your name."

"Shame,"

"Possessive bastard," Harry sighed.

"Yes," Tom pulled him in to a kiss, Mine,

Not an object Harry murmured.

Still mine, Tom said and Harry rolled his eyes.

Impossible

Of course Harry kissed him one last time before pulling Tom up out of bed, he made sleep bottoms wrap around him so Tom didn't get any ideas.

"I need to eat,"

"If you must,"

"Yes, I have things to work on." Harry said.

"You are going to visit Remus again?"

"Probably, the Nott Ball isn't until tomorrow and I am already prepared for that." Harry mused, "I don't think I have anything else left to do that is crucial. We'll talk about what we found out about the werewolf bill, but it's only filling in; we have the power to counter it. I'll need to speak to Moony about it though, now we have more details I mean."

"That's understandable, though you are correct by saying it wouldn't pass."

"The fact that both Selwyn and Nott continued to argue is beyond me. Nott has to go." Harry stated firmly. Tom nodded in agreement.

"Theodore would not agree with his son's decision, nor would he contemplate this bill." Tom said, "I will send him an owl to alert him of his son's actions."

"Now, let's go."

"Clothes would be a good start," Tom pointed out.

"No, really," Harry replied in dry sarcasm.

"Sarcasm is the lowest form of wit," Tom countered over his shoulder as he vanished in to the bathroom and Harry gaped at the door.

"I cannot believe you just said that," Harry said in disbelief.

"I can,"

"I give up,"

"Clothes, Harry,"

"Yeah yeah," He grumbled, "I might wanna go nude,"

"That isn't happening," Tom stated with no room for argument; Harry grinned.

"Clothes it is apparently,"

Harry darted off down to his room and straight for the shower, he caught sight of his neck again and shook his head.

"Unbelievable," He muttered. Harry washed his hair and relaxed under the water, he got out and dried himself with a wave of his hand before pulling on deep red jeans and a white top with his leather jacket tossed on carelessly. He slipped on his black boots and went on to breakfast. Harry had to bite back his laughter when he got to the dining room, the three Malfoys were staring at Tom, or the marks on Tom, in different amounts of disbelief; he snickered in to his hand as he sat down. This brought attention to him and their expressions grew, Lucius and Draco choked slightly and Harry put on his emotionless mask carrying on like nothing was different. Narcissa seemed to have more composure, or was simply better at hiding her disbelief, than her husband and son because she pulled it together and greeted them.

"Good morning, My Lord, Harry."

Tom nodded and Harry flashed her a smile,

"Morning,"

"The latest from last night's ball is that Evelyn Selwyn feels slighted by Lady McKinnon, Lord Prewett and yourself." Narcissa told him and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Oh?"

"Yes, she believes that you deliberately tried to make them look foolish."

"We didn't try, it just came because her husband opened his mouth." Harry said, "If someone can be that completely and utterly stupid then it's on them."

"I could not believe he carried on speaking, especially when it was so obvious that he was getting nowhere. Add that to the fact he was arguing with three people so much above his status, I don't know what he was thinking." Narcissa shook her head.

"I think he was trying to make himself look impressive." Harry said to her and her delicate eyebrows rose in disbelief, "Yes, that bill was mentioned because he believed he was going to get support from some of his allied purebloods and higher names. Of course, he couldn't have brought that bill up with worse people, but he doesn't know that."

"Be that as it may, it was foolish and it seems that word has spread. And Izar should have known better. I followed his father's Wizengamot career avidly, not once did he vote on werewolf restrictions."

"Of course he didn't. Theodore Nott Snr understands that to restrict them so is foolish." Tom drawled, "His son's actions will not please him, again."

"It does seem to be becoming a habit, my Lord." Lucius agreed, "If I were to behave as Izar has done, and my father was still alive
" he trailed off but his expression said enough. Tom chuckled.

"Should Abraxas have been living you would not have had the chance to act as Izar has been." Tom said, his voice amused, "Theodore has not made any definite decisions as of yet in regards to his son's actions."

"Izar must know he cannot win whatever game he's playing." Narcissa commented, "What is it he hopes to gain?"

"He is blinded by his hatred of me," Harry said, "Although I do not know what he wishes to gain from his actions."

"Whatever his reasoning, it's doomed to fail." Draco put in, "He hasn't a hope."

Whatever his and Selwyn's thoughts or plans, they are not working. Why, only this morning I had an owl from Naomi asking if it was true that Selwyn insulted Lady McKinnon, Lord Prewett or yourself."

"Selwyn ruined himself then," Harry said with a smirk, "Shame, I'm sure Swift would have had a brilliant time tearing him down some more."

"It was a mistake on his behalf, and I doubt he will recover from this in the near future," Lucius commented.

"I would be surprised if even his allied houses join him now," Tom put in.

"It is highly doubtful, my Lord," Lucius agreed.

"They wouldn't, it would be social suicide." Narcissa said.

"Not to mention they would get eaten alive within the Wizengamot," Harry said.

"And their heirs wouldn't be able to show their faces, it would ruin them." Draco finished, Harry sat back with a smirk.

"Ah, I love stupid people."

"Are you heading over to the Sanctuary today?" Draco asked him and Harry nodded.

"Yes, I'll need to tell Remus about the bill we just vetoed, that way if he does try to raise it in the Wizengamot or get out in rumours, the wolves will all know that we are keeping our word and will be there to counter it."

"Surely they wouldn't doubt you now?" Lucius wondered.

"You have to remember that for most of these wolves, this is the first time a non-werewolf has ever showed them kindness. They all have trust issues and I cannot blame them. It'll probably be years before they won't look at witches and wizards in caution." Harry explained.

"It is a terrible thing." Narcissa agreed, "But I do believe the sanctuary has gone a long way in fixing that."

"Thankfully,"

"Do you think they will react badly?" Tom asked him and Harry shook his head.

"No, not if I tell Moony, Alpha and Moonrise today." Harry answered, "Its direct then, not them finding out through unsecure lines and it shows honesty."

"Very well. Do you mind if I attend with you, I wish to speak to Remus about our research?" Tom requested. Harry smiled brightly at him and nodded happily, both of them missed the incredulous looks they were getting from the Malfoys as they were in their own little world.

"That would be good. I can go and find out our excuses from Blaise that Luna gave for us while you speak with Remus, then we can eat."

"Yes, that sounds fine, though I have an idea of where we can eat." Tom decided, and Harry looked at him in confusion.

"What do you mean?"

But Tom merely smirked as he rose to his feet to leave, offering his hand to a pouting Harry.

"Are you coming?"

Harry exaggerated his pout before accepting the hand in what seemed to be ill grace, but a smile started to creep on his face without his consent.

"Fine," He huffed, "But I think you are terribly mean to me."

"Of course I am," Tom agreed dutifully, "The cruelty I must possess to think you would like to go to Germany this evening-,"

The rest of his words were cut off by Harry's excited exclamation as they left the room, though Harry did have half the mind to wave at the Malfoys just before they were out of the door.

"Did we just see our Lord ask to do something?" Lucius asked slowly, not quite wrapping his head around the conversation he had just witnessed.

"We did," Narcissa confirmed.

"And did we just see our Lord basically invite Potter-Black on a date?" The Malfoy Lord questioned.

"We did," Narcissa repeated her conformation.

"Well damn," Draco summed up nicely, "I have to go warn the others. Whatever is between them is obviously speeding up and we all need to be prepared for whatever follows."

"I'll speak with the rest of the Elite, though I will exclude Izar as he cannot be trusted with a matter such as this." Lucius decided and both his wife and son agreed with him.

"No, he would reveal something just to spite Harry and that would be incredibly bad." Narcissa agreed, "Something like that coming from someone like him would be disastrous."

"I would rather not imagine." Draco admitted with a sigh, "Ok, back to work to make sure the world doesn't burn because Dumbledore thought it would be a good idea to attempt to break the two most powerful wizards of their time."

He said it with such an amount of fake cheer that it made even his father laugh, so Draco counted it as one of his many successes as he left to go to the Sanctuary; it was the one place he could find everyone at some point. As he expected, Paws was in the library when he arrived and he put himself in the chair in front of her with a sigh. She looked up from her book, eyeing him with caution before sighing herself.

"I'll call for everyone who can get here without alerting Harry."

"How did you know?"

"It's all in the expression," Hermione told him seriously, "I'm used to it by now." She sent a mental message to Swift on his own, and the red head sent back a conformation. "Swift is grabbing Neville and Luna, the twins aren't here and Blaise is back in Italy."

"It'll do for now."

"He can't have done anything too bad already." Paws pointed out, "We saw him less than twenty-four hours ago."

"With Harry, anything can happen." Ron cut in, walking over with Luna and Neville.

"But he hasn't done anything." Luna said in confusion, "At least not anything of note."

"It's not him that's the problem – well, that's not strictly true." Draco said to them.

"Tell us what's going on." Paws instructed and Draco grimaced.

"The Dark Lord and Harry's thing is moving much faster than we can possibly catch." Draco stated.

"What do you mean?" Luna questioned, "Harry is still calm, nor has he figured anything out yet."

"He may not have figured it out, but it doesn't stop the development."

"How can it possibly develop anymore?" Neville wondered and Draco scoffed.

"Well, in the past couple of days, the Dark Lord has taken Harry in to a room he had refused to enter with another person since his return, Harry managed to make the Dark Lord drop everything so they could spend the day together, they vacated the ball last night to leave together and have the marks to prove it, the Dark Lord asked Harry's permission to do something and then invited him on a date to Germany this evening." Draco explained, his voice completely deadpan.

"Oh dear."

"Yes. And if you think it doesn't get worse, it does." Draco said in mock cheer, "They have literally given no care to hiding the relationship at all. Aunt Bella and Uncle Rodo believed they were together."

"Isn't this just perfect." Paws threw up her hands.

"You realise, of course, that we cannot actually do anything." Neville reminded them, a grimace coming to his face thinking about the possible fall out.

"Which is just perfect, because what else do we need but an unstable Harry just as we're about to take the Wizengamot." Ron grumbled.

"I do not believe we have the time for me to go through things with him again," Luna told them slowly, "With the Nott and Malfoy balls coming up I cannot go through things before them in case he's more effected this time, and then by the time they are over we're back at school and planning for the Wizengamot."

"We have to tread very carefully," Hermione warned, "This could go so badly."

"My father is speaking to the rest of the elite, minus Nott."

"If they come up with any ideas whatsoever, let us know, we'd all love to hear them. It's a damn sight better than what we have." Ron muttered.

"Don't count on it." Neville sighed, "Situations like this aren't exactly common, and none of them know a thing about Harry."

"I really don't like the fact that we are relying on luck for this entire situation." Hermione sighed.

"It's not like we have a choice, I literally have no idea how this is going to work out." Luna stated.

"Look, we cannot do anything and I for one believe we have enough troubles of our own," Ron said to them all firmly, "We just have to be prepared in case things go to shit."

"We've already got back up options in place."

"Then we're sorted." Ron decided.

"Can we just leave it like that?" Hermione wondered and Ron shrugged.

"We've established that absolutely nothing can be done here, so there is nothing we can do. We might as well let it go completely."

"I suppose you are right." Hermione sighed, "Its just
"

"Yeah, I know."

"In more productive news," Neville began, "The werewolf bill?"

"Ah, that was nicely torn to pieces by the three newcomers." Draco replied, pleased.

"What did he even want to do?" Neville questioned.

"Tag werewolves." Ron answered in disgust, "It was pathetic, really, but the arrogant bastard still tried to argue."

"Why would he even want to do that?"

"Because they've gone in to hiding." Hermione answered and Neville made a noise in the back of his throat.

"Wait! He doesn't want them in society yet he wants to tag them to know where they are?"

"Yup. Harry pointed out that wonderful fact to him at the ball but it went over his head." Ron said.

"Selwyn is a bigger idiot than I gave him credit for."

"He's already caused rumours because of his actions last night." Draco told them, "I highly doubt that anyone will go for the bill, even if he was stupid enough to propose it."

"Surely he wouldn't actually propose it." Hermione asked reasonably.

"I cannot say for sure, but he might." Draco replied with a lift of his shoulder.

"If he were to propose it, and Harry was in the Wizengamot, he would get eaten alive." Ron said with a smirk.

"As he should," Luna stated, "The entire idea is ridiculous, and will gain the ministry and the magical world absolutely nothing."

"He's here somewhere speaking to Remus about the law," Draco remembered, "He'll be looking for Luna for his excuses."

"Ah yes, I had better go find him else he forgets." Luna said, "He'll no doubt be excited if he's going out tonight."

"Good Merlin that's something I don't want to think about." Ron groaned.

"What: the fact that the Dark Lord is taking Harry on a date or the fact that he asked in front of other people and cared not one bit?" Draco wondered sarcastically. Ron groaned again.

"Both thank you very much."

"Come on, let's get back to whatever we were doing." Hermione decided, "We can't do anything except use caution and be there to catch whatever fall may happen."

"Hermione's right. Besides, I have work that needs to be done in the greenhouse and I have my students coming soon." Neville agreed, standing up. The rest of them said goodbyes and split up; it was in the hands on Lady Luck now.


Harry supposed he might be a touch excited about going out with Tom tonight, he might have been bouncing around his room as he got ready for the evening and he might still be smiling since he had left Tom. So, ok, he was a tiny bit excited. But it was Germany and it was his favourite country so he had a right to be excited. Luna, the wonder that she was, had laid out a perfect outfit and Harry was in the process of pulling on his ridiculously tight deep red 'hide trousers. He paired it with his black boots and a white shirt that actually belonged to him, tucked in and left with two buttons undone.

To finish his look, Luna had hung a deep red, open front robe that could be closed with a single silver button should he wish it, it matched the silver pattern at the foot of the robe. Harry didn't know what time they were leaving, nor exactly where they were going, so he had to wait and he hated waiting. He was about to go and find Tom when there was a knock at his door, Harry pulled it open and blinked to find Tom there in all his glory; and what a glorious sight he was dressed in fitted black robes with his own silver detailing. Tom immediately swooped down and kissed him, catching Harry by surprise.

"Hi," He said a little breathlessly.

"Good evening," Tom returned, a slight smile on his lips. "Are you ready to leave?"

"Yes, just let me grab my robe." Harry replied. He left the robe open and happily slipped his arm in to Tom's offered one. "How are we travelling?"

"Portkey. It was that or floo,"

Harry groaned.

"The lesser of two evils, I suppose."

"You and magical transportation really do not have the greatest relationship, do you?"

"No, the three main ones hate me." Harry complained, eyeing the quill Tom produced with distaste. With obvious reluctance, Harry touched the quill and felt the familiar hooking at his navel as he was pulled with the portkey. Only Tom's arm kept him on his feet and even then he swayed dangerously as he regained his equilibrium. Harry's eyes lit up as he looked around and got to see the all the Yuletide decorations around the marketplace, it was still surprisingly busy for the evening and Harry was only too happy to let Tom lead him through as he looked around.

"Where are we going?" Harry asked Tom.

"You'll see," Tom replied, smirking at Harry's pout. The teen didn't stay pouting for long, too enraptured by the beauty of the marketplace and went back to excitedly pointing things out to Tom.

"Wow, look at that," Harry gasped, pointing to a hand-carved weeping willow during the winter season, it glistened with ice and had soft lights hidden in its branches. It was a lamp by the looks of things, but it was really beautiful.

"This market is open until late. We can stop and inquire on our way back if you wish?"

"Yes, let's do that." Harry agreed. Tom led Harry up to Der Glockenturm, which was very aptly named as it was in the clock tower at the end of the marketplace. The host opened the door for them and bowed at the waist, Tom nodded once and placed his hand on Harry's lower back as they walked up the stairs. The entrance and stair décor was red and black, with threads of gold at the skirting and gold fixtures. Another host met them at the top and she smiled politely at them both.

"Guten abend," She greeted, "Wenn sie konnten mir folgen?"

"Na sicher," Tom replied. "Ist alles in ordnug?"

"Ja, mein Gebieter,"

She motioned them to follow her through the double glass doors where they stepped in to a beautiful restaurant which was suspiciously empty, Harry looked around in slight confusion as they were seated at the single table at the far side of the room in front of the large window. The black and red décor had followed them up, so the table had a red table cloth, black placement settings and two black candles burning in the centre. She handed them a wine menu and left them to it with a bow.

"I love this place." Harry said lowly, his voice matching the setting, "But why is it so empty?"

"I bought it out for the evening." Tom replied easily, smiling when Harry looked at him in shock.

"Really?"

"Of course, I did not want us to be interrupted or looked upon. This is our evening."

Harry beamed.

"It's lovely," Harry said, touched at Tom's forward thinking.

"I am glad you approve."

A younger girl came over and introduced herself as their waitress for the evening, before taking the wine order Tom selected, handing them their food menus and disappearing again.

"How did you find this place?" Harry wondered, "I've been to this marketplace many times, and I never knew there was a restaurant here."

"Ah, I would not have known if I hadn't been here once before. Theodore chose it for a business meal." Tom admitted, "I believe this place runs on word of mouth mainly – if you are not local that is."

"I really do need to meet this man," Harry stated.

"There is no time now until after the Malfoy ball." Tom pointed out, "However, seeing as the Malfoy ball is the final one of the season we will have time just before we are due back at the castle."

"Better late than never I supposed." Harry agreed, "Hopefully he would have come to a decision regarding his position by then, that'll make it much easier for us to write in our plans."

"I very much doubt that Theodore will remain without action given his son's latest faux par. Tagging werewolves – what ridiculousness."

"Selwyn isn't one of yours, is he?"

"No, that kind of stupidity is infectious." Tom denied in disgust, and Harry laughed.

"Yeah, there is that."

The waitress came back with their wine and while she was pouring it Harry took a quick look over the menu, it was easy enough to choose and he grinned when Tom recited Harry's order without needing to ask him.

"How's your research coming?"

"Really well," Tom replied, "Now that we know it is in many different languages we have managed to translate the first chapter. However, with everything else we have going on currently we are having to work slower than we would prefer."

"That's understandable. We have had so much on, realistically you should have only just started the translations in these holidays."

"Yes, I am forever thankful for the use of the timeturners. I would not have been able to keep my Death Eaters in check as well as complete everything else without them."

"I know that feeling." Harry muttered, "I would have been way behind or dead."

"Now that Dumbledore is out of the castle, we do get a lot of relief. That old fool is relying on you far too much."

"It's beautiful, isn't it?" Harry snickered, a smirk flashing across his face, "When he sees us in the Wizengamot I'm hoping he just flat out has a heart attack."

Tom chuckled at that.

"Yes, that would be a gift from Magic herself."

Their food arrived with the waitress and the pair of them fell silent to begin their meal, Harry was impressed with the food and for once the wine was not awful, something that Tom was smug about.

"I told you, I have taste."

"I'm not arguing with that. I just usually hate wine." Harry countered, "I'll give you this one."

"Wine isn't my favourite drink, I'll admit." Tom allowed, "The food?"

"Very good. There hasn't been anything that's made me mentally pick it apart yet." Harry replied happily, "I am particularly impressed with the roux,"

"I am glad," Tom said, "You have demonstrated a rather broad range of culinary skills. Narcissa is very pleased with the menu you have created for her."

"Oh yes, I'll be busy most of the day for the Malfoy ball. Though, I am considering just getting everything done in the morning and have Winky spell it for me. House elf magic for food is a million times better than ours." Harry mused.

"Most of the elite will be in attendance before the ball begins," Tom informed him, "Only Izar shall be missing,"

"A crying shame." Harry drawled, smirking, "I might speak with Cissa as see if I can have mine there, too. It'll be a pre-meeting I suppose, because we can't exactly have anyone being surprised when we're at the ball as its the final one. The general undercurrent has been our leaning towards the dark since Hadrian's, if anyone is even remotely surprised then we illustrate lack of trust."

"That is a wise idea. I know the Zabini heir will be missing, however, all of my elite have encountered him before due to the younger Malfoy." Tom acknowledged, "We can have a small meeting before we get ready."

"It would be ideal, its going to be the final ball so everything is going to have to be flawless as it's the one right before the Wizengamot."

"Lucius is beyond thankful for your aid with – I would like to say his ball, as he is the Head and Lord, however, that would be a complete lie -," they shared a laugh, "Cissa has been much more relaxed. He's only been hexed once."

"I honestly didn't do that much." Harry shrugged, "But he is welcome all the same."

"Do you have a plan for Izar's ball? Theodore has already said he will not be in attendance." Tom questioned and Harry's grin was shark-like.

"We're counting on him doing something stupid."

"I'm almost concerned – almost."

"I wouldn't waste your energy." Harry waved off. The waitress had taken their plates and replaced them with their deserts, something Harry was only too happy to dig in to. Harry stole some of Tom's cheesecake, laughing when the man hit him with his spoon. Harry was slightly sad to see the end of the meal, but Tom took his hand and motioned for him to stand with him. They forwent after dinner drinks, instead, leaving the restaurant and heading back to the marketplace, where it was still bustling with activity despite the hour. Tom led him back through the stalls to where he had spotted the beautiful lamp, Harry pulled Tom over so he could have a closer look at it.

"It changes with the season," He noted in awe, "Let me ask about it."

Harry flagged down the man running the stall as inquired about the lamp, it was the only one he had and only one he had ever had; he didn't even know what it was.

"Es wurde vorbehalten," The man informed him and Harry sighed in disappointment.

"Trotzdem danke,"

He reluctantly left the lamp when Tom tugged on his hand slightly.

"I can't believe I missed the chance to have it." Harry sighed, casting his eye back on the lamp and therefore missing Tom's smile. He consoled himself by buying a lovely fluffy blanket that could easily wrap around him and Tom four times and have excess, it was green and gold and was charmed to be warm and smell appealing. Tom rolled his eyes, but refrained from commenting as Harry was obviously very pleased. The teen didn't even complain about taking the portkey back to Malfoy Manor, though he did grumble about nearly losing his footing once again.

"I really don't understand it." Tom commented, easily leading Harry towards their room, "It is not normal to have this bad of a reaction to magical transportation."

"I can fly well," Harry defended, "Besides, I have my shadows and my phoenix animagus."

"That is what makes it all the more strange," Tom insisted, "How can you master such arts and not the main three?"

"I'm weird, I thought we had covered that."

"Even now, the surprises do not stop."

"Come now, Tom," Harry said in amusement, slipping out his robe as soon as he stepped in to Tom's room, "If they stopped you'd get bored."

"I am honestly starting to believe you have my surprise bar set for the rest of my life." Tom admitted with an amused smirk, and Harry grinned.

"Challenge accepted,"

Harry released a startled laugh when Tom swept over and lifted him up making Harry wrap his legs around Tom's waist for balance, he refused to acknowledge how getting lifted like that so easily made him feel, focussing on Tom's smirk.

"That, imp, was not a challenge."

"Oh but I do enjoy them." Harry all but purred, draping his arms over Tom's shoulders as he watched the man's eyes darken.

"Is that so?"

"Hm yes. And speaking of challenges
 I wonder if you could help me with one I seem to be struggling on." Harry said innocently, his head tilting to the side, "These clothes, well, they just won't come off."

Harry felt his breath rush out of him as Tom span and dropped him on the bed, looming over him with a shark-like smirk as his eyes devoured him.

"Now that is a challenge I can accept."


 

Harry walked towards his actual bedroom in the manor to pick up the girls dresses for the evening, they weren't meeting beforehand this time because they were playing the whole thing live. None of them knew what Nott would pull on his home ground so they couldn't plan for anything, so it was a waste of time to gather as a group. So he, Ron, Hermione and Luna were only getting ready together. Harry pushed open his door and went straight to the hung clothing bags to fold them over his arm, he was going to walk straight back out again but something caught his eye. Harry froze in utter shock, gazing at the beautiful new addition to his room sat innocently beside his bed; the season changing lamp he had desperately wanted. The smile that came to Harry's face was almost painful, only one person knew about the lamp and would have been able to get it for him; and if his heart started to beat that bit faster then no-one needed to know. Harry put the clothes down and bolted from his room, flying through the halls and straight down to the main lounge where Tom was with Lucius and Narcissa. Harry jumped the man, his legs and arms going around him as he kissed him soundly while nearly knocking Tom off of his feet.

"Thank you thank you thank you thank you thank you!" Harry exclaimed, kissing him again.

"Ah, I see you found your gift." Tom noted pleased, placing Harry back on his feet. The teen beamed.

"Yes, I love it. Thank you so much." Harry said brightly, "I cannot believe you got it for me, and so sneakily too."

"Of course." Tom said as if his actions were completely normal, "I was positive that you would like it."

"Oh I do, it's beautiful." Harry assured, kissing him once again. "I would continue to tell you how much, but we're going to be late if we do not start to get ready now."

"I am sure we will find the time." Tom mused, a smirk lighting up his features. They shared a final kiss before Harry gave Tom a sweet smile and vanished in to the shadows, he grabbed his clothing bags and went straight to the McKinnon Manor. Harry wasted no time that evening, he merely handed the girls their gowns and accepted his robes from Luna. Ron was already out of sight, so Harry used the empty sitting room to change, conjuring a mirror to make sure he looked the part. He was in blue and gold that night, gold robes that flared from the waist down with a dark gold lining, blue shirt and darker trousers, a gold tie and sapphire cuff links. Ron was also in blue in gold, but his robes were blue and his clothing was in gold, they were also dressed in different styles, so they didn't appear too similar. Hermione was next to appear, her purple and white dress had a sweetheart neckline with cap sleeves that was fitted to her hips where it fell smoothly to the ground with to splits from the knee. The main gown was purple, and the white was layered on top in a lace designs, her hair was spiralled and braided up on to her head, twisted with glittering gems while revealing her flawless neckline and beautiful amethyst choker.

"I really like this dress," Hermione told him pleased, and he grinned.

"I know,"

"Is it strange that I'm more nervous about this ball than I was about the first?" Hermione wondered and Ron shook his head.

"No, we knew what we were going to be doing in the first ball." Ron pointed out, "This one is completely by ear, and we will have to adapt to anything thrown at us."

"It's also probably because we all know Nott is going to be incapable of not doing something against me in his home territory." Harry added.

"I guess."

"You need to remain calm," Luna's voice floated towards them as she walked in. Her dress was a pale purple long sleeve number, it was almost backless save for the netting that had embroidered purple lace that left an oval of net covered skin on show. The same embroidered lace came around and clenched at her waist, the purple stones weaved in to the design glistering in the light, before the dress flowed loosely to the floor. She had left her hair in its natural state, but it had been pinned over one shoulder and left to fall to her hip.

"Oh, that's lovely," Hermione said admiringly.

"Thank you," Luna replied, "You look wonderful."

"Anything we need to know about, dearest sister?" Harry questioned and she shook her head.

"I do not believe so. I only know that Nott definitely has something planned."

"Well, at least we are already on our guard." Ron said with a sigh, "Get Luna home and we'll get going. We're running a bit late actually."

"Yeah, that's on me. Well, it was Tom's fault really." Harry said sheepishly, rising to wrap his arm around his sister.

"What did you both do now?" Ron wondered with a fond sigh.

"He bought me a beautiful gift." Harry said, a bright smile unconsciously coming to his face as he thought of his lamp, "I can't believe he actually got it, if I'm honest."

"Go," Hermione urged, casting a tempus, "We'll be considered rude soon."

"Ok ok, let's go, Luna." Harry said, taking them through the shadows and leaving Ron and Hermione to look at each other in concern.

"It's going to be a fucking train wreck." Ron said brightly, and Hermione groaned.

"I can't even think about it right now." She decided.

"Think about what?" Harry questioned, stepping out of his shadows.

"How stupid Selwyn might be given his behaviour at the previous ball." Hermione responded smoothly, and Harry gave a toothy grin.

"We can always hope."

"Come on, let's get going." Ron decided. As usual, Ron and Hermione floo'd to the Nott Manor and Harry moved through the shadows to appear by their side.

"Now this should be fun." Harry declared, walking forward confidently. Their invitations were confirmed and they were led down to the ball room, which was decorated mainly in purples and blues, it was actually very nice; shame about it's Lord Harry thought. He knew instantly that Nott was going to do something epically stupid, because as soon as the Lord laid eyes on Harry he smirked victoriously and turned back to his fellow. Harry almost rolled his eyes. Instead, he and his best friends made their way forward to greet their host as per custom without an announcer.

Thankfully, Blaise, Luna and Draco were already in attendance, and Harry could see Tom's imposing figure with Lucius and Hadrian while Cissa and Naomi surveyed the room's ladies with veiled disdain. The pair of them were in his gowns once again, Cissa choosing the silver fishtail and Naomi in the one shoulder red dress. They seemed to be focussing their disdain on one Lady in particular, and that was the Lady Selwyn, who in a pale orange number that did nothing for her skin tone whatsoever, even if the design was quite nice. Harry easily allowed Hermione to speak on their behalf, knowing that there would be nothing polite coming out of his mouth in regards to Nott. He actually took a step back on the whole for the ball, following the others as they made an entire circuit of the room – something they had failed to do as of yet. It did help them meet many of the older Lords, formally introducing themselves and conducting brief conversations before finally closing in on the Malfoys.

"Good evening," Harry greeted.

"You all seem to be making the best of the room this evening." Lucius noted.

"Yes, it came to my attention that we haven't actually managed to do a full circuit as of yet so tonight seemed to be the best time." Hermione answered.

"Is it me, or does Nott look particularly pleased with himself." Ron asked slowly, his attention on the far side of the room, and Harry sighed.

"Well, we can't say we didn't know something was going to happen."

"You are so certain his mood is to do with you." Hadrian noted and Harry nodded.

"This is his own territory, we were certain he was going to do something."

"Yes, something monumentally stupid." Luna cut in, slipping in to position next to Harry.

"You have some insight to offer us?" Hermione wondered and Luna smirked slightly.

"He wishes to discredit Harry, and sully his name as a whole." She replied, "Truly, for a grown man, he is really petty."

"Do you know what actions he might take to accomplish such a feat?" Narcissa questioned.

"I believe we are about to find out."

Nott stood tall and called for their attention, giving the usual thank you for attendance and announcing the beginning of the meal. The seating boards appeared with the table and Harry released a slow laugh when he spotted his name.

"Oh well that is certainly something." He drawled, sharing an amused glance with his sister.

"What's wrong?" Ron asked and Harry chuckled darkly.

"I've been demoted to second table."

"Surely he hasn't done something so foolish." Naomi said in disbelief, looking at the chart as if it was lying to her.

"He's blatantly saying to everyone here that he does not value you enough to put you at the head table even with your status." Narcissa murmured.

"Plus, it goes against our united front." Hermione pointed out.

"He's really pushing his luck," Ron mused.

"Come on, let's get to our seats." Harry decided with a smirk.

"Why do you look so pleased with this?" Hadrian wondered.

"A move such as this cannot, in any way, shape or form, be brushed off as a faux par, meaning, I am well within my rights to counter his actions with something of my own." Harry replied, his smirk stretching, "Nott really should be careful, he's in over his head."

He followed the Malfoy's and his friends over to the head table, where Tom was already sat speaking with Izar of all people. The Nott Lord caught sight of his approach and smirked nastily at him.

"Are you quite alright, Potter-Black? You appear to be at the wrong table." His voice was layered with oily politeness, that only made Harry want to crush him more. Instead, he gave a contained smile and bowed his head once.

"Do not trouble yourself, Lord Nott." Harry returned sweetly, "I merely came to have a quick word with Lord Slytherin, here. Nothing that needs your attention, I am sure."

Nott flushed angrily, more so when Tom instantly turned his attention away from him and on to Harry.

"What is it?" Tom questioned.

"It seems as if I have been dropped from the head table." Harry answered with a smirk, which stretched when he felt Tom's displeasure.

"I see,"

"So I wished to inform you now that I'm truly done." Harry told him.

"It is understandable." Tom agreed, "He won't be pleased,"

"Good," Harry said pleased. He looked up at Hermione and Ron with glowing eyes, "Everything,"

They shared a smirk and Harry left with a final nod, taking his place next to Luna on the second table. He was pleased to see that not only was he sat with House Davis but also House Greengrass was sat on the second table too. The menu's appeared and Harry selected the salad for a starter, noting that the menu was not to his tastes – no white meat whatsoever.

"Hadrian, I had to admit I am surprised to see you here." Harry admitted and the Greengrass Lord's lips quirked.

"Despite my new position, House Nott and House Greengrass are not that closely aligned, and I believe that Izar intends to strengthen his allegiance with Selwyn and Zabini."

"He actually wants an allegiance with Selwyn?" Harry repeated, casting a look at Luna.

"Yes, I believe so."

"Dear Merlin that is really something else." Harry muttered. "He cannot actually believe that is beneficial."

"He is doing everything to go against you." Luna pointed out, "With how you reacted to Selwyn's proposed bill, are you really surprised that he's trying to pull something like this?"

"Did you gain insight to what he wished to do?" Lord Davis asked and Harry nodded.

"Some ridiculousness about tagging werewolves." Harry replied, his distaste apparent.

"Surely he does not believe that it will go through?" Hadrian said in amazement and Harry's expression said it all.

"We believe that he may still propose it to the Wizengamot, despite the fact that me and my friends easily pointed out how it would be instantly dismissed." Harry told him, "If I believed he had any sense beforehand, it was firmly crushed when I spoke with him during the last ball."

"That isn't even foolish, that is just blind." Xeno commented and Harry nodded.

"It is disheartening to realise that he is a Lord."

"He will learn, no doubt." Luna murmured.

"Yes, and then have to live with the shame of his actions." Lord Davis agreed.

"Does Selwyn have any children?"

"Yes, two sons and a daughter." Naomi confirmed, "His daughter is the youngest at twenty seven."

"The sons, are they anymore educated than their father."

"I cannot say I have interacted much with them." Naomi admitted.

"One of his son's works within the ministry." Hadrian remembered, "He seems to have a rational head on his shoulders, but he is within his workplace, it would be extremely counterproductive for him to act otherwise."

"It depends who is in whose pocket." Luna commented and Hadrian grimaced before it was clear.

"Yes, the ministry isn't the best place for such an example."

"Given that there is set to be a change in administration soon, hopefully that will no longer be the case." Harry said to him.

"Yes, that would be for the best for everyone in our world." Hadrian agreed.

"Especially given that we have reached the point where very little faith is put within the ministry at all." Lord Davis added.

"It is a sad state in which it has sunk to." Xeno mused, "Should the necessary changes be made, I have no doubt that the after effects will cause waves within our world."

"I cannot claim to be displeased by the thought." Harry allowed, "Given that I honestly don't believe our ministry could get any worse."

"It is a sorry time when that is a common belief."

They all finished the rest of their meals in relative silence, only brief murmurs of conversation filtering through and Harry cast his eye to the head table. Neither Ron nor Hermione looked to pleased, though he could only tell because he knew them well. He didn't need to see Tom's expression to know not only was he relatively annoyed, he was bored too, Harry could feel it, and that wasn't a good mix for a Dark Lord. When the meal was over, people drifted over to the evening drinks and the tables vanished when the last person rose, being replaced by the usual cornered off seating and glistening dancefloor. Harry said his goodbyes to his table mates and made his way over to Ron and Hermione, raising an eyebrow at their displeased expressions. Whatever deity had answered his plea for him not dancing immediately had his gratitude, he would rather stand and discuss things than prance around of the dancefloor. The only problem was he was speaking in a circle with Nott, who was one of the last people on the planet he would want a discussion with.

"Selwyn still wishes to raise his bill in the upcoming Wizengamot." Nott said to Lucius, apparently continuing a conversation, "He believes it may gain momentum with other sectors."

"Dear Merlin he is more stupid than I first believed." Ron sighed.

"No, you knew he was this stupid, you just didn't think you would have a visual representation of it so soon." Hermione corrected, making Harry and Rom hide a laugh.

"Why would he want to do something so idiotic anyway?" Harry wondered, "Tagging werewolves? I fail to see how that would be even remotely helpful."

"You seem to have a somewhat unhealthy interest in the wolves anyway, so of course you wouldn't see it." Nott put in snidely and Harry's eyes narrowed slightly.

"Protecting my family is my highest priority, so if that means it then it extends to an entire race then so be it. It is not as if werewolves deserve their treatment." Harry returned evenly.

"Your family is dead." Nott pointed out callously, gaining himself numerous looks of horrified disbelief from their circle. Harry merely raised an eyebrow, regarding Nott coolly.

"I do not know if it merely your severe lack of anything resembling common sense, or your inability to handle the alcohol content within the beverages that is making you forget, but everyone within this circle knows that Remus Lupin is considered part of the Potter family. My father made it so before his death officially, and the only reason it is not official within the Black family is because the previous Lord Black was unable to do so without incriminating Remus and I am unable to for the same reasons regarding protecting myself." Harry said coldly.

"Well the Potters have always been strange." Nott threw back viciously, "You're just the biggest freak out of them all."

Harry was completely unprepared for the blind rage that reared up within him when he heard that word. That word, oh how he hated it. The last person to call him that was dead by his hand and the only thing he wanted to do was rip Nott's throat out with his bare hands. The entire circle fell silent as Harry's magic abruptly snapped around him and his expression went downright scary as he regarded Nott, even Luna's calming magic didn't seem to sooth him and just when they thought he was actually going to kill Nott, Tom moved in front of Harry and offered his hand.

"Dance with me."

It seemed to take a few moments for his question to register in Harry's mind because his response was slightly delayed, but when he did speak he would forever deny that his voice had been quite a few octaves higher than normal.

"Excuse me?"

"Dance with me," Tom repeated, trying not to appear too amused at Harry's reaction.

"I hate dancing." Harry stated.

"I know,"

"You hate dancing." Harry pointed out, eyeing Tom as if he had finally lost it.

"I know,"

"You just asked me to dance."

"I am aware." Tom said, openly amused now as Harry looked at his offered hand as if it was about to bite him. "Are you coming?"

"If you are sure
?" Harry said hesitantly, accepting Tom's hand with caution.

"I am," Tom assured, leading him towards the dancefloor. Harry found himself easily span in to the waltz hold and they began to dance. Of course, with everything else on the damn planet, Tom was an amazing dancer, and Harry gave him a dark expression over it. Tom seemed to know what was causing the look because he laughed and twirled Harry around, Harry couldn't help but smile at Tom and allowed himself to fall in to the movements. Tom led the dance perfectly and when the music changed he easily lifted Harry and span, Harry released a delighted laugh when he was the air and came out of the lift gracefully. The pair of them got lost in their own little world, completely ignorant to the looks of shocked amazement, or horror in Nott's case, that they were getting from the group they had left behind.

"Harry hates dancing." Hermione, Ron and Luna chimed stunned at the exact same time Narcissa, Lucius and Nott whispered "Our Lord hates dancing."

"This is
 I don't even know." Ron shook his head, draining his glass and picking up another.

"It's so public," Narcissa murmured, her eyes flickering around to see the amount of people paying them attention. They were gaining more with each passing moment, they complimented each other perfectly and the grace in which they moved was beautiful.

"Is that Harry dancing with the Dark Lord?" Draco inquired incredulously, coming from the dance floor himself.

"Yes."

"Why are they dancing?"

"Our Lord asked him to dance." Nott answered in disgust. "The 'why' is lost to me."

"It might have a slight connection to the fact that the level of intelligence and certain life expectancy rates has made a sudden rapid decline." Hermione told him blandly, ignoring the glare she received from Nott.

"That explains the magic," Draco noted, "Will we need to alter anything?"

"No, I think he's suitably distracted now." Ron said with a wry grin.

"That's an understatement," Hermione muttered, "Look at him," it was a pointless instruction, none of them had taken their eyes away from the pair since they had moved.

"I think that it is much much much too late for any type of intervention." Luna stated.

"Yeah, we're just going to have to keep things steady." Ron agreed.

"I will make sure it remains so on our side." Narcissa cut in, her voice lined with steel as she eyed Nott.

"Thank you," Hermione said gratefully. "It's greatly appreciated."

"There isn't much to be done about the situation now." Lucius pointed out, "What with the current setting
" He trailed off, not needing to continue.

"In Harry's defence, he does pre-warn people that impossible is not in his understanding." Luna mused, smirking at the multiple unimpressed looks she got for her troubles.

"That is not a defence." Lucius stated, "That is a taunt."

"A taunt?" Ron repeated in amusement.

"If it wasn't Harry you were talking about then I'd agree, but he can be so oblivious sometimes." Hermione sighed.

"You don't say?" Ron muttered, only to get kicked by both Luna and Hermione.

"That is a sight I didn't think I would ever see." Blaise announced, joining the group.

"I think we're all in agreement to that fact," Ron said to him.

"Well, for whatever reason it is happening, they both look so very happy." Blaise pointed out, "So, to take initiative when I see it; would you care to dance, Ron?"

The girls and Draco grinned at the red head as he was led out on to the dancefloor by his boyfriend, before their attentions went back to Harry and the Dark Lord. Blaise was right, they did look very happy as they danced together.

"I think we've lost them both for the rest of the night." Draco noted, watching as the song changed and they switched dance styles with ease.

"It would not surprise me." Hermione put in, "Shall we?"

"We shall,"

Draco led Hermione off and Luna followed, happily accepting a dance from Roger Davis when he approached. Each of Harry's friends kept one eye on him for the rest of the night, but not once did he or the Dark Lord leave the dancefloor until the ball was coming to a close. Harry caught up with Ron and Hermione just as they were going to say the customary goodnight to the host, he was still smiling as he linked arms with the pair of them.

"Well this hasn't been a complete disaster." Harry said cheerfully.

"You mean to say that Nott is still alive and all of our names are still clear." Ron corrected, grinning at him.

"That too," Harry agreed with a laugh.

"I almost feel sorry for Nott," Hermione mused, "I mean, I could see myself wasting sympathy if he wasn't a complete asshole."

The boys laughed.

"Let's say our goodbyes," Ron decided, "I want to go to sleep."

Harry left them to it, not bothering to waste his breath on Nott, so he waited for them to finish and then walked with them to the doors.

"I'll see you both tomorrow, I have to speak with Tom, Lucius and Cissa to check things and then I'll fill everyone in."

"Fair enough, we'll see you then,"

The pair floo'd away and Harry shadowed back to the Manor as the Malfoys and Tom had already left, he found them in the private sitting room, all much more relaxed and he grinned.

"I wondered where you ended up to," Draco said.

"I saw Ron and Hermione before they left."

"Ah,"

"I have to ask, Harry," Narcissa began, "You're reaction this evening
" she trailed off and a dark expression flashed across Harry's face.

"That particular word was a favourite of my dear relatives." He answered somewhat stiltedly. Narcissa's eyes went like ice chips.

"I do believe the time for restraint is at an end." She declared and Harry gave her a cold smirk.

"Any future slights will be met with my full response." He assured.

"Izar's actions tonight go far beyond foolish." Lucius commented, "He is blinded,"

"I meet with Theodore the day after your ball. I will be showing him the memories so he can fully decide a course of punishment." Tom informed them, "But moreover, I will be making sure he understands the severity of his actions."

"Nothing less than he deserves." Harry stated.

"Indeed," Tom rose to his feet and nodded to the Malfoys in goodnight. He wrapped his arm around Harry to take him with him, to the teen bid his own goodnight and went with Tom; he was exhausted anyway. He was happy to switch his robes for sleepwear and slide in to bed, propping himself to watch Tom change.

"I do hope I have an invite to your conversation with Nott." Harry said to him. Tom flashed him a smirk as he climbed in to bed.

"There would be little point otherwise." Tom replied and Harry chuckled, sliding over to kiss him.

"You are too kind to me, Tom." Harry murmured, "I can be kind, too, you know. Very kind. Especially for you after your type of conversation, and most definitely in that throne of yours."

Tom's eyes went dark and he pulled Harry closer to him, pressing a fiery kiss to his teen as his mind gave him wonderful images from Harry's words.

"I will have to make this conversation very interesting then, won't I?"

"Oh I am sure you will," Harry agreed, settling down and draping himself over Tom.

"Tease," Tom grumbled. Harry grinned and kissed his chest.

"Night, Tom,"

"I hate you,"

Harry laughed.

Chapter 49

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

If you get mad at me for anything in this fic after reading the tags then thats a you problem... sorry not sorry
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

Cooking, Harry decided, could be very soothing when he was doing it of his own accord. He had decided that it would be beneficial to get all of the Malfoy ball food done and ready as soon as possible, because he would hate to be in a rush later. That and he noticed Luna had taken his timeturner so he couldn't use it anymore. It was her way of ensuring he wasn't overdoing it for the remainder of the holidays. He wasn't too worried, if he needed it she would give it back to him in an instant so he was content to living just the one day.

The House Elves, bless them, were a wonder to work with. Harry showed them the things he was making and they helped prepare the all of the ingredients and spelled them with preservation charms so they would be completely fresh and hot for the evening. Harry loved House Elf magic! He did deserts first because both the cheesecake and the panna cotta had to set, and he made all three of the sorbets at the same time for the same reason. Once they were setting, Harry moved on to fish and main courses, using the elves to help keep everything clear so he had room to move and knew where everything was. The starter he was making was simple so that and the crystallised fruits and nuts were last.

Harry made sure to show the elves how everything was supposed to be presented on the plates and they made little work at created identical dishes to the ones Harry showed them. He thanked them profusely for their help and retreated from their domain so they could work on the other starters, the vegetarian options and the other main. Harry was shocked to see he was late to lunch, amazed that the elves managed to get anything done while he was there making their workroom look like a battle ground. He headed straight to the dining room, kissing Tom's cheek and offering Narcissa a sheepish grin to her raised eyebrow.

"Sorry for being late, I've just finished all of the dishes for this evening." He explained as he helped himself to food, and she blinked in surprise.

"Really? Already?"

"Yeah, I got up very early and your elves are very good." Harry said.

"I still cannot thank you enough for this, Harry." She told him seriously and Harry smiled.

"You are very welcome."

"How come you didn't use your turner to sleep and cook?" Draco wondered.

"Luna took it off me," Harry shrugged, "No doubt she isn't pleased that I've been using it in the holidays in the first place."

"That's true, she did warn you." Draco remembered with a grin.

"Lucius, Cissa, I never did remember to ask." Harry said suddenly, "Is it ok if I bring a few of mine to the pre-meeting this evening?"

"Of course, Harry." Narcissa replied warmly.

"Yes, the wards will be changed for this evening anyway so they will have no issue in arriving." Lucius confirmed.

"Thank you. It will only be Ron, Hermione and Luna as the others either don't need to be here or cannot attend." Harry told them.

"Tonight is definitely going to be interesting." Draco mused, "Normally, after the final ball things cool off for the new year, but I cannot see that happening this year."

"No, if anything it will become tenser." Lucius agreed, "This is the final evening for everyone to gather as much information as possible before the Wizengamot session."

"It's going to be fantastic." Harry said with enthusiasm.

"You would say that." Tom commented amused.

"You cannot say you are not looking forward to it." Harry pointed out, "Besides, given the position of the ball, people's actions will be different. As Lucius said, it is the final evening for people to gather information, they're going to be almost desperate."

"Which will lead to mistakes." Tom finished, "Yes, you are correct."

"And then we have to wait." Harry sighed, "I hate waiting."

"I'd rather be in wait for the Wizengamot then having to rush around planning something last minute." Draco disputed.

"Ok, I can partially agree to that." Harry allowed, "But I have always thought better on my feet."

"That is a disgusting understatement." Tom scoffed, "You pull stunts out of thin air when put on the spot."

Harry grinned.

"Just think, all of those times were under numerous blocks and potions."

"I almost don't want to witness." Tom stated and Harry laughed.

"That's just an outright lie." Harry said with a grin, "Still, I don't intend to get in to any situations that need me to think on my feet."

"That's your issue, you never do." Draco complained and Harry pouted.

"That's not true."

"Really? So you planned to battle the eighteen aurors and wolf hunters, did you?" The blond wondered dryly.

"
Well no."

"Did you plan on getting blasted by the WPP when going to get Ellen?"

"
No,"

"And that is just in the past couple of months." Draco pointed out, "Do you need me to go through all the other situations."

"No, they were under Dumbledore."

"Which means you definitely didn't intend to be in the situations." Draco countered, smirking when Harry glowered.

"You know what, I don't have to deal with this kind of abuse." Harry declared, rising to his feet, "I'm going to send the girls their gowns."

"Tactical retreat," Draco called after him laughingly, ducking when Harry sent a stinging hex at his face. The dark haired teen grinned at Draco's yelp, shadowing to his rooms so he could grab the dressed and quickly stick a note on each bag to indicate owners. Once that was one, he called for Dobby to send them over to the girls.

I'm sending over your dress with Dobby, Paws. Can you get to Malfoy Manor for say 5ish? He asked both Paws and Swift.

Sure. Do we need anything? Swift replied.

No, just yourselves.

Thanks, Snake, it's beautiful as always. Paws said to him, Would you like me to bring Luna?

Yeah, if you will. It's only going to be us three and her. Bleach is already going to be here, and we don't need anyone else to come. Harry responded.

I almost want to bring Neville, just for Snape's reaction. Swift sighed and Harry smirked slightly, thinking of said reaction.

Fuck it, see if he wants to come. Harry decided, It'll be hilarious.

Is that wise with the Lestranges present? Paws wondered, her tone concerned.

Nev knows what he got in to. Harry pointed out.

Besides, Badger works well with Bastan when he comes to use the library in the Gryffindor rooms. Swift added.

True. I suppose it helps to know that the attack wouldn't have happened if it wasn't for Dumbledore and his false prophecy. Paws mused, Ok, we'll be there.

Yeah, see ya, Snake. Swift agreed.

Bye guys.

Harry shook his head bringing himself back in to focus. His elf popped back in with his own robes for the evening and Harry took them out to see. At first he was a bit confused, but he managed to get everything on in what looked to be the correct places and looked in to the mirror. Harry adored Luna. There was never any question of this, of course, but if it wasn't apparent before then he was a million percent certain of it now. Her choice of outfit for him for the Malfoy ball was the most perfect thing he had ever seen.

She had given him a dark silver full bodysuit which was made from either snake or dragon scales that looked almost liquid-like as he moved and was basically painted to his body – though he thanked magic for protecting his manhood for the amount of extra tight clothing he owned. On top of that, she had given him a formfitting silver-blue sleeveless battle robe, with had shined platinum armour shoulder pads decorated with diamonds and was designed with layers of material and leather overlapping as it came to the waist with gleaming buckles before it fell to his feet. There were two splits from waist to floor going down the front of his legs showing off knee length boots with dulled silver buckles and the dark sliver bodysuit covering the top of his legs. It kept within the winter theme of the ball being it was silver and blue and glistening, yet it stood out and was very much him.

Harry sighed, carefully taking off the robe and rehanging it, the ball was hours away and he had wanted to try it on because he had no idea how the robe even worked having never seen anything like it before in his life; he shouldn't have worried. He did, however, have a particular liking to the body suit and decided to keep it on for now. Harry went to find Tom to brag about his robes, grabbing a shirt to sling on so he looked like he was wearing a full outfit; he absently noticed that it was one of Tom's shirts he had chosen. He walked through the corridors feeling the air of anticipation surrounding him, the elite were arriving early as they would all be in attendance tonight so the manor felt tenser and Harry couldn't wait until his friends arrived. When he didn't find Tom in the library, he rolled his eyes and shadowed to the man's side, sighing when he stepped out in Tom's study.

"Honestly, you complain about my workload." Harry said to him, making Tom glance up and almost choke on his sharply indrawn breath. Was Harry ever going to appear unattractive to him, or in the very least not want to make him instantly fuck him against the nearest possible surface? He hadn't seen the teen in silver before, but he could happily see him in it again. And again. And again. His trousers could have been painted on him and the boots clung to his legs, and if that wasn't enough he was wearing one of Tom's own black shirts with a button left open to tease him with a flash of pale skin. Harry did it on purpose, Tom swore he did.

"What in Merlin's name are you wearing?" Tom demanded and Harry grinned, giving a simple twirl to show himself off; Tom was not complaining.

"I came to brag about my robes." Harry told him, not noticing Tom's reaction, "The trousers aren't actually trousers, they're part of a bodysuit."

Harry undone the shirt to illustrate his point and Tom had to fight to control his reaction to merely clenching his jaw instead of pinning Harry against the nicely placed desk to his right.

"It's the base piece to my robes this evening so-,"

"No," Tom cut him off sharply, the word spilling from his lips before he had a conscious thought of it.

"You don't like it?" Harry wondered, with a displeased twist of his lips.

"On you, in public? Absolutely not." Tom stated. Anger and possessiveness licked at his insides at the thought of anyone seeing Harry like this, he would have to burn the image out of all of their minds and then blind them so it couldn't happen again. Harry smiled brightly at that, slinking over and straddling Tom's lap easily, pressing a chaste kiss to the man's lips as he rested his hands on Tom's chest.

"The over robe is floor length." Harry assured him.

"Hm,"

Tom's hands were traveling along his thighs, over his ass and up his hips and the soft brushes were making his shudder slightly.

"Can I assume that you like it?" Harry asked him lightly, and Tom eyed him appreciatively.

"Very much so," Tom couldn't help but reach up and push the shirt off of Harry's shoulders, leaving him in the bodysuit alone. The Dark Lord drank in the sight, the silver made Harry's skin glow and suit seemed to purposely highlight the great shape Harry kept himself in. He wanted to peel the suit off, revealing the clear skin underneath waiting to be marked by him, he wanted to taste him, to feel every part of him, and above all he wanted to fuck his teen and hear him scream his name. Tom brushed their lips together lightly, pulling the teen closer to him.

"If you do not want your new bodysuit ruined I would remove it now." Tom's voice was low, husky and Harry's breathing shuddered, "Because the limit of my control is very nearly up and that desk is so conveniently placed."

Harry's eyes went very dark and he pressed a slow, deep kiss to Tom's lips before pulling himself away and rising to his feet. He felt Tom's magic flare, wrapping the office in locking and silencing wards with ease and Harry smirked, stepping back a few paces. With painstakingly slow movements, Harry unzipped the hidden opening on the suit and began peeling it off of his body, very aware of Tom's burning gaze. When the suit hit the ground, Harry waved his hand and banished it back to his room and shot Tom a coy look as he moved over to the aforementioned desk. Before he was half way there, Tom had his arms wrapped around him and captured him in a demanding kiss leaving Harry gripping his shoulders for support as he was lifted on to the desk. Tom's clothes vanished and the sudden skin-on-skin contact made Harry gasp, his head falling back allowing Tom to attack his neck with vigour, following his body down to his collar before focussing his attention on his nipples.

"Tom, Tom, I want – I need-," Harry moaned, whimpering slightly as Tom's teeth grazed his nipple. The older man flashed him a smirk, drawing Harry in to a slow kiss as his magic prepared him. Tom hooked Harry's leg over his shoulder and pushed in with one swift motion, swallowing down Harry's low moan. Tom drew out and thrust back in slowly, setting an almost languid pace and relishing in every sound and every half formed sentence that escaped his younger lover. He tried to keep the pace set, a small retaliation for Harry's constant teasing, but his self-control was never great when it came to his teen and it wasn't long before his thrusts came faster and harder. He angled himself so he hit that spot that had Harry shout out loudly, demanding more that Tom was only too happy to give. Tom wrapped the hand that wasn't gripping Harry's hip around the teen's weeping cock and stroked at the same time he hit that spot again, causing Harry to arch up cry Tom's name. Harry's body was on fire, Tom's actions sending waves of pleasure shooting through his body making him writhe as his release built within him. Heat pooled in his stomach, building and burning bright until the dam burst and his whole body tensed as he came. Tom fucked him through it, chasing his own release and it only took half a dozen more thrusts before he was filling his lover. He slid Harry's leg from his shoulder as he pulled out and cleaned them with a wave of his hand, pulling the somewhat boneless teen up in to a sitting position so he could kiss him.

"So the bodysuit has your approval?" Harry murmured, a slight grin coming to his face as he regained his bearings.

"You need one in green." Tom replied with a smirk.

"You're terrible." Harry laughed, "I'll have Luna get me one."

Harry summoned the shirt he had worn down and donned it, leaving two buttons open and watching as Tom redressed. Harry slipped off the desk and wandered over to the bookcase (glad that Tom's shirt was enough to cover him), scanning the books and grabbing one to read, planting himself down on Tom's couch with his legs crossed.

"You cannot be thinking of staying here like that." Tom said, retaking his own seat.

"I did have a bodysuit on, apparently that's is no longer a viable option." Harry pointed out, smirking over his book as Tom huffed. "Besides, I got up so early this morning that I've actually got nothing to do until the elite and mine get here."

"You are a menace."

"Thanks,"

They fell in to a comfortable silence as they read, passing the time simply until the evening. Harry was so in to his book adapting Household charms in to duelling that he didn't notice Tom's fluctuating emotions until the man threw his book down.

"Tom, what-?" He was cut off as Tom stalked over to him with a glare and easily scooped him up in to his arms bridal style.

"You. Are distracting." Tom stated irritably, sweeping out of the room.

"I was sitting." Harry exclaimed, "I wasn't even making a sound."

"You were sat on my sofa with nothing but my shirt on looking ridiculously attractive." Tom pointed out, "And you expect me to concentrate."

"I tried with clothes and that didn't work out either." Harry defended, pouting.

"Then it is simply your fault for being utterly gorgeous." Tom replied. Harry felt his cheeks warm and buried his face in Tom's neck.

"Damn you," He grumbled, flicking the man when he chuckled. He was placed back on his feet when they were back in their room and Tom kissed him lightly.

"Get changed, the elite have arrived."

"I'll call mine and meet you down there." Harry said, "Won't be long."

He wandered over to the wardrobe as Tom swept from the room, flicking through his clothes there and pulling out a pair of ripped green jeans to throw on until the ball and slipped on his boots. He sent a mental call to Ron and Hermione to let them know the Elite were early and left the room, shadowing down to the entrance hall so his friends could come directly to him. Ron, Luna and Hermione appeared in a swarm of shadows and Harry flashed them a grin.

"Neville said he wanted everyone to lose their minds at the Wizengamot." Ron said with a laugh, "Hermione says he's been exposed to you too much."

Harry laughed.

"The elite have already arrived." Harry told them, leading them down to the main lounge.

"Who's actually here?" Hermione asked.

"All except Nott, I think. Though, I don't know if Dolohov has decided to stay in the field as he isn't attending the ball." Harry answered, "With Bellatrix and Rodolphus here tonight, there's less eyes on the creature watch."

"It would make sense if he stayed out there." Ron agreed, "With our luck, something would happen if he didn't."

"Don't curse it." Luna said, only semi-joking and they shared a laugh.

A low murmur of conversation could be heard as they reached the main lounge and the four of them shared smirks before they walked in. The Death Eaters were sat around their Lord in a rough semi-circle of scattered chairs and sofas and there were a few spots left for Harry and his friends. Unsurprisingly, Tom noticed them first and his eyes trailed slowly up the green eyed teen before he raised an unamused eyebrow.

"You are joking."

Harry blinked bewildered, looking down at himself before back at Tom to ask what was wrong when he noticed the man's eyes flicking back to his legs and going slightly darker. Harry sighed and switched his green jeans to black with a mental note to cancel the colour change later, rolling his eyes fondly as he made his way over to the seat next to him.

"Better?" He questioned, dropping down and throwing his legs over Tom's without a thought.

"Yes. I see your friends arrived." Tom said, directing both their attentions to the group and Harry almost burst out laughing at Snape's look of disbelief and Bellatrix and Rodolphus' look of confusion.

"Ah yes. Bellatrix, Rodolphus, Snape, allow me to introduce my very best friends and sister; Ron, Hermione and Luna."

"Weasley and Granger?" Snape repeated, looking them over with raised eyebrows.

"It's McKinnon and Prewett now, Professor." Hermione replied politely. Snape blinked twice before he sighed heavily through his nose and turned away.

"Of course it's the pair of you. Merlin forbid Potter do anything without you both." He grumbled and Harry did laugh at that.

"Really, Snape, did you expect anything else?" Harry wondered, smirking at the man's unimpressed glance.

"It's Prince for the evening, Potter." Snape snapped and Harry snorted.

"It's Potter-Black for the evening, Prince." He threw back immediately, receiving a narrow-eyes glare for his trouble.

"Are you telling me I've been working with you for at least a month and you failed to mention that you were the secret Lord Prewett and Lady McKinnon?" Rabastan interrupted, looking extremely put out as he turned to Ron and Hermione; the red head smirked at him as Hermione hid her grin.

"Did we forget to mention that?" Ron said lightly, "Huh,"

"You little shit." Rabastan muttered, though his amused grin lessened the insult.

"We were keeping it quiet before the balls because the information couldn't leak out whatsoever, because if, be it rumour of actual information, it got back to Dumbledore we would have been in extreme danger." Hermione explained.

"The reason they are being revealed to you now and not at the ball this evening is because we need to make sure there are no cracks in our united front, and you need be aware that Miss Lovegood is also with us." The Dark Lord told his three unaware elite. "Izar has already created a significant amount of damage."

"What has that fool done, my Lord?" Rodolphus questioned in exasperation.

"Openly disagreed with the trio and then made a blatant claim of disregard to Harry."

"Nott had the audacity to demote the Lord to the House of Black in a dark/neutral ball?" Bellatrix exclaimed in outrage, "How dare he? Especially knowing of the non-political alliances!"

"He has been exceptionally idiotic." Narcissa told her sister, "I really do not understand his behaviour."

"I'm pretty sure he's just a massive prick." Harry stated candidly, "Sorry,"

"Crudely put, but the statement has merit." Lucius agreed, "I did not think he would stoop as low as to directly insult you and be so callous of your family."

"What do you mean?" Rodolphus inquired and Harry gave a mean little smirk.

"Dear Nott thought it was necessary to remind me that my family is dead." Harry answered.

"He actually said those words?" Rabastan said in disbelief and Harry nodded.

"Oh yes, and then he insulted me."

"What in Merlin's name is he thinking?" Bella hissed, "Obviously he knows of the outer alliance – why would he risk that?"

"We actually have no idea what is going through his mind." Ron said.

"No, just that he has unnatural hatred of Harry." Hermione added.

"What did you do?" Snape drawled and Harry scoffed.

"Believe it or not, Prince, I haven't done anything to Nott." Harry stated, "If anyone out of the Elite should be hating me it's Lucius here, because at least we've had past conflict."

"It is true." Lucius agreed, "I cannot remember you actually encountering Izar all that much anyway."

"No, the first time I have ever spoke to him was at your ball in the summer." Harry said thoughtfully, "But surely he couldn't be basing his hatred from that? I mean, he was the one who set that entire conversation up."

"That was the discussion of Umbridge, wasn't it?" Rodolphus remembered, "He called you a liar and you didn't take kindly to it."

"Yes, that's the one." Harry confirmed, making the Lestrange Lord frown.

"I understand what you mean." He said slowly, "To create such a hatred where he goes against our Lord's wishes just from that conversation does seem outlandish."

"I swear, Harry, you need to have someone constantly hating the very air that you breathe or the world isn't spinning." Draco joked, shaking his head mock chidingly and Harry scoffed.

"I thought I was doing well – what with managing to work a system where Prince here doesn't wish my death for blinking, but it seems to have transferred."

The four teenagers snickered at their Professor's unimpressed glower before their attentions turned back to the pre-meeting.

"In all seriousness, we do need to work out what Nott's issues are with Snake." Hermione stated, "This evening is too busy for any course of action, but getting access to Nott shouldn't be difficult."

"No, it shouldn't be, though it will need to be an area where we can create shields just in case." Ron continued. "Snake, it's very unlikely that your presence around him will be of any benefit seeing as he cannot think rationally with you around, and after his almost insult of Paws at the first ball I think it's safe to assume that her presence wouldn't be beneficial either."

"No, it would probably be best if just the pair of us deal with it." Luna agreed, "If we have Bleech and Venom with us, it would be even better. He would be unassuming. After all, he would have seen both of them grow."

"Good, work with Swift and no doubt he will get you a plan together in no time with what you need." Harry said pleased.

"It will be simple enough, Venom and I can use the excuse of seeing Theo while Swift gets Luna in and makes sure neither of them are caught before we have what we need." Draco mused.

"You've lost me." Rodolphus admitted, "What does Miss Lovegood's presence have to do with finding out what's going on with Izar?"

"Don't question it, just understand that she knows and if she doesn't know she will." Lucius told him seriously, making both Bella and Rodolphus blink.

"It's true." Rabastan agreed cheerfully, "Absolutely terrifying, it is, when Luna comes out with a comment that no one should know about."

Luna gave him a sweet smile and he snorted.

"Yeah, I don't buy that anymore."

"Why are you unable to find out tonight?" Bella wondered and Luna frowned slightly.

"It's not a matter of not being able to, it's more of a case of not knowing what I'm looking for. Eyes are everywhere at the ball." She replied and Harry grimaced.

"And the last thing we need is people beginning to question."

"That at we're going to need all eyes on Nott in case he pulls something else." Ron added.

"Is it likely he will?" Narcissa questioned and Harry shrugged.

"You know him better than I do, you tell me."

"Usually, I would disagree and say that Izar would not be so foolish as to go against our Lord, but apparently he already has." Bella said slowly, "So none of us can guess to if he will do anything or not. This would be so much easier if I could just curse him!"

She added the last part in a frustrated huff, Harry snickered as Tom shot her an amused glance.

"Given our lack of understanding regarding Izar's recent behaviour, it is essential that all of us appear united. We do not know the damage his actions within his own ball have caused, and we are at a point where even the slightest waver will cause questions." Tom said firmly, "Tonight is all about the political front, yes, but everyone knows that internal and external politics overlap. With the instability of our world currently, we need to show we are completely ready."

"It won't be difficult, my Lord." Lucius said, "Izar is sat at the head table, we should be able to monitor his actions."

"Thankfully, because of the McKinnon, Prewett and Prince acceptance to the ball, the only people outside of ours at the table is Hadrian and Naomi." Narcissa added, "Astoria is still unwell."

"Which is even better because I am on good terms with Hadrian so it will nullify anything Nott might do." Harry picked up, "I was sat with them at Nott's ball and, from what I was able to deduce, they see Nott's actions as an anomaly from the rest of us."

"Hm, it shouldn't be too bad then." Rodolphus said pleased, only to jump slightly when all of Harry's friends groaned.

"Now you've done it." Ron sighed, rubbing a hand down the side of his face.

"I'll pull out the 'Harry' folder before we get ready tonight," Hermione decided, sounding put-upon.

"I'll see Venom first this evening so I'll make sure he's ready." Draco picked up, "He's good at being seen and yet not."

"I'll need the back-up power, but I can cast my Runes at the drop of a hat." Luna continued.

"What in Merlin's name did I say?" Rodolphus demanded, bewildered.

"And what's the 'Harry' folder?" Rabastan put in.

"I believe they have a rule," Narcissa answered Rodolphus' question with an amused expression, "Not to use rhetorical phrases because the unneeded answer is always bad."

"Especially when it involves Harry." Hermione muttered and the teen in question pouted.

"Which is exactly why we have a folder dedicated to worst case scenarios." Ron said, "It's called the 'Harry's folder because worst cases usually happen around him."

"That sounds reasonable." Snape allowed and Harry groaned.

"Guys, a little slack will you?" Harry complained.

"I said usually didn't I, not all the time." Ron pointed out, smirking at Harry's outraged expression.

"I'm getting verbally attacked today." Harry whined, "First Draco, then Tom, now you lot. Merlin, it's not always me!"

"What have I done?" Tom questioned in disbelief. Harry gave him a deadpan look.

"You blamed me for getting distracted when I was sat in silence."

"You were being distracting!" Tom stated, "And you know exactly how."

"I only got in that state because of you in the first place!" Harry exclaimed.

"Bodysuit." Was the only response that he got and Harry huffed.

"That was Luna!"

"And my shirt?" Tom drawled, smirking at Harry's scowl.

"I hate you."

"I know."

"It is approaching six fifteen." Narcissa interrupted and Harry blinked, looking at her in surprise.

"Really? Already?"

"Yes. The ball is just over an hour away." She confirmed.

"Then let us leave to prepare." Tom decided, "Everyone knows what is expected of them."

Everyone rose and said their temporary goodbyes as they dispersed, Harry waved off his friends and followed Tom up through the manor, coming to a stop outside his room.

"Seeing as you cannot be trusted around my poor bodysuit, I'll get ready here." Harry said to him, grinning as Tom rolled his eyes and continued on down the hall.

"Your robes better cover it." He warned over his shoulder.

"Yeah yeah," Harry muttered, slipping in to his room and heading directly towards the shower, cancelling the colour changing charm on his jeans he went. He spent a bit longer than intended in the bathroom, going through the his 'primping' as Ron affectionately labelled it and styling his hair. Harry pulled on his bodysuit and was just reaching for his boots when a house elf popped in.

"Mistress Cissa is asking Lord-Potter-Black to go to her dressing room right away." The elf squeaked and Harry blinked in surprise.

"Um
 Ok. Can you take me there?" He asked and the elf nodded, holding out her little hand. They vanished and appeared in an area of the manor Harry hadn't been too before, but he didn't waste time looking around as they had a ball to get to. He knocked on the door where he felt Narcissa and, surprisingly, Bellatrix and entered when bade.

"Cissa, what's wrong?" Harry questioned, walking in, "Is it the dress?" nodding towards the gown hanging from it's rack while the Lady applied her sister's make-up in her underwear.

"What in Merlin's name are you wearing?" Bellatrix demanded, looking him over.

"Oh, part of my robes this evening." Harry replied, grinning at her impressed look.

"You don't look half bad." She acknowledged and Harry laughed.

"Harry, we've had an emergency." Narcissa exclaimed. She walked over and picked up another dress that Harry's hadn't noticed on the counter, it was a beautiful cap-sleeved silver and red number and he was about to ask for a clarification of the problem when he saw very clearly what was wrong. There was a huge, ragged tear starting under the arm and going all the way around the back and down to the hip.

"It's Sea silk!"

Harry winced at that, knowing that there was no repairing the dress without evidence of it being broken in the first place. Sea silk was exceptionally rare and the weave of the fabric made it so even magical repairs were left with traces.

"Fix it and glamour the evidence." Bella told her sister simply, only to get a look of abject horror in response. "Or not."

"You cannot wear a broken dress to my ball, sister." Narcissa stated.

"I don't have any other options." Bellatrix pointed out, rolling her eyes.

"That's why Harry's here." Narcissa said, turning back to the teen in question. "Do you think you could properly resize one of my gowns?"

"I could," Harry allowed, nodding slowly as he looked Bellatrix over, "But I do not believe your styles will suit, nor will the colours match."

Narcissa sighed heavily through her nose.

"I know, but Bella isn't one for gowns."

"Who needs sweet words when you can just curse someone." Bellatrix grumbled, getting up and flouncing over to the loveseat as soon as Narcissa was done, "Stupid ball season."

Harry blinked at her words before a grin began to form on his face.

"I have an idea, and given who you are I think it will work." Harry stated, gaining raised eyebrows from both Black sisters, "Do you know your sizes?"

"Cissa took them down," Bella replied, passing him a sheet of parchment with numbers jotted down.

"Give me ten minutes," Harry told them and vanished in to the shadows. He went straight to Hermione's back up gowns and pulled out the one he had made in case she didn't want to wear the one for the Zabini ball. Ironically enough, he had gotten inspiration from what he had seen Bellatrix wear during the battle at the ministry. He remembered looking back at her gothic style robes and thinking that was one way to look intimidating and look good while doing it. He resized the dress to fix the older woman and then began to carefully change the colours of the material layers, he then began the slow process of altering the swirling pattern in the train to resemble snowflakes before he grabbed the matching shoes to resize and change as well as some accompanying jewellery, evening gloves and clutch. As soon as he was done, he shadowed back to the two ladies with his arms laden.

"I come with emergency back up." He announced, putting everything down on the nearest clear counter. Narcissa had her hair pinned up in to place and was just adding Harry's Yule gift when he arrived.

"What's all this?"

"Well, I wasn't sure if Hermione would want to wear the dress I gave her for the Zabini ball, so I made a back-up that would gain a somewhat similar response but was much less daring." Harry explained, hanging the dress bag, "Funnily enough, it was based off of the style of robes you were wearing at the ministry." He nodded towards Bellatrix, chuckling at her surprise.

"I made a few altercations to fit with the theme and Lestrange colour scheme, of course, but I think it will work." He unzipped the bag and moved back so they could both see it.

"Oh my," Narcissa gasped, looking the gown over. It was a gothic burlesque style dress in deep purple, almost black, with silver detailing. The top was made up of a corset with small lace ruffles along the neck line, with silver swirling snowflakes twisting around the waist and down to the hip, while the skirt fell in layered ruffles to the mid-thigh. The back of the dress was done up with purple and silver lace that came together in a bow at the end of the corset before the dress flared to the ground with a train. It had the same snowflake pattern spiralling down from the bow on the skirt while individual shimmering snowflakes could be seen on the thin layers of lace in the ruffles at the front. Originally, it had been a lighter purple and white for Hermione, and the snowflakes more abstract swirls, but it worked either way.

"I love it," Bella declared.

"It goes with these gloves, clutch and shoes." Harry told her, showing her everything else, "I brought a range of odd jewellery that would work, too."

"You know, you're not bad, Potter." Bellatrix told him, "Thank you."

"You're welcome." Harry replied, "And thanks, I think."

She gave him a rather manic grin and snatched up the dress to slip on, Harry tied the corset and bow off for her and unclasped her bra so she could remove it without being uncovered.

"You look wonderful, Bella." Narcissa said warmly, as her sister gave a happy twirl, "It truly does suit you."

"I have to run, I need to get in to my robes." Harry said, checking the time.

"Yes, do so. And thank you very much, Harry dear, you've worked your magic once again." Narcissa told him.

"No problem, happy to help." Harry answered. He nodded his head both ladies and shadowed away. The Potter-Black Lord walked straight over and got in to his robes, making sure it was all in its correct place before going to the mirror and styling his hair, he ran his hands through it giving it a wilder look, combed his fringe in to place and deemed himself finished. Harry went to grab the ring he was going to wear that night but almost jumped out of his skin when there was a sudden knock at his door.

"Come in," Harry called, sensing Tom outside, as he slipped on the simple platinum ring that was twisting in to the infinity symbol.

"Wow,"

The whispered word caught Harry's attention instantly and he looked up to find Tom staring at him in amazement, a blush covered his face immediately and he found himself uncharacteristically ducking his head.

"Do you like it?" He asked and Tom made a sound at the back of his throat.

"You look
 magnificent." Tom replied softly. The tone of his voice and the pure honesty he could feel from the other man had Harry's blush darkening, but a smile curled on to his face as he walked over to the man.

"Thank you,"

Tom tilted his chin up so Harry was looking at him, brushing a finger over the colour in Harry's cheeks with a slight smile before kissing him lightly.

"Let us not keep Narcissa waiting."

"No, she's already stressed this evening." Harry said, forcefully pulling all of his errant emotions under control as Tom led him from the room, his hand on the small of his back.

"Oh, what has happened since the meeting?" Tom inquired, a mix of amusement and exasperation in his tone.

"Bellatrix's dress broke." Harry replied, grinning at Tom's wave of resignation.

"No broken dresses at her ball." He muttered, making Harry laugh at the repeat phrase.

"I see that's an actual rule."

"Oh yes. She declared it so when someone wore a repaired dress to a Malfoy Ball before I fell. She thought it a huge insult." Tom informed him, rolling his eyes.

"Yeah, I can imagine." Harry shook his head, "Thankfully, I had a back-up that was easy enough to alter and adjust."

"I can only imagine what you have come up with for Bella."

The pair of them reached the ballroom and Harry blinked around in astonishment; it had been completely transformed. It reminded him of the Yule ball two years previous, but more Malfoy – the floor looked like glistening ice.

"Holy Merlin," He muttered, looking around.

"Narcissa has really pulled out all the stops." Tom agreed, "Even Lucius looks surprised."

It was true, the Malfoy Lord had paused next to them in the doorway and was looking rather stunned at the sight of his ballroom.

"She absolutely terrifies me." Lucius told them seriously, "I didn't even know this had happened."

"You did marry a Black." Rodophus's voice pointed out, "We have to learn to be terrified of our wives." The three Lords turned to see the elder Lestrange strutting down the hall in dark silver robes with tones of dark purple.

"Nice strut." Harry commented with a smirk. Rodophus grinned and puffed out his chest.

"I believe I have you to thank for my wife's amazing look." He said.

"That would be true." Harry confirmed, chuckling at the man's look of pride, "I take it you approve."

"Oh I very much do."

"What have you done this time?" Lucius sighed and Harry pouted.

"It was nothing! Besides, I didn't hear you complaining at the Greengrass ball." Harry stated.

"Fair," Lucius allowed, smirking slightly in remembrance.

"Where's Rabastan?" Tom questioned and Rodolphus smirked.

"He's making sure he looks good enough to impress McKinnon." Rodolphus said with a smirk and then he blanched, catching sight of Harry's pointed look, "You can't harm my brother."

"We shall see his behaviour this evening, won't we." Harry returned sweetly. The four of them made their way over to the champagne in wait for the other four before the ball officially began. Draco came, dressed in an icy blue, escorting his mother in on his arm, he flashed an amused look at Harry as Rabastan followed him escorting Bella.

"Dear Merlin," Lucius muttered, catching sight of his wife and then his sister-in-law. "You do it on purpose." He said to Harry, not giving the teen chance to argue as he went to his wife.

"Rude."

"He's probably not wrong." Tom pointed out and Harry huffed.

"You are supposed to be on my side."

"Dark Lord."

"You suck,"

"Later," Tom quipped, causing Harry to nearly snort his drink.

"I hate you," He exclaimed, but he was laughing.

"Harry, you look incredible," Narcissa complimented, "I have never seen such a style before."

"Thank you – it was Luna." He said, "You are a picture, as always."

"This is my favourite dress," She allowed, "All of your work is beautiful. I find myself looking forward to see what else you have created for this evening."

Light music began playing over as they continued their discussion, signalling the official start to the ball. Obviously, his best friends wanted a strong front because they were the first two guests to arrive. Hermione was in a gown of pure white with a plunging neckline, it was embroidered with lace snowflakes that glistened with diamonds as she moved. Ron was in pale blue and white, they were styled similar to the ones Harry wore to the Greengrass ball, but his were not as fitted and had more flare around the arms and at the foot. They greeted their hosts, but the Malfoys had to leave so Narcissa finished speaking to Harry and made her way to the doors with her husband and son just as other guests started to arrive. Harry was surprised at how quickly the ballroom filled with people, he spotted Luna and Blaise in the crowd and smirked.

"Time to mingle I suppose." He said to Tom.

"Do not initiate anything with Izar without my presence." Tom ordered and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"You don't want to miss the show, do you?"

Tom didn't answer but his smirk said it all as he headed towards the Lord Avery. Harry bit back a chuckle and made his own way through the gathering crowd, he stopped to say a brief hello to the Greengrasses and to his friends before Xeno Lovegood introduced him to the elderly Lord and Lady Gamp, who Harry did not know or recognise.

"It is good to meet you for the first time, Lord Potter—Black, allow me to introduce my wife, Lady Eugena Gamp." Lord Gamp greeted, "We did not get to speak at the Greengrass ball."

"It is my pleasure, Lord and Lady Gamp." Harry replied, shaking the surprisingly strong grip of the man that had hair as white as Dumbledore and kissing the ladies hand.

"How are you finding your first full season?" Lord Gamp inquired.

"Very interesting," Harry answered, then a polite smile appeared on his face, "Though, I do believe I chose a unique season to debut."

The Gamps chuckled slightly nodding.

"Indeed you did, young Lord." Lady Gamp agreed, "I do not believe there had been this much political unrest in all our sixty years on the circuit."

Harry barely stopped his reaction to her words, he hadn't known the Gamps had held the Headship for so long.

"Even within the last war?" Harry said instead.

"Oh no. While during the last war the ministry was in disarray, there were no political backlash that affected all three sectors as much as Dumbledore's recent faux pars have." She told him, "Especially now he has lost the position of Headmaster."

"Dumbledore's actions have been questionable for a number of years." Xeno said, "His position should have been questioned long ago."

"Yes, that may be true, however, Dumbledore has not amassed the amount of power he holds by being unable to play the best of political games." Lord Gamp pointed out.

"He knows how to slip out of situations which would have buried anyone else and come out with his shining reputation intact."

"But this time, the secrets of his past and then the truth about the Blood Quills could not be ignored." Harry said.

"I was horrified to find out that had been happening to our young." Lady Gamp said shaking her head.

"I read that you suffered particularly due to this negligence." Lord Gamp hedged and Harry nodded.

"Yes, Umbridge took an intense dislike to me." He confirmed, "I was given a record number of detention from her." He curled his hand in to a fist allowing his glamour to drop and reveal the scarred words.

"Oh my," Lady Gamp gasped, "To see it with my own eyes
 this does explain the unrest at Lord Smiths family ball."

"I did hear that Lord Smith in particular is irate over the discovery." Harry acknowledged, "He was one of the governors that signed to have Dumbledore released from duty."

"Yes, that is indeed correct, young Lord, he was very forceful in his arguments as to why he went with the motion." She said seriously, "Although he was not the only one to have such an opinion. Lady Bones is infuriated, her niece came forward and confirmed to her that she had been punished the with Quill; she believes that Umbridge used a compulsion to keep the students from revealing the detentions as her niece knows the laws on Blood Quill use."

"That is an idea with much merit." Xeno mused, nodding slowly, "My Luna is knowledgeable; she should have noted the illegal object, too."

"Thinking about it, as many of those it was used on were in the defence group I formed last year, the use of the Quills should have been brought up at least by a dozen different students." Harry added.

"Hm, it is a shame that there is no chance to investigate further." Xeno said, "Allowing minors to be subjected to compulsion charms applied by an unqualified witch or wizard is illegal."

"Umbridge did not have a charms NEWT?" Harry said in surprise.

"No, and she wasn't the best qualified for the position in the first place given that she only got an A in her defence NEWT."

"Well, seeing as they were trying to get everyone through the exams on theory alone, she was nastily perfect." Harry said, his lip curling slightly, "It wouldn't surprise me if she specifically learned the compulsion charm just for the job, but it can't be proven now she's dead."

"Still, even without an investigation, Dumbledore's reputation is in such a state it will only take the speculation of compulsion charms to affect him." Lord Gamp remarked.

"Speculation which is almost guaranteed if Lady Bones has already spoken out about it. Lord Smith is angry enough to believe it and it is not too much of a stretch to say that both Lords Spinett and Ogden are thinking about it." Harry reasoned.

"You are quite right, Lord Boot, too, was speaking with Lady Bones over the situation; he Grand-nephew's name was listed as having suffered." Lady Gamp recalled.

"Dumbledore has definitely not done himself any favours." Xeno concluded.

"We have to wait for him to reveal his hand." Harry said, "He has to be feeling some pressure now."

"Oh undoubtedly," Lord Gamp agreed, "But as to how that pressure will convert in to actions is unknown. For now, we all wait."

"Patience is a selective trait of mine," Harry joked lightly, receiving chuckles for his effort, "I do not want to keep you any longer, but it has been a pleasure meeting you this evening."

"You, too, Lord Potter-Black,"

"Xeno, good to speak with you."

Harry left the three of them and weaved through the crowd, he briefly spoke to Lord Davis and Lord Jugson before something caught his attention and he went straight over.

"Lord Prince, how absolutely delightful it is to see you here this evening!" Harry greeted the dour man as brightly as was acceptable once he was within the circle the man stood in.

"I loathe both you and this ball." Snape informed him darkly and Harry very nearly snorted. Both Lucius and Rodolphus were looking slightly amused and Tom was outright smirking, seemingly gaining pleasure at how uncomfortable Snape looked. And he really did look uncomfortable. It wasn't obvious, but having spent loads of time around the man in the past five years Harry could tell.

"I cherish our time together too, Prince." Harry returned, "I only came over to ask what Narcissa threatened you with."

"And just why exactly do you believe my wife has threatened him?" Lucius inquired with a raised eyebrow.

"Other than the fact that she threatens everyone, of course." Rodolphus added and Harry snickered before all three men nodded in agreement to his words.

"Well, specifically this time, I thought it was obvious." Harry said to them, "There's no way that Prince chose to wear colour without incentive."

Harry wisely ducked out of the circle as he saw Snape's eyes start to narrow and moved swiftly through the people until he was safely by Narcissa's side. She was stood with two other Ladies, the first one was Naomi so he wasn't surprised, but the third one threw him.

"Good evening, Ladies." He greeted them.

"Harry, allow us to introduce our friend, now representing the House of Alyn; Heiress Martina." Narcissa told him and it clicked: This was the previous Lady Parkinson – woops.

"It's very good to meet you under different circumstances." Harry said, kissing her hand. She offered a polite smile.

"I am glad to meet you once again," She replied, "Your actions gave reason for my father to annul my marriage to Parkinson so I offer my thanks."

"Then you are most welcome." Harry returned.

"I have always wondered why your father agreed to the match anyway." Naomi mused, "The Noble and Most Ancient House of Alyn has never married out of its own neutral zone before."

"House Parkinson had very promising business ventures. My father was unaware just how much of that did not belong to Parkinson himself." She said.

"While the business was promising and successful, he took so much capitol from the Blacks to get it successful that way that most of the profit would have went straight back to the Blacks should it have been repaids straight away. The previous Lord Parkinson came forth with a repayment plan that would have worked had his son not ignored it when he took over suddenly." Harry explained. "He ruined himself."

"How is your daughter taking this?" Narcissa wondered and Martina's lips pursed.

"She has little time to learn how to conform to the correct behaviour of a daughter to the House of Alyn else she be cast out." Martina answered, "My father is furious over this and refuses for any future mistakes, no matter the person responsible."

"She will come to realise the opportunity she had been offered, no doubt." Naomi commented.

"She is learning quickly," Martina confirmed, "She wished to come this evening but father did not deem her ready so I was sent alone."

"I am glad you could make it, it is good to have you return to the correct circle." Narcissa stated.

"Yes, it is a joy to be back." Martina replied with a true smile, "I must say, I am astounded to have missed to much – including, what appears to be a new designer."

She looked over their gowns with an appreciative eye as the other three shared a smile.

"Yes, HPB is rather exclusive at the present time. Only five people in the world own any of their gowns." Narcissa said proudly.

"Should the branch out, we shall definitely put forth your name for potential clientele." Naomi assured.

"It truly is wonderful to be back." Martina sighed happily, "Now, I must ask: Lord Davis' younger brother is not married, is he?"

The three women smirked.

"As a strong ally of the House Davis, I believe we can find out enough information." Naomi suggested pleased.

"I shall leave you both." Narcissa decided, "Do keep me updated."

"I will escort you back to your husband, my dear Lady." Harry said, before turning back to the other two ladies. "It was good to speak with you both."

"You, too,"

Harry held his arm out for Narcissa and the pair of the walked to where Tom, Lucius, Rodolphus and Severus were stood, though the group had now grown to include Bellatrix, Draco, Blaise and Ron. Harry spotted Luna, Hermione and Rabastan speaking with Lord Flint on the other side of the room.

"What do you think of the House of Alyn's current movement?" Harry asked Narcissa as they took their places within the circle.

"I doubt they will break their neutral stance." Narcissa replied, "However, given the lack of attendance at the previous balls, it may sway the Lord to follow Greengrass at the very least."

"Wonderful,"

"Her appearance here wasn't the only surprise, of course." Narcissa continued, "Severus, you have been very well received."

"And managed to raise plenty of questions." Ron added.

"That is to be expected given the current political climate. Everyone wants to know why now."

"Really, that is a question they should be able to answer themselves." Harry said, "Look what has happened recently – everyone who is anyone knows that the best place for information is at these balls."

"People are merely getting away with themselves. Tensions are high, as we said, and its likely to last up until the Wizengamot session." Draco pointed out.

"Which is good because people are being lax about revealing information." Hermione put in, from where she appeared with Luna and Rabastan.

"Oh?"

"Yes, we have just come from a fascinating conversation with Lord Flint, who had more to reveal about the goblin tip off." She confirmed, "It's apparently more popular that we first thought, but it's been kept very quiet."

"If that's true, why have we not heard of any action?" Lucius asked.

"Bones." Rabastan answered simply, "She's very much against it and is basically using all of her power to keep anyone from issuing any command to have aurors posted at the bank."

"She's been extremely busy then." Harry noted, "I've have a very enlightening conversation with Xeno and the Gamps: Bones believes that Umbridge put compulsions on everyone who used the Quills and is spreading her thoughts; Smith, Spinett and Boot seem to be listening."

"That's a viable theory." Tom said, "Considering the names released that were subjected to the Quills, it seems strange that it was never reported."

"Especially so given Bones' niece, Susan, was targeted." Draco continued, "And there is no way that she didn't know the laws on Blood Quills."

"We'll need to speak with the twins and get them to pull the history from the DMLE bugs, see if they've picked up anything about the goblins." Harry decided, "Turn our attention to that as we can do little else about the Quills."

"You'll need to set up a meeting with the goblins, too." Luna reminded him, "We cannot be seen agreeing with this in anyway."

"I'll do it the day we go back."

Lucius flicked his want bringing a halt to the music and announced the start of the meal, Harry knew exactly where he was sitting so he went to move over to the head table with Tom but was stopped by Luna.

"Someone is very unhappy about your placement this evening." She warned him, smirking slightly. Harry flashed a rather feral grin.

"Three guesses who and the first two don't count." He joked.

"Have fun," She laughed, gliding off to meet her father and take her seat at the second table next to the Davises and the Gamps. Harry slipped in to his seat next to Tom and Ron, forcefully crushing his smirk at the expression on Nott's face; this was going to be fun! Light conversation struck up around the table as the menu's appeared and Harry fell in to speaking with Ron, Rabastan and Hermione about some of the amazing wards Ron and Bastan had found during their work, noting with amusement the looks of disgust he was getting from Nott.

They had managed to open the conversation up to the entire table as the moved from wards to old and forgotten magics half way through the main course, though Harry was fighting laughter as he had Ron giving a rating to each glare Harry got from Nott. Hermione, the devious woman that she was was hiding a smirk behind her wine glass as she watched Nott with a calculating glint in her eye.

"It is much easier to discuss such things with your placement this evening." Hermione said to Harry, her tone pitched just enough to catch everyone's attention. Harry wanted to cackle when Nott so easily rose to the bait she threw for him.

"Yes, one cannot help the decline in satisfactory lineage for important decisions." Nott sneered eyeing Harry with evident distaste and Harry smiled coldly, regarding Nott with poison in his eyes.

"Hm, yes, I suppose to a closed minded individual such as yourself, my mother's blood would classify as unsatisfactory," Harry agreed, "It is not a surprise that this comes from you. You have obviously ignored that she was a charms prodigy, the youngest person to ever gain a charms mastery and acknowledged as being able to things with charms never seen before by the board. She was also the youngest ever section Queen. But yes, highly unsatisfactory."

"It was all bought with Potter money, I bet. A pureblood fortune wasted on a pet, such a disgrace. She would have never had the ability with her blood." Nott spat and Harry's expression went dangerous, his eyes all but glowing as his magic rose to the surface and the entire table went icy cold, so much so that their breath started to become visible. Nott was receiving frosty looks from Harry's friends, and looks of disbelief from the others, his words so far from acceptable custom.

"Your words go to show just how blinded you are, Izar Nott, but I do not mind. Something as trivial as blood is not something that bothers me, your repetitive use of it as an insult grows tiring." Harry waved him off like an annoying insect and Nott flushed with anger, "However, for someone like you, someone who holds so much in regard to blood, it must kill you to see me, someone who is so tainted, sat here; to know that I control two exceptionally powerful House. It must burn."

"You have no right to be in control of a pureblood House, let alone two of them. You do not deserve the power." Nott growled and Harry laughed darkly.

"You have no idea of my true power, Nott. So much emphasis on blood and you've missed the bigger picture, but then this is a common occurrence for you." Harry took a sip of his wine glass and schooled his expression in to that of subdued understanding, "I can only imagine the utter shame and disgust that you must feel daily when you think of your eldest son."

Nott paled at Harry's words as most of the table looked confused, the teen smirked at the elder Lord and sat back against his chair.

"I do not know what you mean." Nott spoke calmly bar one single shake, but Harry caught it and his smirk grew nasty before his vanished and an expression of sympathy appeared, so sincere a few were questioning whether or not they had really seen the smirk.

"No, I guess you wouldn't. I expect you vanished such a blemish from the Nott name, with your staunch belief in blood superiority it would be the only thing you could have done." Harry nodded gently, heedless to Nott's morphing expression, "I would too, if I cared as much about blood as you do. I am sure you did just about everything you could to hide the evidence of your squib son."

Sharp indrawn breathes and gasps rippled across the table when Harry finished speaking. The Malfoys, the Lestranges, the Greengrasses, Prince and Tom all looked between Harry and Nott with keen eyes, while Ron and Hermione were barely hiding their smirks as Nott became visibly livid. Harry kept his face innocently thoughtful, but on the inside he was just gearing up for more drama; this was brilliant.

"You lie," Nott hissed, red faced and fuming, and Harry looked at him sharply.

"I have told you once before not to claim I have been dishonest unless you could prove otherwise. But I shall allow discrepancies, it must be hard to bear the burden of a squib son alone for so long, this must be a challenge for you to be so open with everyone here tonight."

"Do not speak of things you will never understand, you jumped up, disgusting halfblood." Nott spat, his magic starting to rise in his anger. Harry gave him a smile full of white teeth and his eyes shone.

"Yes yes, I'm a halfblood, boohoo, such a disgrace. I know, I've heard it all before." Harry rolled his eyes and flicked his hand dismissively, "Though, there are multiple people you have again insulted with such derogative tagging here at this table alone."

Nott's eyes flick fearfully to the Dark Lord sat to Harry's left and Harry threw his head back and laughed.

"Oh, Nott, normally I would definitely play with that little slip up of yours but that is not the real issue here." Harry ignored the looks of confusion he got from practically everyone at that, too intent on Nott. "No, I think the opinion should come from your son. After all, true supremacists believe that children blood adopted in to a pureblood house does not make them real purebloods."

Nott went from an angry red to a pasty white within seconds, something that no one failed to notice and Harry wanted to rub his hands together in glee at the shock confusion and the slow comprehension coming to people's faces. Theodore Nott Jr looked almost painfully confused, and Harry had a brief moment of sympathy for the other teen because his argument wasn't with his school mate.

"What are you talking about?" Theodore demanded and Harry adopted a confused innocent expression with a bit of difficulty, Izar Nott looked as if he wanted to kill him and then kill himself much to the Gryffindor's amusement.

"Oh, I am so sorry. I thought you would have known." Harry gasped, looking apologetic, "I mean, it is the custom to explain past blood adoptions to their children after all. That and I am surprised you don't remember," Harry paused and tilted his head to the side, "Unless you were obliviated, the process would have been painful with all the muggleborn blood it had to burn through."

"I'll – you – kill – filth!" Nott ground out, unable to fully speak in his rage, his expression twisted in to blind anger.

"It makes sense, I suppose, you not knowing. Your older brother was the first born and he was a squib, so the last thing needed to a House at this point is it then being discovered the next born heir wasn't even a true Nott." Harry continued airily, as if he didn't hear the threat or couldn't feel the magic in the air. He looked at Nott in amazement, "You must have been desperate for a magical heir to alter such fixed beliefs and use blood adoption. Of course, it could have been a last resort, an even bigger cover-up. Your late wife went 'missing', didn't she? Just after the announcement of your son -,"

Harry was cut off because Nott lost it and threw a cutting curse at his throat, Harry only just caught most of the spell, but with the rage behind the curse fuelling it a line of red appeared on the pale skin of his neck as blood beaded from the wound. The entire ball room fell utterly silent at the sudden flash of the curse and Harry reached up to touch his bleeding wound with a small amount of genuine surprise, calming each of his friends with a quick glance.

"I am going to take the initiative to assume that you have not shared such knowledge with our esteemed company. If you did not tell your son, nor anyone else, I am going to assume you haven't stated the truth of your son's origins, meaning that the marriage contract you signed, in good faith, with Hadrian would be compromised." Harry tiled his head, flashing Nott, who was on his feet glaring at Harry with his wand clutched in his hand, a truly horrible smile. "Don't worry though, you won't be the Lord renegotiating the contract. What will your father think?"

Nott lost it completely at that and lunged over the table at Harry, much to the shock of the rest of the ballroom and their table. That attack Harry was expecting and he deflected the spells with ease, leading the deranged man away from their table. Nott was flinging spells with a blind disregard as to where they went or what they were and Harry couldn't help his dark grin as he span, shielded and dodged all of the incoming spells, goading the soon-to-be ex Nott Lord with laughter.

"Izar, look at the mess you've made! Such brash behaviour is unbecoming of a Lord, why, it's almost as if you are a filthy muggle, lunging at me so." Harry taunted lightly, spinning away from an asphyxiation curse.

"I am going to kill you, you foul, worthless piece of filth." Nott snarled. A bright green curse rushed towards Harry making the room gasp at the use of the killing curse, he conjured up a large slab of concrete to take the spell lest it hit someone else and vanished in to the dust of the debris. His laughter assured everyone he was alive and when he stepped out of the dust cloud there were teeth to his grin.

"Oh Izar, you poor, misplaced fool. You will do no such thing." Harry said chidingly, as if he was speaking to a young child, "We are at a ball, and as such an event you are supposed to dance."

On his final word, Harry finally went offensive and released a torrent of spells that immediately forced the Nott Lord on the defence, he could barely keep up with the speed in which they were being sent and at least two spells got through his shields because he was bleeding. It was very apparent to the eagerly watching room that Harry is merely playing with Nott, he didn't give his opponent even a chance to cast anything other than shields. Harry slashed his wand viciously through the air and disarmed Nott, his own wand going to the Nott Lord's throat as he grabbed Nott's robes and held him in place. His smile was long gone by now, his expression a cold mask as his eyes all but pulsed with his magic.

"Izar Izar Izar," His bright tone was all the more twisted with his expression and position and Nott shuddered in his hold, "You insulted my mother who died for me, you insulted myself multiple times and then had the audacity to curse me. Me, Lord to the Noble and Most Ancient Houses of Potter and Black, who you are so far below that it isn't even humorous. You dare to slight me at your own ball, in some misplaced hate campaign to make yourself feel better about your pathetic life and to further hide your past. Well let me inform you of something; you failed." Harry got right in Nott's face, his light tone darkening as he spoke until he was almost snarling, and he didn't need to know that his friends were waiting to see if he lost it or not.

"You have insulted my heritage, my House and my honour, and upon that do I claim a debt of life to the Houses of Potter and Black for not ending your miserable existence."

The magic in the room suddenly grew heavy as the claim was evaluated and many people gasped at his actions, the magic pulsed and flashed and the crests of House Potter and House Black appeared above Nott's head for all to see. They shone brightly before sinking in to Nott to seal the claim, Nott groaned in pain at the weight of the debt, dropping to the floor heavily when Harry released him and took a step back. His expression was one of blatant disgust as he regarded the wizard at his feet, giving on final insult as he turned his back and walked away. Luna was by his side in a second, healing the cut he had received from Nott's first attack and Harry offered her a smile and a kiss on the cheek in thanks. He then turned to the Malfoys and offered a formal full bow.

"I do humbly apologise for such a disruption to your wonderful ball, Lord and Lady Malfoy." He said sincerely. Lucius inclined his head in acceptance while Narcissa gave him a slight smile, moving over to him and giving Nott a dark look.

"It is of no consequence to you, you were not the one to initiate such base actions, Harry – Lord to my birth House." The added title wasn't necessary as she had already declared her side in the argument by walking to Harry, but it emphasised her point and indicated that the House Malfoy would chose Harry every time.

"Lord Nott, for your actions on this night, your invitation to the Malfoy Yule Ball has been recinded." Lucius intoned coldly, "Leave my manor immediately or you shall be ejected by the wards."

Nott pulled himself to his feet without grace, glaring at Harry, who offered a smug smirk, and stalked out of the door.

"I apologise for the disruption of the meal. Please, return to your food and enjoy the rest of the evening." Lucius called to the room as a whole. Immediately conversations burst forth as everyone who wasn't at the head table discussed what could have possibly happened to resort to a duel.

"Lord and Lady Malfoy. I am so sorry for my father's actions." Theodore Nott told them, he was looking as if he didn't know what to do with himself, massively embarrassed and quite shocked.

"You are not to blame for his conflict." Narcissa assured him.

"Custom says I should leave." Theo said, looking towards the door. "He'll be in a fury for a while."

"You will be welcome after this day." Draco told him, and Theo have him a grateful look.

"Thank you."

"Go to your grandfather's home for the night." Tom instructed him and Theodore blinked at him.

"My Lord?" He might have squeaked, but no one pulled him on it thankfully.

"I am meeting with him tomorrow. Inform him I sent you to him, he will not question it."

"Yes, My Lord." Theo bowed and left discretely, leaving the head table to reorganise themselves and act as if nothing was amiss, even if they did shoot Harry looks from the corner of their eyes. The teen seemed as if he had not moved but his eyes were shining in pleasure, which gave him away.

"You enjoyed that." Tom murmured, turning slightly so no one else heard.

"You know exactly how much." Harry didn't even bother to deny it, glancing at Tom with a slight smirk, "Though I do believe you might have enjoyed it even more than I did."

The excitement and desire Tom was feeling had only grown since he had verbally torn Nott to shreds and the Dark Lord smirked.

"Indeed. You manipulated the entire situation better than any I have seen before, you wanted him to lose control and you did it perfectly."

"It was gentle." Harry pointed out and Tom nearly scoffed.

"Your version of gentle, yes."

"I didn't kill him, did I? Besides, I could have accomplished a lot more damage when I was duelling him."

"Of that I have no doubt." Tom agreed easily.

"Anyway, I don't see you complaining about my actions."

"No, complaining is the furthest thing from my mind." Tom mused and then his voice went lower still, "Your grace, your power and your beauty were at its finest and I did so enjoy watching."

Harry had to look down, desperately fighting back a blush that wanted to rise and hiding his smile.

"You and your damn charm." Harry grumbled, turning back to the table before Tom had his face glowing. He kicked the man for good measure when he chuckled.

Oh Snake, that was truly beautiful. Hermione all but purred in his mind.

A true work of art. Ron agreed, I feel so bad for Neville not getting to watch that.

I am sure we can get Lucius to allow us to show him. Harry said gleefully. Let Nott recover from that, the prick.

Harry bit back a smile at the sound of his friend's somewhat malicious laughter in his head, smirking at the fact Nott was the centre of conversation throughout the room.

"It is as if his mind took a leave of absence." Narcissa said in distaste, "We have had six ground breaking articles that have flayed Dumbledore, of all people, and Nott knew who was responsible. Why he would then believe it was a wise idea to then attack the very same person is so far past idiotic that I cannot place a word upon it."

"His hatred of Harry has become increasingly apparent since we came together." Ron said, "What the real question should be is why he hates Harry so much."

"Other than blood, of course." Harry put in amused.

"Yes, other than blood." Hermione agreed with a roll of her eyes. "Although, I cannot believe he brought up the blood argument at this table."

"It just shows his lack of control. His blind hatred caused him to disregard all of the factors pointing to how his actions were foolish." Draco said, "After his slight at his own ball, it was obvious he was no longer actually thinking."

"Has he given any indication as to why he hates you so?" Hadrian asked Harry.

"No. Until this year, I have never actually interacted with him, so I cannot say he holds any past transgressions against me." Harry replied. "I must apologise, Hadrian, for the abrupt revelation. I am afraid I got away with myself."

"I have to admit my shock, but it is much preferential than to be unknowing." The Greengrass Lord replied, "You are not at fault for his lack of honesty."

Harry nodded in thanks.

"The consequences of his actions are going to be far reaching." Lucius mused, "I am almost disappointed that we have no future balls."

"Yes, but let us not forget the upcoming Wizengamot." Harry said.

"This year has really been surprising." Narcissa said in delight, "And with the Wizengamot, it isn't even over yet."

"Yes, since the summer things have been exceptionally busy."

"I truly wonder the cause." Lucius drawled, mock glaring at Harry, who adopted an expression of the utmost indignation.

"You wouldn't be blaming me for such stirring, would you, Lucius?"

"If the wand fits," Snape drawled, a slight smirk of amusement.

"I claim utter ignorance." Harry declared, "Just because Dumbledore's rapid decline happens to align with the time I appeared it means nothing."

"The fact that he has not yet caught on given your summer shows the fool is blind to what he wants to see." Tom muttered and Harry grinned.

"Shame that."

"Oh yes, I can feel your sincerity." Hermione joked.

"Joking aside, I am stunned that Dumbledore has no idea." Rabastan mused, "I spend a good three quarters of my time in the school and he has clue."

"So do the twins," Ron added, "I'm starting to believe they are in the school more than we are, and we still attend."

"That was the whole point in me becoming, well, me." Harry pointed out, "He is so focused on me that everything else goes unseen. For crying out loud, look at our defence professor."

"Yeah, so much for Dumbledore's omniscience." Hermione put in and they shared a laugh.

"Is there something wrong with your defence professor?" Hadrian wondered, a touch of confusion and Harry almost grinned.

"He's a right bastard." He answered instead, a bland smile coming to his face as he watched the reactions of the rest of the table, "Real slave driver, complete perfectionist, kind of knowledgeable I guess, a bit of practical talent. But then, I can't complain really, he is better than Umbridge sooo I'll take it, despite him being an utter control freak and the mild temper-,"

Tom kicked him to shut him up and it took everything Harry had not to burst out laughing, especially when he saw the looks he was receiving from the Lestranges, Snape and the elder Malfoys, and his friends looked like they wanted to make him stop talking. He glanced up and Tom and had to duck his head to stop his humour from visibly showing, the man was looking so very unimpressed, but Harry could feel his amusement through the link.

"No thoughts on the defence professor, Marvolo?" Harry wondered, biting his lip so he didn't grin.

"I hate you," Tom informed him, "So very much."

Harry snickered.

"In all seriousness, Hadrian, you needn't worry about this year's professor. He's definitely one of the best we've had; I would say the best but I am completely bias against Remus Lupin." Harry told him honestly.

"Your comment
?"

"Ah, we just happen to know that while Dumbledore believes our defence professor to be strictly light, he's not." Harry replied, "Dumbledore refuses to have anyone who leans towards the dark or even neutral really in the DADA position."

"I see."

"It's a foolish rule of his," Hermione sighed, "The only reason Remus was granted the position was because Dumbledore had him in his web."

"Now that Dumbledore's out of the school we might get lucky and have proper teachers from now on." Ron said, "It's not difficult to get better than some of the ones we've had."

"Lockhart." Chimed the four students who had suffered through that idiot.

"Whatever happened to Gilderoy Lockhart?" Hadrian questioned, "After his stint as a teacher I heard nothing else."

"He's in the permanent wing of St Mungos." Harry replied, "Idiot tried to Obliviate Ron and I with a broken wand."

"Safe to say it didn't go well." Ron added cheerfully.

"Was he not charged for trying to harm a minor?" Naomi questioned astonished; Harry gave a sardonic laugh.

"Good Merlin, no. Dumbledore couldn't let the rest of the world know that he allowed two twelve year olds save the school because he had done absolutely nothing to stop the petrifications."

"He truly is an odious man."

"He'll get his comeuppance." Hermione said, her tone somewhat dark, "I can almost picture his face when he sees us in the Wizengamot."

"That will be a beautiful sight." Ron agreed.

"The amount of joy I feel when I think of the upcoming session is immeasurable." Lucius admitted.

"I do not believe you are alone in such feelings, Lucius." Hadrian put in, "It will be a busy session."

"Seriously, Cissa dear, what have you done to change your food sources?" Naomi questioned, "The entire meal has been fantastic, but this panna cotta is phenomenal."

"Yes, this isn't your usual house elves." Bella agreed, "That fish was better than that restaurant we used to go to in Paris."

"The chicken was stunning," Hermione added, "And all of the presentation was beautiful."

"Even the cleansers seem like more," Snape added.

"The cheesecake is the best thing I have ate all year." Rabastan decided seriously.

"The cheesecake is wonderful, is it not?" Tom confirmed, savouring a bite of his own and fighting his own amusement as he watched Harry out of the corner of his eye. The teen had apparently forgotten that most of the food for the evening came from him and was now becoming more embarrassed by the second at the compliments, looking as if he wanted to sink down to the floor and hide; it was hilarious.

"Most of the menu was individually selected and then hand made." Narcissa told them, "I am more than pleased with the results."

"Oh you should be." Naomi agreed, "All of it was flawless. Do you know if this person is for hire?"

"I do not know. You may want to ask him." Narcissa replied, her eyes flicking to Harry. The rest of the table now paid mind to the teen who had sunken slightly in his chair and was blushing madly.

"No way!" Rabastan whisper exclaimed, "You made this glorious cheesecake?"

"I uh did a starter, two mains, all fish, two deserts and the cleansers." Harry answered under all of their expectant looks. "The cheesecake and panna cotta are mine."

"Well are you not the biggest contradiction of all time?" Hadrian told him, an amused twist to his lips and Harry flashed an unremorseful grin.

"I try."

"Somehow, I don't think you do.

His friends barely covered their laughter and Harry didn't bother, shaking his head.

"If I'm honest, I stick with the things I like and that seems to be a very eclectic mix of things." Harry admitted, "Whether or not I am good at those things is open to others interpretation.

"Potter, how can you cook so well and yet we put you in front of a cauldron at risk of death?" Snape wondered, his eyebrow raised.

"No idea, I just don't work well with potions." Harry shrugged, "Well, that's not strictly true, I can make quite a few potions but ask me to use magic on one and then we'll have a problem." He glowered at his friends amused expressions. The meal finally came to an end, a bit later because of the Nott incident, but the gossip was flowing rapidly and everyone wanted to know what had started the issue. Harry was pleased, there was no way Nott could worm out of the situation at all, and given that he was the one to throw the first spell it looked even worse for him. Harry hadn't even managed to reach for an evening drink before Tom's arm had wrapped his arm around him and was pulling him out on to the dancefloor.

"Have you suddenly changed your mind about dancing, Tom?" Harry wondered, not really protesting as Tom swung him in to an opening waltz hold.

"I recently discovered that the right partner makes it all the more enjoyable." He replied, smirking at Harry's light blush.

"Damn your smooth words," Harry grumbled, pointedly ignoring Tom's pleased expression and smug feeling through the link.

"I've always been told the truth is all the more powerful." Tom countered, chuckling slightly as Harry's blush darkened, easily twirling the teen in time with the music.

"Don't make me pull the same stunt as I did at Zabini's ball." Harry warned, "I'd like to see you explain that one to Narcissa."

"You are a very evil individual." Tom informed him and Harry grinned.

"I've been learning from the best."

"I do not appreciate you using your privileged lessons against me." Tom sniffed and Harry barely caught his snort.

"Privileged lessons?" He repeated incredulously.

"Of course, I am a master of the art."

Harry burst out laughing at that, he couldn't help himself, shaking his head at Tom's smirk.

"I'll give you that," He allowed, "I think I've spent my evil for the evening anyway. I don't think Nott is going to recover any time soon."

Tom released a low chuckle, pulling Harry closer as the music slowed.

"Oh he's not going to be getting back up from that, Snake." Tom agreed darkly, and his smirk stretched, "I cannot wait to tell Theodore; he'll be furious."

"Do you think he knows about any of it?" Harry wondered.

"I honestly do not know." Tom admitted, "I have been a confident for Theodore for many years, and not once has he mentioned a blood adoption, squib or a disownment. However, all three topics are very serious to pureblood Houses, so it very well could have been kept silent."

"Hm. Either way, I'm not sorry."

"You've no need. Theodore is already aware that any restraint you might have had is long gone." Tom informed him, "I have not had a response from my letter speaking of the Nott ball, but we are meeting tomorrow so I did not expect one."

"Am I still coming with you?"

"Of course. We will stay for lunch no doubt."

They danced the first three songs together before the dance changed, Harry was span off and ended up dancing with Draco while Narcissa danced with Tom.

"What you did to Nott this evening was possibly the most brutal thing I have seen with words alone." Draco informed him, an amused smirk on his face. "It was glorious."

"Why thank you," Harry said, biting back a grin, "Are you able to pass on my sincere apologies to Nott Jr?"

"Yes, I'll speak to him tomorrow while the Dark Lord is speaking with the Snr." Draco assured, and then he eyed him, "How in Merlin's name did you even find out about it if even Theo was unaware?"

"Luna," Harry answered simply, chuckling when Draco shuddered.

"Ok, seriously, how does she do it?" He complained.

"Well, this one wasn't anything normal Luna." Harry told him, "She merely tested his blood."

"Huh, that's not Luna at all." Draco agreed, "I'm so glad she's on our side."

"Tell me about it."

Harry span Draco off to Ron and caught Luna, flashing a grin as his sister's look of pride.

"Well done."

"I think I got him," He joked and she released a delighted laugh.

"Straight for the throat. I almost felt pity for him. Almost."

"I'm not going to lie; I am so happy right now that it's almost overwhelming." Harry said, twirling her around, "I can't wait for the Wizengamot now."

"I'm sad to not get to see it personally, but the first session after Yule is always a public session." Luna admitted and Harry blinked, almost stumbling in his surprise.

"Wait – is it?"

"Yes, did you not know?" Luna questioned shocked, "For the new year, the session is always open; it's one of the only sessions that cannot be closed. It allows the people, mainly the press, to see how the year is going to open. That's how so much detail makes the papers."

"Well. Doesn't that make things even more interesting?" Harry mused, "I had thought that because Dumbledore would know we could come out and be ourselves and we'd leak it through Rita ourselves." He shrugged and then he grinned, "Looks like we'll be speaking to Rita sooner than I thought."

"Oh yes. And, I was thinking, seeing as the papers will be on fire with the Wizengamot stir, it would be the perfect time to start media coverage on The Case."

She didn't need to specify which case she meant, Harry nodded, his eyes glinting.

"Given that I shall be delivering the Rat to Hadrian the day after the session, I cannot think of a better time myself." He acknowledged, "Hm, and given that Dumbledore gave personal evidence, what better lead up will there be to get him removed from the Wizengamot for the public eye."

"We can plan more at a later date, but we have a good foundation." Luna decided.

"Of course, dear sister." Harry agreed. He gave her a smile as he span her off towards Blaise, Harry caught his next dance partner and almost fell on his face when he saw it was Bellatrix. She flashed a manic grin when she noted his surprise.

"Don't worry, baby Black," She cooed, "I don't bite. Much."

Harry snorted at that, unintentionally amused by her antics.

"Save your biting for your husband." He threw back, "He will be much more receptive to it than me."

She threw back her head and laughed causing her tamed curls to bounce wildly, startling the people around them and yet still managing to stay in step.

"I'll be sure to find out," She returned with a lecherous grin and Harry found himself laughing with her.

"Poor man, doesn't know what's coming." Harry said in mock sympathy.

"Reminds me of silly little Izar," She commented in a would be light tone, but her expression betrayed her excitement, and then she pouted. "You could have made it more bloody."

"And mess up dear Cissa's lovely ballroom?" Harry mock gasped, "I wouldn't have made it out alive."

"I like you." Bellatrix decided, "I think I'll keep you." With that she gave him a smacking kiss on the cheek and bounced off to intercede a grinning Roldolphus. Harry shook his head in bewilderment and caught Hermione, who was chuckling at him.

"I see you've gotten her seal of approval."

"Honestly, with her, I'm not sure." Harry admitted laughingly. "She says she's keeping me."

"After what you just did to Nott, I'm really not surprised."

"True." Harry allowed, "So how was dancing with Rabastan?"

A light blush covered her featured and Harry smiled slightly.

"Wonderful," She told him, "He's been the perfect gentleman."

"As he should be." Harry stated, "He hurts you and I'll end him."

"I would tell you that you cannot threaten him in my honour, but I know that it is a completely pointless endeavour so I won't bother." Hermione sighed, but she gave him a smile.

"Damn straight it is. Besides, I have it on good authority that he dressed himself up to impress you this evening, so I don't think it will be too necessary." Harry informed her, watching as her blush darkened.

"I hope you are right." She murmured, "He might not be interested."

"He would be lucky to kiss the ground you walked on, Hermione." Harry said seriously, "You are intelligent, beautiful, powerful and a lovely person. If he cannot see that then he is not worthy to even share your air, let alone your life. So keep that pretty chin up and go get your man."

"Thank you, Harry." She gave him a bright smile and allowed herself to be span directly in to Rabastan's arms. Harry nearly jumped when an arm snaked around his waist, smiling slightly as he was turned to face Tom.

"Please tell me you are finished dancing for now." Harry said, his tone a borderline whine.

"Yes, let us retreat until Narcissa summons us once again." Tom agreed, leading Harry to the edge of the dancefloor.

"Thank Merlin for that. I ache."

"Ah yes, you were cooking all this morning." Tom remembered, "Come, there is a section of hidden seats."

Harry allowed Tom to steer him, collecting drinks and a selection of his crystallised fruits and nuts for them both as they went, and gratefully sank in to one of the many artistically placed seating arrangements with a sigh.

"How long do you think we'll manage?" Harry wondered, passing Tom his drink and sipping his own.

"Half an hour," Tom replied, "If we're lucky."

"Big 'if' there." Harry muttered, "Ok, I'll take whatever peace I can get."

Tom silently saluted that plan with his glass and the pair of them sat back to people watch, occasionally filling the comfortable silence between them with comments on the Malfoy guests. Harry was just explaining that he had made Luna's gown as an apology for lying to her when he spotted Narcissa's ever observant eyes scouring the room.

"Looks like our time's up." He sighed, rising to his feet and stretching the kinks out of his body.

"Pander for a bit longer, we do not have much time left; dinner ran over." Tom flashed him a smirk before slipping out of their corner. Harry chuckled to himself and left too, moving over to have a dance with the Lady of the ball much to her pleasure.

"Thank you for not obliterating my ballroom, Harry." She said, "No doubt he deserved it."

"I could not bring myself to ruin your beautiful work, Cissa." Harry returned smoothly and she smiled slightly.

"I cannot believe he has kept such secrets." She shook her head, "And to expect them not to come out, too, when he began attacking you."

"He's more foolish than I gave him credit for, that's for certain."

"I am merely glad he has been dealt with; there is no doubt that his father will be furious." Narcissa commented and Harry nodded.

"Tom believes so, but we'll know for certain tomorrow when we go to see him."

"No doubt that will be an interesting conversation."

Harry grinned, bowing out at the end of the dance and passing Narcissa to her husband. He danced with Luna, Hermione, Draco and Tom again before the end of the ball came and people started to say their goodbyes. Harry wandered over to where his friends were gathering and flashed them a grin.

"We're free and clear until school, I believe." He told them pleased.

"Just eyes and ears out." Hermione confirmed, "I can speak to the twins to make sure they have all the details pulled for when we're back at school."

"Good. I don't think there's anything else we need to be doing until then." Harry said, "So enjoy the rest of the holidays, I guess, and I'll see you at the Sanctuary."

"Nice work tonight, Snake." Ron said with a smirk, "See you at the Sanctuary."

Luna and Blaise said their own goodbyes before vanishing to find their fathers, while Draco and Harry made their way back over to Lucius and Narcissa.

"You are more than welcome to go to bed, Harry, you must be asleep on your feet." Narcissa said kindly and Harry flashed her a thankful smile in response.

"Thanks, Cissa. I'll see you for breakfast." Harry replied, fighting back a yawn. Tom appeared at the doorway, offering Harry a slight smile and an arm, which the teen happily accepted. It was only when they were a floor up and away from any remaining guests to Harry slump sideways in to Tom.

"Good Merlin I am exhausted." He sighed, his eyes slipping closed even as he walked; he knew Tom would get them to their bedroom.

"We're there now." Tom assured, waving a hand to open the doors for them. He had to hide his smile at Harry's behaviour, the teen rubbed his eyes and yawned making himself look ridiculously adorable; not that Tom would ever repeat such a thought out-loud. Tom ended up snickering and helping Harry out of his robes as his fingers kept slipping on the buckles, which led to Harry whining that Tom was picking on him and thrusting his bottom lip out in a huge pout. The pair finally got ready for bed and climbed in, Tom still chuckling at Harry's sleepy state and Harry complaining about Tom being mean.

"You are such a child." Tom informed him, his tone obviously amused at he watched Harry curl up in to a small ball at the very edge of the bed.

"Meanie." Was the petulant response he got and he scoffed, reaching over and pulling his teen back to him, turning him over as he did so. Harry was still pouting so Tom bit his lip making him hiss before kissing him softly.

"Stop pouting and sleep," Tom ordered, "I'm the Dark Lord, it's in the definition to be mean."

"Well you're not making a very good pillow at the moment so how am I supposed to sleep." Harry reasoned, poking Tom's chest until the man relented with a sigh and rolled on to his back so Harry could curl up on him.

"You are a menace." Tom stated, though his arm came up to wrap around his waist.

"Thank you,"

Chapter 50

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

If you get mad at me for anything in this fic after reading the tags then thats a you problem... sorry not sorry
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

Chapter Text

"I've just realised something," Harry said, the duvet pooling at his hips from where he sat watching Tom get ready.

"What is it?"

"I'm going to be meeting your friend just after I've either A: revealed heavily kept family secrets that he really didn't want to come out in the worst place of all, or B: revealed heavily kept family secrets that even he didn't know about and he's going to find out from us." Harry wrinkled his nose, "There is literally no way this isn't going to be awkward."

Tom shot him a raised eyebrow in the mirror from where he was combing his hair.

"Mhm, and what are you really concerned about?" He wondered, making Harry huff and look away crossing his arms and he did so. Tom rolled his eyes, moving over to run his hands through Harry's hair and tilt his head back so he could look directly in to green. "Well?"

"He is your friend, Tom." Harry complained, "How am I supposed to make a good impression given that I quite happily dumped several secrets in to the open?"

Tom chuckled fondly as he could see Harry's bottom lip starting to jut out, he kissed him lightly and shook his head.

"Just be you," Tom told him, "I am quite certain Theodore will like you for that."

"I suppose it is a bit late to be worrying about it." Harry agreed, pointedly ignoring the swell of pleasure and light blush he had gotten from Tom's certainty. That was happening a lot more recently, he was pretty sure Tom said things like that just to get him to blush. What made it worse was that Harry didn't normally blush at such things, it was more than a little annoying.

"Ever so slightly," Tom agreed amused. "You may wish to try clothes."

"Yeah yeah," He grumbled, dragging himself up and slinking towards the bathroom. "What should I wear?"

"I'm starting to believe you could wear a paper bag and look good." Tom admitted, making Harry snort, "Wear your fitted dark green robe."

"Hm, good choice." Harry's voice was muffled as the water started up and the teen had a relatively quick shower. He came out wrapped in a towel, running his hand through his hair to dry it and heading straight towards his clothes. Harry grinned at Tom's sound of approval when he paired his fitted green robe with a shirt, his black 'hide trousers and the boots he wore the night previously.

"When are we leaving?" Harry asked, doing the final button up on his robe. All of his robes were open front and he usually wore them loose, but he felt he could put a touch more effort in to a true wizard-y appearance to meet Tom's friend.

"We'll have breakfast here and leave after." Tom answered, "Theodore expects up 'this morning'."

"Merlin forbid you be a decent human and give the poor man a time." Harry muttered, and Tom smirked, snagging him by the waist and turning around. "What if we're late? That would be rude, and I don't think that's the best opening to go for."

"Dark Lord." Tom said smugly, and when Harry opened his mouth no doubt to argue he couldn't use that excuse, he added "And Theodore is more than used to it."

Harry rolled his eyes, but a smile was playing around his lips.

"You've been bullying him for too long."

"It was his decision to stick around." Tom pointed out reasonably and Harry conceded he did have a point. "Now will you please calm down. We will not be late, you have nothing to worry about in regards to last night and Theodore, and you look as incredible as usual."

Harry huffed, pressed his head to Tom's shoulder as he focused himself.

"Fine fine," He relented, "We'd better go to breakfast – Dark Lord or not, we're in Cissa's domain."

"You know I completely blame you for the fact that my followers now believe they are entitled to act in such away." Tom told him, leading them from the room.

"It's not all of your followers, it's just the Elite. Besides, you were slowly becoming sane again in the summer anyway." Harry replied and Tom scoffed.

"Please! It's more than that and you know it. Narcissa warned me to take better care of myself only last week; she warned me!" Tom sounded so put out that Harry couldn't help but burst out laughing, he got a look of venom for his troubles but it was worth it.

"That's what happens when people care apparently." Harry said once he had regained himself, "Or when you're not so terrifying that people forget that you are, you know, human."

"I should have kept the snake look." Tom sniffed.

"And gotten all of zero hands on me."

"I suppose there is that." Tom allowed. They walked in to the dining room and greeted the Malfoys and the Lestranges, taking their seats and helping themselves to the food.

"I've already had several letters this morning requesting to break the Act on account of passing out the life debt between you and Izar." Lucius informed him, his tone somewhat amused and Harry smirked.

"As soon as the Wizengamot session is through then they can spill the secrets all they wish." Harry said pleased, "Izar dug his own grave, I just allowed him to stay out of it for a bit longer."

"I cannot begin to describe how happy I am that I got to witness that." Draco sighed pleased, "Obviously, we knew you were just waiting for an opening, but you didn't even ease him in to it."

"It was straight for the throat." Narcissa agreed, and then she gave a dangerous smirk reminding the room that she was born of the House Black, "With no chance of recovery."

"It was brilliant," Bella allowed, "And I suppose I can get over the lack of blood as it was in Cissa's ballroom."

Harry, Draco, Rodolphus and Rabastan laughed as Narcissa gave a prim nod and Tom and Lucius smirked at the woman.

"I won't bother asking if the information is true, his reaction was enough to established that." Lucius mused, "But just where did you find out about his son?"

"It was an accident, actually." Harry said, "And it was more of a certain guess rather than anything confirmed."

"You mean you blurted that out last night when you were guessing if it was true!" Draco exclaimed, "Are you out of your mind?"

"It was more than a guess, Draco." Harry soothed, "I actually met the guy, completely by accident, of course."

"You did?" Tom wondered, quite a bit interested.

"Yes, we were at a circus in America last year on a hunt." Harry replied, "We were taking a break and he was the spitting image of Izar, but younger and blonder. Then, once I found out about Theo Jr, I decided that it was certain."

"Which is another matter entirely." Narcissa said thoughtfully, "Of course, there isn't an issue that there was a blood adoption, however, his severe secrecy makes the situation look entirely worse that it could be."

"The hint about his wife probably didn't help." Rabastan added with a gleeful smirk.

"No, I do not believe it did, even if it is a possibility." Lucius drawled, "My Lord, do you know anything about any of the situations?"

"No, I do not." Tom admitted.

"You are visiting Theodore today, aren't you, My Lord?" Narcissa inquired, "If you do not know, then there is a great chance that he does not know also."

"We are leaving after breakfast where I will be able to speak with Theodore in depth about it." Tom said, "As to if Izar is responsible for his wife's disappearance may have to wait until I speak with him about his breech in your positions."

"Alexandra was a lovely woman, if a bit quiet." Narcissa remembered, "To think he may have killed her – his own wife!"

"Nott's got many things to answer for," Harry pointed out, "That's not all the information I have on him as there are much lighter things, but I didn't want him recovering at all."

"Don't worry, Nott isn't getting up any time soon." Rodolphus chuckled.

"Last night was truly glorious." Draco said pleased, "The uproar that could build because of Bones and the quills is set to be beautiful."

"Oh yes, the Gamps spoke of it, didn't they Harry?" Narcissa confirmed.

"Yes, and I also learned that Umbridge only got an A on her Defence NEWT which means she wasn't really qualified to teach in the first place. Bones is furious and believes she was using compulsions to make sure that it wasn't spoken about by the students, add that together then both Dumbledore and Fudge are going to look particularly worse than they do now."

"And given the fact that Hadrian found that bill signed by Fudge to grant her the use of the Quills
" Lucius let his sentence hang and they all shared somewhat malicious smirks.

"Bones is going to have an aneurism when that's get revealed." Harry said with relish.

"I can picture it."

"Dumbledore is going to try and use the fact that Fudge issued the order and his sycophants will lap it up." Tom mused, "Whether or not Bones allows him to do so is a different matter entirely."

"There is going to be so much surprise in the next session that I would almost guarantee that people will be less than controlled." Draco pointed out, "Bones usually keeps the cauldron simmering so she can retain her position and actually do her job without focus on her and on top of that there are going to be new Houses and so much information."

"Even if she isn't willing to speak up about it, I have no such qualms." Harry stated, "This session is the outing session, this is the one where it's all going to come out to Dumbledore anyway. If I have to speak up about getting my hand carved in to repeatedly and how Dumbledore allowed it to happen then I will. Rita is going to be there anyway, if she has sense, she'll fly out with me after the general rush and we'll get an article out."

"Oh yes, that will be something to read." Narcissa said with a smirk, "I can only imagine the sort of spin dear Rita will put on the session."

"And there's the fact that I intend to give Pettigrew to Hadrian the day after – I can't wait for Dumbledore to try and get out of that one."

"He won't be able to, not when it can be shown he was one of the people giving evidence against Black." Lucius denied.

"Looks very bad for a Chief Warlock, doesn't it?" Harry questioned with a grin, "And you can bet money on the fact that Bones will go after him for that even if she lets the Quills go."

"The old fool really has no idea what's coming to him." Tom said in mock sympathy.

"I can almost hear the outrage over Dumbledore condemning the at the time heir of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Black." Bella crowed, "The old bastard deserves nothing less for what he did to Sirius."

Thankfully, only Tom caught Harry's slight flinch at the mention of his Godfather's name, but he completely agreed with her words; Dumbledore deserved that and more.

"I think it's better that Dumbledore won't know about any of this until the Wizengamot session." Draco commented slyly.

"He chose the wrong time to go underground," Lucius agreed with a smirk, "Not that it was all his choice, of course."

"We haven't actually heard anything of Dumbledore all through the holidays, he's-," Harry froze mid-sentence, his eyes going unfocussed as something very startling occurred to him.

"Dear sweet Merlin," He murmured, sitting back in his seat.

"Harry, are you quite alright?" Narcissa wondered, a touch concerned.

"I've just realised something." He told her, "And by Merlin is it going to, if possible, make the upcoming Wizengamot session even better."

"How?" Lucius wondered, his eyebrow raised in scepticism; a feeling mirrored around the whole table.

"We've all been discussing how the speculation surrounding the Blood Quill cover up coming from Bones is only going to make it worse for Dumbledore, and how he's been underground for the entire Yule season so he's going to walk in to a storm the first session back." Harry said.

"Yes, it's going to be a nasty surprise for him to return to." Tom said, sounding very pleased. "Bones and Dumbledore have never seen eye-to-eye and this scandal has not raised his favour in her eyes no doubt."

"Exactly, it's going to be a vicious shock to Dumbledore. Even more so given the fact that Amelia Bones is supposed to be dead."

The entire table stilled and looked at him in an incredulous silence. Harry sat completely unconcerned while waiting for them to respond, he saw Bella's expression slowly morph in to stunned realisation and smirked.

"I killed her." She exclaimed, bewildered.

"When was this?" Draco questioned, astonished.

"And how did we not here of it?" Narcissa wondered.

"But we did." Tom stated, his expression showing mild surprise. "This was months ago, when I issued distraction raids so a few of Harry's and I could move without notice of anyone. Bella appeared in the middle of a battle with aurors and took out Johnson, Vance and apparently Amelia Bones."

"Now that I think about it, I have wondered why we haven't heard anything from Bones given the Dumbledore articles anyway." Lucius said slowly.

"We haven't heard anything because she hasn't been in the Ministry." Harry said excitedly, "It literally occurred to me just then that Bones shouldn't have been in the equation."

"She must have survived and took a step back." Rodolphus mused, "She would have had to gone under extensive healing anyway, I remember the raid now myself and she should have been dead. We left when she fell, however, so she could have been extracted."

"Obviously, we will have to incorporate this in to our plans, but given the fact that she's staunch neutral and no longer head of the DMLE it may not have a great ripple effect on us." Draco put in thoughtfully.

"Better still, according to the Order, which means by extension Dumbledore, Amelia Bones is still very much dead. And I really want to see his face when he sees her again." Harry laughed as the table shared malicious smirks at Dumbledore's expense.

"I have decided that I am attending this Wizengamot session." Narcissa announced, "Given that it is an open session, it wouldn't look out of place for Lady Malfoy to be in appearance. Naomi and I were discussing it last night, and with what I know now I feel as if I really cannot miss it."

"I don't blame you." Harry said, "I didn't realise it was an open session because Draco was worried about not being able attend but that was more to do with overdoing it with the time-turners than not being able to get there. You don't need to worry about that."

"Yeah, Blaise is missing it because with all of the things we're working on at school and we're basically all out he doesn't want to burn out." Draco agreed, "The twins are going to be tripled at least while they monitor everything so Blaise said he's help out there, too."

"That is understandable, messages are going to be flying as soon as any of you step in to the room." Lucius nodded, "Preparation for that is only wise."

"The twins have a whole network set up." Draco told his father, a touch of pride lining his tone, which reminded Harry that Draco had had to sit down and tell his father he was in a relationship with the twins. Harry himself had dragged Tom to stand in the shadows of the room as Draco told his parents about the twins; the sound that emanated from Lucius had Harry crying, and even Tom was reduced to outright laughing at the Malfoy Lord when he had to be led from the room by his dutiful wife. His exclamation of "Weasleys, Cissa, Weasleys!" echoing in the hall. Harry had stepped out of the shadows in front of a wrung out Draco and helpfully pointed out that the twins were, in fact, Prewetts; the blond's enraged scream followed Harry as he ran away.

"Those two are brilliant," Rabastan said honestly, but then he shuddered, "But by Merlin do they terrify me."

Harry couldn't stop himself snorting at that, laughing the looks of incredulity the Death Eater was getting from everyone other than Draco.

"You are scared of the Weasley twins?" Rodolphus asked his brother, looking as if he was questioning if they were truly related.

"You haven't seen them. They pop up in the library now and then, huddled together over strange books." Rabastan said, his voice grave and his eyes slightly wide, "With wild eyes and feverish expressions and they
 whisper things. Odd things. And when they realise someone's there they just give wide toothy grins." He shuddered again. By this point, Harry was giggling helplessly, muffling it my leaning in to Tom, who was shaking slightly with repressed laughter as he listened to his Elite.

"They cannot be that bad, Bastan." Bella scoffed, eyeing him as if he was the one who was slightly insane.

"I have to admit," Narcissa began slowly, "Now that I think about it, those two are 
 different."

"That's a polite way of saying they're demented." Tom stated with a smirk.

"Hey!" Harry exclaimed outraged, poking him in the arm.

"You cannot even contemplate arguing against that fact." Tom denied.

"I damn well can. They're not demented, thank you very much." Harry informed him primly, "They're deranged."

Tom laughed before he could stop himself and Harry grinned at him as he shook his head.

"Idiot," Tom sighed but it was fond.

"Retreating to our original topic, given our presence in the Wizengamot if there is anyone connected to or in the Order in the public we're going to need to know about it and that's what the twins are going to be monitoring." Harry said, "What our reception will be like when we get back to the castle is debateable, but as long as we're in the castle it won't matter. Now that Dumbledore is officially out of the Headmaster's position, we can do what we like."

"You cannot get in to trouble for attending – all Lords enrolled at Hogwarts have a right to attend any Wizengamot session." Lucius pointed out.

"No, but who on the staff is really on Dumbledore's side and who is not? Having all of us out of the castle prevents us from learning what's been happening with Dumbledore's absence."

"Severus has not spoken of anything severe." Tom said, "Other than him receiving the Deputy placement, of course."

"Yeah, but that's being announced at the opening feast so we don't really need to worry about that."

"Exactly."

"We'll have to do what you best, Harry," Draco said with a smirk, which Harry returned.

"Wing it!"


As soon as he had read his friend and Lord's letter regarding his son's ball, Theodore knew that there very well could be an incident at the Malfoy ball. Whether it was because of his son's increasing stupidity or Lord Potter-Black's more than deserved retaliation had yet to be seen. Theodore was absolutely furious with his son, he had warned him on multiple occasions to back away from Potter-Black, but it had become very apparent his words had gone unheeded. Izar's behaviour was unacceptable to the very highest degree: not only was he alienating someone with a greater political power than his own, but he was going against the Dark Lord himself. That was irredeemable.

He had been both looking forward to and dreading his Lord's visit; wondering what he would be discovering of his son's actions and highly interested in finally meeting the Potter-Black Lord. After everything he had heard of the young Lord, and witnessing the effect he had had on his old friend, Theodore was exceedingly intrigued as to what it was about him that managed to capture Marvolo's interest so much. However, all of that was promptly forgotten about when his grandson had floo'd to his home in the middle of the Malfoy ball looking completely stricken, stuttering out that the Dark Lord had sent him. Obviously, Theo couldn't tell him anything that had occurred, but given that he was there told Theodore enough. He had seen to his grandson, gotten him settled for the night and then fixed himself a large drink. Somehow, his blasted boy had managed to get himself publicly ejected from a Yule ball; not just any ball, but the Malfoy family ball. Theodore knew then what had to be done.

Before that, however, he had to speak to someone who could tell him what exactly had taken place. Whatever it was had his poor grandson frozen in a white-faced silence, he didn't touch his breakfast and had retreated to his rooms as soon as acceptable. Theodore could admit that he was feeling slightly ill waiting for his Lord to arrive. Which was why he actually sighed out loud in relief when the wards alerted him to Marvolo's arrival, yet he was slightly confused as only Marvolo registered; did he once again forget to bring Lord Potter-Black? Theodore blinked and made a note to check his wards because he could hear the sound of two voices as his Lord approached. Instantly, Theodore knew exactly why Marvolo had first chosen Potter-Black to have a secret tryst; well built, well dressed, and extremely attractive. And those eyes, so like the Killing Curse; they shone with power. The second thing he noticed was that Marvolo had the young Lord on his arm as if it was the most natural thing in the world and they both looked very comfortable in the position.

"Good morning, Theodore." Marvolo greeted with a nod,

"Good morning, Marvolo." Theodore returned, and then focused on the new comer.

"Allow me to introduce Lord Harry Potter-Black. Harry, this is Theodore Nott Senior."

"It is a pleasure to meet you at last, Lord Potter-Black."

"Harry please," Harry insisted with a small smile, shaking the man's hand, "It's great to finally meet the man Tom speaks so highly of."

Theodore wouldn't have been able to stop his eyebrows from shooting up even if he tried, while he was pleased that his friend openly held him in the same regard and Theodore held him in terms of friendship, he honestly could not believe the name Harry had used. He glanced at his friend who had a look of long held resignation.

"He refuses to call me anything but." Marvolo sighed in exasperation making Harry grin, he reached up and patted Tom's cheek consolingly.

"There there," He soothed mockingly, "This is what happens when you try to kill someone six times and enter them in to a deadly tournament."

Tom shot him a look of utmost disgust much to Harry's, and Theodore's, amusement. Nott could scarcely believe his eyes, never before had he seen anyone treat his friend in such a way – it just wasn't done. Not only that but Marvolo allowed it to happen, amused at the young Lord's actions despite his expression. This visit would be monumentally more interesting if this was usual behaviour; Theodore would get to see just how attached Marvolo was.

"As you can see, I was actually extending you a huge service by keeping him away." Marvolo deadpanned receiving a punch in the arm for his effort and Theodore had to chuckle at that.

"What he means to say is that I have been ridiculously busy else I would have come sooner." Harry corrected, "Also, your home is beautiful and I am very jealous of the stained glass windows."

"Thank you. They were painted by my great-grandmother." Theodore replied, "Please, have a seat. I feel that we have much to discuss."

"That, unfortunately Theodore, is a vast understatement." Marvolo informed him, pulling Harry down next to him on the sofa closest to the window, accepting his tea with a word of thanks; Theodore had chosen the sunroom this morning.

"I feared as much, given my grandson arrived during the Malfoy ball." Theodore acknowledged, not at all reassured when the pair shared a look before turning back to him.

"I first have to ask if you have any Nott family secrets directly involving either Izar or Theodore Jr that you have not confided in me?" Marvolo inquired and Theodore's eyebrow rose slowly, a sinking feeling appearing in his stomach.

"No, I do not."

"That is really not the answer I was hoping for." Harry muttered, grimacing slightly.

"I already knew I would not like what this conversation would reveal, but I am starting to believe I am going to enjoy it even less than first assumed."

"I wrote to you to inform you of the happenings at your son's ball." Marvolo said instead of confirming or denying his friend's words.

"Yes, and I feel I must apologise for the slight and the insult you received whilst in attendance, Harry."

"Thank you, though you may want to hold off on that apology for now." Harry advised and Theodore raised an eyebrow but nodded once.

"I will be perfectly honest with you, Theodore, there isn't a single hope in all of magic's will that can make your son recover from the consequences of his actions." Marvolo said bluntly. Theodore closed his eyes and exhaled slowly, coming from anyone else he would think the words an exaggeration, but coming from his Lord and friend they were damning.

"Tell me it all."

"Izar's first words to Harry once we had sat down for the meal were and I quote 'one cannot help the decline in satisfactory linage for important decisions'. Then he went on to insult his mother's talent, called her a pet and state that Harry had no right to control a pureblood House, let alone two."

Theodore swallowed heavily and thanked his stars he was sitting down because had he been standing he didn't believe his legs would have remained under him; such vicious insults spoken in front of so many others. What was that blasted boy of his thinking? There was literally nothing that could justify his actions, and this was just the beginning; as grievous as the insults were, they wouldn't have gotten him removed from the Malfoy ball. He also knew that, without a doubt, Potter-Black would not have let those insults slide, especially after the slight his son gave at his own ball.

"Your retaliation?" Theodore inquired evenly, steeling himself for whatever was coming. Harry regarding him with a blank expression, his head tilted slightly.

"You are aware, of course, that me and mine are very adept at finding secrets people don't want discovered." Harry said and Theodore nodded.

"Yes, I might feel pity if it wasn't Dumbledore." He commented amused, and Harry smirked before his expression cleared once again.

"I pointed out his continued emphasis on blood, then wondered how much shame and disgust he carried when he thought of his older squib son."

Nott sucked a sharp breath through his teeth before he could help it, eyes widening at the revelation.

"What?" He gasped, shock and disbelief lining his tone, "A squib son, an older squib son?"

"Hm, yes. He didn't react too well. He reacted much worse when I wondered how he dealt with his current son when blood adoption doesn't make 'real' purebloods." Harry continued, as if he was speaking of the weather. Theodore released a wheeze as another wave of shock hit him so closely following the first, he held up a hand to stall the young Lord's words and he took multiple deep breathes to try and calm down.

He wanted to demand answers and rage his denials, but he knew, as much as he knew himself, that Marvolo would not be here confirming Potter-Black's words if he himself was not certain. His son had betrayed their House. While squibs weren't the most accepted within their history, no squib of the House Nott was ever cast out. They tended to be set up and sent away, contracted to other squibs from fellow pureblood Houses in the hopes that they would birth a magical child down the line. Not only that, his son had lied to him about Theodore Jr for sixteen years. His grandson would always be his grandson, but something of this severity should have been told to him no matter what – even if the adoption was after Izar had taken the Lordship. And if both these revelations were not enough, his son had gone and gotten these damning secrets revealed in public at the Malfoy ball.

"I fear to ask what else happened." Theodore admitted, once he had regained himself.

"Izar thought it wise to curse Harry and then lunge across the table to attack him, which escalated into a duel, that he then lost and subsequently ended up tied with a life debt." Marvolo informed him, rounding everything off in one for his friend. He watched the man close his eyes and breathe deeply once again before his usual calm settled, even if it was harder than normal.

"I see," Theodore paused thoughtfully, "I will not lie and say I do not value pure blood, because I do. But it is more due to my respect of family history, and some of the greatest history of our world comes from Pureblood lines. However, I do not believe in casting out or removing squibs from the family. They have the opportunity to do much for our world and for the family."

"I think I like you already." Harry said in delight.

"Also, while I would have greatly preferred not to have such secrets revealed in such a setting, it is nothing but what my son deserves for what he has done." Theodore acknowledged and Harry nodded.

"What do you intend to do with Izar?" Tom asked him and Theodore grimaced.

"His actions betray our House so I will invoke old House Law for punishment." He replied and Harry perked up.

"Are you the Lord Nott now then?"

"Yes, my son has caused too much dishonour to the family. To perform a blood adoption without my consent is inexcusable. Do not mistake, I would have given permission should he have asked, and Theodore Jr will always be my Grandson, but bringing members in to the family is a without the Lord of House knowing is unforgivable. Besides, even if he waited until he was the new Lord, he should have spoken with me. I will be speaking with my Grandson about this as it has breached his contract no doubt, then we shall continue from there."

"I think having you as the Lord Nott will only do good things." Harry said brightly, "Of course, you really can't do worse than Izar so that's a bonus."

"He is a foolish man," Theodore sighed, "Other than blood, have you had any ultercations with him?"

"No, that's the weird thing. Before the summer, I hadn't ever spoken to Izar Nott – I didn't even have a history with your Grandson as he keeps himself mostly out of arguments in school." Harry explained, then he shrugged, "Luna will find out what's going on in his head, and if she doesn't then Tom will."

"I believe once we have established just what it is about you that makes him lose all of his senses we will be able to move forward." Tom mused, "It is pointless in merely punishing him when it appears that he isn't going to stop. Normally, the reminder of social repercussions would have stilled Izar's tongue."

"Especially given that you have openly declared to the Elite that me and mine are with you." Harry added.

"Which is just another thing that I cannot begin to understand." Theodore said shaking his head, "He is going against everything he had ever stood for, and for what exactly? It's one thing to create House incidents, but to betray our sector?"

"He's going to suffer for it currently and in the future. I'm done with whatever restraint I found earlier which means all of mine will be doing the same thing; I gotta fair few Houses and friends backing me." Harry pointed out.

"The ritual will be performed tonight." Theodore decided, "I should have done this after I heard of the open hostility at the Zabini ball, but the last thing I wanted was the next two balls to be focused on House Nott gossip."

"You could not have known it would come to such a situation." Tom reminded him, "Your son's actions are his own."

"That and doing the ritual now instead of previously allows the change to be swallowed up by what's coming to Dumbleodre." Harry pointed out, "Yeah, it's going to be a big thing your return, but people are going to be expecting it given what's happened at the Malfoy ball and are going to be more interested in Dumbledore."

"You are correct, of course." Theodore allowed.

"There's also the fact that no one is going to need to know where your loyalties lie – while they haven't ever been able to arrest you, you are well known as being one of the first Death Eater Elite." Harry added.

"My very first Death Eater actually." Tom told him and Harry's eyebrow winged up.

"Really?"

"I remember him actually designing the mark in the first place." Theodore reminisced, and then looked slyly at the Dark Lord. "Didn't you end up throwing a book the size of your body at Evan Rosier's head at one point, Marvolo?"

Harry snorted as Tom fixed his friend with an unimpressed glower.

"That does not sound like something I would do-,"

"And I'm going to call BS right there." Harry interrupted, "You threw a book at Moony just last week."

"You're misinformed."

"I'm really not."

"Lies and slander." Tom assured, sniffing haughtily.

"Oh Merlin," Harry shook his head grinning, "You are the worst. This is like how you're not a klepto."

"I am not a kleptomaniac!" Tom hissed at him.

"Marvolo, you've been stealing things from people since before you got to Hogwarts." Theodore deadpanned.

"I've seen memory proof that that's true, too, so I don't know who he's trying to convince." Harry said to Theodore with a smirk, "I found his stash so I just get my things back from there."

"You both do realise that I'm the Dark Lord, correct?" Tom wondered affronted, "I am both feared and powerful and you should remember that."

"Yes dear,"

"Of course, Marvolo."

Harry and Theodore spoke in the same tone and shared grins as Tom rolled his eyes skyward.

"I'm being punished." He grumbled, "You two should never have met."

"What was that about doing a favour for your friend?" Harry questioned lightly, snickering as he blocked the stinging hex directed at his face.

"I have been speaking with Theodore about some of your ideas and some of your plans." Tom said in a blatant change of conversation, much to Harry's amusement.

"Yes, and the success of the werewolf sanctuary is commendable." Theodore agreed, going with the change with a smirk, "Do you intend to branch out to other creatures?"

"We do have building plans for vampires, and I believe my sister intends to start more in-depth research on the Dark Elves once we return to the castle." Harry replied, "Of course, my personal attention has been straying to focus on Dumbledore opposed to the creatures. Thankfully, my friends are only too happy to help set things up in the background while I plan for the Wizengamot."

"Plans that you have not felt the need to share." Tom huffed and Harry snorted.

"Please, where would you find your fun if I warned you every time something exciting happened?"

"I might actually have some peace."

"And be bored out of your mind." Harry pointed out, "Besides, with peace you wouldn't have me and then what would you do?"

"Celebrate." Tom deadpanned.

"HEY!" Harry exclaimed outraged and Tom smirked. Harry sniffed and turned his nose up, facing away from the amused Dark Lord. "See if I tell you about my next plan."

"You never tell me anything."

"Well I was going to tell you this once as it involved you, but you can forget that now." Harry informed him primly.

"Since when does my involvement change anything?" Tom questioned, "If anything, you take more pleasure in withholding those plans from me."

"It does you good to not know stuff." Harry decided, "Your ego already has its own gravitational pull."

"I'm going to hurt you." Tom stated, looking very unimpressed. Harry grinned, leaning over to kiss his cheek.

"No you won't."

Tom sighed, sounding exceptionally put out even if there was a smile playing around his lips.

"No, I won't."

Theodore watched the pair's byplay with fascination; Marvolo was well and truly gone for the Potter-Black Lord, and what a sight it was to see. Never before had he seen the man at such ease with another person, Circe, he had never seen the man allow someone to touch him in public before. And yet here Potter-Black was leaning all over him, kissing his cheek, and talking back without so much as blinking. There would be a wedding soon, Theodore just knew it. Marvolo would be an utter fool to not wed someone that fit him so very well – not only that, but Potter-Black wasn't just after a shot of power; he had plenty of his own. It was a brilliant match.

"There are multiple facets of information we have to work with for the Wizengamot and until I actually get there I cannot give an accurate outcome anyway." Harry said, pulling them back on track, "The only thing I can confirm with absolute certainty is that we have enough backing to have the Vote of No Confidence called for Fudge."

"It's on very uneven footing that we continue now, that was has become abundantly clear over the ball season." Theodore mused.

"We must keep the ministry, as poor of a condition it is in, secure for the time being." Tom stated, "We cannot afford for it to fall further in to disarray else we will indeed need to carve out our position."

"Our numbers as a nation would suffer massively if we had to hold an all-out assault on the ministry. We've basically had two back to back wars that have culled us really; I would much prefer to have to keep the battle between Dumbledore and his ilk." Harry pointed out and both Tom and Theodore nodded in agreement.

"The saving grace is that Dumbledore does not have the time to stop what is coming in the upcoming session; Fudge will be removed." Theodore noted.

"I cannot wait to see his face when we all arrive." Harry sighed happily.

"Even more so when you claim my seats as proxy." Tom added and Harry grinned.

"Oh it's going to be a picture."

"Until then we must wait." Theodore pointed out.

"Ugh gross." Harry complained, slumping in to Tom.

"You're such a child." Tom stated amused.

"Yes, I am aware of exactly how childish you find me, my dear Dark Lord." Harry threw back smirking.

"You are a true menace." Tom sighed and Harry scoffed.

"I fit right in with you and yours then, don't I?" Harry replied, "Besides, if I'm a menace then there is enough evidence to suggest you are much worse."

"Dark Lord."

"That excuse is pitiful, especially in front on me and your oldest friend." Harry deadpanned.

"At least I am not the only one he uses that excuse on." Theodore commented with a chuckle.

"Both of you have no respect nor self-preservation." Tom informed them waspishly. "If any from the ranks dared act as you both do
"

"Ah, but we aren't any from the ranks." Theodore pointed out wisely, only to get a vicious glare for is efforts.

"Wow, that's a mean expression." Harry noted, not even blinking when it was turned on him, "Is this some sort of strange withdraw? Torture? Scaring the crap out of people? Books?"

"I hate you." Tom told him.

"Books it is." Harry decided with a grin.

"I really hate you." Tom corrected and Harry laughed.

"I'm a lovely individual I'll have you know." Harry said, "Besides, didn't you want to speak with Theodore about yours and Moony's recent works?"

Tom eyed him for a second before turning back to the future Nott Lord and launching in to a rapid paced discussion about Runes that went over Harry's head in about five minutes. He sat back and watched Tom interact with his oldest friend with a slight smile. It was inherently obvious that the two of them had a solid connection between them and it was clear that it was an actual friendship and not just words. It was nice, Harry thought, to see this part of Tom's life, to be a part of it, and he was struggling to understand why he was feeling like that. Harry shook himself out of his own head when he felt Tom squeeze his waist slightly, leaning up to kiss the man's cheek.

"Remind me to never have you both, Moony and Hermione in a library. Ever." He joked and Tom smirked.

"Theodore and Remus will no doubt get along very well." Tom said surely.

"Ah the famous Remus Lupin; I have heard much about him." Theodore allowed, "He appears very intelligent."

"Oh he is. He also has the same habit of getting lost in books and forgetting the rest of the world." Harry confirmed rolling his eyes fondly.

"Yes, I am familiar with the trait." Theodore said eyes pointed flicking towards Tom, who huffed and stood up.

"Insulted and not even offered lunch. Your manners are slipping Theodore." He informed coldly and swept out of the room.

Harry snorted as Nott chuckled, both rising and following the Dark Lord from the room.

"I feel for you having to deal with him for so long." Harry commiserated to Theodore, pitching his voice to carry far enough for Tom to hear him.

"It's been interesting." Theodore replied politically, but he was smirking.

"The pair of you should have never met; you are both awful." Tom stated with distaste, but Harry could feel amusement and, surprisingly, contentment coming from the man.

"Lied and slander." Theodore repeated Tom's earlier words innocently. Tom looked as if he was contemplating hexing him but refrained from doing so as he took a seat at the dining table.

"I speak the truth. Who was it that almost got us killed because someone couldn't hold their curiosity enough in the Forbidden Forest?" Tom wondered, eyebrow raised and Theodore's expression went sheepish for a second before a haughty expression came to his face.

"That was merely because I was doing my duty as seventh year prefect and trying to aid Elias Diggory."

"Do not try and sell that excuse to me, Theodore, I was with you and I was the one who modified Diggory's memory so he'd back our story." Tom threw back.

"I remember nothing about memory spells." Theodore denied.

"Of course, my mistake. Perhaps you would like to discuss how someone nearly got us expelled by temporarily bringing down the entire planetary model because they couldn't sate their curiosity over the Runes surrounding it?"

"Oh come on! You were equally curious." Theodore complained and Tom smirked, "Not that it matters. Benedict Gamp got the blame and only stayed in school by the scrape of his wand."

"And I was the one who made things interesting." Tom said sardonically.

"Dark Lord." Theodore returned snidely and Tom gaped. Harry cracked up laughing at his very real shock from the man while Theodore smugly sipped his drink.

"It's not very nice when it's thrown back at you, is it Tom?" Harry snickered.

"I hate you both."

"This is great. I can't wait to get all the stories of your school years." Harry said in relish.

"I'll personally cut out your tongue if you speak with him." Tom warned Theodore, who held up his hands in defence.

"I would never." He stated in a tone that suggested the exact opposite.

"I don't know why I put up with this treatment." Tom sighed and shook his head.

"Because it makes things interesting. We've been over this." Harry told him primly; Tom flicked his nose.

"Quiet you."

"How about we eat and then retreat to the library." Theodore suggested, "We can continue our earlier discussion."

"Splendid idea, Theodore." Tom said, glancing at Harry as if to make sure he was alright the plan.

"Sounds good, I'm merely an accessory today." The teen responded.

"Then let us eat. Knowing our discussions like I do, I would hate for you both to be late to dinner with dear Narcissa."

Both Tom and Harry nodded seriously at that; Narcissa could be scary.

Chapter 51

Notes:

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

If you get mad at me for anything in this fic after reading the tags then thats a you problem... sorry not sorry

MERRY CHRISTMAS AND HAPPY HOLIDAYS EVERYONE!!!

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

The first thing Tom noticed when he woke up was that Harry was not there. That in itself was a very strange occurrence because Harry was always there in the mornings. The second thing that came to mind was that he should really do something about the fact that he just assumed that he would wake up with the teen and that it felt remarkably strange that he hadn't done so. Tom frowned as he pulled himself out of bed and in to the shower, the connection between the pair wasn't exactly closed over but it definitely wasn't open either so all he was getting was muted feelings of excitement and frustration.

It was frustrating, especially given the fact that today was the one day he actively wanted Harry to himself completely. He didn't actively celebrate his birthday, in fact barely anyone knew the date, but he would have been pleased to spend the day with the brat that lived to make his life difficult. He was kind of surprised that Harry hadn't been there if only to make some sort of comment about his age. Tom actively ignored the fact that he was feeling disappointed and a bit sad over the fact that Harry wasn't there the morning of his birthday because then he would have to answer why he had automatically assumed he would be with Harry and why he cared so much anyway.

Heading down to breakfast, Tom poked at their link and got back a feeling that could only be described as not now and hissed under his breath, becoming more frustrated when Harry appeared absent for breakfast.

"Good morning, My Lord." Narcissa greeted. An action that was repeated by both male Malfoys.

"Good morning, Narcissa." He returned with a nod. Truly, it was never more apparent at how much his less than stellar mental state had affected his Death Eaters than when he was with his most loyal. Other than Theodore, and even that had been ridiculously stunted come the end of the war, he couldn't remember when he actually had a full and enjoyable conversation with his Elite. As much as he cursed Harry's influence, he was thankful for the changes that had happened the past couple of months. Which reminded him:

"Where is the menace? I thought you had him on a tight eating schedule through fear." Tom asked Narcissa, making sure to keep his voice completely even. The Lady Malfoy laughed lightly and shook her head.

"If he refuses to look after himself then someone must do it for him." She stated firmly, "However, he informed me this morning that he had extremely important business to attend to for the day so he would be eating out."

"Today? I had thought Miss Lovegood had cleared his schedule." Tom pointed out and Narcissa nodded.

"I said the same thing to him but he was insistent that it really could not wait and then rushed off."

"I see," Tom said, the food in his mouth suddenly tasting like ash.

He excused himself and moved towards Abraxas' tranquillity room, cursing Harry as he went for making him feel. But worse than that, for making him feel things he didn't understand or recognise. He hated not knowing what was going on and the fact that it was happening inside his own head made him half terrified and half furious. Everything always came back to Harry, and the fact that the teen had him in such a state simply for being elsewhere on his birthday was a serious cause for concern. What in Merlin's name was going on? He hadn't even realised until now, but the teen was always on his mind now; from important matters to trivial information. And moreover, he couldn't stop himself. Harry was like a disease; he infected one part of his life and now he was everywhere and for all his renowned intellect Tom was blind to answer how and when this had happened.

He cursed once again and forcefully removed the teen and everything surrounding him from his mind, he wanted to relax today not work himself up. He shouldn't care that Harry was missing his birthday, the last time he had had someone around for this day that wasn't work related that Theodore back in the 50's so it wasn't as if he wasn't completely used to missing his birthday. In fact, the last time he did anything it was actually Theodore's idea in the first place; he had never made the choice to actively celebrate the day himself; his own feelings were throwing him and he did not appreciate it. He would be sure to inform Harry that it was entirely his fault that he couldn't control his own thoughts and feelings when he saw him once again tomorrow. Really, it was only his excessive time spent around the teen that was changing him so it was only right the blame was placed upon the correct shoulders.

And there he was thinking of Harry once again.

It was getting a bit ridiculous and sooner or later he was going to need time to sit back and truly go over exactly what was going on. But not now, he was trying to peacefully relax and read a book. Remus had sent over a copy of the fully translated Ancient Egyptian book from Flamel and Tom had been desperately wishing to sit down and read it since it arrived but other things had to take precedence much to his displeasure. Now, however, was the perfect opportunity to read it in full as there was nothing to be done. Flamel had seen and done many things over his 665 years on the earth and each time they finished a translation not only did they gain insight into some of the greatest discoveries, feats, and miracles of magic, but it gave an exclusive picture into what Flamel was like as a wizard himself. It was intriguing and insightful and he found himself fascinated by another wizard in way that he hadn't been for a long long time.

Flamel had a rather unique way of looking at things, delving into magicial discovery in a fashion so very simple and yet it made all the difference. What made it all the more incredible was that he had barely scratched the surface of Flamel's knowledge and he knew it, they still had many books to translate and many scrolls to sort through, and yet he still hung on to the words he was reading. Frustratingly, none of his usual vigour in reading Flamel's work was with him at the moment and he found himself rereading lines as his mind drifted. Try as he might, Tom simply could not find it in him to relax and settle to read. The Dark Lord released an explosive breath and shook his head; it was no good. He left the room and headed for the duelling chambers, he needed to release some of his pent-up energy and frustration and blowing dummies to pieces sounded like a grand idea; especially given the fact that he was unable to use the real thing.

Allowing his magic to run free, it was easy to fall into the familiar motions of casting and dodging spells until the dummies were defeated and he could start again. Tom had always found magic soothing, be it light, dark or grey magic; he adored it all, but there was nothing better than throwing all of your magic into an all-out battle. The sheer rush was almost overwhelming and the Dark Lord found himself mildly disappointed that the war had taken a political front; he hadn't been in a true battle since the 70's. He didn't count fighting Dumbledore at the ministry as a battle, as much as the duel itself had been invigorating, it was one on one. He easily got lost in casting, lost in the movement, lost in the feel of his magic flowing through him like lava and exploding out of his hand or his wand. It was only when his hair was plastered to his face and his chest heaving in exertion did he finally come to a halt, examining the utterly decimated room with a pleased air.

Luckily, or perhaps not, it had taken him several hours to reach the stage where he would start to do damage to himself if he went any further so it was just approaching dinner when he left the chambers. He had wasted the day, thus keeping himself distracted, but it hadn't stopped his mind immediately drifting to the absent teen, who, no doubt, would have had a running commentary for all of his practices as soon as he was finished. It was pointless, he realised, to try and keep Harry off of his mind, it was impossible; just like the teen himself. Once again, the Dark Lord found himself reduced to cursing everything about Harry Potter and the way he made him think and feel.

He shut his bedroom door with a huff and was about to stalk in to the bathroom for a well needed shower when he spotted five things that had most definitely not been there when he had left the room that morning. The first was a stylishly cut 3-piece dinner suit hanging wrapped from the bathroom door that just by looking at it Tom knew it would fit him like a glove, a white box underneath the suit, two small, black leather boxes on his dresser and a shadowy corner that he associated with Harry's style of travel. The Dark Lord raised an eyebrow and moved over to the suit, spotting a note pinned to the wrappings that said in Harry's writing:

Don't bitch because it's not black, or that it's not robes, just put it on with the accessories and come through the shadows – I made it especially for you.

Tom raised the other eyebrow at that, an odd thrill shooting through him at the mystery and the obvious effort Harry had been through for whatever he was planning; the teen had made him a suit from scratch. He could easily admit that the suit looked great: it was cashmere, smoky grey in colour and lined with black rayon yarn, with black buttons on the waistcoat and jacket, a white shirt and an irregular checked darker grey tie. He opened one for the leather boxes and it revealed a simple but elegant set of emerald cufflinks, and then he turned to the second box and it showed a beautiful matte black wrist watch, it was completely colourless except the single tiny emerald that indicated where the twelve was. The white box, as he expected, was a pair of perfectly shined black shoes that completed the ensemble nicely.

Tom didn't hesitate to jump in the shower and clean the remainder of his training away, drying off he moved back into his room to begin dressing and he couldn't help but admire the quality of the suit; it really was impressive. He added the cufflinks, the watch and pulled on the shoes, noting that everything fitted absolutely perfectly. Sparing a second to recognise that he was pretty much following orders from an aggravating teenager, Tom threw on his jacket and stepped through the shadows into a low-lit room. It wasn't large but it wasn't small either, and it was empty except for a circular table set for two placed in front of the large bay window allowing the light of the full moon to shine through the heavy emerald drapes. On the table, there was an ice bucket holding a bottle of his favourite wine and a single black candle light in the middle, yet despite this it wasn't what gained Tom's attention.

To the side of the table almost glowing in the moonlight stood Harry and Tom found himself momentarily speechless. Harry was dressed in his own formfitting suit, tailored to hugged his body perfectly and it was entirely black: the suit, shirt, cufflinks, tie and waistcoat; he truly was gorgeous. Harry turned to face him and a bright smile lit up his features, his eyes trailed appreciatively over Tom's form and moved towards the older man.

"Good evening." He greeted, kissing Tom's cheek and leading him over to the table.

"What's this?" Tom questioned softly as he took a seat, eyes darting around before settling back on Harry.

"You didn't think I would actually forget your birthday, did you?" Harry said sweetly and Tom blinked, stunned.

"Most do not even know the date." Tom replied shocked.

"I would hope by now that you realise I am not 'most people'." Harry pointed out, to which Tom conceded he did have a point. "Besides, even Dark Lord's deserve something special on their birthdays."

Surprised pleasure shot through Tom; no one had ever made such a particular effort for his birthday or especially for him ever and he found himself smiling.

"I am very surprised." The Dark Lord admitted, accepting the wine Harry poured for him. "Though, no doubt this was your intention."

"Of course." Harry agreed with a grin, "However, I was supposed to be done much sooner, but I had a bit of an incident."

"With you, I am scared to ask."

Harry laughed at that.

"Thanks for the vote of confidence." He replied, "Besides, your suit fit and we're about to eat; I think I've done alright."

"We'll see," Tom commented jokingly.

"Oh ok, challenge accepted." Harry stated smirking. He snapped his fingers and two plates appeared. "For our started this evening we have grilled scallops with tomato chutney and roasted peppers."

The plate was presented with elegance and Tom really did have to wonder just how Harry seemed to make the utter best of situations because it smelled lovely.

"Bon apatite." Harry said, raising his glass. Tom was utterly unsurprised to note that the food was delicious. The flavours burst on to his tongue, everything complimented everything else on the plate with ease and he couldn't help but hum his approval as he cleared his plate.

"You seem to disappear and return with something great; I do not know why I expect anything else." Tom told his teen, lips curling up at the slight flush that marked Harry's pale cheeks.

"Changing your tune, aren't you?" Harry threw back and Tom chuckled.

"Will you continue to help with that?"

"You know I do so like to bypass expectations."

"Now that I do know." Tom confirmed, and Harry smirked.

"Well then, let's hope you like the main. We have sous vide fillet of beef, with pomme anna and mushroom puree." Harry told him, "And I hope you know this was an utter bastard to make."

The dish popped into existence and the Dark Lord was immediately assaulted with colour and scent. His first bite of the beef produced an audible sound of appreciation as it melted on his tongue and coupled with the puree mushroom it was absolutely incredible; he would have easily mistook this for a professional restaurant if he hadn't been familiar with Harry's cooking and hadn't seen him pull out meals like this for the Malfoy ball, though Tom was bias he thought this was better.

Harry flashed a pleased smile at Tom's enthusiasm and they started a conversation about everything and nothing as the meal progressed. Harry had Tom fully laughing as he brought up the time he had met the older Nott son in America as had tried out the bow and arrow for the first time. It hadn't ended well, and he had nearly shot himself and Ron.

"I swear, I didn't even know I could produce a sound that high; only bats could hear me." Harry told him snickering, "The arrow had to have ricocheted like nine times before bouncing back and coming so close to my head it had to have removed hair."

Tom tried to muffle his laughter at Harry's Harriness as he shook his head.

"How you managed to mess up a simple bow and arrow that badly I really do not know."

"It's not my forte." Harry returned only to receive a snort for his effort.

"I wouldn't have guessed." Tom said dryly, and Harry grinned.

"In my defence, Ron only had the smallest cut on his ear; he completely overreacted. It's not like he lost an ear."

"Somehow, I don't think that meant all that much to him."

"No, it really didn't. He likes to bring up the time I 'nearly killed him' every now and then." Harry said with a roll of his eyes.

"I believe it's the prerogative of first friends – to as irritating as humanly possible." Tom stated, "Theodore likes to nit-pick."

"The stories that man must have of you; seriously, I have to pick his brain."

"You'll never know the truth." Tom insisted, and Harry laughed.

"Challenge most definitely accepted."

"Merlin damn it!" Tom cursed, "I'll get to him first and swear him to secrecy."

"You are only making me much more interested about your school days, Tom." Harry pointed out with a smirk, "I bet you were a little shit under that perfect prefect mask."

"I was an absolute angel." Tom informed him solemnly. Harry almost snorted his wine out of his nose at that, coughing as he broke into peels of laughter.

"An angel? You? Ha!"

"I'll have you know that I was a model student."

"Yeah, ok, and I'm female." Harry threw back. Tom eyed him with a raised eyebrow.

"Wow, I've become exceptionally unobservant." He stated blandly, which set Harry laughing once again.

"You're impossible." He sighed, grinning.

"That's firmly your title." Tom said with a smirk, "Do not try and pass it off to me."

"Oh, hush up and eat your desert." Harry groaned, snapping his fingers to bring said meal forth. "For our final course tonight, we have a chocolate orange mousse, with spiced fruit brioche and yogurt sorbet."

"Now your cheating." Tom told him, "Using chocolate orange."

"Well, I never said I ever played fair." Harry shrugged.

"Spoken like a true Slytherin."

"Of course." Harry agreed, "I also knew that you would like it, which is exactly why there is more for you to take with you."

"Good, this will not last."

And wasn't that the truth, Tom had practically inhaled the desert and Harry felt a shot of pride that his food was so well received by the other man; it made him all warm and fuzzy. Harry had the table cleared with a wave of his hand once they were both finished and rose to his feet, holding out his hand for Tom to take.

"There's more?" Tom questioned, surprised.

"Of course," Harry replied as if it was obvious. "Coming?"

The Dark Lord took his hand without hesitation and Harry took a moment to relish in the utter trust of such a paranoid man before pulling them through the shadows to their intended destination. The stepped out in what appeared to be a forest, the snow covered ground crunching under their feet and yet the freezing temperatures didn't touch them.

"The suits?" Tom confirmed, and Harry nodded, "You really did plan this, didn't you?"

There was a note of disbelief in his tone that Harry could emphasis with, because he knew exactly what it felt like to have no one acknowledge his birthday.

"Like I said, even Dark Lord's deserve something special." Harry repeated, "And anyway, I happen to be rather partial to the current Dark Lord; paranoid, controlling egomaniac that he is."

He yelped when Tom jabbed him in the ribs, flashing a grin in response to the unimpressed expression directed at him. Harry led the older man through the trees until they came to a large Weeping Willow in the centre of a clearing, its branches decked out in frost and ice glistening gently under the moon and stars. He pushed through the vines and Tom was surprised to find it warmer once again as they entered the semi-enclosed space. Harry led them around the tree and to what appeared to be the beginnings of a staircase that wound around and up the thick trunk. As they moved up the stairs, fairies seemed to burst in to existence lighting their path and casting their beautiful glow against the glistening frost. They reached a platform decked out in throws and pillows and another bottle of wine for them to share and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"Come lie with me." Harry said, pulling him over and making himself comfy in what could only be described as a nest. Tom was rather helpless but to join him, settling himself beside his teen, wrapping his arms around his waist and pressing a light kiss to his neck.

"This place is beautiful," Tom said softly, "But why here?"

"If gave the perfect view." Harry replied.

"Of what?"

"Of that." Harry pointed upwards and on his word the sky burst in to colour as fireworks exploded above them. He had gotten them from the twins, so the waves of colour were interchanged with twisting serpents and soaring dragons as they light up the sky and bathed the two of them in their colours.

"Wow,"

Harry watched Tom's as his expression turned to one of awe at the display and smiled softly, it was always rewarding to get such honest reactions out of the Dark Lord and he was glad he was able to do it on such an important day. They watched the fireworks and when they finally died off they stayed and watched the stars, enjoying the serenity around them.

"Thank you, for this." Tom spoke barely above a whisper sometime later, propping himself up on his arm and looking at the teen, Harry offered a smile in return and held out his final gift for the night; a single cherry and almond cupcake with a candle lit in the very centre.

"Happy Birthday, Tom."


"How in Circes name did all of my things get so scattered?" Harry wondered aloud, as an elf from the sanctuary popped in with a pair of his boots.

"Don't ask me, I was packed two days ago." Draco answered, looking amused from where he was sat on Harry's bed.

"Ugh, why didn't you remind me?" Harry complained, accepting yet another item from yet another elf that popped in; this time from McKinnon Manor.

"I'm not Luna, I don't run your life."

"She doesn't run my life, you don't know me." Harry muttered and Draco snorted.

"Please, we all know that she does." He waved Harry off and got to his feet. "Now, we literally have ten minutes before we have to leave. Hurry up."

"You are a shit human Draconis Lucius Malfoy." Harry shouted at him as he walked out, only to receive a loud laugh in return.

"My friends hate me." Harry sighed, tossing the last items into his trunk and slamming the lid closed. As soon as he had done so, an elf popped in to take his trunk to the school with Draco's, which had been sent hours ago. Harry threw on his school robes, pulled up his glamour and shadowed down to the entrance hall with seconds to spare. Narcissa tutted at him as soon as she spotted him, straightening out his robes before pressing a kiss to his forehead.

"Please be careful."

"I'll do my absolute best." Harry assured. "Oh, does anyone know what my story is for not being seen over the holidays?"

"Ah right, that's why I came to annoy you." Draco remembered, "Luna forged a letter to McGonagall stating you were going to be eating alone this year as it's the first year since Lord Black."

Harry grimaced but nodded.

"Well, she'd definitely buy that, and so would Dumbledore if she is acting as his eyes and ears."

"She's one of the people we really have to look into once we return." Draco noted, "We all assume that she's Dumbledore's but her reaction to the quills cannot be ignored; she was livid."

"You're right. I'm contemplating speaking to her directly once the Wizengamot has happened. Her reaction to that should be telling." Harry shrugged, "Can't really take the time before then to start a new project."

"No, we only have just over a week."

"I'm going to get straight to work on the ministry and use the time you guys are on the train to get things sorted before school starts up again. That and I want to prepare myself for my arm attachment." Harry groaned at the end, not looking forward to the prospect of Ginny even if it was only for a week now.

"How are you going to explain the lack of gift at Yule?" Draco questioned, "I mean, didn't she expect a Potter ring."

"Oh yeah, nah the Twins and Luna had that covered. Luna selected the ring and the twins created a copy to give to her. Like fuck am I putting real Potter heirlooms on her."

"Brilliant; truly one week left then."

"Yup, and it'll be the longest week of my life no doubt." Harry sighed, "Ok, I'll see you later. Narcissa, Lucius, thank you for hosting me during this Yuletide."

"It's been an utter pleasure to have you, Harry, you are welcome any time." Narcissa told him warmly. Lucius nodded from next to his wife and actually looked serious in his regard; huh, he had actually managed to change Lucius' opinion of him. Harry vanished in a swarm of shadows, he came out in to his own rooms in the castle and went to unpack.

He and Tom had pointedly not spoken this morning and Harry's entire being was on edge. Last night, when they returned to the manor after Tom's birthday celebration they had ended up having sex, but it was completely unlike anything they had done before. There was something there, something that Harry didn't want to admit but knew had been creeping in these last months, something more than their usual passion, but something unknown and something frightening. Harry also knew he hadn't been the only one to feel it as when they had awoken this morning because Tom had looked at him oh so strangely before kissing him like he was saying goodbye and vanishing into the bathroom without a word. Harry had left for his own room and they hadn't seen each other since.

It was driving Harry insane to know something had happened but not know anything that had happened at the same time. However, he had promised himself a clean break after the holidays and the circumstances as they were made it a lot easier to do. The Dark Lord had always brought out the extremes in Harry, if he limited his contact with the man he may have a better chance at actually sticking to his resolve. With that thought, Harry firmly pushed everything away and pulled out his copy of their ministry plans. If everything went as they had planned it to go, their next line of work had to be on for the campaign trail they needed to pull off in order for their selected minister to be chosen permanently.

It was such a huge task that they had divided it into the main sections to work on individually: Harry himself had the next generation, Remus had werewolves and creatures, Ron had the old traditions, Hermione had education, Draco, Blaise and Neville on national and international law and Luna worked with everyone. A lot of their things overlapped naturally, so they worked together when they could to build it up. Harry had taken over the plans in the last month due to everything that had been happening as it was something that didn't require him to move around the castle where Dumbledore could see. However, even with most of his work going towards it, a lot of the work needed for the Minister's campaign would have to be done during the trail. The timeturners were a life saver, but there was only so much they could stretch them before their bodies simply could not take it.

It was at these times where Harry felt weary down to his very bones, because it felt like it was a never-ending climb before they broke free of Dumbledore. As long as the old man still lived, as long as he could still be remembered in a good light and his influence remained in their world none of them would ever be free. It served as a good reminder as to why he continued to pick himself up and go on, because one day he and his friends will be without Dumbledore's influence even if it was the last thing he ever did. Harry shook himself from such maudlin thoughts and got to work, immersing himself in his task so completely that he lost track of the time. Thankfully, Dobby popped in to tell him when the carriages started to arrive so he packed up and made his way down to the Great Hall.

By the time he got there the crowds were pouring into the Hall so it was easy for Harry to duck away from Ginny and end up with a seat near the end of the Gryffindor table by Neville. The Hall felt completely different without the old fool stood at the head and Harry found himself smiling slightly, because Dumbledore would never again stand in these castle halls and if they had done anything that was a significant achievement. Once that wasn't going unnoticed by the student population. More and more conversation swept through the hall at the lack of aged figure, and Harry could understand. Last time Dumbledore had been removed by the board he had been allowed back quite soon after, then again when he had been pushed out by the ministry last year, Dumbledore once again returned.

This time it was not to be, and there was much speculation as to what was going to happen; especially after the Ball season – even if none could yet actually speak of what had happened. The head table had had a minor arrangement change, with Snape now sitting where McGonagall once had next to the Head seat and there was a new male teacher sat up there, too. Harry found it a touch amusing that despite the changes and the loudness of the Hall, McGonagall still had the ability to get a room silent without doing anything. Well, at least you can count on somethings not to change.

"For those returning to us, welcome back to Hogwarts. For those who stayed, welcome to the new term." She began, her voice clear and calm and loud enough to reach the back of the Hall without issue.

"Many changes have occurred over the break, but I can assure you we have done everything in our power to make the transitions easier. I am now officially succeeded Albus Dumbledore as Headmistress of Hogwarts."

There was a round of applause from the Hall, the Gryffindors' and, ironically enough, the Slytherins' showing their appreciation the most; McGonagall smiled briefly and nodded.

"Thank you. Now, Professor Severus Snape has been selected to take over the Deputy position with full approval of both the Board of Governors and Hogwarts Herself."

An explosive cheer from the House of Snakes drowned out the lacklustre applause from the rest of the school as Snape stood and nodded once before retaking his head with an expression of slight satisfaction.

"Finally, I ask that you welcome Professor Alexander Howard, who will be taking of the post of Transfiguration for the rest of the year."

There was particularly enthusiastic applause from the Ravenclaws', which was unsurprising as Howard had been making a big name for himself in the Transfig field; even Harry was surprised they had gotten such a good temporary teacher. Not to say that he thought McGonagall was subpar, on the contrary, her entire accolades in Transfiguration accumulated in a Grand Mastery – that is to say, you probably aren't going to find anyone that much better.

"It is my hope that we go into this new term refreshed and ready, despite the changes. Let the feast begin."

The new Headmistress took her seat as the tables filled with food and the volume of the hall rose instantly. Though they were sat close together, Harry and Neville didn't speak during the meal and it was with relief that the feast came to an end so Harry could make his escape before Ginny spotted him. His mind was whirling on McGonagall's words, or rather, her lack of words; specifically, on Dumbledore. He was expecting, in the very least, something along the lines of "he will be missed" or mentioning his contributions to the school.

But absolutely nothing.

Harry couldn't work out if that was exceptionally telling of McGonagall's feelings regarding the old man or a deliberate political move given that there were children of those who had gotten rid of Dumbledore in the Hall and she didn't want to seem as if she was in the fool's corner. Whatever reason, it threw him from the loop and no doubt his friends would have been thinking the same thing. When he got to his rooms, he had been beaten by Luna, Draco and the twins, whereas Blaise, Ron, Hermione and Neville drifted in after him in the space of ten minutes.

"So that was something." Hermione said as soon as they all had seats.

"Is it possible for the quills and the other papers to have had such an effect?" Ron wondered, "I mean, I know when needed McGonagall can become mildly terrifying and that she's definitely a tough woman, but she's loyal to a fault."

"Yes, but is that loyalty to the children or to Dumbledore?" Neville wondered.

"Plus, has anyone even contemplated that there may be more than a few compulsion spells on her?" Draco threw in and there was a noise of realisation throughout the room.

"That could be very plausible." Fred and George said together before turning to Harry.

"Didn't you say-,"

"That she was-,"

"The one who-."

"Brought your mother's-,"

"Hogwarts letter?"

"Yeah, what of it?"

"Well we've heard enough times how your parents were some of the teachers favourites, but literally every teacher who worked here at the time seemed to adore your mother; McGonagall especially." George pointed out.

"Why would someone who cared that much about someone, who knew her family intricately, cave so very suddenly when Dumbledore decided to leave you on the doorstep of their house." Fred finished.

"Oh I didn't even think about that." Hermione gasped, "It doesn't make sense at all."

"Plus, we all know that McGonagall does care about her students. I mean, she went all the way to the ministry to fight against my selection in the tournament in fourth year." Harry mused, "Even if she was overrun when she was working three positions so it didn't allow her much time with the House."

"Yeah, Remus has told us all about much more work she's had piled on her since she took the Deaputy position in their 6th year." Ron added.

"I believe that McGonagall had found herself compelled to many things she wouldn't normally do, but Dumbledore has also managed to hide many things from her eyes so not as much as you." Luna's voice sounded airy and light as she gave her observations and the group seemed to collectively sigh.

"It's not something we can truly sort through at the moment." Harry stated, "As soon as the Wizengamot if over us lions will go and speak with the Queen of the Pride and go from there."

"Very well, let's leave it at that and get settled for the night." Hermione decided, "And don't forget to check over all of your holiday work. We've been working on so many different things lately that if I'm getting things mixed up then who knows what you lot are doing."

She flounced away amidst their jeers and vanished out of his portrait hole. The rest of the group dispersed after that, saying their goodbyes and leaving Harry and Luna to their rest.

"To bed my Lady?" Harry questioned, offering his arm.

"To bed, my good Sir." Luna confirmed, taking his arm with a grin.

"Why do I think this is going to be an excruciatingly long week?" Harry groaned as he flopped down on to his bed and flicked his hand to change in to his pyjamas.

"Because it is?" Luna suggested.

"Thanks for that sister."

"You are most welcome."


Apparently, Harry had lost the ability to sleep without Tom completely, he sat up gently as not to disturb Luna and slipped out of his bed to the living room cursing to himself. It was pointless trying to deny it, it was the exactly the same as Malfoy Manor, only back then he had found the cure. Harry curled up in his chair resigned to the fact he would be having many sleepless nights, but he had made a resolve and he wasn't going to break it. It shook him more than he wanted to admit that something so important had been so deeply affected, as he knew there was only so long he could go without sleep before it became a big problem. For all of his fears over becoming one of the many to be desperately seeking the Dark Lord's attention, because he knew it was addictive, he had never once contemplated something such as this.

Harry knew he was missing something, he hadn't been completely blind to his friend's odd reactions when Tom was brought up but none of them had revealed anything so he was left frustrated and restless. Worse, it felt like he was missing the obvious and it was just out of reach. Harry ruthlessly crushed down the panic that had been growing since he'd left Tom this morning and pushed everything away; he would be fine. He got through making his body sleep locked away in his cupboard he could damn well do it again, it would just take a bit of time; something he did and didn't have. But for now there wasn't anything he could do but keep himself distracted so he summoned a book and sat back to read. He was tempted to go wander the castle, but that involved effort he did have right now. It was like being full of energy but so weighed down.

Harry hated the feeling, and on top off knowing he was missing something that should be obvious but was alluding him and he had the sinking suspicion it had something to do with Tom wasn't helping. He knew he needed to work it out but he was in no way fit to analyse what in Circe' name he'd managed to get himself in to. Harry hissed when he felt a sharp flare of pain from his scar; not something that tended to happen accidently anymore, usually used as Tom's petty way to show his displeasure at the things Harry did. Harry tended to laugh at him in response which probably didn't help but it was always fun for him to rile Tom up. He pushed that thought from his mind as soon as it entered, the curling in his stomach making him uneasy. He ignored his scar and refocused on the book, trying to get his mind to focus on the text rather than his whirling thoughts.

Harry was somewhat successful, reading through the first chapter before he began to wonder how many nights he would find himself in the same situation. They had so much going on and an utterly crucial movement coming up that he couldn't afford to be anything less than utterly on his game. Just another reason for his panic, something was happing and it had something to do with Tom, and it needed to either be fixed by the Wizengamot or wait until after. Merlin, the repercussions on them missing this meeting weren't pretty and nigh on every bit of groundwork they had built up during the balls would vanish. Good Merlin, why did he always manage to land himself in to situations that he had no idea what was actually going on? He thought it was Dumbledore but, while the old goat bore responsibility for uniting them against him, Harry couldn't blame him for this one. Why did he have zero self-control when it came to the Dark Lord? Surely, he couldn't be that far lost that he couldn't fix whatever this was.

"Ouch," Harry slapped his hand to said scar as it burned fiercely followed by the feelings of impatience, as if Tom was waiting for something and Harry hissed. He was not going to be dealing with this for the rest of the night, especially given the fact that he was already set to be in a terrible mood tomorrow due to it being the first day back in class on top of little sleep. He threw back a wave of agitation only to receive what he could only describe as a summoning. Harry froze for a second and then all but jumped through the shadows furious at the Dark Lord's audacity, only to become more enraged when he saw the man casually leaning on the wall next to his bedroom obviously waiting for him.

"Did you just fucking summon me?" Harry demanded incredulously, anger leaking into his tone.

"It worked." Tom stated simply.

"A – fuck you. B – stop with the Merlin damned scar you narcissistic egotistical megalomaniac. And C – I am not one of your damn minions that will come to your side at a snap command fuck you very much." Harry snarled, shooting the Dark Lord a look of disgust and then turning on his heel to leave. Before he could step through the shadows Tom grabbed his arm and halted his movement causing Harry to look back at him through narrowed eyes.

"What?" He hissed.

"I have no other means to contact you at the current time. You cannot be angry me using our connection thusly." The Dark Lord pointed out reasonably, "Besides, I have never treated you as a Death Eater."

Harry reluctantly conceded he did have a point and sighed.

"Either way, I'm here now. What do you want?"

"You here." The unsaid obviously was hanging between them and Harry fought not to roll his eyes.

"Funnily enough, Tom, I gathered that myself."

"Hm, so angry tonight." Tom murmured, pulling the teen closer and wrapping his arms around his waist, "It looks good on you."

"Don't use your damn charm to make me less angry with you; it won't work." Harry grumbled, looking down with a slight flush to his cheeks.

"Merlin forbid." Tom said mockingly, smirking when Harry slapped his chest unimpressed.

"Are you going to let me go to bed at any point tonight?" Harry questioned, eyeing the taller man dubiously and Tom raised an eyebrow.

"You were very much awake anyway."

"I could have been heading for sleep." Harry pointed out primly.

"Were you? Tom asked, his tone bland yet somewhat amused.

"No, wide away." He replied impishly, and Tom rolled his eyes with a sigh.

"Why are you like this?" He wondered rhetorically.

"Dumbledore. He's usually the answer to most things."

"He is the last person I would like to think of right now." Tom stated in distaste.

"Yeah, I'll give you that one." Harry allowed.

"Oh, how gracious of you." Tom muttered, shaking his head. "Come, let us sleep. We have to begin classes once again tomorrow and I know you'll be on edge until the Wizengamot."

"You are the worst." Harry informed him. He knew where this was going, and he also knew his resolve, as usual with Tom, crumbled almost instantly when the man started leading him towards the bedroom. He could have refused, simply walked away back to his own room and he knew that Tom would let him, but he couldn't bring himself to and that was the worst thing of them all.

"So you tell me almost daily."

"Well it's true." Harry said, "If I don't tell you who knows what would happen to the size of your ego."

Harry allowed himself to be pushed down into bed, he allowed Tom to pull him close to his chest and he easily accepted the kiss pressed to his lips as the covers were settled over them. As pissed as he was that Tom had just called him to his side like an errant puppy, Harry found himself equally pleased that Tom clearly didn't want to sleep without him. It was actually an issue now, Harry knew this, but it didn't stop him from curling further into Tom and tucking his face into his neck as he settled for sleep.

He would deal with it in the morning.


When Tom Riddle woke up he felt someone draped over him and mentally berated himself. Yet again, Harry was in his bed. And there could be no argument as to who initiated this situation. It was all on him. He had been the one to use their unique connection to bring Harry to him, he had been the one to stop Harry leaving and it was he who pulled Harry into his bed. What was worse was that there wasn't even a hint of sex that made him do so; he just wanted Harry with him. Tom had always prided himself for his control, but there was something about the teen that made his perfect control disappear. Back when this all began, when he had caught sight of the teen, without his glamour, he had wanted him.

Sue him for being vein, but he liked pretty things and Harry Potter was gorgeous. It was to be expected of course. The Potters were always good looking, but James Potter's mother had been a Black and they had always been noted for their beauty; there hadn't been a recorded ugly Black. Harry had those genes plus he also had his mothers, and Lily Evans had been notably beautiful. At first, the Dark Lord had just wanted to sleep with teen, but then he saw the teen's real personality and he wanted to talk to him, something that was a rarity for him because he got tired of most people very quickly.

Dumbledore always assumed he had never wanted friends, but that wasn't strictly true. Theodore, Abraxas and Richmond were all people that he had truly considered his friends before he went mad and in Theodore's case, through that and after. His Elite were also joining those ranks and apparently so was Harry and co. After the ball Tom was left burning, he wanted Harry Potter to be on his substantial list of conquests more than ever. Of course, what was unexpected was for Harry to begin his little game; Tom had never had to go after someone because most threw themselves at his feet, it was exciting and he had no doubt Harry knew exactly what he was doing. Spending over two weeks dancing around him making Tom want him even more, no, the Dark Lord was sure that was Harry's intention and Tom enjoyed it.

It was something new, and he had always liked a challenge. There was no way he was not going to get what he wanted simply because Harry had to go to school to keep his act up, he needed to gather correct information from inside the school anyway and who better to collect that information than himself. Especially as it enabled him to have all of his Death Eaters "in the field". Convincing Dumbledore to give him the position was ridiculously easy and he had been given private tutoring sessions with Harry, which he was only too happy to participate in. Though, that didn't stop his amusement at the fact that Dumbledore handed over his precious saviour to him for an endless number of private hours.

He was impressed with how Harry and his friends worked together effortlessly, Dumbledore was none the wiser and it only made him more interested in Harry. The teen in question was still toying with him, looks, clothes, notes, it was driving him mad. There was the little problem with the blood traitor on his arm all the time, it was then Tom realised he was possessive of someone he hadn't even slept with yet. He had always been a possessive man, what was his was solely his; if he wanted something to be his he got it, and in his mind Harry was already labelled as such. When Harry had turned up for that first "tutoring" session Tom's mind went blank, the only thing registered was he was having him there and then and nothing was going to stop him. What was strange was he had let Harry sleep in his bed. Never had he ever allowed one of his conquests to share his bed, actually, he had never shared a bed with anyone, but with Harry he did and he didn't mind. He didn't even think about it. There was also the fact that as a rule he never slept with the same person again, it would give them too much belief that they actually mattered to him, but it was different with Harry. He wanted him again, he was determined to have him again; and so, he did.

Again, without thinking he let him stay in his bed, like it was second nature something that it shouldn't be. Tom thought he would get bored, but he didn't. Everything about Harry Potter-Black threw him, he wanted to be around him, talk to him, hell he even wanted to spend time with him in a way that he had never really experienced before. Tom Riddle had never craved human company before Harry Potter-Black, he wanted to say it was because of the very accidental bond which they had, but he wouldn't lie to himself. No, it was the teen himself, he was smart, funny, gorgeous and powerful, and Tom enjoyed being around him. He had also found he enjoyed waking up with Harry in his bed, and it was at Yule when he realised just how much. The fact he had spent so much time with Harry that he couldn't sleep properly without him was alarming, he didn't even want to have sex! Not that that wasn't a massive bonus as sex with the teen was the best, no he just wanted to have him in his bed.

Warning bells went off in his head, especially because he found himself not caring, Tom shouldn't have become that comfortable around anyone, but he was and it had to stop. It had even reached the point where he did things simply to make the teen happy. He had vowed to himself that when they were back in the castle he would cut whatever was going on off, that he would take a step back and evaluate the situation as it could no longer be labelled as casual sex because it wasn't, but it had to stop. Then the first night, first night, he caved, he wanted Harry in his bed so he would have Harry in his bed and he had made the teen come to him. He didn't know what this was, he didn't know why he wanted to be around Harry all the time, he didn't know why he was so attached to the teen and he didn't know what to do about it. The source of his whirling thought stirred in his arms, Tom felt a kiss be pressed to his collar bone and smiled automatically.

"Stop thinking, it's too early," Harry muttered, "You'll hurt yourself," Tom jabbed him in the side and Harry snickered, he pushed himself into a sitting position and turning to face the older man with a quick smile before it faded. He looked at Tom's expression for a few moments silently assessing before tilting his head.

"What are you thinking so heavily on?" Harry asked and Tom returned a silent assessment of his own before sighing quietly and leaning back.

"You." He admitted making Harry quirk an eyebrow in surprise before adopting a mild expression as his thoughts whirled. If he had noticed the oddness between them then he would bet Tom had also, which also meant that there was an equally high chance that he had already worked out what was going on or he was as clueless as Harry was; neither option was appealing to the teen.

"What about me?" He wondered, instead of asking anything else. Tom's eye's trailed over him once again but this time a strange smile flickered over his face before it cleared.

"Somehow, I think you know." Tom said, that strange smile coming and going once again, "You have a habit of knowing me."

Harry closed his eyes as he took a slow breath, unresisting as Tom pulled him to sit on his lap still facing him. He opened his eyes and gave a wry tilt of his lips.

"Wondering what in the name of magic is going on? One night in and I'm already sleeping in your bed again."

He emphasised the word because it was such a distinguishing factor. This had started off as sex, it was casual, it was relief and now it was a mess of craving and confusion and uncertainty.

"Hm," Tom's hands found his waist and traced patterns over Harry's skin almost absently. "I was using you."

"You were."

"You were using me."

"I was."

"Past tense."

Harry swallowed.

"It is."

"Hm,"

Tom didn't speak again and Harry drew a shaky breath.

"What happened?" It came out as barely a whisper but it was apparent that Tom heard as he sighed as briefly looked away from Harry.

"I don't know."

If it was any other time Harry would not have failed to capitalise on the fact that the Dark Lord had admitted out loud that he didn't know something, and by the quick warning glance Tom shot him the other man knew it too. It was as unsurprising as it was all too suddenly terrifying that they both knew each other so well that they could predict responses without so much as a look.

"It's always things surrounding you that end up in such a mess." Harry said in frustration, getting to his feet and moving over to the wardrobe in an effort to relief his pent-up tension.

"Me?" Tom repeated incredulously, following the teen's movement with his eyes. "You are the problem. You are always the one that makes completely normal situations suddenly challenging."

"Yes, I pull off impossible feats but how do I make things challenging. That's on you. You cannot seem to ever take the simple route." Harry snipped and Tom scoffed.

"Of course, I use the killing curse and you rebound it."

"Oh, like that has anything to do it this." Harry snapped, "This is on you, you came after me."

"Do not give me that. You knew exactly what you were doing from the moment you started your little game." Tom threw back.

"And it was supposed to be casual!" Harry exclaimed, "I'm 16 and horny; your gorgeous; it was meant to be just sex! And you had to ruin that, too."

"How did I ruin it?" Tom demanded. "How is this on me?"

"Because you were supposed to be a vile, cold hearted bastard that cared nothing for anything but his own power and control!" Harry burst out, "You were never supposed to be funny, charming, caring or sweet. You weren't supposed to make me notice your sweet tooth, or your favourite colour or the fact that you are, despite Light opinion, unbelievably proud to be a Halfblood simply because you are the most powerful wizard in our known world and it's a massive fuck you to the Purebloods who believe blood matters."

"Do not stand there like you are the innocent in all this. I was known for being a cold-hearted bastard. I am the Dark Lord; people literally feared to speak my name." Tom spat, rising to his feet also. "You drew me in, you got me to notice everything from your weird addiction to strawberries to the fact that you smell like damn apples and you made it so the only thing that was on my mind was was you."

"And you made me love you!"

As soon as the words left his mouth, the implications of what he had just said punched him in the gut and Harry's face drained of colour as he suddenly understood exactly what was going on. To his utter desperation he realised that it was true. The unnamed feelings that had been steadily growing had accumulated into him falling in love Tom Riddle, and he hadn't noticed until right now. He caught sight of Tom's frozen expression and panic nearly overwhelmed him; this was the absolute opposite as to what he wanted to happen. He couldn't do this; he needed to get out of there right away.

"What did you just say?"

"I said this has to stop." Harry barked, his voice shaking despite how much he tried to stop it, "We're done here. I have to go."

He closed their connection abruptly, and this time, when he turned and called up his shadows Tom didn't stop him as he made his escape.

Notes:

For everyone who only reads on here and not over on ff.net, you too have to suffer just like they did sorry not sorry 0:)

Hope everyone has a wonderful holiday XD

Chapter 52

Notes:

So I'm back, and I'm not even sorry how I left it :P

We about to get some draaaaaaaammmmmmmaaaaaaaaa

################################################################################

Parsel is in bold italics

I'm not J.K but the fic is mine

If you get mad at me for anything in this fic after reading the tags then thats a you problem... sorry not sorry

 

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Harry appeared in his living room and everything crashed down on him, he dropped to the floor and stared listlessly at the wall. He couldn't believe this had happened to him. He didn't know how this had happened to him. It had started off so simple. A desire that was unreachable at first, but then the tides had changed and it became a dangerous game to play and a selfish pleasure. And now
 now it was love. Love that he had been too blind to see happening and it was too late. He had fallen in love with the Dark Lord and there was absolutely nothing he could do about it. It was so obvious and now it was too late. Worst of all, he had realised the exact time when he had blurted it out to Tom's face.

The man was famous for sneering at the mere thought of love, who scorned and mocked Dumbledore's belief in love and called it nothing but lies and weakness. And Harry had gone and told him he loved him. He'd slammed their connection closed because he could not bear to feel the disgust or disdain that would be emanating from Tom at his confession. It was like as soon as the words had left his mouth Harry felt everything start to crash down around him, and almost wanted to laugh hysterically at his past self's words the previous day. His so-called resolve to stay away from Tom just became a Hel of a lot easier because no doubt Tom would not want to be near him, just as Harry realised that he didn't want to stay away at all. Merlin, just remembering Tom's frozen expression made him want to throw up.

It was over. Done. Finished. He would never kiss or touch Tom again, he couldn't just go over and find him for whatever reason, he couldn't go and cook and share a meal with him, and he would have to watch the man everyday knowing that he was in love with him and it couldn't do anything about it. It felt like someone had their hand in his chest and was squeezing, tearing, ripping at his heart and crushing his lungs so he couldn't breathe. Harry felt his eyes burn and something trail down his face, he reached up to feel and found it was tears. He was crying. He tried to stop them but the more he tried the more they came. And it hurt. A choked sound escaped him and he realised it was a sob. He had never felt like this before, most of his emotions were beyond his comprehension as it was, but this was something entirely new. Harry wanted to fold in on himself and he gripped his hair; why did this happen? Why did it hurt so much? Even Tom's name made his breath catch painfully.

He could never have Tom for himself, he couldn't love the man freely and it wouldn't be accepted even if he tried. Harry couldn't handle these feelings, they were overwhelming him, swarming his mind and his mind flickering to the last time he remembered crying, the last time he had been so scared, so lost. His cupboard. Darkness. Safety. He needed to hide. Harry ran to his room and huddled under the covers, where it was dark and enclosed, where it was safe. He could get through this, he just needed to hide and forget all about his feelings. He needed to get rid of the pain, but it wouldn't go away. It kept swarming him, and Harry gasped harshly, his breath catching as the reality sank in to him and he cried. He gave up trying to push the tears away, it just wasn't working and he felt his entire being scream out at the injustice of everything. Why? Why was he so fucking screwed up that he couldn't even recognise that he was in love with Tom? Why hadn't he had a shred of self-control when it came to the man? Why had he let this happen? It was too much. He didn't want this, he didn't need this. He just needed himself, himself and his darkness.

Harry was so distracted that he didn't notice Luna's presence until she breached his newly labelled sanctuary and he came face to face with her open concern.

"Harry!" She whispered in shock, her voice shaking when she saw the fresh tear tracks and the utter pain in his eyes. "What happened?" Harry shook his head, not knowing how to explain what had happened but needing to. It was like the words were stuck in his throat, as if his body wouldn't let them out because saying them out loud would make it real. Luna, if possible, became even more worried at the state of her brother, this was not like him and she couldn't gleam anything from her usual ability to know everything; and she hadn't seen this coming.

She crawled in to the bed and tucked them both under the covers, sealing them away from the world knowing that all Harry wanted to do right now was be in the dark. She gently wiped the tear tracks away, not that it accomplished much as he was still crying, but it was a soothing none the less and until she found out what was going on then there was nothing else she could do. It took a while before Harry was able to speak, but when he did it was thick with a mix of emotions and stilted as if he couldn't get the words out.

"I messed up." He told her, and she could feel his entire body shaking next to her. "I messed everything up and now I don't know what to do." His crying became worse because that was the truest statement he had ever said, he didn't have an inkling on what he was supposed to do now. This pain he was feeling, it was all consuming, stronger than anything he had ever felt and Harry had no idea if or when it would go away. What if it never went away, what if it remained with him until he was killed or he finally went mad? He shuddered at the thought.

Luna was at a loss on what to do. Harry never ever cried. In the time that she had known him she had never seen him shed a tear, not when he was in so much physical pain that he couldn't move, not when he found out that his entire life had been a set-up, not even when he saw his dearest Godfather be killed before his very eyes. And now he was hiding and sobbing, trying to curl in on himself as if being consumed by something, like his very heart and soul were breaking


And then it clicked.

Luna felt herself go pale. He couldn't have
 Surely not now
 She would have sensed something
 And if he had, what had happened to cause such a reaction.

"You love him, don't you?" She asked quietly, and the shuddering breath answered her question.

"And it hurts." Harry admitted after a few minutes, his voice hoarse. "I fell for the one person I shouldn't, I fell for the one person that will never love me in return, I fell for the one person that I can't have. And the worse thing is, I fell in love and I didn't even know it was happening."

"Why did you come here?"

Harry released a somewhat hysterical laugh.

"As apposed to what? I just blurted out to the Dark Lord that I loved him and he looked at me as if I had killed his snake." Harry scoffed, "Nothing could ever come of this except pain and suffering, and I'd be surprised if he didn't look though me and pretend I didn't exist."

It killed Luna to hear someone as strong as Harry sound so utterly broken, so defeated. It was like his fight had simply left him. She cursed the fates for doing this. Why? What motive did this bring? To crush someone as good as Harry. What cruel punishment were they giving to make him so lost? Hadn't he lost enough as it was? There was only so much one person could take before they simply broke. Luna stilled. She didn't even want to imagine the traitorous thoughts that were slipping in to her mind. The most prominent being, what if this was his limit? Harry had enough going on in his life as it was, he didn't need this, and for the first time in a long time Luna wasn't sure of the outcome of a situation.

She didn't know if Harry could handle this pain, this torment without breaking. His emotions were wild, he felt everything intensely but at the same time he didn't understand what he was feeling half the time. He was basically clueless when it came to his emotions, adapting to what was happening around him because he didn't have much else of a choice and Luna wasn't sure he would be able to do that with this situation. It was much more complicated. He had fallen in love and she doubted that he would love anyone else ever again. It was almost mate-like. And he would be reminded every day that he was in love with the Dark Lord, Harry would have see him, talk to him, work with him, hell, he had the man in his head; literally! It would break him.

Luna cursed herself for not realising that he was coming close to understanding what he was feeling, if she had known that he had realised then she could have made sure she was there to walk him through it and help him understand. It must have hit him from nowhere and struck as an epiphany and he wouldn't have know how to deal with it and so he ran. And of all the people to fall in love with, it happened to be with an emotionally stunted Dark Lord, who would be as equally clueless about what he was feeling towards Harry; and Luna was 100% certain that he felt something. She needed more information if she was to help her brother correctly, she knew they had feelings for each other, so what she couldn't understand was why Harry was becoming more and more of a wreck whilst hiding in his bed.

"Can you tell me what happened?" She asked him softly and slowly, he nodded.

"He wanted me there last night so I went, I'd noticed that I couldn't sleep without him and it was tossing and turning in my mind, I knew why I couldn't sleep but I didn't know why. I couldn't seem to understand." Harry began, his voice unsteady as he spoke. "When I woke up it hit me how messed up the entire situation was, I couldn't even sleep without Him next to me; what the hell was wrong with me? We were talking and it hit me, I know all of his little quirks, his tastes, what makes him angry and what makes him smile and I was pleased about that. Why? Why did all that matter? We argued, and he said that it was my fault for making him always think of me and it just came out; I literally screamed I loved him to his face."

Harry shook his head and swallowed convulsively.

"If you could have seen his face." He whispered, horror and pain equal measure clear in his tone. "And so I did the only think I could; I ended it and ran."

"Harry
"

"I still don't understand what happened. When did I suddenly adore everything about the man? When did I fall in love with him?" Harry took a deep breath in an effort to control the feelings that were raging up inside him, and Luna had to stop herself from tearing up. She hugged him tightly and let him cry silently on her shoulder, murmuring how it would all be ok even if she didn't quite believe the words she was saying.

How she loathed Dumbledore and the Dursleys for crushing his emotions, the old man would pay for him one day of that she swore. Luna went to move, she had to see if she could do something but she found herself in a vice like grip as Harry clung to her.

"Please don't leave me." He begged, his voice barely breaking a whisper and had a note of desperation she hoped that she never had to hear again.

"Never." She vowed. They had the weekend before them to see if there was any light to be shed on this situation and Luna would just have to hope that there was something that could be done before Harry finally broke.

 


 

It wasn't looking good. Actually, Luna had gone from greatly concerned to downright terrified. What she had feared to happen was happening before her eyes and she couldn't stop it. They had been worried about how Harry would react, because as well as Harry worked on a day to day basis all of his friends were well away he was a step away from a full emotional breakdown. Dumbledore had literally been synthetically dictating Harry's emotions from eleven years of age, and before that all the green-eyed teen had to go on was his stunned emotional growth from the abusive household he had been forced to grow in. Ron and Hermione had been expecting it to happen in the wake of Sirius, but instead Harry seemed to quash as much as the pain from his Godfather's passing as possible and the rest had been hidden by Dumbledore.

These last few months had been the longest that Harry had been without Dumbledore's manipulations directly cast onto him so he was feeling more and more of his true emotions all without knowing truly what it was he was feeling. And now this had happened. Harry was losing himself far quicker than she could have predicted. She had convinced him to have something small to eat, only for him to violently vomit it back up. She had tried to get him out of bed and mobile if only in their rooms, and Harry's body had just collapsed on itself as if its will was no longer present. And she had tried to get him to continue to talk to her but it was a physical impossibility. When Monday morning dawned slowly, Luna was at a complete loss. Harry wouldn't eat, drink, speak or even move. And she knew he wasn't sleeping. He spent most of his time hiding under the quilts silently crying, curled up as if to protect himself from the world and Luna felt her own will slipping. It was worse at night, when his body's exhaustion tried to drag him in to sleep, he would be thrown back in to the present gasping and screaming, clutching at his chest before he would finally settle and curl in to himself some more.

She hated this, to see him so wasted. The few times he had breached the surface of his sanctuary he had looked around the room with an expression of utter loss, like he no longer understood what he was supposed to do with his life. His eyes were void of their bright spark and his magic was completely listless, blanketing the room like a void instead of burning and bouncing like it usually did. Luna didn't know what to do. She had even tried to find out information from the Dark Lord's side, only to discover that the man might as well have vanished. Snape covered his Friday lessons and the man's rooms were sealed tighter than anything she had ever seen before. The situation couldn't get any worse. She had had to call a meeting with the group because they needed to know what could potentially happen, and she needed their help. With the way things were going, Harry was not going to be fit to do anything remotely beneficial and they had plans they needed to put in to action.

She refused to let all of his efforts be wasted, even if he wasn't able to do things himself. Luna had to think as if Harry would get through this, because if she didn't then she wouldn't be able to keep going strong, and Harry needed her to be strong. She took a deep breath when she felt the others arrive, she had to do this, for Harry, because she wouldn't allow his suffering to be in vain.

"The others are here." She murmured, breaching the sanctuary and fighting back her own pain at his increasingly vacant expression. As she expected, she didn't get a response and so she steeled herself and walked in to the living room, the entire group was sat down, each of them had varying looks of concern on their faces and Luna shook. They turned to look at her as she came towards them, she knew she must have looked a sight because mild concern became outright worry and Neville was quickly by her side.

"What is the matter?" He questioned softly, and that seemed to be it. Luna's hand came up to cover her mouth as the tears she had been fighting all weekend finally broke free. She clutched Neville like a lifeline, and felt as she was surrounded by all her friends.

"What is going on?" Paws demanded, her voice urgent and taut with anxiety.

"He's hurting so much." She choked out, looking around at them all to see if they understood what she was saying, "I don't know what to do. He's falling apart and I can't stop it."

"Raven, Luna
" Swift tried, his face pale, "Where's Harry?" Luna shook her head, her tears not yet finished falling.

"He's breaking." She told them all, "I can't help him."

"No," Paws whispered, her hand automatically grabbing Swifts and gripping it tightly, "Merlin please no."

Luna gave her a helpless look.

"What has gone on?" Bleach demanded, his worry making him snappy.

"They broke it off." Luna stated and the entire group stilled.

"That's not possible." Fred said slowly, "Harry is practically in love with the man."

"I know, and so does he." She returned and Swift and Paws sucked in sharp breath, being the ones to know exactly what consequences that brought.

"Harry is strong." George pointed out, though it sounded as if he was trying to convince himself as much as he was the others.

"But he is still human." Neville whispered, "Everyone has their limit."

"He can't break, he's Harry." Swift stated, but his voice wavered in uncertainty.

"He's still crying." Luna said shaking her head, and they all gasped in horror, "He can't take it, it's like his will has just gone. I had to watch my brother, the strongest person I know, collapse in on himself because he is in so much pain his body physically cannot hold him up. He clutches his chest as if something is clawing at him, he doesn't eat, he doesn't drink, he doesn't sleep, and he doesn't move. He's losing it."

"No no no no no." Paws denied, rapidly shaking her head, "There has to be something, anything. I don't care. I can't lose him. Not now."

"If he can't take it then he's going to escape." Bleach pointed out.

"And he's already reverted back to hiding in the dark." Luna said, "I've tried everything I can think of, but I wasn't prepared for something like this. I thought we had time."

"Try to escape." Swift repeated in a murmured and then he went sheet white. "Holy mother of Merlin."

"What?" Venom asked worried, concerned over the rapid change of colour. Swift looked around at them all with fear in his eyes.

"When Harry is in a new situation where it seems as if there is no way out, what does he do?"

"He reverts back to his instincts. What does that have to do with anything?" Neville said, confused at the abrupt change. Paws clicked first and she also went white with horror.

"Oh Circe." She breathed.

"What is it?" Bleach snapped and Paws turned her own fearful eyes on him.

"If Harry reverts back to his instincts, the first thing he will do is rid himself of pain. What is the only way to get rid of emotional pain?"

"Well, you can't really." Venom pointed out, "You can hide them behind Occlumency and you can try to ignore them but its always there."

"Unless you didn't have emotions to harvest the pain." George pointed out, "But in order for that to be the case one would have to shut down their emotions
" the rest of the group shuddered at the mere thought.

"What would that even do to him?" Bleach whispered and Paws looked at him dead in the eye.

"Do you remember what he was like when he arrived at your manor during the summer?" She questioned and Draco's eyes widened in horror. "Like that, but worse, and all the time. And while he may recognise us, it wouldn't matter, because he'll no longer have the emotions to care."

Swift broke away from the group and stalked over to the fireplace, he gazed at the flames thinking on something that could help but he was coming up blank.

"He was my first friend, you know." Swift murmured, "I know I have brothers, but they are family, its different really. I already had a label when I started out for this school, I was the youngest Weasley boy, poor and a blood traitor, but to Harry, it didn't matter. He didn't care about any of that, he just wanted to know me, and he is my very best friend." He turned to face them and his eyes were suspiciously bright. "I have watched him face the impossible, I have watched as he has lost so much over and over again at the hands of others and I have watched him bear the brunt of the world on his shoulders. And I don't know if he can do it anymore."

"We have to stay positive." Neville said shakily, "We cannot give up."

"But what if we lose him?" Ron asked, voicing what they were all fearing to hear, "What if this is just too much for him. What if he finally gives up?"

"Then we do everything in our power to make sure he doesn't." Hermione's voice was quivering as she spoke, but you would have to be blind to miss the raw determination on her face. "We will not let Dumbledore win, we won't let him get the best of Harry, and we will not rest until that foul, loathsome man is in the ground rotting."

"He's going to pay for this." George murmured, his voice vicious and his eyes flashing.

"We have to begin organising." Swift stated easily falling in to leading as no one else had the will to do so. "We take the plans for the Wizengamot as if Snake isn't going to be there. The session is next weekend leaving us little time."

"You're right," Paws agreed nodding, "We know what Snake's outlook was, we build from that and go from there."

"Dumbledore goes," Draco stated firmly, the blonde was abnormally pale and his mercury eyes were like chips of ice, "He caused this, indirectly yes, but he is responsible."

No one disagreed.

"Will we know if he's managed to shut his emotions down?" Venom asked, part concerned and part determined.

"He'll eyes will go black and glassy, and his magic will go completely still – like he's dead." Paws told them.

"His eyes were green when he appeared at the manor." Draco said in confusion and Paws nodded.

"We believe Harry's instincts only supressed some of his emotions, leaving him the pleasure of revenge but not the pain, the betrayal ect."

"So the negative ones then?"

"Basically, yes. If he were to shut them down fully his eyes would go black and glassy like there is no one there, and, technically, there wouldn't be. He will cease to have contact with his humanity, his core being, because that is made from emotion – all emotions." Swift explained, "What we have to worry about is when his magic wakes up. He would have shut his core being, which results in the dead-like magic, but when his body adjusts so will his magic and Harry had a whole lot of it. All of his knowledge will still be there, all of his memories and his experiences, but he just won't feel them anymore. I know it doesn't sound that bad, but think about this. Harry actively retains his magic so it doesn't wreak havoc on everyone and everything, if he shuts down his emotions, he'll have no consideration or reason to do such a thing."

"Is there nothing we can do?" Fred said desperately and Paws shook her head.

"I don't know. The best we have is talking to him,"

"The only thing left it waiting it out." Swift agreed.

"We need to agree that we do not tell Moony about this." Badger cut in, "Yes, there is a possibility that he could help Harry, but there is also a possibility that he will completely lose it and that is the last thing we need right now."

"I agree." Bleach said with a nod, "He sees Harry as his cub, the wolf in him will not take kindly to this."

"Ok, but we're going to have to avoid him." Venom pointed out, "He's a wolf, he will smell that we're lying this close to the full moon."

"Oh wonderful, this should be a walk in the park." Paws grumbled. They began planning with a new vigour, if Harry couldn't personally make Dumbledore and his sycophants pay then they would for him, they would rip the world apart and rebuild it in Harry's vision.

This was not the end.

 


 

It had been decided that Harry would not be left alone at any point during any day, they still had to go to lessons but time turners were a beautiful thing and they made it work. But nothing changed. Day after day and night after night they would spend grouped together, trying to put some life back in to their friend and brother, but nothing seemed to work. It was agony, to watch someone so strong be reduced to this, but they didn't know what else to do and they all refused to leave him. On Wednesday they began to panic. It was Luna who noticed it, and her horrified exclamation drew the others attention.

"His eyes," She whispered, fear lining her tone. "Look at his eyes." There was a mad scramble for the group to huddle around Harry.

"This cannot be happening." Ron spat, clenching his fist at his side, storming back in to the main room. "What about Him? Where is He in all of this?"

It was a rhetorical question, of course. No one had seen or heard from the Dark Lord since Harry had broken down, but he was angry and scared and he wanted to hurt everyone who was making his best friend shut himself down to protect himself.

"We need to try and stay calm." Hermione rationalised.

"Calm? Calm?" Draco repeated, his voice an octave higher than normal, "How the Hel can we be calm when one of the strongest people we know is in so much pain, fear and Merlin knows what else that he has chosen to shut down his emotions!"

"We haven't got a choice!" Luna exclaimed, her voice rather shrill, "We don't know what's happened to Him, and we are the only ones Harry has got. If we fall apart now, then whatever little chance we may have will have gone. I will not risk it."

"Then I can't stay here." Draco snarled, his eyes bright, "I cannot watch as Harry breaks, I won't watch as we lose him."

"Don't say that!" Luna shouted, "Don't speak as if he's already gone!"

"LOOK AT HIM!" Draco roared, "His eyes are already losing colour and his magic fades by the day, we'll need a miracle to get through this. It's an impossible task, and the one who usually does the impossible is the one who is breaking. The Dark Lord has vanished, no one has heard from him. Everything is crumbling, and we have nothing to stop it."

"I have to have hope." Luna whispered, her voice cracking, "I have to. Because if Harry goes, what hope is left for the rest of us?"

Draco jerked back as if she had slapped him, taking two unsteady steps backwards looking at her with wide, scared eyes, before he turned and fled the room. He ran through the corridors, not caring about the looks he received, going further up in to the castle until he fell into the Room of Requirement. He stumbled over to the fireplace and floo'd to the one place he had always felt safe. Draco stepped out of the floo and called for an elf to take him to his mother. He may be sixteen and working to try and take over the wizarding world, but right now he needed someone who always knew what to say and always looked after him; that was his mother.

She was sat in the living room having tea and reading a magazine when he entered, but her attention quickly switched to him with a smile, that dropped into a look of concern when she saw him. Draco knew he must look like crap, he hadn't been sleeping. None of them had. How could they when Snake was internally falling apart?

"Oh my Dragon!" She breathed, rushing over to cup his cheek, "Whatever is the matter to cause you such exhaustion?"

He closed his eyes, just soaking up her love and concern, allowing all of his walls to fall and a single tear to slip down his pale cheek.

"Everything is falling apart." He whispered, the desperation in his voice making it shake, "It's all coming down and no one knows what to do."

"Draco, my darling, explain to me what has happened." Narcissa said firmly, her alarm going up at her son's behaviour. Draco opened his eyes to look at his mother before he spoke.

"Snake – Harry – has had a complete breakdown." He told her, making her eyes widen in shock and her concern grow, "He won't eat, he won't sleep, he doesn't or can't even move."

"What has caused such upset?" She demanded, her own voice tinged with worry.

"They broke it off-,"

"Excuse me?" She interrupted, "They broke up? How? Why?"

"We don't know." Draco admitted, "But they finished it and Harry just broke. Luna told us she found him hidden and crying last Friday and he's only gotten worse since."

"But what of the Dark Lord?" She asked, "Surely he wouldn't allow Harry to go through such pain?"

"That's what makes the whole situation even worse. He's vanished." Draco told her and she blinked.

"Vanished?"

"Yes, he's gone. He hasn't been for meals, he hasn't been teaching, been spotted in the corridors or at any bases, and his rooms are completely sealed." He explained and Narcissa gained a look of understanding on her face and something clicked in her mind. She had a sudden flash of insight on a way to correct the situation, and she just hoped it worked. She pressed a kiss to her son's forehead, lingering there for only a moment before drawing back and looking him in the eye.

"Go to your rooms here, get some proper rest and I will sort everything out." She assured him, and Draco gave her a small, wistful smile.

"I wish I could believe you, mother. I really wish I could, but this is bad. Swift – Ron – thinks that Harry might shut down his emotions, and by the signs occurring he's already started to." He explained and Narcissa went pale; this was worse than she thought, but her resolve was firm.

"Draconis Lucius Malfoy," She said, softly but firmly, "Trust in me to fix this, because I will not allow this to continue."

Draco looked at her for a full minute before slowly nodding his head, he could see that she had nothing but belief in her eyes and he had to trust that, like always, his mother would make everything ok again, because he had nothing else to trust in right now. He pressed a kiss to her cheek and left to room to follow her instructions.

Narcissa took a deep breath once her son was gone, slowly releasing it to steel herself for what she had planned. Oh how she hated Dumbledore and his perpetual habit of ruining lives, if he had just kept that crooked nose out of the way then they wouldn't be in such a situation. She called for an elf to fetch her cloak and made her way to the floo room, she took another deep breath before throwing powder into the flames.

"Nott Country Lodge." She called, vanishing in a swirl of green and stepped out in a small-ish room. An elf popped in to greet her and she asked for the master of the house, she was led up through the beautiful halls and directed in to the sun room, where the elf announced her arrival.

"Ah Narcissa, what a delightful surprise." Theodore Nott Sr. greeted her, and Narcissa smiled. "Come, have a seat." She gratefully accepted his offer and sat on the chair opposite him.

"Thank you, Theodore. I apologise for the abrupt arrival, I know it is not like myself."

"It is of no consequence, I enjoy a surprise every now and then." He waved her off with a small smile. "How have you been?"

"I am well, thank you. I have been able to relax as I shall be stepping down from the Wizengamot." She told him.

"Of course, the young Lord Potter-Black shall be returning to them. Yes, I have to say I am going to enjoy the next session. I am sure Lucius feels the same way."

"Oh yes, my husband is positively giddy." Narcissa admitted with a light laugh, "I have told him not to get away with himself."

They both chuckled at the thought of Lucius losing his cool in public, knowing that the likelihood of that happening were slim to none. Theodore looked over the younger woman in front of him slowly, picking up on subtle hints to why she had come, before setting his expression.

"I see that you are both tense and worried, my dear Narcissa. You have come with a specific purpose, please, speak freely." He said to her and she took a slow breath.

"I come to you because I know of no other." She told him honestly, her voice steady. "The situation is precarious, there is but one chance to solve it."

"What has happened so suddenly that you come to me?" He wondered, "Surely it cannot be our building rule, Marvolo would have written."

Narcissa nodded, accepting his words and knowing they were true.

"You are correct, my Lord would have written to you if it have been our rule." She verbally agreed, "He would not have written, however, if it were he who was in crisis."

Theodore's attention snapped to focus on her piercingly, he drew himself up straighter, his eyes concerned.

"If he were in crisis?" He repeated slowly, "No, I don't suppose he would. I wish to know the situation. If he is in a situation that warrants you to come to me then I presume it is dyer."

"Did my Lord happen to mention his affairs with the Lord Potter-Black?" She asked him hesitantly, and Theodore raised an eyebrow at the question.

"Of course. It is all his letters comply of as of late, and he introduced me to the young Lord just days ago." He smiled slightly, "He's completely smitten with the young Lord. I would have placed money on a wedding if I have been a gambling man."

Narcissa smiled at the thought, she would have done the same, in fact she had begun to plan one, so sure that her Lord would declare it sooner or later. Her smile faded as she remembered the reason she was here, she looked at the floor briefly collecting her thought before looking back up and speaking.

"They have split up."

The blunt statement seemed to ring around the room, and Theodore looked at her in utter disbelief, his lips even parted in his incredulity before it was replaced by a serious concern for his long-time friend and Lord.

"Dear Merlin." He murmured, "What in the name of Circe has happened in the week in which I personally saw their affections for the other?"

"I do not know of the exact details, but my son returned home, his face riddled with exhaustion. He explained how Lord Potter-Black has had a complete breakdown and our Lord has vanished, his rooms sealed tightly." She explained and Theodore's eyes were full of worry for his friend, even as his face was set in stone.

"I see why it is a precarious situation." He said, his voice low, "Am I to presume you come to me because of the age of our association."

"Yes," She admitted and he nodded.

"Why not approach Antonin?" He asked and she paused thoughtfully before she answered.

"While our Lord and Antonin get on well, you are his oldest and dearest friend. You have that connection with him."

"I shall do all that I can." He told her, after a moment of silence. Narcissa breathed in relief, her whole body relaxing.

"Thank you," She breathed, "Thank you so very much."

"I shall send word." He assured, and Narcissa rose to leave. She curtseyed out of respect for the man before her and followed the elf out.

Theodore took a deep breath and rose to his feet, his mind whirling at what he had been told and what it would mean. Sometimes, he really just wanted to shake the man he had been friends with for the best part of his entire life; for all he was a genius, he was completely clueless. He moved swiftly through his home, his shoes clicking on the polished oak flooring, he called for his cloak before attempting to step through the floo to where his Lord was staying. The floo fizzled, crackling and spitting before the embers died and Theodore's eyes narrowed.

"Oh no you don't, Marvolo." He grumbled, throwing more powder in to the re-lit flames. He hissed out the cut through word and stepped through the grate, the blocking wards being dismantled with the password. Theodore's eyebrows shot up at the stillness of the rooms, he followed his Lord's magic and was shocked, and rather concerned, to find the man in bed at such a time. This was the same man that sat and worked for four consecutive days, without sleeping, to make sure his mark was perfected. The same man that was never still to do nothing, never not active, even when he was sat down he would have a book or he would be planning, so to see him in bed was very unexpected.

It was obvious, then, just how fond his friend was of the Potter-Black Lord. Not merely fond, he was in love with him, and he couldn't help but shake his head at the man's foolishness. Well, it was up to him to make him see sense. Nott entered the room and sent a sharp stinging hex at the Dark Lord, to which he already knew to avoid the automatic killing curse that was sent directly towards his heart.

"It's a pleasure as always, old friend." He greeted calmly, and he would have been amused at the mess of his friend's appearance if the situation wasn't as it was. Theodore didn't so much as bat an eye at the fierce glare that was aimed at him, choosing to merely return it with a pleasant expression.

"You are disturbing my pain and self-pity." Tom snapped, "Why are you here?"

"Perhaps I am here because you have sealed yourself in these rooms and are currently in bed at three in the afternoon." Theodore suggested lightly, and, if possible, Tom's glare grew in velocity.

"I do not require you in my presence." He spat, waving his hand. "Be gone, Nott."

Theodore's eyebrows slowly climb in incredulity before a dark look crossed his face.

"Did you just dismiss me?" He inquired, his voice seemingly pleasant.

"You have never had problems with hearing before." Tom threw back viciously and Theodore bared his teeth.

"While your mark it is I wear upon my arm, as proud as I was when I was the very first person to receive it, to follow you for my lifetime with you as my Lord, it is your friend I am first and foremost. Friends, since we were scrawny little twelve-year-old fools, who got caught up in the pureblood politics and we had to aid each other to get out before we were swallowed alive." Theodore stated sharply, which made Tom blink. Noticing his friend's less hostile expression, Theodore nodded and continued.

"Now, would you care to tell me how you have monumentally screwed up this time?"

"Your insolence against me is astounding." Tom pointed out without heat, and Theodore gave a look that informed him exactly how much he cared. They sat in silence for ten minutes before Tom's famous impatience worked against him and he began speaking.

"It seems I have feelings." He ground out reluctantly and Theodore had to bite back a smile at how irrefutably put out the other man sounded.

"You have reconnected with them, I see." Theodore noted, "Would your sudden and sharp reconnection perhaps involve one Harry Potter-Black?"

"Do not speak his name." Tom hissed, to which Theodore received his answer.

"What happened?" He questioned.

"We had become distracted. We came to a mutual decision. It is for the best. There is a war rising and neither of us can afford to be anything less than focussed." Tom stated shortly, his voice almost robotic and Theodore noticed.

"You do not sound as if you agree with your own assessment." Nott pointed out and Tom hissed at him.

"I am the Dark Lord. I need to focus on my take over and subsequent ruling of our world."

"That is completely irrelevant." Nott informed him bluntly, gaining a look that from Tom that said he had lost his mind.

"Excuse me?"

"Did I not previously state that I come here as a friend, not a follower?" Theodore demanded, "You are about to perform the biggest mistake of your entire life over your blind and idiotic ideas of what you believe you need, instead of going after what you actually need."

Tom stilled stunned, he had known Theodore Nott since he was eleven and they had been friends since their second year of Hogwarts, and he had never been so directly insulting or spoke to him in such a way. And Tom honestly had no response. Theodore realised he and shocked his friend silent and nodded, pleased.

"Your belief that simply because you are the Dark Lord you need to be a loveless, cold hearted monster, who abides by the reasoning emotions are a weakness, is positively ridiculous." Theodore continued firmly, "You have found a perfect match, why do you insist on being alone?"

"What do you expect me to do?" Tom snarled, rising to pace, "To go to him and tell him that the mere thought of not being able to touch him again makes me want to rip out my own heart? The even the idea of someone else merely looking at him makes me want to burn the world to ashes?"

"Yes." Theodore answered simply and Tom span to face him, his expression one of utter disbelief.

"What?" He yelped, as if he hadn't heard him correctly.

"I said yes." Nott repeated.

"Theodore, you cannot be serious? It just doesn't work like that!"

"And why not?" Nott asked lightly, "You are infatuated with him, some would call it more."

"It is inconceivable-," Tom began but was cut off.

"Think, Marvolo. Have you ever felt like this about any other person?" Theodore questioned, his voice intense. Tom didn't answer, but Nott could see that he was beginning to think. "Think about all of the things that make you feel anything about him, even if its annoyance, and even if this is the only time you do, truly listen to what your feelings are telling you."

"I do not know if I can." Tom admitted quietly and Theodore smiled slightly.

"The fact that you allow him to call you Tom should make you think. You do not allow that of anyone, so why him? Forget about your cold logic and beliefs, and just feel." He advised, "You are never one to fail in a task, do not start now." With that, Theodore turned on his heel and left the Dark Lord to his thoughts. If he knew anything about the man at all, his mind would be whirling and they might just get the results they wanted and needed.

 


 

Tom himself did not feel good what so ever. When Harry had left him Friday morning after making such a declaration, the Dark Lord had stayed staring at the spot where Harry had stood for a long time. He'd never put much stock in to emotions anyway but he had often found himself sneering at the thought of love; it was nothing but an inconvenience. Besides, no one would ever claim to love him in any capacity so what did he need for this supposed great emotion when he was on a quest to rule the world. And that was completely fine. He hadn't craved love and affection, he hadn't wanted to share his life or find a significant other; the thought hadn't even crossed his mind at all.

Until Friday morning.

He had been much more honest with Harry than intended when he admitted the teen was always on his mind and knowing he wasn't coming back was like someone had ripped something out of him leaving him hollow in a way he had never experienced. Worst still, he hadn't been able to simply push those feelings away. Harry had said he loved him, him, and if it wasn't for the teen's expression and immediate well of feelings that followed that confession Tom would have said he was lying. But Harry's face was one of shocked realisation and then terror before he fled and Tom had done nothing to stop him.

The Dark Lord had found himself overwhelmed and extremely underprepared to react to such a thing. He had thought he would have immediately rejected the thought of love, laughed in the face of it, but he had been so surprised he had allowed Harry to leave and by the time he had realised that he couldn't place any negative connotations on the declaration it had been far too late. Harry was gone and whatever they had been doing was gone. The Dark Lord had been furious and he had clung to that anger, but it hadn't lasted and it had left him feeling more drained than before.

Then he was just lost. Never before had he been in such a situation, and for the first time since he was a young boy he honesty did not know what to do. All his motivations and energies vanished from his body and he found himself lying in his bed with his mind turning over as he was surrounded by Harry's scent. Tom couldn't even bring himself to move, he felt both sick and empty, so he had sent word to Severus to cover his lessons. He didn't know it was possible for him to feel so many things at one time and in such strong capacity, let alone identity and organise them; it seemed impossible. Yet there was one clear thing that had been there since the very beginning and that was everything centred around Harry. While he didn't know what exactly he felt, he knew he felt something and it was strong; so strong. And he was scared, scared of what he was feeling, of how much he was feeling.

What made it worse was knowing he wouldn't have Harry with him. It made him not want to do anything. Something Tom had never experienced before because he had always been motivated; there was always something to be done. But now there was nothing. He didn't know how long he led there, before Theodore appeared. He didn't sleep because the bed was too cold and empty without his Harry, as still in his mind Harry belonged to and that refused to change, in his arms and Tom hated it. He didn't eat because food seemed pointless and unappealing. Feelings had never been his strong point, and he didn't have any previous experience to go by, no one had ever had him hooked like Harry. No one had captured all of his interest like Harry had, from his power and looks down to his weird and amusing quirks that Tom found endearing.

He adored the teen. Tom had never cared for anyone or anything as much as Harry, it was like without him everything was irrelevant, and he didn't understand. What started of as casual fun, and a lot of fun at that, had turned in to this mess. The longer he allowed his thoughts to whirl, the easier it was to pick out detailed that he had previously overlooked or missed. He wanted Harry around all the time, he wanted to be the on that made those green eyes light up, he wanted to be the one that Harry turned to and he wanted to show Harry off to the world as his.

Harry had said he had loved him, he had been shocked, he had been overwhelmed but hadn't he felt a shot of pure delight of the thought of holding Harry's attentions to such a degree under everything else. He had always believed love to be a weakness, but coming from Harry? As with everything else it was so much different. Furthermore, it called in to question just what exactly he was feeling for Harry in return, because if he was pleased that Harry loved him it meant that he was no longer automatically rejecting the thought of love. What was he feeling for his teen? Did he love Harry? Even as he asked himself he knew he didn't know the answer. The Dark Lord didn't have any previous experience to build on, he didn't even know what to look for. It wasn't something you could learn or research, it was an unknown and Tom didn't know what to do. The mere thought of someone else ever touching Harry again sent a wave of burning rage through him. So, he analysed everything that he had worked out and came to the realisation that he wanted to be with Harry, not just for sex or for his power, but just for Harry himself. He wanted him, he wanted to hear Harry say those words again, he wanted his teen's attention focused on him alone.

And then Theodore had arrived. He cursed the infuriating man for his rational thoughts, but he knew they helped clarify things. Harry was his perfect match. He wouldn't need to protect the teen, he wouldn't need to change who he was or what he did, and Harry would actually help to do everything he wanted done. He may not know exactly how he felt, but he knew he felt something strong for the teen. So why be apart from him? And that's when it clicked. Why should he be apart from him? Tom couldn't answer that, he wanted Harry, he wanted him so much that it was causing him pain. And Tom Riddle always got what he wanted. Harry would be with him and screw the consequences, if problems arose then he, or they if everything went to plan, would deal with it when the time came and he would discover everything he was feeling along the way.

The connection had been firmly closed since Harry had left Friday morning so there was absolutely no indication as to what his teen had been feeling or doing at the current time, so Tom cast a quick freshening charm over himself and pulled on the first shirt and trousers he laid his hands on before apparating directly to the teen's rooms. The very first thing he noticed was that there was absolutely no magic in the air indicating Harry's presence nor was it lingering in the rooms to show he had been there recently. The second thing he noticed was that all of Harry's friends were in the sitting room looking absolutely awful and both females were crying; all without Harry. Unsurprisingly, his appearance did not go unnoticed and the three Prewetts', the Longbottom teen and the Widow's son stood and faced him with varying looks of anger on their faces.

"Why are you here?" Swift demanded, his voice cold and Tom's eyes narrowed.

"Why do you think I am here?" He returned in the same tone.

"Haven't you done enough to Harry?" Neville questioned, his voice clipped.

"I haven't done anything to Harry." Tom stated, slightly confused, "Where is he? I cannot feel him."

"You wouldn't. He's busy shutting down his emotions." Ron spat viciously, and Tom flinched, his face draining of colour. He felt his entire insides go cold at the mere thought and he could not stop the curse that slipped through his lips.

"When did he start?" He demanded and if any of them noticed the change in expression or the blatant worry in his voice they didn't say anything. After all, they could all see the raging emotions in his crimson eyes

"We saw the visible effects this morning." Luna answered him, cutting off Swift's snappy retort and motioning towards the bedroom. "We've done everything we could think of but
"

Tom closed his eyes briefly before spinning on his heal and entering Harry's room.

"You do realise that if this fails then we're better of fleeing the country than sticking around." Venom pointed out, breaking the growing silence.

"Let's go." Paws decided, "We can hope for the best outcome elsewhere."

"When do we come back?" Swift asked worriedly.

"I think we'll know." Luna murmured, "Either way, for better or worse, we'll know." They left the rooms, each hoping that the Dark Lord would somehow get through to Harry before it was too late.

Notes:

Sorry not sorry for the next cliffhanger for those who haven't read this before <3

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

I was asked to make something to allow people to keep up with what's going on with my works when I'm not posting, so I created a Facebook page that'll have updates, snippets, stuff that didn't make the cut, and maybe some sneak peeks and unpublished works ;)

https://www.facebook.com/groups/471506340910671

Chapter 53

Notes:

So this was super delayed by life in general and my forgetting that I had to shift this chapter over from FF so I apologise for that. It's finally the end of the cliff hanger.

Please read the tags - I'm not responsible for lack of reading.

Plot is mine, JK owns the characters.

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Tom entered the room and slowly shut the door throwing up the most powerful wards he knew, sealing him in the room with Harry. He understood the groups' hostility, they were worried about their friend but he didn't want any interruptions. He could just make out a human shaped contour in the bed which he presumed was Harry, but it was the teens magic that got him. Harry's magic was much like the teen, like an extension of himself, it bounced around free and full of energy, but now it was lifeless and flat, it was there, just, but there was nothing in it. Tom walked over and sat on the bed, he pulled the covers down to look at Harry and paled when he saw the glassy black eyes that used to be the bright green he cherished.

"Harry?" He called softly running a gently hand across his cheek, the teen was cold to touch much to Tom's ever-growing alarm. The connection between them was dead as it had been since Harry had left, and during his own exile Tom had not been eager to change that. Now, on the other hand, he threw everything at the barrier between them and relentlessly pounded on in to try and get it to break.

"Harry?" He tried again and still got no response. Harry was nearly gone, the teen hadn't reacted when he and entered which wasn't like him as he was as paranoid as Tom, the teen hadn't moved when he spoke and didn't even blink when he was touched. Not only that, but he still couldn't feel anything from the teen whatsoever. Harry couldn't shut down his emotions, it would drive him insane and Tom knew from experience.

He had done it himself and he was only sane now thanks to the teen in front of him, Harry had involuntarily ruptured the casing Tom had placed around his emotions to shut them down when he had overtaken the possession of Nagini in the previous Yule. It had been a blessing because Tom was able to get his ideas and goals sorted correctly, working to correct the damages created over years of madness, and he realised his mistake then. Emotions may be a weakness, but they were also a strength, and a human, not matter what, needed them to or insanity would consume the mind.

"Don't do this to me." Tom murmured, gently rolling the teen over so he could get a better look at him. "Not now." The total lack of reaction freaked him out more than he cared to admit.

Snake, Tom hissed switching to Parseltongue in the hopes that the use of the language only the two of them shared would get through. Harry, you must listen to me. The issue of an order in Parsel finally got a reaction, Harry's magic spiked, if only briefly.

Harry, he hissed and there was a ripple in the flat magic, Come back to me, Harry, Harry blinked once and his magic spiked again.

Come on, Harry. You have to come back to me.  Now!

The teen blinked once again, and slowly he began to move. He sat up, drawing his knees up with his hands pressed to his chest, a pained gasp chocking its way out of his throat. Tom clutched his head and chest as their connection burst open violently he was flooded with the agony currently eating its way through Harry's system; good Merlin, no wonder he was trying to get rid of it. The Dark Lord sucked in a sharp breath as he worked on Occluding his mind enough to distinguish what was his and what was coming from Harry. Once he felt he had control, Tom moved closer, running his hand through Harry's dark hair and tilting the teen's head back to look him in the eyes. Something flashed through those horrible black eyes and a confused expression came to Harry's face, tilting his head to the side in an almost childlike manner.

Tom? It was almost inaudible, but it was actually spoken words with a touch of confusion in them much to Tom's relief.

Thank Merlin, he breathed, I was starting to believe


Harry's head tilted to the other side, he regarded Tom blankly, the black eyes making the expression appear almost lifeless. He remained motionless for a few moments, staring unblinkingly at the Dark Lord before his eyes narrowed.

Your presence is causing me pain. Why are you here?

You know why I am here. Tom responded calmly, watching as Harry's eyes narrowed further.

Do I? You have always prided yourself for being unreadable.

And yet you do the impossible. You know me better than-,

Don't! It came out like a snarl and Harry's expression twisted in to something vicious, Don't you dare finish that sentence.

Why? You know it's the truth. Did you not illustrate it so? Tom's reply was cutting, and Harry bared his teeth and hissed wordlessly at him. His hand had unconsciously come up to clutch at his chest as he pushed himself back from Tom.

And look where it's gotten me. He spat, his eyes flaring green before the blackness overcame them once again, You being here is like ice being ripped through my chest and yet it burns!

Tom's eyes flashed with something and he moved forward with his hand outstretched but Harry withdrew as if burned, Tom clenched his teeth to mask the pain that action caused.

Don't. Harry warned, those cold black eyes burning in to him, Haven't you, of all people, caused me enough pain? Haven't you put me through enough?

You know I was not the instigator, Harry. Tom responded coolly, refusing to be baited by his words. He would not be swayed from his goal, not now. Harry turned away, his knees drew up to his chest and he settled his head down, falling completely still.

Oh no, do not even think about it. Tom's voice suddenly went icy, and, moving quicker than Harry obviously expected, grabbed the teen, forcing his head back to look in to his eyes. You can scream, shout and curse me all you like but you will not continue this ridiculous notion of shutting down your emotions.

As expected, Harry lashed out and he moved just enough to avoid the fist aiming for his jaw, but he wasn't lucky enough to escape the violent shove and only just stopped himself falling from the bed.

I can't do this! Harry's voice was almost hysterical, his hands gripping his hair so hard that it was close to being pulled out, It's like I'm breathing but there's no air, and it hurts.

If Tom never had to hear Harry's voice break like that again it would be a blessing, he took a slow breath and watched his teen closely knowing that he had to wait for Harry to speak before he did anything. Harry sat forwards resting on his knees, his hand came up to hesitantly trace his finger softly under Tom's eye, where there were dark circles through lack of sleep.

Why are you still here? Harry asked, shaken. Tom took the hand that was detailing his face and pressed a light kiss to the pulse point, Harry's eyes darted down to watch the movement without blinking.

I'm here for you, Tom told him honestly, Because I want you.Harry reared back, shaking his head as he pushed himself away from Tom once again. His hand went to his chest as he clenched his eyes shut.

No you don't. He denied quickly. I saw your how you reacted. I never expected anything different.

I was very surprised. Never had I even imagined anyone having felt as such in regards to me. Tom stated, And I want to keep those feelings.

You've always rejected it. You do not want it. Harry insisted, but as his eyes were still closed he didn't see Tom follow his movement so he was knelt in front of him. His eyes snapped open when the man took his hand away from his chest and gently covered it with his larger ones.

I do, Tom assured the teen, who bit his lip and looked down at their joined hands. You have no idea what you do to me. I want you, every part of you.

Y-you shouldn't, Harry murmured.

Why shouldn't I? Tom asked, and Harry looked at him as if he was insane.

Why shouldn't
 it's you and me! It wasn't supposed – this is
 You just shouldn't.

Tom quirked his eyebrow at Harry's broken response, he sat back against the headboard, bringing Harry with him so the teen was straddling his legs.

Then there are a lot of things I shouldn't want. Tom pointed out, I shouldn't want to be around you all the time, I shouldn't want to wake up with you next to me every day, I shouldn't want you in my arms and I shouldn't adore everything about you.

Tom watched as a light blush covered Harry's pale cheeks, and he couldn't help but run his fingers gently over the colour in a mixture of pleasure and relief at a visible sight of Harry's emotions. Harry himself couldn't help it, his emotions were raging under the surface, amplified by Tom's presence and his words.

And I shouldn't love you. Harry admitted, and this time he was fully aware of exactly what he was saying. His head dropped down and he looked so utterly defeated that Tom felt a stab of pain in the pit of his stomach. To see Harry of all people looking like that was something he never wished to see again. The teen had been in the face of certain death, had nigh on his entire family ripped away from him and had to face up to the fact that Dumbledore was leading him to his death when he has believed the man to be a saviour and he had still stood up strong, proud and determined not to be broken. Yet, here he was brought so low by an emotion; why Tom ever believed love could be a weakness when it was able to such damage he had never known. He did know that by the pulsing emotions raging through the teen, Harry was expecting to gain a rejection to his admission and that really wouldn't do.

I do not know what I feel,Tom admitted slowly, unsure. Harry's head snapped up so fast he was lucky he didn't get whiplash, he was looking at Tom with wide, disbelieving eyes so Tom continued before the teen could speak. But I know I care about you more than anyone or anything in this world. Harry's eyes were brightening as they searched Tom's face for something, he was looking for a trace of deceit or hidden agenda, but he found nothing, the crimson eyes he loved were open and clear.

Really? He was hardly daring to believe, but hope was blooming no matter how much he tried to stop it. Tom pressed a feather light kiss to Harry's palm.

Yes, he murmured, And I want you to be with me

You do?

Yes,

I-, Harry swallowed.

Say you will, Tom implored, but Harry was torn. He loved Tom, there was no doubt, it had consumed him and ripped him to pieces from the inside out, he wanted nothing but Tom and he couldn't take it. It was too much and it hurt, the pain of knowing he could never have the one thing he wanted more than anything was excruciating and Harry had never felt anything so painful in his entire life. He wanted to give in, to get rid of the pain and be with Tom, but if he did he would be placing everything in the others hands, everything he was would be on the line because he knew that Tom could brake him. And that was an all knew kind of fear.

I don't know
 he hissed softly looking down, he didn't know if he could risk it and become a shell if it went badly. But then again, what was he now? He had been minutes away from shutting down his humanity permanently and becoming what he had labelled his demon. Oh he knew he was an evil bastard normally, he was a complete sadist who got off at the sight of blood and someone screaming while being tortured, but his demon was ten times worse; and he never remembered what he did during those times when it came out.

Like when he first arrived at the Malfoys Manor, he didn't know what he had actually done, he knew he had killed his family, but that was only because he had been able to break through the haze during his healing sleep. He would be uncontrollable all the time and it seemed like a lose/lose for him, if Tom got bored then he would shatter in to a million pieces, if he rejected Tom them he would become his demon full time where he wouldn't have any pieces to shatter. He was stuck.

Give me a good reason for us not to be together. Tom said to him, he was mentally begging Harry to say yes, to him to agree to come back to him. He needed him, he didn't even want to think he would do without his Harry and he would do anything to make sure he didn't have to know.

You could break me. Harry finally admitted and his voice shook, he visibly pulled himself together as a stray tear ran down his face.

I won't, Tom replied adamantly, he was sure of that. He would never want to break someone who was a million times better when whole.

But you could, Harry countered, I would be placing everything I am with you, I'm already lost and I know I couldn't handle if you got bored or left me. You would literally hold my entire being and I don't know if I can risk that, More tears ran down his face and his hands clenched, it was killing him, he was sure he was dying and he just wanted all the pain to stop. Tom decided he now hated it when Harry cried, it was one of the worst feelings he had ever experienced and he would do everything in his power to make sure it never happened again.

Harry, please,

Harry didn't think he had ever heard Tom sound so vulnerable, it made him look up and his breath caught at the completely open expression on the man's usually guarded face, he looked so lost, and Harry could see and feel he was hurting too.

You can't leave me, I need you. I don't know what's happening to me, but you-you are
 everything to me; everything and more. I won't break you, I wouldn't, I couldn't do that, not to you
 Tom closed his eyes and fought to keep his emotions in check, they were whirling around his mind faster than which he could decipher them and it was making his head spin. He had never felt something so intense, it was like it was pumping in his very veins and while it was painful, it was also pleasant at the same time and he opened his eyes to look back in to deep green ones. Harry searched the crimson eyes for something, anything that would tell him to say no, any misgivings to warn him against giving in which he felt himself doing.

He found nothing, Tom's eyes were open and showing him the man's own equally raging emotions, Harry closed his eyes with his decision made. His wrapped his arms loosely around Tom's neck and kissed him, it was soft and slow at first, but it deepened as a fierce need awoke, Tom's grip on his hips tightened and Harry pulled himself closer to the man. His magic flared around the room and mixed with Tom's, it swirled and pulsed as they broke apart both flushed and Harry leant his forehead on Tom's, his eyes blazing the familiar Avada green as his emotions flared within him.

Yes, he would rely on his instincts, he would place his trust in Tom not to break him, and he would be with him. Tom looked delighted, his own eyes lighting up and he kissed Harry with much vigour, and Harry gave him a small smile. "Yes," he repeated it again in English and Tom pulled him closer.

"You'll be mine forever. Mine alone." Tom stated, pleased by the thought as he trailed a finger lightly over the teen's jaw. "I own your mind, your body and your soul. I own your smile, your problems and your feelings. All of it is mine. I do not share and I do not tolerate betrayal."

"Can you promise me the same?" Harry wondered, his voice still low but his smile still lingered. Tom looked him in the eye and thought to all the times he had rejected courtships, relationships and feelings as a whole; he had always been so disgusted of the people who would dare as him of such things; as if they were worthy of his presence, let alone his attentions. Yet, for Harry, it wasn't even a hard decision; it shouldn't have even been a proposed question.

"I will." He spoke like a vow and was rewarded with that smile, the one he had been subconsciously coveting for why else would he go out of his way to get it aimed solely at him. They sat just enjoying each other's presence for quite some time, allowing their magics to flare around them absently and they both calmed and were soothed from the emotional upheaval they had both experienced since the first night back at Hogwarts. It was Harry who moved first, pulling back to look Tom's face over, and a small frown marred his features.

"You don't look well, Tom." He told him and Tom raised an eyebrow, a small smile on his face.

"You do not exactly look the epitome of health, either."

"Yeah. Well," Harry shifted slightly, "I've been hiding in my bed."

"Where do you think I have been?" Tom questioned, though his voice was light it didn't belay the seriousness of his words and Harry blinked, it took a few moments before Tom's words registered and he sat up quickly.

"Why were you in bed? How did you teach? Were you sick?" Harry even reached up and felt Tom's forehead in concern, Tom shook his head, gently taking Harry's hand in his and pressing it to his cheek.

"I ordered Severus to cover my lessons." Tom told him and Harry frowned.

"But why?"

Tom looked down.

"When you left, I could not bring myself to move." Tom admitted quietly, causing Harry's eyes to widen, both at the admission and his open expression. "It was as if my will had left me, I didn't want to do anything other than lay in my bed, where it smelt like apples." Tom didn't see it because he was still looking down, but Harry positively beamed at that, knowing that he was the one that made Tom's bed smell like apples. He brought Tom's face up and kissed him sweetly, still smiling when the broke apart.

"Did you know I love you?" Harry whispered, looking him in the eyes and adoring the smile that came to Tom's face with his words.

"Say it again,"

"I love you,"

"Again," Tom insisted and Harry laughed lightly, kissing him again.

"I love you, Tom Marvolo Riddle." Harry stated firmly, and he was under the distinct impression that Tom very much liked hearing that by the bright smile he was receiving. Tom just couldn't believe it. Couldn't believe that someone could love him, the person most believed was completely heartless. He had once heard that people believed dementors had more of a heart than he did; though he had to admit he had found that quite amusing when Theodore had told him.

But here he was, with his official
 what would one call Harry? Boyfriend was much too trivial, lover seemed understated and partner didn't really explain what Harry was to him. He decided that Harry was just Harry, his Harry and nothing else needed to be said. Harry was following Tom's thought through his feelings and grinned when the familiar possessiveness drifted through, he leaned forward to claim Tom's lips and sent back his own raging possessiveness that he kept hidden. He let it flow around him and he couldn't help the smirk that came to his face when Tom raised an eyebrow, he was well aware that the Dark Lord would recognise that particular emotion very well.

"You, Mr Riddle, are mine." Harry murmured, and it was exhilarating to be able to say that. Now he knew how he felt, he could recognise why he hated it when people would throw themselves at Tom, subconsciously he had already believed that Tom was his. Oh how he hated it when some of the Death Eaters would gaze up at Tom with lust and desire, crawling at his feet like snivelling rats, like if they kissed up to him enough Tom would choose them to warm his bed. But they would learn. He had an open claim on Tom now, from the Dark Lord's own lips, and he would make sure everyone knew it. He may be relying on Tom not to break him, but Harry would fight with everything he had to make sure that didn't happen; he wouldn't allow it. Tom was his now, he had said so himself, and it would stay that way.

"Is that right," Tom drawled, his tone somewhat amused.

"Yes," Harry replied simply, and Tom smiled slightly.

"Which makes you mine?" Tom asked lightly.

"Completely and only," Harry answered instantly, unsurprised at the pleased expression that came to the Dark Lord's face.

"I do so very much like the sound of that."

"It does have a nice ring to it." Harry agreed, "It gives me plenty of ammunition to curse those pathetic sycophants that bid for your attention."

"Oh so possessive all of a sudden." Tom noted, quirking his eyebrow.

"Not sudden, I just hid it better than you did." Harry said and then he smirked, "Besides, you knew enough of my quirks to use against me. I couldn't let you have that one when I had so much fun exploiting it on you."

"Is that right." Tom murmured, "And just how did you exploit it?"

"You remember my conveniently planned date for Halloween
" Harry trailed off when Tom clearly did remember said date, and Harry felt the all too familiar flare of anger and possessiveness.

"You are very cunning, Snake." Tom muttered and Harry smirked, he tilted his head back when Tom started to kiss up his neck, sighing happily at the feather soft lips.

"It is a trait I am rather proud of." Harry admitted, gasping when Tom bit down on his neck. He allowed himself to relish in the mark he knew was going to be there, he wanted it to be there because it was Tom putting it there. His hand threaded their way in to Tom's hair and pulled until their lips met, it was slow and soft and full of a whirl of feelings that flowed between them. As usual, they fought for dominance until Tom relented and Harry explored every part of his mouth gaining a pleased moan from the stoic man. Harry bit Tom's lip and then trailed little bits and kisses down his neck until he bit down hard which made Tom hiss.

"Much better," Harry said and Tom rolled his eyes, but smiled slightly. Harry turned himself around so he was sat on the bed with his legs over Tom's lap and his head on the man's chest. Tom wrapped his arm around his teen and pressed a kiss to the dark hair, and sighing in contentment.

He had his Harry back.


They must have fallen asleep sat there together, because Harry awoke with a choked cry, gasping for breath and clutching at his chest where it burned. Tom woke instantly at Harry's cry, soothing the teen as he continues to gasp and claw at his chest. He was filled with that agonising pain again, hissing through his teeth as he tried to battle it back from his own mind so he could calm the other.

"Breathe, Harry. Calm down." He soothed, running a hand through his dark hair, making Harry suck in a deep breath, "That's it, breathe for me."

"T-Tom?"

"It's me, Harry. Just calm down."

"Y-you c-c-came for me?" He hiccuped green eyes bright and wild. "You're here."

"Always!" Tom swore, "You're mine forever, remember?"

"I don't – I – you." Harry swallowed and shook his head, pulling himself closer to Tom and breathing in his scent.

"Tell me what you need," Tom whispered and Harry's breathing shuddered.

"I need to feel," Harry breathed, scattering kisses along Tom's chest. "I need to feel you." Tom rolled them over, pinning Harry to the bed and looking him over closely. He must have seen what he wanted because he pressed a searing kiss to Harry's lips as his hands deftly slid his pyjamas off and banished them. He whispered a spell to coat his fingers in oily liquid and slowly slid one in to the waiting body. Harry sighed at the feeling, focusing all of his attention on the digits thoroughly preparing him, gasping when pleasure licked up his spine as those wonderful fingers found his spot. He whimpered when the fingers drew out, clutching Tom closely wanting to feel him, Tom kissed him and slowly entered him, swallowing Harry's moan.

It started slowly, relishing in every movement and every feeling between them, and then it grew to a fiery passion, Tom drawing Harry's legs around him, directing his thrusts to hit that bundle of nerves over and over, drawing cries of ecstasy from his lover. When his release hit, Harry felt his body arch and his head fell back, inviting Tom to bite down and mark him as they rode out their orgasm together. Harry slowly dropped his legs, allowing Tom to lie down next to him and draw him closer after a muttered cleaning spell. Harry had his ear pressed to Tom's chest, listening to his heart beat rhythmically, letting it lull him in to a full sense of peace.

"I will never break you, Harry." Tom's voice was soft and quiet, but had an underlining layer of steel and belief that couldn't be missed. Harry didn't speak for a few moments, the room falling silent bar their individual breathing breaking through the air, before he squeezed Tom lightly.

"I'll hold you to that."


Harry woke up slowly, he was a bit groggy and disorientated, his mind was foggy and he couldn't remember why he felt like he had been sleeping for a week. There was something different about him, he could feel it within himself, and it was an odd sense of peace. He was a bit unsure as to how or when he fell asleep, wasn't he in pain? It had come since he left Tom, then he blinked; Tom!

He went to move but a strong arm was wrapped around his waist keeping him close to a rather solid object. An object that was breathing
 Harry felt a smile curl on to his face as everything rushed back to him, a sigh of relief rushing past his lips. Tom had come for him, Tom wanted him exclusively, Tom had stayed with him and promised not to break him. He was still asleep, but he looked many times better than he had the previous day and Harry couldn't help but reach up and trace Tom's jaw, pressing kisses over his heart. The man stirred and Harry smiled, sliding up to press kisses along his collar and up his neck.

"Wakey wakey,"

Let me sleep, Tom muttered in response, it coming out in Parseltongue to Harry's amusement.

"Nope, you have to get up." Harry insisted.

Don't wanna,

Harry laughed at that. Tom using such a slang word was unheard of, the man must be tired.

"You know you just said 'wanna', right?"

I did no such thing. He denied and Harry snickered.

"Sure," He dragged out the word in obvious disbelief and Tom huffed, his eyes blinking open to look at the grinning teen.

"Fine, fine, I'm awake." He sighed and Harry's grin stretched.

"Wonderful."

"You are very cheerful this morning." Tom noted and Harry shrugged.

"I know," He agreed, "Now, I find myself incredibly hungry and in great need of a shower."

"Yes, I believe those are excellent suggestions."

"Winky!" Harry called and his elf popped in, she was squeaking and bouncing much more enthusiastically than usual and Harry took a moment to understand what she was saying.

"Master Harry is better now, Master Harry is ok."

"Yes, I am feeling much better," Harry confirmed, smiling slightly at her happiness.

"Could you go to Tom's rooms and collect him a change of clothes so he can shower here, please? Then could you fetch us a meal? I feel as if I could eat a feast." He asked and she nodded.

"Right away, Master Harry." She agreed, popping away to follow his instructions. Harry climbed out of best, stretching his body out to remove all of the kinks in it, he went to head to the shower when Tom caught his wrist and pulled him in for a slow kiss.

"Now you can go." He said and Harry smiled; that was the very same thing Tom had done the first night they had been together. He vanished in to the shower and washed his hair, the hot water felt so good and Harry sighed happily. When he was clean, he got out and dried himself off, Harry pulled on baggy grey joggers and a white muscle t with white ankle socks, he left the bathroom and flashed a smile at Tom who was now up and moving. Winky had laid out the man's clothes out and Harry pressed a kiss to his cheek as the man passed to enter the shower.

Harry summoned his wand and cleared up his room, flicked open his curtains and sent a freshening charm to free the murkiness of the air. Tom came out dressed in a black long sleeve shirt and black trousers, missing the tie and leaving the top two buttons open. Harry took the man's hand and pulled him over to kiss him lightly.

"Breakfast?"

"Sounds delightful,"

Harry led them down in to the main room only to stop in shock at the gargantuan amount of food presented on his breakfast counter.

"You know, I believe your house elf took your words of a feast literally." Tom noted amused.

"Thank Merlin I'm hungry." Harry said once he had recovered. He helped himself to a bit of everything on the menu, he discovered once he had started eating it was very hard to stop. Winky popped in to removed their empty plates and Harry stopped her to ask the time and day, he was left stunned when she told him it was half past three on Thursday afternoon. He had been out for six days, and he looked to Tom in bewilderment only to find the man giving him an equally puzzled look.

"I did not realise that much time had passed." Tom said shocked and Harry shook his head.

"Neither did I," He admitted, and then he blinked. "Dear Merlin, where are my friends?"

"They were where when I arrived," Tom told him. "They were greatly worried about you."

"Oh no!" Harry groaned, "I didn't mean for this to happen."

"I am sure they will understand." Tom assured and Harry sighed.

"I hope so,"

"Do not fret," Tom told him, tugging him up by his hand and pulling him over to sit by the fire on his lap. Harry sat with his legs over the arm of the chair and his head resting on Tom's shoulder, relaxing in to the man's body with a pleased sigh.

"I will have to catch up, of course." Harry murmured, "This came at quite a bad time, though I cannot say I am unhappy."

"No, unhappy is the furthest from my mind." Tom agreed, his fingers brushing over the bite mark Harry had on display. "Although, you are correct. We have both been unavailable for six days and the Wizengamot is fast approaching."

"Holy fuck I'd forgotten about that." Harry yelped, jumping to his feet to pace in front of the fire. "It's in three days. Circe almighty, I have so much to do."

Tom shook his head at Harry's minor panic, catching the teen and pulling him back in to his lap.

"I highly doubt that your friends would have let your plans fall to pieces." Tom pointed out, "You need not worry, you will be fine."

"Tom, why must you make me feel better when I am trying to panic?" Harry complained, but he was smiling when Tom rolled his eyes.

"I have a gift." Tom deadpanned and Harry laughed. They sat there, Harry going through some of his back up plans, knowing the main ones were with his friends, while Tom read a book he summoned from Harry's room. They exchanged meaningless conversation ranging from random facts about snakes to things they wanted to pan out in the next session. Tom had Harry laughing endlessly at the thought of Lucius breaking out in an excitable dance if Fudge or Dumbledore was removed, when the portrait opened and Harry's friends walked in. Harry was up and in front of them in an instant, a soft exclamation left his mouth when he saw the run down state they were all in, feeling terrible because he knew it was his fault.

"I am so sorry," He whispered, "I didn't know – I – it came from nowhere. There was so much pain – I didn't – I couldn't-," He was cut off by Ron, who threw his arms around him and hugged him tightly.

"Thank Merlin you're back." He breathed, "I thought you were gone."

"I am so so sorry," Harry repeated, holding on to his very best friend. Ron stepped back with a squeeze, allowing the others to rush forward and Harry was caught in a group hug. He laughed, allowing the warm feelings at being surrounded by his friends – his family, he felt light, so alive. They finally let him go, there were a number of bright eyes but everyone was smiling and they were all happy.

"Go and get some rest, all of you." Harry instructed, "You are all exhausted, I can see it in your faces. I'm ok now, and I'll be fine."

"Are you sure?" Badger asked, his worry apparent. Harry cast a look over his shoulder, looking at Tom unobtrusively reading his book and giving them a moment, the red eyes flashed up to meet him and a soft smile came to Harry's face before he turned back to his friends.

"I am definitely ok now." Harry assured, and they looked him over, as if weighing his words.

"We'll be back in a few hours." Draco warned and Harry nodded with a grin.

"I wouldn't expect anything else." He said and they chuckled. They moved back towards the door, leaving a single person stood in front of him. Before he could speak Luna attacked him, she was hitting his chest repeatedly and Harry caught her hands pulling her in to a tight hug until she stopped struggling and broke down.

"You complete idiot," she sobbed, "Do you have any idea how worried I've been?"

"I'm sorry," he told her gently rubbing circles in her back, "I am so so so sorry,"

"You should be," she told him, Harry wiped her tears away and kissed her cheek.

"I didn't mean to worry you." He assured and she nodded, Harry tucked her in to his side and held her tight.

"If you ever do something like that again, I will kill you." Paws warned from the door, as she wiped her own eyes.

"I didn't do it on purpose." Harry defended.

"I don't care," she snapped.

"We thought we had lost you, Snake," George said softly and Harry sighed.

"I'm sorry ok, it was unexpected." He tugged at his hair. "It hit me from nowhere."

"We know," Fred stated and Harry smiled slightly.

"Thanks guys,"

Luna hugged him tightly before following the others out. Harry sighed as the door shut, he walked over to the kitchen and leant against the counter. Tom followed him over, resting on the opposite side and taking his hand.

"They will never forget this." Harry murmured.

"No," Tom agreed, "But neither would you if it had been one of them."

"You are correct." Harry allowed, "I can hardly blame them."

"It will not happen again." Tom said firmly, "You can reassure them of that." Harry looked at him, reading his face before a small smile appeared.

"Yes." He acknowledged, "I can."

"What do you wish to do before your friends return?" Tom asked and a grin came to Harry's face. He called for Winky for a list of ingredients, all the equipment he needed was already stored in the kitchen; she had gotten used to Harry's random bouts of cooking.

"You are going to sample a few things for me." Harry told him, pointing to the breakfast bar stool for Tom to sit on.

"What are you planning?" Tom questioned looking over at the assembled items Harry was looking over.

"Now wouldn't that be telling?" Harry teased and Tom mock huffed. Harry placed 2 large bowls on the counter in front of him and began creaming butter and sugar together in each, he also place a cup of coffee in front of Tom.

"What are you making?"

"Chocolate orange fondant with an orange sorbet and maybe a chocolate orange cream. And a black forest gateau with scotch soaked cherry syrup and cream." Harry answered. That sounded like heaven to Tom and Harry knew it, he laughed at Tom's pleased expression and got on with his work. He charmed the spoons to mix on their own and he began squeezing oranges in to a new bowl.

"I know it was because of your relatives that you learned how to cook and bake, but where did you learn to do all of these things?" Tom questioned as he watched Harry easily manoeuvre his way around the kitchen, he was adding ingredients almost unconsciously as he poured the orange juice in to a saucepan and placed it on the heat. He'd never really gotten the chance to just sit and watch Harry cook before, despite being the reciprocate of many of the delicious things he had made.

"I just expanded my skills because I found I liked creating new sweet things, as long as they tasted good then they didn't care. I was able to be in the kitchen for as long as it took to cook a meal, and none of them needed to know that I spent a lot of that time reading through Petunia's cook books." Harry said with a shrug, "The only books I was allowed to read were the ones that would benefit them."

It was a sad thing, Tom thought, that they were already dead, because they really did deserve a great deal of prolonged torture and suffering. Harry stirred in sugar and some golden syrup in to the orange juice letting it bubbled up and watching the sugar dissolve. He poured the liquid back in to the bowl and cooled it, he grabbed a spoon and tasted it, he grinned and tossed a spoon to Tom.

"Sweet enough?"

Tom tried it and nodded.

"Nice," He relented and Harry grinned, he placed a gradual freezing charm on the bowl, the spell was originally a dark spell designed to slowly freeze someone to death, but Harry had found it was brilliant for making ice cream. He charmed the spoon to slowly stir as the charm got to work, he began adding chocolate to both of the cake mixes.

"Have you got a limit to what you can actually do or do you just see how things work?" Tom wondered, "The dishes you created for the Malfoy ball were fantastic, though I may be bias and say what you made for my birthday were better." Harry smiled slightly at the compliment.

"Usually I get the flavours I know work well together and see what else they can create. Like when I made the black forest cheesecake, you remember? I knew the flavours worked together, and I just changed them to fit what desert I wanted." Harry explained, "I do have favourites to make though, cookies, strawberry cheesecake, strawberry crumble, brownies and sorbets for deserts. And chicken is my favourite meat."

He placed butter and chocolate in a bowl and melted them together until they were creamy, he added a touch of orange essence in to the mix and put it to the side.

"Mix that for me please." Harry asked, placing a bowl with eggs and sugar in front of Tom.

"This is for the fondant?" He questioned and Harry nodded looking slightly surprised.

"Yes,"

"Don't look so surprised, I can cook," Tom told him and Harry kissed his cheek as he passed.

"I'll remember that."

He placed the chocolate cake mix in to 4 circular tins and placed them in to the oven.

"I'm sure you will, now let me taste those cherries."

Harry laughed, he had seen Tom eyeing the cherries which had been soaked in scotch by the wonderful elves, who had even cut and seeded them. Harry fished out a cherry half and ate it slowly while watching Tom watch him, the bite of the scotch against the cherry was good and the cherries were filled with juice.

"Taste?" He asked coyly and Tom smirked, he got up and kissed Harry hotly pushing him back against the counter, he loved the taste of scotch and cherry from Harry and said teen grinned.

"I'm guessing you like them?"

"Let me make sure." Tom said and kissed him again, Harry eventually pushed him back when the scent of chocolate filled him.

"Ah, ah, sit and let me cook." He ordered and Tom did a mock salute, retaking his seat. Harry pulled out the cakes and set them to cool on their own. He picked up the whisked eggs Tom had done and added them to the chocolate butter mix and stirred them together, Harry poured it in to separate cases and placed it under a cooling charm. Tom stole the bowl and decided to dip his finger in to the excess completely distracting Harry from beginning the cream for the cake.

"That is good," Tom told him smirking at Harry's somewhat glazed look.

"Bastard," he muttered and Tom laughed, he did it again, but he wasn't expecting Harry to beat him to it and suck lightly on his finger.

"You're right, it is good." He said with a smirk of his own, he was pulled in for a searing kiss and he gasped when he felt something cold on his neck.

"You smeared chocolate on me," He exclaimed and Tom gave him an innocent look.

"Did I?"

Harry whacked him.

"Get it off," He ordered and Tom smirked.

"Gladly," He accepted and proceeded to lick it off much to Harry's immense pleasure.

"Mmm Tom," he moaned and found himself bitten, he had no doubt that he would be left with a massive mark.

"Yes Harry?" the man was looking and sounding entirely too please with himself.

"You are impossible," Harry groaned even though he was smiling.

"I know,"

Harry went back to his cream making and kept hitting Tom away from the cherries, he placed the fondants in the oven and began stacking the cake. Harry grabbed a black plate and put the base on, he spread the cream and then put the cherries on with some of the syrup they had made, he added the next layer and then coated the top with cream, he created a dip in the centre and filled it with cherries and syrup.

When he deemed it suitable, he placed it under a cooling charm and set it ready before repeating the process with the other cakes and pouring the remainder of the syrup in to two china jugs to be used as sauce. He checked the timer and saw that the fondants would be done soon, he quickly whisked up some double cream with orange essence and melted chocolate until it thickened. Harry took the fondants out of the oven, he placed one on a plate letting it slide out of its case, he placed a scoop of the orange sorbet on the plate and a spoon of the cream.

"Ta dah," he presented with an exaggerated flare, Tom looked impressed and took the fork offered to him. He tried the cake first and Harry smiled when the chocolate ran out of the centre like it should, Tom took a bit and made a noise of approval.

"That is so good."

Harry all but beamed.

"I am rather talented." He agreed trying some of the sorbet, he hummed impressed with himself.

"I agree,"

Tom enjoyed the desert, with Harry helping of course, and then kissed Harry senseless, the teen was lifted easily on to the counter and he wrapped his legs around Tom. This is how they were found when the group returned from their rest, the eight of them froze and Luna released a sigh.

"It's like walking in on the world's hottest erotic scene," She said.

"Only with too many clothes," Paws added wistfully. Harry cracked up at that and so did Tom, Paws and Luna went bright red and the guys were looking at them as if they were insane.

"Hello to you too," Harry said with a grin at the two blushing girls.

"It's nice to hear you think so highly of our appearance," Tom drawled and Harry snickered when they went redder.

"I wasn't supposed to say that out loud." Paws groaned and Luna nodded.

"Apparently," Draco said, "You decided to go on a baking spree then?" Harry nodded a bit sheepishly and they seemed to perk up.

"What have you made, Snake?" Swift asked looking at the many treats with interest, Harry laughed lightly and hopped down neatly, he pressed a light kiss to Tom and moved over to point to all the things they were allowed to eat.

"Don't touch one of the cakes and the cherry juice, the rest is up for grabs." He told then and then had to step back as they dived on it like a pack of vultures and Harry grinned.

"Well, I never thought of bribery, but this works." He commented to Tom, who rolled his eyes with a small smile.

"I have to speak to Severus and tell him he is relieved from covering my lessons," Tom remembered, "I also need to buy Theodore a very large and very expensive bottle of scotch."

Harry raised an eyebrow at that.

"You do?"

"Yes, that and much more, but the scotch is the best offering I have." He said, "I know where I shall purchase it."

Harry pouted slightly.

"Awh, I had other things planned."

Tom kissed the pout from Harry's lips.

"And what did you have in mind?" Tom asked and Harry looked at him with hooded eyes.

"Oh there are many things I have in mind," Harry murmured, trailing his hand down Tom's chest, stepping closer to the man and Tom gripped his hips hard, leaning forward to bite Harry's lip.

"Care to share?"

I want you to make me scream, Harry told him and Tom hissed lowly.

You should be careful, Snake, Tom murmured, kissing and biting his neck.

There's no fun it that Harry said with a smirk, Master he took pleasure in the darkening of Tom's eyes, knowing he would never get sick of using that as a way to get what he wanted.

"One hour, my rooms," Tom stated and Harry nodded, he was given one last heated kiss before Tom apperated away and Harry sighed with a happy smile. He went to begin clearing up when he realised he had eight sets of eyes on him, Harry blinked in shock having completely forgotten they were there.

"Um hi?" He tried and Paws shook her head ruefully, giving him a smile.

"You look happy." She said and Harry returned her smile, walking over with a slice of cake and sitting down in his chair, moving his arm so Luna could curl up on him. He asked Winky to clear up for him and place Tom's cake and sauce on the man's counter under preservation and cooling charms as an afterthought, they would need something to eat after dinner later.

"I am happy." He told her, "I really am."

"Good,"

"By the way, the cakes were great." Swift put in as they moved passed the tense stuff, Harry grinned.

"I felt like baking," He said with a shrug. "So what have you been planning?"

"We've gone over everything and we are ready for the Wizengamot meeting this weekend." Paws said snapping back to business.

"Good, Dumbledore will have a heart attack when we are sworn in." Harry said and they shared smirks.

"We stuck to your ideas, we only changed what we would do without you voting." Swift told him and Harry nodded,

"Ok, so everything is still in place. I am going to be there and we are getting rid of Fudge, Dumbledore will follow."

"Agreed,"

"Brilliant, I want to go to Gryffindor rooms for more research, and to see Moony."

"We didn't tell him anything, we didn't want him to worry or explode." Venom told him and Harry nodded, looking somewhat relieved.

"That is good, the last thing you would have needed was an enraged werewolf on your hands." Harry said and Badger laughed.

"Yeah, that was the general idea."

"We'll also need to work out an alibi to where you have been." Draco pointed out, "As you and the Dark Lord will be returning at the same time, could we possibly collaborate a reason?"

"That's a good idea," Paws noted, "Everyone knows that you have private lessons with Professor Drield, meaning you are in close contact with him more than any other student."

"I can speak to Tom, he will have to answer to McGonagall and I am sure he has the ability to lie his way out of everything, he can bale me out too." Harry suggested.

"Much easier." Swift said pleased. "Now, let's have a nice relaxing evening before we are forced to go back to our dorms." Harry called Winky to fetch them drinks as they sat together.

"How has She-Who-Must-Not-Be-Named been?" Harry questioned and Swift, the twins, Badger and Venom choked on their drinks as the others burst out laughing.

"That is a bit of genius, Snake." Manic told him and Harry smirked.

"I've been saving that one." He admitted and they snorted.

"Well she's been having a bit of a hard time keeping all of her things." Paws told him, a smirk on her face, "She's become quite forgetful."

"It's hilarious," Swift said to Harry with a grin, "She gets so mad, and she's so tired and aggravated that she can't find her stuff that it doesn't give her time to complain about you."

"Win/win then," Harry laughed, "In three days' time the charade will be up. Ahhh, I can almost taste it."

"It's going to be glorious. But it's the Monday morning I am looking forward to." Draco sighed, "To see everyone's reactions to the paper and then for them to actually see you."

"You are coming back as yourselves, aren't you?" Venom confirmed and Harry nodded.

"Oh yes, do not worry about that. Once it's out in the Wizengamot there is absolutely no point in trying to hide." Harry said, "Like Draco said, the news will hit the paper and we will make sure we run in to Rita."

"You know, it's not fair that we are not in this school anymore." George pointed out and Paws scoffed.

"You spend more time in this school than most of the students." She exclaimed and he shared a grin with his twin.

"We know."

"Besides, we all know you are going to be somewhere in the Great Hall at breakfast on Monday." Swift added and they smirked.

"Of course,"

"Ok, so we're back to normal tomorrow." Paws said, checking the time, "Do we need to meet or can it wait until Saturday?"

"We don't need to meet, we have nothing other than the Wizengamot this week and we can focus on our background details." Harry said, "Unless anyone else has something to bring up?"

They all answered in the negative and Harry smiled.

"That's ok then. I'll see you tomorrow anyways, and it barely matters if we talk or interact any more. We only have a day of lessons before the weekend and then freedom."

"Sounds perfect."

"I'll see you later guys," Harry said, waving as they rose to leave, "And thanks."

"Don't worry about it, Harry. You're stuck with us." Ron told him and Harry nodded with a smile. They said their goodbyes and left leaving Harry alone with Luna.

"I owe you Ray." Harry told her softly, "I know you stayed with me and I thank you."

"You scared me Harry," She said after a minute.

"I know,"

"I thought I'd lost you."

"I know,"

"Please don't do that to me again,"

"I'll try not to."

Luna sat up and moved to sit on the arm of the chair.

"So what happened?"

"Tom came,"

"I know that, I let him in," She rolled her eyes and Harry smiled.

"He told me that he wanted me to be with him." Harry relented and Luna looked surprised. "Yeah I know,"

"He actually said that,"

"Yes, those words and a few others." Harry smiled in remembrance.

"Come one, the least you owe me is the sweetest things said."

Harry rolled his eyes at her pout.

"Well after I had agreed to be with him, I realised he looked like shit and I asked him why. He told me that he hadn't gotten out of his bed because he didn't want to move and guess what else?"

"What did he say?"

"He didn't get out of his bed because the bed smelt like me."

"Awh,"

"I know, it was the sweetest thing, and he's turning me in to a pile of mush." Harry shook his head, though there was no heat in his voice and he was smiling.

"Did you tell him again?" She asked and Harry nodded.

"He seems to like it; a lot."

"Just be careful," she warned him and Harry laughed.

"I think it's too late for careful Ray." Harry stated.

"I know, but I can hope."

"I'm going to need you," Harry told her looking in to her eyes, she looked at him and saw the unsettled raging emotions swirling within them. She knew exactly what he meant, Harry was now feeling most, if not all, of his emotions, even the ones he didn't know about and she was needed to help him understand – something she was only too happy to be able to do. Luna made him lie out on the sofa with his head in her lap and she gently ran her hands through his hair making him sigh.

"Explain to me how it feels." She instructed and Harry was silent for a few moments.

"Its more than happy, and-and its everywhere. When I think of him, what he said, it makes me want to burst, but I also want to cry. It's strange, I want to cry, but not because it hurts anymore."

"You love him," Luna said and Harry nodded smiling, "And you are deliriously happy, ecstatic, with everything that has happened. For once, you main feelings are not stress, anger, hurt, betrayal or grief and that is down to one person."

"My Tom,"

"I did wonder when that possessive side of yours was going to show." Luna said laughing and Harry grinned.

"Let those mangy Death Eaters try to get in to his bed now." Harry said, "That's my spot."

"Just how did you manage to not curse them before?"

"A mix of my mindscape and a hellava lot of self-control,"

"I pity the next Death Eater," Luna said and Harry smirked.

"Pity isn't going to help them, dear sister, do not waste yours."

Luna laughed at that and kissed his scar.

"I think you're going to be ok,"

"I can feel them, and I don't want to lose control."

"I have a suggestion for your Occlumency," Luna said after a moment,

"Do share."

"You can create a side room, and separate all of your emotions in to labelled phials so you can identify them."

"That sounds like a good idea," Harry mused, "I might try that later,"

"Good, now I believe you have somewhere to be," Luna said.

"Rooms all yours, you are right of course." He pressed a kiss to her cheek.

"I love you my sister," Harry murmured, "And anything you want, I'll get you."

"I'll keep you to that." She warned him and Harry grinned, asking Winky to grab his leather trousers. He shadowed to Tom's rooms and quickly changed in to the trousers, Harry threw his top to the side and smirked; this should be fun. He waited for the other magical presence to leave Tom's rooms before walking to the door and pulling it open silently. Harry leant against the doorframe and let his magic catch Tom's attention, the man's eyes snapped to him and darkened.

"I believe there was something I wanted you to do," Harry said dropping his voice slightly.

"Was there? Remind me," Tom's voice was husky and Harry repressed a shiver of desire, he wrapped his arms around Tom's neck and leaned up to breathe in his ear.

Make me scream.

The reaction he got was expected, Tom was kissing him in an instant and Harry knew he was going to enjoy the rest of the evening.

Notes:

Finally the end of the drama between Harry and Tom - they're finally together!!

Hope you enjoyed the ride lol.

Feel free to let me know what you think

Chapter 54

Notes:

So we have the lead up and the actual Wizengamot chapter!

This has been one of the most enjoyable chapters I've ever written so I hope that you all enjoy it as much as I did writing it.

This is done from multiple POV's so I could show the full scale of reactions haha

Read the tags Si Vous Plait

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

The final two days before the Wizengamot passed in the blink of an eye; the days in which Tom and Harry had been indisposed had left them both behind on many things so they used their time-turners in excess to catch up on what they had missed, which in turn made them need more use to regain sleep. Snape, in all his wisdom, had informed the other faculty members that there had been a mishap during their private lessons when he and Professor Drield had combined potions and dueling together. As the Potions Master of the school and a licensed medi-wizard in his own right, he was able to keep all the staff away while he 'monitored' the situation. Apparently, they had combined the wrong potions while using them in dueling and induced a feral rage-like state in the pair of them and Snape had isolated them and worked on finding the counter; at least, that's what the staff had been told. Harry had been baffled that they had bought such nonsense until he was informed by Hermione that it had been documented as happening a few times before when using potions in dueling. After that he had just been fascinated.

Thankfully, Harry wasn't forced to go back to lessons on Friday, but he did get a visit from McGonagall inquiring over his health and informing him he was expected back in class on the Monday. It was lucky really, as he didn't think he could cope with Ginny at the given time and Tom would definitely not react well. The Dark Lord had become, what Harry could only describe as, clingy, since the recent break up/make up incident, going so far as to carry him to and from the bath once. Harry had caught the man checking his eyes often and realised that his desperate actions may have freaked the man out a little bit. That wasn't to say that Harry hadn't reacted the exact same way. He, himself, had found any and all excused to be in physical contact with Tom since everything had resolved and he felt himself getting panicked and angsty if they were apart for too long.

Despite that, the thing that stuck out to him the most is how little things had changed between them. Tom was still a possessive, demanding bastard and Harry still loved to tease him relentlessly whenever the opportunity arose, he still cooked for the man and they still sat curled up together reading or planning. His friends had helpfully pointed out the reason for nothing changing was because the pair of them had been in a relationship for months but had been too oblivious to notice. When Harry repeated this to Tom, the man had frowned, pulled him close and declared the whole topic irrelevant as Harry was his firmly and officially forever so it didn't matter if that was the case.

Saturday after dinner, Harry and his friends came together a final time to go over all of their plans for the next day's Wizengamot session, where everyone was going to be, what to do in case everything went to shit and how to adapt to any changes they could and couldn't predict. They couldn't really do anything else to do with the session until they were actually there by this point so the group threw themselves around Harry's rooms relaxing and just hanging out, something they rarely got to do given they saw each other a lot.

"Hey, Nev?" Ron called to the teen across the room from him.

"Yeah?"

"What are you still doing here?"

"What do you mean?"

"It's Saturday evening; the evening before the session."

"Given the meeting we just had I'd think I would have realised that by now."

The sarcasm got him multiple snorts from the rest of the group and Neville grinned at Ron's unimpressed expression.

"Oh haha." He deadpanned, "I meant that you have an appointment, don't you?"

"Uh, noo
?"

"Of for fuck sake, you're getting as bad as Harry." Ron complained, throwing his hands up in the air. "Go and deal with your bitter Grandmother for fuck sake."

Neville's eyes widened in surprise before a malicious grin stretched across his face.

"I can do that now!" He hissed out in utter glee and there was a collective woop.

"About time you were able to show that disgusting woman her place." Draco sneered.

"Do you have plans?" Hermione questioned and Neville barked out a sardonic laugh.

"Oh I have plans alright."

"Well what-,"

"Are you-,"

"Waiting-."

"For?"

"Get going now!" The twins cried. Neville got to his feet and waved his wand, summoning better robes for himself to wear and changed with another flick of his wand.

"Do have fun." Luna said, pressing a kiss to his cheek. "Don't forget backup – never go into the dragon's den without backup."

"I will." Neville assured, "Harry, you coming?"

"Me?"

"Yeah, I figured if anyone deserved to see the woman get what's coming to her it should be you. If she had actually stepped up and done her duties, we would have been raised together; instead, she conformed to Dumbledore's every whim."

"Oh damn, yeah." Harry blinked a few times, "I forget we are actually Godbrothers."

"Of course! I forget about that all the time." Blaise exclaimed.

"Yeah, I'm definitely coming." Harry stated, "Just let me go and tell Tom where's I'm going lest he freak out on me."

"Somehow, I can't see the Dark Lord freaking out." Draco muttered as Harry vanished in a swarm of shadows.

"What would that even look like?" Ron wondered and the group shared a look before collectively shuddering.

"No thanks." Fred said.

"Yeah, we're good not knowing." George continued.

"You and me both." Hermione agreed. Harry came back looking a bit flustered and his already wild hair even more messed up, but he was beaming so the group rolled their eyes but grinned, happy at his hard-won happiness.

"Let's get this show on the road."

"I'm more than ready." Neville declared. They shared smirks before Harry took Neville's arm and shadowed them to the Shrieking Shack and then they switched so Neville could apparate them to the Longbottom Manor.

Neville and Harry landed in a remote area of the Longbottom gardens and walked towards the solitary building. It was grand, but not ostentatious, framed between two huge willow trees. The gardens spread wide before it, stunning with years of careful nurturing and a gently flowing river winding casting sparkling light over the entire area. As he walked up the laws, Neville allowed his eyes to gloss over lands he adored and worked so hard to maintain, despite the spells and bindings he had been under at the time. He pointed out a few things he was particularly proud of to Harry, and the pair of them reminisced on what could have been should Augusta had done her duty. They finally reached the double oak doors, which were surrounded by stained glass, and they swung open immediately to admit the Lord of the House. They were greeted by the head elf, who bowed and welcomed them to the manor, asking for their duties but Neville dismissed her until later.

"Wait here a sec." Neville said, "Wards."

"I'll be here." Harry assured. The Longbottom Lord nodded and vanished down a corridor that led to the basement stairs. He swiftly made his way down to where the ward stone was kept and as he went he couldn't help but let his mind turn over thinking about what was about to happen. It really was a long time coming and Neville couldn't help but feel vindicated that he was finally getting his opportunity at revenge; even if it was only the beginning. As soon as Neville had access to the ward stone he invoked the Lord's Rites and pulled them into his core, strengthening them with his blood and shutting down any and all additions his dearest Grandmother had made. He gasped as the power rushed through him, the ancient magic evaluating his claim and then settling as he was accepted as the Lord and Head of House by the magic that and been laid here since the Longbottom's first settled on these lands. He didn't take the time to relish in it, however, as he had other things to do so he rushed back up to the entrance hall where he had left Harry and called for all the house elves.

"All of you are to return to your usual duties until I am able to review the entirety of the Longbottom holdings. You are expressly forbidden from answering Augusta Longbottom's calls, you are not to listen to any of her commands and any such breech of this will result in clothes. She is a traitor to this House, and you shall all treat her as such. Do you all understand."

"Yes, Master Neville." They chimed together, all looking terrified and outraged at the thought of a traitor, and of the threat of clothes.

"Tilly, please pack Augusta's belongings, unless they came from House Longbottom, and have them transferred to Green Fields."

"Right away, sir."

"Dismissed."

The elves popped away to do as their Lord commanded and Harry turned to Neville with a raised eyebrow.

"Green Fields?"

"It's the smallest, dingiest cottage I own in the middle of the Welsh Mountains. It's cut off from practically all civilisation apart from this one lonely Shepard farmer who, quite frankly, hasn't got long left in him."

Harry looked impressed.

"Nice!"

"Thanks." Neville grinned and waved his hand towards the staircase. "This way.

He knew where to go, it was the winter months so the sun shone brightly on the back of the manor which meant the sun room was the first choice of sitting. They walked through the halls silently, the oak floors polished to perfection and the earthy décor soothing even as the portraits on the walls eyed them both with caution. The closer they got to their destination the more Neville found himself picking up speed, he climbed the stairs two at a time, his excitement making him hasty and he stumbled in to Harry.

"You alright?" Harry questioned and Neville chuckled slightly.

"I've been waiting way to long for this."

Harry snorted.

"Well don't throw yourself down the stairs before you can enjoy it."

"That would be a crying shame." Neville agreed, pausing for a moment and then taking a breath to calm himself before he continued on. Despite his forced calm, he found himself freezing as he came to the open doors.

"You ready?" Harry murmured, resting a hand on Neville's shoulder in a show of support.

"More than!" Neville steeled himself and walked into the room apparently alone as Harry faded back into the shadows for now. Neville's eyes were immediately drawn to the stately woman sat in the high-backed chair near the balcony doors and he fought a sneer. His entrance didn't go unnoticed and his grandmother was quick to her feet, a ferocious scowl coming to her face.

"What do you think you are doing leaving school without my express permission? How many times must you act like an utter disgrace to the name of Longbottom? Fool of a boy! And now you dare touch our sacred wards! You are an abysmal failure."

In her rage, she failed to notice that her cowardly, pathetic grandson was not cringing back or hunching over as he normally would. Instead, Neville looked at the woman who was supposed to love him and raise him well and felt nothing but pure revulsion.

"Do shut up, Grandmother." He ordered coldly, making her recoil back in shock.

"What did you just say to me?" She demanded, drawing herself up to her full height in an effort to intimidate. Unfortunately, she had yet to realise she was dealing with a very different version of her grandson, so she was extremely surprised when Neville drew himself up to his full height and glared at her in repugnance.

"I told you to shut up!" Neville repeated, his own voice coming out in a snarl. "How dare you speak to me in such a way after the complete and utter betrayal you have committed on the House of Longbottom and it's Heir. How dare you stand in our ancient Halls, before the true Lord of this House and belittle me as a failure and a disgrace when you had your precious Dumbledore poison my mind with magic!" Neville's magic lashed in his anger and Augusta stepped back in fear, her skin paling rapidly and she shook her head in denial as she realised Neville knew.

"Did you honestly believe I would never discover your treachery? You illegally withheld both my rightful Heir and Lordship and you had an outside influence directly sabotage both my magic and personal growth." Neville scoffed and looked at her in disdain. "Well now it's all gone, you disgusting, malicious bitch of a woman, and you will face the consequences of your actions."

Quicker than Neville could blink, Augusta whipped out her wand and had sent an Incarcerous but Harry was there, deflecting the spell and disarming the soon to be ex-Regent and binding her to the chair.

"Now now, dearest Augusta," Harry purred, looking at her through lowered eyes with a sly smirk coming to his face, "That is no way to treat my only Godbrother."

"You! How? Dumbledore said you were utterly under control!" She screeched, twisting in her binds.

"Dumbledore thinks he knows a lot of things. He's going have an awful time realising that it not at all true." Harry informed her, "But please, Neville, do continue; I'd hate to steal your show."

"Why thank you, Harry." Neville flashed him a grin before turning back to his grandmother. "I just told you I knew of your crimes... why did you ever believe I would have come here alone. And you claim I am the fool?" Neville shook his head in disgust.

"So what do you intend to do. You cannot get away with it, Dumbledore will find out you've broken the control and will bring you both to heel once again." Augusta snarled, her face contorting in anger. Both Harry and Neville regarded her with silenced before they burst out laughing.

"Of course he's going to find out." Neville stated, once they had calmed down. "I'd imagine when we arrive at the Wizengamot tomorrow he would see that himself."

"Ha! Boy, if you think you will ever step foot into the Wizengamot chambers while there is breath in my body you are sorely mistaken." She spat and Neville looked at her through narrowed eyes, as if he was contemplating killing her on the spot. Then he smirked malevolently.

"Oh my sweet Gran." He sighed mockingly, "Many things have changed over the past few months, and while I would take a shocking amount of joy in causing you pain and then death, I think there are many other things I can do first that will make you suffer just enough until I have the time to truly enjoy killing you."

Augusta looked stunned at her grandson's easy admittance that he was eventually going to kill her before her expression twisted once again.

"You do not have the courage to do such a thing." She spat and Neville merely grinned viciously.

"I, Neville Franklin, Lord Head of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Longbottom, remove Augusta Hillary, Dowager Lady of the Noble and Ancient House of Longbottom as Regent to our House permanently; she will never again hold the position in this House, so I say it, so I will it, so mote be it."

The magic of House Longbottom answered the call of it's rightful Lord and stripped Augusta of her regency. The elderly woman gasped in horror but Neville was far from done.

"I, Neville Franklin, Lord Head of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Longbottom, call upon the Magic of my House to hear my plea: Augusta Hillary, Dowager Lady, has committed crimes against the House and it's rightful Lord, may she be punished for her actions so mote be it."

Once again, the magic of House Longbottom rose to answer it's Lord and the Longbottom bear swirled into existence before the two Longbottom's before giving a silence roar and pouncing on Augusta. The woman screamed as most of the Longbottom family magic was ripped from her body painfully, she fell forward in her binds panting raggedly and moaning in despair.

"Tut tut, looks like you have much to be punished for, dearest Grandmother." Neville clicked his tongue in mock disappointment.

"You won't get away with this. I won't let you." She hissed, looking up at them both. Both teens looked back at her utterly unimpressed with her threat.

"You are under the impression that you have that option." Harry pointed out, "Nev here, well, after he found out what you had been doing to him, got feeling a little vindictive. So please, do not think he is done."

"What else do you intend to do with me then, Grandson? You have already stated you will wait to kill me." She sneered.

"I am glad you asked." Neville told her. "I, Neville Franklin, Lord Head of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Longbottom, do hereby banish Augusta Hillary to Green Fields for the remainder of her life. She is never to leave the wards of the property, she is never to have any outside communication or contact to anyone other than her rightful House Lord, and she is to obey any and all commands issued by her Lord and Head. As I say it, as I will it, so mote be it. Magia attrtitur erit nobis (Magic will ground us)."

For the final time that evening, the Longbottom House magic rose to follow its Lord's will and Augusta had just enough time to realise the futility of her situation and begin to scream in outrage and denial before she was forcefully removed from Longbottom Hall. A resounding silence echoed through the room only to be broken by the arrival of a House elf who informed the Head of House that Augusta had arrived kicking and screaming to Green Fields. Neville issues an order for the House elves to keep her living but not to answer any of her calls or clean up for her. They were to leave a meal and water three times a day and to manage the grounds as always, but they were not to interact with the shamed Dowager.

"Well, I bet that felt bloody fantastic." Harry said, once Neville flopped on to a sofa with a groan.

"Oh like you wouldn't believe." Neville agreed, "And to think I still get the joy of knowing she knows I'm going to kill her."

"Right? I thought the fact you decided to leave that hanging over her head on top of the banishment was a particularly nice touch; I'll have to mention that to Tom." Harry grinned, and Neville snorted before he sighed.

"I almost can't believe it's over." He shook his head, "It's seemed almost endless back when you first came to me and broke the spells. Which is ironic really, because it's barely been over four months."

"Ugh please don't remind me how slow yet fast everything is going." Harry grimaced before he also sighed. "I know it seemed like it back then, Hel, it still feels like it half the time now, that all of our plans stretch endlessly in front of us. It's always something new after we think we've caught a break, but at the same time we really have to think about how much we've managed to get done. And now, you've finally got rid of your Grandmother."

"Yeah, she's finally gone." Neville said pleased, "We may have nothing but an uphill battle but I'd be pleased to go out knowing we managed to get Dumbledore permanently out of the castle and my Grandmother is forever banished. Unless I make a will, something I should probably look in to doing as soon as magically possible, declaring the new Lord of Longbottom it'll fall dormant and that means she'll never be able to leave. She would need the new Lord to rescind her banishment, to which I will be putting in the stipulations of my will that the new Lord, in order to take the title, will have to swear a vow never to rescind said banishment."

Harry threw back his head and laughed.

"Good Merlin, you've been thinking about this."

"Damn straight I have. Like you haven't got a step by step plan on how you intend to make Dumbledore pay."

"It's not step by step." Harry denied, "It's merely bullet points."

Neville snorted and shot him a wry look to which Harry smirked.

"Anyway, what else did you need to get done while we're here?" Harry wondered and Neville shot him a mischievous smirk as he got to his feet.

"Pippin?" He called and a neatly dressed female elf popped in.

"What can Pippin dos for proper Lord Master?" She asked in her little squeaky voice. Neville shot her a grin; she had always been his favourite elf, which was probably why his Gran kept her away from him.

"Have the elves restore Longbottom Hall to it's correct glory, starting with the Lord's study. I wish to have the writing equipment set up ready for me please."

"Right away, sir!" She chirped happily, popping away in an instant. Neville lead the way up to the Lord's study, pointing out bits of Longbottom history and introducing Harry to a few of the portraits: Harry was very impressed by his friend's ancestral home. They came to a halt outside a set of imposing walnut double doors with a stunning carving of the Longbottom House crest of a wand crossed with a sword in front of a snarling bear maw. As soon as Neville placed his hand flat on the crest the doors clicked open allowing them entrance, he took a deep breath and walked forward into the study.

It was a large open space with the four large bay windows showing the extensive and beautiful gardens that Longbottom Hall boasted. All of the furniture, as with most of the other wood Harry had seen since he had entered the building, was made up of rich walnut. There was a large desk set between the two centre windows creating an impressive backdrop for when the Lord took his seat. Two of the walls were covered with books, while the final wall was filled with paintings and portraits, all of which were currently empty. To the left, set around the elegant yet rustic stone fireplace, was a comfortable looking brown leather sofa with two matching chairs and a low set walnut and glass coffee table. The floor was wooden, but there were two large golden rugs that covered most of the ground and paired well with the forest green walls. Neville went straight to the desk and took a seat, picking up the waiting eagle feather quill and fresh sheet of parchment.

"It occurred to me that while I may not agree with many of the things my Grandmother did with my House, she did gain us allies even if I doubt those allies will be too amendable with the new direction of House Longbottom." Neville said to Harry as he moved on to his next sheet of parchment.

"Yeaaaaah..." Harry dragged out the word, looking at Neville and question.

"Well, it is the duty of the Head of House to notify any and all allies of any changes within their House that will affect the allegiance. If I do so now to be sent out first thing, well, my duties are met."

Harry's eyes widened as he suddenly got it and he had to laugh at Neville's deviousness.

"Oh they are going to be in such a flurry tomorrow morning when Augusta doesn't arrive for the meeting but you do."

"Such a shame they won't know to be able to request a meeting before the Wizengamot." Neville hummed, sharing a look of mock sympathy with Harry before they chuckled. Neville called his elf once again and asked for the letters to be sent out just in time to just miss morning delivery. The pair shared one more grin before heading down to entrance hall, where Harry waited for Neville to reset the ward scheme entirely and revert it back to only granted entrance allowed by the Lord. Harry took them directly back to his rooms in the school where all their friends were still there waiting for them.

In the time that they had been gone, they had set up what looked to be a mini party and, by the utter garishness of it and the phrasing, the twins with the help of Hermione had created a sign proclaiming "Ding Dong the Witch is Dead!" The rest of their group took one look at Neville and Harry's pleased grins and burst in to cheers and the twin set of a firework. Neville couldn't help but laugh and accept the drink thrust on him by Ron.

"To freedom!" He declared wildly.

"Freedom!"


He would later deny all knowledge of his actions, but Harry was bouncing around his room like a crazy person. The Wizengamot meeting was in an hour and he couldn't wait, he was only partly dressed in pressed black trousers and a black shirt as Luna was the one selecting his robes for the day. Tom was watching him with exasperated fondness as he couldn't seem to still himself.

"I suppose it is pointless to ask you to calm down?"

"Of course it is." Harry responded instantly, nimbly leaping over the coffee table in as he continued to bound around.

"You are making me dizzy." Tom stated and Harry snorted.

"Try again." The teen laughed, "Besides, you're just mad you can't go."

"That is not true." Tom denied, making Harry laugh again. The teen twirled over to the Dark Lord and dropped himself on the man's lap sideways so he could press a kiss to his cheek.

"Please! We both know the only reason Dumbledore didn't catch you out here was because of the castle protecting her Heir – and yes, I finally worked out how you got away with that." Harry shot the man a pointed look, "You step foot into the Ministry while Dumbledore is there and he'll sense you, which you know and are pissed about."

"The man must have something on him specifically keyed into my signature." The Dark Lord swore, "It's uncanny."

"Well, with what we discovered at your Hel hole then it's very possible."

Tom hissed and glared out of the window even as his arm tightened from where he had wrapped it around Harry's waist.

"Do not remind me." He snapped and Harry nuzzled his neck and pressed another kiss to his cheek in apology, Tom sighed and relaxed. "You are correct however."

"Well it's something to look into if it becomes too much of a problem." Harry suggested, "Right now, I think we have enough to do and he's out of the castle now anyway."

"Honestly, if I am around Dumbledore now that he is no longer in the castle then I more than likely want him to know I am there anyway." Tom pointed out and Harry snorted.

"Yeah, probably." He shook his head and grinned at Tom. "I can't wait for Dumbledore's reaction."

Tom smirked.

"It is set to be something highly amusing," He agreed.

"We expect there to be a vote on Fudge's positions today with the information we've got," Harry told him, "I have a plan of course, no matter what happens."

"If it comes to vote, you know you have Proxy over my seats." Tom said and Harry smirked.

"Oh the look on Dumbledore's face will be absolutely priceless." Harry murmured in glee and Tom gave him a swift kiss.

"I adore you causing issues for Dumbledore."

"I've gotten pretty good at it, don't you think?

"Undoubtedly." Tom agreed, but before he could speak again there was a loud thumping on the portrait and the sound of it swinging open.

"LET'S GET THIS SHIT SHOW ON THE ROAD!" Ron's voice echoed through Tom's quarters and Harry threw back his head all but cackling at Tom's look of utter disbelief. The dark-haired teen jumped up and met his friends as they came round the corner, his wide, malicious grin matched on all of their faces. Ron swept into the room in deep blue full robes with the seams stitched in startling white creating a beautiful contrast, he's paired them with a golden engraved belt and his red hair swept neatly back. Hermione was on his heels in a rich purple robe with soft red embellishments curling around the cuffs of her sleeves and the hem if the robe; it was finished with a delicate woven white belt that had beaded tassels hanging where it came together at her navel. Neville was escorting Luna on his arm dressed in rich chocolate robes with green leaves curling at the hem, he, too, was sporting a golden belt but his held a deep green clasp at the centre.

"Well look at you lot all fancy in your Wizengamot robes." Harry greeted, chuckling at Hermione's look of distaste.

"Don't remind me that the Wizengamot demands a full traditional robe. Even our uniforms are an open front robe now." She groused.

"Be thankful they took out the layers." Neville told her. Hermione replied with a wordless groan which got a laugh from the boys.

"Good morning dearest sister." Harry chimed as Luna gave him a hug.

"Harry, I've decided on these robes, this way it shows your two linking colours." Luna informed him, unshrinking a clothing bag from her pocket. She pulled out black robes with a gold trim and elegant golden detailing to finish the look.

"I didn't know I had those." Harry said looking at them in interest, they were quite nice.

"I had them commissioned because Potter and Gryffindor hold gold and Black and Peverell hold black, this seemed the best option because I don't believe all gold would look right." She explained handing him golden emerald cufflinks with the gem surrounded by tiny rubies which were big enough to show the colour, but small enough for it to be classy and elegant.

"Thanks," He shook his head and put on the cufflinks, another edition he didn't know he had.

"I also have these for you guys." Luna said to the others. She handed a ruby hair piece to Hermione to slide in underneath her neat bun at the crown of her head. She passed a set of diamond cufflinks to Ron and a different emerald set to Neville and nodded once they had added her choices.

"I have never seen those before." Paws said and Harry smirked.

"She had them commissioned apparently," Harry told them, they rolled their eyes. Luna shooed Harry to get changed and given that he had only had to put the robe on he didn't bother to leave the room. He then allowed her to fuss over him and make sure nothing was out of place, she then nodded once more deeming him acceptable.

"These robes look good." Harry said admiring his reflection in the mirror Luna conjured for him, they complemented his look well and the gold wasn't too overbearing.

"You look good." Hermione complimented and Harry smiled in thanks.

"I'll go and check in with Tom before we leave." He told them and the group nodded before a drawling voice interrupted them, causing them to jump rather violently.

"I have not yet left the room."

Harry span around to find a highly amused Tom sat on the sofa as he clutched his chest.

"You nearly gave us a damn heart attack!" He exclaimed, waving towards his friends for emphasis when he heard Ron and Neville mutter an empathetic "Here, here." Tom barked out a laugh and shook his head in utter disbelief.

"I think this is the first time in my life that someone has failed to notice my presence." He mused wonderingly, "Though, what your excuse is I do not know. I have not left the room since your dear friend so politely announced his arrival."

"Yeah well I'm excited! We all are." Harry defended. "Besides, you're not doing anything Dark Lord-y."

"Dark Lord-y." Tom repeated flatly.

"You know what I mean." Harry brushed off and Tom fought not to roll his eyes.

"I often find myself wondering."

"Hey!"

"You know what I mean."

"You are the absolute worst, Tom." Harry stated unimpressed, only to get a smirk in return as the man rose to his feet.

"Dark Lord." He said gleefully and Harry turned away in disgust.

"Oh, suck it."

Tom snagged him by the waist to pull Harry back against his chest, he brushed a light kiss against his teen's neck even as his smirk grew.

"Later darling. You have work to do."

Predictably that made Harry spin round and whack his arm in outrage, but Tom could feel the amusement creeping through which is exactly what he was aiming for.

"You really are the worst." Harry assured him even as an unwilling smile finally broke through.

"Thank you."

"Now," Harry turned back to his friends, who were looking highly amused at their by-play so Harry stuck his tongue out at them like the mature adult he was. "Anything to cover before we leave?"

"No, we've triple checked everything." Neville assured, and then he grinned. "Plus, now that my dearest grandmother is dealt with, I've got everything in order."

"I did enjoy her expression when you issued her punishment." Tom commented thoughtfully, nodding in approval towards a bewildered Neville.

"
Thanks."

"The twins, Draco and Blaise?"

"Already in position." Hermione confirmed.

"Brilliant. We are good to go." Harry clapped his hands before looking at Tom with a smirk.

"I'll come straight back with news."

"Go have fun." He said and Harry grinned; leaning up to kiss Tom sweetly.

"You know me."

He stepped away and corrected his robes; they all cast disillusions at the same time successfully disappearing and left the room. Tom and Luna exchanged raised eyebrows before going in opposite directions to go about their day as the castle ears. Harry led them to the Gryffindor rooms so they could floo away, before they left they switched their Disillusions for glamours and headed for the Ministry. The four of them headed to the check-in desk to register their wand, as they were making public appearances they could not afford to be caught bypassing Ministry protocol.

The glamours were more of a secondary precaution for them, they had left it as late as possible before leaving so they would miss the main mass of Lords and Ladies entering the ministry on this day. However, they couldn't be certain who knew them as their real selves instead of what Dumbledore wanted them to be so Hermione had insisted on glamours to make them generic and forgettable until they entered the Wizengamot entry chamber. Harry used his magic to get them a single elevator to themselves, and as Hermione instructed that they kept the charms up until they were safely in the initiation room and then Harry flashed them a smirk as he took in the only other occupant in the room.

"Theodore, it is so good to see you." Harry greeted, walking over to shake hands with the senior Nott.

"Ah, I was wondering when you would arrive. Thank you, Harry, you are looking well."

"Yes, we wished to miss the crowd." Harry replied, and then he indicated his friends. "Allow me to introduce you to the Lords Prewett and Longbottom, and, of course, the lovely Lady McKinnon."

"It's an honour to meet you all." Theodore told them honestly, shaking hands and kissing Hermione's. "I've heard nothing but good things since your reappearance."

"Anyone who can get Him to speak so highly of them must be an impressive individual." Hermione said with a slight smile and Theodore huffed a small laugh.

"I'd have to return the thought, my Lady. Your Runic knowledge has been mentioned."

A brief flicker of surprise crossed Hermione's face before it melted into a less public smile.

"Thank you."

"This session is going to be one for the history books." Theodore stated and the group gave him wide smirks.

"If we have any say in it." Ron agreed.

"Why do I feel that you have much more up your sleeve than revealed." Theodore wondered with a smirk of his own.

"Because Tom spreads nothing but lies about me." Harry joked. Theodore shot him an amused look.

"Somehow, I doubt that a great deal."

"I am wounded." Harry gasped, clasping his hands over his heart dramatically before grinning. "You are going to be pleased to be back in the Wizengamot today, that is all I will say."

"Magic help us all." Theodore muttered, making Harry snort.

"I've been waiting for this day for a very long time," He said and his friends grinned.

"Today is set to be amazing," Swift agreed.

"So we will do it in this order, Swift, Paws, Badger and I will close up." Harry told them and they nodded.

"Got it,"

"I can't wait to see Dumbledore's face, I almost want to cackle." Neville sighed.

"It is advised if you didn't," Paws said much to their amusement. They all heard the great gong sounding out announcing the beginning of the session and Harry wanted to bounce again. No sound came from the actual Wizengamot session, but they knew it had begun. Suddenly the door leading in shone white and opened, they all straightened their robes and fell easily into their blank masks. It was like the Yule balls all over again but this time the significance of their entrance had much greater consequences.

"Ready?" Ron asked, shifting on his feet in a show of nerves.

"Here goes nothing."


In the UK, before the Wizengamot and the Ministry was enacted, the magical world was governed by a High Council of Wizards, in which the oldest and most influential Heads of Families would gather together in an effort to create some semblance of order of the magical population. It was a much different time back then, the Statute of Secrecy hadn't even been thought about and those of magical origins lived freely with their non-magical counterparts. With the creation of Hogwarts, the wizarding population was developing more rapidly than ever before; the Council guided the populace through it. Its achievements were so noted that it wasn't long before Magic herself started recognizing their efforts and upon the first instillation of the Ministry of Magic and subsequent development into the official Wizengamot, the magic of the Council settled into the very stone of the Wizengamot chambers.

The oldest, wealthiest and most influential people/families gained the presiding seats of the Council through the magic of the Chambers: The Imperial and Most Ancient Houses of Emrys, Le-Fey, Gryffindor, Slytherin, Ravenclaw and Hufflepuff. Known as the Great Houses, not only did they create the key centre point of all magic in the United Kingdom and enabled magic to prosper in a way never seen before in most of magical society, but their decedents continued to be marked pillars of society. Directly below the Imperial Houses sat those who had provided, protected and fought for the growth of magic, those who came from lines that had performed distinguished acts in the name of magic and continued to do so: The Esteemed and Most Ancient, most distinguished by those such as Ollivander, Marchbanks and Peverell.

The Founding 24 came together in answer to magic's call, each with rich ancestry, wealth and distinguishable magics creating the Noble and Most Ancient Houses. During the Development of the Wizengamot over the years, its magics expanded and brought forth the Ancient House, the Noble Houses and, the seats granted to those of the Ministry itself. However, where once it once grew, over time empty spaces within its distinguished hall became more common; Houses died off leaving spare seats, Houses lost their seats due to crimes against Magic or feuds with other Houses, or fell dormant as inheritance and history was lost. Throughout the course of the Wizengamot history, the hallowed halls had seen the magical community of the UK through wars, invasions, growth and change and yet never before had the halls been filled with more tension.

The foundations of their political world had been violently shaken over the past few months and it had been building and building until the opening session of the year was the only thing worthy of attention. Which is what made it unsurprising that it was a muted excitement that filled the ancient chamber of the Wizengamot. Lords and Ladies of all ages, from all over the country, gathered within the room waiting for their remaining fellows to arrive, and, while recognised with titles, it didn't stop even the best of them listening to the gossip that floated around the prestigious place. And by Merlin was it flowing. The Yule Season had only just past and each marked section was on tenterhooks for the session to begin; the whispers and stirrings about changes in power and shifts in allegiances ran rampant through the hall and each member wanted to know exactly how it was going to affect them. It was easy to define which Houses belonged to which section however. The Light section were gathered in small circles muttering to each other shooting suspicious looks towards the Dark Inclined before ducking their heads together once again. Dumbledore's removal of Headmaster then his continued absence over the Yule Season had their wands in a knot and seemed content to blame anyone but Dumbledore for the situation. Not only that, but the upper crust of the Light sections seemed to be particularly anxious about something.

The Dark Faction, while equally as tense, held themselves to more rigid standards and refused to allow their anxieties to be displayed whatsoever. They were cool and collected, poised in wait for the beginning of the session that should, if the Yule Season was to believed, change the course of the Wizengamot itself. Those in the Neutral Faction were a mix of both; there were some flittering about trying to gain any and all final insights of the upcoming session, while there were others who were stood resembling marble statues merely observing the room. Exacerbating the tension within the chambers was the actions of certain Lords, deviating from their norm at a time where people were grasping at familiarity.

Lord Hadrian Greengrass was drawing much attention to himself. The man had stalked into the chambers with determination and purpose; an already respected man who held lead in the Neutral Faction, his recent appointment as Undersecretary to the Minister had only gained him more accolades from his absolution in correcting the mistakes of the previous position holders. At his right, Lord Davis was no surprise, the long-held allies could always be counted to go together, but it was the final Lord that drew the most attention, and how could he not? Lord Lucius Malfoy was the complete counter to his two fellows and the one that held the most visible power; all wielded with an iron fist for the Dark Faction. White blond hair shone vividly, glowing softly with a light of its own, and it fell, perfectly straight, to sit bellow the Malfoy Lord's collar. His features sharper and clearer than many, and skin so pale that it was almost inhuman. Despite these noticeable features, it was always the eyes that caught people's attention. Completely unique to those of Malfoy birth, Lord Malfoy's eyes were a burnished mercury, completely uniform in colour and more piercing than a hawk. He wore robes, of the highest quality, made up of silver and black, highlighting his best features perfectly, and his famous black, snake headed cane resting in his right hand. His own Lordship ring present, on the very hand that held the cane, on a platinum band, with winged dragons and serpents twisting around the scripted letter M.

And while that should have been enough to gain Lucius Malfoy excessive attention, it was his deep conversation with the staunchly and highly outspoken Neutral Lord Greengrass. The absences of certain members was louder than the speculation flying around: the Dark sect eagerly waiting to see the actions taken after Lord Nott's disgraceful behaviour at the Malfoy ball, rumours of his disgraced status had spread throughout the rest body with ease even with the Act of Silence: the Light sect infamous Augusta Longbottom also not present, which explained why the others of her crowd looked so rattled; tardy, Augusta was not. The esteemed body began taking their seats as the room continued to fill. Directly in front of the Chief Warlock's podium and the Ministerial Seats was the Neutral Faction, with the Nobles sitting lowest and ascending in status with Greengrass sitting almost top centre amongst the other Noble and Most Ancients. The three active Esteemed houses were the only ones sat above him; Lords Gamp and Ollivander, the wandmaker's brother, and the Lady Marchbanks.

To the left curving round to meet the Neutral Faction were the Light Aligned and mirrored to the right were the Dark seats. Scattered amongst the House seats were gaps indicating the death of a House, and the dulled seats showing that House's dormancy. Far above the House seating, residing at the highest points of the room between the great stone pillars were the spectator stands which were open and filled with the press and public for the opening session of the year. As the final few Lords and Ladies trickled in so did Minister Fudge, who kept his head down and headed to his seat without stopping to speak with anyone at all; a notable change in behaviour for the notoriously pandering man.

The excitement within the air had grown over the time they had been waiting there, and just as it was becoming too much, the Chief Warlock, Albus Dumbledore, entered the chambers. It didn't matter how he was perceived by any section, Dumbledore still had the ability to call all attention to himself without uttering a word. He commanded attention be it adoration or hatred and he wielded that power like it was a first-year charm; he was a dangerous opponent to have. He himself was the cause and topic for many rumours and conversations saturating the chambers and he bore it all with a grace he had perfected over the years. A feat, given the sheer battering his public image had taken the last couple of months. He was a figure of respect, and often awe, for some people, his defeat of Grindelwald and stance against Voldemort creating much of his hype, and his powerful magic another. Others looked at him with calculation, unsure if he was really as benign as he presented, or if it was a carefully crafted mask to be presented to the world. The final set of people barely masked their disdain for the aged headmaster, those were the people who saw right through his apparent good and greatness and looked at the true monster underneath. A monster that was slowly becoming unmasked due Rita's poisonous quill and her vindictive sources.

While the members of the Wizengamot may have been able to contain themselves at Dumbledore's arrival, the rabid public did not. There was a notable rise in sound coming from the gallery. Dumbledore was dressed in rich, deep blue robes, his famous long white beard falling down the front with his equally long white hair doing the same at the back flowing gently as he calmly strode further into the chamber. He had steeled himself for this session, knowing it was going to be a difficult one for him. Albus knew he had amassed a large following of people that would listen to his word as if it was gospel, he had cultivated it over years of dedicated manipulation, manoeuvring and murder. Hogwarts, in particular, had been his most prized jewel. All those young minds to shape and nudge in the right direction, it was so easy to get eleven year olds to look up to you. Even easier if you had six older years reinforcing the message, and then they leave and have families of their own, passing down stories of the Great Albus Dumbledore. Yet, in mere months, his name was smeared to a degree he hadn't reached ever before (and given the ministry was severely campaigning against him and his prized pawn last year, that was truly saying something) and he had lost Hogwarts.

Never had he been so utterly furious but unable to act lest he do more damage that he could not afford. Skeeter had vanished off the face of the earth and there was absolutely no trace of where she was getting her information. What terrified Albus the most was the accuracy of her articles. While he had been covering himself by using Rita's thankfully well-known history at using fact and fiction as interchangeable items, thanks to Fudge's idiocy the final nail in his Hogwarts tenure came with the reveal of the blood quills. Of course, he had known Umbridge was using such items in his school, but her attacks on his pawn were just perfect to drive him down and make him more untrustworthy. Plus, the quill made the brat's magic unstable enough for himself weave more spells around him, leading to finally ridding himself with his Black issue once and for all. Now, however, it had backfired rather spectacularly and there would be further reaching consequences to losing the Headmaster's spot at Hogwarts than just his breeding ground for future followers. The wards had plenty of openings for him to make alterations, and many of his key pawns and plans needed that castle.

The uncertain ground Dumbledore found himself on left him greatly uneasy leaving them so unattended, however, he was as certain as ever in his magic and his abilities. All of his issues were locked firmly under enough magic to make them barely functioning. For now, he had to use all of his considerable ability to navigate the opening Wizengamot session of the year and already Dumbledore was feeling his Yuletime absence. All of his work over the years would be wasted if he didn't make sure Riddle was dead and gone forever, and the mad Black elf had handed him such a perfect opening in its insane ramblings. Truly, manipulating the Black Heir away from his family was one of his better plans. Now he had Riddle's prized locket in his possession with the crazed Dark Lord none-the-wiser. Better yet, he had been able to meet with some other contacts outside of the UK, which had been a huge aid in regrouping, which had been worth sacrificing a Yuletide nursing the British aristocracy; his followers or not.

At his return to Britain, he had been inundated with messages, and while he had yet to manage to get through them all, he had received correspondence from his loyal spy that Potter had reacted wonderfully to his latest layer of spells, and young Ginevra now had a promise from the boy. Soon she would be pregnant and Potter would marry her; then he could push through on his plans for his little sacrificial lamb. It settled his mind greatly to know that even with his absence, things were still moving accordingly. This latest setback wouldn't stop him achieving his goals. He had started observing the room the moment he stepped foot in it which is why he did not fail to recognise the amount of tension in the room. Cornelius was slumped and subdued. While Dumbledore's reputation had taken a beating, the Minister's was shattered. Already taking a weighty hit after the revelation that Voldemort had indeed returned, the Minister then suffered from his vicious denial of such a thing and that the Dark Lord had walked in the Ministry itself with his Death Eaters. The Public was already after his head and with the Blood Quill nightmare, it was a wonder the Fudge hadn't just upped and resigned.

Dumbledore didn't see any more use of the pudgy man and would be glad to cast him aside for a better option. Months ago, Albus had been laying the foundations of who he wanted as the next Minister and he had no doubt that it would come into fruition. He started to circle the room, checking in with those he had missed during the Yuletide and finding himself pleased that the Light sect saw no fault of his own for the Blood Quill debacle. Albus made sure he sounded the correct amount of disappointed and disgusted that something like that could be allowed and dropped little hints here and there pointing out to his followers at what happened when he wasn't the one in power. It was easy to highlight the Ministry's campaign of him last year as a reminder. Albus passed by those in the Neutral sect that he still had an ear with, picking up the underlying message that something had happened in the Dark that resulted in the Nott Lord's absence. He was eager to speak with Augusta, she was a key figure in his plans and her mindless devotion to her long incapacitated son was endlessly useful to him. She had yet to arrive and as he went to make his was over to her usual crowd, who were looking particularly nervous about something he yet did not know, he was stopped by someone that froze him to the bone.

"Amelia!" He exclaimed, a jovial expression coming to his face even if he was feeling anything but. He numerous reports on her death months ago, and he had heard hide nor hair of her return to duty or her survival. He had been hoping to scope out the new Bones proxy to see if they could be swayed while he finalised his plans for the Bones Heiress, intending to use the loss of her entire family by Dark hands as a motivation to shift the staunchly Neutral House to him and the Light. This stopped all those budding ideas in the tracks. Amelia Bones had never been his biggest fan and she was utterly immovable in her neutrality. The only reason she didn't have retaining Head over the Neutral section was because of her placement as Head of the Department of Magical Law Enforcement. With the recent revelations regarding his past and now the Blood Quills, that her most precious niece had been a victim, there was no doubt that her opinion of him had sunk. There was no way Bones hadn't taught her niece about things like Blood Quills and that Susan had not informed her Aunt before the paper release would had rang warning bells in the notoriously brilliant witch. And as Albus looked at her expression as she regarded him, she blamed him just as much as Fudge and Umbridge.

"Good morning, Albus." The curt, almost chilly tone of voice matched her expression and Dumbledore braced himself. He could not afford to have Bones on the attack right now and the fact that he had not heard a word of her at all made him a bit more cautious as to what else he had missed.

"I am glad to see you well, Amelia. I had, of course, heard of your leaving the DMLE." Albus said gravely.

"Yes, such fortune shines on me. I grew well, well enough to find out that Blood Quills were used to torture my niece and countless others. Not to mention young Mr Potter's dangerous exposure."

"I am equally as outraged that this had been allowed to-,"

"Do not even think for a second that I don't know you knew of this." Amelia hissed, her usually civility only barely remaining due to the setting. "My Susan would have never allowed something like this to happen unless she was compelled not to inform me."

"My dear girl I hope you are not accusing me of casting compulsion charms on your niece." Dumbledore chided, looking at her in disappointment, to which Bones merely scoffed.

"Oh I know you haven't, but you would have known the moment a member of staff did such a thing."

"There was no such happenings, I can assure you, Amelia. I would never have allowed it." Dumbledore stated. Only half of that was actually a lie. Umbridge hadn't been casting the compulsion charms on the students, she had been casting it on parchment she was making them write on. It was a rather ingenious was to get around the protections of the castle.

"Your time is numbered, Dumbledore." Amelia warned, "Your lax approach to the laws and how they should be upheld is all coming out and I'm sure I'm not the only one who cannot wait to see what else will pop up."

With that she spun on her heal and stalked over to the Neutral section and moved towards her seat. Dumbledore withheld a frown as she went, that could be either an ominous threat or merely an observation, but he wasn't willing to brush it off right now. Albus bit back a curse when the gong signalling the start of the session rang out and he was forced to head to his seat without speaking to the Lords MacMillan or Diggory which meant he didn't know what had them so visibly anxious. Not only that, Augusta had not arrived, and he had no explanation nor could he guess the reason. Unfortunately, there was simply no time for him to puzzle upon her lack of appearance as he took his seat and waited for the final few to sit down before beginning his duties.

"Wizengamot session 3480 called to order." Dumbledore made sure to cast his voice around the chambers without raising it. "I'd like to welcome the esteemed Lords and Ladies, Ministry workers and of course our public guests to the opening Wizengamot session of the year 1997."

The greeting was enough for silence to finally fall throughout the chambers and Dumbledore nodded with the benign smile as he went through the scribe listings, the auror guards and the Unspeakables on hand before focusing on the agenda for the day.

"First call of order: Lords and Ladies let us seek to know if there are any who wish to declare their membership in our hallowed halls. Let us bring forth the Magic of the Wizengamot to evaluate their claim."

There was a sweeping feeling as the magic of the chambers rushed through the halls before there was a pulse of ancient magic and an old stone plinth materialised in the centre of the room indicating there were those seeking entrance: The Domus enim saguis plinthum proiecturam. Upon the plinth was an equally ancient blade resting to the right and a fist sized crystal set in the centre of the stone. Muttered and hissed conversations erupted from the viewing stands as the Lords and Ladies collectively sat up in their seats in anticipation for what was about to come. Dumbledore found him self tensing as he stared at the plinth in consternation; this was very unexpected. He tracked all the Houses of the Wizengamot very carefully, he didn't know who to expect to step through the doors which was never good but now he was already behind; he didn't need this now. Albus took a deep breath in preparation, he was Albus Dumbledore, he could plan around these uncertainties and make sure he came out on top; he had spent too long working things into his own favour to fail now. Dumbledore had been so involved in his own thoughts and actions and so used to having eyes on him that he paid no mind to a set of icy blue eyes observing his every move.


Up in the public galley there was a section dedicated to the Ladies and Consorts to the members of the Wizengamot and sat front and centre of the galley was the Lady Malfoy herself. The tension of the entire room was thick enough to taste. Watching the Heads of Houses and their Proxys trying to contain themselves as they waited for everyone to arrive was somewhat amusing, and it was easy to see those who were nervous and those who were excited. The Dark Sect seemed to be collectively smug and Narcissa found herself thankful the Act had been called this year. It would be released this evening after the Special Edition of the Evening Prophet had been sent out. Not that she could exactly blame the Dark members, she herself was greatly anticipating the sudden and drastic power shift that was about to happen however she would never let it show in such a setting.

She was here to observe Dumbledore first and foremost, but also the rest of the chambers. Out of the current members of the Wizengamot, only Dumbledore and Lucius knew the true power Harry Potter-Black wielded, and only Lucius knew to expect it coming. Narcissa couldn't wait to see the reactions to his entrance especially. She was as poised and elegant as ever as she made polite conversation to the other Ladies she was associated with, each of the eagerly waiting for proceedings to begin; but her eyes followed Dumbledore with a predator's gaze. It also helped that she learned the art of lip reading from her mother's knee from the tender age of three. She had never liked Dumbledore, not only had she been born into the House of Black, but she had seen and experienced his manipulations. He was ruining their world, damning whole branches of magic and controlling the masses in his quest for power. But it wasn't only the Dark that he targeted; it was anyone who didn't follow his every whim.

Narcissa had thought she knew this about the man, she thought she understood what he would sink to, but of course, as with everything Harry did, he broke her expectations. Dumbledore's twisted games had suddenly become a great deal more personal and given how fond she had grown of Harry, and by extension his friends, she couldn't help but feel a vicious sense of delight at Dumbledore's crumbling empire. And today would be a punishing blow he would not be able to recover from. She had employed a little charm that was a Black secret that allowed her eyes to zoom in and out like you could with omnioculars, and she had been analysing Dumbledore's actions. The man appeared perfectly collected, seemingly unknowing of the true damage his absence at Yule had caused to his plans, until he was intercepted by the Lady Bones. Narcissa admired the woman's ability to shake Dumbledore even if it was only a brief flicker of surprise at her appearance. His own sources had not informed him of her survival it seemed, and her small confrontation had delayed the old fool enough for him to be unable to question the Dowager Lady Longbottom's absence from her associates. It made her want the smirk openly to be assured that the plans she had seen Harry and her son slave over had not been for naught, and it was much harder than normal to contain it.

Dumbledore brought the session to order and began the opening statements before finally calling for any who sought entrance to the chamber. His expression when the Wizengamot magic activated and the Domus enim saguis plinthum proiecturam appeared was the first bite of the sweetest cream; it appeared that truly no word had gotten to him at all. The magic rose once more and gave a flash of white light and when it cleared Theodore Nott Senior walked straight backed and stern towards the central plinth. His appearance was of no surprise to the Dark or the more Dark/Neutral Houses, but his reappearance caused a stir with the remaining members as they wondered what could have possibly bring him back. He had stepped down abruptly sixteen years ago after the dual loss of his wife and Heir, and Izar Nott had picked up the mantel rather well overall; his latest decisions notwithstanding. Theodore Nott had been a very powerful player during his time and by the tightening of Dumbledore's eyes, he clearly remembered that particular fact, too. Nott swiftly picked up the ornate dagger and cleanly made a neat slice to the edge of his palm allowing blood to drip on to the crystal and spoke in the clear, strong voice.

"Magic of the Wizengamot, hear my command, I, Theodore Alexander, by rite of magic and by rite of blood; as Lord Head, do reclaim the seat of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Nott."

The room seemed to pause before magic swirled around the Nott Lord as his claim was evaluated and by the cry of the Nott family hawk as it appeared with the House crest it was accepted by the Wizengamot magic.

"My command has been answered; my claim has been heard; so is witnessed so mote be it." Lord Nott called, "Suscipe verba Obscurum."

At his word the Nott crest flared to life on an empty seat of the upper tier of the Noble and Most Ancient Houses situated in the Dark sect. Theodore bowed his head to the Wizengamot and made his way to his seat, and Narcissa couldn't help but note Dumbledore seemed almost relieved as Nott took his seat. Something that was short lived as he opened his mouth to move along the session when magic grew once more and flashed white. This time Dumbledore's expression visibly showed his shock as the tall, red-headed teen walked into the chambers, jaw dropping slightly before snapped shut and clenched. The Prewett crest blazing across the teen's chest even if that still didn't identify him to some.

"Magic of the Wizengamot, hear my command, I, Ronald Billius, by rite of magic and by rite of blood; as Lord Head, do claim the seat of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Prewett." His voice didn't waver and once again the magic rose to accept his claim with a flash of the Prewett jackal, and with a proud tilt of his jaw continued the rite. "My command had be answered; my claim has been heard; so is witnessed so mote be it: Suscipe verba Obscurum."

Dumbledore seemed to recoil a bit at Ron's declaration towards the Dark, fist clenching slightly as he felt his carefully crafted plans slowly begin to unravel.

The old man felt has if his heart was barely beating as the teen who should have no idea of this Lordship confidently strode to his Dark placed Lordship seat. And as the Prewett crest flared to life next to Lord Nott, there were outraged cries from the Light and Light/Neutral section as the staunchly Light/Neutral House shifted its allegiance so vastly. While those more free within the Dark goaded them in return for their section's gain. Before the heckling could gain too much momentum, there was a flash of white and a misleadingly delicate Lady walked to the plinth to slice her palm. Dumbledore's skin lost a bit more colour as he took in the Lady's crest, his entire posture wound tighter than a spring as she firmly declared:

"Magic of the Wizengamot, hear my command, I, Hermione Jean, by rite of magic and by rite of blood; as Lady Head, do claim the seat of the Noble and Most Ancient House of McKinnon."

As she was accepted and too went to the Dark, shifting yet another Light seat over to the opposition, the volume of the Wizengamot rose instantly. Dumbledore was frozen in horror as Lady McKinnon took her seat that he allowed the arguing that had erupted within both the chambers and the gallery, the implications of those two arriving now, when he had been assured that his crafted pawns were set in their correct places.

"Chief Warlock, sir! The Chief Warlock's assistant's hissed voice right next to his ear shocked the old man out of his stupor and he immediately shot a loud BANG from the tip of his wand.

"You are Lords and Ladies of the Wizengamot; control yourselves!"

The tone of his voice came out harsher than he intended but things were spiralling faster than he could comprehend, let alone fix. Yet again, there was a flare in magic and a flash of white light and this time Dumbledore felt like was choking as he visibly saw the reason for Augusta's absence stride into the chamber with a calm confidence his father Frank couldn't hope to match.

"Mr Longbottom, there must be a mistake, I spoke with your Grandmother recently, you are not meant to be here." Dumbledore called out before the boy could slice his palm, and found himself struck by the glare he received. The Wizengamot murmured collectively at his interruption, but Dumbledore couldn't afford to lose any more ground. He didn't know what was going on but it was very clear that he had missed a great deal more than he realised.

"My Grandmother," Neville spat out the familial tone with poison, "Has been banished for crimes against the House Longbottom and it's Heir. I find it very interesting, Chief Warlock, that you are so interested in House Longbottom business; please remember your place within these chambers."

The entire room was plunged into utter silence at the young Lord's swift and cutting reply to the aged Chief Warlock, and Dumbledore appeared equally speechless. Neville used the distraction to make his declaration and gain acceptance.

"My command had be answered; my claim has been heard; so is witnessed so mote be it: Cras et susceperis uerba."

The roar of outrage from the Light as the Longbottom Lord sat proudly Neutral was particularly loud after the silence and it took ten minutes to settle the enraged Light section, their cries of betrayal echoing off the walls eagerly hyped up by the excited viewing gallery. The press was having an absolute field day as their quills flew across parchment, none of them missing the little nugget the Longbottom Lord had revealed about the former Dowager Lady. And just when the crowd finally settled, believing them to be able to begin the session, the magic flashed white once more. The figure that entered seemed to glide in, every fibre of his being seemed to belong as he moved towards the plinth, one hand moving up to brush dark hair away from a distinctive lightning bolt scar that had the entire room bursting into chatter. But nothing was quite as exquisite as Dumbledore's audible and enraged "NO!" that ripped through the room quieting the crowd. Harry looked up at the old man, who had risen to feet to glare down at him.

"Harry, what do you think you are doing?" He demanded furiously, no sign of his usual grandfather visage and Harry felt a slow smirk curl on to his lips.

"Did you really believe this would never happen?" The Potter-Black Lord couldn't help but taunt. "Reap what you sow, old man."

Before Dumbledore could respond, Harry had snatched up the dagger and sliced his palm to bleed on the crystal.

"Magic of the Wizengamot, hear my command, I, Harry James, by rite of magic and by rite of blood; as Lord Head, do claim the seat of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Potter." Magic swarmed the room and the Potter Griffin appeared, crying out activating the Potter crest.

"The seat of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Black."

The Magic grows thicker as the Black's raven screeches activating the House crest and Harry pauses before smirking up at Dumbledore and the rest of the Wizengamot.

"The seat of the Esteemed and Most Ancient House of Peverell."

Gasps rang out and shouts of disbelief soon followed but they were silenced as the Wizengamot recognised his claim and the Peverell thestral's hooves bounced around the halls and the crest flared to life.

"The seat of the Imperial and Most Ancient House of Gryffindor."

There was a collective howl of denial from majority of the Wizengamot and the public gallery and Harry just stood in the face of it, not breaking eye contacted with an ashen Dumbledore, whose baby blue eyes were promising murder. The famed Gryffindor lion roared as the magic once again accepted his claim and his fourth crest settled eerily above his head as the members created Hel at the vast power he now held. But Harry wasn't done. His smug grin abruptly twisted into something much more vicious and he pulled back his shoulders and raised his head to meet Dumbledore face on.

"By the permission granted by its Lord Head, I claim, in absentee, Proxy Head and the seat of the Imperial and Most Ancient House of Slytherin."

The sudden silence in the chambers was deafening making the Slytherin serpent's hiss sound all the more ominous, however, Harry didn't pay the slightest bit of attention to anything else other than Dumbledore. Dumbledore, who reared back as if he had been struck, eyes blown wide as he shook his head in utter horror. And Harry felt a core deep pleasure as Dumbledore realised that all of his carefully laid plans hadn't just been moved off course but utterly shattered.

"My command had been answered; my claim has been heard; so is witnessed so mote be it: Suscipe verba Obscurum."

His family crests flashed to the very highest tier of the Dark section and settled into a seat that held more elegance than any other and Harry made his way gleefully, all the while keeping his eyes on Dumbledore's horrified visage watching as the old man tried to recover. The silence seemed to stretch before Dumbledore seemed to snap.

"What have you done you foolish brat?"

"Come now, Headmaster – oh, do excuse me, that's not a title belonging to you now, is it?" Harry didn't even attempt to sound sorry. "This is my birth rite. I have every right to be here. Besides, have you not preached unity between Gryffindor and Slytherin for decades; I'm just doing what you told me to."

Dumbledore looked like he was about to have a seizure at the backhanded confirmation of Harry's allegiance with the Dark Lord and he couldn't help but relish as the old man seemed to wilt in disbelief and horror, slumping back into his chair.

"What have you done?" Dumbledore's despondent voice echoed through the halls in the silence and it was enough for the rest of the Wizengamot to erupt as they had got themselves together; the power shift Harry alone had created was not sitting well within the Light sect. They were bawling over his perceived betrayal and exclaiming that he was enabling the Dark to push through their dastardly evil plans while the Dark sect were openly gloating once they got over the shock. Harry sat back and watched it all with satisfaction, sharing an amused glance with Ron and Hermione as the Wizengamot seemed to collectively loose their minds.

Dumbledore was useless; the old fool was staring listlessly ahead as if all of his beliefs had been destroyed in one moment. Lucius caught Harry's eye and flashed a pleased smirk while Theodore raised an eyebrow surprised but amused, Harry cast his eye around to look for Hadrian Greengrass and the Neutral Lord was one of the few not creating havoc at his entrance. He did look very surprised however, and when Harry gave him a mock salute the elder Lord outright grinned. The Chief Warlock's aid was desperately trying to get Dumbledore to respond as the Chamber's occupants showed no signs of settling and the eager public were only too happy to urge them on. Finally, Dumbledore snapped out of his desolation and tired, with little success, to pull back his genial mask over his face but it was clear to Harry and his friends that he was pissed.

"Order, order in the Chambers!" Dumbledore shouted over the din. He called a few times as no one was paying attention and eventually had to release a loud bang from the end of his wand.

"Will you all learn some control." Dumbledore's voice boomed through the chambers that had silenced due to the explosion he released. "Can we all be seated and conduct ourselves as the esteemed people we are."

Harry wanted to scoff as the man conveniently forgot his own loss of control just moments ago but refrained and waited for the Lords and Ladies to sort themselves out. He couldn't wait to tell Tom he had managed to get almost the entire Chambers to lose their vaunted cool in the face of his entrance.

"We have all had some surprises but that is no reason for us to forget ourselves. Let us begin the session." Dumbledore chided, looking around at them with his grandfatherly mask back in place. "Now, first on the agenda is the annual tax reports."

Harry's lip curled and sat back to begin the session; he had heard all about these sessions from Lucius, so he didn't expect to be entertained until Hadrian spoke his piece. Also, they were new faces in the Chambers, not only were they new but they were the youngest members in the room and still in education; they had long since decided they were not going to start evoking change until they had built up some more credibility. Before they could act for the betterment of their country they needed to get a true fill for the Wizengamot as members not as spectators. After the taxes, they covered ministerial allocations of funding, inter-departmental reviews which included everything from agriculture and animals to magical transportation, laws reviews and petitions and the review covering the UK's upholding of the Statute of Secrecy. It was kind of petty, watching high class members of society argue back and forth over such minor details of laws that didn't even matter when there were a plethora of rules and regulations that were doing nothing but stagnating and suppressing their world.

Harry could see Ron doodling something on his parchment in leu of taking notes, Neville had only looked interested when they brought up the agriculture and even Hermione, who had managed to stay awake during Binns class looked like she was close to taking a nap to anyone who knew her. Despite the sheer banality of the session, it was obvious from the very first note just how much power Harry, and by extension his friends, wielded in this room. A vote from him, which was backed up by the three others, was almost enough to secure the decision and Harry knew he had to be so very careful when it came to making decisions because if he made an error there was a very real possibility that it would effect everyone else.

As witnessed when he voted to approve the raise in Auror budget, much to the surprise to the Light, who seemed to believe that because of his Dark alignment he didn't care about the world, and it went through for the first time in ten years. The power was a heady thing, but the consequences were a weighty reminder that he couldn't afford to get carried away. Once they had gotten through the official agenda, they finally reached the section they had all been looking forward to and Dumbledore opened the floor up to the Lords and Ladies to raise any concerns they wished. Harry had turned his attention to Hadrian, waiting for him to light his wand but he was beaten to it by Dumbledore's lacky, Doge, who lit his wand and rose to his feet when he was called on.

"I call for a review of the criteria needed to sit in these Chambers." He announced, "We are responsible for the very fabric of our world and we should not be too hasty when we admit people into our ranks."

As soon as Doge took his seat there was an outcry by many members of the Wizengamot and Harry fought not to sneer at the man at his blatant objection to their new presence.

"Counter arguments?" Dumbledore called and Hermione's wand lit up almost aggressively.

"The Wizengamot recognises Lady Hermione, of the Noble and Most Ancient House of McKinnon."

Dumbledore looked to be in pain as he spoke those words and Hermione stood, casting Doge a look of disdain.

"I may be a new face here at the Wizengamot, but I cannot help but wonder if the very magic of these Chambers is often called in to question." She said.

"I did no such thing!" Doge exclaimed, scowling at her.

"No? Did you not just as for a review for who is able to sit on the Wizengamot? Correct me if I am wrong, but the acceptance here has nothing to do with us as a body, and all rests of the decision of the magic of the Chambers. If you wish to review who sits here, then you must be questioning the very magic." Hermione pointed out coolly, and Harry smirked at the outbreak of whispering her words caused as Doge spluttered. "Unless, of course, this is a poorly disguised attack on myself and my colleagues who arrived today, and you are desperately grasping at a way to gain back the power your chosen section has recently lost."

Well, that was a beautiful way to shut Doge down and to rub salt in the wounds the Light sect were feeling due to the powershift they had created. Doge threw a look at Dumbledore, who shook his head, and then withdrew his petition with a shake of his head. Harry did flick his eyes towards Selwyn in case he still thought it may be a good idea to raise his idiotic werewolf bill, but when the other Lord sensed someone was looking at him and glanced up at Harry he was quick to look away and remain firmly in his chair; he did have some brains then. Lord Greengrass lit up his wand and was recognised, he rose to his feet and he was one of those people that was able to command a room with minimal effort. He stood, looking around at them all for a moment before speaking.

"We here at the Wizengamot and the Ministry are at the forefront of ensuring our world remains safe and flourishing, and yet, we have had countless very public examples of how this had not been the case. Most recently, we have discovered that our own Minister enabled a disgusting woman to torture the next generation: our children, grandchildren, nieces and nephews have been overexposed to a Blood Quill." He paused here to allow the outraged murmuring to settle at the reminder, and Fudge hunched down in his seat at the looks of anger and disgust he was receiving from everyone in the Chambers; for once the hall was unified in something. Once the hall had calmed, Hadrian continued.

"I call for a Vote of No Confidence against Minister Fudge."

"Does anyone second this notion?" Dumbledore asked of the room and Harry rose to his feet.

"I second the Vote."

"And I." Ron, Hermione, Neville, Lord Davis, Lucius and Theodore followed Harry's declaration almost in unison.

"Motion carries: Lord Greengrass present your case"

"As I have said, there have been a plethora of public mistakes coming from our highest office, however there are many things that have not been made public and I submit the proof of bribes, miscarriages of justice and outright lawlessness performed by the esteemed minister Fudge during his tenure as Minister."

With a few taps of his wand, the Wizengamot aid sent copies of the documents to every member of the Chamber.

"Documents have been varified by Gringotts and the Ministery." The Aid called. There was silence as the documents were reviewed, Harry himself wasn't surprised at what Hadrian had found, much of it were things they had already knew about but there were a few surprises there, such as the amount of people Fudge had on his payroll and how many people he had actually taken bribes from. However, it appeared to be a surprise to many people in the Chamber as there were soon cries of outrage sounding out.

"Order! Order!" Dumbledore called as the condemnation of Fudge grew louder. "Minister Fudge, do you have anything to counter?"

"I do not." Fudge answered immediately, knowing it was way too late to save anything of his career now. He'd be lucky if he wasn't brought up on charges at a later date.

"I now call for a majority vote. Light your wands blue if you believe Minister Fudge is no longer fit for office."

The Wizengamot shone blue as most of the Lords and Ladies agreed that Fudge had to go, and it was obvious in an instant that Fudge had lost his position, but Dumbledore still had to ask for those who disagreed (which was no one) and those who wished to abstain (all three of them). The man in question seemed resigned to his fate as he sat slumped in the minister's seat for the last time.

"Majority rules. Lord Greengrass's Vote of No Confidence passes: Cornelius Fudge, you are hereby relieved of your duties as Minister for Magic effective immediately. You are to leave these Chambers in disgrace, collect your personal belongings and leave the ministry." Dumbledore ordered and Fudge didn't say a word as he did exactly that, head bowed with the posture of someone who knew he was beat.

"With the eviction of the former Minister, Cornelius Fudge, the chair states it must have a new minister." Dumbledore stated, "The general elections are scheduled for the 20th of March, and until such times an Interim Minister must be selected."

Harry sat up straight, sharing a look between his friends and, in this setting, closest allies; this is what they had been waiting for. There was murmuring throughout the halls as each section shifted and adjusted to the new agenda, trying to scrape together plans and ideas for who would hold power for the next three months, and who could, quite possibly, become the next official Minister for Magic; any Interim Minister was granted a place within the next election, and given how candidates had already long been submitted for the next ministerial vote before this, it worked out really well for Harry and his group. A distinguished black man lit his wand amongst the chatter and brought attention to himself. Harry recognised Kingsley's uncle.

"Recognising Lord Kingston, of the Ancient House of Shacklebolt."

"I nominate Rufus Scrimgeour, Head of the Department of Magical Law Enforcement for Interim Minister." He said in a slow, calm voice that he shared with his nephew.

"I second the nomination." Lord Diggory, who had been particularly vocal when Harry took his seats to the Dark Sect, called out.

"And I," Lord Howard agreed.

"Sir Scrimgeour, do you accept the nomination?" Dumbledore asked and Scrimgeour stood up from the ministry seat he had taken over when Bones had left with an arrogant glint in his eye that Harry really didn't like; he had done his research into the man and he couldn't say he had been impressed.

"I accept the nomination,"

"Any counterparts?"

Harry exchanged looks with Swift and Paws and as one they nodded once: Hermione stood up.

"Recognising Lady Hermione, of the Noble and Most Ancient House of McKinnon,"

"I nominate Lucius Malfoy, Lord of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Malfoy for Interim Minister." She said clearly and Harry watched in amusement when Dumbledore wasn't able to cover his shock horror fast enough, not only that but the Light Sect seemed to collectively recoil at the nomination, loudly declaring it folly. He wanted to rub his hands together evilly but refrained from doing so with great difficulty. Lucius himself barely covered his own shock at the nomination, his mercury eyes widening slightly gave away that he was doing some serious thinking, and Harry nodded once when the silver eyes glanced over at him and Lucius stood.

"I second the nomination." Theodore Nott stood as he spoke, which was something that they hadn't planned for but was a welcome addition.

"And I," The third confirmation came from Neville as planned and with it left Dumbledore no choice but to ask Lucius if he accepted the nomination.

"Lord Lucius, of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Malfoy, do you accept the nomination."

"I accept the nomination."

"Any more counter nominations?" Dumbledore asked and Harry could hear a trace of desperation in his voice, but unfortunately for the old fool no one stood.

"It is taken to vote between our two candidates: Sir Rufus Scrimgeour and Lord Lucius Malfoy." It looked and sounded as if Dumbledore had to force the words out of his mouth but he had little choice, much to Harry's pleasure. "Please cast white for Scrimgeour and blue for Malfoy."

It started with the lowest families and many of them voted for Scrimegeor giving the man a clear lead, Dumbledore started to look relieved until it got to the second tier and the voted for Lucius began creeping back. The third tier began and when Hermione, Ron and Neville all voted for Lucius in a row, the blond took the lead slightly. It was close, and the votes kept switching in each direction as there were many Neutrals that weren't exactly fond of the blond Lord but once Harry had cast his Gryffindor vote, it settled directly even and Dumbledore was quick to hurry things along when he saw this as it fell to the Chief Warlock in times of a draw, which is exactly how Dumbledore had managed to influence so many things within their government. However, the man had purposely cut Harry off before he had finished, much to the teen's amusement.

"As the vote has fallen to a direct tie, it falls to me to select our next minister. It is my pleasure to welcome R-,"

Harry cut him off by standing up.

"Excuse me Chief Warlock, but I haven't finished casting my vote." Harry stated.

"You have already cast the vote for your four houses Lord Potter-Black." Dumbledore said and Harry nodded his head.

"You are correct," He conceded, "However, I hold a proxy seat and I have not voted through it yet as you very well know."

Dumbledore grimaced and the hall filled with murmurs at the reminder.

"I vote Lucius Malfoy as Proxy holder for the House of Slytherin," Harry continued, although, this time he did nothing to hide his somewhat malicious glee. That vote settled it, the magic flashed and the Minister's chair changed to have the Malfoy crest glowing on it and the velvet arms morphing into the blue as the Wizengamot recognised the happenings instantly. Dumbledore knew what that meant, the vote had been cast and the magic had selected, and with great pain he swore him in.

"By majority vote, Lord Lucius of the Noble and Most Ancient House of Malfoy has been selected as Interim Minister for Magic." Dumbledore announced gravely, "With this decision, you promise to uphold the duties and expectations that come with the seat of the Minister for Magic to the best of your abilities. Do you accept this honour."

"I do,"

"Take your new position," Dumbledore said with obvious effort, and with grace, Lucius rose and settled in the Minister for Magic's position.

"With your placement, you have gained a position in the upcoming elections and will be held to the same standard as the other candidates. Do you fully understand what this means?"

"I understand and accept this." Lucius declared with a regal nod.

"Is there anything else to add to the agenda today?" Dumbledore questioned and was met with silence. "Very well then with no objections I call to close Wizengamot session 3480."

With a flash of magic, the session came to an end and immediately there was an eruption of sound as both the Lords and Ladies and the public burst into conversation as the rapid change of events. Harry couldn't have stopped his pleased smirk even if he tried, and as he rose and made his way down towards his friends he couldn't wait until he saw the reporting on this session.

"Mission accomplished methinks." Harry said as soon as he was close enough to be heard without raising his voice.

"That literally couldn't have gone better." Ron agreed with a smirk of his own. "The Lord Nott's backing was a nice addition that we couldn't have planned for but worked out well for us."

"Dumbledore's face when Hermione was the one to nominate Malfoy is something I'm going to dream about for a long time." Neville threw in with a grin and Harry snorted.

"Dumbledore's expression when he realised that Malfoy had won the vote is something I'm going to dream about."

"I'll be too busy dreaming about his reaction to your arrival, Harry." Hermione joked, "Oh Merlin, that was beautiful."

"Ah wasn't it just?"

"And there is our new Interim Minister." Ron said, noticing Lucius' rapid approach.

"You're welcome." Harry added, when the blond was close enough to hear them.

"How long have you had this planned?" Lucius demanded, his expression a mix of guarded delight and confusion.

"Oh we've had that in mind since before we confirmed our allegiance." Hermione told him, gaining an incredulous sound coming from the Malfoy Lord.

"We figured you'd be the one to really hurt the old man." Harry pointed out, "Plus, you have the ability to rub it in his face without appearing to be doing so. I remember when you got him suspended from the school the first time."

Lucius looked even more confused at that and Harry and Ron shared a grin.

"We were under my cloak when you suspended him at Hagrid's house."

"Of course you were." Lucius sighed and Harry shrugged.

"You're now Interim Minister; are you complaining?"

"No, no I am not."

"So you shouldn't." Theodore Nott arrived to their little group, "Minister."

"Thank you for the second, my friend."

"I wanted Dumbledore to truly hurt."

"See, we're not the only ones to think you'd make the old fool hurt." Neville pointed out and Lucius had to concede the point.

"It was artfully done." Nott complimented. "And it was perfect to slip Lucius into the candidate race without having to wait for them to come up again."

"The only problem is my lack of campaign. It will take a lot of work even if I now have a lead as I can show the public I can be a good Minister in the three months I have."

"Have you paid attention to nothing we do?" Harry wondered, looking at him as if he was mad.

"Excuse me?"

"I hope you're prepared to see a lot of us over the next couple of months." Neville told him.

"We already have it ready; there are only a few things that need to be polished and corrected." Hermione stated.

"And we have the plans for things that we will, no doubt, have to change and adapt as the time goes on."

"So you didn't just have this planned, you've have this planned."

"Oh yeah,"

"Dumbledore, incoming." Ron warned.

"This should be fun." Harry murmured before hitching on a bored mask and turning to face the old man.

"Dumbledore."

"What do you think you are doing?" The old man bit out, not even attempting his usual grandfather spiel. "How dare you-!"

"How dare I?" Harry repeated, a dark look flashing across his face before his mask was back. "That's rich coming from you, given everything you've done to me, to us. But that all stops now."

"You're making a huge mistake."

"Oh no, you were the one that made all the mistakes old man. That you honestly didn't see this coming makes it all the more sweeter."

"And you just kept adding to your mistakes today is the icing on the cake." Hermione added, "Do not think that your reaction to our presence was not noted and remembered by everyone in these Chambers."

"We're our own people now, Dumbledore, and it's going to stay that way." Ron continued.

"There's nothing you can do about it." Neville stated, "So we implore you to try, because we will never be your pawns again."

Dumbledore mustered a poisonous glare for all of them and Harry allowed a smirk to come to his face.

"Such a sad occurrence that you are no longer Headmaster; where will you get you us with your free casting now?" He mocked and he watched as dawning comprehension came to Dumbledore's eyes, that they had been free of his control longer than he could begin to imagine. The old man's wand slipped into his hand and Harry barked out a laugh.

"Yes, do try something here, in the middle of the Wizengamot Chambers, in the core of the Ministry, in front of all these witnesses and our new Minister, please, I beg of you."

"I'm sure you have the reputation and the clout needed to talk your way out of that." Hermione assured, her voice scathing. "Oh wait."

"This isn't over." Dumbledore warned in a snarl and Harry bared his teeth in return.

"You can bet on that, Albus," He agreed, "You've got much to make up for."

The old man spun on his heel and stormed away, his group of followers quickly rushing to surround him as his left; their expressions of distaste and horror as they looked back at Harry's group were extremely amusing.

"We had better make haste else we be mobbed upon our exit." Hermione reminded them and Harry grimace.

"Right, we leave separately and i'll speak with you this evening; we'll have to prepare to the special edition Prophet but we'll have our meeting tomorrow." Harry decided and his friends nodded, saying their goodbyes and taking their leave. Harry turned to his two other companions. "Shall I tell Tom to expect you later or tomorrow?"

"If you are calling a meeting for tomorrow with your group, perhaps a joint one once again? This time at the manor so all can attend." Lucius suggested.

"Yes, that'll work out nicely and I am sure I can make Him see the benefits of such." Harry mused, "Very well, I'll send word for the time of the meeting and we'll meet at your tomorrow. Until then."

The two elder Lords watched him go with raised eyebrows and slowly started to follow him out.

"He truly does not understand the power he wields over the Him, does he?" Lucius murmured.

"No, he really does not." Theodore agreed, "And yet, I have never seen Him this happy, content and focussed."

"It's so very strange to watch them together." Lucius acknowledged, "But I cannot help but feel that this is for the best."

"Oh of that I have no doubt." Theodore agreed, "I am ever thankful Narcissa had the forethought to come to me when they had their
 altercation."

"It was as bad on His end as it was for Harry then? Draco gave Narcissa ever such a fright."

"It was indeed, and that more than anything told me that this is a benefit and, at this point, a necessity. And with the revelation of the power Lord Potter-Black truly holds, there is no fear of the usual glory hunters." Theodore said.

"Ah yes, the four instead of the two." Lucius mused with a smirk.

"You knew?"

"Yes, I knew. But looking back on his actions over the past few months I feel as if I was only informed because he had yet to gather his wits about him after his surprise arrival this summer."

"Hm, yes, I was informed of the basis of his arrival. If he had just broken through, you are probably correct in thinking that he hadn't yet got his bearings."

"Narcissa, of course, caught up much faster than I did."

"When is that ever not the case?" Theodore noted with a slight grin, that Lucius returned.

"That woman was the best thing that ever happened to me."

"That I do not doubt." Theodore allowed, "Speaking of your wonderful Lady, here she is now."

Narcissa approached them deep in conversation with the Lord and Lady Greengrass, and the three paused in their talk to greet the pair of Lords and bring them into their conversation.

"I will cherish the ability to witness that session until the end of my days." Narcissa informed them.

"Oh I believe that is a common feeling as of now, my dear." Hadrian acknowledged. "At least this explained why Lord Potter-Black was so very confident in his abilities."

"Ha, yes. Why should he not when wilding that much power."

"I believe congratulations are in order, Lucius." Hadrian spoke to the blond, "We shall be working closely together."

"Thank you, my friend. I believe it will be an enjoyable experience for us both."

"It will definitely be an upgrade to the drivel I am used to."

"I find myself eagerly waiting for what Lord Potter-Black intends to do next." Naomi admitted.

"I do believe we'll be amazed."

"Well, Minister Malfoy, I am sure we'll have front row seats." Narcissa said flashing her husband a smile as they reached the Atrium.

"I shall, no doubt, see you all soon, gentlemen, Lady." Hadrian and Naomi departed, heading towards the floo.

"I will see you both tomorrow." Theodore said, as he too, headed to the floo.

"Shall we return home and celebrate, husband?" Narcissa suggested, a teasing smirk curling over her delicate features.

"You always have the best ideas, darling.

Notes:

Love to hear from you guys!

Thanks for reading!

Chapter 55

Notes:

The aftermath of the Wizengamot and some Harry/Tom goodness! Plus a sneak look in to the Queen of the Pride herself.

Read the tags!

I'm not JK
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

The moment Harry was free and clear and safely in the Gryffindor rooms, he took a moment to breathe through his nose and allow all the tension to seep from his body. Despite the fact that he had just had to fight his way through a hoard of rabid reporters and photographers, he couldn't be happier. Merlin that had felt good. Since the summer it had felt like one mad rush to get everything up together, to put the right pieces in place to get them to their desired results and finally it had all come together. The session could truly not have gone better for them and Harry felt the burning success of their actions deep in his very soul; it was almost overwhelming. On top of that, he had briefly met with Rita and gave her a few quotes and previously prepared statements from him, Ron and Hermione. The notorious reporter looked as if all her dreams had come true in that very moment and Harry was happy to leave her with hints of more to come.

Of course, that didn't take away from all the other things they had to do, but the success of getting Lucius in place was a large step in the right direction. The removal of Dumbledore's last call to power would be soon, and Harry couldn't wait to see the old fool's face when he realised just how far he had fallen. They had to be careful with their movements now, but with Dumbledore out of the castle his access to them was severely limited so him knowing they were no longer under control wasn't an issue. Better yet, Swift had discovered that Hogsmead was also covered by Hogwarts' extensive wards to some degree, which meant that it was safe enough for him to visit the village as long as he was vigilant. Once he felt a bit more settled, Harry felt a grin come to his face as he got to be the one who told the Dark Lord exactly what had happened, and he knew Tom was going out of his mind waiting for knowledge of what happened in the session because he could feel the man's frustration and impatience. He toyed with making the man wait a bit longer but disregarded that almost instantly because he couldn't wait to brag about their accomplishments, so he used his shadows to travel to their rooms and Tom was on him in an instant.

"What happened? Tell me everything!" He demanded. Harry smirked at his eagerness even as he mockingly brought his hand to his chest as if wounded.

"Can I not even change first?"

The look Tom shot him could have melted cauldrons, and then his flicked his wrist vanishing the voluptuous Wizengamot robe.

"There."

Harry snickered and walked over to where Tom was stood and the elder man wasted no time wrapping his arms around Harry's waist and pulling him flush against him.

"What if I had wanted a bath to relax?"

"I will gladly see to it that you have the most relaxing bath of your life if you start talking now!"

"If that's the case I guess I can tell you." Harry allowed, only to receive a deeply unimpressed look from Tom.

"You really are the worst." Tom informed him and Harry grinned.

"I usually tell you that."

"It's catching."

Harry laughed as he let himself be pulled over to the sofa and on to Tom's lap so he was straddling the man's legs, he ran his hands through Tom's perfectly styled hair messing it up as he tilted the man's head back to kiss him.

"Do not distract me." Tom said pulling away and Harry pouted.

"I wasn't, it was a nicer greeting that you gave me."

The Dark Lord rolled his eyes.

"You are distracting alone, you know this. So tell me how it went and you can be as distracting as you like."

"Oh I don't think that will be necessary," here Harry shot him a smirk as he shifted getting comfortable, "I think you'll be so exceptionally pleased there won't be time for distraction."

"Is that so?"

"It really is." Harry confirmed, "after all, I did just basically secure us the ministry."

Tom blinked at him, raising an eyebrow incredulously.

"And how, exactly, did you basically secure us the ministry?"

"Well, having dear Lucius as the new interim Minister for Magic will do that." Harry told him as if he was talking about the weather. The Dark Lord's eyes widened slightly in surprise even as a smirk started to grow on his face.

"You managed to get Lucius in as Interim?" He repeated in slight disbelief and Harry flashed him a smug grin.

"Yep, and into the candidate race. Dumbledore hates it." Harry sniffed imperiously. "You're welcome."

Tom stared at Harry with bright eyes before surging up and kissing him deeply, only breaking apart when the need for air became too much. He trailed little kisses down over Harry's jaw and down his neck, biting down slightly getting a pleased moan from his teen.

"You are amazing." Tom informed him, kissing him again and leaving Harry breathless.

"I like to think so." The teen agreed, even as his face flushed.

"I imagine you gave Lucius a surprise when nominating him." Tom said with an amused smirk, and Harry laughed.

"Even more so as it was Paws that stood to do so."

A surprised laugh escaped Tom before he could stop it and he shook his head.

"You had the Lady McKinnon do it?"

"What better than a supposed first-gen to vote for the notorious blood purist Lucius Malfoy?" Harry asked innocently and Tom chuckled.

"You really had a plan for this session, didn't you?"

"We had at least three plans depending on what way the magic flowed." Harry confirmed. "And those plans had back-ups just in case."

"The reaction to your entrance?" Tom questioned and Harry shot him a sly smirk.

"Remember the Greengrass ball?"

"How could I forget?" Tom scoffed.

"Yeah, well I seem to be particularly good at making the upper class forgo their precious control."

"Oh?"

"Oh yes," Harry grinned, and purposely made pointed eye contact. "Would you like to take a look?"

Without another word, the Dark Lord slipped into Harry's mind and was immediately immersed in the memory of the Wizengamot session as Harry entered. Watching Dumbledore's reaction to Harry's presence and his call for the Slytherin House Proxy gave him a soul deep satisfaction, and he received endless amusement at watching nearly the entire Wizengamot lose their collective minds at the power his teen held so easily in his hands.

He felt Harry nudge the memory along so he could see Lucius get voted in, the dissatisfaction from the Light and Dumbledore's disbelief was particularly warming for him to witness. Finally, Harry's small confrontation with Dumbledore at the end of the session pleased him greatly; the old fool retreating to lick his metaphorical wounds after his plans shattered before his eyes. Tom withdrew from Harry's mind and immediately pressed a heated kiss to his lips, drawing a low moan from his teen as he ran his hands over Harry's hips and down over his thighs. There was something so unbelievably arousing watching Harry play his games and win against Dumbledore.

"I take it you approve?" Harry said when he came up for air, tilting his head back allowing Tom more access to his neck.

"You were incredible, and you know it." Tom murmured, "You owned that entire Chamber and not a single person will forget your appearance."

"You already have my agreement that I belong to you, you can lay off the charm." Harry grumbled, as his cheeks flushed red.

"I speak the truth." Tom stated, brushing over the heated flesh with a pleased smirk, "It is not my fault you exude perfection, my gorgeous Snake."

"Merlin stop." Harry whined, hiding his face away in Tom's neck. "You're doing it on purpose."

"I do so enjoy making you blush, and I seem to have a gift for it."

"It's because you've got notoriously high standards and you keep saying these things!" Harry exclaimed, pouting at Tom's amused expression.

"There is a reason why I've chosen to make you mine, darling."

"Oh fuck you, Tom." Harry hissed, both hands coming up to cover his flaming face and Tom laughed at him. "Moving on now!"

"Very well," Tom allowed, moving Harry's hands away and pressing butterfly kisses to the colour remaining on his cheeks. "I know, I'm the worst."

"At least you know." Harry sighed, but he was smiling.

"Have you sorted your piece for the paper?" Tom questioned and Harry smirked.

"Let's just say Rita has plans with what she's seen and what we've given her."

"No doubt you will feature throughout the week as well as the special edition tonight." Tom mused, "Your being accepted will be front page news with the power you hold, your friends arrival and movement then add in Lucius' ascension, the speculation and the reports will stretch far and wide."

"There are a few other things we have planned and I hope that certain actions throughout this week will see to it that Dumbledore will soon be losing his last vestige of power."

"Now you're just teasing me."

"I'm sure you'll survive, after all, I have to dress myself up real nice when we make our entrance at dinner tonight as my picture is bound to be splashed across the front page of the paper."

"And I will kill anyone who looks at you." Tom agreed and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"Everyone is going to be looking at me, its going to be a shock."

"As long as their thoughts are completely clean then they have nothing to worry about," Tom said simply.

"You need to keep your cover so you won't be getting curse happy despite how much you want to." Harry informed him and Tom's eyes narrowed.

"You are mine, Harry. No one else should even be speculating about you."

"Exactly, I am yours. Remember who I'm coming back to."

"Hm, yes, to me and no one else."

"You are entirely too possessive," Harry told him and Tom raised a shoulder unconcerned.

"You are too good for me not to be possessive," He said and Harry smiled at that.

"I love you did you know?" Harry said rhetorically; Tom kissed him in reply. "Now, I was promised a bath."

"Ah, yes." Tom agreed, "Shall we?"

Harry got himself up and went to move towards the bathroom but Tom snagged his hand and stopped him.

"My bath?"

"I said I'd get you the best bath of your entire life." Tom pointed out, wrapping his arms around Harry's waist and pulling him close. "Deep breath."

"What-?"

Tom apparated them to the seventh floor, outside the Room of Requirement, and Harry immediately pushed himself away to hunch over breathing deeply.

"Apparating is bad enough, but side-apparating truly sucks." He complained and Tom rolled his eyes as he paced three times in front of the blank wall.

"And yet you somehow shadow travel without complaint."

"Yeah, but that feels like jumping through a waterfall; brief but pleasant."

"There is nothing pleasant about your shadows."

Harry gasped in offence, but Tom didn't let him talk again as he pushed him through the door revealing a huge, stunning bathroom that seemed to overlook the entirety of Hogwarts grounds. The pool-like bath reminded Harry of the prefects bathroom somewhat only this one was a large oval with what looked like an indented sitting area one end opposite a tower of taps.

"Oh," Harry murmured softly, looking around with wide eyes, taking in the beautiful mosaic tiling.

"I grew rather fond of the prefects bathroom when I was in school, however, I did not appreciate my solitude being interrupted." Tom told him, starting the taps with a wave of his hand.

"I can't believe I never thought of this." Harry shook his head self-depreciating.

"Well, I am a genius."

"Hush you."

Harry easily stripped down, grinning to himself when he felt Tom's eyes glue to his body, and gently lowered himself into the steaming water. He sunk down dunking his head underneath the water before coming back up for air and pushing his hair back out of his face, he heard a low groan come from Tom and flashed the man a smirk.

"See something you like?" Harry wondered, his tone innocent even as his expression wasn't.

"How could I not?" Tom pointed out, eyes dark as he followed the trails of water running down Harry's bare chest.

"Then why are you all the way over there?" Harry questioned, "Won't you join me?"

The speed in which Tom removed his clothes both impressed and amused Harry, and he smirked at the Dark Lord as he walked backward away from where Tom entered the large bathtub. Tom drew Harry closer to him, tilting his head back and kissing him fiercely, tongue mapping out every corner of his teen's mouth pleased the moan that escaped him. Harry gasped gripping the man's shoulders when Tom easily lifted him up and he wrapped his legs around the older man as the water splashed around them, head falling back as kisses and bites were scattered down his neck, groaning as he felt Tom bite down hard where his neck met his collar. Harry tugged on Tom's hair, pulling him back so he could kiss him again, this time battling for dominance and then grinning when Tom relented. He felt the older man walk backwards without breaking their kiss until he reached the sitting area and sunk down, Tom's hands slid up from the back of his thighs to rest on his ass squeezing. Harry bit down on Tom's lip in retaliation making him hiss.

"You're acting awfully patient." Harry murmured, nipping at Tom's jaw. "You want me, so why are you playing around?"

"Retaliation," Tom answered, teeth grazing over his previous bite marks and trailing down on to Harry's chest. He smirked at Harry's sharp, indrawn breath when he covered his nipple with his mouth, tongue laving over the teased flesh before lightly biting down and running his teeth over the bud. He moved on to the other repeating his actions as he brought one hand around to grasp the base of Harry's cock, dragging his hand up and down the hardened length slowly and causing Harry to cry out.

"Stop teasing me." Harry ordered, his voice hitching slightly. "Or I'll start doing the same."

"You do the same to me daily, darling." Tom pointed out, releasing his nipple to attack his neck once again.

"That's hardly my fault!" Harry exclaimed, whimpering when Tom hit a particularly sensitive spot on his neck. "I cannot help existing."

"Hm, I suppose not." Tom allowed, his hand continued its ministrations while the other slid down to tease at Harry's hole. He claimed Harry's lips in a hot kiss as he slid a finger inside, swallowing down the moan that escaped the teen at the intrusion. Harry's head dropped back with a drawn out curse as Tom added a second finger opening him up and continued to slowly work his cock, he gripped the older man's shoulders and his nails dug in almost viciously as he moaned loudly when Tom found that spot that had him seeing stars. Tom knew his body well because he relentlessly hit that spot over and over and the duel simulation soon had Harry a gasping, moaning mess, he barely noticed a third finger enter pulling Tom into a filthy kiss filled with tongue and teeth.

Beautiful. Mine

The use of Parseltongue washed over Harry and his breathing hitched, looking into darkened crimson eyes he could see want, pleasure and possessiveness waring with something much deeper and it made him shudder.

Yours He agreed. Now claim me

Tom had apparently reached the end of his own patience because he didn't need telling twice, removing his fingers and easily standing and lifting Harry to set him on the edge of the tub ignoring the slashing waters before sinking into to waiting heat, muffling his groan of pleasure by biting down on Harry's shoulder. He slowly pulled out and thrust in sharply teasing wordless cries from Harry before his own need became overwhelming, setting a face pace and relishing in every sound escaping his younger lover.

"Fuck, fuck, - TOM!" Harry gasped, eyes dropping closed as Tom hit his prostate dead on, pulling the older man down closer to him as Tom angled each thrust to hit the same spot. Harry already felt the stirrings of release building in his lower stomach, Tom's teasing already having him halfway there before hand and he knew he wasn't going to be lasting much longer; his pleas for faster, harder, more, were answered eagerly until he was almost keening.

Tom shoved one hand between the two of them, grasping at Harry's throbbing cock stroking its length to match each thrust making the teen cry out loudly.

"I'm s-so close!"

"Yess, let me hear you, my Harry." Tom hissed, quickening his pace making his younger lover's nails dug into his back. Come for me

Harry felt his orgasm wash over him like a tidal wave, Tom's name escaping him in a shout as his muscles clamped down on the man making his curse. Tom watched him avidly, the flare of magic and expression of bliss urging closer to his own release as he chased it, managing barely a dozen more thrusts before it became too much and he came hard' his own cry of pleasure unable to be stifled. For a moment afterwards the only sound was the lapping water and their heavy breathing before Tom shifted and pulled out making Harry hiss slightly at the movement due to his sensitive body. Tom waved his hand to clean up the mess before scooping Harry up and gently lowering him back down into the warm water, this time sitting him across his lap sideways. He pressed a slow, languid kiss to reddened lips, holding Harry's pliant body close to his as he softly washed his lover over with a conjured washcloth. Warm green eyes blinked up at him and Tom couldn't help the slight smile that curled on to his lips as the dazed look faded and Harry gave him that smile that was reserved only for him.

"You do know how to make me feel good, don't you, Tom?" Harry inquired, and the Dark Lord smirked.

"Of course." He agreed, "Besides, I promised you a particularly good bath."

"Hm, that is true." Harry allowed, then he grinned, "and I have had a particularly trying morning. I needed to prepare for later."

Tom scoffed at him.

"Do not act like you will not enjoy every second of your secondary reveal."

"Well
"

Tom rolled his eyes and stood, making Harry yelp in surprise as he lifted him bridal style and stepped out of the bath. The teen's arms immediately wrapped around Tom's neck as he clung to the man, shooting deeply unimpressed looks when Tom threw him an amused smirk.

"While that will never not be incredibly hot, warn me next time!" Harry exclaimed and Tom laughed.

"Where is the fun in that?"

"You're a right prick sometimes."

"Thank you."

"Ugh!"

Tom waved a hand over them both drying them off in an instant before he vanished the water from the bath.

"Do you intend to walk back?" Harry queried, as Tom walked towards the door without letting him go.

"No one will ever see you like this other than me." Tom stated flatly.

"Yeah yeah, possessive much." Harry grumbled under his breath. "Then what are you doing?"

"You cannot apparate directly from this room when the door is shut."

"Huh, you learn something new every day." Harry mused, and then he shot the older man a scowl. "You are not making me side apparate again."

"Honestly, it truly isn't so bad." Tom sighed, reaching for the door. Harry was having none of that however, and before the man could so much as touch the handle his shadows swarmed up around them and they were back in their rooms right next to their bed. Tom's balance wavered slightly, and he dropped down on to the bed, glowering at Harry as he did so.

"That was revolting."

"And yet you didn't drop me." Harry said, pleased.

"Next time I'll throw you." Tom deadpanned and Harry laughed, pressing a kiss to his cheek and getting up to get dressed. He slipped on one of Tom's shirts to go with his dragon hide trousers that clung to his legs so well, he ran a hand through his hair and turned to watch Tom dress. He moved over and took over doing up Tom's shirt buttons, running his hands over his chest once he was done and leaning up to kiss him while Tom's hands slid down over his hips to rest on his ass. Harry lightly pushed Tom away from him, smirking at the man's put out expression.

"We have things to plan and talk about. You may continue later." Harry told him and Tom's eyes narrowed.

"I feel now would be more prudent, besides later I may be busy."

"Oh please, we both know that you're not going to let me out of your sight after I've come back from the Great Hall." Harry pointed out, "Now I need food."

"If you insist."

Harry rolled his eyes at the older man's exasperation, following him into the main room and calling for Winky. The little elf was only too eager to bring them something to eat, and Harry happily curled up next to Tom on the sofa to stuff his face; he hadn't eaten since the previous day and was absolutely starving.

"I know you will want to meet with your Elite tomorrow after everything has happened and I need a full meeting with mine so we can begin the plans for Lucius' campaign." Harry said between mouthfuls, "So I took the liberty of setting up the beginnings of plans for a full mixed meeting at Malfoy Manor."

"Oh?"

"Well I figured I'd need to confirm it with you, and Lucius offered his Manor so everyone could be there as it's easier to get everyone out of the castle then to have everyone in the Gryffindor rooms."

"You are correct of course." Tom agreed, "Yes, I do believe it shall be for the best to have such a meeting; I'm intrigued to see what exactly you have planned for Lucius' campaign."

"We've had the bare bones of the campaign for a while, Dumbledore's interference notwithstanding, and have been filling it in since the summer when we set our sights on planning for the Wizengamot." Harry admitted, "The main reason I want to meet with yours is so we can fully incorporate your plans for the wizarding world into everything. Also, with the amount of people you have infiltrated into the ministry, now would be the time where their information will be crucial."

"That is understandable. We have no such guarantee that Lucius will be voted in by the public when it comes to the election so these three months will be vital in pushing as many of my Death Eaters into position." Tom said thoughtfully.

"Exactly. With the decline in our population, we need to solidify the Ministry preferably with a bloodless coup. Once you have enough people on the inside, it will be easier to root out Dumbledore's people and secure the government if for some unmagical reason Lucius doesn't get in."

"Scrimgeor will meet a vicious end should that happen anyway."

"Oh that I have no doubt, but we'd still have to wait a couple of months else we cause revolt." Harry agreed, "We cannot afford an all out war that will interfere with the mass population."

"No, I'd like to keep it to Dumbledore. With the way things are going, it's going to be the old fool that drags it to open warfare."

"If things go to plan, we'll have enough people in place and enough power in the Wizengamot that Dumbledore and his ilk will be declared enemies of the state with no way of getting back into power." Harry shrugged, "It's the 'if' I worry about."

"The next three months are going to be supremely busy," Tom said, and then he smirked, "and then we only have to worry about rebuilding almost an entire government."

"Yeah, thanks for that." Harry groaned. "Lets not even take into account the fact that we'll need to prepare in case outside governments decide our rebuilding is the perfect time to initiate a hostile take-over."

"I must speak with Theodore on our standing with outside nations and which ones we need to consider." Tom declared, "He's got many contacts in the ICW."

"Good thing I invited him tomorrow then." Harry said and grinned at Tom's raised eyebrow. "Better him than his son."

"Ah yes, I will need to speak with Nott very soon. His actions will need to be addressed."

"Yes, and I need to speak to mine to see when Luna can go digging. I know it was put off during the holidays as we barely have time off as it is, so I don't know what the new plan is." Harry shrugged, he got up to put his plate in the kitchen and make tea.

"If you can arrange it I'd like to have that information before I issue Nott his punishments." Tom stated, "His reasoning will help establish how much I get to curse him."

"I cannot wait."

Harry tilted his head when he felt the buzz in the back of his head that came with Ron or Hermione contacting him.

Harry, we need to meet to plan the rest of the day. Hermione's voice reminded him and Harry blinked, pinching the bridge of his nose.

Right, I'll meet you in my rooms in ten minutes?

Good.

Harry shook his head coming back to himself as he handed Tom his tea.

"I have to meet my friends so we can plan our actions for the rest of the day." Harry said, summoning his socks and boots.

"Go, I have to draw up plans for tomorrow. Return to me before you go to the Great Hall."

"Sir yes sir," Harry gave him a mock salute and grinned at his unimpressed glower, leaning down to kiss his cheek before shadowing away. Luna and Blaise were already in his rooms and he flashed them a smile as he dropped down into his chair and kicked up his feet.

"What a morning."

"Ron's already filled me in." Blaise said with a smirk, "Can I be the first to say well done."

"Thanks!"

"What a Circe damned morning!" Ron exclaimed as he bounded into the room and Harry couldn't help but laugh at his enthusiasm. Hermione and Neville followed him in and Harry shook his head at their grinning expressions even as he matched them.

"I know we're having a meeting tomorrow which is why Draco and the twins are not here. They're still monitoring the all the Order associated buildings." Hermione told him, sitting down. "We're trying to reduce our time-turner use as we're going to be run ragged over the next couple of months."

"That's understandable," Harry agreed, "It was why we decided that Draco should hold off on entering the Wizengamot with us."

"Yeah, that way we have Rosier and Prince as secret weapons when it comes to pushing through laws." Ron said, flopping down next to Blaise.

"It should give us an edge once Dumbledore is fully removed from power." Neville pointed out, "We've already managed to get an almost majority control when it comes to the 'mot, once we finally add Rosier and Prince, it should push us over so we can win no contest."

"And should you end up pushing your father out, we'd also get Zabini too." Harry directed this at Blaise, who nodded.

"It may just come to that when we start pushing laws through. Mother would like to see me take up the Lordship, it gives Grandfather a more direct line into England."

"Which could be a good thing, depending on if we're stable enough to hold our own and not be subjected to a hostile takeover." Hermione observed.

"Yes, the British/Italian relationship has fallen into disrepair since the Fudge Administration came into power." Blaise acknowledged, "But I highly doubt Italy would be the country we'd need to worry about."

"It's not Italy that I'm hugely concerned about, it's their allies that I'm worried about." Ron explained, "Fudge has allowed many of our own alligences to fall fallow, and some of our international relationships to go completely sour – which isn't really surprising given Crouch Sr was in charge and the whole shit show that was the Tri-wizard Tournament – if the wrong country gets wind of the unrest it would only take a little nudge for us to be in an international war. Especially if that country has better allies than us, something that really isn't that difficult."

"So it's crucial for us to stabilise our government as soon as possible." Hermione stated.

"Another thing I wanted to discuss was Nott." Harry put in, "I know investigations were put off due to the holidays and the aftermath of the Malfoy ball, but Tom is going to have him in for punishment soon and wants the information and I would really like to know how I pissed him off."

"That's fair." Ron nodded.

"I've spoken to Draco, who has had words with Theodore Jr, and his father is currently confined to the main Nott Estate, where the current Nott Lord has recently returned to." Luna told him, "We figured you would be able to get us an opening to get in so I can read him."

"Tomorrow would be perfect. I can have Tom explain to Theodore Sr what's to happen and he should grant you access and hopefully arrange to have a conversation with his wayward son so you can hide and read." Harry suggested, "As he's confined to the Estate, perhaps he can fill Nott in on the current happenings and orders issued from the Dark Lord."

"That would work out nicely." Ron hummed, nodding thoughtfully. "And it's better than trying to break through the wards."

"Yeah, let's not do that to our new ally and the Dark Lord's original Elite member." Neville advised.

"First ever Death Eater actually." Harry announced.

"Really? Well, who would have thought?" Hermione responded.

"So, baring on any complications with the Dark Lord, that's secured for tomorrow?" Blaise confirmed and the group nodded in agreement.

"Good. Now let us focus on things a bit closer to home." Luna suggested, focusing their attentions back on the reason for meeting. "Due to the happenings in the session, there will be a special release paper this evening instead of tomorrow morning. This works out well for us, as it doesn't allow anyone to act against us before the paper is released."

"First of all, one of us has to alert Moony to the meeting tomorrow and to fill him in on the happenings." Hermione began, "And then, of course, Harry, you get to deal with Ginny."

"Thank the fucking Lady." Harry cheered, "I cannot wait to tell her it was all bullshit."

"I think that should be covered by the three of you; her face when she realises she's been played by the so called Golden Trio is going to be brilliant." Neville commented, "Besides, she betrayed all of you."

"Might as well; I'm already expecting a Hel of a howler from my dearest mother tomorrow." Ron shrugged.

"Oh that's going to be something." Hermione said darkly, "I vote we send one back."

"That is something I'm on board with." Harry agreed rapidly and they shared a malicious grin.

"When it comes down to it, I suggest we all enter together after the paper. We'll have Draco, Luna and Blaise there to let us know when the best time would be so it'll have the most impact." Neville remarked.

"And give the fact that it's Sunday we can dress up real nice to really fly it home." Harry added.

"I think we have an evening plan then." Hermione spoke with a resolute nod, "Then, we'll have to play it by ear for reactions."

"Yeah, I can't say how the fellow students are going to respond given they like to switch their opinions of you at the drop of a hat." Ron snorted and shook his head, "We've seen it multiple times after all."

"Ugh, please don't remind me."

"Also, I think there is something much more important that we're all forgetting." Luna cut in, "You four lions need to speak with the head of your Pride."

"McGonagall!" The four resident Gryffindors exclaimed.

"You believe she's been spelled?" Harry asked of Luna, who nodded.

"It cannot be a coincidence that someone who went to give your mother her letter, therefore meeting your despicable aunt, would suddenly agree that she was a perfectly acceptable caretaker for a magical child."

"Not only that, but nothing in her personality says mindless follower, yet it appears that Dumbledore could do no wrong." Blaise added.

"Then we have to speak with her before dinner and therefore the paper." Ron stated.

"Getting McGonagall to agree to a scan is going to be nigh on impossible." Harry pointed out, "Not only that, but I haven't actually learned how to get rid of those spells without shattering them."

"No, but I know how." Luna said.

"Maybe if you could show her your medical reports?" Blaise offered and both Ron and Hermione frowned.

"We don't actually have full, up-to-date, ones." Hermione fretted, and Harry smirked.

"But I know where we can get one from a fully certified healer."

"Of course, Lady Malfoy." Ron remembered.

"If we're going to do this then we need to go and get them done now so we have time to come back and speak with McGonagall. We're going to be pushing it as it is as the paper will arrive around 5 and its 2:45 now." Hermione declared.

"Is there anything else we need to be concerned over for today?" Harry asked the group as a whole and got negatives in response. "Good, Blaise, can you pass on everything to Draco and the twins and let them know that they need to be in these rooms tomorrow after breakfast? Either live the school day and turn back or come straight here and turn back later, it's up to them, but the meeting will happen first thing as it could last Merlin knows how long."

"I'll pass it on."

"Ray, will you meet us outside the Head office when we get back?"

"Of course, Harry."

"Ron, Hermione, Nev, let's go. It'll be an unannounced visit, but I owe Cissa anyway." Harry said, rising to his feet. They said goodbye to Blaise and Luna and Harry shadowed them to the entrance hall of Malfoy Manor. Luckily, the elves of the house were very used to Harry's style of travel and one popped in immediately after he had arrived with his friends.

"What is Mimsy bes doing for Lords and Ladies?" The little elf inquired.

"We'd like to see the Lady of the house please." Harry said and the elf nodded, flapping her huge ears.

"Mimsy bes checking now." She popped away and they barely had to wait a minute before she was back and beckoning them further into the Manor.

"Mistress Cissa is being in the upper lounge."

"Thank you, Mimsy. I know the way." Harry told the elf, who nodded and popped away returning to her duties. Harry led his three friends up through the manor having grown very familiar with it over the Yule holidays, knocking on the door frame to announce their arrival once they reached the lounge where Narcissa was sat reading.

"Harry!" The Lady exclaimed. "Are you well?"

"Yes, Cissa, you worry too much." Harry said with a grin, kissing the Lady's cheek.

"With you I believe it's justified." She decided and Ron snorted.

"Ain't that the truth."

"Thanks for that, Ron."

"How can I help you all on this fine day?" She questioned, "Lucius is already at the office, he's rather fearful to discover the true depths of Fudge's incompetence."

"I don't blame him. The man is a useless waste of skin." Hermione grumbled, causing the rest of them to chuckle.

"Thankfully, nothing to be concerned over." Harry consoled, "We merely realised that we don't have full physical and magical medical reports certified by a healer, and as we're speaking with McGonagall this afternoon, who Luna believes has her own compulsions and spells, we need solid proof."

"Ah, I see," Narcissa nodded, "That won't be too difficult. You've had a physical done, however I shall do another one that includes all magic cast on your person so it can be reviewed chronologically."

"Thank you, Cissa. And I do apologise for the sudden visit."

"Nonsense; this is a necessary step in securing the school for us. Besides, healer stamps do not declare which healer has cast it only that it's certified so you won't have to deal with any suspicion in case Dumbledore has interfered somehow; House Malfoy is not looked favourably by the old fool."

"Thank you, Lady Malfoy." Neville said gratefully.

"I've told you all to call me Cissa multiple times at the Sanctuary, unless you want me to call you by your titles." She chided them with a smile.

"No thank you." Ron denied with a grin of his own. "The balls and the Wizengamot was enough, thank you."

"I assume you will be having Luna there to remove the spells from Professor McGonagall?" Cissa inquired, waving her wand over Harry who had stepped forward to have his review first.

"Yes, we figured sneaking you into the castle wasn't the best of plans." Hermione replied and the blonde Lady gave a tinkling laugh.

"No, I do not imagine it would be." She agreed, "I shall send a Declaration of Intent stating that Luna is training under a healer and is perfectly able to cast such spells as she may be concerned that someone untrained is removing such dangerous spells."

"You really do think of everything." Harry admired.

"The joys of motherhood, my dear, it prepares you for everything."

"So how am I looking?"

"Thankfully, there is only one current active spell on you and that is a mail ward that seems to be self-cast."

"Yes, it was one of the spells that Dumbledore didn't look too deeply into whenever he recast on me because it didn't look like I was getting the bulk of the letters sent to me. It's been going to Gringotts for years now."

"Good, though I am hugely concerned about the sheer number of spells you have had cast on you, Harry. You can clearly see when you broke through each time."

"Thankfully, he won't have the opportunity because I cast a protective Parsel spell to make them fail, which means that that spell doesn't come up on a healing review."

"Very curious, but I have often found the whenever My Lord used to cast in Parsel I would not be able to counter or heal." Narcissa commented, tapping the disgustingly long sheet of parchment with her wand before rolling it up and handing it to Harry.

"Ronald, you are next."

"This should be interesting." The red head muttered stepping forward and letting the woman wave her wand over his body.

"Hm, again, only a mail ward that is still active." Narcissa reassured and Ron sighed in relief.

"I was concerned I may have been spelled with something minor over the holidays but Harry's protection spell held up."

"Thankfully, the mail ward can be removed off of all of us now that Dumbledore is out." Hermione said, moving forward to have her test and getting the same results as the other two.

"Speak for yourself, I'm keeping mine at Gringotts given who I am."

"That's probably wise." Neville agreed.

"You're right, you'd get buried in fan mail." Hermione conceded, accepting her scroll from Narcissa and swapping places with Neville.

"I shouldn't have a ward like that on me as I didn't really receive mail due to my darling Grandmother so I should be fine." Neville said, "I don't think I'll need one either."

"I doubt you will. All letters coming to you you'll more than likely need to read." Ron commented.

"All done." Narcissa declared cheerfully, "Neville, you were correct, you are completely clear of spells. Although, this has given me a deeper appreciation for your removal of the former Dowager Lady."

"Yeah, she was a real piece of work."

"Thank you for this, Cissa. I don't know what we'd do without you." Harry told her honestly and she smiled.

"It is no trouble, Harry. I'd rather you come to me than not have a reliable healer." Narcissa stated, "Now, this is the Declaration to be passed on to Luna; see to it that she receives it right away."

"We'll make sure of it." Harry promised. "We're sorry to drop in and run so quickly but we have an hour and forty-five minutes until the paper arrives and we need to speak with McGonagall before that."

"I shall see you all tomorrow where we can have a longer conversation." Cissa brushed off. "Be safe and send my love to Draco."

"Thanks, we will."

They said goodbye to the Lady Malfoy and Harry shadowed them back to his rooms. Ron, Hermione and Harry all pulled up their glamours before the four of them headed out making their way quickly to the head office where McGonagall now resided.

"Uh, does anyone know the password?" Harry asked once they reached the gargoyle that guarded the Headmistresses office where Luna was waiting for them.

"Yes; Animagus." Hermione said, and the gargoyle jumped out of the way revealing the spiral staircase. "The Professor posted it on the notice boards."

"I'd say that was brave but I don't know a single student that would dare mess with McGonagall." Harry said with a slight grin.

"Right!"

Hermione knocked on the door and the four of them took a deep breath as McGonagall called for them to enter. Harry walked in first, followed by Neville, Ron and Hermione gaining a raised eyebrow from the notoriously stern Professor.

"Good afternoon Mr Potter, Mr Longbottom, Mr Weasley, Miss Granger, Miss Lovegood, I have to admit I am surprised." McGonagall began, "I was under the impression you were no longer on speaking terms."

"Good afternoon, Professor," Harry returned, taking a seat when indicated, "Yeah, that wasn't through personal choice, and is part of the reason we're here."

"I fear this is going to be a long conversation." She sighed and the five of them nodded. "Very well; have a biscuit."

Harry couldn't help but grin when she offered the same tartan tin filled with ginger snaps that she had offered last year when dealing with Umbridge.

"First: Portraits of the Castle, I, Harry James, demand your silence as Lord Head of the Ancient and Imperial House of Gryffindor, so mote be it."

The magic of the castle instantly flared even as the portraits exclaimed their surprise as they were bound to silence by his declaration; it was something Harry had read about when Ron and Rabastan were breaking down the wards of the castle and was severely thankful for it now. Many of the past Headmasters and Headmistresses had outside portraits and he would not put it past the old fool to have access to them so he could keep an eye on the school that way.

"Mr Potter!" McGonagall gasped, "You are the Lord Gryffindor?"

"Yes, Professor, and it is imperative that what we speak about does not get out until we're ready for it."

"I don't know what exactly is so important you need to talk about, Mr Potter, but you should have more trust in the portraits of the previous Heads of this school."

"Given that each and every one of these portraits have bore witness and some have even been complicit in harm and manipulations against my person and that of Ron, Hermione and Neville by the previous Headmaster I'd have to say my actions are more than justifiable." Harry rebuffed, looking at the woman seriously. McGonagall's expression shifted into a myriad of different things before she settled on pursed lips.

"While Headmaster Dumbledore's actions regarding the use of Blood Quills are reprehensible, I hardly believe that justifies claiming harm and manipulations."

"But that's not the only thing he had done to us, Professor." Hermione cut in, "And, because of what we know and what he has done to us, we believe that he may have harmed you without your knowledge."

"And what exactly do you believe has been done to you to justify such accusations? I have been friends with Albus Dumbledore for decades."

"Yet you were surprised about the quills?"

"Well yes, I would have never believed he capable of allowing that to happen." McGonagall admitted.

"Then why are you so sceptical when we suggest he has done other things?"

"People make errors, Mr Longbottom. That is different to deciding to do something maliciously like you are suggesting."

"Then let me ask you something, Professor." Harry began, "was it not you who took my mother's letter to her when she was selected for Hogwarts?"

"Yes, not that I understand why that is important."

"I'll get there." Harry assured, "and was it not you who watched the Dursleys for the day before Dumbledore left me there?"

"Yes, the worst sort of muggles." McGonagall answered, an expression of distaste crossing her features.

"So you knew exactly what sort of person Petunia was?" Harry clarified.

"Of course,"

"And you would say that you care about your students, and were particularly fond of my mother and therefore me?" He continued and McGonagall nodded.

"Well yes, I suppose I would agree with that."

"Then why would you agree to leave me there?" Harry wondered, raising an eyebrow.

"I didn't want to at first but Albus assured me-,"

You never thought to check, despite having a bad feeling of leaving me there?"

"I-, Albus said-,"

"And when I arrived smaller and thinner than every other student despite neither of my parents being so delicate?"

McGonagall frowned and looked as if she was wracking her brains for something before her lips set in a severe line.

"That doesn't seem like me at all,"

"No, it doesn't. You are notoriously thorough in your approach to things."

"Albus assured me he checked on you regularly."

"I had never even heard of Dumbledore until Hagrid mentioned him when he picked me up to give me my letter and take me shopping."

"Hagrid!" She exclaimed, "Albus told me he had done it himself."

"I bet you can't remember what he told you about that trip."

"I-," McGonagall's face went grim. "No, no I can't."

"This is why we believe he may have harmed you, professor." Hermione cut in delicately, "Because he's done a great deal more to us that you can possibly imagine and you, who was supposed to be closest to him, seem utterly oblivious."

"It was either you knew all about it and helped with his schemes or were a victim, too."

"And with how you reacted with the reveal of the Blood Quills
" Ron trailed off leaving her to fill in the blanks.

"What has he done?"

One by one the four Gryffindors handed over their medical reports to the Headmistress and watched her read through them, going paler and paler until she was ashy as she finished reading.

"Albus did this, you are certain?" She whispered, despair leaking into her tone.

"Unfortunately, yes."

"But why?" She exclaimed, "What could he possible gain from committing such horrendous acts?"

"Honestly, we are not yet sure." Harry admitted, "at first we thought it was all in the name of getting rid of Voldemort, however, we have discovered recently that his actions and manipulations go further back than we have been alive."

"The only thing we're certain of is that he is after power and control." Neville added, "Harry found out that the prophecy that was responsible for the attacks on our parents was fake."

"No!" She gasped, "James and Lily? Alice and Frank?"

"With them gone and us spelled and under control, Dumbledore get's all the power of our bloodlines." Harry pointed out.

"We -," Ron indicated himself and Hermione when he spoke, "were used to control Harry. Molly has lost her mind or maybe she was always this power hungry and greedy, but she's working with Dumbledore to make sure Ginny marries and has Harry's kid before he dies tragically leaving his worldly possessions to her; Molly gets the money and Dumbledore gets the political capital."

"My dearest Grandmother was also working with Dumbledore, too." Neville said in disgust, "She somehow blames me for my father's state so she sees it as some twisted form of punishment, which sets all of my future political capital in Dumbledore's hands as well."

"We believe he had done something to you because it should be utterly impossible for him to do half of the things he had to us without your knowledge; you were the Deputy Headmistress."

"I don't want to believe this." She murmured, eyeing their tests with disbelief. "I don't want any of this to be true, but I know the seal of a healer, and I'd like to believe you wouldn't come here without due cause."

"It's also why I am here." Luna piped in, speaking for the first time since they entered the office.

"Miss Lovegood?"

Harry handed over the Declaration from Narcissa and McGonagall read it over, looking at Luna in surprise as the Ravenclaw girl was always thought to have her head in the clouds to the mass population.

"A healer in training?"

"Yes, I've been granted leave to perform and, if necessary, remove any spells on your person. I've also got a purging potion from Potions Master Snape for any left in your system." Luna explained.

"Why not Poppy?"

"Given my medical history and how often I've been in the hospital wing, Madam Pomphrey HAS to have been spelled or obliviated in the least. With her healers' oath, there would be no way she could be actually working WITH Dumbledore." Harry said, "All active healers and medical staff have to take an oath to do no harm."

"I see. Very well, Miss Lovegood, I trust you are to do this now."

"Yes, Professor."

The four Gryffindors moved back out of the way for Luna to run her tests as McGonagall stepped forward from behind her desk. The blonde grimaced as soon as the results came in before her eyebrows shot up in surprise.

"Well, it's as we suspected, but things started much earlier than we thought." Luna told them all, handing over the results to the Professor. McGonagall looked them over and her whole body wavered, Hermione quickly summoned a chair just as the woman's legs went out.

"Oh Merlin; this started in the 60s."

"If I remove everything now, it'll give you some time to lie down before dinner." Luna said to the shell-shocked Professor."

"Do it! I need to know what I'm missing." McGonagall started, her voice coming out stronger as her eyes flashed with rage. Hermione transfigured a chair into a bed and the Headmistress led down, accepting what was given for her to bite down on then nodding to the Ravenclaw when she was ready. Luna began a long chant, the tip of her wand glowing white as she ran it over McGonagall's body. The Professor's entire body seemed to tense up before she released a muffled scream as Luna's chant reached its crescendo before slumping down unconscious once the spell had come to an end.

"Merlin only knows what Dumbledore's plans were back then." Harry said, looking at McGonagall's results.

"Molly was in school back then." Ron pointed out.

"My father started in 68." Neville added.

"McGonagall probably started to notice Dumbledore's grooming of the students and his blatant hatred of all things Slytherin." Hermione said reasonably. "After all, Slughorn should have been the Deputy due to seniority."

"I'm sure we're about to find out some of it." Luna reasoned, motioning to McGonagall who had begun to stir.

"Professor, are you alright?" Hermione asked, concerned. The Headmistress' eyes flickered before blinking open and accepting Hermione's hand to help her sit up. She seemed to pause for a moment gathering her bearings then her expression twisted and she exploded with vicious Gaelic.

"Not good then?" Harry wondered lightly.

"Oh that loathsome man!"

"It'll take a few days for any obliviated memories to settle." Luna told the Professor once she had calmed down, "It may help you to write down the memories so you can sort through them. Also, if you have any occlumency shields, you may wish to renew them."

"Thank you, Miss Lovegood."

"Professor, we won't yet ask you what has been taken, we know it takes a while to settle but there are a few things we need to speak with you about before we leave you to rest." Harry said to her as they all retook their seats.

"Very well, Mr Potter. I'm sure it cannot get any more surprising."

"Don't say that yet." Ron said under his breath.

"As you've probably figured out, we broke Dumbledore's control and we've been putting things in place to counter his moves and bring him down." Harry told her.

"We figured you deserved a heads up for what's coming." Hermione continued, "The special edition of the Daily Prophet will be delivered tonight and no doubt it will be exceptionally revealing."

"We hope that you can keep an open mind, and now that you've been cleared of spells and will be of any lingering potions come tomorrow, be more understanding of the direction we're going." Ron said to her.

"What exactly have you been doing?"

"We entered the Wizengamot this morning, Professor." Neville answered, "and hopefully you'll be amenable to a longer, and more in-depth, discussion of recent happenings once things have settled down a bit."

"I see." She regarded them over her glasses critically. "Today I've been made aware that a lot of things are not what they seem, so I will give you the benefit of the doubt for now."

"Thank you, Professor." They chimed.

"We shall meet again Friday after dinner, and I expect a much lengthier explanation to what's gone on."

"Of course, Professor, so long as you understand our need for secrecy."

"That, Mr Potter, is just about the only thing I understand right about now." She sighed. "Good evening ladies, gentlemen."

The four of them rose and nodded to the Headmistress as they left the office, none of them spoke until they were half-way down the corridor and away from the portraits.

"We just have to wait and see how she deals with that, I guess." Ron said.

"Thankfully, she now knows the truth and we have a copy of the results in case of the worst." Luna waved a copy of the results, "I can put a seal on them as a trainee due to the declaration."

"Good, I don't think she'll be leaving the castle in the week so we should be okay." Harry said, "and on Friday I'll cast the Parsel spell that should block her from future manipulations."

"Wise idea, as she may have to meet with Dumbledore sooner rather than later if he believes her still loyal." Hermione mused.

"Well that would depend on how she feels about the whole thing. I can barely look at Dumbledore without wanting to take his face off, she's been his 'friend' longer than we've been alive and now she's found out he's basically murdered some of her favourites and been controlling her for years." Ron pointed out.

"Very true."

"Come on, we have about half an hour before the paper arrives and its Sunday; I want to make sure everyone knows we're different people." Neville decided, "As of tonight, Dumbledore's versions of us dies."

"Circe damn, I am behind that." Harry cheered, "I'll meet you guys at the top of the grand staircase in half an hour; I'm going to appease president possessive."

Ron snorted.

"I'm not even surprised."

"Yeah, and I'll sit back and watch Blaise mark his territory when this all comes out." Harry joked making Ron blush.

"Shut it you!"

"Notice he didn't deny it."

"He can't; it's a Slytherin thing I think." Hermione laughed. "You've just got the king snake himself making it a thousand times worse."

"Ain't that the truth." Harry agreed with a grin, and then he slapped Neville on the back. "We just gotta find someone for you now, Nev."

"I'm sure options will open once things come out in the open."

"Yeah, we just got to make sure they're not a Ginny."

"It's sad that that's a standard now." Hermione shook her head.

"Good Merlin, I'll get to ditch her today as well." Harry groaned in pleasure. "Really, I don't know how this day could get better."

"Dumbledore spontaneously has a heart attack and so do all of his sycophantic followers?" Luna suggested lightly making Harry choke on a laugh.

"That's a wish." He shook his head, "I'll see you in a bit."

"Bye, Harry."

Harry all but skipped down the corridor, slipping through shortcuts to get back to his rooms where he then shadowed straight to the rooms he shared with Tom.

"So that went about as well as you could expect given everything." Harry said in leu of an actual greeting, spotting Tom led out reading on his sofa.

"He had cast on her then?" Tom confirmed and Harry nodded.

"Yeah, since the 60s."

"He definitely has a greater plan than getting rid of me." Tom mused, "I was neither active nor near Dumbledore at that time."

"This is just more evidence to support that." Harry agreed, "But we're not dealing with that until Friday when things are settled and we can have a longer conversation."

"You'll make sure she cannot talk?"

"Of course, what do you take me for?" Harry scoffed.

"Good, now come here." Tom ordered, banishing his book. Harry raised an amused eyebrow at the order but walked over to where Tom was lounged, rolling his eyes when he was immediately pulled down to straddle the older man's legs as Tom's hands settled on his hips.

"Can I help you?"

"A reminder of who you belong to." Tom said, "as most of the hormonal masses will no doubt eye you with want and desire."

"Do you honestly believe I'll give anyone else a glance?" Harry deadpanned and Tom looked away.

"No, I know you won't."

"You cannot be feeling threatened by the attention." Harry exclaimed incredulously.

"To the eyes of the world, as soon as this paper is released, you'll be the most wanted individual in the country if not further." Tom snapped, the pressure on his hips increasing slightly. "Every eye is to be on you and every person with a pulse is going to want you; you cannot expect me to pleased with this."

"I cannot believe I'm the one that's about to say this, but you do realise that you are the Dark Lord." Harry reminded him, "Lord Voldemort, Lord Slytherin, only the most powerful wizard in known existence who commands a literal army. Even if, and we both know it's never going to happen, I did look elsewhere, where am I going to find anything better than you?"

"I just cannot stand the thought of everyone desiring what rightfully belongs to me." Tom hissed, the possessive glint in his eye all the more apparent. "Especially when no one knows you're taken."

"Buy me something nice enough and you can parade me around like a damn trophy if it makes you happy." Harry told him, shaking his head, "until that point, just remember that who I willingly belong to, who I'm going back to and who I'll be staying with."

"Hm, a trophy you say?" Tom repeated interested and Harry chuckled, rolling his eyes at the man.

"Besides, are you really going to give me up?"

"No. You are mine; I don't share."

"Then you needn't be concerned." Harry stated. "Now kiss me and be nice and I'll promise to leave early so you can watch me get rid of Ginny."

Notes:

Thanks for reading!

Chapter 56

Notes:

So we finally have the school reactions of the Wizengamot and another article from Rita!

This was fun to write I'm not gunna lie

Please read the tags.

This plot is mine even if the characters aren't.

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

With the reaction the Order gave once Dumbledore arrived and described the Wizengamot session, Draco couldn't wait to have his own personal viewing of it. He had made transcripts on the conversations and the half formed plans the Order, or rather Dumbledore's sycophants, had scraped together, but there was nothing definitive as of yet. They were all still reeling over what had happened. Dumbledore had been completely blindsided and without access to the castle the old man was forced to reevaluate everything he had planned. Not only that, but there reaction of the change in leadership was something Draco was going to remember for a very long time.

Thankfully, finding out his father had been elected minister gave him plenty of time to compose himself before he went under the scrutiny of the rest of the school, especially the other Slytherins. With everything that was about to be revealed, Slytherin House politics were about to change rapidly and he was both looking forward to it and dreading it. Blaise thought the whole thing was set to be hilarious, with the huge powershift not only in the ministry but in general status many people were going to have to change their actions and behaviour quickly or suffer for it; clearly the hidden sadist that Blaise was wanted them to suffer. Draco also knew that his fellow Slytherin couldn't wait to be able to claim his Gryffindor publicly before anyone dared to try and get their claws in what was his.

Watching the Order lose their collective minds had been satisfying, not only that, but Dumbledore's insistence that the Trio and Neville had gone Dark was received somehow worse that news of their breaking free. Draco understood the sudden change of plans to have him hold back with the House of Rosier, he knew they didn't want to be using the time-turners too much as they had many plans that were going to be reliant on their use. But by Merlin did he wish he had witnessed the session first hand. He knew Blaise felt the same, the usually stoic Italian had all but been twitching as they waited for the time to pass until dinner. The evening Prophet promised to be incredible and it took all of his etiquette training to stop himself watching the clock as the time until dinner slowly fell away.

They weren't bothering with a full meeting until the next day as the plan was to go over everything with all parties present and if Draco knew Harry in anyway he had probably roped the Dark Lord into being involved somehow. Plus, the Gryffindors wanted to reach McGonagall before the paper came out which took precedence over any meeting. When dinner finally rolled around, the sixth year Slytherins made their way up to the great all together as per Slytherin rules.

It had become shockingly quiet for their year since Parkinson had been withdrawn from school, his mother had told him that Pansy was being re-educated in order to conform to the correct behaviour of a Daughter of the House of Alyn and honestly Draco didn't know if it was going to stick. He and Pansy used to be close, but she became more shrew-like as the years past and come the end of third year he could honestly say he couldn't stand her; her simpering and her grovelling had become nauseating and her clawing at him in an effort to secure a place as the next Lady Malfoy made him want to curse her. He knew her father had been pushing it, and was responsible for many aspects of her changed behaviours, so without his influence maybe she could become a respected Daughter of Society once again, but he wasn't counting on it.

Without Pansy's shrieking, giggling and gossiping, the problems within their year had dropped dramatically, and the issues their other Housemates had with their year because of the constant point loss and drama vanished. It was surprising the effect just one person could have and he hadn't realised that her behaviour had been such a cause of strife. Unsurprisingly, Theodore Nott had been very quiet since they had returned from the Yule holidays. Draco knew that both he and Blaise had been distracted with Harry's episode but the usually quiet bookworm had become an utterly silent shadow. Draco couldn't remember the other teen saying a single word since they had gotten back and the Malfoy heir couldn't tell if that was a good or bad thing.

With his father assumedly being punished for his actions and his grandfather retaking the Lordship, a lot had happened for the House Nott over the holidays and it had quickly gotten around to those who were in attendance to the Malfoy ball just what Izar Nott had been hiding. The Nott/Greengrass contract had been voided, and from what Daphne had mentioned they were going to renegotiate but both Lord Greengrass and Lord Nott had decided to ask the pair if it was something they wanted and they both had declined. Of course, Daphne had grumbled that she should have the kept the contract to keep the vultures of off her back as now polite society knew the eldest Greengrass daughter was open for contracts the offers had come rolling in. Some brave souls had even approached the girl in person and Draco winced in remembrance; there was a very good reason the girl was known as the Ice Queen.

They arrived in the hall with little fan fair, both he and Blaise taking their seats even as their eyes scanned the hall looking for others in their group. Luna was swaying at the Ravenclaw table, her head in the clouds act making people give her a wide birth as she appeared to be humming to herself. Usually, Neville was at the Gryffindor table hunched over and keeping to himself but this time he was absent, however the female Weasley was sat surrounded by her friends and even from where he was sat Draco could see she was waving around the fake Potter ring.

She was going to have a nasty ending.

Not only did Harry himself want to gouge out her eyes, the Dark Lord got pissed off when someone looked at the Potter-Black Lord with anything closely resembling desire, the girl who dosed him with love potions and tried to ensnare him by forcing him to impregnate her was definitely on his hit list. It honestly wouldn't surprise Draco if the Dark Lord kept her for his own morbid amusement and just tortured her until he finally got bored. Though, given just how possessive the man was of Harry it would probably last many years before he felt the punishment was enough. Draco couldn't help his eyes flickering up to where the owls would be flying in before he scanned the head table, he honestly couldn't wait for the reaction of the entire hall for this paper and by Blaise' bouncing leg next to him the Italian teen was also impatient for the paper to arrive.

"What are the pair of you waiting for?" Daphne's voice cut through Draco's musings and he looked over to his fellow blond housemate, raising an eyebrow at her question only to get a deadpanned expression in return. Tracey, always sat next to Greengrass as she was, looked amused by the silent interaction but didn't say anything.

"Your eyes have flicked around the hall more times than I care to count." Daphne pointed out, "and I've known Blaise for nearly eight years now and I've never seen him bounce his leg; ever."

"Also, if you get any tenser you may actually snap." Tracy added amused. Draco and Blaise shared a look before turning to smirk at the girls.

"You'll see for yourself soon enough." Draco told them.

"Oh?"

"Let's just say we imagine there will be an Evening Prophet." Blaise suggested and both girls looked briefly surprised.

"Does it, per chance, have anything to do with the Yule season everyone seemed to be up in arms over?" Daphne wondered and before either Draco or Blaise could answer, Theodore snorted from behind his book.

"I have absolutely no doubt that it has something to do with the Yule season." He muttered.

"Of all the years we had to miss out on the balls." Tracey sighed, "there's been so many rumours."

"Trust me, they don't even touch the real thing." Theodore assured her and then vanished back behind his book.

"So Yule was crucial, and today is the annual opening Wizengamot session." Daphne remembered. "It has to be something big if its going to come out in an Evening edition."

"You'll get nothing from us." Draco stated, "besides, I'd hate to ruin the surprise."

"And what a surprise it's going to be." Blaise murmured, before breaking out in an uncharacteristic grin as the sounds of hundreds of owls swept through the hall causing a rise in sound as people reacted to the appearance of an Evening Prophet. Draco barely managed not to snatch the paper off of the own when it landed in front of him, instead he calmly laid it out on the table and allowed a malicious smirk to curl on to his face as he saw the huge photos dominating the front page. His own father's face stared back at him and underneath it featured Harry, Ron, Hermione and Neville all looking barely recognisable in their Wizengamot robes with their crests proudly on display. The girls sucked in sharp breaths as they took in the front page and then it was like a silencing charm spread through the hall instantaneously as the rest of the school, teachers included took in the front page and the headline.

Fudge Fired:

Opening Wizengamot Session Sees Changes to the Ministry

New Arrivals Cause Huge Power-Shift

In a stunning show of power and control, Cornelius Fudge was ousted from the Ministers Office in an uncontested Vote of No Confidence brought forth by Lord Hadrian Greengrass.

Lord Greengrass has sat on the Wizengamot for over a quarter of a Century and has been stalwart in House Greengrass's Neutral stance, leading the Section with grace and aplomb during his tenure. He also gained notability upon his appointment as Senior Undersecretary to the Minister, fixing the shameful mess left behind by the corrupt Dolores Umbridge. Last year it was revealed that Umbridge was responsible for torturing our children with a blood quill and while the Hogwarts board of Governors acted instantly there was a suspicious silence from our ministry. Now, my dear readers, I can reveal that Lord Greengrass was able to uncover the horrifying truth; Minister Fudge gave permission for the use of the blood quill. This along with a number of other offences, which are currently being investigated by the DMLE at this time, lead to his unceremonious ejection from Ministerial office.

Due to the subsequent ousting of Fudge from the Minister's position, the Wizengamot was forced to enact a rare procedure and induct a nominee in to the position of Interim Minister. An Interim Minister has all the power of Ministry but holds the position as if by proxy, automatically gaining entry into the upcoming Ministerial election upon selection. With tensions already high in the Chamber, Lord Kingston Shacklebolt was first to rise and nominate Rufus Scrimgeour for Interim Minister. Scrimgeour, a decorated auror who rose through the ranks quickly during the first war making head auror at almost record time and was easily selected as the Head of the Department of Magical Law Enforcement upon Lady Amelia Bones' health related retirement, has already been selected as a candidate for the Ministerial Election. The position of Interim Minister would have granted him an unparalleled opportunity to show our country how a Scremgeour based Administration would benefit our country. However, Scrimgeour's nomination wasn't alone and Lord Lucius Malfoy was quickly nominated as an alternative candidate for the prestigious position. Lord Malfoy has held his position on the Wizengamot for fifteen years and has always shown a keen eye for politics and international relations, dedicating much of his time to bettering our world through his position and his many charitable exploits. With no other candidates proposes, the Wizengamot went to a vote. It quickly became apparent that the vote was going to be close but in the end, Lord Malfoy was chosen and sworn in as our new Interim Minister due to some very unexpected votes.

While I would like to be able to tell you that this was the catalyst that shook the roots of the Wizengamot, dear readers, it would be an outrageous lie. For not only did the opening session of the year bring us truth about Fudge and a new Interim Minister in the shape of Lord Malfoy, it brought forth a new power dynamic that nobody was prepared for or expecting. As the session opened, the Chief Warlock, recently dismissed Headmaster, Albus Dumbledore, called upon the magic of the Wizengamot and it was revealed that there were fellows waiting to be inducted into distinguished halls. First, shocking his fellow Lords and Ladies, revealed to be Lord Theodore Nott, who stepped down abruptly from the position sixteen years ago after the death of his wife and first born son. Swiftly reclaiming his seat and keeping the House Nott firmly in the Dark Section of the Wizengamot, the reappearance of the ex-head of Section brought forth many rumours surrounding his son and previous Lord, Izar Nott. While surprising in his entrance, his appearance didn't touch on the arrival of the next four arrivals. Lord Ronald Prewett, formally Ronald Weasley, Lady Hermione McKinnon, formally Hermione Granger, and Lord Neville Longbottom, whose grandmother Augusta Longbottom previously held the seat but had been removed due to crimes against the House Longbottom, claimed their seats and yanked all of their not so considerable power out from the Light aligned section placing it firmly within the Dark and Neutral territories much to the disbelief and outrage of the Light Lords and Ladies.

However, as seems to be the trend for him, it was the last Lord that truly put the cow amongst the dragons and did the impossible: entering the Wizengamot and claiming not one, not two, but four titles and corresponding seats, Lord Harry Potter-Black showed us all why he is known for the impossible revealing his position as Lord to the Houses Potter, Black, Peverell and Gryffindor and the single most powerful individual within the Hallowed Halls of the Wizengamot. Not only did he rip the core power foundation away from the Light Aligned and place all of his power within the Dark Section, Lord Potter-Black openly claimed proxy for the Imperial House of Slytherin giving him power over two of the Founding Houses leaving him unquestionably without equal. As if Lord Potter-Black shifting his seats so drastically didn't announce it clear to everyone, Albus Dumbledore's subsequent reaction to Lord Potter-Black's appearance would announce clearly a definite separation between the powerful duo. Dumbledore has often been held in high regard as the mentor of our saviour which begs the question of why they have parted ways so drastically; has the recent reveals of Dumbledore's character brought forth this sudden split or are there more underlying secrets yet to be uncovered that are the true reason for Lord Harry Potter-Black not only parting ways from Dumbledore but shifting so sharply to the Dark? With Lord Potter-Black and his famously close friends being the deciding factor in Lord Malfoy's appointment it is very apparent that the Potter/Longbottom Alliance is as strong as ever and the previously known Golden Trio are working together and are thinking in to the future indicating there to be no reconciliation between the powerful young Lord and Dumbledore.

Never before has there been such unrest in our political climate, with a new power dynamic within the Wizengamot and an Interim Minister many things are set to change within the upcoming months. What has Dumbledore done to the Potter-Black Lord? What does the new quad know of the situation? Is this the reawakening of the alliance between Houses Potter-Black and Malfoy? And crucially, who is the mysterious Slytherin Lord and how does he know Lord Potter-Black? One thing is for sure, dear readers, this reporter will be following along eagerly to bring you the news and promise to continue the relentless search for truth leaving no stone unturned in the latest chronical of events.

Rita Skeeter: Special Correspondent to the Daily Prophet.

There had been quite a few looks of confusion as people looked at the pictures and not really recognised them, but it quickly became apparently just who they were looking at the further they got into the article; and then the hall exploded. Gasps and exclamations of shock bounced around the from most of the hall, and a burst of sudden sound indicated plenty of speculation running wild surrounding Harry and Co's sudden appearance and the power shift they represented. The discussions became louder and louder and even the teachers seemed to be equally inclined to discuss rather than control the students. People start craning their necks to see if they can spot the now famous quad but soon realised they were nowhere in the hall which only served to make the noise rise even more wondering just where the four Gryffindors could be and what their response to the article would be.

Draco couldn't help but sit up proudly, allowing himself a slight smug tilt of his lips as people turned to him in surprise about his father's new position. Even his fellow Slytherins' were full on gossiping, regarding him with contemplative looks at this change, obviously considering the alterations this would make to the in-House politics. The Malfoy Heir didn't let a single look bother him, with Harry and co also being responsible for his father's placement and the revelations about their placement shift, a couple of looks were the least he was going to get. Blaise released a low whistle, looking at Draco with a raised eyebrow to which the blond smirked slightly making the Italian shake his head with a smirk of his own.

"So they didn't just go for it, they went for it."

"Yeah, they really did."

"This changes everything." Daphne stated, her usual composure broken by widened eyes.

"I'll say. This is an alteration to the very foundations of the Wizengamot as we've known it for over two decades." Tracey agreed with a level of morbid excitement Draco was mildly concerned over.

"He was astonishingly generous." Theodore murmured looking alarmed. Both Draco and Blaise nodded.

"You can thank your grandfather's friendship with Him for that."

"What are you talking about now?" Tracey demanded.

"There was an incident at my family ball that could have ended up much worse considering the information that has now been revealed."

"Ugh, I cannot wait for the Act of Silence to be released." She sighed.

"I know my father is releasing ours in the next couple of days." Draco told her, "I can't imagine the others will last much further after that."

"No, my father intends to release his tomorrow." Daphne agreed, "I need to write to him also, I wish to know about the Wizengamot session."

"Oh I can't wait to see her fall." Blaise said seemingly out of the blue, but Draco followed his line of sight and saw the She-Weasley trying to put on a brave and smug face under the barrage of questions she was getting from a lot of the Gryffindors. However, even from the other side of the hall, Draco could see that her act was failing, she hadn't known anything about this surprise and by the looks of things she may not have known about all of Harry's titles. Still, she kept waving around that fake ring and Draco caught a flash of a smirk on Luna's face as the Ravenclaw also watched the red-head. The noise in the hall was becoming unbearable when McGonagall stood up and released a fire cracker from her wand silencing the hall almost instantly.

"Now. I know there has been a surprise with the paper this evening, but that is no reason for any of you to conduct yourselves in such an outrageous manner." She barked, looking at them sternly. "Furthermore, anyone who decides they have the right to harass, harangue or harm those featured in the article or their relations will find themselves in detention at the sole discretion of Professor Snape."

More than one person squeaked in fear when the Potions' Master's lips curled into a somewhat feral smile of pleasure, and though Draco knew the man would never harm him even he felt uneasy by the sheer malevolence coming from the Slytherin Head of House. Merlin, that was a very good threat if ever he had seen one. There wasn't a single person who wanted to be subjected to whatever Snape would think up, even the man's own Slytherins' were looking concerned.

"I have to thank you, Headmistress, for seeing being the first one to preventively shield me from harassment."

A drawling voice was easily heard throughout the quiet hall and everyone span to look at the doorway where four figures were suddenly stood. Draco barely hid his smirk at the silence that enveloped the hall as the student body took in the four of them, the real them, for the first time, and he couldn't help but notice they had dressed for the occasion. Elegant yet casual day robes, colour co-ordinated to show unity without clashing, they managed to show every part of their pureblood heritage and wealth without being obvious or obnoxious.

"You all have the right to your own privacy, Lord Potter-Black, even if your actions have drawn attention." McGonagall replied evenly, "this is a school, not the Wizengamot."

"Still, we thank you, Headmistress."

The four of them moved forward as one, heading towards the Ravenclaw table, a pointed move given the Eagle House's neutrality, and took seats in the spaces Luna had cleared around her. The spacey blond went from crazy to calm in seconds, accepting the kiss Harry pressed to her cheek as if it was her due, and adopting the manner of a true pureblood heiress with ease much to the alarm of the Ravenclaws, especially the ones who took pleasure in making Luna's life hell. The Potter-Black Lord eyed them all in contempt before he looked towards Draco and Blaise and smirked, raising an eyebrow in almost challenge which made the two Slytherins' smirk themselves.

They shared a look before rising from their seats and moving to sit with the four in an open show of alliance, Draco sliding in next to Hermione and Blaise next to Ron. The hall burst in to whispers, though nothing was directed at the group as the student body was taken McGonagall's threat very seriously. Draco only just stopped himself snorting as the four that caused such a stir sat there calmly eating their dinner as if they hadn't just shaken the foundations of their political system.

"Do you feel better now?" Draco wondered as soon as the privacy charms were raised, and Harry shot him an innocent look.

"I don't know what you mean, Draco. We were merely late for dinner."

"Oh my mistake." The blond drawled with a roll of his eyes. "I'm sure you can't feel the burning questions directed by all these eyes."

"No not at all." Ron disagreed.

"Don't seem to notice a thing." Hermione continued.

"Seems like an everyday dinner." Neville finished and this time Draco didn't bother masking his snort.

"Well I don't know about burning questions, but someone is definitely burning you with their glare." Blaise murmured, eyes flicking over Harry's shoulder to where the Gryffindor table was situated.

"Ouch yeah," Ron grinned, "I honestly can't tell if that's just you, Har, or all of us. Oh – no – yeah that's definitely all of us. She's glaring directly at me now."

"Honestly she should be spending her days doing something better, she's on borrowed time." Luna said with a haughty sniff and Harry chuckled.

"That's the understatement of the century."

"He's taking the reveal well then?" Draco wondered somewhat sarcastically.

"Most definitely. He didn't at all threaten to gouge out the eyes of everyone who looked at me in desire." Harry replied in the same tone.

"Wow, real well then." Ron snorted.

"It's a Slytherin trait to be possessive; he's just got the most of it though blood." Harry joked.

"I want to deny that but I can't." Blaise sighed.

"It's true." Draco agreed.

"Rabastan has been nothing but a gentleman." Hermione countered and everyone scoffed.

"You're not official, Hermione. Once that changes he'll protect what's his like the dragons that all Slytherins' hide in their hearts." Neville told her seriously much to the amusement of the non-Slytherins.

"Okay, I know we'll get to see it tomorrow, and I know we're very much not discussing anything today but you have to give us something from the session." Draco redirected the conversation and the four shared a grin.

"Let's just say Dumbledore absolutely did not see it coming." Ron said with amusement.

"No one saw it coming." Hermione corrected, "But his reaction was particularly beautiful."

"I know why we've done it this way, but Merlin do I wish I entered with you." Draco groaned.

"Tomorrow you'll enjoy viewing the session and today you get to watch me ditch She-Weasel." Harry consoled.

"That'll have to see me though."

"There there."

"Do you think she'll say anything tonight?" Hermione wondered and Harry scoffed.

"I can feel her glare from here, there's no way she isn't saying anything as soon as she can."

"I bet she starts as soon as we get up to leave." Neville added and Harry pointed his fork as him.

"That right there."

"Hm I don't know if I wish for it to happen or for her to wait." Hermione mused.

"Why? On the one hand public humiliation and on the other hand delayed public humiliation." Blaise pointed out with a raised eyebrow.

"Yes, true, though her confrontation now will be all her, if she waits we can see how Dumbledore wants to deal with the situation through her."

"She is too much her mother's daughter to wait." Luna declared, "besides, her reporting the confrontation now will give us a better idea of Dumbledore's actions further on. He'll know that all of his plans are completely shattered."

"Also, if he hasn't already contacted her then he's probably already written off using her as part of his plans." Ron pointed out.

"Ah well, she shouldn't have agreed to whore herself out for him anyway." Harry said without sympathy.

"There's a lot of things people shouldn't have agreed to do in our lives mate."

"Don't remind me." Harry complained, "I don't need it."

"At least things are changing." Hermione assured them, "we're on the up and we should be free to move as we wish now."

"I'm just glad McGonagall threatened the rest of the students with Snape." Neville said with a grin, "did you see his face – you couldn't pay me to get detention with him for the next year."

"Honestly, even I was concerned about how happy he looked." Draco agreed with a shudder.

"We just have to see which Gryffindors are brave enough to risk it." Ron laughed and Luna smirked at him.

"It'll only take a three of them before the word will spread; it's really not worth it."

"Oh I don't think I want to even imagine what Snape has planned." Hermione wrinkled her nose.

"It's one of the most effect threats she could have given." Harry mused, "No one likes Snape's detentions."

"Yeah, the Slytherins aren't exempt from that either." Blaise added, "actually, we usually get worse detentions from him as he's pissed we were caught and that he's been forced to punish us."

"Merlin, can you imagine if I had been sorted in to Slytherin before all of this came to light; he would have killed me." Harry exclaimed looking slightly horrified.

"
I want to deny that but probably yeah." Draco agreed.

"I would like to stop in and see Remus after dealing with Her." Harry informed them, "I haven't actually spoken to him properly since the holidays."

"Yeah, he would have gotten the paper himself so it'll be good to speak with him." Hermione agreed.

"Not only that, but we need to tell him about the meeting tomorrow." Ron added and Harry nodded.

"That would be helpful."

"Then shall we meet in the Gryffindor rooms once you're done with Weaselette?" Draco suggested.

"Sound's good."

"I think someone is fit to burst by now." Luna announced, eyes glinting somewhat maliciously. "Shall we take our leave?"

"You know we always listen to you, sister." Harry replied with a smirk. "Let's just make it look like we don't know it's coming."

"Won't be hard, we'll look like we're leaving and we'll draw a crowd just by our moving." Blaise remarked standing up, "the Slytherins alone will follow us because they'll want answers in the common room. Not that we'll actually go straight there of course."

"Oh the joys of House politics." Draco grumbled also rising to his feet.

"Yeah, glad I don't have to deal with that." Neville stated with a grin, following as the rest of the their group got up and Luna dispelled the privacy charm. There was a dip in the sound from the hall as they moved towards the door then the noise picked back up as some students also rose to leave. Out of the corner of his eye, Harry spotted Ginny do the same as they got to the door and bit back a smirk knowing he was going to enjoy the upcoming confrontation way more than he probably should.

"We'll see you later." Draco told them as if he was actually going to the common room with Blaise. Said Italian had gone straight up to Ron and pulled him into a toe curling kiss in the doorway in front of the whole Great Hall without hesitation, something that Ron didn't seem at all opposed to by the vigorous reciprocation on his behalf. There was loud exclamations from the students and Ron's ears went red even if he grinned at Blaise, who looked quite pleased with himself as he looked back at the red head.

"Are you, per chance, marking your territory?" Neville questioned sardonically.

"Can't have anyone even thinking about sniffing around il mio leone." Blaise stated unapologetically.

"So much for subtlety." Draco scoffed with a roll of his eyes and Blaise raised an eyebrow.

"Aren't you writing a contract for you and your twins so legally people can't go near them?"

"I don't have enough black robes to kill people in." Draco replied without shame.

"Wow." Harry, Ron, Hermione and Neville deadpanned in unison while Luna's delicate laugh bounced around them. The two Slytherins headed towards the dungeons with no particular speed while the Luna and the Gryffindors moved towards the Grand Staircase as just as Harry had put his foot on the first step he head Ginny calling out to him.

"Here we go boys and girls." He murmured, continuing to climb the stairs even as her calls got louder, drawing the attention of the nosy students and slowly creating a crowd. They managed to get half way up the stairs before Ginny obviously lost her temper and her voice echoed through the entrance hall.

"HARRY JAMES POTTER YOU WILL STOP IGNORING ME RIGHT NOW!"

Harry paused, turning around and taking a step down leaving his friends to loom behind him somewhat threateningly. A quick glance around saw that many of the students has poured out of the Great Hall to watch whatever spectacle may be about to commence, and lingering at the back of the crowd Harry could see Tom as Professor Drield eyeing the female red head like a carnivore looking at fresh meat. Silver-blue eyes flashed up to meet green and Tom quirked an eyebrow as if to say 'give me a show'. Harry blinked once before turning his focus back on Ginny, he needed to get this confrontation right so he didn't look like the bad guy or like a raving lunatic and given the schools propensity to turn on him at the drop of a hat this whole situation had to be handled right. Thankfully, he had a plan.

"I have nothing to say to you, Miss Weasley." Harry told her, his voice calm and even. "Please leave me alone."

"I can't believe you would do this to me!" She exclaimed, her tone and volume a clear contrast to Harry's.

"What, exactly, have I done to you to cause this scene?" Harry questioned and she flushed, eyes narrowing as her fists clenched.

"I can't believe you would be so callous to ignore me now you've got a taste of power." She yelled, "so easy for you to cast me aside now when you think you have better prospects."

Harry scoffed, barely managing not to laugh at her dramatics, instead shooting her a look of contempt as he crossed his arms.

"We both know that's not the reason I don't want anything to do with you, Miss Weasley."

"Oh please, you've got your Lordships and suddenly I'm not good enough for you." She declared loudly and Harry huffed.

"You're right, I have my Lordships and you're not good enough for me but neither of those things are linked." Harry sneered, "You know what you've done; don't try and turn this on me."

"How can you say that!" She cried, tearing up and shaking her head as if she honestly had no idea why he had such a change of heart, and Harry had to admit he was impressed with her acting.

"I've done nothing wrong. You are causing a scene over your own actions, Miss Weasley. Show some decorum."

"You played with my feelings, you t-took my virginity and even went as far as to send me a promise ring just to turn me away now." She wailed holding up her hand with the ring on before hugging herself and stirring up the crowd some more, "and now you're turning me away. Are you so much a coward that you won't face up to the fact you might have gotten me pregnant."

There were multiple gasps throughout the crowd and whispered broke out, Harry had to give her props for creativity, he honestly didn't think she had it in her but she was really selling it. Of course, if this was how she was going to play it then Harry was only too happy to ruin her game. He barked out a laugh just this side of cruel and turned to Luna.

"Dearest sister?"

The blond Ravenclaw smirked and waved her wand unravelling the spellwork she had completed to make the ring look and feel like a Potter heirloom, much to Ginny's horror the exquisite ring faded into a simple silver band.

"What?"

"You really think I would ever let you wear anything that came from my family?" He snarled, stepping down a few more steps advancing towards her, "after everything you've done did you really think you would ever be worthy of a Potter family promise ring. Don't make me laugh."

"You promised me, after sleeping with me you promised!" She wept and Harry scoffed.

"I, Harry James Potter-Black, to swear upon my magic that I have never has sexual intercourse with the witch known as Ginevra Molly Weasley, so mote be it." Harry declared allowing the magic to swirl around him recognising his vow before casting a Lumos in proof. Ginny recoiled in horror and Harry bared his teeth in a vicious grin.

"I would never voluntarily sleep with the likes of you." He spit out, "besides, you haven't been a virgin in a long time."

"WHAT HAVE YOU DONE! YOU LIED TO ME!" She screamed, the fake tears and hunched form disappearing as she screeched at him, "HOW DARE YOU IMPLY I'VE SLEPT AROUND!"

"It's not implied it's a known fact; everyone knows you'll open your legs for just about anything with a pulse." Harry hissed, "and I lied to you? How many love potions did you use on me? How many compulsions webs and other spells were needed before I even looked in your direction, huh?"

There was an explosion of noise from the crowd at his declaration and Ginny suddenly stopped looked so confident, her eyes wide with shock and horror as Harry glared down at her.

"I don't-,"

"What? Didn't think I'd find out? I wonder how you thought you were going to get away with line-theft and mind control for the rest of your life because I would never voluntarily touch you for all the money in the world." He snapped, "you are nothing more than a despicable, gold digging whore that would sell out her own family if you thought it would raise your status."

Her eyes darted over to Ron, who was stood loyally at Harry's back and the red head sneered at her.

"Don't look at me, I know exactly what sort of bitch I'm unfortunately related to." He growled, "I've never been more disgusted with any of my siblings."

"You were only too willing to wade into this storm," Hermione said coldly, "now you will deal with the consequences."

"You'll pay for your actions." Harry declared, drawing himself up straight and proud, "and you will never again get away with bespelling or potioning me ever again."

The crowd that had built up in the entrance hall started jeering at Ginny, calling her out for her actions, mocking her and the younger Weasley looked around wildly trying to spot a friendly face. When it became obvious that she didn't have a single person there in her favour she ran away in actual tears, pushing through the people and slipping into a side corridor followed by raucous laughter. Harry felt a burst of amused pleasure coming from Tom, and the Gryffindor spared the man a quick glance spotting his smirk even from a distance. The Dark Lord nodded once and Harry, Ron, Hermione, Neville and Luna used the distraction Ginny had given them to hurry up the Grand Staircase and away from the masses.

"Well that felt good." Harry burst out as soon as they could no longer here the student body.

"The fall out for that is going to be glorious." Ron proclaimed with grandeur that was unneeded much to their amusement.

"No doubt it will reach the wider public soon enough." Luna said with a smirk, "you standing with Harry, Ron, is going to make an impact."

"We're in this together as we always have been." The Prewett Lord stated, "she knew I'd stand with Harry beforehand or I wouldn't have been Obliviated and spelled."

"She's a much better actor than I remember." Hermione mused, and the Gryffindors nodded.

"I almost bought it." Neville agreed, "the tears and the stutter were a nice touch."

"Her face when Luna got rid of the magic around that ring brings me joy." Harry decided with a grin.

"Her face when you made that magical vow brings me joy." Hermione continued and they shared a laugh.

"How bad do you think the Howler will be tomorrow?" Ron wondered and Harry snorted.

"Not even going to consider it."

Once they arrived at Harry's rooms they immediately shadowed to the Gryffindor rooms where Draco and Blaise were already there waiting for them with Remus.

"That was beautiful." Draco announced as soon as they were in the rooms and Harry grinned.

"Thank you!"

"Take a deep breath and relish in your first day officially free from her influence forever." Blaise told him and Harry sighed in relief, flopping down half on the sofa and half on Remus and rubbing himself all over the werewolf. Remus chuckled at the teen, running a hand through his hair and wrapping an arm around his shoulders when he sat up.

"Are you feeling better now, Cub?"

"More than you can believe." Harry responded with a smile. "Have you seen the paper?"

"Not yet, I was a bit caught up in research." Remus admitted somewhat sheepishly and Harry snorted.

"Of course you were."

"Here," Luna handed over a copy of the paper she had put in her bag to the surprise of no one. It didn't take long for Remus to read through the article and once he was done he released a long whistle of appreciation.

"Well I'll be." He murmured, looking at Harry impressed, "if you wanted to make an impact I think you were a little bit successful there, cub."

Harry grinned.

"You think?"

"How badly was Dumbledore pissed?"

"Oh he lost his shit completely." Ron said pleased the other three who got to witness the old fool's loss of control could only grin in memory.

"And you managed to get Malfoy in as Interim Minister all in the same session."

"His face when I nominated Lucius was one I'm going to remember." Hermione sighed wistfully, "what a day."

"For the first time ever we can fully be who we are and the best thing is that we've done this so publicly that it'll be impossible to change us back now." Neville added sounding relieved.

"Not that Dumbledore won't try something." Harry pointed out, "but it's going to be so much harder and we're staying near the castle to give him less opportunity."

"You have to be careful now though, cub." Remus advised, "you've surprised him now, but you've also lost the ability to predict what he's going to do next with any set guarantee. I don't want you hurt."

"We'll be careful, Moony, I promise." Harry assured him, "we've got one more thing planned to hit out at Dumbledore directly before we're left winging it."

"Which is another reason why we're here – other than to celebrate you removing Ginny from your person." Blaise pointed out and Harry nodded.

"Yes, tomorrow we're having a full meeting with us and the Elite to plan on how we're going to move forward from here." Harry told the werewolf.

"I imagine we all have a lot of work to look forward to." Remus mused, "Malfoy's campaign, the planning for the government if we manage to swing this election and actually getting rid of Dumbledore on a permanent basis."

"Yeah, and that's only the things on the top of the list." Draco agreed, "I know we also need to work on securing the castle better and reforming the education, but that it going to have to wait until my father is actually in power fully; he only has so much pull as Interim."

"So what time are we meeting tomorrow?" Remus asked.

"We're all living the day first as we want to see the second article that will no doubt come out tomorrow." Neville replied, "but I don't know anything other than that."

"We'll be having lunch at the manor before the meeting because Narcissa scares everyone and the host in her will make her feed us before doing anything." Harry continued causing multiple snorts throughout the group.

"We'll deal with the day monitoring the reactions of everyone around us and any howelers or letters we get in response from the order before turning back the day and heading to Malfoy Manor for the meeting around midday." Hermione decided, "as we're going to eat we can skip first dinner and by the time we're back from the meeting it will probably be dinner time once again so it won't look like we've missed anything."

"That'll work well, we will need to deal with the Slytherin House politics and I want to be able to go back and inform father about how they have responded." Draco allowed.

"They're going to be insufferable." Blaise said with a weird amount of delight.

"Right, enough with the serious stuff, we're managing all of that tomorrow." Ron announced, snapping his fingers and asking Winky to bring them drinks. Once the elf returned he raised his glass with a grin. "To publicly removing Ginny from our persons and screwing over Dumbledore."

"Here here"

"How many people, do you think, will recognise the comment of 'turning on her family' with Ron standing by Harry?" Neville wondered and Luna smirked.

"Oh it may take a bit but people will catch on." She told them, "the solid Weasley family that is portrayed will soon crumble."

"Some of the Slytherins definitely will, a lot of them live and breathe subtle keys especially those training to take over Headships." Draco predicted and Hermione snorted.

"If a howler comes tomorrow from Molly even the most politically dense will understand the significance."

"And as you're the one with the title, from your mother's birth House no less, it's going to impact even more." Malfoy added and Ron shrugged.

"Thankfully, there is no family directly linked to the Prewett House other than my great aunt Muriel, who will be pleased as long as the Prewett House continues. She's happy in her cottage with her vault and has been avoiding Molly, unless to criticize her, for years." Ron told them, "everyone else is a Weasley now."

"Speaking of," Blaise picked up, "don't you have other older brothers?"

Ron blinked.

"Yeah, thankfully they're both out of the country right now." Ron answered, "Bill took a place in France with Fleur, and getting Charlie away from his dragons is like pulling teeth so dealing with them is going to be fine because Molly won't want to involve them as they probably won't agree with her actions. As for Percy; who the fuck knows?"

"Don't you think you should maybe pre-emptively cut off her options anyway?" Blaise suggested, "just in case. There's nothing stopping her from lying though her teeth if she contacts them."

"He's not wrong." Hermione added, "it doesn't have to be much."

"I'll write to them both, but it can't be too much just in case they turn out to have too much Molly in them." Ron conceded. "Eventually, I'll have to meet with them with Harry and Hermione as backup."

"This, of course, all hinges on whether or not they'll keep up with the news." Remus pointed out and Ron grimaced.

"Charlie definitely not, but Bill, it's possible that he will hear on his own due to Fleur's family."

"Yeah, it's best you write to them first, mate." Harry stated and the red head nodded in acceptance.

"So how are the wolves, Moony?" Neville asked the older man, who grinned in response.

"The plans for the expansion has gone well, we've managed to organise the use of the entrance hall and the front court yard three times a day and the all the wolves have been alerted that we're just waiting on a date now with the goblins." He responded and Harry winced.

"Ah yes, I'll be going to see them soon enough; I need the official paperwork showing Dumbledore's actions regarding my accounts to go with the official healer paperwork we got from Narcissa the other day."

"It's not a huge rush so don't worry too much," Moony reassured. "The wolves are more than happy with the way things are currently."

"Good, I'm glad this has worked out so well." Harry commented and Moony nodded.

"We've also got to the point where we're soon going to be completely self-sufficient. Many of them have been learning the ins and outs of farming and not only have we got vastly successful potions ingredients growing in the greenhouses – which have been bringing in money – but there are portions of the land being prepped for vegetables and for purchasing our own cows, sheep, chickens and goats."

"That's brilliant!" Hermione exclaimed, "The only out costs would then be ingredients that cannot be grown or collected from the forest, and things like ink and parchment, and they can be bought with the income from selling the excesses from the greenhouses."

"Inks are also being made as well as quills from the many birds around the manor, the only thing we're buying in is parchment and the costs of that are covered by the excess."

"Hopefully, within the year, the sanctuary will actually be earning money. That's better than anything I could have predicted." Harry said pleased and Remus nodded.

"Many of the wolves feel the need to give back to the place that practically saved their lives so they are only too happy to work towards the betterment of their homes. Not only that but with access to education, they themselves are actually feeling like worthwhile people which goes a long way as motivation."

"What are you doing for wands?"

"Ah, we haven't quite got that far yet." Remus admitted, "many are using borrowed wands, a lot of the packs have a couple of wands shared between them all, so we've been teaching the best we could with what we have. Thankfully, well that's not the best word to use but its true none-the-less, everyone is so far behind on theory that it hasn't been a huge problem."

"Shall we put it to the whole group tomorrow about solving the wand issue?" Ron suggested, "no doubt the Elite have a broader reach than us when it comes to the illicit making and selling of wands."

"Good idea," Neville agreed, "we're going to need a lot of them, and if I'm correct, there are certain countries that outright ban werewolves from having wands entirely so the internationals are even more questionable than our own wolves."

"I want to be glad this country didn't sink that far but we basically made it legal to hunt wolves so
" Hermione trailed off with a shrug and Harry snorted.

"Right. We suck just as bad."

"Ugh just thinking about the work we've got coming up makes me feel a little sick." Ron groaned.

"It won't be as bad as you think." Luna assured and Ron pouted.

"Given how bad I think it's going to be that's not actually not that reassuring."

"Eh I tried." She shrugged and Harry snickered.

"Thank you, sister." Harry said with a grin, "how should we expect the Ravenclaws to react."

"They'll be smart enough to avoid me for the time being." Luna told him with a smirk, "they're not risking your wrath."

"Good. The moment that changes we'll hurry to correct that behaviour." Harry stated.

"The Gryffindors are going to be the worse."

"Oh no doubt; you claiming the Slytherin seat will be enough to guarantee that." Hermione snorted.

"Not just the Gryffindors; the Slytherins will be equally outraged by who has the Slytherin seat. Though, those in the know will be questioning just what is going on." Blaise pointed out.

"I can't wait until that side of things is fully revealed either. We can do that now Dumbledore knows where we are." Harry mused, "I'm sure Tom has something suitably dramatic prepared."

"I swear the man only has two settings; sneaky or showcasing." Remus scoffed looking amused and Harry barked out a laugh.

"Couldn't agree more, not that he'd like that of course, but we all know it's true."

"I will never even think of such things in his presence." Draco stated mildly horrified.

"Eh it's alright, I'll probably end up telling him for a laugh." Harry shrugged and the rest of the group shook their head as a collective.

"You have problems." Ron decided and Harry raised an eyebrow.

"
 and this is a surprise to you why?"

"Oh it isn't, I just thought I'd remind everyone." The red head responded easily much to their amusement.

"Cheers for that, Ron."

"You are most welcome."

Harry rolled his eyes at his friend before turning back to Moony.

"You'll be able to come out of hiding then as well, Moony."

"Yeah, it's definitely something to look forward to." The werewolf agreed, "though I feel like I've had a better hand than you as I've been constantly surrounded by the other wolves and I was given my own pet Death Eaters."

"Let's not make it a contest; Dumbledore screwed us all over." Hermione said with a frown, "soon he's going to truly feel the consequences."

"Something we're all looking forward to."

They spend their remaining time drinking to their success and Harry was only too happy to lean against Moony and relish in their actions, if he was being honest with himself he was surprised they had gotten this far so well and it was nice just to take the time to relax. They had so much work they needed to get through in the coming months that this would probably be their last purely relaxing evening they would have together for a while yet. He was nudged out of his contemplations by Moony, who motioned for Harry to follow him as he moved towards the room he had claimed as his own.

"What's wrong?" Harry inquired when Moony merely looked at him.

"Are you finally going to tell me why everyone seemingly vanished from my vicinity for a week or do I have to guess?"

Harry winced.

"Ah, they were not as subtle as they thought they were then."

"Given that I seen nearly all of this group on a daily basis at the sanctuary in the very least, no not really." Remus deadpanned.

"Yeah, that makes sense." Harry sighed before running his hand through his hair. "Don't be mad at them, they thought it was for the best."

"You still haven't answered my question, cub."

"There was a bit of an incident with me and Tom, and it wasn't looking particularly good at the time, so they all decided that it would be for the best if they stayed away from you as you'd be able to smell if they were lying or misleading you; one problem at a time." Harry explained, wincing again slightly when Moony's eyes sharpened at the mention of an incident.

"What exactly happened?"

"Well everything came to a head and I have been reliably informed that Tom and I have been in a relationship for a while now, but we were unaware of that fact. So when I blurted out that I loved him, I panicked, ended it and ran away."

"Ah," Moony frowned for a moment before giving a sniff. "well I still smell him all over you so that couldn't be the end of it."

"No, I was in the middle of some
 questionable decisions before Tom came to speak to me. Apparently, Nott Sr talked some sense into the man which made him able to talk sense into me." Harry told the werewolf, "we're together officially now and have no plans to change that fact in the near or distant future."

"I imagine there's a bit more to it than that but I won't push you." Moony allowed before pulling the young Lord into a hug, "you're okay now though?"

"Never better; with the Wizengamot and everything going in our favour and Tom and I being stronger than ever its been a long time since I've been this good."

"Next time, I'd like to be kept in the loop anyway." Remus said and Harry nodded.

"Yeah, I think they were just worried about dealing with angry werewolf while trying to get everything else ready. No one was sure if I was going to make it to the Wizengamot on top of everything else."

"No I understand, but it's only us left now and I want to know anytime something happens to you for my own piece of mind." Remus assured.

"That's understandable."

They moved back over to the group to enjoy the rest of the evening before heading back to their respective dorms/room just before curfew. There was no way any of the group, other than Harry, would be able to get away with not dealing with their housemates and as they had a long day tomorrow they wanted to get it out of the way that evening in the smallest amount of time possible.

"I assume we'll meet in Harry's rooms tomorrow before the meeting?" Draco confirmed and Harry nodded.

"Yes, live the day and do all what you need to then turn back just before dinner. Also, remember to turn back long enough to squeeze in a nap as well." Luna reminded them all before they went their separate ways. Harry immediately shadowed back to Tom's rooms and was not even a little surprised when he was pulled down on to the sofa with a pissed of Dark Lord hovering over him. The man had been getting steadily more impatient as the evening wore on.

"Where have you been?"

"Relax; I went to see Moony." Harry told him, rolling his eyes when the man above him narrowed his.

"You were supposed to come to me immediately." He stated, tone harsh and Harry shot him a look.

"No, I said I would be coming back to you, as you knew I would be anyway, and that as soon as I got to you you wouldn't let me out of your sight." He corrected, "which is exactly why I went to see Moony first so I could stay with you after with no interruptions."

"Do you have any idea how many people wanted you when you arrived in the Hall?" The older man demanded, "how many of their insipid little minds immediately went to how they could make you theirs?"

"Oh I imagine most of them." Harry replied lightly, and when Tom wordlessly hissed at him Harry huffed in exasperation. "Really? It's my fault now?"

"I did not say it was."

"Then calm down; they're never going to have me, are they?" Harry pointed out, "You are never going to let me go."

"The sooner the world knows exactly who you belong to the better." Tom growled, "there will never be any doubt that you are completely and utterly taken."

"Well now I'm free from Ginny and will never again have to even act like I belong to anyone else, and tomorrow as we will no doubt spend most of the day at Malfoy Manor you can display exactly who I belong to to your blackened hearts content." Harry reassured him which finally got the tension to bleed out of the older man's shoulders. "Now, are you going to let me up?"

"Hm, perhaps. I quite like having you pinned beneath me." Tom replied even as he sat up and pulled Harry with him. The teen scoffed at the comment, throwing his legs over the older man's lap and leaning back against the arm of the sofa.

"Now tell me what you think of the article and getting rid of Ginny."

"The article was very leading, and no doubt speculation will run wild but that is exactly what Rita does best." Tom said impressed, "No doubt she will have a follow up article tomorrow."

"Definitely, none of the quotes we gave her were in this paper so this is mainly pure Rita today and our input tomorrow." Harry confirmed.

"Good, I cannot wait to see the damages done from this alone."

"Sooner or later you'll need to deal with your faction as I now hold your seat and I do not want to have to deal with curse-happy Death Eaters for 'stealing' your birth-rite."

"Ah, a plan for that is already being put into place." Tom brushed off but Harry perked up.

"Ooo what is it?"

"You'll have to wait and see, won't you?"

"Awh Tom! Can't you tell me?"

"Do you ever intend to tell me any of your plans unless they directly need my interference?!

"Well
"

"You have your answer."

Harry pouted.

"That's not nice."

"I'm not nice." Tom pointed out

"Fine, have your secrets, as long as it ends with me not having to curse your people." Harry allowed graciously, much to Tom's amusement, then the teen paused, "actually, I wouldn't mind cursing them at all."

"I need them alive thank you."

"Such confidence you have in me." Harry said pleased and Tom rolled his eyes.

"As for removing your limpet, while satisfying, I will not be happy until she is no longer breathing." Tom stated and Harry barely bit back a snort.

"I don't think there is a single person who knows you who is even a little surprised by that statement."

"Do not act as if you do not wish to kill her, either." Tom bit out, eyes flashing at the mere thought of her, "she deserves everything that will be rained down upon her."

"Why do I have a feeling you have planned her death in excruciating detail?" Harry wondered.
"Excruciating is the correct word." Tom said, declining to say anything else.

"I've told Moony about the meeting so tomorrow we'll live a day and then come back before dinner, Luna insists we nap and then go to the manor." Harry said, changing the subject.

"We should be back from the meeting just before dinner once again so we don't have to have any other time adjustments to make it to the meal where all eyes will be on you." Tom picked up easily making Harry grin.

"Exactly," the teen got up and stretched before making his way towards their bedroom.

"Where do you think you are going?" Tom questioned, watching him closely and Harry tossed him a smirk.

"You mentioned something about liking me pinned beneath you?"

Honestly, Harry wasn't surprised when Tom beat him to the room.

Notes:

Thanks for reading!

Always good to hear from you guys so feel free to drop a comment <3

Chapter 57

Notes:

WHOOOOOOOOOOO!!!!!!! I've finally caught up to FF with this fic! I've just uploaded this over on the other site and from now on I can upload simultaneously - no more keeping you guys who are strictly AO3 waiting!!

This chapter was an utter nightmare to write - I had nothing until I binge wrote it in 2 days lol

A bit of a look into other perspectives that I think you'll enjoy :)

Read the tags please!

The plot is mine - I've put blood, sweat and tears into this lol

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

"So how horrible do you think this is going to be?" Hermione wondered as the three of them made their way back to Gryffindor tower rather slowly all things considered. Neville shot her a look while Ron snorted shaking his head.

"Why bother predicting? We all know this is going to be a mess and they're gunna pounce on us as soon as we get in; they're probably waiting for us."

"Oh they're definitely waiting on us." Neville assured with a look of distaste.

"I kind of want to tell them where to shove it." Hermione sighed, "but right now we don't need to create enemies."

"No we don't, as much as I also want to tell them to shove it." Ron agreed reluctantly, "we're already set to have the lowest support here than the rest of the houses."

"Well maybe Hufflepuff." Neville suggested, "if we spin this right and Harry uses his Harry-ness then we might actually swing a decent amount of people to at least neutral."

"It's the muggleborns that are going to be a problem. I hate to say it but the Slytherins have not done us any favours with that, especially Draco, who's father we've just endorsed."

"Yeah well that's going to be up to you to sort unfortunately." Ron stated her, "It's pointless us even trying being both prominent purebloods, and until Harry has finalised his muggleborn/muggle plan we have nothing to offer."

"We should have discussed this with Moony." Hermione groaned, "I don't know what Harry has planned exactly but I know it's to do with proving that there is actually very very few if any actual muggleborns."

"From what I've managed to pick up he's mainly focussing on trying to build a case for purebloods to stop throwing out their squibs as they're creating muggleborns; I don't know anything about if his plans for the actual muggleborns themselves." Neville told them with a shrug.

"He really is awful at communicating sometimes."

"I'd ask him now but we all know he won't answer now that he's with him." Ron said with a smirk.

"That's for sure."

"I'm so happy that he's happy." Hermione commented, sharing the smile with the others.

"I can't believe who's making him happy, however." Neville admitted, "if you would have told me last year where we'd be I'd have laughed at you but if you would have told me who Harry would be with I would have sent you to Mungos."

"Tell me about it." Ron agreed fervently, "even in our lucid moments I could have never predicted this."

"That in itself should explain why it's happened." Hermione reasoned making Ron scoff while Neville grinned.

"Sometimes I wonder how we got so lucky yet unlucky with a best friend that cannot do anything even closely resembling normal." The red head groaned even though he was also grinning.

"I wouldn't have it any other way."

"Me neither."

Despite dragging it out they eventually arrived outside Gryffindor Tower where the Fat Lady was sharing a frame with her gossipy friend.

"Caused quite the stir, you three and the one that used to be with you." She teased.

"Well we thought it was getting a bit boring around here." Neville informed her somewhat sarcastically and both ladies tittered.

"They're all waiting for you; it's been quite the evening." She warned, swinging open when they gave the password. The Fat Lady was indeed right; what looked like the entirety of Gryffindor house was crowded in the common room and a wave of noise hit them from what looked like multiple loud discussions. The chatter died away as soon as they were noticed and everyone turned to look at them. There was a range of expressions from the confused to the down right livid and the three of them shared a look before walking further in to stand in front of the first so they could be seen by the whole room.

"So the traitors have returned." Cormac McLaggen was the first to break the silence, his face twisted as he glared at the three of them.

"That's funny, being called a traitor from someone who has repeatedly spat in the face of the Lord of Gryffindor." Hermione countered swiftly, "tell me, McLaggen, do you know what that means or did you hear a big word and decide to use it to make yourself feel smarter."

There was a stunned surprise as everyone seemed unable to understand how passive, polite Hermione Granger hit back in such away. McLaggen sneered at her once he had recovered.

"Potter? Please, he's the biggest traitor of them all; clearly gone dark and shacking up with a the Slytherin, whoever it is."

"Ah I see so that makes him a traitor?" Ron clarified and there was a small mutter of agreement from the crowed though it wasn't a unanimous agreement thankfully.

"I suppose this is exactly like he was psychotic liar last year then." Neville wondered, "you know, when most of you turned on him despite the fact that Harry has never lied to any of you."

"Also like he was obviously the heir of Slytherin and attacking muggleborn students. You know, when you turned on him despite him having a muggleborn best friend and mother." Hermione added deadpanned.

"And of course he most definitely put his own name in the Goblet of Fire for fame and attention." Neville concluded, "despite being the single most famous teenage in our world and having an inheritance that includes the very castle we stand it."

"Ah yes, just like those times; its almost like Harry has consistently proven himself despite people being sheep unable to form their own opinions." Ron wondered sarcastically.

"You also turned on him with the Goblet." A 7th year next to McLaggen pointed out and Ron raised an eyebrow.

"Compulsion charms will do that to a fourth year."

There was a louder murmur throughout the room at that and a few people exchanged looks.

"A likely excuse; you just want to get us to ignore that Potter took up with a Slytherin and has gone dark."

"Shut up, McLaggen." Alicia Spinnett snapped at him, "you don't speak for our house."

"Explain things to us." This time it was Katie Bell who spoke, standing with the rest of the Quidditch team, "you're right. Too many times we're all decided to turn on Harry despite the fact that he's never done anything to any of us except be here. But unless we actually have information we can't make up our minds for ourselves to we have to go on what we hear and what we see."

"And Harry isn't here." Dean added, "none of us have properly seen him since last year, he's off the team and it's like he's vanished from Gryffindor only for this to come out today."

"We'll tell you what we can." Hermione agreed, "more information will have to wait until later."

"Why?" Dean asked and the three of them shared a grimace.

"Things are still dangerous for us right now." Ron admitted, "the reason Harry hasn't been here isn't through a choice of his own."

"So that thing about the love potion
?" Parvati asked sounding horrified.

"Believe it or not that was actually one of the lesser problems we've had." Hermione replied and there was an explosion of noise at that.

"But what could be worse than love potions for line-theft?" Lavender questioned wide eyed.

"Compelled suicide; forged wills; compulsion webs; magical core bindings: take your pick." Neville offered silencing the room. There was a pregnant pause while they digested that and many of the older years especially looked horrified.

"What."

"Many of the things that have happened around Harry, around us, have not been of our making or our own actions." Hermione explained, "you notice we don't even look the same? We've been made to act a certain way for so long we're still in the process of getting ourselves back in control and fix the things that have been broken."

"It was Dumbledore." Katie stated, "that's why you haven't done anything before now, you needed Dumbledore out of the school so you could act."

"Exactly; we would have never been able to even get to the Wizengamot with him still here. He can't track us without having the power of the Castle wards and with Harry being the Gryffindor Lord it gives him more safety here now that Dumbledore is out."

"That doesn't explain the shift to the dark, Potter have the Slytherin seat, nor your endorsing Lucius fucking Malfoy as Minister." Seamus pointed out disgusted.

"Tell me, Seamus, if you could think of a single person who could easily counter Dumbledore and would piss the old man off enough to throw him off his game; who would it be?" Neville inquired lightly and the Irishman grimaced.

"You say that but whatever you have going on doesn't take away from the damage someone like Malfoy could do in power, especially for muggleborns." Alicia pointed out, looking at Katie in concern.

"Do you really think we'd even consider him unless we had that covered already?" Hermione wondered looking slightly offended,

"How are we supposed to know? It looks to us as if you got a pureblood name and then threw us to the wolves." A girl Hermione didn't know, muggleborn by her words, called out looking disgruntled.

"Well that's not what's going on at all." Hermione stated firmly, "I can't give full details now as it's Harry's project, but there are things being put into play that should make the prejudices of muggleborns decrease if not outright disappear."

"That would be a laugh." The same girl scoffed, "that's like racism disappearing in the muggle world."

"Believe me or not, there's nothing I can do about that. I know Harry is working on it currently, he's just working on getting proof to shove down the supremacist throats and he's going to take joy in doing so."

"Proof of what?" Katie asked,

"Proof that there is no such thing as muggleborn." Hermione answered, "proof that the pureblood supremacists have been creating their own problems and what can be done to fix it."

The common room erupted into conversation over that claim. Hermione, Ron and Neville didn't try to stop them as it was such a wild claim, which is why they didn't want to say too much right now until Harry had what he needed.

"And when is this proof going to be available?" Katie wondered looking interested.

"We're going to be talking to Harry tomorrow about things like this; we knew it was going to be a concern if Malfoy actually got in." Ron replied, "but we have Malfoy by the balls; we put him in power and we can remove him just as easily."

"Which is why we need some patience and some, if not support then neutrality from you before you decide to toss us to the wolves." Neville added, "we don't need attacks coming from here when we already have enough of them from outside forces."

"Fine, that can be done." Dean agreed, "that still doesn't answer Slytherin seat and the shift to the dark."

"You honestly think no-one from the light knew what Dumbledore was doing?" Neville scoffed, "my grandmother was one of his biggest enablers; and she put both Harry and I in Dumbledore's direct line of fire."

"We won't touch on my mother."

"Also, disregarding personal grievances, the so called 'light' policies are utterly repugnant." Hermione stated.

"What?"

"How can you say that?"

"Are you mad?"

"Hey!" Alicia yelled over the din, "let her talk!"

"Thank you," Hermione offered her a nod. "Let me ask you all this; who was the best defence teacher we ever had? Not including this one."

"Lupin!"

"Everyone knows Professor Lupin was the best."

"I miss him."

"He was always so nice and helpful even if it wasn't defence."

"Exactly; now tell me why he had to leave? We found out he was a werewolf, sure, but that didn't suddenly make him a bad teacher so why?"

"Well
 the Ministry and the Board didn't want a werewolf teaching?" Parvati offered somewhat unsure.

"Right, the current Ministry and current Board removed a perfectly good teacher from the school all for something he had no control over. There are many other laws restricting werewolves from jobs, marriage, basic medical treatments and now even a law that allows them to be actively hunted." Hermione continued.

"It's horrible, we get it. What's your point?" Seamus asked and Hermione raised an eyebrow at him.

"What orientation is our current government?"

There was a pause as realisation set over the room.

"Light." Alicia answered with a frown.

"You mentioned that you're worried about what Malfoy as Minister would do for muggleborns?" Neville repeated, "what exactly is so great for muggleborns now?"

"Muggleborns don't get anywhere in the Ministry, despite Dumbledore's preaching for equality there isn't a single muggleborn teacher here at Hogwarts, muggleborn's can own their own businesses but they can't get funding or sponsorship for them so they end up burning out before they get anywhere." Ron listed, "all of this is under the light leadership."

There was a wave of unease as a lot of the muggleborns exchanged looks as they realised the words were right, and the purebloods and halfbloods grimaces realising the truth that they hadn't noticed because of their blood.

"And that doesn't touch on the absolute mockery the light has made of our magic and our own holidays." Neville said in disgust.

"Holidays?" A tiny second year boy asked surprised, "witches and wizards have their own holidays?"

Neville motioned to the boy as the purebloods of the room frowned.

"Yeah kid, we do. But the light have deemed many of them dark and evil even if that couldn't be further from the truth." Ron said to him.

"How do you know they're not evil?"

"For the first thing; I can guarantee that most pureblood families still follow them unless they are staunchly light without question." Ron declared and there was a murmur of agreement from a lot of the purebloods in the room, even some halfbloods. "For the second; most other countries celebrate these holidays exclusively and they're still running strong – stronger than we are that's for sure."

"And what is probably the best and worst proof and the thing that really got me to think more on it when I was first discovering it; there are still muggles that practice these holidays." Hermione announced.

"WHAT?"

"How can that be?"

"Liar!"

The last one came from McLaggen's group and Hermione shot them a poisonous look.

"Those who live in the muggle world; who has heard of Pagenism and it's practices."

Every muggleborn and halfblood raised in the muggle world raised their hands looking surprised and the purebloods gasped and burst into conversation.

"My aunt is a Pagen; we always used to do a Samhain ritual on Halloween when we stayed with her." Katie admitted, "you mean that Pagenism originates from the Wizarding world?"

"Back when the muggle and magical worlds weren't separated there was only one primary – I don't want to say religion but it'll have to do. It was only with the rise of Christianity and the denouncement of magic that made Pagenism fade as much as it did within the muggle world. Pagenism has always been a founding part of the magical world and it's only since the fall of Grindelwald and the rise of Dumbledore's power that they've fallen out of favour within the UK." Hermione lectured.

"Because of the decline in our holidays and Dumbledore culling many other of our magical practices we've fallen stagnant. Do you know a hundred years ago there was twice as many subjects, teachers, and staff members here at this school?" Ron reasoned, "this has all been under the so called 'light' orientation."

"We've done a lot of research on this, it isn't something we've done on a whim merely to get back at Dumbledore or whatever you're thinking. We've done this for the betterment of our world." Neville explained, "we've looked at policies, we've looked at the prior voting patterns, we've looked into it all. So while it may seem as if we've done this easily, we really haven't."

"Is there anywhere we can look these things up too?" Alicia asked looking like she was contemplating many things.

"It's not advertised but you can ask for a copy of any law or policy passed in open court; it's a mess but if you owl the Ministry for a copy of all voted policies on magical holidays or werewolves for example they'll send you everything available." Hermione explained, "if you want information on the holidays themselves then you'll need to find a pureblood who has the information in their family libraries as the texts are banned or you could get someone with a muggle connection to get books from the muggle world; they're quite similar when it comes down to explanations."

"You said that Harry would be coming back?" Katie confirmed and the three of them nodded.

"This is always going to be Harry's house, and he is the Lord of Gryffindor."

"Then I think it's about time we give him the benefit of the doubt." Alicia decided, "you've given us enough to think and research on, the least we can do is stay neutral until proven either way."

"Any more questions?" Neville wondered and there were heads shaking all around the room.

"Actually yeah." Lavender piped up, a sly grin on her face as she looked at Ron. "You and Zabini? Only the hottest Slytherin in the school; tell us everything!"

Many burst out laughing at that, Ron included and the final tensions drained from the room. The large crowd dispersed after that, breaking down into their usual friend groups while Hermione, Ron and Neville took a breath of relief. They moved up to the boys dorms where Hermione expanded Neville's bed so they could all sit comfortably and pulled the curtains closed.

"Well that could have been worse." Neville said and Ron snorted.

"I was expecting a lot worse."

"Me too." Hermione agreed, "but then it's not like we have a dumb house its just the usual sheep mentality."

"Also, last year was a shit show all over; they didn't have anything else to work on except the prophet." Neville pointed out, "not saying they should have jumped on the bandwagon but Dumbledore obviously wanted Harry isolated for whatever reason."

"Yeah, there is a lot of things Dumbledore has done that don't make any sense."

"We can add that to the list of things we need to figure out over the next couple of months." Neville said with a sigh, flopping back on his bed and throwing an arm over his eyes. He didn't for one second regret sticking with Harry, by Circe he wouldn't even have his own mind if it wasn't for his godbrother but sometimes the enormity of what they were attempting would sit heavy sometimes. Ignorance was bliss indeed. The sad thing was that he didn't have a choice either way, there was no doubt in his mind that he would have ended up dead in his previous situation anyway, and he wasn't going to lay down and die no matter how much Dumbledore wished it. There was too much to live for, and he was dedicated to doing the best for their world so any children he had would never had to go through anything like he had. Longbottoms were always fighters and he was no different.

"That list is always getting longer." Ron grumbled.

"At least we were able to distract them from the Slytherin seat." Hermione offered and Neville huffed a laugh

"Yeah thankfully because I had no idea how we were going to explain that one."

"Oh yeah that seat belongs to the Dark Lord and Harry is borrowing it for now to fuck with Dumbledore but also because the Dark Lord is lowkey declaring Harry is his and he trusts him completely."

The three of them paused before bursting out laughing slightly hysterically but it made them all feel better.

"Merlin I can't believe it was only this morning we actually went to the Wizengamot." Neville sighed refusing to move from where he was laid.

"Yeah it's been a long day." Hermione agreed, "which is why I'm getting an early night. Tomorrow is going to be another long one."

"You're right; I'd better write those letters tonight so I can catch Hedwig first thing. I wouldn't trust another owl given all things." Ron decided, "it's best to get them out the way."

"Probably for the best." Hermione conceded, "besides, we'll all probably forget tomorrow given all things."

"Come on then, let's leave Neville to sleep as I think he's half way there already." Ron laughed only half joking and Neville waved them off not denying his words.

"I'll leave the bed; you look comfortable." Hermione told him, accepting Ron's hand to help her up. "We'll see you bright and early."

"Night guys."

Ron looked at Hermione, who looked like she was thinking heavily about something.

"What is it?"

"Did you ever imagine that when you ran in to save me from that troll this is how it would end up?" She wondered and Ron blinked before chuckling.

"Merlin in any and all thoughts I had about our futures back then none of them came even remotely close."

"Its mad to think that its only been 5 years."

"Do you ever think about the fact that if you hadn't become friends with us you'd probably be far away from all this drama?" Ron asked her quietly and Hermione whipped around to stare at him.

"What do you mean?"

"Me, Neville and Harry were always going to be in this situation – whether we discovered Dumbledore's manipulations or not – my mother got me involved before I even knew there was a situation to be involved in and Dumbledore set Harry and Neville up with the prophecy. You've only gotten involved because you are our friend, if you would have never spoken to us then there's a possibility that you'd have never drawn Dumbledore's attention."

"You can't say that." Hermione denied immediately, "we don't even know what Dumbledore wants, what his endgame is, so we can't say he wouldn't have turned his attention on me even if I wasn't friends with all of you."

"Hermione
"

"It was different when we thought it was a set up to get rid of the Dark Lord." She insisted, "we could have said firmly that, yes, I got sucked into the schemes because of my vicinity to all of you. But since we discovered the orphanage and the drain on the wards that goes back to before Dippett we can't even speculate what Dumbledore is aiming for."

"I suppose you're right." Ron relented somewhat begrudgingly and she smiled slightly.

"Even if I wasn't, even if you are correct and I'm here by proximity alone, I wouldn't regret it for a second." Hermione declared strongly, "you have been the best friends, siblings, I could have ever asked for or dreamed up. I would walk through a hundred of Dumbledore's twisted trials and disgusting manipulations all over again to stick with you all."

Ron wrapped his arms around the girl that was more of a sister than the one he had by blood and just held on to her for a moment as she squeezed him back.

"I'm glad I was awful to you so we had to save you from a troll." Ron mumbled into her hair and Hermione laughed at that as they came apart.

"You're an idiot Ronald Prewett but I love you for it."

Ron grinned at her.

"I try,"

"I'm going to bed; no doubt I'll be getting an interrogation when I get into the dorms."

"I'm surprised we haven't got one here but hopefully Dean and Seamus are okay for now."

"Wish me luck." Hermione joked, and Ron snickered.

"Give 'em Hel."

The red head watched as Hermione left the dorms before moving over to his trunk to pull out some parchment, a quill and a book to lean on before kicking the trunk shut and climbing into bed behind his curtains. He couldn't help but think on Hermione's words. As much as he hated it, as much as Dumbledore had ruined aspects of his life and irrevocably changed his outlook on life and people, Ron agreed with her. He didn't for one second regret being friends with Harry. It may have been pushed on him and it may have dragged him into situations he'd never have been in if Harry wasn't around, but he had the greatest set of friends anyone could have asked for.

Things were so different now. Eleven year old him would have never imagined being Lord, by Circe sixteen year old him could barely believe it and he was living it. Everything he had been brought up to believe had been twisted in some way and Ron knew deep in his heart that he would never forgive or forget what his parents had done. It wasn't even the actions against him and his friends, it was the fact that they had torn apart what had been a good childhood before he had been forcefully woken up to the lies.

His mother especially had tainted every memory he had ever had with his family and that was something he'll never quite get over. Ron sighed, looking down at his parchment wondering what he was going to say to his brothers. He wanted to trust them, he wanted them to be just like the twins, or better yet completely unknowing of the situation, but he'd never trust a member of his family again without them being vetted.

So much had happened in such a short amount of time and Ron didn't know how to put that into words without giving them anything to work with if they were working for Dumbledore. He huffed and decided to be blunt about it.

Bill/Charlie

I don't know what you've seen or heard about recent happenings back home, but if you care about me even a little don't listen to anything mum has to say. There are things going on that are bigger than you could ever believe.

If you've seen the news I swear I can explain, whether you like that explanation is down to you but I can't do anything about that.

If mum asks you haven't heard from me; she cannot be trusted.

Send my best to Fleur/the dragons

Ron.

He tapped the parchment to dry them before rolling them up to be sent the next day, there wasn't much more he could do and he wasn't willing to put anything of actual importance in the letters just in case. It wasn't just his own neck he was risking. Ron laid down to try and get some sleep even if his mind continued to turn over. There were so many things that he didn't know or understand despite everything they had uncovered and he wondered if he would ever get a full explanation.

The things his mother and Ginny had done alone baffled him; Molly obviously knew about him taking the Lordship as she had obliviated him once before over it so it couldn't just be about money surely? Ginny was unfortunately a product of circumstance, but at the same time, she had been taught right from wrong as they had all been and decided that her wants were better.

Ron knew they weren't the best examples, all three of them had blood on their hands but all of their actions had been in response to a situation Dumbledore had put them in or in defence of another. Even the auror troupe Harry had taken out a few months ago were to save the wolves. It upset him more than he cared to admit that he couldn't say for sure which direction Bill and Charlie were going to lean towards, and as for Percy? Who knew with him. He had always been incredibly selfish, he was the most Slytherin of them all and Ron didn't use that as a compliment. He would sell them all out to better himself without cause or hesitation, as he showed last year, but now Ron was left questioning if it was everything he had seen on the surface or had Percy discovered something that Molly and Dumbledore couldn't cover up in time?

Was it even worth writing to him to ask? Percy was about the last thing Ron wanted to deal with on top of everything. They had to plan for the effects on the latest Wizengamot session, they had fundamentally changed things to a degree that hadn't been seen in decades and now things were going to have to been taken on a session by session basis. It would effect all of their future plans.

The bonus was they had Malfoy as the Minister now so they had to make sure his campaign was some of their best work because losing the elections would be a blow that would take months, possibly over a year, to recover from. It wasn't like they could immediately murder the elected Minister to keep Malfoy in power, it would be way too obvious, and as Scrimegeor was running against him they didn't have a hope of using the Imperius to get control of him if he did win. Ron sighed to himself and turned over trying to will himself to sleep.

It was no use ruminating over what they needed to do without knowing exactly what that was, knowing their luck they'd have several more things to deal with by the time the meeting came around. At least he wouldn't have to deal with people throwing themselves at him for his title like, Harry, Hermione and Neville, Ron thought of Blaise's rather dramatic kiss in front of the school. If he had any insecurities over their relationship in regards to it being hidden they were well and truly dashed by that alone. He should have known really; Blaise had introduced him to his mother and told him all the time that he couldn't wait until he could show everyone they were together. Still it was nice to be reminded.

The rest of them were going to have a hell of a time and Harry was going to be spending half his time calming down a homicidal Dark Lord on top of everything else. Ron was pleased his best friend had managed get his happiness but he wondered if he could have settled for someone less concerning for the health of everyone around them and then he scoffed. Who else was going to keep up with Harry at the end of the day? Hermione was probably going to be in a full relationship with Rabastan come the end of the week, the younger of the Lestrange brothers was unlikely to be happy with the uptake in attention Hermione was about to receive and then she'd been in a similar situation to Harry.

Neville was the only one completely unattached so they would have to watch him. Ron'd have to remind Harry to have Dobby or Winky watch Neville's food as well as Luna's in case of others attempting love potions on the Longbottom Lord. They didn't have to worry about Luna, Harry's declaration of her being his sister in the entrance hall would keep most people away and the ones daring enough to try would be a visual representation of exactly why they weren't good enough for Luna. Ron groaned to himself sitting up and rubbing his hands over his face trying to shut his brain up with little success.

"Dobby?"

The eccentric house elf popped in beaming.

"What can Dobby bes doing for Master Harry Potter's Ron?"

"Can you grab me a sleeping potion out of Draco's stores? Let me give you a note to leave in it's place." Ron asked, summoning a scrap of parchment, quickly scrawling a note to Draco and handing it to the elf.

"Right away, sir."

Dobby popped away and was back before Ron had put his quill away.

"Thanks Dobby."

The elf beamed at him once again before popping back to wherever he was before this and Ron shook his head, he'd never understand house elves but he thought they were great. He downed the potion, grimacing at the taste, and put the phial on his bedside table and laid back down. Hopefully that would settle his brain, Hermione was right, they had another long day coming and they needed their wits about them. Merlin he hoped Blaise and Draco were getting on as well as they did with the Slytherins.


Blaise wondered not for the first time exactly how quickly it would be linked back to him if he used some of his mothers magics to cull a few of the more brainless Slytherins. There was a possibility that he was going to need it. He and Draco didn't have the benefit of a long walk to a tower to plan their attack for the Slytherin House politics they were going to be inundated with, so they'd prepped what they could knowing that they'd never be able to cover all angles anyway.

Draco had sarcastically wondered if it was going to be his father's Minister's position that was going to take up the most time or Harry using the Slytherin seat and unfortunately he was right to be concerned. The moment they stepped foot in to the Slytherin common room it became apparent they had been waited for. Oh it wasn't obvious to an outsider, however, all of the fifth year and above students were in the common room while the younger years were tucked away, and there wasn't a single piece of homework out.

Blaise had made his way to his fellow 6th years with Draco by his side, they sat down and got comfortable pulling out books and waited; they weren't about to make things easy. There was low talking in the room clearly about the paper and a few less than stealthy side eyes were thrown in their direction before Ignatius Hawkthawn finally got up and came over to them.

The male leader of Slytherin House with Selene Gage as his female counterpart, Hawkthawn was the son of an Ancient and Esteemed House, the same level as House Peverell, and if he had been the heir he would have been the clear leader of the Slytherin House without question as soon as he reached 7th year. However being the third born son came with the downside of having his place potentially challenged when the heirs of Houses Malfoy, Nott and Greengrass appeared.

Daphne had ceded her placement as female leader of their year group back in first year to Pansy having no wish to rule Slytherin, rather preferring to watch with Davis has her unquestionably loyal sidekick. With Pansy's removal and the House Parkinson's fall from Grace the position had fallen back on the Ice Queen of Slytherin and she had made her place clear and concise. That probably went a long way in settling Slytherin House over the past couple of months; their year had pissed a lot of their House off due to the constant battles with the Gryffindors.

Draco had easily taken the lead position for their year, and while in his early years he didn't have the knowledge or power to challenge Hawkthawn for the leader position he could have done so from fifth year, and now with Lucius' placement as the Minister that was all the more apparent. On the other hand, their public declaration of their alliance of Harry Potter could go against him if they didn't handle this correctly. Blaise wasn't particularly fussed for himself, he had more power internationally than he had right now in the UK and until he took over House Zabini he's was merely along for the pleasure of watching the games.

Of course, what the rest of Slytherin House was yet to find out was just how high up on the food chain Harry Potter was these days, and honestly that was going to be the piest de resistance. It probably spoke to his inner sadist that he wanted some idiot Slytherins to push Harry, especially a Dark aligned idiot, because there was no doubt in Blaise' mind that the Dark Lord would soon do something to introduce Harry and the rest of his group as Dark allies and Blaise was always up for some entertainment.

He was paying attention to the conversation between Draco and Hawkthawn by not paying attention, he didn't doubt that Draco could handle himself so he focused more on the rest of the common room who were all listening in. Some of them weren't even subtle about it.

"You understand the ramifications of having an open alliance with someone like Potter-Black, of course." Hawkthawn was saying finally getting to the part that most of the people in the room actually cared about. The atmosphere in the common room changed instantly and even those who were putting on a good show of not listening stopped to pay full attention. Draco didn't take his eyes off of Hawkthawn, adjusting his position so he could lean back and fold his legs almost carelessly in a very calculated so of ease.

"I don't believe you understand the just what has changed with Potter-Black coming into the open as he has done." Draco countered easily. "

"But you do? It hasn't escaped anyone's notice that both you and Zabini knew this was coming." Hawkthawn pointed out, "the original de-escalation of dramatics of your year group with the Gryffindors – Potter-Black in particular – could and was brushed off with the removal of heiress Parkinson. Now, however, it is more apparent that you have been working with Potter-Black since September at minimum."

"I won't deny it."

"Your justification? Outside politics aside, Potter-Black is a known enemy of this House for his blatant disregard of Slytherin House and his continued attacks on us."

"Ah but outside politics must be taken into consideration in this case." Draco told him calmly, "as it is very much outside politics that has caused such a shift."

"Oh?" Hawkthawn sounded sceptical and the blond sighed almost pityingly.

"Tell me, what major shift has happened recently that could have effected Potter-Black's behaviour in this school?"

Hawkthawn raised an eyebrow regarding Draco coolly.

"Dumbledore's removal. You believe there is more to their separation that what has been breached within the papers."

"We know there is." Draco confirmed, "we know it is no mere separation but an irrevocable break in allegiance."

"An allegiance that wasn't compelling enough to hold onto." Blaise murmured slyly, smirking in amusement when his words sent a wave of murmurs through the room. Draco shot him a look filled with levity before his eyes went back to Hawkthawn, who looked to be doing some rapid fire thinking.

"Have we ever met with Potter-Black?" He asked slowly and Draco smirked.

"This evening."

"Ah," Hawkthawn shared a look with Gage, who had remained on the far side of the room for the length of the conversation before nodding. "the until we meet him we cannot make an informed decision on how your actions have affected the House."

"No you cannot." Draco agreed, "and as I have much to focus on elsewhere currently I do not believe it will cause any considerable issues."

Which was Draco telling everyone that there would be no play for leadership on his part for now. Pointed looks and low conversations erupted around them as the rest of Slytherin House took in the meaning behind those words and Blaise almost shook his head over the increased level of scrutiny Harry was about to get from the Slytherin House; he bet the green eyed menace decided to be as Harry-ish as possible to fuck with them.

"I see," Hawkthawn have Draco a piercing look before rising to his feet with a nod. "Congratulations on your father's promotion, Heir Malfoy."

"My gratitude, Mr Hawkthawn."

Draco looked at Blaise as the leader of the Slytherin House slipped away but Blaise shook his head slightly, eyes flicking to the left slightly where the Slytherin crest resided proudly on display. The main question had yet to be asked and it was going to be a dark inclined House that would do it, it just depended on which House as to how this conversation was going to go.

Blaise blinked once, the only show of surprise he allowed himself, when it was Astrid Rowle that took Hawkthawn's place in front of Draco. The blond's eyebrow twitched but his face otherwise betrayed nothing as he returned her blank look with one of his own. Rowle was a very misleading figure: she was slight, and fair, and looked more like a doll than anything else, but she was a vicious opponent both with a wand and without. It was an open secret that she was set to take over the heirship of the Rowle House upon her graduation, her older brother Tyrrin was not the most politically minded and preferred to spend his time on the duelling ring rather than in the political one.

The House itself was also loyal to not only the Dark but to the Dark Lord; she knew exactly who the Slytherin House belonged to. Neither blond seemed as if they wanted to start the conversation and this time Blaise knew that Draco would speak first; Astrid had more patience than most of the Slytherin House combined. He wasn't disappointed:

"Ask the question." Draco told her. She remained quiet for a moment longer before gracefully inclining her head.

"Your pretty words about Potter-Black are one thing; whether we believe you or not it doesn't matter because we are unlikely to receive the whole picture. But his claim on the Slytherin Proxy can only mean one thing."

"Only one?" Draco wondered somewhat sarcastically and she raised an unimpressed eyebrow that didn't phase the Malfoy Heir in the slightest.

"It's a taunt." She stated evenly.

"Oh?"

"Yes; the real question is who it was aimed at."

"And what is your speculation regarding this theory?" Draco inquired lightly.

"Is it a taunt for the old fool, to wave in his face something he dreads to have happened? To indicated that there is no return to being the Golden Boy, a permanent separation and an open declaration." She postulated, head tilted slightly as she watched Draco for any indication that she may be right.

"Or is it a taunt for the one that seat belongs to? A show of what could be taken and what can be used; a warning of what's to come."

"Conquer or conquest." Draco surmised.

"The first, of course, could be a boon depending on who Potter-Black is. It would be more than a step for us in way it has not been for many years." Astrid mused before a cold look came over her face and her tone went frosty. "The second would be an outright insult fit for someone of the intelligence of Dumbledore's Golden boy and made a bigger enemy."

"Then you wait for word to be spread." Draco pointed out, "You'll know soon enough."

"You will not confirm."

"You will not believe."

"Ah but that in itself is an answer." She stated, a slight smirk curling on to her face and Draco merely raised an eyebrow not giving anything away.

"Is it?"

"The negotiation for such an alliance would have been something to see; Potter-Black must have more to offer than first believed."

For the first time since either of them arrived in the common room a real expression came to Draco's face in the form of a rather savage grin as he threw his head back and laughed.

"Oh you have no idea."

"The
 alliance is something to see." Blaise agreed sharing an amused glance with Draco.

"There will be further changes than believed then,"

"There already have been," Draco assured, a smirk remaining on his face, "there is more going on than anyone can possibly comprehend."

"But if you wish to try something with Potter-Black please do inform me beforehand so I can prepare myself." Blaise put in slyly and he saw Draco bite back a rather undignified snort, the blond shaking his head instead.

"The we too shall wait." Rowle decided, "and if you're wrong
"

"That's for you to decide on."

"It's a dangerous game you're playing, Heir Malfoy."

"It's only dangerous when you don't know the rules." He dismissed and she nodded once before turning to Blaise with a raised eyebrow.

"What's your stake in this, Zabini?" She asked outright and Blaise barked a laugh.

"I like games, they're entertaining." He told her. "Especially when the win will be exquisite."

"And Prewett?"

"Is mine." He stated coldly, all traces of levity leaving his face. Normally he wouldn't allow himself to show such an obvious 'weakness' but honestly he kind of wished one of the Slytherins went for Ron. Even if he removed himself from the situation, if there was anything left of them when the red head had finished of them there really wouldn't be once Harry was done. Potter-Black took an attack on his people worse than an attack on his own person and Blaise was just twisted enough to want to see someone with that much magical power lose it.

"A very entertaining game." Astrid mused and Blaise bared his teeth in an approximation of a grin.

"No one else will think so if they go that route." He assured her.

"You've made your choice."

"It wasn't difficult."

"I'm sure we will all witness the consequences." She acknowledged standing up, "it will be a fall out to remember either way."

Blaise watched her go, eyes flicking around to take in the reactions of the other students that had parents who followed the Dark Lord and he could tell some of them were still unconvinced. Draco had obviously seen the same thing because a smirk touched his face before he picked his bag up and motioned towards the dorms. Blaise gathered his own things and followed him up, thankful that he and Draco had been assigned a room together for once; the blonde could be a diva to live with and there were only so many times he could walk in while the twins were there without going mad.

"Mulciber?"

"And Travers," Blaise confirmed, "both out of attendance of the balls this Yule for various reasons."

"You think the Act will be released before they make a move?" Draco wondered dropping down on his bed with a groan.

"I really hope not."

"You are a sadistic bastard." Draco laughed and Blaise smirked.

"We have so many options! Do they go straight for Snake, and deal directly with him and then a pissed off Dark Lord? Do they go after Ron and Hermione? Where they then have to deal with both of them, then myself and Rabastan, and then a pissed off Harry? Do they try all three?" Blaise sighed in relish, "someone is going to get hurt."

"If we weren't friends I'd be scared of you." Draco informed him seriously and Blaise snickered.

"Mamma says it's better to be feared than laughed at."

"Blaise your mother is terrifying." The blond deadpanned and Blaise smiled at him with obnoxious sweetness.

"Aw thanks Draco, she'll be so pleased."

"Ugh I despise you." Draco complained, "I'm going to bed; tomorrow is going to be a nightmare."

"Speak for yourself, I can't wait to see the Wizengamot memory."

"Yes, wonderful, and then we follow it by planning the takeover of our country; no pressure."

"You are very negative, Draco." Blaise taunted and the blond threw him a look of disgust.

"We're going to be under inspection from the very moment we leave this room tomorrow until the Dark Lord makes the announcement of the alliance, and even then it doesn't mean the scrutiny will leave us only lessen."

"We're taking over the country, Draco, their opinions are eventually going to mean absolutely nothing to us." Blaise waved off, "besides, this will be your House next year which means we have at a push five to six months left."

"And if I get challenged?"

"By who exactly?" Blaise questioned with a scoff, "there isn't a House than can match up and you'll wipe the floor with anyone else."

"I supposed."

Blaise couldn't help but roll his eyes and the blond's concern. Draco got like this every now and then and Blaise often wondered how the Malfoy Heir lived with the dichotomy of being so arrogant people often wanted to curse him repeatedly and being an anxious mess. Blaise got dizzy over it so who knew how Draco felt. He wasn't wrong however, they would be monitored until the Acts were released and the Dark Lord confirmed the alliance.

Unlike Draco, Blaise was looking forward to tomorrow eagerly. He'd plan to continuously remind everyone that Ron belonged to him just to make sure there was no mistake in people's minds and, something Draco seemed to have forgotten, there was bound to be another paper which was going to stir up the cauldron once again. He'd have to write to his mother tomorrow, she was bound to get a kick out of the mess that was currently happening within the UK and she always had valuable insights for him.

Blaise was thankful he had insisted on joining Draco when he had noticed the blond acting out of character back before Yule, this was the most entertainment he'd had in years, and as he had told Rowle the win was set to be more than he could ever achieve on his own. Blaise laid back on his bed with a smirk and closed his eyes, the next couple of months were set to be fantastic.


Never before had he felt such rage burn through his veins. It was life fire and he found it difficult to breathe through such feelings, his magic swirling and destroying things around him beyond his control. He hadn't lost control to such a degree since he had been a young man, but today years of planning had imploded before his eyes and there was nothing he could do about it. What was worse, he, Albus Dumbledore, didn't even know when exactly all his work had been destroyed and that was unacceptable.

The last couple of months had been blow after blow and he'd thought upon his return to Britain he'd be able to start doing some severe damage control. The opening session of the Wizengamot allowed him to witness the aftermath of the Yule season and steer the Ministry in the direction he wanted for the year. The return of Theodore Nott Sr had been a surprise, there must have been something that happened over Yule for him to return, but in the grand scheme of things it was nothing Dumbledore needed to be concerned over.

What followed, however, was the worst possible scenario Dumbledore could have imagined. He was unsuspecting and unprepared, and worst till, he had allowed it to show to the world. His mind had span over the possibilities of how and, more importantly, when the spells and potions had failed; he had been informed that Ginevra had received the Potter Promise ring as a gift for Christmas after all. The four of them, Potter, Weasley, Granger and Longbottom looked as if they belonged in the Wizengamot, that wasn't something that had been recovered in a mere couple of days which meant somewhere along the line Dumbledore had gotten complacent.

But what had made Dumbledore go cold down to his bones was Potter's claiming of the Slytherin Seat followed by the hint that he had joined Tom. How could this have happened? There had been no hint of such a thing occurring, and Tom was outright insane so how had they even had the opportunity to meet? Then as if the key players of his work being ripped away from his hadn't been enough the despicable cretins had succeeded in getting Lucius Malfoy, the embodiment of slippery, in as Interim Minister destroying the months of groundwork Dumbledore had put in to get Scrimgeor into that position. And throughout all of this he hadn't known it was coming.

Even confronting the foolish brats after the session hadn't granted him answers only that they knew he had spelled them. Dumbledore knew he could have handled the confrontation better, he could have handled the whole session better, but he had been playing catch up from the moment they had arrived and it had shaken him more than he liked to admit. He had put in so many years of work into using them as cornerstones of his plan and now it was destroyed in such a way that he wouldn't be able to recover it without utterly reworking everything.

They had created the perfect situation to safeguard themselves and Dumbledore was loathe to admit it but he'd been played. No word had come from the Dark side, but Dumbledore was at least expecting that as he doubted Tom would trust any of his followers with the knowledge he was working with Harry Potter of all people. Dumbledore hadn't been distracted enough not to see that Lucius had been surprised by his nomination. He'd have to push his people within the Dark to look for traces of Potter. Severus may have been his most prominent spy, but he was by far from his only one, and in this case he would have to convince Severus the priority it was to force Potter back to the light.

It didn't escape his memory that Severus had not sworn a vow to him but to protect the brat, so if Potter stayed within the Dark then he would lose Severus forever and the potions master had been invaluable over the years sometimes in ways he was not aware of.

"Have you calmed yourself yet?" A cool voice to his left brought Dumbledore out of his musings. He took a deep breath and fortified his Occlumency shields forcing his magic to settle as he regained himself.

"Today has been
 trying." He turned to face the other man, who was regarding him with a touch of amusement that Dumbledore didn't really appreciate.

"You have always put too much stock in your little games, Albus."

"My little games had be all but ruling that country for five decades, Wendt." Dumbledore bit out.

"And I warned you that there was always going to be a chance that it would unravel." Wendt pointed out carelessly.

"We agreed that the plan was necessary." Dumbledore snapped and Wendt waved him off.

"For the initial build up." He brushed off, "it was never meant to be permanent. Your powerbase was for-,"

"I am well aware of what it was for." Dumbledore growled, glaring at the other man, "and the set up was wound up, ready for the fall out."

"So we have to improvise a little now. You've already done enough there for it to be of little consequence."

"Do not underestimate them-,"

"Like you have?" Wendt inquired lightly, "I told you they should have been dealt with but you wanted to play your games, Albus."

"The outcome from the first was better than either of us could have predicted. It was worth it." Dumbledore stated and the other nodded.

"It was, I don't disagree,"

"I still need to maintain my presence there until it is truly impossible." Dumbledore decided, "there has been to much work put in just to scrap it all. There are still things we need there."

"Then you need to stop playing for the whole country and focus on the prize." Wendt told him seriously, "you've laid enough groundwork for them; his sanity is shot you need to have patience."

"Very well." Dumbledore agreed and Wendt flashed him a grin.

"Now you need to get ready to meet with your disciples. Come on, I want to see the beard again, Albus."

"Must you insist on mocking me every time I do this?" Dumbledore sighed, shaking his head even as he waved his wand in a complex pattern over his head.

"The kindly grandfather routine tickles me."

"It is effective." Dumbledore countered, "and easy to underestimate."

"What will you tell your Order?" Wendt questioned and Dumbledore gave him a smirk.

"Why the truth of course. The boy and his little friends have gone dark; they've betrayed us all."

Wendt barely bit back a snort.

"I'm sure they'll lap that up."

"Despite recent events I am good at what I do."

"Oh I know; it just amuses me the truth you weave between your lies, Albus." Wendt shook his head, "I shall keep an ear out when I return to work to see the international ramifications; I do not wish to act in a way that will damage my position given all things."

"Good, I am sure there will be talk, there always is, but we should be able to contain it." Dumbledore acknowledged, "the lack of international relations will see to that."

"Then go, I shall call ours and apprise them of the situation." Wendt told him, "keep me updated."

"I shall." Dumbledore nodded to the other man before aparating away finally fully calm with a plan in mind. It would be too easy to convince the Order that Potter and his friends had gone Dark because they had done it for him. He could play off his reaction as betrayal to them, and those who were in the know of his plans for the brat would have the story edited slightly. Molly was going to be furious no doubt, but that was something that could be managed, he would just promise her something or somebody else for her daughter.

Without his position in Hogwarts finding any information about the brat and his friends would be difficult, especially if they had discovered just how involved Ginevra had been, so Dumbledore would have to find someone else to integrate with them. Right now he had to collect as much information as he could and he had to put the Order to work before those not involved with all his plans started asking questioned they didn't need the answer to. This was a setback but he was Albus Dumbledore and he would not be deterred from his goals.

He had been playing this game for far longer than the brat and his friends, and he would not allow everything he had worked for be destroyed by children who had no idea the true scale of the board. No, this situation was problematic, but not unfixable. He would prevail, he had to.

Notes:

There we have it! I'm all up-to-date and closed on a bit of added mystery.

Hope you enjoyed this chapter even if it was a little different.

Feel free to let me know what you think <3

Chapter 58

Notes:

Whoo I’ve returned! This story has been giving me absolute hell! It did not want to be written until all of this came spilling out and I had to make some edits to what I thought this chapter was going to be.

I apologise to everyone who was expecting the big meeting to be in this chapter but the characters just did not want to cooperate. Instead, I give you another article and a howler (3 guesses who from lol).

For those of you that follow me rather than just this story, yet again my brain has been giving me other ideas and I have started a collection of ABO oneshots across multiple fandoms. If you ever seem me posting other works and are worried I’m not focussed on my WIPs, don’t fret, it usually means the idea wouldn’t leave me alone and once I’ve written it I can go back to my older things.

Thank you to everyone who had read, followed and favourited this story and stuck with it given my less than regular updating schedule.

Read the tags please!
#Parseltongue#

The plot is mine - I've put blood, sweat and tears into this lol

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

On with the story!

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

Never before had it mattered as much as it did that they look and act perfect on what should have been a regular school day and Harry was well aware that the scrutiny they were facing would be at an all-time high. It was something he was trying to convince the amorous Dark Lord of as the man didn’t seem to want to let him go. Harry had no word from any of his friends so he had yet to he had no idea how Gryffindor and Slytherin Houses had reacted, and while it wasn’t a crucial place for them Luna had sent no word for Ravenclaw House either.

“You know today is going to be crucial in establishing our future reputation in this school.” Harry told the Dark Lord, who had once again pulled him back down on the bed.

“Yes and everyone not already in a relationship or betrothed is going to be eyeing you like a particularly nice steak.” Tom grumbled, “I loathe that you appear unattached.”

“Remember what I said yesterday?”

“Oh I plan to display who you belong to as soon as we leave the scrutiny of this castle.” Tom assured him, “you are mine and mine alone; the sooner that is established in everybody’s minds the better.”

“Honestly, how you ever managed to pretend to be an innocent angel is beyond me.” Harry laughed, gently running his hand through Tom’s hair as the other man had buried his face in his neck. “You know, usually it’s me being the sloth.”

“Clearly you had the right idea.”

Harry laughed at that, tugging at Tom’s hair until the man looked up at him.

#I love you, you know#

Whether it was the words or the use of parseltongue Harry didn’t know but Tom’s eyes closes and a shudder went through his whole body. Harry couldn’t help but relish in being able to effect Tom that much so easily; it was a heady power.

“You are dangerous, my darling Snake.” Tom murmured, crimson eyes almost glowing as he looked Harry over.

“You wouldn’t have looked twice if I wasn’t.”

Tom smirked at him.

“Danger is thrilling.”

“I think my Gryffindor is rubbing off on you.” Harry joked and Tom scoffed.

“Don’t be insulting.”

“I’ll have you know it’s only Gryffindor tendencies that have brought us here.”

“I hate that that’s true.” Tom sighed, finally releasing him so Harry could get up and resume getting ready for the day.

“There there.” Harry consoled mockingly, dodging the stinging hex aimed for his ass. “I wouldn’t damage that if I were you, you’d be the one to suffer for it.”

“You’re the worst.”

“But not wrong.”

Tom ignored his final remark and went grumbling into the shower much to Harry’s amusement. Dobby had pressed and perfected his uniform for him so Harry was looking the best he ever had in school clothes and he made sure to style his hair into a purposeful mess to finish off his appearance. His bag was already prepped and ready and Harry merely had to slip on his shoes before he was ready to go. He made sure to have Tom a cup of tea ready for when he got out of the shower and almost rolled his eyes when the older man latched onto him once again as they made to leave.

“It’s really getting to you, isn’t it?” Harry remarked in surprise as he read the other man’s feelings through their connection, “despite knowing I’m yours.”

“I do not doubt you.” Tom stated with a surety that pleased Harry greatly, “but you and I both know that Love Potions and spells were not something solely Dumbledore’s ideas; with your title as Lord Potter it would have been enough for the desperate to try. Now, with everything you have revealed, those who would do anything to get themselves some power will be after you. It infuriates me.”

“I’m protected from those things, thankfully. We only had to make Dumbledore and the She-Weasel believe I wasn’t.” Harry pointed out and Tom sighed deeply.

“That is not the point.”

“You’re right.” Harry agreed, “but remember I’ll be spending the day surrounded by my most trusted and then reliving it entirely with you.”

Tom closed his eyes and clearly used occlumency to bury what he was feeling as suddenly their link went eerily calm.

“I am not normally like this.” He murmured, indicating his, Harry acknowledged, uncharacteristic clinging.

“Hm I know,” Harry agreed and then he flashed him a slight grin, “I can’t say I don’t like it if that makes you feel better.”

“A little,” Tom allowed, “let’s go else I keep you here to myself.”

“I’ll see you on the other side.” Harry joked, before shadowing to his rooms where his friends seemed to have congregated. They greeted him cheerfully which Harry took for a good sign as he threw himself on the couch with a smirk.

“How did it go?”

Luna spoke first as the others were too busy sharing looks to answer straight away; his tiny blond sister gave him a rather sinister looking grin that Harry was overjoyed to see on her delicate face.

“That well.”

“I believe any and every girl that has ever so much as looked at me in a negative manner had nightmares of your retribution last night.” She told him and Harry snorted.

“So that damn well should.” He grumbled, “not that you’d leave me much if you truly went off.”

“No, but they don’t know that.” She shrugged and Harry shook his head.

“The politics?”

“They’re going to be true Ravenclaws on that front: watch, learn and research.” She told him, “the subtle nuances may have gone over their heads but the power shift hasn’t, nor has the fact that this was only done when Dumbledore was gone. Already the reason why Ginny’s actions are so heinous have made their way around the common room so I’ve no doubt there will be a plethora of discussions cropping up in the near future.”

“You’ll be bombarded soon enough,” Harry pointed out and Luna nodded.

“I already know what to say and what to hide.”

“Of course you do.” Harry shook his head with a laugh before turning to the Gryffindor and Slytherin section of his group. “Well?”

“Both better and worse than we expected.” Hermione offered and Draco nodded.

“Same for use.”

“Okay, Slytherin go. I care less about them overall right now because most of the politics there is still in their parents hands and I have the ‘mot and the Dark Sect to deal with that.” Harry decided.

“Inner politics: Slytherin House as a whole has decided to take on a watch and wait stance as its been established that they have never actually met Harry Potter-Black.” Draco told him, “they do not want to be seen as making an uninformed decision in regards to this new development.”

“The break in alliance with Dumbledore has thrown them then.”

“More so with the hint that it wasn’t voluntary in the first place.” Draco agreed and Harry raised an eyebrow. “Blame Blaise for that.”

“I have to get my kicks somewhere.” The Italian said with a shrug and Harry snorted.

“Okay, hit me with the outer.”

“Outer politics have been speculated of an allegiance between you and the Dark Lord, but there are more people sceptical of that than of your break with Dumbledore.” Draco continued and Harry nodded.

“Nothing I didn’t expect to be honest.”

“Us too, but we think some of them may be stupid about it.” Blaise said and then a nasty smirk twisted onto his face, “I hope they act on that.”

“You’re such a sadist.” Harry laughed, “got any names for me?”

“Mulcibre and Travers were the most obvious ones and they’re not the smartest of people on top of that.” Draco said, “there were others, of course, but they’re less likely to act figuring that the repercussions would be deeply unpleasant if they got things wrong.”

“That’s an understatement,” Blaise muttered with glee much to Harry’s amusement.

“You are really counting on someone doing something stupid, aren’t you?”

“Honestly, there are so many ways for them to fuck up and pay for it that I’ll entertained for years.”

Harry looked at Ron with a raised eyebrow and the red head grinned.

“Mate, you cannot judge; we all know who you’re sleeping with.”

Multiple snorts rang out at that and Harry barked out a laugh.

“Well you’re not wrong.” He allowed, “what I want to know is how many of those here were in attendance of the Yule balls this season?”

“We’re pretty evenly spread thinking about it,” Draco said after a moment’s thought, “though, of the current Slytherins in the school the majority weren’t there.”

“That would explain a few things.”

“What do you mean?”

“Who was I dancing with at the Nott and Malfoy balls?” Harry pointed out and Draco and Blaise blinked in remembrance.

“Oh yeah! The act still hasn’t been lifted so even those who attended wouldn’t be able to speak of it yet.”

“That also explains some of the pointed looks when Rowle was speaking to us.” Blaise mused, “well when the act is lifted I cannot wait to see the secondary reactions.”

“You just want drama,” Draco scoffed and Blaise shot him a rather vicious smirk.

“Tell me they won’t be gold.”

Draco didn’t answer and Harry laughed and turned to the others.

“Come on then, hit me with the Gryffindors before we go down to breakfast.”

“For the most part they’re actually going to sit neutral.” Hermione announced and Harry blinked at her in surprise.

“Really?”

“Well they can hardly argue with the fact that the current government and their policies are fair and good for muggleborn people and purebloods alike and we have a light government.” Hermione pointed out.

“Ah you overloaded them with research and logic.”

“Yeah, and it worked.” Neville confirmed, “I think after last year and Dumbledore’s fall from grace really helped.”

“Not only that but we promised them you were actually working on something to reduce the stigma surrounding muggleborns.” Ron added, “and that you’ll be back soon enough to prove it to them.”

“I’ll move the muggleborn research to the top and if I do it right I should be able to link my return with it. I need actual muggleborn – other than you Paws – to help me make my point.” Harry said thoughtfully.

“That’ll help for sure.”

“Problems?”

“We managed to skim over the Slytherin seat for now, but it’ll probably come back up unless you have a mighty good distraction.” Ron picked up and Harry nodded.

“Again, I’ll use the muggleborn research as a deterrence.”

“McLaggen and his sycophants are going to be trouble either way.”

“He’s always been a dick.” Harry brushed off and Hermione huffed in disgust.

“He’s a pig.”

“I’m still surprised that you’ve managed to talk the majority of the House into neutrality.”

“I think the shame of having repeatedly turned on you and being proven wrong, then finding out that you’re the Lord of Gryffindor helped a great deal.” Neville offered and Harry shook his head.

“Didn’t take much then.”

“We can probably put a lot of that on Dumbledore too.” Ron pointed out and Harry raised an eyebrow.

“Oh?”

“He had the chance to clear a lot of issues up in regards to you and never did which left you isolated.”

“True. Can’t have too many people close to me or they may pick up on rapid changes of behaviour and even Dumbledore has a limit to how many people he can spell.”

“So we’ve managed to talk them down to neutral and researching the things we’ve told them which means you should be clear on the Gryffindor front. But they’re notoriously impatient so don’t leave things too long.”

“I won’t, you know what we have planned for the upcoming weeks so hopefully I’ll be able to make time to focus on the muggleborn issue as that’s what going to keep cropping up.” Harry said and Hermione nodded.

“I also wrote to Bill and Charlie and wanted to borrow Hedwig to send it off.”

“Normally I’d agree but if they’re being watched she’s very noticeable.” Harry pointed out and Ron grimaced.

“I didn’t think about that.”

“Use mine,” Blaise offered, “Venus could use a good stretch and I’m sending a letter off for Mamma so she could make a round trip.”

“Thanks, we’ll go just before the meeting?”

“Sure,”

“Do you have any idea how they’re going to react?” Harry questioned and Ron shook his head.

“No, which is why I wrote now because if there is any sort of chance we can get them neutral or even onside I want to do it.”

“You and me both.” Harry agreed, “I do not want to find out exactly what Bill has been taught by the goblins.”

A collective shudder rippled through the group and the thought and Luna smiled slightly, eyes distance as she took in something only she could see.

“I think you’ll get to them in time, before your explanations or reasonings would go unheard.”

“So they’ll listen?” Ron wondered eagerly and Luna nodded.

“There are so many decisions riding on such a small thing.” She murmured, “the outcome is unknown right now, but as long as the letter is sent today you’ll get to have the conversation.”

“Well that’s something.” Ron sighed, “I don’t like that this one thing is so riddled that the outcome is uncertain but that means there must be a Hel of a conversation coming up for me.”

“We’ll all be there for you, Ron.” Hermione assured him and the rest of them nodded.

“Yeah, I mean, Bill knows how the goblins work, I’ll get official records for what’s been done and we have the official medical reports now too so that can be used and proof.”

“That will help a great deal.” Luna stated, “Gryffindor only, for now.”

“Right, we’ll keep it to us until we know how they’re going to go.” Ron decided, “thanks Luna.”

“We better get to breakfast.” Neville noted, looking at the time. “I want to beat the paper this time, see the reactions before and after as such.”

“I feel like we’ve corrupted you.” Harry mused with a grin, and Neville smirked with a shrug.

“As Blaise said, we have to get our entertainment somewhere.”

“We all have so many problems.” Hermione muttered but she was grinning so it took the sting out of her words.

“Where are we sitting today?” Draco wondered and they grabbed their bags and made their way out of the rooms.

“Ravenclaw again for now.” Harry decided, “only because I want to drive in that Luna is with us. We want to be seen as the good people so we can’t have any mysterious disappearances.”

“Shame,” Luna, Blaise and Neville muttered much to the amusement of the rest.

“We’ll go back to our House tables when we have something more to offer.”

“Merlin this week is going to be a nightmare.” Ron complained and got sounds of agreement throughout the group. They made their way towards the Great Hall discussing everything that could happen throughout the week getting more and more elaborate as they went, as soon as they heard other people their masks went up and as a collective unit they moved into the focus of the school. Whispers and conversations burst forth almost immediately and as much as Harry wanted to either scoff or smirk he kept everything firmly off his face. Luna led them towards the Ravenclaw table and Harry had to bite back any visible signs of amusement at the look of fear that crossed a few Ravenclaw’s faces as Luna tucked herself into his side once again. Many of the students weren’t even trying to be discreet as they stared at them and others had their heads bent together as they very obviously talked about them, thankfully, McGonagall’s threat of detention with Snape was holding steady and no one actually confronted any of them so they could start their breakfast in peace.

“Brace yourself, papers are incoming.” Hermione warned, and Harry perked up.

“Let’s see what magic Rita had wielded this time.”

“I still can’t believe how excited we are to read her stuff after 4th year.” Ron shook his head and Harry barely stopped himself from snorted.

“Don’t remind me but Rita is the same as any spell; powerful when wielded correctly, dangerous if used against you.”

“That is oddly philosophical.” Blaise mused and Harry smirked.

“It’s been known to happen.”

Anything else they wanted to say when the morning swarm of owls swooped in to deliver the mail and it was clear that everyone was waiting on the paper’s arrival because many put their letters down to snatch it up.

“Oh damn, she got all of our quotes.” Harry noted, scanning over his own paper when Luna shoved one in front of him. “That should get people talking.”

“Were you under the impression that they weren’t already talking?” Draco wondered sarcastically. “That’s a Hel of a Headline.”

 

Dark Declaration:

Potter-Black Section Shift Explained

The New Leading Alliance Speaks Out:

 

Shocking events during the Wizengamot session yesterday brought forth a huge shift in power caused by four new members of the Chamber lead firmly by none other than Harry James Potter-Black, Lord Head to the Houses Potter, Black, Peverell and Gryffindor. Reawakening the long held Potter/Longbottom alliance, newly presented Lord Ronald Prewett and Lady Hermione McKinnon unhesitatingly illustrated the famed Golden Trio closeness by allying themselves with the Potter-Black Lord without question. Not only did the Lord Potter-Black shift the Majority lead rapidly to the Dark Section within the Wizengamot, he and the new Seven House alliance brought enough power to push through Lady McKinnon’s own nominee, Lord Malfoy, into the Interim Minister’s position.

 

Many questions are already being raised about the dramatic shift in Section by the Seven House Alliance: why now have Lord Prewett and Lady McKinnon claimed their seats after years of silence? What are the crimes committed by Dowager Lady Augusta Longbottom to see her banished by the new Lord Longbottom? And most notably what is the cause of the apparent hostility between recently disgraced Albus Dumbledore and Lord Potter-Black? While not all of those questioned can be answered just yet, this reporter brings you the first exclusive statement from the Seven House Alliance. After leaving the Wizengamot session yesterday, this reporter caught up with Lords Potter-Black, Prewett, Longbottom and Lady McKinnon to ask them about their shock arrival, their abrupt departure from the Light Section and the behind the scenes happenings that caused such actions.

 

When asked about his words of banishment, Lord Longbottom stated:

“Augusta Longbottom, while not disowned, has been banished from the House of Longbottom for crimes against it and it’s Heir. Not only did she illegally both by law and House Law, withhold my Heir and Lordship, she also brought in outside influence to infect the House of Longbottom. Her actions and subsequent betrayals under the power of one of her previous alliances makes me uncomfortable following her direction for the House of Longbottom which is why I moved my house into the Neutral Section.”

He also added:

“With the reawakening and strengthening of the Potter/Longbottom Alliance, taking on a Neutral Stance benefitted the new direction House Potter was also undertaking.”

This brought forth the question of just how long the Longbottom Lord knew about Lord Potter-Black’s change in direction to which the young Lord allowed a grin.

“Augusta’s betrayal to the House had further reaching consequences than many are aware of, but my Godbrother and I are doing much to solidify our bond as we should have been able to do as children and are closing working together in all ways.”

While not a direct answer, it does clarify that Lord Longbottom was indeed aware of the shift Lord Potter-Black intended to go through with and supported him in his actions. It also indicated that there’s a possibility the problems within House Longbottom are linked to problems with Lord Potter-Black.

 

This was something subsequently brought up when speaking with the new powerhouse of the Wizengamot with his two most loyal friends, Lord Prewett and Lady McKinnon.

Lord Potter-Black said:

“While I will not go deeply in to House Longbottom politics, the previous Dowager Lady’s actions and betrayals have personally affected me and my relationship with my Godbrother, Neville [Longbottom].”

 

Also questioned was the alliance between the three of them, Lady McKinnon confirmed:

“We will always stand with Harry [Potter-Black] throughout thick and thin, and that is not something we take lightly. We have always been close as many people are aware, and that easily translates into an alliance within the Wizengamot.”

Lord Prewett added:

“We make decisions as a group, and with the Potter/Longbottom Alliance being revived, it was agreed that Hermione and I would join that alliance creating a seven House Alliance as a foundation for what we hope to be a greater alliance once we find our footing within the Wizengamot.”

 

With the three of them confirming their solid alliance, I had to ask about the apparent hostility between the Potter-Black Lord and Albus Dumbledore, and whether or not it extended to all of them. Lord Potter-Black stated:

“Certain truths have come to light for me about the real character of Albus Dumbledore and I can never again say that we are on the same side of anything. He is responsible for betrayals and harm against my Houses and while I will not discuss his actions today, I will state that I intend to pursue the full extent of Dumbledore’s mechanisms against me and mine.”

Lord Prewett continued saying:

“I have to agree. Dumbledore is responsible for many things, some we know of and others I fear have yet to be uncovered, and his actions directly go against the core of our House values. Our shift in section is partially because of Dumbledore, however, while young, we are not as foolish as to completely alter the placement of our Houses due to one man, no matter his actions.”

Lady McKinnon went on to say:

“During our research into the Wizengamot and the Section standpoints, we came to the realisation that the traditional aspects of Wizarding society within the Dark resonated with us more than the Light’s unrealistic progressive nature. And even though we don’t agree with everything in our new section, we do feel that it’s a better suited for us at the current time. Which is why I put forth, and we all subsequently voted, for Lord Malfoy for Interim Minister.”

Their words reassure many who were wondering if they had given any thought to their actions and it’s relieving to know that even though they are young, they have researched and planned their moves and none of them intend to act rashly. Of course, their confirmation of their split from Dumbledore still begs the question what the aged ex-headmaster has done to alienate what looks to be the future of the Wizengamot, especially with the hints Lord Potter-Black left. Before leaving, each rather worn out from their first session even if their poise never faltered, I managed to ask Lord Potter-Black about his surprise Proxy Headship and his knowledge on the Lord or Lady of the Slytherin House.

“The Lord Slytherin wishes to remain anonymous at this time as he is concerned about the negative connotations surrounding the House itself. I have spoken to him and discussed where he would like to take the direction of his House, and he felt that putting the Slytherin House under my control (as Lord of the Gryffindor) while following his direction may work toward lessening the stigma attached to the House as the people could see Gryffindor and Slytherin working together once more.”

Given the last known time a Gryffindor and Slytherin worked together in harmony they gave us one of the greatest educational institutions within our world, this reporter is excited to see what could be achieved this time around.

 

Dumbledore has yet to respond regarding the split between himself and Lord Potter-Black and with the young Lord making bold yet vague claims surrounding the aged Chief Warlock, we have to wonder if Dumbledore has gone to ground because he knows what he’s done is despicable or he fears what else will come to light. Just what has he done to break away from what, arguably, could have been his greatest allegiance and does it hold true to the horrifying picture Dumbledore’s past is painting about the man? With a new Interim Minister backed by the Seven House Alliance and the rapidly shifting tides of the Wizengamot, we can only wait and see what is to come.

 

Rita Skeeter; Special Correspondent to the Daily Prophet.

 

“Well if the Snakes were questioning you having the Slytherin Proxy before they’re going to be a whole lot worse now.” Blaise said in delight, “outright claiming to have spoken to Lord Slytherin? Thank you greatly.”

“You’re welcome,” Harry replied jokingly, “I figured Dumbledore would really appreciate reading that bit.”

“Yeah, he and everyone who knows who the Slytherin Lord is.” Hermione muttered and Harry smirked.

“We need the Snakes to be cautious in their actions more so than anyone else,” Luna pointed out, “Gryffindors, while quick to anger, can be appeased much easier than the Slytherins.”

“So it is them that we need to be more cautious of?”

“Yes and no, Gryffindors will react but McGonagall will not stand for their actions with everything she has and is set to learn.” Luna told them all, “Slytherins, on the other hand, stretch in and out of the castle and while the outer politics will be corrected by Him eventually, we cannot afford to lose any possible alliances.”

“You two are going to need to be vigilant.” Neville warned and both Blaise and Draco nodded.

“We intended to be if only for entertainment purposes.” Blaise assured, “I do think that many will be told to be cautious until He has spoken, especially when the Act is raised.”

“Let’s hope.”

“We’re on a very fine line for multiple aspects of our plans.” Luna said, eyes distant again, “we cannot be reckless.”

“This are some very leading quotes.” Draco mused, “this is going to raise more questions.”

“I’d rather people be questioning and speculating in a direction we’ve led them until we have a chance to get our shit together properly.” Harry told him, “Dumbledore may be out of the castle and his reputation has taken a beating, but until we have a more solid base, we cannot afford to be lax in our actions nor can we know for certain that when we do eventually release the information it is taken how we need it to be taken.”

“I know, it’s just a fine line you are walking right now; it’s a concern.”

“Oh we know, but hopefully in the next few weeks we can build things up in a way that doesn’t have the whole world turning on us as they are wont to do.” Hermione pointed out.

“Plus, with your father’s campaign that we are building we’re hoping to have everything legally put through long before anyone truly realises who’s in control.” Ron added and Draco nodded.

“Yes, I do understand it’s just sometimes the realisation of how careful we have to be becomes a bit much.”

“Don’t worry, Bleach, we’re only taking over the country.” Neville declared brightly much to their amusement and Draco shot him a dark look.

“You’re not funny.”

“On the contrary, that was hilarious.” Neville countered with a grin, but that grin quickly faded when he caught sight of something out of the corner of his eyes. “ah shit, how did we forget that?”

“What?”

“What are you talking about?”

Neville pointed and they all turned to look at what had caught his attention before cursing.

“Oh of course she did.” Ron sighed, “let’s see what she’s going to say then.”

The ancient Weasley owl flopped down just missing the remaining bacon that Hermione quickly pulled out of the way and clutched in Errol’s talons was a bright red envelop that was beginning to smoke already. Ron jabbed it with his wand with a soul deep sigh and immediately Molly Weasley’s rage filled voice boomed throughout the hall.

RONALD BILLIUS

HOW DARE YOU STAND AGAINST ALBUS DUMBLEDORE AND OUR FAMILY. HOW DARE YOU BETRAY OUR WAYS AND STEAL A TITLE THAT DOES NOT BELONG TO YOU. AFTER EVERYTHING THAT WE HAVE DONE FOR YOU, THIS IS HOW YOU REPAY US.

HOW DARE YOU TARNISH YOUR SISTERS REPUTATION WITH TRECHERY AND LIES, WHEN YOU KNOW NOTHING OF THE SITUATION WE ARE IN. I ALWAYS KNEW THERE WOULD BE A REASON I NEEDED TO PAY CLOSER ATTENTION TO YOU BUT YOU HAVE BECOME WORSE THAN I EVER COULD HAVE BELIEVED.

YOU ARE A DISGRACE OF A SON AND A SHAME UPON MY NAME. YOUR ACTIONS ARE UNFORGIVABLE AND WILL NOT BE TOLERATED, DO NOT BOTHER COMING HOME BECAUSE YOU ARE NOT WELCOME.

YOU ARE NO SON OF MINE.

The bright red letter burst into flames after her final word leaving the hall in an eery silence as it seemed the entire student body stared at Ron with wide eyes. The red head blinked once before adopting a look of vague amusement.

“I think she’s losing her touch.”

Because the Hall was so quiet everyone could clearly hear Ron’s voice and there were many looks of confusion and disbelief, Harry barely stopped himself bursting out laughing and instead sombrely shook his head.

“She went easy on you.” He said instead and Hermione nodded gravely.

“She may be in shock.”

The three of them shared a look before bursting out laughing unable to help themselves and the rest of their group shook their heads at them.

“You’re all mad.” Draco decided.

“Eh, its hard to take the woman seriously after she obliviated me multiple times for not doing what she wanted.” Ron replied, his voice deliberately loud enough to be overheard causing the Hall to shake of its stupor from the howler and burst into conversation.

“Nicely done.” Blaise murmured, and Ron shot him a grin.

“How long do you think it’ll take for it to get out?”

“It’ll be with the parents but tonight.”

“That’s a thought: where is Ginny?” Neville wondered and they looked to the Gryffindor table noting the lack of bright red.

“She wasn’t in the common room when we had our inquisition either.” Hermione remembered and Ron shrugged.

“If she has any sense, and she does, she’s laying low until she has instructions.”

“Yes, but it’s what those instructions say is what I’m concerned about.”

“Well as long as we limit what she can send home then I don’t care.” Harry decided, “without Dumbledore in the castle she’s limited in what she can do.”

“Do remember that both Burbage and Vector owe Dumbledore.” Luna reminded him, “both Trelawny and Hagrid do too, but they are of no consequence.”

“True, but when McGonagall gets to go through the entirety of the staffing, they’ll both be gone.” Hermione pointed out.

“Plus, if we can get the proof that Vector ruined poor Sally-Anne then she’d be arrested let alone fired.” Harry said.

“I can work on that.” Luna decided and Harry nodded.

“Do you think it’ll be a good idea to warn McGonagall about their lack of Mastery now or wait for her discover it?”

“The only one Vector has direct contact with is with me, Luna and Draco.” Hermione pointed out, “Draco and I can watch each-others’ backs and Luna will know long before she gets the chance to try something on her.”

“True, and none of us come into contact with Burbage at all so her being anywhere near us would be an indication of a problem.” Neville added.

“So leave it for now unless there hasn’t been anything done within say a month?”

“Yes, we’ll bring it to father and McGonagall at the same time. The Board warned her that they’ll be monitoring her closely so it wouldn’t be too suspicious if they had information before she told them.” Draco said, “we’ll speak to father later about the Board and see what their plan is. I know the new Lord Nott will be taking his seat back, so he should have insight too.”

“Who even sits on the Governors?” Ron wonders, “I know Malfoy, Nott, Smith and Davis.”

“Ogden and Davis also sit.”

“Plus Spinett and Gamp.”

“Who are the last 4 then?”

Their was a pause before all of them turned to Luna in question and the fey-like girl rolled her eyes and answered:

“Hawkthawn, Blishwick, Bletchley and Goldstien.”

“Three Neutrals and a Dark.”

“Well Abbott, Smith and Spinnet are Light, Malfoy, Nott, Bletchley are dark leaving Davis, Gamp, Ogden, Hawkthawn, Blishwick and Goldstien in the Neutral which makes it pretty balanced.”

“I think its purposely done to make the school less political and actually about the kids their teaching.”

“Yeah that’s worked out well with the old fool in charge.” Draco muttered disparagingly.

“Positive thoughts, Bleach.” Harry joked, “come on, let’s get to class.”

Surprisingly, or maybe not given everything that had happened over the past couple of days, the school days was relatively peaceful. Oh they couldn’t relax, not really, with what seemed like every eye in the school on them, but the student population wasn’t yet willing to actually talk to them. Hermione and Draco both insisted it was mainly Harry, as a few Slytherins and Gryffindors had spoken to them while they were in classes that Harry wasn’t, but when they were together they avoided them like the plague. Harry pointed out that they only spoke to them about school stuff so it didn’t really count but he was outvoted much to his amusement.

It was odd, they found, going through school fully as themselves for the first time ever. It was one thing to be themselves in private, hiding from Dumbledore and stretching out their abilities and their knowledge, but to finally be able to do so in public was both liberating and terrifying. The professors reactions may have been Harry’s favourite thing, something Neville, Ron and Hermione agreed with. McGonagall’s open surprise when all four of them got the new Transfiguration spell on their first attempt was gratifying, while Flitwick’s genuine delight at their mastery of the water spell and the Red, as well as doing completely wordless.

Harry made a mental note that they should speak to the Charms Master given the whole situation, given his Goblin heritage he was probably neutral as long as nothing harmed his students. Harry had never heard of him being in the Order and Flitwick was known for giving people the benefit of the doubt so it would be worth talking to him either way. Luna would know. They stuck to the Ravenclaw table for lunch once again, taking probably a perverse amount of amusement at the fear coming from the Ravenclaws that had made it their mission to target Luna before this. Hermione and Draco had vanished off to the library, clearly enjoying being able to work together openly and intending to make the most of it, and Blaise and Ron had decided to make a public spectacle of themselves and make out by the lake. Blaise was stamping what amounted to a neon sign over the state of their relationship and Ron was just enough of a little shit to go along with it. Harry thought it was hilarious.

He, Neville and Luna had wandered down to the Greenhouses for a break from the rest of the students staring at them. Neville and Luna wandered around tending to the plants while Harry sat watching them from a safe corner taking a moment to just breath. He had a raging headache due to Tom’s fraying temper and while he’d normally be pissed the older man let it bleed over that much, Harry could tell the man was doing his best to shield it despite how angry he was. As much as it was a relief to be able to go around as himself, Harry was more than thankful to get to Potions for his final lesson of the day because Snape would be having absolutely no shit from anyone and Harry was all for that.

Thankfully, either by coincidence or Snape’s very limited mercy, the potion they were working on the wound-clearing potion, something Harry was uncomfortably familiar with, so the motions were rather soothing on his weirdly frayed nerves. It was an immense relief when the final bell went and Harry went directly to his rooms with Draco, Blaise, Ron and Hermione and wasn’t surprised when Luna and Neville met them when they were half way there.

“So, that was long.” Ron decided once they had all flopped down.

“Is it weird that I’ve been both relieved and weirdly tense all day?” Hermione wondered and Harry shook his head.

“No, I’ve been feeling the same.”

“Me too,” Ron agreed.

“I don’t think I’ve been feeling as bad as you guys but I’ve definitely been more tense than I thought I would be.” Neville added and Draco nodded.

“It makes sense. You may be yourselves now, but you also have all the eyes of the school on you. They’re all looking to see the changes.”

“Plus, the quotes from the paper this morning would have only given you more attention.” Blaise pointed out and Harry sighed.

“I know, but I figured I of all people would have been used to having eyes on me.”

“Yes, but you were also layered under so many spells you weren’t actually feeling things as you should be.” Luna reminded him gently and Harry grimaced.

“Oh yeah, I didn’t actually have a personality lest it was what Dumbledore wanted.”

“Let’s not start talking about that man just yet, he’s probably going to come up repeatedly later.” Ron groaned, throwing a hand over his eyes.

“Anything happen that we need to immediately talk about?” Harry wondered and got negative responses from the group so he cast a Tempus to check the time and nodded. “Right, well go and spread out for your nap and turn back to just 11:30 and meet in the Gryffindor rooms so one of you can grab Moony.”

“You’ll meet us there I assume.” Hermione clarified and Harry rubbed at his scar with a grimace.

“Probably for the best.”

“We’ll see you later.” Neville said getting to his feet, “take a potion or something, you’re going to need your wits about you.”

“I will if it doesn’t go away when I’ve calmed him down.” Harry assured him, “he’s been shielding as well so he must be pissed.”

“You think it’s the situation or something in particular?” Hermione asked.

“It started off at the situation but I think something or things really spiked his temper because from just before lunch onward it really amped up.”

“His talents in Legilimency are both a blessing and a curse.” Luna informed him and Harry barely bit back a groan.

“Oh this should be fun to try and make sure he doesn’t start picking off students.” He grumbled under his breath, waving off his friends as they laughed at him. He shadowed directly to Tom’s rooms and was surprised to find Tom not in the living room, he blinking and poked at their bond and followed it through the bedroom where he found the Dark Lord face down on the best still in his towel from what Harry assumed was a shower.

Harry raised an eyebrow, especially when the man didn’t so much as twitch at his arrival, and stripped off his uniform switching it for sleepwear and called an elf to a topical muscle relaxant as he could see the tense lines all down Tom’s back from the doorway. Harry climbed onto the bed and straddled the older man, perching on his ass and leaning down to press a light kiss in between his shoulder blades, then another on the back of his neck and a final one just below his ear.

“I’m back with you now.” Harry murmured, “remove those who have no chance coming near me from your mind.”

Tom didn’t exactly untense but he released a breath so Harry took that as a positive sign. He poured a little of the relaxant into his hands and slowly started to massage it into the older man’s back, starting from his shoulders and worked his way down gaining a few pleased hums as Tom finally uncoiled. Harry flicked his wrist and switched the towel around Tom’s waist for sleep trousers and moved so he was laid on his side facing the other while Tom rolled over and pulled him closer.

“Better?”

“Much,” Tom agreed.

“What set you off?” Harry asked, tapping his own temple to indicate how he knew and Tom grimaced.

“My shielding slipped I see.”

“Not fully, but something surged just before lunch.”

“I will need to speak with my people sooner rather than later.”

“It was a Slytherin that pissed you off?” Harry said in surprise and Tom scowled.

“Many are using their cunning and lay in wait for more information, but there are a few making their own plans.” Tom told him, “those who wish to confront you I care not for, if they wish to forfeit their life that is an error their parents failed to teach out of them.”

Harry snorted at that, shooting Tom an amused look.

“There are a few in the House that see your power and want it for themselves, thoughts of betrothals, potions, spells and even baby traps have all been thought of and discussed.”

“You knew this was going to happen,” Harry pointed out, “we both expected there to be many thoughts like that so that couldn’t have been what really got to you.”

“You are correct, however much I did not appreciate their insipid thought process.” Tom sneered, “it was the older Carrow student: the Carrow family are manic but they are particularly dangerous due to their incredible knowledge in Ritualistic magic. Carrow intends to use a family based binding ritual to gain your power as their own; it would make you no more than a slave to their will.”

Harry blinked stunned before a flare of absolute rage rushed through him so strong Tom hissed in surprise.

“It’s bad enough that Dumbledore wants me to dance to his tune but at least he’s clearly aiming for some sort of control over the damn world. Now I’ve got some petty little prick trying simply because they want my birthright?”

“Calm yourself,” Tom ordered, tracing soothing circles on Harry’s hip. “I will never let it happen. You will never be separated from me.”

“How did you make that sound both sweet and threatening?” Harry wondered, his rage fading slightly at Tom’s words.

“It’s a gift.” Tom joked and Harry snickered, calming down some more. He sighed and buried himself away in Tom’s neck.

“People suck.”

“Yes, I have always had that belief.” Tom agreed utterly serious and Harry snorted though it was muffled from where he was hidden.

“Today has already been long and its only half way done.” He complained, “I’m not moving until my body wakes up on its own.”

“Sleep, we shall go back once you have awoken with no issue.”

“We need to go back half past the hour so remember that.” Harry told him, sighing happily when Tom splayed his hand possessively under his shirt on his lower back. “Nap well and dream of murder.”

“I shall imagine exactly how I will wipe out the entire Carrow line should they dare not heed my warning.”

“Better than counting sheep, I guess.”


When Harry woke from probably the best nap he had ever had he was basically plastered all over Tom, who clearly saw no issue with this as he had an arm locked tightly around his waist. Harry looked up and saw Tom reading from a book he was levitating in front of his face seemingly quite content to lay and read until Harry woke up much to the younger ones surprised pleasure.

“You were more tired than you realised,” Tom said to him and Harry made a sound of agreement.

“Time?”

“Just gone seven. You have enough time for a quick shower if you wish.”

“Thanks,”

Harry reluctantly pulled himself up and stretched out his body feeling loads better than he had done before his nap. He allowed himself five minutes of just standing under the hot water before giving himself a quick wash over and heading out to change. He blinked when he saw a bunch of new items in the wardrobe space he’s acquired and shook his head with a grin at what he assumed was Luna’s work. He pulled on a pair of soft black leggings and paired it with a black and gold fitted tunic that fell to his mid-thigh, added a new pair of knee high boots that he immediately loved and finished the ensamble with a rich green open front robe that was embellished with a gold runic pattern all along the edges. Harry turned when he heard Tom make a huffing sound and raised an eyebrow at the man’s look of appreciation.

“See something you like?”

“You could make a shapeless robe look good and you know it.”

Harry felt himself flush slightly and shot Tom a light glare that was zero percent effective unsurprisingly. The other was in fitted robes that draped over his frame and did wonderful things for his broad shoulders, making him look like the even taller than he actually was.

“Oh like you are so much different.” Harry countered crossing his arms and Tom smirked.

“I never said otherwise.”

“You’re arrogance is your leading personality trait,” Harry muttered summoning all of things he needed for the upcoming meeting and tucking them into the pocket inside his robe.

“Ah but my darling Snake, is it arrogance if it is true?” Tom wondered, slipping an arm around his waist and pulling him close. “We make a dangerously attractive pair, do we not?”

“I suppose we are complimentary.” Harry allowed and Tom scoffed.

“Our power, our looks, our intelligence, our abilities all harmonize. Do not act as if you are not perfect, darling, it is unbecoming.”

“You have got to stop saying things like that!” Harry hissed, covering his now glowing cheeks, “I know you do it on purpose.”

“Ah but it doesn’t make it any less true.” Tom pointed out with a smirk and Harry pouted, trying to stay even a little frustrated when Tom kissed him without much success.

“Why are you like this,” Harry complained, “you are too charming for your own good.”

“Would you prefer I direct it elsewhere?” Tom wondered and Harry glared at him.

“Don’t you dare!”

“You see? I need an outlet.”

“That is such bullshit.” Harry denied with a scoff and Tom shrugged lightly.

“I have urges.”

“You have urges alright but I doubt at the top of your list is the overwhelming need to be an obnoxiously charming bastard.” Harry stated, “murder or torture usually claim that spot.”

“Oh I don’t know, something else has definitely become a priority.” Tom countered, hands pointedly sliding down over Harry’s ass leaving absolutely no question as to what he was alluding to. Harry shook his head amused, reaching up to press open mouthed kisses along Tom’s neck and nip at his jaw line before kissing the older man with a bit more heat.

“Well, I am sure something can be done about those urges if you are good.” Harry murmured looking up at him through his lashes and Tom’s eyes darkened slightly.

“I don’t know the meaning of the word.” He immediately countered and Harry smirked.

“But you are already so good to me, aren’t you Tom?”

“I look after everything I consider mine.”

“That you do,” Harry agreed, “now we have places to be so why don’t you think about exactly what you want and if you don’t give me a giant headache through dinner when we return I will see about fulfilling those wishes.”

“You are a tease, Snake.”

“You wouldn’t change it,” Harry brushed off, “are you apparating?”

“Yes, lets go back now.”

They used the time turners to go back to 11:30 and Tom vanished as soon as the world had stopped spinning, Harry was quick to follow him through his shadows and he smiled slightly as they made their way to the dining room. They weren’t the first ones there, surprisingly that was Draco and the twins, but they weren’t the last ones to arrive either for which Harry was grateful.

“I honestly forgot how you guys were getting here.” Harry said to the twins after greeting the Lord and Lady of the manor and taking a seat next to Tom, who sat next to Narcissa, and Draco shot him a droll look.

“Thankfully, I did not.”

“Oh like you didn’t use that to your advantage.” Harry brushed off, taking perverse pleasure at Lucius’ look of pain. He felt a surge of amusement from Tom so he knew the other had caught sight of the older blonde’s expression too. “The others?”

“They should be here now, they only had to collect Moony but I think Paws may be waiting for Rabastan.”

Harry raised an eyebrow.

“Is that so?”

“Something about it being more convenient.” Draco replied with a roll of his eyes and Harry barely stopped himself from snorting.

“Sure, real convenient that he happened to be there on the day of our meeting.”

“I said the same thing.”

Footsteps alerted them to more people arriving and Harry grinned as his watched Bellatrix skip into the room with her exasperated husband trailing after her at a more sedate pace.

“Sister! Nephew!” She chirped greeting them both with an exaggerated kiss on the cheek while nodding to Lucius almost absently. She looked over the twins with interest and shot them a manic grin, that brightened when they matched the expression with their own. “You’ll do nicely!”

“Such high compliments-,”

“Such honour-,”

“We thank you, my Lady.”

“Don’t encourage them.” Harry joked and the twins immediately adopted innocent expressions that were believed by exactly no one.

“Baby Black!” Bellatrix exclaimed, coming round to press a smacking kiss on his own cheek. “What wonderful work you’ve been doing.”

“I try,” Harry demurred and she cackled.

“More than try! I almost felt bad for Dumbledore and then I remembered who he was and got over it.”

That made Harry actually snort.

“Yeah he does that.”

More footsteps sounded and Blaise, Ron, Neville and Moony entered all looking a bit flustered and Harry looked at them in question.

“We forgot that Snape doesn’t have a time turner and almost missed the turn back.” Neville explained, “The others have gone for him now.”

“Oh shit yeah,” Harry remembered, “forgot about him too,”

“Yeah, he’d usually get away with going to a DE meeting because Dumbledore would eagerly wait for him to return so he’d make excuses.”

“Eh we might have to do something about that now that he’s gone.” Harry mused and Neville shrugged.

“Or we could just be better planners.”

“Yeah but effort.” Harry joked and the others laughed. “All good for you, Moony?”

“Yeah, I was late returning from the sanctuary. We’ve just had our first successful cub born.”

There were exclamations of delight and Harry beamed.

“Really?”

“Yeah, both mother and baby are doing well despite the fact that no one knew of the pregnancy until very late. They just thought they were run down and sick due to stress which, unfortunately, tracks given all things.”

“Oh doesn’t it.” Narcissa said in disgust, “I shall make a check on them this evening after the meeting. I’m sorry I missed it, but there would be nothing I’d have been able to do anyway.”

“No, werewolves are very overprotective during the birthing process and I don’t know if a single non-wolf has been present during a birth in known history.” Remus agreed, “I think they’d be happy if you were did look in later, Alpha Greyback will be there as reassurance and given the stress the mother has been under recently I think it will put everyone at ease knowing the cub was alright.”

“We really do need to do something about their lack of wands. The sooner I can start given practical healing lessons to go with the theory the quicker my mind will rest easy.” Narcissa declared and Remus nodded.

“You and me both.” He agreed, “but I think that’s being brought up today?”

“Yeah, it is. We have a lot to get through but that is something high up on the list.” Harry assured and both Narcissa and Remus nodded pleased.

Luna danced into the room with a stone faced Snape following along with an amused Hermione and Rabastan and Harry didn’t think he wanted to know but Ron asked because he was truly a Gryffindor at heart.

“A different arrangement shall need to be created should we have another meeting during any time when I need to be at the school.” Snape stated coldly, shooting a dark at Luna who merely smiled serenely and patted him on the arm.

“I don’t mind bringing you with me, Professor.” She told him, very clearly ignoring his point much to Harry’s amusement.

“I am sure you don’t, miss Lovegood. However, I should not need to rely on you.”

“Yes, we’ll plan better if there is a next time.” Ron agreed, “we kind of forgot you’d actually need an excuse now.”

“Here’s to the only downside of Dumbledore being out of the castle.” Neville joked raised his glass mockingly making the teens laugh.

“There’s a downside of Dumbledore being out of the castle?” Theodore Nott Srn wondered as he entered with the last of their group, Dolohov.

“A very minor one.” Harry allowed, “still happy he’s out.”

“Who isn’t?” Dolohov wondered taking the final seat. Food appeared as soon as he had done so and everyone helped themselves at a motion from Narcissa as the conversation continued.

“His eviction followed by your debut into the Wizengamot has stirred up much more interest in the international community than I would have believed it would.” Theodore told them with a sly smirk, “its been excellent.”

“The reactions all round have been both more than we had predicted and different.” Hermione mused, “it’s both frustrating and pleasing in equal measure.”

“I’m still surprised the school has been, for them anyway, rather tame.”

“Yeah well McGonagall did universally threaten them with the King of awful detentions.” Neville pointed out and Snape looked rather happy with the title.

“I can’t believe we’re actively using the threat of Snape to keep our sanity.” Ron muttered and Harry barked out a laugh.

“It’s a threat I will be milking for as long as possible.” Harry stated and Draco smirked.

“I would, not even us snakes want whatever detention he has lined up.”

“Severus, whatever have you had your students doing in the past?” Lucius inquired impressed and Snape offered a rather nasty smirk.

“I can be very creative.”

“I’ll say.” Said every person under the age of twenty.

“I don’t know if that’s concerning or not?” Rabastan said and Harry shook his head.

“For once, no.”

“It’s the previous times that raise questions.” Rodolphus commented and all the students (and the twins) all simultaneously wrinkled their noses.

“I know more about the biology of magical creatures from his detentions than from class or self-study.” Blaise told them. “No one needs that knowledge. No one.”

“You think that’s bad? He had us clean his classroom after an explosion with toothbrushes and no magic; it was on the ceiling.” Fred exclaimed.

“That was better than the time he had us do the Hospital Wing.” George grumbled.

“Do not earn detention then,” Snape dismissed and everyone who had served detention with the man glared at him, not that he seemed to care whatsoever.

“The threat will only hold for so long though, some daring idiot will finally crack and do something.” Draco picked up.

“Carrow or McLaggen,” Harry added and both Blaise and Draco looked at him in surprise.

“Carrow?”

“Yeah, apparently they have a family based binding ritual.” Harry told them indicating Tom’s pissed off expression.

“I assume Carrow could probably be held off given everything.” Blaise hummed, nodding to the Dark Lord, “and with the Act being raised sooner rather than later.”

“Oh their actions will be curbed,” Tom stated coldly, “should they persist then they are too stupid to live.”

“Let’s not advocate murder at the dinning table, if you please, my Lord.” Narcissa cut in delicately.

“She has a room for that.” Bellatrix whispered loudly, grinning at her sister’s icy look that was shot her way.

“Am I the only one who does not doubt for a second that Lady Malfoy has a murder room?” Ron murmured to Blaise, who nearly snorted his drink out from his nose.

“It’s probably decorated all in black in case of blood spills.” Blaise added and they both had to bite back their snickers as Narcissa shot them a cool look.

“Would you like to find out personally?”

They both shook their heads rapidly and she offered them a lovely smile with absolutely no warmth in it at all.

“Never forget the strength of Black blood.” Hermione informed them wisely and Bellatrix jabbed her knife at her in agreement.

“Black blood will out.”

“There to terrifying the masses.” Rodolphus muttered while Lucius nodded and Remus nodded in agreement, both sisters immediately turned to their husbands with identical looks in their eye.

“What was that, darling?”

It was made all the more frightening as they asked it together and those sat near each sister looked as if they were questioning their decisions, which was all the more funny for Harry as Tom was sat next to Narcissa.

“I can’t believe I miss that.” Remus shook his head.

“Baby Siri was always so gentle compared to most of us.” Bella lamented and everyone who had ever met Sirius Black looked at her as if she was insane.

“Black and gentle are not words I would ever put together.” Snape drawled and despite the disdain in his tone Harry couldn’t argue.

“Exactly, so watch your words.” Narcissa agreed, eying her husband and brother-in-law with narrowed eyes.

“So before the Black sisters mysteriously become widows so close to one another.” Theodore cut in before blood was spilled, “I assume that we are all caught up with this countries articles.”

“We’ve seen the Prophet and I think Luna has been monitoring the others but there has been nothing to note.” Harry said, looking at his sister in conformation.

“Since the Prophet has monopoly over the nations news, there hasn’t been any articles in any of the more trival papers. I’ve had daddy hold off on the Quibbler, and Witch Weekly and Lush do not really emphasis politics unless its indicating someone to marry, and with the balls not yet released they’ve not put anything out.”

“Honestly, we need to have more publications in this country because this is ridiculous.” Hermione complained and rest of the table agreed with her.

“Since the Ministry took majority control of the Prophet any publications we had before that mysteriously lost funding, or were bought out.” Lucius admitted.

“When we were young I preferred reading the Wizarding Times.” Theodore said indicating Tom and Dolohov.

“I remember that one, though I preferred Magic Today.” Dolohov mused thoughtfully.

“They were both much better than the usual drivel we receive in the Prophet.” Tom agreed, “does anyone know what actually happened to either publication?”

“I believe Wizarding Times got bought out and merged with the Prophet, not that they actually took much from the Times.” Theodore replied after a moments’ thought. “I cannot say I know anything about Magic Today.”

“It was driven to the ground by Dumbledore and the Ministry both, so mother bought it and hid who the new owners were. I think she hoped to revive it but something happened before that could be put into motion.”

“So we have a paper basically ready to go once we secure the Ministry spot.” Ron affirmed.

“All we need to do is make sure we ace the campaign.” Hermione added with half enthusiasm and half dread.

“Yes, and can I say that getting Lucius into the Ministerial race in such a way was a thin of beauty.” Theodore acknowledged and the Trio plus Neville grinned.

“It was supremely satisfying.”

“It may be worth starting up the new/old paper for the campaign you know.” Ron mused, “yeah, our Rita articles have been great for the sensationalised news she does, but actual policies? Probably not for the best.”

“You may be right.” Lucius agreed, “though she would be someone you may want to take with you for any sensationalised things we may need.”

“Also, it would look bad for the Prophet if the Rita Skeeter is no longer writing for them.” Rabastan pointed out, “especially if you have whatever sensation you have planned to be the opening article for the new paper.”

“Plus, any creature advocation you intend to push through will never fly with the Prophet.” Moony added, “even with the facts to back it up the Prophet would probably not publish it and getting a journalist of some integrity to do it justice will be nigh on impossible given the state of this country.”

“You are correct.” Dolohov agreed, “many countries that have no ties to us have special reporters that deal in creatures who are actually knowledgeable in what they talk about.”

“If this is something we intend to pursue it will need to be done with careful hands.” Tom warned them.

“Very careful,” Ron acknowledged. “particularly if we intend to use if for the campaign.”

“I think I have the exact idea of how we can tie it in to the new campaign.” Harry sat up straight. “One of the campaign points is going to be the overhaul of Azkaban and it’s sentencing process
”

“Oh that would be perfect.” Ron exclaimed, “once we get that in place we could also use-,”

“Exactly, it would also change the opinions of people like Bones and it would be enough sensation but with solid facts-,”

“We would rope in the people and feed them shit people like Dumbledore have tried so desperately tried to hide.” Harry finished and they shared an excited grin oblivious to the looks of confusion going around the table.

“For those who do not speak Trio they intend to use the lack of trial for the late Lord Black to indicate the flaws within the system and then use the fact that Dumbledore has been using Azkaban to hide away people he couldn’t kill off. That would turn Bones’ attention back towards the DMLE as a lot of this happened while she was in office so if she does return she’d be too busy focusing on that rather than eyeing up Lord Malfoy’s every move. Plus, the sensation Rita would bring to the article would draw in many readers but instead of the usual drivel the Prophet feeds its readers we’d been feeding them actual facts and it would give us the opportunity to use the things we’ve gathered from out of the country to educate people who have been stilted due to Dumbledore and the Ministry (which was also Dumbledore) for so long.” Neville translated for the rest of the room and the three of them shared a sheepish look.

“What Neville said.”

“Sometimes you three are worse than us.” Fred stated pointed at his twin and all the teens scoffed.

“No one is as bad as you two.”

“Shall we move this conversation into a better room?” Tom suggested, turning to the Lady of the manor. “We have much to discuss.”

“Of course, my Lord. I have a sitting room prepared for us.” She stated, “Lucius?”

“If you would please follow me.” Lucius announced, “my lovely wife has prepared plenty of space for any and all documents and plans that shall be illustrated during our meeting.”

“With how much we need to go through that was very wise.” Draco said, “but then this is mother.”

“She has ever been efficient.”

“I feel like that’s a grave understatement.” Rodolphus muttered and Bellatrix agreed.

“It is, Cissa was organising all of our things before she even went to Hogwarts.”

“Should I worry that Narcissa is going to take over?” Tom wondered and there was a beat of silence as they all genuinely contemplated it before shrugging.

“At least someone has things under control if all else fails?” Rabastan offered gaining multiple snorts.

“The murder room would become real popular real fast.” Ron declared and there were agreeing nods all round.

“Want to pick out the really dumb Death Eaters? Tell them they’ve all been demoted in favour of Narcissa and see who argues.” Harry murmured just loud enough for Tom to hear making the man laugh before he could stop himself.

“I may just do it.”

Lucius lead them into a large room with enough seating for them all but more prevalent was the numerous tables scattered around where things could be placed out and used to write on if and when necessary. Immediately seats were claimed, Harry just assumed he would be near Tom, Narcissa arrived and drinks were handed out, tables were levitated over while both groups brought out any parchment work, notes and documents they had been working on. Put on display as it was made their work load look even worse and Harry took a deep breath and leaned on Tom slightly before clapping his hands together once to draw everyone’s attention.

“Let’s get this show on the road shall we?”

Notes:

So there we have it, the characters clearly had their own ideas of what should be in this chapter but I hope you like it none-the-less. I always love to hear from you guys – even if I don’t reply to every message I get – so feel free to drop a comment and let me know what you think.

Thanks 😊

Chapter 59

Notes:

Ugh guys!! You have no IDEA how much this chapter did not want to come together. I’ve had about 5k of this written for MONTHS but the second half wouldn’t work how I wanted it!!!! Even now, with this being complete and a solid 9.5k of words, its still not exactly what I wanted. But, I have a chapter and you guys deserve an update so here we are!

So, the big meeting is finally here and it turned out to be a LOT bigger than I anticipated so I’ve ended up splitting it in two (hence, this is not how I planned this to be). Hopefully, the second part doesn’t give me as much hell, but I’m not counting on my brain to be helpful â˜č

Thank you to everyone who reads/follows/favs/comments on this fic! You give me motivation to power through even when this fic makes me want to throw things <3

On with the story!

Disclaimer: Not J.K but this plot is mine for sure. If you see this anywhere else its absolutely not supposed to be there.

Please read the tags

#Parseltongue#

~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~
Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

“Let’s get the Order and Dumbledore out of the way so we can start to plan around them if necessary.” Harry decided, “a lot of things we’re going to be planning are going to have to work around him and them until we can make them disappear.”

“Roll on those days,” Hermione murmured and Harry nodded.

“Twins?”

“Dumbledore and the Order have had quite the reaction.” They chimed with wide smiles that were only slightly unsettling. They pulled out the monitoring parchments attached to the Burrow and Grimmauld Place and laid them out.

“Overall there is a distinct separation of those who are fully within Dumbledore’s circle and those in the basic level of Order.” Fred told them, “those people were flapping about like a Mer out of water.”

“Kinda sad really how they didn’t know what to do until old Dumbles arrived.” George added, “those more in Dumbledore’s immediate circle were distressed as they seemed to have not only a greater understanding of what the WR means but had greater control.”

“WR?” Dolohov asked and the twins blinked.

“Wizengamot reveal.”

There was a pause and a collective roll of their eyes from most of the Death Eaters and Harry had to mask his snort; they’d get used to twins sooner or later.

“What is the general response so far?” Ron redirected and Fred scoffed.

“What do you think? Shock and betrayals of course.”

“Oh, of course, we were the ones that betrayed them,” Hermione confirmed sardonically.

“Most definitely, Paws.” Harry nodded, “don’t you know, we were supposed to comply with all of Dumbledore’s wishes without question.”

“He’s definitely trained enough people to do exactly that,” Ron grumbled with a shake of his head. “I assume things calmed down once the old man got there?”

“Yes and no,” George said with a sardonic twist to his lips. “You’ve gone down a dark path since you got a taste of power, you see.”

“That’s what he’s going with?” Blaise said incredulously and the twins nodded.

“How could he possibly twist that to make it sound logical even to his most loyal?” Rabastan wondered and the twins gave him a look of disappointment.

“The exposure to the House of Black.”

There was another beat of utter silence before many people burst out in disbelief.

“Oh, you have to be kidding me!”

“Are you serious?”

“You must be exaggerating!”

“He didn’t think that would actually work?”

“Please tell me that didn’t actually work?”

“Unfortunately, yes, that did indeed work.” The twins confirmed dryly.

“Apparently, despite Molly’s best efforts, they were exposed to too much dark magic both in the House, with Sirius and Remus, and of course the books available from the library that the three of them must have been hiding.”

“Wow, that is really scraping the barrel for excuses.” Remus huffed shaking his head. “What about Neville?”

“Clearly the exposure of Dark Magic, while he was a baby, affected him more than anyone realised and both he and Harry were already corrupted beyond measure and had just been hiding it.”

“
 wow.”

“You think that’s bad? We’ve condensed it as we didn’t think any of you deserved to lose brain cells listening to the whole conversation.” The twins stated and Harry bit back a wince.

“That bad?”

“Worse, but it’s a sacrifice we’re willing to commit to.”

“There anything of any substance from their reactions?”

“Honestly no, nothing that we couldn’t predict anyway.”

“Well with Molly’s howler I think we have the gist,” Ron said and those at Hogwarts scoffed.

“That woman has a set of lungs on her,” Tom said with distaste. “I’d almost be embarrassed for her actions if it hadn’t played so spectacularly into your hands today.”

“She sent a howler?” Lucius confirmed and the teens nodded.

“We weren’t surprised even if we forgot to expect it,” Neville said with a grimace.

“She was so happy to bring up my betrayal, of the family and Dumbledore, and publicly disowned me as her son.” Ron informed them all, “it was actually way less than I was expecting come to think of it.”

“Congrats baby bro!”

“You made her so angry she didn’t have words!”

“Bravo, bravo!”

“Thank you, thank you!” Ron mock bowed making them laugh.

“How did you turn that in your favour?” Theodore wondered and the teens shared smirks.

“Let ‘slip’ that it’s hard to be sad about her words after the compulsions and obliviates.”

“Ah,”

“With everything else circling it’ll only add to the rumour mill.”

“Which, given Hogwarts' ability to spin anything, can only be a bonus.”

“So what are his current plans involving us?” Hermione asked and the twins shared a look.

“The three of you, especially, need to be steered ‘back to the light’. Dumbledore’s insistence that Harry is the only one that can defeat His Darkness has trapped him in a corner so he’s got to put a lot of focus on getting Harry back.”

“Ha, serves him right the manipulative fuck.” Harry crowed much to the amusement of the group. “What have they suggested so far?”

“Nothing concrete so we’re going to have to keep an eye out.” Fred told them, “Dumbledore being out of the castle has hindered them more than they realised.”

“However, Dumbledore is sure he still has people inside the castle, other than Ginny, that can aid him.”

“Ah yes, his we know of some of them.” Ron nodded, “I don’t wanna say we know all of them because with that man you never know.”

“Who do you suspect as of now?” Remus asked.

“Burbages, Trelawney, Hagrid, and Vector are missing the required Mastery in their chosen subjects but Dumbledore gave them jobs anyway so there are the leading suspects,” Hermione answered looking angry over the sub-par education. She wasn’t the only one, all of the Death Eaters, Remus and Tom looked equally annoyed.

“I want to ask why this was unknown to the Board but I already know the answer.” Lucius griped, “instead I’ll ask how he managed to cover it up?”

“We have yet to find that out, unfortunately,” Neville shrugged, “there are too many things going on for that to be a crucial branch of research right now.”

“Understandable.” The Malfoy Lord allowed.

“Anything else?” Theodore questioned and Harry grimaced.

“Vector, in particular, we need to be careful with as she has a rather vicious streak and we know that Dumbledore covered up the fact that one of her experiments broke the mind of a muggleborn student that should have been in our year.”

“Excuse me!?”

“The joy of their being so much prejudice built up that covering up a muggleborn going missing was very easy for him.” Ron pointed out, “as long as it stayed covered up that wouldn’t be an issue.”

“Something we will be changing.” Hermione stated firmly, “it’ll come out when it’s of most benefit.”

“There are others that will need to come out,” Luna murmured eyes unfocused before she shook her head and looked at them seriously. “Since before he became Headmaster.”

The group collectively balked at the thought.

“He’s been helping himself to the muggleborn?”

“And the halfbloods.”

“Fucking wonderful.” Harry groaned, “do we know why?”

“The further back I need to see the less clear things are. The past is harder than the future and the original decision was made so long ago.”

“Don’t push yourself,” Harry rushed to say, “the reasoning isn’t important yet, but I’m sure we’ll find it eventually.”

Luna grimaced but nodded.

“Did Dumbledore mention anyone else we need to be concerned over?” Draco wondered, “I’ve noted the teachers and obviously the female Weasely.”

“No, and that’s what concerns us the most,” George admitted.

“Yeah, he just said things need to be ‘handled carefully’, which with him could mean anything.”

“Right, so once again we need to be on our guard.” Harry sighed rubbing his temples. “And he knows we’re fully ourselves so he’ll plan around that instead of underestimating us.”

“Then we need the Board to step in sooner than the month they granted McGonagall.” Blaise pointed out, gaining a few raised eyebrows.

“What’s your idea?”

“Full staff and ward review.” He answered, “we can hide our shit in the Chamber, but with the Board cracking down Dumbledore can’t do anything that might remove what he believes is a sympathetic McGonagall and we’ll have the security of stronger wards and those staff Dumbledore owns gone.”

“Not a bad suggestion.” Draco allowed, “with Harry coming out as Lord Gryffindor and claiming the Slytherin Proxy it would be an excellent time for the Founders' blood to revive the ancient wards.”

Harry and Tom shared a look.

“You could start a public persona that would throw Dumbledore completely off his game.” Harry mused and Tom tilted his head.

“Step out in public in an effort to protect the next generation after Dumbledore’s complete lapse to bolster my own platform and then both of us backing Lucius on his Ministerial campaign.”

Harry smirked.

“You read my mind. Then it would be Dumbledore’s word v your new persona as you never openly claimed the Slytherin title last time.”

“And with his shaky reputation – that you intend to fully skewer – his words won’t be accepted.”

“Plus, as I was the one who he used to call about your return I will easily deny Lord Slytherin being anything even remotely close to the creature I fought at the end of my fourth and fifth year.” Harry’s voice took on a dramatic fearful tone and Tom rolled his eyes even as he smirked.

“Do you have anything I can pass on to the Board to make them move sooner?” Lucius wondered, “as the McGonagall has been given a month and I agreed to it I do not want to suddenly backtrack so suddenly after being voted in.”

“Yes, it would look as if you were trying to use your new status to interfere with the Board.” Theodore mused, “you may have to step down from the Board, Lucius.”

“I will take his place.” Narcissa told him, “we have discussed it, and as I meet the criteria we were going to ask for you to back Lucius when he suggested it at the next meeting.”

“It will have to be handled delicately.” Theodore said after a moment, “do we have you switch immediately and wait for the review or try and find something to push the review and then switch?”

Harry, Ron, and Hermione shared a look of bafflement.

“Are you all seriously concerned about finding something the push the review?” Ron wondered.

“We will need something that can be logically explained rather than the things you all seem to know without explanation.” Lucius pointed out and Hermione scoffed.

“Do you want an alphabetical or chronological list?” She muttered and Harry barked out a laugh.

“How about we just go immediate threat, easy to explain, and make Swift happy all in one?” Harry offered and Ron perked up.

“Good fucking bye Aragog may you rot somewhere I will never see again!” Ron cheered and the teens snorted.

“Would you care to share with the rest of us?” Rodolphus asked and Harry smirked.

“You do know there is a full colony of Acromantula living in the forbidden forest right now, right?”

Harry relished in the looks of stunned disbelief from most of the Death Eaters and he raised his eyebrow at Snape’s sneer.

“That is merely a rumour generated to keep wayward students out of the forest.” He denied and both Harry and Ron scoffed.

“Trust me, Snape, I can personally assure you that it is no rumour.” Ron stated with a haunted look. “They tried to eat us.”

“Where the hell did they come from?” Lucius demanded looking both horrified and outraged.

“And more importantly how long have they been there? Depending on the length of time they have been there would give us an idea of how many there are.” Dolohov added and Harry offered a mean little smirk.

“Why don’t you ask the King of shifting the blame over here; he was the one that turned Hagrid in for having a dangerous beast that killed poor Myrtle.”

Tom blinked at him in confusion before he paled and his eyes went wide.

“Do not tell me that oaf was keeping an Acromantula as a pet when we were in school and then stashed it in the forest!”

Harry gave him a solemn look.

“Dumbledore allowed him to get it a wife.”

There was a poignant pause as Tom looked at him in blank disbelief.

“What the fuck!”

Harry threw back his head and laughed.

“He’s laughing because he wishes he was lying,” Ron assured them all. “Yet here we are.”

“You mean to tell us there has been an Acromantula colony growing in the forest for fifty-three years,” Theodore questioned looking pale at the thought.

Harry and Ron shared a look before nodding.

“Yeah, pretty much.”

“I had detention in that forest when I was eleven!” Draco exclaimed horrified and both Narcissa and Lucius’ faces drained of colour.

“I will call an emergency Board meeting as soon as possible.”

“Good, you can have the memory of us in the nest.” Ron said, “you can see how the giant leader of the colony can speak English and offered us up to his children as a meal.”

“It speaks.” Tom deadpanned and Harry offered a wry little smile.

“Of course it does.”

“Why were you in an Acromantula nest?” Narcissa demanded and Harry wrinkled his nose.

“Well, now we know Dumbledore definitely compelled us to go there when we were investigating the Chamber of Secrets.”

“What would he have done if you hadn’t gotten out of there?”

“Honestly, they make a great clean-up crew if you want to get rid of a body so no one would have had a clue what happened.”

“I could have gone my whole life not knowing that was in the forest,” Blaise muttered and Ron snorted.

“You and me both, babe. Trust me on that.”

“Well if nothing else that should buy us more time within the school.” Hermione offered brightly.

“Even better, as we have been trying to unravel the wards with varying success it’ll give us chance to work on other things if the Board brings in an official wardmaster to do it.” Rabastan pointed out, “sure we’ve managed to isolate some that Dumbledore absolutely has altered, removed or added, but they’re such a mess that it's been difficult to know what is supposed to be there, what has been added by other Headmasters and what Dumbledore has done.”

“Oh yeah, and let’s not forget that a handy little thing we didn’t realise until much too late.” Ron remembered making Rabastan grimaced, “once Dumbledore was officially ousted, the visual of the wards on the map changed and we can no longer visibly see which ones he cast, changed or removed. I mean, we know because of time, place, and by what they do, but it's been a nightmare.”

“Wait, so because he wasn’t headmaster his work was no longer highlighted?” Harry confirmed and the pair nodded making him wince. “Good Merlin, they were hard enough to look at before that happened.”

“We know. It’s also what tipped us off that the other Heads would have been able to add/alter/remove something and it would only be indicated by time as there is nothing there highlighting it once they’re not Head anymore.”

“Having a couple of wardmasters and maybe even the Goblins come in and do a full review would save us so much time.” Neville said, “and with you two being the Founders Lords you should be able to get a copy of it so we still get the benefit of seeing what Dumbledore has done.”

“I’d request a copy either way.” Tom agreed, “if we see the full extent of his mechanisms with the wards it may give us more of an idea of what his intentions were other than hijacking power from the Founders line wards.”

“Ugh, I forgot he had done that.” Harry sighed. “Well that’s a later problem: let’s go back to dealing with current affairs.”

“We’ve covered the Order and Dumbledore for now; they don’t have any solid plans but we know they’ll be going for Harry the most. The Board will go for an emergency review and hopefully, that will gut Dumbledore’s ability to access us within the castle as he won’t be able to do so himself.” Draco summarised, “next is the outside reactions to your presence.”

“So, how are we looking?” Harry asked looking towards Lucius and Theodore specifically.

“You really threw the niffler amongst the gold with your arrival, that’s for sure.” Theodore said gleefully, “I haven’t seen this level of political unrest since the beginning of the first war.”

“We do try.” Ron joked making Harry, Hermione and Neville grin.

“There were so many abrupt changes that the Ministry is scrambling to catch up.” Lucius told them, “your entrance into the Wizengamot shifted a great deal of power but that, while shocking and will take adjustment, has happened before and will happen again. My sudden placement as Interim Minister on top of that has had many of the Ministerial staff scrambling and I fear the office will take much longer than even I believed to clear up.”

“It is that bad?” Tom said and Lucius nodded.

“Much worse, my Lord. Obviously, we knew Fudge could be bought, but from my short time in office already I have seen that there doesn’t seem to be a single department free of corruption.” Lucius explained, “not only that but we seem to be either understaffed or completely missing departments that I believe are crucial to the betterment of our world.”

“How wonderful to know our government has fallen so far,” Theodore commented sarcastically much to the rest of the room’s amusement.

“The only benefit to the mess within the Ministry is that the Order haven’t been able to get a foothold in there to start getting people to condemn you as evil,” Lucius said to Harry. “With Skeeter’s articles on top of the sudden changes it has been one huge spiral of confusion.”

“Well that’s something, I guess.” Harry murmured, “and with you, at the helm, there isn’t likely to be a smear campaign like Fudge ran.”

“Obviously,” Lucius shot him a look, “I have been working with Hadrian to evaluate what needs to be done and what is priority but I fear the task is going to need more trusted hands than we currently have.”

“In your opinion, as the Ministry is now, to what scale do we need changes?” Tom asked him and Lucius clenched his jaw as he seemed to steel himself.

“We need a complete overhaul, my Lord.”

Tom looked at him seriously as the rest of the room shared looks of resignation before the Dark Lord nodded.

“Very well, we shall use your campaign to start the overhaul immediately.” He decided, “you will create a report of the state of our government and include everything you believe needs changing, what you would add or remove, and what you consider priority and we shall work a way to incorporate it into your Ministerial campaign.”

“I will begin as soon as I return, my Lord, though I shall need more hands.”

“Speak with those of ours who are either young enough to work as assistants or interns or have children who fit into that category. Not only will that give you trusted hands, but it gives you the ability to evaluate their abilities and find workers for when we implement our changes.”

Lucius perked up the idea.

“I will do.” Lucius agreed, “it’ll also enable me to monitor the Order members in the ministry until they can be purged should the campaign be a success.”

Tom nodded before turning to Harry.

“Can you make it happen?”

Harry looked at his group and they all nodded.

“Of course, we can, and this way we’ll have a solid idea of what we really need to focus on instead of winging it.”

“You intended to wing the Ministerial Campaign?” Theodore said incredulously and Harry shook his head.

“Not the actual campaign, but the planning and building process,” Harry replied.

“For example, we said earlier we could use the unjust prison sentencing as a campaign point but with Lucius’ actual report we can actually get a full layout of which angle would be the most beneficial and have it be backed up by actual ministry information.” Ron continued and Theodore nodded.

“Smart.”

“We have our moments.”

“Not only that but it gives us the priority factors to be focusing on rather than making things too broad. If we expand too much the public isn’t going to believe our words as they won’t think it's possible.” Hermione added.

“This way we can say we’re going to fix Azkaban and not only is that a crucial thing that needs change, but it will appeal to the public because the thought of Azkaban horrifies most people even if they have never met a dementor.” Neville explained, “plus, thanks to Fudge’ idiotic movement to put dementors around a school three years ago, there is going to be three/four years worth of students that can vote and will remember the utter hell that year was and find the changes very appealing.”

“You’ve thought a lot about this.” Narcissa noted impressed.

“Absolutely,”

“Our laws won’t pass unless we have the ministry.” Draco pointed out.

“Not only that but if our standing within the international community goes any lower we’re opening ourselves up to a war we will not win,” Blaise said with a grimace that was reflected around the room.

“The international community has heard of the political movements within Britain and there has been much talk from allies and enemies alike,” Theodore stated and Dolohov hummed in agreement.

“Countries that are more Dark aligned are suddenly paying much more attention to us and while that will be a benefit should we success with the ministry, it currently puts us in a very precarious position.” He explained and Tom looked thoughtful.

“Do you believe we’d be able to gain any of them as allies should we take the ministry?”

“Those where you have people see the current happenings and are both excited and confused. The Boy-Who-Lived legend was peddled way beyond our borders thanks to Dumbledore so there are questions being raised. But the shift to a more Dark orientated ‘Mot shows our success from where things laid fallow from Dumbledore’s actions.” Dolohov told him.

“I see,” Tom tapped his lip in thought before turning to Narcissa. “I believe I will need your delicate hand, Narcissa.”

“What do you need of me, my Lord?”

“We need a formal alliance ball for the entirety of our people, old and new.”

Narcissa’s eyes widened understanding the gravity of such an event before they narrowed in contemplation.

“Location?”

Tom paused before looking at Harry.

“Technically, I am Heir Peverell.”

The teen blinked before smirking.

“You’re birthday?”

Tom looked pleased before turning back to Narcissa.

“Peverell House will be the ideal location.”

“Especially as it is very incorrectly named.” Harry told her, “it’s about the size of this place.”

Narcissa’s eyes gleamed.

“I shall need to see the location, of course, but other than that and you seeing to the wards, I shall have everything in place. Do you have a date in mind?”

“Ostara? For new beginnings.”

“Wonderful, that gives me enough time to plan to accommodate everyone and send out invitations early enough for people to clear their schedules.” Narcissa said pleased, “it shall be done, my Lord.”

“Good. I have no doubt you shall impress us all.” Tom stated and Narcissa allowed a demure smile as she folded her hands in her lap neatly, ever the Pureblood Lady.

“What’s this ball going to entail?” Harry questioned and Tom blinked.

“It's to formalise alliances again and to induce any new ones to the greater collective.” Tom answered, “it will be your official dark affiliation announcement.”

“I see,” Harry looked at the others, “I assume there will be protections in place.”

“Of course,”

“Then I’m sure we’ll have a grand time messing with people who think they know who we are.”

Tom show him an unimpressed look that was ruined by the surge of amusement Harry could feel through their connection.

“Do remember we would like these allies to remain allies by the end of the ball.”

“That’s a you problem.” Harry brushed off, yelping when Tom jabbed him in the ribs. “Mind the goods.”

“It’s an us problem if you want our success to continue.”

“Ugh, I suppose.”

“Remind me why I continue to deal with you, again?”

“Because of your inability not to have the best things in life,” Harry replied without shame and it was Tom’s turn to laugh.

“You are not wrong, Snake.” He smirked before turning back to Dolohov, “the Act of Silence is set to release very soon, do you believe that it plus rumours of a Dark Alliance ball would settle our allies internationally.”

“It should keep them still until the ball itself.” Dolohov answered after a moment, “I can begin releasing small details here and there, and with the Act’s release and Theodore once again on the scene, I believe we can keep them contained.”

“That shall have to do.” Tom said, “we simply do not have the reach internationally to do much else right now.”

“Leave the international dilemma to us for now,” Theodore said.

“Do not forget that I can speak to Nonno to begin rebuilding the British/Italian relations.”

“Ah yes, Duca Marcello, I forget,” Theodore remembered and Blaise smirked.

“Most people do.”

“Plus, I may have an in with the French Ministry if things go well,” Ron added with a wry tilt to his lips.

“Oh?”

“I cannot confirm yet as I need to have some very unpleasant conversations that could go unspeakably wrong, however, my brother’s fiancĂ© is L'hĂ©ritiĂšre Delecour.”

All of the Death Eaters and even Tom seemed to blink at that.

“How in Merlin’s name did your brother manage to become engaged to the heiress of Jaques Delacour, who was notably furious with the disaster of the Tri-wizard tournament and its aftermath. On top of that, your brother is an English wizard, untitled as far as I’m aware and the Delacours are famously non-human.” Dolohov demanded and Ron huffed a slight laugh.

“Honestly, I have no idea as I haven’t really had any contact with him that didn’t involve me pretending to be someone completely different or being so wrapped up in Dumbledore’s spells I didn’t know the colour of the sky.” Ron admitted with a grimace, “I do know they met working with Gringotts, and given that Bill is one of the best Curse Breakers currently employed by the bank I can only assume his reputation that he built himself was enough to override everything else.”

“He is that successful?” Rodolphus questioned surprised and Ron nodded.

“Oh yeah, both Bill and Charlie have done ridiculously well for themselves hilariously out of this country and out of Dumbledore’s sphere of influence.”

“When will you be speaking with your siblings?” Tom wondered, “if we manage to secure at least neutrality with Italy, France, Bulgaria, and the Eastern Slavic nations until the alliance ball or we have more security within the Ministry it would certainly give us space to work.”

“I sent off a request to meet before we came here, I need to get to them before my mother does which I should have done. Harry, Hermione, and I will be meeting with them as soon as they send back a reply.”

“Very well,” Tom nodded then looked back towards Theodore. “The ICW?”

“It will take but a nudge for him to be fully ejected from the body, not only as Supreme Mugwump but altogether.” Theodore stated with a smirk, “I imagine any of the scandals you intend for the old man or even the review into Hogwarts will do it but I shall keep an eager ear out in case anything changes.”

“Dumbledore will be out of direct political power within the month,” Hermione stated pleased.

“Then we just have to play a gripping round of ‘Guess which Sycophant’ and hope for the best,” Harry said cheerfully making all the teens snort.

“Not only that but we need to remember that Dumbledore is playing a longer game than what it appears to be.” Neville reminded them.

“Until something drastic happens Dumbledore isn’t going to reveal anything. It's been over fifty years and we only found out he’s been planning things for that long by accident.” Ron said with a grimace, “clearly whatever he’s been doing is either entrenched or more hidden than his own past because even digging out his skeletons we didn’t find anything that suggested he’d been playing such a long game.”

“It's not something we can focus on currently.” Draco dismissed, “we already have too much to work on and until Dumbledore slips or we stumble across a minor miracle we can’t spare any time or resources searching.”

“Draco is right, right now Lord Malfoy’s campaign has to be our main focus because if we don’t secure the ministry and Dumbledore gets one of his lackeys in we’re either screwed, dead, or both.”

“No pressure then.”

“It may be pertinent to create backup or escape plans out of the country to be cautious.” Tom suggested, “I should have done so before.”

Harry blinked at him in surprise but he wasn’t the only one, the rest of the room bar Theodore and Dolohov looked shocked at the admission and Tom gave them a pointed look.

“Should I have made better contingencies while my sanity was less questionable our cause wouldn’t have lost thirteen years of progress.”

“When you put it like that
” Harry allowed with a frown, “we’ll have to think of something. We have plenty of places to hide in other countries but getting there with the number of people Dumbledore would have searching for us will be the problem.”

“We’ll need time to create those plans but it's something we can do easily enough.” Neville brushed off, “focus on the Order and the ministry for now.”

“Yes, we keep getting distracted,” Hermione agreed, “what are the plans for the Order in the ministry?”

Lucius looked towards the Dark Lord before answering.

“With the current shakeup I’d rather focus on the changes we can make than expelling the Order members, however, with them there Dumbledore has a constant link to what we’re doing and that can only be problematic.”

“Unfortunate but nothing we will immediately be able to work around.” Tom stated, “I assume that Dumbledore will have his spies within the ministry no matter what we do. Our people were there while he maintained control so it's not too much of a stretch.”

“I’ll use the interns and the new hires to maintain a level of observation on the known Order members.”

“I will have some of our best infiltrators added to the new hires so they try and pick up ideas of who Dumbledore’s secret people are.” Tom decided, “make some of the monitoring obvious as it’s what the Old fool and his ilk will expect. It may make the others sloppy if they don’t believe we are looking for more eyes.”

“And should you use the people we already have in the ministry to monitor people, when Dumbledore gets ousted from the Wizengamot they may have a visible reaction enough for us to note who needs watching.” Harry pointed out.

“You have a plan to remove the old fool, then?” Theodore wondered and Harry nodded, a grimace on his face.

“His flagrant misuse of the Chief Warlock position. If nothing else, the sealing of my parents’ wills and keeping Sirius in Azkaban without a trial on top of his already dubious reputation will shatter him.”

“He sealed their wills?” Theodore exclaimed, “but that’s
”

“Exactly,”

“What we intend is once this has been announced to the public, Lord Malfoy will issue a statement indicating that the first thing he intends to do is a full review of Azkaban including its inmates, uses, laws and policies to make sure that the previous administrations have not buried more people in the hell hole,” Ron explained.

“During this point, we will be releasing carefully constructed bits of information about the review and when it's starting to look really horrifying Lord Malfoy will speak to the public and declare his intention of a complete overhaul should he be voted into power.”

“Ah very clever.”

“Which also ties into your plan to keep Amelia Bones of Lucius’ back,” Narcissa remembered and they nodded.

“It is also an opportunity to get Dumbledore out of the country, or at least in hiding.” Tom mused and they all turned to look at him.

“Oh?” Harry raised an eyebrow, “despite everything, I do not see people actively accepting Dumbledore’s arrest easily.”

“No, but as you have said, Dumbledore has people in Azkaban and his actions of late have been questionable. A review of Azkaban and questioning people – especially if we release the information – would spark enough outrage for it to be acceptable to question people closest to Dumbledore. Amelia Bones has ever been one for justice, I am sure she would be more than willing to question all of you plus the delightful little information bag Dumbledore has so carelessly left in the castle.” Tom pointed out with a vicious smirk.

“Ginny!” Ron exclaimed, “she knows a significant amount of what Dumbledore planned for Harry at the very least. And with our testimonies on top of that
”

“Oooo we can work with that!” Hermione hissed pleased, summoning parchment to her to write a few things down. “If done right, we could take out a bunch of Dumbledore’s supporters without it even looking like we’re doing it.”

“We’d need to keep an eye on Bones, if only for protection, if we’re going to use her as a weapon against Dumbledore.” Neville stated, “and I’ll gladly throw Augusta towards Bones’ care as she’s bound to know even more.”

“Do you think you can convince Bones to go for it?” Harry asked Lucius, who paused thoughtfully before nodding slowly.

“Once she sees the blatant injustice – and you have to remember she knew Sirius Black back when he was training to be a Hit-Wizard – I believe she’ll be more than willing. Especially if I offer her the full resources she’s been denied for so long to pursue this. She may be suspicious, but if she’s the one conducting the investigations with people she chooses then she’ll have no choice but to follow through.”

“A plethora of brilliance and you get rid of Ginny; you really are a genius,” Harry said to Tom, who smirked and raised an eyebrow.

“Of course.” Tom said as if it was obvious much to Harry’s amusement, “it also looks exceptionally good for Lucius’ campaign as with all the new resources Bones will have access to he can actively say he’s overhauling the DMLE; something that has gone notoriously under-budgeted and staffed since Fudge took over.”

“The whole department is a huge mess, my Lord, and it does need an overhaul.”

“Two birds,” Hermione said pleased.

“Three actually because Dumbledore being on the wanted list will only look good for our grey/dark international allies and if the school review doesn’t lose his Mugwump position actively being a criminal definitely will.” Blaise corrected and they all looked pleased.

“So we have school sorted, Order monitored, Dumbledore planned for and international issues in hand: shall we turn our attentions to the rest of my father’s campaign or some of the other issues we need to go over?”

“Let’s get the campaign out of the way because a few of our other issues will need to be incorporated into the campaign for maximum effect.” Harry decided, then he looked towards Tom, “what about your side of things?”

“I believe we are in the same position. Until Lucius’ campaign is organised I do not know where to best place my people.”

“Very well, Paws, what do we have?”

“The lead issue Lord Malfoy is going to come up against is anything related to muggleborn; whether people like it or not our population is at least third muggleborn. We hope to get rid of the issue entirely.”

“That is a broad claim,” Rodolphus said as he, his brother, and his wife wrinkled their noses at the thought.

“Not when you take into account that true muggleborn children are actually incredibly rare.” Ron countered, “those we believe to be muggleborn are actually 75% of the time they are descendent from squibs which should enable us to fully remove the title of ‘muggleborn’ therefore cutting the link to muggles entirely. We’re going to call them First-generation witches and wizards.”

“You have proof of this?” Dolohov asked intrigued.

“I am living proof.” Hermione pointed out.

“The plan is to track, identify and bring in all magicals as soon as magically possible so we can eliminate contact with muggles as much as possible. Our overall idea is that only those trained and qualified will have contact with the muggle world.” Harry explained, “for example, our idea is that we stop tossing squibs into the muggle world like it's their fault they don’t have full access to their magic and while we’re working on a way to cure squibs we put them to use instead of wasting active magic users on pointless tasks they would be better of not doing.”

“There’s a lot to unpack there.” Theodore noted, “break it down.”

“The end game is separations of our worlds, however, that’s never going to be possible, because we don’t have an active way to trace squibs until a child with active magic is born, and even if we did we’d still need contact with the muggle world if only for the fact that the muggles need to be monitored else they finally discover us when we are not prepared and kill us all.” Hermione began only to receive scoffs from most of the Death Eaters in the room.

“Muggles kill us?” Bellatrix scoffed speaking for the first time in this meeting. “As if the filth would stand a chance.”

“I find it ridiculous that you seem to believe muggles could ever pose a threat.” Rodolphus sneered and the sentiment was echoed by his brother.

Harry gave Tom a look of disdain and deep disappointment.

“I hope you know you have utterly failed your entire organisation.”

“Excuse me?” Tom demanded with narrowed eyes and Harry sat up and moved away so he was able to fully look at him with a glare.

“You’re really going to sit here and let them continue to sprout shit like them when you damn well know what kind of threat muggles could pose if magic was revealed to them.”

Tom sneered.

“Muggles are a useless blight on this earth that-,”

“The Blitz. Hiroshima and Nagasaki,”

Tom froze and fell silent immediately and Harry’s lip curled, his expression savagely mocking.

“Yeah, easy to forget what they can do when you’re tucked away in the magical world but the aftermath
 hmm not pretty. And for the Japanese well
 they’re still feeling it now. How many were killed with the use of just 2 of these weapons? Go on, remind us all what these useless blights on the earth are really capable of.”

Tom continued to glare at him silently and Harry could feel how utterly furious he was by the burning in his scar, but underneath it he could feel the fear and the hatred he must have felt as a child living in London during ww2. Harry wasn’t about to let this go, however. He refused to allow the continuation of ignorance of what muggles could actually do because, as much as Death Eaters and purebloods liked to bitch, whinge and complain about the muggleborns breaching the statute Harry would put money on it being a Pureblood that would break it if this ignorance continued.

“No, don’t want to? Shame that.” Harry mused as if talking about the weather, “’Mione, do enlighten these highly ignorant individuals of what muggles are capable of if they want to kill people.”

“Over the course of eight months during the years of 1940-41 muggle Germany dropped a series of bombs – think a contained Bombarda maxima times ten – over England and killed approximately 40-43 thousand people. This was called the blitz.”

The purebloods gasped in disbelief and shook their heads but Hermione kept on talking, reciting from memory what every muggle-raised child was taught in history class.

“In 1945, the US detonated two atomic bombs – equivalent to the strength of 10000 simultaneous Bombarda Maximas and throw in some poison to really seal the deal – on the Japanese cities Hiroshima and Nagasaki on the 6th and 9th of August respectively. The bombings killed 226,000 people and over the course of the following years, the poisoning from both bombs continued to play havoc on survivors giving them diseases, defects and disabilities.”

“That cannot be true.” Lucius denied, “nothing would be able to kill that many people so quickly.”

“Oh, it is indeed true,” Snape spoke quietly but the seriousness of his voice was unmistakable. “I have been telling you for years, Lucius, that muggles are more dangerous than you can possibly imagine.”

“And Tom very much knows its true, too. Given the fact he lived through it.”

“My Lord?” Bellatrix questioned sounding shaken.

“It’s true,” He ground out giving Harry a look of poison that he ignored entirely.

“But-but how?”

“Muggles are good at hurting or destroying that which they don’t like.” Harry said simply, “we may have magic, we may be vastly superior to them without question, but for outright distruction? Muggles win hands down.”

“Grindlewald killed between 100,000 to 500,000 magicals during his entire campaign that lasted twenty years? Hitler, his muggle counterpart, killed 6 million muggles in four years.” Hermione added.

“What!?”

“6 million?”

“Now I know you’re lying!”

“No, they are still being truthful,” Snape confirmed wryly, “Hitler locked Jewish muggles in things called concentration camps where they either starved to death, were beaten to death, or locked in a huge room and were forced to breathe in poisoned gas until they died.”

“Oh trust me over the next few weeks you are all going to get a lot of literature and pensieve memories to know exactly what muggles are capable of.” Harry said darkly, glaring at Tom. #You should have had this handled long ago#

#Do not question how I run my organisation# Tom snapped and Harry snarled back.

#I damn well will when you know the consequences. You know full well it’s not going to be a so-called muggleborn that reveals magic but the purebloods who tote muggles as useless.#

#The likelihood of the Statute being breached is slim! You know this, it is not a concern for us and until we have control there is very little to be done.# Tom countered and Harry scoffed.

#Oh yes, it's all easy to brush aside until some idiot does something that cannot be covered up. I will not have the future of the magical world threatened just because you do not want to acknowledge that muggles can both be below us and dangerous.#

#I know very well what they can be.# Tom bit out magic snapping slightly, #as you so kindly reminded me I lived through it.#

#Then why are you allowing possible breaches when education could prevent it?# Harry demanded his own magic rising, #It only takes one thing, Tom, and then we are all screwed. How many people do you think the magical world has ostracised? How many people would be willing to turn on it should there be a breach that can’t be covered up? Muggleborns who have been forced out, squibs who have been abused and dumped for something they never had any control over. It takes one, tiny incident and we will lose everything.#

#Do you honestly believe this to be a current problem?# Tom wondered clearly sensing something in Harry other than anger and the teen looked at him.

#Current? Maybe not immediately. But a serious problem? Absolutely.#

#Harry
#

#Think about this just for a second; recording technology is getting better by the day and there is a breach in the Statute that we are not fast enough to cover up. It may be only the one thing, but then, an angry squib comes forward, a pissed off and resentful muggleborn forced out of the magical world – hell, even a vampire or a werewolf who has known nothing but discrimination in this country. They can offer up all the proof in the world. And then, what do you suppose the muggles will do, Tom?#

“We know what they will do,” Tom allowed and Harry nodded.

“Exactly, we know what they will do. Because I’ll tell you what I’d do as a pissed off magical who has been forced out; I’d give all these angry muggles coordinates for the most important magical places and watch them fall without hesitation. No more ministry, no more Hogwarts, no more Diagon, and then there is nothing.”

“We need to make sure magic is never discovered so in order for that to happen we need people who are fully qualified to go out into the muggle world. That way not only can we collect active magical children as soon as possible, but we have the ability to remove any breaches in the Statute before it becomes a problem.” Ron picked up clearly brushing over the argument Harry and the Dark Lord obviously had in parseltongue

“This also links into the fact that dumping squibs in the muggle world has done us no favours and they should have been kept in the magical world.” Neville continued, “Squibs can still make most common potions, there’s nothing stopping them doing secretarial world, they are able to do pretty much all Arithmetic calculations and if we are able to decriminalise blood magic there is nothing stopping squibs from using, casting or manipulating Runes.”

“Really?” Dolohov wondered intrigued and Neville nodded.

“Their blood is still magical, it’s the core or the connections to it that’s damaged.”

“We really need more research on squibs to be done.” Theodore mused and there were murmurs of agreement throughout the room.

“Maybe something for the DoM to work on as we don’t really have the time for it right now.” Blaise wondered, “or something we need to look into internationally because squibs are a universal problem not just in the UK.”

“There is a possibility that other countries have been looking into the problem while we have been idle.” Dolohov agreed, “but that is a problem for a later date. We need to repeal the ban on blood magic so squibs can be fully incorporated.”

“Well as magicals have been outright killing or dumping squib children into the muggle world for centuries, it is why the so-called ‘muggleborn’ population continues to grow. We believe we’d be able to use this as a stepping stone for another branch of Lord Malfoy’s campaign.” Luna pointed out, “it would work wonderfully. Purebloods would be satisfied that muggleborns would be favoured and muggleborns would finally feel included and be accepted in the magical world.”

“Also, we need to take into consideration how many dormant Houses in the Wizengamot are lost within the so-called muggleborn population.”

“So we figured that the campaign could focus on the growth, expansion, and the future of the wizarding world all with this one linked idea.” Ron said, “return the squibs to the magical world and bring in the active magical children as soon as possible.”

“If this is to work we’d also need to expand how we handle our children. Pre-Hogwarts schools would be ideal not only for socialisation but to further push the growth of our magical education.”

“What do you mean?” Rodolphus asked.

“Think about this: one of the issues purebloods have with the muggleborn is that Hogwarts – and other magicals schools that admit them I’ll agree – is that education has to be slowed as they do not have knowledge coming in. If we have the children discovered early and all magical children begin education at 5, what do you suppose it would do to the education in Hogwarts if every student attending already knew basic history, runes, arithmancy ect?”

“It's an intriguing concept.” Theodore allowed, “we’d be able to expand on what is taught to a greater degree.”

“That’s the idea,”

“How would this be pitched for the campaign?” Lucius wondered and Hermione shuffled some of her paperwork.

“A new department solely dedicated to muggles and a revamp of the Department of Education.”

“How are we going to tie in the repeal of the blood magic ban?”

“Twofold: 1st, we need all the information of the other countries in the ICW that do not have it banned.” Harry began.

“So basically all of Africa, Asia, and the Oceanic region,” Blaise muttered much to their amusement.

“2nd, when the inevitable Dumbledore/light supporter pipes up with disagreement we can use the fact that most old manors are so secure because of blood magic, Hogwarts and the Ministry both included in this, and the very entrance into the Wizengamot being blood magic. Our inheritances, our titles, everything like that is also blood magic and if that somehow still fails we use the fact that Dumbledore used blood magic on the place he dumped me in.” Harry continued.

“Very clever, using things so intrinsically in our culture that cannot be refuted.”

“Then we can use the fact that our healing rates are significantly lower than other countries because of the ban on so many different magics including blood magic.”

“So you intend to lessen the muggleborn problem, expand on job opportunities, change the negativity surrounding squib births, bolster the population and the old Houses, further the education nationally, and hopefully repeal the ban on blood magic with one campaign point,” Lucius said slightly disbelieving and the teens shared a look.

“We pick ‘em well.”

“There will be a lot of work put into making that palpable to the public,” Narcissa warned and they all nodded.

“Yeah, we know, but we figured if we divided it correctly not so much,” Hermione said.

“We’re-,” Harry indicated himself and the Dark Lord, “are working on finding something that can track new magicals in the muggle world.”

“I’ve got the international blood magic information,” Blaise said.

“I’m on the actual laws surrounding blood magic,” Draco added.

“I’m looking into the benefits of using such magic outside of keeping squibs in the magical world.” Neville picked up and then looked towards Hermione.

“I’m working on getting more proof surrounding so-called muggleborns being squib born.”

“And I’m working on what we would need to make a department focusing on the muggles.”

“We need more hands,” Harry admitted.

“I can aid in the information surrounding blood magic internationally,” Theodore offered and Blaise nodded.

“While I can get information on the benefits of using it internationally.” Dolohov continued.

“Perfect,”

“I can take over helping find something that can find magicals in the muggle world.” Rabastan suggested, “then you’d be free to overhaul the Department of Education, my Lord.”

“Yes, that would work well. Rodolphus, Bella, Narcissa, you were all tutored extensively as children but in vastly different ways. You will aid in creating plans on what children should be taught from the ages of 5 upwards while myself, Remus, and Severus will work on Hogwarts and further education.”

“I have already begun on the side of things I doing simply by necessity,” Remus admitted, “there were many things I wished to have been able to cover while teaching at Hogwarts and now teaching the wolves has enabled me to do so.”

“I, too, have many thoughts on the matter, my Lord. With the ideas of pre-Hogwarts education able to be adapted we can easily make sure children have the education needed to perform better at Hogwarts.” Snape admitted and Tom nodded.

“We shall all compile our ideas and information and meet at a later date to consolidate.”

“So that’s Azkaban reforms and muggleborn/squib reforms for the campaign; is that all you intend to cover?” Theodore wondered and Harry shook his head.

“No, we figured we’d go on the big three.”

“Oh?”

“Magical beings.”

“Ahhh,”

“When the Azkaban reform goes head, many of the laws that creep up will involve ‘creatures’ as they’re known now as loads of them are either killed or dumped in Azkaban. That will be one point in our direction. Number two, the fact that Magical beings, some of which are way older than the wizarding population, are treated like dirt is unacceptable and it's easily proven that in countries with fewer restrictions there are fewer attacks ect. And finally, many Ministry resources are wasted on the culling and hunting of these beings that really want to be left the hell alone when they could be put to better use bettering our nation.”

“That’s going to be a hard sell to the public that have been brainwashed to believe beings such as werewolves and vampires especially are dangerous ect.”

“Ah but that’s why the sanctuary and the blood banks are crucial.” Harry pointed out with a smirk. “The sanctuary is proof that when wolves are left alone without people attacking them they are perfectly lovely beings. When we get the blood banks up and running it will show that vampires are just people with a different diet and while we are able to buy our food so shall they.”

“How do you intend to make that public friendly?”

“Frame it as if we’re trying to lessen attacks and so on.” Ron suggested, “we’re not lying, it's just that we’re also making it so Beings start getting their own rights and liberties.”

“Goblins especially need their own rights because sooner or later they’re going to rebel and we’re all going to be poor as Hel,”

“Goblins, wolves, and vamps leading magical beings needing reform then branching out to others down the line.” Draco made a note. “So we need people to examine international laws surrounding them, which are going to be extremely varied, and we need to start planning on how we present it to the public.”

“I say we go old-fashioned.” Hermione said with a slight smirk, “good old tell-alls with the beings themselves.”

“Get ready, Moony, you are about to be famous,” Harry told him with a grin.

“I am in no way reassured.” The Marauder muttered but he was also grinning.

“With Lord Malfoy tearing through the ministry we should be able to get accurate – somewhat – statistics on how often attacks and other happenings went up when a law or restriction was added to magical beings,” Ron said and the Minister nodded.

“There may be some corrupt data but we should be able to parse the real from the fabrication.” Lucius agreed.

“I don’t envy you,” Tom said seriously and Lucius grimaced.

“I still can’t believe the Ministry was able to function in the state that was in.”

“We will need a plan for the blood banks, but once they are secured they can be added into the campaign.” Draco reminded them and Hermione nodded.

“I’m working on it, but it won’t be our first topic so we have time.”

“They’ll work out wonderfully,” Luna assured and all the teens took a breath of relief.

“We’re also going to need all the data you’ve managed to collect about the creatures being driven out of the country by the so-called ‘light’,” Ron remembered looking towards the Death Eaters.

“We have plenty and I am sure I can find things we collected during the previous war,” Dolohov said with a thoughtful look.

“I have much of what was collected still,” Tom assured and Ron nodded.

“That will give us an edge as we have years of proof rather than just recently,” Neville said pleased.

“Yes, plus it gives us a visible decline in numbers while an incline in attacks.”

“I think that’s the three main parts of the campaign covered,” Harry said looking around to make sure he had everything and got nods from his friends.

“It ties in well with what our end goal intends to be.” Tom acknowledged sounding pleased, “and it should guarantee a win for us.”

“You all have your things for the campaign-,” Fred said,

“What are we doing at this time?” George asked and Harry blinked.

“You are going to be our eyes and ears everywhere as you have been doing so very well.” Harry pointed out, “but even more than that; you are very successful businessmen and you have many connections we simply don’t have reach for. You’ll be pushing the campaign on the ground. Rumours we need circulating without it being obvious, leaks we need to happen without it looking deliberate, secrets we need exposing at the right time.”

“Oh good-,”

“Our expertise then,”

“Plus, you are kind of our magical department when it comes to experiments right now.” Neville pointed out.

“And I’m going to need you with Bill and Charlie.”

“We’re going to have such fun.” They chimed together and Harry snorted.

“Don’t jinx it.”

“Everyone clear on what they’re doing? Yes? Good, then let's move on.”

“Oh good, does this mean we’re done with politics?” Bella exclaimed, “they’re exhausting.”

“Yes, Bella, we’re indeed moving on from the politics,” Tom confirmed amusement lining his tone.

“Finally!”

Harry laughed at her muttered exclamation and shook his head.

“So what’s next?”

Notes:

Finally got this chapter done and dusted and hopefully the next one will continue in a positive way because I tell you what I have HATED writing this one. I know its needed, for both plot and my own state of mind but it absolutely did not want to be written :(

As always it's great to hear from you guys and I do try and get back to you all eventually.

Thanks for reading ^_^

Chapter 60

Notes:

*creeps back into the story*

Uhhhhh hi?

I am indeed not dead and have finally returned to this fic. What can I say? The muse deserted me and life has really been lifeing in the best and worst possible ways.

I've been formally diagnosed with Anxiety, am on the wait list for ADHD and ASD, and have been getting use to a bunch of new meds which hasn't helped but isn't the best of excuses for why this fic and you guys have been left in the lurge.

BUT.

I want you guys to know that I have read every single one of your comments and I love all of them! I know sometimes I vanish (2 days or 2 years... who's counting???) but just know I appreciate every single interaction on this story and you guys keep me motivated enough to not pitch this fic into a volcano.

This chapter has been an absolute nightmare. It did not want to be written and it's been sitting at 2k for nearly a year until I decided, fuck it, and began writing the second half of the chapter and then simply wrote backwards. Then I was able to crack out nearly 8k in a day and a half so clearly I have a new strategy for when I get stuck.

Still, it's been a long ass time and when I started this fic I promised all of you that I would never abandon it so I buckled down and finally I can give you the next chapter of my brainchild.

I really hope you enjoy it and I promise, even if it takes FOREVER, I will get around to answering all of your messages.

I am in no way responsible for any triggers happening if you haven't read the tags for 60 chapters

#Parseltongue#
~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Nicknames:

Snake – Harry

Ray/Raven - Luna

Venom – Blaise

Paws – Hermione

Swift – Ron

Manic – Fred

Panic – George

Bleach – Draco

Badger – Neville

(See the end of the chapter for more notes.)

Chapter Text

“Werewolves.” Harry decided, “Moony?”

“We are in desperate need of wands.” Remus began straight away, “originally I was going to do as you suggested and take groups through to one of volunteered properties in Germany to visit Gregorvitch but that was a non-viable solution once the prevalence of wolf hunters became apparent when things had calmed enough for any of the wolves to be willing to leave.”

“I have a contact with a Russian wandmaker that would have no issue outfitting Werewolves.” Dolohov spoke up, “he’s been one of my main contacts in getting certain creatures out of the country under the guise of wand materials.”

“Alexai Resnikov?” Tom confirmed and Dolohov nodded.

“Yes, the old bastard is still going strong and given his half creature status is not in the business of being selective of his clientele.”

“Who has properties in Russia that won’t be monitored by the Russian government if it suddenly has a significant amount of portkey activity around it?” Hermione wondered, “Ron, Neville and I don’t have anything in the country.”

“Mine is half destroyed,” Harry added, “it’s a Black property.”

“Ah I remember that place.” Bellatrix perked up looking at her sister, “isn’t that the one where Aunt Cas and Aunt Cretia got into that duel – you know the one
”

“Oh yes!” Narcissa remembered, “we nearly all froze to death when they ruptured the weather wards and brought what felt like the entirety of Russian winter down on our heads.”

“Notice not a single person in this room is surprised at that story because, you know, Blacks.” Ron muttered lowly to Blaise, who badly covered up his snort when Harry, Draco, Narcissa and Bellatrix all looked at them both offended.

“Too cold for my family,” Blaise said to move attention from the glares he was getting.

“I think we have a small manor in Russia.” Draco put in looking at his father for confirmation.

“Indeed we do. It’s in good enough condition as it was refurbished the year before you started Hogwarts as we were considering Durmstrang.” Lucius confirmed, “given Russia’s tenuous alliance with the UK right now I believe we could get away with using the manor.”

“If we don’t use too many portkeys it should be hidden by the wards anyway.” Rabastan pointed out, “if the wards are anything like any other Malfoy property I’ve been on.”

“They are almost identical yes,”

“How long do you think it would take this Resnikov to get everything he needed to outfit so many people?” Remus questioned and Dolohov smirked.

“He’s a travelling wand crafter so he carries most of his materials with him, its how we’ve been getting people in and out.”

“Send word for his services,” Harry ordered then turned to Lucius, “when can you prepare the manor?”

“I can send an elf to open it up easily and if I craft the Portkeys they should allow those given to them to bypass the wards.”

“Would he want gold to compensate or would he prefer materials?”

Dolohov blinked at that.

“What do you have to offer for materials for a wand crafter?”

“Basilisk parts.”

“He’ll take that without question.” Dolohov stated immediately.

“Good, I have an itinerary of what we have left and we can negotiate what parts he wants for the cost of the wands.” Harry decided, “any objections?”

No one had any issues so he turned back to Remus.

“What else have you got for us?”

“As you know I’ve been working with certain Death Eaters following up on leads surrounding Dumbledore’s contacts for his crusade with Werewolves and the Hunters that have crawled out of the swamp pits they should have stayed in.”

“Yes, his extremism stretched much further than we could have realised,” Dolohov added and Remus grimaced.

“We had some idea with the influx of foreign wolves but much of Europe has been affected in some ways with some notable exceptions; mainly Eastern Europe remains free of such influences.”

“It’s concerning that he’s been able to influence so much especially while not being directly involved all the time.” Neville mused, “at least in the UK it's more understandable.”

“Dumbledore’s political scope is extremely impressive but then again he has had 50 years to grow it and its only now it’s taken a large enough hit for it to be effective,” Ron said with a look of disgust. “We can hate him all we want but we have to agree that he knows how to capitalize on the smallest of openings.”

“It’s what makes him such a dangerous opponent.” Lucius allowed.

“I was able to find and follow a lead as to how Dumbledore is working so well without a direct hand on the broom.” Remus picked back drawing all of their attention.

“Oh? Should we be concerned?” Hermione asked and Remus frowned thoughtfully.

“I don’t want to pre-emptively say yes as I haven’t been able to find much, but that in itself is a concern.” Remus said to them, “it seems that Dumbledore may be working directly with someone in the German government, one Wendt Riggall. I don’t know where he was born but he seems to have a German mother which is where he got his citizenship. Riggall seems to have connections to Austria, Slovenia, Switzerland, Belgium and France from what I’ve been able to discern; he is entrenched in the German government and international politics.”

“Absolutely 100% pre-emptively say yes for being concerned,” Ron stated looking at Remus wide-eyed and he wasn’t the only one.

“What else do we know about this man?” Tom questioned and Remus scowled.

“That’s all I’ve been able to find so far. We haven’t even found a full name, which is suspicious as he’s a member of the Government. He seems to have his fingers in everything but nothing about him is public knowledge.”

“Do you have any in your ranks that would have a non-suspicious in within any of those Governments?” Harry asked Tom who paused to think before answering.

“I believe I have people for Germany, Belgium and Switzerland. I shall call a meeting and stress the importance of subtlety and information gathering.” He replied and Harry nodded.

“If the talk with Bill goes well we should get into France. Fleur of all people would understand the need to stop this culling of creatures.” Ron pointed out.

“This is true but we shouldn’t count that as a guaranteed solution just in case things don’t go in our favour.” Hermione cautioned.

“We need to make sure we do practically everything we can bar actual kidnapping to make sure that meeting goes well.” Harry said to them both and they nodded in agreement.

“Luna believes the letter should reach them before my mother’s so now it’s a me vs her mentality and given both of them all but fled the country to get away from her I’m cautiously optimistic.”

“If we are successful we might just have a look into Romania. I know Charlie isn’t one for politics what with his obsession with dragons, but the reserve itself is largely entrenched into the Romanian government.” Harry pointed out and Ron grimaced but nodded slowly.

“I know Charlie is quite high up on the food chain on the reservation but I don’t know if that means he’ll know much about it. It’s all speculation right now and I don’t want any of our plans relying on this.”

“That’s understandable,” Blaise assured him, “focus on getting them neutral or onside first and worry about the other plans after the fact.”

“We will have to put that aside for now as we cannot act on that ourselves,” Harry decided shaking his head, “Moony, obviously continue gathering as much as you can and keep track and once Tom sends his people where they need to be we can consolidate.”

“Got it,”

“The rapid changing in our political climate means that Dumbledore is going to be seeking any and all options to regain any level of favour he previously had.” Hermione pointed out, “this means that many of your Death Eaters, especially the infamous ones, are going to be his targets as he cannot go after us directly.”

“I have thought much the same,” Tom agreed, “which is why I intend for Bella and Rodolphus to go and capture us some creature hunters.”

Bella’s eyes lit up at the thought.

“A hunt,” she said with glee, “its been so long.”

Tom smirked.

“We need some of them alive, of course,”

“Of course, my Lord.” Rodolphus assured him looking as pleased as his wife.

“You’ll coordinate with Remus and the Death Eaters assigned to him for any leads they have for the wolf hunters and then expand your search for those hunting other creatures that fall under our banner.”

“It will be our pleasure, my Lord.” Bella exclaimed with a manic grin.

“Will we be working alone?” Rodolphus asked and Tom shook his head once.

“You’ll be given a team to work with, some of the lesser ranked Death Eaters who were also removed from Azkaban and that have contacts outside our borders.” He said to them, “how you place them is within your purview, but I expect prisoners to interrogate.”

Bella clapped her hands almost brimming with happiness.

“Just like the old days.”

“I will have information to pass on to you during my time spreading international rumour.” Dolohov informed them, “and I shall reach out to contacts I have amassed.”

“I will speak with Nonno. Italy has banned the act of hunting any magical being or race and keep up-to-date with those known for hunting in case they cross our borders.” Blaise added.

“We will also need to be careful of our movements now we know Dumbledore has an accomplice, and when we finally oust him from the political sphere he’s going to go underground.” Remus mused, “perhaps some untraceable portkeys and some unusual disguises?”

“That sounds like a job for us.” George chimed in with a smirk.

“And we might just be on to something.” Fred continued.

“What have you got for us?” Harry asked with a grin.

“We started working on a more secure version of glamours back when everything first came to light. We figured that it could be a small problem should the glamours drop and everything revealed even if any of you could probably obliviate anyone who saw you.” George began and the trio nodded in understanding.

“It’s not finished, we put it to the side when things started picking up, but we believe when it’s complete that the user could pull forth dormant traits that would hold for around twenty four hours so far.”

“What do you mean?” Rabastan asked with a look of slight confusion.

“Well take the delightful Lady Lestrange,” Fred indicated, “we know, as Lady Malfoy is her sister, that one of her dormant traits is blonde hair. If she took the potion it could bring forth that trait and any others that were strong within her blood. It picks three of the main genetic markers to switch; eyes, skin and hair.”

“How could you possibly have anything that would bring forth such differences that varied within different people?” Snape questioned intrigued.

“Blood.” The twins answered together. “Seven drops of blood before the user drinks the potion and then it feels a bit like Polyjuice.”

“What is needed for this to be finished?”

“Repeated consumption is toxic and so far we haven’t found substitute ingredients that can act in the same way.” George explained, “we have used it successfully but after a few days we started to get very ill.”

“It was odd having black hair for a day.” Fred nodded, “didn’t appreciate the violent sickness, however.”

“Bring it; we shall dedicate time to completing this.” Snape declared making the twins blink in surprise before grinning massively.

“We’ll be there tomorrow.”

“Once you have managed to complete this it will be an incredible boon for us all,” Tom said sounding impressed.

“It will not come cheap.” Fred warned, “the ingredients are expensive and it takes a long time to brew.”

“If you are willing, we can have some of our best Potioneers swear to silence and have them working on it from the war funds.” The Dark Lord suggested and the twins shared one of their looks that only they could interpret.

“Deal.”

“I’m going to look like Grandma Rosier,” Bellatrix said in disgust much to the amusement of her sister, who burst into tinkling laughter.

“You always hated her.”

“She gave me this hair!” Bella complained, “you might have gotten her colours but you have the Black hair and I have this mane. The spells I had to learn
”

“People without curly hair will never understand.” Hermione lamented and Bella huffed in agreement.

“We can use the potion as it is temporarily as we will only need it while crossing the borders.” Rodolphus pointed out, “if we get papers forged we can cross legally and then lead Dumbledore and the corresponding governments on a merry chase as they wonder how we got to where we are.”

“That’s brilliant.” Ron declared, “the governments will be so busy checking their borders and trying to secure their lands that they will be distracted as to your purpose there. Dumbledore will also wonder why his own people didn’t pick up on your entrance and will also look into it, having to split his time between that and your actual actions.”

“Plus, if we equip you with a Scamander trunk, the prisoners can be carried across the borders by your legal identities without concern if missing person reports are sent out.” Luna suggested and Harry smirked.

“It would also work to transfer the team of Death Eaters over the border so we don’t need to exhaust the supply of potions for all of the hunting team.” Harry added.

“The fact that not a single one of us thought of using a truck such as that for anything ever before is disheartening.” Theodore shook his head and Tom pinched the bridge of his nose.

“Can I plead insanity?”

“Hilariously, yes.” Theodore deadpanned making Harry burst out laughing at Tom’s deeply unimpressed look.

“Thank you, Theodore, for that excellent contribution.” Tom snarked and Theodore gave a graceful nod.

“Anytime, old friend.”

“So the hunting team is temporarily sorted.” Harry picked up. “We’ll have to organise an untraceable purchase of a Scamander trunk and we’ll get a back of the disguise potion as is to begin with. Next on the agenda?”

“I think it will be a benefit if I assign certain Death Eaters to some of the current projects.” Tom decided, “Antonin, Theodore, would there be any that you could use?”

“A number, my Lord.”

“Then we shall assign them once you give me names.” Tom said, “once we have the knowledge we need we need a plan to move forward.”

“Our paper is going to be showcasing much in the upcoming months.” Luna reminded them.

“Then we are in need of more reporters.”

“Might I suggest going through the records of those fired from the Prophet?” Narcissa put in, “many would have been let go simply because they refused to break their integrity.”

“Excellent suggestion. Once we have the paper up and running we can have some of the unknown or unmarked Death Eaters act as recruiters.” Neville said jotting something down on the parchment in front of him, “I’d suggest Lady Malfoy but that would look like bias once the information we publish comes out and word spreads that she did the recruiting.”

“I have several people in mind that could fit such a position.”

“So a summary of what we are doing so far?” Harry wondered. “Yours then mine?”

“Antonin and Theodore are working on our international problems. Antonin getting the wandmaker first and then working on external politics, and rumours, while Theodore is focusing on the ICW and internal politics. Narcissa will be organising our Dark Alliance ball which pairs with that.”

“With Blaise and possibly Ron assisting with Italian and French connections,” Harry said and Tom nodded.

“Do not forget that the Malfoy Russian accommodation needs to be opened and Harry needs to collect the Basilisk parts for payment.” Hermione chimed in and Harry and Draco nodded.

“It’ll be done.”

“Bella and Rodolphus are going hunting.” Tom continued, “tracking down our creature hunters for interrogation with the aid of a team.”

“Remus is also going to be aiding in this as he had already found some leads for them to follow and hopefully this will lead to us finding some hunters directly connected to Dumbledore or his mysterious accomplice, Wendt.”

“And once I have moved some of my unknown Death Eaters into the international ministries they will also pass on any information.” Tom added.

“Will we have confirmation when they are in position?” Ron asked.

“Yes,”

“Thank you,” the redhead made a note, “once we know where they are we can finalise backup extraction plans for anything you or they come up with.”

“Fred and George are going to supply the disguise while we supply the Scamander trunk, and then Fred, George and Snape are going to work on finalising the disguise so it can be utilised on a more permanent basis.” Harry carried on, “depending on how fast they finish depends on if they will lead the extraction ideas or we throw it out into a group discussion.”

“Lucius is obviously working within the Ministry and with several of yours on his Ministry campaign, plus whatever team he will create to be the main public face of it.”

“I will have the names and their positions to you as soon as possible, my Lord.” Lucius assured him.

“Once we have them we can arrange meetings where we can pass everything we’re working on for the campaign to you so you can have them flesh it out ready for public consumption.” Luna said, “that will involve getting our paper up together and making sure it has no connection to any of us.”

“Hiding our identities is probably going to be the easiest part of that.” Harry mused, “could we not simply keep it in your mother’s maiden name?”

“Dumbledore will know.”

“Dumbledore should be cut by the knees by the time we publish so it shouldn’t give him much opportunity to search.”

Luna looked unfocused for a moment before nodding slowly.

“He will find out but it will be too late for him to move by the time he does.”

“Perfect.”

“Now, Rabastan is still working on the wards but he is also taking over my side of the research into finding magicals in the muggle world.” Tom said.

“I’m going to switch Hermione to that too, as it's very researched heavy and my patience has its limits.” Harry admitted, “it also pairs well with her research into muggleborns being squibborn too, so that flows better.”

“What do you intend to take over?” She asked.

“I’ll take the blood banks back,” Harry said, “if we’re going to have this Dark aligned ball then once I finish them up I can present them to the vampires, especially if Atan is there.”

“He will be,” Tom confirmed, “he will want to see your final classifications if you have them.”

“They need to be reviewed by the vampires themselves and then someone who can make is palpable but yeah, they’re close enough.”

“Then that should gain a positive note from the vampires.”

“Draco, Neville, Ron and Blaise are heavily focusing on laws both nationally and internationally, with Ron leading how they’re going to be working into the campaign and how they’re going to be incorporated into our national law once Lucius is Minister.” Harry said looking down at his notes, “plus Ron is working on how we’re getting Bill, Fleur and Charlie onside while Blaise and Draco focus on Blood magic with Theodore and Dolohov, while Neville uses the knowledge on how it can be used to benefit our society as a whole and not just for squibs.”

“With Rabastan taking over my side of the magical detector, I will focus heavily on both the Department of Education and the Department of Muggle Separation.” Tom declared, “I will await all of the information from tutoring experiences while I use first hand knowledge from myself, Severus and Remus as teachers at Hogwarts.”

“And of course, once Fred and George work their magic to have rumours and “secrets” spread, I’m going to be using my name up front to make inquiries, get people talking, stage a few “random” interviews and hopefully get it so Remus’ first hand tell all happens to be in a time and place that can’t be silenced.” Harry put in, “I’m also working on finishing any classifications I’m still working on, aiding on the campaign, helping where I’m needed with the sanctuary and being the main face of our alliance.”

“I think we have everything.” Hermione decided looking over her notes, “obviously we will be available for help over everyone’s assignments but each of us knows exactly where our focus needs to be.”

“Your Death Eaters?” Harry asked Tom.

“Obviously you know I shall inform you of the teams and the infiltrators, and as for the others they shall continue to lay low and train.”

“Do you intend to follow up on our idea of a public persona?”

“If the disguise potion is finalised it would be the perfect option for me to remain under the radar without any of Dumbledore’s men being able to dispel it.”

“Dumbledore’s confusion when no magic registers upon you when it gets reported back to him is set to be something I’m sad to be missing.” Harry said with a smirk.

“Do not worry, I will make sure you are there when it is revealed to him.”

“You are a generous Lord.” Harry informed him and Tom sniffed.

“Of course.”

“First order: Lucius, send word when your manor is ready and Dolohov when the wandmaker is found so it can be passed on to Remus, then we’ll kick start the campaign as soon as we have the first order of business in place.” Harry said turning to the blond in question, “once those details are handled and I can negotiate how much basilisk parts the wandmaker requires for payment I can wash my hands with the situation.”

“I shall inform you once I have secured the wandmaker,” Dolohov promised and Harry nodded.

“I don’t think I have anything else to add.” Harry said before turning to his friends, “guys?”

“No, we seem to be clear, though we may need a better form of communication with the Death Eaters,” Hermione said thoughtfully and Harry made a humming sound of agreement.

“Remus, did you happen to help my father and Siri create their communication mirrors?” He asked and the werewolf blinked.

“I did. I think I have the notes somewhere.” He realised, “I shall hunt for them.”

“If you’d like, we can secure the patent and have it secured through our business?” Fred offered, “the communication mirrors could be something that, later down the line, we could market very well.”

Harry looked at Remus as it he was the only surviving member of the creators and the werewolf nodded slowly.

“For now we shall keep it between us, but the possibility of creating a whole network of them so they could act as an alternative or even take over floo calling would be incredible.”

The twins eyes lit up at the prospect of such a thing and the others in the room looked intrigued by the thought but Harry cut them off before they could delve into the logistics.

“Talk about the plans and ideas amongst yourselves; we don’t need to know unless you need help.”

George pouted while Fred heaved a great sigh as if it was an imposition before they both grinned and Remus smirked.

“We might also talk about creating a Marauders line for your shop; the mirrors will be only a part.” He offered and the twins positively exploded.

“Well looks like we’re done here.” They exclaimed, “come along Remus, let’s get to work so we can get these lovely people their communication mirrors and make ourselves some incredible items that will make us richer than rich.”

Harry and his friends snorted.

“For now, we shall pass on information through myself or Harry or directly using House Elves so nothing can be intercepted.” Tom decided, “it is the safest option available to us at the current time.”

“Sounds like a plan.” Harry agreed, “next big meeting?”

“As long as nothing major occurs then I believe we shall meet in a month. You all can organise meetings between yourselves in your own time.”

Everyone took that as the dismissal it was and started gathering up all the necessary parchments and notes that had been worked on during the meeting. They all had much to work on and many of their plans hung on working together to get each of the necessary parts done so the next person could take over. The thought of what they had to do in the upcoming weeks made him feel exhausted and that was before they had to deal with everyday life.

“Ugh I can’t wait to have a nap.” Harry cited stretching out his body, “I mean I know I had one before we got here but quite frankly I’m exhausted.”

“Unfortunately, darling, that will have to wait,” Tom informed him and Harry blinked.

“Oh? Why?”

“We have business to attend to.” The Dark Lord said and Harry raised an eyebrow.

“We as in us or we as in groups?”

“Us.”

“Okay?” Harry drew out the word but Tom said nothing else so the Potter Lord turned to his friends. “Looks like I’m busy now so I’ll see you guys in the morning. Don’t forget to make sure you’re not seen before the time meets up.”

“We’ve been using the time-turners long enough to know, Snake.” Draco rolled his eyes, “Blaise and I shall go and play in the Slytherin politics.”

“Hey, I’m allowed to be concerned.” Harry pouted, “I’m a nice person.”

“Sometimes,” Ron coughed and Harry’s jaw dropped.

“RUDE!”

They shared a laugh before Harry’s group dissipated taking Snape, Remus and Rabastan with them back to the castle while Bella, Rodolphus, Dolohov and Theodore said their goodbyes and headed out. The Malfoys turned towards their Lord with looks of inquiry on their faces.

“I shall not linger much longer, there is something must do before I leave.” He told them and they bowed their heads regally before also taking their leave. Tom lead Harry out and they went in the direction of what Harry had mentally started calling the throne room.

“Are you going to establish a Headquarters outside of Malfoy Manor?” Harry wondered and Tom made a humming sound.

“I had every intention and then I got sidetracked with teaching and the rapid pace in which things began to move since your arrival.” He admitted and Harry nodded.

“Yeah, that makes sense.”

“I shall probably use the Riddle Manor as a training base and a meeting point but it needs work.”

“Then send the Peverell House elves.” Harry pointed out, “if they work on the actual manor, as it doesn’t really need any renovations only fixing, then you can lay the wards and secure it however you wish.”

“I am furious I did not think of such a thing.” Tom muttered with a scowl and Harry grinned.

“Didn’t you once say to me that you figured I would think of House Elves as I use them in my daily life?” He mocked and Tom side eyed him.

“Don’t think I won’t hex you.”

“Don’t think I will let you touch me tonight if you do.”

“I fear that is going to be held over me often.” Tom sighed and Harry laughed.

“It’s the little things.”

“With you nothing is ever little.”

“I feel like I should be offended.”

“I do not care if you are.”

Harry snorted and Tom flashed a smirk. They entered the large hall and Tom conjured up his usual throne but this time he put a secondary one next to him so Harry could sit with him. Harry blinked at it, somewhat stunned by Tom’s actions and what it represented.

“Tom.”

“Sit,”

“Surely you are not introducing me to your Death Eaters now?”

“I am not, but I shall be holding a full meeting with them tomorrow and informing them of your change in allegiance now that it is public knowledge, as well as the position you hold in my eyes before you meet with them,” Tom stated easily as if he wasn’t all but admitting Harry was his equal. “If any then chose to try and take you from me then I shall know they are suicidal and act accordingly for the betterment of everyone.”

Harry released a surprise bark of laughter at his words and Tom looked pleased. The teen shook his head at the older man’s actions and moved over so he could reach up and kiss him.

“You are possessive, unhinged and unfathomably charming.” Harry told him, “thank you.”

Tom took a seat pleased with himself and Harry sat next to him, watching with curiosity that quickly turned into rage when he pulled out his Dark Mark pendant and hissed

#Petter Pettigrew#

“The rat?” Harry demanded, “what do you need him for?”

“Did you not promise Hadrian that you would be handing him over? Did I not promise you could?”

Harry blinked and then a somewhat feral smile stretched over his face.

“Remember how I said you were good to me, Tom? I’ll be sure to thank you accordingly.” Harry told him coyly.

“I will hold you to that.”

Before they could continue their flirting banter, Pettigrew scurried into the room, rat-like face twitching in anxiety as his beady little eyes darted back and forth. He threw himself on the floor at the Dark Lord’s feet with a snivelling greeting that made Harry’s lip curl and Tom look down at him in disgust.

#How didn’t I kill him when I was insane?# Tom wondered, his tone riddled with derision.

#Don’t ask me, I’ve wanted to kill him since I discovered him at thirteen and still under Dumbledore’s webs.#

“Get up, Pettigrew.” Tom snapped when the rat didn’t seem to be stopping his grovelling anytime soon. The rat scrambled to obey, tripping over his own feet several times as he got up and Harry wondered with full judgement how his father, Sirius or Remus could ever consider this waste of magic their friend. He saw the moment when the former Marauder caught sight of Harry and realised who he was because his flushed face when pasty white and he took a stumbling step back when Harry bared his teeth in a fallacious smile that showed only too well how he felt about the cretin before him.

“M-m-my Lord?” Pettigrew squeaked, “wha-what is he-?”

“That is none of your concern.” Tom cut him off clearly having no time nor patience for the rat, “You are here to serve a purpose and serve it you shall.”

“Your w-w-will is m-m-m-my co-command, my Lord.”

#Do you have anything you wish to do with him before I alter his mind? Do not worry about discovery, I shall need to change him so thoroughly so that he might stand up against anything the Ministry throws at him.#

#You are spoiling me,# Harry hissed back delighted. “Let’s see, shall we? Crucio.”

The unforgivable hit Pettigrew before he had a chance to even understand what was happening and he dropped to the floor screeching, writhing on the ground and the curse tore through him. Something in him was soothed by the rats suffering and Harry took a slow breath, relishing in the sounds of his pain. He released the spell and took time to appreciate Wormtail whimpering on the floor. Harry was nice enough to allow him to regain his breath before lashing out with a spell Hermione had made when she was particularly enraged.

“Premo Exposso,”

There was a sickening crunching sound and Pettigrew shrieked as his arm was crushed under Harry’s magic and the teen felt the curiosity from the Dark Lord next to him.

“Hermione’s spell. It crushes bones rather than simply breaking them.”

“Did she have anyone in mind when she created that spell?” Tom wondered and Harry snickered.

“The general population and their stupidity, I believe,”

“I fully understand the need.”

“I just bet.”

“Trahere Capillis,” Harry cast, making sure to push as much magic into the spell as possible knowing the results, and watched pleased as great chunks of hair was ripped out of Pettigrew’s skull and other hairs were yanked off his body.

“Did you just turn a beautification spell into a torture curse?” Tom said impressed and Harry beamed.

“I did. Turns out the plucking spell can be real nasty if you overdo it. It's why only certain people perform it at salons.”

“The possibilities,” Tom murmured realising how many spells he had overlooked because they were so far removed from what he assumed would cause pain. He had often times used healing spells or even household charms as torture devices, but for some reason he had never thought to use beautification magic.

“Aguamenti Salsamenta,” Harry blasted the rat with an edited version of the water charm that shot out salt water instead of drinking water making Pettigrew’s wails reach new heights.

“We really need to have a joint torture session,” Tom declared, “you have been holding out on me.”

“Sometimes you just need the right person to torture,” Harry mused, “really get the imagination going.”

“I see that.”

“I should stop,” Harry said with a sigh, “I have a nifty little spell that twists the spine around but that would kill him and that sort of defeats the purpose of him being here in the first place.”

“I wish to see that spell in action.” Tom declared, “perhaps once we have a hunter in our grasp you will demonstrate.”

“Definitely. Plus, it would give you a chance to show off too. I know you have some incredible spells in that mind of yours.”

“Indeed,”

“Who’s gunna heal him?” Harry wondered and Tom waved him off,

“He doesn’t need to be perfect so long as he is not mortally wounded.”

“So just make sure he’s not bleeding then?” Harry suggested, “I can do that.”

Tom looked at him but Harry didn’t move.

“Well?”

“Oh, yeah, I don’t want to do that.”

The Dark Lord sighed but looked amused as he waved his wand several times, spells flowing effortlessly making sure Pettigrew was no longer actively bleeding or had any open wounds. His arm was splinted and he was cleaned up from where he had pissed himself before Tom stopped.

“Shame.” Harry muttered, “if I didn’t need him
”

“I am sure you would have made his death glorious.” Tom agreed, “now, allow me to concentrate as we need this to hold up.”

Pettigrew was petrified with a flick of Harry’s wand and then Tom dragged him forward, pressing his wand against the rat’s temple as he delved into his mind. He needed to make sure anything over the past year that Pettigrew may have heard or found out could not be revealed if he were under any truth spells or potions, including Veritaserum. The memories also had to be modified in a way that if they were taken out to be viewed in a pensieve then they wouldn’t look changed. It was intricate and difficult magic, even for someone as accomplished as he, as there could be no detail missed else it be uncovered at the wrong time. It didn’t help that a lot of Pettigrew’s memories appeared murky as if not his own, and it seemed to be from the times when Pettigrew was in rat form. It took longer than Tom thought, Pettigrew in rat form had overheard many of his plans, training schedules and ideas though thankfully he was mostly unknowing of anything surrounding Harry and his group other than what his Death Eaters had been speculating since the paper release.

Still, to be on the safe side, Tom went back as far as his resurrection as anything before that mattered little to him, and triple-checked the truths he was hiding in Pettigrew’s mind could not be revealed. The only way his modifications could be broken was through Pettigrew’s own magic overwhelming Tom’s own or someone with stronger magic than the Dark Lord coming in and breaking his spells. Once he was done it didn’t look or feel as if any magic had been performed on the rat at all, which meant if anyone did an in-depth scan on him nothing would come up. Tom withdrew and was faced with a wave of vertigo as he came back to himself, shaking off the feeling as if he were underwater with practised ease. Pettigrew was unconscious so Tom released the petrification spell and instead forced him back into his animagus form.

“You good?” Harry questioned sounding concerned and Tom was able to feel that the teen was worried through their bond. “That took nearly an hour.”

“Yes, simply Pettigrew is nosy and I wished to be thorough.” Tom reassured him and Harry nodded, his worry lessening.

“How far back did you go?”

“To my resurrection.” Tom told him, “I did not wish to have concerns if he had caught wind of a stray comment when he was lurking where he shouldn’t have been.”

“Yeah, that makes sense.”

“Now, to secure him so he doesn’t scurry away as he is wont to do,” Tom said and Harry grimaced.

“I want every security spell that isn’t punishable by prison time on there.” Harry stated, “normally I’d be all for the darkest but the cage will be going into the Ministry.”

“Do not fret, I have a sealing spell that can only be released by those who carry my magic with them.”

“So me and anyone with the Dark Mark?”

“Yes. And as Pettigrew will be in an enchanted sleep and the cage spelled to be unbreakable, he is also not getting out.”

“I’d ask why you have such a spell but I’m guessing your paranoid brain decided it was a wise thing to do.”

“I have found it to be a very wise invention. Do you know how crafty some of the Order were back in the first war? It only took your father and Black three times of breaking out prisoners before I realised that normal security wasn’t going to cut it.”

Harry laughed surprised.

“My father and Sirius?”

“There was a reason why I tried recruiting them so often. They were brilliant.”

Harry smiled slightly, pleased with such high praise for his family coming from Tom of all people. He watched, fascinated, as the Dark Lord conjured up a case and proceeded to spell, charm and ward the ever-loving shit into it before stuffing Pettigrew inside without care.

“One rat, as promised.” He declared, holding out the cage for the Potter Lord.

“Thank you,” Harry said, sending his sincerity and gratitude through their link so Tom knew exactly how he felt. “Dobby,”

The devoted elf popped in and Harry handed over the cage.

“This is to be guarded to the best of your abilities until I ask for it tomorrow, and you are not to hand it over to anyone other than me or Tom.” Harry told him and Dobby nodded seriously.

“Nobody bes getting Master Harry’s nasty rat man,” Dobby vowed, popping away when he was dismissed. Harry sighed in relief knowing that Pettigrew would be handed over as soon as possible and Sirius’ name would be in the process of getting cleared. He blinked when Tom entered his vision, pulling him to his feet and drawing him close.

“I believe you promised rewards for good behaviour,” Tom told him lowly and Harry smirked.

“I did,” he agreed, “and you have been very good to me, Tom. What did you have in mind?”

The lascivious grin that came over the Dark Lord’s face promised all the good times for Harry and happily pressed a teasing kiss to his lips.

“Come and get me,” Harry taunted shadowing away with a laugh. Tom banished the thrones and apparated after him; he had rewards to collect after all, and he intended to make the most of it.


One of the things Harry would definitely have to speak to Lucius about was the absolutely abysmal security within the Ministry of Magic. Several times now Harry had been able to sneak into the foremost government building of their world with little issue and if they were going to make their government and their country a global power as it used to be then the least they needed was a secure Ministerial building; it was actually embarrassing come to think about it. Either way, Harry was angsty and tense as he moved through the Ministry under his cloak, careful not to touch a single person as he weaved through the crowds and headed towards the elevator. He got lucky in that he managed to get into a car that only had two others entering and he tucked himself into the corner far enough that no accidents.

There were several stops on the way to the top floor where the Minister’s and Undersecretary’s offices were, but thankfully, the busiest the elevator got was four aurors seemingly coming back from their break and heading into the DMLE. Harry breathed in relief when he was able to move out of the elevator and search out where Hadrian Greengrass’ office would be. Thankfully, it wasn’t too much of a maze and he found a stately wooden door with golden accents and a golden plaque proclaiming Undersecretary Hadrian Greengrass for all to see. The twins had helpfully given him one of their decoy detonators and Harry set it off drawing all attention away from the office and he slipped in as soon as he was clear to do so. Hadrian’s attention snapped up as soon as his door opened and Harry came face to face with a wand and a scowl, which he felt was fair.

“I do apologise, Lord Greengrass, I’d normally have more manners but needs must.” Harry said pulling off his cloak making the older Lord relax.

“Dare I ask how you got here?” He wondered reluctantly amused and Harry grinned.

“Don’t worry, I intend for Ministerial security to be one of the things Lucius works on as soon as possible. I hope you will be a part of that conversation.”

“Given the multiple times you seem to have gotten yourself and others into this building I believe that shall be a much-needed conversation I will be happy to have.” Hadrian agreed, “please, have a seat. What brings you to my office, especially in such a clandestine manner.”

“Thank you,” Harry said as he took the seat before the Undersecretary’s desk. He reached into his pocket and pulled out the small cage Pettigrew had been secured it and placed it on the desk with a look of abject loathing. “As promised, one Peter Pettigrew. A day late, I know, but things happen as I am sure you understand.”

Hadrian blinked, looking down at the sleeping caged rat and a look of dawning comprehension filled his eyes.

“I know you implied such a thing but to see it with my own eyes
”

“It’s unfathomable that he managed to achieve such a thing.” Harry said with disdain.

“It explains how he managed to stay under the radar and that’s how the former Lord Black escaped.”

“Yes. Thankfully, because of the war and the age in which they achieved the transformation neither Sirius, Pettigrew or my father registered their forms.” Harry told him, “they did it so they could be with Remus on his transformation.”

“Ingenious,” Hadrian murmured realising the brilliance of such a plan, “werewolf bites are only harmful to humans.”

“Exactly,”

“So they finalised the transformation during their school years?” He said impressed and Harry smiled slightly.

“Fifth year. Pettigrew needed the most help but he still managed it.” Harry confirmed, “it’s a shame no one took into account his true self was a rat before he was made secret keeper for my parents.”

“A great and terrible treachery indeed,” Hadrian said in disgust. “to be entrusted with such a thing and to so easily break that sacred honour is something I cannot understand.”

“Trust me, you’re not the only one.”

“You understand that with such a lapse in judicial proceedings, it is very likely that Pettigrew will be given Verituserum.”

“I’m counting on it. As he was declared legally dead, something that could have been checked by walking into Gringotts but that’s an entirely different matter that will need to be addressed later, he has no right to deny the use of the serum.” Harry stated, “the main opposition will be Dumbledore if only because he’s on record for giving evidence against Sirius so he’s set to come out of this situation looking bad either way.”

“So any still loyal to him will work against anything to do with this trial.”

“Definitely.”

“Very well, I shall speak with Lucius on how we shall introduce this trial. I cannot promise certain questions will not arise.”

“There is nothing I have need of hiding when it comes to this
 vermin.”

“Then I shall make sure justice is granted to the late Lord Black.” Hadrian vowed and Harry found himself breathing shakily in relief.

“Thank you.” He said quietly, “that means more to me than you can ever know.”

“It is simply something that should have long ago been corrected,” Hadrian told him. “Now, I assume you can make your way out of the Ministry without issue.”

“I only need to follow you out when you leave your office.” Harry said with a slight grin, “everything else is unfavourably easy.”

“We really do need to discuss the security of the ministry.” Hadrian sighed, “very well, let me collect everything I need so I can begin the process of this trial with Lucius. I do not know if it will be ready for the next Wizengamot session or if I shall need to call for an emergency one due to the secrecy that will be surrounding this.”

“Tell me nothing. I am a good actor but with something like this it would be best to have authentic reactions therefore Dumbledore’s sycophants cannot claim collusion or anything of the sort.”

“Understandable,”

Harry watched as Hadrian gathered up several pieces of parchment tucking them into his pockets before picking up Pettigrew’s cage, only to pause slightly with a furrowed brow.

“What magic is on this?”

“Ah, yes, well, we might have gone a little overboard when securing him.” Harry admitted somewhat sheepishly, “Lucius will be able to release him, but I didn’t want him slipping away and he seems very good at that. Also, I do not trust very many people in the ministry and if anyone even close to Dumbledore’s camp catches wind of Pettigrew being in custody I don’t trust that Pettigrew won’t end up dead or gone.”

Hadrian raised an eyebrow but nodded in understanding.

“Unfortunately, I cannot say that your concerns are baseless.” He admitted, “I am looking forward to a time when we can say the ministry isn’t corrupt. Or at least not as corrupt as it is now.”

Harry snorted.

“That will be the day.”

Hadrian gave him a wryly amused look before heading to the door. Harry threw his cloak over his head and followed on his heels slipping away as Hadrian left in the direction of what Harry assumed was Lucius’ office and Harry went back to the elevators. He had to wait a bit before the doors would open, thankfully it only took ten minutes before someone was getting in so he could sidle in and press the button for the atrium. He stayed in the corner going down, having a close call when a rush of people from the Department of Magical Games and Sports rushed in jostling and laughing together discussing something to do with the latest Quidditch Game; Harry idly noted that Wood was doing well with Puddlemere if what was being said was true. Harry followed the group out into the atrium, using their numbers to make sure no one else came close to him and was more than happy to exit through the guest entry and onto the busy London streets, From there it was exceptionally easy to slide down a darkened ally and shadow directly to his rooms in the castle. Unsurprisingly, Luna was waiting for him for him and he was only too happy to fall face first onto the sofa and into her lap.

“I’ve left it all in Hadrian’s hands so there can’t be any accusations of collusion.”

“Authentic reactions.”

“Exactly,” Harry said, voice muffled from where he pressed his face into her stomach, “I can easily brush off not being surprised at his being alive as I’ve claimed it openly since fourth year, what I cannot be sure I can react to is anything that comes out of his mouth. I know he betrayed my parents and Sirius, but I don’t truly know why and if I do I don’t think I can fully reenact a genuine reaction.”

“And even if you could if anything wasn’t perfect on the day then someone in Dumbledore’s camp will cry foul.”

“They’re going to anyway, but Dumbledore knows how I lash out and it would be better for him to witness such a thing and know that I’m acting truthfully as he’s already going to be on the defensive.”

“Rest now, you have Charms after lunch and then you’re free for the day. Try not to think about too much.” Luna ordered and Harry sighed but didn’t argue knowing it would be pointless to even try. Luna ran a soothing hand through his hair and Harry allowed it to lull him into a semi-doze, trying to shut off his mind as his thoughts spun with the possibility of finally having Sirius’ name cleared once and for all. It didn’t much work, but now that Pettigrew was with Lord Greengrass Harry was at least contented to know that the man wasn’t corrupt and as long as Lucius wasn’t a complete fool the Pettigrew wasn’t going anyway. He’d finally get some justice for his parents because yes Tom might have killed them but it was war and they had chosen to fight, Pettigrew had been their friend and he had given them up light lambs for slaughter; and for what?

If it wasn’t for Sirius’ name, Harry would and wrenched the skin from the rat’s body and drenched him with salt water until his very nerves burned themselves away before healing him and starting over and over until his mind broke from the sheer torment. He still might, come to think of it, as one of their main ports of call was revamping Azkaban, once Pettigrew was convicted and Sirius' name was cleared it wouldn’t be too difficult for the rat to go missing and allow Harry and Remus to make him suffer as they had suffered all these years. Yes, he would see to that. It was nothing less than he deserved.

Luna roused him just before the bell signalled the end of lunch so that he had time to change into his school robes and collect his bag before the pair of them headed out to their respective classes. Luna made towards the dungeons while Harry headed to Charms, an anxious group of friends waiting for him as he approached the classroom.

“Well?” Draco demanded, having exactly zero patience in his body.

“Locked and handed over.” Harry confirmed, “I have no details as I want authentic reactions as there will be foul play called and I want there to be little reason for anyone to believe them.”

“That makes sense.” Neville agreed.

“Do we at least know when everything is going to happen?” Blaise asked and Harry shook his head.

“The only thing I have been told is that it might be necessary to call an emergency meeting due to the significance of the case,” Harry said, “I don’t know which will be better.”

“Normal session might raise issues depending on what else is on the docket while emergency puts people on their guard.” Ron mused thoughtfully, “however, emergency has the benefit of no one knowing what’s going on while the normal session Dumbledore will see that something is in the works even if he doesn’t know details.”

“All the more reason for us not to know and for it to be our genuine reaction.” Hermione realised, “right, well there is nothing more we can do about that situation so let’s turn our attention to the plethora of other things we have brewing.”

Just then, Flitwick called for them to enter and they all trooped into the classroom, focusing on the day’s lesson rather than Pettigrew’s upcoming trial. As they were sixth years they were expected to master silent casting and it was being incorporated into every aspect of their education. Thankfully, Harry and his friends were more than capable and now they weren’t hiding Flitwick got very excited watching them work. Harry actually enjoyed Charms, Flitwick was always an excellent teacher and he was someone who was always openly enthusiastic about his students doing well. Plus, there was something nice about being able to just do magic that didn’t have any significant importance or could affect the entire future they were trying to build. Flitwick made an offhand comment that Harry had his mother’s Charm’s talent and it reminded him of something he had been wanting to work on finishing ever since he had found it the first time.

When the end of the lesson came, Harry waved off his friends telling them he was going to have a quiet night and they could go back to plotting tomorrow, then walked up to the front of the classroom, assisting Flitwick in clearing up so he could speak to him.

“Thank you for your assistance, Potter.” The Charms professor said cheerfully, “what can I help you with?”

“It’s sort of a personal thing Professor, it’s to do with Charms but not school work.” Harry admitted, “do you have time to speak with me now or shall I come back at a better time?”

“Is this conversation set to be long?”

“Most likely.” Harry said, “it’s about my mother’s unfinished Charms mastery work. I found it.”

Flitwick squeaked and had a strange expression of abject delight and great sorrow on his face.

“I had wondered what had happened to it.” Flitwick said softly, “Lily was one of the greatest students I have ever had the pleasure of teaching and she would have taken the world by storm.”

“I’d like for her efforts to be recognised. Currently, it is not finished, but I was hoping you might help me finish it off so she could get the recognition she deserves. She wrote that you were such a help and inspiration to her, I didn’t want anyone else touching it.” Harry explained and he wasn’t lying at all. The reason he hadn’t gotten anyone else, Tom for obvious reasons, his friends or even Remus to look it over and help out was because it was one of the few non-materialistic things he had from his mother and he wanted her work to be finished in as close as a way as she would done. And as she had been completing an independent Mastery, with tutelage and help from Flitwick, then that was exactly what Harry would do too.

“I would be honoured, Lord Potter.” Flitwick said formally looking touched, “to see Lily’s work completed and her brilliance shown to the world is something I would never deny.”

Harry beamed.

“Thank you, Professor, truly.” He said pleased.

“I know you’re schedule is rather busy, what with your placement on the Wizengamot and taking a decent class list, but shall we write in an evening where we can meet and see where we can start?”

“That would be perfect.”

“Excellent,” Flitwick declared. The two of them went through both their schedules and came up with a revolving set of days where they could meet. Harry would come when Flitwick was supervising detentions as he more often than not had them in his classroom and he could help supervise the students, help Harry and mark essays at the same time. It worked out well as Harry could adapt his schedule to make sure he was either free or using the time-turner when Flitwick was on the detention rota, or he would have plenty of time to rearrange with the Charms Master if something came up. It would also be the perfect time to speak with the half-goblin about his neutral stance and see if he could feel him out as Harry didn’t particularly want to anger a champion dueller who was well-liked by the majority of the wizarding UK and had strong ties to the goblin nation.

Harry ended up leaving the Charms classroom with a spring in his step, happier than he had been all day and he was only too happy to head down to the kitchens to grab something to eat as he didn’t intend to go the Great Hall for dinner. No doubt his friends would inform him if something major happened, but Harry had every intention of making a nuisance of himself to Tom until he was given the amount of attention he desired.

Winky was only too happy to prepare a meal and dessert for him and Tom to be sent up, quickly ushering him out and insisting he could have just called her rather than travelling all the way to the kitchens. Harry had tried to argue the point of it not being that far but it was like talking to a wall so he did as he was told and left, shadowing to his rooms and staying long enough to ditch his uniform and freshen up before shadowing to Tom’s. He wasn’t surprised to find Tom’s rooms empty, unlike him, Professor Drield had a full day of classes, so Harry made himself comfortable. He didn’t really want to study, but he had some homework to finish so he flew through that before turning his attention onto something that didn’t involve politics, plotting or schoolwork. He asked Dobby to bring him the journal Remus had gotten him for Christmas so he could look through it fully. He hadn’t had the chance to fully read it, only what Remus had shown him when he had gifted it to him, so Harry curled up on the sofa and turned his attention to the soft, worn brown journal. The first entry looked to be a muggle sonogram with a lovingly written “baby Potter” underneath in writing similar to his own, while there were added notes from four different hands as what Harry could only assume were the four Marauders celebrating his conception.

Harry found himself grinning and tearing up in equal measure as he flicked through the entries, some were accompanied by pictures, both photographic and drawn, as the Marauders and Lily put the life of her pregnancy onto pages. It was funny, ridiculous, depressing, angsty, adoring and most of all, Harry got the impression that he was one of the most loved and anticipated babies of the year. The most frequent entries, other than his mother, came from Sirius, who seemed to put his all into the pregnancy development as if he were the expectant father. James had even written that Sirius was showing him up with his enthusiasm much to Lily and Remus’ amusement. There was an odd detachment surrounding reading his parents' excitement of his upcoming birth, he could read and see their joy but it was absent in a way that he could barely explain. Looking at Sirius’, however, made Harry ache in ways he hadn’t expected. Sirius looked so alive, so adoring, and Harry knew had he been given the chance Sirius would have poured every ounce of his love into Harry without thought. Even through Dumbledore’s actions and manipulations, Sirius tried everything he could to be the rock Harry needed until Dumbledore had him killed.

Harry traced his finger over the photo of a younger Sirius seemingly going through a ridiculous amount of baby clothes while he spoke to Lily’s huge belly. Beaming as if there was no place he would rather be as he nearly folded a pair of tiny socks and added them to the pile. Harry loathed Dumbledore more than words could describe for denying him and Sirius their chance of a family, for making it so they were on the cusp only for it to be ripped away. Pettigrew being handed over had dragged up all of the feelings Harry actively tried to ignore and seeing the joy in Sirius’ face it was a sharp reminder of what had been destroyed simply for one man’s need for power. Ever since they had found the warding on Tom’s orphanage, it had become apparent that Dumbledore was playing a longer game than anyone had ever expected, so there was no way for them to know exactly what it was the old man wanted other than power. So Harry felt like his losses would never have a reason. What was the point of the prophecy? What was the point of locking Sirius up and having them forcefully separated when he broke out? Why create a Dark Lord in the making and then have a prophecy used to destroy him rather than take him out himself? There were so many unanswered questions and Harry often felt as if he was always going to be climbing a mountain with no end in sight. It wasn’t much, and the reminder of what he had lost only emphasised that point, but at least soon Pettigrew would get his even if Dumbledore would still not be made to answer for his own part in Harry’s family’s destruction.

He didn’t realise tears had leaked from his eyes until they dropped onto the pages of the journal and he rushed to dry it before it could ruin the ink. He scoffed to himself, putting the journal to the side and wiping his eyes.

“Merlin, what is wrong with me.” He muttered scrubbing his face.

“I’d like to know the answer to that, also.” Tom’s voice startled him and the Dark Lord’s already frowning expression went severe when he caught sight of Harry’s tear flushed face.

“Ignore me,” Harry insisted, wiping over his face one more time, “I’m fine, I’m just a mess.”

Tom pursed his lips before moving forward and taking a seat next to the teen, pulling him close so he was all but sitting on the older man’s lap.

“Tell me,” he ordered and Harry sighed, pressing his face into Tom’s shoulder slightly.

“It’s dumb,” Harry said but Tom simply continued to look at him waiting on him and Harry sighed. “Remus gave me my mother’s pregnancy journal and I’ve finally been able to properly look through it and it hit me, I guess. Everything Dumbledore took.”

He felt Tom go tense underneath him and look away so Harry turned his head and made him look at him.

“It’s not what you think.”

“As much as we do not speak of it we cannot deny that your parents died at my hand.”

“And we both know that if Dumbledore hadn’t put a giant target on their head you would have continued to try and recruit them.” Harry pointed out and Tom scowled.

“You cannot know that.”

“Neither of us can but we can know for certain that the only reason you turned your obsessive attention onto us in the first place was the prophecy, and Dumbledore made sure his face prophecy got out,” Harry stated and Tom didn’t argue with him because he couldn’t.

“Then if not your parents then what?”

“I lost my parents so young and I spent ten years being told they were useless drunks that got killed in a car crash and left me to my shitty relatives, it was only when I was reintroduced to the magical world did I learn the truth, and by that point, I have barely any connection to them other than what Dumbledore forced upon me and the generic ‘what if’ that I am sure all orphans have,” Harry explained and Tom made a humming sound of understanding.

“I see,”

“I love my parents in the abstract way, in that they were my parents, they brought me into this world and they protected me with their very lives but the connection is simply not there. But Sirius
”

“Sirius was real in a way they never were.” Tom realised what he was getting at and Harry nodded, picking up the journal where it had been left open on the picture with Sirius and the baby clothes.

“Sirius was taken from me and I don’t know if I will ever get over that fully. Seeing him here, so alive and happy, and knowing that it was all taken away because of the whims of two men makes me want to burn the world to the ground. All I have now is making sure Sirius’ name is post-humorously cleared and that Pettigrew, and eventually Dumbledore, pay for their crimes. I’d give almost anything to have him here with me now.” Harry shook his head with a thick laugh, blinking rapidly to attempt to stop any more tears from slipping from his eyes with little success. “Fuck, I hate this!”

Tom didn’t speak, instead, he manoeuvred them so he was laid out on the sofa flat on his back and Harry was basically plastered all over him, face hidden in the crook of his neck so he could mask his tears.

“One day, when we have rebuilt the world in our image, I will have all the time in the world to get my answers from Dumbledore in any way I seek.”

“I promise you this; the old man will suffer in ways you can only imagine and when he believes he has reached the end of everything he is he will learn how cruel I can be,” Tom swore, his voice low and almost thrumming with magic as he put his full weight into his words. Harry pressed a grateful kiss to Tom’s collarbone, relaxing as the older man gently ran a slow hand up and down his back. The Dark Lord’s mind was whirling, he truly loathed witnessing Harry’s tears. His snake should never have reason to shed them and the fact that this particular situation with the late Lord Black was causing such pain despite everything Harry had been through and suffered did not sit well with Tom. His mind turned over the idea of correcting such a thing.

Harry needn’t know anything at the current time just in case. It would be difficult, even for someone of his power and intellect, and he would be working on rumour and speculation alone, which was always tiresome and time-consuming. But. If it was possible, if any of the rumours were in any way true, then it would be worth it. Harry would be worshipful in his gratitude, he’d tie his teen to him forever with this one action alone, and he would also gain more favour with the House of Black and Lupin. Yes. The more he thought about it the less downsides there were to such an idea. Plus, the intellectual aspects of it would be the likes of which are currently unknown. The ministry was built around it, it predated Hogwarts itself, and so there were multiple accounts of how and why the it came to be. After all, the Veil of Death was one of the many mysteries of the world and now Tom was only too eager to uncover them all.

Notes:

So, 11 thousand words and a reintroduction after 2 very short years!!

I hope you have all enjoyed it, and I shall begin working on getting through the approximately 200+ messages currently sitting in my inbox.

Thanks guys!!